Srimad Bhagavatam
Srimad Bhagavatam
Srimad Bhagavatam
CONTENTS
CANTO ONE
Chapter One Questions by the Sages 7
Chapter Two Divinity and Divine Service 8
Chapter Three Krsna Is the Source of All Incarnations 9
Chapter Four The Appearance of Sri Narada 12
Chapter Five Narada's Instructions on Srimad-Bhagavatam for Vyasadeva 13
Chapter Six Conversation Between Narada and Vyasadeva 15
Chapter Seven The Son of Drona Punished 17
Chapter Eight Prayers by Queen Kunti and Pariksit Saved 19
Chapter Nine The Passing Away of Bhismadeva in the Presence of Lord Krsna 21
Chapter Ten Departure of Lord Krsna for Dvaraka 24
Chapter Eleven Lord Krsna's Entrance into Dvaraka 25
Chapter Twelve Birth of Emperor Pariksit 27
Chapter Thirteen Dhrtarastra Quits Home 29
Chapter Fourteen The Disappearance of Lord Krsna 32
Chapter Fifteen The Pandavas Retire Timely 33
Chapter Sixteen How Pariksit Received the Age of Kali 36
Chapter Seventeen Punishment and Reward of Kali 38
Chapter Eighteen Maharaja Pariksit Cursed by a Brahmana Boy 40
Chapter Nineteen The Appearance of Sukadeva Gosvami 42
CANTO TWO
Chapter One The First Step in God Realization 44
Chapter Two The Lord in the Heart 46
Chapter Three Pure Devotional Service: The Change in Heart 48
Chapter Four The Process of Creation 49
Chapter Five The Cause of All Causes 51
Chapter Six Purusa-sukta Confirmed 53
Chapter Seven Scheduled Incarnations with Specific Functions 55
Chapter Eight Questions by King Pariksit 59
Chapter Nine Answers by Citing the Lord's Version 60
Chapter Ten Bhagavatam Is the Answer to All Questions 62
CANTO THREE
Chapter One Questions by Vidura 65
Chapter Two Remembrance of Lord Krsna 67
Chapter Three Remembrance of Lord Krsna 69
Chapter Four Vidura Approaches Maitreya 70
Chapter Five Vidura's Talks with Maitreya 72
Chapter Six Creation of the Universal Form 75
Chapter Seven Further Inquires by Vidura 76
Chapter Eight Manifestation of Brahma from Garbhodakasayi Visnu 78
Chapter Nine Brahma's Prayers for Creative Energy 80
Chapter Ten Divisions of the Creation 83
Chapter Eleven Calculation of Time, from the Atom 84
Chapter Twelve Creation of the Kumaras and Others 86
Chapter Thirteen The Appearance of Lord Varaha 88
Chapter Fourteen Pregnancy of Diti in the Evening 91
Chapter Fifteen Description of the Kingdom of God 93
Chapter Sixteen The Two Doorkeepers of Vaikuntha, Cursed by the Sages 96
Chapter Seventeen Victory of Hiranyaksa Over All the directions of the Universe 98
Chapter Eighteen The Battle Between Lord Boar and the Demon Hiranyaksa 99
Chapter Nineteen The Killing of the Demon Hiranyaksa 100
Chapter Twenty Conversation Between Maitreya and Vidura 102
2 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Twenty-one Conversation Between Manu and Kardama 104
Chapter Twenty-two The Marriage of Kardama Muni and Devahuti 107
Chapter Twenty-three Devahuti's Lamentation 108
Chapter Twenty-four The Renunciation of Kardama Muni 111
Chapter Twenty-five The Glories of Devotional Service 113
Chapter Twenty-six Fundamental Principles of Material Nature 115
Chapter Twenty-seven Understanding Material Nature 119
Chapter Twenty-eight Kapila's Instructions on the Execution of Devotional Service 120
Chapter Twenty-nine Explanation of Devotional Service by Lord Kapila 122
Chapter Thirty Description by Lord Kapila of Adverse Fruitive Activities 125
Chapter Thirty-one Lord Kapila's Instructions on the Movements of the Living Entities 126
Chapter Thirty-two Entanglement in Fruitive Activities 129
Chapter Thirty-three Activities of Kapila 131
CANTO FOUR
Chapter One Genealogical Table of the Daughters of Manu 133
Chapter Two Daksa Curses Lord Siva 135
Chapter Three Talks Between Lord Siva and Sati 137
Chapter Four Sati Quits Her Body 138
Chapter Five Frustration of the Sacrifice of Daksa 140
Chapter Six Brahma Satisfies Lord Siva 141
Chapter Seven The Sacrifice Performed by Daksa 144
Chapter Eight Dhruva Maharaja Leaves Home for the Forest 148
Chapter Nine Dhruva Maharaja Returns Home 152
Chapter Ten Dhruva Maharaja's Fight With the Yaksas 156
Chapter Eleven Svayambuva Manu Advises Dhruva Maharaja to Stop Fighting 157
Chapter Twelve Dhruva Maharaja Goes Back to Godhead 159
Chapter Thirteen Description of the Descendants of Dhruva Maharaja 162
Chapter Fourteen The Story of King Vena 164
Chapter Fifteen King Prthu's Appearance and Coronation 167
Chapter Sixteen Praise of King Prthu by the Professional Reciters 168
Chapter Seventeen Maharaja Prthu Becomes Angry at the Earth 170
Chapter Eighteen Prthu Maharaja Milks the Earth Planet 172
Chapter Nineteen King Prthu's One Hundred Horse Sacrifices 173
Chapter Twenty Lord Visnu's Appearance in the Sacrificial Arena 175
Chapter Twenty-one Instructions by Maharaja Prthu 178
Chapter Twenty-two Prthu Maharaja's Meeting with the Four Kumaras 181
Chapter Twenty-three Maharaja Prthu's Going Back Home 184
Chapter Twenty-four Chanting the Song Sung by Lord Siva 187
Chapter Twenty-five The Descriptions of the Characteristics of King Puranjana 191
Chapter Twenty-six King Puranjana Goes to Forest to Hunt, His Queen Becomes Angry 194
Chapter Twenty-seven Attack by Candavega on City of Puranjana; Character of Kalakanya 196
Chapter Twenty-eight Puranjana Becomes a Woman in the Next Life 197
Chapter Twenty-nine Talks Between Narada and King Pracinabarhi 200
Chapter Thirty The Activities of the Pracetas 205
Chapter Thirty-one Narada Instructs the Pracetas 208
CANTO FIVE
Chapter One The Activities of Maharaja Priyavrata 210
Chapter Two The Activities of Maharaja Agnidhra 213
Chapter Three Rsabhadeva's Appearance in the Womb of Merudevi, Wife of King Nabhi 215
Chapter Four The Characteristics of Rsabhadeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead 217
Chapter Five Lord Rsabhadeva's Teachings to His Sons 218
Chapter Six The Activities of Lord Rsabhadeva 221
Chapter Seven The Activities of King Bharata 223
Chapter Eight A Description of the Character of Bharata Maharaja 224
Chapter Nine The Supreme Character of Jada Bharata 226
Chapter Ten The Discussion Between Jada Bharata and Maharaja Rahugana 228
Chapter Eleven Jada Bharata Instructs King Rahugana 231
Chapter Twelve Conversation Between Maharaja Rahugana and Jada Bharata 232
Chapter Thirteen Further Talks Between King Rahugana and Jada Bharata 234
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 3
Chapter Fourteen The Material World as the Great Forest of Enjoyment 236
Chapter Fifteen The Glories of the Descendants of King Priyavrata 240
Chapter Sixteen A Description of Jambudvipa 242
Chapter Seventeen The Descent of the River Ganges 244
Chapter Eighteen The Prayers Offered to the Lord by the Residents of Jambudvipa 246
Chapter Nineteen A Description of the Island of Jambudvipa 249
Chapter Twenty Studying the Structure of the Universe 252
Chapter Twenty-one The Movements of the Sun 255
Chapter Twenty-two The Orbits of the Planets 256
Chapter Twenty-three The Sisumara Planetary Systems 258
Chapter Twenty-four The Subterranean Heavenly Planets 259
Chapter Twenty-five The Glories of Lord Ananta 262
Chapter Twenty-six A Description of the Hellish Planets 263
CANTO SIX
Chapter One The History of the Life of Ajamila 266
Chapter Two Ajamila Delivered by the Visnudutas 270
Chapter Three Yamaraja Instructs His Messengers 273
Chapter Four The Hamsa-guhya Prayers Offrered to the Lord by Prajapati Daksa 275
Chapter Five Narada Muni Cursed by Prajapati Daksa 279
Chapter Six The Progeny of the Daughters of Daksa 282
Chapter Seven Indra Offends His Spiritual Master, Brhaspati 283
Chapter Eight The Narayana-kavaca Shield 285
Chapter Nine Appearance of the Demon Vrtrasura 288
Chapter Ten The Battle Between the Demigods and Vrtrasura 292
Chapter Eleven The Transcendental Qualities of Vrtrasura 293
Chapter Twelve Vrtrasura's Glorious Death 295
Chapter Thirteen King Indra Afflicted by Sinful Reaction 297
Chapter Fourteen King Citraketu's Lamentation 298
Chapter Fifteen The Saints Narada and Angira Instruct King Citraketu 301
Chapter Sixteen King Citraketu Meets the Supreme Lord 303
Chapter Seventeen Mother Parvati Curses Citraketu 307
Chapter Eighteen Diti Vows to Kill King Indra 309
Chapter Nineteen Performing the Pumsavana Ritualistic Ceremony 313
CANTO SEVEN
Chapter One The Supreme Lord Is Equal to Everyone 315
Chapter Two Hiranyakasipu, King of the Demons 318
Chapter Three Hiranyakasipu's Plan to Become Immortal 321
Chapter Four Hiranyakasipu Terrorizes the Universe 323
Chapter Five Prahlada Maharaja, the Saintly Son of Hiranyakasipu 326
Chapter Six Prahlada Instructs His Demoniac Schoolmates 329
Chapter Seven What Prahlada Learned in the Womb 331
Chapter Eight Lord Nrsimhadeva Slays the King of the Demons 334
Chapter Nine Prahlada Pacifies Lord Nrsimhadeva with Prayers 338
Chapter Ten Prahlada, the Best Among Exalted Devotees 342
Chapter Eleven The Perfect Society: Four Social Classes 345
Chapter Twelve The Perfect Society: Four Spiritual Classes 347
Chapter Thirteen The Behavior of a Perfect Person 349
Chapter Fourteen Ideal Family Life 351
Chapter Fifteen Instructions for Civilized Human Beings 354
CANTO EIGHT
Chapter One The Manus, Administrators of the Universe 359
Chapter Two The Elephant Gajendra's Crisis 360
Chapter Three Gajendra's Prayers of Surrender 362
Chapter Four Gajendra Returns to the Spiritual World 364
Chapter Five The Demigods Appeal to the Lord for Protection 365
Chapter Six The Demigods and Demons Declare a Truce 368
Chapter Seven Lord Siva Saves the Universe by Drinking Poison 370
Chapter Eight The Churning of the Milk Ocean 372
Chapter Nine The Lord Incarnates as Mohini-Murti 375
4 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Ten The Battle Between the Demigods and the Demons 376
Chapter Eleven King Indra Annihilates the Demons 379
Chapter Twelve The Mohini-murti Incarnation Bewilders Lord Siva 381
Chapter Thirteen Description of Future Manus 384
Chapter Fourteen The System of Universal Management 385
Chapter Fifteen Bali Maharaja Conquers the Heavenly Planets 386
Chapter Sixteen Executing the Payo-vrata Process of Worship 387
Chapter Seventeen The Supreme Lord Agrees to Become Aditi's Son 390
Chapter Eighteen Lord Vamanadeva, the Dwarf Incarnation 391
Chapter Nineteen Lord Vamanadeva Begs Charity from Bali Maharaja 393
Chapter Twenty Bali Maharaja Surrenders the Universe 395
Chapter Twenty-one Bali Maharaja Arrested by the Lord 397
Chapter Twenty-two Bali Maharaja Surrenders His Life 399
Chapter Twenty-three The Demigods Regain the Heavenly Planets 401
Chapter Twenty-four Matsya, the Lord's Fish Incarnation 402
CANTO NINE
Chapter One King Sudyumna Becomes a Woman 405
Chapter Two The Dynasties of the Sons of Manu 407
Chapter Three The Marriage of Sukanya and Cyavana Muni 408
Chapter Four Ambarisa Maharaja Offended by Durvasa Muni 410
Chapter Five Durvasa Muni's Life Spared 414
Chapter Six The Downfall of Saubhari Muni 415
Chapter Seven The Descendants of King Mandhata 418
Chapter Eight The Sons of Sagara Meet Lord Kapiladeva 419
Chapter Nine The Dynasty of Amsuman 420
Chapter Ten The Pastimes of the Supreme Lord, Ramacandra 423
Chapter Eleven Lord Ramacandra Rules the World 426
Chapter Twelve The Dynasty of Kusa, the Son of Lord Ramacandra 428
Chapter Thirteen The Dynasty of Maharaja Nimi 429
Chapter Fourteen King Pururava Enchanted by Urvasi 430
Chapter Fifteen Parasurama, the Lord's Warrior Incarnation 433
Chapter Sixteen Lord Parasurama Destroys the World's Ruling Class 434
Chapter Seventeen The Dynasties of the Sons of Pururava 436
Chapter Eighteen King Yayati Regains His Youth 437
Chapter Nineteen King Yayati Achieves Liberation 439
Chapter Twenty The Dynasty of Puru 441
Chapter Twenty-one The Dynasty of Bharata 442
Chapter Twenty-two The Descendants of Ajamidha 444
Chapter Twenty-three The Dynasties of the Sons of Yayati 446
Chapter Twenty-four Krsna the Supreme Personality of Godhead 448
CANTO TEN
Chapter One The Advent of Lord Krsna: Introduction 450
Chapter Two Prayers by the Demigods for Lord Krsna in the Womb 454
Chapter Three The Birth of Lord Krsna 457
Chapter Four The Atrocities of King Kamsa 459
Chapter Five The Meeting of Nanda Maharaja and Vasudeva 462
Chapter Six The Killing of the Demon Putana 463
Chapter Seven The Killing of the Demon Trnavarta 465
Chapter Eight Lord Krsna Shows the Universal Form Within His Mouth 468
Chapter Nine Mother Yasoda Binds Lord Lord Krsna 471
Chapter Ten Deliverance of the Yamala-arjuna Trees 472
Chapter Eleven The Childhood Pastimes of Krsna 474
Chapter Twelve The Killing of the Demon Aghasura 477
Chapter Thirteen The Stealing of the Boys and Calves by Brahma 480
Chapter Fourteen Brahma's Prayers to Lord Krsna 484
Chapter Fifteen The Killing of Dhenuka, the Ass Demon 487
Chapter Sixteen Krsna Chastises the Serpent Kaliya 490
Chapter Seventeen The History of Kaliya 494
Chapter Eighteen Lord Balarama Slays the Demon Pralamba 495
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 5
Chapter Nineteen Swallowing the Forest Fire 496
Chapter Twenty The Rainy Season and Autumn in Vrndavana 497
Chapter Twenty-One The Gopis Glorify the Song of Krsna's Flute 499
Chapter Twenty-Two Krsna Steals the Garments of the Unmarried Gopis 500
Chapter Twenty-Three The Brahmanas' Wives Blessed 502
Chapter Twenty-Four Worshiping Govardhana Hill 504
Chapter Twenty-Five Lord Krsna Lifts Govardhana Hill 506
Chapter Twenty-Six Wonderful Krsna 507
ChapterTwenty-Seven Lord Indra and Mother Surabhi Offer Prayers 509
Chapter Twenty-Eight Krsna Rescues Nanda Maharaja from the Abode of Varuna 510
Chapter Twenty-Nine Krsna and the Gopis Meet for the Rasa Dance 511
Chapter Thirty The Gopis Search for Krsna 513
Chapter Thirty-One The Gopis' Songs of Separation 515
Chapter Thirty-Two The Reunion 516
Chapter Thirty-Three The Rasa Dance 517
Chapter Thirty-Four Nanda Maharaja Saved and Sankhacuda Slain 519
Chapter Thirty-Five The Gopis Sing of Krsna as He Wanders in the Forest 520
Chapter Thirty-Six The Slaying of Arista, the Bull Demon 521
Chapter Thirty-Seven The Killing of the Demons Kesi and Vyoma 523
Chapter Thirty-Eight Akrura's Arrival in Vrndavana 524
Chapter Thirty-Nine Akrura's Vision 526
Chapter Forty The Prayers of Akrura 529
Chapter Forty-One Krsna and Balarama Enter Mathura 530
Chapter Forty-Two The Breaking of the Sacrificial Bow 532
Chapter Forty-Three Krsna Kills the Elephant Kuvalayapida 534
Chapter Forty-Four The Killing of Kamsa 535
Chapter Forty-Five Krsna Rescues His Teacher's Son 537
Chapter Forty-Six Uddhava Visits Vrndavana 539
Chapter Forty-Seven The Song of the Bee 541
Chapter Forty-Eight Krsna Pleases His Devotees 544
Chapter Forty-Nine Akrura's Mission in Hastinapura 546
Chapter Fifty Krsna Establishes the City of Dvaraka 547
Chapter Fifty-One The Deliverance of Mucukunda 549
Chapter Fifty-Two Rukmini's Message to Lord Krsna 552
Chaptert Fifty-Three Krsna Kidnaps Rukmini 553
Chapter Fifty-Four The Marriage of Krsna and Rukmini 556
Chapter Fifty-Five The History of Pradyumna 558
Chapter Fifty-Six The Syamantaka Jewel 559
Chapter Fifty-Seven Satrajit Murdered, the Jewel Returned 561
Chapter Fifty-Eight Krsna Marries Five Princesses 563
Chapter Fifty-Nine The Killing of the Demon Naraka 565
Chapter Sixty Lord Krsna Teases Queen Rukmini 567
Chapter Sixty-One Lord Balarama Slays Rukmi 570
Chapter Sixty-Two The Meeting of Usa and Aniruddha 571
Chapter Sixty-Three Lord Krsna Fights with Banasura 573
Chapter Sixty-Four The Deliverance of King Nrga 575
Chapter Sixty-Five Lord Balarama Visits Vrndavana 577
Chapter Sixty-Six Paundraka, the False Vasudeva 578
Chapter Sixty-Seven Lord Balarama Slays Dvivida Gorilla 580
Chaptrer Sixty-Eight The Marriage of Samba 581
Chapter Sixty-Nine Narada Muni Visits Lord Krsna's Palaces in Dvaraka 583
Chapter Seventy Lord Krsna's Daily Activities 585
Chapter Seventy-One The Lord Travels to Indraprastha 587
Chapter Seventy-Two The Slaying of the Demon Jarasandha 589
Chapter Seventy-Three Lord Krsna Blesses the Liberated Kings 591
Chapter Seventy-Four The Deliverance of Sisupala at the Rajasuya Sacrifice 592
Chapter Seventy-Five Duryodhana Humiliated 594
Chapter Seventy-Six The Battle Between Salva and the Vrsnis 596
Chapter Seventy-Seven Lord Krsna Slays the Demon Salva 597
6 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Seventy-Eight The Killing of Dantavakra, Viduratha and Romaharsana 599
Chapter Seventy-Nine Lord Balarama Goes on Pilgrimage 600
Chapter Eighty The Brahmana Sudama Visits Lord Krsna in Dvaraka 601
Chapter Eighty-One The Lord Blesses Sudama Brahmana 603
Chapter Eighty-Two Krsna and Balarama Meet the Inhabitants of Vrndavana 605
Chapter Eighty-Three Draupadi Meets the Queens of Krsna 607
Chapter Eighty-Four The Sages' Teachings at Kuruksetra 609
Chapter Eighty-Five Lord Krsna Instructs Vasudeva and Retrieves Devaki's Sons 612
Chapter Eighty-Six Arjuna Kidnaps Subhadra, and Krsna Blesses His Devotees 615
Chapter Eighty-Seven The Prayers of the Personified Vedas 617
Chapter Eighty-Eight Lord Siva Saved from Vrkasura 621
Chapter Eighty-Nine Krsna and Arjuna Retrieve a Brahmana's Sons 623
Chapter Ninety Summary of Lord Krsna's Glories 625
CANTO ELEVEN
Chapter One The Curse Upon the Yadu Dynasty 627
Chapter Two Maharaja Nimi Meets the Nine Yogendras 629
Chapter Three Liberation from the Illusory Energy 632
Chaptrer Four Drumila Explains the Incarnations of Godhead to King Nimi 636
Chapter Five Narada Concludes His Teachings to Vasudeva 638
Chapter Six The Yadu Dynasty Retires to Prabhasa 641
Chapter Seven Lord Krsna Instructs Uddhava 643
Chapter Eight The Story of Pingala 647
Chapter Nine Detachment from All that Is Material 650
Chapter Ten The Nature of Fruitive Activity 652
Chapter Eleven The Symptoms of Conditioned and Liberated Living Entities 654
Chapter Twelve Beyond Renunciation and Knowledge 657
Chapter Thirteen The Hamsa-avatara Answers the Questions of the Sons of Brahma 659
Chapter Fourteen Lord Krsna Explains the Yoga System to Sri Uddhava 661
Chapter Fifteen Lord Krsna's Description of Mystic Yoga Perfections 663
Chapter Sixteen The Lord's Opulence 665
Chapter Seventeen Lord Krsna's Description of the Varnasrama System 667
Chapter Eighteen Description of Varnasrama-dharma 670
Chapter Nineteen The Perfection of Spiritual Knowledge 673
Chapter Twenty Pure Devotional Service Surpasses Knowledge and Detachment 675
Chapter Twenty-One Lord Krsna's Explanation of the Vedic Path 677
Chapter Twenty-Two Enumeration of the Elements of Material Creation 679
Chapter Twenty-Three The Song of the Avanti Brahmana 682
Chapter Twenty-Four The Philosophy of Sankhya 685
Chapter Twenty-Five The Three Modes of Nature and Beyond 687
Chapter Twenty-Six The Aila-gita 688
Chapter Twenty-Seven Lord Krsna's Instructions on the Process of Deity Worship 690
Chapter Twenty-Eight Jnana-yoga 693
Chapter Twenty-Nine Bhakti-yoga 695
Chapter Thirty The Disappearance of the Yadu Dynasty 698
Chapter Thirty-One The Disappearance of Lord Sri Krsna 700
CANTO TWELVE
Chapter One The Degraded Dynasties of Kali-yuga 701
Chapter Two The Symptoms of Kali-yuga 702
Chapter Three The Bhumi-gita 704
Chapter Four The Four Categories of Universal Annihilation 706
Chapter Five Sukadeva Gosvami's Final Instructions to Maharaja Pariksit 708
Chapter Six Maharaja Pariksit Passes Away 709
Chapter Seven The Puranic Literatures 713
Chapter Eight Markandeya's Prayers to Nara-Narayana Rsi 714
Chapter Nine Markandeya Rsi Sees the Illusory Potency of the Lord 717
Chapter Ten Lord Siva and Uma Glorify Markandeya Rsi 718
Chapter Eleven Summary Description of the Mahapurusa 720
Chapter Twelve The Topics of Srimad-Bhagavatam Summarized 722
Chapter Thirteen The Glories of Srimad-Bhagavatam 725
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 7
CANTO ONE
Chapter One Questions by the Sages
1. O my Lord, Sri Krsna, son of Vasudeva, O all-pervading Personality of Godhead, I offer my respectful
obeisances unto You. I meditate upon Lord Sri Krsna because He is the Absolute Truth and the
primeval cause of all causes of the creation, sustenance and destruction of the manifested universes.
He is directly and indirectly conscious of all manifestations, and He is independent because there is no
other cause beyond Him. It is He only who first imparted the Vedic knowledge unto the heart of
Brahmaji, the original living being. By Him even the great sages and demigods are placed into illusion,
as one is bewildered by the illusory representations of water seen in fire, or land seen on water. Only
because of Him do the material universes, temporarily manifested by the reactions of the three modes
of nature, appear factual, although they are unreal. I therefore meditate upon Him, Lord Sri Krsna, who
is eternally existent in the transcendental abode, which is forever free from the illusory representations
of the material world. I meditate upon Him, for He is the Absolute Truth.
2. Completely rejecting all religious activities which are materially motivated, this Bhagavata Purana
propounds the highest truth, which is understandable by those devotees who are fully pure in heart. The
highest truth is reality distinguished from illusion for the welfare of all. Such truth uproots the threefold
miseries. This beautiful Bhagavatam, compiled by the great sage Vyasadeva [in his maturity], is
sufficient in itself for God realization. What is the need of any other scripture? As soon as one attentively
and submissively hears the message of Bhagavatam, by this culture of knowledge the Supreme Lord is
established within his heart.
3. O expert and thoughtful men, relish Srimad-Bhagavatam, the mature fruit of the desire tree of Vedic
literatures. It emanated from the lips of Sri Sukadeva Gosvami. Therefore this fruit has become even
more tasteful, although its nectarean juice was already relishable for all, including liberated souls.
4. Once, in a holy place in the forest of Naimisaranya, great sages headed by the sage Saunaka
assembled to perform a great thousand-year sacrifice for the satisfaction of the Lord and His devotees.
5. One day, after finishing their morning duties by burning a sacrificial fire and offering a seat of esteem
to Srila Suta Gosvami, the great sages made inquiries, with great respect, about the following matters.
6. The sages said: Respected Suta Gosvami, you are completely free from all vice. You are well versed
in all the scriptures famous for religious life, and in the Puranas and the histories as well, for you have
gone through them under proper guidance and have also explained them.
7. Being the eldest learned Vedantist, O Suta Gosvami, you are acquainted with the knowledge of
Vyasadeva, who is the incarnation of Godhead, and you also know other sages who are fully versed in
all kinds of physical and metaphysical knowledge.
8. And because you are submissive, your spiritual masters have endowed you with all the favors
bestowed upon a gentle disciple. Therefore you can tell us all that you have scientifically learned from
them.
9. Please, therefore, being blessed with many years, explain to us, in an easily understandable way,
what you have ascertained to be the absolute and ultimate good for the people in general.
10. O learned one, in this iron age of Kali men have but short lives. They are quarrelsome, lazy,
misguided, unlucky and, above all, always disturbed.
11. There are many varieties of scriptures, and in all of them there are many prescribed duties, which
can be learned only after many years of study in their various divisions. Therefore, O sage, please
select the essence of all these scriptures and explain it for the good of all living beings, that by such
instruction their hearts may be fully satisfied.
12. All blessings upon you, O Suta Gosvami. You know for what purpose the Personality of Godhead
appeared in the womb of Devaki as the son of Vasudeva.
13. O Suta Gosvami, we are eager to learn about the Personality of Godhead and His incarnations.
Please explain to us those teachings imparted by previous masters [acaryas], for one is uplifted both by
speaking them and by hearing them.
14. Living beings who are entangled in the complicated meshes of birth and death can be freed
immediately by even unconsciously chanting the holy name of Krsna, which is feared by fear
personified.
15. O Suta, those great sages who have completely taken shelter of the lotus feet of the Lord can at
once sanctify those who come in touch with them, whereas the waters of the Ganges can sanctify only
after prolonged use.
16. Who is there, desiring deliverance from the vices of the age of quarrel, who is not willing to hear the
virtuous glories of the Lord?
17. His transcendental acts are magnificent and gracious, and great learned sages like Narada sing of
them. Please, therefore, speak to us, who are eager to hear about the adventures He performs in His
various incarnations.
8 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
18. O wise Suta, please narrate to us the transcendental pastimes of the Supreme Godhead's multi-
incarnations. Such auspicious adventures and pastimes of the Lord, the supreme controller, are
performed by His internal powers.
19. We never tire of hearing the transcendental pastimes of the Personality of Godhead, who is glorified
by hymns and prayers. Those who have developed a taste for transcendental relationships with Him
relish hearing of His pastimes at every moment.
20. Lord Sri Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, along with Balarama, played like a human being, and
so masked He performed many superhuman acts.
21. Knowing well that the age of Kali has already begun, we are assembled here in this holy place to
hear at great length the transcendental message of Godhead and in this way perform sacrifice.
22. We think that we have met Your Goodness by the will of providence, just so that we may accept you
as captain of the ship for those who desire to cross the difficult ocean of Kali, which deteriorates all the
good qualities of a human being.
23. Since Sri Krsna, the Absolute Truth, the master of all mystic powers, has departed for His own
abode, please tell us to whom the religious principles have now gone for shelter.
Chapter Two Divinity and Divine Service
1. Ugrasrava [Suta Gosvami], the son of Romaharsana, being fully satisfied by the perfect questions of
the brahmanas, thanked them and thus attempted to reply.
2. Srila Suta Gosvami said: Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto that great sage [Sukadeva
Gosvami] who can enter the hearts of all. When he went away to take up the renounced order of life
[sannyasa], leaving home without undergoing reformation by the sacred thread or the ceremonies
observed by the higher castes, his father, Vyasadeva, fearing separation from him, cried out, "O my
son!" Indeed, only the trees, which were absorbed in the same feelings of separation, echoed in
response to the begrieved father.
3. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto him [Suka], the spiritual master of all sages, the son of
Vyasadeva, who, out of his great compassion for those gross materialists who struggle to cross over the
darkest regions of material existence, spoke this most confidential supplement to the cream of Vedic
knowledge, after having personally assimilated it by experience.
4. Before reciting this Srimad-Bhagavatam, which is the very means of conquest, one should offer
respectful obeisances unto the Personality of Godhead, Narayana, unto Nara-narayana Rsi, the
supermost human being, unto mother Sarasvati, the goddess of learning, and unto Srila Vyasadeva, the
author.
5. O sages, I have been justly questioned by you. Your questions are worthy because they relate to
Lord Krsna and so are of relevance to the world's welfare. Only questions of this sort are capable of
completely satisfying the self.
6. The supreme occupation [dharma] for all humanity is that by which men can attain to loving
devotional service unto the transcendent Lord. Such devotional service must be unmotivated and
uninterrupted to completely satisfy the self.
7. By rendering devotional service unto the Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, one immediately
acquires causeless knowledge and detachment from the world.
8. The occupational activities a man performs according to his own position are only so much useless
labor if they do not provoke attraction for the message of the Personality of Godhead.
9. All occupational engagements are certainly meant for ultimate liberation. They should never be
performed for material gain. Furthermore, according to sages, one who is engaged in the ultimate
occupational service should never use material gain to cultivate sense gratification.
10. Life's desires should never be directed toward sense gratification. One should desire only a healthy
life, or self-preservation, since a human being is meant for inquiry about the Absolute Truth. Nothing
else should be the goal of one's works.
11. Learned transcendentalists who know the Absolute Truth call this nondual substance Brahman,
Paramatma or Bhagavan.
12. The seriously inquisitive student or sage, well equipped with knowledge and detachment, realizes
that Absolute Truth by rendering devotional service in terms of what he has heard from the Vedanta-
sruti.
13. O best among the twice-born, it is therefore concluded that the highest perfection one can achieve
by discharging the duties prescribed for one's own occupation according to caste divisions and orders
of life is to please the Personality of Godhead.
14. Therefore, with one-pointed attention, one should constantly hear about, glorify, remember and
worship the Personality of Godhead, who is the protector of the devotees.
15. With sword in hand, intelligent men cut through the binding knots of reactionary work [karma] by
remembering the Personality of Godhead. Therefore, who will not pay attention to His message?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 9
16. O twice-born sages, by serving those devotees who are completely freed from all vice, great service
is done. By such service, one gains affinity for hearing the messages of Vasudeva.
17. Sri Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, who is the Paramatma [Supersoul] in everyone's heart and
the benefactor of the truthful devotee, cleanses desire for material enjoyment from the heart of the
devotee who has developed the urge to hear His messages, which are in themselves virtuous when
properly heard and chanted.
18. By regular attendance in classes on the Bhagavatam and by rendering of service to the pure
devotee, all that is troublesome to the heart is almost completely destroyed, and loving service unto the
Personality of Godhead, who is praised with transcendental songs, is established as an irrevocable fact.
19. As soon as irrevocable loving service is established in the heart, the effects of nature's modes of
passion and ignorance, such as lust, desire and hankering, disappear from the heart. Then the devotee
is established in goodness, and he becomes completely happy.
20. Thus established in the mode of unalloyed goodness, the man whose mind has been enlivened by
contact with devotional service to the Lord gains positive scientific knowledge of the Personality of
Godhead in the stage of liberation from all material association.
21. Thus the knot in the heart is pierced, and all misgivings are cut to pieces. The chain of fruitive
actions is terminated when one sees the self as master.
22. Certainly, therefore, since time immemorial, all transcendentalists have been rendering devotional
service to Lord Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, with great delight, because such devotional service
is enlivening to the self.
23. The transcendental Personality of Godhead is indirectly associated with the three modes of material
nature, namely passion, goodness and ignorance, and just for the material world's creation,
maintenance and destruction He accepts the three qualitative forms of Brahma, Visnu and Siva. Of
these three, all human beings can derive ultimate benefit from Visnu, the form of the quality of
goodness.
24. Firewood is a transformation of earth, but smoke is better than the raw wood. And fire is still better,
for by fire we can derive the benefits of superior knowledge [through Vedic sacrifices]. Similarly, passion
[rajas] is better than ignorance [tamas], but goodness [sattva] is best because by goodness one can
come to realize the Absolute Truth.
25. Previously all the great sages rendered service unto the Personality of Godhead due to His
existence above the three modes of material nature. They worshiped Him to become free from material
conditions and thus derive the ultimate benefit. Whoever follows such great authorities is also eligible
for liberation from the material world.
26. Those who are serious about liberation are certainly nonenvious, and they respect all. Yet they
reject the horrible and ghastly forms of the demigods and worship only the all-blissful forms of Lord
Visnu and His plenary portions.
27. Those who are in the modes of passion and ignorance worship the forefathers, other living beings
and the demigods who are in charge of cosmic activities, for they are urged by a desire to be materially
benefited with women, wealth, power and progeny.
28-29. In the revealed scriptures, the ultimate object of knowledge is Sri Krsna, the Personality of
Godhead. The purpose of performing sacrifice is to please Him. Yoga is for realizing Him. All fruitive
activities are ultimately rewarded by Him only. He is supreme knowledge, and all severe austerities are
performed to know Him. Religion [dharma] is rendering loving service unto Him. He is the supreme goal
of life.
30. In the beginning of the material creation, that Absolute Personality of Godhead [Vasudeva], in His
transcendental position, created the energies of cause and effect by His own internal energy.
31. After creating the material substance, the Lord [Vasudeva] expands Himself and enters into it. And
although He is within the material modes of nature and appears to be; one of the created beings, He is
always fully enlightened in His transcendental position.
32. The Lord, as Supersoul, pervades all things, just as fire permeates wood, and so He appears to be
of many varieties, though He is the absolute one without a second.
33. The Supersoul enters into the bodies of the created beings who are influenced by the modes of
material nature and causes them to enjoy the effects of these modes by the subtle mind.
34. Thus the Lord of the universes maintains all planets inhabited by demigods, men and lower animals.
Assuming the roles of incarnations, He performs pastimes to reclaim those in the mode of pure
goodness.
Chapter Three Krsna Is the Source of All Incarnations
1. Suta said: In the beginning of the creation, the Lord first expanded Himself in the universal form of
the purusa incarnation and manifested all the ingredients for the material creation. And thus at first there
10 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
was the creation of the sixteen principles of material action. This was for the purpose of creating the
material universe.
2. A part of the purusa lies down within the water of the universe, from the navel lake of His body
sprouts a lotus stem, and from the lotus flower atop this stem, Brahma, the master of all engineers in
the universe, becomes manifest.
3. It is believed that all the universal planetary systems are situated on the extensive body of the
purusa, but He has nothing to do with the created material ingredients. His body is eternally in spiritual
existence par excellence.
4. The devotees, with their perfect eyes, see the transcendental form of the purusa who has thousands
of legs, thighs, arms and faces--all extraordinary. In that body there are thousands of heads, ears, eyes
and noses. They are decorated with thousands of helmets and glowing earrings and are adorned with
garlands.
5. This form [the second manifestation of the purusa] is the source and indestructible seed of
multifarious incarnations within the universe. From the particles and portions of this form, different living
entities, like demigods, men and others, are created.
6. First of all, in the beginning of creation, there were the four unmarried sons of Brahma [the Kumaras],
who, being situated in a vow of celibacy, underwent severe austerities for realization of the Absolute
Truth.
7. The supreme enjoyer of all sacrifices accepted the incarnation of a boar [the second incarnation], and
for the welfare of the earth He lifted the earth from the nether regions of the universe.
8. In the millennium of the rsis, the Personality of Godhead accepted the third empowered incarnation in
the form of Devarsi Narada, who is a great sage among the demigods. He collected expositions of the
Vedas which deal with devotional service and which inspire nonfruitive action.
9. In the fourth incarnation, the Lord became Nara and Narayana, the twin sons of the wife of King
Dharma. Thus He undertook severe and exemplary penances to control the senses.
10. The fifth incarnation, named Lord Kapila, is foremost among perfected beings. He gave an
exposition of the creative elements and metaphysics to Asuri Brahmana, for in course of time this
knowledge had been lost.
11. The sixth incarnation of the purusa was the son of the sage Atri. He was born from the womb of
Anasuya, who prayed for an incarnation. He spoke on the subject of transcendence to Alarka, Prahlada
and others [Yadu, Haihaya, etc.].
12. The seventh incarnation was Yajna, the son of Prajapati Ruci and his wife Akuti. He controlled the
period during the change of the Svayambhuva Manu and was assisted by demigods such as His son
Yama.
13. The eighth incarnation was King Rsabha, son of King Nabhi and his wife Merudevi. In this
incarnation the Lord showed the path of perfection, which is followed by those who have fully controlled
their senses and who are honored by all orders of life.
14. O brahmanas, in the ninth incarnation, the Lord, prayed for by sages, accepted the body of a king
[Prthu] who cultivated the land to yield various produces, and for that reason the earth was beautiful and
attractive.
15. When there was a complete inundation after the period of the Caksusa Manu and the whole world
was deep within water, the Lord accepted the form of a fish and protected Vaivasvata Manu, keeping
him up on a boat.
16. The eleventh incarnation of the Lord took the form of a tortoise whose shell served as a pivot for the
Mandaracala Hill, which was being used as a churning rod by the theists and atheists of the universe.
17. In the twelfth incarnation, the Lord appeared as Dhanvantari, and in the thirteenth He allured the
atheists by the charming beauty of a woman and gave nectar to the demigods to drink.
18. In the fourteenth incarnation, the Lord appeared as Nrsimha and bifurcated the strong body of the
atheist Hiranyakasipu with His nails, just as a carpenter pierces cane.
19. In the fifteenth incarnation, the Lord assumed the form of a dwarf-brahmana [Vamana] and visited
the arena of sacrifice arranged by Maharaja Bali. Although at heart He was willing to regain the kingdom
of the three planetary systems, He simply asked for a donation of three steps of land.
20. In the sixteenth incarnation of the Godhead, the Lord [as Bhrgupati] annihilated the administrative
class [ksatriyas] twenty-one times, being angry with them because of their rebellion against the
brahmanas [the intelligent class].
21. Thereafter, in the seventeenth incarnation of Godhead, Sri Vyasadeva appeared in the womb of
Satyavati through Parasara Muni, and he divided the one Veda into several branches and subbranches,
seeing that the people in general were less intelligent.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 11
22. In the eighteenth incarnation, the Lord appeared as King Rama. In order to perform some pleasing
work for the demigods, He exhibited superhuman powers by controlling the Indian Ocean and then
killing the atheist King Ravana, who was on the other side of the sea.
23. In the nineteenth and twentieth incarnations, the Lord advented Himself as Lord Balarama and Lord
Krsna in the family of Vrsni [the Yadu dynasty], and by so doing He removed the burden of the world.
24. Then, in the beginning of Kali-yuga, the Lord will appear as Lord Buddha, the son of Anjana, in the
province of Gaya, just for the purpose of deluding those who are envious of the faithful theist.
25. Thereafter, at the conjunction of two yugas, the Lord of the creation will take His birth as the Kalki
incarnation and become the son of Visnu Yasa. At this time the rulers of the earth will have degenerated
into plunderers.
26. O brahmanas, the incarnations of the Lord are innumerable, like rivulets flowing from inexhaustible
sources of water.
27. All the rsis, Manus, demigods and descendants of Manu, who are especially powerful, are plenary
portions or portions of the plenary portions of the Lord. This also includes the Prajapatis.
28. All of the above-mentioned incarnations are either plenary portions or portions of the plenary
portions of the Lord, but Lord Sri Krsna is the original Personality of Godhead. All of them appear on
planets whenever there is a disturbance created by the atheists. The Lord incarnates to protect the
theists.
29. Whoever carefully recites the mysterious appearances of the Lord, with devotion in the morning and
in the evening, gets relief from all miseries of life.
30. The conception of the virat universal form of the Lord, as appearing in the material world, is
imaginary. It is to enable the less intelligent [and neophytes] to adjust to the idea of the Lord's having
form. But factually the Lord has no material form.
31. Clouds and dust are carried by the air, but less intelligent persons say that the sky is cloudy and the
air is dirty. Similarly, they also implant material bodily conceptions on the spirit self.
32. Beyond this gross conception of form is another, subtle conception of form which is without formal
shape and is unseen, unheard and unmanifest. The living being has his form beyond this subtlety,
otherwise he could not have repeated births.
33. Whenever a person experiences, by self-realization, that both the gross and subtle bodies have
nothing to do with the pure self, at that time he sees himself as well as the Lord.
34. If the illusory energy subsides and the living entity becomes fully enriched with knowledge by the
grace of the Lord, then he becomes at once enlightened with self-realization and thus becomes situated
in his own glory.
35. Thus learned men describe the births and activities of the unborn and inactive, which is
undiscoverable even in the Vedic literatures. He is the Lord of the heart.
36. The Lord, whose activities are always spotless, is the master of the six senses and is fully
omnipotent with six opulences. He creates the manifested universes, maintains them and annihilates
them without being in the least affected. He is within every living being and is always independent.
37. The foolish with a poor fund of knowledge cannot know the transcendental nature of the forms,
names and activities of the Lord, who is playing like an actor in a drama. Nor can they express such
things, neither in their speculations nor in their words.
38. Only those who render unreserved, uninterrupted, favorable service unto the lotus feet of Lord
Krsna, who carries the wheel of the chariot in His hand, can know the creator of the universe in His full
glory, power and transcendence.
39. Only by making such inquiries in this world can one be successful and perfectly cognizant, for such
inquiries invoke transcendental ecstatic love unto the Personality of Godhead, who is the proprietor of
all the universes, and guarantee cent-percent immunity from the dreadful repetition of birth and death.
40. This Srimad-Bhagavatam is the literary incarnation of God, and it is compiled by Srila Vyasadeva,
the incarnation of God. It is meant for the ultimate good of all people, and it is all-successful, all-blissful
and all-perfect.
41. Sri Vyasadeva delivered it to his son, who is the most respected among the self-realized, after
extracting the cream of all Vedic literatures and histories of the universe.
42. Sukadeva Gosvami, the son of Vyasadeva, in his turn delivered the Bhagavatam to the great
Emperor Pariksit, who sat surrounded by sages on the bank of the Ganges, awaiting death without
taking food or drink.
43. This Bhagavata Purana is as brilliant as the sun, and it has arisen just after the departure of Lord
Krsna to His own abode, accompanied by religion, knowledge, etc. Persons who have lost their vision
due to the dense darkness of ignorance in the age of Kali shall get light from this Purana.
44. O learned brahmanas, when Sukadeva Gosvami recited Bhagavatam there [in the presence of
Emperor Pariksit], I heard him with rapt attention, and thus, by his mercy, I learned the Bhagavatam
12 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
from that great and powerful sage. Now I shall try to make you hear the very same thing as I learned it
from him and as I have realized it.
Chapter Four The Appearance of Sri Narada
1. On hearing Suta Gosvami speak thus, Saunaka Muni, who was the elderly, learned leader of all the
rsis engaged in that prolonged sacrificial ceremony, congratulated Suta Gosvami by addressing him as
follows.
2. Saunaka said: O Suta Gosvami, you are the most fortunate and respected of all those who can
speak and recite. Please relate the pious message of Srimad-Bhagavatam, which was spoken by the
great and powerful sage Sukadeva Gosvami.
3. In what period and at what place was this first begun, and why was this taken up? From where did
Krsna-dvaipayana Vyasa, the great sage, get the inspiration to compile this literature?
4. His [Vyasadeva's] son was a great devotee, an equibalanced monist, whose mind was always
concentrated in monism. He was transcendental to mundane activities, but being unexposed, he
appeared like an ignorant person.
5. While Sri Vyasadeva was following his son, beautiful young damsels who were bathing naked
covered their bodies with cloth, although Sri Vyasadeva himself was not naked. But they had not done
so when his son had passed. The sage inquired about this, and the young ladies replied that his son
was purified and when looking at them made no distinction between male and female. But the sage
made such distinctions.
6. How was he [Srila Sukadeva, the son of Vyasa] recognized by the citizens when he entered the city
of Hastinapura [now Delhi], after wandering in the provinces of Kuru and Jangala, appearing like a
madman, dumb and retarded?
7. How did it so happen that King Pariksit met this great sage, making it possible for this great
transcendental essence of the Vedas [Bhagavatam] to be sung to him?
8. He [Sukadeva Gosvami] was accustomed to stay at the door of a householder only long enough for a
cow to be milked. And he did this just to sanctify the residence.
9. It is said that Maharaja Pariksit is a great first-class devotee of the Lord and that his birth and
activities are all wonderful. Please tell us about him.
10. He was a great emperor and possessed all the opulences of his acquired kingdom. He was so
exalted that he was increasing the prestige of the Pandu dynasty. Why did he give up everything to sit
down on the bank of the Ganges and fast until death?
11. He was such a great emperor that all his enemies would come and bow down at his feet and
surrender all their wealth for their own benefit. He was full of youth and strength, and he possessed
insuperable kingly opulences. Why did he want to give up everything, including his life?
12. Those who are devoted to the cause of the Personality of Godhead live only for the welfare,
development and happiness of others. They do not live for any selfish interest. So even though the
Emperor [Pariksit] was free from all attachment to worldly possessions, how could he give up his mortal
body, which was shelter for others?
13. We know that you are expert in the meaning of all subjects, except some portions of the Vedas, and
thus you can clearly explain the answers to all the questions we have just put to you.
14. Suta Gosvami said: When the second millennium overlapped the third, the great sage [Vyasadeva]
was born to Parasara in the womb of Satyavati, the daughter of Vasu.
15. Once upon a time he [Vyasadeva], as the sun rose, took his morning ablution in the waters of the
Sarasvati and sat alone to concentrate.
16. The great sage Vyasadeva saw anomalies in the duties of the millennium. This happens on the
earth in different ages, due to unseen forces in the course of time.
17-18. The great sage, who was fully equipped in knowledge, could see, through his transcendental
vision, the deterioration of everything material, due to the influence of the age. He could also see that
the faithless people in general would be reduced in duration of life and would be impatient due to lack of
goodness. Thus he contemplated for the welfare of men in all statuses and orders of life.
19. He saw that the sacrifices mentioned in the Vedas were means by which the people's occupations
could be purified. And to simplify the process he divided the one Veda into four, in order to expand them
among men.
20. The four divisions of the original sources of knowledge [the Vedas] were made separately. But the
historical facts and authentic stories mentioned in the Puranas are called the fifth Veda.
21. After the Vedas were divided into four divisions, Paila Rsi became the professor of the Rg Veda,
Jaimini the professor of the Sama Veda, and Vaisampayana alone became glorified by the Yajur Veda.
22. The Sumantu Muni Angira, who was very devotedly engaged, was entrusted with the Atharva Veda.
And my father, Romaharsana, was entrusted with the Puranas and historical records.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 13
23. All these learned scholars, in their turn, rendered their entrusted Vedas unto their many disciples,
grand-disciples and great grand-disciples, and thus the respective branches of the followers of the
Vedas came into being.
24. Thus the great sage Vyasadeva, who is very kind to the ignorant masses, edited the Vedas so they
might be assimilated by less intellectual men.
25. Out of compassion, the great sage thought it wise that this would enable men to achieve the
ultimate goal of life. Thus he compiled the great historical narration called the Mahabharata for women,
laborers and friends of the twice-born.
26. O twice-born brahmanas, still his mind was not satisfied, although he engaged himself in working for
the total welfare of all people.
27. Thus the sage, being dissatisfied at heart, at once began to reflect, because he knew the essence
of religion, and he said within himself:
28-29. I have, under strict disciplinary vows, unpretentiously worshiped the Vedas, the spiritual master
and the altar of sacrifice. I have also abided by the rulings and have shown the import of disciplic
succession through the explanation of the Mahabharata, by which even women, sudras and others
[friends of the twice-born] can see the path of religion.
30. I am feeling incomplete, though I myself am fully equipped with everything required by the Vedas.
31. This may be because I did not specifically point out the devotional service of the Lord, which is dear
both to perfect beings and to the infallible Lord.
32. As mentioned before, Narada reached the cottage of Krsnadvaipayana Vyasa on the banks of the
Sarasvati just as Vyasadeva was regretting his defects.
33. At the auspicious arrival of Sri Narada, Sri Vyasadeva got up respectfully and worshiped him, giving
him veneration equal to that given to Brahmaji, the creator.
Chapter Five Narada's Instructions on Srimad-Bhagavatam for Vyasadeva
1. Suta Gosvami said: Thus the sage amongst the gods [Narada], comfortably seated and apparently
smiling, addressed the rsi amongst the brahmanas [Vedavyasa].
2. Addressing Vyasadeva, the son of Parasara, Narada inquired: Are you satisfied by identifying with
the body or the mind as objects of self-realization?
3. Your inquiries were full and your studies were also well fulfilled, and there is no doubt that you have
prepared a great and wonderful work, the Mahabharata, which is full of all kinds of Vedic sequences
elaborately explained.
4. You have fully delineated the subject of impersonal Brahman as well as the knowledge derived
therefrom. Why should you be despondent in spite of all this, thinking that you are undone, my dear
prabhu?
5. Sri Vyasadeva said: All you have said about me is perfectly correct. Despite all this, I am not pacified.
I therefore question you about the root cause of my dissatisfaction, for you are a man of unlimited
knowledge due to your being the offspring of one [Brahma] who is self-born [without mundane father
and mother].
6. My lord! Everything that is mysterious is known to you because you worship the creator and
destroyer of the material world and the maintainer of the spiritual world, the original Personality of
Godhead, who is transcendental to the three modes of material nature.
7. Like the sun, Your Goodness can travel everywhere in the three worlds, and like the air you can
penetrate the internal region of everyone. As such, you are as good as the all-pervasive Supersoul.
Please, therefore, find out the deficiency in me, despite my being absorbed in transcendence under
disciplinary regulations and vows.
8. Sri Narada said: You have not actually broadcast the sublime and spotless glories of the Personality
of Godhead. That philosophy which does not satisfy the transcendental senses of the Lord is
considered worthless.
9. Although, great sage, you have very broadly described the four principles beginning with religious
performances, you have not described the glories of the Supreme Personality, Vasudeva.
10. Those words which do not describe the glories of the Lord, who alone can sanctify the atmosphere
of the whole universe, are considered by saintly persons to be like unto a place of pilgrimage for crows.
Since the all-perfect persons are inhabitants of the transcendental abode, they do not derive any
pleasure there.
11. On the other hand, that literature which is full of descriptions of the transcendental glories of the
name, fame, forms, pastimes, etc., of the unlimited Supreme Lord is a different creation, full of
transcendental words directed toward bringing about a revolution in the impious lives of this world's
misdirected civilization. Such transcendental literatures, even though imperfectly composed, are heard,
sung and accepted by purified men who are thoroughly honest.
14 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. Knowledge of self-realization, even though free from all material affinity, does not look well if devoid
of a conception of the Infallible [God]. What, then, is the use of fruitive activities, which are naturally
painful from the very beginning and transient by nature, if they are not utilized for the devotional service
of the Lord?
13. O Vyasadeva, your vision is completely perfect. Your good fame is spotless. You are firm in vow
and situated in truthfulness. And thus you can think of the pastimes of the Lord in trance for the
liberation of the people in general from all material bondage.
14. Whatever you desire to describe that is separate in vision from the Lord simply reacts, with different
forms, names and results, to agitate the mind as the wind agitates a boat which has no resting place.
15. The people in general are naturally inclined to enjoy, and you have encouraged them in that way in
the name of religion. This is verily condemned and is quite unreasonable. Because they are guided
under your instructions, they will accept such activities in the name of religion and will hardly care for
prohibitions.
16. The Supreme Lord is unlimited. Only a very expert personality, retired from the activities of material
happiness, deserves to understand this knowledge of spiritual values. Therefore those who are not so
well situated, due to material attachment, should be shown the ways of transcendental realization, by
Your Goodness, through descriptions of the transcendental activities of the Supreme Lord.
17. One who has forsaken his material occupations to engage in the devotional service of the Lord may
sometimes fall down while in an immature stage, yet there is no danger of his being unsuccessful. On
the other hand, a nondevotee, though fully engaged in occupational duties, does not gain anything.
18. Persons who are actually intelligent and philosophically inclined should endeavor only for that
purposeful end which is not obtainable even by wandering from the topmost planet [Brahmaloka] down
to the lowest planet [Patala]. As far as happiness derived from sense enjoyment is concerned, it can be
obtained automatically in course of time, just as in course of time we obtain miseries even though we do
not desire them.
19. My dear Vyasa, even though a devotee of Lord Krsna sometimes falls down somehow or other, he
certainly does not undergo material existence like others [fruitive workers, etc.] because a person who
has once relished the taste of the lotus feet of the Lord can do nothing but remember that ecstasy again
and again.
20. The Supreme Lord Personality of Godhead is Himself this cosmos, and still He is aloof from it. From
Him only has this cosmic manifestation emanated, in Him it rests, and unto Him it enters after
annihilation. Your good self knows all about this. I have given only a synopsis.
21. Your Goodness has perfect vision. You yourself can know the Supersoul Personality of Godhead
because you are present as the plenary portion of the Lord. Although you are birthless, you have
appeared on this earth for the well-being of all people. Please, therefore, describe the transcendental
pastimes of the Supreme Personality of Godhead Sri Krsna more vividly.
22. Learned circles have positively concluded that the infallible purpose of the advancement of
knowledge, namely austerities, study of the Vedas, sacrifice, chanting of hymns and charity, culminates
in the transcendental descriptions of the Lord, who is defined in choice poetry.
23. O muni, in the last millennium I was born as the son of a certain maidservant engaged in the service
of brahmanas who were following the principles of Vedanta. When they were living together during the
four months of the rainy season, I was engaged in their personal service.
24. Although they were impartial by nature, those followers of the Vedanta blessed me with their
causeless mercy. As far as I was concerned, I was self-controlled and had no attachment for sports,
even though I was a boy. In addition, I was not naughty, and I did not speak more than required.
25. Once only, by their permission, I took the remnants of their food, and by so doing all my sins were at
once eradicated. Thus being engaged, I became purified in heart, and at that time the very nature of the
transcendentalist became attractive to me.
26. O Vyasadeva, in that association and by the mercy of those great Vedantists, I could hear them
describe the attractive activities of Lord Krsna And thus listening attentively, my taste for hearing of the
Personality of Godhead increased at every step.
27. O great sage, as soon as I got a taste for the Personality of Godhead, my attention to hear of the
Lord was unflinching. And as my taste developed, I could realize that it was only in my ignorance that I
had accepted gross and subtle coverings, for both the Lord and I are transcendental.
28. Thus during two seasons--the rainy season and autumn--I had the opportunity to hear these great-
souled sages constantly chant the unadulterated glories of the Lord Hari. As the flow of my devotional
service began, the coverings of the modes of passion and ignorance vanished.
29. I was very much attached to those sages. I was gentle in behavior, and all my sins were eradicated
in their service. In my heart I had strong faith in them. I had subjugated the senses, and I was strictly
following them with body and mind.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 15
30. As they were leaving, those bhakti-vedantas, who are very kind to poor-hearted souls, instructed me
in that most confidential subject which is instructed by the Personality of Godhead Himself.
31. By that confidential knowledge, I could understand clearly the influence of the energy of Lord Sri
Krsna, the creator, maintainer and annihilator of everything. By knowing that, one can return to Him and
personally meet Him.
32. O Brahmana Vyasadeva, it is decided by the learned that the best remedial measure for removing
all troubles and miseries is to dedicate one's activities to the service of the Supreme Lord Personality of
Godhead [Sri Krsna].
33. O good soul, does not a thing, applied therapeutically, cure a disease which was caused by that
very same thing?
34. Thus when all a man's activities are dedicated to the service of the Lord, those very activities which
caused his perpetual bondage become the destroyer of the tree of work.
35. Whatever work is done here in this life for the satisfaction of the mission of the Lord is called bhakti-
yoga, or transcendental loving service to the Lord, and what is called knowledge becomes a
concomitant factor.
36. While performing duties according to the order of Sri Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
one constantly remembers Him, His names and His qualities.
37. Let us all chant the glories of Vasudeva along with His plenary expansions Pradyumna, Aniruddha
and Sankarsana.
38. Thus he is the actual seer who worships, in the form of transcendental sound representation, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, who has no material form.
39. O brahmana, thus by the Supreme Lord Krsna I was endowed first with the transcendental
knowledge of the Lord as inculcated in the confidential parts of the Vedas, then with the spiritual
opulences, and then with His intimate loving service.
40. Please, therefore, describe the Almighty Lord's activities which you have learned by your vast
knowledge of the Vedas, for that will satisfy the hankerings of great learned men and at the same time
mitigate the miseries of the masses of common people who are always suffering from material pangs.
Indeed, there is no other way to get out of such miseries.
Chapter Six Conversation Between Narada and Vyasadeva
1. Suta said: O brahmanas, thus hearing all about Sri Narada's birth and activities, Vyasadeva, the
incarnation of God and son of Satyavati, inquired as follows.
2. Sri Vyasadeva said: What did you [Narada] do after the departure of the great sages who had
instructed you in scientific transcendental knowledge before the beginning of your present birth?
3. O son of Brahma, how did you pass your life after initiation, and how did you attain this body, having
quit your old one in due course?
4. O great sage, time annihilates everything in due course, so how is it that this subject matter, which
happened prior to this day of Brahma, is still fresh in your memory, undisturbed by time?
5. Sri Narada said: The great sages, who had imparted scientific knowledge of transcendence to me,
departed for other places, and I had to pass my life in this way.
6. I was the only son of my mother, who was not only a simple woman but a maidservant as well. Since
I was her only offspring, she had no other alternative for protection: she bound me with the tie of
affection.
7. She wanted to look after my maintenance properly, but because she was not independent, she was
not able to do anything for me. The world is under the full control of the Supreme Lord; therefore
everyone is like a wooden doll in the hands of a puppet master.
8. When I was a mere child of five years, I lived in a brahmana school. I was dependent on my mother's
affection and had no experience of different lands.
9. Once upon a time, my poor mother, when going out one night to milk a cow, was bitten on the leg by
a serpent, influenced by supreme time.
10. I took this as the special mercy of the Lord, who always desires benediction for His devotees, and
so thinking, I started for the north.
11. After my departure, I passed through many flourishing metropolises, towns, villages, animal farms,
mines, agricultural lands, valleys, flower gardens, nursery gardens and natural forests.
12. I passed through hills and mountains full of reservoirs of various minerals like gold, silver and
copper, and through tracts of land with reservoirs of water filled with beautiful lotus flowers, fit for the
denizens of heaven, decorated with bewildered bees and singing birds.
13. I then passed alone through many forests of rushes, bamboo, reeds, sharp grass, weeds and
caves, which were very difficult to go through alone. I visited deep, dark and dangerously fearful forests,
which were the play yards of snakes, owls and jackals.
16 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
14. Thus traveling, I felt tired, both bodily and mentally, and I was both thirsty and hungry. So I took a
bath in a river lake and also drank water. By contacting water, I got relief from my exhaustion.
15. After that, under the shadow of a banyan tree in an uninhabited forest I began to meditate upon the
Supersoul situated within, using my intelligence, as I had learned from liberated souls.
16. As soon as I began to meditate upon the lotus feet of the Personality of Godhead with my mind
transformed in transcendental love, tears rolled down my eyes, and without delay the Personality of
Godhead Sri Krsna appeared on the lotus of my heart.
17. O Vyasadeva, at that time, being exceedingly overpowered by feelings of happiness, every part of
my body became separately enlivened. Being absorbed in an ocean of ecstasy, I could not see both
myself and the Lord.
18. The transcendental form of the Lord, as it is, satisfies the mind's desire and at once erases all
mental incongruities. Upon losing that form, I suddenly got up, being perturbed, as is usual when one
loses that which is desirable.
19. I desired to see again that transcendental form of the Lord, but despite my attempts to concentrate
upon the heart with eagerness to view the form again, I could not see Him any more, and thus
dissatisfied, I was very much aggrieved.
20. Seeing my attempts in that lonely place, the Personality of Godhead, who is transcendental to all
mundane description, spoke to me with gravity and pleasing words, just to mitigate my grief.
21. O Narada [the Lord spoke], I regret that during this lifetime you will not be able to see Me anymore.
Those who are incomplete in service and who are not completely free from all material taints can hardly
see Me.
22. O virtuous one, you have only once seen My person, and this is just to increase your desire for Me,
because the more you hanker for Me, the more you will be freed from all material desires.
23. By service of the Absolute Truth, even for a few days, a devotee attains firm and fixed intelligence in
Me. Consequently he goes on to become My associate in the transcendental world after giving up the
present deplorable material worlds.
24. Intelligence engaged in My devotion cannot be thwarted at any time. Even at the time of creation, as
well as at the time of annihilation, your remembrance will continue by My mercy.
25. Then that supreme authority, personified by sound and unseen by eyes, but most wonderful,
stopped speaking. Feeling a sense of gratitude, I offered my obeisances unto Him, bowing my head.
26. Thus I began chanting the holy name and fame of the Lord by repeated recitation, ignoring all the
formalities of the material world. Such chanting and remembering of the transcendental pastimes of the
Lord are benedictory. So doing, I traveled all over the earth, fully satisfied, humble and unenvious.
27. And so, O Brahmana Vyasadeva, in due course of time I, who was fully absorbed in thinking of
Krsna and who therefore had no attachments, being completely freed from all material taints, met with
death, as lightning and illumination occur simultaneously.
28. Having been awarded a transcendental body befitting an associate of the Personality of Godhead, I
quit the body made of five material elements, and thus all acquired fruitive results of work [karma]
stopped.
29. At the end of the millennium, when the Personality of Godhead Lord Narayana lay down within the
water of devastation, Brahma began to enter into Him along with all creative elements, and I also
entered through His breathing.
30. After 4,300,000,000 solar years, when Brahma awoke to create again by the will of the Lord, all the
rsis like Marici, Angira, Atri and so on were created from the transcendental body of the Lord, and I also
appeared along with them.
31. Since then, by the grace of the almighty Visnu, I travel everywhere without restriction both in the
transcendental world and in the three divisions of the material world. This is because I am fixed in
unbroken devotional service of the Lord.
32. And thus I travel, constantly singing the transcendental message of the glories of the Lord, vibrating
this instrument called a vina, which is charged with transcendental sound and which was given to me by
Lord Krsna.
33. The Supreme Lord Sri Krsna, whose glories and activities are pleasing to hear, at once appears on
the seat of my heart, as if called for, as soon as I begin to chant His holy activities.
34. It is personally experienced by me that those who are always full of cares and anxieties due to
desiring contact of the senses with their objects can cross the ocean of nescience on a most suitable
boat--the constant chanting of the transcendental activities of the Personality of Godhead.
35. It is true that by practicing restraint of the senses by the yoga system one can get relief from the
disturbances of desire and lust, but this is not sufficient to give satisfaction to the soul, for this
[satisfaction] is derived from devotional service to the Personality of Godhead.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 17
36. O Vyasadeva, you are freed from all sins. Thus I have explained my birth and activities for self-
realization, as you asked. All this will be conducive for your personal satisfaction also.
37. Suta Gosvami said: Thus addressing Vyasadeva, Srila Narada Muni took leave of him, and vibrating
on his vina instrument, he left to wander at his free will.
38. All glory and success to Srila Narada Muni because he glorifies the activities of the Personality of
Godhead, and so doing he himself takes pleasure and also enlivens all the distressed souls of the
universe.
Chapter Seven The Son of Drona Punished
1. Rsi Saunaka asked: O Suta, the great and transcendentally powerful Vyasadeva heard everything
from Sri Narada Muni. So after Narada's departure, what did Vyasadeva do?
2. Sri Suta said: On the western bank of the River Sarasvati, which is intimately related with the Vedas,
there is a cottage for meditation at Samyaprasa which enlivens the transcendental activities of the
sages.
3. In that place, Srila Vyasadeva, in his own asrama, which was surrounded by berry trees, sat down to
meditate after touching water for purification.
4. Thus he fixed his mind, perfectly engaging it by linking it in devotional service [bhakti-yoga] without
any tinge of materialism, and thus he saw the Absolute Personality of Godhead along with His external
energy, which was under full control.
5. Due to this external energy, the living entity, although transcendental to the three modes of material
nature, thinks of himself as a material product and thus undergoes the reactions of material miseries.
6. The material miseries of the living entity, which are superfluous to him, can be directly mitigated by
the linking process of devotional service. But the mass of people do not know this, and therefore the
learned Vyasadeva compiled this Vedic literature, which is in relation to the Supreme Truth.
7. Simply by giving aural reception to this Vedic literature, the feeling for loving devotional service to
Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, sprouts up at once to extinguish the fire of
lamentation, illusion and fearfulness.
8. The great sage Vyasadeva, after compiling the Srimad-Bhagavatam and revising it, taught it to his
own son, Sri Sukadeva Gosvami, who was already engaged in self-realization.
9. Sri Saunaka asked Suta Gosvami: Sri Sukadeva Gosvami was already on the path of self-realization,
and thus he was pleased with his own self. So why did he take the trouble to undergo the study of such
a vast literature?
10. All different varieties of atmaramas [those who take pleasure in atma, or spirit self], especially those
established on the path of self-realization, though freed from all kinds of material bondage, desire to
render unalloyed devotional service unto the Personality of Godhead. This means that the Lord
possesses transcendental qualities and therefore can attract everyone, including liberated souls.
11. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami, son of Srila Vyasadeva, was not only transcendentally powerful. He was
also very dear to the devotees of the Lord. Thus he underwent the study of this great narration [Srimad-
Bhagavatam].
12. Suta Gosvami thus addressed the rsis headed by Saunaka: Now I shall begin the transcendental
narration of the Lord Sri Krsna and topics of the birth, activities and deliverance of King Pariksit, the
sage amongst kings, as well as topics of the renunciation of the worldly order by the sons of Pandu.
13-14. When the respective warriors of both camps, namely the Kauravas and the Pandavas, were
killed on the Battlefield of Kuruksetra and the dead warriors obtained their deserved destinations, and
when the son of Dhrtarastra fell down lamenting, his spine broken, being beaten by the club of
Bhimasena, the son of Dronacarya [Asvatthama] beheaded the five sleeping sons of Draupadi and
delivered them as a prize to his master, foolishly thinking that he would be pleased. Duryodhana,
however, disapproved of the heinous act, and he was not pleased in the least.
15. Draupadi, the mother of the five children of the Pandavas, after hearing of the massacre of her
sons, began to cry in distress with eyes full of tears. Trying to pacify her in her great loss, Arjuna spoke
to her thus:
16. O gentle lady, when I present you with the head of that brahmana, after beheading him with arrows
from my Gandiva bow, I shall then wipe the tears from your eyes and pacify you. Then, after burning
your sons' bodies, you can take your bath standing on his head.
17. Arjuna, who is guided by the infallible Lord as friend and driver, thus satisfied the dear lady by such
statements. Then he dressed in armor and armed himself with furious weapons, and getting into his
chariot, he set out to follow Asvatthama, the son of his martial teacher.
18. Asvatthama, the murderer of the princes, seeing from a great distance Arjuna coming at him with
great speed, fled in his chariot, panic stricken, just to save his life, as Brahma fled in fear from Siva.
18 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
19. When the son of the brahmana [Asvatthama] saw that his horses were tired, he considered that
there was no alternative for protection outside of his using the ultimate weapon, the brahmastra [nuclear
weapon].
20. Since his life was in danger, he touched water in sanctity and concentrated upon the chanting of the
hymns for throwing nuclear weapons, although he did not know how to withdraw such weapons.
21. Thereupon a glaring light spread in all directions. It was so fierce that Arjuna thought his own life in
danger, and so he began to address Lord Sri Krsna.
22. Arjuna said: O my Lord Sri Krsna, You are the almighty Personality of Godhead. There is no limit to
Your different energies. Therefore only You are competent to instill fearlessness in the hearts of Your
devotees. Everyone in the flames of material miseries can find the path of liberation in You only.
23. You are the original Personality of Godhead who expands Himself all over the creations and is
transcendental to material energy. You have cast away the effects of the material energy by dint of Your
spiritual potency. You are always situated in eternal bliss and transcendental knowledge.
24. And yet, though You are beyond the purview of the material energy, You execute the four principles
of liberation characterized by religion and so on for the ultimate good of the conditioned souls.
25. Thus You descend as an incarnation to remove the burden of the world and to benefit Your friends,
especially those who are Your exclusive devotees and are rapt in meditation upon You.
26. O Lord of lords, how is it that this dangerous effulgence is spreading all around? Where does it
come from? I do not understand it.
27. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Know from Me that this is the act of the son of Drona.
He has thrown the hymns of nuclear energy [brahmastra], and he does not know how to retract the
glare. He has helplessly done this, being afraid of imminent death.
28. O Arjuna, only another brahmastra can counteract this weapon. Since you are expert in the military
science, subdue this weapon's glare with the power of your own weapon.
29. Sri Suta Gosvami said: Hearing this from the Personality of Godhead, Arjuna touched water for
purification, and after circumambulating Lord Sri Krsna, he cast his brahmastra weapon to counteract
the other one.
30. When the rays of the two brahmastras combined, a great circle of fire, like the disc of the sun,
covered all outer space and the whole firmament of planets.
31. All the population of the three worlds was scorched by the combined heat of the weapons. Everyone
was reminded of the samvartaka fire which takes place at the time of annihilation.
32. Thus seeing the disturbance of the general populace and the imminent destruction of the planets,
Arjuna at once retracted both brahmastra weapons, as Lord Sri Krsna desired.
33. Arjuna, his eyes blazing in anger like two red balls of copper, dexterously arrested the son of
Gautami and bound him with ropes like an animal.
34. After binding Asvatthama, Arjuna wanted to take him to the military camp. The Personality of
Godhead Sri Krsna, looking on with His lotus eyes, spoke to angry Arjuna.
35. Lord Sri Krsna said: O Arjuna, you should not show mercy by releasing this relative of a brahmana
[brahma-bandhu], for he has killed innocent boys in their sleep.
36. A person who knows the principles of religion does not kill an enemy who is careless, intoxicated,
insane, asleep, afraid or devoid of his chariot. Nor does he kill a boy, a woman, a foolish creature or a
surrendered soul.
37. A cruel and wretched person who maintains his existence at the cost of others' lives deserves to be
killed for his own well-being, otherwise he will go down by his own actions.
38. Furthermore, I have personally heard you promise Draupadi that you would bring forth the head of
the killer of her sons.
39. This man is an assassin and murderer of your own family members. Not only that, but he has also
dissatisfied his master. He is but the burnt remnants of his family. Kill him immediately.
40. Suta Gosvami said: Although Krsna, who was examining Arjuna in religion, encouraged Arjuna to
kill the son of Dronacarya, Arjuna, a great soul, did not like the idea of killing him, although Asvatthama
was a heinous murderer of Arjuna's family members.
41. After reaching his own camp, Arjuna, along with his dear friend and charioteer [Sri Krsna], entrusted
the murderer unto his dear wife, who was lamenting for her murdered sons.
42. Sri Suta Gosvami said: Draupadi then saw Asvatthama, who was bound with ropes like an animal
and silent for having enacted the most inglorious murder. Due to her female nature, and due to her
being naturally good and well-behaved, she showed him due respects as a brahmana.
43. She could not tolerate Asvatthama's being bound by ropes, and being a devoted lady, she said:
Release him, for he is a brahmana, our spiritual master.
44. It was by Dronacarya's mercy that you learned the military art of throwing arrows and the
confidential art of controlling weapons.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 19
45. He [Dronacarya] is certainly still existing, being represented by his son. His wife Krpi did not
undergo a sati with him because she had a son.
46. O most fortunate one who knows the principles of religion, it is not good for you to cause grief to
glorious family members who are always respectable and worshipful.
47. My lord, do not make the wife of Dronacarya cry like me. I am aggrieved for the death of my sons.
She need not cry constantly like me.
48. If the kingly administrative order, being unrestricted in sense control, offends the brahmana order
and enrages them, then the fire of that rage burns up the whole body of the royal family and brings grief
upon all.
49. Suta Gosvami said: O brahmanas, King Yudhisthira fully supported the statements of the Queen,
which were in accordance with the principles of religion and were justified, glorious, full of mercy and
equity, and without duplicity.
50. Nakula and Sahadeva [the younger brothers of the King] and also Satyaki, Arjuna, the Personality
of Godhead Lord Sri Krsna, son of Devaki, and the ladies and others all unanimously agreed with the
King.
51. Bhima, however, disagreed with them and recommended killing this culprit who, in an angry mood,
had murdered sleeping children for no purpose and for neither his nor his master's interest.
52. Caturbhuja [the four-armed one], or the Personality of Godhead, after hearing the words of Bhima,
Draupadi and others, saw the face of His dear friend Arjuna, and He began to speak as if smiling.
53-54. The Personality of Godhead Sri Krsna said: A friend of a brahmana is not to be killed, but if he is
an aggressor he must be killed. All these rulings are in the scriptures, and you should act accordingly.
You have to fulfill your promise to your wife, and you must also act to the satisfaction of Bhimasena and
Me.
55. Just then Arjuna could understand the motive of the Lord by His equivocal orders, and thus with his
sword he severed both hair and jewel from the head of Asvatthama.
56. He [Asvatthama] had already lost his bodily luster due to infanticide, and now, moreover, having lost
the jewel from his head, he lost even more strength. Thus he was unbound and driven out of the camp.
57. Cutting the hair from his head, depriving him of his wealth and driving him from his residence are
the prescribed punishments for the relative of a brahmana. There is no injunction for killing the body.
58. Thereafter, the sons of Pandu and Draupadi, overwhelmed with grief, performed the proper rituals
for the dead bodies of their relatives.
Chapter Eight Prayers by Queen Kunti and Pariksit Saved
1. Suta Gosvami said: Thereafter the Pandavas, desiring to deliver water to the dead relatives who had
desired it, went to the Ganges with Draupadi. The ladies walked in front.
2. Having lamented over them and sufficiently offered Ganges water, they bathed in the Ganges, whose
water is sanctified due to being mixed with the dust of the lotus feet of the Lord.
3. There sat the King of the Kurus, Maharaja Yudhisthira, along with his younger brothers and
Dhrtarastra, Gandhari, Kunti and Draupadi, all overwhelmed with grief. Lord Krsna was also there.
4. Citing the stringent laws of the Almighty and their reactions upon living beings, Lord Sri Krsna and the
munis began to pacify those who were shocked and affected.
5. The clever Duryodhana and his party cunningly usurped the kingdom of Yudhisthira, who had no
enemy. By the grace of the Lord, the recovery was executed, and the unscrupulous kings who joined
with Duryodhana were killed by Him. Others also died, their duration of life having decreased for their
rough handling of the hair of Queen Draupadi.
6. Lord Sri Krsna caused three well-performed Asvamedha-yajnas [horse sacrifices] to be conducted by
Maharaja Yudhisthira and thus caused his virtuous fame to be glorified in all directions, like that of Indra,
who had performed one hundred such sacrifices.
7. Lord Sri Krsna then prepared for His departure. He invited the sons of Pandu, after having been
worshiped by the brahmanas, headed by Srila Vyasadeva. The Lord also reciprocated greetings.
8. As soon as He seated Himself on the chariot to start for Dvaraka, He saw Uttara hurrying toward Him
in fear.
9. Uttara said: O Lord of lords, Lord of the universe! You are the greatest of mystics. Please protect me,
for there is no one else who can save me from the clutches of death in this world of duality.
10. O my Lord, You are all-powerful. A fiery iron arrow is coming towards me fast. My Lord, let it burn
me personally, if You so desire, but please do not let it burn and abort my embryo. Please do me this
favor, my Lord.
11. Suta Gosvami said: Having patiently heard her words, Lord Sri Krsna, who is always very
affectionate to His devotees, could at once understand that Asvatthama, the son of Dronacarya, had
thrown the brahmastra to finish the last life in the Pandava family.
20 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. O foremost among the great thinkers [munis] [Saunaka], seeing the glaring brahmastra proceeding
towards them, the Pandavas took up their five respective weapons.
13. The almighty Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, having observed that a great danger was befalling
His unalloyed devotees, who were fully surrendered souls, at once took up His Sudarsana disc to
protect them.
14. The Lord of supreme mysticism, Sri Krsna, resides within everyone's heart as the Paramatma. As
such, just to protect the progeny of the Kuru dynasty, He covered the embryo of Uttara by His personal
energy.
15. O Saunaka, although the supreme brahmastra weapon released by Asvatthama was irresistible and
without check or counteraction, it was neutralized and foiled when confronted by the strength of Visnu
[Lord Krsna].
16. O brahmanas, do not think this to be especially wonderful in the activities of the mysterious and
infallible Personality of Godhead. By His own transcendental energy, He maintains and annihilates all
material things, although He Himself is unborn.
17. Thus saved from the radiation of the brahmastra, Kunti, the chaste devotee of the Lord, and her five
sons and Draupadi addressed Lord Krsna as He started for home.
18. Srimati Kunti said: O Krsna, I offer my obeisances unto You because You are the original
personality and are unaffected by the qualities of the material world. You are existing both within and
without everything, yet You are invisible to all.
19. Being beyond the range of limited sense perception, You are the eternally irreproachable factor
covered by the curtain of deluding energy. You are invisible to the foolish observer, exactly as an actor
dressed as a player is not recognized.
20. You Yourself descend to propagate the transcendental science of devotional service unto the hearts
of the advanced transcendentalists and mental speculators, who are purified by being able to
discriminate between matter and spirit. How, then, can we women know You perfectly?
21. Let me therefore offer my respectful obeisances unto the Lord, who has become the son of
Vasudeva, the pleasure of Devaki, the boy of Nanda and the other cowherd men of Vrndavana, and the
enlivener of the cows and the senses.
22. My respectful obeisances are unto You, O Lord, whose abdomen is marked with a depression like a
lotus flower, who are always decorated with garlands of lotus flowers, whose glance is as cool as the
lotus and whose feet are engraved with lotuses.
23. O Hrsikesa, master of the senses and Lord of lords, You have released Your mother, Devaki, who
was long imprisoned and distressed by the envious King Kamsa, and me and my children from a series
of constant dangers.
24. My dear Krsna, Your Lordship has protected us from a poisoned cake, from a great fire, from
cannibals, from the vicious assembly, from sufferings during our exile in the forest and from the battle
where great generals fought. And now You have saved us from the weapon of Asvatthama.
25. I wish that all those calamities would happen again and again so that we could see You again and
again, for seeing You means that we will no longer see repeated births and deaths.
26. My Lord, Your Lordship can easily be approached, but only by those who are materially exhausted.
One who is on the path of [material] progress, trying to improve himself with respectable parentage,
great opulence, high education and bodily beauty, cannot approach You with sincere feeling.
27. My obeisances are unto You, who are the property of the materially impoverished. You have
nothing to do with the actions and reactions of the material modes of nature. You are self-satisfied, and
therefore You are the most gentle and are master of the monists.
28. My Lord, I consider Your Lordship to be eternal time, the supreme controller, without beginning and
end, the all-pervasive one. In distributing Your mercy, You are equal to everyone. The dissensions
between living beings are due to social intercourse.
29. O Lord, no one can understand Your transcendental pastimes, which appear to be human and are
so misleading. You have no specific object of favor, nor do You have any object of envy. People only
imagine that You are partial.
30. Of course it is bewildering, O soul of the universe, that You work, though You are inactive, and that
You take birth, though You are the vital force and the unborn. You Yourself descend amongst animals,
men, sages and aquatics. Verily, this is bewildering.
31. My dear Krsna, Yasoda took up a rope to bind You when You committed an offense, and Your
perturbed eyes overflooded with tears, which washed the mascara from Your eyes. And You were
afraid, though fear personified is afraid of You. This sight is bewildering to me.
32. Some say that the Unborn is born for the glorification of pious kings, and others say that He is born
to please King Yadu, one of Your dearest devotees. You appear in his family as sandalwood appears in
the Malaya hills.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 21
33. Others say that since both Vasudeva and Devaki prayed for You, You have taken Your birth as their
son. Undoubtedly You are unborn, yet You take Your birth for their welfare and to kill those who are
envious of the demigods.
34. Others say that the world, being overburdened like a boat at sea, is much aggrieved, and that
Brahma, who is Your son, prayed for You, and so You have appeared to diminish the trouble.
35. And yet others say that You appeared to rejuvenate the devotional service of hearing, remembering,
worshiping and so on in order that the conditioned souls suffering from material pangs might take
advantage and gain liberation.
36. O Krsna, those who continuously hear, chant and repeat Your transcendental activities, or take
pleasure in others' doing so, certainly see Your lotus feet, which alone can stop the repetition of birth
and death.
37. O my Lord, You have executed all duties Yourself. Are you leaving us today, though we are
completely dependent on Your mercy and have no one else to protect us, now when all kings are at
enmity with us?
38. As the name and fame of a particular body is finished with the disappearance of the living spirit,
similarly if You do not look upon us, all our fame and activities, along with the Pandavas and Yadus, will
end at once.
39. O Gadadhara [Krsna], our kingdom is now being marked by the impressions of Your feet, and
therefore it appears beautiful. But when You leave, it will no longer be so.
40. All these cities and villages are flourishing in all respects because the herbs and grains are in
abundance, the trees are full of fruits, the rivers are flowing, the hills are full of minerals and the oceans
full of wealth. And this is all due to Your glancing over them.
41. O Lord of the universe, soul of the universe, O personality of the form of the universe, please,
therefore, sever my tie of affection for my kinsmen, the Pandavas and the Vrsnis.
42. O Lord of Madhu, as the Ganges forever flows to the sea without hindrance, let my attraction be
constantly drawn unto You without being diverted to anyone else.
43. O Krsna, O friend of Arjuna, O chief amongst the descendants of Vrsni, You are the destroyer of
those political parties which are disturbing elements on this earth. Your prowess never deteriorates. You
are the proprietor of the transcendental abode, and You descend to relieve the distresses of the cows,
the brahmanas and the devotees. You possess all mystic powers, and You are the preceptor of the
entire universe. You are the almighty God, and I offer You my respectful obeisances.
44. Suta Gosvami said: The Lord, thus hearing the prayers of Kuntidevi, composed in choice words for
His glorification, mildly smiled. That smile was as enchanting as His mystic power.
45. Thus accepting the prayers of Srimati Kuntidevi, the Lord subsequently informed other ladies of His
departure by entering the palace of Hastinapura. But upon preparing to leave, He was stopped by King
Yudhisthira, who implored Him lovingly.
46. King Yudhisthira, who was much aggrieved, could not be convinced, despite instructions by great
sages headed by Vyasa and the Lord Krsna Himself, the performer of superhuman feats, and despite
all historical evidence.
47. King Yudhisthira, son of Dharma, overwhelmed by the death of his friends, was aggrieved just like a
common, materialistic man. O sages, thus deluded by affection, he began to speak.
48. King Yudhisthira said: O my lot! I am the most sinful man! Just see my heart, which is full of
ignorance! This body, which is ultimately meant for others, has killed many, many phalanxes of men.
49. I have killed many boys, brahmanas, well-wishers, friends, parents, preceptors and brothers.
Though I live millions of years, I will not be relieved from the hell that awaits me for all these sins.
50. There is no sin for a king who kills for the right cause, who is engaged in maintaining his citizens.
But this injunction is not applicable to me.
51. I have killed many friends of women, and I have thus caused enmity to such an extent that it is not
possible to undo it by material welfare work.
52. As it is not possible to filter muddy water through mud, or purify a wine-stained pot with wine, it is
not possible to counteract the killing of men by sacrificing animals.
Chapter Nine The Passing Away of Bhismadeva in the Presence of Lord Krsna
1. Suta Gosvami said: Being afraid for having killed so many subjects on the Battlefield of Kuruksetra,
Maharaja Yudhisthira went to the scene of the massacre. There, Bhismadeva was lying on a bed of
arrows, about to pass away.
2. At that time all his brothers followed him on beautiful chariots drawn by first-class horses decorated
with gold ornaments. With them were Vyasa and rsis like Dhaumya [the learned priest of the Pandavas]
and others.
22 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3. O sage amongst the brahmanas, Lord Sri Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, also followed, seated
on a chariot with Arjuna. Thus King Yudhisthira appeared very aristocratic, like Kuvera surrounded by
his companions [the Guhyakas].
4. Seeing him [Bhisma] lying on the ground, like a demigod fallen from the sky, the Pandava King
Yudhisthira, along with his younger brothers and Lord Krsna, bowed down before him.
5. Just to see the chief of the descendants of King Bharata [Bhisma], all the great souls in the universe,
namely the rsis amongst the demigods, brahmanas and kings, all situated in the quality of goodness,
were assembled there.
6-7. All the sages like Parvata Muni, Narada, Dhaumya, Vyasa the incarnation of God, Brhadasva,
Bharadvaja and Parasurama and disciples, Vasistha, Indrapramada, Trita, Grtsamada, Asita, Kaksivan,
Gautama, Atri, Kausika and Sudarsana were present.
8. And many others like Sukadeva Gosvami and other purified souls, Kasyapa and Angirasa and
others, all accompanied by their respective disciples, arrived there.
9. Bhismadeva, who was the best amongst the eight Vasus, received and welcomed all the great and
powerful rsis who were assembled there, for he knew perfectly all the religious principles according to
time and place.
10. Lord Sri Krsna is situated in everyone's heart, yet He manifests His transcendental form by His
internal potency. This very Lord was sitting before Bhismadeva, and since Bhismadeva knew of His
glories, he worshiped Him duly.
11. The sons of Maharaja Pandu were sitting silently nearby, overtaken with affection for their dying
grandfather. Seeing this, Bhismadeva congratulated them with feeling. There were tears of ecstasy in
his eyes, for he was overwhelmed by love and affection.
12. Bhismadeva said: Oh, what terrible sufferings and what terrible injustices you good souls suffer for
being the sons of religion personified. You did not deserve to remain alive under those tribulations, yet
you were protected by the brahmanas, God and religion.
13. As far as my daughter-in-law Kunti is concerned, upon the great General Pandu's death, she
became a widow with many children, and therefore she suffered greatly. And when you were grown up
she suffered a great deal also because of your actions.
14. In my opinion, this is all due to inevitable time, under whose control everyone in every planet is
carried, just as the clouds are carried by the wind.
15. O how wonderful is the influence of inevitable time. It is irreversible--otherwise, how can there be
reverses in the presence of King Yudhisthira, the son of the demigod controlling religion; Bhima, the
great fighter with a club; the great bowman Arjuna with his mighty weapon Gandiva; and above all, the
Lord, the direct well-wisher of the Pandavas?
16. O King, no one can know the plan of the Lord [Sri Krsna]. Even though great philosophers inquire
exhaustively, they are bewildered.
17. O best among the descendants of Bharata [Yudhisthira], I maintain, therefore, that all this is within
the plan of the Lord. Accepting the inconceivable plan of the Lord, you must follow it. You are now the
appointed administrative head, and, my lord, you should now take care of those subjects who are now
rendered helpless.
18. This Sri Krsna is no other than the inconceivable, original Personality of Godhead. He is the first
Narayana, the supreme enjoyer. But He is moving amongst the descendants of King Vrsni just like one
of us and He is bewildering us with His self-created energy.
19. O King, Lord Siva, Narada the sage amongst the demigods, and Kapila, the incarnation of
Godhead, all know very confidentially about His glories through direct contact.
20. O King, that personality whom, out of ignorance only, you thought to be your maternal cousin, your
very dear friend, well-wisher, counselor, messenger, benefactor, etc., is that very Personality of
Godhead, Sri Krsna.
21. Being the Absolute Personality of Godhead, He is present in everyone's heart. He is equally kind to
everyone, and He is free from the false ego of differentiation. Therefore whatever He does is free from
material inebriety. He is equibalanced.
22. Yet, despite His being equally kind to everyone, He has graciously come before me while I am
ending my life, for I am His unflinching servitor.
23. The Personality of Godhead, who appears in the mind of the devotee by attentive devotion and
meditation and by chanting of the holy name, releases the devotee from the bondage of fruitive
activities at the time of his quitting the material body.
24. May my Lord, who is four-handed and whose beautifully decorated lotus face, with eyes as red as
the rising sun, is smiling, kindly await me at that moment when I quit this material body.
25. Suta Gosvami said: Maharaja Yudhisthira, after hearing Bhismadeva speak in that appealing tone,
asked him, in the presence of all the great rsis, about the essential principles of various religious duties.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 23
26. At Maharaja Yudhisthira's inquiry, Bhismadeva first defined all the classifications of castes and
orders of life in terms of the individual's qualifications. Then he systematically, in twofold divisions,
described counteraction by detachment and interaction by attachment.
27. He then explained, by divisions, acts of charity, the pragmatic activities of a king and activities for
salvation. Then he described the duties of women and devotees, both briefly and extensively.
28. Then he described the occupational duties of different orders and statuses of life, citing instances
from history, for he was himself well acquainted with the truth.
29. While Bhismadeva was describing occupational duties, the sun's course ran into the northern
hemisphere. This period is desired by mystics who die at their will.
30. Thereupon that man who spoke on different subjects with thousands of meanings and who fought
on thousands of battlefields and protected thousands of men, stopped speaking and, being completely
freed from all bondage, withdrew his mind from everything else and fixed his wide-open eyes upon the
original Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, who stood before him, four-handed, dressed in yellow
garments that glittered and shined.
31. By pure meditation, looking at Lord Sri Krsna, he at once was freed from all material
inauspiciousness and was relieved of all bodily pains caused by the arrow wounds. Thus all the external
activities of his senses at once stopped, and he prayed transcendentally to the controller of all living
beings while quitting his material body.
32. Bhismadeva said: Let me now invest my thinking, feeling and willing, which were so long engaged
in different subjects and occupational duties, in the all-powerful Lord Sri Krsna. He is always self-
satisfied, but sometimes, being the leader of the devotees, He enjoys transcendental pleasure by
descending on the material world, although from Him only the material world is created.
33. Sri Krsna is the intimate friend of Arjuna. He has appeared on this earth in His transcendental body,
which resembles the bluish color of the tamala tree. His body attracts everyone in the three planetary
systems [upper, middle and lower]. May His glittering yellow dress and His lotus face, covered with
paintings of sandalwood pulp, be the object of my attraction, and may I not desire fruitive results.
34. On the battlefield [where Sri Krsna attended Arjuna out of friendship], the flowing hair of Lord Krsna
turned ashen due to the dust raised by the hoofs of the horses. And because of His labor, beads of
sweat wetted His face. All these decorations, intensified by the wounds dealt by my sharp arrows, were
enjoyed by Him. Let my mind thus go unto Sri Krsna.
35. In obedience to the command of His friend, Lord Sri Krsna entered the arena of the Battlefield of
Kuruksetra between the soldiers of Arjuna and Duryodhana, and while there He shortened the life
spans of the opposite party by His merciful glance. This was done simply by His looking at the enemy.
Let my mind be fixed upon that Krsna.
36. When Arjuna was seemingly polluted by ignorance upon observing the soldiers and commanders
before him on the battlefield, the Lord eradicated his ignorance by delivering transcendental knowledge.
May His lotus feet always remain the object of my attraction.
37. Fulfilling my desire and sacrificing His own promise, He got down from the chariot, took up its wheel,
and ran towards me hurriedly, just as a lion goes to kill an elephant. He even dropped His outer
garment on the way.
38. May He, Lord Sri Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, who awards salvation, be my ultimate
destination. On the battlefield He charged me, as if angry because of the wounds dealt by my sharp
arrows. His shield was scattered, and His body was smeared with blood due to the wounds.
39. At the moment of death, let my ultimate attraction be to Sri Krsna, the Personality of Godhead. I
concentrate my mind upon the chariot driver of Arjuna who stood with a whip in His right hand and a
bridle rope in His left, who was very careful to give protection to Arjuna's chariot by all means. Those
who saw Him on the Battlefield of Kuruksetra attained their original forms after death.
40. Let my mind be fixed upon Lord Sri Krsna, whose motions and smiles of love attracted the damsels
of Vrajadhama [the gopis]. The damsels imitated the characteristic movements of the Lord [after His
disappearance from the rasa dance].
41. At the Rajasuya-yajna [sacrifice] performed by Maharaja Yudhisthira, there was the greatest
assembly of all the elite men of the world, the royal and learned orders, and in that great assembly Lord
Sri Krsna was worshiped by one and all as the most exalted Personality of Godhead. This happened
during my presence, and I remembered the incident in order to keep my mind upon the Lord.
42. Now I can meditate with full concentration upon that one Lord, Sri Krsna, now present before me
because now I have transcended the misconceptions of duality in regard to His presence in everyone's
heart, even in the hearts of the mental speculators. He is in everyone's heart. The sun may be
perceived differently, but the sun is one.
24 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
43. Suta Gosvami said: Thus Bhismadeva merged himself in the Supersoul, Lord Sri Krsna, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, with his mind, speech, sight and actions, and thus he became silent,
and his breathing stopped.
44. Knowing that Bhismadeva had merged into the unlimited eternity of the Supreme Absolute, all
present there became silent like birds at the end of the day.
45. Thereafter, both men and demigods sounded drums in honor, and the honest royal order
commenced demonstrations of honor and respect. And from the sky fell showers of flowers.
46. O descendant of Bhrgu [Saunaka], after performing funeral rituals for the dead body of Bhismadeva,
Maharaja Yudhisthira was momentarily overtaken with grief.
47. All the great sages then glorified Lord Sri Krsna, who was present there, by confidential Vedic
hymns. Then all of them returned to their respective hermitages, bearing always Lord Krsna within their
hearts.
48. Thereafter, Maharaja Yudhisthira at once went to his capital, Hastinapura, accompanied by Lord Sri
Krsna, and there he consoled his uncle and aunt Gandhari, who was an ascetic.
49. After this, the great religious King, Maharaja Yudhisthira, executed the royal power in the kingdom
strictly according to the codes and royal principles approved by his uncle and confirmed by Lord Sri
Krsna.
Chapter Ten Departure of Lord Krsna for Dvaraka
1. Saunaka Muni asked: After killing his enemies who desired to usurp his rightful inheritance, how did
the greatest of all religious men, Maharaja Yudhisthira, assisted by his brothers, rule his subjects?
Surely he could not freely enjoy his kingdom with unrestricted consciousness.
2. Suta Gosvami said: Lord Sri Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the maintainer of
the world, became pleased after reestablishing Maharaja Yudhisthira in his own kingdom and after
restoring the Kuru dynasty, which had been exhausted by the bamboo fire of anger.
3. Maharaja Yudhisthira, after being enlightened by what was spoken by Bhismadeva and Lord Sri
Krsna, the infallible, engaged himself in matters of perfect knowledge because all his misgivings were
eradicated. Thus he ruled over the earth and seas and was followed by his younger brothers.
4. During the reign of Maharaja Yudhisthira, the clouds showered all the water that people needed, and
the earth produced all the necessities of man in profusion. Due to its fatty milk bag and cheerful attitude,
the cow used to moisten the grazing ground with milk.
5. The rivers, oceans, hills, mountains, forests, creepers and active drugs, in every season, paid their
tax quota to the King in profusion.
6. Because of the King's having no enemy, the living beings were not at any time disturbed by mental
agonies, diseases, or excessive heat or cold.
7. Sri Hari, Lord Sri Krsna, resided at Hastinapura for a few months to pacify His relatives and please
His own sister [Subhadra].
8. Afterwards, when the Lord asked permission to depart and the King gave it, the Lord offered His
respects to Maharaja Yudhisthira by bowing down at his feet, and the King embraced Him. After this the
Lord, being embraced by others and receiving their obeisances, got into His chariot.
9-10. At that time Subhadra, Draupadi, Kunti, Uttara, Gandhari, Dhrtarastra, Yuyutsu, Krpacarya,
Nakula, Sahadeva, Bhimasena, Dhaumya and Satyavati all nearly fainted because it was impossible for
them to bear separation from Lord Krsna.
11-12. The intelligent, who have understood the Supreme Lord in association with pure devotees and
have become freed from bad materialistic association, can never avoid hearing the glories of the Lord,
even though they have heard them only once. How, then, could the Pandavas tolerate His separation,
for they had been intimately associated with His person, seeing Him face to face, touching Him,
conversing with Him, and sleeping, sitting and dining with Him?
13. All their hearts were melting for Him on the pot of attraction. They looked at Him without blinking
their eyes, and they moved hither and thither in perplexity.
14. The female relatives, whose eyes were flooded with tears out of anxiety for Krsna, came out of the
palace. They could stop their tears only with great difficulty. They feared that tears would cause
misfortune at the time of departure.
15. While the Lord was departing from the palace of Hastinapura, different types of drums --like the
mrdanga, dhola, nagra, dhundhuri and dundubhi--and flutes of different types, the vina, gomukha and
bheri, all sounded together to show Him honor.
16. Out of a loving desire to see the Lord, the royal ladies of the Kurus got up on top of the palace, and
smiling with affection and shyness, they showered flowers upon the Lord.
17. At that time Arjuna, the great warrior and conqueror of sleep, who is the intimate friend of the most
beloved Supreme Lord, took up an umbrella which had a handle of jewels and was embroidered with
lace and pearls.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 25
18. Uddhava and Satyaki began to fan the Lord with decorated fans, and the Lord, as the master of
Madhu, seated on scattered flowers, commanded them along the road.
19. It was being heard here and there that the benedictions being paid to Krsna were neither befitting
nor unbefitting because they were all for the Absolute, who was now playing the part of a human being.
20. Absorbed in the thought of the transcendental qualities of the Lord, who is glorified in select poetry,
the ladies on the roofs of all the houses of Hastinapura began to talk of Him. This talk was more
attractive than the hymns of the Vedas.
21. They said: Here He is, the original Personality of Godhead as we definitely remember Him. He
alone existed before the manifested creation of the modes of nature, and in Him only, because He is
the Supreme Lord, all living beings merge, as if sleeping at night, their energy suspended.
22. The Personality of Godhead, again desiring to give names and forms to His parts and parcels, the
living entities, placed them under the guidance of material nature. By His own potency, material nature
is empowered to re-create.
23. Here is the same Supreme Personality of Godhead whose transcendental form is experienced by
the great devotees who are completely cleansed of material consciousness by dint of rigid devotional
service and full control of life and the senses. And that is the only way to purify existence.
24. O dear friends, here is that very Personality of Godhead whose attractive and confidential pastimes
are described in the confidential parts of Vedic literature by His great devotees. It is He only who
creates, maintains and annihilates the material world and yet remains unaffected.
25. Whenever there are kings and administrators living like animals in the lowest modes of existence,
the Lord in His transcendental form manifests His supreme power, the Truth Positive, shows special
mercy to the faithful, performs wonderful activities and manifests various transcendental forms as is
necessary in different periods and ages.
26. Oh, how supremely glorified is the dynasty of King Yadu, and how virtuous is the land of Mathura,
where the supreme leader of all living beings, the husband of the goddess of fortune, has taken His
birth and wandered in His childhood.
27. Undoubtedly it is wonderful that Dvaraka has defeated the glories of the heavenly planets and has
enhanced the celebrity of the earth. The inhabitants of Dvaraka are always seeing the soul of all living
beings [Krsna] in His loving feature. He glances at them and favors them with sweet smiles.
28. O friends, just think of His wives, whose hands He has accepted. How they must have undergone
vows, baths, fire sacrifices and perfect worship of the Lord of the universe to constantly relish now the
nectar from His lips [by kissing]. The damsels of Vrajabhumi would often faint just by expecting such
favors.
29. The children of these ladies are Pradyumna, Samba, Amba, etc: Ladies like Rukmini, Satyabhama
and Jambavati were forcibly taken away by Him from their svayamvara ceremonies after He defeated
many powerful kings, headed by Sisupala. And other ladies were also forcibly taken away by Him after
He killed Bhaumasura and thousands of his assistants. All of these ladies are glorious.
30. All these women auspiciously glorified their lives despite their being without individuality and without
purity. Their husband, the lotus-eyed Personality of Godhead, never left them alone at home. He always
pleased their hearts by making valuable presentations.
31. While the ladies of the capital of Hastinapura were greeting Him and talking in this way, the Lord,
smiling, accepted their good greetings, and casting the grace of His glance over them, He departed
from the city.
32. Maharaja Yudhisthira, although no one's enemy, engaged four divisions of defense [horse,
elephant, chariot and army] to accompany Lord Krsna, the enemy of the asuras [demons]. The
Maharaja did this because of the enemy, and also out of affection for the Lord.
33. Out of profound affection for Lord Krsna, the Pandavas, who were of the Kuru dynasty,
accompanied Him a considerable distance to see Him off. They were overwhelmed with the thought of
future separation. The Lord, however, persuaded them to return home, and He proceeded towards
Dvaraka with His dear companions.
34-35. O Saunaka, the Lord then proceeded towards Kurujangala, Pancala, Surasena, the land on the
bank of the River Yamuna, Brahmavarta, Kuruksetra, Matsya, Sarasvata, the province of the desert and
the land of scanty water. After crossing these provinces He gradually reached the Sauvira and Abhira
provinces, then west of these, reached Dvaraka at last.
36. On His journey through these provinces He was welcomed, worshiped and given various
presentations. In the evening, in all places, the Lord suspended His journey to perform evening rites. This
was regularly observed after sunset.
Chapter Eleven Lord Krsna's Entrance into Dvaraka
1. Suta Gosvami said: Upon reaching the border of His most prosperous metropolis, known as the
country of the Anartas [Dvaraka], the Lord sounded His auspicious conchshell, heralding His arrival and
26 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
apparently pacifying the dejection of the inhabitants.
2. The white and fat-boweled conchshell, being gripped by the hand of Lord Krsna and sounded by
Him, appeared to be reddened by the touch of His transcendental lips. It seemed that a white swan was
playing in the stems of red lotus flowers.
3. The citizens of Dvaraka, having heard that sound which threatens fear personified in the material
world, began to run towards Him fast, just to have a long desired audience with the Lord, who is the
protector of all devotees.
4-5. The citizens arrived before the Lord with their respective presentations, offering them to the fully
satisfied and self-sufficient one, who, by His own potency, incessantly supplies others. These
presentations were like the offering of a lamp to the sun. Yet the citizens began to speak in ecstatic
language to receive the Lord, just as wards welcome their guardian and father.
6. The citizens said: O Lord, You are worshiped by all demigods like Brahma, the four Sanas and even
the King of heaven. You are the ultimate rest for those who are really aspiring to achieve the highest
benefit of life. You are the supreme transcendental Lord, and inevitable time cannot exert its influence
upon You.
7. O creator of the universe, You are our mother, well-wisher, Lord, father, spiritual master and
worshipable Deity. By following in Your footsteps we have become successful in every respect. We
pray, therefore, that You continue to bless us with Your mercy.
8. Oh, it is our good luck that we have come again today under Your protection by Your presence, for
Your Lordship rarely visits even the denizens of heaven. Now it is possible for us to look into Your
smiling face, which is full of affectionate glances. We can now see Your transcendental form, full of all
auspiciousness.
9. O lotus-eyed Lord, whenever You go away to Mathura, Vrndavana or Hastinapura to meet Your
friends and relatives, every moment of Your absence seems like a million years. O infallible one, at that
time our eyes become useless, as if bereft of sun.
10. O master, if You live abroad all the time, then we cannot look at Your attractive face, whose smiles
vanquish all our sufferings. How can we exist without Your presence? Upon hearing their speeches, the
Lord, who is very kind to the citizens and the devotees, entered the city of Dvaraka and acknowledged
all their greetings by casting His transcendental glance over them.
11. As Bhogavati, the capital of Nagaloka, is protected by the Nagas, so was Dvaraka protected by the
descendants of Vrsni--Bhoja, Madhu, Dasarha, Arha, Kukura, Andhaka, etc.--who were as strong as
Lord Krsna.
12. The city of Dvarakapuri was filled with the opulences of all seasons. There were hermitages,
orchards, flower gardens, parks and reservoirs of water breeding lotus flowers all over.
13. The city gateway, the household doors and festooned arches along the roads were all nicely
decorated with festive signs like plantain trees and mango leaves, all to welcome the Lord. Flags,
garlands and painted signs and slogans all combined to shade the sunshine.
14. The highways, subways, lanes, markets and public meeting places were all thoroughly cleansed
and then moistened with scented water. And to welcome the Lord, fruits, flowers and unbroken seeds
were strewn everywhere.
15. In each and every door of the residential houses, auspicious things like curd, unbroken fruits,
sugarcane and full waterpots with articles for worship, incense and candles were all displayed.
16-17. On hearing that the most dear Krsna was approaching Dvarakadhama, magnanimous
Vasudeva, Akrura, Ugrasena, Balarama (the superhumanly powerful), Pradyumna, Carudesna and
Samba the son of Jambavati, all extremely happy, abandoned resting, sitting and dining.
18. They hastened toward the Lord on chariots with brahmanas bearing flowers. Before them were
elephants, emblems of good fortune. Conchshells and bugles were sounded, and Vedic hymns were
chanted. Thus they offered their respects, which were saturated with affection.
19. At the same time, many hundreds of well-known prostitutes began to proceed on various vehicles.
They were all very eager to meet the Lord, and their beautiful faces were decorated with dazzling
earrings, which enhanced the beauty of their foreheads.
20. Expert dramatists, artists, dancers, singers, historians, genealogists and learned speakers all gave
their respective contributions, being inspired by the superhuman pastimes of the Lord. Thus they
proceeded on and on.
21. Lord Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, approached them and offered due honor and respect to
each and every one of the friends, relatives, citizens and all others who came to receive and welcome
Him.
22. The Almighty Lord greeted everyone present by bowing His head, exchanging greetings,
embracing, shaking hands, looking and smiling, giving assurances and awarding benedictions, even to
the lowest in rank.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 27
23. Then the Lord personally entered the city accompanied by elderly relatives and invalid brahmanas
with their wives, all offering benedictions and singing the glories of the Lord. Others also praised the
glories of the Lord.
24. When Lord Krsna passed over the public roads, all the ladies from the respectable families of
Dvaraka went up to the roofs of their palaces just to have a look at the Lord. They considered this to be
the greatest festival.
25. The inhabitants of Dvaraka were regularly accustomed to look upon the reservoir of all beauty, the
infallible Lord, yet they were never satiated.
26. The Lord's chest is the abode of the goddess of fortune. His moonlike face is the drinking vessel for
eyes which hanker after all that is beautiful. His arms are the resting places for the administrative
demigods. And His lotus feet are the refuge of pure devotees who never talk or sing of any subject
except His Lordship.
27. As the Lord passed along the public road of Dvaraka, His head was protected from the sunshine by
a white umbrella. White feathered fans moved in semicircles, and showers of flowers fell upon the road.
His yellow garments and garlands of flowers made it appear as if a dark cloud were surrounded
simultaneously by sun, moon, lightning and rainbows.
28. After entering the house of His father, He was embraced by the mothers present, and the Lord
offered His obeisances unto them by placing His head at their feet. The mothers were headed by
Devaki [His real mother].
29. The mothers, after embracing their son, sat Him on their laps. Due to pure affection, milk sprang
from their breasts. They were overwhelmed with delight, and the tears from their eyes wetted the Lord.
30. Thereafter, the Lord entered His palaces, which were perfect to the fullest extent. His wives lived in
them, and they numbered over sixteen thousand.
31. The queens of Lord Sri Krsna rejoiced within their minds to see their husband home after a long
period abroad. The queens got up at once from their seats and meditations. As was socially customary,
they covered their faces shyly and looked about coyly.
32. The insuperable ecstasy was so strong that the queens, who were shy, first embraced the Lord in
the innermost recesses of their hearts. Then they embraced Him visually, and then they sent their sons
to embrace Him [which is equal to personal embracing]. But, O chief amongst the Bhrgus, though they
tried to restrain their feelings, they inadvertently shed tears.
33. Although Lord Sri Krsna was constantly by their sides, as well as exclusively alone, His feet
appeared to them to be newer and newer. The goddess of fortune, although by nature always restless
and moving, could not quit the Lord's feet. So what woman can be detached from those feet, having
once taken shelter of them?
34. The Lord was pacified after killing those kings who were burdensome to the earth. They were puffed
up with their military strength, their horses, elephants, chariots, infantry, etc. He Himself was not a party
in the fight. He simply created hostility between the powerful administrators, and they fought amongst
themselves. He was like the wind which causes friction between bamboos and so sparks a fire.
35. That Supreme Personality of Godhead Sri Krsna, out of His causeless mercy, appeared on this
planet by His internal potency and enjoyed Himself amongst competent women as if He were engaging
in mundane affairs.
36. Although the queens' beautiful smiles and furtive glances were all spotless and exciting, and
although they could conquer Cupid himself by making him give up his bow in frustration, and although
even the tolerant Siva could fall victim to them, still, despite all their magical feats and attractions, they
could not agitate the senses of the Lord.
37. The common materialistic conditioned souls speculate that the Lord is one of them. Out of their
ignorance they think that the Lord is affected by matter, although He is unattached.
38. This is the divinity of the Personality of Godhead: He is not affected by the qualities of material
nature, even though He is in contact with them. Similarly, the devotees who have taken shelter of the
Lord do not become influenced by the material qualities.
39. The simple and delicate women truly thought that Lord Sri Krsna, their beloved husband, followed
them and was dominated by them. They were unaware of the extent of the glories of their husband, as
the atheists are unaware of Him as the supreme controller.
Chapter Twelve Birth of Emperor Pariksit
1. The sage Saunaka said: The womb of Uttara, mother of Maharaja Pariksit, was spoiled by the
dreadful and invincible brahmastra weapon released by Asvatthama. But Maharaja Pariksit was saved
by the Supreme Lord.
2. How was the great emperor Pariksit, who was a highly intelligent and great devotee, born in that
womb? How did his death take place, and what did he achieve after his death?
28 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3. We all respectfully want to hear about him [Maharaja Pariksit] to whom Sukadeva Gosvami imparted
transcendental knowledge. Please speak on this matter.
4. Sri Suta Gosvami said: Emperor Yudhisthira administered generously to everyone during his reign.
He was exactly like his father. He had no personal ambition and was freed from all sorts of sense
gratification because of his continuous service unto the lotus feet of the Lord Sri Krsna.
5. News even reached the celestial planets about Maharaja Yudhisthira's worldly possessions, the
sacrifices by which he would attain a better destination, his queen, his stalwart brothers, his extensive
land, his sovereignty over the planet earth, and his fame, etc.
6. O brahmanas, the opulence of the King was so enchanting that the denizens of heaven aspired for it.
But because he was absorbed in the service of the Lord, nothing could satisfy him except the Lord's
service.
7. O son of Bhrgu [Saunaka], when the child Pariksit, the great fighter, was in the womb of his mother,
Uttara, and was suffering from the burning heat of the brahmastra [thrown by Asvatthama], he could
observe the Supreme Lord coming to him.
8. He [the Lord] was only thumb high, but He was all transcendental. He had a very beautiful, blackish,
infallible body, and He wore a dress of lightning yellow and a helmet of blazing gold. Thus He was seen
by the child.
9. The Lord was enriched with four hands, earrings of molten gold and eyes blood red with fury. As He
loitered about, His club constantly encircled Him like a shooting star.
10. The Lord was thus engaged in vanquishing the radiation of the brahmastra, just as the sun
evaporates a drop of dew. He was observed by the child, who thought about who He was.
11. While thus being observed by the child, the Supreme Lord Personality of Godhead, the Supersoul of
everyone and the protector of the righteous, who stretches in all directions and who is unlimited by time
and space, disappeared at once.
12. Thereupon, when all the good signs of the zodiac gradually evolved, the heir apparent of Pandu,
who would be exactly like him in prowess, took birth.
13. King Yudhisthira, who was very satisfied with the birth of Maharaja Pariksit, had the purificatory
process of birth performed. Learned brahmanas, headed by Dhaumya and Krpa, recited auspicious
hymns.
14. Upon the birth of a son, the King, who knew how, where and when charity should be given, gave
gold, land, villages, elephants, horses and good food grains to the brahmanas.
15. The learned brahmanas, who were very satisfied with the charities of the King, addressed him as
the chief amongst the Purus and informed him that his son was certainly in the line of descent from the
Purus.
16. The brahmanas said: This spotless son has been restored by the all-powerful and all-pervasive Lord
Visnu, the Personality of Godhead, in order to oblige you. He was saved when he was doomed to be
destroyed by an irresistible supernatural weapon.
17. For this reason this child will be well known in the world as one who is protected by the Personality
of Godhead. O most fortunate one, there is no doubt that this child will become a first-class devotee and
will be qualified with all good qualities.
18. The good King [Yudhisthira] inquired: O great souls, will he become as saintly a king, as pious in his
very name and as famous and glorified in his achievements, as others who appeared in this great royal
family?
19. The learned brahmanas said: O son of Prtha, this child shall be exactly like King Iksvaku, son of
Manu, in maintaining all those who are born. And as for following the brahminical principles, especially
in being true to his promise, he shall be exactly like Rama, the Personality of Godhead, the son of
Maharaja Dasaratha.
20. This child will be a munificent donor of charity and protector of the surrendered, like the famous King
Sibi of the Usinara country. And he will expand the name and fame of his family like Bharata, the son of
Maharaja Dusyanta.
21. Amongst great bowmen, this child will be as good as Arjuna. He will be as irresistible as fire and as
unsurpassable as the ocean.
22. This child will be as strong as a lion, and as worthy a shelter as the Himalaya Mountains. He will be
forbearing like the earth, and as tolerant as his parents.
23. This child will be like his grandfather Yudhisthira or Brahma in equanimity of mind. He will be
munificent like the lord of the Kailasa Hill, Siva. And he will be the resort of everyone, like the Supreme
Personality of Godhead Narayana, who is even the shelter of the goddess of fortune.
24. This child will be almost as good as Lord Sri Krsna by following in His footsteps. In magnanimity he
will become as great as King Rantideva. And in religion he will be like Maharaja Yayati.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 29
25. This child will be like Bali Maharaja in patience, a staunch devotee of Lord Krsna like Prahlada
Maharaja, a performer of many Asvamedha [horse] sacrifices and a follower of the old and experienced
men.
26. This child will be the father of kings who will be like sages. For world peace and for the sake of
religion, he will be the chastiser of the upstarts and the quarrelsome.
27. After hearing about his death, which will be caused by the bite of a snake-bird sent by a son of a
brahmana, he will get himself freed from all material attachment and surrender unto the Personality of
Godhead, taking shelter of Him.
28. After inquiring about proper self-knowledge from the son of Vyasadeva, who will be a great
philosopher, he will renounce all material attachment and achieve a life of fearlessness.
29. Thus those who were expert in astrological knowledge and in performance of the birth ceremony
instructed King Yudhisthira about the future history of his child. Then, being sumptuously remunerated,
they all returned to their respective homes.
30. So his son would become famous in the world as Pariksit [examiner] because he would come to
examine all human beings in his search after that personality whom he saw before his birth. Thus he
would come to constantly contemplate Him.
31. As the moon, in its waxing fortnight, develops day after day, so the royal prince [Pariksit] very soon
developed luxuriantly under the care and full facilities of his guardian grandfathers.
32. Just at this time, King Yudhisthira was considering performing a horse sacrifice to get freed from
sins incurred from fighting with kinsmen. But he became anxious to get some wealth, for there were no
surplus funds outside of fines and tax collection.
33. Understanding the hearty wishes of the King, his brothers, as advised by the infallible Lord Krsna,
collected sufficient riches from the North [left by King Marutta].
34. By those riches, the King could procure the ingredients for three horse sacrifices. Thus the pious
King Yudhisthira, who was very fearful after the Battle of Kuruksetra, pleased Lord Hari, the Personality
of Godhead.
35. Lord Sri Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, being invited to the sacrifices by Maharaja Yudhisthira,
saw to it that they were performed by qualified [twice-born] brahmanas. After that, for the pleasure of
the relatives, the Lord remained a few months.
36. O Saunaka, thereafter the Lord, having bade farewell to King Yudhisthira, Draupadi and other
relatives, started for the city of Dvaraka, accompanied by Arjuna and other members of the Yadu
dynasty.
Chapter Thirteen Dhrtarastra Quits Home
1. Sri Suta Gosvami said: While traveling on a pilgrimage, Vidura received knowledge of the destination
of the self from the great sage Maitreya and then returned to Hastinapura. He became as well versed in
the subject as he desired.
2. After asking various questions and becoming established in the transcendental loving service of Lord
Krsna, Vidura retired from putting questions to Maitreya Muni.
3-4. When they saw Vidura return to the palace, all the inhabitants--Maharaja Yudhisthira, his younger
brothers, Dhrtarastra, Satyaki, Sanjaya, Krpacarya, Kunti, Gandhari, Draupadi, Subhadra, Uttara, Krpi,
many other wives of the Kauravas, and other ladies with children--all hurried to him in great delight. It so
appeared that they had regained their consciousness after a long period.
5. With great delight they all approached him, as if life had returned to their bodies. They exchanged
obeisances and welcomed each other with embraces.
6. Due to anxieties and long separation, they all cried out of affection. King Yudhisthira then arranged to
offer sitting accommodations and a reception.
7. After Vidura ate sumptuously and took sufficient rest, he was comfortably seated. Then the King
began to speak to him, and all who were present there listened.
8. Maharaja Yudhisthira said: My uncle, do you remember how you always protected us, along with our
mother, from all sorts of calamities? Your partiality, like the wings of a bird, saved us from poisoning and
arson.
9. While traveling on the surface of the earth, how did you maintain your livelihood? At which holy
places and pilgrimage sites did you render service?
10. My Lord, devotees like your good self are verily holy places personified. Because you carry the
Personality of Godhead within your heart, you turn all places into places of pilgrimage.
11. My uncle, you must have visited Dvaraka. In that holy place are our friends and well-wishers, the
descendants of Yadu, who are always rapt in the service of the Lord Sri Krsna. You might have seen
them or heard about them. Are they all living happily in their abodes?
12. Thus being questioned by Maharaja Yudhisthira, Mahatma Vidura gradually described everything
he had personally experienced, except news of the annihilation of the Yadu dynasty.
30 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
13. Compassionate Mahatma Vidura could not stand to see the Pandavas distressed at any time.
Therefore he did not disclose this unpalatable and unbearable incident because calamities come of
their own accord.
14. Thus Mahatma Vidura, being treated just like a godly person by his kinsmen, remained there for a
certain period just to rectify the mentality of his eldest brother and in this way bring happiness to all the
others.
15. As long as Vidura played the part of a sudra, being cursed by Manduka Muni, Aryama officiated at
the post of Yamaraja to punish those who committed sinful acts.
16. Having won his kingdom and observed the birth of one grandson competent to continue the noble
tradition of his family, Maharaja Yudhisthira reigned peacefully and enjoyed uncommon opulence in
cooperation with his younger brothers, who were all expert administrators to the common people.
17. Insurmountable, eternal time imperceptibly overcomes those who are too much attached to family
affairs and are always engrossed in their thought.
18. Mahatma Vidura knew all this, and therefore he addressed Dhrtarastra, saying: My dear King,
please get out of here immediately. Do not delay. Just see how fear has overtaken you.
19. This frightful situation cannot be remedied by any person in this material world. My lord, it is the
Supreme Personality of Godhead as eternal time [kala] that has approached us all.
20. Whoever is under the influence of supreme kala [eternal time] must surrender his most dear life, and
what to speak of other things, such as wealth, honor, children, land and home.
21. Your father, brother, well-wishers and sons are all dead and passed away. You yourself have
expended the major portion of your life, your body is now overtaken by invalidity, and you are living in
the home of another.
22. You have been blind from your very birth, and recently you have become hard of hearing. Your
memory is shortened, and your intelligence is disturbed. Your teeth are loose, your liver is defective,
and you are coughing up mucus.
23. Alas, how powerful are the hopes of a living being to continue his life. Verily, you are living just like a
household dog and are eating remnants of food given by Bhima.
24. There is no need to live a degraded life and subsist on the charity of those whom you tried to kill by
arson and poisoning. You also insulted one of their wives and usurped their kingdom and wealth.
25. Despite your unwillingness to die and your desire to live even at the cost of honor and prestige, your
miserly body will certainly dwindle and deteriorate like an old garment.
26. He is called undisturbed who goes to an unknown, remote place and, freed from all obligations,
quits his material body when it has become useless.
27. He is certainly a first-class man who awakens and understands, either by himself or from others, the
falsity and misery of this material world and thus leaves home and depends fully on the Personality of
Godhead residing within his heart.
28. Please, therefore, leave for the North immediately, without letting your relatives know, for soon that
time will approach which will diminish the good qualities of men.
29. Thus Maharaja Dhrtarastra, the scion of the family of Ajamidha, firmly convinced by introspective
knowledge [prajna], broke at once the strong network of familial affection by his resolute determination.
Thus he immediately left home to set out on the path of liberation, as directed by his younger brother
Vidura.
30. The gentle and chaste Gandhari, who was the daughter of King Subala of Kandahar [or Gandhara],
followed her husband, seeing that he was going to the Himalaya Mountains, which are the delight of
those who have accepted the staff of the renounced order like fighters who have accepted a good
lashing from the enemy.
31. Maharaja Yudhisthira, whose enemy was never born, performed his daily morning duties by
praying, offering fire sacrifice to the sun-god, and offering obeisances, grains, cows, land and gold to
the brahmanas. He then entered the palace to pay respects to the elderly. However, he could not find
his uncles or aunt, the daughter of King Subala.
32. Maharaja Yudhisthira, full of anxiety, turned to Sanjaya, who was sitting there, and said: O Sanjaya,
where is our uncle, who is old and blind?
33. Where is my well-wisher, uncle Vidura, and mother Gandhari, who is very afflicted due to all her
sons' demise? My uncle Dhrtarastra was also very mortified due to the death of all his sons and
grandsons. Undoubtedly I am very ungrateful. Did he, therefore, take my offenses very seriously and,
along with his wife, drown himself in the Ganges?
34. When my father, Pandu, fell down and we were all small children, these two uncles gave us
protection from all kinds of calamities. They were always our good well-wishers. Alas, where have they
gone from here?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 31
35. Suta Gosvami said: Because of compassion and mental agitation, Sanjaya, not having seen his
own master, Dhrtarastra, was aggrieved and could not properly reply to Maharaja Yudhisthira.
36. First he slowly pacified his mind by intelligence, and wiping away his tears and thinking of the feet of
his master, Dhrtarastra, he began to reply to Maharaja Yudhisthira.
37. Sanjaya said: My dear descendant of the Kuru dynasty, I have no information of the determination
of your two uncles and Gandhari. O King, I have been cheated by those great souls.
38. While Sanjaya was thus speaking, Sri Narada, the powerful devotee of the Lord, appeared on the
scene carrying his tumburu. Maharaja Yudhisthira and his brothers received him properly by getting up
from their seats and offering obeisances.
39. Maharaja Yudhisthira said: O godly personality, I do not know where my two uncles have gone. Nor
can I find my ascetic aunt who is grief-stricken by the loss of all her sons.
40. You are like a captain of a ship in a great ocean and you can direct us to our destination. Thus
addressed, the godly personality, Devarsi Narada, greatest of the philosopher devotees, began to
speak.
41. Sri Narada said: O pious King, do not lament for anyone, for everyone is under the control of the
Supreme Lord. Therefore all living beings and their leaders carry on worship to be well protected. It is
He only who brings them together and disperses them.
42. As a cow, bound through the nose by a long rope, is conditioned, so also human beings are bound
by different Vedic injunctions and are conditioned to obey the orders of the Supreme.
43. As a player sets up and disperses his playthings according to his own sweet will, so the supreme
will of the Lord brings men together and separates them.
44. O King, in all circumstances, whether you consider the soul to be an eternal principle, or the
material body to be perishable, or everything to exist in the impersonal Absolute Truth, or everything to
be an inexplicable combination of matter and spirit, feelings of separation are due only to illusory
affection and nothing more.
45. Therefore give up your anxiety due to ignorance of the self. You are now thinking of how they, who
are helpless poor creatures, will exist without you.
46. This gross material body made of five elements is already under the control of eternal time [kala],
action [karma] and the modes of material nature [guna]. How, then, can it, being already in the jaws of
the serpent, protect others?
47. Those who are devoid of hands are prey for those who have hands; those devoid of legs are prey
for the four-legged. The weak are the subsistence of the strong, and the general rule holds that one
living being is food for another.
48. Therefore, O King, you should look to the Supreme Lord only, who is one without a second and who
manifests Himself by different energies and is both within and without.
49. That Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Sri Krsna, in the guise of all-devouring time [kala-rupa]
has now descended on earth to eliminate the envious from the world.
50. The Lord has already performed His duties to help the demigods, and He is awaiting the rest. You
Pandavas may wait as long as the Lord is here on earth.
51. O King, your uncle Dhrtarastra, his brother Vidura and his wife Gandhari have gone to the southern
side of the Himalaya Mountains, where there are shelters of the great sages.
52. The place is called Saptasrota ["divided by seven"] because there the waters of the sacred Ganges
were divided into seven branches. This was done for the satisfaction of the seven great rsis.
53. On the banks at Saptasrota, Dhrtarastra is now engaged in beginning astanga-yoga by bathing
three times daily, in the morning, noon and evening, by performing the Agni-hotra sacrifice with fire and
by drinking only water. This helps one control the mind and the senses and frees one completely from
thoughts of familial affection.
54. One who has controlled the sitting postures [the yogic asanas] and the breathing process can turn
the senses toward the Absolute Personality of Godhead and thus become immune to the
contaminations of the modes of material nature, namely mundane goodness, passion and ignorance.
55. Dhrtarastra will have to amalgamate his pure identity with intelligence and then merge into the
Supreme Being with knowledge of his qualitative oneness, as a living entity, with the Supreme
Brahman. Being freed from the blocked sky, he will have to rise to the spiritual sky.
56. He will have to suspend all the actions of the senses, even from the outside, and will have to be
impervious to interactions of the senses, which are influenced by the modes of material nature. After
renouncing all material duties, he must become immovably established, beyond all sources of
hindrances on the path.
57. O King, he will quit his body, most probably on the fifth day from today. And his body will turn to
ashes.
32 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
58. While outside observing her husband, who will burn in the fire of mystic power along with his
thatched cottage, his chaste wife will enter the fire with rapt attention.
59. Vidura, being affected with delight and grief, will then leave that place of sacred pilgrimage.
60. Having spoken thus, the great sage Narada, along with his vina, ascended into outer space.
Yudhisthira kept his instruction in his heart and so was able to get rid of all lamentations.
Chapter Fourteen The Disappearance of Lord Krsna
1. Sri Suta Gosvami said: Arjuna went to Dvaraka to see Lord Sri Krsna and other friends and also to
learn from the Lord of His next activities.
2. A few months passed, and Arjuna did not return. Maharaja Yudhisthira then began to observe some
inauspicious omens, which were fearful in themselves.
3. He saw that the direction of eternal time had changed, and this was very fearful. There were
disruptions in the seasonal regularities. The people in general had become very greedy, angry and
deceitful. And he saw that they were adopting foul means of livelihood.
4. All ordinary transactions and dealings became polluted with cheating, even between friends. And in
familial affairs, there was always misunderstanding between fathers, mothers and sons, between well-
wishers, and between brothers. Even between husband and wife there was always strain and quarrel.
5. In course of time it came to pass that people in general became accustomed to greed, anger, pride,
etc. Maharaja Yudhisthira, observing all these omens, spoke to his younger brother.
6. Maharaja Yudhisthira said to his younger brother Bhimasena, I sent Arjuna to Dvaraka to meet his
friends and to learn from the Personality of Godhead Krsna of His program of work.
7. Since he departed, seven months have passed, yet he has not returned. I do not know factually how
things are going there.
8. Is He going to quit His earthly pastimes, as Devarsi Narada indicated? Has that time already arrived?
9. From Him only, all our kingly opulence, good wives, lives, progeny, control over our subjects, victory
over our enemies, and future accommodations in higher planets have become possible. All this is due
to His causeless mercy upon us.
10. Just see, O man with a tiger's strength, how many miseries due to celestial influences, earthly
reactions and bodily pains--all very dangerous in themselves--are foreboding danger in the near future
by deluding our intelligence.
11. The left side of my body, my thighs, arms and eyes are all quivering again and again. I am having
heart palpitations due to fear. All this indicates undesirable happenings.
12. Just see, O Bhima, how the she jackal cries at the rising sun and vomits fire, and how the dog barks
at me fearlessly.
13. O Bhimasena, tiger amongst men, now useful animals like cows are passing me on my left side,
and lower animals like the asses are circumambulating me. My horses appear to weep upon seeing me.
14. Just see! This pigeon is like a messenger of death. The shrieks of the owls and their rival crows
make my heart tremble. It appears that they want to make a void of the whole universe.
15. Just see how the smoke encircles the sky. It appears that the earth and mountains are throbbing.
Just hear the cloudless thunder and see the bolts from the blue.
16. The wind blows violently, blasting dust everywhere and creating darkness. Clouds are raining
everywhere with bloody disasters.
17. The rays of the sun are declining, and the stars appear to be fighting amongst themselves.
Confused living entities appear to be ablaze and weeping.
18. Rivers, tributaries, ponds, reservoirs and the mind are all perturbed. Butter no longer ignites fire.
What is this extraordinary time? What is going to happen?
19. The calves do not suck the teats of the cows, nor do the cows give milk. They are standing, crying,
tears in their eyes, and the bulls take no pleasure in the pasturing grounds.
20. The Deities seem to be crying in the temple, lamenting and perspiring. They seem about to leave.
All the cities, villages, towns, gardens, mines and hermitages are now devoid of beauty and bereft of all
happiness. I do not know what sort of calamities are now awaiting us.
21. I think that all these earthly disturbances indicate some greater loss to the good fortune of the world.
The world was fortunate to have been marked with the footprints of the lotus feet of the Lord. These
signs indicate that this will no longer be.
22. O Brahmana Saunaka, while Maharaja Yudhisthira, observing the inauspicious signs on the earth at
that time, was thus thinking to himself, Arjuna came back from the city of the Yadus [Dvaraka].
23. When he bowed at his feet, the King saw that his dejection was unprecedented. His head was
down, and tears glided from his lotus eyes.
24. Seeing Arjuna pale due to heartfelt anxieties, the King, remembering the indications of the sage
Narada, questioned him in the midst of friends.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 33
25. Maharaja Yudhisthira said: My dear brother, please tell me whether our friends and relatives, such
as Madhu, Bhoja, Dasarha, Arha, Satvata, Andhaka and the members of the Yadu family are all
passing their days in happiness.
26. Is my respectable grandfather Surasena in a happy mood? And are my maternal uncle Vasudeva
and his younger brothers all doing well?
27. His seven wives, headed by Devaki, are all sisters. Are they and their sons and daughters-in-law all
happy?
28-29. Are Ugrasena, whose son was the mischievous Kamsa, and his younger brother still living? Are
Hrdika and his son Krtavarma happy? Are Akrura, Jayanta, Gada, Sarana and Satrujit all happy? How
is Balarama, the Personality of Godhead and the protector of devotees?
30. How is Pradyumna, the great general of the Vrsni family? Is He happy? And is Aniruddha, the
plenary expansion of the Personality of Godhead, faring well?
31. Are all the chieftain sons of Lord Krsna, such as Susena, Carudesna, Samba the son of Jambavati,
and Rsabha, along with their sons, all doing well?
32-33. Also, Srutadeva, Uddhava and others, Nanda, Sunanda and other leaders of liberated souls who
are constant companions of the Lord are protected by Lord Balarama and Krsna. Are they all doing well
in their respective functions? Do they, who are all eternally bound in friendship with us, remember our
welfare?
34. Is Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who gives pleasure to the cows, the senses
and the brahmanas, who is very affectionate towards His devotees, enjoying the pious assembly at
Dvaraka Puri surrounded by friends?
35-36. The original Personality of Godhead, the enjoyer, and Balarama, the primeval Lord Ananta, are
staying in the ocean of the Yadu dynasty for the welfare, protection and general progress of the entire
universe. And the members of the Yadu dynasty, being protected by the arms of the Lord, are enjoying
life like the residents of the spiritual sky.
37. Simply by administering comforts at the lotus feet of the Lord, which is the most important of all
services, the queens at Dvaraka, headed by Satyabhama, induced the Lord to conquer the demigods.
Thus the queens enjoy things which are prerogatives of the wives of the controller of thunderbolts.
38. The great heroes of the Yadu dynasty, being protected by the arms of Lord Sri Krsna, always
remain fearless in every respect. And therefore their feet trample over the Sudharma assembly house,
which the best demigods deserved but which was taken away from them.
39. My brother Arjuna, please tell me whether your health is all right. You appear to have lost your
bodily luster. Is this due to others disrespecting and neglecting you because of your long stay at
Dvaraka?
40. Has someone addressed you with unfriendly words or threatened you? Could you not give charity to
one who asked, or could you not keep your promise to someone?
41. You are always the protector of the deserving living beings, such as brahmanas, children, cows,
women and the diseased. Could you not give them protection when they approached you for shelter?
42. Have you contacted a woman of impeachable character, or have you not properly treated a
deserving woman? Or have you been defeated on the way by someone who is inferior or equal to you?
43. Have you not taken care of old men and boys who deserve to dine with you? Have you left them
and taken your meals alone? Have you committed some unpardonable mistake which is considered to
be abominable?
44. Or is it that you are feeling empty for all time because you might have lost your most intimate friend,
Lord Krsna? O my brother Arjuna, I can think of no other reason for your becoming so dejected.
Chapter Fifteen The Pandavas Retire Timely
1. Suta Gosvami said: Arjuna, the celebrated friend of Lord Krsna, was grief-stricken because of his
strong feeling of separation from Krsna, over and above all Maharaja Yudhisthira's speculative inquiries.
2. Due to grief, Arjuna's mouth and lotuslike heart had dried up. Therefore his body lost all luster. Now,
remembering the Supreme Lord, he could hardly utter a word in reply.
3. With great difficulty he checked the tears of grief that smeared his eyes. He was very distressed
because Lord Krsna was out of his sight, and he increasingly felt affection for Him.
4. Remembering Lord Krsna and His well-wishes, benefactions, intimate familial relations and His
chariot driving, Arjuna, overwhelmed and breathing very heavily, began to speak.
5. Arjuna said: O King! The Supreme Personality of Godhead Hari, who treated me exactly like an
intimate friend, has left me alone. Thus my astounding power, which astonished even the demigods, is
no longer with me.
6. I have just lost Him whose separation for a moment would render all the universes unfavorable and
void, like bodies without life.
34 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
7. Only by His merciful strength was I able to vanquish all the lusty princes assembled at the palace of
King Drupada for the selection of the bridegroom. With my bow and arrow I could pierce the fish target
and thereby gain the hand of Draupadi.
8. Because He was near me, it was possible for me to conquer with great dexterity the powerful King of
heaven, Indradeva, along with his demigod associates and thus enable the fire-god to devastate the
Khandava Forest. And only by His grace was the demon named Maya saved from the blazing
Khandava Forest, and thus we could build our assembly house of wonderful architectural workmanship,
where all the princes assembled during the performance of Rajasuya-yajna and paid you tributes.
9. Your respectable younger brother, who possesses the strength of ten thousand elephants, killed, by
His grace, Jarasandha, whose feet were worshiped by many kings. These kings had been brought for
sacrifice in Jarasandha's Mahabhairava-yajna, but they were thus released. Later they paid tribute to
Your Majesty.
10. It was He only who loosened the hair of all the wives of the miscreants who dared open the cluster
of your Queen's hair, which had been nicely dressed and sanctified for the great Rajasuya sacrificial
ceremony. At that time she fell down at the feet of Lord Krsna with tears in her eyes.
11. During our exile, Durvasa Muni, who eats with his ten thousand disciples, intrigued with our enemies
to put us in dangerous trouble. At that time He [Lord Krsna], simply by accepting the remnants of food,
saved us. By His accepting food thus, the assembly of munis, while bathing in the river, felt
sumptuously fed. And all the three worlds were also satisfied.
12. It was by His influence only that in a fight I was able to astonish the personality of god Lord Siva and
his wife, the daughter of Mount Himalaya. Thus he [Lord Siva] became pleased with me and awarded
me his own weapon. Other demigods also delivered their respective weapons to me, and in addition I
was able to reach the heavenly planets in this present body and was allowed a half-elevated seat.
13. When I stayed for some days as a guest in the heavenly planets, all the heavenly demigods,
including King Indradeva, took shelter of my arms, which were marked with the Gandiva bow, to kill the
demon named Nivatakavaca. O King, descendant of Ajamidha, at the present moment I am bereft of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, by whose influence I was so powerful.
14. The military strength of the Kauravas was like an ocean in which there dwelled many invincible
existences, and thus it was insurmountable. But because of His friendship, I, seated on the chariot, was
able to cross over it. And only by His grace was I able to regain the cows and also collect by force many
helmets of the kings which were bedecked with jewels that were sources of all brilliance.
15. It was He only who withdrew the duration of life from everyone and who, in the battlefield, withdrew
the speculative power and strength of enthusiasm from the great military phalanx made by the
Kauravas, headed by Bhisma, Karna, Drona, Salya, etc. Their arrangement was expert and more than
adequate, but He [Lord Sri Krsna], while going forward, did all this.
16. Great generals like Bhisma, Drona, Karna, Bhurisrava, Susarma, Salya, Jayadratha, and Bahlika all
directed their invincible weapons against me. But by His [Lord Krsna's] grace they could not even touch
a hair on my head. Similarly, Prahlada Maharaja, the supreme devotee of Lord Nrsimhadeva, was
unaffected by the weapons the demons used against him.
17. It was by His mercy only that my enemies neglected to kill me when I descended from my chariot to
get water for my thirsty horses. And it was due to my lack of esteem for my Lord that I dared engage
Him as my chariot driver, for He is worshiped and offered services by the best men to attain salvation.
18. O King! His jokings and frank talks were pleasing and beautifully decorated with smiles. His
addresses unto me as "O son of Prtha, O friend, O son of the Kuru dynasty," and all such heartiness
are now remembered by me, and thus I am overwhelmed.
19. Generally both of us used to live together and sleep, sit and loiter together. And at the time of
advertising oneself for acts of chivalry, sometimes, if there were any irregularity, I used to reproach Him
by saying, "My friend, You are very truthful." Even in those hours when His value was minimized, He,
being the Supreme Soul, used to tolerate all those utterings of mine, excusing me exactly as a true
friend excuses his true friend, or a father excuses his son.
20. O Emperor, now I am separated from my friend and dearmost well-wisher, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, and therefore my heart appears to be void of everything. In His absence I have been
defeated by a number of infidel cowherd men while I was guarding the bodies of all the wives of Krsna.
21. I have the very same Gandiva bow, the same arrows, the same chariot drawn by the same horses,
and I use them as the same Arjuna to whom all the kings offered their due respects. But in the absence
of Lord Krsna, all of them, at a moment's notice, have become null and void. It is exactly like offering
clarified butter on ashes, accumulating money with a magic wand or sowing seeds on barren land.
22-23. O King, since you have asked me about our friends and relatives in the city of Dvaraka, I will
inform you that all of them were cursed by the brahmanas, and as a result they all became intoxicated
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 35
with wine made of putrefied rice and fought among themselves with sticks, not even recognizing one
another. Now all but four or five of them are dead and gone.
24. Factually this is all due to the supreme will of the Lord, the Personality of Godhead. Sometimes
people kill one another, and at other times they protect one another.
25-26. O King, as in the ocean the bigger and stronger aquatics swallow up the smaller and weaker
ones, so also the Supreme Personality of Godhead, to lighten the burden of the earth, has engaged the
stronger Yadu to kill the weaker, and the bigger Yadu to kill the smaller.
27. Now I am attracted to those instructions imparted to me by the Personality of Godhead [Govinda]
because they are impregnated with instructions for relieving the burning heart in all circumstances of
time and space.
28. Suta Gosvami said: Thus being deeply absorbed in thinking of the instructions of the Lord, which
were imparted in the great intimacy of friendship, and in thinking of His lotus feet, Arjuna's mind became
pacified and free from all material contamination.
29. Arjuna's constant remembrance of the lotus feet of Lord Sri Krsna rapidly increased his devotion,
and as a result all the trash in his thoughts subsided.
30. Because of the Lord's pastimes and activities and because of His absence, it appeared that Arjuna
forgot the instructions left by the Personality of Godhead. But factually this was not the case, and again
he became lord of his senses.
31. Because of his possessing spiritual assets, the doubts of duality were completely cut off. Thus he
was freed from the three modes of material nature and placed in transcendence. There was no longer
any chance of his becoming entangled in birth and death, for he was freed from material form.
32. Upon hearing of Lord Krsna's returning to His abode, and upon understanding the end of the Yadu
dynasty's earthly manifestation, Maharaja Yudhisthira decided to go back home, back to Godhead.
33. Kunti, after overhearing Arjuna's telling of the end of the Yadu dynasty and disappearance of Lord
Krsna, engaged in the devotional service of the transcendental Personality of Godhead with full
attention and thus gained release from the course of material existence.
34. The supreme unborn, Lord Sri Krsna, caused the members of the Yadu dynasty to relinquish their
bodies, and thus He relieved the burden of the world. This action was like picking out a thorn with a
thorn, though both are the same to the controller.
35. The Supreme Lord relinquished the body which He manifested to diminish the burden of the earth.
Just like a magician, He relinquishes one body to accept different ones, like the fish incarnation and
others.
36. When the Personality of Godhead, Lord Krsna, left this earthly planet in His selfsame form, from that
very day Kali, who had already partially appeared, became fully manifest to create inauspicious
conditions for those who are endowed with a poor fund of knowledge.
37. Maharaja Yudhisthira was intelligent enough to understand the influence of the age of Kali,
characterized by increasing avarice, falsehood, cheating and violence throughout the capital, state,
home and among individuals. So he wisely prepared himself to leave home, and he dressed
accordingly.
38. Thereafter, in the capital of Hastinapura, he enthroned his grandson, who was trained and equally
qualified, as the emperor and master of all land bordered by the seas.
39. Then he posted Vajra, the son of Aniruddha [grandson of Lord Krsna], at Mathura as the King of
Surasena. Afterwards Maharaja Yudhisthira performed a Prajapatya sacrifice and placed in himself the
fire for quitting household life.
40. Maharaja Yudhisthira at once relinquished all his garments, belt and ornaments of the royal order
and became completely disinterested and unattached to everything.
41. Then he amalgamated all the sense organs into the mind, then the mind into life, life into breathing,
his total existence into the embodiment of the five elements, and his body into death. Then, as pure self,
he became free from the material conception of life.
42. Thus annihilating the gross body of five elements into the three qualitative modes of material nature,
he merged them in one nescience and then absorbed that nescience in the self, Brahman, which is
inexhaustible in all circumstances.
43. After that, Maharaja Yudhisthira dressed himself in torn clothing, gave up eating all solid foods,
voluntarily became dumb and let his hair hang loose. All this combined to make him look like an urchin
or madman with no occupation. He did not depend on his brothers for anything. And, just like a deaf
man, he heard nothing.
44. He then started towards the north, treading the path accepted by his forefathers and great men, to
devote himself completely to the thought of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. And he lived in that
way wherever he went.
36 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
45. The younger brothers of Maharaja Yudhisthira observed that the age of Kali had already arrived
throughout the world and that the citizens of the kingdom were already affected by irreligious practice.
Therefore they decided to follow in the footsteps of their elder brother.
46. They all had performed all the principles of religion and as a result rightly decided that the lotus feet
of the Lord Sri Krsna are the supreme goal of all. Therefore they meditated upon His feet without
interruption.
47-48. Thus by pure consciousness due to constant devotional remembrance, they attained the spiritual
sky, which is ruled over by the Supreme Narayana, Lord Krsna. This is attained only by those who
meditate upon the one Supreme Lord without deviation. This abode of the Lord Sri Krsna, known as
Goloka Vrndavana, cannot be attained by persons who are absorbed in the material conception of life.
But the Pandavas, being completely washed of all material contamination, attained that abode in their
very same bodies.
49. Vidura, while on pilgrimage, left his body at Prabhasa. Because he was absorbed in thought of Lord
Krsna, he was received by the denizens of Pitrloka planet, where he returned to his original post.
50. Draupadi also saw that her husbands, without caring for her, were leaving home. She knew well
about Lord Vasudeva, Krsna, the Personality of Godhead. Both she and Subhadra became absorbed in
thoughts of Krsna and attained the same results as their husbands.
51. The subject of the departure of the sons of Pandu for the ultimate goal of life, back to Godhead, is
fully auspicious and is perfectly pure. Therefore anyone who hears this narration with devotional faith
certainly gains the devotional service of the Lord, the highest perfection of life.
Chapter Sixteen How Pariksit Received the Age of Kali
1. Suta Gosvami said: O learned brahmanas, Maharaja Pariksit then began to rule over the world as a
great devotee of the Lord under the instructions of the best of the twice-born brahmanas. He ruled by
those great qualities which were foretold by expert astrologers at the time of his birth.
2. King Pariksit married the daughter of King Uttara and begot four sons, headed by Maharaja
Janamejaya.
3. Maharaja Pariksit, after having selected Krpacarya for guidance as his spiritual master, performed
three horse sacrifices on the banks of the Ganges. These were executed with sufficient rewards for the
attendants. And at these sacrifices, even the common man could see demigods.
4. Once, when Maharaja Pariksit was on his way to conquer the world, he saw the master of Kali-yuga,
who was lower than a sudra, disguised as a king and hurting the legs of a cow and bull. The King at
once caught hold of him to deal sufficient punishment.
5. Saunaka Rsi inquired: Why did Maharaja Pariksit simply punish him, since he was the lowest of the
sudras, having dressed as a king and having struck a cow on the leg? Please describe all these
incidents if they relate to the topics of Lord Krsna.
6. The devotees of the Lord are accustomed to licking up the honey available from the lotus feet of the
Lord. What is the use of topics which simply waste one's valuable life?
7. O Suta Gosvami, there are those amongst men who desire freedom from death and get eternal life.
They escape the slaughtering process by calling the controller of death, Yamaraja.
8. As long as Yamaraja, who causes everyone's death, is present here, no one shall meet with death.
The great sages have invited the controller of death, Yamaraja, who is the representative of the Lord.
Living beings who are under his grip should take advantage by hearing the deathless nectar in the form
of this narration of the transcendental pastimes of the Lord.
9. Lazy human beings with paltry intelligence and a short duration of life pass the night sleeping and the
day performing activities that are for naught.
10. Suta Gosvami said: While Maharaja Pariksit was residing in the capital of the Kuru empire, the
symptoms of the age of Kali began to infiltrate within the jurisdiction of his state. When he learned about
this, he did not think the matter very palatable. This did, however, give him a chance to fight. He took up
his bow and arrows and prepared himself for military activities.
11. Maharaja Pariksit sat on a chariot drawn by black horses. His flag was marked with the sign of a
lion. Being so decorated and surrounded by charioteers, cavalry, elephants and infantry soldiers, he left
the capital to conquer in all directions.
12. Maharaja Pariksit then conquered all parts of the earthly planet--Bhadrasva, Ketumala, Bharata, the
northern Kuru, Kimpurusa, etc.--and exacted tributes from their respective rulers.
13-15. Wherever the King visited, he continuously heard the glories of his great forefathers, who were
all devotees of the Lord, and also of the glorious acts of Lord Krsna. He also heard how he himself had
been protected by the Lord from the powerful heat of the weapon of Asvatthama. People also
mentioned the great affection between the descendants of Vrsni and Prtha due to the latter's great
devotion to Lord Kesava. The King, being very pleased with the singers of such glories, opened his
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 37
eyes in great satisfaction. Out of magnanimity he was pleased to award them very valuable necklaces
and clothing.
16. Maharaja Pariksit heard that out of His causeless mercy Lord Krsna [Visnu], who is universally
obeyed, rendered all kinds of service to the malleable sons of Pandu by accepting posts ranging from
chariot driver to president to messenger, friend, night watchman, etc., according to the will of the
Pandavas, obeying them like a servant and offering obeisances like one younger in years. When he
heard this, Maharaja Pariksit became overwhelmed with devotion to the lotus feet of the Lord.
17. Now you may hear from me of what happened while Maharaja Pariksit was passing his days
hearing of the good occupations of his forefathers and being absorbed in thought of them.
18. The personality of religious principles, Dharma, was wandering about in the form of a bull. And he
met the personality of earth in the form of a cow who appeared to grieve like a mother who had lost her
child. She had tears in her eyes, and the beauty of her body was lost. Thus Dharma questioned the
earth as follows.
19. Dharma [in the form of a bull] asked: Madam, are you not hale and hearty? Why are you covered
with the shadow of grief? It appears by your face that you have become black. Are you suffering from
some internal disease, or are you thinking of some relative who is away in a distant place?
20. I have lost my three legs and am now standing on one only. Are you lamenting for my state of
existence? Or are you in great anxiety because henceforward the unlawful meat-eaters will exploit you?
Or are you in a sorry plight because the demigods are now bereft of their share of sacrificial offerings
because no sacrifices are being performed at present? Or are you grieving for living beings because of
their sufferings due to famine and drought?
21. Are you feeling compunction for the unhappy women and children who are left forlorn by
unscrupulous persons? Or are you unhappy because the goddess of learning is being handled by
brahmanas addicted to acts against the principles of religion? Or are you sorry to see that the
brahmanas have taken shelter of administrative families that do not respect brahminical culture?
22. The so-called administrators are now bewildered by the influence of this age of Kali, and thus they
have put all state affairs into disorder. Are you now lamenting this disorder? Now the general populace
does not follow the rules and regulations for eating, sleeping, drinking, mating, etc., and they are
inclined to perform such anywhere and everywhere. Are you unhappy because of this?
23. O mother earth, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, incarnated Himself as Lord Sri Krsna
just to unload your heavy burden. All His activities here are transcendental, and they cement the path of
liberation. You are now bereft of His presence. You are probably now thinking of those activities and
feeling sorry in their absence.
24. Mother, you are the reservoir of all riches. Please inform me of the root cause of your tribulations by
which you have been reduced to such a weak state. I think that the powerful influence of time, which
conquers the most powerful, might have forcibly taken away all your fortune, which was adored even by
the demigods.
25. The earthly deity [in the form of a cow] thus replied to the personality of religious principles [in the
form of a bull]: O Dharma, whatever you have inquired from me shall be known to you. I shall try to reply
to all those questions. Once you too were maintained by your four legs, and you increased happiness
all over the universe by the mercy of the Lord.
26-30. In Him reside (1) truthfulness, (2) cleanliness, (3) intolerance of another's unhappiness, (4) the
power to control anger, (5) self-satisfaction, (6) straightforwardness, (7) steadiness of mind, (8) control
of the sense organs, (9) responsibility, (10) equality, (11) tolerance, (12) equanimity, (13) faithfulness,
(14) knowledge, (15) absence of sense enjoyment, (16) leadership, (17) chivalry, (18) influence, (19)
the power to make everything possible, (20) the discharge of proper duty, (21) complete independence,
(22) dexterity, (23) fullness of all beauty, (24) serenity, (25) kindheartedness, (26) ingenuity, (27)
gentility, (28) magnanimity, (29) determination, (30) perfection in all knowledge, (31) proper execution,
(32) possession of all objects of enjoyment, (33) joyfulness, (34) immovability, (35) fidelity, (36) fame,
(37) worship, (38) pridelessness, (39) being (as the Personality of Godhead), (40) eternity, and many
other transcendental qualities which are eternally present and never to be separated from Him. That
Personality of Godhead, the reservoir of all goodness and beauty, Lord Sri Krsna, has now closed His
transcendental pastimes on the face of the earth. In His absence the age of Kali has spread its
influence everywhere, so I am sorry to see this condition of existence.
31. I am thinking about myself and also, O best amongst the demigods, about you, as well as about all
the demigods, sages, denizens of Pitrloka, devotees of the Lord and all men obedient to the system of
varna and asrama in human society.
32-33. Laksmiji, the goddess of fortune, whose glance of grace was sought by demigods like Brahma
and for whom they surrendered many a day unto the Personality of Godhead, gave up her own abode
in the forest of lotus flowers and engaged herself in the service of the lotus feet of the Lord. I was
38 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
endowed with specific powers to supersede the fortune of all the three planetary systems by being
decorated with the impressions of the flag, thunderbolt, elephant-driving rod and lotus flower, which are
signs of the lotus feet of the Lord. But at the end, when I felt I was so fortunate, the Lord left me.
34. O personality of religion, I was greatly overburdened by the undue military phalanxes arranged by
atheistic kings, and I was relieved by the grace of the Personality of Godhead. Similarly you were also
in a distressed condition, weakened in your standing strength, and thus He also incarnated by His
internal energy in the family of the Yadus to relieve you.
35. Who, therefore, can tolerate the pangs of separation from that Supreme Personality of Godhead?
He could conquer the gravity and passionate wrath of His sweethearts like Satyabhama by His sweet
smile of love, pleasing glance and hearty appeals. When He traversed my [earth's] surface, I would be
immersed in the dust of His lotus feet and thus would be sumptuously covered with grass which
appeared like hairs standing on me out of pleasure.
36. While the earth and the personality of religion were thus engaged in conversation, the saintly King
Pariksit reached the shore of the Sarasvati River, which flowed towards the east.
Chapter Seventeen Punishment and Reward of Kali
1. Suta Gosvami said: After reaching that place, Maharaja Pariksit observed that a lower-caste sudra,
dressed like a king, was beating a cow and a bull with a club, as if they had no owner.
2. The bull was as white as a white lotus flower. He was terrified of the sudra who was beating him, and
he was so afraid that he was standing on one leg, trembling and urinating.
3. Although the cow is beneficial because one can draw religious principles from her, she was now
rendered poor and calfless. Her legs were being beaten by a sudra. There were tears in her eyes, and
she was distressed and weak. She was hankering after some grass in the field.
4. Maharaja Pariksit, well equipped with arrows and bow and seated on a gold-embossed chariot,
spoke to him [the sudra] with a deep voice sounding like thunder.
5. Oh, who are you? You appear to be strong and yet you dare kill, within my protection, those who are
helpless! By your dress you pose yourself to be a godly man [king], but by your deeds you are opposing
the principles of the twice-born ksatriyas.
6. You rogue, do you dare beat an innocent cow because Lord Krsna and Arjuna, the carrier of the
Gandiva bow, are out of sight? Since you are beating the innocent in a secluded place, you are
considered a culprit and therefore deserve to be killed.
7. Then he [Maharaja Pariksit] asked the bull: Oh, who are you? Are you a bull as white as a white
lotus, or are you a demigod? You have lost three of your legs and are moving on only one. Are you
some demigod causing us grief in the form of a bull?
8. Now for the first time in a kingdom well protected by the arms of the kings of the Kuru dynasty, I see
you grieving with tears in your eyes. Up till now no one on earth has ever shed tears because of royal
negligence.
9. O son of Surabhi, you need lament no longer now. There is no need to fear this low-class sudra. And,
O mother cow, as long as I am living as the ruler and subduer of all envious men, there is no cause for
you to cry. Everything will be good for you.
10-11. O chaste one, the king's good name, duration of life and good rebirth vanish when all kinds of
living beings are terrified by miscreants in his kingdom. It is certainly the prime duty of the king to
subdue first the sufferings of those who suffer. Therefore I must kill this most wretched man because he
is violent against other living beings.
12. He [Maharaja Pariksit] repeatedly addressed and questioned the bull thus: O son of Surabhi, who
has cut off your three legs? In the state of the kings who are obedient to the laws of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Krsna, there is no one as unhappy as you.
13. O bull, you are offenseless and thoroughly honest; therefore I wish all good to you. Please tell me of
the perpetrator of these mutilations, which blackmail the reputation of the sons of Prtha.
14. Whoever causes offenseless living beings to suffer must fear me anywhere and everywhere in the
world. By curbing dishonest miscreants, one automatically benefits the offenseless.
15. An upstart living being who commits offenses by torturing those who are offenseless shall be
directly uprooted by me, even though he be a denizen of heaven with armor and decorations.
16. The supreme duty of the ruling king is to give all protection to law-abiding persons and to chastise
those who stray from the ordinances of the scriptures in ordinary times, when there is no emergency.
17. The personality of religion said: These words just spoken by you befit a person of the Pandava
dynasty. Captivated by the devotional qualities of the Pandavas, even Lord Krsna, the Personality of
Godhead, performed duties as a messenger.
18. O greatest among human beings, it is very difficult to ascertain the particular miscreant who has
caused our sufferings, because we are bewildered by all the different opinions of theoretical
philosophers.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 39
19. Some of the philosophers, who deny all sorts of duality, declare that one's own self is responsible
for his personal happiness and distress. Others say that superhuman powers are responsible, while yet
others say that activity is responsible, and the gross materialists maintain that nature is the ultimate
cause.
20. There are also some thinkers who believe that no one can ascertain the cause of distress by
argumentation, nor know it by imagination, nor express it by words. O sage amongst kings, judge for
yourself by thinking over all this with your own intelligence.
21. Suta Gosvami said: O best among the brahmanas, the Emperor Pariksit, thus hearing the
personality of religion speak, was fully satisfied, and without mistake or regret he gave his reply.
22. The King said: O you, who are in the form of a bull! You know the truth of religion, and you are
speaking according to the principle that the destination intended for the perpetrator of irreligious acts is
also intended for one who identifies the perpetrator. You are no other than the personality of religion.
23. Thus it is concluded that the Lord's energies are inconceivable. No one can estimate them by
mental speculation or by word jugglery.
24. In the age of Satya [truthfulness] your four legs were established by the four principles of austerity,
cleanliness, mercy and truthfulness. But it appears that three of your legs are broken due to rampant
irreligion in the form of pride, lust for women, and intoxication.
25. You are now standing on one leg only, which is your truthfulness, and you are somehow or other
hobbling along. But quarrel personified [Kali], flourishing by deceit, is also trying to destroy that leg.
26. The burden of the earth was certainly diminished by the Personality of Godhead and by others as
well. When He was present as an incarnation, all good was performed because of His auspicious
footprints.
27. Now she, the chaste one, being unfortunately forsaken by the Personality of Godhead, laments her
future with tears in her eyes, for now she is being ruled and enjoyed by lower-class men who pose as
rulers.
28. Maharaja Pariksit, who could fight one thousand enemies singlehandedly, thus pacified the
personality of religion and the earth. Then he took up his sharp sword to kill the personality of Kali, who
is the cause of all irreligion.
29. When the personality of Kali understood that the King was willing to kill him, he at once abandoned
the dress of a king and, under pressure of fear, completely surrendered to him, bowing his head.
30. Maharaja Pariksit, who was qualified to accept surrender and worthy of being sung in history, did
not kill the poor surrendered and fallen Kali, but smiled compassionately, for he was kind to the poor.
31. The King thus said: We have inherited the fame of Arjuna; therefore since you have surrendered
yourself with folded hands you need not fear for your life. But you cannot remain in my kingdom, for you
are the friend of irreligion.
32. If the personality of Kali, irreligion, is allowed to act as a man-god or an executive head, certainly
irreligious principles like greed, falsehood, robbery, incivility, treachery, misfortune, cheating, quarrel
and vanity will abound.
33. Therefore, O friend of irreligion, you do not deserve to remain in a place where experts perform
sacrifices according to truth and religious principles for the satisfaction of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
34. In all sacrificial ceremonies, although sometimes a demigod is worshiped, the Supreme Lord
Personality of Godhead is worshiped because He is the Supersoul of everyone, and exists both inside
and outside like the air. Thus it is He only who awards all welfare to the worshiper.
35. Sri Suta Gosvami said: The personality of Kali, thus being ordered by Maharaja Pariksit, began to
tremble in fear. Seeing the King before him like Yamaraja, ready to Kill him, Kali spoke to the King as
follows.
36. O Your Majesty, though I may live anywhere and everywhere under your order, I shall but see you
with bow and arrows wherever I look.
37. Therefore, O chief amongst the protectors of religion, please fix some place for me where I can live
permanently under the protection of your government.
38. Suta Gosvami said: Maharaja Pariksit, thus being petitioned by the personality of Kali, gave him
permission to reside in places where gambling, drinking, prostitution and animal slaughter were
performed.
39. The personality of Kali asked for something more, and because of his begging, the King gave him
permission to live where there is gold because wherever there is gold there is also falsity, intoxication,
lust, envy and enmity.
40. Thus the personality of Kali, by the directions of Maharaja Pariksit, the son of Uttara, was allowed to
live in those five places.
40 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
41. Therefore, whoever desires progressive well-being, especially kings, religionists, public leaders,
brahmanas and sannyasis, should never come in contact with the four above-mentioned irreligious
principles.
42. Thereafter the King reestablished the lost legs of the personality of religion [the bull], and by
encouraging activities he sufficiently improved the condition of the earth.
43-44. The most fortunate Emperor Maharaja Pariksit, who was entrusted with the kingdom of
Hastinapura by Maharaja Yudhisthira when he desired to retire to the forest, is now ruling the world with
great success due to his being glorified by the deeds of the kings of the Kuru dynasty.
45. Maharaja Pariksit, the son of Abhimanyu, is so experienced that by dint of his expert administration
and patronage, it has been possible for you to perform a sacrifice such as this.
Chapter Eighteen Maharaja Pariksit Cursed by a Brahmana Boy
1. Sri Suta Gosvami said: Due to the mercy of the Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, who acts
wonderfully, Maharaja Pariksit, though struck by the weapon of the son of Drona in his mother's womb,
could not be burned.
2. Furthermore, Maharaja Pariksit was always consciously surrendered to the Personality of Godhead,
and therefore he was neither afraid nor overwhelmed by fear due to a snake-bird which was to bite him
because of the fury of a brahmana boy.
3. Furthermore, after leaving all his associates, the King surrendered himself as a disciple to the son of
Vyasa [Sukadeva Gosvami], and thus he was able to understand the actual position of the Personality
of Godhead.
4. This was so because those who have dedicated their lives to the transcendental topics of the
Personality of Godhead, of whom the Vedic hymns sing, and who are constantly engaged in
remembering the lotus feet of the Lord, do not run the risk of having misconceptions even at the last
moment of their lives.
5. As long as the great, powerful son of Abhimanyu remains the Emperor of the world, there is no
chance that the personality of Kali will flourish.
6. The very day and moment the Personality of Godhead, Lord Sri Krsna, left this earth, the personality
of Kali, who promotes all kinds of irreligious activities, came into this world.
7. Maharaja Pariksit was a realist, like the bees who only accept the essence [of a flower]. He knew
perfectly well that in this age of Kali, auspicious things produce good effects immediately, whereas
inauspicious acts must be actually performed [to render effects]. So he was never envious of the
personality of Kali.
8. Maharaja Pariksit considered that less intelligent men might find the personality of Kali to be very
powerful, but that those who are self-controlled would have nothing to fear. The King was powerful like
a tiger and took care for the foolish, careless persons.
9. O sages, as you did ask me, now I have described almost everything regarding the narrations about
Lord Krsna in connection with the history of the pious Maharaja Pariksit.
10. Those who are desirous of achieving complete perfection in life must submissively hear all topics
that are connected with the transcendental activities and qualities of the Personality of Godhead, who
acts wonderfully.
11. The good sages said: O grave Suta Gosvami! May you live many years and have eternal fame, for
you are speaking very nicely about the activities of Lord Krsna, the Personality of Godhead. This is just
like nectar for mortal beings like us.
12. We have just begun the performance of this fruitive activity, a sacrificial fire, without certainty of its
result due to the many imperfections in our action. Our bodies have become black from the smoke, but
we are factually pleased by the nectar of the lotus feet of the Personality of Godhead, Govinda, which
you are distributing.
13. The value of a moment's association with the devotee of the Lord cannot even be compared to the
attainment of heavenly planets or liberation from matter, and what to speak of worldly benedictions in
the form of material prosperity, which are for those who are meant for death.
14. The Personality of Godhead, Lord Krsna [Govinda], is the exclusive shelter for all great living
beings, and His transcendental attributes cannot even be measured by such masters of mystic powers
as Lord Siva and Lord Brahma. Can anyone who is expert in relishing nectar [rasa] ever be fully
satiated by hearing topics about Him?
15. O Suta Gosvami, you are a learned and pure devotee of the Lord because the Personality of
Godhead is your chief object of service. Therefore please describe to us the pastimes of the Lord, which
are above all material conception, for we are anxious to receive such messages.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 41
16. O Suta Gosvami, please describe those topics of the Lord by which Maharaja Pariksit, whose
intelligence was fixed on liberation, attained the lotus feet of the Lord, who is the shelter of Garuda, the
king of birds. Those topics were vibrated by the son of Vyasa [Srila Sukadeva].
17. Thus please narrate to us the narrations of the Unlimited, for they are purifying and supreme. They
were spoken to Maharaja Pariksit, and they are very dear to the pure devotees, being full of bhakti-
yoga.
18. Sri Suta Gosvami said: O God, although we are born in a mixed caste, we are still promoted in
birthright simply by serving and following the great who are advanced in knowledge. Even by
conversing with such great souls, one can without delay cleanse oneself of all disqualifications resulting
from lower births.
19. And what to speak of those who are under the direction of the great devotees, chanting the holy
name of the Unlimited, who has unlimited potency? The Personality of Godhead, unlimited in potency
and transcendental by attributes, is called the ananta [Unlimited].
20. It is now ascertained that He [the Personality of Godhead] is unlimited and there is none equal to
Him. Consequently no one can speak of Him adequately. Great demigods cannot obtain the favor of the
goddess of fortune even by prayers, but this very goddess renders service unto the Lord, although He is
unwilling to have such service.
21. Who can be worthy of the name of the Supreme Lord but the Personality of Godhead Sri Krsna?
Brahmaji collected the water emanating from the nails of His feet in order to award it to Lord Siva as a
worshipful welcome. This very water [the Ganges] is purifying the whole universe, including Lord Siva.
22. Self-controlled persons who are attached to the Supreme Lord Sri Krsna can all of a sudden give up
the world of material attachment, including the gross body and subtle mind, and go away to attain the
highest perfection of the renounced order of life, by which nonviolence and renunciation are
consequential.
23. O rsis, who are as powerfully pure as the sun, I shall try to describe to you the transcendental
pastimes of Visnu as far as my knowledge is concerned. As the birds fly in the sky as far as their
capacity allows, so do the learned devotees describe the Lord as far as their realization allows.
24-25. Once upon a time Maharaja Pariksit, while engaged in hunting in the forest with bow and arrows,
became extremely fatigued, hungry and thirsty while following the stags. While searching for a reservoir
of water, he entered the hermitage of the well-known Samika Rsi and saw the sage sitting silently with
closed eyes.
26. The muni's sense organs, breath, mind and intelligence were all restrained from material activities,
and he was situated in a trance apart from the three [wakefulness, dream and unconsciousness],
having achieved a transcendental position qualitatively equal with the Supreme Absolute.
27. The sage, in meditation, was covered by the skin of a stag, and long, compressed hair was
scattered all over him. The King, whose palate was dry from thirst, asked him for water.
28. The King, not received by any formal welcome by means of being offered a seat, place, water and
sweet addresses, considered himself neglected, and so thinking he became angry.
29. O brahmanas, the King's anger and envy, directed toward the brahmana sage, were
unprecedented, being that circumstances had made him hungry and thirsty.
30. While leaving, the King, being so insulted, picked up a lifeless snake with his bow and angrily placed
it on the shoulder of the sage. Then he returned to his palace.
31. Upon returning, he began to contemplate and argue within himself whether the sage had actually
been in meditation, with senses concentrated and eyes closed, or whether he had just been feigning
trance just to avoid receiving a lower ksatriya.
32. The sage had a son who was very powerful, being a brahmana's son. While he was playing with
inexperienced boys, he heard of his father's distress, which was occasioned by the King. Then and
there the boy spoke as follows.
33. [The brahmana's son, Srngi, said:] O just look at the sins of the rulers who, like crows and
watchdogs at the door, perpetrate sins against their masters, contrary to the principles governing
servants.
34. The descendants of the kingly orders are definitely designated as watchdogs, and they must keep
themselves at the door. On what grounds can dogs enter the house and claim to dine with the master
on the same plate?
35. After the departure of Lord Sri Krsna, the Personality of Godhead and supreme ruler of everyone,
these upstarts have flourished, our protector being gone. Therefore I myself shall take up this matter
and punish them. Just witness my power.
36. The son of the rsi, his eyes red-hot with anger, touched the water of the River Kausika while
speaking to his playmates and discharged the following thunderbolt of words.
42 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
37. The brahmana's son cursed the King thus: On the seventh day from today a snake-bird will bite the
most wretched one of that dynasty [Maharaja Pariksit] because of his having broken the laws of
etiquette by insulting my father.
38. Thereafter, when the boy returned to the hermitage, he saw a snake on his father's shoulder, and
out of his grief he cried very loudly.
39. O brahmanas, the rsi, who was born in the family of Angira Muni, hearing his son crying, gradually
opened his eyes and saw the dead snake around his neck.
40. He threw the dead snake aside and asked his son why he was crying, whether anyone had done
him harm. On hearing this, the son explained to him what had happened.
41. The father heard from his son that the King had been cursed, although he should never have been
condemned, for he was the best amongst all human beings. The rsi did not congratulate his son, but, on
the contrary, began to repent, saying: Alas! What a great sinful act was performed by my son. He has
awarded heavy punishment for an insignificant offense.
42. O my boy, your intelligence is immature, and therefore you have no knowledge that the king, who is
the best amongst human beings, is as good as the Personality of Godhead. He is never to be placed on
an equal footing with common men. The citizens of the state live in prosperity, being protected by his
unsurpassable prowess.
43. My dear boy, the Lord, who carries the wheel of a chariot, is represented by the monarchical
regime, and when this regime is abolished the whole world becomes filled with thieves, who then at
once vanquish the unprotected subjects like scattered lambs.
44. Due to the termination of the monarchical regimes and the plundering of the people's wealth by
rogues and thieves, there will be great social disruptions. People will be killed and injured, and animals
and women will be stolen. And for all these sins we shall be responsible.
45. At that time the people in general will fall systematically from the path of a progressive civilization in
respect to the qualitative engagements of the castes and the orders of society and the Vedic
injunctions. Thus they will be more attracted to economic development for sense gratification, and as a
result there will be an unwanted population on the level of dogs and monkeys.
46. The Emperor Pariksit is a pious king. He is highly celebrated and is a first-class devotee of the
Personality of Godhead. He is a saint amongst royalty, and he has performed many horse sacrifices.
When such a king is tired and fatigued, being stricken with hunger and thirst, he does not at all deserve
to be cursed.
47. Then the rsi prayed to the all-pervading Personality of Godhead to pardon his immature boy, who
had no intelligence and who committed the great sin of cursing a person who was completely free from
all sins, who was subordinate and who deserved to be protected.
48. The devotees of the Lord are so forbearng that even though they are defamed, cheated, cursed,
disturbed, neglected or even killed, they are never inclined to avenge themselves.
49. The sage thus regretted the sin committed by his own son. He did not take the insult paid by the
King very seriously.
50. Generally the transcendentalists, even though engaged by others in the dualities of the material
world, are not distressed. Nor do they take pleasure [in worldly things], for they are transcendentally
engaged.
Chapter Nineteen The Appearance of Sukadeva Gosvami
1. Sri Suta Gosvami said: While returning home, the King [Maharaja Pariksit] felt that the act he had
committed against the faultless and powerful brahmana was heinous and uncivilized. Consequently he
was distressed.
2. [King Pariksit thought:] Due to my neglecting the injunctions of the Supreme Lord I must certainly
expect some difficulty to overcome me in the near future. I now desire without reservation that the
calamity come now, for in this way I may be freed of the sinful action and not commit such an offense
again.
3. I am uncivilized and sinful due to my neglect of brahminical culture, God consciousness and cow
protection. Therefore I wish that my kingdom, strength and riches burn up immediately by the fire of the
brahmana's wrath so that in the future I may not be guided by such inauspicious attitudes.
4. While the King was thus repenting, he received news of his imminent death, which would be due to
the bite of a snake-bird, occasioned by the curse spoken by the sage's son. The King accepted this as
good news, for it would be the cause of his indifference toward worldly things.
5. Maharaja Pariksit sat down firmly on the banks of the Ganges to concentrate his mind in Krsna
consciousness, rejecting all other practices of self-realization, because transcendental loving service to
Krsna is the greatest achievement, superseding all other methods.
6. The river [Ganges, by which the King sat to fast] carries the most auspicious water, which is mixed
with the dust of the lotus feet of the Lord and tulasi leaves. Therefore that water sanctifies the three
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 43
worlds inside and outside and even sanctifies Lord Siva and other demigods. Consequently everyone
who is destined to die must take shelter of this river.
7. Thus the King, the worthy descendant of the Pandavas, decided once and for all and sat on the
Ganges' bank to fast until death and give himself up to the lotus feet of Lord Krsna, who alone is able to
award liberation. So, freeing himself from all kinds of associations and attachments, he accepted the
vows of a sage.
8. At that time all the great minds and thinkers, accompanied by their disciples, and sages who could
verily sanctify a place of pilgrimage just by their presence, arrived there on the plea of making a
pilgrim's journey.
9-10. From different parts of the universe there arrived great sages like Atri, Cyavana, Saradvan,
Aristanemi, Bhrgu, Vasistha, Parasara, Visvamitra, Angira, Parasurama, Utathya, Indrapramada,
Idhmavahu, Medhatithi, Devala, Arstisena, Bharadvaja, Gautama, Pippalada, Maitreya, Aurva, Kavasa,
Kumbhayoni, Dvaipayana and the great personality Narada.
11. There were also many other saintly demigods, kings and special royal orders called arunadayas [a
special rank of rajarsis] from different dynasties of sages. When they all assembled together to meet the
Emperor [Pariksit], he received them properly and bowed his head to the ground.
12. After all the rsis and others had seated themselves comfortably, the King, humbly standing before
them with folded hands, told them of his decision to fast until death.
13. The fortunate King said: Indeed, we are the most grateful of all the kings who are trained to get
favors from the great souls. Generally you [sages] consider royalty as refuse to be rejected and left in a
distant place.
14. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, the controller of both the transcendental and mundane
worlds, has graciously overtaken me in the form of a brahmana's curse. Due to my being too much
attached to family life, the Lord, in order to save me, has appeared before me in such a way that only
out of fear I will detach myself from the world.
15. O brahmanas, just accept me as a completely surrendered soul, and let mother Ganges, the
representative of the Lord, also accept me in that way, for I have already taken the lotus feet of the Lord
into my heart. Let the snake-bird--or whatever magical thing the brahmana created--bite me at once. I
only desire that you all continue singing the deeds of Lord Visnu.
16. Again, offering obeisances unto all you brahmanas, I pray that if I should again take my birth in the
material world I will have complete attachment to the unlimited Lord Krsna, association with His
devotees and friendly relations with all living beings.
17. In perfect self-control, Maharaja Pariksit sat down on a seat of straw, with straw-roots facing the
east, placed on the southern bank of the Ganges, and he himself faced the north. Just previously he
had given charge of his kingdom over to his son.
18. Thus the King, Maharaja Pariksit, sat to fast until death. All the demigods of the higher planets
praised the King's actions and in pleasure continually scattered flowers over the earth and beat celestial
drums.
19. All the great sages who were assembled there also praised the decision of Maharaja Pariksit and
they expressed their approval by saying, "Very good." Naturally the sages are inclined to do good to
common men, for they have all the qualitative powers of the Supreme Lord. Therefore they were very
much pleased to see Maharaja Pariksit, a devotee of the Lord, and they spoke as follows.
20. [The sages said:] O chief of all the saintly kings of the Pandu dynasty who are strictly in the line of
Lord Sri Krsna! It is not at all astonishing that you give up your throne, which is decorated with the
helmets of many kings, to achieve eternal association with the Personality of Godhead.
21. We shall all wait here until the foremost devotee of the Lord, Maharaja Pariksit, returns to the
supreme planet, which is completely free from all mundane contamination and all kinds of lamentation.
22. All that was spoken by the great sages was very sweet to hear, full of meaning and appropriately
presented as perfectly true. So after hearing them, Maharaja Pariksit, desiring to hear of the activities of
Lord Sri Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, congratulated the great sages.
23. The King said: O great sages, you have all very kindly assembled here, having come from all parts
of the universe. You are all as good as supreme knowledge personified, who resides in the planet
above the three worlds [Satyaloka]. Consequently you are naturally inclined to do good to others, and
but for this you have no interest, either in this life or in the next.
24. O trustworthy brahmanas, I now ask you about my immediate duty. Please, after proper
deliberation, tell me of the unalloyed duty of everyone in all circumstances, and specifically of those who
are just about to die.
25. At that moment there appeared the powerful son of Vyasadeva, who traveled over the earth
disinterested and satisfied with himself. He did not manifest any symptoms of belonging to any social
44 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
order or status of life. He was surrounded with women and children, and he dressed as if others had
neglected him.
26. This son of Vyasadeva was only sixteen years old. His legs, hands, thighs, arms, shoulders,
forehead and the other parts of his body were all delicately formed. His eyes were beautifully wide, and
his nose and ears were highly raised. He had a very attractive face, and his neck was well formed and
beautiful like a conchshell.
27. His collarbone was fleshy, his chest broad and thick, his navel deep and his abdomen beautifully
striped. His arms were long, and curly hair was strewn over his beautiful face. He was naked, and the
hue of his body reflected that of Lord Krsna.
28. He was blackish and very beautiful due to his youth. Because of the glamor of his body and his
attractive smiles, he was pleasing to women. Though he tried to cover his natural glories, the great
sages present there were all expert in the art of physiognomy, and so they honored him by rising from
their seats.
29. Maharaja Pariksit, who is also known as Visnurata [one who is always protected by Visnu], bowed
his head to receive the chief guest, Sukadeva Gosvami. At that time all the ignorant women and boys
ceased following Srila Sukadeva. Receiving respect from all, Sukadeva Gosvami took his exalted seat.
30. Sukadeva Gosvami was then surrounded by saintly sages and demigods just as the moon is
surrounded by stars, planets and other heavenly bodies. His presence was gorgeous, and he was
respected by all.
31. The sage Sri Sukadeva Gosvami sat perfectly pacified, intelligent and ready to answer any question
without hesitation. The great devotee, Maharaja Pariksit, approached him, offered his respects by
bowing before him, and politely inquired with sweet words and folded hands.
32. The fortunate King Pariksit said: O brahmana, by your mercy only, you have sanctified us, making
us like unto places of pilgrimage, all by your presence here as my guest. By your mercy, we, who are
but unworthy royalty, become eligible to serve the devotee.
33. Simply by our remembering you, our houses become instantly sanctified. And what to speak of
seeing you, touching you, washing your holy feet and offering you a seat in our home?
34. Just as the atheist cannot remain in the presence of the Personality of Godhead, so also the
invulnerable sins of a man are immediately vanquished in your presence, O saint! O great mystic!
35. Lord Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, who is very dear to the sons of King Pandu, has accepted
me as one of those relatives just to please His great cousins and brothers.
36. Otherwise [without being inspired by Lord Krsna] how is it that you have voluntarily appeared here,
though you are moving incognito to the common man and are not visible to us who are on the verge of
death?
37. You are the spiritual master of great saints and devotees. I am therefore begging you to show the
way of perfection for all persons, and especially for one who is about to die.
38. Please let me know what a man should hear, chant, remember and worship, and also what he
should not do. Please explain all this to me.
39. O powerful brahmana, it is said that you hardly stay in the houses of men long enough to milk a
cow.
40. Sri Suta Gosvami said: The King thus spoke and questioned the sage, using sweet language. Then
the great and powerful personality, the son of Vyasadeva, who knew the principles of religion, began his
reply.
CANTO TWO
Chapter One The First Step in God Realization
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, your question is glorious because it is very beneficial to
all kinds of people. The answer to this question is the prime subject matter for hearing, and it is
approved by all transcendentalists.
2. Those persons who are materially engrossed, being blind to the knowledge of ultimate truth, leave
many subject matters for hearing in human society, O Emperor.
3. The lifetime of such an envious householder is passed at night either in sleeping or in sex
indulgence, and in the daytime either in making money or maintaining family members.
4. Persons devoid of atma-tattva do not inquire into the problems of life, being too attached to the
fallible soldiers like the body, children and wife. Although sufficiently experienced, they still do not see
their inevitable destruction.
5. O descendant of King Bharata, one who desires to be free from all miseries must hear about, glorify
and also remember the Personality of Godhead, who is the Supersoul, the controller and the savior
from all miseries.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 45
6. The highest perfection of human life, achieved either by complete knowledge of matter and spirit, by
practice of mystic powers, or by perfect discharge of occupational duty, is to remember the Personality
of Godhead at the end of life.
7. O King Pariksit, mainly the topmost transcendentalists, who are above the regulative principles and
restrictions, take pleasure in describing the glories of the Lord.
8. At the end of the Dvapara-yuga, I studied this great supplement of Vedic literature named Srimad-
Bhagavatam, which is equal to all the Vedas, from my father, Srila Dvaipayana Vyasadeva.
9. O saintly King, I was certainly situated perfectly in transcendence, yet I was still attracted by the
delineation of the pastimes of the Lord, who is described by enlightened verses.
10. That very Srimad-Bhagavatam I shall recite before you because you are the most sincere devotee
of Lord Krsna. One who gives full attention and respect to hearing Srimad-Bhagavatam achieves
unflinching faith in the Supreme Lord, the giver of salvation.
11. O King, constant chanting of the holy name of the Lord after the ways of the great authorities is the
doubtless and fearless way of success for all, including those who are free from all material desires,
those who are desirous of all material enjoyment, and also those who are self-satisfied by dint of
transcendental knowledge.
12. What is the value of a prolonged life which is wasted, inexperienced by years in this world? Better a
moment of full consciousness, because that gives one a start in searching after his supreme interest.
13. The saintly King Khatvanga, after being informed that the duration of his life would be only a
moment more, at once freed himself from all material activities and took shelter of the supreme safety,
the Personality of Godhead.
14. Maharaja Pariksit, now your duration of life is limited to seven more days, so during this time you
can perform all those rituals which are needed for the best purpose of your next life.
15. At the last stage of one's life, one should be bold enough not to be afraid of death. But one must cut
off all attachment to the material body and everything pertaining to it and all desires thereof.
16. One should leave home and practice self-control. In a sacred place he should bathe regularly and
sit down in a lonely place duly sanctified.
17. After sitting in the above manner, make the mind remember the three transcendental letters [a-u-m],
and by regulating the breathing process, control the mind so as not to forget the transcendental seed.
18. Gradually, as the mind becomes progressively spiritualized, withdraw it from sense activities, and by
intelligence the senses will be controlled. The mind too absorbed in material activities can be engaged
in the service of the Personality of Godhead and become fixed in full transcendental consciousness.
19. Thereafter, you should meditate upon the limbs of Visnu, one after another, without being deviated
from the conception of the complete body. Thus the mind becomes free from all sense objects. There
should be no other thing to be thought upon. Because the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, is
the Ultimate Truth, the mind becomes completely reconciled in Him only.
20. One's mind is always agitated by the passionate mode of material nature and bewildered by the
ignorant mode of nature. But one can rectify such conceptions by the relation of Visnu and thus become
pacified by cleansing the dirty things created by them.
21. O King, by this system of remembrance and by being fixed in the habit of seeing the all-good
personal conception of the Lord, one can very soon attain devotional service to the Lord, under His
direct shelter.
22. The fortunate King Pariksit, inquiring further, said: O brahmana, please describe in full detail how
and where the mind has to be applied and how the conception can be fixed so that the dirty things in a
person's mind can be removed.
23. Sukadeva Gosvami answered: One should control the sitting posture, regulate the breathing
process by the yogic pranayama and thus control the mind and senses and with intelligence apply the
mind to the gross potencies of the Lord [called the virat-rupa].
24. This gigantic manifestation of the phenomenal material world as a whole is the personal body of the
Absolute Truth, wherein the universal resultant past, present and future of material time is experienced.
25. The gigantic universal form of the Personality of Godhead, within the body of the universal shell,
which is covered by sevenfold material elements, is the subject for the virat conception.
26. Persons who have realized it have studied that the planets known as Patala constitute the bottoms
of the feet of the universal Lord, and the heels and the toes are the Rasatala planets. The ankles are
the Mahatala planets, and His shanks constitute the Talatala planets.
27. The knees of the universal form are the planetary system of the name Sutala, and the two thighs
are the Vitala and Atala planetary systems. The hips are Mahitala, and outer space is the depression of
His navel.
46 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
28. The chest of the Original Personality of the gigantic form is the luminary planetary system, His neck
is the Mahar planets, His mouth is the Janas planets, and His forehead is the Tapas planetary system.
The topmost planetary system, known as Satyaloka, is the head of He who has one thousand heads.
29. His arms are the demigods headed by Indra, the ten directional sides are His ears, and physical
sound is His sense of hearing. His nostrils are the two Asvini-kumaras, and material fragrance is His
sense of smell. His mouth is the blazing fire.
30. The sphere of outer space constitutes His eyepits, and the eyeball is the sun as the power of
seeing. His eyelids are both the day and night, and in the movements of His eyebrows, the Brahma and
similar supreme personalities reside. His palate is the director of water, Varuna, and the juice or
essence of everything is His tongue.
31. They say that the Vedic hymns are the cerebral passage of the Lord, and His jaws of teeth are
Yama, god of death, who punishes the sinners. The art of affection is His set of teeth, and the most
alluring illusory material energy is His smile. This great ocean of material creation is but the casting of
His glance over us.
32. Modesty is the upper portion of His lips, hankering is His chin, religion is the breast of the Lord, and
irreligion is His back. Brahmaji, who generates all living beings in the material world, is His genitals, and
the Mitra-varunas are His two testicles. The ocean is His waist, and the hills and mountains are the
stacks of His bones.
33. O King, the rivers are the veins of the gigantic body, the trees are the hairs of His body, and the
omnipotent air is His breath. The passing ages are His movements, and His activities are the reactions
of the three modes of material nature.
34. O best amongst the Kurus, the clouds which carry water are the hairs on His head, the terminations
of days or nights are His dress, and the supreme cause of material creation is His intelligence. His mind
is the moon, the reservoir of all changes.
35. The principle of matter [mahat-tattva] is the consciousness of the omnipresent Lord, as asserted by
the experts, and Rudradeva is His ego. The horse, mule, camel and elephant are His nails, and wild
animals and all quadrupeds are situated in the belt zone of the Lord.
36. Varieties of birds are indications of His masterful artistic sense. Manu, the father of mankind, is the
emblem of His standard intelligence, and humanity is His residence. The celestial species of human
beings, like the Gandharvas, Vidyadharas, Caranas and angels, all represent His musical rhythm, and
the demoniac soldiers are representations of His wonderful prowess.
37. The virat-purusa's face is the brahmanas, His arms are the ksatriyas, His thighs are the vaisyas,
and the sudras are under the protection of His feet. All the worshipable demigods are also overtaken by
Him, and it is the duty of everyone to perform sacrifices with feasible goods to appease the Lord.
38. I have thus explained to you the gross material gigantic conception of the Personality of Godhead.
One who seriously desires liberation concentrates his mind on this form of the Lord, because there is
nothing more than this in the material world.
39. One should concentrate his mind upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who alone distributes
Himself in so many manifestations just as ordinary persons create thousands of manifestations in
dreams. One must concentrate the mind on Him, the only all-blissful Absolute Truth. Otherwise one will
be misled and will cause his own degradation.
Chapter Two The Lord in the Heart
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Formerly, prior to the manifestation of the cosmos, Lord Brahma, by
meditating on the virat-rupa, regained his lost consciousness by appeasing the Lord. Thus he was able
to rebuild the creation as it was before.
2. The way of presentation of the Vedic sounds is so bewildering that it directs the intelligence of the
people to meaningless things like the heavenly kingdoms. The conditioned souls hover in dreams of
such heavenly illusory pleasures, but actually they do not relish any tangible happiness in such places.
3. For this reason the enlightened person should endeavor only for the minimum necessities of life while
in the world of names. He should be intelligently fixed and never endeavor for unwanted things, being
competent to perceive practically that all such endeavors are merely hard labor for nothing.
4. When there are ample earthly flats to lie on, what is the necessity of cots and beds? When one can
use his own arms, what is the necessity of a pillow? When one can use the palms of his hands, what is
the necessity of varieties of utensils? When there is ample covering, or the skins of trees, what is the
necessity of clothing?
5. Are there no torn clothes lying on the common road? Do the trees, which exist for maintaining others,
no longer give alms in charity? Do the rivers, being dried up, no longer supply water to the thirsty? Are
the caves of the mountains now closed, or, above all, does the Almighty Lord not protect the fully
surrendered souls? Why then do the learned sages go to flatter those who are intoxicated by hard-
earned wealth?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 47
6. Thus being fixed, one must render service unto the Supersoul situated in one's own heart by His
omnipotency. Because He is the Almighty Personality of Godhead, eternal and unlimited, He is the
ultimate goal of life, and by worshiping Him one can end the cause of the conditioned state of existence.
7. Who else but the gross materialists will neglect such transcendental thought and take to the
nonpermanent names only, seeing the mass of people fallen in the river of suffering as the
consequence of accruing the result of their own work?
8. Others conceive of the Personality of Godhead residing within the body in the region of the heart and
measuring only eight inches, with four hands carrying a lotus, a wheel of a chariot, a conchshell and a
club respectively.
9. His mouth expresses His happiness. His eyes spread like the petals of a lotus, and His garments,
yellowish like the saffron of a kadamba flower, are bedecked with valuable jewels. His ornaments are all
made of gold, set with jewels, and He wears a glowing head dress and earrings.
10. His lotus feet are placed over the whorls of the lotuslike hearts of great mystics. On His chest is the
Kaustubha jewel, engraved with a beautiful calf, and there are other jewels on His shoulders. His
complete torso is garlanded with fresh flowers.
11. He is well decorated with an ornamental wreath about His waist and rings studded with valuable
jewels on His fingers. His leglets, His bangles, His oiled hair, curling with a bluish tint, and His beautiful
smiling face are all very pleasing.
12. The Lord's magnanimous pastimes and the glowing glancing of His smiling face are all indications
of His extensive benedictions. One must therefore concentrate on this transcendental form of the Lord,
as long as the mind can be fixed on Him by meditation.
13. The process of meditation should begin from the lotus feet of the Lord and progress to His smiling
face. The meditation should be concentrated upon the lotus feet, then the calves, then the thighs, and in
this way higher and higher. The more the mind becomes fixed upon the different parts of the limbs, one
after another, the more the intelligence becomes purified.
14. Unless the gross materialist develops a sense of loving service unto the Supreme Lord, the seer of
both the transcendental and material worlds, he should remember or meditate upon the universal form
of the Lord at the end of his prescribed duties.
15. O King, whenever the yogi desires to leave this planet of human beings, he should not be perplexed
about the proper time or place, but should comfortably sit without being disturbed and, regulating the life
air, should control the senses by the mind.
16. Thereafter, the yogi should merge his mind, by his unalloyed intelligence, into the living entity, and
then merge the living entity into the Superself. And by doing this, the fully satisfied living entity becomes
situated in the supreme stage of satisfaction, so that he ceases from all other activities.
17. In that transcendental state of labdhopasanti (full bliss), there is no supremacy of devastating time,
which controls even the celestial demigods who are empowered to rule over mundane creatures. (And
what to speak of the demigods themselves?) Nor is there the mode of material goodness, nor passion,
nor ignorance, nor even the false ego, nor the material Causal Ocean, nor the material nature.
18. The transcendentalists desire to avoid everything godless, for they know that supreme situation in
which everything is related with the Supreme Lord Visnu. Therefore a pure devotee who is in absolute
harmony with the Lord does not create perplexities, but worships the lotus feet of the Lord at every
moment, taking them into his heart.
19. By the strength of scientific knowledge, one should be well situated in absolute realization and thus
be able to extinguish all material desires. One should then give up the material body by blocking the air
hole [through which stool is evacuated] with the heel of one's foot and by lifting the life air from one
place to another in the six primary places.
20. The meditative devotee should slowly push up the life air from the navel to the heart, from there to
the chest and from there to the root of the palate. He should search out the proper places with
intelligence.
21. Thereafter the bhakti-yogi should push the life air up between the eyebrows, and then, blocking the
seven outlets of the life air, he should maintain his aim for going back home, back to Godhead. If he is
completely free from all desires for material enjoyment, he should then reach the cerebral hole and give
up his material connections, having gone to the Supreme.
22. However, O King, if a yogi maintains a desire for improved material enjoyments, like transference to
the topmost planet, Brahmaloka, or the achievement of the eightfold perfections, travel in outer space
with the Vaihayasas, or a situation in one of the millions of planets, then he has to take away with him
the materially molded mind and senses.
23. The transcendentalists are concerned with the spiritual body. As such, by the strength of their
devotional service, austerities, mystic power and transcendental knowledge, their movements are
48 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
unrestricted, within and beyond the material worlds. The fruitive workers, or the gross materialists, can
never move in such an unrestricted manner.
24. O King, when such a mystic passes over the Milky Way by the illuminating Susumna to reach the
highest planet, Brahmaloka, he goes first to Vrisvanara, the planet of the deity of fire, wherein he
becomes completely cleansed of all contaminations, and thereafter he still goes higher, to the circle of
Sisumara, to relate with Lord Hari, the Personality of Godhead.
25. This Sisumara is the pivot for the turning of the complete universe, and it is called the navel of Visnu
[Garbhodakasayi Visnu]. The yogi alone goes beyond this circle of Sisumara and attains the planet
[Maharloka] where purified saints like Bhrgu enjoy a duration of life of 4,300,000,0O0 solar years. This
planet is worshipable even for the saints who are transcendentally situated.
26. At the time of the final devastation of the complete universe [the end of the duration of Brahma's
life], a flame of fire emanates from the mouth of Ananta [from the bottom of the universe]. The yogi sees
all the planets of the universe burning to ashes, and thus he leaves for Satyaloka by airplanes used by
the great purified souls. The duration of life in Satyaloka is calculated to be 15,480,000,000,000 years.
27. In that planet of Satyaloka, there is neither bereavement, nor old age nor death. There is no pain of
any kind, and therefore there are no anxieties, save that sometimes, due to consciousness, there is a
feeling of compassion for those unaware of the process of devotional service, who are subjected to
unsurpassable miseries in the material world.
28. After reaching Satyaloka, the devotee is specifically able to be incorporated fearlessly by the subtle
body in an identity similar to that of the gross body, and one after another he gradually attains stages of
existence from earthly to watery, fiery, glowing and airy, until he reaches the ethereal stage.
29. The devotee thus surpasses the subtle objects of different senses like aroma by smelling, the palate
by tasting, vision by seeing forms, touch by contacting, the vibrations of the ear by ethereal
identification, and the sense organs by material activities.
30. The devotee, thus surpassing the gross and the subtle forms of coverings, enters the plane of
egoism. And in that status he merges the material modes of nature [ignorance and passion] in this point
of neutralization and thus reaches egoism in goodness. After this, all egoism is merged in the mahat-
tattva, and he comes to the point of pure self-realization.
31. Only the purified soul can attain the perfection of associating with the Personality of Godhead in
complete bliss and satisfaction in his constitutional state. Whoever is able to renovate such devotional
perfection is never again attracted by this material world, and he never returns.
32. Your Majesty Maharaja Pariksit, know that all that I have described in reply to your proper inquiry is
just according to the version of the Vedas, and it is eternal truth. This was described personally by Lord
Krsna unto Brahma, with whom the Lord was satisfied upon being properly worshiped.
33. For those who are wandering in the material universe, there is no more auspicious means of
deliverance than what is aimed at in the direct devotional service of Lord Krsna.
34. The great personality Brahma, with great attention and concentration of the mind, studied the Vedas
three times, and after scrutinizingly examining them, he ascertained that attraction for the Supreme
Personality of Godhead Sri Krsna is the highest perfection of religion.
35. The Personality of Godhead Lord Sri Krsna is in every living being along with the individual soul.
And this fact is perceived and hypothesized in our acts of seeing and taking help from the intelligence.
36. O King, it is therefore essential that every human being hear about, glorify and remember the
Supreme Lord, the Personality of Godhead, always and everywhere.
37. Those who drink through aural reception, fully filled with the nectarean message of Lord Krsna, the
beloved of the devotees, purify the polluted aim of life known as material enjoyment and thus go back to
Godhead, to the lotus feet of Him [the Personality of Godhead].
Chapter Three Pure Devotional Service: The Change in Heart
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Maharaja Pariksit, as you have inquired from me as to the duty of the
intelligent man who is on the threshold of death, so I have answered you.
2-7. One who desires to be absorbed in the impersonal brahmajyoti effulgence should worship the
master of the Vedas [Lord Brahma or Brhaspati, the learned priest], one who desires powerful sex
should worship the heavenly King, Indra, and one who desires good progeny should worship the great
progenitors called the Prajapatis. One who desires good fortune should worship Durgadevi, the
superintendent of the material world. One desiring to be very powerful should worship fire, and one who
aspires only after money should worship the Vasus. One should worship the Rudra incarnations of Lord
Siva if he wants to be a great hero. One who wants a large stock of grains should worship Aditi. One
who desires to attain the heavenly planets should worship the sons of Aditi. One who desires a worldly
kingdom should worship Visvadeva, and one who wants to be popular with the general mass of
population should worship the Sadhya demigod. One who desires a long span of life should worship the
demigods known as the Asvini-kumaras, and a person desiring a strongly built body should worship the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 49
earth. One who desires stability in his post should worship the horizon and the earth combined. One
who desires to be beautiful should worship the beautiful residents of the Gandharva planet, and one
who desires a good wife should worship the Apsaras and the Urvasi society girls of the heavenly
kingdom. One who desires domination over others should worship Lord Brahma, the head of the
universe. One who desires tangible fame should worship the Personality of Godhead, and one who
desires a good bank balance should worship the demigod Varuna. If one desires to be a greatly learned
man he should worship Lord Siva, and if one desires a good marital relation he should worship the
chaste goddess Uma, the wife of Lord Siva.
8. One should worship Lord Visnu or His devotee for spiritual advancement in knowledge, and for
protection of heredity and advancement of a dynasty one should worship the various demigods.
9. One who desires domination over a kingdom or an empire should worship the Manus. One who
desires victory over an enemy should worship the demons, and one who desires sense gratification
should worship the moon. But one who desires nothing of material enjoyment should worship the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
10. A person who has broader intelligence, whether he be full of all material desire, without any material
desire, or desiring liberation, must by all means worship the supreme whole, the Personality of
Godhead.
11. All the different kinds of worshipers of multidemigods can attain the highest perfectional benediction,
which is spontaneous attraction unflinchingly fixed upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead, only by
the association of the pure devotee of the Lord.
12. Transcendental knowledge in relation with the Supreme Lord Hari is knowledge resulting in the
complete suspension of the waves and whirlpools of the material modes. Such knowledge is self-
satisfying due to its being free from material attachment, and being transcendental it is approved by
authorities. Who could fail to be attracted?
13. Saunaka said: The son of Vyasadeva, Srila Sukadeva Gosvami, was a highly learned sage and was
able to describe things in a poetic manner. What did Maharaja Pariksit again inquire from him after
hearing all that he had said?
14. O learned Suta Gosvami! Please continue to explain such topics to us because we are all eager to
hear. Besides that, topics which result in the discussion of the Lord Hari should certainly be discussed
in the assembly of devotees.
15. Maharaja Pariksit, the grandson of the Pandavas, was from his very childhood a great devotee of
the Lord. Even while playing with dolls, he used to worship Lord Krsna by imitating the worship of the
family Deity.
16. Sukadeva Gosvami, the son of Vyasadeva, was also full in transcendental knowledge and was a
great devotee of Lord Krsna, son of Vasudeva. So there must have been discussion of Lord Krsna, who
is glorified by great philosophers and in the company of great devotees.
17. Both by rising and by setting, the sun decreases the duration of life of everyone, except one who
utilizes the time by discussing topics of the all-good Personality of Godhead.
18. Do the trees not live? Do the bellows of the blacksmith not breathe? All around us, do the beasts not
eat and discharge semen?
19. Men who are like dogs, hogs, camels and asses praise those men who never listen to the
transcendental pastimes of Lord Sri Krsna, the deliverer from evils.
20. One who has not listened to the messages about the prowess and marvelous acts of the
Personality of Godhead and has not sung or chanted loudly the worthy songs about the Lord is to be
considered to possess earholes like the holes of snakes and a tongue like the tongue of a frog.
21. The upper portion of the body, though crowned with a silk turban, is only a heavy burden if not
bowed down before the Personality of Godhead who can award mukti [freedom]. And the hands,
though decorated with glittering bangles, are like those of a dead man if not engaged in the service of
the Personality of Godhead Hari.
22. The eyes which do not look at the symbolic representations of the Personality of Godhead Visnu
[His forms, name, quality, etc.] are like those printed on the plumes of the peacock, and the legs which
do not move to the holy places [where the Lord is remembered] are considered to be like tree trunks.
23. The person who has not at any time received the dust of the feet of the Lord's pure devotee upon
his head is certainly a dead body. And the person who has never experienced the aroma of the tulasi
leaves from the lotus feet of the Lord is also a dead body, although breathing.
24. Certainly that heart is steel-framed which, in spite of one's chanting the holy name of the Lord with
concentration, does not change when ecstasy takes place, tears fill the eyes and the hairs stand on
end.
50 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
25. O Suta Gosvami, your words are pleasing to our minds. Please therefore explain this to us as it was
spoken by the great devotee Sukadeva Gosvami, who is very expert in transcendental knowledge, and
who spoke to Maharaja Pariksit upon being asked.
Chapter Four The Process of Creation
1. Suta Gosvami said: Maharaja Pariksit, the son of Uttara, after hearing the speeches of Sukadeva
Gosvami, which were all about the truth of the self, applied his concentration faithfully upon Lord Krsna.
2. Maharaja Pariksit, as a result of his wholehearted attraction for Lord Krsna, was able to give up all
deep-rooted affection for his personal body, his wife, his children, his palace, his animals like horses
and elephants, his treasury house, his friends and relatives, and his undisputed kingdom.
3-4. O great sages, the great soul Maharaja Pariksit, constantly rapt in thought of Lord Krsna, knowing
well of his imminent death, renounced all sorts of fruitive activities, namely acts of religion, economic
development and sense gratification, and thus fixed himself firmly in his natural love for Krsna and
asked all these questions, exactly as you are asking me.
5. Maharaja Pariksit said: O learned brahmana, you know everything because you are without material
contamination. Therefore whatever you have spoken to me appears perfectly right. Your speeches are
gradually destroying the darkness of my ignorance, for you are narrating the topics of the Lord.
6. I beg to know from you how the Personality of Godhead, by His personal energies, creates these
phenomenal universes as they are, which are inconceivable even to the great demigods.
7. Kindly describe how the Supreme Lord, who is all-powerful, engages His different energies and
different expansions in maintaining and again winding up the phenomenal world in the sporting spirit of
a player.
8. O learned brahmana, the transcendental activities of the Lord are all wonderful, and they appear
inconceivable because even great endeavors by many learned scholars have still proved insufficient for
understanding them.
9. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is one, whether He alone acts with the modes of material
nature, or simultaneously expands in many forms, or expands consecutively to direct the modes of
nature.
10. Kindly clear up all these doubtful inquiries, because you are not only vastly learned in the Vedic
literatures and self-realized in transcendence, but are also a great devotee of the Lord and are therefore
as good as the Personality of Godhead.
11. Suta Gosvami said: When Sukadeva Gosvami was thus requested by the King to describe the
creative energy of the Personality of Godhead, he then systematically remembered the master of the
senses [Sri Krsna], and to reply properly he spoke thus.
12. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of
Godhead who, for the creation of the material world, accepts the three modes of nature. He is the
complete whole residing within the body of everyone, and His ways are inconceivable.
13. I again offer my respectful obeisances unto the form of complete existence and transcendence, who
is the liberator of the pious devotees from all distresses and the destroyer of the further advances in
atheistic temperament of the nondevotee-demons. For the transcendentalists who are situated in the
topmost spiritual perfection, He grants their specific destinations.
14. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto He who is the associate of the members of the Yadu
dynasty and who is always a problem for the nondevotees. He is the supreme enjoyer of both the
material and spiritual worlds, yet He enjoys His own abode in the spiritual sky. There is no one equal to
Him because His transcendental opulence is immeasurable.
15. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the all-auspicious Lord Sri Krsna, about whom
glorification, remembrances, audience, prayers, hearing and worship can at once cleanse the effects of
all sins of the performer.
16. Let me offer my respectful obeisances again and again unto the all-auspicious Lord Sri Krsna. The
highly intellectual, simply by surrendering unto His lotus feet, are relieved of all attachments to present
and future existences and without difficulty progress toward spiritual existence.
17. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the all-auspicious Lord Sri Krsna again and again
because the great learned sages, the great performers of charity, the great workers of distinction, the
great philosophers and mystics, the great chanters of the Vedic hymns and the great followers of Vedic
principles cannot achieve any fruitful result without dedication of such great qualities to the service of
the Lord.
18. Kirata, Huna, Andhra, Pulinda, Pulkasa, Abhira, Sumbha, Yavana, members of the Khasa races
and even others addicted to sinful acts can be purified by taking shelter of the devotees of the Lord, due
to His being the supreme power. I beg to offer my respectful obeisances unto Him.
19. He is the Supersoul and the Supreme Lord of all self-realized souls. He is the personification of the
Vedas, religious scriptures and austerities. He is worshiped by Lord Brahma and Siva and all those who
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 51
are transcendental to all pretensions. Being so revered with awe and veneration, may that Supreme
Absolute be pleased with me.
20. May Lord Sri Krsna, who is the worshipable Lord of all devotees, the protector and glory of all the
kings like Andhaka and Vrsni of the Yadu dynasty, the husband of all goddesses of fortune, the director
of all sacrifices and therefore the leader of all living entities, the controller of all intelligence, the
proprietor of all planets, spiritual and material, and the supreme incarnation on the earth (the supreme
all in all), be merciful upon me.
21. It is the Personality of Godhead Sri Krsna who gives liberation. By thinking of His lotus feet at every
second, following in the footsteps of authorities, the devotee in trance can see the Absolute Truth. The
learned mental speculators, however, think of Him according to their whims. May the Lord be pleased
with me.
22. May the Lord, who in the beginning of the creation amplified the potent knowledge of Brahma from
within his heart and inspired him with full knowledge of creation and of His own Self, and who appeared
to be generated from the mouth of Brahma, be pleased with me.
23. May the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who enlivens the materially created bodies of the
elements by lying down within the universe, and who in His purusa incarnation causes the living being
to be subjected to the sixteen divisions of material modes which are his generator, be pleased to
decorate my statements.
24. I offer my respectful obeisances unto Srila Vyasadeva, the incarnation of Vasudeva who compiled
the Vedic scriptures. The pure devotees drink up the nectarean transcendental knowledge dropping
from the lotuslike mouth of the Lord.
25. My dear King, Brahma, the firstborn, on being questioned by Narada, exactly apprised him on this
subject, as it was directly spoken by the Lord to His own son, who was impregnated with Vedic
knowledge from his very birth.
Chapter Five The Cause of All Causes
1. Sri Narada Muni asked Brahmaji: O chief amongst the demigods, O firstborn living entity, I beg to
offer my respectful obeisances unto you. Please tell me that transcendental knowledge which
specifically directs one to the truth of the individual soul and the Supersoul.
2. My dear father, please describe factually the symptoms of this manifest world. What is its
background? How is it created? How is it conserved? And under whose control is all this being done?
3. My dear father, all this is known to you scientifically because whatever was created in the past,
whatever will be created in the future, or whatever is being created at present, as well as everything
within the universe, is within your grip, just like a walnut.
4. My dear father, what is the source of your knowledge? Under whose protection are you standing?
And under whom are you working? What is your real position? Do you alone create all entities with
material elements by your personal energy?
5. As the spider very easily creates the network of its cobweb and manifests its power of creation
without being defeated by others, so also you yourself, by employment of your self-sufficient energy,
create without any other's help.
6. Whatever we can understand by the nomenclature, characteristics and features of a particular thing--
superior, inferior or equal, eternal or temporary--is not created from any source other than that of Your
Lordship, thou so great.
7. Yet we are moved to wonder about the existence of someone more powerful than you when we think
of your great austerities in perfect discipline, although your good self is so powerful in the matter of
creation.
8. My dear father, you know everything, and you are the controller of all. Therefore may all that I have
inquired from you be kindly instructed to me so that I may be able to understand it as your student.
9. Lord Brahma said: My dear boy Narada, being merciful to all (including me) you have asked all these
questions because I have been inspired to see into the prowess of the Almighty Personality of
Godhead.
10. Whatever you have spoken about me is not false because unless and until one is aware of the
Personality of Godhead, who is the ultimate truth beyond me, one is sure to be illusioned by observing
my powerful activities.
11. I create after the Lord's creation by His personal effulgence [known as the brahmajyoti], just as
when the sun manifests its fire, the moon, the firmament, the influential planets and the twinkling stars
also manifest their brightness.
12. I offer my obeisances and meditate upon Lord Krsna [Vasudeva], the Personality of Godhead,
whose invincible potency influences them [the less intelligent class of men] to call me the supreme
controller.
52 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
13. The illusory energy of the Lord cannot take precedence, being ashamed of her position, but those
who are bewildered by her always talk nonsense, being absorbed in thoughts of "It is I" and "It is mine."
14. The five elementary ingredients of creation, the interaction thereof set up by eternal time, and the
intuition or nature of the individual living beings are all differentiated parts and parcels of the Personality
of Godhead, Vasudeva, and in truth there is no other value in them.
15. The Vedic literatures are made by and are meant for the Supreme Lord, the demigods are also
meant for serving the Lord as parts of His body, the different planets are also meant for the sake of the
Lord, and different sacrifices are performed just to please Him.
16. All different types of meditation or mysticism are means for realizing Narayana. All austerities are
aimed at achieving Narayana. Culture of transcendental knowledge is for getting a glimpse of
Narayana, and ultimately salvation is entering the kingdom of Narayana.
17. Inspired by Him only, I discover what is already created by Him [Narayana] under His vision as the
all-pervading Supersoul, and I also am created by Him only.
18. The Supreme Lord is pure spiritual form, transcendental to all material qualities, yet for the sake of
the creation of the material world and its maintenance and annihilation, He accepts through His external
energy the material modes of nature called goodness, passion and ignorance.
19. These three modes of material nature, being further manifested as matter, knowledge and activities,
put the eternally transcendental living entity under conditions of cause and effect and make him
responsible for such activities.
20. O Brahmana Narada, the Superseer, the transcendent Lord, is beyond the perception of the
material senses of the living entities because of the above-mentioned three modes of nature. But He is
the controller of everyone, including me.
21. The Lord, who is the controller of all energies, thus creates, by His own potency, eternal time, the
fate of all living entities, and their particular nature, for which they were created, and He again merges
them independently.
22. After the incarnation of the first purusa [Karanarnavasayi Visnu], the mahat-tattva, or the principles
of material creation, take place, and then time is manifested, and in course of time the three qualities
appear. Nature means the three qualitative appearances. They transform into activities.
23. Material activities are caused by the mahat-tattva's being agitated. At first there is transformation of
the modes of goodness and passion, and later--due to the mode of ignorance--matter, its knowledge,
and different activities of material knowledge come into play.
24. The self-centered materialistic ego, thus being transformed into three features, becomes known as
the modes of goodness, passion and ignorance in three divisions, namely the powers that evolve
matter, knowledge of material creations, and the intelligence that guides such materialistic activities.
Narada, you are quite competent to understand this.
25. From the darkness of false ego, the first of the five elements, namely the sky, is generated. Its
subtle form is the quality of sound, exactly as the seer is in relationship with the seen.
26-29. Because the sky is transformed, the air is generated with the quality of touch, and by previous
succession the air is also full of sound and the basic principles of duration of life: sense perception,
mental power and bodily strength. When the air is transformed in course of time and nature's course,
fire is generated, taking shape with the sense of touch and sound. Since fire is also transformed, there
is a manifestation of water, full of juice and taste. As previously, it also has form and touch and is also
full of sound. And water, being transformed from all variegatedness on earth, appears odorous and, as
previously, becomes qualitatively full of juice, touch, sound and form respectively.
30. From the mode of goodness the mind is generated and becomes manifest, as also the ten
demigods controlling the bodily movements. Such demigods are known as the controller of directions,
the controller of air, the sun-god, the father of Daksa Prajapati, the Asvini-kumaras, the fire-god, the
King of heaven, the worshipable deity in heaven, the chief of the Adityas, and Brahmaji, the Prajapati.
All come into existence.
31. By further transformation of the mode of passion, the sense organs like the ear, skin, nose, eyes,
tongue, mouth, hands, genitals, legs, and the outlet for evacuating, together with intelligence and living
energy, are all generated.
32. O Narada, best of the transcendentalists, the forms of the body cannot take place as long as these
created parts, namely the elements, senses, mind and modes of nature, are not assembled.
33. Thus when all these became assembled by force of the energy of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, this universe certainly came into being by accepting both the primary and secondary causes
of creation.
34. Thus all the universes remained thousands of eons within the water [the Causal Ocean], and the
Lord of living beings, entering in each of them, caused them to be fully animated.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 53
35. The Lord [Maha-Visnu], although lying in the Causal Ocean, came out of it, and dividing Himself as
Hiranyagarbha, He entered into each universe and assumed the virat-rupa, with thousands of legs,
arms, mouths, heads, etc.
36. Great philosophers imagine that the complete planetary systems in the universe are displays of the
different upper and lower limbs of the universal body of the Lord.
37. The brahmanas represent His mouth, the ksatriyas His arms, the vaisyas His thighs, and the sudras
are born of His legs.
38. The lower planetary systems, up to the limit of the earthly stratum, are said to be situated in His
legs. The middle planetary systems, beginning from Bhuvarloka, are situated in His navel. And the still
higher planetary systems, occupied by the demigods and highly cultured sages and saints, are situated
in the chest of the Supreme Lord.
39. From the forefront of the chest up to the neck of the universal form of the Lord are situated the
planetary systems named Janaloka and Tapoloka, whereas Satyaloka, the topmost planetary system, is
situated on the head of the form. The spiritual planets, however, are eternal.
40-41. My dear son Narada, know from me that there are seven lower planetary systems out of the total
fourteen. The first planetary system, known as Atala, is situated on the waist; the second, Vitala, is
situated on the thighs; the third, Sutala, on the knees; the fourth, Talatala, on the shanks; the fifth,
Mahatala, on the ankles; the sixth, Rasatala, on the upper portion of the feet; and the seventh, Patala,
on the soles of the feet. Thus the virat form of the Lord is full of all planetary systems.
42. Others may divide the whole planetary system into three divisions, namely the lower planetary
systems on the legs [up to the earth], the middle planetary systems on the navel, and the upper
planetary systems [Svarloka] from the chest to the head of the Supreme Personality.
Chapter Six Purusa-sukta Confirmed
1. Lord Brahma said: The mouth of the virat-purusa [the universal form of the Lord] is the generating
center of the voice, and the controlling deity is fire. His skin and six other layers are the generating
centers of the Vedic hymns, and His tongue is the productive center of different foodstuffs and
delicacies for offering to the demigods, the forefathers and the general mass of people.
2. His two nostrils are the generating centers of our breathing and of all other airs, His smelling powers
generate the Asvini-kumara demigods and all kinds of medicinal herbs, and His breathing energies
produce different kinds of fragrance.
3. His eyes are the generating centers of all kinds of forms, and they glitter and illuminate. His eyeballs
are like the sun and the heavenly planets. His ears hear from all sides and are receptacles for all the
Vedas, and His sense of hearing is the generating center of the sky and of all kinds of sound.
4. The air is the moving agent of all the planets, and as such the generating centers for promotion to the
deserving planets, the sacrifices, are His bodily surface and are naturally the origin of all auspicious
opportunities.
5. The hairs on His body are the cause of all vegetation, particularly of those trees which are required
as ingredients for sacrifice. The hairs on His head and face are reservoirs for the clouds, and His nails
are the breeding ground of electricity, stones and iron ores.
6. The Lord's arms are the productive fields for the great demigods and other leaders of the living
entities who protect the general mass.
7. Thus the forward steps of the Lord are the shelter for the upper, lower and heavenly planets, as well
as for all that we need. His lotus feet serve as protection from all kinds of fear.
8. From the Lord's genitals originate water, semen, generatives, rains, and the procreators. His genitals
are the cause of a pleasure that counteracts the distress of begetting.
9. O Narada, the evacuating outlet of the universal form of the Lord is the abode of the controlling deity
of death, Mitra, and the evacuating hole and the rectum of the Lord is the place of envy, misfortune,
death, hell, etc.
10. The back of the Lord is the place for all kinds of frustration and ignorance, as well as for immorality.
From His veins flow the great rivers and rivulets, and on His bones are stacked the great mountains.
11. The impersonal feature of the Lord is the abode of great oceans, and His belly is the resting place
for the materially annihilated living entities. His heart is the abode of the subtle material bodies of living
beings. Thus it is known by the intelligent class of men.
12. Also, the consciousness of that great personality is the abode of religious principles--mine, yours,
and those of the four bachelors Sanaka, Sanatana, Sanat-kumara and Sanandana. That consciousness
is also the abode of truth and transcendental knowledge.
13-16. Beginning from me [Brahma] down to you and Bhava [Siva], all the great sages who were born
before you, the demigods, the demons, the Nagas, the human beings, the birds, the beasts, as well as
the reptiles, etc., and all phenomenal manifestations of the universes, namely the planets, stars,
asteroids, luminaries, lightning, thunder, and the inhabitants of the different planetary systems, namely
54 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
the Gandharvas, Apsaras, Yaksas, Raksas, Bhutaganas, Uragas, Pasus, Pitas, Siddhas, Vidyadharas,
Caranas, and all other different varieties of living entities, including the birds, beasts, trees and
everything that be, are all covered by the universal form of the Lord at all times, namely past, present
and future, although He is transcendental to all of them, eternally existing in a form not exceeding nine
inches.
17. The sun illuminates both internally and externally by expanding its radiation; similarly, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, by expanding His universal form, maintains everything in the creation both
internally and externally.
18. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the controller of immortality and fearlessness, and He is
transcendental to death and the fruitive actions of the material world. O Narada, O brahmana, it is
therefore difficult to measure the glories of the Supreme Person.
19. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is to be known as the supreme reservoir of all material
opulences by the one fourth of His energy in which all the living entities exist. Deathlessness,
fearlessness and freedom from the anxieties of old age and disease exist in the kingdom of God, which
is beyond the three higher planetary systems and beyond the material coverings.
20. The spiritual world, which consists of three fourths of the Lord's energy, is situated beyond this
material world, and it is especially meant for those who will never be reborn. Others, who are attached
to family life and who do not strictly follow celibacy vows, must live within the three material worlds.
21. By His energies, the all-pervading Personality of Godhead is thus comprehensively the master in
the activities of controlling and in devotional service. He is the ultimate master of both nescience and
factual knowledge of all situations.
22. From that Personality of Godhead, all the universal globes and the universal form with all material
elements, qualities and senses are generated. Yet He is aloof from such material manifestations, like
the sun, which is separate from its rays and heat.
23. When I was born from the abdominal lotus flower of the Lord [Maha-Visnu], the great person, I had
no ingredients for sacrificial performances except the bodily limbs of the great Personality of Godhead.
24. For performing sacrificial ceremonies, one requires sacrificial ingredients, such as flowers, leaves
and straw, along with the sacrificial altar and a suitable time [spring].
25. Other requirements are utensils, grains, clarified butter, honey, gold, earth, water, the Rg Veda,
Yajur Veda and Sama Veda and four priests to perform the sacrifice.
26. Other necessities include invoking the different names of the demigods by specific hymns and vows
of recompense, in accordance with the particular scripture, for specific purposes and by specific
processes.
27. Thus I had to arrange all these necessary ingredients and paraphernalia of sacrifice from the
personal bodily parts of the Personality of Godhead. By invocation of the demigods' names, the ultimate
goal, Visnu, was gradually attained, and thus compensation and ultimate offering were complete.
28. Thus I created the ingredients and paraphernalia for offering sacrifice out of the parts of the body of
the Supreme Lord, the enjoyer of the sacrifice, and I performed the sacrifice to satisfy the Lord.
29. My dear son, thereafter your nine brothers, who are the masters of living creatures, performed the
sacrifice with proper rituals to satisfy both the manifested and nonmanifested personalities.
30. Thereafter, the Manus, the fathers of mankind, the great sages, the forefathers, the learned
scholars, the Daityas and mankind performed sacrifices meant to please the Supreme Lord.
31. All the material manifestations of the universes are therefore situated in His powerful material
energies, which He accepts self-sufficiently, although He is eternally without affinity for the material
modes.
32. By His will, I create, Lord Siva destroys, and He Himself, in His eternal form as the Personality of
Godhead, maintains everything. He is the powerful controller of these three energies.
33. My dear son, whatever you inquired from me I have thus explained unto you, and you must know for
certain that whatever there is (either as cause or as effect, both in the material and spiritual worlds) is
dependent on the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
34. O Narada, because I have caught hold of the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Hari, with great zeal, whatever I say has never proved to have been false. Nor is the progress of my
mind ever deterred. Nor are my senses ever degraded by temporary attachment to matter.
35. Although I am known as the great Brahma, perfect in the disciplic succession of Vedic wisdom, and
although I have undergone all austerities and am an expert in mystic powers and self-realization, and
although I am recognized as such by the great forefathers of the living entities, who offer me respectful
obeisances, still I cannot understand Him, the Lord, the very source of my birth.
36. Therefore it is best for me to surrender unto His feet, which alone can deliver one from the miseries
of repeated birth and death. Such surrender is all-auspicious and allows one to perceive all happiness.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 55
Even the sky cannot estimate the limits of its own expansion. So what can others do when the Lord
Himself is unable to estimate His own limits?
37. Since neither Lord Siva nor you nor I could ascertain the limits of spiritual happiness, how can other
demigods know it? And because all of us are bewildered by the illusory external energy of the Supreme
Lord, we can see only this manifested cosmos according to our individual ability.
38. Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto that Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose
incarnations and activities are chanted by us for glorification, though He can hardly be fully known as
He is.
39. That supreme original Personality of Godhead, Lord Sri Krsna, expanding His plenary portion as
Maha-Visnu, the first incarnation, creates this manifested cosmos, but He is unborn. The creation,
however, takes place in Him, and the material substance and manifestations are all Himself. He
maintains them for some time and absorbs them into Himself again.
40-41. The Personality of Godhead is pure, being free from all contaminations of material tinges. He is
the Absolute Truth and the embodiment of full and perfect knowledge. He is all-pervading, without
beginning or end, and without rival. O Narada, O great sage, the great thinkers can know Him when
completely freed from all material hankerings and when sheltered under undisturbed conditions of the
senses. Otherwise, by untenable arguments, all is distorted, and the Lord disappears from our sight.
42. Karanarnavasayi Visnu is the first incarnation of the Supreme Lord, and He is the master of eternal
time, space, cause and effects, mind, the elements, the material ego, the modes of nature, the senses,
the universal form of the Lord, Garbhodakasayi Visnu, and the sum total of all living beings, both
moving and nonmoving.
43-45. I myself [Brahma], Lord Siva, Lord Visnu, great generators of living beings like Daksa and
Prajapati, yourselves [Narada and the Kumaras], heavenly demigods like Indra and Candra, the leaders
of the Bhurloka planets, the leaders of the earthly planets, the leaders of the lower planets, the leaders
of the Gandharva planets, the leaders of the Vidyadhara planets, the leaders of the Caranaloka planets,
the leaders of the Yaksas, Raksas and Uragas, the great sages, the great demons, the great atheists
and the great spacemen, as well as the dead bodies, evil spirits, satans, jinn, kusmandas, great
aquatics, great beasts and great birds, etc.--in other words, anything and everything which is
exceptionally possessed of power, opulence, mental and perceptual dexterity, strength, forgiveness,
beauty, modesty, opulence, and breeding, whether in form or formless--may appear to be the specific
truth and the form of the Lord, but actually they are not so. They are only a fragment of the
transcendental potency of the Lord.
46. O Narada, now I shall state, one after another, the transcendental incarnations of the Lord known as
lila-avataras. Hearing of their activities counteracts all foul matters accumulated in the ear. These
pastimes are pleasing to hear and are to be relished. Therefore they are in my heart.
Chapter Seven Scheduled Incarnations with Specific Functions
1. Lord Brahma said: When the unlimitedly powerful Lord assumed the form of a boar as a pastime, just
to lift the planet earth, which was drowned in the great ocean of the universe called the Garbhodaka,
the first demon [Hiranyaksa] appeared, and the Lord pierced him with His tusk.
2. The Prajapati first begot Suyajna, in the womb of his wife Akuti, and then Suyajna begot demigods,
headed by Suyama, in the womb of his wife Daksina. Suyajna, as the Indradeva, diminished very great
miseries in the three planetary systems [upper, lower and intermediate], and because he so diminished
the miseries of the universe, he was later called Hari by the great father of mankind, namely
Svayambhuva Manu.
3. The Lord then appeared as the Kapila incarnation, being the son of the prajapati brahmana Kardama
and his wife, Devahuti, along with nine other women [sisters]. He spoke to His mother about self-
realization, by which, in that very lifetime, she became fully cleansed of the mud of the material modes
and thereby achieved liberation, the path of Kapila.
4. The great sage Atri prayed for offspring, and the Lord, being satisfied with him, promised to incarnate
as Atri's son, Dattatreya [Datta, the son of Atri]. And by the grace of the lotus feet of the Lord, many
Yadus, Haihayas, etc., became so purified that they obtained both material and spiritual blessings.
5. To create different planetary systems I had to undergo austerities and penance, and the Lord, thus
being pleased with me, incarnated in four sanas [Sanaka, Sanat-kumara, Sanandana and Sanatana]. In
the previous creation the spiritual truth was devastated, but the four sanas explained it so nicely that the
truth at once became clearly perceived by the sages.
6. To exhibit His personal way of austerity and penance, He appeared in twin forms as Narayana and
Nara in the womb of Murti, the wife of Dharma and the daughter of Daksa. Celestial beauties, the
companions of Cupid, went to try to break His vows, but they were unsuccessful, for they saw that
many beauties like them were emanating from Him, the Personality of Godhead.
56 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
7. Great stalwarts like Lord Siva can, by their wrathful glances, overcome lust and vanquish him, yet
they cannot be free from the overwhelming effects of their own wrath. Such wrath can never enter into
the heart of Him [the Lord], who is above all this. So how can lust take shelter in His mind?
8. Being insulted by sharp words spoken by the co-wife of the king, even in his presence, Prince
Dhruva, though only a boy, took to severe penances in the forest. And the Lord, being satisfied by his
prayer, awarded him the Dhruva planet, which is worshiped by great sages, both upward and
downward.
9. Maharaja Vena went astray from the path of righteousness, and the brahmanas chastised him by the
thunderbolt curse. By this King Vena was burnt with his good deeds and opulence and was en route to
hell. The Lord, by His causeless mercy, descended as his son, by the name of Prthu, delivered the
condemned King Vena from hell, and exploited the earth by drawing all kinds of crops as produce.
10. The Lord appeared as the son of Sudevi, the wife of King Nabhi, and was known as Rsabhadeva.
He performed materialistic yoga to equibalance the mind. This stage is also accepted as the highest
perfectional situation of liberation, wherein one is situated in one's self and is completely satisfied.
11. The Lord appeared as the Hayagriva incarnation in a sacrifice performed by me [Brahma]. He is the
personified sacrifices, and the hue of His body is golden. He is the personified Vedas as well, and the
Supersoul of all demigods. When He breathed, all the sweet sounds of the Vedic hymns came out of
His nostrils.
12. At the end of the millennium, the would-be Vaivasvata Manu, of the name Satyavrata, would see
that the Lord in the fish incarnation is the shelter of all kinds of living entities, up to those in the earthly
planets. Because of my fear of the vast water at the end of the millennium, the Vedas come out of my
[Brahma's] mouth, and the Lord enjoys those vast waters and protects the Vedas.
13. The primeval Lord then assumed the tortoise incarnation in order to serve as a resting place [pivot]
for the Mandara Mountain, which was acting as a churning rod. The demigods and demons were
churning the ocean of milk with the Mandara Mountain in order to extract nectar. The mountain moved
back and forth, scratching the back of Lord Tortoise, who, while partially sleeping, was experiencing an
itching sensation.
14. The Personality of Godhead assumed the incarnation of Nrsimhadeva in order to vanquish the great
fears of the demigods. He killed the king of the demons [Hiranyakasipu], who challenged the Lord with a
club in his hand, by placing the demon on His thighs and piercing him with His nails, rolling His
eyebrows in anger and showing His fearful teeth and mouth.
15. The leader of the elephants, whose leg was attacked in a river by a crocodile of superior strength,
was much aggrieved. Taking a lotus flower in his trunk, he addressed the Lord, saying, "O original
enjoyer, Lord of the universe! O deliverer, as famous as a place of pilgrimage! All are purified simply by
hearing Your holy name, which is worthy to be chanted."
16. The Personality of Godhead, after hearing the elephant's plea, felt that the elephant needed His
immediate help, for he was in great distress. Thus at once the Lord appeared there on the wings of the
king of birds, Garuda, fully equipped with His weapon, the wheel [cakra]. With the wheel He cut to
pieces the mouth of the crocodile to save the elephant, and He delivered the elephant by lifting him by
his trunk.
17. The Lord, although transcendental to all material modes, still surpassed all the qualities of the sons
of Aditi, known as the Adityas. The Lord appeared as the youngest son of Aditi. And because He
surpassed all the planets of the universe, He is the Supreme Personality of Godhead. On the pretense
of asking for a measurement of three footsteps of land, He took away all the lands of Bali Maharaja. He
asked simply because without begging, no authority can take one's rightful possession.
18. Bali Maharaja, who put on his head the water washed from the lotus feet of the Lord, did not think of
anything besides his promise, in spite of being forbidden by his spiritual master. The king dedicated his
own personal body to fulfill the measurement of the Lord's third step. For such a personality, even the
kingdom of heaven, which he conquered by his strength, was of no value.
19. O Narada, you were taught about the science of God and His transcendental loving service by the
Personality of Godhead in His incarnation of Hamsavatara. He was very much pleased with you, due to
your intense proportion of devotional service. He also explained unto you, lucidly, the full science of
devotional service, which is especially understandable by persons who are souls surrendered unto Lord
Vasudeva, the Personality of Godhead.
20. As the incarnation of Manu, the Lord became the descendant of the Manu dynasty and ruled over
the miscreant kingly order, subduing them by His powerful wheel weapon. Undeterred in all
circumstances, His rule was characterized by His glorious fame, which spread over the three lokas, and
above them to the planetary system of Satyaloka, the topmost in the universe.
21. The Lord in His incarnation of Dhanvantari very quickly cures the diseases of the ever-diseased
living entities simply by his fame personified, and only because of him do the demigods achieve long
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 57
lives. Thus the Personality of Godhead becomes ever glorified. He also exacted a share from the
sacrifices, and it is he only who inaugurated the medical science or the knowledge of medicine in the
universe.
22. When the ruling administrators, who are known as the ksatriyas, turned astray from the path of the
Absolute Truth, being desirous to suffer in hell, the Lord, in His incarnation as the sage Parasurama,
uprooted those unwanted kings, who appeared as the thorns of the earth. Thus He thrice seven times
uprooted the ksatriyas with His keenly sharpened chopper.
23. Due to His causeless mercy upon all living entities within the universe, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, along with His plenary extensions, appeared in the family of Maharaja Iksvaku as the Lord of
His internal potency, Sita. Under the order of His father, Maharaja Dasaratha, He entered the forest and
lived there for considerable years with His wife and younger brother. Ravana, who was very materially
powerful, with ten heads on his shoulders, committed a great offense against Him and was thus
ultimately vanquished.
24. The Personality of Godhead Ramacandra, being aggrieved for His distant intimate friend [Sita],
glanced over the city of the enemy Ravana with red-hot eyes like those of Mara [who wanted to burn
the kingdom of heaven]. The great ocean, trembling in fear, gave Him His way because its family
members, the aquatics like the sharks, snakes and crocodiles, were being burnt by the heat of the
angry red-hot eyes of the Lord.
25. When Ravana was engaged in the battle, the trunk of the elephant which carried the King of
heaven, Indra, broke in pieces, having collided with the chest of Ravana, and the scattered broken parts
illuminated all directions. Ravana therefore felt proud of his prowess and began to loiter in the midst of
the fighting soldiers, thinking himself the conqueror of all directions. But his laughter, overtaken by joy,
along with his very air of life, suddenly ceased with the tingling sound of the bow of Ramacandra, the
Personality of Godhead.
26. When the world is overburdened by the fighting strength of kings who have no faith in God, the
Lord, just to diminish the distress of the world, descends with His plenary portion. The Lord comes in
His original form, with beautiful black hair. And just to expand His transcendental glories, He acts
extraordinarily. No one can properly estimate how great He is.
27. There is no doubt about Lord Krsna's being the Supreme Lord, otherwise how was it possible for
Him to kill a giant demon like Putana when He was just on the lap of His mother, to overturn a cart with
His leg when He was only three months old, to uproot a pair of arjuna trees, so high that they touched
the sky, when He was only crawling? All these activities are impossible for anyone other than the Lord
Himself.
28. Then also when the cowherd boys and their animals drank the poisoned water of the River Yamuna,
and after the Lord [in His childhood] revived them by His merciful glance, just to purify the water of the
River Yamuna He jumped into it as if playing and chastised the venomous Kaliya snake, which was
lurking there, its tongue emitting waves of poison. Who can perform such herculean tasks but the
Supreme Lord ?
29. On the very night of the day of the chastisement of the Kaliya snake, when the inhabitants of
Vrajabhumi were sleeping carefreely, there was a forest fire ablaze due to dry leaves, and it appeared
that all the inhabitants were sure to meet their death. But the Lord, along with Balarama, saved them
simply by closing His eyes. Such are the superhuman activities of the Lord.
30. When the cowherd woman [Krsna's foster mother, Yasoda] was trying to tie the hands of her son
with ropes, she found the rope to be always insufficient in length, and when she finally gave up, Lord
Krsna, by and by, opened His mouth, wherein the mother found all the universes situated. Seeing this,
she was doubtful in her mind, but she was convinced in a different manner of the mystic nature of her
son.
31. Lord Krsna saved His foster father, Nanda Maharaja, from the fear of the demigod Varuna and
released the cowherd boys from the caves of the mountain, for they were placed there by the son of
Maya. Also, to the inhabitants of Vrndavana, who were busy working during daytime and sleeping
soundly at night because of their hard labor in the day, Lord Krsna awarded promotion to the highest
planet in the spiritual sky. All these acts are transcendental and certainly prove without any doubt His
Godhood.
32. When the cowherd men of Vrndavana, under instruction of Krsna, stopped offering sacrifice to the
heavenly King, Indra, the whole tract of land known as Vraja was threatened with being washed away
by constant heavy rains for seven days. Lord Krsna, out of His causeless mercy upon the inhabitants of
Vraja, held up the hill known as Govardhana with one hand only, although He was only seven years old.
He did this to protect the animals from the onslaught of water.
33. When the Lord was engaged in His pastimes of the rasa dance in the forest of Vrndavana,
enlivening the sexual desires of the wives of the inhabitants of Vrndavana by sweet and melodious
58 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
songs, a demon of the name Sankhacuda, a rich follower of the treasurer of heaven [Kuvera],
kidnapped the damsels, and the Lord severed his head from his trunk.
34-35. All demonic personalities like Pralamba, Dhenuka, Baka, Kesi, Arista, Canura, Mustika,
Kuvalayapida elephant, Kamsa, Yavana, Narakasura and Paundraka, great marshals like Salva,
Dvivida monkey and Balvala, Dantavakra, the seven bulls, Sambara, Viduratha and Rukmi, as also
great warriors like Kamboja, Matsya, Kuru, Srnjaya and Kekaya, would all fight vigorously, either with
the Lord Hari directly or with Him under His names of Baladeva, Arjuna, Bhima, etc. And the demons,
thus being killed, would attain either the impersonal brahmajyoti or His personal abode in the Vaikuntha
planets.
36. The Lord Himself in His incarnation as the son of Satyavati [Vyasadeva] will consider his
compilation of the Vedic literature to be very difficult for the less intelligent persons with short life, and
thus He will divide the tree of Vedic knowledge into different branches, according to the circumstances
of the particular age.
37. When the atheists, after being well versed in the Vedic scientific knowledge, annihilate inhabitants of
different planets, flying unseen in the sky on well-built rockets prepared by the great scientist Maya, the
Lord will bewilder their minds by dressing Himself attractively as Buddha and will preach on subreligious
principles.
38. Thereafter, at the end of Kali-yuga, when there exist no topics on the subject of God, even at the
residences of so-called saints and respectable gentlemen of the three higher castes, and when the
power of government is transferred to the hands of ministers elected from the lowborn sudra class or
those less than them, and when nothing is known of the techniques of sacrifice, even by word, at that
time the Lord will appear as the supreme chastiser.
39. At the beginning of creation there are penance, myself [Brahma], and the Prajapatis, the great
sages who generate; then, during the maintenance of the creation, there are Lord Visnu, the demigods
with controlling powers, and the kings of different planets. But at the end there is irreligion, and then
Lord Siva and the atheists full of anger, etc. All of them are different representative manifestations of the
energy of the supreme power, the Lord.
40. Who can describe completely the prowess of Visnu? Even the scientist, who might have counted
the particles of the atoms of the universe, cannot do so. Because it is He only who in His form of
Trivikrama moved His leg effortlessly beyond the topmost planet, Satyaloka, up to the neutral state of
the three modes of material nature. And all were moved.
41. Neither I nor all the sages born before you know fully the omnipotent Personality of Godhead. So
what can others, who are born after us, know about Him? Even the first incarnation of the Lord, namely
Sesa, has not been able to reach the limit of such knowledge, although He is describing the qualities of
the Lord with ten hundred faces.
42. But anyone who is specifically favored by the Supreme Lord, the Personality of Godhead, due to
unalloyed surrender unto the service of the Lord, can overcome the insurmountable ocean of illusion
and can understand the Lord. But those who are attached to this body, which is meant to be eaten at
the end by dogs and jackals, cannot do so.
43-45. O Narada, although the potencies of the Lord are unknowable and immeasurable, still, because
we are all surrendered souls, we know how He acts through yogamaya potencies. And, similarly, the
potencies of the Lord are also known to the all-powerful Siva, the great king of the atheist family,
namely Prahlada Maharaja, Svayambhuva Mahu, his wife Satarupa, his sons and daughters like
Priyavrata, Uttanapada, Akuti, Devahuti and Prasuti, Pracinabarhi, Rbhu, Anga the father of Vena,
Maharaja Dhruva, Iksvaku, Aila, Mucukunda, Maharaja Janaka, Gadhi, Raghu, Ambarisa, Sagara,
Gaya, Nahusa, Mahdhata, Alarka, Satadhanve, Anu, Rantideva, Bhisma, Bali, Amurttaraya, Dilipa,
Saubhari, Utanka, Sibi, Devala, Pippalada, Sarasvata, Uddhava, Parasara, Bhurisena, Vibhisana,
Hanuman, Sukadeva Gosvami, Arjuna, Arstisena, Vidura, Srutadeva, etc.
46. Surrendered souls, even from groups leading sinful lives, such as women, the laborer class, the
mountaineers and the Siberians, or even the birds and beasts, can also know about the science of
Godhead and become liberated from the clutches of the illusory energy by surrendering unto the pure
devotees of the Lord and by following in their footsteps in devotional service.
47. What is realized as the Absolute Brahman is full of unlimited bliss without grief. That is certainly the
ultimate phase of the supreme enjoyer, the Personality of Godhead. He is eternally void of all
disturbances and fearless. He is complete consciousness as opposed to matter. Uncontaminated and
without distinctions, He is the principle primeval cause of all causes and effects, in whom there is no
sacrifice for fruitive activities and in whom the illusory energy does not stand.
48. In such a transcendental state there is no need of artificial control of the mind, mental speculation or
meditation, as performed by the jnanis and yogis. One gives up such processes, as the heavenly King,
Indra, forgoes the trouble to dig a well.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 59
49. The Personality of Godhead is the supreme master of everything auspicious because the results of
whatever actions are performed by the living being, in either the material or spiritual existence, are
awarded by the Lord. As such, He is the ultimate benefactor. Every individual living entity is unborn, and
therefore even after the annihilation of the material elementary body, the living entity exists, exactly like
the air within the body.
50. My dear son, I have now explained in brief the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is creator of
the manifested worlds. Without Him, Hari, the Lord, there are no other causes of the phenomenal and
noumenal existences.
51. O Narada, this science of God, Srimad-Bhagavatam, was spoken to me in summary by the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, and it was spoken as the accumulation of His diverse potencies.
Please expand this science yourself.
52. Please describe the science of Godhead with determination and in a manner by which it will be
quite possible for the human being to develop transcendental devotional service unto the Personality of
Godhead Hari, the Supersoul of every living being and the summum bonum source of all energies.
53. The Lord's activities in association with His different energies should be described, appreciated and
heard in accordance with the teachings of the Supreme Lord. If this is done regularly with devotion and
respect, one is sure to get out of the illusory energy of the Lord.
Chapter Eight Questions by King Pariksit
1. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: How did Narada Muni, whose hearers are as
fortunate as those instructed by Lord Brahma, explain the transcendental qualities of the Lord, who is
without material qualities, and before whom did he speak?
2. The King said: I wish to know. Narrations concerning the Lord, who possesses wonderful potencies,
are certainly auspicious for living beings in all planets.
3. O greatly fortunate Sukadeva Gosvami, please continue narrating Srimad-Bhagavatam so that I can
place my mind upon the Supreme Soul, Lord Krsna, and, being completely freed from material qualities,
thus relinquish this body.
4. Persons who hear Srimad-Bhagavatam regularly and are always taking the matter very seriously will
have the Personality of Godhead Sri Krsna manifested in their hearts within a short time.
5. The sound incarnation of Lord Krsna, the Supreme Soul [i.e. Srimad-Bhagavatam], enters into the
heart of a self-realized devotee, sits on the lotus flower of his loving relationship, and thus cleanses the
dust of material association, such as lust, anger and hankering. Thus it acts like autumnal rains upon
pools of muddy water.
6. A pure devotee of the Lord whose heart has once been cleansed by the process of devotional
service never relinquishes the lotus feet of Lord Krsna, for they fully satisfy him, as a traveler is satisfied
at home after a troubled journey.
7. O learned brahmana, the transcendental spirit soul is different from the material body. Does he
acquire the body accidentally or by some cause? Will you kindly explain this, for it is known to you.
8. If the Supreme Personality of Godhead, from whose abdomen the lotus stem sprouted, is possessed
of a gigantic body according to His own caliber and measurement, then what is the specific difference
between the body of the Lord and those of common living entities?
9. Brahma, who was not born of a material source but of the lotus flower coming out of the navel
abdomen of the Lord, is the creator of all those who are materially born. Of course, by the grace of the
Lord, Brahma was able to see the form of the Lord.
10. Please also explain the Personality of Godhead, who lies in every heart as the Supersoul, and as
the Lord of all energies, but is untouched by His external energy.
11. O learned brahmana, it was formerly explained that all the planets of the universe with their
respective governors are situated in the different parts of the gigantic body of the virat-purusa. I have
also heard that the different planetary systems are supposed to be in the gigantic body of the virat-
purusa. But what is their actual position? Will you please explain that?
12. Also please explain the duration of time between creation and annihilation, and that of other
subsidiary creations, as well as the nature of time, indicated by the sound of past, present and future.
Also, please explain the duration and measurement of life of the different living beings known as the
demigods, the human beings, etc., in different planets of the universe.
13. O purest of the brahmanas, please also explain the cause of the different durations of time, both
short and long, as well as the beginning of time, following the course of action.
14. Then again, kindly describe how the proportionate accumulation of the reactions resulting from the
different modes of material nature act upon the desiring living being, promoting or degrading him among
the different species of life, beginning from the demigods down to the most insignificant creatures.
60 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. O best of the brahmanas, please also describe how the creation of the globes throughout the
universe, the four directions of the heavens, the sky, the planets, the stars, the mountains, the rivers,
the seas and the islands, as well as their different kinds of inhabitants, takes place.
16. Also, please describe the inner and outer space of the universe by specific divisions, as well as the
character and activities of the great souls, and also the characteristics of the different classifications of
the castes and orders of social life.
17. Please explain all the different ages in the duration of the creation, and also the duration of such
ages. Also tell me about the different activities of the different incarnations of the Lord in different ages.
18. Please also explain what may generally be the common religious affiliations of human society, as
well as their specific occupational duties in religion, the classification of the social orders as well as the
administrative royal orders, and the religious principles for one who may be in distress.
19. Kindly explain all about the elementary principles of creation, the number of such elementary
principles, their causes, and their development, and also the process of devotional service and the
method of mystic powers.
20. What are the opulences of the great mystics, and what is their ultimate realization? How does the
perfect mystic become detached from the subtle astral body? What is the basic knowledge of the Vedic
literatures, including the branches of history and the supplementary Puranas?
21. Please explain unto me how the living beings are generated, how they are maintained, and how
they are annihilated. Tell me also of the advantages and disadvantages of discharging devotional
service unto the Lord. What are the Vedic rituals and injunctions of the supplementary Vedic rites, and
what are the procedures of religion, economic development and sense satisfaction?
22. Please also explain how, merged in the body of the Lord, living beings are created, and how the
infidels appear in the world. Also please explain how the unconditioned living entities exist.
23. The independent Personality of Godhead enjoys His pastimes by His internal potency and at the
time of annihilation gives them up to the external potency, and He remains a witness to it all.
24. O great sage, representative of the Lord, kindly satisfy my inquisitiveness in all that I have inquired
from you and all that I may not have inquired from you from the very beginning of my questionings.
Since I am a soul surrendered unto you, please impart full knowledge in this connection.
25. O great sage, you are as good as Brahma, the original living being. Others follow custom only, as
followed by the previous philosophical speculators.
26. O learned brahmana, because of my drinking the nectar of the message of the infallible Personality
of Godhead, which is flowing down from the ocean of your speeches, I do not feel any sort of
exhaustion due to my fasting.
27. Suta Gosvami said: Thus Sukadeva Gosvami, being invited by Maharaja Pariksit to speak on topics
of the Lord Sri Krsna with the devotees, was very much pleased.
28. He began to reply to the inquiries of Maharaja Pariksit by saying that the science of the Personality
of Godhead was spoken first by the Lord Himself to Brahma when he was first born. Srimad-
Bhagavatam is the supplementary Vedic literature, and it is just in pursuance of the Vedas.
29. He also prepared himself to reply to all that King Pariksit had inquired from him. Maharaja Pariksit
was the best in the dynasty of the Pandus, and thus he was able to ask the right questions from the
right person.
Chapter Nine Answers by Citing the Lord's Version
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, unless one is influenced by the energy of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, there is no meaning to the relationship of the pure soul in pure consciousness
with the material body. That relationship is just like a dreamer's seeing his own body working.
2. The illusioned living entity appears in so many forms offered by the external energy of the Lord. While
enjoying in the modes of material nature, the encaged living entity misconceives, thinking in terms of "I"
and "mine."
3. As soon as the living entity becomes situated in his constitutional glory and begins to enjoy the
transcendence beyond time and material energy, he at once gives up the two misconceptions of life [I
and mine] and thus becomes fully manifested as the pure self.
4. O King, the Personality of Godhead, being very much pleased with Lord Brahma because of his
nondeceptive penance in bhakti-yoga, presented His eternal and transcendental form before Brahma.
And that is the objective goal for purifying the conditioned soul.
5. Lord Brahma, the first spiritual master, supreme in the universe, could not trace out the source of his
lotus seat, and while thinking of creating the material world, he could not understand the proper
direction for such creative work, nor could he find out the process for such creation.
6. While thus engaged in thinking, in the water, Brahmaji heard twice from nearby two syllables joined
together. One of the syllables was taken from the sixteenth and the other from the twenty-first of the
sparsa alphabets, and both joined to become the wealth of the renounced order of life.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 61
7. When he heard the sound, he tried to find the speaker, searching on all sides. But when he was
unable to find anyone besides himself, he thought it wise to sit down on his lotus seat firmly and give his
attention to the execution of penance, as he was instructed.
8. Lord Brahma underwent penances for one thousand years by the calculations of the demigods. He
heard this transcendental vibration from the sky, and he accepted it as divine. Thus he controlled his
mind and senses, and the penances he executed were a great lesson for the living entities. Thus he is
known as the greatest of all ascetics.
9. The Personality of Godhead, being thus very much satisfied with the penance of Lord Brahma, was
pleased to manifest His personal abode, Vaikuntha, the supreme planet above all others. This
transcendental abode of the Lord is adored by all self-realized persons freed from all kinds of miseries
and fear of illusory existence.
10. In that personal abode of the Lord, the material modes of ignorance and passion do not prevail, nor
is there any of their influence in goodness. There is no predominance of the influence of time, so what
to speak of the illusory, external energy; it cannot enter that region. Without discrimination, both the
demigods and the demons worship the Lord as devotees.
11. The inhabitants of the Vaikuntha planets are described as having a glowing sky-bluish complexion.
Their eyes resemble lotus flowers, their dress is of yellowish color, and their bodily features very
attractive. They are just the age of growing youths, they all have four hands, they are all nicely
decorated with pearl necklaces with ornamental medallions, and they all appear to be effulgent.
12. Some of them are effulgent like coral and diamonds in complexion and have garlands on their
heads, blooming like lotus flowers, and some wear earrings.
13. The Vaikuntha planets are also surrounded by various airplanes, all glowing and brilliantly situated.
These airplanes belong to the great mahatmas or devotees of the Lord. The ladies are as beautiful as
lightning because of their celestial complexions, and all these combined together appear just like the
sky decorated with both clouds and lightning.
14. The goddess of fortune in her transcendental form is engaged in the loving service of the Lord's
lotus feet, and being moved by the black bees, followers of spring, she is not only engaged in
variegated pleasure--service to the Lord, along with her constant companions--but is also engaged in
singing the glories of the Lord's activities.
15. Lord Brahma saw in the Vaikuntha planets the Personality of Godhead, who is the Lord of the entire
devotee community, the Lord of the goddess of fortune, the Lord of all sacrifices, and the Lord of the
universe, and who is served by the foremost servitors like Nanda, Sunanda, Prabala and Arhana, His
immediate associates.
16. The Personality of Godhead, seen leaning favorably towards His loving servitors, His very sight
intoxicating and attractive, appeared to be very much satisfied. He had a smiling face decorated with an
enchanting reddish hue. He was dressed in yellow robes and wore earrings and a helmet on his head.
He had four hands, and His chest was marked with the lines of the goddess of fortune.
17. The Lord was seated on His throne and was surrounded by different energies like the four, the
sixteen, the five, and the six natural opulences, along with other insignificant energies of the temporary
character. But He was the factual Supreme Lord, enjoying His own abode.
18. Lord Brahma, thus seeing the Personality of Godhead in His fullness, was overwhelmed with joy
within his heart, and thus in full transcendental love and ecstasy, his eyes filled with tears of love. He
thus bowed down before the Lord. That is the way of the highest perfection for the living being
[paramahamsa].
19. And seeing Brahma present before Him, the Lord accepted him as worthy to create living beings, to
be controlled as He desired, and thus being much satisfied with him, the Lord shook hands with Brahma
and, slightly smiling, addressed him thus.
20. The beautiful Personality of Godhead addressed Lord Brahma: O Brahma, impregnated with the
Vedas, I am very much pleased with your long accumulated penance with the desire for creation.
Hardly am I pleased with the pseudo mystics.
21. I wish you good luck. O Brahma, you may ask from Me, the giver of all benediction, all that you may
desire. You may know that the ultimate benediction, as the result of all penances, is to see Me by
realization.
22. The highest perfectional ingenuity is the personal perception of My abodes, and this has been
possible because of your submissive attitude in the performance of severe penance according to My
order.
23. O sinless Brahma, you may know from Me that it was I who first ordered you to undergo penance
when you were perplexed in your duty. Such penance is My heart and soul, and therefore penance and
I are nondifferent.
62 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. I create this cosmos by such penance, I maintain it by the same energy, and I withdraw it all by the
same energy. Therefore the potential power is penance only.
25. Lord Brahma said: O Personality of Godhead, You are situated in every living entity's heart as the
supreme director, and therefore You are aware of all endeavors by Your superior intelligence, without
any hindrance whatsoever.
26. In spite of that, my Lord, I am praying to You to kindly fulfill my desire. May I please be informed
how, in spite of Your transcendental form, You assume the mundane form, although You have no such
form at all.
27. And [please inform me] how You, by Your own Self, manifest different energies for annihilation,
generation, acceptance and maintenance by combination and permutation.
28. O master of all energies, please tell me philosophically all about them. You play like a spider that
covers itself by its own energy, and Your determination is infallible.
29. Please tell me so that I may be taught in the matter by the instruction of the Personality of Godhead
and may thus act instrumentally to generate living entities, without being conditioned by such activities.
30. O my Lord, the unborn, You have shaken hands with me just as a friend does with a friend [as if
equal in position]. I shall be engaged in the creation of different types of living entities, and I shall be
occupied in Your service. I shall have no perturbation, but I pray that all this may not give rise to pride,
as if I were the Supreme.
31. The Personality of Godhead said: Knowledge about Me as described in the scriptures is very
confidential, and it has to be realized in conjunction with devotional service. The necessary
paraphernalia for that process is being explained by Me. You may take it up carefully.
32. All of Me, namely My actual eternal form and My transcendental existence, color, qualities and
activities--let all be awakened within you by factual realization, out of My causeless mercy.
33. Brahma, it is I, the Personality of Godhead, who was existing before the creation, when there was
nothing but Myself. Nor was there the material nature, the cause of this creation. That which you see
now is also I, the Personality of Godhead, and after annihilation what remains will also be I, the
Personality of Godhead.
34. O Brahma, whatever appears to be of any value, if it is without relation to Me, has no reality. Know it
as My illusory energy, that reflection which appears to be in darkness.
35. O Brahma, please know that the universal elements enter into the cosmos and at the same time do
not enter into the cosmos; similarly, I Myself also exist within everything created, and at the same time I
am outside of everything.
36. A person who is searching after the Supreme Absolute Truth, the Personality of Godhead, most
certainly search for it up to this, in all circumstances, in all space and time, and both directly and
indirectly.
37. O Brahma, just follow this conclusion by fixed concentration of mind, and no pride will disturb you,
neither in the partial nor in the final devastation.
38. Sukadeva Gosvami said to Maharaja Pariksit: The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, after
being seen in His transcendental form, instructing Brahmaji, the leader of the living entities,
disappeared.
39. On the disappearance of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, who is the object of
transcendental enjoyment for the senses of devotees, Brahma, with folded hands, began to re-create
the universe, full with living entities, as it was previously.
40. Thus once upon a time the forefather of living entities and the father of religiousness, Lord Brahma,
situated himself in acts of regulative principles, desiring self-interest for the welfare of all living entities.
41. Narada, the most dear of the inheritor sons of Brahma, always ready to serve his father, strictly
follows the instructions of his father by his mannerly behavior, meekness and sense control.
42. Narada very much pleased his father and desired to know all about the energies of Visnu, the
master of all energies, for Narada was the greatest of all sages and greatest of all devotees, O King.
43. The great sage Narada also inquired in detail from his father, Brahma, the great-grandfather of all
the universe, after seeing him well satisfied.
44. Thereupon the supplementary Vedic literature, Srimad-Bhagavatam, which was described by the
Personality of Godhead and which contains ten characteristics, was told with satisfaction by the father
[Brahma] to his son Narada.
45. In succession, O King, the great sage Narada instructed Srimad-Bhagavatam unto the unlimitedly
powerful Vyasadeva, who meditated in devotional service upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
the Absolute Truth, on the bank of the River Sarasvati.
46. O King, your questions as to how the universe became manifested from the gigantic form of the
Personality of Godhead, as well as other questions, I shall answer in detail by explanation of the four
verses already mentioned.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 63
Chapter Ten Bhagavatam Is the Answer to All Questions
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: In the Srimad-Bhagavatam there are ten divisions of statements
regarding the following: the creation of the universe, subcreation, planetary systems, protection by the
Lord, the creative impetus, the change of Manus, the science of God, returning home, back to
Godhead, liberation, and the summum bonum.
2. To isolate the transcendence of the summum bonum, the symptoms of the rest are described
sometimes by Vedic inference, sometimes by direct explanation, and sometimes by summary
explanations given by the great sages.
3. The elementary creation of sixteen items of matter--namely the five elements [fire, water, land, air
and sky], sound, form, taste, smell, touch, and the eyes, ears, nose, tongue, skin and mind--is known as
sarga, whereas subsequent resultant interaction of the modes of material nature is called visarga.
4. The right situation for the living entities is to obey the laws of the Lord and thus be in perfect peace of
mind under the protection of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. The Manus and their laws are
meant to give right direction in life. The impetus for activity is the desire for fruitive work.
5. The science of God describes the incarnations of the Personality of Godhead and His different
activities together with the activities of His great devotees.
6. The merging of the living entity, along with his conditional living tendency, with the mystic lying down
of the Maha-Visnu is called the winding up of the cosmic manifestation. Liberation is the permanent
situation of the form of the living entity after he gives up the changeable gross and subtle material
bodies.
7. The supreme one who is celebrated as the Supreme Being or the Supreme Soul is the supreme
source of the cosmic manifestation as well as its reservoir and winding up. Thus He is the Supreme
Fountainhead, the Absolute Truth.
8. The individual person possessing different instruments of senses is called the adhyatmic person, and
the individual controlling deity of the senses is called adhidaivic. The embodiment seen on the eyeballs
is called the adhibhautic person.
9. All three of the above-mentioned stages of different living entities are interdependent. In the absence
of one, another is not understood. But the Supreme Being who sees every one of them as the shelter of
the shelter is independent of all, and therefore He is the supreme shelter.
10. After separating the different universes, the gigantic universal form of the Lord [Maha-Visnu], which
came out of the causal ocean, the place of appearance for the first purusa-avatara, entered into each of
the separate universes, desiring to lie on the created transcendental water [Garbhodaka].
11. That Supreme Person is not impersonal and therefore is distinctively a nara, or person. Therefore
the transcendental water created from the Supreme Nara is known as nara. And because He lies down
on that water, He is known as Narayana.
12. One should definitely know that all material ingredients, activities, time and modes, and the living
entities who are meant to enjoy them all, exist by His mercy only, and as soon as He does not care for
them, everything becomes nonexistent.
13. The Lord, while lying on His bed of mystic slumber, generated the seminal symbol, golden in hue,
through external energy out of His desire to manifest varieties of living entities from Himself alone.
14. Just hear from me how the potency of His Lordship divides one into three, called the controlling
entities, the controlled entities and the material bodies, in the manner mentioned above.
15. From the sky situated within the transcendental body of the manifesting Maha-Visnu, sense energy,
mental force and bodily strength are all generated, as well as the sum total of the fountainhead of the
total living force.
16. As the followers of a king follow their lord, similarly when the total energy is in motion, all other living
entities move, and when the total energy stops endeavoring, all other living entities stop sensual
activities.
17. The living force, being agitated by the virat-purusa, generated hunger and thirst, and when He
desired to drink and eat, the mouth opened.
18. From the mouth the palate became manifested, and thereupon the tongue was also generated.
After this all the different tastes came into existence so that the tongue can relish them.
19. When the Supreme desired to speak, speeches were vibrated from the mouth. Then the controlling
deity Fire was generated from the mouth. But when He was lying in the water, all these functions
remained suspended.
20. Thereafter, when the supreme purusa desired to smell odors, the nostrils and respiration were
generated, the nasal instrument and odors came into existence, and the controlling deity of air, carrying
smell, also became manifested.
64 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
21. Thus when everything existed in darkness, the Lord desired to see Himself and all that was created.
Then the eyes, the illuminating god Sun, the power of vision and the object of sight all became
manifested.
22. By development of the desire of the great sages to know, the ears, the power of hearing, the
controlling deity of hearing, and the objects of hearing became manifested. The great sages desired to
hear about the Self.
23. When there was a desire to perceive the physical characteristics of matter, such as softness,
hardness, warmth, cold, lightness and heaviness, the background of sensation, the skin, the skin pores,
the hairs on the body and their controlling deities (the trees) were generated. Within and outside the
skin is a covering of air through which sense perception became prominent.
24. Thereafter when the Supreme Person desired to perform varieties of work, the two hands and their
controlling strength, and Indra, the demigod in heaven, became manifested, as also the acts dependent
on both the hands and the demigod.
25. Thereupon, because of His desiring to control movement, His legs became manifested, and from
the legs the controlling deity named Visnu was generated. By His personal supervision of this act, all
varieties of human being are busily engaged in dutiful occupational sacrifice.
26. Thereupon, for sexual pleasure, begetting offspring and tasting heavenly nectar, the Lord developed
the genitals, and thus there is the genital organ and its controlling deity, the Prajapati. The object of
sexual pleasure and the controlling deity are under the control of the genitals of the Lord.
27. Thereafter, when He desired to evacuate the refuse of eatables, the evacuating hole, anus, and the
sensory organ thereof developed along with the controlling deity Mitra. The sensory organ and the
evacuating substance are both under the shelter of the controlling deity.
28. Thereafter, when He desired to move from one body to another, the navel and the air of departure
and death were combinedly created. The navel is the shelter for both, namely death and the separating
force.
29. When there was a desire to have food and drink, the abdomen and the intestines and also the
arteries became manifested. The rivers and seas are the source of their sustenance and metabolism.
30. When there was a desire to think about the activities of His own energy, then the heart (the seat of
the mind), the mind, the moon, determination and all desire became manifested.
31. The seven elements of the body, namely the thin layer on the skin, the skin itself, the flesh, blood,
fat, marrow and bone, are all made of earth, water and fire, whereas the life breath is produced by the
sky, water and air.
32. The sense organs are attached to the modes of material nature, and the modes of material nature
are products of the false ego. The mind is subjected to all kinds of material experiences (happiness and
distress), and the intelligence is the feature of the mind's deliberation.
33. Thus by all this, the external feature of the Personality of Godhead is covered by gross forms such
as those of planets, which were explained to you by me.
34. Therefore beyond this [gross manifestation] is a transcendental manifestation finer than the finest
form. It has no beginning, no intermediate stage and no end; therefore it is beyond the limits of
expression or mental speculation and is distinct from the material conception.
35. Neither of the above forms of the Lord, as just described unto you from the material angle of vision,
is accepted by the pure devotees of the Lord who know Him well.
36. He, the Personality of Godhead, manifests Himself in a transcendental form, being the subject of
His transcendental name, quality, pastimes, entourage and transcendental variegatedness. Although
He is unaffected by all such activities, He appears to be so engaged.
37-40. O King, know from me that all living entities are created by the Supreme Lord according to their
past deeds. This includes Brahma and his sons like Daksa, the periodical heads like Vaivasvata Manu,
the demigods like Indra, Candra and Varuna, the great sages like Bhrgu, Vyasa and Vasistha, the
inhabitants of Pitrloka and Siddhaloka, the Caranas, Gandharvas, Vidyadharas, Asuras, Yaksas,
Kinnaras and angels, the serpentines, the monkey-shaped Kimpurusas, the human beings, the
inhabitants of Matrloka, the demons, Pisacas, ghosts, spirits, lunatics and evil spirits, the good and evil
stars, the goblins, the animals in the forest, the birds, the household animals, the reptiles, the
mountains, the moving and standing living entities, the living entities born from embryos, from eggs,
from perspiration and from seeds, and all others, whether they be in the water, land or sky, in
happiness, in distress or in mixed happiness and distress. All of them, according to their past deeds, are
created by the Supreme Lord.
41. According to the different modes of material nature--the mode of goodness, the mode of passion
and the mode of darkness--there are different living creatures, who are known as demigods, human
beings and hellish living entities. O King, even a particular mode of nature, being mixed with the other
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 65
two, is divided into three, and thus each kind of living creature is influenced by the other modes and
acquires its habits also.
42. He, the Personality of Godhead, as the maintainer of all in the universe, appears in different
incarnations after establishing the creation, and thus He reclaims all kinds of conditioned souls amongst
the humans, the nonhumans and the demigods.
43. Thereafter, at the end of the millennium, the Lord Himself in the form of Rudra, the destroyer, will
annihilate the complete creation as the wind displaces the clouds.
44. The great transcendentalists thus describe the activities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
but the pure devotees deserve to see more glorious things in transcendence, beyond these features.
45. There is no direct engineering by the Lord for the creation and destruction of the material world.
What is described in the Vedas about His direct interference is simply to counteract the idea that
material nature is the creator.
46. This process of creation and annihilation described in summary herein is the regulative principle
during the duration of Brahma's one day. It is also the regulative principle in the creation of mahat, in
which the material nature is dispersed.
47. O King, I shall in due course explain the measurement of time in its gross and subtle features with
the specific symptoms of each, but for the present let me explain unto you the Padma-kalpa.
48. Saunaka Rsi, after hearing all about the creation, inquired from Suta Gosvami about Vidura, for
Suta Gosvami had previously informed him how Vidura left home, leaving aside all his relatives, who
were very difficult to leave.
49-50. Saunaka Rsi said: Let us know, please, what topics were discussed between Vidura and
Maitreya, who talked on transcendental subjects, and what was inquired by Vidura and replied by
Maitreya. Also please let us know the reason for Vidura's giving up the connection of his family
members, and why he again came home. Please also let us know the activities of Vidura while he was
in the places of pilgrimage.
51. Sri Suta Gosvami explained: I shall now explain to you the very subjects explained by the great
sage in answer to King Pariksit's inquiries. Please hear them attentively.
CANTO THREE
Chapter One Questions by Vidura
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After renouncing his prosperous home and entering the forest, King Vidura,
the great devotee, asked this question of His Grace Maitreya Rsi.
2. What else is there to say about the residential house of the Pandavas? Sri Krsna, the Lord of
everything, acted as your minister. He used to enter that house as if it were His own, and He did not
take any care of Duryodhana's house.
3. The King asked Sukadeva Gosvami: Where and when did the meeting and discussion take place
between Saint Vidura and His Grace Maitreya Muni? Kindly oblige, my lord, and describe this to us.
4. Saint Vidura was a great and pure devotee of the Lord, and therefore his questions to His Grace Rsi
Maitreya must have been very purposeful, on the highest level, and approved by learned circles.
5. Sri Suta Gosvami said: The great sage Sukadeva Gosvami was highly experienced and was pleased
with the King. Thus being questioned by the King, he said to him, "Please hear the topics attentively."
6. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: King Dhrtarastra became blind under the influence of impious desires to
nourish his dishonest sons, and thus he set fire to the lacquer house to burn his fatherless nephews, the
Pandavas.
7. The King did not forbid his son Duhsasana's abominable action of grabbing the hair of Draupadi, the
wife of the godly King Yudhisthira, even though her tears washed the red dust on her breast.
8. Yudhisthira, who was born without any enemy, was unfairly defeated in gambling. But because he
had taken the vow of truthfulness, he went off to the forest. When he came back in due course and
begged the return of his rightful share of the kingdom, he was refused by Dhrtarastra, who was
overwhelmed by illusion.
9. Lord Krsna was sent by Arjuna into the assembly as the spiritual master of the whole world, and
although His words were heard by some [like Bhisma] as pure nectar, it was not so for the others, who
were completely bereft of the last farthing of past pious works. The King [Dhrtarastra or Duryodhana]
did not take the words of Lord Krsna very seriously.
10. When Vidura was invited by his elder brother [Dhrtarastra] for consultation, he entered the house
and gave instructions which were exactly to the point. His advice is well known, and instructions by
Vidura are approved by expert ministers of state.
11. [Vidura said:] You must now return the legitimate share to Yudhisthira, who has no enemies and
who has been forbearing through untold sufferings due to your offenses. He is waiting with his younger
brothers, among whom is the revengeful Bhima, breathing heavily like a snake. Surely you are afraid of
him.
66 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. Lord Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, has accepted the sons of Prtha as His kinsmen, and all the
kings of the world are with Lord Sri Krsna. He is present in His home with all His family members, the
kings and princes of the Yadu dynasty, who have conquered an unlimited number of rulers, and He is
their Lord.
13. You are maintaining offense personified, Duryodhana, as your infallible son, but he is envious of
Lord Krsna. And because you are thus maintaining a nondevotee of Krsna, you are devoid of all
auspicious qualities. Relieve yourself of this ill fortune as soon as possible and do good to the whole
family!
14. While speaking thus, Vidura, whose personal character was esteemed by respectable persons, was
insulted by Duryodhana, who was swollen with anger and whose lips were trembling. Duryodhana was
in company with Karna, his younger brothers and his maternal uncle Sakuni.
15. Who asked him to come here, this son of a kept mistress? He is so crooked that he spies in the
interest of the enemy against those on whose support he has grown up. Toss him out of the palace
immediately and leave him with only his breath.
16. Thus being pierced by arrows through his ears and afflicted to the core of his heart, Vidura placed
his bow on the door and quit his brother's palace. He was not sorry, for he considered the acts of the
external energy to be supreme.
17. By his piety, Vidura achieved the advantages of the pious Kauravas. After leaving Hastinapura, he
took shelter of many places of pilgrimages, which are the Lord's lotus feet. With a desire to gain a high
order of pious life, he traveled to holy places where thousands of transcendental forms of the Lord are
situated.
18. He began to travel alone, thinking only of Krsna, through various holy places like Ayodhya, Dvaraka
and Mathura. He traveled where the air, hill, orchard, river and lake are all pure and sinless and where
the forms of the Unlimited decorate the temples. Thus he performed the pilgrim's progress.
19. While so traversing the earth, he simply performed duties to please the Supreme Lord Hari. His
occupation was pure and independent. He was constantly sanctified by taking his bath in holy places,
although he was in the dress of a mendicant and had no hair dressing nor a bed on which to lie. Thus
he was always unseen by his various relatives.
20. Thus, when he was in the land of Bharatavarsa traveling to all the places of pilgrimage, he visited
Prabhasaksetra. At that time Maharaja Yudhisthira was the emperor and held the world under one
military strength and one flag.
21. At the place of pilgrimage at Prabhasa, it came to his knowledge that all his relatives had died due
to violent passion, just as an entire forest burns due to fire produced by the friction of bamboos. After
this he proceeded west, where the River Sarasvati flows.
22. On the bank of the River Sarasvati there were eleven places of pilgrimage, namely, (1) Trita, (2)
Usana, (3) Mahu, (4) Prthu, (5) Agni, (6) Asita, (7) Vayu, (8) Sudasa, (9) Go, (10) Guha and (11)
Sraddhadeva. Vidura visited all of them and duly performed rituals.
23. There were also many other temples of various forms of the Supreme Personality of Godhead
Visnu, established by great sages and demigods. These temples were marked with the chief emblems
of the Lord, and they reminded one always of the original Personality of Godhead, Lord Krsna.
24. Thereafter he passed through very wealthy provinces like Surat, Sauvira and Matsya and through
western India, known as Kurujangala. At last he reached the bank of the Yamuna, where he happened
to meet Uddhava, the great devotee of Lord Krsna.
25. Then, due to his great love and feeling, Vidura embraced him [Uddhava], who was a constant
companion of Lord Krsna and formerly a great student of Brhaspati's. Vidura then asked him for news of
the family of Lord Krsna, the Personality of Godhead.
26. [Please tell me] whether the original Personalities of Godhead, who incarnated Themselves at the
request of Brahma [who is born out of the lotus flower from the Lord] and who have increased the
prosperity of the world by elevating everyone, are doing well in the house of Surasena.
27. [Please tell me] whether the best friend of the Kurus, our brother-in-law Vasudeva, is doing well. He
is very munificent. He is like a father to his sisters, and he is always pleasing to his wives.
28. O Uddhava, please tell me how is Pradyumna, the commander-in-chief of the Yadus, who was
Cupid in a former life? Rukmini bore him as her son from Lord Krsna, by the grace of brahmanas whom
she pleased.
29. O my friend, [tell me] whether Ugrasena, the King of the Satvatas, Vrsnis, Bhojas and Dasarhas, is
now doing well. He went far away from his kingdom, leaving aside all hopes of his royal throne, but Lord
Krsna again installed him.
30. O gentle one, does Samba fare well? He exactly resembles the son of the Personality of Godhead.
In a previous birth he was born as Karttikeya in the womb of the wife of Lord Siva, and now he has
been born in the womb of Jambavati, the most enriched wife of Krsna.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 67
31. O Uddhava, does Yuyudhana fare well? He learned the intricacies of the military art from Arjuna and
attained the transcendental destination which is very difficult to reach even for great renouncers.
32. Please tell me whether Akrura, the son of Svaphalka, is doing well. He is a faultless soul
surrendered unto the Personality of Godhead. He once lost his mental equilibrium due to his ecstasy of
transcendental love and fell down on the dust of a road which was marked with the footprints of Lord
Krsna.
33. As the Vedas are the reservoir of sacrificial purposes, so the daughter of King Devaka-bhoja
conceived the Supreme Personality of Godhead in her womb, as did the mother of the demigods. Is she
[Devaki] doing well?
34. May I inquire whether Aniruddha is doing well? He is the fulfiller of all the desires of the pure
devotees and has been considered from yore to be the cause of the Rg Veda, the creator of the mind
and the fourth Plenary expansion of Visnu.
35. O sober one, others, such as Hrdika, Carudesna, Gada and the son of Satyabhama, who accept
Lord Sri Krsna as the soul of the self and thus follow His path without deviation--are they well?
36. Also let me inquire whether Maharaja Yudhisthira is now maintaining the kingdom according to
religious principles and with respect for the path of religion. Formerly Duryodhana was burning with
envy because Yudhisthira was being protected by the arms of Krsna and Arjuna as if they were his own
arms.
37. [Please tell me] whether the unconquerable Bhima, who is like a cobra, has released his long-
cherished anger upon the sinners? The field of battle could not tolerate even the wonderful playing of
his club when he stepped on the path.
38. [Please tell me] whether Arjuna, whose bow bears the name Gandiva and who is always famous
amongst the chariot warriors for vanquishing his enemies, is doing well. He once satisfied Lord Siva by
covering him with arrows when Siva came as an unidentified false hunter.
39. Are the twin brothers who are protected by their brothers doing well? Just as the eye is always
protected by the eyelid, they are protected by the sons of Prtha, who snatched back their rightful
kingdom from the hands of their enemy Duryodhana, just as Garuda snatched nectar from the mouth of
Indra, the thunderbolt carrier.
40. O my lord, is Prtha still living? She lived only for the sake of her fatherless children; otherwise it was
impossible for her to live without King Pandu, who was the greatest commander and who alone
conquered the four directions simply with the help of a second bow.
41. O gentle one, I simply lament for he [Dhrtarastra] who rebelled against his brother after death. By
him I was driven out of my own house, although I am his sincere well-wisher, because he accepted the
line of action adopted by his own sons.
42. I am not astonished at this, having traveled over the world without being seen by others. The
activities of the Personality of Godhead, which are like those of a man in this mortal world, are
bewildering to others, but I know of His greatness by His grace, and thus I am happy in all respects.
43. Despite His being the Lord and being always willing to relieve the distress of sufferers, He [Krsna]
refrained from killing the Kurus, although they committed all sorts of sins and although He saw other
kings constantly agitating the earth by their strong military movements carried out under the dictation of
three kinds of false pride.
44. The appearance of the Lord is manifested for the annihilation of the upstarts. His activities are
transcendental and are enacted for the understanding of all persons. Otherwise, since the Lord is
transcendental to all material modes, what purpose could He serve by coming to earth?
45. O my friend, please, therefore, chant the glories of the Lord, who is meant to be glorified in the
places of pilgrimage. He is unborn, and yet He appears by His causeless mercy upon the surrendered
rulers of all parts of the universe. Only for their interest did He appear in the family of His unalloyed
devotees the Yadus.
Chapter Two Remembrance of Lord Krsna
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: When the great devotee Uddhava was asked by Vidura to speak on the
messages of the dearest [Lord Krsna], Uddhava was unable to answer immediately due to excessive
anxiety at the remembrance of the Lord.
2. He was one who even in his childhood, at the age of five years, was so absorbed in the service of
Lord Krsna that when he was called by his mother for morning breakfast, he did not wish to have it.
3. Uddhava thus served the Lord continually from childhood, and in his old age that attitude of service
never slackened. As soon as he was asked about the message of the Lord, he at once remembered all
about Him.
4. For a moment he remained dead silent, and his body did not move. He became absorbed in the
nectar of remembering the Lord's lotus feet in devotional ecstasy, and he appeared to be going
increasingly deeper into that ecstasy.
68 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
5. It was so observed by Vidura that Uddhava had all the transcendental bodily changes due to total
ecstasy, and he was trying to wipe away tears of separation from his eyes. Thus Vidura could
understand that Uddhava had completely assimilated extensive love for the Lord.
6. The great devotee Uddhava soon came back from the abode of the Lord to the human plane, and
wiping his eyes, he awakened his reminiscence of the past and spoke to Vidura in a pleasing mood.
7. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Vidura, the sun of the world, Lord Krsna, has set, and our house has now
been swallowed by the great snake of time. What can I say to you about our welfare?
8. This universe with all its planets is most unfortunate. And even more unfortunate are the members of
the Yadu dynasty because they could not identify Lord Hari as the Personality of Godhead, any more
than the fish could identify the moon.
9. The Yadus were all experienced devotees, learned and expert in psychic study. Over and above this,
they were always with the Lord in all kinds of relaxations, and still they were only able to know Him as
the one Supreme who dwells everywhere.
10. Under no circumstances can the words of persons bewildered by the illusory energy of the Lord
deviate the intelligence of those who are completely surrendered souls.
11. Lord Sri Krsna, who manifested His eternal form before the vision of all on the earth, performed His
disappearance by removing His form from the sight of those who were unable to see Him [as He is] due
to not executing required penance.
12. The Lord appeared in the mortal world by His internal potency, yoga-maya. He came in His eternal
form, which is just suitable for His pastimes. These pastimes were wonderful for everyone, even for
those proud of their own opulence, including the Lord Himself in His form as the Lord of Vaikuntha.
Thus His [Sri Krsna's] transcendental body is the ornament of all ornaments.
13. All the demigods from the upper, lower and middle universal planetary systems assembled at the
altar of the rajasuya sacrifice performed by Maharaja Yudhisthira. After seeing the beautiful bodily
features of Lord Krsna, they all contemplated that He was the ultimate dexterous creation of Brahma,
the creator of human beings.
14. The damsels of Vraja, after pastimes of laughter, humor and exchanges of glances, were anguished
when Krsna left them. They used to follow Him with their eyes, and thus they sat down with stunned
intelligence and could not finish their household duties.
15. The Personality of Godhead, the all-compassionate controller of both the spiritual and material
creations, is unborn, but when there is friction between His peaceful devotees and persons who are in
the material modes of nature, He takes birth just like fire, accompanied by the mahat-tattva.
16. When I think of Lord Krsna--how He was born in the prison house of Vasudeva although He is
unborn, how He went away from His father's protection to Vraja and lived there incognito out of fear of
the enemy, and how, although unlimitedly powerful, He fled from Mathura in fear--all these bewildering
incidents give me distress.
17. Lord Krsna begged pardon from His parents for Their [Krsna's and Balarama's] inability to serve
their feet, due to being away from home because of great fear of Kamsa. He said, "O mother, O father,
please excuse Us for this inability." All this behavior of the Lord gives me pain at heart.
18. Who, after smelling the dust of His lotus feet even once, could ever forget it? Simply by expanding
the leaves of His eyebrows, Krsna has given the deathblow to those who were burdening the earth.
19. You have personally seen how the King of Cedi [Sisupala] achieved success in yoga practice,
although he hated Lord Krsna. Even the actual yogis aspire after such success with great interest by
performance of their various practices. Who can tolerate separation from Him?
20. Certainly others who were fighters on the Battlefield of Kuruksetra were purified by the onslaught of
Arjuna's arrows, and while seeing the lotuslike face of Krsna, so pleasing to the eyes, they achieved the
abode of the Lord.
21. Lord Sri Krsna is the Lord of all kinds of threes and is independently supreme by achievement of all
kinds of fortune. He is worshiped by the eternal maintainers of the creation, who offer Him the
paraphernalia of worship by touching their millions of helmets to His feet.
22. Therefore, O Vidura, does it not pain us, His servitors, when we remember that He [Lord Krsna]
used to stand before King Ugrasena, who was sitting on the royal throne, and used to submit
explanations before him, saying, "O My lord, please let it be known to you"?
23. Alas, how shall I take shelter of one more merciful than He who granted the position of mother to a
she-demon [Putana] although she was unfaithful and she prepared deadly poison to be sucked from her
breast?
24. I consider the demons, who are inimical toward the Lord, to be more than the devotees because
while fighting with the Lord, absorbed in thoughts of enmity, they are able to see the Lord carried on the
shoulder of Garuda, the son of Tarksya [Kasyapa], and carrying the wheel weapon in His hand.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 69
25. The Personality of Godhead, Lord Sri Krsna, being prayed to by Brahma to bring welfare to the
earth, was begotten by Vasudeva in the womb of his wife Devaki in the prison of the King of Bhoja.
26. Thereafter, His father, being afraid of Kamsa, brought Him to the cow pastures of Maharaja Nanda,
and there He lived for eleven years like a covered flame with His elder brother, Baladeva.
27. In His childhood, the Almighty Lord was surrounded by cowherd boys and calves, and thus He
traveled on the shore of the Yamuna River, through gardens densely covered with trees and filled with
vibrations of chirping birds.
28. When the Lord displayed His activities just suitable for childhood, He was visible only to the
residents of Vrndavana. Sometimes He would cry and sometimes laugh, just like a child, and while so
doing He would appear like a lion cub.
29. While herding the very beautiful bulls, the Lord, who was the reservoir of all opulence and fortune,
used to blow His flute, and thus He enlivened His faithful followers, the cowherd boys.
30. The great wizards who were able to assume any form were engaged by the King of Bhoja, Kamsa,
to kill Krsna, but in the course of His pastimes the Lord killed them as easily as a child breaks dolls.
31. The inhabitants of Vrndavana were perplexed by great difficulties because a certain portion of the
Yamuna was poisoned by the chief of the reptiles [Kaliya]. The Lord chastised the snake-king within the
water and drove him away, and after coming out of the river, He caused the cows to drink the water and
proved that the water was again in its natural state.
32. The Supreme Lord, Krsna, desired to utilize the opulent financial strength of Maharaja Nanda for
worship of the cows, and also He wanted to give a lesson to Indra, the King of heaven. Thus He
advised His father to perform worship of go, or the pasturing land and the cows, with the help of learned
brahmanas.
33. O sober Vidura, King Indra, his honor having been insulted, poured water incessantly on
Vrndavana, and thus the inhabitants of Vraja, the land of cows, were greatly distressed. But the
compassionate Lord Krsna saved them from danger with His pastime umbrella, the Govardhana Hill.
34. In the third season of the year, the Lord enjoyed as the central beauty of the assembly of women by
attracting them with His pleasing songs in an autumn night brightened by moonshine.
Chapter Three Remembrance of Lord Krsna
1. Sri Uddhava said: Thereafter Lord Krsna went to Mathura City with Sri Baladeva, and to please Their
parents They dragged Kamsa, the leader of public enemies, down from his throne and killed him,
pulling him along the ground with great strength.
2. The Lord learned all the Vedas with their different branches simply by hearing them once from His
teacher, Sandipani Muni, whom He rewarded by bringing back his dead son from the region of
Yamaloka.
3. Attracted by the beauty and fortune of Rukmini, the daughter of King Bhismaka, many great princes
and kings assembled to marry her. But Lord Krsna, stepping over the other hopeful candidates, carried
her away as His own share, as Garuda carried away nectar.
4. By subduing seven bulls whose noses were not pierced, the Lord achieved the hand of Princess
Nagnijiti in the open competition to select her bridegroom. Although the Lord was victorious, His
competitors asked the hand of the princess, and thus there was a fight. Well equipped with weapons,
the Lord killed or wounded all of them, but He was not hurt Himself.
5. Just to please His dear wife, the Lord brought back the parijata tree from heaven, just as an ordinary
husband would do. But Indra, the King of heaven, induced by his wives (henpecked as he was), ran
after the Lord with full force to fight Him.
6. Narakasura, the son of Dharitri, the earth, tried to grasp the whole sky, and for this he was killed by
the Lord in a fight. His mother then prayed to the Lord. This led to the return of the kingdom to the son
of Narakasura, and thus the Lord entered the house of the demon.
7. There in the house of the demon, all the princesses kidnapped by Narakasura at once became alert
upon seeing the Lord, the friend of the distressed. They looked upon Him with eagerness, joy and
shyness and offered to be His wives.
8. All those princesses were lodged in different apartments, and the Lord simultaneously assumed
different bodily expansions exactly matching each and every princess. He accepted their hands in
perfect rituals by His internal potency.
9. Just to expand Himself according to His transcendental features, the Lord begot in each and every
one of them ten offspring with exactly His own qualities.
10. Kalayavana, the King of Magadha and Salva attacked the city of Mathura, but when the city was
encircled by their soldiers, the Lord refrained from killing them personally, just to show the power of His
own men.
11. Of kings like Sambara, Dvivida, Bana, Mura, Balvala and many other demons, such as Dantavakra,
some He killed Himself, and some He caused to be killed by others [Sri Baladeva, etc.].
70 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. Then, O Vidura, the Lord caused all the kings, both the enemies and those on the side of your
fighting nephews, to be killed in the Battle of Kuruksetra. All those kings were so great and strong that
the earth seemed to shake as they traversed the warfield.
13. Duryodhana was bereft of his fortune and duration of life because of the intricacy of ill advice given
by Karna, Duhsasana and Saubala. When he lay on the ground with his followers, his thighs broken
although he was powerful, the Lord was not happy to see the scene.
14. [After the end of the Battle of Kuruksetra, the Lord said:] The abatement of the earth's great burden,
eighteen aksauhinis, has now been effected with the help of Drona, Bhisma, Arjuna and Bhima. But
what is this? There is still the great strength of the Yadu dynasty, born of Myself, which may be a more
unbearable burden.
15. When they quarrel among themselves, influenced by intoxication, with their eyes red like copper
because of drinking [madhu], then only will they disappear; otherwise, it will not be possible. On My
disappearance, this incident will take place.
16. Lord Sri Krsna, thus thinking to Himself, established Maharaja Yudhisthira in the position of
supreme control of the world in order to show the ideal of administration on the path of piety.
17. The embryo of Puru's descendant begotten by the great hero Abhimanyu in the womb of Uttara, his
wife, was burnt by the weapon of the son of Drona, but later he was again protected by the Lord.
18. The Supreme Lord induced the son of Dharma to perform three horse sacrifices, and Maharaja
Yudhisthira, constantly following Krsna, the Personality of Godhead, protected and enjoyed the earth,
assisted by his younger brothers.
19. Simultaneously, the Personality of Godhead enjoyed life in the city of Dvaraka, strictly in conformity
with the Vedic customs of society. He was situated in detachment and knowledge, as enunciated by the
Sankhya system of philosophy.
20. He was there in His transcendental body, the residence of the goddess of fortune, with His usual
gentle and sweetly smiling face, His nectarean words and His flawless character.
21. The Lord enjoyed His pastimes, both in this world and in other worlds [higher planets], specifically in
the association of the Yadu dynasty. At leisure hours offered by night, He enjoyed the friendship of
conjugal love with women.
22. The Lord was thus engaged in household life for many, many years, but at last His detachment from
ephemeral sex life was fully manifested.
23. Every living entity is controlled by a supernatural force, and thus his sense enjoyment is also under
the control of that supernatural force. No one, therefore, can put his faith in Lord Krsna's transcendental
sense activities but one who has become a devotee of the Lord by rendering devotional service.
24. Once upon a time, great sages were made angry by the sporting activities of the princely
descendants of the Yadu and Bhoja dynasties, and thus, as desired by the Lord, the sages cursed
them.
25. A few months passed, and then, bewildered by Krsna, all the descendants of Vrsni, Bhoja and
Andhaka who were incarnations of demigods went to Prabhasa, while those who were eternal devotees
of the Lord did not leave but remained in Dvaraka.
26. After arriving there, all of them took bath, and with the water of this place of pilgrimage they offered
their respects to the forefathers, demigods and great sages and thus satisfied them. They gave cows to
the brahmanas in royal charity.
27. The brahmanas were not only given well-fed cows in charity, but also gold, gold coins, bedding,
clothing, animal-skin seats, blankets, horses, elephants, girls and sufficient land for maintenance.
28. Thereafter they offered the brahmanas highly delicious foodstuffs first offered to the Personality of
Godhead and offered their respectful obeisances by touching their heads to the ground. They lived
perfectly by protecting the cows and the brahmanas.
Chapter Four Vidura Approaches Maitreya
1. Sri Uddhava said: Thereafter, all of them [the descendants of Vrsni and Bhoja], being permitted by
the brahmanas, partook of the remnants of prasada and also drank liquor made of rice. By drinking they
all became delirious, and, bereft of knowledge, they touched the cores of each other's hearts with harsh
words.
2. As by the friction of bamboos destruction takes place, so also, at sunset, by the interaction of the
faults of intoxication, all their minds became unbalanced, and destruction took place.
3. The Personality of Godhead, Lord Sri Krsna, after foreseeing the end [of His family] by His internal
potency, went to the bank of the River Sarasvati, sipped water, and sat down underneath a tree.
4. The Lord is the vanquisher of the distresses of one who is surrendered unto Him. Thus He who
desired to destroy His family told me previously to go to Badarikasrama.
5. Yet in spite of my knowing His desire [to destroy the dynasty], O Arindama [Vidura], I followed Him
because it was impossible for me to bear separation from the lotus feet of the master.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 71
6. Thus following, I saw my patron and master [Lord Sri Krsna] sitting alone and deeply thinking, taking
shelter on the bank of the River Sarasvati although He is the shelter of the goddess of fortune.
7. The Lord's body is blackish, but is eternal, full of bliss and knowledge, and very, very beautiful. His
eyes are always peaceful, and they are reddish like the rising morning sun. I could immediately
recognize Him as the Supreme Personality of Godhead by His four hands, different symbolic
representations, and yellow silk garments.
8. The Lord was sitting, taking rest against a young banyan tree, with His right lotus foot on His left
thigh, and although He had left all household comforts, He looked quite cheerful in that posture.
9. At that time, after traveling in many parts of the world, Maitreya, a great devotee of the Lord and a
friend and well-wisher of the great sage Krsna-dvaipayana Vyasa, reached that spot out of his own
perfect accord.
10. Maitreya Muni was greatly attached to Him [the Lord], and he was listening in a pleasing attitude,
with his shoulder lowered. With a smile and a particular glance upon me, having allowed me to rest, the
Lord spoke as follows.
11. O Vasu, I know from within your mind what you desired in the days of yore when the Vasus and
other demigods responsible for expanding the universal affairs performed sacrifices. You particularly
desired to achieve My association. This is very difficult to obtain for others, but I award it unto you.
12. O honest one, your present life is the last and the supermost because in this term of life you have
been awarded My ultimate favor. Now you can go to My transcendental abode, Vaikuntha, by leaving
this universe of conditioned living entities. Your visit to Me in this lonely place because of your pure and
unflinching devotional service is a great boon for you.
13. O Uddhava, in the lotus millennium in the days of yore, at the beginning of the creation, I spoke unto
Brahma, who is situated on the lotus that grows out of My navel, about My transcendental glories, which
the great sages describe as Srimad-Bhagavatam.
14. Uddhava said: O Vidura, when I was thus favored at every moment by the Supreme Personality of
Godhead and addressed by Him with great affection, my words failed in tears, and the hairs on my body
erupted. After smearing my tears, I, with folded hands, spoke like this.
15. O my Lord, devotees who engage in the transcendental loving service of Your lotus feet have no
difficulty in achieving anything within the realm of the four principles of religiosity, economic
development, sense gratification and liberation. But, O great one, as far as I am concerned, I have
preferred only to engage in the loving service of Your lotus feet.
16. My Lord, even the learned sages become disturbed in their intelligence when they see that Your
Greatness engages in fruitive work although You are free from all desires, that You take birth although
You are unborn, that You flee out of fear of the enemy and take shelter in a fort although You are the
controller of invincible time, and that You enjoy householder life surrounded by many women although
You enjoy in Your Self.
17. O my Lord, Your eternal Self is never divided by the influence of time, and there is no limitation to
Your perfect knowledge. Thus You were sufficiently able to consult with Yourself, yet You called upon
me for consultation, as if bewildered, although You are never bewildered. And this act of Yours
bewilders me.
18. My Lord, kindly explain to us, if You think us competent to receive it, that transcendental knowledge
which gives enlightenment about Yourself and which You explained before to Brahmaji.
19. When I thus expressed my heartfelt desires unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the lotus-
eyed Lord instructed me about His transcendental situation.
20. I have studied the path of understanding self-knowledge from my spiritual master, the Personality of
Godhead, and thus after circumambulating Him I have come to this place, very much aggrieved due to
separation.
21. My dear Vidura, now I am mad for want of the pleasure of seeing Him, and just to mitigate this I am
now proceeding to Badarikasrama in the Himalayas for association, as I have been instructed by Him.
22. There in Badarikasrama the Personality of Godhead, in His incarnation as the sages Nara and
Narayana, has been undergoing great penance since time immemorial for the welfare of all amiable
living entities.
23. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: After hearing from Uddhava all about the annihilation of his friends and
relatives, the learned Vidura pacified his overwhelming bereavement by dint of his transcendental
knowledge.
24. While Uddhava, the chief and most confidential amongst the devotees of the Lord, was going away,
Vidura, in affection and confidence, questioned him.
25. Vidura said: O Uddhava, because the servants of Visnu, the Lord, wander in the interest of serving
others, it is quite fit that you kindly describe the self-knowledge with which you have been enlightened
by the Lord Himself.
72 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
26. Sri Uddhava said: You may take lessons from the great learned sage Maitreya, who is nearby and
who is worshipable for reception of transcendental knowledge. He was directly instructed by the
Personality of Godhead while He was about to quit this mortal world.
27. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, after thus discussing with Vidura the transcendental name, fame,
qualities, etc., on the bank of the Yamuna, Uddhava was overwhelmed with great affliction. He passed
the night as if it were a moment, and thereafter he went away.
28. The King inquired: At the end of the pastimes of the Lord of the three worlds, Sri Krsna, and after
the disappearance of the members of the Vrsni and Bhoja dynasties, who were the best of the great
commanders, why did Uddhava alone remain?
29. Sukadeva Gosvami replied: My dear King, the cursing of the brahmanas was only a plea, but the
actual fact was the supreme desire of the Lord. He wanted to disappear from the face of the earth after
dispatching His excessively numerous family members. He thought to Himself as follows.
30. Now I shall leave the vision of this mundane world, and I see that Uddhava, the foremost of My
devotees, is the only one who can be directly entrusted with knowledge about Me.
31. Uddhava is not inferior to Me in any way because he is never affected by the modes of material
nature. Therefore he may remain in this world in order to disseminate specific knowledge of the
Personality of Godhead.
32. Sukadeva Gosvami informed the King that Uddhava, being thus instructed by the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who is the source of all Vedic knowledge and the spiritual master of the three
worlds, reached the pilgrimage site of Badarikasrama and engaged himself there in trance to satisfy the
Lord.
33. Vidura also heard from Uddhava about the appearance and disappearance of Lord Krsna, the
Supersoul, in the mortal world, which is a subject matter sought after with great perseverance by the
great sages.
34. The Lord's glorious acts and His acceptance of various transcendental forms for the performance of
extraordinary pastimes in the mortal world are very difficult for anyone other than His devotees to
understand, and for the beasts they are simply a mental disturbance.
35. Understanding that he was remembered by Lord Krsna [while quitting this world], Vidura began to
cry loudly, overwhelmed by the ecstasy of love.
36. After passing a few days on the bank of the River Yamuna, Vidura, the self-realized soul, reached
the bank of the Ganges, where the great sage Maitreya was situated.
Chapter Five Vidura's Talks with Maitreya
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Vidura, the best amongst the Kuru dynasty, who was perfect in devotional
service to the Lord, thus reached the source of the celestial Ganges River [Hardwar], where Maitreya,
the great, fathomless learned sage of the world, was seated. Vidura, who was perfect in gentleness and
satisfied in transcendence, inquired from him.
2. Vidura said: O great sage, everyone in this world engages in fruitive activities to attain happiness, but
one finds neither satiation nor the mitigation of distress. On the contrary, one is only aggravated by such
activities. Please, therefore, give us directions on how one should live for real happiness.
3. O my lord, great philanthropic souls travel on the earth on behalf of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead to show compassion to the fallen souls who are averse to the sense of subordination to the
Lord.
4. Therefore, O great sage, please give me instruction on the transcendental devotional service of the
Lord, so that He who is situated in the heart of everyone can be pleased to impart, from within,
knowledge of the Absolute Truth in terms of the ancient Vedic principles delivered only to those who are
purified by the process of devotional service.
5. O great sage, kindly narrate how the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the independent,
desireless Lord of the three worlds and the controller of all energies, accepts incarnations and creates
the cosmic manifestation with perfectly arranged regulative principles for its maintenance.
6. He lies down on His own heart spread in the form of the sky, and thus placing the whole creation in
that space, He expands Himself into many living entities, which are manifested as different species of
life. He does not have to endeavor for His maintenance, because He is the master of all mystic powers
and the proprietor of everything. Thus He is distinct from the living entities.
7. You may narrate also about the auspicious characteristics of the Lord in His different incarnations for
the welfare of the twice-born, the cows and the demigods. Our minds are never satisfied completely,
although we continuously hear of His transcendental activities.
8. The Supreme King of all kings has created different planets and places of habitation where living
entities are situated in terms of the modes of nature and work, and He has created their different kings
and rulers.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 73
9. O chief amongst the brahmanas, please also describe how Narayana, the creator of the universe and
the self-sufficient Lord, has differently created the natures, activities, forms, features and names of the
different living creatures.
10. O my lord, I have repeatedly heard about these higher and lower statuses of human society from
the mouth of Vyasadeva, and I am quite satiated with all these lesser subject matters and their
happiness. They have not satisfied me with the nectar of topics about Krsna.
11. Who in human society can be satisfied without hearing sufficient talk of the Lord, whose lotus feet
are the sum total of all places of pilgrimage and who is worshiped by great sages and devotees? Such
topics can cut off one's bondage to family affection simply by entering the holes of one's ears.
12. Your friend the great sage Krsna-dvaipayana Vyasa has already described the transcendental
qualities of the Lord in his great work the Mahabharata. But the whole idea is to draw the attention of
the mass of people to krsna-katha [Bhagavad-gita] through their strong affinity for hearing mundane
topics.
13. For one who is anxious to engage constantly in hearing such topics, krsna-katha gradually
increases his indifference towards all other things. Such constant remembrance of the lotus feet of Lord
Krsna by the devotee who has achieved transcendental bliss vanquishes all his miseries without delay.
14. O sage, persons who because of their sinful activities are averse to the topics of Transcendence
and thus ignorant of the purpose of the Mahabharata [Bhagavad-gita] are pitied by the pitiable. I also
pity them because I see how their duration of life is spoiled by eternal time while they involve
themselves in presentations of philosophical speculation, theoretical ultimate goals of life, and different
modes of ritual.
15. O Maitreya, O friend of the distressed, the glories of the Supreme Lord can alone do good for
people all over the world. Therefore, just as bees collect honey from flowers, kindly describe the
essence of all topics--the topics of the Lord.
16. Kindly chant all those superhuman transcendental activities of the supreme controller, the
Personality of Godhead, who accepted incarnations fully equipped with all potency for the full
manifestation and maintenance of the cosmic creation.
17. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The great sage Maitreya Muni, after honoring Vidura very greatly, began
to speak, at Vidura's request, for the greatest welfare of all people.
18. Sri Maitreya said: O Vidura, all glory unto you. You have inquired from me of the greatest of all
goodness, and thus you have shown your mercy both to the world and to me because your mind is
always absorbed in thoughts of the Transcendence.
19. O Vidura, it is not at all wonderful that you have so accepted the Lord without deviation of thought,
for you were born from the semen of Vyasadeva.
20. I know that you are now Vidura due to the cursing of Mandavya Muni and that formerly you were
King Yamaraja, the great controller of living entities after their death. You were begotten by the son of
Satyavati, Vyasadeva, in the kept wife of his brother.
21. Your good self is one of the eternal associates of the Supreme Personality of Godhead for whose
sake the Lord, while going back to His abode, left instructions with me.
22. I shall therefore describe to you the pastimes by which the Personality of Godhead extends His
transcendental potency for the creation, maintenance and dissolution of the cosmic world as they occur
one after another.
23. The Personality of Godhead, the master of all living entities, existed prior to the creation as one
without a second. It is by His will only that creation is made possible and again everything merges in
Him. This Supreme Self is symptomized by different names.
24. The Lord, the undisputed proprietor of everything, was the only seer. The cosmic manifestation was
not present at that time, and thus He felt imperfect without His plenary and separated parts and parcels.
The material energy was dormant, whereas the internal potency was manifested.
25. The Lord is the seer, and the external energy, which is seen, works as both cause and effect in the
cosmic manifestation. O greatly fortunate Vidura, this external energy is known as maya or illusion, and
through her agency only is the entire material manifestation made possible.
26. The Supreme Living Being in His feature as the transcendental purusa incarnation, who is the
Lord's plenary expansion, impregnates the material nature of three modes, and thus by the influence of
eternal time the living entities appear.
27. Thereafter, influenced by the interactions of eternal time, the supreme sum total of matter called the
mahat-tattva became manifested, and in this mahat-tattva the unalloyed goodness, the Supreme Lord,
sowed the seeds of universal manifestation out of His own body.
28. Thereafter the mahat-tattva differentiated itself into many different forms as the reservoir of the
would-be entities. The mahat-tattva is chiefly in the mode of ignorance, and it generates the false ego. It
74 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
is a plenary expansion of the Personality of Godhead, with full consciousness of creative principles and
time for fructification.
29. Mahat-tattva, or the great causal truth, transforms into false ego, which is manifested in three
phases--cause, effect and the doer. All such activities are on the mental plane and are based on the
material elements, gross senses and mental speculation. The false ego is represented in three different
modes--goodness, passion and ignorance.
30. The false ego is transformed into mind by interaction with the mode of goodness. All the demigods
who control the phenomenal world are also products of the same principle, namely the interaction of
false ego and the mode of goodness.
31. The senses are certainly products of the mode of passion in false ego, and therefore philosophical
speculative knowledge and fruitive activities are predominantly products of the mode of passion.
32. The sky is a product of sound, and sound is the transformation of egoistic passion. In other words,
the sky is the symbolic representation of the Supreme Soul.
33. Thereafter the Personality of Godhead glanced over the sky, partly mixed with eternal time and
external energy, and thus developed the touch sensation, from which the air in the sky was produced.
34. Thereafter the extremely powerful air, interacting with the sky, generated the form of sense
perception, and the perception of form transformed into electricity, the light to see the world.
35. When electricity was surcharged in the air and was glanced over by the Supreme, at that time, by a
mixture of eternal time and external energy, there occurred the creation of water and taste.
36. Thereafter the water produced from electricity was glanced over by the Supreme Personality of
Godhead and mixed with eternal time and external energy. Thus it was transformed into the earth,
which is qualified primarily by smell.
37. O gentle one, of all the physical elements, beginning from the sky down to the earth, all the inferior
and superior qualities are due only to the final touch of the glance of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
38. The controlling deities of all the above-mentioned physical elements are empowered expansions of
Lord Visnu. They are embodied by eternal time under the external energy, and they are His parts and
parcels. Because they were entrusted with different functions of universal duties and were unable to
perform them, they offered fascinating prayers to the Lord as follows.
39. The demigods said: O Lord, Your lotus feet are like an umbrella for the surrendered souls,
protecting them from all the miseries of material existence. All the sages under that shelter throw off all
material miseries. We therefore offer our respectful obeisances unto Your lotus feet.
40. O Father, O Lord, O Personality of Godhead, the living entities in the material world can never have
any happiness because they are overwhelmed by the three kinds of miseries. Therefore they take
shelter of the shade of Your lotus feet, which are full of knowledge, and we also thus take shelter of
them.
41. The lotus feet of the Lord are by themselves the shelter of all places of pilgrimage. The great clear-
minded sages, carried by the wings of the Vedas, always search after the nest of Your lotuslike face.
Some of them surrender to Your lotus feet at every step by taking shelter of the best of rivers [the
Ganges], which can deliver one from all sinful reactions.
42. Simply by hearing about Your lotus feet with eagerness and devotion and by meditating upon them
within the heart, one at once becomes enlightened with knowledge, and on the strength of detachment
one becomes pacified. We must therefore take shelter of the sanctuary of Your lotus feet.
43. O Lord, You assume incarnations for the creation, maintenance and dissolution of the cosmic
manifestation, and therefore we all take shelter of Your lotus feet because they always award
remembrance and courage to Your devotees.
44. O Lord, persons who are entangled by undesirable eagerness for the temporary body and kinsmen,
and who are bound by thoughts of "mine" and "I," are unable to see Your lotus feet, although Your lotus
feet are situated within their own bodies. But let us take shelter of Your lotus feet.
45. O great Supreme Lord, offensive persons whose internal vision has been too affected by external
materialistic activities cannot see Your lotus feet, but they are seen by Your pure devotees, whose one
and only aim is to transcendentally enjoy Your activities.
46. O Lord, persons who, because of their serious attitude, attain the stage of enlightened devotional
service achieve the complete meaning of renunciation and knowledge and attain the Vaikunthaloka in
the spiritual sky simply by drinking the nectar of Your topics.
47. Others, who are pacified by means of transcendental self-realization and have conquered over the
modes of nature by dint of strong power and knowledge, also enter into You, but for them there is much
pain, whereas the devotee simply discharges devotional service and thus feels no such pain.
48. O Original Person, we are therefore but Yours only. Although we are Your creatures, we are born
one after another under the influence of the three modes of nature, and for this reason we are
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 75
separated in action. Therefore, after the creation we could not act concertedly for Your transcendental
pleasure.
49. O unborn one, please enlighten us regarding the ways and means by which we can offer You all
enjoyable grains and commodities so that both we and all other living entities in this world can maintain
ourselves without disturbance and can easily accumulate the necessities of life both for You and for
ourselves.
50. You are the original personal founder of all the demigods and the orders of different gradations, yet
You are the oldest and are unchanged. O Lord, You have no source or superior. You have impregnated
the external energy with the semen of the total living entities, yet You are unborn.
51. O Supreme Self, please give us, who are created in the beginning from the mahat-tattva, the total
cosmic energy, Your kind directions on how we shall act. Kindly award us Your perfect knowledge and
potency so that we can render You service in the different departments of subsequent creation.
Chapter Six Creation of the Universal Form
1. The Rsi Maitreya said: The Lord thus heard about the suspension of the progressive creative
functions of the universe due to the noncombination of His potencies, such as the mahat-tattva.
2. The Supreme Powerful Lord then simultaneously entered into the twenty-three elements with the
goddess Kali, His external energy, who alone amalgamates all the different elements.
3. Thus when the Personality of Godhead entered into the elements by His energy, all the living entities
were enlivened into different activities, just as one is engaged in his work after awakening from sleep.
4. When the twenty-three principal elements were set in action by the will of the Supreme, the gigantic
universal form, or the visvarupa body of the Lord, came into existence.
5. As the Lord, in His plenary portion, entered into the elements of the universal creation, they
transformed into the gigantic form in which all the planetary systems and all movable and immovable
creations rest.
6. The gigantic virat-purusa, known as Hiranmaya, lived for one thousand celestial years on the water of
the universe, and all the living entities lay with Him.
7. The total energy of the mahat-tattva, in the form of the gigantic virat-rupa, divided Himself by Himself
into the consciousness of the living entities, the life of activity, and self-identification, which are
subdivided into one, ten and three respectively.
8. The gigantic universal form of the Supreme Lord is the first incarnation and plenary portion of the
Supersoul. He is the Self of an unlimited number of living entities, and in Him rests the aggregate
creation, which thus flourishes.
9. The gigantic universal form is represented by three, ten and one in the sense that He is the body and
the mind and the senses, He is the dynamic force for all movements by ten kinds of life energy, and He
is the one heart where life energy is generated.
10. The Supreme Lord is the Supersoul of all the demigods entrusted with the task of constructing the
cosmic manifestation. Being thus prayed to [by the demigods], He thought to Himself and thus
manifested the gigantic form for their understanding.
11. Maitreya said: You may now hear from me how the Supreme Lord separated Himself into the
diverse forms of the demigods after the manifestation of the gigantic universal form.
12. Agni, or heat, separated from His mouth, and all the directors of material affairs entered into it in
their respective positions. By that energy the living entity expresses himself in words.
13. When the palate of the gigantic form was separately manifested, Varuna, the director of air in the
planetary systems, entered therein, and thus the living entity has the facility to taste everything with his
tongue.
14. When the Lord's two nostrils separately manifested themselves, the dual Asvini-kumaras entered
them in their proper positions, and because of this the living entities can smell the aromas of everything.
15. Thereafter, the two eyes of the gigantic form of the Lord were separately manifested. The sun, the
director of light, entered them with the partial representation of eyesight, and thus the living entities can
have vision of forms.
16. When there was a manifestation of skin separated from the gigantic form, Anila, the deity directing
the wind, entered with partial touch, and thus the living entities can realize tactile knowledge.
17. When the ears of the gigantic form became manifested, all the controlling deities of the directions
entered into them with the hearing principles, by which all the living entities hear and take advantage of
sound.
18. When there was a separate manifestation of skin, the controlling deities of sensations and their
different parts entered into it, and thus the living entities feel itching and happiness due to touch.
19. When the genitals of the gigantic form separately became manifest, then Prajapati, the original living
creature, entered into them with his partial semen, and thus the living entities can enjoy sex pleasure.
76 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
20. The evacuating channel separately became manifest, and the director named Mitra entered into it
with partial organs of evacuation. Thus the living entities are able to pass stool and urine.
21. Thereafter, when the hands of the gigantic form separately became manifested, Indra, the ruler of
the heavenly planets, entered into them, and thus the living entity is able to transact business for his
livelihood.
22. Thereafter the legs of the gigantic form separately became manifest, and the demigod named Visnu
[not the Personality of Godhead] entered with partial movement. This helps the living entity move to his
destination.
23. When the intelligence of the gigantic form separately became manifest, Brahma, the lord of the
Vedas, entered into it with the partial power of understanding, and thus an object of understanding is
experienced by the living entities.
24. After that, the heart of the gigantic form separately manifested itself, and into it entered the moon
demigod with partial mental activity. Thus the living entity can conduct his mental speculations.
25. Thereafter the materialistic ego of the gigantic form separately manifested itself, and into it entered
Rudra, the controller of false ego, with his own partial activities, by which the living entity transacts his
objective actions.
26. Thereafter, when His consciousness separately manifested itself, the total energy, mahat-tattva,
entered with His conscious part. Thus the living entity is able to conceive specific knowledge.
27. Thereafter, from the head of the gigantic form, the heavenly planets were manifested, and from His
legs the earthly planets and from His abdomen the sky separately manifested themselves. Within them
the demigods and others also were manifested in terms of the modes of material nature.
28. The demigods, qualified by the superexcellent quality of the mode of goodness, are situated in the
heavenly planets, whereas the human beings, because of their nature in the mode of passion, live on
the earth in company with their subordinates.
29. Living entities who are associates of Rudra develop in the third mode of material nature, or
ignorance. They are situated in the sky between the earthly planets and the heavenly planets.
30. O chief of the Kuru dynasty, the Vedic wisdom became manifested from the mouth of the virat, the
gigantic form. Those who are inclined to this Vedic knowledge are called branmnas, and they are the
natural teachers and spiritual masters of all the orders of society.
31. Thereafter the power of protection was generated from the arms of the gigantic virat form, and in
relation to such power the ksatriyas also came into existence by following the ksatriya principle of
protecting society from the disturbance of thieves and miscreants.
32. The means of livelihood of all persons, namely production of grains and their distribution to the
prajas, was generated from the thighs of the Lord's gigantic form. The mercantile men who take charge
of such execution are called vaisyas.
33. Thereafter, service was manifested from the legs of the Personality of Godhead for the sake of
perfecting the religious function. Situated on the legs are the sudras, who satisfy the Lord by service.
34. All these different social divisions are born, with their occupational duties and living conditions, from
the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Thus for unconditional life and self-realization one has to worship
the Supreme Lord under the direction of the spiritual master.
35. O Vidura, who can estimate or measure the transcendental time, work and potency of the gigantic
form manifested by the internal potency of the Supreme Personality of Godhead?
36. In spite of my inability, whatever I have been able to hear [from the spiritual master] and whatever I
could assimilate I am now describing in glorification of the Lord by pure speech, for otherwise my power
of speaking would remain unchaste.
37. The highest perfectional gain of humanity is to engage in discussions of the activities and glories of
the Pious Actor. Such activities are so nicely arranged in writing by the greatly learned sages that the
actual purpose of the ear is served just by being near them.
38. O my son, the original poet, Brahma, after mature meditation for one thousand celestial years, could
know only that the glories of the Supreme Soul are inconceivable.
39. The wonderful potency of the Supreme Personality of Godhead is bewildering even to the jugglers.
That potential power is unknown even to the self-sufficient Lord, so it is certainly unknown to others.
40. Words, mind and ego, with their respective controlling demigods, have failed to achieve success in
knowing the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore, we simply have to offer our respectful
obeisances unto Him as a matter of sanity.
Chapter Seven Further Inquires by Vidura
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, while Maitreya, the great sage, was thus speaking, Vidura, the
learned son of Dvaipayana Vyasa, expressed a request in a pleasing manner by asking this question.
2. Sri Vidura said: O great brahmana, since the Supreme Personality of Godhead is the complete
spiritual whole and is unchangeable, how is He connected with the material modes of nature and their
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 77
activities? If this is His pastime, how do the activities of the unchangeable take place and exhibit
qualities without the modes of nature?
3. Boys are enthusiastic to play with other boys or with various diversions because they are encouraged
by desire. But there is no possibility of such desire for the Lord because He is self-satisfied and
detached from everything at all times.
4. By His self-sheltered potency of the three modes of material nature, the Lord has caused the creation
of this universe. By her He maintains the creation and conversely dissolves it, again and again.
5. The pure soul is pure consciousness and is never out of consciousness, either due to circumstances,
time, situations, dreams or other causes. How then does he become engaged in nescience?
6. The Lord, as the Supersoul, is situated in every living being's heart. Why then do the living entities'
activities result in misfortune and misery?
7. O great and learned one, my mind is greatly illusioned by the distress of this nescience, and I
therefore request you to clear it up.
8. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, Maitreya, being thus agitated by the inquisitive Vidura, at first
seemed astonished, but then he replied to him without hesitation, since he was fully God conscious.
9. Sri Maitreya said: Certain conditioned souls put forward the theory that the Supreme Brahman, or the
Personality of Godhead, is overcome by illusion, or maya, and at the same time they maintain that He is
unconditioned. This is against all logic.
10. The living entity is in distress regarding his self-identity. He has no factual background, like a man
who dreams that he sees his head cut off.
11. As the moon reflected on water appears to the seer to tremble due to being associated with the
quality of the water, so the self associated with matter appears to be qualified as matter.
12. But that misconception of self-identity can be diminished gradually by the mercy of the Personality
of Godhead, Vasudeva, through the process of devotional service to the Lord in the mode of
detachment.
13. When the senses are satisfied in the seer-Supersoul, the Personality of Godhead, and merge in
Him, all miseries are completely vanquished, as after a sound sleep.
14. Simply by chanting and hearing of the transcendental name, form, etc., of the Personality of
Godhead, Sri Krsna, one can achieve the cessation of unlimited miserable conditions. Therefore what
to speak of those who have attained attraction for serving the flavor of the dust of the Lord's lotus feet?
15. Vidura said: O powerful sage, my lord, all my doubts about the Supreme Personality of Godhead
and the living entities have now been removed by your convincing words. My mind is now perfectly
entering into them.
16. O learned sage, your explanations are very good, as they should be. Disturbances to the
conditioned soul have no other basis than the movement of the external energy of the Lord.
17. Both the lowest of fools and he who is transcendental to all intelligence enjoy happiness, whereas
persons between them suffer the material pangs.
18. But, my dear sir, I am obliged to you because now I can understand that this material manifestation
is without substance, although it appears real. I am confident that by serving your feet it will be possible
for me to give up the false idea.
19. By serving the feet of the spiritual master, one is enabled to develop transcendental ecstasy in the
service of the Personality of Godhead, who is the unchangeable enemy of the Madhu demon and
whose service vanquishes one's material distresses.
20. Persons whose austerity is meager can hardly obtain the service of the pure devotees who are
progressing on the path back to the kingdom of Godhead, the Vaikunthas. Pure devotees engage one
hundred percent in glorifying the Supreme Lord, who is the Lord of the demigods and the controller of
all living entities.
21. After creating the total material energy, the mahat-tattva, and thereby manifesting the gigantic
universal form with senses and sense organs, the Supreme Lord entered within it.
22. The purusa incarnation lying on the Causal Ocean is called the original purusa in the material
creations, and in His virat form, in whom all the planets and their inhabitants live, He has many
thousands of legs and hands.
23. O great brahmana, you have told me that the gigantic virat form and His senses, sense objects and
ten kinds of life air exist with three kinds of life vigor. Now, if you will, kindly explain to me the different
powers of the specific divisions.
24. O my lord, I think that the process manifest in the forms of sons, grandsons and family members
has spread all over the universe in different varieties and species.
25. O learned brahmana, please describe how the leader of all the demigods, namely Prajapati,
Brahma, decided to establish the various Manus, the heads of the ages. Please describe the Manus
also, and please describe the descendants of those Manus.
78 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
26. O son of Mitra, kindly describe how the planets are situated above the earth as well as underneath
it, and also please mention their measurement as well as that of the earthly planets.
27. Also please describe the living beings under different classifications: subhumans, humans, those
born of the embryo, those born of perspiration, those who are twice-born [birds], and the plants and
vegetables. Kindly describe their generations and subdivisions also.
28. Please also describe the incarnations of the material modes of nature--Brahma, Visnu and
Mahesvara--and please describe the incarnation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and His
magnanimous activities.
29. O great sage, kindly describe the divisions and orders of human society in terms of symptoms,
behavior and the characteristics of mental equilibrium and sense control. Also please describe the births
of the great sages and the categorical divisions of the Vedas.
30. Please also describe the expansions of different sacrifices and the paths of mystic powers,
analytical study of knowledge, and devotional service, all with their respective regulations.
31. Please also describe the imperfections and contradictions of the faithless atheists, the situation of
crossbreeding, and the movements of the living entities in various species of life according to their
particular modes of nature and work.
32. You may also describe the noncontradictory causes of religiosity, economic development, sense
gratification and salvation and also the different means of livelihood and different processes of law and
order as mentioned in the revealed scriptures.
33. Please also explain the regulations for offering respects to the forefathers, the creation of the
Pitrloka, the time schedule in the planets, stars and luminaries, and their respective situations.
34. Please also describe the fruitive results of charity and penance and of digging reservoirs of water.
Please describe the situation of persons who are away from home and also the duty of a man in an
awkward position.
35. O sinless one, because the Personality of Godhead, the controller of all living entities, is the father
of all religion and all those who are candidates for religious activities, kindly describe how He can be
completely satisfied.
36. O best among the brahmanas, those who are spiritual masters are very kind to the needy. They are
always kind to their followers, disciples and sons, and without being asked by them, the spiritual master
describes all that is knowledge.
37. Please describe how many dissolutions there are for the elements of material nature and who
survives after the dissolutions to serve the Lord while He is asleep.
38. What are the truths regarding the living entities and the Supreme Personality of Godhead? What are
their identities? What are the specific values in the knowledge in the Vedas, and what are the
necessities for the spiritual master and his disciples?
39. Spotless devotees of the Lord have mentioned the source of such knowledge. How could one have
knowledge of devotional service and detachment without the help of such devotees?
40. My dear sage, I have put all these questions before you with a view to knowing the pastimes of Hari,
the Supreme Personality of Godhead. You are the friend of all, so kindly describe them for all those who
have lost their vision.
41. O spotless one, your answers to all these questions will grant immunity from all material miseries.
Such charity is greater than all Vedic charities, sacrifices, penances, etc.
42. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus the chief of the sages, who was always enthusiastic about
describing topics regarding the Personality of Godhead, began to narrate the descriptive explanation of
the Puranas, being so infused by Vidura. He was very much enlivened by speaking on the
transcendental activities of the Lord.
Chapter Eight Manifestation of Brahma from Garbhodakasayi Visnu
1. The great sage Maitreya Muni said to Vidura: The royal dynasty of King Puru is worthy to serve the
pure devotees because all the descendants of that family are devoted to the Personality of Godhead.
You are also born in that family, and it is wonderful that because of your attempt the transcendental
pastimes of the Lord are becoming newer and newer at every moment.
2. Let me now begin speaking on the Bhagavata Purana, which was directly spoken to the great sages
by the Personality of Godhead for the benefit of those who are entangled in extreme miseries for the
sake of very little pleasure.
3. Some time ago, being inquisitive to know, Sanat-kumara, the chief of the boy-saints, accompanied by
other great sages, inquired exactly like you about the truths regarding Vasudeva, the Supreme, from
Lord Sankarsana, who is seated at the bottom of the universe.
4. At that time Lord Sankarsana was meditating upon His Supreme Lord, whom the learned esteem as
Lord Vasudeva, but for the sake of the advancement of the great learned sages He slightly opened His
lotus like eyes and began to speak.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 79
5. The sages came from the highest planets down to the lower region through the water of the Ganges,
and therefore the hair on their heads was wet. They touched the lotus feet of the Lord, which are
worshiped with various paraphernalia by the daughters of the serpent-king when they desire good
husbands.
6. The four Kumaras, headed by Sanat-kumara, who all knew the transcendental pastimes of the Lord,
glorified the Lord in rhythmic accents with selected words full of affection and love. At that time Lord
Sankarsana, with His thousands of raised hoods, began to radiate an effulgence from the glowing
stones on His head.
7. Lord Sankarsana thus spoke the purport of Srimad-Bhagavatam to the great sage Sanat-kumara,
who had already taken the vow of renunciation. Sanat-kumara also, in his turn, when inquired of by
Sankhyayana Muni, explained Srimad-Bhagavatam as he had heard it from Sankarsana.
8. The great sage Sankhyayana was the chief amongst the transcendentalists, and when he was
describing the glories of the Lord in terms of Srimad-Bhagavatam, it so happened that my spiritual
master, Parasara, and Brhaspati both heard him.
9. The great sage Parasara, as aforementioned, being so advised by the great sage Pulastya, spoke
unto me the foremost of the Puranas [Bhagavatam]. I shall also describe this before you, my dear son,
in terms of my hearing, because you are always my faithful follower.
10. At that time when the three worlds were submerged in water, Garbhodakasayi Visnu was alone,
lying on His bedstead, the great snake Ananta, and although He appeared to be in slumber in His own
internal potency, free from the action of the external energy, His eyes were not completely closed.
11. Just like the strength of fire within fuel wood, the Lord remained within the water of dissolution,
submerging all the living entities in their subtle bodies. He lay in the self-invigorated energy called kala.
12. The Lord lay down for four thousand yuga cycles in His internal potency, and by His external energy
He appeared to be sleeping within the water. When the living entities were coming out for further
development of their fruitive activities, actuated by the energy called kala-sakti, He saw His
transcendental body as bluish.
13. The subtle subject matter of creation, on which the Lord's attention was fixed, was agitated by the
material mode of passion, and thus the subtle form of creation pierced through His abdomen.
14. Piercing through, this sum total form of the fruitive activity of the living entities took the shape of the
bud of a lotus flower generated from the Personality of Visnu, and by His supreme will it illuminated
everything, like the sun, and dried up the vast waters of devastation.
15. Into that universal lotus flower Lord Visnu personally entered as the Supersoul, and when it was
thus impregnated with all the modes of material nature, the personality of Vedic wisdom, whom we call
the self-born, was generated.
16. Brahma, born out of the lotus flower, could not see the world, although he was situated in the whorl.
He therefore circumambulated all of space, and while moving his eyes in all directions he achieved four
heads in terms of the four directions.
17. Lord Brahma, situated in that lotus, could not perfectly understand the creation, the lotus or himself.
At the end of the millennium the air of devastation began to move the water and the lotus in great
circular waves.
18. Lord Brahma, in his ignorance, contemplated: Who am I that am situated on the top of this lotus?
Wherefrom has it sprouted? There must be something downwards, and that from which this lotus has
grown must be within the water.
19. Lord Brahma, thus contemplating, entered the water through the channel of the stem of the lotus.
But in spite of entering the stem and going nearer to the navel of Visnu, he could not trace out the root.
20. O Vidura, while searching in that way about his existence, Brahma reached his ultimate time, which
is the eternal wheel in the hand of Visnu and which generates fear in the mind of the living entity like the
fear of death.
21. Thereafter, being unable to achieve the desired destination, he retired from such searching and
came back again to the top of the lotus. Thus, controlling all objectives, he concentrated his mind on the
Supreme Lord.
22. At the end of Brahma's one hundred years, when his meditation was complete, he developed the
required knowledge, and as a result he could see in his head the Supreme within himself, whom he
could not see before with the greatest endeavor.
23. Brahma could see that on the water there was a gigantic lotuslike white bedstead, the body of Sesa-
naga, on which the Personality of Godhead was lying alone. The whole atmosphere was illuminated by
the rays of the jewels bedecking the hood of Sesa-naga, and that illumination dissipated all the
darkness of those regions.
24. The luster of the transcendental body of the Lord mocked the beauty of the coral mountain. The
coral mountain is very beautifully dressed by the evening sky, but the yellow dress of the Lord mocked
80 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
its beauty. There is gold on the summit of the mountain, but the Lord's helmet, bedecked with jewels,
mocked it. The mountain's waterfalls, herbs, etc., with a panorama of flowers, seem like garlands, but
the Lord's gigantic body, and His hands and legs, decorated with jewels, pearls, tulasi leaves and flower
garlands, mocked the scene on the mountain.
25. His transcendental body, unlimited in length and breadth, occupied the three planetary systems,
upper, middle and lower. His body was self-illuminated by unparalleled dress and variegatedness and
was properly ornamented.
26. The Lord showed His lotus feet by raising them. His lotus feet are the source of all awards achieved
by devotional service free from material contamination. Such awards are for those who worship Him in
pure devotion. The splendor of the transcendental rays from His moonlike toenails and fingernails
appeared like the petals of a flower.
27. He also acknowledged the service of the devotees and vanquished their distress by His beautiful
smile. The reflection of His face, decorated with earrings, was so pleasing because it dazzled with the
rays from His lips and the beauty of His nose and eyebrows.
28. O my dear Vidura, the Lord's waist was covered with yellow cloth resembling the saffron dust of the
kadamba flower, and it was encircled by a well-decorated belt. His chest was decorated with the
srivatsa marking and a necklace of unlimited value.
29. As a sandalwood tree is decorated with fragrant flowers and branches, the Lord's body was
decorated with valuable jewels and pearls. He was the self-situated tree, the Lord of all others in the
universe. And as a sandalwood tree is covered with many snakes, so the Lord's body was also covered
by the hoods of Ananta.
30. Like a great mountain, the Lord stands as the abode for all moving and nonmoving living entities. He
is the friend of the snakes because Lord Ananta is His friend. As a mountain has thousands of golden
peas, so the Lord was seen with the thousands of golden-helmeted hoods of Ananta-naga; and as a
mountain is sometimes filled with jewels, so also His transcendental body was fully decorated with
valuable jewels. As a mountains is sometimes submerged in the ocean water, so the Lord is sometimes
submerged in the water of devastation.
31. Lord Brahma, thus looking upon the Lord in the shape of a mountain, concluded that He was Hari,
the Personality of Godhead. He saw that the garland of flowers on His chest glorified Him with Vedic
wisdom in sweet songs and looked very beautiful. He was protected by the Sudarsana wheel for
fighting, and even the sun, moon, air, fire, etc., could not have access to Him.
32. When Lord Brahma, the maker of the universal destination, thus saw the Lord, be simultaneously
glanced over creation. Lord Brahma saw the lake in Lord Visnu's navel, and the lotus flower, as well as
the devastating water, the drying air and the sky. All became visible to him.
33. Lord Brahma, thus being surcharged with the mode of passion, became inclined to create, and after
seeing the five causes of creation indicated by the Personality of Godhead, he began to offer his
respectful prayers on the path of the creative mentality.
Chapter Nine Brahma's Prayers for Creative Energy
1. Lord Brahma said: O my Lord, today, after many, many years of penance, I have come to know
about You. Oh, how unfortunate the embodied living entities are that they are unable to know Your
personality! My Lord, You are the only knowable object because there is nothing supreme beyond You.
If there is anything supposedly superior to You, it is not the Absolute. You exist as the Supreme by
exhibiting the creative energy of matter.
2. The form which I see is eternally freed from material contamination and has advented to show mercy
to the devotees as a manifestation of internal potency. This incarnation is the origin of many other
incarnations, and I am born from the lotus flower grown from Your navel home.
3. O my Lord, I do not see a form superior to Your present form of eternal bliss and knowledge. In Your
impersonal Brahman effulgence in the spiritual sky, there is no occasional change and no deterioration
of internal potency. I surrender unto You because whereas I am proud of my material body and senses,
Your Lordship is the cause of the cosmic manifestation and yet You are untouched by matter.
4. This present form, or any transcendental form expanded by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri
Krsna, is equally auspicious for all the universes. Since You have manifested this eternal personal form
upon whom Your devotees meditate, I therefore offer my respectful obeisances unto You. Those who
are destined to be dispatched to the path of hell neglect Your personal form because of speculating on
material topics.
5. O my Lord, persons who smell the aroma of Your lotus feet, carried by the air of Vedic sound through
the holes of the ears, accept Your devotional service. For them You are never separated from the lotus
of their hearts.
6. O my Lord, the people of the world are embarrassed by all material anxieties--they are always afraid.
They always try to protect wealth, body and friends, they are filled with lamentation and unlawful desires
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 81
and paraphernalia, and they avariciously base their undertakings on the perishable conceptions of "my"
and "mine." As long as they do not take shelter of Your safe lotus feet, they are full of such anxieties.
7. O my Lord, persons who are bereft of the all-auspicious performance of chanting and hearing about
Your transcendental activities are certainly unfortunate and are also bereft of good sense. They engage
in inauspicious activities, enjoying sense gratification for a very little while.
8. O great actor, my Lord, all these poor creatures are constantly perplexed by hunger, thirst, severe
cold, secretion and bile, attacked by coughing winter, blasting summer, rains and many other disturbing
elements, and overwhelmed by strong sex urges and indefatigable anger. I take pity on them, and I am
very much aggrieved for them.
9. O my Lord, the material miseries are without factual existence for the soul. Yet as long as the
conditioned soul sees the body as meant for sense enjoyment, he cannot get out of the entanglement of
material miseries, being influenced by Your external energy.
10. Such nondevotees engage their senses in very troublesome and extensive work, and they suffer
insomnia at night because their intelligence constantly breaks their sleep with various mental
speculations. They are frustrated in all their various plans by supernatural power. Even great sages, if
they are against Your transcendental topics, must rotate in this material world.
11. O my Lord, Your devotees can see You through the ears by the process of bona fide hearing, and
thus their hearts become cleansed, and You take Your seat there. You are so merciful to Your devotees
that You manifest Yourself in the particular eternal form of transcendence in which they always think of
You.
12. My Lord, You are not very much satisfied by the worship of the demigods, who arrange for Your
worship very pompously, with various paraphernalia, but who are full of material hankerings. You are
situated in everyone's heart as the Supersoul just to show Your causeless mercy, and You are the
eternal well-wisher, but You are unavailable for the nondevotee.
13. But the pious activities of the people, such as performance of Vedic rituals, charity, austere
penances, and transcendental service, performed with a view to worship You and satisfy You by
offering You the fruitive results, are also beneficial. Such acts of religion never go in vain.
14. Let me offer my obeisances unto the Supreme Transcendence, who is eternally distinguished by
His internal potency. His indistinguishable impersonal feature is realized by intelligence for self-
realization. I offer my obeisances unto Him who by His pastimes enjoys the creation, maintenance and
dissolution of the cosmic manifestation.
15. Let me take shelter of the lotus feet of Him whose incarnations, qualities and activities are
mysterious imitations of worldly affairs. One who invokes His transcendental names, even
unconsciously, at the time he quits this life, is certainly washed immediately of the sins of many, many
births and attains Him without fail.
16. Your Lordship is the prime root of the tree of the planetary systems. This tree has grown by first
penetrating the material nature in three trunks--as me, Siva and You, the Almighty--for creation,
maintenance and dissolution, and we three have grown with many branches. Therefore I offer my
obeisances unto You, the tree of the cosmic manifestation.
17. People in general all engage in foolish acts, not in the really beneficial activities enunciated directly
by You for their guidance. As long as their tendency for foolish work remains powerful, all their plans in
the struggle for existence will be cut to pieces. I therefore offer my obeisances unto Him who acts as
eternal time.
18. Your Lordship, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You who are indefatigable time and the
enjoyer of all sacrifices. Although I am situated in an abode which will continue to exist for a time
duration of two parardhas, although I am the leader of all other planets in the universe, and although I
have undergone many, many years of penance for self-realization, still I offer my respects unto You.
19. O my Lord, by Your own will You appear in the various species of living entities, among animals
lower than human beings as well as among the demigods, to perform Your transcendental pastimes.
You are not affected by material contamination. You come just to fulfill the obligations of Your own
principles of religion, and therefore, O Supreme Personality, I offer my obeisances unto You for
manifesting such different forms.
20. My Lord, You accept the pleasure of sleeping in the water of devastation, where there are violent
waves, and You enjoy pleasure on the bed of snakes, showing the happiness of Your sleep to
intelligent persons. At that time, all the universal planets are stationed within Your abdomen.
21. O object of my worship, I am born from the house of Your lotus navel for the purpose of creating the
universe by Your mercy. All these planets of the universe were stationed within Your transcendental
abdomen while You were enjoying sleep. Now, Your sleep having ended, Your eyes are open like
blossoming lotuses in the morning.
82 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. Let the Supreme Lord be merciful towards me. He is the one friend and soul of all living entities in
the world, and He maintains all, for their ultimate happiness, by His six transcendental opulences. May
He be merciful towards me so that I, as before, may be empowered with the introspection to create, for I
am also one of the surrendered souls who are dear to the Lord.
23. The Supreme Lord, the Personality of Godhead, is always the benefactor of the surrendered souls.
His activities are always enacted through His internal potency, Rama, or the goddess of fortune. I pray
only to engage in His service in the creation of the material world, and I pray that I not be materially
affected by my works, for thus I may be able to give up the false prestige of being the creator.
24. The Lord's potencies are innumerable. As He lies down in the water of devastation, I am born as the
total universal energy from the navel lake in which the lotus sprouts. I am now engaged in manifesting
His diverse energies in the form of the cosmic manifestation. I therefore pray that in the course of my
material activities I may not be deviated from the vibration of the Vedic hymns.
25. The Lord, who is supreme and is the oldest of all, is unlimitedly merciful. I wish that He may
smilingly bestow His benediction upon me by opening His lotus eyes. He can uplift the entire cosmic
creation and remove our dejection by kindly speaking His directions.
26. The sage Maitreya said: O Vidura, after observing the source of his appearance, namely the
Personality of Godhead, Brahma prayed for His mercy as far as his mind and words would permit him.
Thus having prayed, he became silent, as if tired from his activities of penance, knowledge and mental
concentration.
27-28. The Lord saw that Brahma was very anxious about the planning and construction of the different
planetary systems and was depressed upon seeing the devastating water. He could understand the
intention of Brahma, and thus He spoke in deep, thoughtful words, removing all the illusion that had
arisen.
29. The Supreme Personality of Godhead then said: O Brahma, O depth of Vedic wisdom, be neither
depressed nor anxious about the execution of creation. What you are begging from Me has already
been granted before.
30. O Brahma, situate yourself in penance and meditation and follow the principles of knowledge to
receive My favor. By these actions you will be able to understand everything from within your heart.
31. O Brahma, when you are absorbed in devotional service, in the course of your creative activities,
you will see Me in you and throughout the universe, and you will see that you yourself, the universe and
the living entities are all in Me.
32. You will see Me in all living entities as well as all over the universe, just as fire is situated in wood.
Only in that state of transcendental vision will you be able to be free from all kinds of illusion.
33. When you are free from the conception of gross and subtle bodies and when your senses are free
from all influences of the modes of material nature, you will realize your pure form in My association. At
that time you will be situated in pure consciousness.
34. Since you have desired to increase the population innumerably and expand your varieties of
service, you shall never be deprived in this matter because My causeless mercy upon you will always
increase for all time.
35. You are the original rsi, and because your mind is always fixed on Me, even though you will be
engaged in generating various progeny, the vicious mode of passion will never encroach upon you.
36. Although I am not easily knowable by the conditioned soul, you have known Me today because you
know that My personality is not constituted of anything material, and specifically not of the five gross
and three subtle elements.
37. When you were contemplating whether there was a source to the stem of the lotus of your birth and
you even entered into that stem, you could not trace out anything. But at that time I manifested My form
from within.
38. O Brahma, the prayers that you have chanted praising the glories of My transcendental activities,
the penances you have undertaken to understand Me, and your firm faith in Me--all these are to be
considered My causeless mercy.
39. I am very much pleased by your description of Me in terms of My transcendental qualities, which
appear mundane to the mundaners. I grant you all benedictions in your desire to glorify all the planets
by your activities.
40. Any human being who prays like Brahma, and who thus worships Me, shall very soon be blessed
with the fulfillment of all his desires, for I am the Lord of all benediction.
41. It is the opinion of expert transcendentalists that the ultimate goal of performing all traditional good
works, penances, sacrifices, charities, mystic activities, trances, etc., is to invoke My satisfaction.
42. I am the Supersoul of every individual. I am the supreme director and the dearest. People are
wrongly attached to the gross and subtle bodies, but they should be attached to Me only.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 83
43. By following My instructions you can now generate the living entities as before, by dint of your
complete Vedic wisdom and the body you have directly received from Me, the supreme cause of
everything.
44. The sage Maitreya said: After instructing Brahma, the creator of the universe, to expand, the
primeval Lord, the Personality of Godhead in His personal form as Narayana, disappeared.
Chapter Ten Divisions of the Creation
1. Sri Vidura said: O great sage, please let me know how Brahma, the grandfather of the planetary
inhabitants, created the bodies of the living entities from his own body and mind after the disappearance
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
2. O greatly learned one, kindly eradicate all my doubts, and let me know of all that I have inquired from
you from the beginning to the end.
3. Suta Gosvami said: O son of Bhrgu, the great sage Maitreya Muni, thus hearing from Vidura, felt very
much enlivened. Everything was in his heart, and thus he began to reply to the questions one after
another.
4. The greatly learned sage Maitreya said: O Vidura, Brahma thus engaged himself in penances for one
hundred celestial years, as advised by the Personality of Godhead, and applied himself in devotional
service to the Lord.
5. Thereafter Brahma saw that both the lotus on which he was situated and the water on which the lotus
was growing were trembling due to a strong, violent wind.
6. Long penance and transcendental knowledge of self-realization had matured Brahma in practical
knowledge, and thus he drank the wind completely, along with the water.
7. Thereafter he saw that the lotus on which he was situated was spread throughout the universe, and
he contemplated how to create all the planets, which were previously merged in that very same lotus.
8. Thus engaged in the service of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Brahma entered into the
whorl of the lotus, and as it spread all over the universe he divided it into three divisions of worlds and
later into fourteen divisions.
9. Lord Brahma is the most exalted personality in the universe because of his causeless devotional
service unto the Lord in mature transcendental knowledge. He therefore created all the fourteen
planetary divisions for inhabitation by the different types of living entities.
10. Vidura inquired from Maitreya: O my lord, O greatly learned sage, kindly describe eternal time,
which is another form of the Supreme Lord, the wonderful actor. What are the symptoms of that eternal
time? Please describe them to us in detail.
11. Maitreya said: Eternal time is the primeval source of the interactions of the three modes of material
nature. It is unchangeable and limitless, and it works as the instrument of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead for His pastimes in the material creation.
12. This cosmic manifestation is separated from the Supreme Lord as material energy by means of
kala, which is the unmanifested, impersonal feature of the Lord. It is situated as the objective
manifestation of the Lord under the influence of the same material energy of Visnu.
13. This cosmic manifestation is as it is now, it was the same in the past, and it will continue in the same
way in the future.
14. There are nine different kinds of creations besides the one which naturally occurs due to the
interactions of the modes. There are three kinds of annihilations due to eternal time, the material
elements and the quality of one's work.
15. Of the nine creations, the first one is the creation of the mahat-tattva, or the sum total of the material
ingredients, wherein the modes interact due to the presence of the Supreme Lord. In the second, the
false ego is generated in which the material ingredients, material knowledge and material activities
arise.
16. The sense perceptions are created in the third creation, and from these the elements are generated.
The fourth creation is the creation of knowledge and of working capacity.
17. The fifth creation is that of the controlling deities by the interaction of the mode of goodness, of
which the mind is the sum total. The sixth creation is the ignorant darkness of the living entity, by which
the master acts as a fool.
18. All the above are natural creations by the external energy of the Lord. Now hear from me about the
creations by Brahma, who is an incarnation of the mode of passion and who, in the matter of creation,
has a brain like that of the Personality of Godhead.
19. The seventh creation is that of the immovable entities, which are of six kinds: the fruit trees without
flowers, trees and plants which exist until the fruit is ripe, creepers, pipe plants, creepers which have no
support, and trees with flowers and fruits.
20. All the immovable trees and plants seek their subsistence upwards. They are almost unconscious
but have feelings of pain within. They are manifested in variegatedness.
84 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
21. The eighth creation is that of the lower species of life, and they are of different varieties, numbering
twenty-eight. They are all extensively foolish and ignorant. They know their desirables by smell, but are
unable to remember anything within the heart.
22. O purest Vidura, of the lower animals the cow, goat, buffalo, krsna stag, hog, gavaya animal, deer,
lamb and camel all have two hooves.
23. The horse, mule, ass, gaura, sarabha bison and wild cow all have only one hoof. Now you may hear
from me about the animals who have five nails.
24. The dog, jackal, tiger, fox, cat, rabbit, sajaru, lion, monkey, elephant, tortoise, alligator, gosapa, etc.,
all have five nails in their claws. They are known as panca-nakhas, or animals having five nails.
25. The heron, vulture, crane, hawk, bhasa, bhalluka, peacock, swan, sarasa, cakravaka, crow, owl and
others are the birds.
26. The creation of the human beings, who are of one species only and who stock their eatables in the
belly, is the ninth in the rotation. In the human race, the mode of passion is very prominent. Humans are
always busy in the midst of miserable life, but they think themselves happy in all respects.
27. O good Vidura, these last three creations and the creation of demigods (the tenth creation) are
vaikrta creations, which are different from the previously described prakrta (natural) creations. The
appearance of the Kumaras is both.
28-29. The creation of the demigods is of eight varieties: (1) the demigods, (2) the forefathers, (3) the
asuras, or demons, (4) the Gandharvas and Apsaras, or angels, (5) the Yaksas and Raksasas, (6) the
Siddhas, Caranas and Vidyadharas, (7) the Bhutas, Pretas and Pisacas, and (8) the superhuman
beings, celestial singers, etc. All are created by Brahma, the creator of the universe.
30. Now I shall describe the descendants of the Manus. The creator, Brahma, as the incarnation of the
passion mode of the Personality of Godhead, creates the universal affairs with unfailing desires in every
millennium by the force of the Lord's energy.
Chapter Eleven Calculation of Time, from the Atom
1. The material manifestation's ultimate particle, which is indivisible and not formed into a body, is called
the atom. It exists always as an invisible identity, even after the dissolution of all forms. The material
body is but a combination of such atoms, but it is misunderstood by the common man.
2. Atoms are the ultimate state of the manifest universe. When they stay in their own forms without
forming different bodies, they are called the unlimited oneness. There are certainly different bodies in
physical forms, but the atoms themselves form the complete manifestation.
3. One can estimate time by measuring the movement of the atomic combination of bodies. Time is the
potency of the almighty Personality of Godhead, Hari, who controls all physical movement although He
is not visible in the physical world.
4. Atomic time is measured according to its covering a particular atomic space. That time which covers
the unmanifest aggregate of atoms is called the great time.
5. The division of gross time is calculated as follows: two atoms make one double atom, and three
double atoms make one hexatom. This hexatom is visible in the sunshine which enters through the
holes of a window screen. One can clearly see that the hexatom goes up towards the sky.
6. The time duration needed for the integration of three trasarenus is called a truti, and one hundred
trutis make one vedha. Three vedhas make one lava.
7. The duration of time of three lavas is equal to one nimesa, the combination of three nimesas makes
one ksana, five ksanas combined together make one kastha, and fifteen kasthas make one laghu.
8. Fifteen laghus make one nadika, which is also called a danda. Two dandas make one muhurta, and
six or seven dandas make one fourth of a day or night, according to human calculation.
9. The measuring pot for one nadika, or danda, can be prepared with a six-pala-weight [fourteen ounce]
pot of copper, in which a hole is bored with a gold probe weighing four masa and measuring four fingers
long. When the pot is placed on water, the time before the water overflows in the pot is called one
danda.
10. It is calculated that there are four praharas, which are also called yamas, in the day and four in the
night of the human being. Similarly, fifteen days and nights are a fortnight, and there are two fortnights,
white and black, in a month.
11. The aggregate of two fortnights is one month, and that period is one complete day and night for the
Piri planets. Two of such months comprise one season, and six months comprise one complete
movement of the sun from south to north.
12. Two solar movements make one day and night of the demigods, and that combination of day and
night is one complete calendar year for the human being. The human being has a duration of life of one
hundred years.
13. Influential stars, planets, luminaries and atoms all over the universe are rotating in their respective
orbits under the direction of the Supreme, represented by eternal kala.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 85
14. There are five different names for the orbits of the sun, moon, stars and luminaries in the firmament,
and they each have their own samvatsara.
15. O Vidura, the sun enlivens all living entities with his unlimited heat and light. He diminishes the
duration of life of all living entities in order to release them from their illusion of material attachment, and
he enlarges the path of elevation to the heavenly kingdom. He thus moves in the firmament with great
velocity, and therefore everyone should offer him respects once every five years with all ingredients of
worship.
16. Vidura said: I now understand the life durations of the residents of the Pita planets and heavenly
planets as well as that of the human beings. Now kindly inform me of the durations of life of those
greatly learned living entities who are beyond the range of a kalpa.
17. O spiritually powerful one, you can understand the movements of eternal time, which is the
controlling form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Because you are a self-realized person, you
can see everything by the power of mystic vision.
18. Maitreya said: O Vidura, the four millenniums are called the Satya, Treta, Dvapara and Kali yugas.
The aggregate number of years of all of these combined is equal to twelve thousand years of the
demigods.
19. The duration of the Satya millennium equals 4,800 years of the years of the demigods; the duration
of the Dvapara millennium equals 2,400 years; and that of the Kali millennium is 1,200 years of the
demigods.
20. The transitional periods before and after every millennium, which are a few hundred years as
aforementioned, are known as yuga-sandhyas, or the conjunctions of two millenniums, according to the
expert astronomers. In those periods all kinds of religious activities are performed.
21. O Vidura, in the Satya millennium mankind properly and completely maintained the principles of
religion, but in other millenniums religion gradually decreased by one part as irreligion was
proportionately admitted.
22. Outside of the three planetary systems [Svarga, Martya and Patala], the four yugas multiplied by
one thousand comprise one day on the planet of Brahma. A similar period comprises a night of Brahma,
in which the creator of the universe goes to sleep.
23. After the end of Brahma's night, the creation of the three worlds begins again in the daytime of
Brahma, and they continue to exist through the life durations of fourteen consecutive Manus, or fathers
of mankind.
24. Each and every Manu enjoys a life of a little more than seventy-one sets of four millenniums.
25. After the dissolution of each and every Manu, the next Manu comes in order, along with his
descendants, who rule over the different planets; but the seven famous sages, and demigods like Indra
and their followers, such as the Gandharvas, all appear simultaneously with Manu.
26. In the creation, during Brahma's day, the three planetary systems--Svarga, Martya and Parila--
revolve, and the inhabitants, including the lower animals, human beings, demigods and Pitas, appear
and disappear in terms of their fruitive activities.
27. In each and every change of Manu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead appears by manifesting
His internal potency in different incarnations, as Manu and others. Thus He maintains the universe by
discovered power.
28. At the end of the day, under the insignificant portion of the mode of darkness, the powerful
manifestation of the universe merges in the darkness of night. By the influence of eternal time, the
innumerable living entities remain merged in that dissolution, and everything is silent.
29. When the night of Brahma ensues, all the three worlds are out of sight, and the sun and the moon
are without glare, just as in the due course of an ordinary night.
30. The devastation takes place due to the fire emanating from the mouth of Sankarsana, and thus
great sages like Bhrgu and other inhabitants of Maharloka transport themselves to Janaloka, being
distressed by the warmth of the blazing fire which rages through the three worlds below.
31. At the beginning of the devastation all the seas overflow, and hurricane winds blow very violently.
Thus the waves of the seas become ferocious, and in no time at all the three worlds are full of water.
32. The Supreme Lord, the Personality of Godhead, lies down in the water on the seat of Ananta, with
His eyes closed, and the inhabitants of the Janaloka planets offer their glorious prayers unto the Lord
with folded hands.
33. Thus the process of the exhaustion of the duration of life exists for every one of the living beings,
including Lord Brahma. One's life endures for only one hundred years, in terms of the times in the
different planets.
34. The one hundred years of Brahma's life are divided into two parts, the first half and the second half.
The first half of the duration of Brahma's life is already over, and the second half is now current.
86 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
35. In the beginning of the first half of Brahma's life, there was a millennium called Brahma-kalpa,
wherein Lord Brahma appeared. The birth of the Vedas was simultaneous with Brahma's birth.
36. The millennium which followed the first Brahma millennium is known as the Padma-kalpa because
in that millennium the universal lotus flower grew out of the navel reservoir of water of the Personality of
Godhead, Hari.
37. O descendant of Bharata, the first millennium in the second half of the life of Brahma is also known
as the Varaha millennium because the Personality of Godhead appeared in that millennium as the hog
incarnation.
38. The duration of the two parts of Brahma's life, as above mentioned, is calculated to be equal to one
nimesa [less than a second] for the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is unchanging and unlimited
and is the cause of all causes of the universe.
39. Eternal time is certainly the controller of different dimensions, from that of the atom up to the
superdivisions of the duration of Brahma's life; but, nevertheless, it is controlled by the Supreme. Time
can control only those who are body conscious, even up to the Satyaloka or the other higher planets of
the universe.
40. This phenomenal material world is expanded to a diameter of four billion miles, as a combination of
eight material elements transformed into sixteen further categories, within and without, as follows.
41. The layers or elements covering the universes are each ten times thicker than the one before, and
all the universes clustered together appear like atoms in a huge combination.
42. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, is therefore said to be the original cause of all
causes. Thus the spiritual abode of Visnu is eternal without a doubt, and it is also the abode of Maha-
Visnu, the origin of all manifestations.
Chapter Twelve Creation of the Kumaras and Others
1. Sri Maitreya said: O learned Vidura, so far I have explained to you the glories of the form of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead in His feature of kala. Now you can hear from me about the creation
of Brahma, the reservoir of all Vedic knowledge.
2. Brahma first created the nescient engagements like self-deception, the sense of death, anger after
frustration, the sense of false ownership, and the illusory bodily conception, or forgetfulness of one's
real identity.
3. Seeing such a misleading creation as a sinful task, Brahma did not feel much pleasure in his activity,
and therefore he purified himself by meditation on the Personality of Godhead. Then he began another
term of creation.
4. In the beginning, Brahma created four great sages named Sanaka, Sananda, Sanatana and Sanat-
kumara. All of them were unwilling to adopt materialistic activities because they were highly elevated
due to their semen's flowing upwards.
5. Brahma spoke to his sons after generating them. "My dear sons," he said, "now generate progeny."
But due to their being attached to Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, they aimed at
liberation, and therefore they expressed their unwillingness.
6. On the refusal of the sons to obey the order of their father, there was much anger generated in the
mind of Brahma, which he tried to control and not express.
7. Although he tried to curb his anger, it came out from between his eyebrows, and a child mixed blue
and red was immediately generated.
8. After his birth he began to cry: O destiny maker, teacher of the universe, kindly designate my name
and place.
9. The all-powerful Brahma, who was born from the lotus flower, pacified the boy with gentle words,
accepting his request, and said: Do not cry. I shall certainly do as you desire.
10. Thereafter Brahma said: O chief of the demigods, you shall be called by the name Rudra by all
people because you have so anxiously cried.
11. My dear boy, I have already selected the following places for your residence: the heart, the senses,
the air of life, the sky, the air, the fire, the water, the earth, the sun, the moon and austerity.
12. Lord Brahma said: My dear boy Rudra, you have eleven other names: Manyu, Manu, Mahinasa,
Mahan, Siva, Rtadhvaja, Ugrareta, Bhava, Kala, Vamadeva and Dhrtavrata.
13. O Rudra, you also have eleven wives, called the Rudranis, and they are as follows: Dhi, Dhrti,
Rasala, Uma, Niyut, Sarpi, Ila, Ambika, Iravati, Svadha and Diksa.
14. My dear boy, you may now accept all the names and places designated for you and your different
wives, and since you are now one of the masters of the living entities, you may increase the population
on a large scale.
15. The most powerful Rudra, whose bodily color was blue mixed with red, created many offspring
exactly resembling him in features, strength and furious nature.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 87
16. The sons and grandsons generated by Rudra were unlimited in number, and when they assembled
together they attempted to devour the entire universe. When Brahma, the father of the living entities,
saw this, he became afraid of the situation.
17. Brahma told Rudra: O best among the demigods, there is no need for you to generate living entities
of this nature. They have begun to devastate everything on all sides with the fiery flames from their
eyes, and they have even attacked me.
18. My dear son, you had better situate yourself in penance, which is auspicious for all living entities
and which will bring all benediction upon you. By penance only shall you be able to create the universe
as it was before.
19. By penance only can one even approach the Personality of Godhead, who is within the heart of
every living entity and at the same time beyond the reach of all senses.
20. Sri Maitreya said: Thus Rudra, having been ordered by Brahma, circumambulated his father, the
master of the Vedas. Addressing him with words of assent, he entered the forest to perform austere
penances.
21. Brahma, who was empowered by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, thought of generating living
entities and begot ten sons for the extension of the generations.
22. Marici, Atri, Angira, Pulastya, Pulaha, Kratu, Bhrgu, Vasistha, Daksa, and the tenth son, Narada,
were thus born.
23. Narada was born from the deliberation of Brahma, which is the best part of the body. Vasistha was
born from his breathing, Daksa from a thumb, Bhrgu from his touch, and Kratu from his hand.
24. Pulastya was generated from the ears, Angira from the mouth, Atri from the eyes, Marici from the
mind and Pulaha from the navel of Brahma.
25. Religion was manifested from the breast of Brahma, wherein is seated the Supreme Personality of
Godhead Narayana, and irreligion appeared from his back, where horrible death takes place for the
living entity.
26. Lust and desire became manifested from the heart of Brahma, anger from between his eyebrows,
greed from between his lips, the power of speaking from his mouth, the ocean from his penis, and low
and abominable activities from his anus, the source of all sins.
27. Sage Kardama, husband of the great Devahuti, was manifested from the shadow of Brahma. Thus
all became manifested from either the body or the mind of Brahma.
28. O Vidura, we have heard that Brahma had a daughter named Vak who was born from his body and
who attracted his mind toward sex, although she was not sexually inclined towards him.
29. Thus, finding their father so deluded in an act of immorality, the sages headed by Marici, all sons of
Brahma, spoke as follows with great respect.
30. O father, this performance in which you are endeavoring to complicate yourself was never
attempted by any other Brahma, nor by anyone else, nor by you in previous kalpas, nor will anyone
dare to attempt it in the future. You are the supreme being in the universe, so how is it that you want to
have sex with your daughter and cannot control your desire?
31. Even though you are the most powerful being, this act does not suit you because your character is
followed for spiritual improvement by people in general.
32. Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto the Personality of Godhead, who, by His own
effulgence, while situated in Himself, has manifested this cosmos. May He also protect religion for all
goodness.
33. The father of all Prajapatis, Brahma, thus seeing all his Prajapati sons speaking in that way, became
very much ashamed and at once gave up the body he had accepted. Later that body appeared in all
directions as the dangerous fog in darkness.
34. Once upon a time, when Brahma was thinking of how to create the worlds as in the past millennium,
the four Vedas, which contain all varieties of knowledge, became manifested from his four mouths.
35. The four kinds of paraphernalia for conducting the fire sacrifice became manifest: the performer [the
chanter], the offerer, the fire, and the action performed in terms of the supplementary Vedas. Also the
four principles of religiosity [truth, austerity, mercy and cleanliness] and the duties in the four social
orders all became manifest.
36. Vidura said: O great sage whose only wealth is penance, kindly explain to me how and with whose
help Brahma established the Vedic knowledge which emanated from his mouth.
37. Maitreya said: Beginning from the front face of Brahma, gradually the four Vedas--Rk, Yajur, Sama
and Atharva--became manifest. Thereafter, Vedic hymns which had not been pronounced before,
priestly rituals, the subject matters of the recitation, and transcendental activities were all established,
one after another.
38. He also created the medical science, military art, musical art and architectural science, all from the
Vedas. They all emanated one after another, beginning from the front face.
88 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
39. Then he created the fifth Veda--the Puranas and the histories--from all his mouths, since he could
see all the past, present and future.
40. All the different varieties of fire sacrifices [sodasi, uktha, purisi, agnistoma, aptoryama, atiratra,
vajapeya and gosava] became manifested from the eastern mouth of Brahma.
41. Education, charity, penance and truth are said to be the four legs of religion, and to learn this there
are four orders of life with different classifications of castes according to vocation. Brahma created all
these in systematic order.
42. Then the thread ceremony for the twice-born was inaugurated, as were the rules to be followed for
at least one year after acceptance of the Vedas, rules for observing complete abstinence from sex life,
vocations in terms of Vedic injunctions, various professional duties in household life, and the method of
maintaining a livelihood without anyone's cooperation by picking up rejected grains.
43. The four divisions of retired life are the vaikhanasas, valakhilyas, audumbaras and phenapas. The
four divisions of the renounced order of life are the kuticakas, bahvodas, hamsas and niskriyas. All
these were manifested from Brahma.
44. The science of logical argument, the Vedic goals of life, and also law and order, moral codes, and
the celebrated hymns bhuh, bhuvah and svah all became manifested from the mouths of Brahma, and
the pranava omkara was manifested from his heart.
45. Thereafter the art of literary expression, usnik, was generated from the hairs on the body of the
almighty Prajapati. The principal Vedic hymn, gayatri, was generated from the skin, tristup from the
flesh, anustup from the veins, and jagati from the bones of the lord of the living entities.
46. The art of writing verse, pankti, became manifested from the bone marrow, and that of brhati,
another type of verse, was generated from the life-breath of the Lord of the living entities.
47. Brahma's soul was manifested as the touch alphabets, his body as the vowels, his senses as the
sibilant alphabets, his strength as the intermediate alphabets and his sensual activities as the seven
notes of music.
48. Brahma is the personal representation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead as the source of
transcendental sound and is therefore above the conception of manifested and unmanifested. Brahma
is the complete form of the Absolute Truth and is invested with multifarious energies.
49. Thereafter Brahma accepted another body, in which sex life was not forbidden, and thus he
engaged himself in the matter of further creation.
50. O son of the Kurus, when Brahma saw that in spite of the presence of sages of great potency there
was no sufficient increase in population, he seriously began to consider how the population could be
increased.
51. Brahma thought to himself: Alas, it is wonderful that in spite of my being scattered all over, there is
still insufficient population throughout the universe. There is no other cause for this misfortune but
destiny.
52. While he was thus absorbed in contemplation and was observing the supernatural power, two other
forms were generated from his body. They are still celebrated as the body of Brahma.
53. The two newly separated bodies united together in a sexual relationship.
54. Out of them, the one who had the male form became known as the Manu named Svayambhuva,
and the woman became known as Satarupa, the queen of the great soul Manu.
55. Thereafter, by sex indulgence, they gradually increased generations of population one after another.
56. O son of Bharata, in due course of time he [Manu] begot in Satarupa five children--two sons,
Priyavrata and Uttanapada, and three daughters, Akuti, Devahuti and Prasuti.
57. The father, Manu, handed over his first daughter, Akuti, to the sage Ruci, the middle daughter,
Devahuti, to the sage Kardama, and the youngest, Prasuti, to Daksa. From them, all the world filled with
population.
Chapter Thirteen The Appearance of Lord Varaha
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, after hearing all these most virtuous topics from the sage
Maitreya, Vidura inquired further on the topics of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, which he
adored to hear.
2. Vidura said: O great sage, what did Svayambhuva, the dear son of Brahma, do after obtaining his
very loving wife?
3. O best of the virtuous, the original king of kings [Manu] was a great devotee of the Personality of
Godhead Hari, and thus it is worth hearing of his sublime character and activities. Please describe
them. I am very eager to hear.
4. Persons who hear from a spiritual master with great labor and for a long time must hear from the
mouths of pure devotees about the character and activities of pure devotees. Pure devotees always
think within their hearts of the lotus feet of the Personality of Godhead, who awards His devotees
liberation.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 89
5. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: The Personality of Godhead Sri Krsna was pleased to place His lotus
feet on the lap of Vidura because Vidura was very meek and gentle. The sage Maitreya was very
pleased with Vidura's words, and, being influenced by his spirit, he attempted to speak.
6. The sage Maitreya said to Vidura: After his appearance, Manu, the father of mankind, along with his
wife, thus addressed the reservoir of Vedic wisdom, Brahma, with obeisances and folded hands.
7. You are the father of all living entities and the source of their subsistence because they are all born of
you. Please order us how we may be able to render service unto you.
8. O worshipful one, please give us your direction for the execution of duty within our working capacity
so that we can follow it for fame in this life and progress in the next.
9. Lord Brahma said: My dear son, O lord of the world, I am very pleased with you, and I desire all
blessings for both you and your wife. You have without reservation surrendered yourself unto me with
your heart for my instructions.
10. O hero, your example is quite befitting a son in relationship with his father. This sort of adoration for
the superior is required. One who is beyond the limit of envy and who is sane accepts the order of his
father with great delight and executes it to his full capacity.
11. Since you are my very obedient son, I ask you to beget children qualified like yourself in the womb
of your wife. Rule the world in pursuance of the principles of devotional service unto the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, and thus worship the Lord by performances of yajna.
12. O King, if you can give proper protection to the living beings in the material world, that will be the
best service for me. When the Supreme Lord sees you to be a good protector of the conditioned souls,
certainly the master of the senses will be very pleased with you.
13. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Janardana [Lord Krsna], is the form to accept all the results
of sacrifice. If He is not satisfied, then one's labor for advancement is futile. He is the ultimate Self, and
therefore one who does not satisfy Him certainly neglects his own interests.
14. Sri Mahu said: O all-powerful lord, O killer of all sins, I shall abide by your order. Now please let me
know my place and that of the living entities born of me.
15. O master of the demigods, please attempt to lift the earth, which is merged in the great water,
because it is the dwelling place for all the living entities. It can be done by your endeavor and by the
mercy of the Lord.
16. Sri Maitreya said: Thus, seeing the earth merged in the water, Brahma gave his attention for a long
time to how it could be lifted.
17. Brahma thought: While I have been engaged in the process of creation, the earth has been
inundated by a deluge and has gone down into the depths of the ocean. What can we do who are
engaged in this matter of creation? It is best to let the Almighty Lord direct us.
18. O sinless Vidura, all of a sudden, while Brahma was engaged in thinking, a small form of a boar
came out of his nostril. The measurement of the creature was not more than the upper portion of a
thumb.
19. O descendant of Bharata, while Brahma was observing Him, that boar became situated in the sky in
a wonderful manifestation as gigantic as a great elephant.
20. Struck with wonder at observing the wonderful boarlike form in the sky, Brahma, with great
brahmanas like Marici, as well as the Kumaras and Manu, began to argue in various ways.
21. Is this some extraordinary entity come in the pretense of a boar? It is very wonderful that He has
come from my nose.
22. First of all this boar was seen no bigger than the tip of a thumb, and within a moment He was as
large as a stone. My mind is perturbed. Is He the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu?
23. While Brahma was deliberating with his sons, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, roared
tumultuously like a great mountain.
24. The omnipotent Supreme Personality of Godhead enlivened Brahma and the other highly elevated
brahmanas by again roaring with His uncommon voice, which echoed in all directions.
25. When the great sages and thinkers who are residents of Janaloka, Tapoloka and Satyaloka heard
the tumultuous voice of Lord Boar, which was the all-auspicious sound of the all-merciful Lord, they
chanted auspicious chants from the three Vedas.
26. Playing like an elephant, He entered into the water after roaring again in reply to the Vedic prayers
by the great devotees. The Lord is the object of the Vedic prayers, and thus He understood that the
devotees' prayers were meant for Him.
27. Before entering the water to rescue the earth, Lord Boar flew in the sky, slashing His tail, His hard
hairs quivering. His very glance was luminous, and He scattered the clouds in the sky with His hooves
and His glittering white tusks.
90 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
28. He was personally the Supreme Lord Visnu and was therefore transcendental, yet because He had
the body of a hog, He searched after the earth by smell. His tusks were fearful, and He glanced over the
devotee-brahmanas engaged in offering prayers. Thus He entered the water.
29. Diving into the water like a giant mountain, Lord Boar divided the middle of the ocean, and two high
waves appeared as the arms of the ocean, which cried loudly as if praying to the Lord, "O Lord of all
sacrifices, please do not cut me in two! Kindly give me protection!"
30. Lord Boar penetrated the water with His hooves, which were like sharp arrows, and found the limits
of the ocean, although it was unlimited. He saw the earth, the resting place for all living beings, lying as
it was in the beginning of creation, and He personally lifted it.
31. Lord Boar very easily took the earth on His tusks and got it out of the water. Thus He appeared very
splendid. Then, His anger glowing like the Sudarsana wheel, He immediately killed the demon
[Hiranyaksa], although he tried to fight with the Lord.
32. Thereupon Lord Boar killed the demon within the water, just as a lion kills an elephant. The cheeks
and tongue of the Lord became smeared with the blood of the demon, just as an elephant becomes
reddish from digging in the purple earth.
33. Then the Lord, playing like an elephant, suspended the earth on the edge of His curved white tusks.
He assumed a bluish complexion like that of a tamala tree, and thus the sages, headed by Brahma,
could understand Him to be the Supreme Personality of Godhead and offered respectful obeisances
unto the Lord.
34. All the sages uttered with great respect: O unconquerable enjoyer of all sacrifices, all glories and all
victories unto You! You are moving in Your form of the personified Vedas, and in the hair holes of Your
body the oceans are submerged. For certain reasons [to uplift the earth] You have now assumed the
form of a boar.
35. O Lord, Your form is worshipable by performances of sacrifice, but souls who are simply miscreants
are unable to see it. All the Vedic hymns, Gayatri and others, are in the touch of Your skin. In Your
bodily hairs is the kusa grass, in Your eyes is the clarified butter, and in Your four legs are the four kinds
of fruitive activities.
36. O Lord, Your tongue is a plate of sacrifice, Your nostril is another plate of sacrifice, in Your belly is
the eating plate of sacrifice, and another plate of sacrifice is the holes of Your ears. In Your mouth is the
Brahma plate of sacrifice, Your throat is the plate of sacrifice known as soma, and whatever You chew
is known as agni-hotra.
37. Moreover, O Lord, the repetition of Your appearance is the desire for all kinds of initiation. Your
neck is the place for three desires, and Your tusks are the result of initiation and the end of all desires.
Your tongue is the prior activities of initiation, Your head is the fire without sacrifice as well as the fire of
worship, and Your living forces are the aggregate of all desires.
38. O Lord, Your semen is the sacrifice called soma-yajna. Your growth is the ritualistic performances of
the morning. Your skin and touch sensations are the seven elements of the agnistoma sacrifice. Your
bodily joints are symbols of various other sacrifices performed in twelve days. Therefore You are the
object of all sacrifices called soma and asoma, and You are bound by yajnas only.
39. O Lord, You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead and are worshipable by universal prayers,
Vedic hymns and sacrificial ingredients. We offer our obeisances unto You. You can be realized by the
pure mind freed from all visible and invisible material contamination. We offer our respectful obeisances
to You as the supreme spiritual master of knowledge in devotional service.
40. O lifter of the earth, the earth with its mountains, which You have lifted with Your tusks, is situated
as beautifully as a lotus flower with leaves sustained by an infuriated elephant just coming out of the
water.
41. O Lord, as the peaks of great mountains become beautiful when decorated with clouds, Your
transcendental body has become beautiful because of Your lifting the earth on the edge of Your tusks.
42. O Lord, for the residential purposes of all inhabitants, both moving and nonmoving, this earth is
Your wife, and You are the supreme father. We offer our respectful obeisances unto You, along with
mother earth, in whom You have invested Your own potency, just as an expert sacrificer puts fire in the
arani wood.
43. Who else but You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, could deliver the earth from within the
water? It is not very wonderful for You, however, because You acted most wonderfully in the creation of
the universe. By Your energy You have created this wonderful cosmic manifestation.
44. O Supreme Lord, undoubtedly we are inhabitants of the most pious planets--the Jana, Tapas and
Satya lokas--but still we have been purified by the drops of water sprinkled from Your shoulder hairs by
the shaking of Your body.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 91
45. O Lord, there is no limit to Your wonderful activities. Anyone who desires to know the limit of Your
activities is certainly nonsensical. Everyone in this world is conditioned by the powerful mystic
potencies. Please bestow Your causeless mercy upon these conditioned souls.
46. The sage Maitreya said: The Lord, being thus worshiped by all the great sages and
transcendentalists, touched the earth with His hooves and placed it on the water.
47. In this manner the Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu, the maintainer of all living entities, raised the
earth from within the water, and having placed it afloat on the water, He returned to His own abode.
48. If one hears and describes in a devotional service attitude this auspicious narration of Lord Boar,
which is worthy of description, the Lord, who is within the heart of everyone, is very pleased.
49. Nothing remains unachieved when the Supreme Personality of Godhead is pleased with someone.
By transcendental achievement one understands everything else to be insignificant. One who engages
in transcendental loving service is elevated to the highest perfectional stage by the Lord Himself, who is
seated in everyone's heart.
50. Who, other than one who is not a human being, can exist in this world and not be interested in the
ultimate goal of life? Who can refuse the nectar of narrations about the Personality of Godhead's
activities, which by itself can deliver one from all material pangs?
Chapter Fourteen Pregnancy of Diti in the Evening
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After hearing from the great sage Maitreya about the Lord's incarnation as
Varaha, Vidura, who had taken a vow, begged him with folded hands to please narrate further
transcendental activities of the Lord, since he [Vidura] did not yet feel satisfied.
2. Sri Vidura said: O chief amongst the great sages, I have heard by disciplic succession that
Hiranyaksa, the original demon, was slain by the same form of sacrifices, the Personality of Godhead
[Lord Boar].
3. What was the reason, O brahmana, for the fight between the demon king and Lord Boar while the
Lord was lifting the earth as His pastime?
4. My mind has become very inquisitive, and therefore I am not satisfied with hearing the narration of
the Lord's appearance. Please, therefore, speak more and more to a devotee who is faithful.
5. The great sage Maitreya said: O warrior, the inquiry made by you is just befitting a devotee because
it concerns the incarnation of the Personality of Godhead. He is the source of liberation from the chain
of birth and death for all those who are otherwise destined to die.
6. By hearing these topics from the sage [Narada], the son of King Uttanapada [Dhruva] was
enlightened regarding the Personality of Godhead, and he ascended to the abode of the Lord, placing
his feet over the head of death.
7. This history of the fight between the Lord as a boar and the demon Hiranyaksa was heard by me in a
year long ago as it was described by the foremost of the demigods, Brahma, when he was questioned
by the other demigods.
8. Diti, daughter of Daksa, being afflicted with sex desire, begged her husband, Kasyapa, the son of
Marici, to have intercourse with her in the evening in order to beget a child.
9. The sun was setting, and the sage was sitting in trance after offering oblations to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Visnu, whose tongue is the sacrificial fire.
10. In that place the beautiful Diti expressed her desire: O learned one, Cupid is taking his arrows and
distressing me forcibly, as a mad elephant troubles a banana tree.
11. Therefore you should be kind towards me by showing me complete mercy. I desire to have sons,
and I am much distressed by seeing the opulence of my co-wives. By performing this act, you will
become happy.
12. A woman is honored in the world by the benediction of her husband, and a husband like you will
become famous by having children because you are meant for the expansion of living entities.
13. In days long ago, our father, the most opulent Daksa, who was affectionate to his daughters, asked
each of us separately whom we would prefer to select as our husband.
14. Our well-wishing father, Daksa, after knowing our intentions, handed over thirteen of his daughters
unto you, and since then we have all been faithful.
15. O lotus-eyed one, kindly bless me by fulfilling my desire. When someone in distress approaches a
great person, his pleas should never go in vain.
16. O hero [Vidura], Diti, being thus afflicted by the contamination of lust, and therefore poor and
talkative, was pacified by the son of Marici in suitable words.
17. O afflicted one, I shall forthwith gratify whatever desire is dear to you, for who else but you is the
source of the three perfections of liberation?
18. As one can cross over the ocean with seagoing vessels, one can cross the dangerous situation of
the material ocean by living with a wife.
92 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
19. O respectful one, a wife is so helpful that she is called the better half of a man's body because of
her sharing in all auspicious activities. A man can move without anxiety entrusting all responsibilities to
his wife.
20. As a fort commander very easily conquers invading plunderers, by taking shelter of a wife one can
conquer the senses, which are unconquerable in the other social orders.
21. O queen of the home, we are not able to act like you, nor could we repay you for what you have
done, even if we worked for our entire life or even after death. To repay you is not possible, even for
those who are admirers of personal qualities.
22. Even though it is not possible to repay you, I shall satisfy your sex desire immediately for the sake
of begetting children. But you must wait for only a few seconds so that others may not reproach me.
23. This particular time is most inauspicious because at this time the horrible-looking ghosts and
constant companions of the lord of the ghosts are visible.
24. Lord Siva, the king of the ghosts, sitting on the back of his bull carrier, travels at this time,
accompanied by ghosts who follow him for their welfare.
25. Lord Siva's body is reddish, and he is unstained, but he is covered with ashes. His hair is dusty from
the whirlwind dust of the burning crematorium. He is the younger brother of your husband, and he sees
with his three eyes.
26. Lord Siva regards no one as his relative, yet there is no one who is not connected with him; he does
not regard anyone as very favorable or abominable. We respectfully worship the remnants of his
foodstuff, and we vow to accept what is rejected by him.
27. Although no one in the material world is equal to or greater than Lord Siva, and although his
unimpeachable character is followed by great souls to dismantle the mass of nescience, he
nevertheless remains as if a devil to give salvation to all devotees of the Lord.
28. Unfortunate, foolish persons, not knowing that he is engaged in his own self, laugh at him. Such
foolish persons engage in maintaining the body--which is eatable by dogs--with dresses, ornaments,
garlands and ointments.
29. Demigods like Brahma also follow the religious rites observed by him. He is the controller of the
material energy, which causes the creation of the material world. He is great, and therefore his devilish
characteristics are simply imitation.
30. Maitreya said: Diti was thus informed by her husband, but she was pressed by Cupid for sexual
satisfaction. She caught hold of the clothing of the great brahmana sage, just like a shameless public
prostitute.
31. Understanding his wife's purpose, he was obliged to perform the forbidden act, and thus after
offering his obeisances unto worshipable fate, he lay with her in a secluded place.
32. Thereafter the brahmana took his bath in the water and controlled his speech by practicing trance,
meditating on the eternal effulgence and chanting the holy Gayatri hymns within his mouth.
33. O son of the Bharata family, Diti, after this, went nearer to her husband, her face lowered because
of her faulty action. She spoke as follows.
34. The beautiful Diti said: My dear brahmana, kindly see that my embryo is not killed by Lord Siva, the
lord of all living entities, because of the great offense I have committed against him.
35. Let me offer my obeisances unto the angry Lord Siva, who is simultaneously the very ferocious
great demigod and the fulfiller of all material desires. He is all-auspicious and forgiving, but his anger
can immediately move him to chastise.
36. Let him be pleased with us, since he is my brother-in-law, the husband of my sister Sati. He is also
the worshipable lord of all women. He is the personality of all opulences and can show mercy towards
women, who are excused even by the uncivilized hunters.
37. Maitreya said: The great sage Kasyapa thus addressed his wife, who was trembling because of fear
that her husband was offended. She understood that he had been dissuaded from his daily duties of
offering evening prayers, yet she desired the welfare of her children in the world.
38. The learned Kasyapa said: Because of your mind's being polluted, because of defilement of the
particular time, because of your negligence of my directions, and because of your being apathetic to the
demigods, everything was inauspicious.
39. O haughty one, you will have two contemptuous sons born of your condemned womb. Unlucky
woman, they will cause constant lamentation to all the three worlds!
40. They will kill poor, faultless living entities, torture women and enrage the great souls.
41. At that time the Lord of the universe, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the well-wisher of
all living entities, will descend and kill them, just as Indra smashes the mountains with his thunderbolts.
42. Diti said: It is very good that my sons will be magnanimously killed by the arms of the Personality of
Godhead with His Sudarsana weapon. O my husband, may they never be killed by the wrath of the
brahmana devotees.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 93
43. A person who is condemned by a brahmana or is always fearful to other living entities is not favored
either by those who are already in hell or by those in the species in which he is born.
44-45. The learned Kasyapa said: Because of your lamentation, penitence and proper deliberation, and
also because of your unflinching faith in the Supreme Personality of Godhead and your adoration for
Lord Siva and me, one of the sons [Prahlada] of your son [Hiranyakasipu] will be an approved devotee
of the Lord, and his fame will be broadcast equally with that of the Personality of Godhead.
46. In order to follow in his footsteps, saintly persons will try to emulate his character by practicing
freedom from animosity, just as the purifying processes rectify gold of inferior quality.
47. Everyone will be pleased with him because the Personality of Godhead, the supreme controller of
the universe, is always satisfied with a devotee who does not wish for anything beyond Him.
48. That topmost devotee of the Lord will have expanded intelligence and expanded influence and will
be the greatest of the great souls. Due to matured devotional service, he will certainly be situated in
transcendental ecstasy and will enter the spiritual sky after quitting this material world.
49. He will be a virtuously qualified reservoir of all good qualities; he will be jolly and happy in others'
happiness, distressed in others' distress, and will have no enemies. He will be a destroyer of the
lamentation of all the universes, like the pleasant moon after the summer sun.
50. Your grandson will be able to see, inside and outside, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose
wife is the beautiful goddess of fortune. The Lord can assume the form desired by the devotee, and His
face is always beautifully decorated with earrings.
51. The sage Maitreya said: Hearing that her grandson would be a great devotee and that her sons
would be killed by Krsna, Diti was highly pleased in mind.
Chapter Fifteen Description of the Kingdom of God
1. Sri Maitreya said: My dear Vidura, Diti, the wife of the sage Kasyapa, could understand that the sons
within her womb would be a cause of disturbance to the demigods. As such, she continuously bore the
powerful semen of Kasyapa Muni, which was meant to give trouble to others, for one hundred years.
2. By the force of the pregnancy of Diti, the light of the sun and moon was impaired in all the planets,
and the demigods of various planets, being disturbed by that force, asked the creator of the universe,
Brahma, "What is this expansion of darkness in all directions?"
3. The fortunate demigods said: O great one, just see this darkness, which you know very well and
which is causing us anxieties. Because the influence of time cannot touch you, there is nothing
unmanifest before you.
4. O god of the demigods, sustainer of the universe, head jewel of all the demigods in other planets, you
know the intentions of all living entities, in both the spiritual and material worlds.
5. O original source of strength and scientific knowledge, all obeisances unto you! You have accepted
the differentiated mode of passion from the Supreme Personality of Godhead. With the help of external
energy you are born of the unmanifested source. All obeisances unto you!
6. O lord, all these planets exist within your self, and all the living entities are generated from you.
Therefore you are the cause of this universe, and anyone who meditates upon you without deviation
attains devotional service.
7. There is no defeat in this material world for persons who control the mind and senses by controlling
the breathing process and who are therefore experienced, mature mystics. This is because by such
perfection in yoga they have attained your mercy.
8. All the living entities within the universe are conducted by the Vedic directions, as a bull is directed by
the rope attached to its nose. No one can violate the rules laid down in the Vedic literatures. To the
chief person, who has contributed the Vedas, we offer our respect!
9. The demigods prayed to Brahma: Please look upon us mercifully, for we have fallen into a miserable
condition; because of the darkness, all our work has been suspended.
10. As fuel overloads a fire, so the embryo created by the semen of Kasyapa in the womb of Diti has
caused complete darkness throughout the universe.
11. Sri Maitreya said: Thus Lord Brahma, who is understood by transcendental vibration, tried to satisfy
the demigods, being pleased with their words of prayer.
12. Lord Brahma said: My four sons Sanaka, Sanatana, Sanandana and Sanat-kumara, who were born
from my mind, are your predecessors. Sometimes they travel throughout the material and spiritual skies
without any definite desire.
13. After thus traveling all over the universes, they also entered into the spiritual sky, for they were freed
from all material contamination. In the spiritual sky there are spiritual planets known as Vaikunthas,
which are the residence of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and His pure devotees and are
worshiped by the residents of all the material planets.
14. In the Vaikuntha planets all the residents are similar in form to the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. They all engage in devotional service to the Lord without desires for sense gratification.
94 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. In the Vaikuntha planets is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the original person and
who can be understood through the Vedic literature. He is full of the uncontaminated mode of
goodness, with no place for passion or ignorance. He contributes religious progress for the devotees.
16. In those Vaikuntha planets there are many forests which are very auspicious. In those forests the
trees are desire trees, and in all seasons they are filled with flowers and fruits because everything in the
Vaikuntha planets is spiritual and personal.
17. In the Vaikuntha planets the inhabitants fly in their airplanes, accompanied by their wives and
consorts, and eternally sing of the character and activities of the Lord, which are always devoid of all
inauspicious qualities. While singing the glories of the Lord, they deride even the presence of the
blossoming madhavi flowers, which are fragrant and laden with honey.
18. When the king of bees hums in a high pitch, singing the glories of the Lord, there is a temporary lull
in the noise of the pigeon, the cuckoo, the crane, the cakravaka, the swan, the parrot, the partridge and
the peacock. Such transcendental birds stop their own singing simply to hear the glories of the Lord.
19. Although flowering plants like the mandara, kunda, kurabaka, utpala, campaka, arna, punnaga,
nagakesara, bakula, lily and parijata are full of transcendental fragrance, they are still conscious of the
austerities performed by tulasi, for tulasi is given special preference by the Lord, who garlands Himself
with tulasi leaves.
20. The inhabitants of Vaikuntha travel in their airplanes made of lapis lazuli, emerald and gold.
Although crowded by their consorts, who have large hips and beautiful smiling faces, they cannot be
stimulated to passion by their mirth and beautiful charms.
21. The ladies in the Vaikuntha planets are as beautiful as the goddess of fortune herself. Such
transcendentally beautiful ladies, their hands playing with lotuses and their leg bangles tinkling, are
sometimes seen sweeping the marble walls, which are bedecked at intervals with golden borders, in
order to receive the grace of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
22. The goddesses of fortune worship the Lord in their own gardens by offering tulasi leaves on the
coral-paved banks of transcendental reservoirs of water. While offering worship to the Lord, they can
see on the water the reflection of their beautiful faces with raised noses, and it appears that they have
become more beautiful because of the Lord's kissing their faces.
23. It is very much regrettable that unfortunate people do not discuss the description of the Vaikuntha
planets but engage in topics which are unworthy to hear and which bewilder one's intelligence. Those
who give up the topics of Vaikuntha and take to talk of the material world are thrown into the darkest
region of ignorance.
24. Lord Brahma said: My dear demigods, the human form of life is of such importance that we also
desire to have such life, for in the human form one can attain perfect religious truth and knowledge. If
one in this human form of life does not understand the Supreme Personality of Godhead and His
abode, it is to be understood that he is very much affected by the influence of external nature.
25. Persons whose bodily features change in ecstasy and who breathe heavily and perspire due to
hearing the glories of the Lord are promoted to the kingdom of God, even though they do not care for
meditation and other austerities. The kingdom of God is above the material universes, and it is desired
by Brahma and other demigods.
26. Thus the great sages, Sanaka, Sanatana, Sanandana and Sanat-kumara, upon reaching the
above-mentioned Vaikuntha in the spiritual world by dint of their mystic yoga performance, perceived
unprecedented happiness. They found that the spiritual sky was illuminated by highly decorated
airplanes piloted by the best devotees of Vaikuntha and was predominated by the Supreme Personality
of Godhead.
27. After passing through the six entrances of Vaikuntha-puri, the Lord's residence, without feeling
astonishment at all the decorations, they saw at the seventh gate two shining beings of the same age,
armed with maces and adorned with most valuable jewelry, earrings, diamonds, helmets, garments, etc.
28. The two doormen were garlanded with fresh flowers which attracted intoxicated bees and which
were placed around their necks and between their four blue arms. From their arched eyebrows,
discontented nostrils and reddish eyes, they appeared somewhat agitated.
29. The great sages, headed by Sanaka, had opened doors everywhere. They had no idea of "ours"
and "theirs." With open minds, they entered the seventh door out of their own will, just as they had
passed through the six other doors, which were made of gold and diamonds.
30. The four boy-sages, who had nothing to cover their bodies but the atmosphere, looked only five
years old, even though they were the oldest of all living creatures and had realized the truth of the self.
But when the porters, who happened to possess a disposition quite unpalatable to the Lord, saw the
sages, they blocked their way with their staffs, despising their glories, although the sages did not
deserve such treatment at their hands.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 95
31. When the Kumaras, although by far the fittest persons, were thus forbidden entrance by the two
chief doorkeepers of Sri Hari while other divinities looked on, their eyes suddenly turned red because of
anger due to their great eagerness to see their most beloved master, Sri Hari, the Personality of
Godhead.
32. The sages said: Who are these two persons who have developed such a discordant mentality even
though they are posted in the service of the Lord in the highest position and are expected to have
developed the same qualities as the Lord? How are these two persons living in Vaikuntha? Where is
the possibility of an enemy's coming into this kingdom of God? The Supreme Personality of Godhead
has no enemy. Who could be envious of Him? Probably these two persons are imposters; therefore
they suspect others to be like themselves.
33. In the Vaikuntha world there is complete harmony between the residents and the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, just as there is complete harmony within space between the big and the small
skies. Why then is there a seed of fear in this field of harmony? These two persons are dressed like
inhabitants of Vaikuntha, but wherefrom can their disharmony come into existence?
34. Therefore let us consider how these two contaminated persons should be punished. The
punishment should be apt, for thus benefit can eventually be bestowed upon them. Since they find
duality in the existence of Vaikuntha life, they are contaminated and should be removed from this place
to the material world, where the living entities have three kinds of enemies.
35. When the doormen of Vaikunthaloka, who were certainly devotees of the Lord, found that they were
going to be cursed by the brahmanas, they at once became very much afraid and fell down at the feet
of the brahmanas in great anxiety, for a brahmana's curse cannot be counteracted by any kind of
weapon.
36. After being cursed by the sages, the doormen said: It is quite apt that you have punished us for
neglecting to respect sages like you. But we pray that due to your compassion at our repentance, the
illusion of forgetting the Supreme Personality of Godhead will not come upon us as we go progressively
downward.
37. At that very moment, the Lord, who is called Padmanabha because of the lotus grown from His
navel and who is the delight of the righteous, learned about the insult offered by His own servants to the
saints. Accompanied by His spouse, the goddess of fortune, He went to the spot on those very feet
sought for by recluses and great sages.
38. The sages, headed by Sanaka Rsi, saw that the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, who was
formerly visible only within their hearts in ecstatic trance, had now actually become visible to their eyes.
As He came forward, accompanied by His own associates bearing all paraphernalia, such as an
umbrella and a camara fan, the white bunches of hair moved very gently, like two swans, and due to
their favorable breeze the pearls garlanding the umbrella also moved, like drops of nectar falling from
the white full moon or ice melting due to a gust of wind.
39. The Lord is the reservoir of all pleasure. His auspicious presence is meant for everyone's
benediction, and His affectionate smiling and glancing touch the core of the heart. The Lord's beautiful
bodily color is blackish, and His broad chest is the resting place of the goddess of fortune, who glorifies
the entire spiritual world, the summit of all heavenly planets. Thus it appeared that the Lord was
personally spreading the beauty and good fortune of the spiritual world.
40. He was adorned with a girdle that shone brightly on the yellow cloth covering His large hips, and He
wore a garland of fresh flowers which was distinguished by humming bees. His lovely wrists were
graced with bracelets, and He rested one of His hands on the shoulder of Garuda, His carrier, and
twirled a lotus with another hand.
41. His countenance was distinguished by cheeks that enhanced the beauty of His alligator-shaped
pendants, which outshone lightning. His nose was prominent, and His head was covered with a gem-
studded crown. A charming necklace hung between His stout arms, and His neck was adorned with the
gem known by the name Kaustubha.
42. The exquisite beauty of Narayana, being many times magnified by the intelligence of His devotees,
was so attractive that it defeated the pride of the goddess of fortune in being the most beautiful. My dear
demigods, the Lord who thus manifested Himself is worshipable by me, by Lord Siva and by all of you.
The sages regarded Him with unsated eyes and joyously bowed their heads at His lotus feet.
43. When the breeze carrying the aroma of tulasi leaves from the toes of the lotus feet of the
Personality of Godhead entered the nostrils of those sages, they experienced a change both in body
and in mind, even though they were attached to the impersonal Brahman understanding.
44. The Lord's beautiful face appeared to them like the inside of a blue lotus, and the Lord's smile
appeared to be a blossoming jasmine flower. After seeing the face of the Lord, the sages were fully
satisfied, and when they wanted to see Him further, they looked upon the nails of His lotus feet, which
96 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
resembled rubies. Thus they viewed the Lord's transcendental body again and again, and so they finally
achieved meditation on the Lord's personal feature.
45. This is the form of the Lord which is meditated upon by the followers of the yoga process, and it is
pleasing to the yogis in meditation. It is not imaginary but factual, as proved by great yogis. The Lord is
full in eight kinds of achievement, but for others these achievements are not possible in full perfection.
46. The Kumaras said: Our dear Lord, You are not manifested to rascals, even though You are seated
within the heart of everyone. But as far as we are concerned, we see You face to face, although You
are unlimited. The statements we have heard about You from our father, Brahma, through the ears
have now been actually realized by Your kind appearance.
47. We know that You are the Supreme Absolute Truth, the Personality of Godhead, who manifests His
transcendental form in the uncontaminated mode of pure goodness. This transcendental, eternal form
of Your personality can be understood only by Your mercy, through unflinching devotional service, by
great sages whose hearts have been purified in the devotional way.
48. Persons who are very expert and most intelligent in understanding things as they are engage in
hearing narrations of the auspicious activities and pastimes of the Lord, which are worth chanting and
worth hearing. Such persons do not care even for the highest material benediction, namely liberation, to
say nothing of other less important benedictions like the material happiness of the heavenly kingdom.
49. O Lord, we pray that You let us be born in any hellish condition of life, just as long as our hearts and
minds are always engaged in the service of Your lotus feet, our words are made beautiful [by speaking
of Your activities] just as tulasi leaves are beautified when offered unto Your lotus feet, and as long as
our ears are always filled with the chanting of Your transcendental qualities.
50. O Lord, we therefore offer our respectful obeisances unto Your eternal form as the Personality of
Godhead, which You have so kindly manifested before us. Your supreme, eternal form cannot be seen
by unfortunate, less intelligent persons, but we are so much satisfied in our mind and vision to see it.
Chapter Sixteen The Two Doorkeepers of Vaikuntha, Cursed by the Sages
1. Lord Brahma said: After thus congratulating the sages for their nice words, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, whose abode is in the kingdom of God, spoke as follows.
2. The Personality of Godhead said: These attendants of Mine, Jaya and Vijaya by name, have
committed a great offense against you because of ignoring Me.
3. O great sages, I approve of the punishment that you who are devoted to Me have meted out to them.
4. To Me, the brahmana is the highest and most beloved personality. The disrespect shown by My
attendants has actually been displayed by Me because the doormen are My servitors. I take this to be
an offense by Myself; therefore I seek your forgiveness for the incident that has arisen.
5. A wrong act committed by a servant leads people in general to blame his master, just as a spot of
white leprosy on any part of the body pollutes all of the skin.
6. Anyone in the entire world, even down to the candala, who lives by cooking and eating the flesh of
the dog, is immediately purified if he takes bath in hearing through the ear the glorification of My name,
fame, etc. Now you have realized Me without doubt; therefore I will not hesitate to lop off My own arm if
its conduct is found hostile to you.
7. The Lord continued: Because I am the servitor of My devotees, My lotus feet have become so sacred
that they immediately wipe out all sin, and I have acquired such a disposition that the goddess of
fortune does not leave Me, even though I have no attachment for her and others praise her beauty and
observe sacred vows to secure from her even a slight favor.
8. I do not enjoy the oblations offered by the sacrificers in the sacrificial fire, which is one of My own
mouths, with the same relish as I do the delicacies overflowing with ghee which are offered to the
mouths of the brahmanas who have dedicated to Me the results of their activities and who are ever
satisfied with My prasada.
9. I am the master of My unobstructed internal energy, and the water of the Ganges is the remnant left
after My feet are washed. That water sanctifies the three worlds, along with Lord Siva, who bears it on
his head. If I can take the dust of the feet of the Vaisnava on My head, who will refuse to do the same?
10. The brahmanas, the cows and the defenseless creatures are My own body. Those whose faculty of
judgment has been impaired by their own sin look upon these as distinct from Me. They are just like
furious serpents, and they are angrily torn apart by the bills of the vulturelike messengers of Yamaraja,
the superintendent of sinful persons.
11. On the other hand, they captivate My heart who are gladdened in heart and who, their lotus faces
enlightened by nectarean smiles, respect the brahmanas, even though the brahmanas utter harsh
words. They look upon the brahmanas as My own Self and pacify them by praising them in loving
words, even as a son would appease an angry father or as I am pacifying you.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 97
12. These servants of Mine have transgressed against you, not knowing the mind of their master. I shall
therefore deem it a favor done to Me if you order that, although reaping the fruit of their transgression,
they may return to My presence soon and the time of their exile from My abode may expire before long.
13. Brahma continued: Even though the sages had been bitten by the serpent of anger, their souls were
not satiated with hearing the Lord's lovely and illuminating speech, which was like a series of Vedic
hymns.
14. The Lord's excellent speech was difficult to comprehend because of its momentous import and its
most profound significance. The sages heard it with wide-open ears and pondered it as well. But
although hearing, they could not understand what He intended to do.
15. The four brahmana sages were nevertheless extremely delighted to behold Him, and they
experienced a thrill throughout their bodies. They then spoke as follows to the Lord, who had revealed
the multiglories of the Supreme Personality through His internal potency, yogamaya.
16. The sages said: O Supreme Personality of Godhead, we are unable to know what You intend for us
to do, for even though You are the supreme ruler of all, You speak in our favor as if we had done
something good for You.
17. O Lord, You are the supreme director of the brahminical culture. Your considering the brahmanas to
be in the highest position is Your example for teaching others. Actually You are the supreme
worshipable Deity, not only for the gods but for the brahmanas also.
18. You are the source of the eternal occupation of all living entities, and by Your multimanifestations of
Personalities of Godhead, You have always protected religion. You are the supreme objective of
religious principles, and in our opinion You are inexhaustible and unchangeable eternally.
19. Mystics and transcendentalists, by the mercy of the Lord, cross beyond nescience by ceasing all
material desires. It is not possible, therefore, that the Supreme Lord can be favored by others.
20. The goddess of fortune, Laksmi, the dust of whose feet is worn on the head by others, waits upon
You, as appointed, for she is anxious to secure a place in the abode of the king of bees, who hovers on
the fresh wreath of tulasi leaves offered at Your feet by some blessed devotee.
21. O Lord, You are exceedingly attached to the activities of Your pure devotees, yet You are never
attached to the goddesses of fortune who constantly engage in Your transcendental loving service. How
can You be purified, therefore, by the dust of the path traversed by the brahmanas, and how can You
be glorified or made fortunate by the marks of Srivatsa on Your chest?
22. O Lord, You are the personification of all religion. Therefore You manifest Yourself in three
millenniums, and thus You protect this universe, which consists of animate and inanimate beings. By
Your grace, which is of pure goodness and is the bestower of all blessings, kindly drive away the
elements of rajas and tamas for the sake of the demigods and twice-born.
23. O Lord, You are the protector of the highest of the twice-born. If You do not protect them by offering
worship and mild words, then certainly the auspicious path of worship will be rejected by people in
general, who act on the strength and authority of Your Lordship.
24. Dear Lord, You never want the auspicious path to be destroyed, for You are the reservoir of all
goodness. Just to benefit people in general, You destroy the evil element by Your mighty potency. You
are the proprietor of the three creations and the maintainer of the entire universe. Therefore Your
potency is not reduced by Your submissive behavior. Rather, by submission You exhibit Your
transcendental pastimes.
25. O Lord, whatever punishment You wish to award to these two innocent persons or also to us we
shall accept without duplicity. We understand that we have cursed two faultless persons.
26. The Lord replied: O brahmanas, know that the punishment you inflicted on them was originally
ordained by Me, and therefore they will fall to a birth in a demoniac family. But they will be firmly united
with Me in thought through mental concentration intensified by anger, and they will return to My
presence shortly.
27. Lord Brahma said: After seeing the Lord of Vaikuntha, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, in the
self-illuminated Vaikuntha planet, the sages left that transcendental abode.
28. The sages circumambulated the Supreme Lord, offered their obeisances and returned, extremely
delighted at learning of the divine opulences of the Vaisnava.
29. The Lord then said to His attendants, Jaya and Vijaya: Depart this place, but fear not. All glories
unto you. Though I am capable of nullifying the brahmanas' curse, I would not do so. On the contrary, it
has My approval.
30. This departure from Vaikuntha was foretold by Laksmi, the goddess of fortune. She was very angry
because when she left My abode and then returned, you stopped her at the gate while I was sleeping.
31. The Lord assured the two Vaikuntha inhabitants, Jaya and Vijaya: By practicing the mystic yoga
system in anger, you will be cleansed of the sin of disobeying the brahmanas and within a very short
time return to Me.
98 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
32. After thus speaking at the door of Vaikuntha, the Lord returned to His abode, where there are many
celestial airplanes and all-surpassing wealth and splendor.
33. But those two gatekeepers, the best of the demigods, their beauty and luster diminished by the
curse of the brahmanas, became morose and fell from Vaikuntha, the abode of the Supreme Lord.
34. Then, as Jaya and Vijaya fell from the Lord's abode, a great roar of disappointment arose from all
the demigods, who were sitting in their splendid airplanes.
35. Lord Brahma continued: Those two principal doorkeepers of the Personality of Godhead have now
entered the womb of Diti, the powerful semen of Kasyapa Muni having covered them.
36. It is the prowess of these twin asuras [demons] that has disturbed you, for it has minimized your
power. There is no remedy within my power, however, for it is the Lord Himself who desires to do all
this.
37. My dear sons, the Lord is the controller of the three modes of nature and is responsible for the
creation, preservation and dissolution of the universe. His wonderful creative power, yogamaya, cannot
be easily understood even by the masters of yoga. That most ancient person, the Personality of
Godhead, will alone come to our rescue. What purpose can we serve on His behalf by deliberating on
the subject?
Chapter Seventeen Victory of Hiranyaksa Over All the directions of the Universe
1. Sri Maitreya said: The demigods, the inhabitants of the higher planets, were freed from all fear upon
hearing the cause of the darkness explained by Brahma, who was born from Visnu. Thus they all
returned to their respective planets.
2. The virtuous lady Diti had been very apprehensive of trouble to the gods from the children in her
womb, and her husband predicted the same. She brought forth twin sons after a full one hundred years
of pregnancy.
3. On the birth of the two demons there were many natural disturbances, all very fearful and wonderful,
in the heavenly planets, the earthly planets and in between them.
4. There were earthquakes along the mountains on the earth, and it appeared that there was fire
everywhere. Many inauspicious planets like Saturn appeared, along with comets, meteors and
thunderbolts.
5. There blew winds which were most uninviting to the touch, hissing again and again and uprooting
gigantic trees. They had storms for their armies and clouds of dust for their ensigns.
6. The luminaries in the heavens were screened by masses of clouds, in which lightning sometimes
flashed as though laughing. Darkness reigned everywhere, and nothing could be seen.
7. The ocean with its high waves wailed aloud as if stricken with sorrow, and there was a commotion
among the creatures inhabiting the ocean. The rivers and lakes were also agitated, and lotuses
withered.
8. Misty halos appeared around the sun and the moon during solar and lunar eclipses again and again.
Claps of thunder were heard even without clouds, and sounds like those of rattling chariots emerged
from the mountain caves.
9. In the interior of the villages she-jackals yelled portentously, vomiting strong fire from their mouths,
and jackals and owls also joined them with their cries.
10. Raising their necks, dogs cried here and there, now in the manner of singing and now of wailing.
11. O Vidura, the asses ran hither and thither in herds, striking the earth with their hard hooves and
wildly braying.
12. Frightened by the braying of the asses, birds flew shrieking from their nests, while cattle in the
cowsheds as well as in the woods passed dung and urine.
13. Cows, terrified, yielded blood in place of milk, clouds rained pus, the images of the gods in the
temples shed tears, and trees fell down without a blast of wind.
14. Ominous planets such as Mars and Saturn shone brighter and surpassed the auspicious ones such
as Mercury, Jupiter and Venus as well as a number of lunar mansions. Taking seemingly retrograde
courses, the planets came in conflict with one another.
15. Marking these and many other omens of evil times, everyone but the four sage-sons of Brahma,
who were aware of the fall of Jaya and Vijaya and of their birth as Diti's sons, was seized with fear.
They did not know the secrets of these potents and thought that the dissolution of the universe was at
hand.
16. These two demons who appeared in ancient times soon began to exhibit uncommon bodily
features; they had steellike frames which began to grow just like two great mountains.
17. Their bodies became so tall that they seemed to kiss the sky with the crests of their gold crowns.
They blocked the view of all directions and while walking shook the earth at every step. Their arms were
adorned with brilliant bracelets, and they stood as if covering the sun with their waists, which were
bound with excellent and beautiful girdles.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 99
18. Kasyapa, Prajapati, the creator of the living entities, gave his twin sons their names; the one who
was born first he named Hiranyaksa, and the one who was first conceived by Diti he named
Hiranyakasipu.
19. The elder child, Hiranyakasipu, was unafraid of death from anyone within the three worlds because
he received a benediction from Lord Brahma. He was proud and puffed up due to this benediction and
was able to bring all three planetary systems under his control.
20. His younger brother, Hiranyaksa, was always ready to satisfy his elder brother by his activities.
Hiranyaksa took a club on his shoulder and traveled all over the universe with a fighting spirit just to
satisfy Hiranyakasipu.
21. Hiranyaksa's temper was difficult to control. He had anklets of gold tinkling about his feet, he was
adorned with a gigantic garland, and he rested his huge mace on one of his shoulders.
22. His mental and bodily strength as well as the boon conferred upon him had made him proud. He
feared death at the hands of no one, and there was no checking him. The gods, therefore, were seized
with fear at his very sight, and they hid themselves even as snakes hide themselves for fear of Garuda.
23. On not finding Indra and the other demigods, who had previously been intoxicated with power, the
chief of the Daityas, seeing that they had all vanished before his might, roared loudly.
24. After returning from the heavenly kingdom, the mighty demon, who was like an elephant in wrath,
for the sake of sport dived into the deep ocean, which was roaring terribly.
25. On his entering the ocean, the aquatic animals who formed the host of Varuna were stricken with
fear and ran far away. Thus Hiranyaksa showed his splendor without dealing a blow.
26. Moving about in the ocean for many, many years, the mighty Hiranyaksa smote the gigantic wind-
tossed waves again and again with his iron mace and reached Vibhavari, the capital of Varuna.
27. Vibhavari is the home of Varuna, lord of the aquatic creatures and guardian of the lower regions of
the universe, where the demons generally reside. There Hiranyaksa fell at Varuna's feet like a lowborn
man, and to make fun of him he said with a smile, "Give me battle, O Supreme Lord!"
28. You are the guardian of an entire sphere and a ruler of wide fame. Having crushed the might of
arrogant and conceited warriors and having conquered all the Daityas and Danavas in the world, you
once performed a Rajasuya sacrifice to the Lord.
29. Thus mocked by an enemy whose vanity knew no bounds, the worshipful lord of the waters waxed
angry, but by dint of his reason he managed to curb the anger that had sprung up in him, and he
replied: O dear one, we have now desisted from warfare, having grown too old for combat.
30. You are so skilled in war that I do not see anyone else but the most ancient person, Lord Visnu, who
can give satisfaction in battle to you. Therefore, O chief of the asuras, approach Him, whom even
heroes like you mention with praise.
31. Varuna continued: On reaching Him you will be rid of your pride at once and will lie down on the
field of battle, surrounded by dogs, for eternal sleep. It is in order to exterminate wicked fellows like you
and to show His grace to the virtuous that He assumes His various incarnations like Varaha.
Chapter Eighteen The Battle Between Lord Boar and the Demon Hiranyaksa
1. Maitreya continued: The proud and falsely glorious Daitya paid little heed to the words of Varuna. O
dear Vidura, he learned from Narada the whereabouts of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and
hurriedly betook himself to the depths of the ocean.
2. He saw there the all-powerful Personality of Godhead in His boar incarnation, bearing the earth
upward on the ends of His tusks and robbing him of his splendor with His reddish eyes. The demon
laughed: Oh, an amphibious beast!
3. The demon addressed the Lord: O best of the demigods, dressed in the form of a boar, just hear me.
This earth is entrusted to us, the inhabitants of the lower regions, and You cannot take it from my
presence and not be hurt by me.
4. You rascal, You have been nourished by our enemies to kill us, and You have killed some demons
by remaining invisible. O fool, Your power is only mystic, so today I shall enliven my kinsmen by killing
You.
5. The demon continued: When You fall dead with Your skull smashed by the mace hurled by my arms,
the demigods and sages who offer You oblations and sacrifice in devotional service will also
automatically cease to exist, like trees without roots.
6. Although the Lord was pained by the shaftlike abusive words of the demon, He bore the pain. But
seeing that the earth on the ends of His tusks was frightened, He rose out of the water just as an
elephant emerges with its female companion when assailed by an alligator.
7. The demon, who had golden hair on his head and fearful tusks, gave chase to the Lord while He was
rising from the water, even as an alligator would chase an elephant. Roaring like thunder, he said: Are
You not ashamed of running away before a challenging adversary? There is nothing reproachable for
shameless creatures!
100 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
8. The Lord placed the earth within His sight on the surface of the water and transferred to her His own
energy in the form of the ability to float on the water. While the enemy stood looking on, Brahma, the
creator of the universe, extolled the Lord, and the other demigods rained flowers on Him.
9. The demon, who had a wealth of ornaments, bangles and beautiful golden armor on his body,
chased the Lord from behind with a great mace. The Lord tolerated his piercing ill words, but in order to
reply to him, He expressed His terrible anger.
10. The Personality of Godhead said: Indeed, We are creatures of the jungle, and We are searching
after hunting dogs like you. One who is freed from the entanglement of death has no fear from the loose
talk in which you are indulging, for you are bound up by the laws of death.
11. Certainly We have stolen the charge of the inhabitants of Rasatala and have lost all shame.
Although bitten by your powerful mace, I shall stay here in the water for some time because, having
created enmity with a powerful enemy, I now have no place to go.
12. You are supposed to be the commander of many foot soldiers, and now you may take prompt steps
to overthrow Us. Give up all your foolish talk and wipe out the cares of your kith and kin by slaying Us.
One may be proud, yet he does not deserve a seat in an assembly if he fails to fulfill his promised word.
13. Sri Maitreya said: The demon, being thus challenged by the Personality of Godhead, became angry
and agitated, and he trembled in anger like a challenged cobra.
14. Hissing indignantly, all his senses shaken by wrath, the demon quickly sprang upon the Lord and
dealt Him a blow with his powerful mace.
15. The Lord, however, by moving slightly aside, dodged the violent mace-blow aimed at His breast by
the enemy, just as an accomplished yogi would elude death.
16. The Personality of Godhead now exhibited His anger and rushed to meet the demon, who bit his lip
in rage, took up his mace again and began to repeatedly brandish it about.
17. Then with His mace the Lord struck the enemy on the right of his brow, but since the demon was
expert in fighting, O gentle Vidura, he protected himself by a maneuver of his own mace.
18. In this way, the demon Haryaksa and the Lord, the Personality of Godhead, struck each other with
their huge maces, each enraged and seeking his own victory.
19. There was keen rivalry between the two combatants; both had sustained injuries on their bodies
from the blows of each other's pointed maces, and each grew more and more enraged at the smell of
blood on his person. In their eagerness to win, they performed maneuvers of various kinds, and their
contest looked like an encounter between two forceful bulls for the sake of a cow.
20. O descendant of Kuru, Brahma, the most independent demigod of the universe, accompanied by
his followers, came to see the terrible fight for the sake of the world between the demon and the
Personality of Godhead, who appeared in the form of a boar.
21. After arriving at the place of combat, Brahma, the leader of thousands of sages and
transcendentalists, saw the demon, who had attained such unprecedented power that no one could
fight with him. Brahma then addressed Narayana, who was assuming the form of a boar for the first
time.
22-23. Lord Brahma said: My dear Lord, this demon has proved to be a constant pinprick to the
demigods, the brahmanas, the cows and innocent persons who are spotless and always dependent
upon worshiping Your lotus feet. He has become a source of fear by unnecessarily harassing them.
Since he has attained a boon from me, he has become a demon, always searching for a proper
combatant, wandering all over the universe for this infamous purpose.
24. Lord Brahma continued: My dear Lord, there is no need to play with this serpentine demon, who is
always very skilled in conjuring tricks and is arrogant, self-sufficient and most wicked.
25. Brahma continued: My dear Lord, You are infallible. Please kill this sinful demon before the
demoniac hour arrives and he presents another formidable approach favorable to him. You can kill him
by Your internal potency without doubt.
26. My Lord, the darkest evening, which covers the world, is fast approaching. Since You are the Soul
of all souls, kindly kill him and win victory for the demigods.
Chapter Nineteen The Killing of the Demon Hiranyaksa
1. Sri Maitreya said: After hearing the words of Brahma, the creator, which were free from all sinful
purposes and as sweet as nectar, the Lord heartily laughed and accepted his prayer with a glance
laden with love.
2. The Lord, who had appeared from the nostril of Brahma, sprang and aimed His mace at the chin of
His enemy, the Hiranyaksa demon, who was stalking fearlessly before Him.
3. Struck by the demon's mace, however, the Lord's mace slipped from His hand and looked splendid
as it fell down whirling. This was miraculous, for the mace was blazing wonderfully.
4. Even though the demon had an excellent opportunity to strike his unarmed foe without obstruction,
he respected the law of single combat, thereby kindling the fury of the Supreme Lord.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 101
5. As the Lord's mace fell to the ground and a cry of alarm arose from the witnessing crowd of gods and
rsis, the Personality of Godhead acknowledged the demon's love of righteousness and therefore
invoked His Sudarsana discus.
6. As the discus began to revolve in the Lord's hands and the Lord contended at close quarters with the
chief of His Vaikuntha attendants, who had been born as Hiranyaksa, a vile son of Diti, there issued
from every direction strange expressions uttered by those who were witnessing from airplanes. They
had no knowledge of the Lord's reality, and they cried, "May victory attend You! Pray dispatch him. Play
no more with him."
7. When the demon saw the Personality of Godhead, who had eyes just like lotus petals, standing in
position before him, armed with His Sudarsana discus, his senses were overpowered by indignation. He
began to hiss like a serpent, and he bit his lip in great resentment.
8. The demon, who had fearful tusks, stared at the Personality of Godhead as though to burn Him.
Springing into the air, he aimed his mace at the Lord, exclaiming at the same time, "You are slain!"
9. O saintly Vidura, while His enemy looked on, the Lord in His boar form, the enjoyer of all sacrificial
offerings, playfully knocked down the mace with His left foot, even as it came upon Him with the force of
a tempest.
10. The Lord then said: "Take up your weapon and try again, eager as you are to conquer Me."
Challenged in these words, the demon aimed his mace at the Lord and once more loudly roared.
11. When the Lord saw the mace flying toward Him, He stood firmly where He was and caught it with
the same ease as Garuda, the king of birds, would seize a serpent.
12. His valor thus frustrated, the great demon felt humiliated and was put out of countenance. He was
reluctant to take back the mace when it was offered by the Personality of Godhead.
13. He now took a trident which was as rapacious as a flaming fire and hurled it against the Lord, the
enjoyer of all sacrifices, even as one would use penance for a malevolent purpose against a holy
brahmana.
14. Hurled by the mighty demon with all his strength, the flying trident shone brightly in the sky. The
Personality of Godhead, however, tore it to pieces with His discus Sudarsana, which had a sharp-edged
rim, even as Indra cut off a wing of Garuda.
15. The demon was enraged when his trident was cut to pieces by the discus of the Personality of
Godhead. He therefore advanced toward the Lord and, roaring aloud, struck his hard fist against the
Lord's broad chest, which bore the mark of Srivatsa. Then he went out of sight.
16. Hit in this manner by the demon, O Vidura, the Lord, who had appeared as the first boar, did not feel
the least quaking in any part of His body, any more than an elephant would when struck with a wreath
of flowers.
17. The demon, however, employed many conjuring tricks against the Personality of Godhead, who is
the Lord of yogamaya. At the sight of this the people were filled with alarm and thought that the
dissolution of the universe was near.
18. Fierce winds began to blow from all directions, spreading darkness occasioned by dust and hail
storms; stones came in volleys from every corner, as if thrown by machine guns.
19. The luminaries in outer space disappeared due to the sky's being overcast with masses of clouds,
which were accompanied by lightning and thunder. The sky rained pus, hair, blood, stool, urine and
bones.
20. O sinless Vidura, mountains discharged weapons of various kinds, and naked demonesses armed
with tridents appeared with their hair hanging loose.
21. Cruel and savage slogans were uttered by hosts of ruffian Yaksas and Raksasas, who all either
marched on foot or rode on horses, elephants or chariots.
22. The Lord, the personal enjoyer of all sacrifices, now discharged His beloved Sudarsana, which was
capable of dispersing the magical forces displayed by the demon.
23. At that very moment, a shudder suddenly ran through the heart of Diti, the mother of Hiranyaksa.
She recalled the words of her husband, Kasyapa, and blood flowed from her breasts.
24. When the demon saw his magic forces dispelled, he once again came into the presence of the
Personality of Godhead, Kesava, and, full of rage, tried to embrace Him within his arms to crush Him.
But to his great amazement he found the Lord standing outside the circle of his arms.
25. The demon now began to strike the Lord with his hard fists, but Lord Adhoksaja slapped him in the
root of the ear, even as Indra, the lord of the Maruts, hit the demon Vrtra.
26. Though struck indifferently by the Lord, the conqueror of all, the demon's body began to wheel. His
eyeballs bulged out of their sockets. His arms and legs broken and the hair on his head scattered, he
fell down dead, like a gigantic tree uprooted by the wind.
102 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
27. Aja [Brahma] and others arrived on the spot to see the fearfully tusked demon lying on the ground,
biting his lip. The glow of his face was yet unfaded, and Brahma admiringly said: Oh, who could meet
such blessed death?
28. Brahma continued: He was struck by a forefoot of the Lord, whom yogis, seeking freedom from their
unreal material bodies, meditate upon in seclusion in mystic trance. While gazing on His countenance,
this crest jewel of Diti's sons has cast off his mortal coil.
29. These two personal assistants of the Supreme Lord, having been cursed, have been destined to
take birth in demoniac families. After a few such births, they will return to their own positions.
30. The demigods addressed the Lord: All obeisances unto You! You are the enjoyer of all sacrifices,
and You have assumed the form of a boar, in pure goodness, for the purpose of maintaining the world.
Fortunately for us, this demon, who was a torment to the worlds, has been slain by You, and we too, O
Lord, are now at ease, in devotion to Your lotus feet.
31. Sri Maitreya continued: After thus killing the most formidable demon Hiranyaksa, the Supreme Lord
Hari, the origin of the boar species, returned to His own abode, where there is always an uninterrupted
festival. The Lord was praised by all the demigods, headed by Brahma.
32. Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, I have explained to you the Personality of Godhead's coming
down as the first boar incarnation and killing in a great fight a demon of unprecedented prowess as if he
were just a plaything. This has been narrated by me as I heard it from my predecessor spiritual master.
33. Sri Suta Gosvami continued: My dear brahmana, Ksatta [Vidura] the great devotee of the Lord
achieved transcendental bliss by hearing the narration of the pastimes of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead from the authoritative source of the sage Kausarava [Maitreya], and he was very pleased.
34. What to speak of hearing the pastimes of the Lord, whose chest is marked with Srivatsa, people
may take transcendental pleasure even in hearing of the works and deeds of the devotees, whose fame
is immortal.
35. The Personality of Godhead delivered the king of the elephants, who was attacked by an alligator
and who meditated upon the lotus feet of the Lord. At that time the female elephants who accompanied
him were crying, and the Lord saved them from the impending danger.
36. What grateful soul is there who would not render his loving service to such a great master as the
Personality of Godhead? The Lord can be easily pleased by spotless devotees who resort exclusively
to Him for protection, though the unrighteous man finds it difficult to propitiate Him.
37. O brahmanas, anyone who hears, chants, or takes pleasure in the wonderful narration of the killing
of the Hiranyaksa demon by the Lord, who appeared as the first boar in order to deliver the world, is at
once relieved of the results of sinful activities, even the killing of a brahmana.
38. This most sacred narrative confers extraordinary merit, wealth, fame, longevity, and all the objects
of one's desire. On the field of battle it promotes the strength of one's vital organs and organs of action.
One who listens to it at the last moment of his life is transferred to the supreme abode of the Lord, O
dear Saunaka.
Chapter Twenty Conversation Between Maitreya and Vidura
1. Sri Saunaka inquired: O Suta Gosvami, after the earth was again situated in its orbit, what did
Svayambhuva Manu do to show the path of liberation to persons who were to take birth later on?
2. Saunaka Rsi inquired about Vidura, who was a great devotee and friend of Lord Krsna and who gave
up the company of his elder brother because the latter, along with his sons, played tricks against the
desires of the Lord.
3. Vidura was born from the body of Veda-vyasa and was not less than he. Thus he accepted the lotus
feet of Krsna wholeheartedly and was attached to His devotees.
4. Vidura was purified of all passion by wandering in sacred places, and at last he reached Hardwar,
where he met the great sage who knew the science of spiritual life, and he inquired from him. Saunaka
Rsi therefore asked: What more did Vidura inquire from Maitreya?
5. Saunaka inquired about the conversation between Vidura and Maitreya: There must have been many
narrations of the spotless pastimes of the Lord. The hearing of such narrations is exactly like bathing in
the water of the Ganges, for it can free one from all sinful reactions.
6. O Suta Gosvami, all good fortune to you! Please narrate the activities of the Lord, which are all
magnanimous and worth glorifying. What sort of devotee can be satiated by hearing the nectarean
pastimes of the Lord?
7. On being asked to speak by the great sages of Naimisaranya, the son of Romaharsana, Suta
Gosvami, whose mind was absorbed in the transcendental pastimes of the Lord, said: Please hear what
I shall now speak.
8. Suta Gosvami continued: Vidura, the descendant of Bharata, was delighted to hear the story of the
Lord, who, having assumed by His own divine potency the form of a boar, had enacted the sport of
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 103
lifting the earth from the bottom of the ocean and indifferently killing the demon Hiranyaksa. Vidura then
spoke to the sage as follows.
9. Vidura said: Since you know of matters inconceivable to us, tell me, O holy sage, what did Brahma
do to create living beings after evolving the Prajapatis, the progenitors of living beings?
10. Vidura inquired: How did the Prajapatis [such progenitors of living entities as Marici and
Svayambhuva Manu] create according to the instruction of Brahma, and how did they evolve this
manifested universe?
11. Did they evolve the creation in conjunction with their respective wives, did they remain independent
in their action, or did they all jointly produce it?
12. Maitreya said: When the equilibrium of the combination of the three modes of nature was agitated
by the unseen activity of the living entity, by Maha-Visnu and by the force of time, the total material
elements were produced.
13. As impelled by the destiny of the jiva, the false ego, which is of three kinds, evolved from the mahat-
tattva, in which the element of rajas predominates. From the ego, in turn, evolved many groups of five
principles.
14. Separately unable to produce the material universe, they combined with the help of the energy of
the Supreme Lord and were able to produce a shining egg.
15. For over one thousand years the shiny egg lay on the waters of the Causal Ocean in the lifeless
state. Then the Lord entered it as Garbhodakasayi Visnu.
16. From the navel of the Personality of Godhead Garbhodakasayi Visnu sprouted a lotus flower
effulgent like a thousand blazing suns. This lotus flower is the reservoir of all conditioned souls, and the
first living entity who came out of the lotus flower was the omnipotent Brahma
17. When that Supreme Personality of Godhead who is lying on the Garbhodaka Ocean entered the
heart of Brahma, Brahma brought his intelligence to bear, and with the intelligence invoked he began to
create the universe as it was before.
18. First of all, Brahma created from his shadow the coverings of ignorance of the conditioned souls.
They are five in number and are called tamisra, andha-tamisra, tamas, moha and maha-moha.
19. Out of disgust, Brahma threw off the body of ignorance, and taking this opportunity, Yaksas and
Raksasas sprang for possession of the body, which continued to exist in the form of night. Night is the
source of hunger and thirst.
20. Overpowered by hunger and thirst, they ran to devour Brahma from all sides and cried, "Spare him
not! Eat him up!"
21. Brahma, the head of the demigods, full of anxiety, asked them, "Do not eat me, but protect me. You
are born from me and have become my sons. Therefore you are Yaksas and Raksasas."
22. He then created the chief demigods, who were shining with the glory of goodness. He dropped
before them the effulgent form of daytime, and the demigods sportingly took possession of it.
23. Lord Brahma then gave birth to the demons from his buttocks, and they were very fond of sex.
Because they were too lustful, they approached him for copulation.
24. The worshipful Brahma first laughed at their stupidity, but finding the shameless asuras close upon
him, he grew indignant and ran in great haste out of fear.
25. He approached the Personality of Godhead, who bestows all boons and who dispels the agony of
His devotees and of those who take shelter of His lotus feet. He manifests His innumerable
transcendental forms for the satisfaction of His devotees.
26. Lord Brahma, approaching the Lord, addressed Him thus: My Lord, please protect me from these
sinful demons, who were created by me under Your order. They are infuriated by an appetite for sex
and have come to attack me.
27. My Lord, You are the only one capable of ending the affliction of the distressed and inflicting agony
on those who never resort to Your feet.
28. The Lord, who can distinctly see the minds of others, perceived Brahma's distress and said to him:
"Cast off this impure body of yours." Thus commanded by the Lord, Brahma cast off his body.
29. The body given up by Brahma took the form of the evening twilight, when the day and night meet, a
time which kindles passion. The asuras, who are passionate by nature, dominated as they are by the
element of rajas, took it for a damsel, whose lotus feet resounded with the tinkling of anklets, whose
eyes were wide with intoxication and whose hips were covered by fine cloth, over which shone a girdle.
30. Her breasts projected upward because of their clinging to each other, and they were too contiguous
to admit any intervening space. She had a shapely nose and beautiful teeth; a lovely smile played on
her lips, and she cast a sportful glance at the asuras.
31. Adorned with dark tresses, she hid herself, as it were, out of shyness. Upon seeing that girl, the
asuras were all infatuated with an appetite for sex.
104 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
32. The demons praised her: Oh, what a beauty! What rare self-control! What a budding youth! In the
midst of us all, who are passionately longing for her, she is moving about like one absolutely free from
passion.
33. Indulging in various speculations about the evening twilight, which appeared to them endowed with
the form of a young woman, the wicked-minded asuras treated her with respect and fondly spoke to her
as follows.
34. Who are you, O pretty girl? Whose wife or daughter are you, and what can be the object of your
appearing before us? Why do you tantalize us, unfortunate as we are, with the priceless commodity of
your beauty?
35. Whosoever you may be, O beautiful girl, we are fortunate in being able to see you. While playing
with a ball, you have agitated the minds of all onlookers.
36. O beautiful woman, when you strike the bouncing ball against the ground with your hand again and
again, your lotus feet do not stay in one place. Oppressed by the weight of your full-grown breasts, your
waist becomes fatigued, and your clear vision grows dull, as it were. Pray braid your comely hair.
37. The asuras, clouded in their understanding, took the evening twilight to be a beautiful woman
showing herself in her alluring form, and they seized her.
38. With a laugh full of deep significance, the worshipful Brahma then evolved by his own loveliness,
which seemed to enjoy itself by itself, the hosts of Gandharvas and Apsaras.
39. After that, Brahma gave up that shining and beloved form of moonlight. Visvavasu and other
Gandharvas gladly took possession of it.
40. The glorious Brahma next evolved from his sloth the ghosts and fiends, but he closed his eyes
when he saw them stand naked with their hair scattered.
41. The ghosts and hobgoblins took possession of the body thrown off in the form of yawning by
Brahma, the creator of the living entities. This is also known as the sleep which causes drooling. The
hobgoblins and ghosts attack men who are impure, and their attack is spoken of as insanity.
42. Recognizing himself to be full of desire and energy, the worshipful Brahma, the creator of the living
entities, evolved from his own invisible form, from his navel, the hosts of Sadhyas and Pitas.
43. The Pitas themselves took possession of the invisible body, the source of their existence. It is
through the medium of this invisible body that those well versed in the rituals offer oblations to the
Sadhyas and Pitas [in the form of their departed ancestors] on the occasion of sraddha.
44. Then Lord Brahma, by his ability to be hidden from vision, created the Siddhas and Vidyadharas
and gave them that wonderful form of his known as the Antardhana.
45. One day, Brahma, the creator of the living entities, beheld his own reflection in the water, and
admiring himself, he evolved Kimpurusas as well as Kinnaras out of that reflection.
46. The Kimpurusas and Kinnaras took possession of that shadowy form left by Brahma. That is why
they and their spouses sing his praises by recounting his exploits at every daybreak.
47. Once Brahma lay down with his body stretched at full length. He was very concerned that the work
of creation had not proceeded apace, and in a sullen mood he gave up that body too.
48. O dear Vidura, the hair that dropped from that body transformed into snakes, and even while the
body crawled along with its hands and feet contracted, there sprang from it ferocious serpents and
Nagas with their hoods expanded.
49. One day Brahma, the self-born, the first living creature, felt as if the object of his life had been
accomplished. At that time he evolved from his mind the Manus, who promote the welfare activities or
the universe.
50. The self-possessed creator gave them his own human form. On seeing the Manus, those who had
been created earlier--the demigods, the Gandharvas and so on--applauded Brahma, the lord of the
universe.
51. They prayed: O creator of the universe, we are glad; what you have produced is well done. Since
ritualistic acts have now been established soundly in this human form, we shall all share the sacrificial
oblations.
52. Having equipped himself with austere penance, adoration, mental concentration and absorption in
devotion, accompanied by dispassion, and having controlled his senses, Brahma, the self-born living
creature, evolved great sages as his beloved sons.
53. To each one of these sons the unborn creator of the universe gave a part of his own body, which
was characterized by deep meditation, mental concentration, supernatural power, austerity, adoration
and renunciation.
Chapter Twenty-one Conversation Between Manu and Kardama
1. Vidura said: The line of Svayambhuva Manu was most esteemed. O worshipful sage, I beg you--give
me an account of this race, whose progeny multiplied through sexual intercourse.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 105
2. The two great sons of Svayambhuva Manu--Priyavrata and Uttanapada--ruled the world, consisting
of seven islands, just according to religious principles.
3. O holy brahmana, O sinless one, you have spoken of his daughter, known by the name Devahuti, as
the wife of the sage Kardama, the lord of created beings.
4. How many offspring did that great yogi beget through the princess, who was endowed with eightfold
perfection in the yoga principles? Oh, pray tell me this, for I am eager to hear it.
5. O holy sage, tell me how the worshipful Ruci and Daksa, the son of Brahma, generated children after
securing as their wives the other two daughters of Svayambhuva Manu.
6. The great sage Maitreya replied: Commanded by Lord Brahma to beget children in the worlds, the
worshipful Kardama Muni practiced penance on the bank of the River Sarasvati for a period of ten
thousand years.
7. During that period of penance, the sage Kardama, by worship through devotional service in trance,
propitiated the Personality of Godhead, who is the quick bestower of all blessings upon those who flee
to Him for protection.
8. Then, in the Satya-yuga, the lotus-eyed Supreme Personality of Godhead, being pleased, showed
Himself to that Kardama Muni and displayed His transcendental form, which can be understood only
through the Vedas.
9. Kardama Muni saw the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is free from material contamination, in
His eternal form, effulgent like the sun, wearing a garland of white lotuses and water lilies. The Lord was
clad in spotless yellow silk, and His lotus face was fringed with slick dark locks of curly hair.
10. Adorned with a crown and earrings, He held His characteristic conch, disc and mace in three of His
hands and a white lily in the fourth. He glanced about in a happy, smiling mood whose sight captivates
the hearts of all devotees.
11. A golden streak on His chest, the famous Kaustubha gem suspended from His neck, He stood in
the air with His lotus feet placed on the shoulders of Garuda.
12. When Kardama Muni actually realized the Supreme Personality of Godhead in person, he was
greatly satisfied because his transcendental desire was fulfilled. He fell on the ground with his head
bowed to offer obeisances unto the lotus feet of the Lord. His heart naturally full of love of God, with
folded hands he satisfied the Lord with prayers.
13. The great sage Kardama said: O supreme worshipful Lord, my power of sight is now fulfilled, having
attained the greatest perfection of the sight of You, who are the reservoir of all existences. Through
many successive births of deep meditation, advanced yogis aspire to see Your transcendental form.
14. Your lotus feet are the true vessel to take one across the ocean of mundane nescience. Only
persons deprived of their intelligence by the spell of the deluding energy will worship those feet with a
view to attain the trivial and momentary pleasures of the senses, which even persons rotting in hell can
attain. However, O my Lord, You are so kind that You bestow mercy even upon them.
15. Therefore, desiring to marry a girl of like disposition who may prove to be a veritable cow of plenty in
my married life, to satisfy my lustful desire I too have sought the shelter of Your lotus feet, which are the
source of everything, for You are like a desire tree.
16. O my Lord, You are the master and leader of all living entities. Under Your direction, all conditioned
souls, as if bound by rope, are constantly engaged in satisfying their desires. Following them, O
embodiment of religion, I also bear oblations for You, who are eternal time.
17. However, persons who have given up stereotyped worldly affairs and the beastly followers of these
affairs, and who have taken shelter of the umbrella of Your lotus feet by drinking the intoxicating nectar
of Your qualities and activities in discussions with one another, can be freed from the primary
necessities of the material body.
18. Your wheel, which has three naves, rotates around the axis of the imperishable Brahman. It has
thirteen spokes, 360 joints, six rims and numberless leaves carved upon it. Though its revolution cuts
short the life-span of the entire creation, this wheel of tremendous velocity cannot touch the life-span of
the devotees of the Lord.
19. My dear Lord, You alone create the universes. O Personality of Godhead, desiring to create these
universes, You create them, maintain them and again wind them up by Your own energies, which are
under the control of Your second energy, called yogamaya, just as a spider creates a cobweb by its
own energy and again winds it up.
20. My dear Lord, although it is not Your desire, You manifest this creation of gross and subtle elements
just for our sensual satisfaction. Let Your causeless mercy be upon us, for You have appeared before
us in Your eternal form, adorned with a splendid wreath of tulasi leaves.
21. I continuously offer my respectful obeisances unto Your lotus feet, of which it is worthy to take
shelter, because You shower all benedictions on the insignificant. To give all living entities detachment
from fruitive activity by realizing You, You have expanded these material worlds by Your own energy.
106 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. Maitreya resumed: Sincerely extolled in these words, Lord Visnu, shining very beautifully on the
shoulders of Garuda, replied with words as sweet as nectar. His eyebrows moved gracefully as He
looked at the sage with a smile full of affection.
23. The Supreme Lord said: Having come to know what was in your mind, I have already arranged for
that for which you have worshiped Me well through your mental and sensory discipline.
24. The Lord continued: My dear rsi, O leader of the living entities, for those who serve Me in devotion
by worshiping Me, especially persons like you who have given up everything unto Me, there is never
any question of frustration.
25. The Emperor Svayambhuva Manu, the son of Lord Brahma, who is well known for his righteous
acts, has his seat in Brahmavarta and rules over the earth with its seven oceans.
26. The day after tomorrow, O brahmana, that celebrated emperor, who is expert in religious activities,
will come here with his queen, Satarupa, wishing to see you.
27. He has a grown-up daughter whose eyes are black. She is ready for marriage, and she has good
character and all good qualities. She is also searching for a good husband. My dear sir, her parents will
come to see you, who are exactly suitable for her, just to deliver their daughter as your wife.
28. That princess, O holy sage, will be just the type you have been thinking of in your heart for all these
long years. She will soon be yours and will serve you to your heart's content.
29. She will bring forth nine daughters from the seed sown in her by you, and through the daughters
you beget, the sages will duly beget children.
30. With your heart cleansed by properly carrying out My command, resigning to Me the fruits of all your
acts, you will finally attain to Me.
31. Showing compassion to all living entities, you will attain self-realization. Giving assurance of safety
to all, you will perceive your own self as well as all the universes in Me, and Myself in you.
32. O great sage, I shall manifest My own plenary portion through your wife, Devahuti, along with your
nine daughters, and I shall instruct her in the system of philosophy that deals with the ultimate principles
or categories.
33. Maitreya went on: Thus having spoken to Kardama Muni, the Lord, who reveals Himself only when
the senses are in Krsna consciousness, departed from that lake called Bindu-sarovara, which was
encircled by the River Sarasvati.
34. While the sage stood looking on, the Lord left by the pathway leading to Vaikuntha, a path extolled
by all great liberated souls. The sage stood listening as the hymns forming the basis of the Sama Veda
were vibrated by the flapping wings of the Lord's carrier, Garuda.
35. Then, after the departure of the Lord, the worshipful sage Kardama stayed on the bank of Bindu-
sarovara, awaiting the time of which the Lord had spoken.
36. Svayambhuva Manu, with his wife, mounted his chariot, which was decorated with golden
ornaments. Placing his daughter on it with them, he began traveling all over the earth.
37. O Vidura, they reached the hermitage of the sage, who had just completed his vows of austerity on
the very day foretold by the Lord.
38-39. The holy Lake Bindu-sarovara, flooded by the waters of the River Sarasvati, was resorted to by
hosts of eminent sages. Its holy water was not only auspicious but as sweet as nectar. It was called
Bindu-sarovara because drops of tears had fallen there from the eyes of the Lord, who was
overwhelmed by extreme compassion for the sage who had sought His protection.
40. The shore of the lake was surrounded by clusters of pious trees and creepers, rich in fruits and
flowers of all seasons, that afforded shelter to pious animals and birds, which uttered various cries. It
was adorned by the beauty of groves of forest trees.
41. The area resounded with the notes of overjoyed birds. Intoxicated bees wandered there, intoxicated
peacocks proudly danced, and merry cuckoos called one another.
42-43. Lake Bindu-sarovara was adorned by flowering trees such as kadamba, campaka, asoka,
karanja, bakula, asana, kunda, mandara, kutaja and young mango trees. The air was filled with the
pleasing notes of karandava ducks, plavas, swans, ospreys, waterfowl, cranes, cakravakas and
cakoras.
44. Its shores abounded with deer, boars, porcupines, gavayas, elephants, baboons, lions, monkeys,
mongooses and musk deer.
45-47. Entering that most sacred spot with his daughter and going near the sage, the first monarch,
Svayambhuva Manu, saw the sage sitting in his hermitage, having just propitiated the sacred fire by
pouring oblations into it. His body shone most brilliantly; though he had engaged in austere penance for
a long time, he was not emaciated, for the Lord had cast His affectionate sidelong glance upon him and
he had also heard the nectar flowing from the moonlike words of the Lord. The sage was tall, his eyes
were large, like the petals of a lotus, and he had matted locks on his head. He was clad in rags.
Svayambhuva Manu approached and saw him to be somewhat soiled, like an unpolished gem.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 107
48. Seeing that the monarch had come to his hermitage and was bowing before him, the sage greeted
him with benediction and received him with due honor.
49. After receiving the sage's attention, the King sat down and was silent. Recalling the instructions of
the Lord, Kardama then spoke to the King as follows, delighting him with his sweet accents.
50. The tour you have undertaken, O lord, is surely intended to protect the virtuous and kill the demons,
since you embody the protecting energy of Sri Hari.
51. You assume, when necessary, the part of the sun-god; the moon-god; Agni, the god of fire; Indra,
the lord of paradise; Vayu, the wind-god; Yama, the god of punishment; Dharma, the god of piety; and
Varuna, the god presiding over the waters. All obeisances to you, who are none other than Lord Visnu!
52-54. If you did not mount your victorious jeweled chariot, whose mere presence threatens culprits, if
you did not produce fierce sounds by the twanging of your bow, and if you did not roam about the world
like the brilliant sun, leading a huge army whose trampling feet cause the globe of the earth to tremble,
then all the moral laws governing the varnas and asramas created by the Lord Himself would be broken
by the rogues and rascals.
55. If you gave up all thought of the world's situation, unrighteousness would flourish, for men who
hanker only after money would be unopposed. Such miscreants would attack, and the world would
perish.
56. In spite of all this, I ask you, O valiant King, the purpose for which you have come here. Whatever it
may be, we shall carry it out without reservation.
Chapter Twenty-two The Marriage of Kardama Muni and Devahuti
1. Sri Maitreya said: After describing the greatness of the Emperor's manifold qualities and activities, the
sage became silent, and the Emperor, feeling modesty, addressed him as follows.
2. Manu replied: To expand himself in Vedic knowledge, Lord Brahma, the personified Veda, from his
face created you, the brahmanas, who are full of austerity, knowledge and mystic power and are averse
to sense gratification.
3. For the protection of the brahmanas, the thousand-legged Supreme Being created us, the ksatriyas,
from His thousand arms. Hence the brahmanas are said to be His heart and the ksatriyas His arms.
4. That is why the brahmanas and ksatriyas protect each other, as well as themselves; and the Lord
Himself, who is both the cause and effect and is yet immutable, protects them through each other.
5. Now I have resolved all my doubts simply by meeting you, for Your Lordship has very kindly and
clearly explained the duty of a king who desires to protect his subjects.
6. It is my good fortune that I have been able to see you, for you cannot easily be seen by persons who
have not subdued the mind or controlled the senses. I am all the more fortunate to have touched with
my head the blessed dust of your feet.
7. I have fortunately been instructed by you, and thus great favor has been bestowed upon me. I thank
God that I have listened with open ears to your pure words.
8. O great sage, graciously be pleased to listen to the prayer of my humble self, for my mind is troubled
by affection for my daughter.
9. My daughter is the sister of Priyavrata and Uttanapada. She is seeking a suitable husband in terms of
age, character and good qualities.
10. The moment she heard from the sage Narada of your noble character, learning, beautiful
appearance, youth and other virtues, she fixed her mind upon you.
11. Therefore please accept her, O chief of the brahmanas, for I offer her with faith and she is in every
respect fit to be your wife and take charge of your household duties.
12. To deny an offering that has come of itself is not commendable even for one absolutely free from all
attachment, much less one addicted to sensual pleasure.
13. One who rejects an offering that comes of its own accord but later begs a boon from a miser thus
loses his widespread reputation, and his pride is humbled by the neglectful behavior of others.
14. Svayambhuva Manu continued: O wise man, I heard that you were prepared to marry. Please
accept her hand, which is being offered to you by me, since you have not taken a vow of perpetual
celibacy.
15. The great sage replied: Certainly I have a desire to marry, and your daughter has not yet married or
given her word to anyone. Therefore our marriage according to the Vedic system can take place.
16. Let your daughter's desire for marriage, which is recognized in the Vedic scriptures, be fulfilled. Who
would not accept her hand? She is so beautiful that by her bodily luster alone she excels the beauty of
her ornaments.
17. I have heard that Visvavasu, the great Gandharva, his mind stupefied with infatuation, fell from his
airplane after seeing your daughter playing with a ball on the roof of the palace, for she was indeed
beautiful with her tinkling ankle bells and her eyes moving to and fro.
108 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
18. What wise man would not welcome her, the very ornament of womanhood, the beloved daughter of
Svayambhuva Manu and sister of Uttanapada? Those who have not worshiped the gracious feet of the
goddess of fortune cannot even perceive her, yet she has come of her own accord to seek my hand.
19. Therefore I shall accept this chaste girl as my wife, on the condition that after she bears semen from
my body, I shall accept the life of devotional service accepted by the most perfect human beings. That
process was described by Lord Visnu. It is free from envy.
20. The highest authority for me is the unlimited Supreme Personality of Godhead, from whom this
wonderful creation emanates and in whom its sustenance and dissolution rest. He is the origin of all
Prajapatis, the personalities meant to produce living entities in this world.
21. Sri Maitreya said: O great warrior Vidura, the sage Kardama said this much only and then became
silent, thinking of his worshipable Lord Visnu, who has a lotus on His navel. As he silently smiled, his
face captured the mind of Devahuti, who began to meditate upon the great sage.
22. After having unmistakably known the decision of the Queen, as well as that of Devahuti, the
Emperor most gladly gave his daughter to the sage, whose host of virtues was equaled by hers.
23. Empress Satarupa lovingly gave most valuable presents, suitable for the occasion, such as jewelry,
clothes and household articles, in dowry to the bride and bridegroom.
24. Thus relieved of his responsibility by handing over his daughter to a suitable man, Svayambhuva
Manu, his mind agitated by feelings of separation, embraced his affectionate daughter with both his
arms.
25. The Emperor was unable to bear the separation of his daughter. Therefore tears poured from his
eyes again and again, drenching his daughter's head as he cried, "My dear mother! My dear daughter!"
26-27. After asking and obtaining the great sage's permission to leave, the monarch mounted his
chariot with his wife and started for his capital, followed by his retinue. Along the way he saw the
prosperity of the tranquil seers' beautiful hermitages on both the charming banks of the Sarasvati, the
river so agreeable to saintly persons.
28. Overjoyed to know of his arrival, his subjects came forth from Brahmavarta to greet their returning
lord with songs, prayers and musical instruments.
29-30. The city of Barhismati, rich in all kinds of wealth, was so called because Lord Visnu's hair
dropped there from His body when He manifested Himself as Lord Boar. As He shook His body, this
very hair fell and turned into blades of evergreen kusa grass and kasa [another kind of grass used for
mats], by means of which the sages worshiped Lord Visnu after defeating the demons who had
interfered with the performance of their sacrifices.
31. Manu spread a seat of kusas and kasas and worshiped the Lord, the Personality of Godhead, by
whose grace he had obtained the rule of the terrestrial globe.
32. Having entered the city of Barhismati, in which he had previously lived, Manu entered his palace,
which was filled with an atmosphere that eradicated the three miseries of material existence.
33. Emperor Svayambhuva Manu enjoyed life with his wife and subjects and fulfilled his desires without
being disturbed by unwanted principles contrary to the process of religion. Celestial musicians and their
wives sang in chorus about the pure reputation of the Emperor, and early in the morning, every day, he
used to listen to the pastimes of the Supreme Personality of Godhead with a loving heart.
34. Thus Svayambhuva Mahu was a saintly king. Although absorbed in material happiness, he was not
dragged to the lowest grade of life, for he always enjoyed his material happiness in a Krsna conscious
atmosphere.
35. Consequently, although his duration of life gradually came to an end, his long life, consisting of a
Mahvantara era, was not spent in vain, since he ever engaged in hearing, contemplating, writing down
and chanting the pastimes of the Lord.
36. He passed his time, which lasted seventy-one cycles of the four ages [71 x 4,320,000 years],
always thinking of Vasudeva and always engaged in matters regarding Vasudeva. Thus he
transcended the three destinations.
37. Therefore, O Vidura, how can persons completely under the shelter of Lord Krsna in devotional
service be put into miseries pertaining to the body, the mind, nature, and other men and living
creatures?
38. In reply to questions asked by certain sages, he [Svayambhuva Manu], out of compassion for all
living entities, taught the diverse sacred duties of men in general and the different varnas and asramas.
39. I have spoken to you of the wonderful character of Svayambhuva Manu, the original king, whose
reputation is worthy of description. Please hear as I speak of the flourishing of his daughter Devahuti.
Chapter Twenty-three Devahuti's Lamentation
1. Maitreya continued: After the departure of her parents, the chaste woman Devahuti, who could
understand the desires of her husband, served him constantly with great love, as Bhavani, the wife of
Lord Siva, serves her husband.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 109
2. O Vidura, Devahuti served her husband with intimacy and great respect, with control of the senses,
with love and with sweet words.
3. Working sanely and diligently, she pleased her very powerful husband, giving up all lust, pride, envy,
greed, sinful activities and vanity.
4-5. The daughter of Manu, who was fully devoted to her husband, looked upon him as greater even
than providence. Thus she expected great blessings from him. Having served him for a long time, she
grew weak and emaciated due to her religious observances. Seeing her condition, Kardama, the
foremost of celestial sages, was overcome with compassion and spoke to her in a voice choked with
great love.
6. Kardama Muni said: O respectful daughter of Svayambhuva Manu, today I am very much pleased
with you for your great devotion and most excellent loving service. Since the body is so dear to
embodied beings, I am astonished that you have neglected your own body to use it on my behalf.
7. Kardama Muni continued: I have achieved the blessings of the Lord in discharging my own religious
life of austerity, meditation and Krsna consciousness. Although you have not yet experienced these
achievements, which are free from fear and lamentation, I shall offer them all to you because you are
engaged in my service. Now just look at them. I am giving you the transcendental vision to see how
nice they are.
8. Kardama Muni continued: What is the use of enjoyments other than the Lord's grace? All material
achievements are subject to be annihilated simply by a movement of the eyebrows of Lord Visnu, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. By your principles of devotion to your husband, you have achieved
and can enjoy transcendental gifts very rarely obtained by persons proud of aristocracy and material
possessions.
9. Upon hearing the speaking of her husband, who excelled in knowledge of all kinds of transcendental
science, innocent Devahuti was very satisfied. Her smiling face shining with a slightly bashful glance,
she spoke in a choked voice because of great humility and love.
10. Sri Devahuti said: My dear husband, O best of brahmanas, I know that you have achieved
perfection and are the master of all the infallible mystic powers because you are under the protection of
yogamaya, the transcendental nature. But you once made a promise that our bodily union should now
fulfill, since children are a great quality for a chaste woman who has a glorious husband.
11. Devahuti continued: My dear lord, I am struck by excited emotion for you. Therefore kindly make
what arrangements must be made according to the scriptures so that my skinny body, emaciated
through unsatisfied passion, may be rendered fit for you. Also, my lord, please think of a suitable house
for this purpose.
12. Maitreya continued: O Vidura, seeking to please his beloved wife, the sage Kardama exercised his
yogic power and instantly produced an aerial mansion that could travel at his will.
13. It was a wonderful structure, bedecked with all sorts of jewels, adorned with pillars of precious
stones, and capable of yielding whatever one desired. It was equipped with every form of furniture and
wealth, which tended to increase in the course of time.
14-15. The castle was fully equipped with all necessary paraphernalia, and it was pleasing in all
seasons. It was decorated all around with flags, festoons and artistic work of variegated colors. It was
further embellished with wreaths of charming flowers that attracted sweetly humming bees and with
tapestries of linen, silk and various other fabrics.
16. The palace looked charming, with beds, couches, fans and seats, all separately arranged in seven
stories.
17. Its beauty was enhanced by artistic engravings here and there on the walls. The floor was of
emerald, with coral daises.
18. The palace was very beautiful, with its coral thresholds at the entrances and its doors bedecked with
diamonds. Gold pinnacles crowned its domes of sapphire.
19. With the choicest rubies set in its diamond walls, it appeared as though possessed of eyes. It was
furnished with wonderful canopies and greatly valuable gates of gold.
20. Here and there in that palace were multitudes of live swans and pigeons, as well as artificial swans
and pigeons so lifelike that the real swans rose above them again and again, thinking them live birds
like themselves. Thus the palace vibrated with the sounds of these birds.
21. The castle had pleasure grounds, resting chambers, bedrooms and inner and outer yards designed
with an eye to comfort. All this caused astonishment to the sage himself.
22. When he saw Devahuti looking at the gigantic, opulent palace with a displeased heart, Kardama
Muni could understand her feelings because he could study the heart of anyone. Thus he personally
addressed his wife as follows.
23. My dear Devahuti, you look very much afraid. First bathe in Lake Bindu-sarovara, created by Lord
Visnu Himself, which can grant all the desires of a human being, and then mount this airplane.
110 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. The lotus-eyed Devahuti accepted the order of her husband. Because of her dirty dress and the
locks of matted hair on her head, she did not look very attractive.
25. Her body was coated with a thick layer of dirt, and her breasts were discolored. She dove, however,
into the lake, which contained the sacred waters of the Sarasvati.
26. In a house inside the lake she saw one thousand girls, all in the prime of youth and fragrant like
lotuses.
27. Seeing her, the damsels suddenly rose and said with folded hands, "We are your maidservants. Tell
us what we can do for you."
28. The girls, being very respectful to Devahuti, brought her forth, and after bathing her with valuable
oils and ointments, they gave her fine, new, spotless cloth to cover her body.
29. They then decorated her with very excellent and valuable jewels, which shone brightly. Next they
offered her food containing all good qualities, and a sweet, inebriating drink called asavam.
30. Then in a mirror she beheld her own reflection. Her body was completely freed from all dirt, and she
was adorned with a garland. Dressed in unsullied robes and decorated with auspicious marks of tilaka,
she was served very respectfully by the maids.
31. Her entire body, including her head, was completely bathed, and she was decorated all over with
ornaments. She wore a special necklace with a locket. There were bangles on her wrists and tinkling
anklets of gold about her ankles.
32. About her hips she wore a girdle of gold, set with numerous jewels, and she was further adorned
with a precious pearl necklace and auspicious substances.
33. Her countenance shone, with beautiful teeth and charming eyebrows. Her eyes, distinguished by
lovely moist corners, defeated the beauty of lotus buds. Her face was surrounded by dark curling
tresses.
34. When she thought of her great husband, the best of the sages, Kardama Muni, who was very dear
to her, she, along with all the maidservants, at once appeared where he was.
35. She was amazed to find herself surrounded by a thousand maids in the presence of her husband
and to witness his yogic power.
36-37. The sage could see that Devahuti had washed herself clean and was shining forth as though no
longer his former wife. She had regained her own original beauty as the daughter of a prince. Dressed
in excellent robes, her charming breasts duly girded, she was waited upon by a thousand Gandharva
girls. O destroyer of the enemy, his fondness for her grew, and he placed her on the aerial mansion.
38. Though seemingly attached to his beloved consort while served by the Gandharva girls, the sage
did not lose his glory, which was mastery over his self. In the aerial mansion Kardama Muni with his
consort shone as charmingly as the moon in the midst of the stars in the sky, which causes rows of lilies
to open in ponds at night.
39. In that aerial mansion he traveled to the pleasure valleys of Mount Meru, which were rendered all
the more beautiful by cool, gentle, fragrant breezes that stimulated passion. In these valleys, the
treasurer of the gods, Kuvera, surrounded by beautiful women and praised by the Siddhas, generally
enjoys pleasure. Kardama Muni also, surrounded by the beautiful damsels and his wife, went there and
enjoyed for many, many years.
40. Satisfied by his wife, he enjoyed in that aerial mansion not only on Mount Meru but in different
gardens known as Vaisrambhaka, Surasana, Nandana, Puspabhadraka and Caitrarathya, and by the
Manasa-sarovara Lake.
41. He traveled in that way through the various planets, as the air passes uncontrolled in every
direction. Coursing through the air in that great and splendid aerial mansion, which could fly at his will,
he surpassed even the demigods.
42. What is difficult to achieve for determined men who have taken refuge of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead's lotus feet? His feet are the source of sacred rivers like the Ganges, which put an end to
the dangers of mundane life.
43. After showing his wife the globe of the universe and its different arrangements, full of many
wonders, the great yogi Kardama Muni returned to his own hermitage.
44. After coming back to his hermitage, he divided himself into nine personalities just to give pleasure to
Devahuti, the daughter of Manu, who was eager for sex life. In that way he enjoyed with her for many,
many years, which passed just like a moment.
45. In that aerial mansion, Devahuti, in the company of her handsome husband, situated on an
excellent bed that increased sexual desires, could not realize how much time was passing.
46. While the couple, who eagerly longed for sexual pleasure, were thus enjoying themselves by virtue
of mystic powers, a hundred autumns passed like a brief span of time.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 111
47. The powerful Kardama Muni was the knower of everyone's heart, and he could grant whatever one
desired. Knowing the spiritual soul, he regarded her as half of his body. Dividing himself into nine forms,
he impregnated Devahuti with nine discharges of semen.
48. Immediately afterward, on the same day, Devahuti gave birth to nine female children, all charming in
every limb and fragrant with the scent of the red lotus flower.
49. When she saw her husband about to leave home, she smiled externally, but at heart she was
agitated and distressed.
50. She stood and scratched the ground with her foot, which was radiant with the luster of her gemlike
nails. Her head bent down, she spoke in slow yet charming accents, suppressing her tears.
51. Sri Devahuti said: My lord, you have fulfilled all the promises you gave me, yet because I am your
surrendered soul, you should give me fearlessness too.
52. My dear brahmana, as far as your daughters are concerned, they will find their own suitable
husbands and go away to their respective homes. But who will give me solace after your departure as a
sannyasi?
53. Until now we have simply wasted so much of our time in sense gratification, neglecting to cultivate
knowledge of the Supreme Lord.
54. Not knowing your transcendental situation, I have loved you while remaining attached to the objects
of the senses. Nonetheless, let the affinity I have developed for you rid me of all fear.
55. Association for sense gratification is certainly the path of bondage. But the same type of
association, performed with a saintly person, leads to the path of liberation, even if performed without
knowledge.
56. Anyone whose work is not meant to elevate him to religious life, anyone whose religious ritualistic
performances do not raise him to renunciation, and anyone situated in renunciation that does not lead
him to devotional service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, must be considered dead, although
he is breathing.
57. My lord, surely I have been solidly cheated by the insurmountable illusory energy of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, for in spite of having obtained your association, which gives liberation from
material bondage, I did not seek such liberation.
Chapter Twenty-four The Renunciation of Kardama Muni
1. Recalling the words of Lord Visnu, the merciful sage Kardama replied as follows to Svayambhuva
Manu's praiseworthy daughter, Devahuti, who was speaking words full of renunciation.
2. The sage said: Do not be disappointed with yourself, O princess. You are actually praiseworthy. The
infallible Supreme Personality of Godhead will shortly enter your womb as your son.
3. You have undertaken sacred vows. God will bless you. Hence you should worship the Lord with great
faith, through sensory control, religious observances, austerities and gifts of your money in charity.
4. The Personality of Godhead, being worshiped by you, will spread my name and fame. He will
vanquish the knot of your heart by becoming your son and teaching knowledge of Brahman.
5. Sri Maitreya said: Devahuti was fully faithful and respectful toward the direction of her husband,
Kardama, who was one of the Prajapatis, or generators of human beings in the universe. O great sage,
she thus began to worship the master of the universe, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is
situated in everyone's heart.
6. After many, many years, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Madhusudana, the killer of the
demon Madhu, having entered the semen of Kardama, appeared in Devahuti just as fire comes from
wood in a sacrifice.
7. At the time of His descent on earth, demigods in the form of raining clouds sounded musical
instruments in the sky. The celestial musicians, the Gandharvas, sang the glories of the Lord, while
celestial dancing girls known as Apsaras danced in joyful ecstasy.
8. At the time of the Lord's appearance, the demigods flying freely in the sky showered flowers. All the
directions, all the waters and everyone's mind became very satisfied.
9. Brahma, the first-born living being, went along with Marici and other sages to the place of Kardama's
hermitage, which was surrounded by the River Sarasvati.
10. Maitreya continued: O killer of the enemy, the unborn Lord Brahma, who is almost independent in
acquiring knowledge, could understand that a portion of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, in His
quality of pure existence, had appeared in the womb of Devahuti just to explain the complete state of
knowledge known as sankhya-yoga.
11. After worshiping the Supreme Lord with gladdened senses and a pure heart for His intended
activities as an incarnation, Brahma spoke as follows to Kardama and Devahuti.
12. Lord Brahma said: My dear son Kardama, since you have completely accepted my instructions
without duplicity, showing them proper respect, you have worshiped me properly. Whatever instructions
you took from me you have carried out, and thereby you have honored me.
112 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
13. Sons ought to render service to their father exactly to this extent. One should obey the command of
his father or spiritual master with due deference, saying, "Yes, sir."
14. Lord Brahma then praised Kardama Muni's nine daughters, saying: All your thin-waisted daughters
are certainly very chaste. I am sure they will increase this creation by their own descendants in various
ways.
15. Therefore, today please give away your daughters to the foremost of the sages, with due regard for
the girls' temperaments and likings, and thereby spread your fame all over the universe.
16. O Kardama, I know that the original Supreme Personality of Godhead has now appeared as an
incarnation by His internal energy. He is the bestower of all desired by the living entities, and He has
now assumed the body of Kapila Muni.
17. By mystic yoga and the practical application of knowledge from the scriptures, Kapila Muni, who is
characterized by His golden hair, His eyes just like lotus petals and His lotus feet, which bear the marks
of lotus flowers, will uproot the deep-rooted desire for work in this material world.
18. Lord Brahma then told Devahuti: My dear daughter of Manu, the same Supreme Personality of
Godhead who killed the demon Kaitabha is now within your womb. He will cut off all the knots of your
ignorance and doubt. Then He will travel all over the world.
19. Your son will be the head of all the perfected souls. He will be approved by the acaryas expert in
disseminating real knowledge, and among the people He will be celebrated by the name Kapila. As the
son of Devahuti, He will increase your fame.
20. Sri Maitreya said: After thus speaking to Kardama Muni and his wife Devahuti, Lord Brahma, the
creator of the universe, who is also known as Hamsa, went back to the highest of the three planetary
systems on his swan carrier with the four Kumaras and Narada.
21. O Vidura, after the departure of Brahma, Kardama Muni, having been ordered by Brahma, handed
over his nine daughters, as instructed, to the nine great sages who created the population of the world.
22-23. Kardama Muni handed over his daughter Kala to Marici, and another daughter, Anasuya, to Atri.
He delivered Sraddha to Angira, and Havirbhu to Pulastya. He delivered Gati to Pulaha, the chaste
Kriya to Kratu, Khyati to Bhrgu, and Arundhati to Vasistha.
24. He delivered Santi to Atharva. Because of Santi, sacrificial ceremonies are well performed. Thus he
got the foremost brahmanas married, and he maintained them along with their wives.
25. Thus married, the sages took leave of Kardama and departed full of joy, each for his own
hermitage, O Vidura.
26. When Kardama Muni understood that the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the chief of all the
demigods, Visnu, had descended, Kardama approached Him in a secluded place, offered obeisances
and spoke as follows.
27. Kardama Muni said: Oh, after a long time the demigods of this universe have become pleased with
the suffering souls who are in material entanglement because of their own misdeeds.
28. After many births, mature yogis, by complete trance in yoga, endeavor in secluded places to see the
lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
29. Not considering the negligence of ordinary householders like us, that very same Supreme
Personality of Godhead appears in our homes just to support His devotees.
30. Kardama Muni said: You, my dear Lord, who are always increasing the honor of Your devotees,
have descended in my home just to fulfill Your word and disseminate the process of real knowledge.
31. My dear Lord, although You have no material form, You have Your own innumerable forms. They
truly are Your transcendental forms, which are pleasing to Your devotees.
32. My dear Lord, Your lotus feet are the reservoir that always deserves to receive worshipful homage
from all great sages eager to understand the Absolute Truth. You are full in opulence, renunciation,
transcendental fame, knowledge, strength and beauty, and therefore I surrender myself unto Your lotus
feet.
33. I surrender unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, descended in the form of Kapila, who is
independently powerful and transcendental, who is the Supreme Person and the Lord of the sum total
of matter and the element of time, who is the fully cognizant maintainer of all the universes under the
three modes of material nature, and who absorbs the material manifestations after their dissolution.
34. Today I have something to ask from You, who are the Lord of all living entities. Since I have now
been liberated by You from my debts to my father, and since all my desires are fulfilled, I wish to accept
the order of an itinerant mendicant. Renouncing this family life, I wish to wander about, free from
lamentation, thinking always of You in my heart.
35. The Personality of Godhead Kapila said: Whatever I speak, whether directly or in the scriptures, is
authoritative in all respects for the people of the world. O Muni, because I told you before that I would
become your son, I have descended to fulfill this truth.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 113
36. My appearance in this world is especially to explain the philosophy of Sankhya, which is highly
esteemed for self-realization by those desiring freedom from the entanglement of unnecessary material
desires.
37. This path of self-realization, which is difficult to understand, has now been lost in the course of time.
Please know that I have assumed this body of Kapila to introduce and explain this philosophy to human
society again.
38. Now, being sanctioned by Me, go as you desire, surrendering all your activities to Me. Conquering
insurmountable death, worship Me for eternal life.
39. In your own heart, through your intellect, you will always see Me, the supreme self-effulgent soul
dwelling within the hearts of all living entities. Thus you will achieve the state of eternal life, free from all
lamentation and fear.
40. I shall also describe this sublime knowledge, which is the door to spiritual life, to My mother, so that
she also can attain perfection and self-realization, ending all reactions to fruitive activities. Thus she
also will be freed from all material fear.
41. Sri Maitreya said: Thus when Kardama Muni, the progenitor of human society, was spoken to in
fullness by his son, Kapila, he circumambulated Him, and with a good, pacified mind he at once left for
the forest.
42. The sage Kardama accepted silence as a vow in order to think of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead and take shelter of Him exclusively. Without association, he traveled over the surface of the
globe as a sannyasi, devoid of any relationship with fire or shelter.
43. He fixed his mind upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Parabrahman, who is beyond cause
and effect, who manifests the three modes of material nature, who is beyond those three modes, and
who is perceived only through unfailing devotional service.
44. Thus he gradually became unaffected by the false ego of material identity and became free from
material affection. Undisturbed, equal to everyone and without duality, he could indeed see himself also.
His mind was turned inward and was perfectly calm, like an ocean unagitated by waves.
45. He thus became liberated from conditioned life and became self-situated in transcendental
devotional service to the Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, the omniscient Supersoul within everyone.
46. He began to see that the Supreme Personality of Godhead is seated in everyone's heart, and that
everyone is existing on Him, because He is the Supersoul of everyone.
47. Freed from all hatred and desire, Kardama Muni, being equal to everyone because of discharging
uncontaminated devotional service, ultimately attained the path back to Godhead.
Chapter Twenty-five The Glories of Devotional Service
1. Sri Saunaka said: Although He is unborn, the Supreme Personality of Godhead took birth as Kapila
Muni by His internal potency. He descended to disseminate transcendental knowledge for the benefit of
the whole human race.
2. Saunaka continued: There is no one who knows more than the Lord Himself. No one is more
worshipable or more mature a yogi than He. He is therefore the master of the Vedas, and to hear about
Him always is the actual pleasure of the senses.
3. Therefore please precisely describe all the activities and pastimes of the Personality of Godhead,
who is full of self-desire and who assumes all these activities by His internal potency.
4. Sri Suta Gosvami said: The most powerful sage Maitreya was a friend of Vyasadeva. Being
encouraged and pleased by Vidura's inquiry about transcendental knowledge, Maitreya spoke as
follows.
5. Maitreya said: When Kardama left for the forest, Lord Kapila stayed on the strand of the Bindu-
sarovara to please His mother, Devahuti.
6. When Kapila, who could show her the ultimate goal of the Absolute Truth, was sitting leisurely before
her, Devahuti remembered the words Brahma had spoken to her, and she therefore began to question
Kapila as follows.
7. Devahuti said: I am very sick of the disturbance caused by my material senses, for because of this
sense disturbance, my Lord, I have fallen into the abyss of ignorance.
8. Your Lordship is my only means of getting out of this darkest region of ignorance because You are
my transcendental eye, which, by Your mercy only, I have attained after many, many births.
9. You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the origin and Supreme Lord of all living entities. You
have arisen to disseminate the rays of the sun in order to dissipate the darkness of the ignorance of the
universe.
10. Now be pleased, my Lord, to dispel my great delusion. Due to my feeling of false ego, I have been
engaged by Your maya and have identified myself with the body and consequent bodily relations.
11. Devahuti continued: I have taken shelter of Your lotus feet because You are the only person of
whom to take shelter. You are the ax which can cut the tree of material existence. I therefore offer my
114 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
obeisances unto You, who are the greatest of all transcendentalists, and I inquire from You as to the
relationship between man and woman and between spirit and matter.
12. Maitreya said: After hearing of His mother's uncontaminated desire for transcendental realization,
the Lord thanked her within Himself for her questions, and thus, His face smiling, He explained the path
of the transcendentalists, who are interested in self-realization.
13. The Personality of Godhead answered: The yoga system which relates to the Lord and the
individual soul, which is meant for the ultimate benefit of the living entity, and which causes detachment
from all happiness and distress in the material world, is the highest yoga system.
14. O most pious mother, I shall now explain unto you the ancient yoga system, which I explained
formerly to the great sages. It is serviceable and practical in every way.
15. The stage in which the consciousness of the living entity is attracted by the three modes of material
nature is called conditional life. But when that same consciousness is attached to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, one is situated in the consciousness of liberation.
16. When one is completely cleansed of the impurities of lust and greed produced from the false
identification of the body as "I" and bodily possessions as "mine," one's mind becomes purified. In that
pure state he transcends the stage of so-called material happiness and distress.
17. At that time the soul can see himself to be transcendental to material existence and always self-
effulgent, never fragmented, although very minute in size.
18. In that position of self-realization, by practice of knowledge and renunciation in devotional service,
one sees everything in the right perspective; he becomes indifferent to material existence, and the
material influence acts less powerfully upon him.
19. Perfection in self-realization cannot be attained by any kind of yogi unless he engages in devotional
service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, for that is the only auspicious path.
20. Every learned man knows very well that attachment for the material is the greatest entanglement of
the spirit soul. But that same attachment, when applied to the self-realized devotees, opens the door of
liberation.
21. The symptoms of a sadhu are that he is tolerant, merciful and friendly to all living entities. He has no
enemies, he is peaceful, he abides by the scriptures, and all his characteristics are sublime.
22. Such a sadhu engages in staunch devotional service to the Lord without deviation. For the sake of
the Lord he renounces all other connections, such as family relationships and friendly acquaintances
within the world.
23. Engaged constantly in chanting and hearing about Me, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the
sadhus do not suffer from material miseries because they are always filled with thoughts of My pastimes
and activities.
24. O My mother, O virtuous lady, these are the qualities of great devotees who are free from all
attachment. You must seek attachment to such holy men, for this counteracts the pernicious effects of
material attachment.
25. In the association of pure devotees, discussion of the pastimes and activities of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead is very pleasing and satisfying to the ear and the heart. By cultivating such
knowledge one gradually becomes advanced on the path of liberation, and thereafter he is freed, and
his attraction becomes fixed. Then real devotion and devotional service begin.
26. Thus consciously engaged in devotional service in the association of devotees, a person gains
distaste for sense gratification, both in this world and in the next, by constantly thinking about the
activities of the Lord. This process of Krsna consciousness is the easiest process of mystic power;
when one is actually situated on that path of devotional service, he is able to control the mind.
27. Thus by not engaging in the service of the modes of material nature but by developing Krsna
consciousness, knowledge in renunciation, and by practicing yoga, in which the mind is always fixed in
devotional service unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, one achieves My association in this very
life, for I am the Supreme Personality, the Absolute Truth.
28. On hearing this statement of the Lord, Devahuti inquired: What kind of devotional service is worth
developing and practicing to help me easily and immediately attain the service of Your lotus feet?
29. The mystic yoga system, as You have explained, aims at the Supreme Personality of Godhead and
is meant for completely ending material existence. Please let me know the nature of that yoga system.
How many ways are there by which one can understand in truth that sublime yoga?
30. My dear son, Kapila, after all, I am a woman. It is very difficult for me to understand the Absolute
Truth because my intelligence is not very great. But if You will kindly explain it to me, even though I am
not very intelligent, I can understand it and thereby feel transcendental happiness.
31. Sri Maitreya said: After hearing the statement of His mother, Kapila could understand her purpose,
and He became compassionate towards her because of being born of her body. He described the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 115
Sankhya system of philosophy, which is a combination of devotional service and mystic realization, as
received by disciplic succession.
32. Lord Kapila said: The senses are symbolic representations of the demigods, and their natural
inclination is to work under the direction of the Vedic injunctions. As the senses are representatives of
the demigods, so the mind is the representative of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. The mind's
natural duty is to serve. When that service spirit is engaged in devotional service to the Personality of
Godhead, without any motive, that is far better even than salvation.
33. Bhakti, devotional service, dissolves the subtle body of the living entity without separate effort, just
as fire in the stomach digests all that we eat.
34. A pure devotee, who is attached to the activities of devotional service and who always engages in
the service of My lotus feet, never desires to become one with Me. Such a devotee, who is unflinchingly
engaged, always glorifies My pastimes and activities.
35. O My mother, My devotees always see the smiling face of My form, with eyes like the rising morning
sun. They like to see My various transcendental forms, which are all benevolent, and they also talk
favorably with Me.
36. Upon seeing the charming forms of the Lord, smiling and attractive, and hearing His very pleasing
words, the pure devotee almost loses all other consciousness. His senses are freed from all other
engagements, and he becomes absorbed in devotional service. Thus in spite of his unwillingness, he
attains liberation without separate endeavor.
37. Thus because he is completely absorbed in thought of Me, the devotee does not desire even the
highest benediction obtainable in the upper planetary systems, including Satyaloka. He does not desire
the eight material perfections obtained from mystic yoga, nor does he desire to be elevated to the
kingdom of God. Yet even without desiring them, the devotee enjoys, even in this life, all the offered
benedictions.
38. The Lord continued: My dear mother, devotees who receive such transcendental opulences are
never bereft of them; neither weapons nor the change of time can destroy such opulences. Because the
devotees accept Me as their friend, their relative, their son, preceptor, benefactor and Supreme Deity,
they cannot be deprived of their possessions at any time.
39-40. Thus the devotee who worships Me, the all-pervading Lord of the universe, in unflinching
devotional service, gives up all aspirations to be promoted to heavenly planets or to become happy in
this world with wealth, children, cattle, home or anything in relationship with the body. I take him to the
other side of birth and death.
41. The terrible fear of birth and death can never be forsaken by anyone who resorts to any shelter
other than Myself, for I am the almighty Lord, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the original source
of all creation, and also the Supreme Soul of all souls.
42. It is because of My supremacy that the wind blows, out of fear of Me; the sun shines out of fear of
Me, and the lord of the clouds, Indra, sends forth showers out of fear of Me. Fire burns out of fear of Me,
and death goes about taking its toll out of fear of Me.
43. The yogis, equipped with transcendental knowledge and renunciation and engaged in devotional
service for their eternal benefit, take shelter of My lotus feet, and since I am the Lord, they are thus
eligible to enter into the kingdom of Godhead without fear.
44. Therefore persons whose minds are fixed on the Lord engage in the intensive practice of devotional
service. That is the only means for attainment of the final perfection of life.
Chapter Twenty-six Fundamental Principles of Material Nature
1. The Personality of Godhead, Kapila, continued: My dear mother, now I shall describe unto you the
different categories of the Absolute Truth, knowing which any person can be released from the
influence of the modes of material nature.
2. Knowledge is the ultimate perfection of self-realization. I shall explain that knowledge unto you by
which the knots of attachment to the material world are cut.
3. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the Supreme Soul, and He has no beginning. He is
transcendental to the material modes of nature and beyond the existence of this material world. He is
perceivable everywhere because He is self-effulgent, and by His self-effulgent luster the entire creation
is maintained.
4. As His pastime, that Supreme Personality of Godhead, the greatest of the great, accepted the subtle
material energy, which is invested with three material modes of nature and which is related with Visnu.
5. Divided into varieties by her threefold modes, material nature creates the forms of the living entities,
and the living entities, seeing this, are illusioned by the knowledge-covering feature of the illusory
energy.
6. Because of his forgetfulness, the transcendental living entity accepts the influence of material energy
as his field of activities, and thus actuated, he wrongly applies the activities to himself.
116 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
7. Material consciousness is the cause of one's conditional life, in which conditions are enforced upon
the living entity by the material energy. Although the spirit soul does not do anything and is
transcendental to such activities, he is thus affected by conditional life.
8. The cause of the conditioned soul's material body and senses, and the senses' presiding deities, the
demigods, is the material nature. This is understood by learned men. The feelings of happiness and
distress of the soul, who is transcendental by nature, are caused by the spirit soul himself.
9. Devahuti said: O Supreme Personality of Godhead, kindly explain the characteristics of the Supreme
Person and His energies, for both of these are the causes of this manifest and unmanifest creation.
10. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: The unmanifested eternal combination of the three
modes is the cause of the manifest state and is called pradhana. It is called prakrti when in the
manifested stage of existence.
11. The aggregate elements, namely the five gross elements, the five subtle elements, the four internal
senses, the five senses for gathering knowledge and the five outward organs of action, are known as
the pradhana.
12. There are five gross elements, namely earth, water, fire, air and ether. There are also five subtle
elements: smell, taste, color, touch and sound.
13. The senses for acquiring knowledge and the organs for action number ten, namely the auditory
sense, the sense of taste, the tactile sense, the sense of sight, the sense of smell, the active organ for
speaking, the active organs for working, and those for traveling, generating and evacuating.
14. The internal, subtle senses are experienced as having four aspects, in the shape of mind,
intelligence, ego and contaminated consciousness. Distinctions between them can be made only by
different functions, since they represent different characteristics.
15. All these are considered the qualified Brahman. The mixing element, which is known as time, is
counted as the twenty-fifth element.
16. The influence of the Supreme Personality of Godhead is felt in the time factor, which causes fear of
death due to the false ego of the deluded soul who has contacted material nature.
17. My dear mother, O daughter of Svayambhuva Manu, the time factor, as I have explained, is the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, from whom the creation begins as a result of the agitation of the
neutral, unmanifested nature.
18. By exhibiting His potencies, the Supreme Personality of Godhead adjusts all these different
elements, keeping Himself within as the Supersoul and without as time.
19. After the Supreme Personality of Godhead impregnates material nature with His internal potency,
material nature delivers the sum total of the cosmic intelligence, which is known as Hiranmaya. This
takes place in material nature when she is agitated by the destinations of the conditioned souls.
20. Thus, after manifesting variegatedness, the effulgent mahat-tattva, which contains all the universes
within itself, which is the root of all cosmic manifestations and which is not destroyed at the time of
annihilation, swallows the darkness that covered the effulgence at the time of dissolution.
21. The mode of goodness, which is the clear, sober status of understanding the Personality of
Godhead and which is generally called vasudeva, or consciousness, becomes manifest in the mahat-
tattva.
22. After the manifestation of the mahat-tattva, these features appear simultaneously. As water in its
natural state, before coming in contact with earth, is clear, sweet and unruffled, so the characteristic
traits of pure consciousness are complete serenity, clarity, and freedom from distraction.
23-24. The material ego springs up from the mahat-tattva, which evolved from the Lord's own energy.
The material ego is endowed predominantly with active power of three kinds--good, passionate and
ignorant. It is from these three types of material ego that the mind, the senses of perception, the organs
of action, and the gross elements evolve.
25. The threefold ahankara, the source of the gross elements, the senses and the mind, is identical with
them because it is their cause. It is known by the name of Sankarsana, who is directly Lord Ananta with
a thousand heads.
26. This false ego is characterized as the doer, as an instrument and as an effect. It is further
characterized as serene, active or dull according to how it is influenced by the modes of goodness,
passion and ignorance.
27. From the false ego of goodness, another transformation takes place. From this evolves the mind,
whose thoughts and reflections give rise to desire.
28. The mind of the living entity is known by the name of Lord Aniruddha, the supreme ruler of the
senses. He possesses a bluish-black form resembling a lotus flower growing in the autumn. He is found
slowly by the yogis.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 117
29. By transformation of the false ego in passion, intelligence takes birth, O virtuous lady. The functions
of intelligence are to help in ascertaining the nature of objects when they come into view, and to help
the senses.
30. Doubt, misapprehension, correct apprehension, memory and sleep, as determined by their different
functions, are said to be the distinct characteristics of intelligence.
31. Egoism in the mode of passion produces two kinds of senses--the senses for acquiring knowledge
and the senses of action. The senses of action depend on the vital energy, and the senses for acquiring
knowledge depend on intelligence.
32. When egoism in ignorance is agitated by the sex energy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
the subtle element sound is manifested, and from sound come the ethereal sky and the sense of
hearing.
33. Persons who are learned and who have true knowledge define sound as that which conveys the
idea of an object, indicates the presence of a speaker screened from our view and constitutes the subtle
form of ether.
34. The activities and characteristics of the ethereal element can be observed as accommodation for
the room for the external and internal existences of all living entities, namely the field of activities of the
vital air, the senses and the mind.
35. From ethereal existence, which evolves from sound, the next transformation takes place under the
impulse of time, and thus the subtle element touch and thence the air and sense of touch become
prominent.
36. Softness and hardness and cold and heat are the distinguishing attributes of touch, which is
characterized as the subtle form of air.
37. The action of the air is exhibited in movements, mixing, allowing approach to the objects of sound
and other sense perceptions, and providing for the proper functioning of all other senses.
38. By interactions of the air and the sensations of touch, one receives different forms according to
destiny. By evolution of such forms, there is fire, and the eye sees different forms in color.
39. My dear mother, the characteristics of form are understood by dimension, quality and individuality.
The form of fire is appreciated by its effulgence.
40. Fire is appreciated by its light and by its ability to cook, to digest, to destroy cold, to evaporate, and
to give rise to hunger, thirst, eating and drinking.
41. By the interaction of fire and the visual sensation, the subtle element taste evolves under a superior
arrangement. From taste, water is produced, and the tongue, which perceives taste, is also manifested.
42. Although originally one, taste becomes manifold as astringent, sweet, bitter, pungent, sour and salty
due to contact with other substances.
43. The characteristics of water are exhibited by its moistening other substances, coagulating various
mixtures, causing satisfaction, maintaining life, softening things, driving away heat, incessantly
supplying itself to reservoirs of water, and refreshing by slaking thirst.
44. Due to the interaction of water with the taste perception, the subtle element odor evolves under
superior arrangement. Thence the earth and the olfactory sense, by which we can variously experience
the aroma of the earth, become manifest.
45. Odor, although one, becomes many--as mixed, offensive, fragrant, mild, strong, acidic and so on--
according to the proportions of associated substances.
46. The characteristics of the functions of earth can be perceived by modeling forms of the Supreme
Brahman, by constructing places of residence, by preparing pots to contain water, etc. In other words,
the earth is the place of sustenance for all elements.
47. The sense whose object of perception is sound is called the auditory sense, and that whose object
of perception is touch is called the tactile sense.
48. The sense whose object of perception is form, the distinctive characteristic of fire, is the sense of
sight. The sense whose object of perception is taste, the distinctive characteristic of water, is known as
the sense of taste. Finally, the sense whose object of perception is odor, the distinctive characteristic of
earth, is called the sense of smell.
49. Since the cause exists in its effect as well, the characteristics of the former are observed in the
latter. That is why the peculiarities of all the elements exist in the earth alone.
50. When all these elements were unmixed, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the origin of
creation, along with time, work, and the qualities of the modes of material nature, entered into the
universe with the total material energy in seven divisions.
51. From these seven principles, roused into activity and united by the presence of the Lord, an
unintelligent egg arose, from which appeared the celebrated Cosmic Being.
52. This universal egg, or the universe in the shape of an egg, is called the manifestation of material
energy. Its layers of water, air, fire, sky, ego and mahat-tattva increase in thickness one after another.
118 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Each layer is ten times bigger than the previous one, and the final outside layer is covered by pradhana.
Within this egg is the universal form of Lord Hari, of whose body the fourteen planetary systems are
parts.
53. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, the virat-purusa, situated Himself in that golden egg, which
was lying on the water, and He divided it into many departments.
54. First of all a mouth appeared in Him, and then came forth the organ of speech, and with it the god of
fire, the deity who presides over that organ. Then a pair of nostrils appeared, and in them appeared the
olfactory sense, as well as prana, the vital air.
55. In the wake of the olfactory sense came the wind-god, who presides over that sense. Thereafter a
pair of eyes appeared in the universal form, and in them the sense of sight. In the wake of this sense
came the sun-god, who presides over it. Next there appeared in Him a pair of ears, and in them the
auditory sense and in its wake the Dig-devatas, or the deities who preside over the directions.
56. Then the universal form of the Lord, the virat-purusa, manifested His skin, and thereupon the hair,
mustache and beard appeared. After this all the herbs and drugs became manifested, and then His
genitals also appeared.
57. After this, semen (the faculty of procreation) and the god who presides over the waters appeared.
Next appeared an anus and then the organs of defecation and thereupon the god of death, who is
feared throughout the universe.
58. Thereafter the two hands of the universal form of the Lord became manifested, and with them the
power of grasping and dropping things, and after that Lord Indra appeared. Next the legs became
manifested, and with them the process of movement, and after that Lord Visnu appeared.
59. The veins of the universal body became manifested and thereafter the red corpuscles, or blood. In
their wake came the rivers (the deities presiding over the veins), and then appeared an abdomen.
60. Next grew feelings of hunger and thirst, and in their wake came the manifestation of the oceans.
Then a heart became manifest, and in the wake of the heart the mind appeared.
61. After the mind, the moon appeared. Intelligence appeared next, and after intelligence, Lord Brahma
appeared. Then the false ego appeared and then Lord Siva, and after the appearance of Lord Siva
came consciousness and the deity presiding over consciousness.
62. When the demigods and presiding deities of the various senses were thus manifested, they wanted
to wake their origin of appearance. But upon failing to do so, they reentered the body of the virat-purusa
one after another in order to wake Him.
63. The god of fire entered His mouth with the organ of speech, but the virat-purusa could not be
aroused. Then the god of wind entered His nostrils with the sense of smell, but still the virat-purusa
refused to be awakened.
64. The sun-god entered the eyes of the virat-purusa with the sense of sight, but still the virat-purusa
did not get up. Similarly, the predominating deities of the directions entered through His ears with the
sense of hearing, but still He did not get up.
65. The predominating deities of the skin, herbs and seasoning plants entered the skin of the virat-
purusa with the hair of the body, but the Cosmic Being refused to get up even then. The god
predominating over water entered His organ of generation with the faculty of procreation, but the virat-
purusa still would not rise.
66. The god of death entered His anus with the organ of defecation, but the virat-purusa could not be
spurred to activity. The god Indra entered the hands with their power of grasping and dropping things,
but the virat-purusa would not get up even then.
67. Lord Visnu entered His feet with the faculty of locomotion, but the virat-purusa refused to stand up
even then. The rivers entered His blood vessels with the blood and the power of circulation, but still the
Cosmic Being could not be made to stir.
68. The ocean entered His abdomen with hunger and thirst, but the Cosmic Being refused to rise even
then. The moon-god entered His heart with the mind, but the Cosmic Being would not be roused.
69. Brahma also entered His heart with intelligence, but even then the Cosmic Being could not be
prevailed upon to get up. Lord Rudra also entered His heart with the ego, but even then the Cosmic
Being did not stir.
70. However, when the inner controller, the deity presiding over consciousness, entered the heart with
reason, at that very moment the Cosmic Being arose from the causal waters.
71. When a man is sleeping, all his material assets--namely the vital energy, the senses for recording
knowledge, the senses for working, the mind and the intelligence--cannot arouse him. He can be
aroused only when the Supersoul helps him.
72. Therefore, through devotion, detachment and advancement in spiritual knowledge acquired through
concentrated devotional service, one should contemplate that Supersoul as present in this very body
although simultaneously apart from it.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 119
Chapter Twenty-seven Understanding Material Nature
1. The Personality of Godhead Kapila continued: When the living entity is thus unaffected by the modes
of material nature, because he is unchanging and does not claim proprietorship, he remains apart from
the reactions of the modes, although abiding in a material body, just as the sun remains aloof from its
reflection on water.
2. When the soul is under the spell of material nature and false ego, identifying his body as the self, he
becomes absorbed in material activities, and by the influence of false ego he thinks that he is the
proprietor of everything.
3. The conditioned soul therefore transmigrates into different species of life, higher and lower, because
of his association with the modes of material nature. Unless he is relieved of material activities, he has
to accept this position because of his faulty work.
4. Actually a living entity is transcendental to material existence, but because of his mentality of lording
it over material nature, his material existential condition does not cease, and just as in a dream, he is
affected by all sorts of disadvantages.
5. It is the duty of every conditioned soul to engage his polluted consciousness, which is now attached
to material enjoyment, in very serious devotional service with detachment. Thus his mind and
consciousness will be under full control.
6. One has to become faithful by practicing the controlling process of the yoga system and must elevate
himself to the platform of unalloyed devotional service by chanting and hearing about Me.
7. In executing devotional service, one has to see every living entity equally, without enmity towards
anyone yet without intimate connections with anyone. One has to observe celibacy, be grave and
execute his eternal activities, offering the results to the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
8. For his income a devotee should be satisfied with what he earns without great difficulty. He should
not eat more than what is necessary. He should live in a secluded place and always be thoughtful,
peaceful, friendly, compassionate and self-realized.
9. One's seeing power should be increased through knowledge of spirit and matter, and one should not
unnecessarily identify himself with the body and thus become attracted by bodily relationships.
10. One should be situated in the transcendental position, beyond the stages of material
consciousness, and should be aloof from all other conceptions of life. Thus realizing freedom from false
ego, one should see his own self just as he sees the sun in the sky.
11. A liberated soul realizes the Absolute Personality of Godhead, who is transcendental and who is
manifest as a reflection even in the false ego. He is the support of the material cause and He enters into
everything. He is absolute, one without a second, and He is the eyes of the illusory energy.
12. The presence of the Supreme Lord can be realized just as the sun is realized first as a reflection on
water, and again as a second reflection on the wall of a room, although the sun itself is situated in the
sky.
13. The self-realized soul is thus reflected first in the threefold ego and then in the body, senses and
mind.
14. Although a devotee appears to be merged in the five material elements, the objects of material
enjoyment, the material senses and material mind and intelligence, he is understood to be awake and
to be freed from the false ego.
15. The living entity can vividly feel his existence as the seer, but because of the disappearance of the
ego during the state of deep sleep, he falsely takes himself to be lost, like a man who has lost his
fortune and feels distressed, thinking himself to be lost.
16. When, by mature understanding, one can realize his individuality, then the situation he accepts
under false ego becomes manifest to him.
17. Sri Devahuti inquired: My dear brahmana, does material nature ever give release to the spirit soul?
Since one is attracted to the other eternally, how is their separation possible?
18. As there is no separate existence of the earth and its aroma or of water and its taste, there cannot
be any separate existence of intelligence and consciousness.
19. Hence even though he is the passive performer of all activities, how can there be freedom for the
soul as long as material nature acts on him and binds him?
20. Even if the great fear of bondage is avoided by mental speculation and inquiry into the fundamental
principles, it may still appear again, since its cause has not ceased.
21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: One can get liberation by seriously discharging
devotional service unto Me and thereby hearing for a long time about Me or from Me. By thus executing
one's prescribed duties, there will be no reaction, and one will be freed from the contamination of
matter.
120 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. This devotional service has to be performed strongly in perfect knowledge and with transcendental
vision. One must be strongly renounced and must engage in austerity and perform mystic yoga in order
to be firmly fixed in self-absorption.
23. The influence of material nature has covered the living entity, and thus it is as if the living entity were
always in a blazing fire. But by the process of seriously discharging devotional service, this influence
can be removed, just as wooden sticks which cause a fire are themselves consumed by it.
24. By discovering the faultiness of his desiring to lord it over material nature and by therefore giving it
up, the living entity becomes independent and stands in his own glory.
25. In the dreaming state one's consciousness is almost covered, and one sees many inauspicious
things, but when he is awakened and fully conscious, such inauspicious things cannot bewilder him.
26. The influence of material nature cannot harm an enlightened soul, even though he engages in
material activities, because he knows the truth of the Absolute, and his mind is fixed on the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
27. When a person thus engages in devotional service and self-realization for many, many years and
births, he becomes completely reluctant to enjoy any one of the material planets, even up to the highest
planet, which is known as Brahmaloka; he becomes fully developed in consciousness.
28-29. My devotee actually becomes self-realized by My unlimited causeless mercy, and thus, when
freed from all doubts, he steadily progresses towards his destined abode, which is directly under the
protection of My spiritual energy of unadulterated bliss. That is the ultimate perfectional goal of the living
entity. After giving up the present material body, the mystic devotee goes to that transcendental abode
and never comes back.
30. When a perfect yogi's attention is no longer attracted to the by-products of mystic powers, which are
manifestations of the external energy, his progress towards Me becomes unlimited, and thus the power
of death cannot overcome him.
Chapter Twenty-eight Kapila's Instructions on the Execution of Devotional Service
1. The Personality of Godhead said: My dear mother, O daughter of the King, now I shall explain to you
the system of yoga, the object of which is to concentrate the mind. By practicing this system one can
become joyful and progressively advance towards the path of the Absolute Truth.
2. One should execute his prescribed duties to the best of his ability and avoid performing duties not
allotted to him. One should be satisfied with as much gain as he achieves by the grace of the Lord, and
one should worship the lotus feet of a spiritual master.
3. One should cease performing conventional religious practices and should be attracted to those which
lead to salvation. One should eat very frugally and should always remain secluded so that he can
achieve the highest perfection of life.
4. One should practice nonviolence and truthfulness, should avoid thieving and be satisfied with
possessing as much as he needs for his maintenance. He should abstain from sex life, perform
austerity, be clean, study the Vedas and worship the supreme form of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
5. One must observe silence, acquire steadiness by practicing different yogic postures, control the
breathing of the vital air, withdraw the senses from sense objects and thus concentrate the mind on the
heart.
6. Fixing the vital air and the mind in one of the six circles of vital air circulation within the body, thus
concentrating one's mind on the transcendental pastimes of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is
called samadhi, or samadhana, of the mind.
7. By these processes, or any other true process, one must control the contaminated, unbridled mind,
which is always attracted by material enjoyment, and thus fix himself in thought of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
8. After controlling one's mind and sitting postures, one should spread a seat in a secluded and
sanctified place, sit there in an easy posture, keeping the body erect, and practice breath control.
9. The yogi should clear the passage of vital air by breathing in the following manner: first he should
inhale very deeply, then hold the breath in, and finally exhale. Or, reversing the process, the yogi can
first exhale, then hold the breath outside, and finally inhale. This is done so that the mind may become
steady and free from external disturbances.
10. The yogis who practice such breathing exercises are very soon freed from all mental disturbances,
just as gold, when put into fire and fanned with air, becomes free from all impurities.
11. By practicing the process of pranayama, one can eradicate the contamination of his physiological
condition, and by concentrating the mind one can become free from all sinful activities. By restraining
the senses one can free himself from material association, and by meditating on the Supreme
Personality of Godhead one can become free from the three modes of material attachment.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 121
12. When the mind is perfectly purified by this practice of yoga, one should concentrate on the tip of the
nose with half-closed eyes and see the form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
13. The Supreme Personality of Godhead has a cheerful, lotuslike countenance with ruddy eyes like the
interior of a lotus and a swarthy body like the petals of a blue lotus. He bears a conch, discus and mace
in three of His hands.
14. His loins are covered by a shining cloth, yellowish like the filaments of a lotus. On His breast He
bears the mark of Srivatsa, a curl of white hair. The brilliant Kaustubha gem is suspended from His
neck.
15. He also wears around His neck a garland of attractive sylvan flowers, and a swarm of bees,
intoxicated by its delicious fragrance, hums about the garland. He is further superbly adorned with a
pearl necklace, a crown and pairs of armlets, bracelets and anklets.
16. His loins and hips encircled by a girdle, He stands on the lotus of His devotee's heart. He is most
charming to look at, and His serene aspect gladdens the eyes and souls of the devotees who behold
Him.
17. The Lord is eternally very beautiful, and He is worshipable by all the inhabitants of every planet. He
is ever youthful and always eager to bestow His blessing upon His devotees.
18. The glory of the Lord is always worth singing, for His glories enhance the glories of His devotees.
One should therefore meditate upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead and upon His devotees. One
should meditate on the eternal form of the Lord until the mind becomes fixed.
19. Thus always merged in devotional service, the yogi visualizes the Lord standing, moving, lying down
or sitting within him, for the pastimes of the Supreme Lord are always beautiful and attractive.
20. In fixing his mind on the eternal form of the Lord, the yogi should not take a collective view of all His
limbs, but should fix the mind on each individual limb of the Lord.
21. The devotee should first concentrate his mind on the Lord's lotus feet, which are adorned with the
marks of a thunderbolt, a goad, a banner and a lotus. The splendor of their beautiful ruby nails
resembles the orbit of the moon and dispels the thick gloom of one's heart.
22. The blessed Lord Siva becomes all the more blessed by bearing on his head the holy waters of the
Ganges, which has its source in the water that washed the Lord's lotus feet. The Lord's feet act like
thunderbolts hurled to shatter the mountain of sin stored in the mind of the meditating devotee. One
should therefore meditate on the lotus feet of the Lord for a long time.
23. The yogi should fix in his heart the activities of Laksmi, the goddess of fortune, who is worshiped by
all demigods and is the mother of the supreme person, Brahma. She can always be found massaging
the legs and thighs of the transcendental Lord, very carefully serving Him in this way.
24. Next, the yogi should fix his mind in meditation on the Personality of Godhead's thighs, the
storehouse of all energy. The Lord's thighs are whitish blue, like the luster of the linseed flower, and
appear most graceful when the Lord is carried on the shoulders of Garuda. Also the yogi should
contemplate His rounded hips, which are encircled by a girdle that rests on the exquisite yellow silk
cloth that extends down to His ankles.
25. The yogi should then meditate on His moonlike navel in the center of His abdomen. From His navel,
which is the foundation of the entire universe, sprang the lotus stem containing all the different planetary
systems. The lotus is the residence of Brahma, the first created being. In the same way, the yogi should
concentrate his mind on the Lord's nipples, which resemble a pair of most exquisite emeralds and which
appear whitish because of the rays of the milk-white pearl necklaces adorning His chest.
26. The yogi should then meditate on the chest of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the abode of
goddess Maha-Laksmi. The Lord's chest is the source of all transcendental pleasure for the mind and
full satisfaction for the eyes. The yogi should then imprint on his mind the neck of the Personality of
Godhead, who is adored by the entire universe. The neck of the Lord serves to enhance the beauty of
the Kaustubha gem, which hangs on His chest.
27. The yogi should further meditate upon the Lord's four arms, which are the source of all the powers
of the demigods who control the various functions of material nature. Then the yogi should concentrate
on the polished ornaments, which were burnished by Mount Mandara as it revolved. He should also
duly contemplate the Lord's discus, the Sudarsana cakra, which contains one thousand spokes and a
dazzling luster, as well as the conch, which looks like a swan in His lotuslike palm.
28. The yogi should meditate upon His club, which is named Kaumodaki and is very dear to Him. This
club smashes the demons, who are always inimical soldiers, and is smeared with their blood. One
should also concentrate on the nice garland on the neck of the Lord, which is always surrounded by
bumblebees, with their nice buzzing sound, and one should meditate upon the pearl necklace on the
Lord's neck, which is considered to represent the pure living entities who are always engaged in His
service.
122 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
29. The yogi should then meditate on the lotuslike countenance of the Lord, who presents His different
forms in this world out of compassion for the anxious devotees. His nose is prominent, and His crystal-
clear cheeks are illuminated by the oscillation of His glittering alligator-shaped earrings.
30. The yogi then meditates upon the beautiful face of the Lord, which is adorned with curly hair and
decorated by lotuslike eyes and dancing eyebrows. A lotus surrounded by swarming bees and a pair of
swimming fish would be put to shame by its elegance.
31. The yogis should contemplate with full devotion the compassionate glances frequently cast by the
Lord's eyes, for they soothe the most fearful threefold agonies of His devotees. His glances,
accompanied by loving smiles, are full of abundant grace.
32. A yogi should similarly meditate on the most benevolent smile of Lord Sri Hari, a smile which, for all
those who bow to Him, dries away the ocean of tears caused by intense grief. The yogi should also
meditate on the Lord's arched eyebrows, which are manifested by His internal potency in order to
charm the sex-god for the good of the sages.
33. With devotion steeped in love and affection, the yogi should meditate within the core of his heart
upon the laughter of Lord Visnu. The laughter of Visnu is so captivating that it can be easily meditated
upon. When the Supreme Lord is laughing, one can see His small teeth, which resemble jasmine buds
rendered rosy by the splendor of His lips. Once devoting his mind to this, the yogi should no longer
desire to see anything else.
34. By following this course, the yogi gradually develops pure love for the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Hari. In the course of his progress in devotional service, the hairs on his body stand erect
through excessive joy, and he is constantly bathed in a stream of tears occasioned by intense love.
Gradually, even the mind, which he used as a means to attract the Lord, as one attracts a fish to a
hook, withdraws from material activity.
35. When the mind is thus completely freed from all material contamination and detached from material
objectives, it is just like the flame of a lamp. At that time the mind is actually dovetailed with that of the
Supreme Lord and is experienced as one with Him because it is freed from the interactive flow of the
material qualities.
36. Thus situated in the highest transcendental stage, the mind ceases from all material reaction and
becomes situated in its own glory, transcendental to all material conceptions of happiness and distress.
At that time the yogi realizes the truth of his relationship with the Supreme Personality of Godhead. He
discovers that pleasure and pain as well as their interactions, which he attributed to his own self, are
actually due to the false ego, which is a product of ignorance.
37. Because he has achieved his real identity, the perfectly realized soul has no conception of how the
material body is moving or acting, just as an intoxicated person cannot understand whether or not he
has clothing on his body.
38. The body of such a liberated yogi, along with the senses, is taken charge of by the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, and it functions until its destined activities are finished. The liberated devotee,
being awake to his constitutional position and thus situated in samadhi, the highest perfectional stage of
yoga, does not accept the by-products of the material body as his own. Thus he considers his bodily
activities to be like the activities of a body in a dream.
39. Because of great affection for family and wealth, one accepts a son and some money as his own,
and due to affection for the material body, one thinks that it is his. But actually, as one can understand
that his family and wealth are different from him, the liberated soul can understand that he and his body
are not the same.
40. The blazing fire is different from the flames, from the sparks and from the smoke, although all are
intimately connected because they are born from the same blazing wood.
41. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is known as Parambrahma, is the seer. He is different
from the jiva soul, or individual living entity, who is combined with the senses, the five elements and
consciousness.
42. A yogi should see the same soul in all manifestations, for all that exists is a manifestation of different
energies of the Supreme. In this way the devotee should see all living entities without distinction. That is
realization of the Supreme Soul.
43. As fire is exhibited in different forms of wood, so, under different conditions of the modes of material
nature, the pure spirit soul manifests itself in different bodies.
44. Thus the yogi can be in the self-realized position after conquering the insurmountable spell of maya,
who presents herself as both the cause and effect of this material manifestation and is therefore very
difficult to understand.
Chapter Twenty-nine Explanation of Devotional Service by Lord Kapila
1-2. Devahuti inquired: My dear Lord, You have already very scientifically described the symptoms of
the total material nature and the characteristics of the spirit according to the Sankhya system of
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 123
philosophy. Now I shall request You to explain the path of devotional service, which is the ultimate end
of all philosophical systems.
3. Devahuti continued: My dear Lord, please also describe in detail, both for me and for people in
general, the continual process of birth and death, for by hearing of such calamities we may become
detached from the activities of this material world.
4. Please also describe eternal time, which is a representation of Your form and by whose influence
people in general engage in the performance of pious activities.
5. My dear Lord, You are just like the sun, for You illuminate the darkness of the conditional life of the
living entities. Because their eyes of knowledge are not open, they are sleeping eternally in that
darkness without Your shelter, and therefore they are falsely engaged by the actions and reactions of
their material activities, and they appear to be very fatigued.
6. Sri Maitreya said: O best amongst the Kurus, the great sage Kapila, moved by great compassion and
pleased by the words of His glorious mother, spoke as follows.
7. Lord Kapila, the Personality of Godhead, replied: O noble lady, there are multifarious paths of
devotional service in terms of the different qualities of the executor.
8. Devotional service executed by a person who is envious, proud, violent and angry, and who is a
separatist, is considered to be in the mode of darkness.
9. The worship of Deities in the temple by a separatist, with a motive for material enjoyment, fame and
opulence, is devotion in the mode of passion.
10. When a devotee worships the Supreme Personality of Godhead and offers the results of his
activities in order to free himself from the inebrieties of fruitive activities, his devotion is in the mode of
goodness.
11-12. The manifestation of unadulterated devotional service is exhibited when one's mind is at once
attracted to hearing the transcendental name and qualities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who is residing in everyone's heart. Just as the water of the Ganges flows naturally down towards the
ocean, such devotional ecstasy, uninterrupted by any material condition, flows towards the Supreme
Lord.
13. A pure devotee does not accept any kind of liberation--salokya, sarsti, samipya, sarupya or ekatva--
even though they are offered by the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
14. By attaining the highest platform of devotional service, as I have explained, one can overcome the
influence of the three modes of material nature and be situated in the transcendental stage, as is the
Lord.
15. A devotee must execute his prescribed duties, which are glorious, without material profit. Without
excessive violence, one should regularly perform one's devotional activities.
16. The devotee should regularly see My statues in the temple, touch My lotus feet and offer
worshipable paraphernalia and prayer. He should see in the spirit of renunciation, from the mode of
goodness, and see every living entity as spiritual.
17. The pure devotee should execute devotional service by giving the greatest respect to the spiritual
master and the acaryas. He should be compassionate to the poor and make friendship with persons
who are his equals, but all his activities should be executed under regulation and with control of the
senses.
18. A devotee should always try to hear about spiritual matters and should always utilize his time in
chanting the holy name of the Lord. His behavior should always be straightforward and simple, and
although he is not envious but friendly to everyone, he should avoid the company of persons who are
not spiritually advanced.
19. When one is fully qualified with all these transcendental attributes and his consciousness is thus
completely purified, he is immediately attracted simply by hearing My name or hearing of My
transcendental quality.
20. As the chariot of air carries an aroma from its source and immediately catches the sense of smell,
similarly, one who constantly engages in devotional service, in Krsna consciousness, can catch the
Supreme Soul, who is equally present everywhere.
21. I am present in every living entity as the Supersoul. If someone neglects or disregards that
Supersoul everywhere and engages himself in the worship of the Deity in the temple, that is simply
imitation.
22. One who worships the Deity of Godhead in the temples but does not know that the Supreme Lord,
as Paramatma, is situated in every living entity's heart, must be in ignorance and is compared to one
who offers oblations into ashes.
23. One who offers Me respect but is envious of the bodies of others and is therefore a separatist never
attains peace of mind, because of his inimical behavior towards other living entities.
124 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. My dear Mother, even if he worships with proper rituals and paraphernalia, a person who is ignorant
of My presence in all living entities never pleases Me by the worship of My Deities in the temple.
25. Performing his prescribed duties, one should worship the Deity of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead until one realizes My presence in his own heart and in the hearts of other living entities as
well.
26. As the blazing fire of death, I cause great fear to whoever makes the least discrimination between
himself and other living entities because of a differential outlook.
27. Therefore, through charitable gifts and attention, as well as through friendly behavior and by viewing
all to be alike, one should propitiate Me, who abide in all creatures as their very Self.
28. Living entities are superior to inanimate objects, O blessed mother, and among them, living entities
who display life symptoms are better. Animals with developed consciousness are better than them, and
better still are those who have developed sense perception.
29. Among the living entities who have developed sense perception, those who have developed the
sense of taste are better than those who have developed only the sense of touch. Better than them are
those who have developed the sense of smell, and better still are those who have developed the sense
of hearing.
30. Better than those living entities who can perceive sound are those who can distinguish between one
form and another. Better than them are those who have developed upper and lower sets of teeth, and
better still are those who have many legs. Better than them are the quadrupeds, and better still are the
human beings.
31. Among human beings, the society which is divided according to quality and work is best, and in that
society, the intelligent men, who are designated as brahmanas, are best. Among the brahmanas, one
who has studied the Vedas is the best, and among the brahmanas who have studied the Vedas, one
who knows the actual purport of Veda is the best.
32. Better than the brahmana who knows the purpose of the Vedas is he who can dissipate all doubts,
and better than him is one who strictly follows the brahminical principles. Better than him is one who is
liberated from all material contamination, and better than him is a pure devotee, who executes
devotional service without expectation of reward.
33. Therefore I do not find a greater person than he who has no interest outside of Mine and who
therefore engages and dedicates all his activities and all his life--everything--unto Me without cessation.
34. Such a perfect devotee offers respects to every living entity because he is under the firm conviction
that the Supreme Personality of Godhead has entered the body of every living entity as the Supersoul,
or controller.
35. My dear mother, O daughter of Manu, a devotee who applies the science of devotional service and
mystic yoga in this way can achieve the abode of the Supreme Person simply by that devotional
service.
36. This purusa whom the individual soul must approach is the eternal form of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, who is known as Brahman and Paramatma. He is the transcendental chief personality, and
His activities are all spiritual.
37. The time factor, who causes the transformation of the various material manifestations, is another
feature of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Anyone who does not know that time is the same
Supreme Personality is afraid of the time factor.
38. Lord Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the enjoyer of all sacrifices, is the time
factor and the master of all masters. He enters everyone's heart, He is the support of everyone, and He
causes every being to be annihilated by another.
39. No one is dear to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, nor is anyone His enemy or friend. But He
gives inspiration to those who have not forgotten Him and destroys those who have.
40. Out of fear of the Supreme Personality of Godhead the wind blows, out of fear of Him the sun
shines, out of fear of Him the rain pours forth showers, and out of fear of Him the host of heavenly
bodies shed their luster.
41. Out of fear of the Supreme Personality of Godhead the trees, creepers, herbs and seasonal plants
and flowers blossom and fructify, each in its own season.
42. Out of fear of the Supreme Personality of Godhead the rivers flow, and the ocean never overflows.
Out of fear of Him only does fire burn and does the earth, with its mountains, not sink in the water of the
universe.
43. Subject to the control of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the sky allows outer space to
accommodate all the various planets, which hold innumerable living entities. The total universal body
expands with its seven coverings under His supreme control.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 125
44. Out of fear of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the directing demigods in charge of the modes
of material nature carry out the functions of creation, maintenance and destruction; everything animate
and inanimate within this material world is under their control.
45. The eternal time factor has no beginning and no end. It is the representative of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, the maker of the criminal world. It brings about the end of the phenomenal
world, it carries on the work of creation by bringing one individual into existence from another, and
likewise it dissolves the universe by destroying even the lord of death, Yamaraja.
Chapter Thirty Description by Lord Kapila of Adverse Fruitive Activities
1. The Personality of Godhead said: As a mass of clouds does not know the powerful influence of the
wind, a person engaged in material consciousness does not know the powerful strength of the time
factor, by which he is being carried.
2. Whatever is produced by the materialist with great pain and labor for so-called happiness, the
Supreme Personality, as the time factor, destroys, and for this reason the conditioned soul laments.
3. The misguided materialist does not know that his very body is impermanent and that the attractions
of home, land and wealth, which are in relationship to that body, are also temporary. Out of ignorance
only, he thinks that everything is permanent.
4. The living entity, in whatever species of life he appears, finds a particular type of satisfaction in that
species, and he is never averse to being situated in such a condition.
5. The conditioned living entity is satisfied in his own particular species of life; while deluded by the
covering influence of the illusory energy, he feels little inclined to cast off his body, even when in hell, for
he takes delight in hellish enjoyment.
6. Such satisfaction with one's standard of living is due to deep-rooted attraction for body, wife, home,
children, animals, wealth and friends. In such association, the conditioned soul thinks himself quite
perfect.
7. Although he is always burning with anxiety, such a fool always performs all kinds of mischievous
activities, with a hope which is never to be fulfilled, in order to maintain his so-called family and society.
8. He gives heart and senses to a woman, who falsely charms him with maya. He enjoys solitary
embraces and talking with her, and he is enchanted by the sweet words of the small children.
9. The attached householder remains in his family life, which is full of diplomacy and politics. Always
spreading miseries and controlled by acts of sense gratification, he acts just to counteract the reactions
of all his miseries, and if he can successfully counteract such miseries, he thinks that he is happy.
10. He secures money by committing violence here and there, and although he employs it in the service
of his family, he himself eats only a little portion of the food thus purchased, and he goes to hell for
those for whom he earned the money in such an irregular way.
11. When he suffers reverses in his occupation, he tries again and again to improve himself, but when
he is baffled in all attempts and is ruined, he accepts money from others because of excessive greed.
12. Thus the unfortunate man, unsuccessful in maintaining his family members, is bereft of all beauty.
He always thinks of his failure, grieving very deeply.
13. Seeing him unable to support them, his wife and others do not treat him with the same respect as
before, even as miserly farmers do not accord the same treatment to their old and worn-out oxen.
14. The foolish family man does not become averse to family life although he is maintained by those
whom he once maintained. Deformed by the influence of old age, he prepares himself to meet ultimate
death.
15. Thus he remains at home just like a pet dog and eats whatever is so negligently given to him.
Afflicted with many illnesses, such as dyspepsia and loss of appetite, he eats only very small morsels of
food, and he becomes an invalid, who cannot work any more.
16. In that diseased condition, one's eyes bulge due to the pressure of air from within, and his glands
become congested with mucus. He has difficulty breathing, and upon exhaling and inhaling he
produces a sound like ghura-ghura, a rattling within the throat.
17. In this way he comes under the clutches of death and lies down, surrounded by lamenting friends
and relatives, and although he wants to speak with them, he no longer can because he is under the
control of time.
18. Thus the man, who engaged with uncontrolled senses in maintaining a family, dies in great grief,
seeing his relatives crying. He dies most pathetically, in great pain and without consciousness.
19. At death, he sees the messengers of the lord of death come before him, their eyes full of wrath, and
in great fear he passes stool and urine.
20. As a criminal is arrested for punishment by the constables of the state, a person engaged in criminal
sense gratification is similarly arrested by the Yamadutas, who bind him by the neck with strong rope
and cover his subtle body so that he may undergo severe punishment.
126 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
21. While carried by the constables of Yamaraja, he is overwhelmed and trembles in their hands. While
passing on the road he is bitten by dogs, and he can remember the sinful activities of his life. He is thus
terribly distressed.
22. Under the scorching sun, the criminal has to pass through roads of hot sand with forest fires on both
sides. He is whipped on the back by the constables because of his inability to walk, and he is afflicted
by hunger and thirst, but unfortunately there is no drinking water, no shelter and no place for rest on the
road.
23. While passing on that road to the abode of Yamaraja, he falls down in fatigue, and sometimes he
becomes unconscious, but he is forced to rise again. In this way he is very quickly brought to the
presence of Yamaraja.
24. Thus he has to pass ninety-nine thousand yojanas within two or three moments, and then he is at
once engaged in the torturous punishment which he is destined to suffer.
25. He is placed in the midst of burning pieces of wood, and his limbs are set on fire. In some cases he
is made to eat his own flesh or have it eaten by others.
26. His entrails are pulled out by the hounds and vultures of hell, even though he is still alive to see it,
and he is subjected to torment by serpents, scorpions, gnats and other creatures that bite him.
27. Next his limbs are lopped off and torn asunder by elephants. He is hurled down from hilltops, and he
is also held captive either in water or in a cave.
28. Men and women whose lives were built upon indulgence in illicit sex life are put into many kinds of
miserable conditions in the hells known as Tamisra, Andha-tamisra and Raurava.
29. Lord Kapila continued: My dear mother, it is sometimes said that we experience hell or heaven on
this planet, for hellish punishments are sometimes visible on this planet also.
30. After leaving this body, the man who maintained himself and his family members by sinful activities
suffers a hellish life, and his relatives suffer also.
31. He goes alone to the darkest regions of hell after quitting the present body, and the money he
acquired by envying other living entities is the passage money with which he leaves this world.
32. Thus, by the arrangement of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the maintainer of kinsmen is put
into a hellish condition to suffer for his sinful activities, like a man who has lost his wealth.
33. Therefore a person who is very eager to maintain his family and kinsmen simply by black methods
certainly goes to the darkest region of hell, which is known as Andha-tamisra.
34. Having gone through all the miserable, hellish conditions and having passed in a regular order
through the lowest forms of animal life prior to human birth, and having thus been purged of his sins,
one is reborn again as a human being on this earth.
Chapter Thirty-one Lord Kapila's Instructions on the Movements of the Living Entities
1. The Personality of Godhead said: Under the supervision of the Supreme Lord and according to the
result of his work, the living entity, the soul, is made to enter into the womb of a woman through the
particle of male semen to assume a particular type of body.
2. On the first night, the sperm and ovum mix, and on the fifth night the mixture ferments into a bubble.
On the tenth night it develops into a form like a plum, and after that, it gradually turns into a lump of
flesh or an egg, as the case may be.
3. In the course of a month, a head is formed, and at the end of two months the hands, feet and other
limbs take shape. By the end of three months, the nails, fingers, toes, body hair, bones and skin appear,
as do the organ of generation and the other apertures in the body, namely the eyes, nostrils, ears,
mouth and anus.
4. Within four months from the date of conception, the seven essential ingredients of the body, namely
chyle, blood, flesh, fat, bone, marrow and semen, come into existence. At the end of five months,
hunger and thirst make themselves felt, and at the end of six months, the fetus, enclosed by the
amnion, begins to move on the right side of the abdomen.
5. Deriving its nutrition from the food and drink taken by the mother, the fetus grows and remains in that
abominable residence of stools and urine, which is the breeding place of all kinds of worms.
6. Bitten again and again all over the body by the hungry worms in the abdomen itself, the child suffers
terrible agony because of his tenderness. He thus becomes unconscious moment after moment
because of the terrible condition.
7. Owing to the mother's eating bitter, pungent foodstuffs, or food which is too salty or too sour, the
body of the child incessantly suffers pains which are almost intolerable.
8. Placed within the amnion and covered outside by the intestines, the child remains lying on one side
of the abdomen, his head turned towards his belly and his back and neck arched like a bow.
9. The child thus remains just like a bird in a cage, without freedom of movement. At that time, if the
child is fortunate, he can remember all the troubles of his past one hundred births, and he grieves
wretchedly. What is the possibility of peace of mind in that condition?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 127
10. Thus endowed with the development of consciousness from the seventh month after his conception,
the child is tossed downward by the airs that press the embryo during the weeks preceding delivery.
Like the worms born of the same filthy abdominal cavity, he cannot remain in one place.
11. The living entity in this frightful condition of life, bound by seven layers of material ingredients, prays
with folded hands, appealing to the Lord, who has put him in that condition.
12. The human soul says: I take shelter of the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
appears in His various eternal forms and walks on the surface of the world. I take shelter of Him only,
because He can give me relief from all fear and from Him I have received this condition of life, which is
just befitting my impious activities.
13. I, the pure soul, appearing now bound by my activities, am lying in the womb of my mother by the
arrangement of maya. I offer my respectful obeisances unto Him who is also here with me but who is
unaffected and changeless. He is unlimited, but He is perceived in the repentant heart. To Him I offer
my respectful obeisances.
14. I am separated from the Supreme Lord because of my being in this material body, which is made of
five elements, and therefore my qualities and senses are being misused, although I am essentially
spiritual. Because the Supreme Personality of Godhead is transcendental to material nature and the
living entities, because He is devoid of such a material body, and because He is always glorious in His
spiritual qualities, I offer my obeisances unto Him.
15. The human soul further prays: The living entity is put under the influence of material nature and
continues a hard struggle for existence on the path of repeated birth and death. This conditional life is
due to his forgetfulness of his relationship with the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore, without
the Lord's mercy, how can he again engage in the transcendental loving service of the Lord?
16. No one other than the Supreme Personality of Godhead, as the localized Paramatma, the partial
representation of the Lord, is directing all inanimate and animate objects. He is present in the three
phases of time--past, present and future. Therefore, the conditioned soul is engaged in different
activities by His direction, and in order to get free from the threefold miseries of this conditional life, we
have to surrender unto Him only.
17. Fallen into a pool of blood, stool and urine within the abdomen of his mother, his own body scorched
by the mother's gastric fire, the embodied soul, anxious to get out, counts his months and prays, "O my
Lord, when shall I, a wretched soul, be released from this confinement?"
18. My dear Lord, by Your causeless mercy I am awakened to consciousness, although I am only ten
months old. For this causeless mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the friend of all fallen
souls, there is no way to express my gratitude but to pray with folded hands.
19. The living entity in another type of body sees only by instinct; he knows only the agreeable and
disagreeable sense perceptions of that particular body. But I have a body in which I can control my
senses and can understand my destination; therefore, I offer my respectful obeisances to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, by whom I have been blessed with this body and by whose grace I can see
Him within and without.
20. Therefore, my Lord, although I am living in a terrible condition, I do not wish to depart from my
mother's abdomen to fall again into the blind well of materialistic life. Your external energy, called deva-
maya, at once captures the newly born child, and immediately false identification, which is the beginning
of the cycle of continual birth and death, begins.
21. Therefore, without being agitated any more, I shall deliver myself from the darkness of nescience
with the help of my friend, clear consciousness. Simply by keeping the lotus feet of Lord Visnu in my
mind, I shall be saved from entering into the wombs of many mothers for repeated birth and death.
22. Lord Kapila continued: The ten-month-old living entity has these desires even while in the womb.
But while he thus extols the Lord, the wind that helps parturition propels him forth with his face turned
downward so that he may be born.
23. Pushed downward all of a sudden by the wind, the child comes out with great trouble, head
downward, breathless and deprived of memory due to severe agony.
24. The child thus falls on the ground, smeared with stool and blood, and plays just like a worm
germinated from the stool. He loses his superior knowledge and cries under the spell of maya.
25. After coming out of the abdomen, the child is given to the care of persons who are unable to
understand what he wants, and thus he is nursed by such persons. Unable to refuse whatever is given
to him, he falls into undesirable circumstances.
26. Laid down on a foul bed infested with sweat and germs, the poor child is incapable of scratching his
body to get relief from his itching sensation to say nothing of sitting up, standing or even moving.
27. In his helpless condition, gnats, mosquitoes, bugs and other germs bite the baby, whose skin is
tender, just as smaller worms bite a big worm. The child, deprived of his wisdom, cries bitterly.
128 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
28. In this way, the child passes through his childhood, suffering different kinds of distress, and attains
boyhood. In boyhood also he suffers pain over desires to get things he can never achieve. And thus,
due to ignorance, he becomes angry and sorry.
29. With the growth of the body, the living entity, in order to vanquish his soul, increases his false
prestige and anger and thereby creates enmity towards similarly lusty people.
30. By such ignorance the living entity accepts the material body, which is made of five elements, as
himself. With this misunderstanding, he accepts nonpermanent things as his own and increases his
ignorance in the darkest region.
31. For the sake of the body, which is a source of constant trouble to him and which follows him
because he is bound by ties of ignorance and fruitive activities, he performs various actions which
cause him to be subjected to repeated birth and death.
32. If, therefore, the living entity again associates with the path of unrighteousness, influenced by
sensually minded people engaged in the pursuit of sexual enjoyment and the gratification of the palate,
he again goes to hell as before.
33. He becomes devoid of truthfulness, cleanliness, mercy, gravity, spiritual intelligence, shyness,
austerity, fame, forgiveness, control of the mind, control of the senses, fortune and all such
opportunities.
34. One should not associate with a coarse fool who is bereft of the knowledge of self-realization and
who is no more than a dancing dog in the hands of a woman.
35. The infatuation and bondage which accrue to a man from attachment to any other object is not as
complete as that resulting from attachment to a woman or to the fellowship of men who are fond of
women.
36. At the sight of his own daughter, Brahma was bewildered by her charms and shamelessly ran up to
her in the form of a stag when she took the form of a hind.
37. Amongst all kinds of living entities begotten by Brahma, namely men, demigods and animals, none
but the sage Narayana is immune to the attraction of maya in the form of woman.
38. Just try to understand the mighty strength of My maya in the shape of woman, who by the mere
movement of her eyebrows can keep even the greatest conquerors of the world under her grip.
39. One who aspires to reach the culmination of yoga and has realized his self by rendering service
unto Me should never associate with an attractive woman, for such a woman is declared in the scripture
to be the gateway to hell for the advancing devotee.
40. The woman, created by the Lord, is the representation of maya, and one who associates with such
maya by accepting services must certainly know that this is the way of death, just like a blind well
covered with grass.
41. A living entity who, as a result of attachment to a woman in his previous life, has been endowed with
the form of a woman, foolishly looks upon maya in the form of a man, her husband, as the bestower of
wealth, progeny, house and other material assets.
42. A woman, therefore, should consider her husband, her house and her children to be the
arrangement of the external energy of the Lord for her death, just as the sweet singing of the hunter is
death for the deer.
43. Due to his particular type of body, the materialistic living entity wanders from one planet to another,
following fruitive activities. In this way, he involves himself in fruitive activities and enjoys the result
incessantly.
44. In this way the living entity gets a suitable body with a material mind and senses, according to his
fruitive activities. When the reaction of his particular activity comes to an end, that end is called death,
and when a particular type of reaction begins, that beginning is called birth.
45-46. When the eyes lose their power to see color or form due to morbid affliction of the optic nerve,
the sense of sight becomes deadened. The living entity, who is the seer of both the eyes and the sight,
loses his power of vision. In the same way, when the physical body, the place where perception of
objects occurs, is rendered incapable of perceiving, that is known as death. When one begins to view
the physical body as one's very self, that is called birth.
47. Therefore, one should not view death with horror, nor have recourse to defining the body as soul,
nor give way to exaggeration in enjoying the bodily necessities of life. Realizing the true nature of the
living entity, one should move about in the world free from attachment and steadfast in purpose.
48. Endowed with right vision and strengthened by devotional service and a pessimistic attitude towards
material identity, one should relegate his body to this illusory world through his reason. Thus one can be
unconcerned with this material world.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 129
Chapter Thirty-two Entanglement in Fruitive Activities
1. The Personality of Godhead said: The person who lives in the center of household life derives
material benefits by performing religious rituals, and thereby he fulfills his desire for economic
development and sense gratification. Again and again he acts the same way.
2. Such persons are ever bereft of devotional service due to being too attached to sense gratification,
and therefore, although they perform various kinds of sacrifices and take great vows to satisfy the
demigods and forefathers, they are not interested in Krsna consciousness, devotional service.
3. Such materialistic persons, attracted by sense gratification and devoted to the forefathers and
demigods, can be elevated to the moon, where they drink an extract of the soma plant. They again
return to this planet.
4. All the planets of the materialistic persons, including all the heavenly planets, such as the moon, are
vanquished when the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, goes to His bed of serpents, which is
known as Ananta Sesa.
5. Those who are intelligent and are of purified consciousness are completely satisfied in Krsna
consciousness. Freed from the modes of material nature, they do not act for sense gratification; rather,
since they are situated in their own occupational duties, they act as one is expected to act.
6. By executing one's occupational duties, acting with detachment and without a sense of proprietorship
or false egoism, one is posted in one's constitutional position by dint of complete purification of
consciousness, and by thus executing so-called material duties he can easily enter into the kingdom of
God.
7. Through the path of illumination, such liberated persons approach the complete Personality of
Godhead, who is the proprietor of the material and spiritual worlds and is the supreme cause of their
manifestation and dissolution.
8. Worshipers of the Hiranyagarbha expansion of the Personality of Godhead remain within this
material world until the end of two parardhas, when Lord Brahma also dies.
9. After experiencing the inhabitable time of the three modes of material nature, known as two
parardhas, Lord Brahma closes the material universe, which is covered by layers of earth, water, air,
fire, ether, mind, ego, etc., and goes back to Godhead.
10. The yogis who become detached from the material world by practice of breathing exercises and
control of the mind reach the planet of Brahma, which is far, far away. After giving up their bodies, they
enter into the body of Lord Brahma, and therefore when Brahma is liberated and goes to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who is the Supreme Brahman, such yogis can also enter into the kingdom of
God.
11. Therefore, My dear mother, by devotional service take direct shelter of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who is seated in everyone's heart.
12-15. My dear mother, someone may worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead with a special self-
interest, but even demigods such as Lord Brahma, great sages such as Sanat-kumara and great munis
such as Marici have to come back to the material world again at the time of creation. When the
interaction of the three modes of material nature begins, Brahma, who is the creator of this cosmic
manifestation and who is full of Vedic knowledge, and the great sages, who are the authors of the
spiritual path and the yoga system, come back under the influence of the time factor. They are liberated
by their nonfruitive activities and they attain the first incarnation of the purusa, but at the time of creation
they come back in exactly the same forms and positions as they had previously.
16. Persons who are too addicted to this material world execute their prescribed duties very nicely and
with great faith. They daily perform all such prescribed duties with attachment to the fruitive result.
17. Such persons, impelled by the mode of passion, are full of anxieties and always aspire for sense
gratification due to uncontrolled senses. They worship the forefathers and are busy day and night
improving the economic condition of their family, social or national life.
18. Such persons are called trai-vargika because they are interested in the three elevating processes.
They are averse to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who can give relief to the conditioned soul.
They are not interested in the Supreme Personality's pastimes, which are worth hearing because of His
transcendental prowess.
19. Such persons are condemned by the supreme order of the Lord. Because they are averse to the
nectar of the activities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, they are compared to stool-eating hogs.
They give up hearing the transcendental activities of the Lord and indulge in hearing of the abominable
activities of materialistic persons.
20. Such materialistic persons are allowed to go to the planet called Pitrloka by the southern course of
the sun, but they again come back to this planet and take birth in their own families, beginning again the
same fruitive activities from birth to the end of life.
130 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
21. When the results of their pious activities are exhausted, they fall down by higher arrangement and
again come back to this planet, just as any person raised to a high position sometimes all of a sudden
falls.
22. My dear mother, I therefore advise that you take shelter of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, for
His lotus feet are worth worshiping. Accept this with all devotion and love, for thus you can be situated
in transcendental devotional service.
23. Engagement in Krsna consciousness and application of devotional service unto Krsna make it
possible to advance in knowledge and detachment, as well as in self-realization.
24. The exalted devotee's mind becomes equipoised in sensory activities, and he is transcendental to
that which is agreeable and not agreeable.
25. Because of his transcendental intelligence, the pure devotee is equipoised in his vision and sees
himself to be uncontaminated by matter. He does not see anything as superior or inferior, and he feels
himself elevated to the transcendental platform of being equal in qualities with the Supreme Person.
26. The Supreme Personality of Godhead alone is complete transcendental knowledge, but according
to the different processes of understanding He appears differently, either as impersonal Brahman, as
Paramatma, as the Supreme Personality of Godhead or as the purusa-avatara.
27. The greatest common understanding for all yogis is complete detachment from matter, which can
be achieved by different kinds of yoga.
28. Those who are averse to the Transcendence realize the Supreme Absolute Truth differently through
speculative sense perception, and therefore, because of mistaken speculation, everything appears to
them to be relative.
29. From the total energy, the mahat-tattva, I have manifested the false ego, the three modes of
material nature, the five material elements, the individual consciousness, the eleven senses and the
material body. Similarly, the entire universe has come from the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
30. This perfect knowledge can be achieved by a person who is already engaged in devotional service
with faith, steadiness and full detachment, and who is always absorbed in thought of the Supreme. He
is aloof from material association.
31. My dear respectful mother, I have already described the path of understanding the Absolute Truth,
by which one can come to understand the real truth of matter and spirit and their relationship.
32. Philosophical research culminates in understanding the Supreme Personality of Godhead. After
achieving this understanding, when one becomes free from the material modes of nature, he attains the
stage of devotional service. Either by devotional service directly or by philosophical research, one has
to find the same destination, which is the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
33. A single object is appreciated differently by different senses due to its having different qualities.
Similarly, the Supreme Personality of Godhead is one, but according to different scriptural injunctions
He appears to be different.
34-36. By performing fruitive activities and sacrifices, by distributing charity, by performing austerities,
by studying various literatures, by conducting philosophical research, by controlling the mind, by
subduing the senses, by accepting the renounced order of life and by performing the prescribed duties
of one's social order; by performing the different divisions of yoga practice, by performing devotional
service and by exhibiting the process of devotional service containing the symptoms of both attachment
and detachment; by understanding the science of self-realization and by developing a strong sense of
detachment, one who is expert in understanding the different processes of self-realization realizes the
Supreme Personality of Godhead as He is represented in the material world as well as in
transcendence.
37. My dear mother, I have explained to you the process of devotional service and its identity in four
different social divisions. I have explained to you as well how eternal time is chasing the living entities,
although it is imperceptible to them.
38. There are varieties of material existence for the living entity according to the work he performs in
ignorance or forgetfulness of his real identity. My dear mother, if anyone enters into that forgetfulness,
he is unable to understand where his movements will end.
39. Lord Kapila continued: This instruction is not meant for the envious, for the agnostics or for persons
who are unclean in their behavior. Nor is it for hypocrites or for persons who are proud of material
possessions.
40. It is not to be instructed to persons who are too greedy and too attached to family life, nor to
persons who are nondevotees and who are envious of the devotees and of the Personality of Godhead.
41. Instruction should be given to the faithful devotee who is respectful to the spiritual master,
nonenvious, friendly to all kinds of living entities and eager to render service with faith and sincerity.
42. This instruction should be imparted by the spiritual master to persons who have taken the Supreme
Personality of Godhead to be more dear than anything, who are not envious of anyone, who are
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 131
perfectly cleansed and who have developed detachment for that which is outside the purview of Krsna
consciousness.
43. Anyone who once meditates upon Me with faith and affection, who hears and chants about Me,
surely goes back home, back to Godhead.
Chapter Thirty-three Activities of Kapila
1. Sri Maitreya said: Thus Devahuti, the mother of Lord Kapila and wife of Kardama Muni, became freed
from all ignorance concerning devotional service and transcendental knowledge. She offered her
obeisances unto the Lord, the author of the basic principles of the Sankhya system of philosophy, which
is the background of liberation, and she satisfied Him with the following verses of prayer.
2. Devahuti said: Brahma is said to be unborn because he takes birth from the lotus flower which grows
from Your abdomen while You lie in the ocean at the bottom of the universe. But even Brahma simply
meditated upon You, whose body is the source of unlimited universes.
3. My dear Lord, although personally You have nothing to do, You have distributed Your energies in the
interactions of the material modes of nature, and for that reason the creation, maintenance and
dissolution of the cosmic manifestation take place. My dear Lord, You are self-determined and are the
Supreme Personality of Godhead for all living entities. For them You created this material manifestation,
and although You are one, Your diverse energies can act multifariously. This is inconceivable to us.
4. As the Supreme Personality of Godhead, You have taken birth from my abdomen. O my Lord, how is
that possible for the supreme one, who has in His belly all the cosmic manifestation? The answer is that
it is possible, for at the end of the millennium You lie down on a leaf of a banyan tree, and just like a
small baby, You lick the toe of Your lotus foot.
5. My dear Lord, You have assumed this body in order to diminish the sinful activities of the fallen and
to enrich their knowledge in devotion and liberation. Since these sinful people are dependent on Your
direction, by Your own will You assume incarnations as a boar and as other forms. Similarly, You have
appeared in order to distribute transcendental knowledge to Your dependents.
6. To say nothing of the spiritual advancement of persons who see the Supreme Person face to face,
even a person born in a family of dog-eaters immediately becomes eligible to perform Vedic sacrifices if
he once utters the holy name of the Supreme Personality of Godhead or chants about Him, hears about
His pastimes, offers Him obeisances or even remembers Him.
7. Oh, how glorious are they whose tongues are chanting Your holy name! Even if born in the families
of dog-eaters, such persons are worshipable. Persons who chant the holy name of Your Lordship must
have executed all kinds of austerities and fire sacrifices and achieved all the good manners of the
Aryans. To be chanting the holy name of Your Lordship, they must have bathed at holy places of
pilgrimage, studied the Vedas and fulfilled everything required.
8. I believe, my Lord, that You are Lord Visnu Himself under the name of Kapila, and You are the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Supreme Brahman! The saints and sages, being freed from all
the disturbances of the senses and mind, meditate upon You, for by Your mercy only can one become
free from the clutches of the three modes of material nature. At the time of dissolution, all the Vedas are
sustained in You only.
9. Thus the Supreme Personality of Godhead Kapila, satisfied by the words of His mother, towards
whom He was very affectionate, replied with gravity.
10. The Personality of Godhead said: My dear mother, the path of self-realization which I have already
instructed to you is very easy. You can execute this system without difficulty, and by following it you
shall very soon be liberated, even within your present body.
11. My dear mother, those who are actually transcendentalists certainly follow My instructions, as I have
given them to you. You may rest assured that if you traverse this path of self-realization perfectly, surely
you shall be freed from fearful material contamination and shall ultimately reach Me. Mother, persons
who are not conversant with this method of devotional service certainly cannot get out of the cycle of
birth and death 12. Sri Maitreya said: The Supreme Personality of Godhead Kapila, after instructing
His beloved mother, took permission from her and left His home, His mission having been fulfilled.
13. As instructed by her son, Devahuti also began to practice bhakti-yoga in that very asrama. She
practiced samadhi in the house of Kardama Muni, which was so beautifully decorated with flowers that it
was considered the flower crown of the River Sarasvati.
14. She began to bathe three times daily, and thus her curling black hair gradually became gray. Due to
austerity, her body gradually became thin, and she wore old garments.
15. The home and household paraphernalia of Kardama, who was one of the Prajapatis, was
developed in such a way, by dint of his mystic powers of austerity and yoga, that his opulence was
sometimes envied by those who travel in outer space in airplanes.
16. The opulence of the household of Kardama Muni is described herein. The bedsheets and
mattresses were all as white as the foam of milk, the chairs and benches were made of ivory and were
132 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
covered by cloths of lace with golden filigree, and the couches were made of gold and had very soft
pillows.
17. The walls of the house were made of first-class marble, decorated with valuable jewels. There was
no need of light, for the household was illuminated by the rays of these jewels. The female members of
the household were all amply decorated with jewelry.
18. The compound of the main household was surrounded by beautiful gardens, with sweet, fragrant
flowers and many trees which produced fresh fruit and were tall and beautiful. The attraction of such
gardens was that singing birds would sit on the trees, and their chanting voices, as well as the humming
sound of the bees, made the whole atmosphere as pleasing as possible.
19. When Devahuti would enter that lovely garden to take her bath in the pond filled with lotus flowers,
the associates of the denizens of heaven, the Gandharvas, would sing about Kardama's glorious
household life. Her great husband, Kardama, gave her all protection at all times.
20. Although her position was unique from all points of view, saintly Devahuti, in spite of all her
possessions, which were envied even by the ladies of the heavenly planets, gave up all such comforts.
She was only sorry that her great son was separated from her.
21. Devahuti's husband had already left home and accepted the renounced order of life, and then her
only son, Kapila, left home. Although she knew all the truths of life and death, and although her heart
was cleansed of all dirt, she was very aggrieved at the loss of her son, just as a cow is affected when
her calf dies.
22. O Vidura, thus always meditating upon her son, the Supreme Personality of Godhead Kapiladeva,
she very soon became unattached to her nicely decorated home.
23. Thereafter, having heard with great eagerness and in all detail from her son, Kapiladeva, the
eternally smiling Personality of Godhead, Devahuti began to meditate constantly upon the Visnu form of
the Supreme Lord.
24-25. She did so with serious engagement in devotional service. Because she was strong in
renunciation, she accepted only the necessities of the body. She became situated in knowledge due to
realization of the Absolute Truth, her heart became purified, she became fully absorbed in meditation
upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and all misgivings due to the modes of material nature
disappeared.
26. Her mind became completely engaged in the Supreme Lord, and she automatically realized the
knowledge of the impersonal Brahman. As a Brahman-realized soul, she was freed from the
designations of the materialistic concept of life. Thus all material pangs disappeared, and she attained
transcendental bliss.
27. Situated in eternal trance and freed from illusion impelled by the modes of material nature, she
forgot her material body, just as one forgets his different bodies in a dream.
28. Her body was being taken care of by the spiritual damsels created by her husband, Kardama, and
since she had no mental anxiety at that time, her body did not become thin. She appeared just like a fire
surrounded by smoke.
29. Because she was always absorbed in the thought of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, she was
not aware that her hair was sometimes loosened or her garments were disarrayed.
30. My dear Vidura, by following the principles instructed by Kapila, Devahuti soon became liberated
from material bondage, and she achieved the Supreme Personality of Godhead, as Supersoul, without
difficulty.
31. The palace where Devahuti achieved her perfection, my dear Vidura, is understood to be a most
sacred spot. It is known all over the three worlds as Siddhapada.
32. Dear Vidura, the material elements of her body have melted into water and are now a flowing river,
which is the most sacred of all rivers. Anyone who bathes in that river also attains perfection, and
therefore all persons who desire perfection go bathe there.
33. My dear Vidura, the great sage Kapila, the Personality of Godhead, left His father's hermitage with
the permission of His mother and went towards the northeast.
34. While He was passing in the northern direction, all the celestial denizens known as Caranas and
Gandharvas, as well as the munis and the damsels of the heavenly planets, prayed and offered Him all
respects. The ocean offered Him oblations and a place of residence.
35. Even now Kapila Muni is staying there in trance for the deliverance of the conditioned souls in the
three worlds, and all the acaryas, or great teachers, of the system of Sankhya philosophy are
worshiping Him.
36. My dear son, since you have inquired from me, I have answered. O sinless one, the descriptions of
Kapiladeva and His mother and their activities are the purest of all pure discourses.
37. The description of the dealings of Kapiladeva and His mother is very confidential, and anyone who
hears or reads this narration becomes a devotee of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 133
carried by Garuda, and he thereafter enters into the abode of the Supreme Lord to engage in the
transcendental loving service of the Lord.
CANTO FOUR
Chapter One Genealogical Table of the Daughters of Manu
1. Sri Maitreya said: Svayambhuva Manu begot three daughters in his wife Satarupa, and their names
were Akuti, Devahuti and Prasuti.
2. Akuti had two brothers, but in spite of her brothers, King Svayambhuva Manu handed her over to
Prajapati Ruci on the condition that the son born of her be returned to Manu as his son. This he did in
consultation with his wife, Satarupa.
3. Ruci, who was very powerful in his brahminical qualifications and was appointed one of the
progenitors of the living entities, begot one son and one daughter by his wife, Akuti.
4. Of the two children born of Akuti, the male child was directly an incarnation of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, and His name was Yajna, which is another name of Lord Visnu. The female
child was a partial incarnation of Laksmi, the goddess of fortune, the eternal consort of Lord Visnu.
5. Svayambhuva Manu very gladly brought home the beautiful boy named Yajna, and Ruci, his son-in-
law, kept with him the daughter, Daksina.
6. The Lord of the ritualistic performance of yajna later married Daksina, who was anxious to have the
Personality of Godhead as her husband, and in this wife the Lord was also very much pleased to beget
twelve children.
7. The twelve boys born of Yajna and Daksina were named Tosa, Pratosa, Santosa, Bhadra, Santi,
Idaspati, Idhma, Kavi, Vibhu, Svahna, Sudeva and Rocana.
8. During the time of Svayambhuva Manu, these sons all became the demigods collectively named the
Tusitas. Marici became the head of the seven rsis, and Yajna became the king of the demigods, Indra.
9. Svayambhuva Manu's two sons, Priyavrata and Uttanapada, became very powerful kings, and their
sons and grandsons spread all over the three worlds during that period.
10. My dear son, Svayambhuva Manu handed over his very dear daughter Devahuti to Kardama Muni. I
have already spoken to you about them, and you have heard about them almost in full.
11. Svayambhuva Manu handed over his daughter Prasuti to the son of Brahma named Daksa, who
was also one of the progenitors of the living entities. The descendants of Daksa are spread throughout
the three worlds.
12. You have already been informed about the nine daughters of Kardama Muni, who were handed
over to nine different sages. I shall now describe the descendants of those nine daughters. Please hear
from me.
13. Kardama Muni's daughter Kala, who was married to Marici, gave birth to two children, whose names
were Kasyapa and Purnima. Their descendants are spread all over the world.
14. My dear Vidura, of the two sons, Kasyapa and Purnima, Purnima begot three children, namely
Viraja, Visvaga and Devakulya. Of these three, Devakulya was the water which washed the lotus feet of
the Personality of Godhead and which later on transformed into the Ganges of the heavenly planets.
15. Anasuya, the wife of Atri Muni, gave birth to three very famous sons--Soma, Dattatreya and
Durvasa--who were partial representations of Lord Visnu, Lord Siva and Lord Brahma. Soma was a
partial representation of Lord Brahma, Dattatreya was a partial representation of Lord Visnu, and
Durvasa was a partial representation of Lord Siva.
16. After hearing this, Vidura inquired from Maitreya: My dear master, how is it that the three deities
Brahma, Visnu and Siva, who are the creator, maintainer and destroyer of the whole creation, became
the offspring of the wife of Atri Muni?
17. Maitreya said: When Lord Brahma ordered Atri Muni to create generations after marrying Anasuya,
Atri Muni and his wife went to perform severe austerities in the valley of the mountain known as Rksa.
18. In that mountain valley flows a river named Nirvindhya. On the bank of the river are many asoka
trees and other plants full of palasa flowers, and there is always the sweet sound of water flowing from
a waterfall. The husband and wife reached that beautiful place.
19. There the great sage concentrated his mind by the yogic breathing exercises, and thereby
controlling all attachment, he remained standing on one leg only, eating nothing but air, and stood there
on one leg for one hundred years.
20. He was thinking: May the Lord of the universe, of whom I have taken shelter, kindly he pleased to
offer me a son exactly like Him.
21. While Atri Muni was engaged in these severe austerities, a blazing fire came out of his head by
virtue of his breathing exercise, and that fire was seen by the three principal deities of the three worlds.
22. At that time, the three deities approached the hermitage of Atri Muni, accompanied by the denizens
of the heavenly planets, such as the celestial beauties, the Gandharvas, the Siddhas, the Vidyadharas
134 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
and the Nagas. Thus they entered the asrama of the great sage, who had become famous by his
austerities.
23. The sage was standing on one leg, but as soon as he saw that the three deities had appeared
before him, he was so pleased to see them all together that despite great difficulty he approached them
on one leg.
24. Thereafter he began to offer prayers to the three deities, who were seated on different carriers--a
bull, a swan and Garuda--and who held in their hands a drum, kusa grass and a discus. The sage
offered them his respects by falling down like a stick.
25. Atri Muni was greatly pleased to see that the three devas were gracious towards him. His eyes were
dazzled by the effulgence of their bodies, and therefore he closed his eyes for the time being.
26-27. But since his heart was already attracted by the deities, somehow or other he gathered his
senses, and with folded hands and sweet words he began to offer prayers to the predominating deities
of the universe. The great sage Atri said: O Lord Brahma, Lord Visnu and Lord Siva, you have divided
yourself into three bodies by accepting the three modes of material nature, as you do in every
millennium for the creation, maintenance and dissolution of the cosmic manifestation. I offer my
respectful obeisances unto all of you and beg to inquire whom of you three I have called by my prayer.
28. I called for the Supreme Personality of Godhead, desiring a son like Him, and I thought of Him only.
But although He is far beyond the mental speculation of man, all three of you have come here. Kindly let
me know how you have come, for I am greatly bewildered about this.
29. The great sage Maitreya continued: Upon hearing Atri Muni speak in that way, the three great
deities smiled, and they replied in the following sweet words.
30. The three deities told Atri Muni: Dear brahmana, you are perfect in your determination, and
therefore as you have decided, so it will happen; it will not happen otherwise. We are all the same
person upon whom you were meditating, and therefore we have all come to you.
31. You will have sons who will represent a partial manifestation of our potency, and because we desire
all good fortune for you, those sons will glorify your reputation throughout the world.
32. Thus, while the couple looked on, the three deities Brahma, Visnu and Mahesvara disappeared
from that place after bestowing upon Atri Muni the benediction.
33. Thereafter, from the partial representation of Brahma, the moon-god was born of them; from the
partial representation of Visnu, the great mystic Dattatreya was born; and from the partial representation
of Sankara [Lord Siva], Durvasa was born. Now you may hear from me of the many sons of Angira.
34. Angira's wife, Sraddha, gave birth to four daughters, named Sinivali, Kuhu, Raka and Anumati.
35. Besides these four daughters, she also had another two sons. One of them was known as Utathya,
and the other was the learned scholar Brhaspati.
36. Pulastya begot in his wife, Havirbhu, one son of the name Agastya, who in his next birth became
Dahragni. Besides him, Pulastya begot another very great and saintly son, whose name was Visrava.
37. Visrava had two wives. The first wife was Idavida, from whom Kuvera, the master of all Yaksas, was
born, and the next wife was named Kesini, from whom three sons were born--Ravana, Kumbhakarna
and Vihhisana.
38. Gati, the wife of the sage Pulaha, gave birth to three sons, named Karmarestha, Variyan and
Sahisnu, and all of them were great sages.
39. Kratu's wife, Kriya, gave birth to sixty thousand great sages, named the Valakhilyas. All these sages
were greatly advanced in spiritual knowledge, and their bodies were illuminated by such knowledge.
40. The great sage Vasistha begot in his wife, Urja, sometimes called Arundhati, seven spotlessly great
sages, headed by the sage named Citraketu.
41. The names of these seven sages are as follows: Citraketu, Suroci, Viraja, Mitra, Ulbana,
Vasubhrdyana and Dyuman. Some other very competent sons were born from Vasistha's other wife.
42. Citti, wife of the sage Atharva, gave birth to a son named Asvasira by accepting a great vow called
Dadhyanca. Now you may hear from me about the descendants of the sage Bhrgu.
43. The sage Bhrgu was highly fortunate. In his wife, known as Khyati, he begot two sons, named
Dhata and Vidhata, and one daughter, named Sri, who was very much devoted to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
44. The sage Meru had two daughters, named Ayati and Niyati, whom he gave in charity to Dhata and
Vidhata. Ayati and Niyati gave birth to two sons, Mrkanda and Prana.
45. From Mrkanda, Markandeya Muni was born, and from Prana the sage Vedaira, whose son was
Usana [Sukracarya], also known as Kavi. Thus Kavi also belonged to the descendants of the Bhrgu
dynasty.
46-47. My dear Vidura, the population of the universe was thus increased by the descendants of these
sages and the daughters of Kardama. Anyone who hears the descriptions of this dynasty with faith will
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 135
be relieved from all sinful reactions. Another of Manu's daughters, known as Prasuti, married the son of
Brahma named Daksa.
48. Daksa begot sixteen very beautiful daughters with lotuslike eyes in his wife Prasuti. Of these sixteen
daughters, thirteen were given in marriage to Dharma, and one daughter was given to Agni.
49-52. One of the remaining two daughters was given in charity to the Pitrloka, where she resides very
amicably, and the other was given to Lord Siva, who is the deliverer of sinful persons from material
entanglement. The names of the thirteen daughters of Daksa who were given to Dharma are Sraddha,
Maitri, Daya, Santi, Tusti, Pusti, Kriya, Unnati, Buddhi, Medha, Titiksa, Hri and Murti. These thirteen
daughters produced the following sons: Sraddha gave birth to Subha, Maitri produced Prasada, Daya
gave birth to Abhaya, Santi gave birth to Sukha, Tusti gave birth to Muda, Pusti gave birth to Smaya,
Kriya gave birth to Yoga, Unnati gave birth to Barpa, Buddhi gave birth to Artha, Medha gave birth to
Smrti, Titiksa gave birth to Ksema, and Hri gave birth to Praraya. Murti, a reservoir of all respectable
qualities, gave birth to Sri Nara-Narayana, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
53. On the occasion of the appearance of Nara-Narayana, the entire world was full of joy. Everyone's
mind became tranquil, and thus in all directions the air, the rivers and the mountains became pleasant.
54-55. In the heavenly planets, hands began to play, and they showered flowers from the sky. The
pacified sages chanted Vedic prayers, the denizens of heaven known as the Gandharvas and Kinnaras
sang, the beautiful damsels of the heavenly planets danced, and in this way, at the time of the
appearance of Nara-Narayana, all signs of good fortune were visible. Just at that time, great demigods
like Brahma also offered their respectful prayers.
56. The demigods said: Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto the transcendental Personality of
Godhead, who created as His external energy this cosmic manifestation, which is situated in Him as the
air and clouds are situated in space, and who has now appeared in the form of Nara-Narayana Rsi in
the house of Dharma.
57. Let that Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is understood by truly authorized Vedic literature
and who has created peace and prosperity to destroy all calamities of the created world, be kind
enough to bestow His glance upon the demigods. His merciful glance can supersede the beauty of the
spotless lotus flower which is the home of the goddess of fortune.
58. [Maitreya said:] O Vidura, thus the demigods worshiped with prayers the Supreme Personality of
Godhead appearing as the sage Nara-Narayana. The Lord glanced upon them with mercy and then
departed for Gandhamadana Hill.
59. That Nara-Narayana Rsi, who is a partial expansion of Krsna, has now appeared in the dynasties of
Yadu and Kuru, in the forms of Krsna and Arjuna respectively, to mitigate the burden of the world.
60. The predominating deity of fire begot in his wife, Svaha, three children, named Pavaka, Pavamana
and Suci, who exist by eating the oblations offered to the fire of sacrifice.
61. From those three sons another forty-five descendants were generated, who are also fire-gods. The
total number of fire-gods is therefore forty-nine, including the fathers and the grandfather.
62. These forty-nine fire-gods are the beneficiaries of the oblations offered in the Vedic sacrificial fire by
impersonalist brahmanas.
63. The Agnisvattas, the Barhisadas, the Saumyas and the Ajyapas are the Pitas. They are either
sagnika or niragnika. The wife of all these Pitas is Svadha, who is the daughter of King Daksa.
64. Svadha, who was offered to the Pitas, begot two daughters named Vayuna and Dharini, both of
whom were impersonalists and were expert in transcendental and Vedic knowledge.
65. The sixteenth daughter, whose name was Sati, was the wife of Lord Siva. She could not produce a
child, although she always faithfully engaged in the service of her husband.
66. The reason is that Sati's father, Daksa, used to rebuke Lord Siva in spite of Siva's faultlessness.
Consequently, before attaining a mature age, Sati gave up her body by dint of yogic mystic power.
Chapter Two Daksa Curses Lord Siva
1. Vidura inquired: Why was Daksa, who was so affectionate towards his daughter, envious of Lord
Siva, who is the best among the gentle? Why did he neglect his daughter Sati?
2. Lord Siva, the spiritual master of the entire world, is free from enmity, is a peaceful personality, and is
always satisfied in himself. He is the greatest among the demigods. How is it possible that Daksa could
be inimical towards such an auspicious personality?
3. My dear Maitreya, to part with one's life is very difficult. Would you kindly explain to me how such a
son-in-law and father-in-law could quarrel so bitterly that the great goddess Sati could give up her life?
4. The sage Maitreya said: In a former time, the leaders of the universal creation performed a great
sacrifice in which all the great sages, philosophers, demigods and fire-gods assembled with their
followers.
136 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
5. When Daksa, the leader of the Prajapatis, entered that assembly, his personal bodily luster as bright
as the effulgence of the sun, the entire assembly was illuminated, and all the assembled personalities
became insignificant in his presence.
6. Influenced by his personal bodily luster, all the fire-gods and other participants in that great assembly,
with the exceptions of Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, gave up their own sitting places and stood in respect
for Daksa.
7. Daksa was adequately welcomed by the president of the great assembly, Lord Brahma. After offering
Lord Brahma respect, Daksa, by the order of Brahma, properly took his seat.
8. Before taking his seat, however, Daksa was very much offended to see Lord Siva sitting and not
showing him any respect. At that time, Daksa became greatly angry, and, his eyes glowing, he began to
speak very strongly against Lord Siva.
9. All sages, brahmanas and fire-gods present, please hear me with attention, for I speak about the
manners of gentle persons. I do not speak out of ignorance or envy.
10. Siva has spoiled the name and fame of the governors of the universe and has polluted the path of
gentle manners. Because he is shameless, he does not know how to act.
11. He has already accepted himself as my subordinate by marrying my daughter in the presence of fire
and brahmanas. He has married my daughter, who is equal to Gayatri, and has pretended to be just like
an honest person.
12. He has eyes like a monkey's, yet he has married my daughter, whose eyes are just like those of a
deer cub. Nevertheless he did not stand up to receive me, nor did he think it fit to welcome me with
sweet words.
13. I had no desire to give my daughter to this person, who has broken all rules of civility. Because of
not observing the required rules and regulations, he is impure, but I was obliged to hand over my
daughter to him just as one teaches the messages of the Vedas to a sudra.
14-15. He lives in filthy places like crematoriums, and his companions are the ghosts and demons.
Naked like a madman, sometimes laughing and sometimes crying, he smears crematorium ashes all
over his body. He does not bathe regularly, and he ornaments his body with a garland of skulls and
bones. Therefore only in name is he Siva, or auspicious; actually, he is the most mad and inauspicious
creature. Thus he is very dear to crazy beings in the gross mode of ignorance, and he is their leader.
16. On the request of Lord Brahma I handed over my chaste daughter to him, although he is devoid of
all cleanliness and his heart is filled with nasty things.
17. The sage Maitreya continued: Thus Daksa, seeing Lord Siva sitting as if against him, washed his
hands and mouth and cursed him in the following words.
18. The demigods are eligible to share in the oblations of sacrifice, but Lord Siva, who is the lowest of
all the demigods, should not have a share.
19. Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, in spite of the requests of all the members of the sacrificial
assembly, Daksa, in great anger, cursed Lord Siva and then left the assembly and went back to his
home.
20. Upon understanding that Lord Siva had been cursed, Nandisvara, one of Lord Siva's principal
associates, became greatly angry. His eyes became red, and he prepared to curse Daksa and all the
brahmanas present there who had tolerated Daksa's cursing Siva in harsh words.
21. Anyone who has accepted Daksa as the most important personality and neglected Lord Siva
because of envy is less intelligent and, because of visualizing in duality, will be bereft of transcendental
knowledge.
22. Pretentiously religious householder life, in which one is attracted to material happiness and thus
also attracted to the superficial explanation of the Vedas, robs one of all intelligence and attaches one
to fruitive activities as all in all.
23. Daksa has accepted the body as all in all. Therefore, since he has forgotten the visnu-pada, or
visnu-gati, and is attached to sex life only, within a short time he will have the face of a goat.
24. Those who have become as dull as matter by cultivating materialistic education and intelligence are
nesciently involved in fruitive activities. Such men have purposely insulted Lord Siva. May they continue
in the cycle of repeated birth and death.
25. May those who are envious of Lord Siva, being attracted by the flowery language of the enchanting
Vedic promises, and who have thus become dull, always remain attached to fruitive activities.
26. These brahmanas take to education, austerity and vows only for the purpose of maintaining the
body. They shall be devoid of discrimination between what to eat and what not to eat. They will acquire
money, begging from door to door, simply for the satisfaction of the body.
27. When all the hereditary brahmanas were thus cursed by Nandisvara, the sage Bhrgu, as a reaction,
condemned the followers of Lord Siva with this very strong brahminical curse.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 137
28. One who takes a vow to satisfy Lord Siva or who follows such principles will certainly become an
atheist and be diverted from transcendental scriptural injunctions.
29. Those who vow to worship Lord Siva are so foolish that they imitate him by keeping long hair on
their heads. When initiated into worship of Lord Siva, they prefer to live on wine, flesh and other such
things.
30. Bhrgu Muni continued: Since you blaspheme the Vedas and the brahmanas, who are followers of
the Vedic principles, it is understood that you have already taken shelter of the doctrine of atheism.
31. The Vedas give the eternal regulative principles for auspicious advancement in human civilization
which have been rigidly followed in the past. The strong evidence of this principle is the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who is called Janardana, the well-wisher of all living entities.
32. By blaspheming the principles of the Vedas, which are the pure and supreme path of the saintly
persons, certainly you followers of Bhutapati, Lord Siva, will descend to the standard of atheism without
a doubt.
33. The sage Maitreya said: When such cursing and countercursing was going on between Lord Siva's
followers and the parties of Daksa and Bhrgu, Lord Siva became very morose. Not saying anything, he
left the arena of the sacrifice, followed by his disciples.
34. The sage Maitreya continued: O Vidura, all the progenitors of the universal population thus
executed a sacrifice for thousands of years, for sacrifice is the best way to worship the Supreme Lord,
Hari, the Personality of Godhead.
35. My dear Vidura, carrier of bows and arrows, all the demigods who were performing the sacrifice
took their bath at the confluence of the Ganges and the Yamuna after completing the yajna
performance. Such a bath is called avabhrtha-snana. After thus becoming purified in heart, they
departed for their respective abodes.
Chapter Three Talks Between Lord Siva and Sati
1. Maitreya continued: In this manner the tension between the father-in-law and son-in-law, Daksa and
Lord Siva, continued for a considerably long period.
2. When Lord Brahma appointed Daksa the chief of all the Prajapatis, the progenitors of population,
Daksa became very much puffed up.
3. Daksa began a sacrifice named vajapeya, and he became excessively confident of his support by
Lord Brahma, He then performed another great sacrifice, named brhaspati-sava.
4. While the sacrifice was being performed, many brahmarsis, great sages, ancestral demigods and
other demigods, their wives all very nicely decorated with ornaments, attended from different parts of
the universe.
5-7. The chaste lady Sati, the daughter of Daksa, heard the heavenly denizens flying in the sky
conversing about the great sacrifice being performed by her father. When she saw that from all
directions the beautiful wives of the heavenly denizens, their eyes very beautifully glittering, were near
her residence and were going to the sacrifice dressed in fine clothing and ornamented with earrings and
necklaces with lockets, she approached her husband, the master of the bhutas, in great anxiety, and
spoke as follows.
8. Sati said: My dear Lord Siva, your father-in-law is now executing great sacrifices, and all the
demigods, having been invited by him, are going there. If you desire, we may also go.
9. I think that all my sisters must have gone to this great sacrificial ceremony with their husbands just to
see their relatives. I also desire to decorate myself with the ornaments given to me by my father and go
there with you to participate in that assemble.
10. My sisters, my mother's sisters and their husbands, and other affectionate relatives must be
assembled there, so if I go I shall be able to see them, and I shall be able to see the flapping flags and
the performance of the sacrifice by the great sages. For these reasons, my dear husband, I am very
much anxious to go.
11. This manifested cosmos is a wonderful creation of the interaction of the three material modes, or the
external energy of the Supreme Lord. This truth is fully known to you. Yet I am but a poor woman, and,
as you know, I am not conversant with the truth. Therefore I wish to see my birthplace once more.
12. O never-born, O blue-throated one, not only my relatives but also other women, dressed in nice
clothes and decorated with ornaments, are going there with their husbands and friends. Just see how
their flocks of white airplanes have made the entire sky very beautiful.
13. O best of the demigods, how can the body of a daughter remain undisturbed when she hears that
some festive event is taking place in her father's house? Even though you may be considering that I
have not been invited, there is no harm if one goes to the house of one's friend, husband, spiritual
master or father without invitation.
14. O immortal Siva, please be kind towards me and fulfill my desire. You have accepted me as half of
your body; therefore please show kindness towards me and accept my request.
138 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. The great sage Maitreya said: Lord Siva, the deliverer of the hill Kailasa, having thus been
addressed by his dear wife, replied smilingly, although at the same time he remembered the malicious,
heart-piercing speeches delivered by Daksa before the guardians of the universal affairs.
16. The great lord replied: My dear beautiful wife, you have said that one may go to a friend's house
without being invited, and this is true, provided such a friend does not find fault with the guest because
of bodily identification and thereby become angry towards him.
17. Although the six qualities education, austerity, wealth, beauty, youth and heritage are for the highly
elevated, one who is proud of possessing them becomes blind, and thus he loses his good sense and
cannot appreciate the glories of great personalities.
18. One should not go to anyone's house, even on the consideration of his being a relative or a friend,
when the man is disturbed in his mind and looks upon the guest with raised eyebrows and angry eyes.
19. Lord Siva continued: If one is hurt by the arrows of an enemy, one is not as aggrieved as when cut
by the unkind words of a relative, for such grief continues to rend one's heart day and night.
20. My dear white-complexioned wife, it is clear that of the many daughters of Daksa you are the pet,
yet you will not be honored at his house because of your being my wife. Rather, you will be sorry that
you are connected with me.
21. One who is conducted by false ego and thus always distressed, both mentally and sensually,
cannot tolerate the opulence of self-realized persons. Being unable to rise to the standard of self-
realization, he envies such persons as much as demons envy the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
22. My dear young wife, certainly friends and relatives offer mutual greetings by standing up, welcoming
one another and offering obeisances. But those who are elevated to the transcendental platform, being
intelligent, offer such respects to the Supersoul, who is sitting within the body, not to the person who
identifies with the body.
23. I am always engaged in offering obeisances to Lord Vasudeva in pure Krna consciousness. Krsna
consciousness is always pure consciousness, in which the Supreme Personality of Godhead, known as
Vasudeva, is revealed without any covering.
24. Therefore you should not see your father, although he is the giver of your body, because he and his
followers are envious of me. Because of his envy, O most worshipful one, he has insulted me with cruel
words although I am innocent.
25. If in spite of this instruction you decide to go, neglecting my words, the future will not be good for
you. You are most respectable, and when you are insulted by your relative, this insult will immediately
be equal to death.
Chapter Four Sati Quits Her Body
1. The sage Maitreya said: Lord Siva was silent after speaking to Sati, seeing her between decisions.
Sati was very much anxious to see her relatives at her father's house, but at the same time she was
afraid of Lord Siva's warning. Her mind unsettled, she moved in and out of the room as a swing moves
this way and that.
2. Sati felt very sorry at being forbidden to go see her relatives at her father's house, and due to
affection for them, tears fell from her eyes. Shaking and very much afflicted, she looked at her
uncommon husband, Lord Siva, as if she were going to blast him with her vision.
3. Thereafter Sati left her husband, Lord Siva, who had given her half his body due to affection.
Breathing very heavily because of anger and bereavement, she went to the house of her father. This
less intelligent act was due to her being a weak woman.
4. When they saw Sati leaving alone very rapidly, thousands of Lord Siva's disciples, headed by
Maniman and Mada, quickly followed her with his bull Nandi in front and accompanied by the Yaksas.
5. The disciples of Lord Siva arranged for Sati to be seated on the back of a bull and gave her the bird
which was her pet. They bore a lotus flower, a mirror and all such paraphernalia for her enjoyment and
covered her with a great canopy. Followed by a singing party with drums, conchshells and bugles, the
entire procession was as pompous as a royal parade.
6. She then reached her father's house, where the sacrifice was being performed, and entered the
arena where everyone was chanting the Vedic hymns. The great sages, brahmanas and demigods
were all assembled there, and there were many sacrificial animals, as well as pots made of clay, stone,
gold, grass and skin, which were all requisite for the sacrifice.
7. When Sati, with her followers, reached the arena, because all the people assembled were afraid of
Daksa, none of them received her well. No one welcomed her but her mother and sisters, who, with
tears in their eyes and with glad faces, welcomed her and talked with her very pleasingly.
8. Although she was received by her sisters and mother, she did not reply to their words of reception,
and although she was offered a seat and presents, she did not accept anything, for her father neither
talked with her nor welcomed her by asking about her welfare.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 139
9. Present in the arena of sacrifice, Sati saw that there were no oblations for her husband, Lord Siva.
Next she realized that not only had her father failed to invite Lord Siva, but when he saw Lord Siva's
exalted wife, Daksa did not receive her either. Thus she became greatly angry, so much so that she
looked at her father as if she were going to burn him with her eyes.
10. The followers of Lord Siva, the ghosts, were ready to injure or kill Daksa, but Sati stopped them by
her order. She was very angry and sorrowful, and in that mood she began to condemn the process of
sacrificial fruitive activities and persons who are very proud of such unnecessary and troublesome
sacrifices. She especially condemned her father, speaking against him in the presence of all.
11. The blessed goddess said: Lord Siva is the most beloved of all living entities. He has no rival. No
one is very dear to him, and no one is his enemy. No one but you could be envious of such a universal
being, who is free from all enmity.
12. Twice-born Daksa, a man like you can simply find fault in the qualities of others. Lord Siva,
however, not only finds no faults with others' qualities, but if someone has a little good quality, he
magnifies it greatly. Unfortunately, you have found fault with such a great soul.
13. It is not wonderful for persons who have accepted the transient material body as the self to engage
always in deriding great souls. Such envy on the part of materialistic persons is very good because that
is the way they fall down. They are diminished by the dust of the feet of great personalities.
14. Sati continued: My dear father, you are committing the greatest offense by envying Lord Siva,
whose very name, consisting of two syllables, si and va, purifies one of all sinful activities. His order is
never neglected. Lord Siva is always pure, and no one but you envies him.
15. You are envious of Lord Siva, who is the friend of all living entities within the three worlds. For the
common man he fulfills all desires, and because of their engagement in thinking of his lotus feet, he
also blesses higher personalities who are seeking after brahmananda [transcendental bliss].
16. Do you think that greater, more respectable personalities than you, such as Lord Brahma, do not
know this inauspicious person who goes under the name Lord Siva? He associates with the demons in
the crematorium, his locks of hair are scattered all over his body, he is garlanded with human skulls and
smeared with ashes from the crematorium, but in spite of all these inauspicious qualities, great
personalities like Brahma honor him by accepting the flowers offered to his lotus feet and placing them
with great respect on their heads.
17. Sati continued: If one hears an irresponsible person blaspheme the master and controller of religion,
one should block his ears and go away if unable to punish him. But if one is able to kill, then one should
by force cut out the blasphemer's tongue and kill the offender, and after that one should give up his own
life.
18. Therefore I shall no longer bear this unworthy body, which has been received from you, who have
blasphemed Lord Siva. If someone has taken food which is poisonous, the best treatment is to vomit.
19. It is better to execute one's own occupational duty than to criticize others'. Elevated
transcendentalists may sometimes forgo the rules and regulations of the Vedas, since they do not need
to follow them, just as the demigods travel in space whereas ordinary men travel on the surface of the
earth.
20. In the Vedas there are directions for two kinds of activities--activities for those who are attached to
material enjoyment and activities for those who are materially detached. In consideration of these two
kinds of activities, there are two kinds of people, who have different symptoms. If one wants to see two
kinds of activities in one person, that is contradictory. But both kinds of activities may be neglected by a
person who is transcendentally situated.
21. My dear father, the opulence we possess is impossible for either you or your flatterers to imagine,
for persons who engage in fruitive activities by performing great sacrifices are concerned with satisfying
their bodily necessities by eating foodstuff offered as a sacrifice. We can exhibit our opulences simply
by desiring to do so. This can be achieved only by great personalities who are renounced, self-realized
souls.
22. You are an offender at the lotus feet of Lord Siva, and unfortunately I have a body produced from
yours. I am very much ashamed of our bodily relationship, and I condemn myself because my body is
contaminated by a relationship with a person who is an offender at the lotus feet of the greatest
personality.
23. Because of our family relationship, when Lord Siva addresses me as Daksayani I at once become
morose, and my jolliness and my smile at once disappear. I feel very much sorry that my body, which is
just like a bag, has been produced by you. I shall therefore give it up.
24. Maitreya the sage told Vidura: O annihilator of enemies, while thus speaking to her father in the
arena of sacrifice, Sati sat down on the ground and faced north. Dressed in saffron garments, she
sanctified herself with water and closed her eyes to absorb herself in the process of mystic yoga.
140 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
25. First of all she sat in the required sitting posture, and then she carried the life air upwards and
placed it in the position of equilibrium near the navel. Then she raised her life air, mixed with
intelligence, to the heart and then gradually towards the pulmonary passage and from there to between
her eyebrows.
26. Thus, in order to give up her body, which had been so respectfully and affectionately seated on the
lap of Lord Siva, who is worshiped by great sages and saints, Sati, due to anger towards her father,
began to meditate on the fiery air within the body.
27. Sati concentrated all her meditation on the holy lotus feet of her husband, Lord Siva, who is the
supreme spiritual master of all the world. Thus she became completely cleansed of all taints of sin and
quit her body in a blazing fire by meditation on the fiery elements.
28. When Sati annihilated her body in anger, there was a tumultuous roar all over the universe. Why
had Sati, the wife of the most respectable demigod, Lord Siva, quit her body in such a manner?
29. It was astonishing that Daksa, who was Prajapati, the maintainer of all living entities, was so
disrespectful to his own daughter, Sati, who was not only chaste but was also a great soul, that she
gave up her body because of his neglect.
30. Daksa, who is so hardhearted that he is unworthy to be a brahmana, will gain extensive ill fame
because of his offenses to his daughter, because of not having prevented her death, and because of his
great envy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
31. While people were talking among themselves about the wonderful voluntary death of Sati, the
attendants who had come with her readied themselves to kill Daksa with their weapons.
32. They came forward forcibly, but Bhrgu Muni saw the danger and, offering oblations into the
southern side of the sacrificial fire, immediately uttered mantric hymns from the Yajur Veda by which the
destroyers of yajnic performances could be killed immediately.
33. When Bhrgu Muni offered oblations in the fire, immediately many thousands of demigods named
Rbhus became manifested. All of them were powerful, having achieved strength from Soma, the moon.
34. When the Rbhu demigods attacked the ghosts and Guhyakas with half-burned fuel from the yajna
fire, all these attendants of Sati fled in different directions and disappeared. This was possible simply
because of brahma-tejas, brahminical power.
Chapter Five Frustration of the Sacrifice of Daksa
1. Maitreya said: When Lord Siva heard from Narada that Sati, his wife, was now dead because of
Prajapati Daksa's insult to her and that his soldiers had been driven away by the Rbhu demigods, he
became greatly angry.
2. Thus Lord Siva, being extremely angry, pressed his lips with his teeth and immediately snatched from
his head a strand of hair which blazed like electricity or fire. He stood up at once, laughing like a
madman, and dashed the hair to the ground.
3. A fearful black demon as high as the sky and as bright as three suns combined was thereby created,
his teeth very fearful and the hairs on his head like burning fire. He had thousands of arms, equipped
with various weapons, and he was garlanded with the heads of men.
4. When that gigantic demon asked with folded hands, "What shall I do, my lord?" Lord Siva, who is
known as Bhutanatha, directly ordered, "Because you are born from my body, you are the chief of all
my associates. Therefore, kill Daksa and his soldiers at the sacrifice."
5. Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, that black person was the personified anger of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, and he was prepared to execute the orders of Lord Siva. Thus, considering
himself capable of coping with any power offered against him, he circumambulated Lord Siva.
6. Many other soldiers of Lord Siva followed the fierce personality in a tumultuous uproar. He carried a
great trident, fearful enough to kill even death, and on his legs he wore bangles which seemed to roar.
7. At that time, all the persons assembled in the sacrificial arena--the priests, the chief of the sacrificial
performance, and the brahmanas and their wives--wondered where the darkness was coming from.
Later they could understand that it was a dust storm, and all of them were full of anxiety.
8. Conjecturing on the origin of the storm, they said: There is no wind blowing, and no cows are
passing, nor is it possible that this dust storm could be raised by plunderers, for there is still the strong
King Barhi, who would punish them. Where is this dust storm blowing from? Is the dissolution of the
planet now to occur?
9. Prasuti, the wife of Daksa, along with the other women assembled, became very anxious and said:
This danger has been created by Daksa because of the death of Sati, who, even though completely
innocent, quit her body as her sisters looked on.
10. At the time of dissolution, Lord Siva's hair is scattered, and he pierces the rulers of the different
directions with his trident. He laughs and dances proudly, scattering their hands like flags, as thunder
scatters the clouds all over the world.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 141
11. The gigantic black man bared his fearful teeth. By the movements of his brows he scattered the
luminmies all over the sky, and he covered them with his strong, piercing effulgence. Because of the
misbehavior of Daksa, even Lord Brahma, Daksa's father, could not have been saved from the great
exhibition of anger.
12. While all the people talked amongst themselves, Daksa saw dangerous omens from all sides, from
the earth and from the sky.
13. My dear Vidura, all the followers of Lord Siva surrounded the arena of sacrifice. They were of short
stature and were equipped with various kinds of weapons; their bodies appeared to be like those of
sharks, blackish and yellowish. They ran all around the sacrificial arena and thus began to create
disturbances.
14. Some of the soldiers pulled down the pillars which were supporting the pandal of sacrifice, some of
them entered the female quarters, some began destroying the sacrificial arena, and some entered the
kitchen and the residential quarters.
15. They broke all the pots made for use in the sacrifice, and some of them began to extinguish the
sacrificial fire. Some tore down the boundary line of the sacrificial arena, and some passed urine on the
arena.
16. Some blocked the way of the fleeing sages, some threatened the women assembled there, and
some arrested the demigods who were fleeing the pandal.
17. Maniman, one of the followers of Lord Siva, arrested Bhrgu Muni, and Virabhadra, the black demon,
arrested Prajapati Daksa. Another follower, who was named Candesa, arrested Pusa. Nandisvara
arrested the demigod Bhaga.
18. There was a continuous shower of stones, and all the priests and other members assembled at the
sacrifice were put into immense misery. For fear of their lives, they dispersed in different directions.
19. Virabhadra tore off the mustache of Bhrgu, who was offering the sacrificial oblations with his hands
in the fire.
20. Virabhadra immediately caught Bhaga, who had been moving his eyebrows during Bhrgu's cursing
of Lord Siva, and out of great anger thrust him to the ground and forcibly put out his eyes.
21. Just as Baladeva knocked out the teeth of Dantavakra, the King of Kalinga, during the gambling
match at the marriage ceremony of Aniruddha, Virabhadra knocked out the teeth of both Daksa, who
had shown them while cursing Lord Siva, and Pusa, who by smiling sympathetically had also shown his
teeth.
22. Then Virabhadra, the giantlike personality, sat on the chest of Daksa and tried to separate his head
from his body with sharp weapons, but was unsuccessful.
23. He tried to cut the head of Daksa with hymns as well as weapons, but still it was hard to cut even
the surface of the skin of Daksa's head. Thus Virabhadra was exceedingly bewildered.
24. Then Virabhadra saw the wooden device in the sacrificial arena by which the animals were to have
been killed. He took the opportunity of this facility to behead Daksa.
25. Upon seeing the action of Virabhadra, the party of Lord Siva was pleased and cried out joyfully, and
all the bhutas, ghosts and demons that had come made a tumultuous sound. On the other hand, the
brahmanas in charge of the sacrifice cried out in grief at the death of Daksa.
26. Virabhadra then took the head and with great anger threw it into the southern side of the sacrificial
fire, offering it as an oblation. In this way the followers of Lord Siva devastated all the arrangements for
sacrifice. After setting fire to the whole arena, they departed for their master's abode, Kailasa.
Chapter Six Brahma Satisfies Lord Siva
1-2. Maitreya said: All the priests and other members of the sacrificial assembly and all the demigods,
having been defeated by the soldiers of Lord Siva and injured by weapons like tridents and swords,
approached Lord Brahma with great fear. After offering him obeisances, they began to speak in detail of
all the events which had taken place.
3. Both Lord Brahma and Visnu had already known that such events would occur in the sacrificial arena
of Daksa, and knowing beforehand, they did not go to the sacrifice.
4. When Lord Brahma heard everything from the demigods and the members who had attended the
sacrifice, he replied: You cannot be happy in executing a sacrifice if you blaspheme a great personality
and thereby offend his lotus feet. You cannot have happiness in that way.
5. You have excluded Lord Siva from taking part in the sacrificial results, and therefore you are all
offenders at his lotus feet. Still, if you go without mental reservations and surrender unto him and fall
down at his lotus feet, he will be very pleased.
6. Lord Brahma also advised them that Lord Siva is so powerful that by his anger all the planets and
their chief controllers can be destroyed immediately. Also, he said that Lord Siva was especially sorry
because he had recently lost his dear wife and was also very much afflicted by the unkind words of
142 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Daksa. Under the circumstances, Lord Brahma suggested, it would behoove them to go at once and
beg his pardon.
7. Lord Brahma said that no one, not even himself, Indra, all the members assembled in the sacrificial
arena, or all the sages, could know how powerful Lord Siva is. Under the circumstances, who would
dare to commit an offense at his lotus feet?
8. After thus instructing all the demigods, the Pitas and the lords of the living entities, Lord Brahma took
them with him and left for the abode of Lord Siva, known as the Kailasa Hill.
9. The abode known as Kailasa is full of different herbs and vegetables, and it is sanctified by Vedic
hymns and mystic yoga practice. Thus the residents of that abode are demigods by birth and have all
mystic powers. Besides them there are other human beings, who are known as Kinnaras and
Gandharvas and are accompanied by their beautfful wives, who are known as Apsaras, or angels.
10. Kailasa is full of mountains filled with all kinds of valuable jewels and minerals and surrounded by all
varieties of valuable trees and plants. The top of the hill is nicely decorated by various types of deer.
11. There are many waterfalls, and in the mountains there are many beautiful caves in which the very
beautiful wives of the mystics are found.
12. On Kailasa Hill there is always the rhythmical sound of the peacocks' sweet vibrations and the bees'
humming. Cuckoos are always singing, and other birds whisper amongst themselves.
13. There are tall trees with straight branches that appear to call the sweet birds, and when herds of
elephants pass through the hills, it appears that the Kailasa Hill moves with them. When the waterfalls
resound, it appears that Kailasa Hill does also.
14-15. The whole of Kailasa Hill is decorated with various kinds of trees, of which the following names
may be mentioned: mandara, parijata, sarala, tamala, tala, kovidara, asana, arjuna, amra-jati (mango),
kadamba, dhuli-kadamba, naga, punnaga, campaka, patala, asoka, bakula, kunda and kurabaka. The
entire hill is decorated with such trees, which produce flowers with fragrant aromas.
16. There are other trees also which decorate the hill, such as the golden lotus flower, the cinnamon
tree, malati, kubja, mallika and madhavi.
17. Kailasa Hill is also decorated with such trees as kata, jackfruit, julara, banyan trees, plaksas,
nyagrodhas and trees producing asafetida. Also there are trees of betel nuts and bhurja-patra, as well
as rajapuga, blackberries and similar other trees.
18. There are mango trees, priyala, madhuka and inguda. Besides these there are other trees, like thin
bamboos, kicaka and varieties of other bamboo trees, all decorating the tract of Kailasa Hill.
19-20. There are different kinds of lotus flowers, such as kumuda, utpala and satapatra. The forest
appears to be a decorated garden, and the small lakes are full of various kinds of birds who whisper
very sweetly. There are many kinds of other animals also, like deer, monkeys, boars, lions, rksas,
salyakas, forest cows, forest asses, tigers, small deer, buffalo and many other animals, who are fully
enjoying their lives.
21. There are varieties of deer, such as karnantra, ekapada, asvasya, vrka and kasturi, the deer which
bears musk. Besides the deer there are many banana trees which decorate the small hillside lakes very
nicely.
22. There is a small lake named Alakananda in which Sati used to take her bath, and that lake is
especially auspicious. All the demigods, after seeing the specific beauty of Kailasa Hill, were struck with
wonder at the great opulence to be found there.
23. Thus the demigods saw the wonderfully beautiful region known as Alaka in the forest known as
Saugandhika, which means "full of fragrance." The forest is known as Saugandhika because of its
abundance of lotus flowers.
24. They also saw the two rivers named Nanda and Alakananda. These two rivers are sanctified by the
dust of the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Govinda.
25. My dear Ksatta, Vidura, the celestial damsels come down to those rivers in their airplanes with their
husbands, and after sexual enjoyment, they enter the water and enjoy sprinkling their husbands with
water.
26. After the damsels of the heavenly planets bathe in the water, it becomes yellowish and fragrant due
to the kunkuma from their bodies. Thus the elephants come to bathe there with their wives, the she-
elephants, and they also drink the water, although they are not thirsty.
27. The airplanes of the heavenly denizens are bedecked with pearls, gold and many valuable jewels.
The heavenly denizens are compared to clouds in the sky decorated with occasional flashes of electric
lightning.
28. While traveling, the demigods passed over the forest known as Saugandhika, which is full of
varieties of flowers, fruits and desire trees. While passing over the forest, they also saw the regions of
Yaksesvara.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 143
29. In that celestial forest there were many birds whose necks were colored reddish and whose sweet
sounds mixed with the humming of the bees. The lakes were abundantly decorated with crying swans
as well as strong-stemmed lotus flowers.
30. All these atmospheric influences unsettled the forest elephants who flocked together in the
sandalwood forest, and the blowing wind agitated the minds of the damsels there for further sexual
enjoyment.
31. They also saw that the bathing ghatas and their staircases were made of vaidurya-mani. The water
was full of lotus flowers. Passing by such lakes, the demigods reached a place where there was a great
banyan tree.
32. That banyan tree was eight hundred miles high, and its branches spread over six hundred miles
around. The tree cast a fine shade which permanently cooled the temperature, yet there was no noise
of birds.
33. The demigods saw Lord Siva sitting under that tree, which was competent to give perfection to
mystic yogis and deliver all people. As grave as time eternal, he appeared to have given up all anger.
34. Lord Siva sat there, surrounded by saintly persons like Kuvera, the master of the Guhyakas, and the
four Kumaras, who were already liberated souls. Lord Siva was grave and saintly.
35. The demigods saw Lord Siva situated in his perfection as the master of the senses, knowledge,
fruitive activities and the path of achieving perfection. He was the friend of the entire world, and by virtue
of his full affection for everyone, he was very auspicious.
36. He was seated on a deerskin and was practicing all forms of austerity. Because his body was
smeared with ashes, he looked like an evening cloud. On his hair was the sign of a half-moon, a
symbolic representation.
37. He was seated on a straw mattress and speaking to all present, including the great sage Narada, to
whom he specifically spoke about the Absolute Truth.
38. His left leg was placed on his right thigh, and his left hand was placed on his left thigh. In his right
hand he held rudraksa beads. This sitting posture is called virasana. He sat in the virasana posture, and
his finger was in the mode of argument.
39. All the sages and demigods, headed by Indra, offered their respectful obeisances unto Lord Siva
with folded hands. Lord Siva was dressed in saffron garments and absorbed in trance, thus appearing
to be the foremost of all sages.
40. Lord Siva's lotus feet were worshiped by both the demigods and demons, but still, in spite of his
exalted position, as soon as he saw that Lord Brahma was there among all the other demigods, he
immediately stood up and offered him respect by bowing down and touching his lotus feet, just as
Vamanadeva offered His respectful obeisances to Kasyapa Muni.
41. All the sages who were sitting with Lord Siva, such as Narada and others, also offered their
respectful obeisances to Lord Brahma. After being so worshiped, Lord Brahma, smiling, began to speak
to Lord Siva.
42. Lord Brahma said: My dear Lord Siva, I know that you are the controller of the entire material
manifestation, the combination father and mother of the cosmic manifestation, and the Supreme
Brahman beyond the cosmic manifestation as well. I know you in that way.
43. My dear lord, you create this cosmic manifestation, maintain it, and annihilate it by expansion of
your personality, exactly as a spider creates, maintains and winds up its web.
44. My dear lord, Your Lordship has introduced the system of sacrifices through the agency of Daksa,
and thus one may derive the benefits of religious activities and economic development. Under your
regulative principles, the institution of the four varnas and aramas is respected. The brahmanas
therefore vow to follow this system strictly.
45. O most auspicious lord, you have ordained the heavenly planets, the spiritual Vaikuntha planets and
the impersonal Brahman sphere as the respective destinations of the performers of auspicious
activities. Similarly, for others, who are miscreants, you have destined different kinds of hells which are
horrible and ghastly. Yet sometimes it is found that their destinations are just the opposite. It is very
difficult to ascertain the cause of this.
46. My dear Lord, devotees who have fully dedicated their lives unto your lotus feet certainly observe
your presence as Paramatma in each and every being, and as such they do not differentiate between
one living being and another. Such persons treat all living entities equally. They never become
overwhelmed by anger like animals, who can see nothing without differentiation.
47. Persons who observe everything with differentiation, who are simply attached to fruitive activities,
who are mean minded, who are always pained to see the flourishing condition of others and who thus
give distress to them by uttering harsh and piercing words have already been killed by providence. Thus
there is no need for them to be killed again by an exalted personality like you.
144 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
48. My dear lord, if in some places materialists, who are already bewildered by the insurmountable
illusory energy of the Supreme Godhead, sometimes commit offenses, a saintly person, with
compassion, does not take this seriously. Knowing that they commit offenses because they are
overpowered by the illusory energy, he does not show his prowess to counteract them.
49. My dear lord, you are never bewildered by the formidable influence of the illusory energy of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore you are omniscient and should be merciful and
compassionate toward those who are bewildered by the same illusory energy and are very much
attached to fruitive activities.
50. My dear Lord Siva, you are a shareholder of a portion of the sacrifice, and you are the giver of the
result. The bad priests did not deliver your share, and therefore you destroyed everything, and the
sacrifice remains unfinished. Now you can do the needful and take your rightful share.
51. My dear lord, by your mercy the performer of the sacrifice (King Daksa) may get back his life, Bhaga
may get back his eyes, Bhrgu his mustache, and Pusa his teeth.
52. O Lord Siva, may the demigods and the priests whose limbs have been broken by your soldiers
recover from the injuries by your grace.
53. O destroyer of the sacrifice, please take your portion of the sacrifice and let the sacrifice be
completed by your grace.
Chapter Seven The Sacrifice Performed by Daksa
1. The sage Maitreya said: O mighty-armed Vidura, Lord Siva, being thus pacified by the words of Lord
Brahma, spoke as follows in answer to Lord Brahma's request.
2. Lord Siva said: My dear father, Brahma, I do not mind the offenses created by the demigods.
Because these demigods are childish and less intelligent, I do not take a serious view of their offenses,
and I have punished them only in order to right them.
3. Lord Siva continued: Since the head of Daksa has already been burned to ashes, he will have the
head of a goat. The demigod known as Bhaga will be able to see his share of sacrifice through the eyes
of Mitra.
4. The demigod Pusa will be able to chew only through the teeth of his disciples, and if alone, he will
have to satisfy himself by eating dough made from chickpea flour. But the demigods who have agreed
to give me my share of the sacrifice will recover from all their injuries.
5. Those who have had their arms cut off will have to work with the arms of Asvini-kumara, and those
whose hands were cut off will have to do their work with the hands of Pusa. The priests will also have to
act in that manner. As for Bhrgu, he will have the beard from the goat's head.
6. The great sage Maitreya said: My dear Vidura, all the personalities present were very much satisfied
in heart and soul upon hearing the words of Lord Siva, who is the best among the benedictors.
7. Thereafter, Bhrgu, the chief of the great sages, invited Lord Siva to come to the sacrificial arena.
Thus the demigods, accompanied by the sages, Lord Siva, and Lord Brahma, all went to the place
where the great sacrifice was being performed.
8. After everything was executed exactly as directed by Lord Siva, Daksa's body was joined to the head
of the animal meant to be killed in the sacrifice.
9. When the animal's head was fixed on the body of King Daksa, Daksa was immediately brought to
consciousness, and as he awakened from sleep, the King saw Lord Siva standing before him.
10. At that time, when Daksa saw Lord Siva, who rides upon a bull, his heart, which was polluted by
envy of Lord Siva, was immediately cleansed, just as the water in a lake is cleansed by autumn rains.
11. King Daksa wanted to offer prayers to Lord Siva, but as he remembered the ill-fated death of his
daughter Sati, his eyes filled with tears, and in bereavement his voice choked up, and he could not say
anything.
12. At this time, King Daksa, afflicted by love and affection, was very much awakened to his real
senses. With great endeavor, he pacified his mind, checked his feelings, and with pure consciousness
began to offer prayers to Lord Siva.
13. King Daksa said: My dear Lord Siva, I committed a great offense against you, but you are so kind
that instead of withdrawing your mercy, you have done me a great favor by punishing me. You and Lord
Visnu never neglect even useless, unqualified brahmanas. Why, then, should you neglect me, who am
engaged in performing sacrifices?
14. My dear great and powerful Lord Siva, you were created first from the mouth of Lord Brahma in
order to protect the brahmanas in pursuing education, austerities, vows and self-realization. As
protector of the brahmanas, you always protect the regulative principles they follow, just as a cowherd
boy keeps a stick in his hand to give protection to the cows.
15. I did not know your full glories. For this reason, I threw arrows of sharp words at you in the open
assembly, although you did not take them into account. I was going down to hell because of my
disobedience to you, who are the most respectable personality, but you took compassion upon me and
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 145
saved me by awarding punishment. I request that you be pleased by your own mercy, since I cannot
satisfy you by my words.
16. The great sage Maitreya said: Thus being pardoned by Lord Siva, King Daksa, with the permission
of Lord Brahma, again began the performance of the yajna, along with the great learned sages, the
priests and others.
17. Thereafter, in order to resume the activities of sacrifice, the brahmanas first arranged to purify the
sacrificial arena of the contamination caused by the touch of Virabhadra and the other ghostly followers
of Lord Siva. Then they arranged to offer into the fire the oblations known as purodaa.
18. The great sage Maitreya said to Vidura: My dear Vidura, as soon as King Daksa offered the clarified
butter with Yajur Veda mantras in sanctified meditation, Lord Visnu appeared there in His original form
as Narayana.
19. Lord Narayana was seated on the shoulder of Stotra, or Garuda, who had big wings. As soon as the
Lord appeared, all directions were illuminated, diminishing the luster of Brahma and the others present.
20. His complexion was blackish, His garment yellow like gold, and His helmet as dazzling as the sun.
His hair was bluish, the color of black bees, and His face was decorated with earrings. His eight hands
held a conchshell, wheel, club, lotus flower, arrow, bow, shield and sword, and they were decorated
with golden ornaments such as bangles and bracelets. His whole body resembled a blossoming tree
beautifully decorated with various kinds of flowers.
21. Lord Visnu looked extraordinarily beautiful because the goddess of fortune and a garland were
situated on His chest. His face was beautifully decorated with a smiling attitude which can captivate the
entire world, especially the devotees. Fans of white hair appeared on both sides of the Lord like white
swans, and the white canopy overhead looked like the moon.
22. As soon as Lord Visnu was visible, all the demigods--Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, the Gandharvas
and all present there--immediately offered their respectful obeisances by falling down straight before
Him.
23. In the presence of the glaring effulgence of the bodily luster of Narayana, everyone else's luster
faded away, and everyone stopped speaking. Fearful with awe and veneration, all present touched their
hands to their heads and prepared to offer their prayers to the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Adhoksaja.
24. Although the mental scope of even demigods like Brahma was unable to comprehend the unlimited
glories of the Supreme Lord, they were all able to perceive the transcendental form of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead by His grace. Only by such grace could they offer their respectful prayers
according to their different capacities.
25. When Lord Visnu accepted the oblations offered in the sacrifice, Daksa, the Prajapati, began with
great pleasure to offer respectful prayers unto Him. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is actually the
master of all sacrifices and preceptor of all the Prajapatis, and He is served even by such personalities
as Nanda and Sunanda.
26. Daksa addressed the Supreme Personality of Godhead: My dear Lord, You are transcendental to all
speculative positions. You are completely spiritual, devoid of all fear, and You are always in control of
the material energy. Even though You appear in the material energy, You are situated transcendentally.
You are always free from material contamination because You are completely self-sufficient.
27. The priests addressed the Lord, saying: O Lord, transcendental to material contamination, by the
curse offered by Lord Siva's men we have become attached to fruitive activities, and thus we are now
fallen and therefore do not know anything about You. On the contrary, we are now involved in the
injunctions of the three departments of the Vedic knowledge under the plea of executing rituals in the
name of yajna. We know that You have made arrangements for distributing the respective shares of the
demigods.
28. The members of the assembly addressed the Lord: O exclusive shelter for all who are situated in
troubled life, in this formidable fort of conditional existence the time element, like a snake, is always
looking for an opportunity to strike. This world is full of ditches of so-called distress and happiness, and
there are many ferocious animals always ready to attack. The fire of lamentation is always blazing, and
the mirage of false happiness is always alluring, but one has no shelter from them. Thus foolish persons
live in the cycle of birth and death, always overburdened in discharging their so-called duties, and we do
not know when they will accept the shelter of Your lotus feet.
29. Lord Siva said: My dear Lord, my mind and consciousness are always fixed on Your lotus feet,
which, as the source of all benediction and the fulfillment of all desires, are worshiped by all liberated
great sages because Your lotus feet are worthy of worship. With my mind fixed on Your lotus feet, I am
no longer disturbed by persons who blaspheme me, claiming that my activities are not purified. I do not
mind their accusations, and I excuse them out of compassion, just as You exhibit compassion toward all
living entities.
146 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
30. Sri Bhrgu said: My dear Lord, all living entities, beginning from the highest, namely Lord Brahma,
down to the ordinary ant, are under the influence of the insurmountable spell of illusory energy, and thus
they are ignorant of their constitutional position. Everyone believes in the concept of the body, and all
are thus submerged in the darkness of illusion. They are actually unable to understand how You live in
every living entity as the Supersoul, nor can they understand Your absolute position. But You are the
eternal friend and protector of all surrendered souls. Therefore, please be kind toward us and forgive all
our offenses.
31. Lord Brahma said: My dear Lord, Your personality and eternal form cannot be understood by any
person who is trying to know You through the different processes of acquiring knowledge. Your position
is always transcendental to the material creation, whereas the empiric attempt to understand You is
material, as are its objectives and instruments.
32. King Indra said: My dear Lord, Your transcendental form with eight hands and weapons in each of
them appears for the welfare of the entire universe, and it is very pleasing to the mind and eyes. In such
a form, Your Lordship is always prepared to punish the demons, who are envious of Your devotees.
33. The wives of the performers of the sacrifice said: My dear Lord, this sacrifice was arranged under
the instruction of Brahma, but unfortunately Lord Siva, being angry at Daksa, devastated the entire
scene, and because of his anger the animals meant for sacrifice are lying dead. Therefore the
preparations of the yajna have been lost. Now, by the glance of Your lotus eyes, the sanctity of this
sacrificial arena may be again invoked.
34. The sages prayed: Dear Lord, Your activities are most wonderful, and although You do everything
by Your different potencies, You are not at all attached to such activities. You are not even attached to
the goddess of fortune, who is worshiped by the great demigods like Brahma, who pray to achieve her
mercy.
35. The Siddhas prayed: Like an elephant that has suffered in a forest fire but can forget all its troubles
by entering a river, our minds, O Lord, always merge in the nectarean river of Your transcendental
pastimes, and they desire never to leave such transcendental bliss, which is as good as the pleasure of
merging in the Absolute.
36. The wife of Daksa prayed as follows: My dear Lord, it is very fortunate that You have appeared in
this arena of sacrifice. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, and I request that You be pleased on
this occasion. The sacrificial arena is not beautiful without You, just as a body is not beautiful without
the head.
37. The governors of various planets spoke as follows: Dear Lord, we believe only in our direct
perception, but under the circumstances we do not know whether we have actually seen You with our
material senses. By our material senses we can simply perceive the cosmic manifestation, but You are
beyond the five elements. You are the sixth. We see You, therefore, as a creation of the material world.
38. The great mystics said: Dear Lord, persons who see You as nondifferent from themselves, knowing
that You are the Supersoul of all living entities, are certainly very, very dear to You. You are very
favorable toward those who engage in devotional service, accepting You as the Lord and themselves
as the servants. By Your mercy, You are always inclined in their favor.
39. We offer our respectful obeisances unto the Supreme, who has created varieties of manifestations
and put them under the spell of the three qualities of the material world in order to create, maintain and
annihilate them. He Himself is not under the control of the external energy; in His personal feature He is
completely devoid of the variegated manifestation of material qualities, and He is under no illusion of
false identification.
40. The personified Vedas said: We offer our respectful obeisances unto You, the Lord, the shelter of
the quality of goodness and therefore the source of all religion, austerity and penance, for You are
transcendental to all material qualities and no one knows You or Your actual situation.
41. The fire-god said: My dear Lord, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You because by Your favor I
am as luminous as blazing fire and I accept the offerings mixed with butter and offered in sacrifice. The
five kinds of offerings according to the Yajur Veda are all Your different energies, and You are
worshiped by five kinds of Vedic hymns. Sacrifice means Your Supreme Personality of Godhead.
42. The demigods said: Dear Lord, formerly, when there was a devastation, You conserved all the
different energies of material manifestation. At that time, all the inhabitants of the higher planets,
represented by such liberated souls as Sanaka, were meditating on You by philosophical speculation.
You are therefore the original person, and You rest in the water of devastation on the bed of the Sesa
snake. Now, today, You are visible to us, who are all Your servants. Please give us protection.
43. The Gandharvas said: Dear Lord, all the demigods, including Lord Siva, Lord Brahma, Indra and
Marici and the great sages, are all only differentiated parts and parcels of Your body. You are the
Supreme Almighty Great; the whole creation is just like a plaything for You. We always accept You as
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and we offer our respectful obeisances unto You.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 147
44. The Vidyadharas said: Dear Lord, this human form of body is meant for attaining the highest
perfectional objective, but, impelled by Your external energy, the living entity misidentifies himself with
his body and with the material energy, and therefore, influenced by maya, he wants to become happy
by material enjoyment. He is misled and always attracted by temporary, illusory happiness. But Your
transcendental activities are so powerful that if one engages in the hearing and chanting of such topics,
he can be delivered from illusion.
45. The brahmanas said: Dear Lord, You are sacrifice personified. You are the offering of clarified
butter, You are the fire, You are the chanting of Vedic hymns by which the sacrifice is conducted, You
are the fuel, You are the flame, You are the kusa grass, and You are the sacrificial pots. You are the
priests who perform the yajna, You are the demigods headed by Indra, and You are the sacrificial
animal. Everything that is sacrificed is You or Your energy.
46. Dear Lord, O personified Vedic knowledge, in the past millennium, long, long ago, when You
appeared as the great boar incarnation, You picked up the world from the water, as an elephant picks
up a lotus flower from a lake. When You vibrated transcendental sound in that gigantic form of a boar,
the sound was accepted as a sacrificial hymn, and great sages like Sanaka meditated upon it and
offered prayers for Your glorification.
47. Dear Lord, we were awaiting Your audience because we have been unable to perform the yajnas
according to the Vedic rituals. We pray unto You, therefore, to be pleased with us. Simply by chanting
Your holy name, one can surpass all obstacles. We offer our respectful obeisances unto You in Your
presence.
48. Sri Maitreya said: After Lord Visnu was glorified by all present, Daksa, his consciousness purified,
arranged to begin again the yajna which had been devastated by the followers of Lord Siva.
49. Maitreya continued: My dear sinless Vidura, Lord Visnu is actually the enjoyer of the results of all
sacrifices. Yet because of His being the Supersoul of all living entities, He was satisfied simply with His
share of the sacrificial offerings. He therefore addressed Daksa in a pleasing attitude.
50. Lord Visnu replied: Brahma, Lord Siva and I are the supreme cause of the material manifestation. I
am the Supersoul, the self sufficient witness. But impersonally there is no difference between Brahma,
Lord Siva and Me.
51. The Lord continued: My dear Daksa Dvija, I am the original Personality of Godhead, but in order to
create, maintain and annihilate this cosmic manifestation, I act through My material energy, and
according to the different grades of activity, My representations are differently named.
52. The Lord continued: One who is not in proper knowledge thinks that demigods like Brahma and
Siva are independent, or he even thinks that the living entities are independent.
53. A person with average intelligence does not think the head and other parts of the body to be
separate. Similarly, My devotee does not differentiate Visnu, the all-pervading Personality of Godhead,
from any thing or any living entity.
54. The Lord continued: One who does not consider Brahma, Visnu, Siva or the living entities in general
to be separate from the Supreme, and who knows Brahman, actually realizes peace; others do not.
55. The sage Maitreya said: Thus Daksa, the head of all Prajapatis, having been nicely instructed by the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, worshiped Lord Visnu. After worshiping Him by performing the
prescribed sacrificial ceremonies, Daksa separately worshiped Lord Brahma amd Lord Siva.
56. With all respect, Daksa worshiped Lord Siva with his share of the remnants of the yajna. After
finishing the ritualistic sacrificial activities, he satisfied all the other demigods and the other people
assembled there. Then, after finishing all these duties with the priests, he took a bath and was fully
satisfied.
57. Thus worshiping the Supreme Lord Visnu by the ritualistic performance of sacrifice, Daksa was
completely situated on the religious path. Moreover, all the demigods who had assembled at the
sacrifice blessed him that he might increase his piety, and then they left.
58. Maitreya said: I have heard that after giving up the body she had received from Daksa, Daksayani
(his daughter) took her birth in the kingdom of the Himalayas. She was born as the daughter of Mena. I
heard this from authoritative sources.
59. Ambika [goddess Durga], who was known as Daksayini [Sati], again accepted Lord Siva as her
husband, just as different energies of the Supreme Personality of Godhead act during the course of a
new creation.
60. Maitreya said: My dear Vidura, I heard this story of the Daksa yajna, which was devastated by Lord
Siva, from Uddhava, a great devotee and a disciple of Brhaspati.
61. The great sage Maitreya concluded: If one hears and again narrates, with faith and devotion, this
story of the Daksa yajna as it was conducted by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, then
certainly one is cleared of all contamination of material existence, O son of Kuru.
148 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Eight Dhruva Maharaja Leaves Home for the Forest
1. The great sage Maitreya said: The four great Kumara sages headed by Sanaka, as well as Narada,
Rbhu, Hamsa, Aruni and Yati, all sons of Brahma did not live at home, but became urdhva-reta, or
naisthika-brahmacaris, unadulterated celibates.
2. Another son of Lord Brahma was Irreligion, whose wife's name was Falsity. From their combination
were born two demons named Dambha, or Bluffing, and Maya, or Cheating. These two demons were
taken by a demon named Nirrti, who had no children.
3. Maitreya told Vidura: O great soul, from Dambha and Maya were born Greed and Nikrti, or Cunning.
From their combination came children named Krodha (Anger) and Himsa (Envy), and from their
combination were born Kali and his sister Durukti (Harsh Speech).
4. O greatest of all good men, by the combination of Kali and Harsh Speech were born children named
Mrtyu (Death) and Bhiti (Fear). From the combination of Mrtyu and Bhiti came children named Yatana
(Excessive Pain) and Niraya (Hell).
5. My dear Vidura, I have summarily explained the causes of devastation. One who hears this
description three times attains piety and washes the sinful contamination from his soul.
6. Maitreya continued: O best of the Kuru dynasty, I shall now describe before you the descendants of
Svayambhuva Manu, who was born of a part of a plenary expansion of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
7. Svayambhuva Manu had two sons by his wife, Satarupa, and the names of the sons were
Uttanapada and Priyavrata. Because both of them were descendants of a plenary expansion of
Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, they were very competent to rule the universe to
maintain and protect the citizens.
8. King Uttanapada had two queens, named Suniti and Suruci. Suruci was much more dear to the King;
Suniti, who had a son named Dhruva, was not his favorite.
9. Once upon a time, King Uttanapada was patting the son of Suruci, Uttama, placing him on his lap.
Dhruva Maharaja was also trying to get on the King's lap, but the King did not very much welcome him.
10. While the child, Dhruva Maharaja, was trying to get on the lap of his father, Suruci, his stepmother,
became very envious of the child, and with great pride she began to speak so as to be heard by the
King himself.
11. Queen Suruci told Dhruva Maharaja: My dear child, you do not deserve to sit on the throne or on
the lap of the King. Surely you are also the son of the King, but because you did not take your birth from
my womb, you are not qualified to sit on your father's lap.
12. My dear child, you are unaware that you were born not of my womb but of another woman.
Therefore you should know that your attempt is doomed to failure. You are trying to fulfill a desire which
is impossible to fulfill.
13. If you at all desire to rise to the throne of the King, then you have to undergo severe austerities. First
of all you must satisfy the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, and then, when you are favored
by Him because of such worship, you shall have to take your next birth from my womb.
14. The sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, as a snake, when struck by a stick, breathes very
heavily, Dhruva Maharaja, having been struck by the strong words of his stepmother, began to breathe
very heavily because of great anger. When he saw that his father was silent and did not protest, he
immediately left the palace and went to his mother.
15. When Dhruva Maharaja reached his mother, his lips were trembling in anger, and he was crying
very grievously. Queen Suniti immediately lifted her son onto her lap, while the palace residents who
had heard all the harsh words of Suruci related everything in detail. Thus Suniti also became greatly
aggrieved.
16. This incident was unbearable to Suniti's patience. She began to burn as if in a forest fire, and in her
grief she became just like a burnt leaf and so lamented. As she remembered the words of her co-wife,
her bright, lotuslike face filled with tears, and thus she spoke.
17. She also was breathing very heavily, and she did not know the factual remedy for the painful
situation. Not finding any remedy, she said to her son: My dear son, don't wish for anything inauspicious
for others. Anyone who inflicts pains upon others suffers himself from that pain.
18. Suniti said: My dear boy, whatever has been spoken by Suruci is so, because the King, your father,
does not consider me his wife or even his maidservant. He feels ashamed to accept me. Therefore it is
a fact that you have taken birth from the womb of an unfortunate woman, and by being fed from her
breast you have grown up.
19. My dear boy, whatever has been spoken by Suruci, your stepmother, although very harsh to hear, is
factual. Therefore, if you desire at all to sit on the same throne as your stepbrother, Uttama, then give
up your envious attitude and immediately try to execute the instructions of your stepmother. Without
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 149
further delay, you must engage yourself in worshiping the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
20. Suniti continued: The Supreme Personality of Godhead is so great that simply by worshiping His
lotus feet, your great-grandfather, Lord Brahma, acquired the necessary qualifications to create this
universe. Although he is unborn and is the chief of all living creatures, he is situated in that exalted post
because of the mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, whom even great yogis worship by
controlling the mind and regulating the life air [prana].
21. Suniti informed her son: Your grandfather Svayambhuva Manu executed great sacrifices with
distribution of charity, and thereby, with unflinching faith and devotion, he worshiped and satisfied the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. By acting in that way, he achieved the greatest success in material
happiness and afterwards achieved liberation, which is impossible to obtain by worshiping the
demigods.
22. My dear boy, you also should take shelter of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is very kind
to His devotees. Persons seeking liberation from the cycle of birth and death always take shelter of the
lotus feet of the Lord in devotional service. Becoming purified by executing your allotted occupation, just
situate the Supreme Personality of Godhead in your heart, and without deviating for a moment, engage
always in His service.
23. My dear Dhruva, as far as I am concerned, I do not find anyone who can mitigate your distress but
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose eyes are like lotus petals. Many demigods such as Lord
Brahma seek the pleasure of the goddess of fortune, but the goddess of fortune herself, with a lotus
flower in her hand, is always ready to render service to the Supreme Lord.
24. The great sage Maitreya continued: The instruction of Dhruva Maharaja's mother, Suniti, was
actually meant for fulfilling his desired objective. Therefore, after deliberate consideration and with
intelligence and fixed determination, he left his father's house.
25. The great sage Narada overheard this news, and understanding all the activities of Dhruva
Maharaja, he was struck with wonder. He approached Dhruva, and touching the boy's head with his all-
virtuous hand, he spoke as follows.
26. How wonderful are the powerful ksatriyas. They cannot tolerate even a slight infringement upon
their prestige. Just imagine! This boy is only a small child, yet harsh words from his stepmother proved
unbearable to him.
27. The great sage Narada told Dhruva: My dear boy, you are only a little boy whose attachment is to
sports and other frivolities. Why are you so affected by words insulting your honor?
28. My dear Dhruva, if you feel that your sense of honor has been insulted, you still have no cause for
dissatisfaction. This kind of dissatisfaction is another feature of the illusory energy; every living entity is
controlled by his previous actions, and therefore there are different varieties of life for enjoying or
suffering.
29. The process of the Supreme Personality of Godhead is very wonderful. One who is intelligent
should accept that process and be satisfied with whatever comes, favorable or unfavorable, by His
supreme will.
30. Now you have decided to undertake the mystic process of meditation under the instruction of your
mother, just to achieve the mercy of the Lord, but in my opinion such austerities are not possible for any
ordinary man. It is very difficult to satisfy the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
31. Narada Muni continued: After trying this process for many, many births and remaining unattached to
material contamination, placing themselves continually in trance and executing many types of
austerities, many mystic yogis were unable to find the end of the path of God realization.
32. For this reason, my dear boy, you should not endeavor for this; it will not be successful. It is better
that you go home. When you are grown up, by the mercy of the Lord you will get a chance for these
mystic performances. At that time you may execute this function.
33. One should try to keep himself satisfied in any condition of life--whether distress or happiness--
which is offered by the supreme will. A person who endures in this way is able to cross over the
darkness of nescience very easily.
34. Every man should act like this: when he meets a person more qualified than himself, he should be
very pleased; when he meets someone less qualified than himself, he should be compassionate toward
him; and when he meets someone equal to himself, he should make friendship with him. In this way
one is never affected by the threefold miseries of this material world.
35. Dhruva Maharaja said: My dear Lord Naradaji, for a person whose heart is disturbed by the material
conditions of happiness and distress, whatever you have so kindly explained for attainment of peace of
mind is certainly a very good instruction. But as far as I am concerned, I am covered by ignorance, and
this kind of philosophy does not touch my heart.
150 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
36. My dear lord, I am very impudent for not accepting your instructions, but this is not my fault. It is due
to my having been born in a ksatriya family. My stepmother, Suruci, has pierced my heart with her harsh
words. Therefore your valuable instruction does not stand in my heart.
37. O learned brahmana, I want to occupy a position more exalted than any yet achieved within the
three worlds by anyone, even by my fathers and grandfathers. If you will oblige, kindly advise me of an
honest path to follow by which I can achieve the goal of my life.
38. My dear lord, you are a worthy son of Lord Brahma, and you travel, playing on your musical
instrument, the vina, for the welfare of the entire universe. You are like the sun, which rotates in the
universe for the benefit of all living beings.
39. The sage Maitreya continued: The great personality Narada Muni, upon hearing the words of
Dhruva Maharaja, became very compassionate toward him, and in order to show him his causeless
mercy, he gave him the following expert advice.
40. The great sage Narada told Dhruva Maharaja: The instruction given by your mother, Suniti, to follow
the path of devotional service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is just suitable for you. You
should therefore completely absorb yourself in the devotional service of the Lord.
41. Any person who desires the fruits of the four principles religiosity, economic development, sense
gratification and, at the end, liberation, should engage himself in the devotional service of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, for worship of His lotus feet yields the fulfillment of all of these.
42. My dear boy, I therefore wish all good fortune for you. You should go to the bank of the Yamuna,
where there is a virtuous forest named Madhuvana, and there be purified. Just by going there, one
draws nearer to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who always lives there.
43. Narada Muni instructed: My dear boy, in the waters of the Yamuna River, which is known as Kalindi,
you should take three baths daily because the water is very auspicious, sacred and clear. After bathing,
you should perform the necessary regulative principles for astanga-yoga and then sit down on your
asana [sitting place] in a calm and quiet position.
44. After sitting on your seat, practice the three kinds of breathing exercises, and thus gradually control
the life air, the mind and the senses. Completely free yourself from all material contamination, and with
great patience begin to meditate on the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
45. [The form of the Lord is described herein.] The Lord's face is perpetually very beautiful and pleasing
in attitude. To the devotees who see Him, He appears never to be displeased, and He is always
prepared to award benedictions to them. His eyes, His nicely decorated eyebrows, His raised nose and
His broad forehead are all very beautiful. He is more beautiful than all the demigods.
46. Narada Muni continued: The Lord's form is always youthful. Every limb and every part of His body is
properly formed, free from defect. His eyes and lips are pinkish like the rising sun. He is always
prepared to give shelter to the surrendered soul, and anyone so fortunate as to look upon Him feels all
satisfaction. The Lord is always worthy to be the master of the surrendered soul, for He is the ocean of
mercy.
47. The Lord is further described as having the mark of Srivatsa, or the sitting place of the goddess of
fortune, and His bodily hue is deep bluish. The Lord is a person, He wears a garland of flowers, and He
is eternally manifest with four hands, which hold [beginning from the lower left hand] a conchshell,
wheel, club and lotus flower.
48. The entire body of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, is decorated. He wears a
valuable jeweled helmet, necklaces and bracelets, His neck is adorned with the Kaustubha jewel, and
He is dressed in yellow silk garments.
49. The Lord is decorated with small golden bells around His waist, and His lotus feet are decorated
with golden ankle bells. All His bodily features are very attractive and pleasing to the eyes. He is always
peaceful, calm and quiet and very pleasing to the eyes and the mind.
50. Real yogis meditate upon the transcendental form of the Lord as He stands on the whorl of the lotus
of their hearts, the jewellike nails of His lotus feet glittering.
51. The Lord is always smiling, and the devotee should constantly see the Lord in this form, as He looks
very mercifully toward the devotee. In this way the meditator should look toward the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, the bestower of all benedictions.
52. One who meditates in this way, concentrating his mind upon the always auspicious form of the Lord,
is very soon freed from all material contamination, and he does not come down from meditation upon
the Lord.
53. O son of the King, now I shall speak unto you the mantra which is to be chanted with this process of
meditation. One who carefully chants this mantra for seven nights can see the perfect human beings
flying in the sky.
54. Om namo bhagavate vasudevaya. This is the twelve-syllable mantra for worshiping Lord Krsna.
One should install the physical forms of the Lord, and with the chanting of the mantra one should offer
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 151
flowers and fruits and other varieties of foodstuffs exactly according to the rules and regulations
prescribed by authorities. But this should be done in consideration of place, time, and attendant
conveniences and inconveniences.
55. One should worship the Lord by offering pure water, pure flower garlands, fruits, flowers and
vegetables, which are available in the forest, or by collecting newly grown grasses, small buds of
flowers or even the skins of trees, and if possible, by offering tulasi leaves, which are very dear to the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
56. It is possible to worship a form of the Lord made of physical elements such as earth, water, pulp,
wood and metal. In the forest one can make a form with no more than earth and water and worship Him
according to the above principles. A devotee who has full control over his self should be very sober and
peaceful and must be satisfied simply with eating whatever fruits and vegetables are available in the
forest.
57. My dear Dhruva, besides worshiping the Deity and chanting the mantra three times a day, you
should meditate upon the transcendental activities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead in His
different incarnations, as exhibited by His supreme will and personal potencies.
58. One should follow in the footsteps of previous devotees regarding how to worship the Supreme Lord
with the prescribed paraphernalia, or one should offer worship within the heart by reciting the mantra to
the Personality of Godhead, who is nondifferent from the mantra.
59-60. Anyone who thus engages in the devotional service of the Lord, seriously and sincerely, with his
mind, words and body, and who is fixed in the activities of the prescribed devotional methods, is
blessed by the Lord according to his desire. If a devotee desires material religiosity, economic
development, sense gratification or liberation from the material world, he is awarded these results.
61. If one is very serious about liberation, he must stick to the process of transcendental loving service,
engaging twenty-four hours a day in the highest stage of ecstasy, and he must certainly be aloof from
all activities of sense gratification.
62. When Dhruva Maharaja, the son of the King, was thus advised by the great sage Narada, he
circumambulated Narada, his spiritual master, and offered him respectful obeisances. Then he started
for Madhuvana, which is always imprinted with the lotus footprints of Lord Krsna and which is therefore
especially auspicious.
63. After Dhruva entered Madhuvana Forest to execute devotional service, the great sage Narada
thought it wise to go to the King to see how he was faring within the palace. When Narada Muni
approached, the King received him properly, offering him due obeisances. After being seated
comfortably, Narada began to speak.
64. The great sage Narada inquired: My dear King, your face appears to be withering up, and you look
like you have been thinking of something for a very long time. Why is that? Have you been hampered in
following your path of religious rites, economic development and sense gratification?
65. The King replied: O best of the brahmanas, I am very much addicted to my wife, and I am so fallen
that I have abandoned all merciful behavior, even to my son, who is only five years old. I have banished
him and his mother, even though he is a great soul and a great devotee.
66. My dear brahmana, the face of my son was just like a lotus flower. I am thinking of his precarious
condition. He is unprotected, and he might he very hungry. He might have lain down somewhere in the
forest, and the wolves might have attacked him to eat his body.
67. Alas, just see how I was conquered by my wife! Just imagine my cruelty! Out of love and affection
the boy was trying to get up on my lap, but I did not receive him, nor did I even pat him for a moment.
Just imagine how hardhearted I am.
68. The great sage Narada replied: My dear King, please do not he aggrieved about your son. He is
well protected by the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Although you have no actual information of his
influence, his reputation is already spread all over the world.
69. My dear King, your son is very competent. He will perform activities which would he impossible even
for great kings and sages. Very soon he will complete his task and come back home. You should know
that he will also spread your reputation all over the world.
70. The great Maitreya continued: The King, Uttanapada, after being advised by Narada Muni,
practically gave up all duties in relation with his kingdom, which was very vast and wide, opulent like the
goddess of fortune, and he simply began to think of his son Dhruva.
71. Elsewhere, Dhruva Maharaja, having arrived at Madhuvana, took his bath in the River Yamuna and
observed fasting in the night with great care and attention. After that, as advised by the great sage
Narada, he engaged himself in worshiping the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
72. For the first month Dhruva Maharaja ate only fruits and berries on every third day, only to keep his
body and soul together, and in this way he progressed in his worship of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
152 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
73. In the second month Dhruva Maharaja ate only every six days, and for his eatables he took dry
grass and leaves. Thus he continued his worship.
74. In the third month he drank water only every nine days. Thus he remained completely in trance and
worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is adored by selected verses.
75. In the fourth month Dhruva Maharaja became a complete master of the breathing exercise, and
thus he inhaled air only every twelfth day. In this way he became completely fixed in his position and
worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
76. By the fifth month, Maharaja Dhruva, the son of the King, had controlled his breathing so perfectly
that he was able to stand on only one leg, just as a column stands, without motion, and concentrate his
mind fully on the Parabrahman.
77. He completely controlled his senses and their objects, and in this way he fixed his mind, without
diversion to anything else, upon the form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
78. When Dhruva Maharaja thus captured the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the refuge of
the total material creation and who is the master of all living entities, the three worlds began to tremble.
79. As Dhruva Maharaja, the King's son, kept himself steadily standing on one leg, the pressure of his
big toe pushed down half the earth, just as an elephant being carried on a boat rocks the boat left and
right with his every step.
80. When Dhruva Maharaja became practically one in heaviness with Lord Visnu, the total
consciousness, due to his fully concentrating, and closing all the holes of his body, the total universal
breathing became choked up, and all the great demigods in all the planetary systems felt suffocated
and thus took shelter of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
81. The demigods said: Dear Lord, You are the refuge of all moving and nonmoving living entities. We
feel all living entities to be suffocating, their breathing processes choked up. We have never
experienced such a thing. Since You are the ultimate shelter of all surrendered souls, we have therefore
approached You; kindly save us from this danger.
82. The Supreme Personality of Godhead replied: My dear demigods, do not be perturbed by this. It is
due to the severe austerity and full determination of the son of King Uttanapada, who is now fully
absorbed in thought of Me. He has obstructed the universal breathing process. You can safely return to
your respective homes. I shall stop this boy in his severe acts of austerities, and you will be saved from
this situation.
Chapter Nine Dhruva Maharaja Returns Home
1. The great sage Maitreya told Vidura: When the demigods were thus reassured by the Personality of
Godhead, they were freed from all fears, and after offering their obeisances, they returned to their
heavenly planets. Then the Lord, who is nondifferent from the Sahasrasirsa incarnation, got on the back
of Garuda, who carried Him to the Madhuvana Forest to see His servant Dhruva.
2. The form of the Lord, which was brilliant like lightning and in which Dhruva Maharaja, in his mature
yogic process, was fully absorbed in meditation, all of a sudden disappeared. Thus Dhruva was
perturbed, and his meditation broke. But as soon as he opened his eyes he saw the Supreme
Personality of Godhead personally present, just as he had been seeing the Lord in his heart.
3. When Dhruva Maharaja saw his Lord just in front of him, he was greatly agitated and offered Him
obeisances and respect. He fell flat before Him like a rod and became absorbed in love of Godhead.
Dhruva Maharaja, in ecstasy, looked upon the Lord as if he were drinking the Lord with his eyes, kissing
the lotus feet of the Lord with his mouth, and embracing the Lord with his arms.
4. Although Dhruva Maharaja was a small boy, he wanted to offer prayers to the Supreme Personality
of Godhead in suitable language. But because he was inexperienced, he could not adjust himself
immediately. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, being situated in everyone's heart, could
understand Dhruva Maharaja's awkward position. Out of His causeless mercy He touched His
conchshell to the forehead of Dhruva Maharaja, who stood before Him with folded hands.
5. At that time Dhruva Maharaja became perfectly aware of the Vedic conclusion and understood the
Absolute Truth and His relationship with all living entities. In accordance with the line of devotional
service to the Supreme Lord, whose fame is widespread, Dhruva, who in the future would receive a
planet which would never be annihilated, even during the time of dissolution, offered his deliberate and
conclusive prayers.
6. Dhruva Maharaja said: My dear Lord, You are all-powerful. After entering within me, You have
enlivened all my sleeping senses--my hands, legs, ears, touch sensation, life force and especially my
power of speech. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
7. My Lord, You are the supreme one, but by Your different energies You appear differently in the
spiritual and material worlds. You create the total energy of the material world by Your external potency,
and after creation You enter within the material world as the Supersoul. You are the Supreme Person,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 153
and through the temporary modes of material nature You create varieties of manifestation, just as fire,
entering into wood of different shapes, burns brilliantly in different varieties.
8. O my master, Lord Brahma is fully surrendered unto You. In the beginning You gave him knowledge,
and thus he could see and understand the entire universe, just as a person awakens from sleep and
visualizes his immediate duties. You are the only shelter of all persons who desire liberation, and You
are the friend of all who are distressed. How, therefore, can a learned person who has perfect
knowledge ever forget You?
9. Persons who worship You simply for the sense gratification of this bag of skin are certainly influenced
by Your illusory energy. In spite of having You, who are like a desire tree and are the cause of liberation
from birth and death, foolish persons, such as me, desire benedictions from You for sense gratification,
which is available even for those who live in hellish conditions.
10. My Lord, the transcendental bliss derived from meditating upon Your lotus feet or hearing about
Your glories from pure devotees is so unlimited that it is far beyond the stage of brahmananda, wherein
one thinks himself merged in the impersonal Brahman as one with the Supreme. Since brahmananda is
also defeated by the transcendental bliss derived from devotional service, then what to speak of the
temporary blissfulness of elevating oneself to the heavenly planets, which is ended by the separating
sword of time? Although one may be elevated to the heavenly planets, he falls down in due course of
time.
11. Dhruva Maharaja continued: O unlimited Lord, kindly bless me so that I may associate with great
devotees who engage in Your transcendental loving service constantly, as the waves of a river
constantly flow. Such transcendental devotees are completely situated in an uncontaminated state of
life. By the process of devotional service I shall surely be able to cross the nescient ocean of material
existence, which is filled with the waves of blazing, firelike dangers. It will be very easy for me, for I am
becoming mad to hear about Your transcendental qualities and pastimes, which are eternally existent.
12. O Lord who have a lotus navel, if a person happens to associate with a devotee whose heart always
hankers after Your lotus feet, seeking always their fragrance, he is never attached to the material body
or, in a bodily relationship, to offspring, friends, home, wealth and wife, which are very, very dear to
materialistic persons. Indeed, he does not care for them.
13. My dear Lord, O Supreme Unborn, I know that the different varieties of living entities, such as
animals, trees, birds, reptiles, demigods and human beings, are spread throughout the universe, which
is caused by the total material energy, and I know that they are sometimes manifest and sometimes
unmanifest; but I have never experienced the supreme form I behold as I see You now. Now all kinds of
methods of theorizing have come to an end.
14. My dear Lord, at the end of each millennium the Supreme Personality of Godhead Garbhodakasayi
Visnu dissolves everything manifested within the universe into His belly. He lies down on the lap of
Sesa Naga, from His navel sprouts a golden lotus flower on a stem, and on that lotus Lord Brahma is
created. I can understand that You are the same Supreme Godhead. I therefore offer my respectful
obeisances unto You.
15. My Lord, by Your unbroken transcendental glance You are the supreme witness of all stages of
intellectual activities. You are eternally liberated, Your existence is situated in pure goodness, and You
are existent in the Supersoul without change. You are the original Personality of Godhead, full with six
opulences, and You are eternally the master of the three modes of material nature. Thus, You are
always different from the ordinary living entities. As Lord Visnu, You maintain all the affairs of the entire
universe, and yet You stand aloof and are the enjoyer of the results of all sacrifices.
16. My dear Lord, in Your impersonal manifestation of Brahman there are always two opposing
elements--knowledge and ignorance. Your multienergies are continually manifest, but the impersonal
Brahman, which is undivided, original, changeless, unlimited and blissful, is the cause of the material
manifestation. Because You are the same impersonal Brahman, I offer my respectful obeisances unto
You.
17. My Lord, O Supreme Lord, You are the supreme personified form of all benediction. Therefore, for
one who abides in Your devotional service with no other desire, worshiping Your lotus feet is better than
becoming king and lording it over a kingdom. That is the benediction of worshiping Your lotus feet. To
ignorant devotees like me, You are the causelessly merciful maintainer, just like a cow, who takes care
of the newly born calf by supplying milk and giving it protection from attack.
18. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, when Dhruva Maharaja, who had good
intentions in his heart, finished his prayer, the Supreme Lord, the Personality of Godhead, who is very
kind to His devotees and servants, congratulated him, speaking as follows.
19. The Personality of Godhead said: My dear Dhruva, son of the King, you have executed pious vows,
and I also know the desire within your heart. Although your desire is very ambitious and very difficult to
fulfill, I shall favor you with its fulfillment. All good fortune unto you.
154 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
20-21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead continued: My dear Dhruva, I shall award you the glowing
planet known as the polestar, which will continue to exist even after the dissolution at the end of the
millennium. No one has ever ruled this planet, which is surrounded by all the solar systems, planets and
stars. All the luminaries in the sky circumambulate this planet, just as bulls tread around a central pole
for the purpose of crushing grains. Keeping the polestar to their right, all the stars inhabited by the great
sages like Dharma, Agni, Kasyapa and Sukra circumambulate this planet, which continues to exist even
after the dissolution of all others.
22. After your father goes to the forest and awards you the rule of his kingdom, you will rule
continuously the entire world for thirty-six thousand years, and all your senses will continue to be as
strong as they are now. You will never become old.
23. The Lord continued: Sometime in the future your brother, Uttama, will go hunting in the forest, and
while absorbed in hunting, he will be killed. Your stepmother, Suruci, being maddened upon the death
of her son, will go to search him out in the forest, but she will be devoured by a forest fire.
24. The Lord continued: I am the heart of all sacrifices. You will be able to perform many great sacrifices
and also give great charities. In this way you will be able to enjoy the blessings of material happiness in
this life, and at the time of your death you will be able to remember Me.
25. The Personality of Godhead continued: My dear Dhruva, after your material life in this body, you will
go to My planet, which is always offered obeisances by the residents of all other planetary systems. It is
situated above the planets of the seven rsis, and having gone there you will never have to come back
again to this material world.
26. The great sage Maitreya said: After being worshiped and honored by the boy, Dhruva Maharaja,
and after offering him His abode, Lord Visnu, on the back of Garuda, returned to His abode, as Dhruva
Maharaja looked on.
27. Despite having achieved the desired result of his determination by worshiping the lotus feet of the
Lord, Dhruva Maharaja was not very pleased. Thus he returned to his home.
28. Sri Vidura inquired: My dear brahmana, the abode of the Lord is very difficult to attain. It can be
attained only by pure devotional service, which alone pleases the most affectionate, merciful Lord.
Dhruva Maharaja achieved this position even in one life, and he was very wise and conscientious. Why,
then, was he not very pleased?
29. Maitreya answered: Dhruva Maharaja's heart, which was pierced by the arrows of the harsh words
of his stepmother, was greatly aggrieved, and thus when he fixed upon his goal of life he did not forget
her misbehavior. He did not demand actual liberation from this material world, but at the end of his
devotional service, when the Supreme Personality of Godhead appeared before him, he was simply
ashamed of the material demands he had in his mind.
30. Dhruva Maharaja thought to himself: To endeavor to be situated in the shade of the lotus feet of the
Lord is not an ordinary task because even the great brahmacaris headed by Sanandana, who practiced
astanga-yoga in trance, attained the shelter of the Lord's lotus feet only after many, many births. Within
six months I achieved the same result, yet due to my thinking differently from the Lord, I fell down from
my position.
31. Alas, just look at me! I am so unfortunate. I approached the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who can immediately cut the chain of the repetition of birth and death, but still, out of my
foolishness, I prayed for things which are perishable.
32. Since all the demigods who are situated in the higher planetary system will have to come down
again, they are all envious of my being elevated to Vaikunthaloka by devotional service. These
intolerant demigods have dissipated my intelligence, and only for this reason could I not accept the
genuine benediction of the instructions of Sage Narada.
33. Dhruva Maharaja lamented: I was under the influence of the illusory energy; being ignorant of the
actual facts, I was sleeping on her lap. Under a vision of duality, I saw my brother as my enemy, and
falsely I lamented within my heart, thinking, "They are my enemies."
34. It is very difficult to satisfy the Supreme Personality of Godhead, but in my case, although I have
satisfied the Supersoul of the whole universe, I have prayed only for useless things. My activities were
exactly like treatment given to a person who is already dead. Just see how unfortunate I am, for in spite
of meeting the Supreme Lord, who can cut one's link with birth and death, I have prayed for the same
conditions again.
35. Because of my state of complete foolishness and paucity of pious activities, although the Lord
offered me His personal service, I wanted material name, fame and prosperity. My case is just like that
of the poor man who, when he satisfied a great emperor who wanted to give him anything he might ask,
out of ignorance asked only a few broken grains of husked rice.
36. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, persons like you, who are pure devotees of the
lotus feet of Mukunda [the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who can offer liberation] and who are
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 155
always attached to the honey of His lotus feet, are always satisfied in serving at the lotus feet of the
Lord. In any condition of life, such persons remain satisfied, and thus they never ask the Lord for
material prosperity.
37. When King Uttanapada heard that his son Dhruva was coming back home, as if coming back to life
after death, he could not put his faith in this message, for he was doubtful of how it could happen. He
considered himself the most wretched, and therefore he thought that it was not possible for him to attain
such good fortune.
38. Although he could not believe the words of the messenger, he had full faith in the word of the great
sage Narada. Thus he was greatly overwhelmed by the news, and he immediately offered the
messenger a highly valuable necklace in great satisfaction.
39-40. Then King Uttanapada, being very eager to see the face of his lost son, mounted a chariot drawn
by excellent horses and bedecked with golden filigree. Taking with him many learned brahmanas, all
the elderly personalities of his family, his officers, his ministers and his immediate friends, he
immediately left the city. As he proceeded in this parade, there were auspicious sounds of conchshells,
kettledrums, flutes, and the chanting of Vedic mantras to indicate all good fortune.
41. Both the queens of King Uttanapada, namely Suniti and Suruci, along with his other son, Uttama,
appeared in the procession. The queens were seated on a palanquin.
42-43. Upon seeing Dhruva Maharaja approaching the neighboring small forest, King Uttanapada with
great haste got down from his chariot. He had been very anxious for a long time to see his son Dhruva,
and therefore with great love and affection he went forward to embrace his long-lost boy. Breathing very
heavily, the King embraced him with both arms. But Dhruva Maharaja was not the same as before; he
was completely sanctified by spiritual advancement due to having been touched by the lotus feet of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
44. Reunion with Dhruva Maharaja fulfilled King Uttanapada's long-cherished desire, and for this reason
he smelled Dhruva's head again and again and bathed him with torrents of very cold tears.
45. Then Dhruva Maharaja, the foremost of all nobles, first of all offered his obeisances at the feet of his
father and was honored by his father with various questions. He then bowed his head at the feet of his
two mothers.
46. Suruci, the younger mother of Dhruva Maharaja, seeing that the innocent boy had fallen at her feet,
immediately picked him up, embracing him with her hands, and with tears of feeling she blessed him
with the words, "My dear boy, long may you live!"
47. Unto one who has transcendental qualities due to friendly behavior with the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, all living entities offer honor, just as water automatically flows down by nature.
48. The two brothers Uttama and Dhruva Maharaja also exchanged their tears. They were
overwhelmed by the ecstasy of love and affection, and when they embraced one another, the hair on
their bodies stood up.
49. Suniti, the real mother of Dhruva Maharaja, embraced the tender body of her son, who was dearer
to her than her own life, and thus forgot all material grief, for she was very pleased.
50. My dear Vidura, Suniti was the mother of a great hero. Her tears, together with the milk flowing from
her breasts, wet the whole body of Dhruva Maharaja. This was a great, auspicious sign.
51. The residents of the palace praised the Queen: Dear Queen, your beloved son was lost a long time
ago, and it is your great fortune that he now has come back. It appears, therefore, that your son will be
able to protect you for a very long time and will put an end to all your material pangs.
52. Dear Queen, you must have worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who delivers His
devotees from the greatest danger. Persons who constantly meditate upon Him surpass the course of
birth and death. This perfection is very difficult to achieve.
53. The sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, when everyone was thus praising Dhruva Maharaja,
the King was very happy, and he had Dhruva and his brother seated on the back of a she-elephant.
Thus he returned to his capital, where he was praised by all classes of men.
54. The whole city was decorated with columns of banana trees containing bunches of fruits and
flowers, and betel nut trees with leaves and branches were seen here and there. There were also many
gates set up which were structured to give the appearance of sharks.
55. At each and every gate there were burning lamps and big waterpots decorated with differently
colored cloth, strings of pearls, flower garlands and hanging mango leaves.
56. In the capital city there were many palaces, city gates and surrounding walls, which were already
very, very beautiful, and on this occasion all of them were decorated with golden ornaments. The
domes of the city palaces glittered, as did the domes of the beautiful airplanes which hovered over the
city.
156 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
57. All the quadrangles, lanes and streets in the city, and the raised sitting places at the crossings, were
thoroughly cleansed and sprinkled with sandalwood water; and auspicious grains such as rice and
barley, and flowers, fruits and many other auspicious presentations were scattered all over the city.
58-59. Thus as Dhruva Maharaja passed on the road, from every place in the neighborhood all the
gentle household ladies assembled to see him, and out of maternal affection they offered their
blessings, showering him with white mustard seed, barley, curd, water, newly grown grass, fruits and
flowers. In this way Dhruva Maharaja, while hearing the pleasing songs sung by the ladies, entered the
palace of his father.
60. Dhruva Maharaja thereafter lived in his father's palace, which had walls bedecked with highly
valuable jewels. His affectionate father took particular care of him, and he dwelled in that house just as
the demigods live in their palaces in the higher planetary systems.
61. The bedding in the palace was as white as the foam of milk and was very soft. The bedsteads were
made of ivory with embellishments of gold, and the chairs, benches and other sitting places and
furniture were made of gold.
62. The palace of the King was surrounded by walls made of marble with many engravings made of
valuable jewels like sapphires, which depicted beautiful women with shining jewel lamps in their hands.
63. The King's residence was surrounded by gardens wherein there were varieties of trees brought from
the heavenly planets. In those trees there were pairs of sweetly singing birds and almost-mad
bumblebees, which made a very relishable buzzing sound.
64. There were emerald staircases which led to lakes full of variously colored lotus flowers and lilies,
and swans, karandavas, cakravakas, cranes and similar other valuable birds were visible in those lakes.
65. The saintly King Uttanapada, hearing of the glorious deeds of Dhruva Maharaja and personally
seeing also how influential and great he was, felt very satisfied, for Dhruva's activities were wonderful to
the supreme degree.
66. When, after concentration, King Uttanapada saw that Dhruva Maharaja was suitably mature to take
charge of the kingdom and that his ministers were agreeable and the citizens were also very fond of
him, he enthroned Dhruva as emperor of this planet.
67. After considering his advanced age and deliberating on the welfare of his spiritual self, King
Uttanapada detached himself from worldly affairs and entered the forest.
Chapter Ten Dhruva Maharaja's Fight With the Yaksas
1. The great sage Maitreya said: My dear Vidura, thereafter Dhruva Maharaja married the daughter of
Prajapati Sisumara, whose name was Bhrami, and two sons named Kalpa and Vatsara were born of
her.
2. The greatly powerful Dhruva Maharaja had another wife, named Ila, who was the daughter of the
demigod Vayu. By her he begot a son named Utkala and a very beautiful daughter.
3. Dhruva Maharaja's younger brother Uttama, who was still unmarried, once went on a hunting
excursion and was killed by a powerful Yaksa in the Himalaya Mountains. Along with him, his mother,
Suruci, also followed the path of her son [she died].
4. When Dhruva Maharaja heard of the killing of his brother Uttama by the Yaksas in the Himalaya
Mountains, being overwhelmed with lamentation and anger, he got on his chariot and went out for
victory over the city of the Yaksas, Alakapuri.
5. Dhruva Maharaja went to the northern direction of the Himalayan range. In a valley he saw a city full
of ghostly persons who were followers of Lord Siva.
6. Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, as soon as Dhruva Maharaja reached Alakapuri, he immediately
blew his conchshell, and the sound reverberated throughout the entire sky and in every direction. The
wives of the Yaksas became very much frightened. From their eyes it was apparent that they were full
of anxiety.
7. O hero Vidura, the greatly powerful heroes of the Yaksas, unable to tolerate the resounding vibration
of the conchshell of Dhruva Maharaja, came forth from their city with weapons and attacked Dhruva.
8. Dhruva Maharaja, who was a great charioteer and certainly a great bowman also, immediately began
to kill them by simultaneously discharging arrows three at a time.
9.When the heroes of the Yaksas saw that all their heads were being thus threatened by Dhruva
Maharaja, they could very easily understand their awkward position, and they concluded that they
would certainly be defeated. But, as heroes, they lauded the action of Dhruva.
10. Just like serpents, who cannot tolerate being trampled upon by anyone's feet, the Yaksas, being
intolerant of the wonderful prowess of Dhruva Maharaja, threw twice as many arrows--six from each of
their soldiers--and thus they very valiantly exhibited their prowess.
11-12. The Yaksa soldiers were 130,000 strong, all greatly angry and all desiring to defeat the
wonderful activities of Dhruva Maharaja. With full strength they showered upon Maharaja Dhruva, along
with his chariot and charioteer, various types of feathered arrows, parighas [iron bludgeons], nistrimsas
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 157
[swords], prasasulas [tridents], parasvadhas [lances], saktis [pikes], rstis [spears] and bhusundi
weapons.
13. Dhruva Maharaja was completely covered by an incessant shower of weapons, just as a mountain
is covered by incessant rainfall.
14. All the Siddhas from the higher planetary systems were observing the fight from the sky, and when
they saw that Dhruva Maharaja had been covered by the incessant arrows of the enemy, they roared
tumultuously, "The grandson of Manu, Dhruva, is now lost!" They cried that Dhruva Maharaja was just
like the sun and that now he had set within the ocean of the Yaksas.
15. The Yaksas, being temporarily victorious, exclaimed that they had conquered Dhruva Maharaja. But
in the meantime Dhruva's chariot suddenly appeared, just as the sun suddenly appears from within
foggy mist.
16. Dhruva Maharaja's bow and arrows twanged and hissed, causing lamentation in the hearts of his
enemies. He began to shoot incessant arrows, shattering all their different weapons, just as the blasting
wind scatters the assembled clouds in the sky.
17. The sharp arrows released from the bow of Dhruva Maharaja pierced the shields and bodies of the
enemy, like the thunderbolts released by the King of heaven, which dismantle the bodies of the
mountains.
18-19. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, the heads of those who were cut to pieces
by the arrows of Dhruva Maharaja were decorated very beautifully with earrings and turbans. The legs
of their bodies were as beautiful as golden palm trees, their arms were decorated with golden bracelets
and armlets, and on their heads there were very valuable helmets bedecked with gold. All these
ornaments lying on that battlefield were very attractive and could bewilder the mind of a hero.
20. The remaining Yaksas who somehow or other were not killed had their limbs cut to pieces by the
arrows of the great warrior Dhruva Maharaja. Thus they began to flee, just as elephants flee when
defeated by a lion.
21. Dhruva Maharaja, the best of human beings, observed that in that great battlefield not one of the
opposing soldiers was left standing with proper weapons. He then desired to see the city of Alakapuri,
but he thought to himself, "No one knows the plans of the mystic Yaksas."
22. In the meantime, while Dhruva Maharaja, doubtful of his mystic enemies, was talking with his
charioteer, they heard a tremendous sound, as if the whole ocean were there, and they found that from
the sky a great dust storm was coming over them from all directions.
23. Within a moment the whole sky was overcast with dense clouds, and severe thundering was heard.
There was glittering electric lightning and severe rainfall.
24. My dear faultless Vidura, in that rainfall there was blood, mucus, pus, stool, urine and marrow falling
heavily before Dhruva Maharaja, and there were trunks of bodies falling from the sky.
25. Next, a great mountain was visible in the sky, and from all directions hailstones fell, along with
lances, clubs, swords, iron bludgeons and great pieces of stone.
26. Dhruva Maharaja also saw many big serpents with angry eyes, vomiting forth fire and coming to
devour him, along with groups of mad elephants, lions and tigers.
27. Then, as if it were the time of the dissolution of the whole world, the fierce sea with foaming waves
and great roaring sounds came forward before him.
28. The demon Yaksas are by nature very heinous, and by their demoniac power of illusion they can
create many strange phenomena to frighten one who is less intelligent.
29. When the great sages heard that Dhruva Maharaja was overpowered by the illusory mystic tricks of
the demons, they immediately assembled to offer him auspicious encouragement.
30. All the sages said: Dear Dhruva, O son of King Uttanapada, may the Supreme Personality of
Godhead known as Sarngadhanva, who relieves the distresses of His devotees, kill all your threatening
enemies. The holy name of the Lord is as powerful as the Lord Himself. Therefore, simply by chanting
and hearing the holy name of the Lord, many men can be fully protected from fierce death without
difficulty. Thus a devotee is saved.
Chapter Eleven Svayambuva Manu Advises Dhruva Maharaja to Stop Fighting
1. Sri Maitreya said: My dear Vidura, when Dhruva Maharaja heard the encouraging words of the great
sages, he performed the acamana by touching water and then took up his arrow made by Lord
Narayana and fixed it upon his bow.
2. As soon as Dhruva Maharaja joined the narayanastra arrow to his bow, the illusion created by the
Yaksas was immediately vanquished, just as all material pains and pleasures are vanquished when one
becomes fully cognizant of the self.
3. Even as Dhruva Maharaja fixed the weapon made by Narayana Rsi onto his bow, arrows with golden
shafts and feathers like the wings of a swan flew out from it. They entered the enemy soldiers with a
great hissing sound, just as peacocks enter a forest with tumultuous crowing.
158 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
4. Those sharp arrows dismayed the enemy soldiers, who became almost unconscious, but various
Yaksas on the battlefield, in a rage against Dhruva Maharaja, somehow or other collected their
weapons and attacked. Just as serpents agitated by Garuda rush towards Garuda with upraised hoods,
all the Yaksa soldiers prepared to overcome Dhruva Maharaja with their upraised weapons.
5. When Dhruva Maharaja saw the Yaksas coming forward, he immediately took his arrows and cut the
enemies to pieces. Separating their arms, legs, heads and bellies from their bodies, he delivered the
Yaksas to the planetary system which is situated above the sun globe and which is attainable only by
first-class brahmacaris, who have never discharged their semen.
6. When Svayambhuva Manu saw that his grandson Dhruva Maharaja was killing so many of the
Yaksas who were not actually offenders, out of his great compassion he approached Dhruva with great
sages to give him good instruction.
7. Lord Manu said: My dear son, please stop. It is not good to become unnecessarily angry--it is the
path to hellish life. Now you are going beyond the limit by killing Yaksas who are actually not offenders.
8. My dear son, the killing of the sinless Yaksas which you have undertaken is not at all approved by
authorities, and it does not befit our family, which is supposed to know the laws of religion and irreligion.
9. My dear son, it has been proved that you are very much affectionate towards your brother and are
greatly aggrieved at his being killed by the Yaksas, but just consider--for one Yaksa's offense, you have
killed many others, who are innocent.
10. One should not accept the body as the self and thus, like the animals, kill the bodies of others. This
is especially forbidden by saintly persons, who follow the path of devotional service to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
11. It is very difficult to achieve the spiritual abode of Hari, in the Vaikuntha planets, but you are so
fortunate that you are already destined to go to that abode by worshiping Him as the supreme abode of
all living entities.
12. Because you are a pure devotee of the Lord, the Lord is always thinking of you, and you are also
recognized by all His confidential devotees. Your life is meant for exemplary behavior. I am therefore
surprised--why have you undertaken such an abominable task?
13. The Lord is very satisfied with His devotee when the devotee greets other people with tolerance,
mercy, friendship and equality.
14. One who actually satisfies the Supreme Personality of Godhead during one's lifetime becomes
liberated from the gross and subtle material conditions. Thus being freed from all material modes of
nature, he achieves unlimited spiritual bliss.
15. The creation of the material world begins with the five elements, and thus everything, including the
body of a man or a woman, is created of these elements. By the sexual life of man and woman, the
number of men and women in this material world is further increased.
16. Mahu continued: My dear King Dhruva, it is simply by the illusory, material energy of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead and by the interaction of the three modes of material nature that creation,
maintenance and annihilation take place.
17. My dear Dhruva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead is uncontaminated by the material modes of
nature. He is the remote cause of the creation of this material cosmic manifestation. When He gives the
impetus, many other causes and effects are produced, and thus the whole universe moves, just as iron
moves by the integrated force of a magnet.
18. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, by His inconceivable supreme energy, time, causes the
interaction of the three modes of material nature, and thus varieties of energy become manifest. It
appears that He is acting, but He is not the actor. He is killing, but He is not the killer. Thus it is
understood that only by His inconceivable power is everything happening.
19. My dear Dhruva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead is ever existing, but in the form of time, He is
the killer of everything. He has no beginning, although He is the beginning of everything, nor is He ever
exhaustible, although everything is exhausted in due course of time. The living entities are created
through the agency of the father and killed through the agency of death, but He is perpetually free of
birth and death.
20. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, in His feature of eternal time, is present in the material world
and is neutral towards everyone. No one is His ally, and no one is His enemy. Within the jurisdiction of
the time element, everyone enjoys or suffers the result of his own karma, or fruitive activities. As, when
the wind blows, small particles of dust fly in the air, so, according to one's particular karma, one suffers
or enjoys material life.
21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, is all-powerful, and He awards the results of one's
fruitive activities. Thus, although one living entity's duration of life is very small whereas that of another
is very great, He is always in His transcendental position, and there is no question of lessening or
increasing His duration of life.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 159
22. The differentiation among varieties of life and their suffering and enjoyment is explained by some to
be the result of karma. Others say it is due to nature, others due to time, others due to fate, and still
others say that it is due to desire.
23. The Absolute Truth, Transcendence, is never subject to the understanding of imperfect sensory
endeavor, nor is He subject to direct experience. He is the master of varieties of energies, like the full
material energy, and no one can understand His plans or actions; therefore it should be concluded that
although He is the original cause of all causes, no one can know Him by mental speculation.
24. My dear son, those Yaksas, who are descendants of Kuvera, are not actually the killers of your
brother; the birth and death of every living entity are caused by the Supreme, who is certainly the cause
of all causes.
25. The Supreme Personality of Godhead creates this material world, maintains it, and annihilates it in
due course of time, but because He is transcendental to such activities, He is never affected by ego in
such action or by the modes of material nature.
26. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the Supersoul of all living entities. He is the controller and
maintainer of everyone; through the agency of His external energy, He creates, maintains and
annihilates everyone.
27. My dear boy Dhruva, please surrender unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the
ultimate goal of the progress of the world. Everyone, including the demigods headed by Lord Brahma, is
working under His control, just as a bull, prompted by a rope in its nose, is controlled by its owner.
28. My dear Dhruva, at the age of only five years you were very grievously afflicted by the words of your
mother's co-wife, and you very boldly gave up the protection of your mother and went to the forest to
engage in the yogic process for realization of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. As a result of this
you have already achieved the topmost position in all the three worlds.
29. My dear Dhruva, please, therefore, turn your attention to the Supreme Person, who is the infallible
Brahman. Face the Supreme Personality of Godhead in your original position, and thus, by self-
realization, you will find this material differentiation to be merely flickering.
30. Thus regaining your natural position and rendering service unto the Supreme Lord, who is the all-
powerful reservoir of all pleasure and who lives in all living entities as the Supersoul, you will very soon
forget the illusory understanding of "I" and "my."
31. My dear King, just consider what I have said to you, which will act as medicinal treatment upon
disease. Control your anger, for anger is the foremost enemy on the path of spiritual realization. I wish
all good fortune for you. Please follow my instructions.
32. A person who desires liberation from this material world should not fall under the control of anger
because when bewildered by anger one becomes a source of dread for all others.
33. My dear Dhruva, you thought that the Yaksas killed your brother, and therefore you have killed great
numbers of them. But by this action you have agitated the mind of Lord Siva's brother Kuvera, who is
the treasurer of the demigods. Please note that your actions have been very disrespectful to Kuvera
and Lord Siva.
34. For this reason, my son, you should immediately pacify Kuvera with gentle words and prayers, and
thus his wrath may not affect our family.
35. Thus Svayambhuva Manu, after giving instruction to Dhruva Maharaja, his grandson, received
respectful obeisances from him. Then Lord Manu and the great sages went back to their respective
homes.
Chapter Twelve Dhruva Maharaja Goes Back to Godhead
1. The great sage Maitreya said: My dear Vidura, Dhruva Maharaja's anger subsided, and he
completely ceased killing Yaksas. When Kuvera, the most blessed master of the treasury, learned this
news, he appeared before Dhruva. While being worshiped by Yaksas, Kinnaras and Caranas, he spoke
to Dhruva Maharaja, who stood before him with folded hands.
2. The master of the treasury, Kuvera, said: O sinless son of a ksatriya, I am very glad to know that
under the instruction of your grandfather you have given up your enmity, although it is very difficult to
avoid. I am very pleased with you.
3. Actually, you have not killed the Yaksas, nor have they killed your brother, for the ultimate cause of
generation and annihilation is the eternal time feature of the Supreme Lord.
4. Misidentification of oneself and others as "I" and "you" on the basis of the bodily concept of life is a
product of ignorance. This bodily concept is the cause of repeated birth and death, and it makes us go
on continuously in material existence.
5. My dear Dhruva, come forward. May the Lord always grace you with good fortune. The Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who is beyond our sensory perception, is the Supersoul of all living entities,
and thus all entities are one, without distinction. Begin, therefore, to render service unto the
transcendental form of the Lord, who is the ultimate shelter of all living entities.
160 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
6. Engage yourself fully, therefore, in the devotional service of the Lord, for only He can deliver us from
this entanglement of materialistic existence. Although the Lord is attached to His material potency, He is
aloof from her activities. Everything in this material world is happening by the inconceivable potency of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
7. My dear Dhruva Maharaja, son of Maharaja Uttanapada, we have heard that you are constantly
engaged in transcendental loving service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is known for His
lotus navel. You are therefore worthy to take all benedictions from us. Please, therefore, ask without
hesitation whatever benediction you want from me.
8. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, when thus asked to accept a benediction from
Kuvera the Yaksaraja [King of the Yaksas], Dhruva Maharaja, that most elevated pure devotee, who
was an intelligent and thoughtful king, begged that he might have unflinching faith in and remembrance
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, for thus a person can cross over the ocean of nescience very
easily, although it is very difficult for others to cross.
9. The son of Idavida, Lord Kuvera, was very pleased, and happily he gave Dhruva Maharaja the
benediction he wanted. Thereafter he disappeared from Dhruva's presence, and Dhruva Maharaja
returned to his capital city.
10. As long as he remained at home, Dhruva Maharaja performed many great ceremonial sacrifices in
order to please the enjoyer of all sacrifices, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Prescribed
ceremonial sacrifices are especially meant to please Lord Visnu, who is the objective of all such
sacrifices and who awards the resultant benedictions.
11. Dhruva Maharaja rendered devotional service unto the Supreme, the reservoir of everything, with
unrelenting force. While carrying out his devotional service to the Lord, he could see that everything is
situated in Him only and that He is situated in all living entities. The Lord is called Acyuta because He
never fails in His prime duty, to give protection to His devotees.
12. Dhruva Maharaja was endowed with all godly qualities; he was very respectful to the devotees of
the Supreme Lord and very kind to the poor and innocent, and he protected religious principles. With all
these qualifications, he was considered to be the direct father of all the citizens.
13. Dhruva Maharaja ruled over this planet for thirty-six thousand years; he diminished the reactions of
pious activities by enjoyment, and by practicing austerities he diminished inauspicious reactions.
14. The self-controlled great soul Dhruva Maharaja thus passed many, many years favorably executing
three kinds of worldly activities, namely religiosity, economic development and satisfaction of all
material desires. Thereafter he handed over the charge of the royal throne to his son.
15. Srila Dhruva Maharaja realized that this cosmic manifestation bewilders living entities like a dream
or phantasmagoria because it is a creation of the illusory, external energy of the Supreme Lord.
16. Thus Dhruva Maharaja, at the end, left his kingdom, which extended all over the earth and was
bounded by the great oceans. He considered his body, his wives, his children, his friends, his army, his
rich treasury, his very comfortable palaces and his many enjoyable pleasure-grounds to be creations of
the illusory energy. Thus in due course of time he retired to the forest in the Himalayas known as
Badarikasrama.
17. In Badarikasrama Dhruva Maharaja's senses became completely purified because he bathed
regularly in the crystal-clear purified water. He fixed his sitting position and by yogic practice controlled
the breathing process and the air of life; in this way his senses were completely withdrawn. Then he
concentrated his mind on the arca-vigraha form of the Lord, which is the exact replica of the Lord and,
thus meditating upon Him, entered into complete trance.
18. Because of his transcendental bliss, incessant tears flowed from his eyes, his heart melted, and
there was shivering and standing of the hairs all over his body. Thus transformed, in a trance of
devotional service, Dhruva Maharaja completely forgot his bodily existence, and thus he immediately
became liberated from material bondage.
19. As soon as the symptoms of his liberation were manifest, he saw a very beautiful airplane coming
down from the sky, as if the brilliant full moon were coming down, illuminating all the ten directions.
20. Dhruva Maharaja saw two very beautiful associates of Lord Visnu in the plane. They had four hands
and a blackish bodily luster, they were very youthful, and their eyes were just like reddish lotus flowers.
They held clubs in their hands, and they were dressed in very attractive garments with helmets and
were decorated with necklaces, bracelets and earrings.
21. Dhruva Maharaja, seeing that these uncommon personalities were direct servants of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, immediately stood up. But, being puzzled, in hastiness he forgot how to
receive them in the proper way. Therefore he simply offered obeisances with folded hands and chanted
and glorified the holy names of the Lord.
22. Dhruva Maharaja was always absorbed in thinking of the lotus feet of Lord Krsna. His heart was full
with Krsna. When the two confidential servants of the Supreme Lord, who were named Nanda and
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 161
Sunanda, approached him, smiling happily, Dhruva stood with folded hands, bowing humbly. They then
addressed him as follows.
23. Nanda and Sunanda, the two confidential associates of Lord Visnu, said: Dear King, let there be all
good fortune unto you. Please attentively hear what we shall say. When you were only five years old,
you underwent severe austerities, and you thereby greatly satisfied the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
24. We are representatives of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the creator of the whole universe,
who carries in His hand the bow named Sarnga. We have been specifically deputed to take you to the
spiritual world.
25. To achieve Visnuloka is very difficult, but by your austerity you have conquered. Even the great rsis
and demigods cannot achieve this position. Simply to see the supreme abode [the Visnu planet], the
sun and moon and all the other planets, stars, lunar mansions and solar systems are circumambulating
it. Now please come; you are welcome to go there.
26. Dear King Dhruva, neither your forefathers nor anyone else before you ever achieved such a
transcendental planet. The planet known as Visnuloka, where Lord Visnu personally resides, is the
highest of all. It is worshipable by the inhabitants of all other planets within the universe. Please come
with us and live there eternally.
27. O immortal one, this unique airplane has been sent by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is
worshiped by selected prayers and who is the chief of all living entities. You are quite worthy to board
such a plane.
28. The great sage Maitreya continued: Maharaja Dhruva was very dear to the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. When he heard the sweet speeches of the Lord's chief associates in the Vaikuntha planet, he
immediately took his sacred bath, dressed himself with suitable ornaments, and performed his daily
spiritual duties. Thereafter he offered his respectful obeisances to the great sages present there and
accepted their blessings.
29. Before getting aboard, Dhruva Maharaja worshiped the airplane, circumambulated it, and also
offered obeisances to the associates of Visnu. In the meantime he became as brilliant and illuminating
as molten gold. He was thus completely prepared to board the transcendental plane.
30. When Dhruva Maharaja was attempting to get on the transcendental plane, he saw death
personified approach him. Not caring for death, however, he took advantage of the opportunity to put
his feet on the head of death, and thus he got up on the airplane, which was as big as a house.
31. At that time drums and kettledrums resounded from the sky, the chief Gandharvas began to sing
and other demigods showered flowers like torrents of rain upon Dhruva Maharaja.
32. Dhruva was seated in the transcendental airplane, which was just about to start, when he
remembered his poor mother, Suniti. He thought to himself, "How shall I go alone to the Vaikuntha
planet and leave behind my poor mother?"
33. The great associates of Vaikunthaloka, Nanda and Sunanda, could understand the mind of Dhruva
Maharaja, and thus they showed him that his mother, Suniti, was going forward in another plane.
34. While Dhruva Maharaja was passing through space, he gradually saw all the planets of the solar
system, and on the path he saw all the demigods in their airplanes showering flowers upon him like rain.
35. Dhruva Maharaja thus surpassed the seven planetary systems of the great sages who are known
as saptarsi. Beyond that region, he achieved the transcendental situation of permanent life in the planet
where Lord Visnu lives.
36. The self-effulgent Vaikuntha planets, by whose illumination alone all the illuminating planets within
this material world give off reflected light, cannot be reached by those who are not merciful to other
living entities. Only persons who constantly engage in welfare activities for other living entities can reach
the Vaikuntha planets.
37. Persons who are peaceful, equipoised, cleansed and purified, and who know the art of pleasing all
other living entities, keep friendship only with devotees of the Lord; they alone can very easily achieve
the perfection of going back home, back to Godhead.
38. In this way, the fully Krsna conscious Dhruva Maharaja, the exalted son of Maharaja Uttanapada,
attained the summit of the three statuses of planetary systems.
39. Saint Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, descendant of Kuru, as a herd of bulls circumambulates
a central pole on their right side, all the luminaries within the universal sky unceasingly circumambulate
the abode of Dhruva Maharaja with great force and speed.
40. After observing the glories of Dhruva Maharaja, the great sage Narada, playing his vina, went to the
sacrificial arena of the Pracetas and very happily chanted the following three verses.
41. The great sage Narada said: Simply by the influence of his spiritual advancement and powerful
austerity, Dhruva Maharaja, the son of Suniti, who was devoted to her husband, acquired an exalted
162 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
position not possible to attain even for the so-called Vedantists or strict followers of the Vedic principles,
not to speak of ordinary human beings.
42. The great sage Narada continued: Just see how Dhruva Maharaja, aggrieved at the harsh words of
his stepmother, went to the forest at the age of only five years and under my direction underwent
austerity. Although the Supreme Personality of Godhead is unconquerable, Dhruva Maharaja defeated
Him with the specific qualifications possessed by the Lord's devotees.
43. Dhruva Maharaja attained an exalted position at the age of only five or six years, after undergoing
austerity for six months. Alas, a great ksatriya cannot achieve such a position even after undergoing
austerities for many, many years.
44. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, whatever you have asked from me about the
great reputation and character of Dhruva Maharaja I have explained to you in all detail. Great saintly
persons and devotees very much like to hear about Dhruva Maharaja.
45. By hearing the narration of Dhruva Maharaja one can fulfill desires for wealth, reputation and
increased duration of life. It is so auspicious that one can even go to a heavenly planet or attain
Dhruvaloka, which was achieved by Dhruva Maharaja, just by hearing about him. The demigods also
become pleased because this narration is so glorious, and it is so powerful that it can counteract all the
results of one's sinful actions.
46. Anyone who hears the narration of Dhruva Maharaja, and who repeatedly tries with faith and
devotion to understand his pure character, attains the pure devotional platform and executes pure
devotional service. By such activities one can diminish the threefold miserable conditions of material
life.
47. Anyone who hears this narration of Dhruva Maharaja acquires exalted qualities like him. For anyone
who desires greatness, prowess or influence, here is the process by which to acquire them, and for
thoughtful men who want adoration, here is the proper means.
48. The great sage Maitreya recommended: One should chant of the character and activities of Dhruva
Maharaja both in the morning and in the evening, with great attention and care, in a society of
brahmanas or other twice-born persons.
49-50. Persons who have completely taken shelter of the lotus feet of the Lord should recite this
narration of Dhruva Maharaja without taking remuneration. Specifically, recitation is recommended on
the full moon or dark moon day, on the day after Ekadasi, on the appearance of the Sravana star, at the
end of a particular tithi, or the occasion of Vyatipata, at the end of the month, or on Sunday. Such
recitation should of course be performed before a favorable audience. When recitation is performed this
way, without professional motive, the reciter and audience become perfect.
51. The narration of Dhruva Maharaja is sublime knowledge for the attainment of immortality. Persons
unaware of the Absolute Truth can be led to the path of truth. Those who out of transcendental
kindness take on the responsibility of becoming master-protectors of the poor living entities
automatically gain the interest and blessings of the demigods.
52. The transcendental activities of Dhruva Maharaja are well known all over the world, and they are
very pure. In childhood Dhruva Maharaja rejected all kinds of toys and playthings, left the protection of
his mother and seriously took shelter of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu. My dear Vidura, I
therefore conclude this narration, for I have described to you all its details.
Chapter Thirteen Description of the Descendants of Dhruva Maharaja
1. Suta Gosvami, continuing to speak to all the rsis, headed by Saunaka, said: After hearing Maitreya
Rsi describe Dhruva Maharaja's ascent to Lord Visnu's abode, Vidura became very much enlightened
in devotional emotion, and he inquired from Maitreya as follows.
2. Vidura inquired from Maitreya: O greatly advanced devotee, who were the Pracetas? To which family
did they belong? Whose sons were they, and where did they perform the great sacrifices?
3. Vidura continued: I know that the great sage Narada is the greatest of all devotees. He has compiled
the pancaratrika procedure of devotional service and has directly met the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
4. While all the Pracetas were executing religious rituals and sacrificial ceremonies and thus worshiping
the Supreme Personality of Godhead for His satisfaction, the great sage Narada described the
transcendental qualities of Dhruva Maharaja.
5. My dear brahmana, how did Narada Muni glorify the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and what
pastimes were described in that meeting? I am very eager to hear of them. Kindly explain fully about
that glorification of the Lord.
6. The great sage Maitreya replied: My dear Vidura, when Maharaja Dhruva departed for the forest, his
son, Utkala, did not desire to accept the opulent throne of his father, which was meant for the ruler of all
the lands of this planet.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 163
7. From his very birth, Utkala was fully satisfied and unattached to the world. He was equipoised, for he
could see everything resting in the Supersoul and the Supersoul present in everyone's heart.
8-9. By expansion of his knowledge of the Supreme Brahman, he had already attained liberation from
the bondage of the body. This liberation is known as nirvana. He was situated in transcendental bliss,
and he continued always in that blissful existence, which expanded more and more. This was possible
for him by continual practice of bhakti-yoga, which is compared to fire because it burns away all dirty,
material things. He was always situated in his constitutional position of self-realization, and he could not
see anything else but the Supreme Lord and himself engaged in discharging devotional service.
10. Utkala appeared to the less intelligent persons on the road to be foolish, blind, dumb, deaf and mad,
although actually he was not so. He remained like fire covered with ashes, without blazing flames.
11. For this reason the ministers and all the elderly members of the family thought Utkala to be without
intelligence and, in fact, mad. Thus his younger brother, named Vatsara, the son of Bhrami, was
elevated to the royal throne, and he became king of the world.
12. King Vatsara had a very dear wife whose name was Svarvithi, and she gave birth to six sons,
named Pusparna, Tigmaketu, Isa, Urja, Vasu and Jaya.
13. Pusparna had two wives, named Prabha and Dosa. Prabha had three sons, named Pratar,
Madhyandinam and Sayam.
14. Dosa had three sons--Pradosa, Nisitha and Vyusta. Vyusta's wife was named Puskarini, and she
gave birth to a very powerful son named Sarvateja.
15-16. Sarvateja's wife, Akuti, gave birth to a son named Caksusa, who became the sixth Manu at the
end of the Manu millennium. Nadvala, the wife of Caksusa Manu, gave birth to the following faultless
sons: Puru, Kutsa, Trita, Dyumna, Satyavan, Rta, Vrata, Agnistoma, Atiratra, Pradyumna, Sibi and
Ulmuka.
17. Of the twelve sons, Ulmuka begot six sons in his wife Puskarini. They were all very good sons, and
their names were Anga, Sumana, Khyati, Kratu, Angira and Gaya.
18. The wife of Anga, Sunitha, gave birth to a son named Vena, who was very crooked. The saintly
King Anga was very disappointed with Vena's bad character, and he left home and kingdom and went
out to the forest.
19-20. My dear Vidura, when great sages curse, their words are as invincible as a thunderbolt. Thus
when they cursed King Vena out of anger, he died. After his death, since there was no king, all the
rogues and thieves flourished, the kingdom became unregulated, and all the citizens suffered greatly.
On seeing this, the great sages took the right hand of Vena as a churning rod, and as a result of their
churning, Lord Visnu in His partial representation made His advent as King Prthu, the original emperor
of the world.
21. Vidura inquired from the sage Maitreya: My dear brahmana, King Anga was very gentle. He had
high character and was a saintly personality and lover of brahminical culture. Mow is it that such a great
soul got a bad son like Vena, because of whom he became indifferent to his kingdom and left it?
22. Vidura also inquired: How is it that the great sages, who were completely conversant with religious
principles, desired to curse King Vena, who himself carried the rod of punishment, and thus awarded
him the greatest punishment [brahma-sapa]?
23. It is the duty of all citizens in a state never to insult the king, even though he sometimes appears to
have done something very sinful. Because of his prowess, the king is always more influential than all
other ruling chiefs.
24. Vidura requested Maitreya: My dear brahmana, you are well conversant with all subjects, both past
and future. Therefore I wish to hear from you all the activities of King Vena. I am your faithful devotee,
so please explain this.
25. Sri Maitreya replied: My dear Vidura, once the great King Anga arranged to perform the great
sacrifice known as asvamedha. All the expert brahmanas present knew how to invite the demigods, but
in spite of their efforts, no demigods participated or appeared in that sacrifice.
26. The priests engaged in the sacrifice then informed King Anga: O King, we are properly offering the
clarified butter in the sacrifice, but despite all our efforts the demigods do not accept it.
27. O King, we know that the paraphernalia to perform the sacrifice is well collected by you with great
faith and care and is not polluted. Our chanting of the Vedic hymns is also not deficient in any way, for
all the brahmanas and priests present here are expert and are executing the performances properly.
28. Dear King, we do not find any reason that the demigods should feel insulted or neglected in any
way, but still the demigods who are witnesses for the sacrifice do not accept their shares. We do not
know why this is so.
29. Maitreya explained that King Anga, after hearing the statements of the priests, was greatly
aggrieved. At that time he took permission from the priests to break his silence and inquired from all the
priests who were present in the sacrificial arena.
164 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
30. King Anga addressed the priestly order: My dear priests, kindly tell me what offense I have
committed. Although invited, the demigods are neither taking part in the sacrifice nor accepting their
shares.
31. The head priests said: O King, in this life we do not find any sinful activity, even within your mind, so
you are not in the least offensive. But we can see that in your previous life you performed sinful
activities due to which, in spite of your having all qualifications, you have no son.
32. O King, we wish all good fortune for you. You have no son, but if you pray at once to the Supreme
Lord and ask for a son, and if you execute the sacrifice for that purpose, the enjoyer of the sacrifice, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, will fulfill your desire.
33. When Hari, the supreme enjoyer of all sacrifices, is invited to fulfill your desire for a son, all the
demigods will come with Him and take their shares in the sacrifice.
34. The performer of the sacrifices [under karma-kanda activities] achieves the fulfillment of the desire
for which he worships the Lord.
35. Thus for the sake of a son for King Anga, they decided to offer oblations to Lord Visnu, who is
situated in the hearts of all living entities.
36. As soon as the oblation was offered in the fire, a person appeared from the fire altar wearing a
golden garland and a white dress. He was carrying a golden pot filled with rice boiled in milk.
37. The King was very liberal, and after taking permission from the priests, he took the preparation in
his joined palms, and after smelling it he offered a portion to his wife.
38. Although the Queen had no son, after eating that food, which had the power to produce a male
child, she became pregnant by her husband, and in due course of time she gave birth to a son.
39. That boy was born partially in the dynasty of irreligion. His grandfather was death personified, and
the boy grew up as his follower; he became a greatly irreligious person.
40. After fixing his bow and arrow, the cruel boy used to go to the forest and unnecessarily kill innocent
deer, and as soon as he came all the people would cry, "Here comes cruel Vena! Here comes cruel
Vena!"
41. The boy was so cruel that while playing with young boys of his age he would kill them very
mercilessly, as if they were animals meant for slaughter.
42. After seeing the cruel and merciless behavior of his son, Vena, King Anga punished him in different
ways to reform him, but was unable to bring him to the path of gentleness. He thus became greatly
aggrieved.
43. The King thought to himself: Persons who have no son are certainly fortunate. They must have
worshiped the Lord in their previous lives so that they would not have to suffer the unbearable
unhappiness caused by a bad son.
44. A sinful son causes a person's reputation to vanish. His irreligious activities at home cause irreligion
and quarrel among everyone, and this creates only endless anxiety.
45. Who, if he is considerate and intelligent, would desire such a worthless son? Such a son is nothing
but a bond of illusion for the living entity, and he makes one's home miserable.
46. Then the King thought: A bad son is better than a good son because a good son creates an
attachment for home, whereas a bad son does not. A bad son creates a hellish home from which an
intelligent man naturally becomes very easily detached.
47. Thinking like that, King Anga could not sleep at night. He became completely indifferent to
household life. Once, therefore, in the dead of night, he got up from bed and left Vena's mother [his
wife], who was sleeping deeply. He gave up all attraction for his greatly opulent kingdom, and, unseen
by anyone, he very silently gave up his home and opulence and proceeded towards the forest.
48. When it was understood that the King had indifferently left home, all the citizens, priests, ministers,
friends, and people in general were greatly aggrieved. They began to search for him all over the world,
just as a less experienced mystic searches out the Supersoul within himself.
49. When the citizens could not find any trace of the King after searching for him everywhere, they were
very disappointed, and they returned to the city, where all the great sages of the country assembled
because of the King's absence. With tears in their eyes the citizens offered respectful obeisances and
informed the sages in full detail that they were unable to find the King anywhere.
Chapter Fourteen The Story of King Vena
1. The great sage Maitreya continued: O great hero Vidura, the great sages, headed by Bhrgu, were
always thinking of the welfare of the people in general. When they saw that in the absence of King Anga
there was no one to protect the interests of the people, they understood that without a ruler the people
would become independent and nonregulated.
2. The great sages then called for the Queen Mother, Sunitha, and with her permission they installed
Vena on the throne as master of the world. All the ministers, however, disagreed with this.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 165
3. It was already known that Vena was very severe and cruel; therefore, as soon as all the thieves and
rogues in the state heard of his ascendance to the royal throne, they became very much afraid of him.
Indeed, they hid themselves here and there as rats hide themselves from snakes.
4. When the King ascended to the throne, he became all-powerful with eight kinds of opulences.
Consequently he became too proud. By virtue of his false prestige, he considered himself to be greater
than anyone. Thus he began to insult great personalities.
5. When he became overly blind due to his opulences, King Vena mounted a chariot and, like an
uncontrolled elephant, began to travel through the kingdom, causing the sky and earth to tremble
wherever he went.
6. All the twice-born [brahmanas] were forbidden henceforward to perform any sacrifice, and they were
also forbidden to give charity or offer clarified butter. Thus King Vena sounded kettledrums throughout
the countryside. In other words, he stopped all kinds of religious rituals.
7. Therefore all the great sages assembled together and, after observing cruel Vena's atrocities,
concluded that a great danger and catastrophe was approaching the people of the world. Thus out of
compassion they began to talk amongst themselves, for they themselves were the performers of the
sacrifices.
8. When the great sages consulted one another, they saw that the people were in a dangerous position
from both directions. When a fire blazes on both ends of a log, the ants in the middle are in a very
dangerous situation. Similarly, at that time the people in general were in a dangerous position due to an
irresponsible king on one side and thieves and rogues on the other.
9. Thinking to save the state from irregularity, the sages began to consider that it was due to a political
crisis that they made Vena king although he was not qualified. But alas, now the people were being
disturbed by the king himself. Under such circumstances, how could the people be happy?
10. The sages began to think within themselves: Because he was born from the womb of Sunitha, King
Vena is by nature very mischievous. Supporting this mischievous king is exactly like maintaining a
snake with milk. Now he has become a source of all difficulties.
11. We appointed this Vena king of the state in order to give protection to the citizens, but now he has
become the enemy of the citizens. Despite all these discrepancies, we should at once try to pacify him.
By doing so, we may not be touched by the sinful results caused by him.
12. The saintly sages continued thinking: Of course we are completely aware of his mischievous nature.
Yet nevertheless we enthroned Vena. If we cannot persuade King Vena to accept our advice, he will be
condemned by the public, and we will join them. Thus by our prowess we shall burn him to ashes.
13. The great sages, having thus decided, approached King Vena. Concealing their real anger, they
pacified him with sweet words and then spoke as follows.
14. The great sages said: Dear King, we have come to give you good advice. Kindly hear us with great
attention. By doing so, your duration of life and your opulence, strength and reputation will increase.
15. Those who live according to religious principles and who follow them by words, mind, body and
intelligence are elevated to the heavenly kingdom, which is devoid of all miseries. Being thus rid of the
material influence, they achieve unlimited happiness in life.
16. The sages continued: O great hero, for this reason you should not be the cause of spoiling the
spiritual life of the general populace. If their spiritual life is spoiled because of your activities, you will
certainly fall down from your opulent and royal position.
17. The saintly persons continued: When the king protects the citizens from the disturbances of
mischievous ministers as well as from thieves and rogues, he can, by virtue of such pious activities,
accept taxes given by his subjects. Thus a pious king can certainly enjoy himself in this world as well as
in the life after death.
18. The king is supposed to be pious in whose state and cities the general populace strictly observes
the system of eight social orders of varna and asrama, and where all citizens engage in worshiping the
Supreme Personality of Godhead by their particular occupations.
19. O noble one, if the king sees that the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the original cause of the
cosmic manifestation and the Supersoul within everyone, is worshiped, the Lord will be satisfied.
20. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is worshiped by the great demigods, controllers of universal
affairs. When He is satisfied, nothing is impossible to achieve. For this reason all the demigods,
presiding deities of different planets, as well as the inhabitants of their planets, take great pleasure in
offering all kinds of paraphernalia for His worship.
21. Dear King, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, along with the predominating deities, is the
enjoyer of the results of all sacrifices in all planets. The Supreme Lord is the sum total of the three
Vedas, the owner of everything, and the ultimate goal of all austerity. Therefore your countrymen should
engage in performing various sacrifices for your elevation. Indeed, you should always direct them
towards the offering of sacrifices.
166 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. When all the brahmanas engage in performing sacrifices in your kingdom, all the demigods, who
are plenary expansions of the Lord, will be very much satisfied by their activities and will give you your
desired result. Therefore, O hero, do not stop the sacrificial performances. If you stop them, you will
disrespect the demigods.
23. King Vena replied: You are not at all experienced. It is very much regrettable that you are
maintaining something which is not religious and are accepting it as religious. Indeed, I think you are
giving up your real husband, who maintains you, and are searching after some paramour to worship.
24. Those who, out of gross ignorance, do not worship the king, who is actually the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, experience happiness neither in this world nor in the world after death.
25. You are so much devoted to the demigods, but who are they? Indeed, your affection for these
demigods is exactly like the affection of an unchaste woman who neglects her married life and gives all
attention to her paramour.
26-27. Lord Visnu; Lord Brahma; Lord Siva; Lord Indra; Vayu, the master of air; Yama, the
superintendent of death; the sun-god; the director of rainfall; Kuvera, the treasurer; the moon-god; the
predominating deity of the earth; Agni, the fire-god; Varuna, the lord of waters, and all others who are
great and competent to bestow benedictions or to curse, all abide in the body of the king. For this
reason the king is known as the reservoir of all demigods, who are simply parts and parcels of the king's
body.
28. King Vena continued: For this reason, O brahmanas, you should abandon your envy of me, and, by
your ritualistic activities, you should worship me and offer me all paraphernalia. If you are intelligent, you
should know that there is no personality superior to me, who can accept the first oblations of all
sacrifices.
29. The great sage Maitreya continued: Thus the King, who became unintelligent due to his sinful life
and deviation from the right path, became actually bereft of all good fortune. He could not accept the
requests of the great sages, which the sages put before him with great respect, and therefore he was
condemned.
30. My dear Vidura, all good fortune unto you. The foolish King, who thought himself very learned, thus
insulted the great sages, and the sages, being brokenhearted by the King's words, became very angry
at him.
31. All the great saintly sages immediately cried: Kill him! Kill him! He is the most dreadful, sinful person.
If he lives, he will certainly turn the whole world into ashes in no time.
32. The saintly sages continued: This impious, impudent man does not deserve to sit on the throne at
all. He is so shameless that he even dared insult the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu.
33. But for King Vena, who is simply inauspicious, who would blaspheme the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, by whose mercy one is awarded all kinds of fortune and opulence?
34. The great sages, thus manifesting their covert anger, immediately decided to kill the King. King
Vena was already as good as dead due to his blasphemy against the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
Thus without using any weapons, the sages killed King Vena simply by high-sounding words.
35. After all the sages returned to their respective hermitages, the mother of King Vena, Sunitha,
became very much aggrieved because of her son's death. She decided to preserve the dead body of
her son by the application of certain ingredients and by chanting mantras [mantra-yogena].
36. Once upon a time, the same saintly persons, after taking their bath in the River Sarasvati, began to
perform their daily duties by offering oblations into the sacrificial fires. After this, sitting on the bank of
the river, they began to talk about the transcendental person and His pastimes.
37. In those days there were various disturbances in the country that were creating a panic in society.
Therefore all the sages began to talk amongst themselves: Since the King is dead and there is no
protector in the world, misfortune may befall the people in general on account of rogues and thieves.
38. When the great sages were carrying on their discussion in this way, they saw a dust storm arising
from all directions. This storm was caused by the running of thieves and rogues, who were engaged in
plundering the citizens.
39-40. Upon seeing the dust storm, the saintly persons could understand that there were a great deal of
irregularities due to the death of King Vena. Without government, the state was devoid of law and order,
and consequently there was a great uprising of murderous thieves and rogues, who were plundering
the riches of the people in general. Although the great sages could subdue the disturbance by their
powers--just as they could kill the King--they considered it improper on their part to do so. Thus they did
not attempt to stop the disturbance.
41. The great sages began to think that although a brahmana is peaceful and impartial because he is
equal to everyone, it is still not his duty to neglect poor humans. By such neglect, a brahmana's spiritual
power diminishes, just as water kept in a cracked pot leaks out.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 167
42. The sages decided that the descendants of the family of the saintly King Anga should not be
stopped, for in this family the semen was very powerful and the children were prone to become
devotees of the Lord.
43. After making a decision, the saintly persons and sages churned the thighs of the dead body of King
Vena with great force and according to a specific method. As a result of this churning, a dwarf-like
person was born from King Vena's body.
44. This person born from King Vena's thighs was named Bahuka, and his complexion was as black as
a crow's. All the limbs of his body were very short, his arms and legs were short, and his jaws were
large. His nose was flat, his eyes were reddish, and his hair copper-colored.
45. He was very submissive and meek, and immediately after his birth he bowed down and inquired,
"Sirs, what shall I do?" The great sages replied, "Please sit down [nisida]." Thus Nisada, the father of
the Naisada race, was born.
46. After his [Nisada's] birth, he immediately took charge of all the resultant actions of King Vena's sinful
activities. As such, this Naisada class are always engaged in sinful activities like stealing, plundering
and hunting. Consequently they are only allowed to live in the hills and forests.
Chapter Fifteen King Prthu's Appearance and Coronation
1. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, thus the brahmanas and the great sages again
churned the two arms of King Vena's dead body. As a result a male and female couple came out of his
arms.
2. The great sages were highly learned in Vedic knowledge. When they saw the male and female born
of the arms of Vena's body, they were very pleased, for they could understand that the couple was an
expansion of a plenary portion of Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
3. The great sages said: The male is a plenary expansion of the power of Lord Visnu, who maintains
the entire universe, and the female is a plenary expansion of the goddess of fortune, who is never
separated from the Lord.
4. Of the two, the male will be able to expand his reputation throughout the world. His name will be
Prthu. Indeed, he will be the first among kings.
5. The female has such beautiful teeth and beautiful qualities that she will actually beautify the
ornaments she wears. Her name will be Arci. In the future she will accept King Prthu as her husband.
6. In the form of King Prthu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead has appeared through a part of His
potency to protect the people of the world. The goddess of fortune is the constant companion of the
Lord, and therefore she has incarnated partially as Arci to become King Prthu's queen.
7. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Viduraji, at that time all the brahmanas highly praised
and glorified King Prthu, and the best singers of Gandharvaloka chanted his glories. The inhabitants of
Siddhaloka showered flowers, and the beautiful women in the heavenly planets danced in ecstasy.
8. Conchshells, bugles, drums and kettledrums vibrated in outer space. Great sages, forefathers and
personalities from the heavenly planets all came to earth from various planetary systems.
9-10. Lord Brahma, the master of the entire universe, arrived there accompanied by all the demigods
and their chiefs. Seeing the lines of Lord Visnu's palm on King Prthu's right hand and impressions of
lotus flowers on the soles of his feet, Lord Brahma could understand that King Prthu was a partial
representation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. One whose palm bears the sign of a disc, as
well as other such lines, should be considered a partial representation or incarnation of the Supreme
Lord.
11. The learned brahmanas, who were very attached to the Vedic ritualistic ceremonies, then arranged
for the King's coronation. People from all directions collected all the different paraphernalia for the
ceremony. Thus everything was complete.
12. All the rivers, seas, hills, mountains, serpents, cows, birds, animals, heavenly planets, the earthly
planet and all other living entities collected various presentations, according to their ability, to offer the
King.
13. Thus the great King Prthu, exquisitely dressed with garments and ornaments, was coronated and
placed on the throne. The King and his wife, Arci, who was also exquisitely ornamented, appeared
exactly like fire.
14. The great sage continued: My dear Vidura, Kuvera presented the great King Prthu with a golden
throne. The demigod Varuna presented him with an umbrella that constantly sprayed fine particles of
water and was as brilliant as the moon.
15. The demigod of air, Vayu, presented King Prthu with two whisks [camaras] of hair; the King of
religion, Dharma, presented him with a flower garland which would expand his fame; the King of
heaven, Indra, presented him with a valuable helmet; and the superintendent of death, Yamaraja,
presented him with a sceptor with which to rule the world.
168 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. Lord Brahma presented King Prthu with a protective garment made of spiritual knowledge. Bharati
[Sarasvati], the wife of Brahma, gave him a transcendental necklace. Lord Visnu presented him with a
Sudarsana disc, and Lord Visnu's wife, the goddess of fortune, gave him imperishable opulences.
17. Lord Siva presented him with a sword within a sheath marked with ten moons, and his wife, the
goddess Durga, presented him with a shield marked with one hundred moons. The moon-demigod
presented him with horses made of nectar, and the demigod Visvakarma presented him with a very
beautiful chariot.
18. The demigod of fire, Agni, presented him with a bow made of the horns of goats and cows. The sun-
god presented him with arrows as brilliant as sunshine. The predominating deity of Bhurloka presented
him with slippers full of mystic power. The demigods from outer space brought him presentations of
flowers again and again.
19. The demigods who always travel in outer space gave King Prthu the arts to perform dramas, sing
songs, play musical instruments and disappear at his will. The great sages also offered him infallible
blessings. The ocean offered him a conchshell produced from the ocean.
20. The seas, mountains and rivers gave him room to drive his chariot without impediments, and a suta,
a magadha and a vandi offered prayers and praises. They all presented themselves before him to
perform their respective duties.
21. Thus when the greatly powerful King Prthu, the son of Vena, saw the professionals before him, to
congratulate them he smiled, and with the gravity of the vibrating sounds of clouds he spoke as follows.
22. King Prthu said: O gentle suta, magadha and other devotee offering prayers, the qualities of which
you have spoken are not distinct in me. Why then should you praise me for all these qualities when I do
not shelter these features? I do not wish for these words meant for me to go in vain, but it is better that
they be offered to someone else.
23. O gentle reciters, offer such prayers in due course of time, when the qualities of which you have
spoken actually manifest themselves in me. The gentle who offer prayers to the Supreme Personality of
Godhead do not attribute such qualities to a human being, who does not actually have them.
24. How could an intelligent man competent enough to possess such exalted qualities allow his
followers to praise him if he did not actually have them? Praising a man by saying that if he were
educated he might have become a great scholar or great personality is nothing but a process of
cheating. A foolish person who agrees to accept such praise does not know that such words simply
insult him.
25. As a person with a sense of honor and magnanimity does not like to hear about his abominable
actions, a person who is very famous and powerful does not like to hear himself praised.
26. King Prthu continued: My dear devotees, headed by the suta, just now I am not very famous for my
personal activities because I have not done anything praiseworthy you could glorify. Therefore how
could I engage you in praising my activities exactly like children?
Chapter Sixteen Praise of King Prthu by the Professional Reciters
1. The great sage Maitreya continued: While King Prthu thus spoke, the humility of his nectarean
speeches pleased the reciters very much. Then again they continued to praise the King highly with
exalted prayers, as they had been instructed by the great sages.
2. The reciters continued: Dear King, you are a direct incarnation of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Lord Visnu, and by His causeless mercy you have descended on this earth. Therefore it is
not possible for us to actually glorify your exalted activities. Although you have appeared through the
body of King Vena, even great orators and speakers like Lord Brahma and other demigods cannot
exactly describe the glorious activities of Your Lordship.
3. Although we are unable to glorify you adequately, we nonetheless have a transcendental taste for
glorifying your activities. We shall try to glorify you according to the instructions received from
authoritative sages and scholars. Whatever we speak, however, is always inadequate and very
insignificant. Dear King, because you are a direct incarnation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
all your activities are liberal and ever laudable.
4. This King, Maharaja Prthu, is the best amongst those who are following religious principles. As such,
he will engage everyone in the pursuit of religious principles and give those principles all protection. He
will also be a great chastiser to the irreligious and atheistic.
5. This King alone, in his own body, will be able in due course of time to maintain all living entities and
keep them in a pleasant condition by manifesting himself as different demigods to perform various
departmental activities. Thus he will maintain the upper planetary system by inducing the populace to
perform Vedic sacrifices. In due course of time he will also maintain this earthly planet by discharging
proper rainfall.
6. This King Prthu will be as powerful as the sun-god, and just as the sun-god equally distributes his
sunshine to everyone, King Prthu will distribute his mercy equally. Similarly, just as the sun-god
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 169
evaporates water for eight months and, during the rainy season, returns it profusely, this King will also
exact taxes from the citizens and return these monies in times of need.
7. This King Prthu will be very, very kind to all citizens. Even though a poor person may trample over
the King's head by violating the rules and regulations, the King, out of his causeless mercy, will be
forgetful and forgiving. As a protector of the world, he will be as tolerant as the earth itself.
8. When there is no rainfall and the citizens are in great danger due to the scarcity of water, this royal
Personality of Godhead will be able to supply rains exactly like the heavenly King Indra. Thus he will
very easily be able to protect the citizens from drought.
9. This King, Prthu Maharaja, by virtue of his affectionate glances and beautiful moonlike face, which is
always smiling with great affection for the citizens, will enhance everyone's peaceful life.
10. The reciters continued: No one will be able to understand the policies the King will follow. His
activities will also be very confidential, and it will not be possible for anyone to know how he will make
every activity successful. His treasury will always remain unknown to everyone. He will be the reservoir
of unlimited glories and good qualities, and his position will be maintained and covered just as Varuna,
the deity of the seas, is covered all around by water.
11. King Prthu was born of the dead body of King Vena as fire is produced from arani wood. Thus King
Prthu will always remain just like fire, and his enemies will not be able to approach him. Indeed, he will
be unbearable to his enemies, for although staying very near him, they will never be able to approach
him but will have to remain as if far away. No one will be able to overcome the strength of King Prthu.
12. King Prthu will be able to see all the internal and external activities of every one of his citizens. Still
no one will be able to know his system of espionage, and he himself will remain neutral regarding all
matters of glorification or vilification paid to him. He will be exactly like air, the life force within the body,
which is exhibited internally and externally but is always neutral to all affairs.
13. Since this King will always remain on the path of piety, he will be neutral to both his son and the son
of his enemy. If the son of his enemy is not punishable, he will not punish him, but if his own son is
punishable, he will immediately punish him.
14. Just as the sun-god expands his shining rays up to the Arctic region without impedance, the
influence of King Prthu will cover all tracts of land up to the Arctic region and will remain undisturbed as
long as he lives.
15. This King will please everyone by his practical activities, and all of his citizens will remain very
satisfied. Because of this the citizens will take great satisfaction in accepting him as their ruling king.
16. The King will be firmly determined and always situated in truth. He will be a lover of the brahminical
culture and will render all service to old men and give shelter to all surrendered souls. Giving respect to
all, he will always be merciful to the poor and innocent.
17. The King will respect all women as if they were his own mother, and he will treat his own wife as the
other half of his body. He will be just like an affectionate father to his citizens, and he will treat himself
as the most obedient servant of the devotees, who always preach the glories of the Lord.
18. The King will consider all embodied living entities as dear as his own self, and he will always be
increasing the pleasures of his friends. He will intimately associate with liberated persons, and he will be
a chastising hand to all impious persons.
19. This King is the master of the three worlds, and he is directly empowered by the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. He is without change, and he is an incarnation of the Supreme known as a
saktyavesa-avatara. Being a liberated soul and completely learned, he sees all material varieties as
meaningless because their basic principle is nescience.
20. This King, being uniquely powerful and heroic, will have no competitor. He will travel around the
globe on his victorious chariot, holding his invincible bow in his hand and appearing exactly like the sun,
which rotates in its own orbit from the south.
21. When the King travels all over the world, other kings, as well as the demigods, will offer him all kinds
of presentations. Their queens will also consider him the original king, who carries in His hands the
emblems of club and disc, and will sing of his fame, for he will be as reputable as the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
22. This King, this protector of the citizens, is an extraordinary king and is equal to the Prajapati
demigods. For the living facility of all citizens, he will milk the earth, which is like a cow. Not only that,
but he will level the surface of the earth with the pointed ends of his bow, breaking all the hills exactly as
King Indra, the heavenly King, breaks mountains with his powerful thunderbolt.
23. When the lion travels in the forest with its tail turned upward, all menial animals hide themselves.
Similarly, when King Prthu will travel over his kingdom and vibrate the string of his bow, which is made
of the horns of goats and bulls and is irresistible in battle, all demoniac rogues and thieves will hide
themselves in all directions.
170 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. At the source of the River Sarasvati, this King will perform one hundred sacrifices known as
asvamedha. In the course of the last sacrifice, the heavenly King Indra will steal the sacrificial horse.
25. This King Prthu will meet Sanat-kumara, one of the four Kumaras, in the garden of his palace
compound. The King will worship him with devotion and will be fortunate to receive instructions by which
one can enjoy transcendental bliss.
26. In this way when the chivalrous activities of King Prthu come to be known to the people in general,
King Prthu will always hear about himself and his uniquely powerful activities.
27. No one will be able to disobey the orders of Prthu Maharaja. After conquering the world, he will
completely eradicate the threefold miseries of the citizens. Then he will be recognized all over the world.
At that time both the suras and the asuras will undoubtedly glorify his magnanimous activities.
Chapter Seventeen Maharaja Prthu Becomes Angry at the Earth
1. The great sage Maitreya continued: In this way the reciters who were glorifying Maharaja Prthu
readily described his qualities and chivalrous activities. At the end, Maharaja Prthu offered them various
presentations with all due respect and worshiped them adequately.
2. King Prthu thus satisfied and offered all respect to all the leaders of the brahmanas and other castes,
to his servants, to his ministers and to the priests, citizens, general countrymen, people from other
communities, admirers and others, and thus they all became happy.
3. Vidura inquired from the great sage Maitreya: My dear brahmana, since mother earth can appear in
different shapes, why did she take the shape of a cow? And when King Prthu milked her, who became
the calf, and what was the milking pot?
4. The surface of the earth is by nature low in some places and high in others. How did King Prthu level
the surface of the earth, and why did the King of heaven, Indra, steal the horse meant for the sacrifice ?
5. The great saintly King, Maharaja Prthu, received knowledge from Sanat-kumara, who was the
greatest Vedic scholar. After receiving knowledge to be applied practically in his life, how did the saintly
King attain his desired destination?
6-7. Prthu Maharaja was a powerful incarnation of Lord Krsna's potencies; consequently any narration
concerning his activities is surely very pleasing to hear, and it produces all good fortune. As far as I am
concerned, I am always your devotee as well as a devotee of the Lord, who is known as Adhoksaja.
Please therefore narrate all the stories of King Prthu, who, in the form of the son of King Vena, milked
the cow-shaped earth.
8. Suta Gosvami continued: When Vidura became inspired to hear of the activities of Lord Krsna in His
various incarnations, Maitreya, also being inspired and being very pleased with Vidura, began to praise
him. Then Maitreya spoke as follows.
9. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, at the time King Prthu was enthroned by the
great sages and brahmanas and declared to be the protector of the citizens, there was a scarcity of
food grains. The citizens actually became skinny due to starvation. Therefore they came before the
King and informed him of their real situation.
10-11. Dear King, just as a tree with a fire burning in the hollow of the trunk gradually dries up, we are
drying up due to the fire of hunger in our stomachs. You are the protector of surrendered souls, and you
have been appointed to give employment to us. Therefore we have all come to you for protection. You
are not only a king, but the incarnation of God as well. Indeed, you are the king of all kings. You can
give us all kinds of occupational engagements, for you are the master of our livelihood. Therefore, O
king of all kings, please arrange to satisfy our hunger by the proper distribution of food grains. Please
take care of us, lest we soon die for want of food.
12. After hearing this lamentation and seeing the pitiable condition of the citizens, King Prthu
contemplated this matter for a long time to see if he could find out the underlying causes.
13. Having arrived at a conclusion, the King took up his bow and arrow and aimed them at the earth,
exactly like Lord Siva, who destroys the whole world out of anger.
14. When the earth saw that King Prthu was taking his bow and arrow to kill her, she became very
much afraid and began to tremble. She then began to flee, exactly like a deer, which runs very swiftly
when followed by a 15. Seeing this, Maharaja Prthu became very angry, and his eyes became as red
as the early-morning sun. Placing an arrow on his bow, he chased the cow-shaped earth wherever she
would run.
16. The cow-shaped earth ran here and there in outer space between the heavenly planets and the
earth, and wherever she ran, the King chased her with his bow and arrows.
17. Just as a man cannot escape the cruel hands of death, the cow-shaped earth could not escape the
hands of the son of Vena. At length the earth, fearful, her heart aggrieved, turned back in helplessness.
18. Addressing the great, opulent King Prthu as the knower of religious principles and shelter of the
surrendered, she said: Please save me. You are the protector of all living entities. Now you are situated
as the King of this planet.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 171
19. The cow-shaped earth continued to appeal to the King: I am very poor and have not committed any
sinful activities. I do not know why you want to kill me. Since you are supposed to be the knower of all
religious principles, why are you so envious of me, and why are you so anxious to kill a woman?
20. Even if a woman does commit some sinful activity, no one should place his hand upon her. And
what to speak of you, dear King, who are so merciful. You are a protector, and you are affectionate to
the poor.
21. The cow-shaped earth continued: My dear King, I am just like a strong boat, and all the
paraphernalia of the world is standing upon me. If you break me to pieces, how can you protect yourself
and your subjects from drowning?
22. King Prthu replied to the earthly Planet: My dear earth, you have disobeyed my orders and rulings.
In the form of a demigod you accepted your share of the yajnas we performed, but in return you have
not produced sufficient food grains. For this reason I must kill you.
23. Although you are eating green grass every day, you are not filling your milk bag so we can utilize
your milk. Since you are willfully committing offenses, it cannot be said that you are not punishable due
to your assuming the form of a cow.
24. You have so lost your intelligence that, despite my orders, you do not deliver the seeds of herbs and
grains formerly created by Brahma and now hidden within yourself.
25. Now, with the help of my arrows, I shall cut you to pieces and with your flesh satisfy the hunger-
stricken citizens, who are now crying for want of grains. Thus I shall satisfy the crying citizens of my
kingdom.
26. Any cruel person--be he a man, woman or impotent eunuch--who is only interested in his personal
maintenance and has no compassion for other living entities may be killed by the king. Such killing can
never be considered actual killing.
27. You are very much puffed up with pride and have become almost insane. Presently you have
assumed the form of a cow by your mystic powers. Nonetheless I shall cut you into small pieces like
grain, and I will uphold the entire population by my personal mystic powers.
28. At this time Prthu Maharaja became exactly like Yamaraja, and his whole body appeared very
angry. In other words, he was anger personified. After hearing him, the planet earth began to tremble.
She surrendered, and with folded hands began to speak as follows.
29. The planet earth spoke: My dear Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, You are transcendental
in Your position, and by Your material energy You have expanded Yourself in various forms and
species of life through the interaction of the three modes of material nature. Unlike some other masters,
You always remain in Your transcendental position and are not affected by the material creation, which
is subject to different material interactions. Consequently You are not bewildered by material activities.
30. The planet earth continued: My dear Lord, You are the complete conductor of the material creation.
You have created this cosmic manifestation and the three material qualities, and therefore You have
created me, the planet earth, the resting place of all living entities. Yet You are always fully
independent, my Lord. Now that You are present before me and ready to kill me with Your weapons, let
me know where I should go to take shelter, and tell me who can give me protection.
31. In the beginning of creation You created all these moving and nonmoving living entities by Your
inconceivable energy. Through this very same energy You are now prepared to protect the living
entities. Indeed, You are the supreme protector of religious principles. Why are You so anxious to kill
me, even though I am in the form of a cow?
32. My dear Lord, although You are one, by Your inconceivable potencies You have expanded Yourself
in many forms. Through the agency of Brahma, You have created this universe. You are therefore
directly the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Those who are not sufficiently experienced cannot
understand Your transcendental activities because these persons are covered by Your illusory energy.
33. My dear Lord, by Your own potencies You are the original cause of the material elements, as well
as the performing instruments (the senses), the workers of the senses (the controlling demigods), the
intelligence and the ego, as well as everything else. By Your energy You manifest this entire cosmic
creation, maintain it and dissolve it. Through Your energy alone everything is sometimes manifest and
sometimes not manifest. You are therefore the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the cause of all
causes. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
34. My dear Lord, You are always unborn. Once, in the form of the original boar, You rescued me from
the waters in the bottom of the universe. Through Your own energy You created all the physical
elements, the senses and the heart, for the maintenance of the world.
35. My dear Lord, in this way You once protected me by rescuing me from the water, and consequently
Your name has been famous as Dharadhara--He who holds the planet earth. Yet at the present
moment, in the form of a great hero, You are about to kill me with sharpened arrows. I am, however,
just like a boat on the water, keeping everything afloat.
172 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
36. My dear Lord, I am also the creation of one of Your energies, composed of the three modes of
material nature. Consequently I am bewildered by Your activities. Even the activities of Your devotees
cannot be understood, and what to speak of Your pastimes. Thus everything appears to us to be
contradictory and wonderful.
Chapter Eighteen Prthu Maharaja Milks the Earth Planet
1. The great saint Maitreya continued to address Vidura: My dear Vidura, at that time, after the planet
earth finished her prayers, King Prthu was still not pacified, and his lips trembled in great anger.
Although the planet earth was frightened, she made up her mind and began to speak as follows in order
to convince the King.
2. My dear Lord, please pacify your anger completely and hear patiently whatever I submit before you.
Please turn your kind attention to this. I may be very poor, but a learned man takes the essence of
knowledge from all places, just as a bumblebee collects honey from each and every flower.
3. To benefit all human society, not only in this life but in the next, the great seers and sages have
prescribed various methods conducive to the prosperity of the people in general.
4. One who follows the principles and instructions enjoined by the great sages of the past can utilize
these instructions for practical purposes. Such a person can very easily enjoy life and pleasures.
5. A foolish person who manufactures his own ways and means through mental speculation and does
not recognize the authority of the sages who lay down unimpeachable directions is simply unsuccessful
again and again in his attempts.
6. My dear King, the seeds, roots, herbs and grains, which were created by Lord Brahma in the past,
are now being used by nondevotees, who are devoid of all spiritual understanding.
7. My dear King, not only are grains and herbs being used by nondevotees, but, as far as I am
concerned, I am not being properly maintained. Indeed, I am being neglected by kings who are not
punishing these rascals who have turned into thieves by using grains for sense gratification.
Consequently I have hidden all these seeds, which were meant for the performance of sacrifice.
8. Due to being stocked for a very long time, all the grain seeds within me have certainly deteriorated.
Therefore you should immediately arrange to take these seeds out by the standard process, which is
recommended by the acaryas or sastras.
9-10. O great hero, protector of living entities, if you desire to relieve the living entities by supplying
them sufficient grain, and if you desire to nourish them by taking milk from me, you should make
arrangements to bring a calf suitable for this purpose and a pot in which the milk can be kept, as well as
a milkman to do the work. Since I will be very much affectionate towards my calf, your desire to take
milk from me will be fulfilled.
11. My dear King, may I inform you that you have to make the entire surface of the globe level. This will
help me, even when the rainy season has ceased. Rainfall comes by the mercy of King Indra. Rainfall
will remain on the surface of the globe, always keeping the earth moistened, and thus it will be
auspicious for all kinds of production.
12. After hearing the auspicious and pleasing words of the planet earth, the King accepted them. He
then transformed Svayambhuva Manu into a calf and milked all the herbs and grains from the earth in
the form of a cow, keeping them in his cupped hands.
13. Others, who were as intelligent as King Prthu, also took the essence out of the earthly planet.
Indeed, everyone took this opportunity to follow in the footsteps of King Prthu and get whatever he
desired from the planet earth.
14. All the great sages transformed Brhaspati into a calf, and making the senses into a pot, they milked
all kinds of Vedic knowledge to purify words, mind and hearing.
15. All the demigods made Indra, the King of heaven, into a calf, and from the earth they milked the
beverage soma, which is nectar. Thus they became very powerful in mental speculation and bodily and
sensual strength.
16. The sons of Diti and the demons transformed Prahlada Maharaja, who was born in an asura family,
into a calf, and they extracted various kinds of liquor and beer, which they put into a pot made of iron.
17. The inhabitants of Gandharvaloka and Apsaroloka made Visvavasu into a calf, and they drew the
milk into a lotus flower pot. The milk took the shape of sweet musical art and beauty.
18. The fortunate inhabitants of Pitrloka, who preside over the funeral ceremonies, made Aryama into a
calf. With great faith they milked kavya, food offered to the ancestors, into an unbaked earthen pot.
19. After this, the inhabitants of Siddhaloka, as well as the inhabitants of Vidyadhara-loka, transformed
the great sage Kapila into a calf, and making the whole sky into a pot, they milked out specific yogic
mystic powers, beginning with anima. Indeed, the inhabitants of Vidyadhara-loka acquired the art of
flying in the sky.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 173
20. Others also, the inhabitants of planets known as Kimpurusa-loka, made the demon Maya into a calf,
and they milked out mystic powers by which one can disappear immediately from another's vision and
appear again in a different form.
21. Then the Yaksas, Raksasas, ghosts and witches, who are habituated to eating flesh, transformed
Lord Siva's incarnation Rudra [Bhutanatha] into a calf and milked out beverages made of blood and put
them in a pot made of skulls.
22. Thereafter cobras and snakes without hoods, large snakes, scorpions and many other poisonous
animals took poison out of the planet earth as their milk and kept this poison in snake holes. They made
a calf out of Taksaka.
23-24. The four-legged animals like the cows made a calf out of the bull who carries Lord Siva and
made a milking pot out of the forest. Thus they got fresh green grasses to eat. Ferocious animals like
tigers transformed a lion into a calf, and thus they were able to get flesh for milk. The birds made a calf
out of Garuda and took milk from the planet earth in the form of moving insects and nonmoving plants
and grasses.
25. The trees made a calf out of the banyan tree, and thus they derived milk in the form of many
delicious juices. The mountains transformed the Himalayas into a calf, and they milked a variety of
minerals into a pot made of the peaks of hills.
26. The planet earth supplied everyone his respective food. During the time of King Prthu, the earth was
fully under the control of the King. Thus all the inhabitants of the earth could get their food supply by
creating various types of calves and putting their particular types of milk in various pots.
27. My dear Vidura, chief of the Kurus, in this way King Prthu and all the others who subsist on food
created different types of calves and milked out their respective eatables. Thus they received their
various foodstuffs, which were symbolized as milk.
28. Thereafter King Prthu was very satisfied with the planet earth, for she sufficiently supplied all food to
various living entities. Thus he developed an affection for the planet earth, just as if she were his own
daughter.
29. After this, the king of all kings, Maharaja Prthu, leveled all rough places on the surface of the globe
by breaking up the hills with the strength of his bow. By his grace the surface of the globe almost
became flat.
30. To all the citizens of the state, King Prthu was as good as a father. Thus he was visibly engaged in
giving them proper subsistence and proper employment for subsistence. After leveling the surface of
the globe, he earmarked different places for residential quarters, inasmuch as they were desirable.
31. In this way the King founded many types of villages, settlements and towns and built forts,
residences for cowherdsmen, stables for the animals, and places for the royal camps, mining places,
agricultural towns and mountain villages.
32. Before the reign of King Prthu there was no planned arrangement for different cities, villages,
pasturing grounds, etc. Every thing was scattered, and everyone constructed his residential quarters
according to his own convenience. However, since King Prthu plans were made for towns and villages.
Chapter Nineteen King Prthu's One Hundred Horse Sacrifices
1. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, King Prthu initiated the performance of one
hundred horse sacrifices at the spot where the River Sarasvati flows towards the east. This piece of
land is known as Brahmavarta, and it was controlled by Svayambhuva Manu.
2. When the most powerful Indra, the King of heaven, saw this, he considered the fact that King Prthu
was going to exceed him in fruitive activities. Thus Indra could not tolerate the great sacrificial
ceremonies performed by King Prthu.
3. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu, is present in everyone's heart as the Supersoul,
and He is the proprietor of all planets and the enjoyer of the results of all sacrifices. He was personally
present at the sacrifices made by King Prthu.
4. When Lord Visnu appeared in the sacrificial arena, Lord Brahma, Lord Siva and all the chief
predominating personalities of every planet, as well as their followers, came with Him. When He
appeared on the scene, the residents of Gandharvaloka, the great sages, and the residents of
Apsaroloka all praised Him.
5. The Lord was accompanied by the residents of Siddhaloka and Vidyadhara-loka, all the descendants
of Diti, and the demons and the Yaksas. He was also accompanied by His chief associates, headed by
Sunanda and Nanda.
6. Great devotees, who were always engaged in the service of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, as
well as the great sages named Kapila, Narada and Dattatreya, and masters of mystic powers, headed
by Sanaka Kumara, all attended the great sacrifice with Lord Visnu.
7. My dear Vidura, in that great sacrifice the entire land came to be like the milk-producing kama-dhenu,
and thus, by the performance of yajna, all daily necessities for life were supplied.
174 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
8. The flowing rivers supplied all kinds of tastes--sweet, pungent, sour, etc.--and very big trees supplied
fruit and honey in abundance. The cows, having eaten sufficient green grass, supplied profuse
quantities of milk, curd, clarified butter and similar other necessities.
9. King Prthu was presented with various gifts from the general populace and predominating deities of
all planets. The oceans and seas were full of valuable jewels and pearls, and the hills were full of
chemicals and fertilizers. Four kinds of edibles were produced profusely.
10. King Prthu was dependent on the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is known as Adhoksaja.
Because King Prthu Performed so many sacrifices, he was superhumanly enhanced by the mercy of
the Supreme Lord. King Prthu's opulence, however, could not be tolerated by the King of heaven, Indra,
who tried to impede the progress of his opulence.
11. When Prthu Maharaja was performing the last horse sacrifice [asvamedha-yajna], King Indra,
invisible to everyone, stole the horse intended for sacrifice. He did this because of his great envy of
King Prthu.
12. When King Indra was taking away the horse, he dressed himself to appear as a liberated person.
Actually this dress was a form of cheating, for it falsely created an impression of religion. When Indra
went into outer space in this way, the great sage Atri saw him and understood the whole situation.
13. When the son of King Prthu was informed by Atri of King Indra's trick, he immediately became very
angry and followed Indra to kill him, calling, "Wait! Wait!"
14. King Indra was fraudulently dressed as a sannyasi, having knotted his hair on his head and
smeared ashes all over his body. Upon seeing such dress, the son of King Prthu considered Indra a
religious man and pious sannyasi. Therefore he did not release his arrows.
15. When Atri Muni saw that the son of King Prthu did not kill Indra but returned deceived by him, Atri
Muni again instructed him to kill the heavenly King because he thought that Indra had become the
lowliest of all demigods due to his impeding the execution of King Prthu's sacrifice.
16. Being thus informed, the grandson of King Vena immediately began to follow Indra, who was fleeing
through the sky in great haste. He was very angry with him, and he chased him just as the king of the
vultures chased Ravana.
17. When Indra saw that the son of Prthu was chasing him, he immediately abandoned his false dress
and left the horse. Indeed, he disappeared from that very spot, and the great hero, the son of Maharaja
Prthu, returned the horse to his father's sacrificial arena.
18. My dear Lord Vidura, when the great sages observed the wonderful prowess of the son of King
Prthu, they all agreed to give him the name Vijitasva.
19. My dear Vidura, Indra, being the King of heaven and very powerful, immediately brought a dense
darkness upon the sacrificial arena. Covering the whole scene in this way, he again took away the
horse, which was chained with golden shackles near the wooden instrument where animals were
sacrificed.
20. The great sage Atri again pointed out to the son of King Prthu that Indra was fleeing through the
sky. The great hero, the son of Prthu, chased him again. But when he saw that Indra was carrying in his
hand a staff with a skull at the top and was again wearing the dress of a sannyasi, he still chose not to
kill him.
21. When the great sage Atri again gave directions, the son of King Prthu became very angry and
placed an arrow on his bow. Upon seeing this, King Indra immediately abandoned the false dress of a
sannyasi and, giving up the horse, made himself invisible.
22. Then the great hero, Vijitasva, the son of King Prthu, again took the horse and returned to his
father's sacrificial arena. Since that time, certain men with a poor fund of knowledge have adopted the
dress of a false sannyasi. It was King Indra who introduced this.
23. Whatever different forms Indra assumed as a mendicant because of his desire to seize the horse
were symbols of atheistic philosophy.
24-25. In this way, King Indra, in order to steal the horse from King Prthu's sacrifice, adopted several
orders of sannyasa. Some sannyasis go naked, and sometimes they wear red garments and pass
under the name of kapalika. These are simply symbolic representations of their sinful activities. These
so-called sannyasis are very much appreciated by sinful men because they are all godless atheists and
very expert in putting forward arguments and reasons to support their case. We must know, however,
that they are only passing as adherents of religion and are not so in fact. Unfortunately, bewildered
persons accept them as religious, and being attracted to them, they spoil their life.
26. Maharaja Prthu, who was celebrated as very powerful, immediately took up his bow and arrows and
prepared to kill Indra himself, because Indra had introduced such irregular sannyasa orders.
27. When the priests and all the others saw Maharaja Prthu very angry and prepared to kill Indra, they
requested him: O great soul, do not kill him, for only sacrificial animals can be killed in a sacrifice. Such
are the directions given by sastra.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 175
28. Dear King, Indra's powers are already reduced due to his attempt to impede the execution of your
sacrifice. We shall call him by Vedic mantras which were never before used, and certainly he will come.
Thus by the power of our mantra, we shall cast him into the fire because he is your enemy.
29. My dear Vidura, after giving the King this advice, the priests who had been engaged in performing
the sacrifice called for Indra, the King of heaven, in a mood of great anger. When they were just ready
to put the oblation in the fire, Lord Brahma appeared on the scene and forbade them to start the
sacrifice.
30. Lord Brahma addressed them thus: My dear sacrificial performers, you cannot kill Indra, the King of
heaven. It is not your duty. You should know that Indra is as good as the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. Indeed, he is one of the most powerful assistants of the Personality of Godhead. You are
trying to satisfy all the demigods by the performance of this yajna, but you should know that all these
demigods are but parts and parcels of Indra, the King of heaven. How, then, can you kill him in this
great sacrifice?
31. In order to make trouble and impede the performance of King Prthu's great sacrifice, King Indra has
adopted some means that in the future will destroy the clear path of religious life. I draw your attention
to this fact. If you oppose him any further, he will further misuse his power and introduce many other
irreligious systems.
32. "Let there be only ninety-nine sacrificial performances for Maharaja Prthu," Lord Brahma concluded.
Lord Brahma then turned towards Maharaja Prthu and informed him that since he was thoroughly
aware of the path of liberation, what was the use in performing more sacrifices?
33. Lord Brahma continued: Let there be good fortune to both of you, for you and King Indra are both
part and parcel of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore you should not be angry with King
Indra, who is nondifferent from you.
34. My dear King, do not be agitated and anxious because your sacrifices have not been properly
executed due to providential impediments. Kindly take my words with great respect. We should always
remember that if something happens by providential arrangement, we should not be very sorry. The
more we try to rectify such reversals, the more we enter into the darkest region of materialistic thought.
35. Lord Brahma continued: Stop the performance of these sacrifices, for they have induced Indra to
introduce so many irreligious aspects. You should know very well that even amongst the demigods
there are many unwanted desires.
36. Just see how Indra, the King of heaven, was creating a disturbance in the midst of the sacrifice by
stealing the sacrificial horse. These attractive sinful activities he has introduced will be carried out by the
people in general.
37. O King Prthu, son of Vena, you are the part-and-parcel expansion of Lord Visnu. Due to the
mischievous activities of King Vena, religious principles were almost lost. At that opportune moment you
descended as the incarnation of Lord Visnu. Indeed, for the protection of religious principles you have
appeared from the body of King Vena.
38. O protector of the people in general, please consider the purpose of your being incarnated by Lord
Visnu. The irreligious principles created by Indra are but mothers of so many unwanted religions.
Please therefore stop these imitations immediately.
39. The great sage Maitreya continued: When King Prthu was thus advised by the supreme teacher,
Lord Brahma, he abandoned his eagerness to perform yajnas and with great affection concluded a
peace with King Indra.
40. After this, Prthu Maharaja took his bath, which is customarily taken after the performance of a yajna,
and received the benedictions and due blessings of the demigods, who were very pleased by his
glorious activities.
41. With great respect, the original king, Prthu, offered all kinds of rewards to the brahmanas present at
the sacrifice. Since all these brahmanas were very much satisfied, they gave their heartfelt blessings to
the King.
42. All the great sages and brahmanas said: O mighty King, by your invitation all classes of living
entities have attended this assembly. They have come from Pitrloka and the heavenly planets, and
great sages as well as common men have attended this meeting. Now all of them are very much
satisfied by your dealings and your charity towards them.
Chapter Twenty Lord Visnu's Appearance in the Sacrificial Arena
1. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, being very much satisfied by the performance of
ninety-nine horse sacrifices, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu, appeared on the scene.
Accompanying Him was King Indra. Lord Visnu then began to speak.
2. Lord Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, said: My dear King Prthu, Indra, the King of
heaven, has disturbed your execution of one hundred sacrifices. Now he has come with Me to be
forgiven by you. Therefore excuse him.
176 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3. O King, one who is advanced in intelligence and eager to perform welfare activities for others is
considered best amongst human beings. An advanced human being is never malicious to others.
Those with advanced intelligence are always conscious that this material body is different from the soul.
4. If a personality like you, who are so much advanced because of executing the instructions of the
previous acaryas, is carred away by the influence of My material energy, then all your advancement
may be considered simply a waste of time.
5. Those who are in full knowledge of the bodily conception of life, who know that this body is composed
of nescience, desires and activities resulting from illusion, do not become addicted to the body.
6. How can a highly learned person who has absolutely no affinity for the bodily conception of life be
affected by the bodily conception in regard to house, children, wealth and similar other bodily
productions?
7. The individual soul is one, Pure, nonmaterial and self-effulgent. He is the reservoir of all good
qualities, and He is all-pervading. He is without material covering, and He is the witness of all activities.
He is completely distinguished from other living entities, and He is transcendental to all embodied souls.
8. Although within the material nature, one who is thus situated in full knowledge of the Paramatma and
atma is never affected by the modes of material nature, for he is always situated in My transcendental
loving service.
9. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu, continued: My dear King Prthu, when one situated
in his occupational duty engages in My loving service without motive for material gain, he gradually
becomes very satisfied within.
10. When the heart is cleansed of all material contamination, the devotee's mind becomes broader and
transparent, and he can see things equally. At that stage of life there is peace, and one is situated
equally with Me as sac-cid-ananda-vigraha.
11. Anyone who knows that this material body, made of the five gross elements, the sense organs, the
working senses and the mind, is simply supervised by the fixed soul is eligible to be liberated from
material bondage.
12. Lord Visnu told King Prthu: My dear King, the constant change of this material world is due to the
interaction of the three modes of material nature. The five elements, the senses, the demigods who
control the senses, as well as the mind, which is agitated by the spirit soul--all these taken together
comprise the body. Since the spirit soul is completely different from this combination of gross and subtle
material elements, My devotee who is connected with Me in intense friendship and affection, being
completely in knowledge, is never agitated by material happiness and distress.
13. My dear heroic King, please keep yourself always equipoised and treat people equally, whether
they are greater than you, in the intermediate stage or lower than you. Do not be disturbed by
temporary distress or happiness. Fully control your mind and senses. In this transcendental position, try
to execute your duty as king in whatever condition of life you may be posted by My arrangement, for
your only duty here is to give protection to the citizens of your kingdom.
14. To give protection to the general mass of people who are citizens of the state is the prescribed
occupational duty for a king. By acting in that way, the king in his next life shares one sixth of the result
of the pious activities of the citizens. But a king or executive head of state who simply collects taxes
from the citizens but does not give them proper protection as human beings has the results of his own
pious activities taken away by the citizens, and in exchange for his not giving protection he becomes
liable to punishment for the impious activities of his subjects.
15. Lord Visnu continued: My dear King Prthu, if you continue to protect the citizens according to the
instructions of the learned brahmana authorities, as they are received by the disciplic succession--by
hearing--from master to disciple, and if you follow the religious principles laid down by them, without
attachment to ideas manufactured by mental concoction, then every one of your citizens will be happy
and will love you, and very soon you will be able to see such already liberated personalities as the four
Kumaras [Sanaka, Sanatana, Sanandana and Sanat-kumara].
16. My dear King, I am very captivated by your elevated qualities and excellent behavior, and thus I am
very favorably inclined toward you. You may therefore ask from Me any benediction you like. One who
does not possess elevated qualities and behavior cannot possibly achieve My favor simply by
performance of sacrifices, severe austerities or mystic yoga. But I always remain equipoised in the heart
of one who is also equipoised in all circumstances.
17. The great saint Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, in this way Maharaja Prthu, the conqueror of
the entire world, accepted the instructions of the Supreme Personality of Godhead on his head.
18. As King Indra was standing by, he became ashamed of his own activities and fell down before King
Prthu to touch his lotus feet. But Prthu Maharaja immediately embraced him in great ecstasy and gave
up all envy against him for his having stolen the horse meant for the sacrifice.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 177
19. King Prthu abundantly worshiped the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who was
so merciful to him. While worshiping the lotus feet of the Lord, Prthu Maharaja gradually increased his
ecstasy in devotional service.
20. The Lord was just about to leave, but because He was so greatly inclined toward the behavior of
King Prthu, He did not depart. Seeing the behavior of Maharaja Prthu with His lotus eyes, He was
detained because He is always the well-wisher of His devotees.
21. The original king, Maharaja Prthu, his eyes full of tears and his voice faltering and choked up, could
neither see the Lord very distinctly nor speak to address the Lord in any way. He simply embraced the
Lord within his heart and remained standing in that way with folded hands.
22. The Supreme Personality of Godhead stood with His lotus feet almost touching the ground while He
rested the front of His hand on the raised shoulder of Garuda, the enemy of the snakes. Maharaja
Prthu, wiping the tears from his eyes, tried to look upon the Lord, but it appeared that the King was not
fully satisfied by looking at Him. Thus the King offered the following prayers.
23. My dear Lord, You are the best of the demigods who can offer benedictions. Why, therefore, should
any learned person ask You for benedictions meant for living entities bewildered by the modes of
nature? Such benedictions are available automatically, even in the lives of living entities suffering in
hellish conditions. My dear Lord, You can certainly bestow merging into Your existence, but I do not
wish to have such a benediction.
24. My dear Lord, I therefore do not wish to have the benediction of merging into Your existence, a
benediction in which there is no existence of the nectarean beverage of Your lotus feet. I want the
benediction of at least one million ears, for thus I may be able to hear about the glories of Your lotus
feet from the mouths of Your pure devotees.
25. My dear Lord, You are glorified by the selected verses uttered by great personalities. Such
glorification of Your lotus feet is just like saffron particles. When the transcendental vibration from the
mouths of great devotees carries the aroma of the saffron dust of Your lotus feet, the forgetful living
entity gradually remembers his eternal relationship with You. Devotees thus gradually come to the right
conclusion about the value of life. My dear Lord, I therefore do not need any other benediction but the
opportunity to hear from the mouth of Your pure devotee.
26. My dear highly glorified Lord, if one, in the association of pure devotees, hears even once the
glories of Your activities, he does not, unless he is nothing but an animal, give up the association of
devotees, for no intelligent person would be so careless as to leave their association. The perfection of
chanting and hearing about Your glories was accepted even by the goddess of fortune, who desired to
hear of Your unlimited activities and transcendental glories.
27. Now I wish to engage in the service of the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and to
serve just like the goddess of fortune, who carries a lotus flower in her hand, because His Lordship, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, is the reservoir of all transcendental qualities. I am afraid that the
goddess of fortune and I would quarrel because both of us would be attentively engaged in the same
service.
28. My dear Lord of the universe, the goddess of fortune, Laksmi, is the mother of the universe, and yet
I think that she may be angry with me because of my intruding upon her service and acting on that very
platform to which she is so much attached. Yet I am hopeful that even though there is some
misunderstanding, You will take my part, for You are very much inclined to the poor and You always
magnify even insignificant service unto You. Therefore even though she becomes angry, I think that
there is no harm for You, because You are so self-sufficient that You can do without her.
29. Great saintly persons who are always liberated take to Your devotional service because only by
devotional service can one be relieved from the illusions of material existence. O my Lord, there is no
reason for the liberated souls to take shelter at Your lotus feet except that such souls are constantly
thinking of Your feet.
30. My dear Lord, what You have said to Your unalloyed devotee is certainly very much bewildering.
The allurements You offer in the Vedas are certainly not suitable for pure devotees. People in general,
bound by the sweet words of the Vedas, engage themselves again and again in fruitive activities,
enamored by the results of their actions.
31. My Lord, due to Your illusory energy, all living beings in this material world have forgotten their real
constitutional position, and out of ignorance they are always desirous of material happiness in the form
of society, friendship and love. Therefore, please do not ask me to take some material benefits from
You, but as a father, not waiting for the son's demand, does everything for the benefit of the son, please
bestow upon me whatever You think best for me.
32. The great sage Maitreya continued by saying that the Lord, the seer of the universe, after hearing
Prthu Maharaja's prayer, addressed the King: My dear King, may you always be blessed by engaging in
178 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
My devotional service. Only by such purity of purpose, as you yourself very intelligently express, can
one cross over the insurmountable illusory energy of maya.
33. My dear King, O protector of the citizens, henceforward be very careful to execute My orders and
not be misled by anything. Anyone who lives in that way, simply carrying out My orders faithfully, will
always find good fortune all over the world.
34. The great saint Maitreya told Vidura: The Supreme Personality of Godhead amply appreciated the
meaningful prayers of Maharaja Prthu. Thus, after being properly worshiped by the King, the Lord
blessed him and decided to depart.
35-36. King Prthu worshiped the demigods, the great sages, the inhabitants of Pitrloka, the inhabitants
of Gandharvaloka and those of Siddhaloka, Caranaloka, Pannagaloka, Kinnaraloka, Apsaroloka, the
earthly planets and the planets of the birds. He also worshiped many other living entities who presented
themselves in the sacrificial arena. With folded hands he worshiped all these, as well as the Supreme
Personality of Godhead and the personal associates of the Lord, by offering sweet words and as much
wealth as possible. After this function, they all went back to their respective abodes, following in the
footsteps of Lord Visnu.
37. The infallible Supreme Personality of Godhead, having captivated the minds of the King and the
priests who were present, returned to His abode in the spiritual sky.
38. King Prthu then offered his respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is
the Supreme Lord of all demigods. Although not an object of material vision, the Lord revealed Himself
to the sight of Maharaja Prthu. After offering obeisances to the Lord, the King returned to his home.
Chapter Twenty-one Instructions by Maharaja Prthu
1. The great sage Maitreya told Vidura: When the King entered his city, it was very beautifully decorated
to receive him with pearls, flower garlands, beautiful cloth and golden gates, and the entire city was
perfumed with highly fragrant incense.
2. Fragrant water distilled from sandalwood and aguru herb was sprinkled everywhere on the lanes,
roads and small parks throughout the city, and everywhere were decorations of unbroken fruits, flowers,
wetted grains, varied minerals, and lamps, all presented as auspicious paraphernalia.
3. At the street crossings there were bunches of fruits and flowers, as well as pillars of banana trees
and betel nut branches. All these combined decorations everywhere looked very attractive.
4. As the King entered the gate of the city, all the citizens received him with many auspicious articles
like lamps, flowers and yogurt. The King was also received by many beautiful unmarried girls whose
bodies were bedecked with various ornaments, especially with earrings which collided with one another.
5. When the King entered the palace, conchshells and kettledrums were sounded, priests chanted
Vedic mantras, and professional reciters offered different prayers. But in spite of all this ceremony to
welcome him, the King was not the least bit affected.
6. Both the important citizens and the common citizens welcomed the King very heartily, and he also
bestowed upon them their desired blessings.
7. King Prthu was greater than the greatest soul and was therefore worshipable by everyone. He
performed many glorious activities in ruling over the surface of the world and was always
magnanimous. After achieving such great success and a reputation which spread throughout the
universe, he at last obtained the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
8. Suta Gosvami continued: O Saunaka, leader of the great sages, after hearing Maitreya speak about
the various activities of King Prthu, the original king, who was fully qualified, glorified and widely praised
all over the world, Vidura, the great devotee, very submissively worshiped Maitreya Rsi and asked him
the following question.
9. Vidura said: My dear brahmana Maitreya, it is very enlightening to understand that King Prthu was
enthroned by the great sages and brahmanas. All the demigods presented him with innumerable gifts,
and he also expanded his influence upon personally receiving strength from Lord Visnu. Thus he
greatly developed the earth.
10. Prthu Maharaja was so great in his activities and magnanimous in his method of ruling that all the
kings and demigods on the various planets still follow in his footsteps. Who is there who will not try to
hear about his glorious activities? I wish to hear more and more about Prthu Maharaja because his
activities are so pious and auspicious.
11. The great saintly sage Maitreya told Vidura: My dear Vidura, King Prthu lived in the tract of land
between the two great rivers Ganges and Yamuna. Because he was very opulent, it appeared that he
was enjoying his destined fortune in order to diminish the results of his past pious activities.
12. Maharaja Prthu was an unrivaled king and possessed the scepter for ruling all the seven islands on
the surface of the globe. No one could disobey his irrevocable orders but the saintly persons, the
brahmanas and the descendants of the Supreme Personality of Godhead [the Vaisnavas].
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 179
13. Once upon a time King Prthu initiated the performance of a very great sacrifice in which great saintly
sages, brahmanas, demigods from higher planetary systems and great saintly kings known as rajarsis
all assembled together.
14. In that great assembly, Maharaja Prthu first of all worshiped all the respectable visitors according to
their respective positions. After this, he stood up in the midst of the assembly, and it appeared that the
full moon 15. King Prthu's body was tall and sturdy, and his complexion was fair. His arms were full and
broad and his eyes as bright as the rising sun. His nose was straight, his face very beautiful and his
personality grave. His teeth were set beautifully in his smiling face.
16. The chest of Maharaja Prthu was very broad, his waist was very thick, and his abdomen, wrinkled
by lines of skin, resembled in construction a leaf of a banyan tree. His navel was coiled and deep, his
thighs were of a golden hue, and his instep was arched.
17. The black, slick hair on his head was very fine and curly, and his neck, like a conchshell, was
decorated with auspicious lines. He wore a very valuable dhoti, and there was a nice wrapper on the
upper part of his body.
18. As Maharaja Prthu was being initiated to perform the sacrifice, he had to leave aside his valuable
dress, and therefore his natural bodily beauty was visible. It was very pleasing to see him put on a black
deerskin and wear a ring of kusa grass on his finger, for this increased the natural beauty of his body. It
appears that Maharaja Prthu observed all the regulative principles before he performed the sacrifice.
19. Just to encourage the members of the assembly and to enhance their pleasure, King Prthu glanced
over them with eyes that seemed like stars in a sky wet with dew. He then spoke to them in a great
voice.
20. Maharaja Prthu's speech was very beautiful, full of metaphorical language, clearly understandable
and very pleasing to hear. His words were all grave and certain. It appears that when he spoke, he
expressed his personal realization of the Absolute Truth in order to benefit all who were present.
21. King Prthu said: O gentle members of the assembly, may all good fortune be upon you! May all of
you great souls who have come to attend this meeting kindly hear my prayer attentively. A person who
is actually inquisitive must present his decision before an assembly of noble souls.
22. King Prthu continued: By the grace of the Supreme Lord I have been appointed the king of this
planet, and I carry the scepter to rule the citizens, protect them from all danger and give them
employment according to their respective positions in the social order established by Vedic injunction.
23. Maharaja Prthu said: I think that upon the execution of my duties as king, I shall be able to achieve
the desirable objectives described by experts in Vedic knowledge. This destination is certainly achieved
by the pleasure of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the seer of all destiny.
24. Any king who does not teach his citizens about their respective duties in terms of varna and asrama
but who simply exacts tolls and taxes from them is liable to suffer for the impious activities which have
been performed by the citizens. In addition to such degradation, the king also loses his own fortune.
25. Prthu Maharaja continued: Therefore, my dear citizens, for the welfare of your king after his death,
you should execute your duties properly in terms of your positions of varna and asrama and should
always think of the Supreme Personality of Godhead within your hearts. By doing so, you will protect
your own interests, and you will bestow mercy upon your king for his welfare after death.
26. I request all the pure-hearted demigods, forefathers and saintly persons to support my proposal, for
after death the result of an action is equally shared by its doer, its director and its supporter.
27. My dear respectable ladies and gentlemen, according to the authoritative statements of sastra,
there must be a supreme authority who is able to award the respective benefits of our present activities.
Otherwise, why should there be persons who are unusually beautiful and powerful both in this life and in
the life after death?
28-29. This is confirmed not only by the evidence of the Vedas but also by the personal behavior of
great personalities like Manu, Uttanapada, Dhruva, Priyavrata and my grandfather Anga, as well as by
many other great personalities and ordinary living entities, exemplified by Maharaja Prahlada and Bali,
all of whom are theists, believing in the existence of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who carries
a club.
30. Although abominable persons like my father, Vena, the grandson of death personified, are
bewildered on the path of religion, all the great personalities like those mentioned agree that in this
world the only bestower of the benedictions of religion, economic development, sense gratification,
liberation or elevation to the heavenly planets is the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
31. By the inclination to serve the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, suffering humanity
can immediately cleanse the dirt which has accumulated in their minds during innumerable births. Like
the Ganges water, which emanates from the toes of the lotus feet of the Lord, such a process
immediately cleanses the mind, and thus spiritual or Krsna consciousness gradually increases.
180 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
32. When a devotee takes shelter at the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, he is
completely cleansed of all misunderstanding or mental speculation, and he manifests renunciation. This
is possible only when one is strengthened by practicing bhakti-yoga. Once having taken shelter at the
root of the lotus feet of the Lord, a devotee never comes back to this material existence, which is full of
the threefold miseries.
33. Prthu Maharaja advised his citizens: Engaging your minds, your words, your bodies and the results
of your occupational duties, and being always open-minded, you should all render devotional service to
the Lord. According to your abilities and the occupations in which you are situated, you should engage
your service at the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead with full confidence and without
reservation. Then you will surely be successful in achieving the final objective in your lives.
34. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is transcendental and not contaminated by this material
world. But although He is concentrated spirit soul without material variety, for the benefit of the
conditioned soul He nevertheless accepts different types of sacrifice performed with various material
elements, rituals and mantras and offered to the demigods under different names according to the
interests and purposes of the performers.
35. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is all-pervading, but He is also manifested in different types of
bodies which arise from a combination of material nature, time, desires and occupational duties. Thus
different types of consciousness develop, just as fire, which is always basically the same, blazes in
different ways according to the shape and dimension of firewood.
36. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the master and enjoyer of the results of all sacrifices, and
He is the supreme spiritual master as well. All of you citizens on the surface of the globe who have a
relationship with me and are worshiping Him by dint of your occupational duties are bestowing your
mercy upon me. Therefore, O my citizens, I thank you.
37. The brahmanas and Vaisnavas are personally glorified by their characteristic powers of tolerance,
penance, knowledge and education. By dint of all these spiritual assets, Vaisnavas are more powerful
than royalty. It is therefore advised that the princely order not exhibit its material prowess before these
two communities and should avoid offending them.
38. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, the ancient, eternal Godhead, who is foremost amongst all
great personalities, obtained the opulence of His staunch reputation, which purifies the entire universe,
by worshiping the lotus feet of those brahmanas and Vaisnavas.
39. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is everlastingly independent and who exists in
everyone's heart, is very pleased with those who follow in His footsteps and engage without reservation
in the service of the descendants of brahmanas and Vaisnavas, for He is always dear to brahmanas
and Vaisnavas and they are always dear to Him.
40. By regular service to the brahmanas and Vaisnavas, one can clear the dirt from his heart and thus
enjoy supreme peace and liberation from material attachment and be satisfied. In this world there is no
fruitive activity superior to serving the brahmana class, for this can bring pleasure to the demigods, for
whom the many sacrifices are recommended.
41. Although the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Ananta, eats through the fire sacrifices offered in
the names of the different demigods, He does not take as much pleasure in eating through fire as He
does in accepting offerings through the mouths of learned sages and devotees, for then He does not
leave the association of devotees.
42. In brahminical culture a brahmana's transcendental position is eternally maintained because the
injunctions of the Vedas are accepted with faith, austerity, scriptural conclusions, full sense and mind
control, and meditation. In this way the real goal of life is illuminated, just as one's face is fully reflected
in a clear mirror.
43. O respectable personalities present here, I beg the blessings of all of you that I may perpetually
carry on my crown the dust of the lotus feet of such brahmanas and Vaisnavas until the end of my life.
He who can carry such dust on his head is very soon relieved of all the reactions which arise from sinful
life, and eventually he develops all good and desirable qualities.
44. Whoever acquires the brahminical qualifications--whose only wealth is good behavior, who is
grateful and who takes shelter of experienced persons--gets all the opulence of the world. I therefore
wish that the Supreme Personality of Godhead and His associates be pleased with the brahmana class,
with the cows and with me.
45. The great sage Maitreya said: After hearing King Prthu speak so nicely, all the demigods, the
denizens of Pitrloka, the brahmanas and the saintly persons present at the meeting congratulated him
by expressing their good will.
46. They all declared that the Vedic conclusion that one can conquer the heavenly planets by the action
of a putra, or son, was fulfilled, for the most sinful Vena, who had been killed by the curse of the
brahmanas, was now delivered from the darkest region of hellish life by his son, Maharaja Prthu.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 181
47. Similarly, Hiranyakasipu, who by dint of his sinful activities always defied the supremacy of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, entered into the darkest region of hellish life; but by the grace of his
great son, Prahlada Maharaja, he also was delivered and went back home, back to Godhead.
48. All the saintly brahmanas thus addressed Prthu Maharaja: O best of the warriors, O father of this
globe, may you be blessed with a long life, for you have great devotion to the infallible Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who is the master of all the universe.
49. The audience continued: Dear King Prthu, your reputation is the purest of all, for you are preaching
the glories of the most glorified of all, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Lord of the brahmanas.
Since, due to our great fortune, we have you as our master, we think that we are living directly under
the agency of the Lord.
50. Our dear lord, it is your occupational duty to rule over your citizens. That is not a very wonderful task
for a personality like you, who are so affectionate in seeing to the interests of the citizens, because you
are full of mercy. That is the greatness of your character.
51. The citizens continued: Today you have opened our eyes and revealed how to cross to the other
side of the ocean of darkness. By our past deeds and by the arrangement of superior authority, we are
entangled in a network of fruitive activities and have lost sight of the destination of life; thus we have
been wandering within the universe.
52. Dear lord, you are situated in your pure existential position of goodness; therefore you are the
perfect representative of the Supreme Lord. You are glorified by your own prowess, and thus you are
maintaining the entire world by introducing brahminical culture and protecting everyone in your line of
duty as a ksatriya.
Chapter Twenty-two Prthu Maharaja's Meeting with the Four Kumaras
1. The great sage Maitreya said: While the citizens were thus praying to the most powerful King Prthu,
the four Kumaras, who were as bright as the sun, arrived on the spot.
2. Seeing the glowing effulgence of the four Kumaras, the masters of all mystic Power, the King and his
associates could recognize them as they descended from the sky.
3. Seeing the four Kumaras, Prthu Maharaja was greatly anxious to receive them. Therefore the King,
with all his officers, very hastily got up, as anxiously as a conditioned soul whose senses are
immediately attracted by the modes of material nature.
4. When the great sages accepted their reception, according to the instructions of the sastras, and
finally took their seats offered by the King, the King, influenced by the glories of the sages, immediately
bowed down. Thus he worshiped the four Kumaras.
5. After this, the King took the water which had washed the lotus feet of the Kumaras and sprinkled it
over his hair. By such respectful actions, the King, as an exemplary personality, showed how to receive
a spiritually advanced personality.
6. The four great sages were elder to Lord Siva, and when they were seated on the golden throne, they
appeared just like fire blazing on an altar. Maharaja Prthu, out of his great gentleness and respect for
them, began to speak with great restraint as follows.
7. King Prthu spoke: My dear great sages, auspiciousness personified, it is very difficult for even the
mystic yogis to see you. Indeed, you are very rarely seen. I do not know what kind of pious activity I
performed for you to grace me by appearing before me without difficulty.
8. Any person upon whom the brahmanas and Vaisnavas are pleased can achieve anything which is
very rare to obtain in this world as well as after death. Not only that, but one also receives the favor of
the auspicious Lord Siva and Lord Visnu, who accompany the brahmanas and Vaisnavas.
9. Prthu Maharaja continued: Although you are traveling in all planetary systems, people cannot know
you, just as they cannot know the Supersoul, although He is within everyone's heart as the witness of
everything. Even Lord Brahma and Lord Siva cannot understand the Supersoul.
10. A person who is not very rich and is attached to family life becomes highly glorified when saintly
persons are present in his home. The master and servants who are engaged in offering the exalted
visitors water, a sitting place and paraphernalia for reception are glorified, and the home itself is also
glorified.
11. On the contrary, even though full of all opulence and material prosperity, any householder's house
where the devotees of the Lord are never allowed to come in, and where there is no water for washing
their feet, is to be considered a tree in which all venomous serpents live.
12. Maharaja Prthu offered his welcome to the four Kumaras, addressing them as the best of the
brahmanas. He welcomed them, saying: From the beginning of your birth you strictly observed the vows
of celibacy, and although you are experienced in the path of liberation, you are keeping yourselves just
like small children.
182 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
13. Prthu Maharaja inquired from the sages about persons entangled in this dangerous material
existence because of their previous actions; could such persons, whose only aim is sense gratification,
be blessed with any good fortune?
14. Prthu Maharaja continued: My dear sirs, there is no need to ask about your good and bad fortune
because you are always absorbed in spiritual bliss. The mental concoction of the auspicious and
inauspicious does not exist in you.
15. I am completely assured that personalities like you are the only friends for persons who are blazing
in the fire of material existence. I therefore ask you how in this material world we can very soon achieve
the ultimate goal of life.
16. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is always anxious to elevate the living entities, who are His
parts and parcels, and for their special benefit, the Lord travels all over the world in the form of self-
realized persons like you.
17. The great sage Maitreya continued: Thus Sanat-kumara, the best of the celibates, after hearing the
speech of Prthu Maharaja, which was meaningful, appropriate, full of precise words and very sweet to
hear, smiled with full satisfaction and began to speak as follows.
18. Sanat-kumara said: My dear King Prthu, I am very nicely questioned by you. Such questions are
beneficial for all living entities, especially because they are raised by you, who are always thinking of the
good of others. Although you know everything, you ask such questions because that is the behavior of
saintly persons. Such intelligence is befitting your position.
19. When there is a congregation of devotees, their discussions, questions and answers become
conclusive to both the speaker and the audience. Thus such a meeting is beneficial for everyone's real
happiness.
20. Sanat-kumara continued: My dear King, you already have an inclination to glorify the lotus feet of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Such attachment is very difficult to achieve, but when one has
attained such unflinching faith in the Lord, it automatically cleanses lusty desires from the core of the
heart.
21. It has been conclusively decided in the scriptures, after due consideration, that the ultimate goal for
the welfare of human society is detachment from the bodily concept of life and increased and steadfast
attachment for the Supreme Lord, who is transcendental, beyond the modes of material nature.
22. Attachment for the Supreme can be increased by practicing devotional service, inquiring about the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, applying bhakti-yoga in life, worshiping the Yogesvara, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, and by hearing and chanting about the glories of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. These actions are pious in themselves.
23. One has to make progress in spiritual life by not associating with persons who are simply interested
in sense gratification and making money. Not only such persons, but one who associates with such
persons should be avoided. One should mold his life in such a way that he cannot live in peace without
drinking the nectar of the glorification of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari. One can be thus
elevated by being disgusted with the taste for sense enjoyment.
24. A candidate for spiritual advancement must be nonviolent, must follow in the footsteps of great
acaryas, must always remember the nectar of the pastimes of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
must follow the regulative principles without material desire and, while following the regulative
principles, should not blaspheme others. A devotee should lead a very simple life and not be disturbed
by the duality of opposing elements. He should learn to tolerate them.
25. The devotee should gradually increase the culture of devotional service by constant hearing of the
transcendental qualities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. These pastimes are like ornamental
decorations on the ears of devotees. By rendering devotional service and transcending the material
qualities, one can easily be fixed in transcendence in the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
26. Upon becoming fixed in his attachment to the Supreme Personality of Godhead by the grace of the
spiritual master and by awakening knowledge and detachment, the living entity, situated within the heart
of the body and covered by the five elements, burns up his material surroundings exactly as fire, arising
from wood, burns the wood itself.
27. When a person becomes devoid of all material desires and liberated from all material qualities, he
transcends distinctions between actions executed externally and internally. At that time the difference
between the soul and the Supersoul, which was existing before self-realization, is annihilated. When a
dream is over, there is no longer a distinction between the dream and the dreamer.
28. When the soul exists for sense gratification, he creates different desires, and for that reason he
becomes subjected to designations. But when one is in the transcendental position, he is no longer
interested in anything except fulfilling the desires of the Lord.
29. Only because of different causes does a person see a difference between himself and others, just
as one sees the reflection of a body appearing differently manifested on water, on oil or in a mirror.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 183
30. When one's mind and senses are attracted to sense objects for enjoyment, the mind becomes
agitated. As a result of continually thinking of sense objects, one's real consciousness almost becomes
lost, like the water in a lake that is gradually sucked up by the big grass straws on its bank.
31. When one deviates from his original consciousness, he loses the capacity to remember his previous
position or recognize his present one. When remembrance is lost, all knowledge acquired is based on a
false foundation. When this occurs, learned scholars consider that the soul is lost.
32. There is no stronger obstruction to one's self-interest than thinking other subject matters to be more
pleasing than one's self-realization.
33. For human society, constantly thinking of how to earn money and apply it for sense gratification
brings about the destruction of everyone's interests. When one becomes devoid of knowledge and
devotional service, he enters into species of life like those of trees and stones.
34. Those who strongly desire to cross the ocean of nescience must not associate with the modes of
ignorance, for hedonistic activities are the greatest obstructions to realization of religious principles,
economic development, regulated sense gratification and, at last, liberation.
35. Out of the four principles--namely religion, economic development, sense gratification and
liberation--liberation has to be taken very seriously. The other three are subject to destruction by the
stringent law of nature--death.
36. We accept as blessings different states of higher life, distinguishing them from lower states of life,
but we should know that such distinctions exist only in relation to the interchange of the modes of
material nature. Actually these states of life have no permanent existence, for all of them will be
destroyed by the supreme controller.
37. Sanat-kumara advised the King: Therefore, my dear King Prthu, try to understand the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who is living within everyone's heart along with the individual soul, in each and
every body, either moving or not moving. The individual souls are fully covered by the gross material
body and subtle body made of the life air and intelligence.
38. The Supreme Personality of Godhead manifests Himself as one with the cause and effect within this
body, but one who has transcended the illusory energy by deliberate consideration, which clears the
misconception of a snake for a rope, can understand that the Paramatma is eternally transcendental to
the material creation and situated in pure internal energy. Thus the Lord is transcendental to all material
contamination. Unto Him only must one surrender.
39. The devotees, who are always engaged in the service of the toes of the lotus feet of the Lord, can
very easily overcome hard-knotted desires for fruitive activities. Because this is very difficult, the
nondevotees--the jnanis and yogis--although trying to stop the waves of sense gratification, cannot do
so. Therefore you are advised to engage in the devotional service of Krsna, the son of Vasudeva.
40. The ocean of nescience is very difficult to cross because it is infested with many dangerous sharks.
Although those who are nondevotees undergo severe austerities and penances to cross that ocean, we
recommend that you simply take shelter of the lotus feet of the Lord, which are like boats for crossing
the ocean. Although the ocean is difficult to cross, by taking shelter of His lotus feet you will overcome
all dangers.
41. The great sage Maitreya continued: Being thus enlightened in complete spiritual knowledge by the
son of Brahma--one of the Kumaras, who was complete in spiritual knowledge--the King worshiped
them in the following words.
42. The King said: O brahmana, O powerful one, formerly Lord Visnu showed me His causeless mercy,
indicating that you would come to my house, and to confirm that blessing, you have all come.
43. My dear brahmana, you have carried out the order thoroughly because you are also as
compassionate as the Lord. It is my duty, therefore, to offer you something, but all I possess are but
remnants of food taken by great saintly persons. What shall I give?
44. The King continued: Therefore, my dear brahmanas, my life, wife, children, home, furniture and
household paraphernalia, my kingdom, strength, land and especially my treasury are all offered unto
you.
45. Since only a person who is completely educated according to the principles of Vedic knowledge
deserves to be commander-in-chief, ruler of the state, the first to chastise and the proprietor of the
whole planet, Prthu Maharaja offered everything to the Kumaras.
46. The ksatriyas, vaisyas and sudras eat their food by virtue of the brahmanas' mercy. It is the
brahmanas who enjoy their own property, clothe themselves with their own property and give charity
with their own property.
47. Prthu Maharaja continued: How can such persons, who have rendered unlimited service by
explaining the path of self-realization in relation to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and whose
explanations are given for our enlightenment with complete conviction and Vedic evidence, be repaid
184 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
except by folded palms containing water for their satisfaction? Such great personalities can be satisfied
only by their own activities, which are distributed amongst human society out of their unlimited mercy.
48. The great sage Maitreya continued: Being thus worshiped by Maharaja Prthu, the four Kumaras,
who were masters of devotional service, became very pleased. Indeed, they appeared in the sky and
praised the character of the King, and everyone observed them.
49. Amongst great personalities, Maharaja Prthu was the chief by virtue of his fixed position in relation
to spiritual enlightenment. He remained satisfied as one who has achieved all success in spiritual
understanding.
50. Being self-satisfied, Maharaja Prthu executed his duties as perfectly as possible according to the
time and his situation, strength and financial position. His only aim in all his activities was to satisfy the
Absolute Truth. In this way, he duly acted.
51. Maharaja Prthu completely dedicated himself to be an eternal servant of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, transcendental to material nature. Consequently all the fruits of his activities were dedicated
to the Lord, and he always thought of himself as the servant of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who is the proprietor of everything.
52. Maharaja Prthu, who was very opulent due to the prosperity of his entire empire, remained at home
as a householder. Since he was never inclined to utilize his opulences for the gratification of his senses,
he remained unattached, exactly like the sun, which is unaffected in all circumstances.
53. Being situated in the liberated position of devotional service, Prthu Maharaja not only performed all
fruitive activities but also begot five sons by his wife, Arci. Indeed, all his sons were begotten according
to his own desire.
54. After begetting five sons, named Vijitasva, Dhumrakesa, Haryaksa, Dravina and Vrka, Prthu
Maharaja continued to rule the planet. He accepted all the qualities of the deities who governed all other
planets.
55. Since Maharaja Prthu was a perfect devotee of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, he wanted to
protect the Lord's creation by pleasing the various citizens according to their various desires. Therefore
Prthu Maharaja used to please them in all respects by his words, mentality, works and gentle behavior.
56. Maharaja Prthu became as celebrated a king as Soma-raja, the king of the moon. He was also
powerful and exacting, just like the sun-god, who distributes heat and light and at the same time exacts
all the planetary waters.
57. Maharaja Prthu was so strong and powerful that no one could disobey his orders any more than one
could conquer fire itself. He was so strong that he was compared to Indra, the King of heaven, whose
power is insuperable. On the other hand, Maharaja Prthu was also as tolerant as the earth, and in
fulfilling various desires of human society, he was like heaven itself.
58. Just as rainfall satisfies everyone's desires, Maharaja Prthu used to satisfy everyone. He was like
the sea in that no one could understand his depths, and he was like Meru, the king of hills, in the fixity of
his purpose.
59. Maharaja Prthu's intelligence and education were exactly like that of Yamaraja, the superintendent
of death. His opulence was comparable to the Himalaya Mountains, where all valuable jewels and
metals are stocked. He possessed great riches like Kuvera, the treasurer of the heavenly planets, and
no one could reveal his secrets, for they were like the demigod Varuna's.
60. In his bodily strength and in the strength of his senses, Maharaja Prthu was as strong as the wind,
which can go anywhere and everywhere. As far as his intolerance was concerned, he was just like the
all-powerful Rudra expansion of Lord Siva, or Sadasiva.
61. In his bodily beauty he was just like Cupid, and in his thoughtfulness he was like a lion. In his
affection he was just like Svayambhuva Manu, and in his ability to control he was like Lord Brahma.
62. In his personal behavior, Prthu Maharaja exhibited all good qualities, and in spiritual knowledge he
was exactly like Brhaspati. In self-control he was like the Supreme Personality of Godhead Himself. As
far as his devotional service was concerned, he was a great follower of devotees who were attached to
cow protection and the rendering of all service to the spiritual master and the brahmanas. He was
perfect in his shyness and in his gentle behavior, and when he engaged in some philanthropic activity,
he worked as if he were working for his own personal self.
63. Throughout the whole universe--in the higher, lower and middle planetary systems--Prthu
Maharaja's reputation was loudly declared, and all ladies and saintly persons heard his glories, which
were as sweet as the glories of Lord Ramacandra.
Chapter Twenty-three Maharaja Prthu's Going Back Home
1-3. The great sage Maitreya said: At the last stage of his life, when Maharaja Prthu saw himself getting
old, that great soul, who was king of the world, divided whatever opulence he had accumulated
amongst all kinds of living entities, moving and nonmoving. He arranged pensions for everyone
according to religious principles, and after executing the orders of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 185
in complete coordination with Him, he dedicated his sons unto the earth, which was considered to be
his daughter. Then Maharaja Prthu left the presence of his citizens, who were almost lamenting and
crying from feeling separation from the King, and went to the forest alone with his wife to perform
austerities.
4. After retiring from family life, Maharaja Prthu strictly followed the regulations of retired life and
underwent severe austerities in the forest. He engaged in these activities as seriously as he had
formerly engaged in leading the government and conquering everyone.
5. In the tapo-vana, Maharaja Prthu sometimes ate the trunks and roots of trees, and sometimes he ate
fruit and dried leaves, and for some weeks he drank only water. Finally he lived simply by breathing air.
6. Following the principles of forest living and the footsteps of the great sages and munis, Prthu
Maharaja accepted five kinds of heating processes during the summer season, exposed himself to
torrents of rain in the rainy season and, in the winter, stood in water up to his neck. He also used to
simply lie down on the floor to sleep.
7. Maharaja Prthu underwent all these severe austerities in order to control his words and his senses, to
refrain from discharging his semen and to control the life air within his body. All this he did for the
satisfaction of Krsna. He had no other purpose.
8. By thus practicing severe austerities, Maharaja Prthu gradually became steadfast in spiritual life and
completely free of all desires for fruitive activities. He also practiced breathing exercises to control his
mind and senses, and by such control he became completely free from all desires for fruitive activity.
9. Thus the best amongst human beings, Maharaja Prthu, followed that path of spiritual advancement
which was advised by Sanat-kumara. That is to say, he worshiped the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Krsna.
10. Maharaja Prthu thus engaged completely in devotional service, executing the rules and regulations
strictly according to principles, twenty-four hours daily. Thus his love and devotion unto the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Krsna, developed and became unflinching and fixed.
11. By regularly discharging devotional service, Prthu Maharaja became transcendental in mind and
could therefore constantly think of the lotus feet of the Lord. Because of this, he became completely
detached and attained perfect knowledge by which he could transcend all doubt. Thus he was freed
from the clutches of false ego and the material conception of life.
12. When he became completely free from the conception of bodily life, Maharaja Prthu realized Lord
Krsna sitting in everyone's heart as the Paramatma. Being thus able to get all instructions from Him, he
gave up all other practices of yoga and jnana. He was not even interested in the perfection of the yoga
and jnana systems, for he thoroughly realized that devotional service to Krsna is the ultimate goal of life
and that unless the yogis and jnanis become attracted to krsna-katha [narrations about Krsna], their
illusions concerning existence can never be dispelled.
13. In due course of time, when Prthu Maharaja was to give up his body, he fixed his mind firmly upon
the lotus feet of Krsna, and thus, completely situated on the brahma-bhuta platform, he gave up the
material body.
14. When Maharaja Prthu practiced a particular yogic sitting posture, he blocked the doors of his anus
with his ankles, pressed his right and left calves and gradually raised his life air upward, passing it on to
the circle of his navel, up to his heart and throat, and finally pushed it upward to the central position
between his two eyebrows.
15. In this way, Prthu Maharaja gradually raised his air of life up to the hole in his skull, whereupon he
lost all desire for material existence. Gradually he merged his air of life with the totality of air, his body
with the totality of earth, and the fire within his body with the totality of fire.
16. In this way, according to the different positions of the various parts of the body, Prthu Maharaja
merged the holes of his senses with the sky; his bodily liquids, such as blood and various secretions,
with the totality of water; and he merged earth with water, then water with fire, fire with air, air with sky,
and so on.
17. He amalgamated the mind with the senses and the senses with the sense objects, according to
their respective positions, and he also amalgamated the material ego with the total material energy,
mahat-tattva.
18. Prthu Maharaja then offered the total designation of the living entity unto the supreme controller of
illusory energy. Being released from all the designations by which the living entity became entrapped,
he became free by knowledge and renunciation and by the spiritual force of his devotional service. In
this way, being situated in his original constitutional position of Krsna consciousness, he gave up this
body as a prabhu, or controller of the senses.
19. The Queen, the wife of Prthu Maharaja, whose name was Arci, followed her husband into the forest.
Since she was a queen, her body was very delicate. Although she did not deserve to live in the forest,
she voluntarily touched her lotus feet to the ground.
186 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
20. Although she was not accustomed to such difficulties, Queen Arci followed her husband in the
regulative principles of living in the forest like great sages. She lay down on the ground and ate only
fruits, flowers and leaves, and because she was not fit for these activities, she became frail and thin.
Yet because of the pleasure she derived in serving her husband, she did not feel any difficulties.
21. When Queen Arci saw that her husband, who had been so merciful to her and the earth, no longer
showed symptoms of life, she lamented for a little while and then built a fiery pyre on top of a hill and
placed the body of her husband on it.
22. After this, the Queen executed the necessary funerary functions and offered oblations of water.
After bathing in the river, she offered obeisances to various demigods situated in the sky in the different
planetary systems. She then circumambulated the fire and, while thinking of the lotus feet of her
husband, entered its flames.
23. After observing this brave act performed by the chaste wife Arci, the wife of the great King Prthu,
many thousands of the wives of the demigods, along with their husbands, offered prayers to the Queen,
for they were very much satisfied.
24. At that time the demigods were situated on the top of Mandara Hill, and all their wives began to
shower flowers on the funeral pyre and began to talk amongst themselves as follows.
25. The wives of the demigods said: All glories to Queen Arci! We can see that this queen of the great
King Prthu, the emperor of all the kings of the world, has served her husband with mind, speech and
body exactly as the goddess of fortune serves the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Yajnesa, or Visnu.
26. The wives of the demigods continued: Just see how this chaste lady, Arci, by dint of her
inconceivable pious activities, is still following her husband upward, as far as we can see.
27. In this material world, every human being has a short span of life, but those who are engaged in
devotional service go back home, back to Godhead, for they are actually on the path of liberation. For
such persons, there is nothing which is not available.
28. Any person who engages himself within this material world in performing activities that necessitate
great struggle, and who, after obtaining a human form of life--which is a chance to attain liberation from
miseries--undertakes the difficult tasks of fruitive activities, must be considered to be cheated and
envious of his own self.
29. The great sage Maitreya continued speaking: My dear Vidura, when the wives of the denizens of
heaven were thus talking amongst themselves, Queen Arci reached the planet which her husband,
Maharaja Prthu, the topmost self-realized soul, had attained.
30. Maitreya continued: The greatest of all devotees, Maharaja Prthu, was very powerful, and his
character was liberal, magnificent and magnanimous. Thus I have described him to you as far as
possible.
31. Any person who describes the great characteristics of King Prthu with faith and determination--
whether he reads or hears of them himself or helps others to hear of them--is certain to attain the very
planet which Maharaja Prthu attained. In other words, such a person also returns home to the
Vaikuntha planets, back to Godhead.
32. If one hears of the characteristics of Prthu Maharaja and is a brahmana, he becomes perfectly
qualified with brahminical powers; if he is a ksatriya, he becomes a king of the world; if he is a vaisya,
he becomes a master of other vaisyas and many animals; and if he is a sudra, he becomes the topmost
devotee.
33. It does not matter whether one is a man or woman. Anyone who, with great respect, hears this
narration of Maharaja Prthu will become the father of many children if he is without children and will
become the richest of men if he is without money.
34. Also, one who hears this narration three times will become very reputable if he is not recognized in
society, and he will become a great scholar if he is illiterate. In other words, hearing of the narrations of
Prthu Maharaja is so auspicious that it drives away all bad luck.
35. By hearing the narration of Prthu Maharaja, one can become great, increase his duration of life, gain
promotion to the heavenly planets and counteract the contaminations of this age of Kali. In addition, one
can promote the causes of religion, economic development, sense gratification and liberation. Therefore
from all sides it is advisable for a materialistic person who is interested in such things to read and hear
the narrations of the life and character of Prthu Maharaja.
36. If a king, who is desirous of attaining victory and ruling power, chants the narration of Prthu
Maharaja three times before going forth on his chariot, all subordinate kings will automatically render all
kinds of taxes unto him--as they rendered them unto Maharaja Prthu--simply upon his order.
37. A pure devotee who is executing the different processes of devotional service may be situated in the
transcendental position, being completely absorbed in Krsna consciousness, but even he, while
discharging devotional service, must hear, read and induce others to hear about the character and life
of Prthu Maharaja.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 187
38. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, I have as far as possible spoken the narrations
about Prthu Maharaja, which enrich one's devotional attitude. Whoever takes advantage of these
benefits also goes back home, back to Godhead, like Maharaja Prthu.
39. Whoever, with great reverence and adoration, regularly reads, chants and describes the history of
Maharaja Prthu's activities will certainly increase unflinching faith and attraction for the lotus feet of the
Lord. The Lord's lotus feet are the boat by which one can cross the ocean of nescience.
Chapter Twenty-four Chanting the Song Sung by Lord Siva
1. The great sage Maitreya continued: Vijitasva, the eldest son of Maharaja Prthu, who had a reputation
like his father's, became emperor and gave his younger brothers different directions of the world to
govern, for he was very affectionate toward his brothers.
2. Maharaja Vijitasva offered the eastern part of the world to his brother Haryaksa, the southern part to
Dhumrakesa, the western part to Vrka and the northern part to Dravina.
3. Formerly, Maharaja Vijitasva pleased the King of heaven, Indra, and from him received the title
Antardhana. His wife's name was Sikhandini, and by her he begot three good sons.
4. The three sons of Maharaja Antardhana were named Pavaka, Pavamana and Suci. Formerly these
three personalities were the demigods of fire, but due to the curse of the great sage Vasistha, they
became the sons of Maharaja Antardhana. As such, they were as powerful as the fire-gods, and they
attained the destination of mystic yoga power, being again situated as the demigods of fire.
5. Maharaja Antardhana had another wife, named Nabhasvati, and by her he was happy to beget
another son, named Havirdhana. Since Maharaja Antardhana was very liberal, he did not kill Indra while
the demigod was stealing his father's horse at the sacrifice.
6. Whenever Antardhana, the supreme royal power, had to exact taxes, punish his citizens or fine them
severely, he was not willing to do so. Consequently he retired from the execution of such duties and
engaged himself in the performance of different sacrifices.
7. Although Maharaja Antardhana was engaged in performing sacrifices, because he was a self-
realized soul he very intelligently rendered devotional service to the Lord, who eradicates all the fears of
His devotees. By thus worshiping the Supreme Lord, Maharaja Antardhana, rapt in ecstasy, attained
His planet very easily.
8. Havirdhana, the son of Maharaja Antardhana, had a wife named Havirdhani, who gave birth to six
sons, named Barhisat, Gaya, Sukla, Krsna, Satya and Jitavrata.
9. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, Havirdhana's very powerful son named Barhisat
was very expert in performing various kinds of fruitive sacrifices, and he was also expert in the practice
of mystic yoga. By his great qualifications, he became known as Prajapati.
10. Maharaja Barhisat executed many sacrifices all over the world. He scattered kusa grasses and kept
the tops of the grasses pointed eastward.
11. Maharaja Barhisat--henceforward known as Pracinabarhi--was ordered by the supreme demigod
Lord Brahma to marry the daughter of the ocean named Satadruti. Her bodily features were completely
beautiful, and she was very young. She was decorated with the proper garments, and when she came
into the marriage arena and began circumambulating it, the fire-god Agni became so attracted to her
that he desired her company, exactly as he had formerly desired to enjoy Suki.
12. While Satadruti was thus being married, the demons, the denizens of Gandharvaloka, the great
sages, and the denizens of Siddhaloka, the earthly planets and Nagaloka, although highly exalted, were
all captivated by the tinkling of her ankle bells.
13. King Pracinabarhi begot ten children in the womb of Satadruti. All of them were equally endowed
with religiosity, and all of them were known as the Pracetas.
14. When all these Pracetas were ordered by their father to marry and beget children, they all entered
the ocean and practiced austerities and penances for ten thousand years. Thus they worshiped the
master of all austerity, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
15. When all the sons of Pracinabarhi left home to execute austerities, they met Lord Siva, who, out of
great mercy, instructed them about the Absolute Truth. All the sons of Pracinabarhi meditated upon the
instructions, chanting and worshiping them with great care and attention.
16. Vidura asked Maitreya: My dear brahmana, why did the Pracetas meet Lord Siva on the way?
Please tell me how the meeting happened, how Lord Siva became very pleased with them and how he
instructed them. Certainly such talks are important, and I wish that you please be merciful upon me and
describe them.
17. The great sage Vidura continued: O best of the brahmanas, it is very difficult for living entities
encaged within this material body to have personal contact with Lord Siva. Even great sages who have
no material attachments do not contact him, despite their always being absorbed in meditation to attain
his personal contact.
188 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
18. Lord Siva, the most powerful demigod, second only to Lord Visnu, is self-sufficient. Although he has
nothing to aspire for in the material world, for the benefit of those in the material world he is always
busily engaged everywhere and is accompanied by his dangerous energies like goddess Kali and
goddess Durga.
19. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, because of their pious nature, all the sons of
Pracinabarhi very seriously accepted the words of their father with heart and soul, and with these words
on their heads, they went toward the west to execute their father's order.
20. While traveling, the Pracetas happened to see a great reservoir of water which seemed almost as
big as the ocean. The water of this lake was so calm and quiet that it seemed like the mind of a great
soul, and its inhabitants, the aquatics, appeared very peaceful and happy to be under the protection of
such a watery reservoir.
21. In that great lake there were different types of lotus flowers. Some of them were bluish, and some of
them were red. Some of them grew at night, some in the day and some, like the indivara lotus flower, in
the evening. Combined together, the lotus flowers filled the lake so full that the lake appeared to be a
great mine of such flowers. Consequently, on the shores there were swans and cranes, cakravaka,
karandava and other beautiful water birds standing about.
22. There were various trees and creepers on all sides of the lake, and there were mad bumblebees
humming all about them. The trees appeared to be very jolly due to the sweet humming of the
bumblebees, and the saffron, which was contained in the lotus flowers, was being thrown into the air.
These all created such an atmosphere that it appeared as though a festival were taking place there.
23. The sons of the King became very much amazed when they heard vibrations from various drums
and kettledrums along with other orderly musical sounds pleasing to the ear.
24-25. The Pracetas were fortunate to see Lord Siva, the chief of the demigods, emerging from the
water with his associates. His bodily luster was just like molten gold, his throat was bluish, and he had
three eyes, which looked very mercifully upon his devotees. He was accompanied by many musicians,
who were glorifying him. As soon as the Pracetas saw Lord Siva, they immediately offered their
obeisances in great amazement and fell down at the lotus feet of the lord.
26. Lord Siva became very pleased with the Pracetas because generally Lord Siva is the protector of
pious persons and persons of gentle behavior. Being very much pleased with the princes, he began to
speak as follows.
27. Lord Siva said: You are all the sons of King Pracinabarhi, and I wish all good fortune to you. I also
know what you are going to do, and therefore I am visible to you just to show my mercy upon you.
28. Lord Siva continued: Any person who is surrendered to the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Krsna, the controller of everything--material nature as well as the living entity--is actually very dear to
me.
29. A person who executes his occupational duty properly for one hundred births becomes qualified to
occupy the post of Brahma, and if he becomes more qualified, he can approach Lord Siva. A person
who is directly surrendered to Lord Krsna, or Visnu, in unalloyed devotional service is immediately
promoted to the spiritual planets. Lord Siva and other demigods attain these planets after the
destruction of this material world.
30. You are all devotees of the Lord, and as such I appreciate that you are as respectable as the
Supreme Personality of Godhead Himself. I know in this way that the devotees also respect me and
that I am dear to them. Thus no one can be as dear to the devotees as I am.
31. Now I shall chant one mantra which is not only transcendental, pure and auspicious, but is the best
prayer for anyone who is aspiring to attain the ultimate goal of life. When I chant this mantra, please
hear it carefully and attentively.
32. The great sage Maitreya continued: Out of his causeless mercy, the exalted personality Lord Siva, a
great devotee of Lord Narayana, continued to speak to the King's sons, who were standing with folded
hands.
33. Lord Siva addressed the Supreme Personality of Godhead with the following prayer: O Supreme
Personality of Godhead, all glories unto You. You are the most exalted of all self-realized souls. Since
You are always auspicious for the self-realized, I wish that You be auspicious for me. You are
worshipable by virtue of the all-perfect instructions You give. You are the Supersoul; therefore I offer my
obeisances unto You as the supreme living being.
34. My Lord, You are the origin of the creation by virtue of the lotus flower which sprouts from Your
navel. You are the supreme controller of the senses and the sense objects, and You are also the all-
pervading Vasudeva. You are most peaceful, and because of Your self-illuminated existence, You are
not disturbed by the six kinds of transformations.
35. My dear Lord, You are the origin of the subtle material ingredients, the master of all integration as
well as the master of all disintegration, the predominating Deity named Sankarsana, and the master of
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 189
all intelligence, known as the predominating Deity Pradyumna. Therefore, I offer my respectful
obeisances unto You.
36. My Lord, as the supreme directing Deity known as Aniruddha, You are the master of the senses and
the mind. I therefore offer my obeisances unto You again and again. You are known as Ananta as well
as Sankarsana because of Your ability to destroy the whole creation by the blazing fire from Your
mouth.
37. My Lord, O Aniruddha, You are the authority by which the doors of the higher planetary systems
and liberation are opened. You are always within the pure heart of the living entity. Therefore I offer my
obeisances unto You. You are the possessor of semen which is like gold, and thus, in the form of fire,
You help the Vedic sacrifices, beginning with catur-hotra. Therefore I offer my obeisances unto You.
38. My Lord, You are the provider of the Pitrlokas as well as all the demigods. You are the
predominating deity of the moon and the master of all three Vedas. I offer my respectful obeisances
unto You because You are the original source of satisfaction for all living entities.
39. My dear Lord, You are the gigantic universal form which contains all the individual bodies of the
living entities. You are the maintainer of the three worlds, and as such You maintain the mind, senses,
body, and air of life within them. I therefore offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
40. My dear Lord, by expanding Your transcendental vibrations, You reveal the actual meaning of
everything. You are the all-pervading sky within and without, and You are the ultimate goal of pious
activities executed both within this material world and beyond it. I therefore offer my respectful
obeisances again and again unto You.
41. My dear Lord, You are the viewer of the results of pious activities. You are inclination, disinclination
and their resultant activities. You are the cause of the miserable conditions of life caused by irreligion,
and therefore You are death. I offer You my respectful obeisances.
42. My dear Lord, You are the topmost of all bestowers of all benediction, the oldest and supreme
enjoyer amongst all enjoyers. You are the master of all the worlds' metaphysical philosophy, for You are
the supreme cause of all causes, Lord Krsna. You are the greatest of all religious principles, the
supreme mind, and You have a brain which is never checked by any condition. Therefore I repeatedly
offer my obeisances unto You.
43. My dear Lord, You are the supreme controller of the worker, sense activities and results of sense
activities [karma]. Therefore You are the controller of the body, mind and senses. You are also the
supreme controller of egotism, known as Rudra. You are the source of knowledge and the activities of
the Vedic injunctions.
44. My dear Lord, I wish to see You exactly in the form that Your very dear devotees worship. You have
many other forms, but I wish to see Your form that is especially liked by the devotees. Please be
merciful upon me and show me that form, for only that form worshiped by the devotees can perfectly
satisfy all the demands of the senses.
45-46. The Lord's beauty resembles a dark cloud during the rainy season. As the rainfall glistens, His
bodily features also glisten. Indeed, He is the sum total of all beauty. The Lord has four arms and an
exquisitely beautiful face with eyes like lotus petals, a beautiful highly raised nose, a mind-attracting
smile, a beautiful forehead and equally beautiful and fully decorated ears.
47-48. The Lord is superexcellently beautiful on account of His open and merciful smile and Mis
sidelong glance upon His devotees. His black hair is curly, and His garments, waving in the wind,
appear like flying saffron pollen from lotus flowers. His glittering earrings, shining helmet, bangles,
garland, ankle bells, waist belt and various other bodily ornaments combine with conchshell, disc, club
and lotus flower to increase the natural beauty of the Kaustubha pearl on His chest.
49. The Lord has shoulders just like a lion's. Upon these shoulders are garlands, necklaces and
epaulets, and all of these are always glittering. Besides these, there is the beauty of the Kaustubha-
mani pearl, and on the dark chest of the Lord there are streaks named Srivatsa, which are signs of the
goddess of fortune. The glittering of these streaks excels the beauty of the golden streaks on a gold-
testing stone. Indeed, such beauty defeats a gold-testing stone.
50. The Lord's abdomen is beautiful due to three ripples in the flesh. Being so round, His abdomen
resembles the leaf of a banyan tree, and when He exhales and inhales, the movement of the ripples
appears very, very beautiful. The coils within the navel of the Lord are so deep that it appears that the
entire universe sprouted out of it and yet again wishes to go back.
51. The lower part of the Lord's waist is dark and covered with yellow garments and a belt bedecked
with golden embroidery work. His symmetrical lotus feet and the calves, thighs and joints of His legs are
extraordinarily beautiful. Indeed, the Lord's entire body appears to be well built.
52. My dear Lord, Your two lotus feet are so beautiful that they appear like two blossoming petals of the
lotus flower which grows during the autumn season. Indeed, the nails of Your lotus feet emanate such a
great effulgence that they immediately dissipate all the darkness in the heart of a conditioned soul. My
190 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
dear Lord, kindly show me that form of Yours which always dissipates all kinds of darkness in the heart
of a devotee. My dear Lord, You are the supreme spiritual master of everyone; therefore all conditioned
souls covered with the darkness of ignorance can be enlightened by You as the spiritual master.
53. My dear Lord, those who desire to purify their existence must always engage in meditation upon
Your lotus feet, as described above. Those who are serious about executing their occupational duties
and who want freedom from fear must take to this process of bhakti-yoga.
54. My dear Lord, the king in charge of the heavenly kingdom is also desirous of obtaining the ultimate
goal of life--devotional service. Similarly, You are the ultimate destination of those who identify
themselves with You [aham brahmasmi]. However, it is very difficult for them to attain You, whereas a
devotee can very easily attain Your Lordship.
55. My dear Lord, pure devotional service is even difficult for liberated persons to discharge, but
devotional service alone can satisfy You. Who will take to other processes of self-realization if he is
actually serious about the perfection of life?
56. Simply by expansion of His eyebrows, invincible time personified can immediately vanquish the
entire universe. However, formidable time does not approach the devotee who has taken complete
shelter at Your lotus feet.
57. If one by chance associates with a devotee, even for a fraction of a moment, he no longer is subject
to attraction by the results of karma or jnana. What interest then can he have in the benedictions of the
demigods, who are subject to the laws of birth and death?
58. My dear Lord, Your lotus feet are the cause of all auspicious things and the destroyer of all the
contamination of sin. I therefore beg Your Lordship to bless me by the association of Your devotees,
who are completely purified by worshiping Your lotus feet and who are so merciful upon the conditioned
souls. I think that Your real benediction will be to allow me to associate with such devotees.
59. The devotee whose heart has been completely cleansed by the process of devotional service and
who is favored by Bhaktidevi does not become bewildered by the external energy, which is just like a
dark well. Being completely cleansed of all material contamination in this way, a devotee is able to
understand very happily Your name, fame, form, activities, etc.
60. My dear Lord, the impersonal Brahman spreads everywhere, like the sunshine or the sky. And that
impersonal Brahman, which spreads throughout the universe and in which the entire universe is
manifested, is You.
61. My dear Lord, You have manifold energies, and these energies are manifested in manifold forms.
With such energies You have also created this cosmic manifestation, and although You maintain it as if
it were permanent, You ultimately annihilate it. Although You are never disturbed by such changes and
alterations, the living entities are disturbed by them, and therefore they find the cosmic manifestation to
be different or separated from You. My Lord, You are always independent, and I can clearly see this
fact.
62. My dear Lord, Your universal form consists of all five elements, the senses, mind, intelligence, false
ego (which is material) and the Paramatma, Your partial expansion, who is the director of everything.
Yogis other than the devotees--namely the karma-yogi and jnana-yogi--worship You by their respective
actions in their respective positions. It is stated both in the Vedas and in the sastras that are corollaries
of the Vedas, and indeed everywhere, that it is only You who are to be worshiped. That is the expert
version of all the Vedas.
63. My dear Lord, You are the only Supreme Person, the cause of all causes. Before the creation of this
material world, Your material energy remains in a dormant condition. When Your material energy is
agitated, the three qualities--namely goodness, passion and ignorance--act, and as a result the total
material energy--egotism, ether, air, fire, water, earth and all the various demigods and saintly persons--
becomes manifest. Thus the material world is created.
64. My dear Lord, after creating by Your own potencies, You enter within the creation in four kinds of
forms. Being within the hearts of the living entities, You know them and know how they are enjoying
their senses. The so-called happiness of this material creation is exactly like the bees' enjoyment of
honey after it has been collected in the honeycomb.
65. My dear Lord, Your absolute authority cannot be directly experienced, but one can guess by seeing
the activities of the world that everything is being destroyed in due course of time. The force of time is
very strong, and everything is being destroyed by something else--just as one animal is being eaten by
another animal. Time scatters everything, exactly as the wind scatters clouds in the sky.
66. My dear Lord, all living entities within this material world are mad after planning for things, and they
are always busy with a desire to do this or that. This is due to uncontrollable greed. The greed for
material enjoyment is always existing in the living entity, but Your Lordship is always alert, and in due
course of time You strike him, just as a snake seizes a mouse and very easily swallows him.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 191
67. My dear Lord, any learned person knows that unless he worships You, his entire life is spoiled.
Knowing this, how could he give up worshiping Your lotus feet? Even our father and spiritual master,
Lord Brahma, unhesitatingly worshiped You, and the fourteen Manus followed in his footsteps.
68. My dear Lord, all actually learned persons know You as the Supreme Brahman and the Supersoul.
Although the entire universe is afraid of Lord Rudra, who ultimately annihilates everything, for the
learned devotees You are the fearless destination of all.
69. My dear sons of the King, just execute your occupational duty as kings with a pure heart. Just chant
this prayer fixing your mind on the lotus feet of the Lord. That will bring you all good fortune, for the Lord
will be very much pleased with you.
70. Therefore, O sons of the King, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, is situated in everyone's
heart. He is also within your hearts. Therefore chant the glories of the Lord and always meditate upon
Him continuously.
71. My dear princes, in the form of a prayer I have delineated the yoga system of chanting the holy
name. All of you should take this important stotra within your minds and promise to keep it in order to
become great sages. By acting silently like a great sage and by giving attention and reverence, you
should practice this method.
72. This prayer was first spoken to us by Lord Brahma, the master of all creators. The creators, headed
by Bhrgu, were instructed in these prayers because they wanted to create.
73. When all the Prajapatis were ordered to create by Lord Brahma, we chanted these prayers in praise
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and became completely free from all ignorance. Thus we were
able to create different types of living entities.
74. A devotee of Lord Krsna whose mind is always absorbed in Him, who with great attention and
reverence chants this stotra [prayer], will achieve the greatest perfection of life without delay.
75. In this material world there are different types of achievement, but of all of them the achievement of
knowledge is considered to be the highest because one can cross the ocean of nescience only on the
boat of knowledge. Otherwise the ocean is impassable.
76. Although rendering devotional service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead and worshiping Him
are very difficult, if one vibrates or simply reads this stotra [prayer] composed and sung by me, he will
very easily be able to invoke the mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
77. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the dearmost objective of all auspicious benedictions. A
human being who sings this song sung by me can please the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Such a
devotee, being fixed in the Lord's devotional service, can acquire whatever he wants from the Supreme
Lord.
78. A devotee who rises early in the morning and with folded hands chants these prayers sung by Lord
Siva and gives facility to others to hear them certainly becomes free from all bondage to fruitive
activities.
79. My dear sons of the King, the prayers I have recited to you are meant for pleasing the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, the Supersoul. I advise you to recite these prayers, which are as effective as
great austerities. In this way, when you are mature, your life will be successful, and you will certainly
achieve all your desired objectives without fail.
Chapter Twenty-five The Descriptions of the Characteristics of King Puranjana
1. The great sage Maitreya continued speaking to Vidura: My dear Vidura, in this way Lord Siva
instructed the sons of King Barhisat. The sons of the King also worshiped Lord Siva with great devotion
and respect. Finally, Lord Siva became invisible to the princes.
2. All the Praceta princes simply stood in the water for ten thousand years and recited the prayers given
to them by Lord Siva.
3. While the princes were undergoing severe austerities in the water, their father was performing
different types of fruitive activities. At this time the great saint Narada, master and teacher of all spiritual
life, became very compassionate upon the King and decided to instruct him about spiritual life.
4. Narada Muni asked King Pracinabarhisat: My dear King, what do you desire to achieve by performing
these fruitive activities? The chief aim of life is to get rid of all miseries and enjoy happiness, but these
two things cannot be realized by fruitive activity.
5. The King replied: O great soul, Narada, my intelligence is entangled in fruitive activities; therefore I do
not know the ultimate goal of life. Kindly instruct me in pure knowledge so that I can get out of the
entanglement of fruitive activities.
6. Those who are interested only in a so-called beautiful life--namely remaining as a householder
entangled by sons and a wife and searching after wealth--think that such things are life's ultimate goal.
Such people simply wander in different types of bodies throughout this material existence without
finding out the ultimate goal of life.
192 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
7. The great saint Narada said: O ruler of the citizens, my dear King, please see in the sky those
animals which you have sacrificed without compassion and without mercy in the sacrificial arena.
8. All these animals are awaiting your death so that they can avenge the injuries you have inflicted upon
them. After you die, they will angrily pierce your body with iron horns.
9. In this connection I wish to narrate an old history connected with the character of a king called
Puranjana. Please try to hear me with great attention.
10. My dear King, once in the past lived a king named Puranjana, who was celebrated for his great
activities. He had a friend named Avijnata ["the unknown one"]. No one could understand the activities
of Avijnata.
11. King Puranjana began to search for a suitable place to live, and thus he traveled all over the world.
Even after a great deal of traveling, he could not find a place just to his liking. Finally he became
morose and disappointed.
12. King Puranjana had unlimited desires for sense enjoyment; consequently he traveled all over the
world to find a place where all his desires could be fulfilled. Unfortunately he found a feeling of
insufficiency everywhere.
13. Once, while wandering in this way, he saw on the southern side of the Himalayas, in a place named
Bharata-varsa [India], a city that had nine gates all about and was characterized by all auspicious
facilities.
14. That city was surrounded by walls and parks, and within it were towers, canals, windows and
outlets. The houses there were decorated with domes made of gold, silver and iron.
15. The floors of the houses in that city were made of sapphire, crystal, diamonds, pearls, emeralds and
rubies. Because of the luster of the houses in the capital, the city was compared to the celestial town
named Bhogavati.
16. In that city there were many assembly houses, street crossings, streets, restaurants, gambling
houses, markets, resting places, flags, festoons and beautiful parks. All these surrounded the city.
17. On the outskirts of that city were many beautiful trees and creepers encircling a nice lake. Also
surrounding that lake were many groups of birds and bees that were always chanting and humming.
18. The branches of the trees standing on the bank of the lake received particles of water carried by the
spring air from the falls coming down from the icy mountain.
19. In such an atmosphere even the animals of the forest became nonviolent and nonenvious like great
sages. Consequently, the animals did not attack anyone. Over and above everything was the cooing of
the cuckoos. Any passenger passing along that path was invited by that atmosphere to take rest in that
nice garden.
20. While wandering here and there in that wonderful garden, King Puranjana suddenly came in contact
with a very beautiful woman who was walking there without any engagement. She had ten servants with
her, and each servant had hundreds of wives accompanying him.
21. The woman was protected on all sides by a five-hooded snake. She was very beautiful and young,
and she appeared very anxious to find a suitable husband.
22. The woman's nose, teeth and forehead were all very beautiful. Her ears were equally very beautiful
and were bedecked with dazzling earrings.
23. The waist and hips of the woman were very beautiful. She was dressed in a yellow sari with a
golden belt. While she walked, her ankle bells rang. She appeared exactly like a denizen of the
heavens.
24. With the end of her sari the woman was trying to cover her breasts, which were equally round and
well placed side by side. She again and again tried to cover them out of shyness while she walked
exactly like a great elephant.
25. Puranjana, the hero, became attracted by the eyebrows and smiling face of the very beautiful girl
and was immediately pierced by the arrows of her lusty desires. When she smiled shyly, she looked
very beautiful to Puranjana, who, although a hero, could not refrain from addressing her.
26. My dear lotus-eyed, kindly explain to me where you are coming from, who you are, and whose
daughter you are. You appear very chaste. What is the purpose of your coming here? What are you
trying to do? Please explain all these things to me.
27. My dear lotus-eyed, who are those eleven strong bodyguards with you, and who are those ten
specific servants? Who are those women following the ten servants, and who is the snake that is
preceding you?
28. My dear beautiful girl, you are exactly like the goddess of fortune or the wife of Lord Siva or the
goddess of learning, the wife of Lord Brahma. Although you must be one of them, I see that you are
loitering in this forest. Indeed, you are as silent as the great sages. Is it that you are searching after your
own husband? Whoever your husband may be, simply by understanding that you are so faithful to him,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 193
he will come to possess all opulences. I think you must be the goddess of fortune, but I do not see the
lotus flower in your hand. Therefore I am asking you where you have thrown that lotus.
29. O greatly fortunate one, it appears that you are none of the women I have mentioned because I see
that your feet are touching the ground. But if you are some woman of this planet, you can, like the
goddess of fortune, who, accompanied by Lord Visnu, increases the beauty of the Vaikuntha planets,
also increase the beauty of this city by associating with me. You should understand that I am a great
hero and a very powerful king on this planet.
30. Certainly your glancing upon me today has very much agitated my mind. Your smile, which is full of
shyness but at the same time lusty, is agitating the most powerful cupid within me. Therefore, O most
beautiful, I ask you to be merciful upon me.
31. My dear girl, your face is so beautiful with your nice eyebrows and eyes and with your bluish hair
scattered about. In addition, very sweet sounds are coming from your mouth. Nonetheless, you are so
covered with shyness that you do not see me face to face. I therefore request you, my dear girl, to smile
and kindly raise your head to see me.
32. Narada continued: My dear King, when Puranjana became so attracted and impatient to touch the
girl and enjoy her, the girl also became attracted by his words and accepted his request by smiling. By
this time she was certainly attracted by the King.
33. The girl said: O best of human beings, I do not know who has begotten me. I cannot speak to you
perfectly about this. Nor do I know the names or the origin of the associates with me.
34. O great hero, we only know that we are existing in this place. We do not know what will come after.
Indeed, we are so foolish that we do not care to understand who has created this beautiful place for our
residence.
35. My dear gentleman, all these men and women with me are known as my friends, and the snake,
who always remains awake, protects this city even during my sleeping hours. So much I know. I do not
know anything beyond this.
36. O killer of the enemy, you have somehow or other come here. This is certainly great fortune for me.
I wish all auspicious things for you. You have a great desire to satisfy your senses, and all my friends
and I shall try our best in all respects to fulfill your desires.
37. My dear lord, I have just arranged this city of nine gates for you so that you can have all kinds of
sense gratification. You may live here for one hundred years, and everything for your sense gratification
will be supplied.
38. Mow can I expect to unite with others, who are neither conversant about sex nor capable of knowing
how to enjoy life while living or after death? Such foolish persons are like animals because they do not
know the process of sense enjoyment in this life and after death.
39. The woman continued: In this material world, a householder's life brings all kinds of happiness in
religion, economic development, sense gratification and the begetting of children, sons and grandsons.
After that, one may desire liberation as well as material reputation. The householder can appreciate the
results of sacrifices, which enable him to gain promotion to superior planetary systems. All this material
happiness is practically unknown to the transcendentalists. They cannot even imagine such happiness.
40. The woman continued: According to authorities, the householder life is pleasing not only to oneself
but to all the forefathers, demigods, great sages, saintly persons and everyone else. A householder life
is thus beneficial.
41. O my dear hero, who in this world will not accept a husband like you? You are so famous, so
magnanimous, so beautiful and so easily gotten.
42. O mighty-armed, who in this world will not be attracted by your arms, which are just like the bodies
of serpents? Actually you relieve the distress of husbandless women like us by your attractive smile and
your aggressive mercy. We think that you are traveling on the surface of the earth just to benefit us
only.
43. The great sage Narada continued: My dear King, those two--the man and the woman--supporting
one another through mutual understanding, entered that city and enjoyed life for one hundred years.
44. Many professional singers used to sing about the glories of King Puranjana and his glorious
activities. When it was too hot in the summer, he used to enter a reservoir of water. He would surround
himself with many women and enjoy their company.
45. Of the nine gates in that city, seven were on the surface, and two were subterranean. A total of nine
doors were constructed, and these led to different places. All the gates were used by the city's
governor.
46. My dear King, of the nine doors, five led toward the eastern side, one led toward the northern side,
one led toward the southern side, and two led toward the western side. I shall try to give the names of
these different doors.
194 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
47. The two gates named Khadyota and Avirmukhi were situated facing the eastern side, but they were
constructed in one place. Through those two gates the King used to go to the city of Vibhrajita
accompanied by a friend whose name was Dyuman.
48. Similarly in the east there were two sets of gates named Nalini and Nalini, and these were also
constructed in one place. Through these gates the King, accompanied by a friend named Avadhuta,
used to go to the city of Saurabha.
49. The fifth gate situated on the eastern side was named Mukhya, or the chief. Through this gate,
accompanied by his friends named Rasajna and Vipana, he used to visit two places named Bahudana
and Apana.
50. The southern gate of the city was known as Pitrhu, and through that gate King Puranjana used to
visit the city named Daksina-pancala, accompanied by his friend Srutadhara.
51. On the northern side was the gate named Devahu. Through that gate, King Puranjana used to go
with his friend Srutadhara to the place known as Uttara-pancala.
52. On the western side was a gate named Asuri. Through that gate King Puranjana used to go to the
city of Gramaka, accompanied by his friend Durmada.
53. Another gate on the western side was known as Nirrti. Puranjana used to go through this gate to the
place known as Vaisasa, accompanied by his friend Lubdhaka.
54. Of the many inhabitants of this city, there are two persons named Nirvak and Pesaskrt. Although
King Puranjana was the ruler of citizens who possessed eyes, he unfortunately used to associate with
these blind men. Accompanied by them, he used to go here and there and perform various activities.
55. Sometimes he used to go to his private home with one of his chief servants [the mind], who was
named Visucina. At that time, illusion, satisfaction and happiness used to be produced from his wife and
children.
56. Being thus entangled in different types of mental concoction and engaged in fruitive activities, King
Puranjana came completely under the control of material intelligence and was thus cheated. Indeed, he
used to fulfill all the desires of his wife, the Queen.
57-61. When the Queen drank liquor, King Puranjana also engaged in drinking. When the Queen dined,
he used to dine with her, and when she chewed, King Puranjana used to chew along with her. When
the Queen sang, he also sang. Similarly, when the Queen cried, he also cried, and when the Queen
laughed, he also laughed. When the Queen talked loosely, he also talked loosely, and when the Queen
walked, the King walked behind her. When the Queen would stand still, the King would also stand still,
and when the Queen would lie down in bed, he would also follow and lie down with her. When the
Queen sat, he would also sit, and when the Queen heard something, he would follow her to hear the
same thing. When the Queen saw something, the King would also look at it, and when the Queen
smelled something, the King would follow her to smell the same thing. When the Queen touched
something, the King would also touch it, and when the dear Queen was lamenting, the poor King also
had to follow her in lamentation. In the same way, when the Queen felt enjoyment, he also enjoyed, and
when the Queen was satisfied, the King also felt satisfaction.
62. In this way, King Puranjana was captivated by his nice wife and was thus cheated. Indeed, he
became cheated in his whole existence in the material world. Even against that poor foolish King's
desire, he remained under the control of his wife, just like a pet animal that dances according to the
order of its master.
Chapter Twenty-six King Puranjana Goes to the Forest to Hunt, and His Queen Becomes Angry
1-3. The great sage Narada continued: My dear King, once upon a time King Puranjana took up his
great bow, and equipped with golden armor and a quiver of unlimited arrows and accompanied by
eleven commanders, he sat on his chariot driven by five swift horses and went to the forest named
Panca-prastha. He took with him in that chariot two explosive arrows. The chariot itself was situated on
two wheels and one revolving axle. On the chariot were three flags, one rein, one chariot driver, one
sitting place, two poles to which the harness was fixed, five weapons and seven coverings. The chariot
moved in five different styles, and five obstacles lay before it. All the decorations of the chariot were
made of gold.
4. It was almost impossible for King Puranjana to give up the company of his Queen even for a
moment. Nonetheless, on that day, being very much inspired by the desire to hunt, he took up his bow
and arrow with great pride and went to the forest, not caring for his wife.
5. At that time King Puranjana was very much influenced by demoniac propensities. Because of this, his
heart became very hard and merciless, and with sharp arrows he killed many innocent animals in the
forest, taking no consideration.
6. If a king is too attracted to eating flesh, he may, according to the directions of the revealed scriptures
on sacrificial performances, go to the forest and kill some animals that are recommended for killing. One
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 195
is not allowed to kill animals unnecessarily or without restrictions. The Vedas regulate animal-killing to
stop the extravagance of foolish men influenced by the modes of passion and ignorance.
7. Narada Muni continued to speak to King Pracinabarhisat: My dear King, any person who works
according to the directions of the Vedic scriptures does not become involved in fruitive activities.
8. Otherwise, a person who acts whimsically falls down due to false prestige. Thus he becomes
involved in the laws of nature, which are composed of the three qualities [goodness, passion and
ignorance]. In this way a living entity becomes devoid of his real intelligence and becomes perpetually
lost in the cycle of birth and death. Thus he goes up and down from a microbe in stool to a high position
in the Brahmaloka planet.
9. When King Puranjana was hunting in this way, many animals within the forest lost their lives with
great pain, being pierced by the sharp arrowheads. Upon seeing these devastating, ghastly activities
performed by the King, all the people who were merciful by nature became very unhappy. Such merciful
persons could not tolerate seeing all this killing.
10. In this way King Puranjana killed many animals, including rabbits, boars, buffalo, bison, black deer,
porcupines and other game animals. After killing and killing, the King became very tired.
11. After this, the King, very much fatigued, hungry and thirsty, returned to his royal palace. After
returning, he took a bath and had an appropriate dinner. Then he took rest and thus became freed from
all restlessness.
12. After this, King Puranjana decorated his body with suitable ornaments. He also smeared scented
sandalwood pulp over his body and put on flower garlands. In this way he became completely
refreshed. After this, he began to search out his Queen.
13. After taking his dinner and having his thirst and hunger satisfied, King Puranjana felt some joy within
his heart. Instead of being elevated to a higher consciousness, he became captivated by Cupid, and
was moved by a desire to find his wife, who kept him satisfied in his household life.
14. At that time King Puranjana was a little anxious, and he inquired from the household women: My
dear beautiful women, are you and your mistress all very happy like before, or not?
15. King Puranjana said: I do not understand why my household paraphernalia does not attract me as
before. I think that if there is neither a mother nor devoted wife at home, the home is like a chariot
without wheels. Where is the fool who will sit down on such an unworkable chariot?
16. Kindly let me know the whereabouts of that beautiful woman who always saves me when I am
drowning in the ocean of danger. By giving me good intelligence at every step, she always saves me.
17. All the women addressed the King: O master of the citizens, we do not know why your dear wife has
taken on this sort of existence. O killer of enemies, kindly look! She is lying on the ground without
bedding. We cannot understand why she is acting this way.
18. The great sage Narada continued: My dear King Pracinabarhi, as soon as King Puranjana saw his
Queen lying on the ground, appearing like a mendicant, he immediately became bewildered.
19. The King, with aggrieved mind, began to speak to his wife with very pleasing words. Although he
was filled with regret and tried to pacify her, he could not see any symptom of anger caused by love
within the heart of his beloved wife.
20. Because the King was very expert in flattery, he began to pacify his Queen very slowly. First he
touched her two feet, then embraced her nicely, seating her on his lap, and began to speak as follows.
21. King Puranjana said: My dear beautiful wife, when a master accepts a servant as his own man, but
does not punish him for his offenses, the servant must be considered unfortunate.
22. My dear slender maiden, when a master chastises his servant, the servant should accept this as
great mercy. One who becomes angry must be very foolish not to know that such is the duty of his
friend.
23. My dear wife, your teeth are very beautifully set, and your attractive features make you appear very
thoughtful. Kindly give up your anger, be merciful upon me, and please smile upon me with loving
attachment. When I see a smile on your beautiful face, and when I see your hair, which is as beautiful
as the color blue, and see your raised nose and hear your sweet talk, you will become more beautiful to
me and thus attract me and oblige me. You are my most respected mistress.
24. O hero's wife, kindly tell me if someone has offended you. I am prepared to give such a person
punishment as long as he does not belong to the brahmana caste. But for the servant of Muraripu
[Krsna], I excuse no one within or beyond these three worlds. No one can freely move after offending
you, for I am prepared to punish him.
25. My dear wife, until this day I have never seen your face without tilaka decorations, nor have I seen
you so morose and without luster or affection. Nor have I seen your two nice breasts wet with tears from
your eyes. Nor have I ever before seen your lips, which are ordinarily as red as the bimba fruit, without
their reddish hue.
196 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
26. My dear Queen, due to my sinful desires I went to the forest to hunt without asking you. Therefore I
must admit that I have offended you. Nonetheless, thinking of me as your most intimate subordinate,
you should still be very much pleased with me. Factually I am very much bereaved, but being pierced
by the arrow of Cupid, I am feeling lusty. But where is the beautiful woman who would give up her lusty
husband and refuse to unite with him?
Chapter Twenty-seven Attack by Candavega on the City of King Puranjana; the Character of
Kalakanya
1. The great sage Narada continued: My dear King, after bewildering her husband in different ways and
bringing him under her control, the wife of King Puranjana gave him all satisfaction and enjoyed sex life
with him.
2. The Queen took her bath and dressed herself nicely with all auspicious garments and ornaments.
After taking food and becoming completely satisfied, she returned to the King. Upon seeing her
beautifully decorated attractive face, the King welcomed her with all devotion.
3. Queen Puranjani embraced the King, and the King also responded by embracing her shoulders. In
this way, in a solitary place, they enjoyed joking words. Thus King Puranjana became very much
captivated by his beautiful wife and deviated from his good sense. He forgot that the passing of days
and nights meant that his span of life was being reduced without profit.
4. In this way, increasingly overwhelmed by illusion, King Puranjana, although advanced in
consciousness, remained always lying down with his head on the pillow of his wife's arms. In this way
he considered woman to be his ultimate life and soul. Becoming thus overwhelmed by the mode of
ignorance, he could not understand the meaning of self-realization, of his self or of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
5. My dear King Pracinabarhisat, in this way King Puranjana, with his heart full of lust and sinful
reactions, began to enjoy sex with his wife, and in this way his new life and youth expired in half a
moment.
6. The great sage Narada then addressed King Pracinabarhisat: O one whose life-span is great [virat],
in this way King Puranjana begot 1,100 sons within the womb of his wife, Puranjani. However, in this
business he passed away half of his life-span.
7. O Prajapati, King Pracinabarhisat, in this way King Puranjana also begot 110 daughters. All of these
were equally glorified like the father and mother. Their behavior was gentle, and they possessed
magnanimity and other good qualities.
8. After this, King Puranjana, King of the Pancala country, in order to increase the descendants of his
paternal family, married his sons with qualified wives and married his daughters with qualified
husbands.
9. Of these many sons, each produced hundreds and hundreds of grandsons. In this way the whole city
of Pancala became overcrowded by these sons and grandsons of King Puranjana.
10. These sons and grandsons were virtually plunderers of King Puranjana's riches, including his home,
treasury, servants, secretaries and all other paraphernalia. Puranjana's attachment for these things was
very deep-rooted.
11. The great sage Narada continued: My dear King Pracinabarhisat, like you King Puranjana also
became implicated in so many desires. Thus he worshiped demigods, forefathers and social leaders
with various sacrifices which were all very ghastly because they were inspired by the desire to kill
animals.
12. Thus King Puranjana, being attached to fruitive activities [karma-kandiya] as well as kith and kin,
and being obsessed with polluted consciousness, eventually arrived at that point not very much liked by
those who are overly attached to material things.
13. O King! In Gandharvaloka there is a king named Candavega. Under him there are 360 very
powerful Gandharva soldiers.
14. Along with Candavega were as many female Gandharvis as there were soldiers, and all of them
repetitively plundered all the paraphernalia for sense enjoyment.
15. When King Gandharva-raja [Candavega] and his followers began to plunder the city of Puranjana, a
snake with five hoods began to defend the city.
16. The five-hooded serpent, the superintendent and protector of the city of King Puranjana, fought with
the Gandharvas for one hundred years. He fought alone, with all of them, although they numbered 720.
17. Because he had to fight alone with so many soldiers, all of whom were great warriors, the serpent
with five hoods became very weak. Seeing that his most intimate friend was weakening, King Puranjana
and his friends and citizens living within the city all became very anxious.
18. King Puranjana collected taxes in the city known as Pancala and thus was able to engage in sexual
indulgence. Being completely under the control of women, he could not understand that his life was
passing away and that he was reaching the point of death.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 197
19. My dear King Pracinabarhisat, at this time the daughter of formidable Time was seeking her
husband throughout the three worlds. Although no one agreed to accept her, she came.
20. The daughter of Time [Jara] was very unfortunate. Consequently she was known as Durbhaga ["ill-
fated"]. However, she was once pleased with a great king, and because the king accepted her, she
granted him a great benediction.
21. When I once came to this earth from Brahmaloka, the highest planetary system, the daughter of
Time, wandering over the universe, met me. Knowing me to be an avowed brahmacari, she became
lusty and proposed that I accept her.
22. The great sage Narada continued: When I refused to accept her request, she became very angry at
me and cursed me severely. Because I refused her request, she said that I would not be able to stay in
one place for a long time.
23. After she was thus disappointed by me, with my permission she approached the King of the
Yavanas, whose name was Bhaya, or Fear, and she accepted him as her husband.
24. Approaching the King of the Yavanas, Kalakanya addressed him as a great hero, saying: My dear
sir, you are the best of the untouchables. I am in love with you, and I want you as my husband. I know
that no one is baffled if he makes friends with you.
25. One who does not give charity according to the customs or injunctions of the scriptures and one
who does not accept charity in that way are considered to be in the mode of ignorance. Such persons
follow the path of the foolish. Surely they must lament at the end.
26. Kalakanya continued: O gentle one, I am now present before you to serve you. Please accept me
and thus show me mercy. It is a gentleman's greatest duty to be compassionate upon a person who is
distressed.
27. After hearing the statement of Kalakanya, daughter of Time, the King of the Yavanas began to smile
and devise a means for executing his confidential duty on behalf of providence. He then addressed
Kalakanya as follows.
28. The King of the Yavanas replied: After much consideration, I have arrived at a husband for you.
Actually, as far as everyone is concerned, you are inauspicious and mischievous. Since no one likes
you, how can anyone accept you as his wife?
29. This world is a product of fruitive activities. Therefore you may imperceptibly attack people in
general. Helped by my soldiers, you can kill them without opposition.
30. The King of the Yavanas continued: Here is my brother Prajvara. I now accept you as my sister. I
shall employ both of you, as well as my dangerous soldiers, to act imperceptibly within this world.
Chapter Twenty-eight Puranjana Becomes a Woman in the Next Life
1. The great sage Narada continued: My dear King Pracinabarhisat, afterward, the King of the Yavanas,
whose name is fear itself, as well as Prajvara, Kalakanya, and his soldiers, began to travel all over the
world.
2. Once the dangerous soldiers attacked the city of Puranjana with great force. Although the city was
full of paraphernalia for sense gratification, it was being protected by the old serpent.
3. Gradually Kalakanya, with the help of dangerous soldiers, attacked all the inhabitants of Puranjana's
city and thus rendered them useless for all purposes.
4. When Kalakanya, daughter of Time, attacked the body, the dangerous soldiers of the King of the
Yavanas entered the city through different gates. They then began to give severe trouble to all the
citizens.
5. When the city was thus endangered by the soldiers and Kalakanya, King Puranjana, being overly
absorbed in affection for his family, was placed in difficulty by the attack of Yavana-raja and Kalakanya.
6. When King Puranjana was embraced by Kalakanya, he gradually lost all his beauty. Having been too
much addicted to sex, he became very poor in intelligence and lost all his opulence. Being bereft of all
possessions, he was conquered forcibly by the Gandharvas and the Yavanas.
7. King Puranjana then saw that everything in his town was scattered and that his sons, grandsons,
servants and ministers were all gradually opposing him. He also noted that his wife was becoming cold
and indifferent.
8. When King Puranjana saw that all his family members, relatives, followers, servants, secretaries and
everyone else had turned against him, he certainly became very anxious. But he could not counteract
the situation because he was thoroughly overwhelmed by Kalakanya.
9. The objects of enjoyment became stale by the influence of Kalakanya. Due to the continuance of his
lusty desires, King Puranjana became very poor in everything. Thus he did not understand the aim of
life. He was still very affectionate toward his wife and children, and he worried about maintaining them.
10. The city of King Puranjana was overcome by the Gandharva and Yavana soldiers, and although the
King had no desire to leave the city, he was circumstantially forced to do so, for it was smashed by
Kalakanya.
198 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
11. Under the circumstances, the elder brother of Yavana-raja, known as Prajvara, set fire to the city to
please his younger brother, whose other name is fear itself.
12. When the city was set ablaze, all the citizens and servants of the King, as well as all family
members, sons, grandsons, wives and other relatives, were within the fire. King Puranjana thus became
very unhappy.
13. The city's superintendent of police, the serpent, saw that the citizens were being attacked by
Kalakanya, and he became very aggrieved to see his own residence set ablaze after being attacked by
the Yavanas.
14. As a serpent living within the cavity of a tree wishes to leave when there is a forest fire, so the city's
police superintendent, the snake, wished to leave the city due to the fire's severe heat.
15. The limbs of the serpent's body were slackened by the Gandharvas and Yavana soldiers, who had
thoroughly defeated his bodily strength. When he attempted to leave the body, he was checked by his
enemies. Being thus baffled in his attempt, he began to cry loudly.
16. King Puranjana then began to think of his daughters, sons, grandsons, daughters-in-law, sons-in-
law, servants and other associates as well as his house, his household paraphernalia and his little
accumulation of wealth.
17. King Puranjana was overly attached to his family and conceptions of "I" and "mine." Because he
was overly attracted to his wife, he was already quite poverty-stricken. At the time of separation, he
became very sorry.
18. King Puranjana was anxiously thinking, "Alas, my wife is encumbered by so many children. When I
pass from this body, how will she be able to maintain all these family members? Alas, she will be greatly
harassed by thoughts of family maintenance."
19. King Puranjana then began to think of his past dealings with his wife. He recalled that his wife would
not take her dinner until he had finished his, that she would not take her bath until he had finished his,
and that she was always very much attached to him, so much so that if he would sometimes become
angry and chastise her, she would simply remain silent and tolerate his misbehavior.
20. King Puranjana continued thinking how, when he was in a state of bewilderment, his wife would give
him good counsel and how she would become aggrieved when he was away from home. Although she
was the mother of so many sons and heroes, the King still feared that she would not be able to maintain
the responsibility of household affairs.
21. King Puranjana continued worrying: "After I pass from this world, how will my sons and daughters,
who are now fully dependent on me, live and continue their lives? Their position will be similar to that of
passengers aboard a ship wrecked in the midst of the ocean."
22. Although King Puranjana should not have lamented over the fate of his wife and children, he
nonetheless did so due to his miserly intelligence. In the meantime, Yavana-raja, whose name was fear
itself, immediately drew near to arrest him.
23. When the Yavanas were taking King Puranjana away to their place, binding him like an animal, the
King's followers became greatly aggrieved. While they lamented, they were forced to go along with him.
24. The serpent, who had already been arrested by the soldiers of Yavana-raja and was out of the city,
began to follow his master along with the others. As soon as they all left the city, it was immediately
dismantled and smashed to dust.
25. When King Puranjana was being dragged with great force by the powerful Yavana, out of his gross
ignorance he still could not remember his friend and well-wisher, the Supersoul.
26. That most unkind king, Puranjana, had killed many animals in various sacrifices. Now, taking
advantage of this opportunity, all these animals began to pierce him with their horns. It was as though
he were being cut to pieces by axes.
27. Due to his contaminated association with women, a living entity like King Puranjana eternally suffers
all the pangs of material existence and remains in the dark region of material life, bereft of all
remembrance for many, many years.
28. King Puranjana gave up his body while remembering his wife, and consequently in his next life he
became a very beautiful and well-situated woman. He took his next birth as the daughter of King
Vidarbha in the very house of the King.
29. It was fixed that Vaidarbhi, daughter of King Vidarbha, was to be married to a very powerful man,
Malayadhvaja, an inhabitant of the Pandu country. After conquering other princes, he married the
daughter of King Vidarbha.
30. King Malayadhvaja fathered one daughter, who had very black eyes. He also had seven sons, who
later became rulers of that tract of land known as Dravida. Thus there were seven kings in that land.
31. My dear King Pracinabarhisat, the sons of Malayadhvaja gave birth to many thousands and
thousands of sons, and all of these have been protecting the entire world up to the end of one Manu's
life-span and even afterward.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 199
32. The great sage named Agastya married the first-born daughter of Malayadhvaja, the avowed
devotee of Lord Krsna. From her one son was born, whose name was Drdhacyuta, and from him
another son was born, whose name was Idhmavaha.
33. After this, the great saintly King Malayadhvaja divided his entire kingdom among his sons. Then, in
order to worship Lord Krsna with full attention, he went to a solitary place known as Kulacala.
34. Just as the moonshine follows the moon at night, immediately after King Malayadhvaja departed for
Kulacala, his devoted wife, whose eyes were very enchanting, followed him, giving up all homely
happiness, despite family and children.
35-36. In the province of Kulacala, there were rivers named Candravasa, Tamraparni and Vatodaka.
King Malayadhvaja used to go to those pious rivers regularly and take his bath there. Thus he purified
himself externally and internally. He took his bath and ate bulbs, seeds, leaves, flowers, roots, fruits and
grasses and drank water. In this way he underwent severe austerities. Eventually he became very
skinny.
37. Through austerity, King Malayadhvaja in body and mind gradually became equal to the dualities of
cold and heat, happiness and distress, wind and rain, hunger and thirst, the pleasant and the
unpleasant. In this way he conquered all relativities.
38. By worshiping, executing austerities and following the regulative principles, King Malayadhvaja
conquered his senses, his life and his consciousness. Thus he fixed everything on the central point of
the Supreme Brahman [Krsna].
39. In this way he stayed immovable in one place for one hundred years by the calculations of the
demigods. After this time, he developed pure devotional attraction for Krsna, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, and remained fixed in that position.
40. King Malayadhvaja attained perfect knowledge by being able to distinguish the Supersoul from the
individual soul. The individual soul is localized, whereas the Supersoul is all-pervasive. He became
perfect in knowledge that the material body is not the soul but that the soul is the witness of the material
body.
41. In this way King Malayadhvaja attained perfect knowledge because in his pure state he was directly
instructed by the Supreme Personality of Godhead. By means of such enlightening transcendental
knowledge, he could understand everything from all angles of vision.
42. King Malayadhvaja could thus observe that the Supersoul was sitting by his side, and that he, as the
individual soul, was sitting by the side of the Supersoul. Since both were together, there was no need
for separate interests; thus he ceased from such activities.
43. The daughter of King Vidarbha accepted her husband all in all as the Supreme. She gave up all
sensual enjoyment and in complete renunciation followed the principles of her husband, who was so
advanced. Thus she remained engaged in his service.
44. The daughter of King Vidarbha wore old garments, and she was lean and thin because of her vows
of austerity. Since she did not arrange her hair, it became entangled and twisted in locks. Although she
remained always near her husband, she was as silent and unagitated as the flame of an undisturbed
fire.
45. The daughter of King Vidarbha continued as usual to serve her husband, who was seated in a
steady posture, until she could ascertain that he had passed away from the body.
46. While she was serving her husband by massaging his legs, she could feel that his feet were no
longer warm and could thus understand that he had already passed from the body. She felt great
anxiety upon being left alone. Bereft of her husband's company, she felt exactly as the deer feels upon
being separated from its mate.
47. Being now alone and a widow in that forest, the daughter of Vidarbha began to lament, incessantly
shedding tears, which soaked her breasts, and crying very loudly.
48. O best of kings, please get up! Get up! Just see this world surrounded by water and infested with
rogues and so-called kings. This world is very much afraid, and it is your duty to protect her.
49. That most obedient wife thus fell down at the feet of her dead husband and began to cry pitifully in
that solitary forest. Thus the tears rolled down from her eyes.
50. She then prepared a blazing fire with firewood and placed the dead body of her husband upon it.
When this was finished, she lamented severely and prepared herself to perish in the fire with her
husband.
51. My dear King, one brahmana, who was an old friend of King Puranjana, came to that place and
began to pacify the Queen with sweet words.
52. The brahmana inquired as follows: Who are you? Whose wife or daughter are you? Who is the man
lying here? It appears you are lamenting for this dead body. Don't you recognize Me? I am your eternal
friend. You may remember that many times in the past you have consulted Me.
200 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
53. The brahmana continued: My dear friend, even though you cannot immediately recognize Me, can't
you remember that in the past you had a very intimate friend? Unfortunately, you gave up My company
and accepted a position as enjoyer of this material world.
54. My dear gentle friend, both you and I are exactly like two swans. We live together in the same heart,
which is just like the Manasa Lake. Although we have been living together for many thousands of years,
we are still far away from our original home.
55. My dear friend, you are now My very same friend. Since you left Me, you have become more and
more materialistic, and not seeing Me, you have been traveling in different forms throughout this
material world, which was created by some woman.
56. In that city [the material body] there are five gardens, nine gates, one protector, three apartments,
six families, five stores, five material elements, and one woman who is lord of the house.
57. My dear friend, the five gardens are the five objects of sense enjoyment, and the protector is the life
air, which passes through the nine gates. The three apartments are the chief ingredients--fire, water and
earth. The six families are the aggregate total of the mind and five senses.
58. The five stores are the five working sensory organs. They transact their business through the
combined forces of the five elements, which are eternal. Behind all this activity is the soul. The soul is a
person and an enjoyer in reality. However, because he is now hidden within the city of the body, he is
devoid of knowledge.
59. My dear friend, when you enter such a body along with the woman of material desires, you become
overly absorbed in sense enjoyment. Because of this, you have forgotten your spiritual life. Due to your
material conceptions, you are placed in various miserable conditions.
60. Actually, you are not the daughter of Vidarbha, nor is this man, Malayadhvaja, your well-wishing
husband. Nor were you the actual husband of Puranjani. You were simply captivated in this body of
nine gates.
61. Sometimes you think yourself a man, sometimes a chaste woman and sometimes a neutral eunuch.
This is all because of the body, which is created by the illusory energy. This illusory energy is My
potency, and actually both of us--you and I--are pure spiritual identities. Now just try to understand this. I
am trying to explain our factual position.
62. My dear friend, I, the Supersoul, and you, the individual soul, are not different in quality, for we are
both spiritual. In fact, My dear friend, you are qualitatively not different from Me in your constitutional
position. Just try to consider this subject. Those who are actually advanced scholars, who are in
knowledge, do not find any qualitative difference between you and Me.
63. As a person sees the reflection of his body in a mirror to be one with himself and not different,
whereas others actually see two bodies, so in our material condition, in which the living being is affected
and yet not affected, there is a difference between God and the living entity.
64. In this way both swans live together in the heart. When the one swan is instructed by the other, he is
situated in his constitutional position. This means he regains his original Krsna consciousness, which
was lost because of his material attraction.
65. My dear King Pracinabarhi, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the cause of all causes, is
celebrated to be known indirectly. Thus I have described the story of Puranjana to you. Actually it is an
instruction for self-realization.
Chapter Twenty-nine Talks Between Narada and King Pracinabarhi
1. King Pracinabarhi replied: My dear lord, we could not appreciate completely the purport of your
allegorical story of King Puranjana. Actually, those who are perfect in spiritual knowledge can
understand, but for us, who are overly attached to fruitive activities, to realize the purpose of your story
is very difficult.
2. The great sage Narada Muni continued: You must understand that Puranjana, the living entity,
transmigrates according to his own work into different types of bodies, which may be one-legged, two-
legged, three-legged, four-legged, many-legged or simply legless. Transmigrating into these various
types of bodies, the living entity, as the so-called enjoyer, is known as Puranjana.
3. The person I have described as unknown is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the master and
eternal friend of the living entity. Since the living entities cannot realize the Supreme Personality of
Godhead by material names, activities or qualities, He remains everlastingly unknown to the
conditioned soul.
4. When the living entity wants to enjoy the modes of material nature in their totality, he prefers, out of
many bodily forms, to accept that body which has nine gates, two hands and two legs. Thus he prefers
to become a human being or a demigod.
5. The great sage Narada continued: The word pramada mentioned in this regard refers to material
intelligence, or ignorance. It is to be understood as such. When one takes shelter of this kind of
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 201
intelligence, he identifies himself with the material body. Influenced by the material consciousness of "I"
and "mine," he begins to enjoy and suffer through his senses. Thus the living entity is entrapped.
6. The five working senses and the five senses that acquire knowledge are all male friends of Puranjani.
The living entity is assisted by these senses in acquiring knowledge and engaging in activity. The
engagements of the senses are known as girl friends, and the serpent, which was described as having
five heads, is the life air acting within the five circulatory processes.
7. The eleventh attendant, who is the commander of the others, is known as the mind. He is the leader
of the senses both in the acquisition of knowledge and in the performance of work. The Pancala
kingdom is that atmosphere in which the five sense objects are enjoyed. Within that Pancala kingdom is
the city of the body, which has nine gates.
8. The eyes, nostrils and ears are pairs of gates situated in one place. The mouth, genital and rectum
are also different gates. Being placed into a body having these nine gates, the living entity acts
externally in the material world and enjoys sense objects like form and taste.
9. Two eyes, two nostrils and a mouth--all together five--are situated in the front. The right ear is
accepted as the southern gate, and the left ear is the northern gate. The two holes, or gates, situated in
the west are known as the rectum and genital.
10. The two gates named Khadyota and Avirmukhi, which have been spoken of, are the two eyes side
by side in one place. The town named Vibhrajita should be understood as form. In this way the two
eyes are always engaged in seeing different kinds of forms.
11. The two doors named Nalini and Nalini should be known as the two nostrils, and the city named
Saurabha represents aroma. The companion spoken of as Avadhuta is the sense of smell. The door
called Mukhya is the mouth, and Vipana is the faculty of speech. Rasajna is the sense of taste.
12. The city called Apana represents engagement of the tongue in speech, and Bahudana is the variety
of foodstuffs. The right ear is called the gate of Pitrhu, and the left ear is called the gate of Devahu.
13. Narada Muni continued: The city spoken of as Daksina-pancala represents the scriptures meant for
directing pravrtti, the process of sense enjoyment in fruitive activities. The other city, named Uttara-
pancala, represents the scriptures meant for decreasing fruitive activities and increasing knowledge.
The living entity receives different kinds of knowledge by means of two ears, and some living entities
are promoted to Pitrloka and some to Devaloka. All this is made possible by the two ears.
14. The city called Gramaka, which is approached through the lower gate of Asuri [the genital], is meant
for sex, which is very pleasing to common men who are simply fools and rascals. The faculty of
procreation is called Durmada, and the rectum is called Nirrti.
15. When it is said that Puranjana goes to Vaisasa, it is meant that he goes to hell. He is accompanied
by Lubdhaka, which is the working sense in the rectum. Formerly I have also spoken of two blind
associates. These associates should be understood to be the hands and legs. Being helped by the
hands and legs, the living entity performs all kinds of work and moves hither and thither.
16. The word antah-pura refers to the heart. The word visucina, meaning "going everywhere," indicates
the mind. Within the mind the living entity enjoys the effects of the modes of material nature. These
effects sometimes cause illusion, sometimes satisfaction and sometimes jubilation.
17. Formerly it was explained that the Queen is one's intelligence. While one is awake or asleep, that
intelligence creates different situations. Being influenced by contaminated intelligence, the living entity
envisions something and simply imitates the actions and reactions of his intelligence.
18-20. Narada Muni continued: What I referred to as the chariot was in actuality the body. The senses
are the horses that pull that chariot. As time passes, year after year, these horses run without
obstruction, but in fact they make no progress. Pious and impious activities are the two wheels of the
chariot. The three modes of material nature are the chariot's flags. The five types of life air constitute the
living entity's bondage, and the mind is considered to be the rope. Intelligence is the chariot driver. The
heart is the sitting place in the chariot, and the dualities of life, such as pleasure and pain, are the
knotting place. The seven elements are the coverings of the chariot, and the working senses are the
five external processes. The eleven senses are the soldiers. Being engrossed in sense enjoyment, the
living entity, seated on the chariot, hankers after fulfillment of his false desires and runs after sense
enjoyment life after life.
21. What was previously explained as Candavega, powerful time, is covered by days and nights,
named Gandharvas and Gandharvis. The body's life-span is gradually reduced by the passage of days
and nights, which number 360.
22. What was described as Kalakanya should be understood as old age. No one wants to accept old
age, but Yavanesvara [Yavana-raja], who is death, accepts Jara [old age] as his sister.
23-25. The followers of Yavanesvara [Yamaraja] are called the soldiers of death, and they are known as
the various types of disturbances that pertain to the body and mind. Prajvara represents the two types
of fever: extreme heat and extreme cold--typhoid and pneumonia. The living entity lying down within the
202 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
body is disturbed by many tribulations pertaining to providence, to other living entities and to his own
body and mind. Despite all kinds of tribulations, the living entity, subjected to the necessities of the
body, mind and senses and suffering from various types of disease, is carried away by many plans due
to his lust to enjoy the world. Although transcendental to this material existence, the living entity, out of
ignorance, accepts all these material miseries under the pretext of false egoism ("I" and "mine"). In this
way he lives for a hundred years within this body.
26-27. The living entity by nature has minute independence to choose his own good or bad fortune, but
when he forgets his supreme master, the Personality of Godhead, he gives himself up unto the modes
of material nature. Being influenced by the modes of material nature, he identifies himself with the body
and, for the interest of the body, becomes attached to various activities. Sometimes he is under the
influence of the mode of ignorance, sometimes the mode of passion and sometimes the mode of
goodness. The living entity thus gets different types of bodies under the modes of material nature.
28. Those who are situated in the mode of goodness act piously according to Vedic injunctions. Thus
they are elevated to the higher planetary systems where the demigods live. Those who are influenced
by the mode of passion engage in various types of productive activities in the planetary systems where
human beings live. Similarly, those influenced by the mode of darkness are subjected to various types
of misery and live in the animal kingdom.
29. Covered by the mode of ignorance in material nature, the living entity is sometimes a male,
sometimes a female, sometimes a eunuch, sometimes a human being, sometimes a demigod,
sometimes a bird, an animal, and so on. In this way he is wandering within the material world. His
acceptance of different types of bodies is brought about by his activities under the influence of the
modes of nature.
30-31. The living entity is exactly like a dog, who, overcome with hunger, goes from door to door for
some food. According to his destiny, he sometimes receives punishment and is driven out and at other
times receives a little food to eat. Similarly, the living entity, being influenced by so many desires,
wanders in different species of life according to destiny. Sometimes he is high, and sometimes he is
low. Sometimes he goes to the heavenly planets, sometimes to hell, sometimes to the middle planets,
and so on.
32. The living entities are trying to counteract different miserable conditions pertaining to providence,
other living entities or the body and mind. Still, they must remain conditioned by the laws of nature,
despite all attempts to counter these laws.
33. A man may carry a burden on his head, and when he feels it to be too heavy, he sometimes gives
relief to his head by putting the burden on his shoulder. In this way he tries to relieve himself of the
burden. However, whatever process he devises to counteract the burden does nothing more than put
the same burden from one place to another.
34. Narada continued: O you who are free from all sinful activity! No one can counteract the effects of
fruitive activity simply by manufacturing a different activity devoid of Krsna consciousness. All such
activity is due to our ignorance. When we have a troublesome dream, we cannot relieve it with a
troublesome hallucination. One can counteract a dream only by awaking. [Similarly, our material
existence is due to our ignorance and illusion. Unless we awaken to Krsna consciousness, we cannot
be relieved of such dreams. For the ultimate solution to all problems, we must awaken to Krsna
consciousness.]
35. Sometimes we suffer because we see a tiger in a dream or a snake in a vision, but actually there is
neither a tiger nor a snake. Thus we create some situation in a subtle form and suffer the
consequences. These sufferings cannot be mitigated unless we are awakened from our dream.
36-37. The real interest of the living entity is to get out of the nescience that causes him to endure
repeated birth and death. The only remedy is to surrender unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead
through His representative. Unless one renders devotional service unto the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Vasudeva, one cannot possibly become completely detached from this material world, nor
can he possibly manifest real knowledge.
38. O best of kings, one who is faithful, who is always hearing the glories of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who is always engaged in the culture of Krsna consciousness and in hearing of the Lord's
activities, very soon becomes eligible to see the Supreme Personality of Godhead face to face.
39-40. My dear King, in the place where pure devotees live, following the rules and regulations and thus
purely conscious and engaged with great eagerness in hearing and chanting the glories of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, in that place if one gets a chance to hear their constant flow of nectar, which is
exactly like the waves of a river, one will forget the necessities of life--namely hunger and thirst--and
become immune to all kinds of fear, lamentation and illusion.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 203
41. Because the conditioned soul is always disturbed by the bodily necessities such as hunger and
thirst, he has very little time to cultivate attachment to hearing the nectarean words of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
42-44. The most powerful Lord Brahma, the father of all progenitors; Lord Siva; Manu, Daksa and the
other rulers of humankind; the four saintly first-class brahmacaris headed by Sanaka and Sanatana; the
great sages Marici, Atri, Angira, Pulastya, Pulaha, Kratu, Bhrgu and Vasistha; and my humble self
[Narada] are all stalwart brahmanas who can speak authoritatively on Vedic literature. We are very
powerful because of austerities, meditation and education. Nonetheless, even after inquiring about the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, whom we always see, we do not know perfectly about Him.
45. Despite the cultivation of Vedic knowledge, which is unlimited, and the worship of different
demigods by the symptoms of Vedic mantras, demigod worship does not help one to understand the
supreme powerful Personality of Godhead.
46. When a person is fully engaged in devotional service, he is favored by the Lord, who bestows His
causeless mercy. At such a time, the awakened devotee gives up all material activities and ritualistic
performances mentioned in the Vedas.
47. My dear King Barhisman, you should never out of ignorance take to the Vedic rituals or to fruitive
activity, which may be pleasing to hear about or which may appear to be the goal of self-interest. You
should never take these to be the ultimate goal of life.
48. Those who are less intelligent accept the Vedic ritualistic ceremonies as all in all. They do not know
that the purpose of the Vedas is to understand one's own home, where the Supreme Personality of
Godhead lives. Not being interested in their real home, they are illusioned and search after other
homes.
49. My dear King, the entire world is covered with the sharp points of kusa grass, and on the strength of
this you have become proud because you have killed various types of animals in sacrifices. Because of
your foolishness, you do not know that devotional service is the only way one can please the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. You cannot understand this fact. Your only activities should be those that can
please the Personality of Godhead. Our education should be such that we can become elevated to
Krsna consciousness.
50. Sri Hari, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is the Supersoul and guide of all living entities who
have accepted material bodies within this world. He is the supreme controller of all material activities in
material nature. He is also our best friend, and everyone should take shelter at His lotus feet. In doing
so, one's life will be auspicious.
51. One who is engaged in devotional service has not the least fear in material existence. This is
because the Supreme Personality of Godhead is the Supersoul and friend of everyone. One who knows
this secret is actually educated, and one thus educated can become the spiritual master of the world.
One who is an actually bona fide spiritual master, representative of Krsna, is not different from Krsna.
52. The great saint Narada continued: O great personality, I have replied properly about all that you
have asked me. Now hear another narration that is accepted by saintly persons and is very confidential.
53. My dear King, please search out that deer who is engaged in eating grass in a very nice flower
garden along with his wife. That deer is very much attached to his business, and he is enjoying the
sweet singing of the bumblebees in his garden. Just try to understand his position. He is unaware that
before him is a tiger, which is accustomed to living at the cost of another's flesh. Behind the deer is a
hunter, who is threatening to pierce him with sharp arrows. Thus the deer's death is imminent.
54. My dear King, woman, who is very attractive in the beginning but in the end very disturbing, is
exactly like the flower, which is attractive in the beginning and detestable at the end. With woman, the
living entity is entangled with lusty desires, and he enjoys sex, just as one enjoys the aroma of a flower.
He thus enjoys a life of sense gratification--from his tongue to his genitals--and in this way the living
entity considers himself very happy in family life. United with his wife, he always remains absorbed in
such thoughts. He feels great pleasure in hearing the talks of his wife and children, which are like the
sweet humming of bumblebees that collect honey from flower to flower. He forgets that before him is
time, which is taking away his life-span with the passing of day and night. He does not see the gradual
diminishing of his life, nor does he care about the superintendent of death, who is trying to kill him from
behind. Just try to understand this. You are in a precarious position and are threatened from all sides.
55. My dear King, just try to understand the allegorical position of the deer. Be fully conscious of
yourself, and give up the pleasure of hearing about promotion to heavenly planets by fruitive activity.
Give up household life, which is full of sex, as well as stories about such things, and take shelter of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead through the mercy of the liberated souls. In this way, please give up
your attraction for material existence.
56. The King replied: My dear brahmana, whatever you have said I have heard with great attention and,
considering all of it, have come to the conclusion that the acaryas [teachers] who engaged me in fruitive
204 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
activity did not know this confidential knowledge. If they were aware of it, why did they not explain it to
me?
57. My dear brahmana, there are contradictions between your instructions and those of my spiritual
teachers who engaged me in fruitive activities. I now can understand the distinction between devotional
service, knowledge and renunciation. I had some doubts about them, but you have now very kindly
dissipated all these doubts. I can now understand how even the great sages are bewildered by the real
purpose of life. Of course, there is no question of sense gratification.
58. The results of whatever a living entity does in this life are enjoyed in the next life.
59. The expert knowers of the Vedic conclusions say that one enjoys or suffers the results of his past
activities. But practically it is seen that the body that performed the work in the last birth is already lost.
So how is it possible to enjoy or suffer the reactions of that work in a different body?
60. The great sage Narada continued: The living entity acts in a gross body in this life. This body is
forced to act by the subtle body, composed of mind, intelligence and ego. After the gross body is lost,
the subtle body is still there to enjoy or suffer. Thus there is no change.
61. The living entity, while dreaming, gives up the actual living body. Through the activities of his mind
and intelligence, he acts in another body, either as a god or a dog. After giving up this gross body, the
living entity enters either an animal body or a demigod's body on this planet or on another planet. He
thus enjoys the results of the actions of his past life.
62. The living entity labors under the bodily conception of "I am this, I am that. My duty is this, and
therefore I shall do it." These are all mental impressions, and all these activities are temporary;
nonetheless, by the grace of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the living entity gets a chance to
execute all his mental concoctions. Thus he gets another body.
63. One can understand the mental or conscious position of a living entity by the activities of two kinds
of senses--the knowledge-acquiring senses and the executive senses. Similarly, by the mental
condition or consciousness of a person, one can understand his position in the previous life.
64. Sometimes we suddenly experience something that was never experienced in the present body by
sight or hearing. Sometimes we see such things suddenly in dreams.
65. Therefore, my dear King, the living entity, who has a subtle mental covering, develops all kinds of
thoughts and images because of his previous body. Take this from me as certain. There is no possibility
of concocting anything mentally without having perceived it in the previous body.
66. O King, all good fortune unto you! The mind is the cause of the living entity's attaining a certain type
of body in accordance with his association with material nature. According to one's mental composition,
one can understand what the living entity was in his past life as well as what kind of body he will have in
the future. Thus the mind indicates the past and future bodies.
67. Sometimes in a dream we see something never experienced or heard of in this life, but all these
incidents have been experienced at different times, in different places and in different conditions.
68. The mind of the living entity continues to exist in various gross bodies, and according to one's
desires for sense gratification, the mind records different thoughts. In the mind these appear together in
different combinations; therefore these images sometimes appear as things never seen or never heard
before.
69. Krsna consciousness means constantly associating with the Supreme Personality of Godhead in
such a mental state that the devotee can observe the cosmic manifestation exactly as the Supreme
Personality of Godhead does. Such observation is not always possible, but it becomes manifest exactly
like the dark planet known as Rahu, which is observed in the presence of the full moon.
70. As long as there exists the subtle material body composed of intelligence, mind, senses, sense
objects, and the reactions of the material qualities, the consciousness of false identification and its
relative objective, the gross body, exist as well.
71. When the living entity is in deep sleep, when he faints, when there is some great shock on account
of severe loss, at the time of death, or when the body temperature is very high, the movement of the life
air is arrested. At that time the living entity loses knowledge of identifying the body with the self.
72. When one is a youth, all the ten senses and the mind are completely visible. However, in the
mother's womb or in the boyhood state, the sense organs and the mind remain covered, just as the full
moon is covered by the darkness of the dark-moon night.
73. When the living entity dreams, the sense objects are not actually present. However, because one
has associated with the sense objects, they become manifest. Similarly, the living entity with
undeveloped senses does not cease to exist materially, even though he may not be exactly in contact
with the sense objects.
74. The five sense objects, the five sense organs, the five knowledge-acquiring senses and the mind
are the sixteen material expansions. These combine with the living entity and are influenced by the
three modes of material nature. Thus the existence of the conditioned soul is understood.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 205
75. By virtue of the processes of the subtle body, the living entity develops and gives up gross bodies.
This is known as the transmigration of the soul. Thus the soul becomes subjected to different types of
so-called enjoyment, lamentation, fear, happiness and unhappiness.
76-77. The caterpillar transports itself from one leaf to another by capturing one leaf before giving up
the other. Similarly, according to his previous work, the living entity must capture another body before
giving up the one he has. This is because the mind is the reservoir of all kinds of desires.
78. As long as we desire to enjoy sense gratification, we create material activities. When the living entity
acts in the material field, he enjoys the senses, and while enjoying the senses, he creates another
series of material activities. In this way the living entity becomes entrapped as a conditioned soul.
79. You should always know that this cosmic manifestation is created, maintained and annihilated by
the will of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Consequently, everything within this cosmic
manifestation is under the control of the Lord. To be enlightened by this perfect knowledge, one should
always engage himself in the devotional service of the Lord.
80. The great sage Maitreya continued: The supreme devotee, the great saint Narada, thus explained
to King Pracinabarhi the constitutional position of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and the living
entity. After giving an invitation to the King, Narada Muni left to return to Siddhaloka.
81. In the presence of his ministers, the saintly King Pracinabarhi left orders for his sons to protect the
citizens. He then left home and went off to undergo austerities in a holy place known as Kapilasrama.
82. Having undergone austerities and penances at Kapilasrama, King Pracinabarhi attained full
liberation from all material designations. He constantly engaged in the transcendental loving service of
the Lord and attained a spiritual position qualitatively equal to that of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
83. My dear Vidura, one who hears this narration concerning the understanding of the living entity's
spiritual existence, as described by the great sage Narada, or who relates it to others, will be liberated
from the bodily conception of life.
84. This narration spoken by the great sage Narada is full of the transcendental fame of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. Consequently this narration, when described, certainly sanctifies this material
world. It purifies the heart of the living entity and helps him attain his spiritual identity. One who relates
this transcendental narration will be liberated from all material bondage and will no longer have to
wander within this material world.
85. The allegory of King Puranjana, described herein according to authority, was heard by me from my
spiritual master, and it is full of spiritual knowledge. If one can understand the purpose of this allegory,
he will certainly be relieved from the bodily conception and will clearly understand life after death.
Although one may not understand what transmigration of the soul actually is, one can fully understand it
by studying this narration.
Chapter Thirty The Activities of the Pracetas
1. Vidura inquired from Maitreya: O brahmana, you formerly spoke about the sons of Pracinabarhi and
informed me that they satisfied the Supreme Personality of Godhead by chanting a song composed by
Lord Siva. What did they achieve in this way?
2. My dear Barhaspatya [disciple of Brhaspati], what did the sons of King Barhisat, known as the
Pracetas, obtain after meeting Lord Siva, who is very dear to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the
bestower of liberation? Certainly they were transferred to the spiritual world, but apart from that, what
did they obtain within this material world, either in this life or in other lives?
3. The great sage Maitreya said: The sons of King Pracinabarhi, known as the Pracetas, underwent
severe austerities within the seawater to carry out the order of their father. By chanting and repeating
the mantras given by Lord Siva, they were able to satisfy Lord Visnu, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
4. At the end of ten thousand years of severe austerities performed by the Pracetas, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, to reward their austerities, appeared before them in His very pleasing form.
This appealed to the Pracetas and satisfied the labor of their austerities.
5. The Personality of Godhead, appearing on the shoulder of Garuda, seemed like a cloud resting on
the summit of the mountain known as Meru. The transcendental body of the Personality of Godhead
was covered by attractive yellow garments, and His neck was decorated with the jewel known as
Kaustubha-mani. The bodily effulgence of the Lord dissipated all the darkness of the universe.
6. The Lord's face was very beautiful, and His head was decorated with a shining helmet and golden
ornaments. The helmet was dazzling and was very beautifully situated on His head. The Lord had eight
arms, which each held a particular weapon. The Lord was surrounded by demigods, great sages and
other associates. These were all engaged in His service. Garuda, the carrier of the Lord, glorified the
Lord with Vedic hymns by flapping his wings. Garuda appeared to be an inhabitant of the planet known
as Kinnaraloka.
206 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
7. Around the neck of the Personality of Godhead hung a flower garland that reached to His knees. His
eight stout and elongated arms were decorated with that garland, which challenged the beauty of the
goddess of fortune. With a merciful glance and a voice like thunder, the Lord addressed the sons of
King Pracinabarhisat, who were very much surrendered unto Him.
8. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear sons of the King, I am very much pleased by the
friendly relationships among you. All of you are engaged in one occupation--devotional service. I am so
pleased with your mutual friendship that I wish you all good fortune. Now you may ask a benediction of
Me.
9. The Lord continued: Those who remember you every evening of every day will become friendly with
their brothers and with all other living entities.
10. Those who will offer Me the prayers composed by Lord Siva, both in the morning and in the
evening, will be given benedictions by Me. In this way they can both fulfill their desires and attain good
intelligence.
11. Because you have with pleasure accepted within your hearts the orders of your father and have
executed those orders very faithfully, your attractive qualities will be celebrated all over the world.
12. You will have a nice son, who will be in no way inferior to Lord Brahma. Consequently, he will be
very famous all over the universe, and the sons and grandsons generated by him will fill the three
worlds.
13. O sons of King Pracinabarhisat, the heavenly society girl named Pramloca kept the lotus-eyed
daughter of Kandu in the care of the forest trees.Then she went back to the heavenly planet. This
daughter was born by the coupling of the Apsara named Pramloca with the sage Kandu.
14. Thereafter the child, who was left to the care of the trees, began to cry in hunger. At that time the
king of the forest, namely the king of the moon planet, out of compassion placed his finger, which
poured forth nectar, within the child's mouth. Thus the child was raised by the mercy of the king of the
moon.
15. Since all of you are very much obedient to My orders, I ask you to immediately marry that girl, who
is so well qualified with beauty and good qualities. According to the order of your father, create progeny
through her.
16. You brothers are all of the same nature, being devotees and obedient sons of your father. Similarly,
that girl is also of the same type and is dedicated to all of you. Thus both the girl and you, the sons of
Pracinabarhisat, are on the same platform, being united on a common principle.
17. The Lord then blessed all the Pracetas, saying: My dear princes, by My mercy, you can enjoy all the
facilities of this world as well as the heavenly world. Indeed, you can enjoy all of them without hindrance
and with full strength for one million celestial years.
18. Thereafter you will develop unadulterated devotional service unto Me and be freed from all material
contamination. At that time, being completely unattached to material enjoyment in the so-called
heavenly planets as well as in hellish planets, you will return home, back to Godhead.
19. Those who are engaged in auspicious activities in devotional service certainly understand that the
ultimate enjoyer or beneficiary of all activities is the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Thus when one
acts, he offers the results to the Supreme Personality of Godhead and passes life always engaged in
the topics of the Lord. Even though such a person may be participating in family life, he is not affected
by the results of his actions.
20. Always engaging in the activities of devotional service, devotees feel ever-increasingly fresh and
new in all their activities. The all-knower, the Supersoul within the heart of the devotee, makes
everything increasingly fresh. This is known as the Brahman position by the advocates of the Absolute
Truth. In such a liberated stage [brahma-bhuta], one is never bewildered. Nor does one lament or
become unnecessarily jubilant. This is due to the brahma-bhuta situation.
21. The great sage Maitreya said: After the Personality of Godhead spoke thus, the Pracetas began to
offer Him prayers. The Lord is the bestower of all success in life and is the supreme benefactor. He is
also the supreme friend who takes away all miserable conditions experienced by a devotee. In a
faltering voice, due to ecstasy, the Pracetas began to offer prayers. They were purified by the presence
of the Lord, who was before them face to face.
22. The Pracetas spoke as follows: Dear Lord, You relieve all kinds of material distress. Your
magnanimous transcendental qualities and holy name are all-auspicious. This conclusion is already
settled. You can go faster than the speed of mind and words. You cannot be perceived by material
senses. We therefore offer You respectful obeisances again and again.
23. Dear Lord, we beg to offer our obeisances unto You. When the mind is fixed upon You, the world of
duality, although a place for material enjoyment, appears meaningless. Your transcendental form is full
of transcendental bliss. We therefore offer our respects unto You. Your appearances as Lord Brahma,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 207
Lord Visnu and Lord Siva are meant for the purpose of creating, maintaining and annihilating this
cosmic manifestation.
24. Dear Lord, we offer our respectful obeisances unto You because Your existence is completely
independent of all material influences. Your Lordship always takes away the devotee's miserable
conditions, for Your brain plans how to do so. You live everywhere as Paramatma; therefore You are
known as Vasudeva. You also accept Vasudeva as Your father, and You are celebrated by the name
Krsna. You are so kind that You always increase the influence of all kinds of devotees.
25. Dear Lord, we offer our respectful obeisances unto You because from Your abdomen sprouts the
lotus flower, the origin of all living entities. You are always decorated with a lotus garland, and Your feet
resemble the lotus flower with all its fragrance. Your eyes are also like the petals of a lotus flower.
Therefore we always offer our respectful obeisances unto You.
26. Dear Lord, the garment You have put on is yellowish in color, like the saffron of a lotus flower, but it
is not made of anything material. Since You live in everyone's heart, You are the direct witness of all the
activities of all living entities. We offer our respectful obeisances unto You again and again.
27. Dear Lord, we conditioned souls are always covered by ignorance in the bodily conception of life.
We therefore always prefer the miserable conditions of material existence. To deliver us from these
miserable conditions, You have advented Yourself in this transcendental form. This is evidence of Your
unlimited causeless mercy upon those of us who are suffering in this way. What, then, to speak of the
devotees to whom You are always so favorably disposed?
28. Dear Lord, You are the killer of all inauspicious things. You are compassionate upon Your poor
devotees through the expansion of Your arca-vigraha. You should certainly think of us as Your eternal
servants.
29. When the Lord, out of His natural compassion, thinks of His devotee, by that process only are all
desires of the neophyte devotee fulfilled. The Lord is situated in every living entity's heart, although the
living entity may be very insignificant. The Lord knows everything about the living entity, including all his
desires. Although we are very insignificant, why should the Lord not know our desires?
30. O Lord of the universe, You are the actual teacher of the science of devotional service. We are
satisfied that Your Lordship is the ultimate goal of our lives, and we pray that You will be satisfied with
us. That is our benediction. We do not desire anything other than Your full satisfaction.
31. Dear Lord, we shall therefore pray for Your benediction because You are the Supreme, beyond all
transcendence, and because there is no end to Your opulences. Consequently, You are celebrated by
the name Ananta.
32. Dear Lord, when the bee approaches the celestial tree called the parijata, it certainly does not leave
the tree, because there is no need for such action. Similarly, when we have approached Your lotus feet
and taken shelter of them, what further benediction may we ask of You?
33. Dear Lord, as long as we have to remain within this material world due to our material contamination
and wander from one type of body to another and from one planet to another, we pray that we may
associate with those who are engaged in discussing Your pastimes. We pray for this benediction life
after life, in different bodily forms and on different planets.
34. Even a moment's association with a pure devotee cannot be compared to being transferred to
heavenly planets or even merging into the Brahman effulgence in complete liberation. For living entities
who are destined to give up the body and die, association with pure devotees is the highest benediction.
35. Whenever pure topics of the transcendental world are discussed, the members of the audience
forget all kinds of material hankerings, at least for the time being. Not only that, but they are no longer
envious of one another, nor do they suffer from anxiety or fear.
36. The Supreme Lord, Narayana, is present among devotees who are engaged in hearing and
chanting the holy name of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Lord Narayana is the ultimate goal of
sannyasis, those in the renounced order of life, and Narayana is worshiped through this sankirtana
movement by those who are liberated from material contamination. Indeed, they recite the holy name
again and again.
37. Dear Lord, Your personal associates, devotees, wander all over the world to purify even the holy
places of pilgrimage. Is not such activity pleasing to those who are actually afraid of material existence?
38. Dear Lord, by virtue of a moment's association with Lord Siva, who is very dear to You and who is
Your most intimate friend, we were fortunate to attain You. You are the most expert physician, capable
of treating the incurable disease of material existence. On account of our great fortune, we have been
able to take shelter at Your lotus feet.
39-40. Dear Lord, we have studied the Vedas, accepted a spiritual master and offered respect to
brahmanas, advanced devotees and aged personalities who are spiritually very advanced. We have
offered our respects to them, and we have not been envious of any brother, friends or anyone else. We
have also undergone severe austerities within the water and have not taken food for a long time. All
208 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
these spiritual assets of ours are simply offered for Your satisfaction. We pray for this benediction only,
and nothing more.
41. Dear Lord, even great yogis and mystics who are very much advanced by virtue of austerities and
knowledge and who have completely situated themselves in pure existence, as well as great
personalities like Manu, Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, cannot fully understand Your glories and
potencies. Nonetheless they have offered their prayers according to their own capacities. In the same
way, we, although much lower than these personalities, also offer our prayers according to our own
capability.
42. Dear Lord, You have no enemies or friends. Therefore You are equal to everyone. You cannot be
contaminated by sinful activities, and Your transcendental form is always beyond the material creation.
You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead because You remain everywhere within all existence.
You are consequently known as Vasudeva. We offer You our respectful obeisances.
43. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is
the protector of surrendered souls, being thus addressed by the Pracetas and worshiped by them,
replied, "May whatever you have prayed for be fulfilled." After saying this, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, whose prowess is never defeated, left. The Pracetas were unwilling to be separated from
Him because they had not seen Him to their full satisfaction.
44. Thereafter all the Pracetas emerged from the waters of the sea. They then saw that all the trees on
land had grown very tall, as if to obstruct the path to the heavenly planets. These trees had covered the
entire surface of the world. At this time the Pracetas became very angry.
45. My dear King, at the time of devastation, Lord Siva emits fire and air from his mouth out of anger. To
make the surface of the earth completely treeless, the Pracetas also emitted fire and air from their
mouths.
46. After seeing that all the trees on the surface of the earth were being turned to ashes, Lord Brahma
immediately came to the sons of King Barhisman and pacified them with words of logic.
47. The remaining trees, being very much afraid of the Pracetas, immediately delivered their daughter
at the advice of Lord Brahma.
48. Following the order of Lord Brahma, all the Pracetas accepted the girl as their wife. From the womb
of this girl, the son of Lord Brahma named Daksa took birth. Daksa had to take birth from the womb of
Marisa due to his disobeying and disrespecting Lord Mahadeva [Siva]. Consequently he had to give up
his body twice.
49. His previous body had been destroyed, but he, the same Daksa, inspired by the supreme will,
created all the desired living entities in the Caksusa manvantara.
50-51. After being born, Daksa, by the superexcellence of his bodily luster, covered all others' bodily
opulence. Because he was very expert in performing fruitive activity, he was called by the name Daksa,
meaning "the very expert." Lord Brahma therefore engaged Daksa in the work of generating living
entities and maintaining them. In due course of time, Daksa also engaged other Prajapatis [progenitors]
in the process of generation and maintenance.
Chapter Thirty-one Narada Instructs the Pracetas
1. The great saint Maitreya continued: After that, the Pracetas lived at home for thousands of years and
developed perfect knowledge in spiritual consciousness. At last they remembered the blessings of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead and left home, putting their wife in charge of a perfect son.
2. The Pracetas went to the seashore in the west where the great liberated sage Jajali was residing.
After perfecting the spiritual knowledge by which one becomes equal toward all living entities, the
Pracetas became perfect in Krsna consciousness.
3. After practicing the yogasana for mystic yoga, the Pracetas managed to control their life air, mind,
words and external vision. Thus by the pranayama process they were completely relieved of material
attachment. By remaining perpendicular, they could concentrate their minds on the uppermost
Brahman. While they were practicing this pranayama, the great sage Narada, who is worshiped both by
demons and by demigods, came to see them.
4. As soon as the Pracetas saw that the great sage Narada had appeared, they immediately got up
even from their asanas. As required, they immediately offered obeisances and worshiped him, and
when they saw that Narada Muni was properly seated, they began to ask him questions.
5. All the Pracetas began to address the great sage Narada: O great sage, O brahmana, we hope you
met with no disturbances while coming here. It is due to our great fortune that we are now able to see
you. By the traveling of the sun, people are relieved from the fear of the darkness of night--a fear
brought about by thieves and rogues. Similarly, your traveling is like the sun's, for you drive away all
kinds of fear.
6. O master, may we inform you that because of our being overly attached to family affairs, we almost
forgot the instructions we received from Lord Siva and Lord Visnu.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 209
7. Dear master, kindly enlighten us in transcendental knowledge, which may act as a torchlight by which
we may cross the dark nescience of material existence.
8. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear Vidura, being thus petitioned by the Pracetas, the
supreme devotee Narada, who is always absorbed in thoughts of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
began to reply.
9. The great sage Narada said: When a living entity is born to engage in the devotional service of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the supreme controller, his birth, all his fruitive activities, his
life-span, his mind and his words are all factually perfect.
10. A civilized human being has three kinds of births. The first birth is by a pure father and mother, and
this birth is called birth by semen. The next birth takes place when one is initiated by the spiritual
master, and this birth is called savitra. The third birth, called yajnika, takes place when one is given the
opportunity to worship Lord Visnu. Despite the opportunities for attaining such births, even if one gets
the life-span of a demigod, if one does not actually engage in the service of the Lord, everything is
useless. Similarly, one's activities may be mundane or spiritual, but they are useless if they are not
meant for satisfying the Lord.
11. Without devotional service, what is the meaning of severe austerities, the process of hearing, the
power of speech, the power of mental speculation, elevated intelligence, strength, and the power of the
senses?
12. Transcendental practices that do not ultimately help one realize the Supreme Personality of
Godhead are useless, be they mystic yoga practices, the analytical study of matter, severe austerity,
the acceptance of sannyasa, or the study of Vedic literature. All these may be very important aspects of
spiritual advancement, but unless one understands the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, all
these processes are useless.
13. Factually the Supreme Personality of Godhead is the original source of all self-realization.
Consequently, the goal of all auspicious activities--karma, jnana, yoga and bhakti--is the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
14. As pouring water on the root of a tree energizes the trunk, branches, twigs and everything else, and
as supplying food to the stomach enlivens the senses and limbs of the body, simply worshiping the
Supreme Personality of Godhead through devotional service automatically satisfies the demigods, who
are parts of that Supreme Personality.
15. During the rainy season, water is generated from the sun, and in due course of time, during the
summer season, the very same water is again absorbed by the sun. Similarly, all living entities, moving
and inert, are generated from the earth, and again, after some time, they all return to the earth as dust.
Similarly, everything emanates from the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and in due course of time
everything enters into Him again.
16. Just as the sunshine is nondifferent from the sun, the cosmic manifestation is also nondifferent from
the Supreme Personality of Godhead. The Supreme Personality is therefore all-pervasive within this
material creation. When the senses are active, they appear to be part and parcel of the body, but when
the body is asleep, their activities are unmanifest. Similarly, the whole cosmic creation appears different
and yet nondifferent from the Supreme Person.
17. My dear Kings, sometimes in the sky there are clouds, sometimes there is darkness, and
sometimes there is illumination. The appearance of all these takes place consecutively. Similarly, in the
Supreme Absolute, the modes of passion, darkness and goodness appear as consecutive energies.
Sometimes they appear, and sometimes they disappear.
18. Because the Supreme Lord is the cause of all causes, He is the Supersoul of all individual living
entities, and He exists as both the remote and immediate cause. Since He is aloof from the material
emanations, He is free from their interactions and is Lord of material nature. You should therefore
engage in His devotional service, thinking yourself qualitatively one with Him.
19. By showing mercy to all living entities, being satisfied somehow or other and controlling the senses
from sense enjoyment, one can very quickly satisfy the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Janardana.
20. Being completely cleansed of all material desires, the devotees are freed from all mental
contamination. Thus they can always think of the Lord constantly and address Him very feelingly. The
Supreme Personality of Godhead, knowing Himself to be controlled by His devotees, does not leave
them for a second, just as the sky overhead never becomes invisible.
21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead becomes very dear to those devotees who have no material
possessions but are fully happy in possessing the devotional service of the Lord. Indeed, the Lord
relishes the devotional activities of such devotees. Those who are puffed up with material education,
wealth, aristocracy and fruitive activity are very proud of possessing material things, and they often
deride the devotees. Even if such people offer the Lord worship, the Lord never accepts them.
210 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. Although the Supreme Personality of Godhead is self-sufficient, He becomes dependent on His
devotees. He does not care for the goddess of fortune, nor for the kings and demigods who are after
the favors of the goddess of fortune. Where is that person who is actually grateful and will not worship
the Personality of Godhead?
23. The great sage Maitreya continued: My dear King Vidura, Sri Narada Muni, the son of Lord Brahma,
thus described all these relationships with the Supreme Personality of Godhead to the Pracetas.
Afterward, he returned to Brahmaloka.
24. Hearing from Narada's mouth the glories of the Lord, which vanquish all the ill fortune of the world,
the Pracetas also became attached to the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Meditating on His lotus
feet, they advanced to the ultimate destination.
25. My dear Vidura, I have told you everything you wanted to know about the conversation between
Narada and the Pracetas, the conversation describing the glories of the Lord. I have related this as far
as possible.
26. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O best of kings [King Pariksit], I have now finished telling about the
descendants of the first son of Svayambhuva Manu, Uttanapada. I shall now try to relate the activities of
the descendants of Priyavrata, the second son of Svayambhuva Manu. Please hear them attentively.
27. Although Maharaja Priyavrata received instructions from the great sage Narada, he still engaged in
ruling the earth. After fully enjoying material possessions, he divided his property among his sons. He
then attained a position by which he could return home, back to Godhead.
28. My dear King, in this way, after hearing the transcendental messages of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead and His devotees from the great sage Maitreya, Vidura was overwhelmed with ecstasy. With
tears in his eyes, he immediately fell down at the lotus feet of his guru, his spiritual master. He then
fixed the Supreme Personality of Godhead within the core of his heart.
29. Sri Vidura said: O great mystic, O greatest of all devotees, by your causeless mercy I have been
shown the path of liberation from this world of darkness. By following this path, a person liberated from
the material world can return home, back to Godhead.
30. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Vidura thus offered obeisances unto the great sage Maitreya and,
taking his permission, started for the city of Hastinapura to see his own kinsmen, although he had no
material desires.
31. O King, those who hear these topics about kings who are completely surrendered to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead obtain without difficulty a long life, wealth, good reputation, good fortune and,
ultimately, the opportunity to return home, back to Godhead.
CANTO FIVE
Chapter One The Activities of Maharaja Priyavrata
1. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: O great sage, why did King Priyavrata, who was a
great, self-realized devotee of the Lord, remain in household life, which is the root cause of the bondage
of karma [fruitive activities] and which defeats the mission of human life?
2. Devotees are certainly liberated persons. Therefore, O greatest of the brahmanas, they cannot
possibly be absorbed in family affairs.
3. Elevated mahatmas who have taken shelter of the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead
are fully satiated by the shade of those lotus feet. Their consciousness cannot possibly become
attached to family members.
4. The King continued: O great brahmana, this is my great doubt. How was it possible for a person like
King Priyavrata, who was so attached to wife, children and home, to achieve the topmost infallible
perfection in Krsna consciousness?
5. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: What you have said is correct. The glories of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, who is praised in eloquent, transcendental verses by such exalted personalities as
Brahma, are very pleasing to great devotees and liberated persons. One who is attached to the
nectarean honey of the Lord's lotus feet, and whose mind is always absorbed in His glories, may
sometimes be checked by some impediment, but he still never gives up the exalted position he has
acquired.
6. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, Prince Priyavrata was a great devotee because he
sought the lotus feet of Narada, his spiritual master, and thus achieved the highest perfection in
transcendental knowledge. With advanced knowledge, he always engaged in discussing spiritual
subjects and did not divert his attention to anything else. The Prince's father then asked him to take
charge of ruling the world. He tried to convince Priyavrata that this was his duty as indicated in the
revealed scriptures. Prince Priyavrata, however, was continuously practicing bhakti-yoga by constantly
remembering the Supreme Personality of Godhead, thus engaging all his senses in the service of the
Lord. Therefore, although the order of his father could not be rejected, the Prince did not welcome it.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 211
Thus he very conscientiously raised the question of whether he might be diverted from devotional
service by accepting the responsibility of ruling over the world.
7. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: The first created being and most powerful demigod in this universe
is Lord Brahma, who is always responsible for developing universal affairs. Born directly from the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, he dedicates his activities to the welfare of the entire universe, for he
knows the purpose of the universal creation. This supremely powerful Lord Brahma, accompanied by
his associates and the personified Vedas, left his own abode in the highest planetary system and
descended to the place of Prince Priyavrata's meditation.
8. As Lord Brahma descended on his carrier, the great swan, all the residents of the planets named
Siddhaloka, Gandharvaloka, Sadhyaloka and Caranaloka, as well as great sages and demigods flying
in their different airplanes, assembled within the canopy of the sky to receive Lord Brahma and worship
him. As he received respect and adoration from the residents of the various planets, Lord Brahma
appeared just like the full moon surrounded by illuminating stars. Lord Brahma's great swan then
arrived at the border of Gandhamadana Hill and approached Prince Priyavrata, who was sitting there.
9. Lord Brahma, the father of Narada Muni, is the supreme person within this universe. As soon as
Narada saw the great swan, he could understand that Lord Brahma had arrived. Therefore he
immediately stood up, along with Svayambhuva Manu and his son Priyavrata, whom Narada was
instructing. Then they folded their hands and began to worship Lord Brahma with great respect.
10. My dear King Pariksit, because Lord Brahma had finally descended from Satyaloka to Bhuloka,
Narada Muni, Prince Priyavrata and Svayambhuva Manu came forward to offer him objects of worship
and to praise him in highly qualified language, according to Vedic etiquette. At that time, Lord Brahma,
the original person of this universe, felt compassion for Priyavrata and, looking upon him with a smiling
face, spoke to him as follows.
11. Lord Brahma, the supreme person within this universe, said: My dear Priyavrata, kindly hear
attentively what I shall say to you. Do not be jealous of the Supreme Lord, who is beyond our
experimental measurements. All of us, including Lord Siva, your father and the great sage Maharsi
Narada, must carry out the order of the Supreme. We cannot deviate from His order.
12. One cannot avoid the order of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, not by the strength of severe
austerities, an exalted Vedic education, or the power of mystic yoga, physical prowess or intellectual
activities. Nor can one use his power of religion, his material opulence or any other means, either by
himself or with the help of others, to defy the orders of the Supreme Lord. That is not possible for any
living being, from Brahma down to the ant.
13. My dear Priyavrata, by the order of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, all living entities accept
different types of bodies for birth and death, activity, lamentation, illusion, fear of future dangers, and
happiness and distress.
14. My dear boy, all of us are bound by the Vedic injunctions to the divisions of varnasrama according
to our qualities and work. These divisions are difficult to avoid because they are scientifically arranged.
We must therefore carry out our duties of varnasrama-dharma, like bulls obliged to move according to
the direction of a driver pulling on ropes knotted to their noses.
15. My dear Priyavrata, according to our association with different modes of material nature, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead gives us our specific bodies and the happiness and distress we
achieve. One must therefore remain situated as he is and be conducted by the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, exactly as a blind man is led by a person who has eyes with which to see.
16. Even if one is liberated, he nevertheless accepts the body he has received according to his past
karma. Without misconceptions, however, he regards his enjoyment and suffering due to that karma the
way an awakened person regards a dream he had while sleeping. He thus remains steadfast and never
works to achieve another material body under the influence of the three modes of material nature.
17. Even if he goes from forest to forest, one who is not self-controlled must always fear material
bondage because he is living with six co-wives--the mind and knowledge-acquiring senses. Even
householder life, however, cannot harm a self-satisfied, learned man who has conquered his senses.
18. One who is situated in household life and who systematically conquers his mind and five sense
organs is like a king in his fortress who conquers his powerful enemies. After one has been trained in
household life and his lusty desires have decreased, he can move anywhere without danger.
19. Lord Brahma continued: My dear Priyavrata, seek shelter inside the opening in the lotus of the feet
of the Lord, whose navel is also like a lotus. Thus conquer the six sense organs [the mind and
knowledge-acquiring senses]. Accept material enjoyment because the Lord, extraordinarily, has
ordered you to do this. You will thus always be liberated from material association and be able to carry
out the Lord's orders in your constitutional position.
212 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
20. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After thus being fully instructed by Lord Brahma, who is the
spiritual master of the three worlds, Priyavrata, his own position being inferior, offered obeisances,
accepted the order and carried it out with great respect.
21. Lord Brahma was then worshiped by Manu, who respectfully satisfied him as well as he could.
Priyavrata and Narada also looked upon Brahma with no tinges of resentment. Having engaged
Priyavrata in accepting his father's request, Lord Brahma returned to his abode, Satyaloka, which is
indescribable by the endeavor of mundane mind or words.
22. Svayambhuva Manu, with the assistance of Lord Brahma, thus fulfilled his desires. With the
permission of the great sage Narada, he delivered to his son the governmental responsibility for
maintaining and protecting all the planets of the universe. He thus achieved relief from the most
dangerous, poisonous ocean of material desires.
23. Following the order of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Maharaja Priyavrata fully engaged in
worldly affairs, yet he always thought of the lotus feet of the Lord, which are the cause of liberation from
all material attachment. Although Priyavrata Maharaja was completely freed from all material
contamination, he ruled the material world just to honor the orders of his superiors.
24. Thereafter, Maharaja Priyavrata married Barhismati, the daughter of the prajapati named
Visvakarma. In her he begot ten sons equal to him in beauty, character, magnanimity and other
qualities. He also begot a daughter, the youngest of all, named Urjasvati.
25. The ten sons of Maharaja Priyavrata were named Agnidhra, Idhmajihva, Yajnabahu, Mahavira,
Hiranyareta, Ghrtaprstha, Savana, Medhatithi, Vitihotra and Kavi. These are also names of Agni, the
fire-god.
26. Three among these ten--namely Kavi, Mahavira and Savana--lived in complete celibacy. Thus
trained in brahmacari life from the beginning of childhood, they were very conversant with the highest
perfection, known as the paramahamsa-asrama.
27. Thus situated in the renounced order from the beginning of their lives, all three of them completely
controlled the activities of their senses and thus became great saints. They concentrated their minds
always upon the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the resting place of the
totality of living entities and who is therefore celebrated as Vasudeva. Lord Vasudeva is the only shelter
of those who are actually afraid of material existence. By constantly thinking of His lotus feet, these
three sons of Maharaja Priyavrata became advanced in pure devotional service. By the prowess of their
devotional service, they could directly perceive the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is situated in
everyone's heart as the Supersoul, and realize that there was qualitatively no difference between
themselves and Him.
28. In his other wife, Maharaja Priyavrata begot three sons, named Uttama, Tamasa and Raivata. All of
them later took charge of manvantara millenniums.
29. After Kavi, Mahavira and Savana were completely trained in the paramahamsa stage of life,
Maharaja Priyavrata ruled the universe for eleven arbudas of years. Whenever he was determined to fix
his arrow upon his bowstring with his two powerful arms, all opponents of the regulative principles of
religious life would flee from his presence in fear of the unparalleled prowess he displayed in ruling the
universe. He greatly loved his wife Barhismati, and with the increase of days, their exchange of nuptial
love also increased. By her feminine behavior as she dressed herself, walked, got up, smiled, laughed,
and glanced about, Queen Barhismati increased his energy. Thus although he was a great soul, he
appeared lost in the feminine conduct of his wife. He behaved with her just like an ordinary man, but
actually he was a great soul.
30. While so excellently ruling the universe, King Priyavrata once became dissatisfied with the
circumambulation of the most powerful sun-god. Encircling Sumeru Hill on his chariot, the sun-god
illuminates all the surrounding planetary systems. However, when the sun is on the northern side of the
hill, the south receives less light, and when the sun is in the south, the north receives less. King
Priyavrata disliked this situation and therefore decided to make daylight in the part of the universe
where there was night. He followed the orbit of the sun-god on a brilliant chariot and thus fulfilled his
desire. He could perform such wonderful activities because of the power he had achieved by worshiping
the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
31. When Priyavrata drove his chariot behind the sun, the rims of his chariot wheels created
impressions that later became seven oceans, dividing the planetary system known as Bhu-mandala into
seven islands.
32. The names of the islands are Jambu, Plaksa, Salmali, Kusa, Kraunca, Saka and Puskara. Each
island is twice as large as the one preceding it, and each is surrounded by a liquid substance, beyond
which is the next island.
33. The seven oceans respectively contain salt water, sugarcane juice, liquor, clarified butter, milk,
emulsified yogurt, and sweet drinking water. All the islands are completely surrounded by these oceans,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 213
and each ocean is equal in breadth to the island it surrounds. Maharaja Priyavrata, the husband of
Queen Barhismati, gave sovereignty over these islands to his respective sons, namely Agnidhra,
Idhmajihva, Yajnabahu, Hiranyareta, Ghrtaprstha, Medhatithi and Vitihotra. Thus they all became kings
by the order of their father.
34. King Priyavrata then gave his daughter, Urjasvati, in marriage to Sukracarya, who begot in her a
daughter named Devayani.
35. My dear King, a devotee who has taken shelter of the dust from the lotus feet of the Lord can
transcend the influence of the six material whips--namely hunger, thirst, lamentation, illusion, old age
and death--and he can conquer the mind and five senses. However, this is not very wonderful for a pure
devotee of the Lord because even a person beyond the jurisdiction of the four castes--in other words,
an untouchable--is immediately relieved of bondage to material existence if he utters the holy name of
the Lord even once.
36. While enjoying his material opulences with full strength and influence, Maharaja Priyavrata once
began to consider that although he had fully surrendered to the great saint Narada and was actually on
the path of Krsna consciousness, he had somehow become again entangled in material activities. Thus
his mind now became restless, and he began to speak in a spirit of renunciation.
37. The King thus began criticizing himself: Alas, how condemned I have become because of my sense
gratification! I have now fallen into material enjoyment, which is exactly like a covered well. I have had
enough! I am not going to enjoy any more. Just see how I have become like a dancing monkey in the
hands of my wife. Because of this, I am condemned.
38. By the grace of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Maharaja Priyavrata reawakened to his
senses. He divided all his earthly possessions among his obedient sons. He gave up everything,
including his wife, with whom he had enjoyed so much sense gratification, and his great and opulent
kingdom, and he completely renounced all attachment. His heart, having been cleansed, became a
place of pastimes for the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Thus he was able to return to the path of
Krsna consciousness, spiritual life, and resume the position he had attained by the grace of the great
saint Narada.
39. There are many famous verses regarding Maharaja Priyavrata's activities: "No one but the Supreme
Personality of Godhead could do what Maharaja Priyavrata has done. Maharaja Priyavrata dissipated
the darkness of night, and with the rims of his great chariot, he excavated seven oceans."
40. "To stop the quarreling among different peoples, Maharaja Priyavrata marked boundaries at rivers
and at the edges of mountains and forests so that no one would trespass upon another's property."
41. "As a great follower and devotee of the sage Narada, Maharaja Priyavrata considered hellish the
opulences he had achieved by dint of fruitive activities and mystic power, whether in the lower or
heavenly planetary systems or in human society."
Chapter Two The Activities of Maharaja Agnidhra
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After his father, Maharaja Priyavrata, departed to follow the path of
spiritual life by undergoing austerities, King Agnidhra completely obeyed his order. Strictly observing the
principles of religion, he gave full protection to the inhabitants of Jambudvipa as if they were his own
begotten sons.
2. Desiring to get a perfect son and become an inhabitant of Pitrloka, Maharaja Agnidhra once
worshiped Lord Brahma, the master of those in charge of material creation. He went to a valley of
Mandara Hill, where the damsels of the heavenly planets come down to stroll. There he collected
garden flowers and other necessary paraphernalia and then engaged in severe austerities and worship.
3. Understanding King Agnidhra's desire, the first and most powerful created being of this universe,
Lord Brahma, selected the best of the dancing girls in his assembly, whose name was Purvacitti, and
sent her to the King.
4. The Apsara sent by Lord Brahma began strolling in a beautiful park near the place where the King
was meditating and worshiping. The park was beautiful because of its dense green foliage and golden
creepers. There were pairs of varied birds such as peacocks, and in a lake there were ducks and
swans, all vibrating very sweet sounds. Thus the park was magnificently beautiful because of the
foliage, the clear water, the lotus flowers and the sweet singing of various kinds of birds.
5. As Purvacitti passed by on the road in a very beautiful style and mood of her own, the pleasing
ornaments on her ankles tinkled with her every step. Although Prince Agnidhra was controlling his
senses, practicing yoga with half-open eyes, he could see her with his lotuslike eyes, and when he
heard the sweet tinkling of her bangles, he opened his eyes slightly more and could see that she was
just nearby.
6. Like a honeybee, the Apsara smelled the beautiful and attractive flowers. She could attract the minds
and vision of both humans and demigods by her playful movements, her shyness and humility, her
glances, the very pleasing sounds that poured from her mouth as she spoke, and the motion of her
214 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
limbs. By all these qualities, she opened for Cupid, who bears an arrow of flowers, a path of aural
reception into the minds of men. When she spoke, nectar seemed to flow from her mouth. As she
breathed, the bees, mad for the taste of her breath, tried to hover about her beautiful lotuslike eyes.
Disturbed by the bees, she tried to move hastily, but as she raised her feet to walk quickly, her hair, the
belt on her hips, and her breasts, which were like water jugs, also moved in a way that made her
extremely beautiful and attractive. Indeed, she seemed to be making a path for the entrance of Cupid,
who is most powerful. Therefore the prince, completely subdued by seeing her, spoke to her as follows.
7. The Prince mistakenly addressed the Apsara: O best of saintly persons, who are you? Why are you
on this hill, and what do you want to do? Are you one of the illusory potencies of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead? You seem to be carrying two bows without strings, What is the reason you
carry these bows? Is it for some purpose of your own or for the sake of a friend? Perhaps you carry
them to kill the mad animals in this forest.
8. Then Agnidhra observed the glancing eyes of Purvacitti and said: My dear friend, you have two very
powerful arrows, namely your glancing eyes. Those arrows have feathers like the petals of a lotus
flower. Although they have no shafts, they are very beautiful, and they have very sharp, piercing points.
They appear very peaceful, and thus it seems that they will not be shot at anyone. You must be loitering
in this forest to shoot those arrows at someone, but I cannot understand whom. My intelligence is dull,
and I cannot combat you. Indeed, no one can equal you in prowess, and therefore I pray that your
prowess will be for my good fortune.
9. Seeing the bumblebees following Purvacitti, Maharaja Agnidhra said: My dear Lord, the bumblebees
surrounding your body are like disciples surrounding your worshipable self. They are incessantly
chanting the mantras of the Sama Veda and the Upanisads, thus offering prayers to you. Just as great
sages resort to the branches of Vedic literatures, the bumblebees are enjoying the showers of flowers
falling from your hair.
10. O brahmana, I can simply hear the tinkling of your ankle bells. Within those bells, tittiri birds seem to
be chirping among themselves. Although I do not see their forms, I can hear how they are chirping.
When I look at your beautiful circular hips, I see they are the lovely color of kadamba flowers, and your
waist is encircled by a belt of burning cinders. Indeed, you seem to have forgotten to dress yourself.
11. Agnidhra then praised Purvacitti's raised breasts. He said: My dear brahmana your waist is very
thin, yet with great difficulty you are carefully carrying two horns, to which my eyes have become
attracted. What is filling those two beautiful horns? You seem to have spread fragrant red powder upon
them, powder that is like the rising morning sun. O most fortunate one, I beg to inquire where you have
gotten this fragrant powder that is perfuming my asrama, my place of residence.
12. O best friend, will you kindly show me the place where you reside? I cannot imagine how the
residents of that place have gotten such wonderful bodily features as your raised breasts, which agitate
the mind and eyes of a person like me who sees them. Judging by the sweet speech and kind smiles of
those residents, I think that their mouths must contain nectar.
13. My dear friend, what do you eat to maintain your body? Because you are chewing betel, a pleasing
scent is emanating from your mouth. This proves that you always eat the remnants of food offered to
Visnu. Indeed, you must also be an expansion of Lord Visnu's body. Your face is as beautiful as a
pleasing lake. Your jeweled earrings resemble two brilliant sharks with unblinking eyes like those of
Visnu, and your own eyes resemble two restless fish. Simultaneously, therefore, two sharks and two
restless fish are swimming in the lake of your face. Besides them, the white rows of your teeth seem like
rows of very beautiful swans in the water, and your scattered hair resembles swarms of bumblebees
following the beauty of your face.
14. My mind is already restless, and by playing with a ball, moving it all about with your lotuslike palm,
you are also agitating my eyes. Your curling black hair is now scattered, but you are not attentive to
arranging it. Are you not going to arrange it? Like a man attached to women, the most cunning wind is
trying to take off your lower garment. Are you not mindful of it?
15. O best among those performing austerities, where did you get this wonderful beauty that dismantles
the austerities performed by others? Where have you learned this art? What austerity have you
undergone to achieve this beauty, my dear friend? I desire that you join me to perform austerity and
penance, for it may be that the creator of the universe, Lord Brahma, being pleased with me, has sent
you to become my wife.
16. Lord Brahma, who is worshiped by the brahmanas, has very mercifully given you to me, and that is
why I have met you. I do not want to give up your company, for my mind and eyes are fixed upon you
and cannot be drawn away. O woman with beautiful raised breasts, I am your follower. You may take
me wherever you like, and your friends may also follow me.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 215
17. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Maharaja Agnidhra, whose intelligence was like that of a demigod,
knew the art of flattering women to win them to his side. He therefore pleased that celestial girl with his
lusty words and gained her favor.
18. Attracted by the intelligence, learning, youth, beauty, behavior, opulence and magnanimity of
Agnidhra, the King of Jambudvipa and master of all heroes, Purvacitti lived with him for many
thousands of years and luxuriously enjoyed both worldly and heavenly happiness.
19. In the womb of Purvacitti, Maharaja Agnidhra, the best of kings, begot nine sons, named Nabhi,
Kimpurusa, Harivarsa, Ilavrta, Ramyaka, Hiranmaya, Kuru, Bhadrasva and Ketumala.
20. Purvacitti gave birth to these nine sons, one each year, but after they grew up, she left them at
home and again approached Lord Brahma to worship him.
21. Because of drinking the breast milk of their mother, the nine sons of Agnidhra naturally had strong,
well-built bodies. Their father gave them each a kingdom in a different part of Jambudvipa. The
kingdoms were named according to the names of the sons. Thus the sons of Agnidhra ruled the
kingdoms they received from their father.
22. After Purvacitti's departure, King Agnidhra, his lusty desires not at all satisfied, always thought of
her. Therefore, in accordance with the Vedic injunctions, the King, after his death, was promoted to the
same planet as his celestial wife. That planet, which is called Pitrloka, is where the pitas, the
forefathers, live in great delight.
23. After the departure of their father, the nine brothers married the nine daughters of Meru named
Merudevi, Pratirupa, Ugradamstri, Lata, Ramya, Syama, Nari, Bhadra and Devaviti.
Chapter Three Rsabhadeva's Appearance in the Womb of Merudevi, the Wife of King Nabhi
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued to speak: Maharaja Nabhi, the son of Agnidhra, wished to have sons,
and therefore he attentively began to offer prayers and worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Lord Visnu, the master and enjoyer of all sacrifices. Maharaja Nabhi's wife, Merudevi, who had not
given birth to any children at that time, also worshiped Lord Visnu along with her husband.
2. In the performance of a sacrifice, there are seven transcendental means to obtain the mercy of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead: (1) by sacrificing valuable things or eatables, (2) by acting in terms of
place, (3) by acting in terms of time, (4) by offering hymns, (5) by going through the priest, (6) by
offering gifts to the priests and (7) by observing the regulative principles. However, one cannot always
obtain the Supreme Lord through this paraphernalia. Nonetheless, the Lord is affectionate to His
devotee; therefore when Maharaja Nabhi, who was a devotee, worshiped and offered prayers to the
Lord with great faith and devotion and with a pure uncontaminated mind, superficially performing some
yajna in the line of pravargya, the kind Supreme Personality of Godhead, due to His affection for His
devotees, appeared before King Nabhi in His unconquerable and captivating form with four hands. In
this way, to fulfill the desire of His devotee, the Supreme Personality of Godhead manifested Himself in
His beautiful body before His devotee. This body pleases the mind and eyes of the devotees.
3. Lord Visnu appeared before King Nabhi with four arms. He was very bright, and He appeared to be
the best of all personalities. Around the lower portion of His body, He wore a yellow silken garment. On
His chest was the mark of Srivatsa, which always displays beauty. He carried a conchshell, lotus flower,
disc and club, and He wore a garland of forest flowers and the Kaustubha gem. He was beautifully
decorated with a helmet, earrings, bangles, belt, pearl necklace, armlets, ankle bells and other bodily
ornaments bedecked with radiant jewels. Seeing the Lord present before them, King Nabhi and his
priests and associates felt just like poor people who have suddenly attained great riches. They received
the Lord and respectfully bent their heads and offered Him things in worship.
4-5. The priests began to offer prayers to the Lord, saying: O most worshipable one, we are simply Your
servants. Although You are full in Yourself, please, out of Your causeless mercy, accept a little service
from us, Your eternal servants. We are not actually aware of Your transcendental form, but we can
simply offer our respectful obeisances again and again, as instructed by the Vedic literatures and
authorized acaryas. Materialistic living entities are very much attracted to the modes of material nature,
and therefore they are never perfect, but You are above the jurisdiction of all material conceptions. Your
name, form and qualities are all transcendental and beyond the conception of experimental knowledge.
Indeed, who can conceive of You? In the material world we can perceive only material names and
qualities. We have no other power than to offer our respectful obeisances and prayers unto You, the
transcendental person. The chanting of Your auspicious transcendental qualities will wipe out the sins
of all mankind. That is the most auspicious activity for us, and we can thus partially understand Your
supernatural position.
6. O Supreme Lord, You are full in every respect. You are certainly very satisfied when Your devotees
offer You prayers with faltering voices and in ecstasy bring You tulasi leaves, water, twigs bearing new
leaves, and newly grown grass. This surely makes You satisfied.
216 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
7. We have engaged in Your worship with many things and have offered sacrifices unto You, but we
think that there is no need for so many arrangements to please Your Lordship.
8. All of life's goals and opulences are directly, self-sufficiently, unceasingly and unlimitedly increasing in
You at every moment. Indeed, You are unlimited enjoyment and blissful existence itself. As far as we
are concerned, O Lord, we are always after material enjoyment. You do not need all these sacrificial
arrangements, but they are meant for us so that we may be benedicted by Your Lordship. All these
sacrifices are performed for our fruitive results, aid they are not actually needed by You.
9. O Lord of lords, we are completely ignorant of the execution of dharma, artha, kama and moksa, the
process of liberation, because we do not actually know the goal of life. You have appeared personally
before us like a person soliciting worship, but actually You are present here just so we can see You.
You have come out of Your abundant and causeless mercy in order to serve our purpose, our interest,
and give us the benefit of Your personal glory called apavarga, liberation. You have come, although
You are not properly worshiped by us due to our ignorance.
10. O most worshipable of all, You are the best of all benefactors, and Your appearance at saintly King
Nabhi's sacrificial arena is meant for our benediction. Because You have been seen by us, You have
bestowed upon us the most valuable benediction.
11. Dear Lord, all the great sages who are thoughtful and saintly persons incessantly recount Your
spiritual qualities. These sages have already burned up all the unlimited dirty things and, by the fire of
knowledge, strengthened their detachment from the material world. Thus they have attained Your
qualities and are self-satisfied. Yet even for those who feel spiritual bliss in chanting Your attributes,
Your personal presence is very rare.
12. Dear Lord, we may not be able to remember Your name, form and qualities due to stumbling,
hunger, falling down, yawning or being in a miserable diseased condition at the time of death when
there is a high fever. We therefore pray unto You, O Lord, for You are very affectionate to Your
devotees. Please help us remember You and utter Your holy names, attributes and activities, which can
dispel all the reactions of our sinful lives.
13. Dear Lord, here is the great King Nabhi, whose ultimate goal in life is to have a son like You. Your
Lordship, his position is like that of a person approaching a very rich man and begging for a little grain.
Maharaja Nabhi is so desirous of having a son that he is worshiping You for a son, although You can
offer him any exalted position, including elevation to the heavenly planets or liberation back to
Godhead.
14. Dear Lord, unless one worships the lotus feet of great devotees, one will be conquered by the
illusory energy, and his intelligence will be bewildered. Indeed, who has not been carried away by the
waves of material enjoyment, which are like poison? Your illusory energy is unconquerable. No one can
see the path of this material energy or tell how it is working.
15. O Lord, You perform many wonderful activities. Our only aim was to acquire a son by performing
this great sacrifice; therefore our intelligence is not very sharp. We are not experienced in ascertaining
life's goal. By inviting You to this negligible sacrifice for some material motive, we have certainly
committed a great offense at Your lotus feet. Therefore, O Lord of lords, please excuse our offense
because of Your causeless mercy and equal mind.
16. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: The priests, who were even worshiped by King Nabhi, the Emperor of
Bharata-varsa, offered prayers in prose [generally they were in poetry] and bowed down at the Lord's
lotus feet. The Lord of lords, the ruler of the demigods, was very pleased with them, and He began to
speak as follows.
17. The Supreme Personality of Godhead replied: O great sages, I am certainly very pleased with your
prayers. You are all truthful. You have prayed for the benediction of a son like Me for King Nabhi, but
this is very difficult to obtain. Since I am the Supreme Person without a second and since no one is
equal to Me, another personality like Me is not possible to find. In any case, because you are all
qualified brahmanas, your vibrations should not prove untrue. I consider the brahmanas who are well
qualified with brahminical qualities to be as good as My own mouth.
18. Since I cannot find anyone equal to Me, I shall personally expand Myself into a plenary portion and
thus advent Myself in the womb of Merudevi, the wife of Maharaja Nabhi, the son of Agnidhra.
19. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After saying this, the Lord disappeared. The wife of King Nabhi,
Queen Merudevi, was sitting by the side of her husband, and consequently she could hear everything
the Supreme Lord had spoken.
20. O Visnudatta, Pariksit Maharaja, the Supreme Personality of Godhead was pleased by the great
sages at that sacrifice. Consequently the Lord decided to personally exhibit the method of executing
religious principles [as observed by brahmacaris, sannyasis, vanaprasthas and grhasthas engaged in
rituals] and also satisfy Maharaja Nabhi's desire. Consequently He appeared as the son of Merudevi in
His original spiritual form, which is above the modes of material nature.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 217
Chapter Four The Characteristics of Rsabhadeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: As soon as the Lord was born as the son of Maharaja Nabhi, He
manifested symptoms of the Supreme Lord, such as marks on the bottoms of His feet [the flag,
thunderbolt, etc.]. This son was equal to everyone and very peaceful. He could control His senses and
His mind, and, possessing all opulence, He did not hanker for material enjoyment. Endowed with all
these attributes, the son of Maharaja Nabhi became more powerful day after day. Due to this, the
citizens, learned brahmanas, demigods and ministers wanted Rsabhadeva to be appointed ruler of the
earth.
2. When the son of Maharaja Nabhi became visible, He evinced all good qualities described by the
great poets--namely, a well-built body with all the symptoms of the Godhead, prowess, strength, beauty,
name, fame, influence and enthusiasm. When the father, Maharaja Nabhi, saw all these qualities, he
thought his son to be the best of human beings or the supreme being. Therefore he gave Him the name
Rsabha.
3. Indra, the King of heaven, who is very materially opulent, became envious of King Rsabhadeva.
Consequently he stopped pouring water on the planet known as Bharata-varsa. At that time the
Supreme Lord, Rsabhadeva, the master of all mystic power, understood King Indra's purpose and
smiled a little. Then, by His own prowess, through yogamaya [His internal potency], He profusely
poured water upon His own place, which was known as Ajanabha.
4. Due to getting a perfect son according to his desire, King Nabhi was always overwhelmed with
transcendental bliss and was very affectionate to his son. It was with ecstasy and a faltering voice that
he addressed Him, "My dear son, my darling." This mentality was brought about by yogamaya, whereby
he accepted the Supreme Lord, the supreme father, as his own son. Out of His supreme good will, the
Lord became his son and dealt with everyone as if He were an ordinary human being. Thus King Nabhi
began to raise his transcendental son with great affection, and he was overwhelmed with
transcendental bliss, joy and devotion.
5. King Nabhi understood that his son, Rsabhadeva, was very popular among the citizens and among
government officers and ministers. Understanding the popularity of his son, Maharaja Nabhi enthroned
Him as the emperor of the world to give protection to the general populace in terms of the Vedic
religious system. To do this, he entrusted Him into the hands of learned brahmanas, who would guide
Him in administrating the government. Then Maharaja Nabhi and his wife, Merudevi, went to
Badarikasrama in the Himalaya Mountains, where the King engaged Himself very expertly in austerities
and penances with great jubilation. In full samadhi he worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Nara-Narayana, who is Krsna in His plenary expansion. By doing so, in course of time Maharaja Nabhi
was elevated to the spiritual world known as Vaikuntha.
6. O Maharaja Pariksit, to glorify Maharaja Nabhi, the old sages composed two verses. One of them is
this: "Who can attain the perfection of Maharaja Nabhi? Who can attain his activities? Because of his
devotional service, the Supreme Personality of Godhead agreed to become his son."
7. [The second prayer is this.] "Who is a better worshiper of brahmanas than Maharaja Nabhi? Because
he worshiped the qualified brahmanas to their full satisfaction, the brahmanas, by their brahminical
prowess, showed Maharaja Nabhi the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, in person."
8. After Nabhi Maharaja departed for Badarikasrama, the Supreme Lord, Rsabhadeva, understood that
His kingdom was His field of activities. He therefore showed Himself as an example and taught the
duties of a householder by first accepting brahmacarya under the direction of spiritual masters. He also
went to live at the spiritual masters' place, gurukula. After His education was finished, He gave gifts
(guru-daksina) to His spiritual masters and then accepted the life of a householder. He took a wife
named Jayanti and begot one hundred sons who were as powerful and qualified as He Himself. His
wife Jayanti had been offered to Him by Indra, the King of heaven. Rsabhadeva and Jayanti performed
householder life in an exemplary way, carrying out ritualistic activities ordained by the sruti and smrti
sastra.
9. Of Rsabhadeva's one hundred sons, the eldest, named Bharata, was a great, exalted devotee
qualified with the best attributes. In his honor, this planet has become known as Bharata-varsa.
10. Following Bharata, there were ninety-nine other sons. Among these were nine elderly sons, named
Kusavarta, Ilavarta, Brahmavarta, Malaya, Ketu, Bhadrasena, Indrasprk, Vidarbha and Kikata.
11-12. In addition to these sons were Kavi, Havi, Antariksa, Prabuddha, Pippalayana, Avirhotra,
Drumila, Camasa and Karabhajana. These were all very exalted, advanced devotees and authorized
preachers of Srimad-Bhagavatam. These devotees were glorified due to their strong devotion to
Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore they were very exalted. To satisfy the mind
perfectly, I [Sukadeva Gosvami] shall hereafter describe the characteristics of these nine devotees
when I discuss the conversation between Narada and Vasudeva.
218 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
13. In addition to these nineteen sons mentioned above, there were eighty-one younger ones, all born
of Rsabhadeva and Jayanti. According to the order of their father, they became well cultured, well
behaved, very pure in their activities and expert in Vedic knowledge and the performance of Vedic
rituals. Thus they all became perfectly qualified brahmanas.
14. Being an incarnation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Rsabhadeva was fully
independent because His form was spiritual, eternal and full of transcendental bliss. He eternally had
nothing to do with the four principles of material misery [birth, death, old age and disease]. Nor was He
materially attached. He was always equipoised, and He saw everyone on the same level. He was
unhappy to see others unhappy, and He was the well-wisher of all living entities. Although He was a
perfect personality, the Supreme Lord and controller of all, He nonetheless acted as if He were an
ordinary conditioned soul. Therefore He strictly followed the principles of varnasrama-dharma and acted
accordingly. In due course of time, the principles of varnasrama-dharma had become neglected;
therefore through His personal characteristics and behavior, He taught the ignorant public how to
perform duties within the varnasrama-dharma. In this way He regulated the general populace in
householder life, enabling them to develop religion and economic well-being and to attain reputations,
sons and daughters, material pleasure and finally eternal life. By His instructions, He showed how
people could remain householders and at the same time become perfect by following the principles of
varnasrama-dharma.
15. Whatever action is performed by a great man, common men follow.
16. Although Lord Rsabhadeva knew everything about confidential Vedic knowledge, which includes
information about all types of occupational duties, He still maintained Himself as a ksatriya and followed
the instructions of the brahmanas as they related to mind control, sense control, tolerance and so forth.
Thus He ruled the people according to the system of varnasrama-dharma, which enjoins that the
brahmanas instruct the ksatriyas and the ksatriyas administer to the state through the vaisyas and
sudras.
17. Lord Rsabhadeva performed all kinds of sacrifices one hundred times according to the instructions
of the Vedic literatures. Thus He satisfied Lord Visnu in every respect. All the rituals were enriched by
first-class ingredients. They were executed in holy places according to the proper time by priests who
were all young and faithful. In this way Lord Visnu was worshiped, and the prasada was offered to all
the demigods. Thus the functions and festivals were all successful.
18. No one likes to possess anything that is like a will-o'-the-wisp or a flower in the sky, for everyone
knows very well that such things do not exist. When Lord Rsabhadeva ruled this planet of
Bharatavarsa, even common men did not want to ask for anything, at any time or by any means. No
one ever asks for a will-o'-the-wisp. In other words, everyone was completely satisfied, and therefore
there was no chance of anyone's asking for anything. The people were absorbed in great affection for
the King. Since this affection was always expanding, they were not inclined to ask for anything.
19. Once while touring the world, Lord Rsabhadeva, the Supreme Lord, reached a place known as
Brahmavarta. There was a great conference of learned brahmanas at that place, and all the King's sons
attentively heard the instructions of the brahmanas there. At that assembly, within the hearing of the
citizens, Rsabhadeva instructed His sons, although they were already very well behaved, devoted and
qualified. He instructed them so that in the future they could rule the world very perfectly. Thus he spoke
as follows.
Chapter Five Lord Rsabhadeva's Teachings to His Sons
1. Lord Rsabhadeva told His sons: My dear boys, of all the living entities who have accepted material
bodies in this world, one who has been awarded this human form should not work hard day and night
simply for sense gratification, which is available even for dogs and hogs that eat stool. One should
engage in penance and austerity to attain the divine position of devotional service. By such activity,
one's heart is purified, and when one attains this position, he attains eternal, blissful life, which is
transcendental to material happiness and which continues forever.
2. One can attain the path of liberation from material bondage only by rendering service to highly
advanced spiritual personalities. These personalities are impersonalists and devotees. Whether one
wants to merge into the Lord's existence or wants to associate with the Personality of Godhead, one
should render service to the mahatmas. For those who are not interested in such activities, who
associate with people fond of women and sex, the path to hell is wide open. The mahatmas are
equipoised. They do not see any difference between one living entity and another. They are very
peaceful and are fully engaged in devotional service. They are devoid of anger, and they work for the
benefit of everyone. They do not behave in any abominable way. Such people are known as
mahatmas.
3. Those who are interested in reviving Krsna consciousness and increasing their love of Godhead do
not like to do anything that is not related to Krsna. They are not interested in mingling with people who
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 219
are busy maintaining their bodies, eating, sleeping, mating and defending. They are not attached to
their homes, although they may be householders. Nor are they attached to wives, children, friends or
wealth. At the same time, they are not indifferent to the execution of their duties. Such people are
interested in collecting only enough money to keep the body and soul together.
4. When a person considers sense gratification the aim of life, he certainly becomes mad after
materialistic living and engages in all kinds of sinful activity. He does not know that due to his past
misdeeds he has already received a body which, although temporary, is the cause of his misery.
Actually the living entity should not have taken on a material body, but he has been awarded the
material body for sense gratification. Therefore I think it not befitting an intelligent man to involve himself
again in the activities of sense gratification by which he perpetually gets material bodies one after
another.
5. As long as one does not inquire about the spiritual values of life, one is defeated and subjected to
miseries arising from ignorance. Be it sinful or pious, karma has its resultant actions. If a person is
engaged in any kind of karma, his mind is called karmatmaka, colored with fruitive activity. As long as
the mind is impure, consciousness is unclear, and as long as one is absorbed in fruitive activity, he has
to accept a material body.
6. When the living entity is covered by the mode of ignorance, he does not understand the individual
living being and the supreme living being, and his mind is subjugated to fruitive activity. Therefore, until
one has love for Lord Vasudeva, who is none other than Myself, he is certainly not delivered from
having to accept a material body again and again.
7. Even though one may be very learned and wise, he is mad if he does not understand that the
endeavor for sense gratification is a useless waste of time. Being forgetful of his own interest, he tries to
be happy in the material world, centering his interests around his home, which is based on sexual
intercourse and which brings him all kinds of material miseries. In this way one is no better than a
foolish animal.
8. The attraction between male and female is the basic principle of material existence. On the basis of
this misconception, which ties together the hearts of the male and female, one becomes attracted to his
body, home, property, children, relatives and wealth. In this way one increases life's illusions and thinks
in terms of "I and mine."
9. When the strong knot in the heart of a person implicated in material life due to the results of past
action is slackened, one turns away from his attachment to home, wife and children. In this way, one
gives up the basic principle of illusion [I and mine] and becomes liberated. Thus one goes to the
transcendental world.
10-13. O My sons, you should accept a highly elevated paramahamsa, a spiritually advanced spiritual
master. In this way, you should place your faith and love in Me, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
You should detest sense gratification and tolerate the duality of pleasure and pain, which are like the
seasonal changes of summer and winter. Try to realize the miserable condition of living entities, who
are miserable even in the higher planetary systems. Philosophically inquire about the truth. Then
undergo all kinds of austerities and penances for the sake of devotional service. Give up the endeavor
for sense enjoyment and engage in the service of the Lord. Listen to discussions about the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, and always associate with devotees. Chant about and glorify the Supreme
Lord, and look upon everyone equally on the spiritual platform. Give up enmity and subdue anger and
lamentation. Abandon identifying the self with the body and the home, and practice reading the
revealed scriptures. Live in a secluded place and practice the process by which you can completely
control your life air, mind and senses. Have full faith in the revealed scriptures, the Vedic literatures, and
always observe celibacy. Perform your prescribed duties and avoid unnecessary talks. Always thinking
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, acquire knowledge from the right source. Thus practicing
bhakti-yoga, you will patiently and enthusiastically be elevated in knowledge and will be able to give up
the false ego.
14. As I have advised you, My dear sons, you should act accordingly. Be very careful. By these means
you will be freed from the ignorance of the desire for fruitive activity, and the knot of bondage in the
heart will be completely severed. For further advancement, you should also give up the means. That is,
you should not become attached to the process of liberation itself.
15. If one is serious about going back home, back to Godhead, he must consider the mercy of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead the summum bonum and chief aim of life. If he is a father instructing
his sons, a spiritual master instructing his disciples, or a king instructing his citizens, he must instruct
them as I have advised. Without being angry, he should continue giving instructions, even if his disciple,
son or citizen is sometimes unable to follow his order. Ignorant people who engage in pious and
impious activities should be engaged in devotional service by all means. They should always avoid
fruitive activity. If one puts into the bondage of karmic activity his disciple, son or citizen who is bereft of
220 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
transcendental vision, how will one profit? It is like leading a blind man to a dark well and causing him to
fall in.
16. Due to ignorance, the materialistic person does not know anything about his real self-interest, the
auspicious path in life. He is simply bound to material enjoyment by lusty desires, and all his plans are
made for this purpose. For temporary sense gratification, such a person creates a society of envy, and
due to this mentality, he plunges into the ocean of suffering. Such a foolish person does not even know
about this.
17. If someone is ignorant and addicted to the path of samsara, how can one who is actually learned,
merciful and advanced in spiritual knowledge engage him in fruitive activity and thus further entangle
him in material existence? If a blind man is walking down the wrong path, how can a gentleman allow
him to continue on his way to danger? How can he approve this method? No wise or kind man can
allow this.
18. "One who cannot deliver his dependents from the path of repeated birth and death should never
become a spiritual master, a father, a husband, a mother or a worshipable demigod.
19. My transcendental body [sac-cid-ananda-vigraha] looks exactly like a human form, but it is not a
material human body. It is inconceivable. I am not forced by nature to accept a particular type of body; I
take on a body by My own sweet will. My heart is also spiritual, and I always think of the welfare of My
devotees. Therefore within My heart can be found the process of devotional service, which is meant for
the devotees. Far from My heart have I abandoned irreligion [adharma] and nondevotional activities.
They do not appeal to Me. Due to all these transcendental qualities, people generally pray to Me as
Rsabhadeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the best of all living entities.
20. My dear boys, you are all born of My heart, which is the seat of all spiritual qualities. Therefore you
should not be like materialistic and envious men. You should accept your eldest brother, Bharata, who
is exalted in devotional service. If you engage yourselves in Bharata's service, your service to him will
include My service, and you will rule the citizens automatically.
21-22. Of the two energies manifest [spirit and dull matter], beings possessing living force [vegetables,
grass, trees and plants] are superior to dull matter [stone, earth, etc.]. Superior to nonmoving plants and
vegetables are worms and snakes, which can move. Superior to worms and snakes are animals that
have developed intelligence. Superior to animals are human beings, and superior to human beings are
ghosts because they have no material bodies. Superior to ghosts are the Gandharvas, and superior to
them are the Siddhas. Superior to the Siddhas are the Kinnaras, and superior to them are the asuras.
Superior to the asuras are the demigods, and of the demigods, Indra, the King of heaven, is supreme.
Superior to Indra are the direct sons of Lord Brahma, sons like King Daksa, and supreme among
Brahma's sons is Lord Siva. Since Lord Siva is the son of Lord Brahma, Brahma is considered superior,
but Brahma is also subordinate to Me, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Because I am inclined to
the brahmanas, the brahmanas are best of all.
23. O respectful brahmanas, as far as I am concerned, no one is equal or superior to the brahmanas in
this world. I do not find anyone comparable to them. When people know My motive after performing
rituals according to the Vedic principles, they offer food to Me with faith and love through the mouth of a
brahmana. When food is thus offered unto Me, I eat it with full satisfaction. Indeed, I derive more
pleasure from food offered in that way than from the food offered in the sacrificial fire.
24. The Vedas are My eternal transcendental sound incarnation. Therefore the Vedas are sabda-
brahma. In this world, the brahmanas thoroughly study all the Vedas, and because they assimilate the
Vedic conclusions, they are also to be considered the Vedas personified. The brahmanas are situated
in the supreme transcendental mode of nature--sattva-guna. Because of this, they are fixed in mind
control [sama], sense control [dama], and truthfulness [satya]. They describe the Vedas in their original
sense, and out of mercy [anugraha] they preach the purpose of the Vedas to all conditioned souls. They
practice penance [tapasya] and tolerance [titiksa], and they realize the position of the living entity and
the Supreme Lord [anubhava]. These are the eight qualifications of the brahmanas. Therefore among
all living entities, no one is superior to the brahmanas.
25. I am fully opulent, almighty and superior to Lord Brahma and Indra, the King of the heavenly
planets. I am also the bestower of all happiness obtained in the heavenly kingdom and by liberation.
Nonetheless, the brahmanas do not seek material comforts from Me. They are very pure and do not
want to possess anything. They simply engage in My devotional service. What is the need of their
asking for material benefits from anyone else?
26. My dear sons, you should not envy any living entity--be he moving or nonmoving. Knowing that I am
situated in them, you should offer respect to all of them at every moment. In this way, you offer respect
to Me.
27. The true activity of the sense organs--mind, sight, words and all the knowledge-gathering and
working senses--is to engage fully in My service. Unless his senses are thus engaged, a living entity
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 221
cannot think of getting out of the great entanglement of material existence, which is exactly like
Yamaraja's stringent rope.
28. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus the great well-wisher of everyone, the Supreme Lord Rsabhadeva,
instructed His own sons. Although they were perfectly educated and cultured, He instructed them just to
set an example of how a father should instruct his sons before retiring from family life. Samnyasis, who
are no longer bound by fruitive activity and who have taken to devotional service after all their material
desires have been vanquished, also learn by these instructions. Lord Rsabhadeva instructed His one
hundred sons, of whom the eldest, Bharata, was a very advanced devotee and a follower of Vaisnavas.
In order to rule the whole world, the Lord enthroned His eldest son on the royal seat. Thereafter,
although still at home, Lord Rsabhadeva lived like a madman, naked and with disheveled hair. Then the
Lord took the sacrificial fire within Himself, and He left Brahmavarta to tour the whole world.
29. After accepting the feature of avadhuta, a great saintly person without material cares, Lord
Rsabhadeva passed through human society like a blind, deaf and dumb man, an idle stone, a ghost or
a madman. Although people called Him such names, He remained silent and did not speak to anyone.
30. Rsabhadeva began to tour through cities, villages, mines, countrysides, valleys, gardens, military
camps, cow pens, the homes of cowherd men, transient hotels, hills, forests and hermitages. Wherever
He traveled, all bad elements surrounded Him, just as flies surround the body of an elephant coming
from a forest. He was always being threatened, beaten, urinated upon and spat upon. Sometimes
people threw stones, stool and dust at Him, and sometimes people passed foul air before Him. Thus
people called Him many bad names and gave Him a great deal of trouble, but He did not care about
this, for He understood that the body is simply meant for such an end. He was situated on the spiritual
platform, and, being in His spiritual glory, He did not care for all these material insults. In other words,
He completely understood that matter and spirit are separate, and He had no bodily conception. Thus,
without being angry at anyone, He walked through the whole world alone.
31. Lord Rsabhadeva's hands, feet and chest were very long. His shoulders, face and limbs were all
very delicate and symmetrically proportioned. His mouth was beautifully decorated with His natural
smile, and He appeared all the more lovely with His reddish eyes spread wide like the petals of a newly
grown lotus flower covered with dew in the early morning. The irises of His eyes were so pleasing that
they removed all the troubles of everyone who saw Him. His forehead, ears, neck, nose and all His
other features were very beautiful. His gentle smile always made His face beautiful, so much so that He
even attracted the hearts of married women. It was as though they had been pierced by arrows of
Cupid. About His head was an abundance of curly, matted brown hair. His hair was disheveled because
His body was dirty and not taken care of. He appeared as if He were haunted by a ghost.
32. When Lord Rsabhadeva saw that the general populace was very antagonistic to His execution of
mystic yoga, He accepted the behavior of a python in order to counteract their opposition. Thus He
stayed in one place and lay down. While lying down, He ate and drank, and He passed stool and urine
and rolled in it. Indeed, He smeared His whole body with His own stool and urine so that opposing
elements might not come and disturb Him.
33. Because Lord Rsabhadeva remained in that condition, the public did not disturb Him, but no bad
aroma emanated from His stool and urine. Quite the contrary, His stool and urine were so aromatic that
they filled eighty miles of the countryside with a pleasant fragrance.
34. In this way Lord Rsabhadeva followed the behavior of cows, deer and crows. Sometimes He moved
or walked, and sometimes He sat down in one place. Sometimes He lay down, behaving exactly like
cows, deer and crows. In that way, He ate, drank, passed stool and urine and cheated the people in this
way.
35. O King Pariksit, just to show all the yogis the mystic process, Lord Rsabhadeva, the partial
expansion of Lord Krsna, performed wonderful activities. Actually He was the master of liberation and
was fully absorbed in transcendental bliss, which increased a thousandfold. Lord Krsna, Vasudeva, the
son of Vasudeva, is the original source of Lord Rsabhadeva. There is no difference in Their constitution,
and consequently Lord Rsabhadeva awakened the loving symptoms of crying, laughing and shivering.
He was always absorbed in transcendental love. Due to this, all mystic powers automatically
approached Him, such as the ability to travel in outer space at the speed of mind, to appear and
disappear, to enter the bodies of others, and to see things far, far away. Although He could do all this,
He did not exercise these powers.
Chapter Six The Activities of Lord Rsabhadeva
1. King Pariksit asked Sukadeva Gosvami: My dear Lord, for those who are completely pure in heart,
knowledge is attained by the practice of bhakti-yoga, and attachment for fruitive activity is completely
burned to ashes. For such people, the powers of mystic yoga automatically arise. They do not cause
distress. Why, then, did Rsabhadeva neglect them?
222 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
2. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami replied: My dear King, you have spoken correctly. However, after capturing
animals, a cunning hunter does not put faith in them, for they might run away. Similarly, those who are
advanced in spiritual life do not put faith in the mind. Indeed, they always remain vigilant and watch the
mind's action.
3. All the learned scholars have given their opinion. The mind is by nature very restless, and one should
not make friends with it. If we place full confidence in the mind, it may cheat us at any moment. Even
Lord Siva became agitated upon seeing the Mohini form of Lord Krsna, and Saubhari Muni also fell
down from the mature stage of yogic perfection.
4. An unchaste woman is very easily carried away by paramours, and it sometimes happens that her
husband is violently killed by her paramours. If the yogi gives his mind a chance and does not restrain it,
his mind will give facility to enemies like lust, anger and greed, and they will doubtlessly kill the yogi.
5. The mind is the root cause of lust, anger, pride, greed, lamentation, illusion and fear. Combined,
these constitute bondage to fruitive activity. What learned man would put faith in the mind?
6. Lord Rsabhadeva was the head of all kings and emperors within this universe, but assuming the
dress and language of an avadhuta, He acted as if dull and materially bound. Consequently no one
could observe His divine opulence. He adopted this behavior just to teach yogis how to give up the
body. Nonetheless, He maintained His original position as a plenary expansion of Lord Vasudeva,
Krsna. Remaining always in that state, He gave up His pastimes as Lord Rsabhadeva within the
material world. If, following in the footsteps of Lord Rsabhadeva, one can give up his subtle body, there
is no chance that one will accept a material body again.
7. Actually Lord Rsabhadeva had no material body, but due to yogamaya, He considered His body
material, and therefore, because He played like an ordinary human being, He gave up the mentality of
identifying with it. Following this principle, He began to wander all over the world. While traveling, He
came to the province of Karnata in South India and passed through Konka, Venka and Kutaka. He had
no plan to travel this way, but He arrived near Kutakacala and entered a forest there. He placed stones
within His mouth and began to wander through the forest, naked and with His hair disheveled like a
madman.
8. While He was wandering about, a wild forest fire began. This fire was caused by the friction of
bamboos, which were being blown by the wind. In that fire, the entire forest near Kutakacala and the
body of Lord Rsabhadeva were burnt to ashes.
9. Sukadeva Gosvami continued speaking to Maharaja Pariksit: My dear King, the King of Konka,
Venka and Kutaka whose name was Arhat, heard of the activities of Rsabhadeva and, imitating
Rsabhadeva's principles, introduced a new system of religion. Taking advantage of Kali-yuga, the age
of sinful activity, King Arhat, being bewildered, gave up the Vedic principles, which are free from risk,
and concocted a new system of religion opposed to the Vedas. That was the beginning of the Jain
dharma. Many other so-called religions followed this atheistic system.
10. People who are lowest among men and bewildered by the illusory energy of the Supreme Lord will
give up the original varnasrama-dharma and its rules and regulations. They will abandon bathing three
times daily and worshiping the Lord. Abandoning cleanliness and neglecting the Supreme Lord, they
will accept nonsensical principles. Not regularly bathing or washing their mouths regularly, they will
always remain unclean, and they will pluck out their hair. Following a concocted religion, they will
flourish. During this age of Kali, people are more inclined to irreligious systems. Consequently these
people will naturally deride Vedic authority, the followers of Vedic authority, the brahmanas, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead and the devotees.
11. Low-class people, due to their gross ignorance, introduce a system of religion that deviates from the
Vedic principles. Following their own mental concoctions, they automatically fall down into the darkest
regions of existence.
12. In this age of Kali, people are overwhelmed by the modes of passion and ignorance. Lord
Rsabhadeva incarnated Himself to deliver them from the clutches of maya.
13. Learned scholars chant about the transcendental qualities of Lord Rsabhadeva in this way: "Oh, this
earthly planet contains seven seas and many islands and lands, of which Bharata-varsa is considered
the most pious. People of Bharata-varsa are accustomed to glorifying the activities of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead in His incarnations as Lord Rsabhadeva and others. All these activities are very
auspicious for the welfare of humanity.
14. "Oh, what shall I say of the dynasty of Priyavrata, which is pure and very much celebrated. In that
dynasty, the Supreme Person, the original Personality of Godhead, descended as an incarnation and
executed religious principles that could free one from the results of fruitive activity.
15. "Who is that mystic yogi who can follow the examples of Lord Rsabhadeva even with his mind? Lord
Rsabhadeva rejected all kinds of yogic perfection, which other yogis hanker to attain. Who is that yogi
who can compare to Lord Rsabhadeva?"
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 223
16. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Lord Rsabhadeva is the master of all Vedic knowledge, human
beings, demigods, cows and brahmanas. I have already explained His pure, transcendental activities,
which will vanquish the sinful activities of all living entities. This narration of Lord Rsabhadeva's
pastimes is the reservoir of all auspicious things. Whoever attentively hears or speaks of them, following
in the footsteps of the acaryas, will certainly attain unalloyed devotional service at the lotus feet of Lord
Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
17. Devotees always bathe themselves in devotional service in order to be relieved from the various
tribulations of material existence. By doing this, the devotees enjoy supreme bliss, and liberation
personified comes to serve them. Nonetheless, they do not accept that service, even if it is offered by
the Supreme Personality of Godhead Himself. For the devotees, liberation [mukti] is very unimportant
because, having attained the Lord's transcendental loving service, they have attained everything
desirable and have transcended all material desires.
18. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, the Supreme Person, Mukunda, is actually the
maintainer of all the members of the Pandava and Yadu dynasties. He is your spiritual master,
worshipable Deity, friend, and the director of your activities. To say nothing of this, He sometimes
serves your family as a messenger or servant. This means He worked just as ordinary servants do.
Those engaged in getting the Lord's favor attain liberation from the Lord very easily, but He does not
very easily give the opportunity to render direct service unto Him.
19. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Rsabhadeva, was fully aware of His true identity;
therefore He was self-sufficient, and He did not desire external gratification. There was no need for Him
to aspire for success, since He was complete in Himself. Those who unnecessarily engage in bodily
conceptions and create an atmosphere of materialism are always ignorant of their real self-interest. Out
of His causeless mercy, Lord Rsabhadeva taught the self's real identity and the goal of life. We
therefore offer our respectful obeisances unto the Lord, who appeared as Lord Rsabhadeva.
Chapter Seven The Activities of King Bharata
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued speaking to Maharaja Pariksit: My dear King, Bharata Maharaja was a
topmost devotee. Following the orders of his father, who had already decided to install him on the
throne, he began to rule the earth accordingly. When Bharata Maharaja ruled the entire globe, he
followed the orders of his father and married Pancajani, the daughter of Visvarupa.
2. Just as the false ego creates the subtle sense objects, Maharaja Bharata created five sons in the
womb of Pancajani, his wife. These sons were named Sumati, Rastrabhrta, Sudarsana, Avarana and
Dhumraketu.
3. Formerly this planet was known as Ajanabha-varsa, but since Maharaja Bharata's reign, it has
become known as Bharata-varsa.
4. Maharaja Bharata was a very learned and experienced king on this earth. He perfectly ruled the
citizens, being himself engaged in his own respective duties. Maharaja Bharata was as affectionate to
the citizens as his father and grandfather had been. Keeping them engaged in their occupational duties,
he ruled the earth.
5. With great faith King Bharata performed various kinds of sacrifice. He performed the sacrifices known
as agni-hotra, darsa, purnamasa, caturmasya, pasu-yajna [wherein a horse is sacrificed] and soma-
yajna [wherein a kind of beverage is offered]. Sometimes these sacrifices were performed completely
and sometimes partially. In any case, in all the sacrifices the regulations of caturhotra were strictly
followed. In this way Bharata Maharaja worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
6. After performing the preliminaries of various sacrifices, Maharaja Bharata offered the results in the
name of religion to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva. In other words, he performed all
the yajnas for the satisfaction of Lord Vasudeva, Krsna. Maharaja Bharata thought that since the
demigods were different parts of Vasudeva's body, He controls those who are explained in the Vedic
mantras. By thinking in this way, Maharaja Bharata was freed from all material contamination, such as
attachment, lust and greed. When the priests were about to offer the sacrificial ingredients into the fire,
Maharaja Bharata expertly understood how the offering made to different demigods was simply an
offering to the different limbs of the Lord. For instance, Indra is the arm of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, and Surya [the sun] is His eye. Thus Maharaja Bharata considered that the oblations offered
to different demigods were actually offered unto the different limbs of Lord Vasudeva.
7. In this way, being purified by ritualistic sacrifices, the heart of Maharaja Bharata was completely
uncontaminated. His devotional service unto Vasudeva, Lord Krsna, increased day after day. Lord
Krsna, the son of Vasudeva, is the original Personality of Godhead manifest as the Supersoul
[Paramatma] as well as the impersonal Brahman. Yogis meditate upon the localized Paramatma
situated in the heart, jnanis worship the impersonal Brahman as the Supreme Absolute Truth, and
devotees worship Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose transcendental body is
described in the sastras. His body is decorated with the Srivatsa, the Kaustubha jewel and a flower
224 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
garland, and His hands hold a conchshell, disc, club and lotus flower. Devotees like Narada always
think of Him within their hearts.
8. Destiny fixed the time for Maharaja Bharata's enjoyment of material opulence at one thousand times
ten thousand years. When that period was finished, he retired from family life and divided the wealth he
had received from his forefathers among his sons. He left his paternal home, the reservoir of all
opulence, and started for Pulahasrama, which is situated in Hardwar. The salagrama-silas are
obtainable there.
9. At Pulaha-asrama, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, out of His transcendental affection for
His devotee, becomes visible to His devotee, satisfying His devotee's desires.
10. In Pulaha-asrama is the Gandaki River, which is the best of all rivers. The salagrama-sila, the
marble pebbles, purify all those places. On each and every marble pebble, up and down, circles like
navels are visible.
11. In the gardens of Pulaha-asrama, Maharaja Bharata lived alone and collected a variety of flowers,
twigs and tulasi leaves. He also collected the water of the Gandaki River, as well as various roots, fruits
and bulbs. With these he offered food to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, and,
worshiping Him, he remained satisfied. In this way his heart was completely uncontaminated, and he
did not have the least desire for material enjoyment. All material desires vanished. In this steady
position, he felt full satisfaction and was situated in devotional service.
12. That most exalted devotee, Maharaja Bharata, in this way engaged constantly in the devotional
service of the Lord. Naturally his love for Vasudeva, Krsna, increased more and more and melted his
heart. Consequently he gradually lost all attachment for regulative duties. The hairs of his body stood on
end, and all the ecstatic bodily symptoms were manifest. Tears flowed from his eyes, so much so that
he could not see anything. Thus he constantly meditated on the reddish lotus feet of the Lord. At that
time, his heart, which was like a lake, was filled with the water of ecstatic love. When his mind was
immersed in that lake, he even forgot the regulative service to the Lord.
13. Maharaja Bharata appeared very beautiful. He had a wealth of curly hair on his head, which was
wet from bathing three times daily. He dressed in a deerskin. He worshiped Lord Narayana, whose
body was composed of golden effulgence and who resided within the sun. Maharaja Bharata worshiped
Lord Narayana by chanting the hymns given in the Rg Veda, and he recited the following verse as the
sun rose.
14. "The Supreme Personality of Godhead is situated in pure goodness. He illuminates the entire
universe and bestows all benedictions upon His devotees. The Lord has created this universe from His
own spiritual potency. According to His desire, the Lord entered this universe as the Supersoul, and by
virtue of His different potencies, He is maintaining all living entities desiring material enjoyment. Let me
offer my respectful obeisances unto the Lord, who is the giver of intelligence."
Chapter Eight A Description of the Character of Bharata Maharaja
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, one day, after finishing his morning duties--
evacuating, urinating and bathing--Maharaja Bharata sat down on the bank of the River Gandaki for a
few minutes and began chanting his mantra, beginning with omkara.
2. O King, while Bharata Maharaja was sitting on the bank of that river, a doe, being very thirsty, came
there to drink.
3. While the doe was drinking with great satisfaction, a lion, which was very close, roared very loudly.
This was frightful to every living entity, and it was heard by the doe.
4. By nature the doe was always afraid of being killed by others, and it was always looking about
suspiciously. When it heard the lion's tumultuous roar, it became very agitated. Looking here and there
with disturbed eyes, the doe, although it had not fully satisfied itself by drinking water, suddenly leaped
across the river.
5. The doe was pregnant, and when it jumped out of fear, the baby deer fell from its womb into the
flowing waters of the river.
6. Being separated from its flock and distressed by its miscarriage, the black doe, having crossed the
river, was very much distressed. Indeed, it fell down in a cave and died immediately.
7. The great King Bharata, while sitting on the bank of the river, saw the small deer, bereft of its mother,
floating down the river. Seeing this, he felt great compassion. Like a sincere friend, he lifted the infant
deer from the waves, and, knowing it to be motherless, brought it to his asrama.
8. Gradually Maharaja Bharata became very affectionate toward the deer. He began to raise it and
maintain it by giving it grass. He was always careful to protect it from the attacks of tigers and other
animals. When it itched, he petted it, and in this way he always tried to keep it in a comfortable
condition. He sometimes kissed it out of love. Being attached to raising the deer, Maharaja Bharata
forgot the rules and regulations for the advancement of spiritual life, and he gradually forgot to worship
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 225
the Supreme Personality of Godhead. After a few days, he forgot everything about his spiritual
advancement.
9. The great King Maharaja Bharata began to think: Alas, this helpless young deer, by the force of time,
an agent of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, has now lost its relatives and friends and has taken
shelter of me. It does not know anyone but me, as I have become its father, mother, brother and
relatives. This deer is thinking in this way, and it has full faith in me. It does not know anyone but me;
therefore I should not be envious and think that for the deer my own welfare will be destroyed. I should
certainly raise, protect, gratify and fondle it. When it has taken shelter with me, how can I neglect it?
Even though the deer is disturbing my spiritual life, I realize that a helpless person who has taken
shelter cannot be neglected. That would be a great fault.
10. Even though one is in the renounced order, one who is advanced certainly feels compassion for
suffering living entities. One should certainly neglect his own personal interests, although they may be
very important, to protect one who has surrendered.
11. Due to attachment for the deer, Maharaja Bharata lay down with it, walked about with it, bathed with
it and even ate with it. Thus his heart became bound to the deer in affection.
12. When Maharaja Bharata wanted to enter the forest to collect kusa grass, flowers, wood, leaves,
fruits, roots and water, he would fear that dogs, jackals, tigers and other ferocious animals might kill the
deer. He would therefore always take the deer with him when entering the forest.
13. When entering the forest, the animal would appear very attractive to Maharaja Bharata due to its
childish behavior. Maharaja Bharata would even take the deer on his shoulders and carry it due to
affection. His heart was so filled with great love for the deer that he would sometimes keep it on his lap
or, when sleeping, on his chest. In this way he felt great pleasure in fondling the animal.
14. When Maharaja Bharata was actually worshiping the Lord or was engaged in some ritualistic
ceremony, although his activities were unfinished, he would still, at intervals, get up and see where the
deer was. In this way he would look for it, and when he could see that the deer was comfortably
situated, his mind and heart would be very satisfied, and he would bestow his blessings upon the deer,
saying, "My dear calf, may you be happy in all respects."
15. If Bharata Maharaja sometimes could not see the deer, his mind would be very agitated. He would
become like a miser, who, having obtained some riches, had lost them and had then become very
unhappy. When the deer was gone, he would be filled with anxiety and would lament due to separation.
Thus he would become illusioned and speak as follows.
16. Bharata Maharaja would think: Alas, the deer is now helpless. I am now very unfortunate, and my
mind is like a cunning hunter, for it is always filled with cheating propensities and cruelty. The deer has
put its faith in me, just as a good man who has a natural interest in good behavior forgets the
misbehavior of a cunning friend and puts his faith in him. Although I have proved faithless, will this deer
return and place its faith in me?
17. Alas, is it possible that I shall again see this animal protected by the Lord and fearless of tigers and
other animals? Shall I again see him wandering in the garden eating soft grass?
18. I do not know, but the deer might have been eaten by a wolf or a dog or by the boars that flock
together or the tiger who travels alone.
19. Alas, when the sun rises, all auspicious things begin. Unfortunately, they have not begun for me.
The sun-god is the Vedas personified, but I am bereft of all Vedic principles. That sun-god is now
setting, yet the poor animal who trusted in me since its mother died has not returned.
20. That deer is exactly like a prince. When will it return? When will it again display its personal
activities, which are so pleasing? When will it again pacify a wounded heart like mine? I certainly must
have no pious assets, otherwise the deer would have returned by now.
21. Alas, the small deer, while playing with me and seeing me feigning meditation with closed eyes,
would circumambulate me due to anger arising from love, and it would fearfully touch me with the points
of its soft horns, which felt like drops of water.
22. When I placed all the sacrificial ingredients on the kusa grass, the deer, when playing, would touch
the grass with its teeth and thus pollute it. When I chastised the deer by pushing it away, it would
immediately become fearful and sit down motionless, exactly like the son of a saintly person. Thus it
would stop its play.
23. After speaking like a madman in this way, Maharaja Bharata got up and went outside. Seeing the
footprints of the deer on the ground, he praised the footprints out of love, saying: O unfortunate Bharata,
your austerities and penances are very insignificant compared to the penance and austerity undergone
by this earth planet. Due to the earth's severe penances, the footprints of this deer, which are small,
beautiful, most auspicious and soft, are imprinted on the surface of this fortunate planet. This series of
footprints show a person like me, who am bereaved due to loss of the deer, how the animal has passed
through the forest and how I can regain my lost wealth. By these footprints, this land has become a
226 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
proper place for brahmanas who desire heavenly planets or liberation to execute sacrifices to the
demigods.
24. Maharaja Bharata continued to speak like a madman. Seeing above his head the dark marks on the
rising moon, which resembled a deer, he said: Can it be that the moon, who is so kind to an unhappy
man, might also be kind upon my deer, knowing that it has strayed from home and has become
motherless? This moon has given the deer shelter near itself just to protect it from the fearful attacks of
a lion.
25. After perceiving the moonshine, Maharaja Bharata continued speaking like a crazy person. He said:
The deer's son was so submissive and dear to me that due to its separation I am feeling separation
from my own son. Due to the burning fever of this separation, I am suffering as if inflamed by a forest
fire. My heart, which is like the lily of the land, is now burning. Seeing me so distressed, the moon is
certainly splashing its shining nectar upon me--just as a friend throws water on another friend who has a
high fever. In this way, the moon is bringing me happiness.
26. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, in this way Bharata Maharaja was overwhelmed by an
uncontrollable desire which was manifest in the form of the deer. Due to the fruitive results of his past
deeds, he fell down from mystic yoga, austerity and worship of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. If
it were not due to his past fruitive activity, how could he have been attracted to the deer after giving up
the association of his own son and family, considering them stumbling blocks on the path of spiritual
life? Mow could he show such uncontrollable affection for a deer? This was definitely due to his past
karma. The King was so engrossed in petting and maintaining the deer that he fell down from his
spiritual activities. In due course of time, insurmountable death, which is compared to a venomous
snake that enters the hole created by a mouse, situated itself before him.
27. At the time of death, the King saw that the deer was sitting by his side, exactly like his own son, and
was lamenting his death. Actually the mind of the King was absorbed in the body of the deer, and
consequently--like those bereft of Krsna consciousness--he left the world, the deer, and his material
body and acquired the body of a deer. However, there was one advantage. Although he lost his human
body and received the body of a deer, he did not forget the incidents of his past life.
28. Although in the body of a deer, Bharata Maharaja, due to his rigid devotional service in his past life,
could understand the cause of his birth in that body. Considering his past and present life, he constantly
repented his activities, speaking in the following way.
29. In the body of a deer, Bharata Maharaja began to lament: What misfortune! I have fallen from the
path of the self-realized. I gave up my real sons, wife and home to advance in spiritual life, and I took
shelter in a solitary holy place in the forest. I became self-controlled and self-realized, and I engaged
constantly in devotional service, hearing, thinking, chanting, worshiping and remembering the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva. I was successful in my attempt, so much so that my mind was
always absorbed in devotional service. However, due to my personal foolishness, my mind again
became attached--this time to a deer. Now I have obtained the body of a deer and have fallen far from
my devotional practices.
30. Although Bharata Maharaja received the body of a deer, by constant repentance he became
completely detached from all material things. He did not disclose these things to anyone, but he left his
mother deer in a place known as Kalanjara Mountain, where he was born. He again went to the forest
of Salagrama and to the asrama of Pulastya and Pulaha.
31. Remaining in that asrama, the great King Bharata Maharaja was now very careful not to fall victim to
bad association. Without disclosing his past to anyone, he remained in that asrama and ate dry leaves
only. He was not exactly alone, for he had the association of the Supersoul. In this way he waited for
death in the body of a deer. Bathing in that holy place, he finally gave up that body.
Chapter Nine The Supreme Character of Jada Bharata
1-2. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, after giving up the body of a deer, Bharata
Maharaja took birth in a very pure brahmana family. There was a brahmana who belonged to the
dynasty of Angira. He was fully qualified with brahminical qualifications. He could control his mind and
senses, and he had studied the Vedic literatures and other subsidiary literatures. He was expert in
giving charity, and he was always satisfied, tolerant, very gentle, learned and nonenvious. He was self-
realized and engaged in the devotional service of the Lord. He remained always in a trance. He had
nine equally qualified sons by his first wife, and by his second wife he begot twins--a brother and a
sister, of which the male child was said to be the topmost devotee and foremost of saintly kings--
Bharata Maharaja. This, then, is the story of the birth he took after giving up the body of a deer.
3. Due to his being especially gifted with the Lord's mercy, Bharata Maharaja could remember the
incidents of his past life. Although he received the body of a brahmana, he was still very much afraid of
his relatives and friends who were not devotees. He was always very cautious of such association
because he feared that he would again fall down. Consequently he manifested himself before the public
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 227
eye as a madman--dull, blind and deaf--so that others would not try to talk to him. In this way he saved
himself from bad association. Within he was always thinking of the lotus feet of the Lord and chanting
the Lord's glories, which save one from the bondage of fruitive action. In this way he saved himself from
the onslaught of nondevotee associates.
4. The brahmana father's mind was always filled with affection for his son, Jada Bharata [Bharata
Maharaja]. Therefore he was always attached to Jada Bharata. Because Jada Bharata was unfit to
enter the grhastha-asrama, he simply executed the purificatory process up to the end of the
brahmacarya-asrama. Although Jada Bharata was unwilling to accept his father's instructions, the
brahmana nonetheless instructed him in how to keep clean and how to wash, thinking that the son
should be taught by the father.
5. Jada Bharata behaved before his father like a fool, despite his father's adequately instructing him in
Vedic knowledge. He behaved in that way so that his father would know that he was unfit for instruction
and would abandon the attempt to instruct him further. He would behave in a completely opposite way.
Although instructed to wash his hands after evacuating, he would wash them before. Nonetheless, his
father wanted to give him Vedic instructions during the spring and summer. He tried to teach him the
Gayatri mantra along with omkara and vyahrti, but after four months, his father still was not successful
in instructing him.
6. The brahmana father of Jada Bharata considered his son his heart and soul, and therefore he was
very much attached to him. He thought it wise to educate his son properly, and being absorbed in this
unsuccessful endeavor, he tried to teach his son the rules and regulations of brahmacarya--including
the execution of the Vedic vows, cleanliness, study of the Vedas, the regulative methods, service to the
spiritual master and the method of offering a fire sacrifice. He tried his best to teach his son in this way,
but all his endeavors failed. In his heart he hoped that his son would be a learned scholar, but all his
attempts were unsuccessful. Like everyone, this brahmana was attached to his home, and he had
forgotten that someday he would die. Death, however, was not forgetful. At the proper time, death
appeared and took him away.
7. Thereafter, the brahmana's younger wife, after entrusting her twin children--the boy and girl--to the
elder wife, departed for Patiloka, voluntarily dying with her husband.
8. After the father died, the nine stepbrothers of Jada Bharata, who considered Jada Bharata dull and
brainless, abandoned the father's attempt to give Jada Bharata a complete education. The stepbrothers
of Jada Bharata were learned in the three Vedas--the Rg Veda, Sama Veda and Yajur Veda--which
very much encourage fruitive activity. The nine brothers were not at all spiritually enlightened in
devotional service to the Lord. Consequently they could not understand the highly exalted position of
Jada Bharata.
9-10. Degraded men are actually no better than animals. The only difference is that animals have four
legs and such men have only two. These two-legged, animalistic men used to call Jada Bharata mad,
dull, deaf and dumb. They mistreated him, and Jada Bharata behaved for them like a madman who was
deaf, blind or dull. He did not protest or try to convince them that he was not so. If others wanted him to
do something, he acted according to their desires. Whatever food he could acquire by begging or by
wages, and whatever came of its own accord--be it a small quantity, palatable, stale or tasteless--he
would accept and eat. He never ate anything for sense gratification because he was already liberated
from the bodily conception, which induces one to accept palatable or unpalatable food. He was full in
the transcendental consciousness of devotional service, and therefore he was unaffected by the
dualities arising from the bodily conception. Actually his body was as strong as a bull's, and his limbs
were very muscular. He didn't care for winter or summer, wind or rain, and he never covered his body at
any time. He lay on the ground, and never smeared oil on his body or took a bath. Because his body
was dirty, his spiritual effulgence and knowledge were covered, just as the splendor of a valuable gem
is covered by dirt. He only wore a dirty loincloth and his sacred thread, which was blackish.
Understanding that he was born in a brahmana family, people would call him a brahma-bandhu and
other names. Being thus insulted and neglected by materialistic people, he wandered here and there.
11. Jada Bharata used to work only for food. His stepbrothers took advantage of this and engaged him
in agricultural field work in exchange for some food, but actually he did not know how to work very well
in the field. He did not know where to spread dirt or where to make the ground level or uneven. His
brothers used to give him broken rice, oil cakes, the chaff of rice, worm-eaten grains and burned grains
that had stuck to the pot, but he gladly accepted all this as if it were nectar. He did not hold any grudges
and ate all this very gladly.
12. At this time, being desirous of obtaining a son, a leader of dacoits who came from a sudra family
wanted to worship the goddess Bhadra Kali by offering her in sacrifice a dull man, who is considered no
better than an animal.
228 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
13. The leader of the dacoits captured a man-animal for sacrifice, but he escaped, and the leader
ordered his followers to find him. They ran in different directions but could not find him. Wandering here
and there in the middle of the night, covered by dense darkness, they came to a paddy field where they
saw the exalted son of the Angira family [Jada Bharata], who was sitting in an elevated place guarding
the field against the attacks of deer and wild pigs.
14. The followers and servants of the dacoit chief considered Jada Bharata to possess qualities quite
suitable for a man-animal, and they decided that he was a perfect choice for sacrifice. Their faces bright
with happiness, they bound him with ropes and brought him to the temple of the goddess Kali.
15. After this, all the thieves, according to their imaginative ritual for killing animalistic men, bathed Jada
Bharata, dressed him in new clothes, decorated him with ornaments befitting an animal, smeared his
body with scented oils and decorated him with tilaka, sandalwood pulp and garlands. They fed him
sumptuously and then brought him before the goddess Kali, offering her incense, lamps, garlands,
parched grain, newly grown twigs, sprouts, fruits and flowers. In this way they worshiped the deity
before killing the man-animal, and they vibrated songs and prayers and played drums and bugles. Jada
Bharata was then made to sit down before the deity.
16. At this time, one of the thieves, acting as the chief priest, was ready to offer the blood of Jada
Bharata, whom they imagined to be an animal-man, to the goddess Kali to drink as a liquor. He
therefore took up a very fearsome sword, which was very sharp and, consecrating it by the mantra of
Bhadra Kali, raised it to kill Jada Bharata.
17. All the rogues and thieves who had made arrangements for the worship of goddess Kali were low
minded and bound to the modes of passion and ignorance. They were overpowered by the desire to
become very rich; therefore they had the audacity to disobey the injunctions of the Vedas, so much so
that they were prepared to kill Jada Bharata, a self-realized soul born in a brahmana family. Due to their
envy, these dacoits brought him before the goddess Kali for sacrifice. Such people are always addicted
to envious activities, and therefore they dared to try to kill Jada Bharata. Jada Bharata was the best
friend of all living entities. He was no one's enemy, and he was always absorbed in meditation on the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. He was born of a good brahmana father, and killing him was
forbidden, even though he might have been an enemy or aggressive person. In any case, there was no
reason to kill Jada Bharata, and the goddess Kali could not bear this. She could immediately
understand that these sinful dacoits were about to kill a great devotee of the Lord. Suddenly the deity's
body burst asunder, and the goddess Kali personally emerged from it in a body burning with an intense
and intolerable effulgence.
18. Intolerant of the offenses committed, the infuriated goddess Kali flashed her eyes and displayed her
fierce, curved teeth. Her reddish eyes glowed, and she displayed her fearsome features. She assumed
a frightening body, as if she were prepared to destroy the entire creation. Leaping violently from the
altar, she immediately decapitated all the rogues and thieves with the very sword with which they had
intended to kill Jada Bharata. She then began to drink the hot blood that flowed from the necks of the
beheaded rogues and thieves, as if this blood were liquor. Indeed, she drank this intoxicant with her
associates, who were witches and female demons. Becoming intoxicated with this blood, they all began
to sing very loudly and dance as though prepared to annihilate the entire universe. At the same time,
they began to play with the heads of the rogues and thieves, tossing them about as if they were balls.
19. When an envious person commits an offense before a great personality, he is always punished in
the way mentioned above.
20. Sukadeva Gosvami then said to Maharaja Pariksit: O Visnudatta, those who already know that the
soul is separate from the body, who are liberated from the invincible knot in the heart, who are always
engaged in welfare activities for all living entities and who never contemplate harming anyone are
always protected by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who carries His disc [the Sudarsana cakra]
and acts as supreme time to kill the demons and protect His devotees. The devotees always take
shelter at the lotus feet of the Lord. Therefore at all times, even if threatened by decapitation, they
remain unagitated. For them, this is not at all wonderful.
Chapter Ten The Discussion Between Jada Bharata and Maharaja Rahugana
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, after this, King Rahugana, ruler of the states known as
Sindhu and Sauvira, was going to Kapilasrama. When the King's chief palanquin carriers reached the
banks of the River Iksumati, they needed another carrier. Therefore they began searching for someone,
and by chance they came upon Jada Bharata. They considered the fact that Jada Bharata was very
young and strong and had firm limbs. Like cows and asses, he was quite fit to carry loads. Thinking in
this way, although the great soul Jada Bharata was unfit for such work, they nonetheless unhesitatingly
forced him to carry the palanquin.
2. The palanquin, however, was very erratically carried by Jada Bharata due to his sense of
nonviolence. As he stepped forward, he checked before him every three feet to see whether he was
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 229
about to step on ants. Consequently he could not keep pace with the other carriers. Due to this, the
palanquin was shaking, and King Rahugana immediately asked the carriers, "Why are you carrying this
palanquin unevenly? Better carry it properly."
3. When the palanquin carriers heard the threatening words of Maharaja Rahugana, they became very
afraid of his punishment and began to speak to him as follows.
4. O lord, please note that we are not at all negligent in discharging our duties. We have been faithfully
carrying this palanquin according to your desire, but this man who has been recently engaged to work
with us cannot walk very swiftly. Therefore we are not able to carry the palanquin with him.
5. King Rahugana could understand the speeches given by the carriers, who were afraid of being
punished. He could also understand that simply due to the fault of one person, the palanquin was not
being carried properly. Knowing this perfectly well and hearing their appeal, he became a little angry,
although he was very advanced in political science and was very experienced. His anger arose due to
his inborn nature as a king. Actually King Rahugana's mind was covered by the mode of passion, and
he therefore spoke as follows to Jada Bharata, whose Brahman effulgence was not clearly visible,
being covered like a fire covered by ashes.
6. King Rahugana told Jada Bharata: How troublesome this is, my dear brother. You certainly appear
very fatigued because you have carried this palanquin alone without assistance for a long time and for a
long distance. Besides that, due to your old age you have become greatly troubled. My dear friend, I
see that you are not very firm, nor very strong and stout. Aren't your fellow carriers cooperating with
you? In this way the King criticized Jada Bharata with sarcastic words, yet despite being criticized in this
way, Jada Bharata had no bodily conception of the situation. He knew that he was not the body, for he
had attained his spiritual identity. He was neither fat, lean nor thin, nor had he anything to do with a
lump of matter, a combination of the five gross and three subtle elements. He had nothing to do with the
material body and its two hands and legs. In other words, he had completely realized his spiritual
identity [aham brahmasmi]. He was therefore unaffected by this sarcastic criticism from the King.
Without saying anything, he continued carrying the palanquin as before.
7. Thereafter, when the King saw that his palanquin was still being shaken by the carriers, he became
very angry and said: You rascal, what are you doing? Are you dead despite the life within your body?
Do you not know that I am your master? You are disregarding me and are not carrying out my order.
For this disobedience I shall now punish you just as Yamaraja, the superintendent of death, punishes
sinful people. I shall give you proper treatment so that you will come to your senses and do the correct
thing.
8. Thinking himself a king, King Rahugana was in the bodily conception and was influenced by material
nature's modes of passion and ignorance. Due to madness, he chastised Jada Bharata with uncalled-
for and contradictory words. Jada Bharata was a topmost devotee and the dear abode of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. Although considering himself very learned, the King did not know about the
position of an advanced devotee situated in devotional service, nor did he know his characteristics.
Jada Bharata was the residence of the Supreme Personality of Godhead; he always carried the form of
the Lord within his heart. He was the dear friend of all living beings, and he did not entertain any bodily
conception. He therefore smiled and spoke the following words.
9. The great brahmana Jada Bharata said: My dear King and hero, whatever you have spoken
sarcastically is certainly true. Actually these are not simply words of chastisement, for the body is the
carrier. The load carried by the body does not belong to me, for I am the spirit soul. There is no
contradiction in your statements because I am different from the body. I am not the carrier of the
palanquin; the body is the carrier. Certainly, as you have hinted, I have not labored carrying the
palanquin, for I am detached from the body. You have said that I am not stout and strong, and these
words are befitting a person who does not know the distinction between the body and the soul. The
body may be fat or thin, but no learned man would say such things of the spirit soul. As far as the spirit
soul is concerned, I am neither fat nor skinny; therefore you are correct when you say that I am not very
stout. Also, if the object of this journey and the path leading there were mine, there would be many
troubles for me, but because they relate not to me but to my body, there is no trouble at all.
10. Fatness, thinness, bodily and mental distress, thirst, hunger, fear, disagreement, desires for material
happiness, old age, sleep, attachment for material possessions, anger, lamentation, illusion and
identification of the body with the self are all transformations of the material covering of the spirit soul. A
person absorbed in the material bodily conception is affected by these things, but I am free from all
bodily conceptions. Consequently I am neither fat nor skinny nor anything else you have mentioned.
11. My dear King, you have unnecessarily accused me of being dead though alive. In this regard, I can
only say that this is the case everywhere because everything material has its beginning and end. As far
as your thinking that you are the king and master and are thus trying to order me, this is also incorrect
because these positions are temporary. Today you are a king and I am your servant, but tomorrow the
230 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
position may be changed, and you may be my servant and I your master. These are temporary
circumstances created by providence.
12. My dear King, if you still think that you are the King and that I am your servant, you should order me,
and I should follow your order. I can then say that this differentiation is temporary, and it expands only
from usage or convention. I do not see any other cause. In that case, who is the master, and who is the
servant? Everyone is being forced by the laws of material nature; therefore no one is master, and no
one is servant. Nonetheless, if you think that you are the master and that I am the servant, I shall accept
this. Please order me. What can I do for you?
13. My dear King, you have said, "You rascal, you dull, crazy fellow! I am going to chastise you, and
then you will come to your senses." In this regard, let me say that although I live like a dull, deaf and
dumb man, I am actually a self-realized person. What will you gain by punishing me? If your calculation
is true and I am a madman, then your punishment will be like beating a dead horse. There will be no
effect. When a madman is punished, he is not cured of his madness.
14. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O Maharaja Pariksit, when King Rahugana chastised the exalted devotee
Jada Bharata with harsh words, that peaceful, saintly person tolerated it all and replied properly.
Nescience is due to the bodily conception, and Jada Bharata was not affected by this false conception.
Out of his natural humility, he never considered himself a great devotee, and he agreed to suffer the
results of his past karma. Like an ordinary man, he thought that by carrying the palanquin, he was
destroying the reactions of his past misdeeds. Thinking in this way, he began to carry the palanquin as
before.
15. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O best of the Pandu dynasty [Maharaja Pariksit], the King of the
Sindhu and Sauvira states [Maharaja Rahugana] had great faith in discussions of the Absolute Truth.
Being thus qualified, he heard from Jada Bharata that philosophical presentation which is approved by
all scriptures on the mystic yoga process and which slackens the knot in the heart. His material
conception of himself as a king was thus destroyed. He immediately descended from his palanquin and
fell flat on the ground with his head at the lotus feet of Jada Bharata in such a way that he might be
excused for his insulting words against the great brahmana. He then prayed as follows.
16. King Rahugana said: O brahmana, you appear to be moving in this world very much covered and
unknown to others. Who are you? Are you a learned brahmana and saintly person? I see that you are
wearing a sacred thread. Are you one of those exalted, liberated saints such as Dattatreya and other
highly advanced, learned scholars? May I ask whose disciple you are? Where do you live? Why have
you come to this place? Is your mission in coming here to do good for us? Please let me know who you
are.
17. My dear sir, I am not at all afraid of the thunderbolt of King Indra, nor am I afraid of the serpentine,
piercing trident of Lord Siva. I do not care about the punishment of Yamaraja, the superintendent of
death, nor am I afraid of fire, scorching sun, moon, wind, nor the weapons of Kuvera. Yet I am afraid of
offending a brahmana. I am very much afraid of this.
18. My dear sir, it appears that the influence of your great spiritual knowledge is hidden. Factually you
are bereft of all material association and fully absorbed in the thought of the Supreme. Consequently
you are unlimitedly advanced in spiritual knowledge. Please tell me why you are wandering around like
a dullard. O great, saintly person, you have spoken words approved by the yogic process, but it is not
possible for us to understand what you have said. Therefore kindly explain it.
19. I consider your good self the most exalted master of mystic power. You know the spiritual science
perfectly well. You are the most exalted of all learned sages, and you have descended for the benefit of
all human society. You have come to give spiritual knowledge, and you are a direct representative of
Kapiladeva, the incarnation of God and the plenary portion of knowledge. I am therefore asking you, O
spiritual master, what is the most secure shelter in this world?
20. Is it not a fact that your good self is the direct representative of Kapiladeva, the incarnation of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead? To examine people and see who is actually a human being and who
is not, you have presented yourself to be a deaf and dumb person. Are you not moving this way upon
the surface of the world? I am very attached to family life and worldly activities, and I am blind to
spiritual knowledge. Nonetheless, I am now present before you and am seeking enlightenment from
you. How can I advance in spiritual life?
21. You have said, "I am not fatigued from labor." Although the soul is different from the body, there is
fatigue because of bodily labor, and it appears to be the fatigue of the soul. When you are carrying the
palanquin, there is certainly labor for the soul. This is my conjecture. You have also said that the
external behavior exhibited between the master and the servant is not factual, but although in the
phenomenal world it is not factual, the products of the phenomenal world can actually affect things. That
is visible and experienced. As such, even though material activities are impermanent, they cannot be
said to be untrue.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 231
22. King Rahugana continued: My dear sir, you have said that designations like bodily fatness and
thinness are not characteristics of the soul. That is incorrect because designations like pain and
pleasure are certainly felt by the soul. You may put a pot of milk and rice within fire, and the milk and
rice are automatically heated one after the other. Similarly, due to bodily pains and pleasures, the
senses, mind and soul are affected. The soul cannot be completely detached from this conditioning.
23. My dear sir, you have said that the relationship between the king and the subject or between the
master and the servant are not eternal, but although such relationships are temporary, when a person
takes the position of a king, his duty is to rule the citizens and punish those who are disobedient to the
laws. By punishing them, he teaches the citizens to obey the laws of the state. Again, you have said
that punishing a person who is deaf and dumb is like chewing the chewed or grinding the pulp; that is to
say, there is no benefit in it. However, if one is engaged in his own occupational duty as ordered by the
Supreme Lord, his sinful activities are certainly diminished. Therefore if one is engaged in his
occupational duty by force, he benefits because he can vanquish all his sinful activities in that way.
24. Whatever you have spoken appears to me to be contradictory. O best friend of the distressed, I
have committed a great offense by insulting you. I was puffed up with false prestige due to possessing
the body of a king. For this I have certainly become an offender. Therefore I pray that you kindly glance
at me with your causeless mercy. If you do so, I can be relieved from sinful activities brought about by
insulting you.
25. O my dear lord, you are the friend of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the friend of all
living entities. You are therefore equal to everyone, and you are free from the bodily conception.
Although I have committed an offense by insulting you, I know that there is no loss or gain for you due
to my insult. You are fixed in your determination, but I have committed an offense. Because of this,
even though I may be as strong as Lord Siva, I shall be vanquished without delay due to my offense at
the lotus feet of a Vaisnava.
Chapter Eleven Jada Bharata Instructs King Rahugana
1. The brahmana Jada Bharata said: My dear King, although you are not at all experienced, you are
trying to speak like a very experienced man. Consequently you cannot be considered an experienced
person. An experienced person does not speak the way you are speaking about the relationship
between a master and a servant or about material pains and pleasures. These are simply external
activities. Any advanced, experienced man, considering the Absolute Truth, does not talk in this way.
2. My dear King, talks of the relationship between the master and the servant, the king and the subject
and so forth are simply talks about material activities. People interested in material activities, which are
expounded in the Vedas, are intent on performing material sacrifices and placing faith in their material
activities. For such people, spiritual advancement is definitely not manifest.
3. A dream becomes automatically known to a person as false and immaterial, and similarly one
eventually realizes that material happiness in this life or the next, on this planet or a higher planet, is
insignificant. When one realizes this, the Vedas, although an excellent source, are insufficient to bring
about direct knowledge of the truth.
4. As long as the mind of the living entity is contaminated by the three modes of material nature
(goodness, passion and ignorance), his mind is exactly like an independent, uncontrolled elephant. It
simply expands its jurisdiction of pious and impious activities by using the senses. The result is that the
living entity remains in the material world to enjoy and suffer pleasures and pains due to material
activity.
5. Because the mind is absorbed in desires for pious and impious activities, it is naturally subjected to
the transformations of lust and anger. In this way, it becomes attracted to material sense enjoyment. In
other words, the mind is conducted by the modes of goodness, passion and ignorance. There are
eleven senses and five material elements, and out of these sixteen items, the mind is the chief.
Therefore the mind brings about birth in different types of bodies among demigods, human beings,
animals and birds. When the mind is situated in a higher or lower position, it accepts a higher or lower
material body.
6. The materialistic mind covering the living entity's soul carries it to different species of life. This is
called continued material existence. Due to the mind, the living entity suffers or enjoys material distress
and happiness. Being thus illusioned, the mind further creates pious and impious activities and their
karma, and thus the soul becomes conditioned.
7. The mind makes the living entity within this material world wander through different species of life,
and thus the living entity experiences mundane affairs in different forms as a human being, demigod, fat
person, skinny person and so forth. Learned scholars say that bodily appearance, bondage and
liberation are caused by the mind.
8. When the living entity's mind becomes absorbed in the sense gratification of the material world, it
brings about his conditioned life and suffering within the material situation. However, when the mind
232 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
becomes unattached to material enjoyment, it becomes the cause of liberation. When the flame in a
lamp burns the wick improperly, the lamp is blackened, but when the lamp is filled with ghee and is
burning properly, there is bright illumination. Similarly, when the mind is absorbed in material sense
gratification, it causes suffering, and when detached from material sense gratification, it brings about the
original brightness of Krsna consciousness.
9. There are five working senses and five knowledge-acquiring senses. There is also the false ego. In
this way, there are eleven items for the mind's functions. O hero, the objects of the senses [such as
sound and touch], the organic activities [such as evacuation] and the different types of bodies, society,
friendship and personality are considered by learned scholars the fields of activity for the functions of
the mind.
10. Sound, touch, form, taste and smell are the objects of the five knowledge-acquiring senses.
Speech, touch, movement, evacuation and sexual intercourse are the objects of the working senses.
Besides this, there is another conception by which one thinks, "This is my body, this is my society, this
is my family, this is my nation," and so forth. This eleventh function, that of the mind, is called the false
ego. According to some philosophers, this is the twelfth function, and its field of activity is the body.
11. The physical elements, nature, the original cause, culture, destiny and the time element are all
material causes. Agitated by these material causes, the eleven functions transform into hundreds of
functions and then into thousands and then into millions. But all these transformations do not take place
automatically by mutual combination. Rather, they are under the direction of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
12. The individual soul bereft of Krsna consciousness has many ideas and activities created in the mind
by the external energy. They have been existing from time immemorial. Sometimes they are manifest in
the wakening state and in the dream state, but during deep sleep [unconsciousness] or trance, they
disappear. A person who is liberated in this life [jivan-mukta] can see all these things vividly.
13-14. There are two kinds of ksetrajna--the living entity, as explained above, and the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who is explained as follows. He is the all-pervading cause of creation. He is full
in Himself and is not dependent on others. He is perceived by hearing and direct perception. He is self-
effulgent and does not experience birth, death, old age or disease. He is the controller of all the
demigods, beginning with Lord Brahma. He is called Narayana, and He is the shelter of living entities
after the annihilation of this material world. He is full of all opulences, and He is the resting place of
everything material. He is therefore known as Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. By His
own potency, He is present within the hearts of all living entities, just as the air or vital force is within the
bodies of all beings, moving and nonmoving. In this way He controls the body. In His partial feature, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead enters all bodies and controls them.
15. My dear King Rahugana, as long as the conditioned soul accepts the material body and is not freed
from the contamination of material enjoyment, and as long as he does not conquer his six enemies and
come to the platform of self-realization by awakening his spiritual knowledge, he has to wander among
different places and different species of life in this material world.
16. The soul's designation, the mind, is the cause of all tribulations in the material world. As long as this
fact is unknown to the conditioned living entity, he has to accept the miserable condition of the material
body and wander within this universe in different positions. Because the mind is affected by disease,
lamentation, illusion, attachment, greed and enmity, it creates bondage and a false sense of intimacy
within this material world.
17. This uncontrolled mind is the greatest enemy of the living entity. If one neglects it or gives it a
chance, it will grow more and more powerful and will become victorious. Although it is not factual, it is
very strong. It covers the constitutional position of the soul. O King, please try to conquer this mind by
the weapon of service to the lotus feet of the spiritual master and of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. Do this with great care.
Chapter Twelve Conversation Between Maharaja Rahugana and Jada Bharata
1. King Rahugana said: O most exalted personality, you are not different from the Supreme Personality
of Godhead. By the influence of your true self, all kinds of contradiction in the sastras have been
removed. In the dress of a friend of a brahmana, you are hiding your transcendental blissful position. I
offer my respectful obeisances unto you.
2. O best of the brahmanas, my body is filled with dirty things, and my vision has been bitten by the
serpent of pride. Due to my material conceptions, I am diseased. Your nectarean instructions are the
proper medicine for one suffering from such a fever, and they are cooling waters for one scorched by
the heat.
3. Whatever doubts I have about a particular subject matter I shall ask you about later. For the time
being, these mysterious yoga instructions you have given me for self-realization appear very difficult to
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 233
understand. Please repeat them in a simple way so that I can understand them. My mind is very
inquisitive, and I want to understand this clearly.
4. O master of yogic power, you said that fatigue resulting from moving the body here and there is
appreciated by direct perception, but actually there is no fatigue. It simply exists as a matter of formality.
By such inquiries and answers, no one can come to the conclusion of the Absolute Truth. Because of
your presentation of this statement, my mind is a little disturbed.
5-6. The self-realized brahmana Jada Bharata said: Among the various material combinations and
permutations, there are various forms and earthly transformations. For some reason, these move on the
surface of the earth and are called palanquin carriers. Those material transformations which do not
move are gross material objects like stones. In any case, the material body is made of earth and stone
in the form of feet, ankles, calves, knees, thighs, torso, throat and head. Upon the shoulders is the
wooden palanquin, and within the palanquin is the so-called King of Sauvira. The body of the King is
simply another transformation of earth, but within that body Your Lordship is situated and falsely
thinking that you are the King of the state of Sauvira.
7. It is a fact, however, that these innocent people carrying your palanquin without payment are certainly
suffering due to this injustice. Their condition is very lamentable because you have forcibly engaged
them in carrying your palanquin. This proves that you are cruel and unkind, yet due to false prestige you
were thinking that you were protecting the citizens. This is ludicrous. You were such a fool that you
could not have been adored as a great man in an assembly of persons advanced in knowledge.
8. All of us on the surface of the globe are living entities in different forms. Some of us are moving and
some not moving. All of us come into existence, remain for some time and are annihilated when the
body is again mingled with the earth. We are all simply different transformations of the earth. Different
bodies and capacities are simply transformations of the earth that exist in name only, for everything
grows out of the earth and when everything is annihilated it again mingles with the earth. In other words,
we are but dust, and we shall but be dust. Everyone can consider this point.
9. One may say that varieties arise from the planet earth itself. However, although the universe may
temporarily appear to be the truth, it ultimately has no real existence. The earth was originally created
by a combination of atomic particles, but these particles are impermanent. Actually the atom is not the
cause of the universe, although some philosophers think so. It is not a fact that the varieties found in
this material world simply result from atomic juxtaposition or combination.
10. Since this universe has no real ultimate existence, the things within it--shortness, differences,
grossness, skinniness, smallness, bigness, result, cause, living symptoms, and materials--are all
imagined. They are all pots made of the same substance, earth, but they are named differently. The
differences are characterized by the substance, nature, predisposition, time and activity. You should
know that all these are simply mechanical manifestations created by material nature.
11. What, then, is the ultimate truth? The answer is that nondual knowledge is the ultimate truth. It is
devoid of the contamination of material qualities. It gives us liberation. It is the one without a second, all-
pervading and beyond imagination. The first realization of that knowledge is Brahman. Then
Paramatma, the Supersoul, is realized by the yogis who try to see Him without grievance. This is the
second stage of realization. Finally, full realization of the same supreme knowledge is realized in the
Supreme Person. All learned scholars describe the Supreme Person as Vasudeva, the cause of
Brahman, Paramatma and others.
12. My dear King Rahugana, unless one has the opportunity to smear his entire body with the dust of
the lotus feet of great devotees, one cannot realize the Absolute Truth. One cannot realize the Absolute
Truth simply by observing celibacy [brahmacarya], strictly following the rules and regulations of
householder life, leaving home as a vanaprastha, accepting sannyasa, or undergoing severe penances
in winter by keeping oneself submerged in water or surrounding oneself in summer by fire and the
scorching heat of the sun. There are many other processes to understand the Absolute Truth, but the
Absolute Truth is only revealed to one who has attained the mercy of a great devotee.
13. Who are the pure devotees mentioned here? In an assembly of pure devotees, there is no question
of discussing material subjects like politics and sociology. In an assembly of pure devotees, there is
discussion only of the qualities, forms and pastimes of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. He is
praised and worshiped with full attention. In the association of pure devotees, by constantly hearing
such topics respectfully, even a person who wants to merge into the existence of the Absolute Truth
abandons this idea and gradually becomes attached to the service of Vasudeva.
14. In a previous birth I was known as Maharaja Bharata. I attained perfection by becoming completely
detached from material activities through direct experience, and through indirect experience I received
understanding from the Vedas. I was fully engaged in the service of the Lord, but due to my misfortune,
I became very affectionate to a small deer, so much so that I neglected my spiritual duties. Due to my
deep affection for the deer, in my next life I had to accept the body of a deer.
234 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. My dear heroic King, due to my past sincere service to the Lord, I could remember everything of my
past life even while in the body of a deer. Because I am aware of the falldown in my past life, I always
keep myself separate from the association of ordinary men. Being afraid of their bad, materialistic
association, I wander alone unnoticed by others.
16. Simply by associating with exalted devotees, anyone can attain perfection of knowledge and with
the sword of knowledge can cut to pieces the illusory associations within this material world. Through
the association of devotees, one can engage in the service of the Lord by hearing and chanting
[sravanam kirtanam]. Thus one can revive his dormant Krsna consciousness and, sticking to the
cultivation of Krsna consciousness, return home, back to Godhead, even in this life.
Chapter Thirteen Further Talks Between King Rahugana and Jada Bharata
1. Jada Bharata, who had fully realized Brahman, continued: My dear King Rahugana, the living entity
wanders on the path of the material world, which is very difficult for him to traverse, and he accepts
repeated birth and death. Being captivated by the material world under the influence of the three modes
of material nature (sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna), the living entity can see only the three fruits
of activities under the spell of material nature. These fruits are auspicious, inauspicious and mixed. He
thus becomes attached to religion, economic development, sense gratification and the monistic theory
of liberation (merging with the Supreme). He works very hard day and night exactly like a merchant who
enters a forest to acquire some articles to sell later for profit. However, he cannot really achieve
happiness within this material world.
2. O King Rahugana, in this forest of material existence there are six very powerful plunderers. When
the conditioned soul enters the forest to acquire some material gain, the six plunderers misguide him.
Thus the conditioned merchant does not know how to spend his money, and it is taken away by these
plunderers. Like tigers, jackals and other ferocious animals in a forest that are ready to take away a
lamb from the custody of its protector, the wife and children enter the heart of the merchant and plunder
him in so many ways.
3. In this forest there are dense bowers composed of thickets of bushes, grass and creepers. In these
bowers the conditioned soul is always disturbed by cruelly biting mosquitoes [envious people].
Sometimes he sees an imaginary palace in the forest, and sometimes he is bewildered by seeing a
fleeting fiend or ghost, which appears like a meteor in the sky.
4. My dear King, the merchant on the forest path of the material world, his intelligence victimized by
home, wealth, relatives and so forth, runs from one place to another in search of success. Sometimes
his eyes are covered by the dust of a whirlwind--that is to say, in his lust he is captivated by the beauty
of his wife, especially during her menstrual period. Thus his eyes are blinded, and he cannot see where
to go or what he is doing.
5. Wandering in the forest of the material world, the conditioned soul sometimes hears an invisible
cricket making harsh sounds, and his ears become very much aggrieved. Sometimes his heart is
pained by the sounds of owls, which are just like the harsh words of his enemies. Sometimes he takes
shelter of a tree that has no fruits or flowers. He approaches such a tree due to his strong appetite, and
thus he suffers. He would like to acquire water, but he is simply illusioned by a mirage, and he runs after
it.
6. Sometimes the conditioned soul jumps into a shallow river, or being short of food grains, he goes to
beg food from people who are not at all charitable. Sometimes he suffers from the burning heat of
household life, which is like a forest fire, and sometimes he becomes sad to have his wealth, which is
as dear as life, plundered by kings in the name of heavy income taxes.
7. Sometimes, being defeated or plundered by a superior, powerful agent, a living entity loses all his
possessions. He then becomes very morose, and lamenting their loss, he sometimes becomes
unconscious. Sometimes he imagines a great palatial city in which he desires to live happily with his
family members and riches. He thinks himself fully satisfied if this is possible, but such so-called
happiness continues only for a moment.
8. Sometimes the merchant in the forest wants to climb the hills and mountains, but due to insufficient
footwear, his feet are pricked by small stone fragments and by thorns on the mountain. Being pricked
by them, he becomes very aggrieved. Sometimes a person who is very attached to his family becomes
overwhelmed with hunger, and due to his miserable condition he becomes furious with his family
members.
9. The conditioned soul in the material forest is sometimes swallowed by a python or crushed. At such a
time he is left lying in the forest like a dead person, devoid of consciousness and knowledge.
Sometimes other poisonous snakes bite him. Being blind to his consciousness, he falls down into a
dark well of hellish life with no hope of being rescued.
10. Sometimes, in order to have a little insignificant sex enjoyment, one searches after debauched
women. In this attempt, one is insulted and chastised by the women's kinsmen. This is like going to take
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 235
honey from a beehive and being attacked by the bees. Sometimes, after spending lots of money, one
may acquire another woman for some extra sense enjoyment. Unfortunately, the object of sense
enjoyment, the woman, is taken away or kidnapped by another debauchee.
11. Sometimes the living entity is busy counteracting the natural disturbances of freezing cold,
scorching heat, strong wind, excessive rainfall and so forth. When he is unable to do so, he becomes
very unhappy. Sometimes he is cheated in business transactions one after another. In this way, by
cheating, living entities create enmity among themselves.
12. On the forest path of material existence, sometimes a person is without wealth and due to this does
not have a proper home, bed or sitting place, nor proper family enjoyment. He therefore goes to beg
money from others, but when his desires are not fulfilled by begging, he wants to borrow or steal the
property of others. Thus he is insulted in society.
13. Due to monetary transactions, relationships become very strained and end in enmity. Sometimes
the husband and wife walk on the path of material progress, and to maintain their relationship they work
very hard. Sometimes due to scarcity of money or due to diseased conditions, they are embarrassed
and almost die.
14. My dear King, on the forest path of material life, first a person is bereft of his father and mother, and
after their death he becomes attached to his newly born children. In this way he wanders on the path of
material progress and is eventually embarrassed. Nonetheless, no one knows how to get out of this,
even up to the moment of death.
15. There were and are many political and social heroes who have conquered enemies of equal power,
yet due to their ignorance in believing that the land is theirs, they fight one another and lay down their
lives in battle. They are not able to take up the spiritual path accepted by those in the renounced order.
Although they are big heroes and political leaders, they cannot take to the path of spiritual realization.
16. Sometimes the living entity in the forest of material existence takes shelter of creepers and desires
to hear the chirping of the birds in those creepers. Being afraid of roaring lions in the forest, he makes
friends with cranes, herons and vultures.
17. Being cheated by them, the living entity in the forest of the material world tries to give up the
association of these so-called yogis, svamis and incarnations and come to the association of real
devotees, but due to misfortune he cannot follow the instructions of the spiritual master or advanced
devotees; therefore he gives up their company and again returns to the association of monkeys who are
simply interested in sense gratification and women. He derives satisfaction by associating with sense
gratifiers and enjoying sex and intoxication. In this way he spoils his life simply by indulging in sex and
intoxication. Looking into the faces of other sense gratifiers, he becomes forgetful and thus approaches
death.
18. When the living entity becomes exactly like a monkey jumping from one branch to another, he
remains in the tree of household life without any profit but sex. Thus he is kicked by his wife just like the
he-ass. Unable to gain release, he remains helplessly in that position. Sometimes he falls victim to am
incurable disease, which is like falling into a mountain cave. He becomes afraid of death, which is like
the elephant in the back of that cave, and he remains stranded, grasping at the twigs and branches of a
creeper.
19. O killer of enemies, Maharaja Rahugana, if the conditioned soul somehow or other gets out of his
dangerous position, he again returns to his home to enjoy sex life, for that is the way of attachment.
Thus, under the spell of the Lord's material energy, he continues to loiter in the forest of material
existence. He does not discover his real interest even at the point of death.
20. My dear King Rahugana, you are also a victim of the external energy, being situated on the path of
attraction to material pleasure. So that you may become an equal friend to all living entities, I now
advise you to give up your kingly position and the rod by which you punish criminals. Give up attraction
to the sense objects and take up the sword of knowledge sharpened by devotional service. Then you
will be able to cut the hard knot of illusory energy and cross to the other side of the ocean of nescience.
21. King Rahugana said: This birth as a human being is the best of all. Even birth among the demigods
in the heavenly planets is not as glorious as birth as a human being on this earth. What is the use of the
exalted position of a demigod? In the heavenly planets, due to profuse material comforts, there is no
possibility of associating with devotees.
22. It is not at all wonderful that simply by being covered by the dust of your lotus feet, one immediately
attains the platform of pure devotional service to Adhoksaja, which is not available even to great
demigods like Brahma. By associating with you just for a moment, I am now freed from all argument,
false prestige and lack of discrimination, which are the roots of entanglement in the material world. Now
I am free from all these problems.
23. I offer my respectful obeisances unto the great personalities, whether they walk on the earth's
surface as children, young boys, avadhutas or great brahmanas. Even if they are hidden under different
236 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
guises, I offer my respects to all of them. By their mercy, may there be good fortune in the royal
dynasties that are always offending them.
24. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, O son of mother Uttara, there were some waves
of dissatisfaction in the mind of Jada Bharata due to his being insulted by King Rahugana, who made
him carry his palanquin, but Jada Bharata neglected this, and his heart again became calm and quiet
like an ocean. Although King Rahugana had insulted him, he was a great paramahamsa. Being a
Vaisnava, he was naturally very kindhearted, and he therefore told the King about the constitutional
position of the soul. He then forgot the insult because King Rahugana pitifully begged pardon at his
lotus feet. After this, he began to wander all over the earth, just as before.
25. After receiving lessons from the great devotee Jada Bharata, King Rahugana of the state of Sauvira
became completely aware of the constitutional position of the soul. He thus gave up the bodily
conception completely. My dear King, whoever takes shelter of the servant of the servant of the Lord is
certainly glorified because he can without difficulty give up the bodily conception.
26. King Pariksit then told Sukadeva Gosvami: My dear lord, O great devotee sage, you are omniscient.
You have very nicely described the position of the conditioned soul, who is compared to a merchant in
the forest. From these instructions intelligent men can understand that the senses of a person in the
bodily conception are like rogues and thieves in that forest, and one's wife and children are like jackals
and other ferocious animals. However, it is not very easy for the unintelligent to understand the purport
of this story because it is difficult to extricate the exact meaning from the allegory. I therefore request
Your Holiness to give the direct meaning.
Chapter Fourteen The Material World as the Great Forest of Enjoyment
1. When King Pariksit asked Sukadeva Gosvami about the direct meaning of the material forest,
Sukadeva Gosvami replied as follows: My dear King, a man belonging to the mercantile community
[vanik] is always interested in earning money. Sometimes he enters the forest to acquire some cheap
commodities like wood and earth and sell them in the city at good prices. Similarly, the conditioned soul,
being greedy, enters this material world for some material profit. Gradually he enters the deepest part of
the forest, not really knowing how to get out. Having entered the material world, the pure soul becomes
conditioned by the material atmosphere, which is created by the external energy under the control of
Lord Visnu. Thus the living entity comes under the control of the external energy, daivi maya. Living
independently and bewildered in the forest, he does not attain the association of devotees who are
always engaged in the service of the Lord. Once in the bodily conception, he gets different types of
bodies one after the other under the influence of material energy and impelled by the modes of material
nature [sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna]. In this way the conditioned soul goes sometimes to the
heavenly planets, sometimes to the earthly planets and sometimes to the lower planets and lower
species. Thus he suffers continuously due to different types of bodies. These sufferings and pains are
sometimes mixed. Sometimes they are very severe, and sometimes they are not. These bodily
conditions are acquired due to the conditioned soul's mental speculation. He uses his mind and five
senses to acquire knowledge, and these bring about the different bodies and different conditions. Using
the senses under the control of the external energy, maya, the living entity suffers the miserable
conditions of material existence. He is actually searching for relief, but he is generally baffled, although
sometimes he is relieved after great difficulty. Struggling for existence in this way, he cannot get the
shelter of pure devotees, who are like bumblebees engaged in loving service at the lotus feet of Lord
Visnu.
2. In the forest of material existence, the uncontrolled senses are like plunderers. The conditioned soul
may earn some money for the advancement of Krsna consciousness, but unfortunately the uncontrolled
senses plunder his money through sense gratification. The senses are plunderers because they make
one spend his money unnecessarily for seeing, smelling, tasting, touching, hearing, desiring and willing.
In this way the conditioned soul is obliged to gratify his senses, and thus all his money is spent. This
money is actually acquired for the execution of religious principles, but it is taken away by the
plundering senses.
3. My dear King, family members in this material world go under the names of wife and children, but
actually they behave like tigers and jackals. A herdsman tries to protect his sheep to the best of his
ability, but the tigers and foxes take them away by force. Similarly, although a miserly man wants to
guard his money very carefully, his family members take away all his assets forcibly, even though he is
very vigilant.
4. Every year the plowman plows over his grain field, completely uprooting all weeds. Nonetheless, the
seeds lie there and, not being completely burned, again come up with the plants sown in the field. Even
after being plowed under, the weeds come up densely. Similarly, the grhastha-asrama [family life] is a
field of fruitive activity. Unless the desire to enjoy family life is completely burned out, it grows up again
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 237
and again. Even though camphor may be removed from a pot, the pot nonetheless retains the aroma of
camphor. As long as the seeds of desire are not destroyed, fruitive activities are not destroyed.
5. Sometimes the conditioned soul in household life, being attached to material wealth and
possessions, is disturbed by gadflies and mosquitoes, and sometimes locusts, birds of prey and rats
give him trouble. Nonetheless, he still wanders down the path of material existence. Due to ignorance
he becomes lusty and engages in fruitive activity. Because his mind is absorbed in these activities, he
sees the material world as permanent, although it is temporary like a phantasmagoria, a house in the
sky.
6. Sometimes in this house in the sky [gandharva-pura] the conditioned soul drinks, eats and has sex.
Being overly attached, he chases after the objects of the senses just as a deer chases a mirage in the
desert.
7. Sometimes the living entity is interested in the yellow stool known as gold and runs after it. That gold
is the source of material opulence and envy, and it can enable one to afford illicit sex, gambling, meat-
eating and intoxication. Those whose minds are overcome by the mode of passion are attracted by the
color of gold, just as a man suffering from cold in the forest runs after a phosphorescent light in a
marshy land, considering it to be fire.
8. Sometimes the conditioned soul is absorbed in finding residential quarters or apartments and getting
a supply of water and riches to maintain his body. Absorbed in acquiring a variety of necessities, he
forgets everything and perpetually runs around the forest of material existence.
9. Sometimes, as if blinded by the dust of a whirlwind, the conditioned soul sees the beauty of the
opposite sex, which is called pramada. Being thus bewildered, he is raised upon the lap of a woman,
and at that time his good senses are overcome by the force of passion. He thus becomes almost blind
with lusty desire and disobeys the rules and regulations governing sex life. He does not know that his
disobedience is witnessed by different demigods, and he enjoys illicit sex in the dead of night, not
seeing the future punishment awaiting him.
10. The conditioned soul sometimes personally appreciates the futility of sense enjoyment in the
material world, and he sometimes considers material enjoyment to be full of miseries. However, due to
his strong bodily conception, his memory is destroyed, and again and again he runs after material
enjoyment, just as an animal runs after a mirage in the desert.
11. Sometimes the conditioned soul is very aggrieved by the chastisement of his enemies and
government servants, who use harsh words against him directly or indirectly. At that time his heart and
ears become very saddened. Such chastisement may be compared to the sounds of owls and crickets.
12. Due to his pious activities in previous lives, the conditioned soul attains material facilities in this life,
but when they are finished, he takes shelter of wealth and riches, which cannot help him in this life or
the next. Because of this, he approaches the living dead who possess these things. Such people are
compared to impure trees, creepers and poisonous wells.
13. Sometimes, to mitigate distresses in this forest of the material world, the conditioned soul receives
cheap blessings from atheists. He then loses all intelligence in their association. This is exactly like
jumping in a shallow river. As a result one simply breaks his head. He is not able to mitigate his
sufferings from the heat, and in both ways he suffers. The misguided conditioned soul also approaches
so-called sadhus and svamis who preach against the principles of the Vedas. He does not receive
benefit from them, either in the present or in the future.
14. In this material world, when the conditioned soul cannot arrange for his own maintenance, despite
exploiting others, he tries to exploit his own father or son, taking away that relative's possessions,
although they may be very insignificant. If he cannot acquire things from his father, son or other
relatives, he is prepared to give them all kinds of trouble.
15. In this world, family life is exactly like a blazing fire in the forest. There is not the least happiness,
and gradually one becomes more and more implicated in unhappiness. In household life, there is
nothing favorable for perpetual happiness. Being implicated in home life, the conditioned soul is burned
by the fire of lamentation. Sometimes he condemns himself as being very unfortunate, and sometimes
he claims that he suffers because he performed no pious activities in his previous life.
16. Government men are always like carnivorous demons called Raksasas [man-eaters]. Sometimes
these government men turn against the conditioned soul and take away all his accumulated wealth.
Being bereft of his life's reserved wealth, the conditioned soul loses all enthusiasm. Indeed, it is as
though he loses his life.
17. Sometimes the conditioned soul imagines that his father or grandfather has again come in the form
of his son or grandson. In this way he feels the happiness one sometimes feels in a dream, and the
conditioned soul sometimes takes pleasure in such mental concoctions.
18. In household life one is ordered to execute many yajnas and fruitive activities, especially the vivaha-
yajna [the marriage ceremony for sons and daughters] and the sacred thread ceremony. These are all
238 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
the duties of a grhastha, and they are very extensive and troublesome to execute. They are compared
to a big hill over which one must cross when one is attached to material activities. A person desiring to
cross over these ritualistic ceremonies certainly feels pains like the piercing of thorns and pebbles
endured by one attempting to climb a hill. Thus the conditioned soul suffers unlimitedly.
19. Sometimes, due to bodily hunger and thirst, the conditioned soul becomes so disturbed that he
loses his patience and becomes angry with his own beloved sons, daughters and wife. Thus, being
unkind to them, he suffers all the more.
20. Sukadeva Gosvami continued speaking to Maharaja Pariksit: My dear King, sleep is exactly like a
python. Those who wander in the forest of material life are always devoured by the python of sleep.
Being bitten by this python, they always remain in the darkness of ignorance. They are like dead bodies
thrown in a distant forest. Thus the conditioned souls cannot understand what is going on in life.
21. In the forest of the material world, the conditioned soul is sometimes bitten by envious enemies,
which are compared to serpents and other creatures. Through the tricks of the enemy, the conditioned
soul falls from his prestigious position. Being anxious, he cannot even sleep properly. He thus becomes
more and more unhappy, and he gradually loses his intelligence and consciousness. In that state he
becomes almost perpetually like a blind man who has fallen into a dark well of ignorance.
22. The conditioned soul is sometimes attracted to the little happiness derived from sense gratification.
Thus he has illicit sex or steals another's property. At such a time he may be arrested by the
government or chastised by the woman's husband or protector. Thus simply for a little material
satisfaction, he falls into a hellish condition and is put into jail for rape, kidnapping, theft and so forth.
23. Learned scholars and transcendentalists therefore condemn the materialistic path of fruitive activity
because it is the original source and breeding ground of material miseries, both in this life and in the
next.
24. Stealing or cheating another person out of his money, the conditioned soul somehow or other keeps
it in his possession and escapes punishment. Then another man, named Devadatta, cheats him and
takes the money away. Similarly, another man, named Visnumitra, steals the money from Devadatta
and takes it away. In any case, the money does not stay in one place. It passes from one hand to
another. Ultimately no one can enjoy the money, and it remains the property of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
25. Being unable to protect himself from the threefold miseries of material existence, the conditioned
soul becomes very morose and lives a life of lamentation. These threefold miseries are miseries
suffered by mental calamity at the hands of the demigods [such as freezing wind and scorching heat],
miseries offered by other living entities, and miseries arising from the mind and body themselves.
26. As far as transactions with money are concerned, if one person cheats another by a farthing or less,
they become enemies.
27. In this materialistic life, there are many difficulties, as I have just mentioned, and all of these are
insurmountable. In addition, there are difficulties arising from so-called happiness, distress, attachment,
hate, fear, false prestige, illusion, madness, lamentation, bewilderment, greed, envy, enmity, insult,
hunger, thirst, tribulation, disease, birth, old age and death. All these combine together to give the
materialistic conditioned soul nothing but misery.
28. Sometimes the conditioned soul is attracted by illusion personified (his wife or girl friend) and
becomes eager to be embraced by a woman. Thus he loses his intelligence as well as knowledge of
life's goal. At that time, no longer attempting spiritual cultivation, he becomes overly attached to his wife
or girl friend and tries to provide her with a suitable apartment. Again, he becomes very busy under the
shelter of that home and is captivated by the talks, glances and activities of his wife and children. In this
way he loses his Krsna consciousness and throws himself in the dense darkness of material existence.
29. The personal weapon used by Lord Krsna, the disc, is called hari-cakra, the disc of Hari. This cakra
is the wheel of time. It expands from the beginning of the atoms up to the time of Brahma's death, and it
controls all activities. It is always revolving and spending the lives of the living entities, from Lord
Brahma down to an insignificant blade of grass. Thus one changes from infancy, to childhood, to youth
and maturity, and thus one approaches the end of life. It is impossible to check this wheel of time. This
wheel is very exacting because it is the personal weapon of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
Sometimes the conditioned soul, fearing the approach of death, wants to worship someone who can
save him from imminent danger. Yet he does not care for the Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose
weapon is the indefatigable time factor. The conditioned soul instead takes shelter of a man-made god
described in unauthorized scriptures. Such gods are like buzzards, vultures, herons and crows. Vedic
scriptures do not refer to them. Imminent death is like the attack of a lion, and neither vultures,
buzzards, crows nor herons can save one from such an attack. One who takes shelter of unauthorized
man-made gods cannot be saved from the clutches of death.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 239
30. The pseudo svamis, yogis and incarnations who do not believe in the Supreme Personality of
Godhead are known as pasandis. They themselves are fallen and cheated because they do not know
the real path of spiritual advancement, and whoever goes to them is certainly cheated in his turn. When
one is thus cheated, he sometimes takes shelter of the real followers of Vedic principles [brahmanas or
those in Krsna consciousness], who teach everyone how to worship the Supreme Personality of
Godhead according to the Vedic rituals. However, being unable to stick to these principles, these
rascals again fall down and take shelter among sudras who are very expert in making arrangements for
sex indulgence. Sex is very prominent among animals like monkeys, and such people who are
enlivened by sex may be called descendants of monkeys.
31. In this way the descendants of the monkeys intermingle with each other, and they are generally
known as sudras. Without hesitating, they live and move freely, not knowing the goal of life. They are
captivated simply by seeing the faces of one another, which remind them of sense gratification. They
are always engaged in material activities, known as gramya-karma, and they work hard for material
benefit. Thus they forget completely that one day their small life spans will be finished and they will be
degraded in the evolutionary cycle.
32. Just as a monkey jumps from one tree to another, the conditioned soul jumps from one body to
another. As the monkey is ultimately captured by the hunter and is unable to get out of captivity, the
conditioned soul, being captivated by momentary sex pleasure, becomes attached to different types of
bodies and is encaged in family life. Family life affords the conditioned soul a festival of momentary sex
pleasure, and thus he is completely unable to get out of the material clutches.
33. In this material world, when the conditioned soul forgets his relationship with the Supreme
Personality of Godhead and does not care for Krsna consciousness, he simply engages in different
types of mischievous and sinful activities. He is then subjected to the threefold miseries, and, out of fear
of the elephant of death, he falls into the darkness found in a mountain cave.
34. The conditioned soul suffers many miserable bodily conditions, such as being affected by severe
cold and strong winds. He also suffers due to the activities of other living beings and due to natural
disturbances. When he is unable to counteract them and has to remain in a miserable condition, he
naturally becomes very morose because he wants to enjoy material facilities.
35. Sometimes conditioned souls exchange money, but in due course of time, enmity arises because of
cheating. Although there may be a tiny profit, the conditioned souls cease to be friends and become
enemies.
36. Sometimes, having no money, the conditioned soul does not get sufficient accommodations.
Sometimes he doesn't even have a place to sit, nor does he have the other necessities. In other words,
he falls into scarcity, and at that time, when he is unable to secure the necessities by fair means, he
decides to seize the property of others unfairly. When he cannot get the things he wants, he simply
receives insults from others and thus becomes very morose.
37. Although people may be enemies, in order to fulfill their desires again and again, they sometimes
get married. Unfortunately, these marriages do not last very long, and the people involved are
separated again by divorce or other means.
38. The path of this material world is full of material miseries, and various troubles disturb the
conditioned souls. Sometimes he loses, and sometimes he gains. In either case, the path is full of
danger. Sometimes the conditioned soul is separated from his father by death or other circumstances.
Leaving him aside he gradually becomes attached to others, such as his children. In this way, the
conditioned soul is sometimes illusioned and afraid. Sometimes he cries loudly out of fear. Sometimes
he is happy maintaining his family, and sometimes he is overjoyed and sings melodiously. In this way
he becomes entangled and forgets his separation from the Supreme Personality of Godhead since time
immemorial. Thus he traverses the dangerous path of material existence, and on this path he is not at
all happy. Those who are self-realized simply take shelter of the Supreme Personality of Godhead in
order to get out of this dangerous material existence. Without accepting the devotional path, one cannot
get out of the clutches of material existence. The conclusion is that no one can be happy in material life.
One must take to Krsna consciousness.
39. Saintly persons, who are friends to all living entities, have a peaceful consciousness. They have
controlled their senses and minds, and they easily attain the path of liberation, the path back to
Godhead. Being unfortunate and attached to the miserable material conditions, a materialistic person
cannot associate with them.
40. There were many great saintly kings who were very expert in performing sacrificial rituals and very
competent in conquering other kingdoms, yet despite their power they could not attain the loving service
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. This is because those great kings could not even conquer the
false consciousness of "I am this body, and this is my property." Thus they simply created enmity with
rival kings, fought with them and died without having discharged life's real mission.
240 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
41. When the conditioned soul accepts the shelter of the creeper of fruitive activity, he may be elevated
by his pious activities to higher planetary systems and thus gain liberation from hellish conditions, but
unfortunately he cannot remain there. After reaping the results of his pious activities, he has to return to
the lower planetary systems. In this way he perpetually goes up and comes down.
42. Having summarized the teachings of Jada Bharata, Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King Pariksit,
the path indicated by Jada Bharata is like the path followed by Garuda, the carrier of the Lord, and
ordinary kings are just like flies. Flies cannot follow the path of Garuda, and to date none of the great
kings and victorious leaders could follow this path of devotional service, not even mentally.
43. While in the prime of life, the great Maharaja Bharata gave up everything because he was fond of
serving the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Uttamasloka. He gave up his beautiful wife, nice children,
great friends and an enormous empire. Although these things were very difficult to give up, Maharaja
Bharata was so exalted that he gave them up just as one gives up stool after evacuating. Such was the
greatness of His Majesty.
44. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, the activities of Bharata Maharaja are wonderful. He
gave up everything difficult for others to give up. He gave up his kingdom, his wife and his family. His
opulence was so great that even the demigods envied it, yet he gave it up. It was quite befitting a great
personality like him to be a great devotee. He could renounce everything because he was so attracted
to the beauty, opulence, reputation, knowledge, strength and renunciation of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, Krsna. Krsna is so attractive that one can give up all desirable things for His sake. Indeed,
even liberation is considered insignificant for those whose minds are attracted to the loving service of
the Lord.
45. Even though in the body of a deer, Maharaja Bharata did not forget the Supreme Personality of
Godhead; therefore when he was giving up the body of a deer, he loudly uttered the following prayer:
"The Supreme Personality of Godhead is sacrifice personified. He gives the results of ritualistic activity.
He is the protector of religious systems, the personification of mystic yoga, the source of all knowledge,
the controller of the entire creation, and the Supersoul in every living entity. He is beautiful and
attractive. I am quitting this body offering obeisances unto Him and hoping that I may perpetually
engage in His transcendental loving service." Uttering this, Maharaja Bharata left his body.
46. Devotees interested in hearing and chanting [sravanam kirtanam] regularly discuss the pure
characteristics of Bharata Maharaja and praise his activities. If one submissively hears and chants
about the all-auspicious Maharaja Bharata, one's life span and material opulences certainly increase.
One can become very famous and easily attain promotion to the heavenly planets, or attain liberation
by merging into the existence of the Lord. Whatever one desires can be attained simply by hearing,
chanting and glorifying the activities of Maharaja Bharata. In this way, one can fulfill all his material and
spiritual desires. One does not have to ask anyone else for these things, for simply by studying the life
of Maharaja Bharata, one can attain all desirable things.
Chapter Fifteen The Glories of the Descendants of King Priyavrata
1. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: The son of Maharaja Bharata known as Sumati followed the path
of Rsabhadeva, but some unscrupulous people imagined him to be Lord Buddha himself. These
people, who were actually atheistic and of bad character, took up the Vedic principles in an imaginary,
infamous way to support their activities. Thus these sinful people accepted Sumati as Lord Buddhadeva
and propagated the theory that everyone should follow the principles of Sumati. In this way they were
carried away by mental concoction.
2. From Sumati, a son named Devatajit was born by the womb of his wife named Vrddhasena.
3. Thereafter, in the womb of Asuri, the wife of Devatajit, a son named Devadyumna was begotten.
Devadyumna begot in the womb of his wife, Dhenumati, a son named Paramesthi. Paramesthi begot a
son named Pratiha in the womb of his wife, Suvarcala.
4. King Pratiha personally propagated the principles of self-realization. In this way, not only was he
purified, but he became a great devotee of the Supreme Person, Lord Visnu, and directly realized Him.
5. In the womb of his wife Suvarcala, Pratiha begot three sons, named Pratiharta, Prastota and Udgata.
These three sons were very expert in performing Vedic rituals. Pratiharta begot two sons, named Aja
and Bhuma, in the womb of his wife, named Stuti.
6. In the womb of his wife, Rsikulya, King Bhuma begot a son named Udgitha. From Udgitha's wife,
Devakulya, a son named Prastava was born, and Prastava begot a son named Vibhu through his wife,
Niyutsa. In the womb of his wife, Rati, Vibhu begot a son named Prthusena. Prthusena begot a son
named Nakta in the womb of his wife, named Akuti. Nakta's wife was Druti, and from her womb the
great King Gaya was born. Gaya was very famous and pious; he was the best of saintly kings. Lord
Visnu and His expansions, who are meant to protect the universe, are always situated in the
transcendental mode of goodness, known as visuddha-sattva. Being the direct expansion of Lord Visnu,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 241
King Gaya was also situated in the visuddha-sattva. Because of this, Maharaja Gaya was fully equipped
with transcendental knowledge. Therefore he was called Mahapurusa.
7. King Gaya gave full protection and security to the citizens so that their personal property would not
be disturbed by undesirable elements. He also saw that there was sufficient food to feed all the citizens.
[This is called posana.] He would sometimes distribute gifts to the citizens to satisfy them. [This is called
prinana.] He would sometimes call meetings and satisfy the citizens with sweet words. [This is called
upalalana.] He would also give them good instructions on how to become first-class citizens. [This is
called anusasana.] Such were the characteristics of King Gaya's royal order. Besides all this, King Gaya
was a householder who strictly observed the rules and regulations of household life. He performed
sacrifices and was an unalloyed pure devotee of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. He was called
Mahapurusa because as a king he gave the citizens all facilities, and as a householder he executed all
his duties so that at the end he became a strict devotee of the Supreme Lord. As a devotee, he was
always ready to give respect to other devotees and to engage in the devotional service of the Lord. This
is the bhakti-yoga process. Due to all these transcendental activites, King Gaya was always free from
the bodily conception. He was full in Brahman realization, and consequently he was always jubilant. He
did not experience material lamentation. Although he was perfect in all respects, he was not proud, nor
was he anxious to rule the kingdom.
8. My dear King Pariksit, those who are learned scholars in the histories of the Puranas eulogize and
glorify King Gaya with the following verses.
9. The great King Gaya used to perform all kinds of Vedic rituals. He was highly intelligent and expert in
studying all the Vedic literatures. He maintained the religious principles and possessed all kinds of
opulence. He was a leader among gentlemen and a servant of the devotees. He was a totally qualified
plenary expansion of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore who could equal him in the
performance of gigantic ritualistic ceremonies?
10. All the chaste and honest daughters of Maharaja Daksa, such as Sraddha, Maitri and Daya, whose
blessings were always effective, bathed Maharaja Gaya with sanctified water. Indeed, they were very
satisfied with Maharaja Gaya. The planet earth personified came as a cow, and, as though she saw her
calf, she delivered milk profusely when she saw all the good qualities of Maharaja Gaya. In other words,
Maharaja Gaya was able to derive all benefits from the earth and thus satisfy the desires of his citizens.
However, he personally had no desire.
11. Although King Gaya had no personal desire for sense gratification, all his desires were fulfilled by
virtue of his performance of Vedic rituals. All the kings with whom Maharaja Gaya had to fight were
forced to fight on religious principles. They were very satisfied with his fighting, and they would present
all kinds of gifts to him. Similarly, all the brahmanas in his kingdom were very satisfied with King Gaya's
munificent charities. Consequently the brahmanas contributed a sixth of their pious activities for King
Gaya's benefit in the next life.
12. In Maharaja Gaya's sacrifices, there was a great supply of the intoxicant known as soma. King Indra
used to come and become intoxicated by drinking large quantities of soma-rasa. Also, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu [the yajna-purusa] also came and personally accepted all the
sacrifices offered unto Him with pure and firm devotion in the sacrificial arena.
13. When the Supreme Lord is pleased by a person's actions, automatically all the demigods, human
beings, animals, birds, bees, creepers, trees, grass and all other living entities, beginning with Lord
Brahma, are pleased. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the Supersoul of everyone, and He is by
nature fully pleased. Nonetheless, He came to the arena of Maharaja Gaya and said, "I am fully
pleased."
14-15. In the womb of Gayanti, Maharaja Gaya begot three sons, named Citraratha, Sugati and
Avarodhana. In the womb of his wife Urna, Citraratha begot a son named Samrat. The wife of Samrat
was Utkala, and in her womb Samrat begot a son named Marici. In the womb of his wife Bindumati,
Marici begot a son named Bindu. In the womb of his wife Saragha, Bindu begot a son named Madhu. In
the womb of his wife named Sumana, Madhu begot a son named Viravrata. In the womb of his wife
Bhoja, Viravrata begot two sons named Manthu and Pramanthu. In the womb of his wife Satya, Manthu
begot a son named Bhauvana, and in the womb of his wife Dusana, Bhauvana begot a son named
Tvasta. In the womb of his wife Virocana, Tvasta begot a son named Viraja. The wife of Viraja was
Visuci, and in her womb Viraja begot one hundred sons and one daughter. Of all these sons, the son
named Satajit was predominant.
16. There is a famous verse about King Viraja. "Because of his high qualities and wide fame, King
Viraja became the jewel of the dynasty of King Priyavrata, just as Lord Visnu, by His transcendental
potency, decorates and blesses the demigods."
242 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Sixteen A Description of Jambudvipa
1. King Pariksit said to Sukadeva Gosvami: O brahmana, you have already informed me that the radius
of Bhu-mandala extends as far as the sun spreads its light and heat and as far as the moon and all the
stars can be seen.
2. My dear Lord, the rolling wheels of Maharaja Priyavrata's chariot created seven ditches, in which the
seven oceans came into existence. Because of these seven oceans, Bhu-mandala is divided into seven
islands. You have given a very general description of their measurement, names and characteristics.
Now I wish to know of them in detail. Kindly fulfill my desire.
3. When the mind is fixed upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead in His external feature made of
the material modes of nature--the gross universal form--it is brought to the platform of pure goodness. In
that transcendental position, one can understand the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, who
in His subtler form is self-effulgent and beyond the modes of nature. O my lord, please describe vividly
how that form, which covers the entire universe, is perceived.
4. The great rsi Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, there is no limit to the expansion of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead's material energy. This material world is a transformation of the
material qualities [sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna], yet no one could possibly explain it perfectly,
even in a lifetime as long as that of Brahma No one in the material world is perfect, and an imperfect
person could not describe this material universe accurately, even after continued speculation. O King, I
shall nevertheless try to explain to you the principal regions, such as Bhu-goloka [Bhuloka], with their
names, forms, measurements and various symptoms.
5. The planetary system known as Bhu-mandala resembles a lotus flower, and its seven islands
resemble the whorl of that flower. The length and breadth of the island known as Jambudvipa, which is
situated in the middle of the whorl, are one million yojanas [eight million miles]. Jambudvipa is round like
the leaf of a lotus flower.
6. In Jambudvipa there are nine divisions of land, each with a length of 9,000 yojanas [72,000 miles].
There are eight mountains that mark the boundaries of these divisions and separate them nicely.
7. Amidst these divisions, or varsas, is the varsa named Ilavrta, which is situated in the middle of the
whorl of the lotus. Within Ilavrta-varsa is Sumeru Mountain, which is made of gold. Sumeru Mountain is
like the pericarp of the lotuslike Bhu-mandala planetary system. The mountain's height is the same as
the width of Jambudvipa--or, in other words, 100,000 yojanas [800,000 miles]. Of that, 16,0O0 yojanas
[128,000 miles] are within the earth, and therefore the mountain's height above the earth is 84,000
yojanas [672,000 miles]. The mountain's width is 32,000 yojanas [256,000 miles] at its summit and
16,000 yojanas at its base.
8. Just north of Ilavrta-varsa--and going further northward, one after another--are three mountains
named Nila, Sveta and Srngavan. These mark the borders of the three varsas named Ramyaka,
Hiranmaya and Kuru and separate them from one another. The width of these mountains is 2,000
yojanas [16,000 miles]. Lengthwise, they extend east and west to the beaches of the ocean of salt
water. Going from south to north, the length of each mountain is one tenth that of the previous
mountain, but the height of them all is the same.
9. Similarly, south of Ilavrta-varsa and extending from east to west are three great mountains named
(from north to south) Nisadha, Hemakuta and Himalaya. Each of them is 10,000 yojanas [80,000 miles]
high. They mark the boundaries of the three varsas named Hari-varsa, Kimpurusa-varsa and Bharata-
varsa [India].
10. In the same way, west and east of Ilavrta-varsa are two great mountains named Malyavan and
Gandhamadana respectively. These two mountains, which are 2,000 yojanas [16,000 miles] high,
extend as far as Nila Mountain in the north and Nisadha in the south. They indicate the borders of
Ilavrta-varsa and also the varsas known as Ketumala and Bhadrasva.
11. On the four sides of the great mountain known as Sumeru are four mountains--Mandara,
Merumandara, Suparsva and Kumuda--which are like its belts. The length and height of these
mountains are calculated to be 10,000 yojanas [80,000 miles].
12. Standing like flagstaffs on the summits of these four mountains are a mango tree, a rose apple tree,
a kadamba tree and a banyan tree. Those trees are calculated to have a width of 100 yojanas [800
miles] and a height of 1,100 yojanas [8,800 miles]. Their branches also spread to a radius of 1,100
yojanas.
13-14. O Maharaja Pariksit, best of the Bharata dynasty, between these four mountains are four huge
lakes. The water of the first tastes just like milk; the water of the second, like honey; and that of the
third, like sugarcane juice. The fourth lake is filled with pure water. The celestial beings such as the
Siddhas, Caranas and Gandharvas, who are also known as demigods, enjoy the facilities of those four
lakes. Consequently they have the natural perfections of mystic yoga, such as the power to become
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 243
smaller than the smallest or greater than the greatest. There are also four celestial gardens named
Nandana, Caitraratha, Vaibhrajaka and Sarvatobhadra.
15. The best of the demigods, along with their wives, who are like ornaments of heavenly beauty, meet
together and enjoy within those gardens, while their glories are sung by lesser demigods known as
Gandharvas.
16. On the lower slopes of Mandara Mountain is a mango tree named Devacuta. It is 1,100 yojanas
high. Mangoes as big as mountain peaks and as sweet as nectar fall from the top of this tree for the
enjoyment of the denizens of heaven.
17. When all those solid fruits fall from such a height, they break, and the sweet, fragrant juice within
them flows out and becomes increasingly more fragrant as it mixes with other scents. That juice
cascades from the mountain in waterfalls and becomes a river called Arunoda, which flows pleasantly
through the eastern side of Ilavrta.
18. The pious wives of the Yaksas act as personal maidservants to assist Bhavani, the wife of Lord
Siva. Because they drink the water of the River Arunoda, their bodies become fragrant, and as the air
carries away that fragrance, it perfumes the entire atmosphere for eighty miles around.
19. Similarly, the fruits of the jambu tree, which are full of pulp and have very small seeds, fall from a
great height and break to pieces. Those fruits are the size of elephants, and the juice gliding from them
becomes a river named Jambu-nadi. This river falls a distance of 10,000 yojanas, from the summit of
Merumandara to the southern side of Ilavrta, and floods the entire land of Ilavrta with juice.
20-21. The mud on both banks of the River Jambu-nadi, being moistened by the flowing juice and then
dried by the air and the sunshine, produces huge quantities of gold called Jambu-nada. The denizens of
heaven use this gold for various kinds of ornaments. Therefore all the inhabitants of the heavenly
planets and their youthful wives are fully decorated with golden helmets, bangles and belts, and thus
they enjoy life.
22. On the side of Suparsva Mountain stands a big tree called Mahakadamba, which is very celebrated.
From the hollows of this tree flow five rivers of honey, each about five vyamas wide. This flowing honey
falls incessantly from the top of Suparsva Mountain and flows all around Ilavrta-varsa, beginning from
the western side. Thus the whole land is saturated with the pleasing fragrance.
23. The air carrying the scent from the mouths of those who drink that honey perfumes the land for a
hundred yojanas around.
24. Similarly, on Kumuda Mountain there is a great banyan tree, which is called Satavalsa because it
has a hundred main branches. From those branches come many roots, from which many rivers are
flowing. These rivers flow down from the top of the mountain to the northern side of Ilavrta-varsa for the
benefit of those who live there. Because of these flowing rivers, all the people have ample supplies of
milk, yogurt, honey, clarified butter [ghee], molasses, food grains, clothes, bedding, sitting places and
ornaments. All the objects they desire are sufficiently supplied for their prosperity, and therefore they
are very happy.
25. The residents of the material world who enjoy the products of these flowing rivers have no wrinkles
on their bodies and no grey hair. They never feel fatigue, and perspiration does not give their bodies a
bad odor. They are not afflicted by old age, disease or untimely death, they do not suffer from chilly cold
or scorching heat, nor do their bodies lose their luster. They all live very happily, without anxieties, until
death.
26. There are other mountains beautifully arranged around the foot of Mount Meru like the filaments
around the whorl of a lotus flower. Their names are Kuranga, Kurara, Kusumbha, Vaikanka, Trikuta,
Sisira, Patanga, Rucaka, Nisadha, Sinivasa, Kapila, Sankha, Vaidurya, Jarudhi, Hamsa, Rsabha, Naga,
Kalanjara and Narada.
27. On the eastern side of Sumeru Mountain are two mountains named Jathara and Devakuta, which
extend to the north and south for 18,000 yojanas [144,000 miles]. Similarly, on the western side of
Sumeru are two mountains named Pavana and Pariyatra, which also extend north and south for the
same distance. On the southern side of Sumeru are two mountains named Kailasa and Karavira, which
extend east and west for 18,000 yojanas, and on the northern side of Sumeru, extending for the same
distance east and west, are two mountains named Trisrnga and Makara. The width and height of all
these mountains is 2,000 yojanas [16,000 miles]. Sumeru, a mountain of solid gold shining as brilliantly
as fire, is surrounded by these eight mountains.
28. In the middle of the summit of Meru is the township of Lord Brahma. Each of its four sides is
calculated to extend for ten million yojanas [eighty million miles]. It is made entirely of gold, and
therefore learned scholars and sages call it Satakaumbhi.
29. Surrounding Brahmapuri in all directions are the residences of the eight principal governors of the
planetary systems, beginning with King Indra. These abodes are similar to Brahmapuri but are one
fourth the size.
244 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Seventeen The Descent of the River Ganges
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, Lord Visnu, the enjoyer of all sacrifices, appeared as
Vamanadeva in the sacrificial arena of Bali Maharaja. Then He extended His left foot to the end of the
universe and pierced a hole in its covering with the nail of His big toe. Through the hole, the pure water
of the Causal Ocean entered this universe as the Ganges River. Having washed the lotus feet of the
Lord, which are covered with reddish powder, the water of the Ganges acquired a very beautiful pink
color. Every living being can immediately purify his mind of material contamination by touching the
transcendental water of the Ganges, yet its waters remain ever pure. Because the Ganges directly
touches the lotus feet of the Lord before descending within this universe, she is known as Visnupadi.
Later she received other names like Jahnavi and Bhagirathi. After one thousand millenniums, the water
of the Ganges descended on Dhruvaloka, the topmost planet in this universe. Therefore all learned
sages and scholars proclaim Dhruvaloka to be Visnupada ["situated on Lord Visnu's lotus feet"].
2. Dhruva Mabaraja, the famous son of Maharaja Uttanapada, is known as the most exalted devotee of
the Supreme Lord because of his firm determination in executing devotional service. Knowing that the
sacred Ganges water washes the lotus feet of Lord Visnu, Dhruva Maharaja, situated on his own
planet, to this very day accepts that water on his head with great devotion. Because he constantly
thinks of Krsna very devoutly within the core of his heart, he is overcome with ecstatic anxiety. Tears
flow from his half-open eyes, and eruptions appear on his entire body.
3. The seven great sages [Marici, Vasistha, Atri and so on] reside on planets beneath Dhruvaloka. Well
aware of the influence of the water of the Ganges, to this day they keep Ganges water on the tufts of
hair on their heads. They have concluded that this is the ultimate wealth, the perfection of all austerities,
and the best means of prosecuting transcendental life. Having obtained uninterrupted devotional
service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, they neglect all other beneficial processes like religion,
economic development, sense gratification and even merging into the Supreme. Just as jnanis think
that merging into the existence of the Lord is the highest truth, these seven exalted personalities accept
devotional service as the perfection of life.
4. After purifying the seven planets near Dhruvaloka [the polestar], the Ganges water is carried through
the spaceways of the demigods in billions of celestial airplanes. Then it inundates the moon
[Candraloka] and finally reaches Lord Brahma's abode atop Mount Meru.
5. On top of Mount Meru, the Ganges divides into four branches, each of which gushes in a different
direction [east, west, north and south]. These branches, known by the names Sita, Alakananda, Caksu
and Bhadra, flow down to the ocean.
6. The branch of the Ganges known as the Sita flows through Brahmapuri atop Mount Meru, and from
there it runs down to the nearby peaks of the Kesaracala Mountains, which stand almost as high as
Mount Meru itself. These mountains are like a bunch of filaments around Mount Meru. From the
Kesaracala Mountains, the Ganges falls to the peak of Gandhamadana Mountain and then flows into
the land of Bhadrasva-varsa. Finally it reaches the ocean of salt water in the west.
7. The branch of the Ganges known as Caksu falls onto the summit of Malyavan Mountain and from
there cascades onto the land of Ketumala-varsa. The Ganges flows incessantly through Ketumala-
varsa and in this way also reaches the ocean of salt water in the West.
8. The branch of the Ganges known as Bhadra flows from the northern side of Mount Meru. Its waters
fall onto the peaks of Kumuda Mountain, Mount Nila, Sveta Mountain and Srngavan Mountain in
succession. Then it runs down into the province of Kuru and, after crossing through that land, flows into
the saltwater ocean in the north.
9. Similarly, the branch of the Ganges known as Alakananda flows from the southern side of
Brahmapuri [Brahma-sadana]. Passing over the tops of mountains in various lands, it falls down with
fierce force upon the peaks of the mountains Memakuta and Himakuta. After inundating the tops of
those mountains, the Ganges falls down onto the tract of land known as Bharata-varsa, which she also
inundates. Then the Ganges flows into the ocean of salt water in the south. Persons who come to bathe
in this river are fortunate. It is not very difficult for them to achieve with every step the results of
performing great sacrifices like the Rajasuya and Asvamedha yajnas.
10. Many other rivers, both big and small, flow from the top of Mount Meru. These rivers are like
daughters of the mountain, and they flow to the various tracts of land in hundreds of branches.
11. Among the nine varsas, the tract of land known as Bharata-varsa is understood to be the field of
fruitive activities. Learned scholars and saintly persons declare the other eight varsas to be meant for
very highly elevated pious persons. After returning from the heavenly planets, they enjoy the remaining
results of their pious activities in these eight earthly varsas.
12. In these eight varsas, or tracts of land, human beings live ten thousand years according to earthly
calculations. All the inhabitants are almost like demigods. They have the bodily strength of ten thousand
elephants. Indeed, their bodies are as sturdy as thunderbolts. The youthful duration of their lives is very
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 245
pleasing, and both men and women enjoy sexual union with great pleasure for a long time. After years
of sensual pleasure--when a balance of one year of life remains--the wife conceives a child. Thus the
standard of pleasure for the residents of these heavenly regions is exactly like that of the human beings
who lived during Treta-yuga.
13. In each of those tracts of land, there are many gardens filled with flowers and fruits according to the
season, and there are beautifully decorated hermitages as well. Between the great mountains
demarcating the borders of those lands lie enormous lakes of clear water filled with newly grown lotus
flowers. Aquatic birds such as swans, ducks, water chickens, and cranes become greatly excited by the
fragrance of lotus flowers, and the charming sound of bumblebees fills the air. The inhabitants of those
lands are important leaders among the demigods. Always attended by their respective servants, they
enjoy life in gardens alongside the lakes. In this pleasing situation, the wives of the demigods smile
playfully at their husbands and look upon them with lusty desires. All the demigods and their wives are
constantly supplied with sandalwood pulp and flower garlands by their servants. In this way, all the
residents of the eight heavenly varsas enjoy, attracted by the activities of the opposite sex.
14. To show mercy to His devotees in each of these nine tracts of land, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead known as Narayana expands Himself in His quadruple principles of Vasudeva, Sankarsana,
Pradyumna and Aniruddha. In this way He remains near His devotees to accept their service.
15. Sukadeva Gosvami said: In the tract of land known as Ilavrta-varsa, the only male person is Lord
Siva, the most powerful demigod. Goddess Durga, the wife of Lord Siva, does not like any man to enter
that land. If any foolish man dares to do so, she immediately turns him into a woman. I shall explain this
later [in the Ninth Canto of Srimad-Bhagavatam].
16. In Ilavrta-varsa, Lord Siva is always encircled by ten billion maidservants of goddess Durga, who
minister to him. The quadruple expansion of the Supreme Lord is composed of Vasudeva, Pradyumna,
Aniruddha and Sankarsana. Sankarsana, the fourth expansion, is certainly transcendental, but because
his activities of destruction in the material world are in the mode of ignorance, He is known as tamasi,
the Lord's form in the mode of ignorance. Lord Siva knows that Sankarsana is the original cause of his
own existence, and thus he always meditates upon Him in trance by chanting the following mantra.
17. The most powerful Lord Siva says: O Supreme Personality of Godhead, I offer my respectful
obeisances unto You in Your expansion as Lord Sankarsana. You are the reservoir of all
transcendental qualities. Although You are unlimited, You remain unmanifest to the nondevotees.
18. O my Lord, You are the only worshipable person, for You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
the reservoir of all opulences. Your secure lotus feet are the only source of protection for all Your
devotees, whom You satisfy by manifesting Yourself in various forms. O my Lord, You deliver Your
devotees from the clutches of material existence. Nondevotees, however, remain entangled in material
existence by Your will. Kindly accept me as Your eternal servant.
19. We cannot control the force of our anger. Therefore when we look at material things, we cannot
avoid feeling attraction or repulsion for them. But the Supreme Lord is never affected in this way.
Although He glances over the material world for the purpose of creating, maintaining and destroying it,
He is not affected, even to the slightest degree. Therefore, one who desires to conquer the force of the
senses must take shelter of the lotus feet of the Lord. Then he will be victorious.
20. For persons with impure vision, the Supreme Lord's eyes appear like those of someone who
indiscriminately drinks intoxicating beverages. Thus bewildered, such unintelligent persons become
angry at the Supreme Lord, and due to their angry mood the Lord Himself appears angry and very
fearful. However, this is an illusion. When the wives of the serpent demon were agitated by the touch of
the Lord's lotus feet, due to shyness they could proceed no further in their worship of Him. Yet the Lord
remained unagitated by their touch, for He is equipoised in all circumstances. Therefore who will not
worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead?
21. Lord Siva continued: All the great sages accept the Lord as the source of creation, maintenance
and destruction, although He actually has nothing to do with these activities. Therefore the Lord is
called unlimited. Although the Lord in His incarnation as Sesa holds all the universes on His hoods,
each universe feels no heavier than a mustard seed to Him. Therefore, what person desiring perfection
will not worship the Lord?
22-23. From that Supreme Personality of Godhead appears Lord Brahma, whose body is made from
the total material energy, the reservoir of intelligence predominated by the passionate mode of material
nature. From Lord Brahma, I myself am born as a representation of false ego known as Rudra. By my
own power I create all the other demigods, the five elements and the senses. Therefore, I worship the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is greater than any of us and under whose control are situated
all the demigods, material elements and senses, and even Lord Brahma and I myself, like birds bound
by a rope. Only by the Lord's grace can we create, maintain and annihilate the material world. Therefore
I offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Being.
246 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. The illusory energy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead binds all of us conditioned souls to this
material world. Therefore, without being favored by Him, persons like us cannot understand how to get
out of that illusory energy. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the Lord, who is the cause of
creation and annihilation.
Chapter Eighteen The Prayers Offered to the Lord by the Residents of Jambudvipa
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Bhadrasrava, the son of Dharmaraja, rules the tract of land known as
Bhadrasva-varsa. Just as Lord Siva worships Sankarsana in Ilavrta-varsa, Bhadrasrava, accompanied
by his intimate servants and all the residents of the land, worships the plenary expansion of Vasudeva
known as Hayasirsa. Lord Hayasirsa is very dear to the devotees, and He is the director of all religious
principles. Fixed in the topmost trance, Bhadrasrava and his associates offer their respectful
obeisances to the Lord and chant the following prayers with careful pronunciation.
2. The ruler Bhadrasrava and his intimate associates utter the following prayer: We offer our respectful
obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the reservoir of all religious principles, who
cleanses the heart of the conditioned soul in this material world. Again and again we offer our respectful
obeisances unto Him.
3. Alas! How wonderful it is that the foolish materialist does not heed the great danger of impending
death! He knows that death will surely come, yet he is nevertheless callous and neglectful. If his father
dies, he wants to enjoy his father's property, and if his son dies, he wants to enjoy his son's
possessions as well. In either case, he heedlessly tries to enjoy material happiness with the acquired
money.
4. O unborn one, learned Vedic scholars who are advanced in spiritual knowledge certainly know that
this material world is perishable, as do other logicians and philosophers. In trance they realize the
factual position of this world, and they preach the truth as well. Yet even they are sometimes bewildered
by Your illusory energy. This is Your own wonderful pastime. Therefore, I can understand that Your
illusory energy is very wonderful, and I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
5. O Lord, although You are completely detached from the creation, maintenance and annihilation of
this material world and are not directly affected by these activities, they are all attributed to You. We do
not wonder at this, for Your inconceivable energies perfectly qualify You to be the cause of all causes.
You are the active principle in everything, although You are separate from everything. Thus we can
realize that everything is happening because of Your inconceivable energy.
6. At the end of the millennium, ignorance personified assumed the form of a demon, stole all the Vedas
and took them down to the planet of Rasatala. The Supreme Lord, however, in His form of Hayagriva
retrieved the Vedas and returned them to Lord Brahma when he begged for them. I offer my respectful
obeisances unto the Supreme Lord, whose determination never fails.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, Lord Nrsimhadeva resides in the tract of land known as
Hari-varsa. In the Seventh Canto of Srimad-Bhagavatam, I shall describe to you how Prahlada
Maharaja caused the Lord to assume the form of Nrsimhadeva. Prahlada Maharaja, the topmost
devotee of the Lord, is a reservoir of all the good qualities of great personalities. His character and
activities have delivered all the fallen members of his demoniac family. Lord Nrsimhadeva is very dear
to this exalted personality. Thus Prahlada Maharaja, along with his servants and all the denizens of
Hari-varsa, worships Lord Nrsimhadeva by chanting the following mantra.
8. I offer my respectful obeisances unto Lord Nrsimhadeva, the source of all power. O my Lord who
possesses nails and teeth just like thunderbolts, kindly vanquish our demonlike desires for fruitive
activity in this material world. Please appear in our hearts and drive away our ignorance so that by Your
mercy we may become fearless in the struggle for existence in this material world.
9. May there be good fortune throughout the universe, and may all envious persons be pacified. May all
living entities become calm by practicing bhakti-yoga, for by accepting devotional service they will think
of each other's welfare. Therefore let us all engage in the service of the supreme transcendence, Lord
Sri Krsna, and always remain absorbed in thought of Him.
10. My dear Lord, we pray that we may never feel attraction for the prison of family life, consisting of
home, wife, children, friends, bank balance, relatives and so on. If we do have some attachment, let it
be for devotees, whose only dear friend is Krsna. A person who is actually self-realized and who has
controlled his mind is perfectly satisfied with the bare necessities of life. He does not try to gratify his
senses. Such a person quickly advances in Krsna consciousness, whereas others, who are too
attached to material things, find advancement very difficult.
11. By associating with persons for whom the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Mukunda, is the all in
all, one can hear of His powerful activities and soon come to understand them. The activities of
Mukunda are so potent that simply by hearing of them one immediately associates with the Lord. For a
person who constantly and very eagerly hears narrations of the Lord's powerful activities, the Absolute
Truth, the Personality of Godhead in the form of sound vibrations, enters within his heart and cleanses it
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 247
of all contamination. On the other hand, although bathing in the Ganges diminishes bodily
contaminations and infections, this process and the process of visiting holy places can cleanse the
heart only after a long time. Therefore who is the sane man who will not associate with devotees to
quickly perfect his life?
12. All the demigods and their exalted qualities, such as religion, knowledge and renunciation, become
manifest in the body of one who has developed unalloyed devotion for the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Vasudeva. On the other hand, a person devoid of devotional service and engaged in material
activities has no good qualities. Even if he is adept at the practice of mystic yoga or the honest
endeavor of maintaining his family and relatives, he must be driven by his own mental speculations and
must engage in the service of the Lord's external energy. How can there be any good qualities in such a
man?
13. Just as aquatics always desire to remain in the vast mass of water, all conditioned living entities
naturally desire to remain in the vast existence of the Supreme Lord. Therefore if someone very great
by material calculations fails to take shelter of the Supreme Soul but instead becomes attached to
material household life, his greatness is like that of a young, low-class couple. One who is too attached
to material life loses all good spiritual qualities.
14. Therefore, O demons, give up the so-called happiness of family life and simply take shelter of the
lotus feet of Lord Nrsimhadeva, which are the actual shelter of fearlessness. Entanglement in family life
is the root cause of material attachment, indefatigable desires, moroseness, anger, despair, fear and
the desire for false prestige, all of which result in the repetition of birth and death.
15. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: In the tract of land called Ketumala-varsa, Lord Visnu lives in the
form of Karadeva, only for the satisfaction of His devotees. These include Laksmiji [the goddess of
fortune], the Prajapati Samvatsara and all of Samvatsara's sons and daughters. The daughters of
Prajapati are considered the controlling deities of the nights, and his sons are considered the controllers
of the days. The Prajapati's offspring number 36,000, one for each day and each night in the lifetime of
a human being. At the end of each year, the Prajapati's daughters become very agitated upon seeing
the extremely effulgent disc of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and thus they all suffer
miscarriages.
16. In Ketumala-varsa, Lord Kamadeva [Pradyumna] moves very graciously. His mild smile is very
beautiful, and when He increases the beauty of His face by slightly raising His eyebrows and glancing
playfully, He pleases the goddess of fortune. Thus He enjoys His transcendental senses.
17. Accompanied during the daytime by the sons of the Prajapati [the predominating deities of the days]
and accompanied at night by his daughters [the deities of the nights], Laksmidevi worships the Lord
during the period known as the Samvatsara in His most merciful form as Kamadeva. Fully absorbed in
devotional service, she chants the following mantras.
18. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Hrsikesa,
the controller of all my senses and the origin of everything. As the supreme master of all bodily, mental
and intellectual activities, He is the only enjoyer of their results. The five sense objects and eleven
senses, including the mind, are His partial manifestations. He supplies all the necessities of life, which
are His energy and thus nondifferent from Him, and He is the cause of everyone's bodily and mental
prowess, which is also nondifferent from Him. Indeed, He is the husband and provider of necessities for
all living entities. The purpose of all the Vedas is to worship Him. Therefore let us all offer Him our
respectful obeisances. May He always be favorable toward us in this life and the next.
19. My dear Lord, You are certainly the fully independent master of all the senses. Therefore all women
who worship You by strictly observing vows because they wish to acquire a husband to satisfy their
senses are surely under illusion. They do not know that such a husband cannot actually give protection
to them or their children. Nor can he protect their wealth or duration of life, for he himself is dependent
on time, fruitive results and the modes of nature, which are all subordinate to You.
20. He alone who is never afraid but who, on the contrary, gives complete shelter to all fearful persons
can actually become a husband and protector. Therefore, my Lord, you are the only husband, and no
one else can claim this position. If you were not the only husband, You would be afraid of others.
Therefore persons learned in all Vedic literature accept only Your Lordship as everyone's master, and
they think no one else a better husband and protector than You.
21. My dear Lord, You automatically fulfill all the desires of a woman who worships Your lotus feet in
pure love. However, if a woman worships Your lotus feet for a particular purpose, You also quickly fulfill
her desires, but in the end she becomes broken-hearted and laments. Therefore one need not worship
Your lotus feet for some material benefit.
22. O supreme unconquerable Lord, when they become absorbed in thoughts of material enjoyment,
Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, as well as other demigods and demons, undergo severe penances and
austerities to receive my benedictions. But I do not favor anyone, however great he may be; unless he
248 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
is always engaged in the service of Your lotus feet. Because I always keep You within my heart, I
cannot favor anyone but a devotee.
23. O infallible one, Your lotus palm is the source of all benediction. Therefore Your pure devotees
worship it, and You very mercifully place Your hand on their heads. I wish that You may also place Your
hand on My head, for although You already bear my insignia of golden streaks on Your chest, I regard
this honor as merely a kind of false prestige for me. You show Your real mercy to Your devotees, not to
me. Of course, You are the supreme absolute controller, and no one can understand Your motives.
24. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: In Ramyaka-varsa, where Vaivasvata Manu rules, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead appeared as Lord Matsya at the end of the last era [the Caksusa-manvantara].
Vaivasvata Manu now worships Lord Matsya in pure devotional service and chants the following
mantra.
25. I offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is pure
transcendence. He is the origin of all life, bodily strength, mental power and sensory ability. Known as
Matsyavatara, the gigantic fish incarnation, He appears first among all the incarnations. Again I offer my
obeisances unto Him.
26. My dear Lord, just as a puppeteer controls his dancing dolls and a husband controls his wife, Your
Lordship controls all the living entities in the universe, such as the brahmanas, ksatriyas, vaisyas and
sudras. Although You are in everyone's heart as the supreme witness and commander and are outside
everyone as well, the so-called leaders of societies, communities and countries cannot realize You.
Only those who hear the vibration of the Vedic mantras can appreciate You.
27. My Lord, from the great leaders of the universe, such as Lord Brahma and other demigods, down to
the political leaders of this world, all are envious of Your authority. Without Your help, however, they
could neither separately nor concertedly maintain the innumerable living entities within the universe.
You are actually the only maintainer of all human beings, of animals like cows and asses, and of plants,
reptiles, birds, mountains and whatever else is visible within this material world.
28. O almighty Lord, at the end of the millennium this planet earth, which is the source of all kinds of
herbs, drugs and trees, was inundated by water and drowned beneath the devastating waves. At that
time, You protected me along with the earth and roamed the sea with great speed. O unborn one, You
are the actual maintainer of the entire universal creation, and therefore You are the cause of all living
entities. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
29. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: In Hiranmaya-varsa, the Supreme Lord, Visnu, lives in the form of a
tortoise [kurma-sarira]. This most dear and beautiful form is always worshiped there in devotional
service by Aryama, the chief resident of Hiranmaya-varsa, along with the other inhabitants of that land.
They chant the following hymns.
30. O my Lord, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, who have assumed the form of a tortoise.
You are the reservoir of all transcendental qualities, and being entirely untinged by matter, You are
perfectly situated in pure goodness. You move here and there in the water, but no one can discern Your
position. Therefore I offer my respectful obeisances unto You. Because of Your transcendental position,
You are not limited by past, present and future. You are present everywhere as the shelter of all things,
and therefore I offer my respectful obeisances unto You again and again.
31. My dear Lord, this visible cosmic manifestation is a demonstration of Your own creative energy.
Since the countless varieties of forms within this cosmic manifestation are simply a display of Your
external energy, this virata-rupa [universal body] is not Your real form. Except for a devotee in
transcendental consciousness, no one can perceive Your actual form. Therefore I offer my respectful
obeisances unto You.
32. My dear Lord, You manifest Your different energies in countless forms: as living entities born from
wombs, from eggs and from perspiration; as plants and trees that grow out of the earth; as all living
entities, both moving and standing, including the demigods, the learned sages and the pitas; as outer
space, as the higher planetary system containing the heavenly planets, and as the planet earth with its
hills, rivers, seas, oceans and islands. Indeed, all the stars and planets are simply manifestations of
Your different energies, but originally You are one without a second. Therefore there is nothing beyond
You. This entire cosmic manifestation is therefore not false but is simply a temporary manifestation of
Your inconceivable energy.
33. O my Lord, Your name, form and bodily features are expanded in countless forms. No one can
determine exactly how many forms exist, yet You Yourself, in Your incarnation as the learned scholar
Kapiladeva, have analyzed the cosmic manifestation as containing twenty-four elements. Therefore if
one is interested in Sankhya philosophy, by which one can enumerate the different truths, he must hear
it from You. Unfortunately, nondevotees simply count the different elements and remain ignorant of
Your actual form. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 249
34. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Dear King, the Supreme Lord in His boar incarnation, who accepts all
sacrificial offerings, lives in the northern part of Jambudvipa. There, in the tract of land known as
Uttarakuru-varsa, mother earth and all the other inhabitants worship Him with unfailing devotional
service by repeatedly chanting the following Upanisad mantra.
35. O Lord, we offer our respectful obeisances unto You as the gigantic person. Simply by chanting
mantras, we shall be able to understand You fully. You are yajna [sacrifice], and You are the kratu
[ritual]. Therefore all the ritualistic ceremonies of sacrifice are part of Your transcendental body, and You
are the only enjoyer of all sacrifices. Your form is composed of transcendental goodness. You are
known as tri-yuga because in Kali-yuga You appeared as a concealed incarnation and because You
always fully possess the three pairs of opulences.
36. By manipulating a fire-generating stick, great saints and sages can bring forth the fire lying dormant
within wood. In the same way, O Lord, those expert in understanding the Absolute Truth try to see You
in everything--even in their own bodies. Yet you remain concealed. You are not to be understood by
indirect processes involving mental or physical activities. Because You are self-manifested, only when
You see that a person is wholeheartedly engaged in searching for You do You reveal Yourself.
Therefore I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
37. The objects of material enjoyment [sound, form, taste, touch and smell], the activities of the senses,
the controllers of sensory activities [the demigods], the body, eternal time and egotism are all creations
of Your material energy. Those whose intelligence has become fixed by perfect execution of mystic
yoga can see that all these elements result from the actions of Your external energy. They can also see
Your transcendental form as Supersoul in the background of everything. Therefore I repeatedly offer my
respectful obeisances unto You.
38. O Lord, You do not desire the creation, maintenance or annihilation of this material world, but You
perform these activities for the conditioned souls by Your creative energy. Exactly as a piece of iron
moves under the influence of a lodestone, inert matter moves when You glance over the total material
energy.
39. My Lord, as the original boar within this universe, You fought and killed the great demon
Hiranyaksa. Then You lifted me [the earth] from the Garbhodaka Ocean on the end of Your tusk,
exactly as a sporting elephant plucks a lotus flower from the water. I bow down before You.
Chapter Nineteen A Description of the Island of Jambudvipa
1. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, in Kimpurusa-varsa the great devotee Hanuman is
always engaged with the inhabitants of that land in devotional service to Lord Ramacandra, the elder
brother of Laksmana and dear husband of Sitadevi.
2. A host of Gandharvas is always engaged in chanting the glories of Lord Ramacandra. That chanting
is always extremely auspicious. Hanumanji and Arstisena, the chief person in Kimpurusa-varsa,
constantly hear those glories with complete attention. Hanuman chants the following mantras.
3. Let me please Your Lordship by chanting the bija-mantra omkara. I wish to offer my respectful
obeisances unto the Personality of Godhead, who is the best among the most highly elevated
personalities. Your Lordship is the reservoir of all the good qualities of Aryans, people who are
advanced. Your character and behavior are always consistent, and You always control Your senses
and mind. Acting just like an ordinary human being, You exhibit exemplary character to teach others
how to behave. There is a touchstone that can be used to examine the quality of gold, but You are like a
touchstone that can verify all good qualities. You are worshiped by brahmanas who are the foremost of
all devotees. You, the Supreme Person, are the King of kings, and therefore I offer my respectful
obeisances unto You.
4. The Lord, whose pure form [sac-cid-ananda-vigraha] is uncontaminated by the modes of material
nature, can be perceived by pure consciousness. In the Vedanta He is described as being one without
a second. Because of His spiritual potency, He is untouched by the contamination of material nature,
and because He is not subjected to material vision, He is known as transcendental. He has no material
activities, nor has He a material form or name. Only in pure consciousness, Krsna consciousness, can
one perceive the transcendental form of the Lord. Let us be firmly fixed at the lotus feet of Lord
Ramacandra, and let us offer our respectful obeisances unto those transcendental lotus feet.
5. It was ordained that Ravana, chief of the Raksasas, could not be killed by anyone but a man, and for
this reason Lord Ramacandra, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, appeared in the form of a human
being. Lord Ramacandra's mission, however, was not only to kill Ravana but also to teach mortal
beings that material happiness centered around sex life or centered around one's wife is the cause of
many miseries. He is the self-sufficient Supreme Personality of Godhead, and nothing is lamentable for
Him. Therefore why else could He be subjected to tribulations by the kidnapping of mother Sita?
6. Since Lord Sri Ramacandra is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, He is not attached to
anything in this material world. He is the most beloved Supersoul of all self-realized souls, and He is
250 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
their very intimate friend. He is full of all opulences. Therefore He could not possibly have suffered
because of separation from His wife, nor could He have given up His wife and Laksmana, His younger
brother. To give up either would have been absolutely impossible.
7. One cannot establish a friendship with the Supreme Lord Ramacandra on the basis of material
qualities such as one's birth in an aristocratic family, one's personal beauty, one's eloquence, one's
sharp intelligence or one's superior race or nation. None of these qualifications is actually a prerequisite
for friendship with Lord Sri Ramacandra. Otherwise how is it possible that although we uncivilized
inhabitants of the forest have not taken noble births, although we have no physical beauty and although
we cannot speak like gentlemen, Lord Ramacandra has nevertheless accepted us as friends?
8. Therefore, whether one is a demigod or a demon, a man or a creature other than man, such as a
beast or bird, everyone should worship Lord Ramacandra, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
appears on this earth just like a human being. There is no need of great austerities or penances to
worship the Lord, for Me accepts even a small service offered by His devotee. Thus He is satisfied, and
as soon as He is satisfied, the devotee is successful. Indeed, Lord Sri Ramacandra brought all the
devotees of Ayodhya back home, back to Godhead [Vaikuntha].
9. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] The glories of the Supreme Personality of Godhead are
inconceivable. He has appeared in the form of Nara-Narayana in the land of Bharata-varsa, at the place
known as Badarikasrama, to favor His devotees by teaching them religion, knowledge, renunciation,
spiritual power, sense control and freedom from false ego. He is advanced in the opulence of spiritual
assets, and He engages in executing austerity until the end of this millennium. This is the process of
self-realization.
10. In his own book, known as Narada Pancaratra, Bhagavan Narada has very vividly described how to
work to achieve the ultimate goal of life--devotion--through knowledge and through execution of the
mystic yoga system. He has also described the glories of the Lord, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. The great sage Narada instructed the tenets of this transcendental literature to Savarni Manu
in order to teach those inhabitants of Bharata-varsa who strictly follow the principles of varnasrama-
dharma how to achieve the devotional service of the Lord. Thus Narada Muni, along with the other
inhabitants of Bharata-varsa, always engages in the service of Nara-Narayana, and he chants as
follows.
11. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto Nara-Narayana, the best of all saintly persons, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. He is the most self-controlled and self-realized, He is free from false
prestige, and He is the asset of persons who have no material possessions. He is the spiritual master of
all paramahamsas, who are the most exalted human beings, and He is the master of the self-realized.
Let me offer my repeated obeisances at His lotus feet.
12. Narada, the most powerful saintly sage, also worships Nara-Narayana by chanting the following
mantra: The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the master of the creation, maintenance and
annihilation of this visible cosmic manifestation, yet He is completely free from false prestige. Although
to the foolish He appears to have accepted a material body like us, He is unaffected by bodily
tribulations like hunger, thirst and fatigue. Although He is the witness who sees everything, His senses
are unpolluted by the objects He sees. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto that unattached,
pure witness of the world, the Supreme Soul, the Personality of Godhead.
13. O my Lord, master of all mystic yoga, this is the explanation of the yogic process spoken of by Lord
Brahma [Hiranyagarbha], who is self-realized. At the time of death, all yogis give up the material body
with full detachment simply by placing their minds at Your lotus feet. That is the perfection of yoga.
14. Materialists are generally very attached to their present bodily comforts and to the bodily comforts
they expect in the future. Therefore they are always absorbed in thoughts of their wives, children and
wealth and are afraid of giving up their bodies, which are full of stool and urine. If a person engaged in
Krsna consciousness, however, is also afraid of giving up his body, what is the use of his having
labored to study the sastras? It was simply a waste of time.
15. Therefore, O Lord, O Transcendence, kindly help us by giving us the power to execute bhakti-yoga
so that we can control our restless minds and fix them upon You. We are all infected by Your illusory
energy; therefore we are very attached to the body, which is full of stool and urine, and to anything
related with the body. Except for devotional service, there is no way to give up this attachment.
Therefore kindly bestow upon us this benediction.
16. In the tract of land known as Bharata-varsa, as in Ilavrta-varsa, there are many mountains and
rivers. Some of the mountains are known as Malaya, Mangala-prastha, Mainaka, Trikuta, Rsabha,
Kutaka, Kollaka, Sabya, Devagiri, Rsyamuka, Sri-saila, Venkata, Mahendra, Varidhara, Vindhya,
Suktiman, Rksagiri, Pariyatra, Drona, Citrakuta, Govardhana, Raivataka, Kakubha, Nila, Gokamukha,
Indrakila and Kamagiri. Besides these, there are many other hills, with many large and small rivers
flowing from their slopes.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 251
17-18. Two of the rivers--the Brahmaputra and the Sona--are called nadas, or main rivers. These are
other great rivers that are very prominent: Candravasa, Tamraparni, Avatoda, Krtamala, Vaihayasi,
Kaveri, Veni, Payasvini, Sarkaravarta, Tungabhadra, Krsnavenya, Bhimarathi, Godavari, Nirvindhya,
Payosni, Tapi, Reva, Surasa, Narmada, Carmanvati, Mahanadi, Vedasmrti, Rsikulya, Trisama, Kausiki,
Mandakini, Yamuna, Sarasvati, Drsadvati, Gomati, Sarayu, Rodhasvati, Saptavati, Susoma, Satadru,
Candrabhaga, Marudvrdha, Vitasta, Asikni and Visva. The inhabitants of Bharata-varsa are purified
because they always remember these rivers. Sometimes they chant the names of these rivers as
mantras, and sometimes they go directly to the rivers to touch them and bathe in them. Thus the
inhabitants of Bharata-varsa become purified.
19. The people who take birth in this tract of land are divided according to the qualities of material
nature--the modes of goodness [sattva-guna], passion [rajo-guna], and ignorance [tamo-guna]. Some of
them are born as exalted personalities, some are ordinary human beings, and some are extremely
abominable, for in Bharata-varsa one takes birth exactly according to one's past karma. If one's position
is ascertained by a bona fide spiritual master and one is properly trained to engage in the service of
Lord Visnu according to the four social divisions [brahmana, ksatriya, vaisya and sudra] and the four
spiritual divisions [brahmacari, grhastha, vanaprastha and sannyasa], one's life becomes perfect.
20. After many, many births, when the results of one's pious activities mature, one gets an opportunity
to associate with pure devotees. Then one is able to cut the knot of bondage to ignorance, which bound
him because of varied fruitive activities. As a result of associating with devotees, one gradually renders
service to Lord Vasudeva, who is transcendental, free from attachment to the material world, beyond
the mind and words, and independent of everything else. That bhakti-yoga, devotional service to Lord
Vasudeva, is the real path of liberation.
21. Since the human form of life is the sublime position for spiritual realization, all the demigods in
heaven speak in this way: Mow wonderful it is for these human beings to have been born in the land of
Bharata-varsa. They must have executed pious acts of austerity in the past, or the Supreme Personality
of Godhead Himself must have been pleased with them. Otherwise, how could they engage in
devotional service in so many ways? We demigods can only aspire to achieve human births in Bharata-
varsa to execute devotional service, but these human beings are already engaged there.
22. The demigods continue: After performing the very difficult tasks of executing Vedic ritualistic
sacrifices, undergoing austerities, observing vows and giving charity, we have achieved this position as
inhabitants of the heavenly planets. But what is the value of this achievement? Here we are certainly
very engaged in material sense gratification, and therefore we can hardly remember the lotus feet of
Lord Narayana. Indeed, because of our excessive sense gratification, we have almost forgotten His
lotus feet.
23. A short life in the land of Bharata-varsa is preferable to a life achieved in Brahmaloka for millions
and billions of years because even if one is elevated to Brahmaloka, he must return to repeated birth
and death. Although life in Bharata-varsa, in a lower planetary system, is very short, one who lives there
can elevate himself to full Krsna consciousness and achieve the highest perfection, even in this short
life, by fully surrendering unto the lotus feet of the Lord. Thus one attains Vaikunthaloka, where there is
neither anxiety nor repeated birth in a material body.
24. An intelligent person does not take interest in a place, even in the topmost planetary system, if the
pure Ganges of topics concerning the Supreme Lord's activities does not flow there, if there are not
devotees engaged in service on the banks of such a river of piety, or if there are no festivals of
sankirtana-yajna to satisfy the Lord [especially since sankirtana-yajna is recommended in this age].
25. Bharata-varsa offers the proper land and circumstances in which to execute devotional service,
which can free one from the results of jnana and karma. If one obtains a human body in the land of
Bharata-varsa, with clear sensory organs with which to execute the sankirtana-yajna, but in spite of this
opportunity he does not take to devotional service, he is certainly like liberated forest animals and birds
that are careless and are therefore again bound by a hunter.
26. In India [Bharata-varsa], there are many worshipers of the demigods, the various officials appointed
by the Supreme Lord, such as Indra, Candra and Surya, all of whom are worshiped differently. The
worshipers offer the demigods their oblations, considering the demigods part and parcel of the whole,
the Supreme Lord. Therefore the Supreme Personality of Godhead accepts these offerings and
gradually raises the worshipers to the real standard of devotional service by fulfilling their desires and
aspirations. Because the Lord is complete, He offers the worshipers the benedictions they desire even if
they worship only part of His transcendental body.
27. The Supreme Personality of Godhead fulfills the material desires of a devotee who approaches Him
with such motives, but He does not bestow benedictions upon the devotee that will cause him to
demand more benedictions again. However, the Lord willingly gives the devotee shelter at His own
252 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
lotus feet, even though such a person does not aspire for it, and that shelter satisfies all his desires.
That is the Supreme Personality's special mercy.
28. We are now living in the heavenly planets, undoubtedly as a result of our having performed
ritualistic ceremonies, pious activities and yajnas and having studied the Vedas. However, our lives
here will one day be finished. We pray that at that time, if any merit remains from our pious activities, we
may again take birth in Bharata-varsa as human beings able to remember the lotus feet of the Lord.
The Lord is so kind that He personally comes to the land of Bharata-varsa and expands the good
fortune of its people.
29-30. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, in the opinion of some learned scholars, eight
smaller islands surround Jambudvipa. When the sons of Maharaja Sagara were searching all over the
world for their lost horse, they dug up the earth, and in this way eight adjoining islands came into
existence. The names of these islands are Svarnaprastha, Candrasukla, Avartana, Ramanaka,
Mandara-harina, Pancajanya, Simhala and Lanka.
31. My dear King Pariksit, O best of the descendants of Bharata Maharaja, I have thus described to
you, as I myself have been instructed, the island of Bharata-varsa and its adjoining islands. These are
the islands that constitute Jambudvipa.
Chapter Twenty Studying the Structure of the Universe
1. The great sage Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hereafter I shall describe the dimensions, characteristics
and forms of the six islands beginning with the island of Plaksa.
2. As Sumeru Mountain is surrounded by Jambudvipa, Jambudvipa is also surrounded by an ocean of
salt water. The breadth of Jambudvipa is 100,000 yojanas [800,000 miles], and the breadth of the
saltwater ocean is the same. As a moat around a fort is sometimes surrounded by gardenlike forest, the
saltwater ocean surrounding Jambudvipa is itself surrounded by Plaksadvipa. The breadth of
Plaksadvipa is twice that of the saltwater ocean--in other words 260,000 yojanas [1,600,000 miles]. On
Plaksadvipa there is a tree shining like gold and as tall as the jambu tree on Jambudvipa. At its root is a
fire with seven flames. It is because this tree is a plaksa tree that the island is called Plaksadvipa.
Plaksadvipa was governed by Idhmajihva, one of the sons of Maharaja Priyavrata. He endowed the
seven islands with the names of his seven sons, divided the islands among the sons, and then retired
from active life to engage in the devotional service of the Lord.
3-4. The seven islands [varsas] are named according to the names of those seven sons--Siva, Yavasa,
Subhadra, Santa, Ksema, Amrta and Abhaya. In those seven tracts of land, there are seven mountains
and seven rivers. The mountains are named Manikuta, Vajrakuta, Indrasena, Jyotisman, Suparna,
Hiranyasthiva and Meghamala, and the rivers are named Aruna, Nrmna, Angirasi, Savitri, Suptabhata,
Rtambhara and Satyambhara. One can immediately be free from material contamination by touching or
bathing in those rivers, and the four castes of people who live in Plaksadvipa--the Hamsas, Patangas,
Urdhvayanas and Satyangas--purify themselves in that way. The inhabitants of Plaksadvipa live for one
thousand years. They are beautiful like the demigods, and they also beget children like the demigods.
By completely performing the ritualistic ceremonies mentioned in the Vedas and by worshiping the
Supreme Personality of Godhead as represented by the sun-god, they attain the sun, which is a
heavenly planet.
5. [This is the mantra by which the inhabitants of Plaksadvipa worship the Supreme Lord.] Let us take
shelter of the sun-god, who is a reflection of Lord Visnu, the all-expanding Supreme Personality of
Godhead, the oldest of all persons. Visnu is the only worshipable Lord. He is the Vedas, He is religion,
and He is the origin of all auspicious and inauspicious results.
6. O King, longevity, sensory prowess, physical and mental strength, intelligence and bravery are
naturally and equally manifested in all the inhabitants of the five islands headed by Plaksadvipa.
7. Plaksadvipa is surrounded by an ocean of sugarcane juice, equal in breadth to the island itself.
Similarly, there is then another island--Salmalidvipa--twice as broad as Plaksadvipa [400,000 yojanas,
or 3,200,000 miles] and surrounded by an equally broad body of water called Surasagara, the ocean
that tastes like liquor.
8. On Salmalidvipa there is a salmali tree, from which the island takes its name. That tree is as broad
and tall as the plaksa tree--in other words 100 yojanas [800 miles] broad and 1,100 yojanas [8,800
miles] tall. Learned scholars say that this gigantic tree is the residence of Garuda, the king of all birds
and carrier of Lord Visnu. In that tree, Garuda offers Lord Visnu his Vedic prayers.
9. The son of Maharaja Priyavrata named Yajnabahu, the master of Salmalidvipa, divided the island
into seven tracts of land, which he gave to his seven sons. The names of those divisions, which
correspond to the names of the sons, are Surocana, Saumanasya, Ramanaka, Deva-varsa,
Paribhadra, Apyayana and Avijnata.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 253
10. In those tracts of land there are seven mountains--Svarasa, Sata-srnga, Vamadeva, Kunda,
Mukunda, Puspa-varsa and Sahasra-sruti. There are also seven rivers--Anumati, Sinivali, Sarasvati,
Kuhu, Rajani, Nanda and Raka. They are still existing.
11. Strictly following the cult of varnasrama-dhamna, the inhabitants of those islands, who are known as
Srutidharas, Viryadharas, Vasundharas and Isandharas, all worship the expansion of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead named Soma, the moon-god.
12. [The inhabitants of Salmalidvipa worship the demigod of the moon in the following words.] By his
own rays, the moon-god has divided the month into two fortnights, known as sukla and krsna, for the
distribution of food grains to the pitas and the demigods. The demigod of the moon is he who divides
time, and he is the king of all the residents of the universe. We therefore pray that he may remain our
king and guide, and we offer him our respectful obeisances.
13. Outside the ocean of liquor is another island, known as Kusadvipa, which is 800,000 yojanas
[6,400,000 miles] wide, twice as wide as the ocean of liquor. As Salmalidvipa is surrounded by a liquor
ocean, Kusadvipa is surrounded by an ocean of liquid ghee as broad as the island itself. On Kusadvipa
there are clumps of kusa grass, from which the island takes its name. This kusa grass, which was
created by the demigods by the will of the Supreme Lord, appears like a second form of fire, but with
very mild and pleasing flames. Its young shoots illuminate all directions.
14. O King, another son of Maharaja Priyavrata, Hiranyareta, was the king of this island. He divided it
into seven parts, which he delivered to his seven sons according to the rights of inheritance. The King
then retired from family life to engage in austerities. The names of those sons are Vasu, Vasudana,
Krdharuci, Stutyavrata, Nabhigupta, Vivikta and Vamadeva.
15. In those seven islands there are seven boundary mountains, known as Cakra, Catuh-srnga, Kapila,
Citrakuta, Devanika, Urdhvaroma and Dravina. There are also seven rivers, known as Ramakulya,
Madhukulya, Mitravinda, Srutavinda, Devagarbha, Ghrtacyuta and Mantramala.
16. The inhabitants of the island of Kusadvipa are celebrated as the Kusalas, Kovidas, Abhiyuktas and
Kulakas. They are like the brahmanas, ksatriyas, vaisyas and sudras respectively. By bathing in the
waters of those rivers, they all become purified. They are expert in performing ritualistic ceremonies
according to the orders of the Vedic scriptures. Thus they worship the Lord in His aspect as the
demigod of fire.
17. [This is the mantra by which the inhabitants of Kusadvipa worship the fire-god.] O fire-god, you are a
part of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, and you carry to Him all the offerings of sacrifices.
Therefore we request you to offer to the Supreme Personality of Godhead the yajnic ingredients we are
offering the demigods, for the Lord is the real enjoyer.
18. Outside the ocean of clarified butter is another island, known as Krauncadvipa, which has a width of
1,600,000 yojanas [12,800,000 miles], twice the width of the ocean of clarified butter. As Kusadvipa is
surrounded by an ocean of clarified butter, Krauncadvipa is surrounded by an ocean of milk as broad as
the island itself. On Krauncadvipa there is a great mountain known as Kraunca, from which the island
takes its name.
19. Although the vegetables living on the slopes of Mount Kraunca were attacked and devastated by
the weapons of Karttikeya, the mountain has become fearless because it is always bathed on all sides
by the ocean of milk and protected by Varunadeva.
20. The ruler of this island was another son of Maharaja Priyavrata. His name was Ghrtaprstha, and he
was a very learned scholar. He also divided his own island among his seven sons. After dividing the
island into seven parts, named according to the names of his sons, Ghrtaprstha Maharaja completely
retired from family life and took shelter at the lotus feet of the Lord, the soul of all souls, who has all
auspicious qualities. Thus he attained perfection.
21. The sons of Maharaja Ghrtaprstha were named Ama, Madhuruha, Meghaprstha, Sudhama,
Bhrajistha, Lohitarna and Vanaspati. In their island there are seven mountains, which indicate the
boundaries of the seven tracts of land, and there are also seven rivers. The mountains are named
Sukla, Vardhamana, Bhojana, Upabarhina, Nanda, Nandana and Sarvatobhadra. The rivers are named
Abhaya, Amrtaugha, Aryaka, Tirthavati, Rupavati, Pavitravati and Sukla.
22. The inhabitants of Krauncadvipa are divided into four castes, called the Purusas, Rabhas, Dravinas
and Devakas. Using the waters of those sanctified rivers, they worship the Supreme Personality of
Godhead by offering a palmful of water at the lotus feet of Varuna, the demigod who has a form of
water.
23. [The inhabitants of Krauncadvipa worship with this mantra.] O water of the rivers, you have obtained
energy from the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore you purify the three planetary systems,
known as Bhuloka, Bhuvarloka and Svarloka. By your constitutional nature, you take away sins, and
that is why we are touching you. Kindly continue to purify us.
254 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. Outside the ocean of milk is another island, Sakadvipa, which has a width of 3,200,000 yojanas
[25,600,000 miles]. As Krauncadvipa is surrounded by its own ocean of milk, Sakadvipa is surrounded
by an ocean of churned yogurt as broad as the island itself. In Sakadvipa there is a big saka tree, from
which the island takes its name. This tree is very fragrant. Indeed, it lends its scent to the entire island.
25. The master of this island, also one of the sons of Priyavrata, was known as Medhatithi. He also
divided his island into seven sections, named according to the names of his own sons, whom he made
the kings of that island. The names of those sons are Purojava, Manojava, Pavamana, Dhumranika,
Citrarepha, Bahurupa and Visvadhara. After dividing the island and situating his sons as its rulers,
Medhatithi personally retired, and to fix his mind completely upon the lotus feet of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, he entered a forest suitable for meditation.
26. For these lands also, there are seven boundary mountains and seven rivers. The mountains are
Isana, Urusrnga, Balabhadra, Satakesara, Sahasra-srota, Devapala and Mahanasa. The rivers are
Anagha, Ayurda, Ubhayasprsti, Aparajita, Pancapadi, Sahasra-sruti and Nijadhrti.
27. The inhabitants of those islands are also divided into four castes--Rtavrata, Satyavrata, Danavrata
and Anuvrata--which exactly resemble brahmana, ksatriya, vaisya and sudra. They practice pranayama
and mystic yoga, and in trance they worship the Supreme Lord in the form of Vayu.
28. [The inhabitants of Sakadvipa worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead in the form of Vayu in
the following words.] O Supreme Person, situated as the Supersoul within the body, You direct the
various actions of the different airs, such as prana, and thus You maintain all living entities. O Lord, O
Supersoul of everyone, O controller of the cosmic manifestation under whom everything exists, may
You protect us from all dangers.
29. Outside the ocean of yogurt is another island, known as Puskaradvipa, which is 6,400,000 yojanas
[51,200,000 miles] wide, twice as wide as the ocean of yogurt. It is surrounded by an ocean of very
tasteful water as broad as the island itself. On Puskaradvipa there is a great lotus flower with
100,000,000 pure golden petals, as effulgent as the flames of fire. That lotus flower is considered the
sitting place of Lord Brahma, who is the most powerful living being and who is therefore sometimes
called bhagavan.
30. In the middle of that island is a great mountain named Manasottara, which forms the boundary
between the inner side and the outer side of the island. Its breadth and height are 10,000 yojanas
[80,000 miles]. On that mountain, in the four directions, are the residential quarters of demigods such as
Indra. In the chariot of the sun-god, the sun travels on the top of the mountain in an orbit called the
Samvatsara, encircling Mount Meru. The sun's path on the northern side is called Uttarayana, and its
path on the southern side is called Daksinayana. One side represents a day for the demigods, and the
other represents their night.
31. The ruler of this island, the son of Maharaja Priyavrata named Vitihotra, had two sons named
Ramanaka and Dhataki. He granted the two sides of the island to these two sons and then personally
engaged himself in activities for the sake of the Supreme Personality of Godhead like his elder brother
Medhatithi.
32. For the fulfillment of material desires, the inhabitants of this tract of land worship the Supreme
Personality of Godhead as represented by Lord Brahma. They offer prayers to the Lord as follows.
33. Lord Brahma is known as karma-maya, the form of ritualistic ceremonies, because by performing
ritualistic ceremonies one may attain his position and because the Vedic ritualistic hymns become
manifest from him. He is devoted to the Supreme Personality of Godhead without deviation, and
therefore in one sense he is not different from the Lord. Nevertheless, he should be worshiped not as
the monists worship him, but in duality. One should always remain a servitor of the Supreme Lord, the
supreme worshipable Deity. We therefore offer our respectful obeisances unto Lord Brahma, the form
of manifest Vedic knowledge.
34. Thereafter, beyond the ocean of sweet water and fully surrounding it, is a mountain named
Lokaloka, which divides the countries that are full of sunlight from those not lit by the sun.
35. Beyond the ocean of sweet water is a tract of land as broad as the area between the middle of
Mount Sumeru and the boundary of Manasottara Mountain. In that tract of land there are many living
beings. Beyond it, extending to Lokaloka Mountain, is another land, which is made of gold. Because of
its golden surface, it reflects light like the surface of a mirror, and any physical article that falls on that
land can never be perceived again. All living entities, therefore, have abandoned that golden land.
36. Between the lands inhabited by living entities and those that are uninhabited stands the great
mountain which separates the two and which is therefore celebrated as Lokaloka.
37. By the supreme will of Krsna, the mountain known as Lokaloka has been installed as the outer
border of the three worlds--Bhurloka, Bhuvarloka and Svarloka--to control the rays of the sun
throughout the universe. All the luminaries, from the sun up to Dhruvaloka, distribute their rays
throughout the three worlds, but only within the boundary formed by this mountain. Because it is
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 255
extremely high, extending even higher than Dhruvaloka, it blocks the rays of the luminaries, which
therefore can never extend beyond it.
38. Learned scholars who are free from mistakes, illusions and propensities to cheat have thus
described the planetary systems and their particular symptoms, measurements and locations. With
great deliberation, they have established the truth that the distance between Sumeru and the mountain
known as Lokaloka is one fourth of the diameter of the universe--or, in other words, 125,000,000
yojanas [1 billion miles].
39. On the top of Lokaloka Mountain are the four gaja-patis, the best of elephants, which were
established in the four directions by Lord Brahma, the supreme spiritual master of the entire universe.
The names of those elephants are Rsabha, Puskaracuda, Vamana and Aparajita. They are responsible
for maintaining the planetary systems of the universe.
40. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the master of all transcendental opulences and the master
of the spiritual sky. He is the Supreme Person, Bhagavan, the Supersoul of everyone. The demigods,
led by Indra, the King of heaven, are entrusted with seeing to the affairs of the material world. To benefit
all living beings in all the varied planets and to increase the power of those elephants and of the
demigods, the Lord manifests Himself on top of that mountain in a spiritual body, uncontaminated by
the modes of material nature. Surrounded by His personal expansions and assistants like Visvaksena,
He exhibits all His perfect opulences, such as religion and knowledge, and His mystic powers such as
anima, laghima and mahima. He is beautifully situated, and He is decorated by the different weapons in
His four hands.
41. The various forms of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, such as Narayana and Visnu, are
beautifully decorated with different weapons. The Lord exhibits those forms to maintain all the varied
planets created by His personal potency, yogamaya.
42. My dear King, outside Lokaloka Mountain is the tract of land known as Aloka-varsa, which extends
for the same breadth as the area within the mountain--in other words, 125,000,000 yojanas [one billion
miles]. Beyond Aloka-varsa is the destination of those who aspire for liberation from the material world.
It is beyond the jurisdiction of the material modes of nature, and therefore it is completely pure. Lord
Krsna took Arjuna through this place to bring back the sons of the brahmana.
43. The sun is situated [vertically] in the middle of the universe, in the area between Bhurloka and
Bhuvarloka, which is called antariksa, outer space. The distance between the sun and the
circumference of the universe is twenty-five koti yojanas [two billion miles].
44. The sun-god is also known as Vairaja, the total material body for all living entities. Because he
entered this dull egg of the universe at the time of creation, he is also called Martanda. He is also
known as Hiranyagarbha because he received his material body from Hiranyagarbha [Lord Brahma].
45. O King, the sun-god and the sun planet divide all the directions of the universe. It is only because of
the presence of the sun that we can understand what the sky, the higher planets, this world and the
lower planets are. It is also only because of the sun that we can understand which places are for
material enjoyment, which are for liberation, which are hellish and subterranean.
46. All living entities, including demigods, human beings, animals, birds, insects, reptiles, creepers and
trees, depend upon the heat and light given by the sun-god from the sun planet. Furthermore, it is
because of the sun's presence that all living entities can see, and therefore he is called drg-isvara, the
Personality of Godhead presiding over sight.
Chapter Twenty-one The Movements of the Sun
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, I have thus far described the diameter of the universe [fifty
crores of yojanas, or four billion miles] and its general characteristics, according to the estimations of
learned scholars.
2. As a grain of wheat is divided into two parts and one can estimate the size of the upper part by
knowing that of the lower, so, expert geographers instruct, one can understand the measurements of
the upper part of the universe by knowing those of the lower part. The sky between the earthly sphere
and heavenly sphere is called antariksa, or outer space. It adjoins the top of the sphere of earth and the
bottom of that of heaven.
3. In the midst of that region of outer space [antariksa] is the most opulent sun, the king of all the
planets that emanate heat, such as the moon. By the influence of its radiation, the sun heats the
universe and maintains its proper order. It also gives light to help all living entities see. While passing
toward the north, toward the south or through the equator, in accordance with the order of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, it is said to move slowly, swiftly or moderately. According to its movements in
rising above, going beneath or passing through the equator--and correspondingly coming in touch with
various signs of the zodiac, headed by Makara [Capricorn]--days and nights are short, long or equal to
one another.
256 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
4. When the sun passes through Mesa [Aries] and Tula [Libra], the durations of day and night are equal.
When it passes through the five signs headed by Vrsabha [Taurus], the duration of the days increases
[until Cancer], and then it gradually decreases by half an hour each month, until day and night again
become equal [in Libra].
5. When the sun passes through the five signs beginning with Vrscika [Scorpio], the duration of the days
decreases [until Capricorn], and then gradually it increases month after month, until day and night
become equal [in Aries].
6. Until the sun travels to the south the days grow longer, and until it travels to the north the nights grow
longer.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami continued; My dear King, as stated before, the learned say that the sun travels
over all sides of Mahasottara Mountain in a circle whose length is 95,100,000 yojanas [760,800,000
miles]. On Manasottara Mountain, due east of Mount Sumeru, is a place known as Devadhani,
possessed by King Indra. Similarly, in the south is a place known as Samyamani, possessed by
Yamaraja, in the west is a place known as Nimlocani, possessed by Varuna, and in the north is a place
named Vibhavari, possessed by the moon-god. Sunrise, midday, sunset and midnight occur in all those
places according to specific times, thus engaging all living entities in their various occupational duties
and also making them cease such duties.
8-9. The living entities residing on Sumeru Mountain are always very warm, as at midday, because for
them the sun is always overhead. Although the sun moves counterclockwise, facing the constellations,
with Sumeru Mountain on its left, it also moves clockwise and appears to have the mountain on its right
because it is influenced by the daksinavarta wind. People living in countries at points diametrically
opposite to where the sun is first seen rising will see the sun setting, and if a straight line were drawn
from a point where the sun is at midday, the people in countries at the opposite end of the line would be
experiencing midnight. Similarly, if people residing where the sun is setting were to go to countries
diametrically opposite, they would not see the sun in the same condition.
10. When the sun travels from Devadhani, the residence of Indra, to Samyamani, the residence of
Yamaraja, it travels 23,775,000 yojanas [190,200,000 miles] in fifteen ghatikas [six hours].
11. From the residence of Yamaraja the sun travels to Nimlocani, the residence of Varuna, from there to
Vibhavari, the residence of the moon-god, and from there again to the residence of Indra. In a similar
way, the moon, along with the other stars and planets, becomes visible in the celestial sphere and then
sets and again becomes invisible.
12. Thus the chariot of the sun-god, which is trayimaya, or worshiped by the words om bhur bhuvah
svah, travels through the four residences mentioned above at a speed of 3,400,800 yojanas
[27,206,400 miles] in a muhurta.
13. The chariot of the sun-god has only one wheel, which is known as Samvatsara. The twelve months
are calculated to be its twelve spokes, the six seasons are the sections of its rim, and the three catur-
masya periods are its three-sectioned hub. One side of the axle carrying the wheel rests upon the
summit of Mount Sumeru, and the other rests upon Manasottara Mountain. Affixed to the outer end of
the axle, the wheel continuously rotates on Manasottara Mountain like the wheel of an oil-pressing
machine.
14. As in an oil-pressing machine, this first axle is attached to a second axle, which is one-fourth as long
[3,937,500 yojanas, or 31,500,000 miles]. The upper end of this second axle is attached to Dhruvaloka
by a rope of wind.
15. My dear King, the carriage of the sun-god's chariot is estimated to be 3,600,000 yojanas
[28,800,000 miles] long and one-fourth as wide [900,00O yojanas, or 7,200,000 miles]. The chariot's
horses, which are named after Gayatri and other Vedic meters, are harnessed by Arunadeva to a yoke
that is also 900,000 yojanas wide. This chariot continuously carries the sun-god.
16. Although Arunadeva sits in front of the sun-god and is engaged in driving the chariot and controlling
the horses, he looks backward toward the sun-god.
17. There are sixty thousand saintly persons named Valikhilyas, each the size of a thumb, who are
located in front of the sun-god and who offer him eloquent prayers of glorification.
18. Similarly, fourteen other saints, Gandharvas, Apsaras, Nagas, Yaksas, Raksasas and demigods,
who are divided into groups of two, assume different names every month and continuously perform
different ritualistic ceremonies to worship the Supreme Lord as the most powerful demigod Suryadeva,
who holds many names.
19. My dear King, in his orbit through Bhu-mandala, the sun-god traverses a distance of 95,100,000
yojanas [760,800,0O0 miles] at the speed of 2,000 yojanas and two krosas [16,004 miles] in a moment.
Chapter Twenty-two The Orbits of the Planets
1. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: My dear lord, you have already affirmed the truth that
the supremely powerful sun-god travels around Dhruvaloka with both Dhruvaloka and Mount Sumeru
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 257
on his right. Yet at the same time the sun-god faces the signs of the zodiac and keeps Sumeru and
Dhruvaloka on his left. How can we reasonably accept that the sun-god proceeds with Sumeru and
Dhruvaloka on both his left and right simultaneously?
2. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami clearly answered: When a potter's wheel is moving and small ants located on
that big wheel are moving with it, one can see that their motion is different from that of the wheel
because they appear sometimes on one part of the wheel and sometimes on another. Similarly, the
signs and constellations, with Sumeru and Dhruvaloka on their right, move with the wheel of time, and
the antlike sun and other planets move with them. The sun and planets, however, are seen in different
signs and constellations at different times. This indicates that their motion is different from that of the
zodiac and the wheel of time itself.
3. The original cause of the cosmic manifestation is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana.
When great saintly persons, fully aware of the Vedic knowledge, offered prayers to the Supreme
Person, He descended to this material world in the form of the sun to benefit all the planets and purify
fruitive activities. He divided Himself into twelve parts and created seasonal forms, beginning with
spring. In this way He created the seasonal qualities, such as heat, cold and so on.
4. According to the system of four varnas and four asramas, people generally worship the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Narayana, who is situated as the sun-god. With great faith they worship the
Supreme Personality as the Supersoul according to ritualistic ceremonies handed down in the three
Vedas, such as agnihotra and similar higher and lower fruitive acts, and according to the process of
mystic yoga. In this way they very easily attain the ultimate goal of life.
5. The sun-god, who is Narayana, or Visnu, the soul of all the worlds, is situated in outer space between
the upper and lower portions of the universe. Passing through twelve months on the wheel of time, the
sun comes in touch with twelve different signs of the zodiac and assumes twelve different names
according to those signs. The aggregate of those twelve months is called a samvatsara, or an entire
year. According to lunar calculations, two fortnights--one of the waxing moon and the other of the
waning--form one month. That same period is one day and night for the planet Pitrloka. According to
stellar calculations, a month equals two and one quarter constellations. When the sun travels for two
months, a season passes, and therefore the seasonal changes are considered parts of the body of the
year.
6. Thus the time the sun takes to rotate through half of outer space is called an ayana, or its period of
movement [in the north or in the south].
7. The sun-god has three speeds--slow, fast and moderate. The time he takes to travel entirely around
the spheres of heaven, earth and space at these three speeds is referred to, by learned scholars, by the
five names Samvatsara, Parivatsara, Idavatsara, Anuvatsara and Vatsara.
8. Above the rays of the sunshine by a distance of 100,000 yojanas [800,000 miles] is the moon, which
travels at a speed faster than that of the sun. In two lunar fortnights the moon travels through the
equivalent of a samvatsara of the sun, in two and a quarter days it passes through a month of the sun,
and in one day it passes through a fortnight of the sun.
9. When the moon is waxing, the illuminating portions of it increase daily, thus creating day for the
demigods and night for the pitas. When the moon is waning, however, it causes night for the demigods
and day for the pitas. In this way the moon passes through each constellation of stars in thirty muhurtas
[an entire day]. The moon is the source of nectarean coolness that influences the growth of food grains,
and therefore the moon-god is considered the life of all living entities. He is consequently called Jiva,
the chief living being within the universe.
10. Because the moon is full of all potentialities, it represents the influence of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead. The moon is the predominating deity of everyone's mind, and therefore the moon-god is
called Manomaya. He is also called Annamaya because he gives potency to all herbs and plants, and
he is called Amrtamaya because he is the source of life for all living entities. The moon pleases the
demigods, pitas, human beings, animals, birds, reptiles, trees, plants and all other living entities.
Everyone is satisfied by the presence of the moon. Therefore the moon is also called Sarvamaya [all-
pervading].
11. There are many stars located 200,000 yojanas [1,600,000 miles] above the moon. By the supreme
will of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, they are fixed to the wheel of time, and thus they rotate
with Mount Sumeru on their right, their motion being different from that of the sun. There are twenty-
eight important stars, headed by Abhijit.
12. Some 1,600,000 miles above this group of stars is the planet Venus, which moves at almost exactly
the same pace as the sun according to swift, slow and moderate movements. Sometimes Venus moves
behind the sun, sometimes in front of the sun and sometimes along with it. Venus nullifies the influence
of planets that are obstacles to rainfall. Consequently its presence causes rainfall, and it is therefore
258 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
considered very favorable for all living beings within this universe. This has been accepted by learned
scholars.
13. Mercury is described to be similar to Venus, in that it moves sometimes behind the sun, sometimes
in front of the sun and sometimes along with it. It is 1,600,000 miles above Venus, or 7,200,000 miles
above earth. Mercury, which is the son of the moon, is almost always very auspicious for the inhabitants
of the universe, but when it does not move along with the sun, it forbodes cyclones, dust, irregular
rainfall, and waterless clouds. In this way it creates fearful conditions due to inadequate or excessive
rainfall.
14. Situated 1,600,000 miles above Mercury, or 8,800,000 miles above earth, is the planet Mars. If this
planet does not travel in a crooked way, it crosses through each sign of the zodiac in three fortnights
and in this way travels through all twelve, one after another. It almost always creates unfavorable
conditions in respect to rainfall and other influences.
15. Situated 1,600,000 miles above Mars, or 10,400,000 miles above earth, is the planet Jupiter, which
travels through one sign of the zodiac within the period of a Parivatsara. If its movement is not curved,
the planet Jupiter is very favorable to the brahmanas of the universe.
16. Situated 1,600,000 miles above Jupiter, or 12,000,000 miles above earth, is the planet Saturn,
which passes through one sign of the zodiac in thirty months and covers the entire zodiac circle in thirty
Anuvatsaras. This planet is always very inauspicious for the universal situation.
17. Situated 8,800,000 miles above Saturn, or 20,800,000 miles above earth, are the seven saintly
sages, who are always thinking of the well-being of the inhabitants of the universe. They
circumambulate the supreme abode of Lord Visnu, known as Dhruvaloka, the polestar.
Chapter Twenty-three The Sisumara Planetary Systems
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, 1,300,000 yojanas [10,400,000 miles] above the
planets of the seven sages is the place that learned scholars describe as the abode of Lord Visnu.
There the son of Maharaja Uttanapada, the great devotee Maharaja Dhruva, still resides as the life
source of all the living entities who live until the end of the creation. Agni, Indra, Prajapati, Kasyapa and
Dharma all assemble there to offer him honor and respectful obeisances. They circumambulate him
with their right sides toward him. I have already described the glorious activities of Maharaja Dhruva [in
the Fourth Canto of Srimad-Bhagavatam].
2. Established by the supreme will of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the polestar, which is the
planet of Maharaja Dhruva, constantly shines as the central pivot for all the stars and planets. The
unsleeping, invisible, most powerful time factor causes these luminaries to revolve around the polestar
without cessation.
3. When bulls are yoked together and tied to a central post to thresh rice, they tread around that pivot
without deviating from their proper positions--one bull being closest to the post, another in the middle,
and a third on the outside. Similarly, all the planets and all the hundreds and thousands of stars revolve
around the polestar, the planet of Maharaja Dhruva, in their respective orbits, some higher and some
lower. Fastened by the Supreme Personality of Godhead to the machine of material nature according to
the results of their fruitive acts, they are driven around the polestar by the wind and will continue to be
so until the end of creation. These planets float in the air within the vast sky, just as clouds with
hundreds of tons of water float in the air or as the great syena eagles, due to the results of past
activities, fly high in the sky and have no chance of falling to the ground.
4. This great machine, consisting of the stars and planets, resembles the form of a sisumara [dolphin] in
the water. It is sometimes considered an incarnation of Krsna, Vasudeva. Great yogis meditate upon
Vasudeva in this form because it is actually visible.
5. This form of the sisumara has its head downward and its body coiled. On the end of its tail is the
planet of Dhruva, on the body of its tail are the planets of the demigods Prajapati, Agni, Indra and
Dharma, and at the base of its tail are the planets of the demigods Dhata and Vidhata. Where the hips
might be on the sisumara are the seven saintly sages like Vasistha and Angira. The coiled body of the
Sisumara-cakra turns toward its right side, on which the fourteen constellations from Abhijit to
Punarvasu are located. On its left side are the fourteen stars from Pusya to Uttarasadha. Thus its body
is balanced because its sides are occupied by an equal number of stars. On the back of the sisumara is
the group of stars known as Ajavithi, and on its abdomen is the Ganges that flows in the sky [the Milky
Way].
6. On the right and left sides of where the loins might be on the Sisumara-cakra are the stars named
Punarvasu and Pusya. Ardra and Aslesa are on its right and left feet, Abhijit and Uttarasadha are on its
right and left nostrils, Sravana and Purvasadha are at its right and left eyes, and Dhanistha and Mula
are on its right and left ears. The eight stars from Magha to Anuradha, which mark the southern course,
are on the ribs of the left of its body, and the eight stars from Mrgasirsa to Purvabhadra, which mark the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 259
northern course, are on the ribs on the right side. Satabhisa and Jyestha are on the right and left
shoulders.
7. On the upper chin of the sisumara is Agasti; on its lower chin, Yamaraja; on its mouth, Mars; on its
genitals, Saturn; on the back of its neck, Jupiter; on its chest, the sun; and within the core of its heart,
Narayana. Within its mind is the moon; on its navel, Venus; and on its breasts, the Asvini-kumaras.
Within its life air, which is known as pranapana, is Mercury, on its neck is Rahu, all over its body are
comets, and in its pores are the numerous stars.
8. My dear King, the body of the sisumara, as thus described, should be considered the external form of
Lord Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Morning, noon and evening, one should silently
observe the form of the Lord as the Sisumara-cakra and worship Him with this mantra: "O Lord who has
assumed the form of time! O resting place of all the planets moving in different orbits! O master of all
demigods, O Supreme Person, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You and meditate upon You."
9. The body of the Supreme Lord, Visnu, which forms the Sisumara-cakra, is the resting place of all the
demigods and all the stars and planets. One who chants this mantra to worship that Supreme Person
three times a day--morning, noon and evening--will surely be freed from all sinful reactions. If one
simply offers his obeisances to this form or remembers this form three times a day, all his recent sinful
activities will be destroyed.
Chapter Twenty-four The Subterranean Heavenly Planets
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, some historians, the speakers of the Puranas, say that
10,000 yojanas [80,000 miles] below the sun is the planet known as Rahu, which moves like one of the
stars. The presiding deity of that planet, who is the son of Simhika, is the most abominable of all asuras,
but although he is completely unfit to assume the position of a demigod or planetary deity, he has
achieved that position by the grace of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Later I shall speak further
about him.
2. The sun globe, which is a source of heat, extends for 10,000 yojanas [80,000 miles]. The moon
extends for 20,000 yojanas [160,000 miles], and Rahu extends for 30,000 yojanas [240,000 miles].
Formerly, when nectar was being distributed, Rahu tried to create dissension between the sun and
moon by interposing himself between them. Rahu is inimical toward both the sun and the moon, and
therefore he always tries to cover the sunshine and moonshine on the dark-moon day and full-moon
night.
3. After hearing from the sun and moon demigods about Rahu's attack, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Visnu, engages His disc, known as the Sudarsana cakra, to protect them. The Sudarsana
cakra is the Lord's most beloved devotee and is favored by the Lord. The intense heat of its effulgence,
meant for killing non-Vaisnavas, is unbearable to Rahu, and he therefore flees in fear of it. During the
time Rahu disturbs the sun or moon, there occurs what people commonly know as an eclipse.
4. Below Rahu by 10,000 yojanas [80,000 miles] are the planets known as Siddhaloka, Caranaloka and
Vidyadhara-loka.
5. Beneath Vidyadhara-loka, Caranaloka and Siddhaloka, in the sky called antariksa, are the places of
enjoyment for the Yaksas, Raksasas, Pisacas, ghosts and so on. Antariksa extends as far as the wind
blows and the clouds float in the sky. Above this there is no more air.
6. Below the abodes of the Yaksas and Raksasas by a distance of 100 yojanas [800 miles] is the planet
earth. Its upper limits extend as high as swans, hawks, eagles and similar large birds can fly.
7. My dear King, beneath this earth are seven other planets, known as Atala, Vitala, Sutala, Talatala,
Mahatala, Rasatala and Patala. I have already explained the situation of the planetary systems of earth.
The width and length of the seven lower planetary systems are calculated to be exactly the same as
those of earth.
8. In these seven planetary systems, which are also known as the subterranean heavens [bila-svarga],
there are very beautiful houses, gardens and places of sense enjoyment, which are even more opulent
than those in the higher planets because the demons have a very high standard of sensual pleasure,
wealth and influence. Most of the residents of these planets, who are known as Daityas, Danavas and
Nagas, live as householders. Their wives, children, friends and society are all fully engaged in illusory,
material happiness. The sense enjoyment of the demigods is sometimes disturbed, but the residents of
these planets enjoy life without disturbances. Thus they are understood to be very attached to illusory
happiness.
9. My dear King, in the imitation heavens known as bila-svarga there is a great demon named Maya
Danava, who is an expert artist and architect. He has constructed many brilliantly decorated cities.
There are many wonderful houses, walls, gates, assembly houses, temples, yards and temple
compounds, as well as many hotels serving as residential quarters for foreigners. The houses for the
leaders of these planets are constructed with the most valuable jewels, and they are always crowded
260 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
with living entities known as Nagas and Asuras, as well as many pigeons, parrots and similar birds. All
in all, these imitation heavenly cities are most beautifully situated and attractively decorated.
10. The parks and gardens in the artificial heavens surpass in beauty those of the upper heavenly
planets. The trees in those gardens, embraced by creepers, bend with a heavy burden of twigs with
fruits and flowers, and therefore they appear extraordinarily beautiful. That beauty could attract anyone
and make his mind fully blossom in the pleasure of sense gratification. There are many lakes and
reservoirs with clear, transparent water, agitated by jumping fish and decorated with many flowers such
as lilies, kuvalayas, kahlaras and blue and red lotuses. Pairs of cakravakas and many other water birds
nest in the lakes and always enjoy in a happy mood, making sweet, pleasing vibrations that are very
satisfying and conducive to enjoyment of the senses.
11. Since there is no sunshine in those subterranean planets, time is not divided into days and nights,
and consequently fear produced by time does not exist.
12. Many great serpents reside there with gems on their hoods, and the effulgence of these gems
dissipates the darkness in all directions.
13. Since the residents of these planets drink and bathe in juices and elixirs made from wonderful
herbs, they are freed from all anxieties and physical diseases. They have no experience of grey hair,
wrinkles or invalidity, their bodily lusters do not fade, their perspiration does not cause a bad smell, and
they are not troubled by fatigue or by lack of energy or enthusiasm due to old age.
14. They live very auspiciously and do not fear death from anything but death's established time, which
is the effulgence of the Sudarsana cakra of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
15. When the Sudarsana disc enters those provinces, the pregnant wives of the demons all have
miscarriages due to fear of its effulgence.
16. My dear King, now I shall describe to you the lower planetary systems, one by one, beginning from
Atala. In Atala there is a demon, the son of Maya Danava named Bala, who created ninety-six kinds of
mystic power. Some so-called yogis and svamis take advantage of this mystic power to cheat people
even today. Simply by yawning, the demon Bala created three kinds of women, known as svairini,
kamini and pumscali. The svairinis like to marry men from their own group, the kaminis marry men from
any group, and the pumscalis change husbands one after another. If a man enters the planet of Atala,
these women immediately capture him and induce him to drink an intoxicating beverage made with a
drug known as hataka [cannabis indica]. This intoxicant endows the man with great sexual prowess, of
which the women take advantage for enjoyment. A woman will enchant him with attractive glances,
intimate words, smiles of love and then embraces. In this way she induces him to enjoy sex with her to
her full satisfaction. Because of his increased sexual power, the man thinks himself stronger than ten
thousand elephants and considers himself most perfect. Indeed, illusioned and intoxicated by false
pride, he thinks himself God, ignoring impending death.
17. The next planet below Atala is Vitala, wherein Lord Siva, who is known as the master of gold mines,
lives with his personal associates, the ghosts and similar living entities. Lord Siva, as the progenitor,
engages in sex with Bhavani, the progenitress, to produce living entities, and from the mixture of their
vital fluid the river named Hataki is generated. When fire, being made to blaze by the wind, drinks of this
river and then sizzles and spits it out, it produces gold called Hataka. The demons who live on that
planet with their wives decorate themselves with various ornaments made from that gold, and thus they
live there very happily.
18. Below the planet Vitala is another planet, known as Sutala, where the great son of Maharaja
Virocana, Bali Maharaja, who is celebrated as the most pious king, resides even now. For the welfare of
Indra, the King of heaven, Lord Visnu appeared in the form of a dwarf brahmacari as the son of Aditi
and tricked Bali Maharaja by begging for only three paces of land but taking all the three worlds. Being
very pleased with Bali Maharaja for giving all his possessions, the Lord returned his kingdom and made
him richer than the opulent King Indra. Even now, Bali Maharaja engages in devotional service by
worshiping the Supreme Personality of Godhead in the planet of Sutala.
19. My dear King, Bali Maharaja donated all his possessions to the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Vamanadeva, but one should certainly not conclude that he achieved his great worldly opulence in bila-
svarga as a result of his charitable disposition. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the source
of life for all living entities, lives within everyone as the friendly Supersoul, and under His direction a
living entity enjoys or suffers in the material world. Greatly appreciating the transcendental qualities of
the Lord, Bali Maharaja offered everything at His lotus feet. His purpose, however, was not to gain
anything material, but to become a pure devotee. For a pure devotee, the door of liberation is
automatically opened. One should not think that Bali Maharaja was given so much material opulence
merely because of his charity. When one becomes a pure devotee in love, he may also be blessed with
a good material position by the will of the Supreme Lord. However, one should not mistakenly think that
the material opulence of a devotee is the result of his devotional service. The real result of devotional
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 261
service is the awakening of pure love for the Supreme Personality of Godhead, which continues under
all circumstances.
20. If one who is embarrassed by hunger or who falls down or stumbles chants the holy name of the
Lord even once, willingly or unwillingly, he is immediately freed from the reactions of his past deeds.
Karmis entangled in material activities face many difficulties in the practice of mystic yoga and other
endeavors to achieve that same freedom.
21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is situated in everyone's heart as the Supersoul, sells
Himself to His devotees such as Narada Muni. In other words, the Lord gives pure love to such
devotees and gives Himself to those who love Him purely. Great, self-realized mystic yogis such as the
four Kumaras also derive great transcendental bliss from realizing the Supersoul within themselves.
22. The Supreme Personality of Godhead did not award His mercy to Bali Maharaja by giving him
material happiness and opulence, for these make one forget loving service to the Lord. The result of
material opulence is that one can no longer absorb his mind in the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
23. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead could see no other means of taking everything away
from Bali Maharaja, He adopted the trick of begging from him and took away all the three worlds. Thus
only his body was left, but the Lord was still not satisfied. He arrested Bali Maharaja, bound him with the
ropes of Varuna and threw him in a cave in a mountain. Nevertheless, although all his property was
taken and he was thrown into a cave, Bali Maharaja was such a great devotee that he spoke as follows.
24. Alas, how pitiable it is for Indra, the King of heaven, that although he is very learned and powerful
and although he chose Brhaspati as his prime minister to instruct him, he is completely ignorant
concerning spiritual advancement. Brhaspati is also unintelligent because he did not properly instruct
his disciple Indra. Lord Vamanadeva was standing at Indra's door, but King Indra, instead of begging
Him for an opportunity to render transcendental loving service, engaged Him in asking me for alms to
gain the three worlds for his sense gratification. Sovereignty over the three worlds is very insignificant
because whatever material opulence one may possess lasts only for an age of Manu, which is but a tiny
fraction of endless time.
25. Bali Maharaja said: My grandfather Prahlada Maharaja is the only person who understood his own
self-interest. Upon the death of Prahlada's father, Hiranyakasipu, Lord Nrsimhadeva wanted to offer
Prahlada his father's kingdom and even wanted to grant him liberation from material bondage, but
Prahlada accepted neither. Liberation and material opulence, he thought, are obstacles to devotional
service, and therefore such gifts from the Supreme Personality of Godhead are not His actual mercy.
Consequently, instead of accepting the results of karma and jnana, Prahlada Maharaja simply begged
the Lord for engagement in the service of His servant.
26. Bali Maharaja said: Persons like us, who are still attached to material enjoyment, who are
contaminated by the modes of material nature and who lack the mercy of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, cannot follow the supreme path of Prahlada Maharaja, the exalted devotee of the Lord.
27. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, how shall I glorify the character of Bali Maharaja? The
Supreme Personality of Godhead, the master of the three worlds, who is most compassionate to His
own devotee, stands with club in hand at Bali Maharaja's door. When Ravana, the powerful demon,
came to gain victory over Bali Maharaja, Vamanadeva kicked him a distance of eighty thousand miles
with His big toe. I shall explain the character and activities of Bali Maharaja later [in the Eighth Canto of
Srimad-Bhagavatam].
28. Beneath the planet known as Sutala is another planet, called Talatala, which is ruled by the Danava
demon named Maya. Maya is known as the acarya [master] of all the mayavis, who can invoke the
powers of sorcery. For the benefit of the three worlds, Lord Siva, who is known as Tripurari, once set
fire to the three kingdoms of Maya, but later, being pleased with him, he returned his kingdom. Since
that time, Maya Danava has been protected by Lord Siva, and therefore he falsely thinks that he need
not fear the Sudarsana cakra of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
29. The planetary system below Talatala is known as Mahatala. It is the abode of many-hooded snakes,
descendants of Kadru, who are always very angry. The great snakes who are prominent are Kuhaka,
Taksaka, Kaliya and Susena. The snakes in Mahatala are always disturbed by fear of Garuda, the
carrier of Lord Visnu, but although they are full of anxiety, some of them nevertheless sport with their
wives, children, friends and relatives.
30. Beneath Mahatala is the planetary system known as Rasatala, which is the abode of the demoniac
sons of Diti and Danu. They are called Panis, Nivata-kavacas, Kaleyas and Hiranya-puravasis [those
living in Hiranya-pura]. They are all enemies of the demigods, and they reside in holes like snakes.
From birth they are extremely powerful and cruel, and although they are proud of their strength, they are
always defeated by the Sudarsana cakra of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who rules all the
planetary systems. When a female messenger from Indra named Sarama chants a particular curse, the
serpentine demons of Mahatala become very afraid of Indra.
262 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
31. Beneath Rasatala is another planetary system, known as Patala or Nagaloka, where there are
many demoniac serpents, the masters of Nagaloka, such as Sankha, Kulika, Mahasankha, Sveta,
Dhananjaya, Dhrtarastra, Sankhacuda, Kambala, Asvatara and Devadatta. The chief among them is
Vasuki. They are all extremely angry, and they have many, many hoods--some snakes five hoods,
some seven, some ten, others a hundred and others a thousand. These hoods are bedecked with
valuable gems, and the light emanating from the gems illuminates the entire planetary system of bila-
svarga.
Chapter Twenty-five The Glories of Lord Ananta
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said to Maharaja Pariksit: My dear King, approximately 240,000 miles
beneath the planet Patala lives another incarnation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. He is the
expansion of Lord Visnu known as Lord Ananta or Lord Sankarsana. He is always in the transcendental
position, but because He is worshiped by Lord Siva, the deity of tamo-guna or darkness, He is
sometimes called tamasi. Lord Ananta is the predominating Deity of the material mode of ignorance as
well as the false ego of all conditioned souls. When a conditioned living being thinks, "I am the enjoyer,
and this world is meant to be enjoyed by me," this conception of life is dictated to him by Sankarsana.
Thus the mundane conditioned soul thinks himself the Supreme Lord.
2. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: This great universe, situated on one of Lord Anantadeva's thousands
of hoods, appears just like a white mustard seed. It is infinitesimal compared to the hood of Lord
Ananta.
3. At the time of devastation, when Lord Anantadeva desires to destroy the entire creation, He becomes
slightly angry. Then from between His two eyebrows appears three-eyed Rudra, carrying a trident. This
Rudra, who is known as Sankarsana, is the embodiment of the eleven Rudras, or incarnations of Lord
Siva. He appears in order to devastate the entire creation.
4. The pink, transparent toenails on the Lord's lotus feet are exactly like valuable gems polished to a
mirror finish. When the unalloyed devotees and the leaders of the snakes offer their obeisances to Lord
Sankarsana with great devotion, they become very joyful upon seeing their own beautiful faces
reflected in His toenails. Their cheeks are decorated with glittering earrings, and the beauty of their
faces is extremely pleasing to see.
5. Lord Ananta's arms are attractively long, beautifully decorated with bangles and completely spiritual.
They are white, and so they appear like silver columns. When the beautiful princesses of the serpent
kings, hoping for the Lord's auspicious blessing, smear His arms with aguru pulp, sandalwood pulp and
kunkuma, the touch of His limbs awakens lusty desires within them. Understanding their minds, the
Lord looks at the princesses with a merciful smile, and they become bashful, realizing that He knows
their desires. Then they smile beautifully and look upon the Lord's lotus face, which is beautified by
reddish eyes rolling slightly from intoxication and delighted by love for His devotees.
6. Lord Sankarsana is the ocean of unlimited spiritual qualities, and thus He is known as Anantadeva.
He is nondifferent from the Supreme Personality of Godhead. For the welfare of all living entities within
this material world, He resides in His abode, restraining His anger and intolerance.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: The demigods, the demons, the Uragas [serpentine demigods], the
Siddhas, the Gandharvas, the Vidyadharas and many highly elevated sages constantly offer prayers to
the Lord. Because He is intoxicated, the Lord looks bewildered, and His eyes, appearing like flowers in
full bloom, move to and fro. He pleases His personal associates, the heads of the demigods, by the
sweet vibrations emanating from His mouth. Dressed in bluish garments and wearing a single earring,
He holds a plow on His back with His two beautiful and well-constructed hands. Appearing as white as
the heavenly King Indra, He wears a golden belt around His waist and a vaijayanti garland of ever-fresh
tulasi blossoms around His neck. Bees intoxicated by the honeylike fragrance of the tulasi flowers hum
very sweetly around the garland, which thus becomes more and more beautiful. In this way, the Lord
enjoys His very magnanimous pastimes.
8. If persons who are very serious about being liberated from material life hear the glories of
Anantadeva from the mouth of a spiritual master in the chain of disciplic succession, and if they always
meditate upon Sankarsana, the Lord enters the cores of their hearts, vanquishes all the dirty
contamination of the material modes of nature, and cuts to pieces the hard knot within the heart, which
has been tied tightly since time immemorial by the desire to dominate material nature through fruitive
activities. Narada Muni, the son of Lord Brahma, always glorifies Anantadeva in his father's assembly.
There he sings blissful verses of his own composition, accompanied by his stringed instrument [or a
celestial singer] known as Tumburu.
9. By His glance, the Supreme Personality of Godhead enables the modes of material nature to act as
the causes of universal creation, maintenance and destruction. The Supreme Soul is unlimited and
beginningless, and although He is one, He has manifested Himself in many forms. How can human
society understand the ways of the Supreme?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 263
10. This manifestation of subtle and gross matter exists within the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
Out of causeless mercy toward His devotees, He exhibits various forms, which are all transcendental.
The Supreme Lord is most liberal, and He possesses all mystic power. To conquer the minds of His
devotees and give pleasure to their hearts, He appears in different incarnations and manifests many
pastimes.
11. Even if he be distressed or degraded, any person who chants the holy name of the Lord, having
heard it from a bona fide spiritual master, is immediately purified. Even if he chants the Lord's name
jokingly or by chance, he and anyone who hears him are freed from all sins. Therefore how can anyone
seeking disentanglement from the material clutches avoid chanting the name of Lord Sesa? Of whom
else should one take shelter?
12. Because the Lord is unlimited, no one can estimate His power. This entire universe, filled with its
many great mountains, rivers, oceans, trees and living entities, is resting just like an atom on one of His
many thousands of hoods. Is there anyone, even with thousands of tongues, who can describe His
glories?
13. There is no end to the great and glorious qualities of that powerful Lord Anantadeva. Indeed, His
prowess is unlimited. Though self-sufficient, He Himself is the support of everything. He resides
beneath the lower planetary systems and easily sustains the entire universe.
14. My dear King, as I heard of it from my spiritual master, I have fully described to you the creation of
this material world according to the fruitive activities and desires of the conditioned souls. Those
conditioned souls, who are full of material desires, achieve various situations in different planetary
systems, and in this way they live within this material creation.
15. My dear King, I have thus described how people generally act according to their different desires
and, as a result, get different types of bodies in higher or lower planets. You inquired of these things
from me, and I have explained to you whatever I have heard from authorities. What shall I speak of
now?
Chapter Twenty-six A Description of the Hellish Planets
1. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: My dear sir, why are the living entities put into
different material situations? Kindly explain this to me.
2. The great sage Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, in this material world there are three kinds of
activities--those in the mode of goodness, the mode of passion and the mode of ignorance. Because all
people are influenced by the three modes of material nature, the results of their activities are also
divided into three. One who acts in the mode of goodness is religious and happy, one who acts in
passion achieves mixed misery and happiness, and one who acts under the influence of ignorance is
always unhappy and lives like an animal. Because of the varying degrees to which the living entities are
influenced by the different modes of nature, their destinations are also of different varieties.
3. Just as by executing various pious activities one achieves different positions in heavenly life, by
acting impiously one achieves different positions in hellish life. Those who are activated by the material
mode of ignorance engage in impious activities, and according to the extent of their ignorance, they are
placed in different grades of hellish life. If one acts in the mode of ignorance because of madness, his
resulting misery is the least severe. One who acts impiously but knows the distinction between pious
and impious activities is placed in a hell of intermediate severity. And for one who acts impiously and
ignorantly because of atheism, the resultant hellish life is the worst. Because of ignorance, every living
entity has been carried by various desires into thousands of different hellish planets since time
immemorial. I shall try to describe them as far as possible.
4. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: My dear lord, are the hellish regions outside the
universe, within the covering of the universe, or in different places on this planet?
5. The great sage Sukadeva Gosvami answered: All the hellish planets are situated in the intermediate
space between the three worlds and the Garbhodaka Ocean. They lie on the southern side of the
universe, beneath Bhu-mandala, and slightly above the water of the Garbhodaka Ocean. Pitrloka is also
located in this region between the Garbhodaka Ocean and the lower planetary systems. All the
residents of Pitrloka, headed by Agnisvatta, meditate in great samadhi on the Supreme Personality of
Godhead and always wish their families well.
6. The King of the pitas is Yamaraja, the very powerful son of the sun-god. He resides in Pitrloka with
his personal assistants and, while abiding by the rules and regulations set down by the Supreme Lord,
has his agents, the Yamadutas, bring all the sinful men to him immediately upon their death. After
bringing them within his jurisdiction, he properly judges them according to their specific sinful activities
and sends them to one of the many hellish planets for suitable punishments.
7. Some authorities say that there is a total of twenty-one hellish planets, and some say twenty-eight.
My dear King, I shall outline all of them according to their names, forms and symptoms. The names of
the different hells are as follows: Tamisra, Andhatamisra, Raurava, Maharaurava, Kumbhipaka,
264 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Kalasutra, Asi-patravana, Sukaramukha, Andhakupa, Krmibhojana, Sandamsa, Taptasurmi,
Vajrakantaka-salmali, Vaitarani, Puyoda, Pranarodha, Visasana, Lalabhaksa, Sarameyadana, Avici,
Ayahpana, Ksarakardama, Raksogana-bhojana, Sulaprota, Dandasuka, Avata-nirodhana,
Paryavartana and Sucimukha. All these planets are meant for punishing the living entities.
8. My dear King, a person who appropriates another's legitimate wife, children or money is arrested at
the time of death by the fierce Yamadutas, who bind him with the rope of time and forcibly throw him
into the hellish planet known as Tamisra. On this very dark planet, the sinful man is chastised by the
Yamadutas, who beat and rebuke him. He is starved, and he is given no water to drink. Thus the
wrathful assistants of Yamaraja cause him severe suffering, and sometimes he faints from their
chastisement.
9. The destination of a person who slyly cheats another man and enjoys his wife and children is the hell
known as Andhatamisra. There his condition is exactly like that of a tree being chopped at its roots.
Even before reaching Andhatamisra, the sinful living being is subjected to various extreme miseries.
These afflictions are so severe that he loses his intelligence and sight. It is for this reason that learned
sages call this hell Andhatamisra.
10. A person who accepts his body as his self works very hard day and night for money to maintain his
own body and the bodies of his wife and children. While working to maintain himself and his family, he
may commit violence against other living entities. Such a person is forced to give up his body and his
family at the time of death, when he suffers the reaction for his envy of other creatures by being thrown
into the hell called Raurava.
11. In this life, an envious person commits violent acts against many living entities. Therefore after his
death, when he is taken to hell by Yamaraja, those living entities who were hurt by him appear as
animals called rurus to inflict very severe pain upon him. Learned scholars call this hell Raurava. Not
generally seen in this world, the ruru is more envious than a snake.
12. Punishment in the hell called Maharaurava is compulsory for a person who maintains his own body
by hurting others. In this hell, ruru animals known as kravyada torment him and eat his flesh.
13. For the maintenance of their bodies and the satisfaction of their tongues, cruel persons cook poor
animals and birds alive. Such persons are condemned even by man-eaters. In their next lives they are
carried by the Yamadutas to the hell known as Kumbhipaka, where they are cooked in boiling oil.
14. The killer of a brahmana is put into the hell known as Kalasutra, which has a circumference of eighty
thousand miles and which is made entirely of copper. Heated from below by fire and from above by the
scorching sun, the copper surface of this planet is extremely hot. Thus the murderer of a brahmana
suffers from being burned both internally and externally. Internally he is burning with hunger and thirst,
and externally he is burning from the scorching heat of the sun and the fire beneath the copper surface.
Therefore he sometimes lies down, sometimes sits, sometimes stands up and sometimes runs here
and there. He must suffer in this way for as many thousands of years as there are hairs on the body of
an animal.
15. If a person deviates from the path of the Vedas in the absence of an emergency, the servants of
Yamaraja put him into the hell called Asi-patravana, where they beat him with whips. When he runs
hither and thither, fleeing from the extreme pain, on all sides he runs into palm trees with leaves like
sharpened swords. Thus injured all over his body and fainting at every step, he cries out, "Oh, what
shall I do now! How shall I be saved!" This is how one suffers who deviates from the accepted religious
principles.
16. In his next life, a sinful king or governmental representative who punishes an innocent person, or
who inflicts corporal punishment upon a brahmana, is taken by the Yamadutas to the hell named
Sukaramukha, where the most powerful assistants of Yamaraja crush him exactly as one crushes
sugarcane to squeeze out the juice. The sinful living entity cries very pitiably and faints, just like an
innocent man undergoing punishments. This is the result of punishing a faultless person.
17. By the arrangement of the Supreme Lord, low-grade living beings like bugs and mosquitoes suck
the blood of human beings and other animals. Such insignificant creatures are unaware that their bites
are painful to the human being. However, first-class human beings--brahmanas, ksatriyas and vaisyas--
are developed in consciousness, and therefore they know how painful it is to be killed. A human being
endowed with knowledge certainly commits sin if he kills or torments insignificant creatures, who have
no discrimination. The Supreme Lord punishes such a man by putting him into the hell known as
Andhakupa, where he is attacked by all the birds and beasts, reptiles, mosquitoes, lice, worms, flies,
and any other creatures he tormented during his life. They attack him from all sides, robbing him of the
pleasure of sleep. Unable to rest, he constantly wanders about in the darkness. Thus in Andhakupa his
suffering is just like that of a creature in the lower species.
18. A person is considered no better than a crow if after receiving some food, he does not divide it
among guests, old men and children, but simply eats it himself, or if he eats it without performing the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 265
five kinds of sacrifice. After death he is put into the most abominable hell, known as Krmibhojana. In
that hell is a lake becomes a worm in that lake and feeds on the other worms there, who also feed on
him. Unless he atones for his actions before his death, such a sinful man remains in the hellish lake of
Krmibhojana for as many years as there are yojanas in the width of the lake.
19. My dear King, a person who in the absence of an emergency robs a brahmana--or, indeed, anyone
else--of his gems and gold is put into a hell known as Sandamsa. There his skin is torn and separated
by red-hot iron balls and tongs. In this way, his entire body is cut to pieces.
20. A man or woman who indulges in sexual intercourse with an unworthy member of the opposite sex
is punished after death by the assistants of Yamaraja in the hell known as Taptasurmi. There such men
and women are beaten with whips. The man is forced to embrace a red-hot iron form of a woman, and
the woman is forced to embrace a similar form of a man. Such is the punishment for illicit sex.
21. A person who indulges in sex indiscriminately--even with animals--is taken after death to the hell
known as Vajrakantaka-salmali. In this hell there is a silk-cotton tree full of thorns as strong as
thunderbolts. The agents of Yamaraja hang the sinful man on that tree and pull him down forcibly so
that the thorns very severely tear his body.
22. A person who is born into a responsible family--such as a ksatriya, a member of royalty or a
government servant--but who neglects to execute his prescribed duties according to religious principles,
and who thus becomes degraded, falls down at the time of death into the river of hell known as
Vaitarani. This river, which is a moat surrounding hell, is full of ferocious aquatic animals. When a sinful
man is thrown into the River Vaitarani, the aquatic animals there immediately begin to eat him, but
because of his extremely sinful life, he does not leave his body. He constantly remembers his sinful
activities and suffers terribly in that river, which is full of stool, urine, pus, blood, hair, nails, bones,
marrow, flesh and fat.
23. The shameless husbands of lowborn sudra women live exactly like animals, and therefore they
have no good behavior, cleanliness or regulated life. After death, such persons are thrown into the hell
called Puyoda, where they are put into an ocean filled with pus, stool, urine, mucus, saliva and similar
things. Sudras who could not improve themselves fall into that ocean and are forced to eat those
disgusting things.
24. If in this life a man of the higher classes [brahmana, ksatriya and vaisya] is very fond of taking his
pet dogs, mules or asses into the forest to hunt and kill animals unnecessarily, he is placed after death
into the hell known as Pranarodha. There the assistants of Yamaraja make him their targets and pierce
him with arrows.
25. A person who in this life is proud of his eminent position, and who heedlessly sacrifices animals
simply for material prestige, is put into the hell called Visasana after death. There the assistants of
Yamaraja kill him after giving him unlimited pain.
26. If a foolish member of the twice-born classes [brahmana, ksatriya and vaisya] forces his wife to
drink his semen out of a lusty desire to keep her under control, he is put after death into the hell known
as Lalabhaksa. There he is thrown into a flowing river of semen, which he is forced to drink.
27. In this world, some persons are professional plunderers who set fire to others' houses or administer
poison to them. Also, members of the royalty or government officials sometimes plunder mercantile
men by forcing them to pay income tax and by other methods. After death such demons are put into the
hell known as Sarameyadana. On that planet there are 720 dogs with teeth as strong as thunderbolts.
Under the orders of the agents of Yamaraja, these dogs voraciously devour such sinful people.
28. A person who in this life bears false witness or lies while transacting business or giving charity is
severely punished after death by the agents of Yamaraja. Such a sinful man is taken to the top of a
mountain eight hundred miles high and thrown headfirst into the hell known as Avicimat. This hell has
no shelter and is made of strong stone resembling the waves of water. There is no water there,
however, and thus it is called Avicimat [waterless]. Although the sinful man is repeatedly thrown from
the mountain and his body broken to tiny pieces, he still does not die but continuously suffers
chastisement.
29. Any brahmana or brahmana's wife who drinks liquor is taken by the agents of Yamaraja to the hell
known as Ayahpana. This hell also awaits any ksatriya, vaisya, or person under a vow who in illusion
drinks soma-rasa. In Ayahpana the agents of Yamaraja stand on their chests and pour hot melted iron
into their mouths.
30. A lowborn and abominable person who in this life becomes falsely proud, thinking "I am great," and
who thus fails to show proper respect to one more elevated than he by birth, austerity, education,
behavior, caste or spiritual order, is like a dead man even in this lifetime, and after death he is thrown
headfirst into the hell known as Ksarakardama. There he must great suffer great tribulation at the hands
of the agents of Yamaraja.
266 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
31. There are men and women in this world who sacrifice human beings to Bhairava or Bhadra Kali and
then eat their victims' flesh. Those who perform such sacrifices are taken after death to the abode of
Yamaraja, where their victims, having taken the form of Raksasas, cut them to pieces with sharpened
swords. Just as in this world the man-eaters drank their victims' blood, dancing and singing in jubilation,
their victims now enjoy drinking the blood of the sacrificers and celebrating in the same way.
32. In this life some people give shelter to animals and birds that come to them for protection in the
village or forest, and after making them believe that they will be protected, such people pierce them with
lances or threads and play with them like toys, giving them great pain. After death such people are
brought by the assistants of Yamaraja to the hell known as Sulaprota, where their bodies are pierced
with sharp, needlelike lances. They suffer from hunger and thirst, and sharp-beaked birds such as
vultures and herons come at them from all sides to tear at their bodies. Tortured and suffering, they can
then remember the sinful activities they committed in the past.
33. Those who in this life are like envious serpents, always angry and giving pain to other living entities,
fall after death into the hell known as Dandasuka. My dear King, in this hell there are serpents with five
or seven hoods. These serpents eat such sinful persons just as snakes eat mice.
34. Those who in this life confine other living entities in dark wells, granaries or mountain caves are put
after death into the hell known as Avata-nirodhana. There they themselves are pushed into dark wells,
where poisonous fumes and smoke suffocate them and they suffer very severely.
35. A householder who receives guests or visitors with cruel glances, as if to burn them to ashes, is put
into the hell called Paryavartana, where he is gazed at by hard-eyed vultures, herons, crows and similar
birds, which suddenly swoop down and pluck out his eyes with great force.
36. One who in this world or this life is very proud of his wealth always thinks, "I am so rich. Who can
equal me?" His vision is twisted, and he is always afraid that someone will take his wealth. Indeed, he
even suspects his superiors. His face and heart dry up at the thought of losing his wealth, and therefore
he always looks like a wretched fiend. He is not in any way able to obtain actual happiness, and he
does not know what it is to be free from anxiety. Because of the sinful things he does to earn money,
augment his wealth and protect it, he is put into the hell called Sucimukha, where the officials of
Yamaraja punish him by stitching thread through his entire body like weavers manufacturing cloth.
37. My dear King Pariksit, in the province of Yamaraja there are hundreds and thousands of hellish
planets. The impious people I have mentioned--and also those I have not mentioned--must all enter
these various planets according to the degree of their impiety. Those who are pious, however, enter
other planetary systems, namely the planets of the demigods. Nevertheless, both the pious and impious
are again brought to earth after the results of their pious or impious acts are exhausted.
38. In the beginning [the Second and Third Cantos of Srimad-Bhagavatam] I have already described
how one can progress on the path of liberation. In the Puranas the vast universal existence, which is
like an egg divided into fourteen parts, is described. This vast form is considered the external body of
the Lord, created by His energy and qualities. It is generally called the virata-rupa. If one reads the
description of this external form of the Lord with great faith, or if one hears about it or explains it to
others to propagate bhagavata-dharma, or Krsna consciousness, his faith and devotion in spiritual
consciousness, Krsna consciousness, will gradually increase. Although developing this consciousness
is very difficult, by this process one can purify himself and gradually come to an awareness of the
Supreme Absolute Truth.
39. One who is interested in liberation, who accepts the path of liberation and is not attracted to the path
of conditional life, is called yati, or a devotee. Such a person should first control his mind by thinking of
the virata-rupa, the gigantic universal form of the Lord, and then gradually think of the spiritual form of
Krsna [sac-cid-ananda-vigraha] after hearing of both forms. Thus one's mind is fixed in samadhi. By
devotional service one can then realize the spiritual form of the Lord, which is the destination of
devotees. Thus his life becomes successful.
40. My dear King, I have now described for you this planet earth, other planetary systems, and their
lands [varsas], rivers and mountains. I have also described the sky, the oceans, the lower planetary
systems, the directions, the hellish planetary systems and the stars. These constitute the virata-rupa,
the gigantic material form of the Lord, on which all living entities repose. Thus I have explained the
wonderful expanse of the external body of the Lord.
CANTO SIX
Chapter One The History of the Life of Ajamila
1. Maharaja Pariksit said: O my lord, O Sukadeva Gosvami, you have already described [in the Second
Canto] the path of liberation [nivrtti-marga]. By following that path, one is certainly elevated gradually to
the highest planetary system, Brahmaloka, from which one is promoted to the spiritual world along with
Lord Brahma. Thus one's repetition of birth and death in the material world ceases.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 267
2. O great sage Sukadeva Gosvami, unless the living entity is freed from the infection of the material
modes of nature, he receives different types of bodies in which to enjoy or suffer, and according to the
body, he is understood to have various inclinations. By following these inclinations he traverses the path
called pravrtti-marga, by which one may be elevated to the heavenly planets, as you have already
described [in the Third Canto].
3. You have also described [at the end of the Fifth Canto] the varieties of hellish life that result from
impious activities, and you have described [in the Fourth Canto] the first manvantara, which was
presided over by Svayambhuva Manu, the son of Lord Brahma.
4-5. My dear lord, you have described the dynasties and characteristics of King Priyavrata and King
Uttanapada. The Supreme Personality of Godhead created this material world with various universes,
planetary systems, planets and stars, with varied lands, seas, oceans, mountains, rivers, gardens and
trees, all with different characteristics. These are divided among this planet earth, the luminaries in the
sky and the lower planetary systems. You have very clearly described these planets and the living
entities who live on them.
6. O greatly fortunate and opulent Sukadeva Gosvami, now kindly tell me how human beings may be
saved from having to enter hellish conditions in which they suffer terrible pains.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami replied: My dear King, if before one's next death whatever impious acts one has
performed in this life with his mind, words and body are not counteracted through proper atonement
according to the description of the Manu-samhita and other dharma-sastras, one will certainly enter the
hellish planets after death and undergo terrible suffering, as I have previously described to you.
8. Therefore, before one's next death comes, as long as one's body is strong enough, one should
quickly adopt the process of atonement according to sastra; otherwise one's time will be lost, and the
reactions of his sins will increase. As an expert physician diagnoses and treats a disease according to
its gravity, one should undergo atonement according to the severity of one's sins.
9. Maharaja Pariksit said: One may know that sinful activity is injurious for him because he actually sees
that a criminal is punished by the government and rebuked by people in general and because he hears
from scriptures and learned scholars that one is thrown into hellish conditions in the next life for
committing sinful acts. Nevertheless, in spite of such knowledge, one is forced to commit sins again and
again, even after performing acts of atonement. Therefore, what is the value of such atonement?
10. Sometimes one who is very alert so as not to commit sinful acts is victimized by sinful life again. I
therefore consider this process of repeated sinning and atoning to be useless. It is like the bathing of an
elephant, for an elephant cleanses itself by taking a full bath, but then throws dust over its head and
body as soon as it returns to the land.
11. Sukadeva Gosvami, the son of Vedavyasa, answered: My dear King, since acts meant to neutralize
impious actions are also fruitive, they will not release one from the tendency to act fruitively. Persons
who subject themselves to the rules and regulations of atonement are not at all intelligent. Indeed, they
are in the mode of darkness. Unless one is freed from the mode of ignorance, trying to counteract one
action through another is useless because this will not uproot one's desires. Thus even though one may
superficially seem pious, he will undoubtedly be prone to act impiously. Therefore real atonement is
enlightenment in perfect knowledge, Vedanta, by which one understands the Supreme Absolute Truth.
12. My dear King, if a diseased person eats the pure, uncontaminated food prescribed by a physician,
he is gradually cured, and the infection of disease can no longer touch him. Similarly, if one follows the
regulative principles of knowledge, he gradually progresses toward liberation from material
contamination.
13-14. To concentrate the mind, one must observe a life of celibacy and not fall down. One must
undergo the austerity of voluntarily giving up sense enjoyment. One must then control the mind and
senses, give charity, be truthful, clean and nonviolent, follow the regulative principles and regularly
chant the holy name of the Lord. Thus a sober and faithful person who knows the religious principles is
temporarily purified of all sins performed with his body, words and mind. These sins are like the dried
leaves of creepers beneath a bamboo tree, which may be burned by fire although their roots remain to
grow again at the first opportunity.
15. Only a rare person who has adopted complete, unalloyed devotional service to Krsna can uproot
the weeds of sinful actions with no possibility that they will revive. He can do this simply by discharging
devotional service, just as the sun can immediately dissipate fog by its rays.
16. My dear King, if a sinful person engages in the service of a bona fide devotee of the Lord and thus
learns how to dedicate his life unto the lotus feet of Krsna, he can be completely purified. One cannot
be purified merely by undergoing austerity, penance, brahmacarya and the other methods of atonement
I have previously described.
268 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
17. The path followed by pure devotees, who are well behaved and fully endowed with the best
qualifications, is certainly the most auspicious path in this material world. It is free from fear, and it is
authorized by the sastras.
18. My dear King, as a pot containing liquor cannot be purified even if washed in the waters of many
rivers, nondevotees cannot be purified by processes of atonement even if they perform them very well.
19. Although not having fully realized Krsna, persons who have even once surrendered completely unto
His lotus feet and who have become attracted to His name, form, qualities and pastimes are completely
freed of all sinful reactions, for they have thus accepted the true method of atonement. Even in dreams,
such surrendered souls do not see Yamaraja or his order carriers, who are equipped with ropes to bind
the sinful.
20. In this regard, learned scholars and saintly persons describe a very old historical incident involving a
discussion between the order carriers of Lord Visnu and those of Yamaraja. Please hear of this from
me.
21. In the city known as Kanyakubja there was a brahmana named Ajamila who married a prostitute
maidservant and lost all his brahminical qualities because of the association of that low-class woman.
22. This fallen brahmana, Ajamila, gave trouble to others by arresting them, by cheating them in
gambling or by directly plundering them. This was the way he earned his livelihood and maintained his
wife and children.
23. My dear King, while he thus spent his time in abominable, sinful activities to maintain his family of
many sons, eighty-eight years of his life passed by.
24. That old man Ajamila had ten sons, of whom the youngest was a baby named Narayana. Since
Narayana was the youngest of all the sons, he was naturally very dear to both his father and his mother.
25. Because of the child's broken language and awkward movements, old Ajamila was very much
attached to him. He always took care of the child and enjoyed the child's activities.
26. When Ajamila chewed food and ate it, he called the child to chew and eat, and when he drank he
called the child to drink also. Always engaged in taking care of the child and calling his name,
Narayana, Ajamila could not understand that his own time was now exhausted and that death was upon
him.
27. When the time of death arrived for the foolish Ajamila, he began thinking exclusively of his son
Narayana.
28-29. Ajamila then saw three awkward persons with deformed bodily features, fierce, twisted faces,
and hair standing erect on their bodies. With ropes in their hands, they had come to take him away to
the abode of Yamaraja. When he saw them he was extremely bewildered, and because of attachment
to his child, who was playing a short distance away, Ajamila began to call him loudly by his name. Thus
with tears in his eyes he somehow or other chanted the holy name of Narayana.
30. My dear King, the order carriers of Visnu, the Visnudutas, immediately arrived when they heard the
holy name of their master from the mouth of the dying Ajamila, who had certainly chanted without
offense because he had chanted in complete anxiety.
31. The order carriers of Yamaraja were snatching the soul from the core of the heart of Ajamila, the
husband of the prostitute, but with resounding voices the messengers of Lord Visnu, the Visnudutas,
forbade them to do so.
32. When the order carriers of Yamaraja, the son of the sun-god, were thus forbidden, they replied:
Who are you, sirs, that have the audacity to challenge the jurisdiction of Yamaraja?
33. Dear sirs, whose servants are you, where have you come from, and why are you forbidding us to
touch the body of Ajamila? Are you demigods from the heavenly planets, are you sub-demigods, or are
you the best of devotees?
34-36. The order carriers of Yamaraja said: Your eyes are just like the petals of lotus flowers. Dressed
in yellow silken garments, decorated with garlands of lotuses, and wearing very attractive helmets on
your heads and earrings on your ears, you all appear fresh and youthful. Your four long arms are
decorated with bows and quivers of arrows and with swords, clubs, conchshells, discs and lotus flowers.
Your effulgence has dissipated the darkness of this place with extraordinary illumination. Now, sirs, why
are you obstructing us?
37. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Being thus addressed by the messengers of Yamaraja, the servants
of Vasudeva smiled and spoke the following words in voices as deep as the sound of rumbling clouds.
38. The blessed messengers of Lord Visnu, the Visnudutas, said: If you are actually servants of
Yamaraja, you must explain to us the meaning of religious principles and the symptoms of irreligion.
39. What is the process of punishing others? Who are the actual candidates for punishment? Are all
karmis engaged in fruitive activities punishable, or only some of them?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 269
40. The Yamadutas replied: That which is prescribed in the Vedas constitutes dharma, the religious
principles, and the opposite of that is irreligion. The Vedas are directly the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Narayana, and are self-born. This we have heard from Yamaraja.
41. The supreme cause of all causes, Narayana, is situated in His own abode in the spiritual world, but
nevertheless He controls the entire cosmic manifestation according to the three modes of material
nature--sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna. In this way all living entities are awarded different
qualities, different names [such as brahmana, ksatriya and vaisya], different duties according to the
varnasrama institution, and different forms. Thus Narayana is the cause of the entire cosmic
manifestation.
42. The sun, fire, sky, air, demigods, moon, evening, day, night, directions, water, land and Supersoul
Himself all witness the activities of the living entity.
43. The candidates for punishment are those who are confirmed by these many witnesses to have
deviated from their prescribed regulative duties. Everyone engaged in fruitive activities is suitable to be
subjected to punishment according to his sinful acts.
44. O inhabitants of Vaikuntha, you are sinless, but those within this material world are all karmis,
whether acting piously or impiously. Both kinds of action are possible for them because they are
contaminated by the three modes of nature and must act accordingly. One who has accepted a material
body cannot be inactive, and sinful action is inevitable for one acting under the modes of material
nature. Therefore all the living entities within this material world are punishable.
45. In proportion to the extent of one's religious or irreligious actions in this life, one must enjoy or suffer
the corresponding reactions of his karma in the next.
46. O best of the demigods, we can see three different varieties of life, which are due to the
contamination of the three modes of nature. The living entities are thus known as peaceful, restless and
foolish; as happy, unhappy or in-between; or as religious, irreligious and semireligious. We can deduce
that in the next life these three kinds of material nature will similarly act.
47. Just as springtime in the present indicates the nature of springtimes in the past and future, so this
life of happiness, distress or a mixture of both gives evidence concerning the religious and irreligious
activities of one's past and future lives.
48. The omnipotent Yamaraja is as good as Lord Brahma, for while situated in his own abode or in
everyone's heart like the Paramatma, he mentally observes the past activities of a living entity and thus
understands how the living entity will act in future lives.
49. As a sleeping person acts according to the body manifested in his dreams and accepts it to be
himself, so one identifies with his present body, which he acquired because of his past religious or
irreligious actions, and is unable to know his past or future lives.
50. Above the five senses of perception, the five working senses and the five objects of the senses is
the mind, which is the sixteenth element. Above the mind is the seventeenth element, the soul, the
living being himself, who, in cooperation with the other sixteen, enjoys the material world alone. The
living being enjoys three kinds of situations, namely happy, distressful and mixed.
51. The subtle body is endowed with sixteen parts--the five knowledge-acquiring senses, the five
working senses, the five objects of sense gratification, and the mind. This subtle body is an effect of the
three modes of material nature. It is composed of insurmountably strong desires, and therefore it
causes the living entity to transmigrate from one body to another in human life, animal life and life as a
demigod. When the living entity gets the body of a demigod, he is certainly very jubilant, when he gets a
human body he is always in lamentation, and when he gets the body of an animal, he is always afraid.
In all conditions, however, he is actually miserable. His miserable condition is called samsrti, or
transmigration in material life.
52. The foolish embodied living entity, inept at controlling his senses and mind, is forced to act
according to the influence of the modes of material nature, against his desires. He is like a silkworm that
uses its own saliva to create a cocoon and then becomes trapped in it, with no possibility of getting out.
The living entity traps himself in a network of his own fruitive activities and then can find no way to
release himself. Thus he is always bewildered, and repeatedly he dies.
53. Not a single living entity can remain unengaged even for a moment. One must act by his natural
tendency according to the three modes of material nature because this natural tendency forcibly makes
him work in a particular way.
54. The fruitive activities a living being performs, whether pious or impious, are the unseen cause for
the fulfillment of his desires. This unseen cause is the root for the living entity's different bodies.
Because of his intense desire, the living entity takes birth in a particular family and receives a body
which is either like that of his mother or like that of his father. The gross and subtle bodies are created
according to his desire.
270 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
55. Since the living entity is associated with material nature, he is in an awkward position, but if in the
human form of life he is taught how to associate with the Supreme Personality of Godhead or His
devotee, this position can be overcome.
56-57. In the beginning this brahmana named Ajamila studied all the Vedic literatures. He was a
reservoir of good character, good conduct and good qualities. Firmly established in executing all the
Vedic injunctions, he was very mild and gentle, and he kept his mind and senses under control.
Furthermore, he was always truthful, he knew how to chant the Vedic mantras, and he was also very
pure. Ajamila was very respectful to his spiritual master, the fire-god, guests, and the elderly members
of his household. Indeed, he was free from false prestige. He was upright, benevolent to all living
entities, and well behaved. He would never speak nonsense or envy anyone.
58-60. Once this brahmana Ajamila, following the order of his father, went to the forest to collect fruit,
flowers and two kinds of grass, called samit and kusa. On the way home, he came upon a sudra, a very
lusty, fourth-class man, who was shamelessly embracing and kissing a prostitute. The sudra was
smiling, singing and enjoying as if this were proper behavior. Both the sudra and the prostitute were
drunk. The prostitute's eyes were rolling in intoxication, and her dress had become loose. Such was the
condition in which Ajamila saw them.
61. The sudra, his arm decorated with turmeric powder, was embracing the prostitute. When Ajamila
saw her, the dormant lusty desires in his heart awakened, and in illusion he fell under their control.
62. As far as possible he patiently tried to remember the instructions of the sastras not even to see a
woman. With the help of this knowledge and his intellect, he tried to control his lusty desires, but
because of the force of Cupid within his heart, he failed to control his mind.
63. In the same way that the sun and moon are eclipsed by a low planet, the brahmana lost all his good
sense. Taking advantage of this situation, he always thought of the prostitute, and within a short time he
took her as a servant in his house and abandoned all the regulative principles of a brahmana.
64. Thus Ajamila began spending whatever money he had inherited from his father to satisfy the
prostitute with various material presentations so that she would remain pleased with him. He gave up all
his brahminical activities to satisfy the prostitute.
65. Because his intelligence was pierced by the lustful glance of the prostitute, the victimized brahmana
Ajamila engaged in sinful acts in her association. He even gave up the company of his very beautiful
young wife, who came from a very respectable brahmana family.
66. Although born of a brahmana family, this rascal, bereft of intelligence because of the prostitute's
association, earned money somehow or other, regardless of whether properly or improperly, and used it
to maintain the prostitute's sons and daughters.
67. This brahmana irresponsibly spent his long lifetime transgressing all the rules and regulations of the
holy scripture, living extravagantly and eating food prepared by a prostitute. Therefore he is full of sins.
He is unclean and is addicted to forbidden activities.
68. This man Ajamila did not undergo atonement. Therefore because of his sinful life, we must take him
into the presence of Yamaraja for punishment. There, according to the extent of his sinful acts, he will
be punished and thus purified.
Chapter Two Ajamila Delivered by the Visnudutas
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, the servants of Lord Visnu are always very expert in logic
and arguments. After hearing the statements of the Yamadutas, they replied as follows.
2. The Visnudutas said: Alas, how painful it is that irreligion is being introduced into an assembly where
religion should be maintained. Indeed, those in charge of maintaining the religious principles are
needlessly punishing a sinless, unpunishable person.
3. A king or governmental official should be so well qualified that he acts as a father, maintainer and
protector of the citizens because of affection and love. He should give the citizens good advice and
instructions according to the standard scriptures and should be equal to everyone. Yamaraja does this,
for he is the supreme master of justice, and so do those who follow in his footsteps. However, if such
persons become polluted and exhibit partiality by punishing an innocent, blameless person, where will
the citizens go to take shelter for their maintenance and security?
4. The mass of people follow the example of a leader in society and imitate his behavior. They accept
as evidence whatever the leader accepts.
5-6. People in general are not very advanced in knowledge by which to discriminate between religion
and irreligion. The innocent, unenlightened citizen is like an ignorant animal sleeping in peace with its
head on the lap of its master, faithfully believing in the master's protection. If a leader is actually
kindhearted and deserves to be the object of a living entity's faith, how can he punish or kill a foolish
person who has fully surrendered in good faith and friendship?
7. Ajamila has already atoned for all his sinful actions. Indeed, he has atoned not only for sins
performed in one life but for those performed in millions of lives, for in a helpless condition he chanted
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 271
the holy name of Narayana. Even though he did not chant purely, he chanted without offense, and
therefore he is now pure and eligible for liberation.
8. The Visnudutas continued: Even previously, while eating and at other times, this Ajamila would call
his son, saying, "My dear Narayana, please come here." Although calling the name of his son, he
nevertheless uttered the four syllables na-ra-ya-na. Simply by chanting the name of Narayana in this
way, he sufficiently atoned for the sinful reactions of millions of lives.
9-10. The chanting of the holy name of Lord Visnu is the best process of atonement for a thief of gold or
other valuables, for a drunkard, for one who betrays a friend or relative, for one who kills a brahmana, or
for one who indulges in sex with the wife of his guru or another superior. It is also the best method of
atonement for one who murders women, the king or his father, for one who slaughters cows, and for all
other sinful men. Simply by chanting the holy name of Lord Visnu, such sinful persons may attract the
attention of the Supreme Lord, who therefore considers, "Because this man has chanted My holy name,
My duty is to give him protection."
11. By following the Vedic ritualistic ceremonies or undergoing atonement, sinful men do not become as
purified as by chanting once the holy name of Lord Hari. Although ritualistic atonement may free one
from sinful reactions, it does not awaken devotional service, unlike the chanting of the Lord's names,
which reminds one of the Lord's fame, qualities, attributes, pastimes and paraphernalia.
12. The ritualistic ceremonies of atonement recommended in the religious scriptures are insufficient to
cleanse the heart absolutely because after atonement one's mind again runs toward material activities.
Consequently, for one who wants liberation from the fruitive reactions of material activities, the chanting
of the Hare Krsna mantra, or glorification of the name, fame and pastimes of the Lord, is recommended
as the most perfect process of atonement because such chanting eradicates the dirt from one's heart
completely.
13. At the time of death, this Ajamila helplessly and very loudly chanted the holy name of the Lord,
Narayana. That chanting alone has already freed him from the reactions of all sinful life. Therefore, O
servants of Yamaraja, do not try to take him to your master for punishment in hellish conditions.
14. One who chants the holy name of the Lord is immediately freed from the reactions of unlimited sins,
even if he chants indirectly [to indicate something else], jokingly, for musical entertainment, or even
neglectfully. This is accepted by all the learned scholars of the scriptures.
15. If one chants the holy name of Hari and then dies because of an accidental misfortune, such as
falling from the top of a house, slipping and suffering broken bones while traveling on the road, being
bitten by a serpent, being afflicted with pain and high fever, or being injured by a weapon, one is
immediately absolved from having to enter hellish life, even though he is sinful.
16. Authorities who are learned scholars and sages have carefully ascertained that one should atone
for the heaviest sins by undergoing a heavy process of atonement and one should atone for lighter sins
by undergoing lighter atonement. Chanting the Hare Krsna mantra, however, vanquishes all the effects
of sinful activities, regardless of whether heavy or light.
17. Although one may neutralize the reactions of sinful life through austerity, charity, vows and other
such methods, these pious activities cannot uproot the material desires in one's heart. However, if one
serves the lotus feet of the Personality of Godhead, he is immediately freed from all such
contaminations.
18. As a fire burns dry grass to ashes, so the holy name of the Lord, whether chanted knowingly or
unknowingly, burns to ashes, without fail, all the reactions of one's sinful activities.
19. If a person unaware of the effective potency of a certain medicine takes that medicine or is forced to
take it, it will act even without his knowledge because its potency does not depend on the patient's
understanding. Similarly, even though one does not know the value of chanting the holy name of the
Lord, if one chants knowingly or unknowingly, the chanting will be very effective.
20. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, having thus perfectly judged the principles of
devotional service with reasoning and arguments, the order carriers of Lord Visnu released the
brahmana Ajamila from the bondage of the Yamadutas and saved him from imminent death.
21. My dear Maharaja Pariksit, O subduer of all enemies, after the servants of Yamaraja had been
answered by the order carriers of Lord Visnu, they went to Yamaraja and explained to him everything
that had happened.
22. Having been released from the nooses of Yamaraja's servants, the brahmana Ajamila, now free
from fear, came to his senses and immediately offered obeisances to the Visnudutas by bowing his
head at their lotus feet. He was extremely pleased by their presence, for he had seen them save his life
from the hands of the servants of Yamaraja.
23. O sinless Maharaja Pariksit, the order carriers of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the
Visnudutas, saw that Ajamila was attempting to say something, and thus they suddenly disappeared
from his presence.
272 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24-25. After hearing the discourses between the Yamadutas and the Visnudutas, Ajamila could
understand the religious principles that act under the three modes of material nature. These principles
are mentioned in the three Vedas. He could also understand the transcendental religious principles,
which are above the modes of material nature and which concern the relationship between the living
being and the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Furthermore, Ajamila heard glorification of the name,
fame, qualities and pastimes of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. He thus became a perfectly pure
devotee. He could then remember his past sinful activities, which he greatly regretted having performed.
26. Ajamila said: Alas, being a servant of my senses, how degraded I became! I fell down from my
position as a duly qualified brahmana and begot children in the womb of a prostitute.
27. Alas, all condemnation upon me! I acted so sinfully that I degraded my family tradition. Indeed, I
gave up my chaste and beautiful young wife to have sexual intercourse with a fallen prostitute
accustomed to drinking wine. All condemnation upon me!
28. My father and mother were old and had no other son or friend to look after them. Because I did not
take care of them, they lived with great difficulty. Alas, like an abominable lower-class man, I
ungratefully left them in that condition.
29. It is now clear that as a consequence of such activities, a sinful person like me must be thrown into
hellish conditions meant for those who have broken religious principles and must there suffer extreme
miseries.
30. Was this a dream I saw, or was it reality? I saw fearsome men with ropes in their hands coming to
arrest me and drag me away. Where have they gone?
31. And where have those four liberated and very beautiful persons gone who released me from arrest
and saved me from being dragged down to the hellish regions?
32. I am certainly most abominable and unfortunate to have merged in an ocean of sinful activities, but
nevertheless, because of my previous spiritual activities, I could see those four exalted personalities
who came to rescue me. Now I feel exceedingly happy because of their visit.
33. Were it not for my past devotional service, how could I, a most unclean keeper of a prostitute, have
gotten an opportunity to chant the holy name of Vaikunthapati when I was just ready to die? Certainly it
could not have been possible.
34. Ajamila continued: I am a shameless cheater who has killed his brahminical culture. Indeed, I am
sin personified. Where am I in comparison to the all-auspicious chanting of the holy name of Lord
Narayana?
35. I am such a sinful person, but since I have now gotten this opportunity, I must completely control my
mind, life and senses and always engage in devotional service so that I may not fall again into the deep
darkness and ignorance of material life.
36-37. Because of identifying oneself with the body, one is subjected to desires for sense gratification,
and thus one engages in many different types of pious and impious action. This is what constitutes
material bondage. Now I shall disentangle myself from my material bondage, which has been caused
by the Supreme Personality of Godhead's illusory energy in the form of a woman. Being a most fallen
soul, I was victimized by the illusory energy and have become like a dancing dog led around by a
woman's hand. Now I shall give up all lusty desires and free myself from this illusion. I shall become a
merciful, well-wishing friend to all living entities and always absorb myself in Krsna consciousness.
38. Simply because I chanted the holy name of the Lord in the association of devotees, my heart is now
becoming purified. Therefore I shall not fall victim again to the false lures of material sense gratification.
Now that I have become fixed in the Absolute Truth, henceforward I shall not identify myself with the
body. I shall give up false conceptions of "I" and "mine" and fix my mind on the lotus feet of Krsna.
39. Because of a moment's association with devotees [the Visnudutas], Ajamila detached himself from
the material conception of life with determination. Thus freed from all material attraction, he immediately
started for Hardwar.
40. In Hardwar, Ajamila took shelter at a Visnu temple, where he executed the process of bhakti-yoga.
He controlled his senses and fully applied his mind in the service of the Lord.
41. Ajamila fully engaged in devotional service. Thus he detached his mind from the process of sense
gratification and became fully absorbed in thinking of the form of the Lord.
42. When his intelligence and mind were fixed upon the form of the Lord, the brahmana Ajamila once
again saw before him four celestial persons. He could understand that they were those he had seen
previously, and thus he offered them his obeisances by bowing down before them.
43. Upon seeing the Visnudutas, Ajamila gave up his material body at Hardwar on the bank of the
Ganges. He regained his original spiritual body, which was a body appropriate for an associate of the
Lord.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 273
44. Accompanied by the order carriers of Lord Visnu, Ajamila boarded an airplane made of gold.
Passing through the airways, he went directly to the abode of Lord Visnu, the husband of the goddess
of fortune.
45. Ajamila was a brahmana who because of bad association had given up all brahminical culture and
religious principles. Becoming most fallen, he stole, drank and performed other abominable acts. He
even kept a prostitute. Thus he was destined to be carried away to hell by the order carriers of
Yamaraja, but he was immediately rescued simply by a glimpse of the chanting of the holy name
Narayana.
46. Therefore one who desires freedom from material bondage should adopt the process of chanting
and glorifying the name, fame, form and pastimes of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, at whose
feet all the holy places stand. One cannot derive the proper benefit from other methods, such as pious
atonement, speculative knowledge and meditation in mystic yoga, because even after following such
methods one takes to fruitive activities again, unable to control his mind, which is contaminated by the
base qualities of nature, namely passion and ignorance.
47-48. Because this very confidential historical narration has the potency to vanquish all sinful
reactions, one who hears or describes it with faith and devotion is no longer doomed to hellish life,
regardless of his having a material body and regardless of how sinful he may have been. Indeed, the
Yamadutas, who carry out the orders of Yamaraja, do not approach him even to see him. After giving
up his body, he returns home, back to Godhead, where he is very respectfully received and worshiped.
49. While suffering at the time of death, Ajamila chanted the holy name of the Lord, and although the
chanting was directed toward his son, he nevertheless returned home, back to Godhead. Therefore if
one faithfully and inoffensively chants the holy name of the Lord, where is the doubt that he will return to
Godhead?
Chapter Three Yamaraja Instructs His Messengers
1. King Pariksit said: O my lord, O Sukadeva Gosvami, Yamaraja is the controller of all living entities in
terms of their religious and irreligious activities, but his order had been foiled. When his servants, the
Yamadutas, informed him of their defeat by the Visnudutas, who had stopped them from arresting
Ajamila, what did he reply?
2. O great sage, never before has it been heard anywhere that an order from Yamaraja has been
baffled. Therefore I think that people will have doubts about this that no one but you can eradicate.
Since that is my firm conviction, kindly explain the reasons for these events.
3. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami replied: My dear King, when the order carriers of Yamaraja were baffled and
defeated by the order carriers of Visnu, they approached their master, the controller of Samyamani-puri
and master of sinful persons, to tell him of this incident.
4. The Yamadutas said: Our dear lord, how many controllers or rulers are there in this material world?
How many causes are responsible for manifesting the various results of activities performed under the
three modes of material nature [sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna]?
5. If in this universe there are many rulers and justices who disagree about punishment and reward,
their contradictory actions will neutralize each other, and no one will be punished or rewarded.
Otherwise, if their contradictory acts fail to neutralize each other, everyone will have to be both
punished and rewarded.
6. The Yamadutas continued: Since there are many different karmis, or workers, there may be different
judges or rulers to give them justice, but just as one central emperor controls different departmental
rulers, there must be one supreme controller to guide all the judges.
7. The supreme judge must be one, not many. It was our understanding that you are that supreme
judge and that you have jurisdiction even over the demigods. Our impression was that you are the
master of all living entities, the supreme authority who discriminates between the pious and impious
activities of all human beings.
8. But now we see that the punishment ordained under your authority is no longer effective, since your
order has been transgressed by four wonderful and perfect persons.
9. We were bringing the most sinful Ajamila toward the hellish planets, following your order, when those
beautiful persons from Siddhaloka forcibly cut the knots of the ropes with which we were arresting him.
10. As soon as the sinful Ajamila uttered the name Narayana, these four beautiful men immediately
arrived and reassured him, saying, "Do not fear. Do not fear." We wish to know about them from Your
Lordship. If you think we are able to understand them, kindly describe who they are.
11. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus having been questioned, Lord Yamaraja, the supreme controller
of the living entities, was very pleased with his order carriers because of hearing from them the holy
name of Narayana. He remembered the lotus feet of the Lord and began to reply.
12. Yamaraja said: My dear servants, you have accepted me as the Supreme, but factually I am not.
Above me, and above all the other demigods, including Indra and Candra, is the one supreme master
274 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
and controller. The partial manifestations of His personality are Brahma, Visnu and Siva, who are in
charge of the creation, maintenance and annihilation of this universe. He is like the two threads that
form the length and breadth of a woven cloth. The entire world is controlled by Him just as a bull is
controlled by a rope in its nose.
13. Just as the driver of a bullock cart ties ropes through the nostrils of his bulls to control them, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead binds all men through the ropes of His words in the Vedas, which set
forth the names and activities of the distinct orders of human society [brahmana, ksatriya, vaisya and
sudra]. In fear, the members of these orders all worship the Supreme Lord by offering Him
presentations according to their respective activities.
14-15. I, Yamaraja; Indra, the King of heaven; Nirrti; Varuna; Candra, the moon-god; Agni; Lord Siva;
Pavana; Lord Brahma; Surya, the sun-god; Visvasu; the eight Vasus; the Sadhyas; the Maruts; the
Rudras; the Siddhas; and Marici and the other great rsis engaged in maintaining the departmental
affairs of the universe, as well as the best of the demigods headed by Brhaspati, and the great sages
headed by Bhrgu are all certainly freed from the influence of the two base material modes of nature,
namely passion and ignorance. Nevertheless, although we are in the mode of goodness, we cannot
understand the activities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. What, then, is to be said of others,
who, under illusion, merely speculate to know God?
16. As the different limbs of the body cannot see the eyes, the living entities cannot see the Supreme
Lord, who is situated as the Supersoul in everyone's heart. Not by the senses, by the mind, by the life
air, by thoughts within the heart, or by the vibration of words can the living entities ascertain the real
situation of the Supreme Lord.
17. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is self-sufficient and fully independent. He is the master of
everyone and everything, including the illusory energy. He has His form, qualities and features; and
similarly His order carriers, the Vaisnavas, who are very beautiful, possess bodily features,
transcendental qualities and a transcendental nature almost like His. They always wander within this
world with full independence.
18. The order carriers of Lord Visnu, who are worshiped even by the demigods, possess wonderful
bodily features exactly like those of Visnu and are very rarely seen. The Visnudutas protect the
devotees of the Lord from the hands of enemies, from envious persons and even from my jurisdiction,
as well as from natural disturbances.
19. Real religious principles are enacted by the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Although fully
situated in the mode of goodness, even the great rsis who occupy the topmost planets cannot ascertain
the real religious principles, nor can the demigods or the leaders of Siddhaloka, to say nothing of the
asuras, ordinary human beings, Vidyadharas and Caranas.
20-21. Lord Brahma, Bhagavan Narada, Lord Siva, the four Kumaras, Lord Kapila [the son of Devahuti],
Svayambhuva Manu, Prahlada Maharaja, Janaka Maharaja, Grandfather Bhisma, Bali Maharaja,
Sukadeva Gosvami and I myself know the real religious principle. My dear servants, this transcendental
religious principle, which is known as bhagavata-dharma, or surrender unto the Supreme Lord and love
for Him, is uncontaminated by the material modes of nature. It is very confidential and difficult for
ordinary human beings to understand, but if by chance one fortunately understands it, he is immediately
liberated, and thus he returns home, back to Godhead.
22. Devotional service, beginning with the chanting of the holy name of the Lord, is the ultimate religious
principle for the living entity in human society.
23. My dear servants, who are as good as my sons, just see how glorious is the chanting of the holy
name of the Lord. The greatly sinful Ajamila chanted only to call his son, not knowing that he was
chanting the Lord's holy name. Nevertheless, by chanting the holy name of the Lord, he remembered
Narayana, and thus he was immediately saved from the ropes of death.
24. Therefore it should be understood that one is easily relieved from all sinful reactions by chanting the
holy name of the Lord and chanting of His qualities and activities. This is the only process
recommended for relief from sinful reactions. Even if one chants the holy name of the Lord with
improper pronunciation, he will achieve relief from material bondage if he chants without offenses.
Ajamila, for example, was extremely sinful, but while dying he merely chanted the holy name, and
although calling his son, he achieved complete liberation because he remembered the name of
Narayana.
25. Because they are bewildered by the illusory energy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Yajnavalkya and Jaimini and other compilers of the religious scriptures cannot know the secret,
confidential religious system of the twelve mahajanas. They cannot understand the transcendental
value of performing devotional service or chanting the Hare Krsna mantra. Because their minds are
attracted to the ritualistic ceremonies mentioned in the Vedas--especially the Yajur Veda, Sama Veda
and Rg Veda--their intelligence has become dull. Thus they are busy collecting the ingredients for
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 275
ritualistic ceremonies that yield only temporary benefits, such as elevation to Svargaloka for material
happiness. They are not attracted to the sankirtana movement; instead, they are interested in dharma,
artha, kama and moksa.
26. Considering all these points, therefore, intelligent men decide to solve all problems by adopting the
devotional service of chanting the holy name of the Lord, who is situated in everyone's heart and who is
a mine of all auspicious qualities. Such persons are not within my jurisdiction for punishment. Generally
they never commit sinful activities, but even if by mistake or because of bewilderment or illusion they
sometimes commit sinful acts, they are protected from sinful reactions because they always chant the
Hare Krsna mantra.
27. My dear servants, please do not approach such devotees, for they have fully surrendered to the
lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. They are equal to everyone, and their narrations are
sung by the demigods and the inhabitants of Siddhaloka. Please do not even go near them. They are
always protected by the club of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and therefore Lord Brahma and I
and even the time factor are not competent to chastise them.
28. Paramahamsas are exalted persons who have no taste for material enjoyment and who drink the
honey of the Lord's lotus feet. My dear servants, bring to me for punishment only persons who are
averse to the taste of that honey, who do not associate with paramahamsas and who are attached to
family life and worldly enjoyment, which form the path to hell.
29. My dear servants, please bring to me only those sinful persons who do not use their tongues to
chant the holy name and qualities of Krsna, whose hearts do not remember the lotus feet of Krsna even
once, and whose heads do not bow down even once before Lord Krsna. Send me those who do not
perform their duties toward Visnu, which are the only duties in human life. Please bring me all such
fools and rascals.
30. [Then Yamaraja, considering himself and his servants to be offenders, spoke as follows, begging
pardon from the Lord.] O my Lord, my servants have surely committed a great offense by arresting a
Vaisnava such as Ajamila. O Narayana, O supreme and oldest person, please forgive us. Because of
our ignorance, we failed to recognize Ajamila as a servant of Your Lordship, and thus we have certainly
committed a great offense. Therefore with folded hands we beg Your pardon. My Lord, since You are
supremely merciful and are always full of good qualities, please pardon us. We offer our respectful
obeisances unto You.
31. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, the chanting of the holy name of the Lord is able to
uproot even the reactions of the greatest sins. Therefore the chanting of the sankirtana movement is the
most auspicious activity in the entire universe. Please try to understand this so that others will take it
seriously.
32. One who constantly hears and chants the holy name of the Lord and hears and chants about His
activities can very easily attain the platform of pure devotional service, which can cleanse the dirt from
one's heart. One cannot achieve such purification merely by observing vows and performing Vedic
ritualistic ceremonies.
33. Devotees who always lick the honey from the lotus feet of Lord Krsna do not care at all for material
activities, which are performed under the three modes of material nature and which bring only misery.
Indeed, devotees never give up the lotus feet of Krsna to return to material activities. Others, however,
who are addicted to Vedic rituals because they have neglected the service of the Lord's lotus feet and
are enchanted by lusty desires, sometimes perform acts of atonement. Nevertheless, being
incompletely purified, they return to sinful activities again and again.
34. After hearing from the mouth of their master about the extraordinary glories of the Lord and His
name, fame and attributes, the Yamadutas were struck with wonder. Since then, as soon as they see a
devotee, they fear him and dare not look at him again.
35. When the great sage Agastya, the son of Kumbha, was residing in the Malaya Hills and worshiping
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, I approached him, and he explained to me this confidential
history.
Chapter Four The Hamsa-guhya Prayers Offrered to the Lord by Prajapati Daksa
1-2. The blessed King said to Sukadeva Gosvami: My dear lord, the demigods, demons, human beings,
Nagas, beasts and birds were created during the reign of Svayambhuva Manu. You have spoken about
this creation briefly [in the Third Canto]. Now I wish to know about it elaborately. I also wish to know
about the potency of the Supreme Personality of Godhead by which He brought about the secondary
creation.
3. Suta Gosvami said: O great sages [assembled at Naimisaranya], after the great yogi Sukadeva
Gosvami heard King Pariksit's inquiry, he praised it and thus replied.
4. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When the ten sons of Pracinabarhi emerged from the waters, in which they
were performing austerities, they saw that the entire surface of the world was covered by trees.
276 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
5. Because of having undergone long austerities in the water, the Pracetas were very angry at the trees.
Desiring to burn them to ashes, they generated wind and fire from their mouths.
6. My dear King Pariksit, when Soma, the king of the trees and predominating deity of the moon, saw
the fire and wind burning all the trees to ashes, he felt great sympathy because he is the maintainer of
all herbs and trees. To appease the anger of the Pracetas, Soma spoke as follows.
7. O greatly fortunate ones, you should not kill these poor trees by burning them to ashes. Your duty is
to wish the citizens [prajas] all prosperity and to act as their protectors.
8. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Hari, is the master of all living entities, including all the
prajapatis, such as Lord Brahma. Because He is the all-pervading and indestructible master, He has
created all these trees and vegetables as eatables for other living entities.
9. By nature's arrangement, fruits and flowers are considered the food of insects and birds; grass and
other legless living entities are meant to be the food of four-legged animals like cows and buffalo;
animals that cannot use their front legs as hands are meant to be the food of animals like tigers, which
have claws; and four-legged animals like deer and goats, as well as food grains, are meant to be the
food of human beings.
10. O pure-hearted ones, your father, Pracinabarhi, and the Supreme Personality of Godhead have
ordered you to generate population. Therefore how can you burn to ashes these trees and herbs, which
are needed for the maintenance of your subjects and descendants?
11. The path of goodness traversed by your father, grandfather and great-grandfathers is that of
maintaining the subjects [prajas], including the men, animals and trees. That is the path you should
follow. Unnecessary anger is contrary to your duty. Therefore I request you to control your anger.
12. As the father and mother are the friends and maintainers of their children, as the eyelid is the
protector of the eye, as the husband is the maintainer and protector of a woman, as the householder is
the maintainer and protector of beggars, and as the learned is the friend of the ignorant, so the king is
the protector and giver of life to all his subjects. The trees are also subjects of the king. Therefore they
should be given protection.
13. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is situated as the Supersoul within the cores of the hearts of
all living entities, whether moving or nonmoving, including men, birds, animals, trees and, indeed, all
living entities. Therefore you should consider every body a residence or temple of the Lord. By such
vision you will satisfy the Lord. You should not angrily kill these living entities in the forms of trees.
14. One who inquires into self-realization and thus subdues his powerful anger--which awakens
suddenly in the body as if falling from the sky--transcends the influence of the modes of material nature.
15. There is no need to burn these poor trees any longer. Let whatever trees still remain be happy.
Indeed, you should also be happy. Now, here is a beautiful, well-qualified girl named Marisa, who was
raised by the trees as their daughter. You may accept this beautiful girl as your wife.
16. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, after thus pacifying the Pracetas, Soma, the king of
the moon, gave them the beautiful girl born of Pramloca Apsara. The Pracetas all received Pramloca's
daughter, who had high, very beautiful hips, and married her according to the religious system.
17. In the womb of that girl the Pracetas all begot a son named Daksa, who filled the three worlds with
living entities.
18. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Please hear from me with great attention how Prajapati Daksa, who
was very affectionate to his daughters, created different types of living entities through his semen and
through his mind.
19. With his mind, Prajapati Daksa first created all kinds of demigods, demons, human beings, birds,
beasts, aquatics and so on.
20. But when Prajapati Daksa saw that he was not properly generating all kinds of living entities, he
approached a mountain near the Vindhya mountain range, and there he executed very difficult
austerities.
21. Near that mountain was a very holy place named Aghamarsana. There Prajapati Daksa executed
ritualistic ceremonies and satisfied the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, by engaging in great
austerities to please Him.
22. My dear King, I shall fully explain to you the Hamsa-guhya prayers, which were offered to the
Supreme Personality of Godhead by Daksa, and I shall explain how the Lord was pleased with him for
those prayers.
23. Prajapati Daksa said: The Supreme Personality of Godhead is transcendental to the illusory energy
and the physical categories it produces. He possesses the potency for unfailing knowledge and
supreme willpower, and He is the controller of the living entities and the illusory energy. The conditioned
souls who have accepted this material manifestation as everything cannot see Him, for He is above the
evidence of experimental knowledge. Self-evident and self-sufficient, He is not caused by any superior
cause. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto Him.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 277
24. As the sense objects [form, taste, touch, smell and sound] cannot understand how the senses
perceive them, so the conditioned soul, although residing in his body along with the Supersoul, cannot
understand how the supreme spiritual person, the master of the material creation, directs his senses.
Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto that Supreme Person, who is the supreme controller.
25. Because they are only matter, the body, the life airs, the external and internal senses, the five gross
elements and the subtle sense objects [form, taste, smell, sound and touch] cannot know their own
nature, the nature of the other senses or the nature of their controllers. But the living being, because of
his spiritual nature, can know his body, the life airs, the senses, the elements and the sense objects,
and he can also know the three qualities that form their roots. Nevertheless, although the living being is
completely aware of them, he is unable to see the Supreme Being, who is omniscient and unlimited. I
therefore offer my respectful obeisances unto Him.
26. When one's consciousness is completely purified of the contamination of material existence, gross
and subtle, without being agitated as in the working and dreaming states, and when the mind is not
dissolved as in susupti, deep sleep, one comes to the platform of trance. Then one's material vision and
the memories of the mind, which manifests names and forms, are vanquished. Only in such a trance is
the Supreme Personality of Godhead revealed. Thus let us offer our respectful obeisances unto the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is seen in that uncontaminated, transcendental state.
27-28. Just as great learned brahmanas who are expert in performing ritualistic ceremonies and
sacrifices can extract the fire dormant within wooden fuel by chanting the fifteen Samidheni mantras,
thus proving the efficacy of the Vedic mantras, so those who are actually advanced in consciousness--
in other words, those who are Krsna conscious--can find the Supersoul, who by His own spiritual
potency is situated within the heart. The heart is covered by the three modes of material nature and the
nine material elements [material nature, the total material energy, the ego, the mind and the five objects
of sense gratification], and also by the five material elements and the ten senses. These twenty-seven
elements constitute the external energy of the Lord. Great yogis meditate upon the Lord, who is situated
as the Supersoul, Paramatma, within the core of the heart. May that Supersoul be pleased with me. The
Supersoul is realized when one is eager for liberation from the unlimited varieties of material life. One
actually attains such liberation when he engages in the transcendental loving service of the Lord and
realizes the Lord because of his attitude of service. The Lord may be addressed by various spiritual
names, which are inconceivable to the material senses. When will that Supreme Personality of
Godhead be pleased with me?
29. Anything expressed by material vibrations, anything ascertained by material intelligence and
anything experienced by the material senses or concocted within the material mind is but an effect of
the modes of material nature and therefore has nothing to do with the real nature of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. The Supreme Lord is beyond the creation of this material world, for He is the
source of the material qualities and creation. As the cause of all causes, He exists before the creation
and after the creation. I wish to offer my respectful obeisances unto Him.
30. The Supreme Brahman, Krsna, is the ultimate resting place and source of everything. Everything is
done by Him, everything belongs to Him, and everything is offered to Him. He is the ultimate objective,
and whether acting or causing others to act, He is the ultimate doer. There are many causes, high and
low, but since He is the cause of all causes, He is well known as the Supreme Brahman who existed
before all activities. He is one without a second and has no other cause. I therefore offer my respects
unto Him.
31. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the all-pervading Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
possesses unlimited transcendental qualities. Acting from within the cores of the hearts of all
philosophers, who propagate various views, He causes them to forget their own souls while sometimes
agreeing and sometimes disagreeing among themselves. Thus He creates within this material world a
situation in which they are unable to come to a conclusion. I offer my obeisances unto Him.
32. There are two parties--namely, the theists and the atheists. The theist, who accepts the Supersoul,
finds the spiritual cause through mystic yoga. The Sankhyite, however, who merely analyzes the
material elements, comes to a conclusion of impersonalism and does not accept a supreme cause--
whether Bhagavan, Paramatma or even Brahman. Instead, he is preoccupied with the superfluous,
external activities of material nature. Ultimately, however, both parties demonstrate the Absolute Truth
because although they offer opposing statements, their object is the same ultimate cause. They are
both approaching the same Supreme Brahman, to whom I offer my respectful obeisances.
33. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is inconceivably opulent, who is devoid of all material
names, forms and pastimes, and who is all-pervading, is especially merciful to the devotees who
worship His lotus feet. Thus He exhibits transcendental forms and names with His different pastimes.
May that Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose form is eternal and full of knowledge and bliss, be
merciful to me.
278 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
34. As the air carries various characteristics of the physical elements, like the aroma of a flower or
colors resulting from a mixture of dust in the air, the Lord appears through lower systems of worship
according to one's desires, although He appears as the demigods and not in His original form. What is
the use of these other forms? May the original Supreme Personality of Godhead please fulfill my
desires.
35-39. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, who is extremely
affectionate to His devotees, was very pleased by the prayers offered by Daksa, and thus He appeared
at that holy place known as Aghamarsana. O Maharaja Pariksit, best of the Kuru dynasty, the Lord's
lotus feet rested on the shoulders of His carrier, Garuda, and He appeared with eight long, mighty, very
beautiful arms. In His hands He held a disc, conchshell, sword, shield, arrow, bow, rope and club--in
each hand a different weapon, all brilliantly shining. His garments were yellow and His bodily hue deep
bluish. His eyes and face were very cheerful, and from His neck to His feet hung a long garland of
flowers. His chest was decorated with the Kaustubha jewel and the mark of Srivatsa. On His head was
a gorgeous round helmet, and His ears were decorated with earrings resembling sharks. All these
ornaments were uncommonly beautiful. The Lord wore a golden belt on His waist, bracelets on His
arms, rings on His fingers, and ankle bells on His feet. Thus decorated by various ornaments, Lord Hari,
who is attractive to all the living entities of the three worlds, is known as Purusottama, the best
personality. He was accompanied by great devotees like Narada, Nanda and all the principal demigods,
led by the heavenly king, Indra, and the residents of various upper planetary systems such as
Siddhaloka, Gandharvaloka and Caranaloka. Situated on both sides of the Lord and behind Him as
well, these devotees offered Him prayers continuously.
40. Seeing that wonderful and effulgent form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Prajapati Daksa
was first somewhat afraid, but then he was very pleased to see the Lord, and he fell to the ground like a
stick [dandavat] to offer his respects to the Lord.
41. As rivers are filled by water flowing from a mountain, all of Daksa's senses were filled with pleasure.
Because of his highly elevated happiness, Daksa could not say anything, but simply remained flat on
the ground.
42. Although Prajapati Daksa could not say anything, when the Lord, who knows everyone's heart, saw
His devotee prostrate in that manner and desiring to increase the population, He addressed him as
follows.
43. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O most fortunate Pracetasa, because of your great faith
in Me, you have attained the supreme devotional ecstasy. Indeed, because of your austerities,
combined with exalted devotion, your life is now successful. You have achieved complete perfection.
44. My dear Prajapati Daksa, you have performed extreme austerities for the welfare and growth of the
world. My desire also is that everyone within this world be happy. I am therefore very pleased with you
because you are endeavoring to fulfill My desire for the welfare of the entire world.
45. Lord Brahma, Lord Siva, the Manus, all the other demigods in the higher planetary systems, and
you prajapatis, who are increasing the population, are working for the benefit of all living entities. Thus
you expansions of My marginal energy are incarnations of My various qualities.
46. My dear brahmana, austerity in the form of meditation is My heart, Vedic knowledge in the form of
hymns and mantras constitutes My body, and spiritual activities and ecstatic emotions are My actual
form. The ritualistic ceremonies and sacrifices, when properly conducted, are the various limbs of My
body, the unseen good fortune proceeding from pious or spiritual activities constitutes My mind, and the
demigods who execute My orders in various departments are My life and soul.
47. Before the creation of this cosmic manifestation, I alone existed with My specific spiritual potencies.
Consciousness was then unmanifested, just as one's consciousness is unmanifested during the time of
sleep.
48. I am the reservoir of unlimited potency, and therefore I am known as unlimited or all-pervading.
From My material energy the cosmic manifestation appeared within Me, and in this universal
manifestation appeared the chief being, Lord Brahma, who is your source and is not born of a material
mother.
49-50. When the chief lord of the universe, Lord Brahma [Svayambhu], having been inspired by My
energy, was attempting to create, he thought himself incapable. Therefore I gave him advice, and in
accordance with My instructions he underwent extremely difficult austerities. Because of these
austerities, the great Lord Brahma was able to create nine personalities, including you, to help him in
the functions of creation.
51. O My dear son Daksa, Prajapati Pancajana has a daughter named Asikni, whom I offer to you so
that you may accept her as your wife.
52. Now unite in sexual life as man and woman, and in this way, by sexual intercourse, you will be able
to beget hundreds of children in the womb of this girl to increase the population.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 279
53. After you give birth to many hundreds and thousands of children, they will also be captivated by My
illusory energy and will engage, like You, in sexual intercourse. But because of My mercy to you and
them, they will also be able to give Me presentations in devotion.
54. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After the creator of the entire universe, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Hari, had spoken in this way in the presence of Prajapati Daksa, He immediately
disappeared as if He were an object experienced in a dream.
Chapter Five Narada Muni Cursed by Prajapati Daksa
1. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Impelled by the illusory energy of Lord Visnu, Prajapati Daksa
begot ten thousand sons in the womb of Pancajani [Asikni]. My dear King, these sons were called the
Haryasvas.
2. My dear King, all the sons of Prajapati Daksa were alike in being very gentle and obedient to the
orders of their father. When their father ordered them to beget children, they all went in the western
direction.
3. In the west, where the River Sindhu meets the sea, there is a great place of pilgrimage known as
Narayana-saras. Many sages and others advanced in spiritual consciousness live there.
4-5. In that holy place, the Haryasvas began regularly touching the lake's waters and bathing in them.
Gradually becoming very much purified, they became inclined toward the activities of paramahamsas.
Nevertheless, because their father had ordered them to increase the population, they performed severe
austerities to fulfill his desires. One day, when the great sage Narada saw those boys performing such
fine austerities to increase the population, Narada approached them.
6-8. The great sage Narada said: My dear Haryasvas, you have not seen the extremities of the earth.
There is a kingdom where only one man lives and where there is a hole from which, having entered, no
one emerges. A woman there who is extremely unchaste adorns herself with various attractive dresses,
and the man who lives there is her husband. In that kingdom, there is a river flowing in both directions, a
wonderful home made of twenty-five materials, a swan that vibrates various sounds, and an
automatically revolving object made of sharp razors and thunderbolts. You have not seen all this, and
therefore you are inexperienced boys without advanced knowledge. How, then, will you create
progeny?
9. Alas, your father is omniscient, but you do not know his actual order. Without knowing the actual
purpose of your father, how will you create progeny?
10. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hearing these enigmatic words of Narada Muni, the Haryasvas
considered them with their natural intelligence, without help from others.
11. [The Haryasvas understood the meaning of Narada's words as follows.] The word "bhuh" ["the
earth"] refers to the field of activities. The material body, which is a result of the living being's actions, is
his field of activities, and it gives him false designations. Since time immemorial, he has received
various types of material bodies, which are the roots of bondage to the material world. If one foolishly
engages in temporary fruitive activities and does not look toward the cessation of this bondage, what
will be the benefit of his actions?
12. [Narada Muni had said that there is a kingdom where there is only one male. The Haryasvas
realized the purport of this statement.] The only enjoyer is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
observes everything, everywhere. He is full of six opulences and fully independent of everyone else. He
is never subject to the three modes of material nature, for He is always transcendental to this material
creation. If the members of human society do not understand Him, the Supreme, through their
advancement in knowledge and activities, but simply work very hard like cats and dogs all day and night
for temporary happiness, what will be the benefit of their activities?
13. [Narada Muni had described that there is a bila, or hole, from which, having entered, one does not
return. The Haryasvas understood the meaning of this allegory.] Hardly once has a person who has
entered the lower planetary system called Patala been seen to return. Similarly, if one enters the
Vaikuntha-dhama [pratyag-dhama], he does not return to this material world. If there is such a place,
from which, having gone, one does not return to the miserable material condition of life, what is the use
of jumping like monkeys in the temporary material world and not seeing or understanding that place?
What will be the profit?
14. [Narada Muni had described a woman who is a professional prostitute. The Haryasvas understood
the identity of this woman.] Mixed with the mode of passion, the unsteady intelligence of every living
entity is like a prostitute who changes dresses just to attract one's attention. If one fully engages in
temporary fruitive activities, not understanding how this is taking place, what does he actually gain?
15. [Narada Muni had also spoken of a man who is the husband of the prostitute. The Haryasvas
understood this as follows.] If one becomes the husband of a prostitute, he loses all independence.
Similarly, if a living entity has polluted intelligence, he prolongs his materialistic life. Frustrated by
material nature, he must follow the movements of the intelligence, which brings various conditions of
280 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
happiness and distress. If one performs fruitive activities under such conditions, what will be the
benefit?
16. [Narada Muni had said that there is a river flowing in both directions. The Haryasvas understood the
purport of this statement.] Material nature functions in two ways--by creation and dissolution. Thus the
river of material nature flows both ways. A living entity who unknowingly falls in this river is submerged
in its waves, and since the current is swifter near the banks of the river, he is unable to get out. What
will be the benefit of performing fruitive activities in that river of maya?
17. [Narada Muni had said that there is a house made of twenty-five elements. The Haryasvas
understood this analogy.] The Supreme Lord is the reservoir of the twenty-five elements, and as the
Supreme Being, the conductor of cause and effect, He causes their manifestation. If one engages in
temporary fruitive activities, not knowing that Supreme Person, what benefit will he derive?
18. [Narada Muni had spoken of a swan. That swan is explained in this verse.] The Vedic literatures
[sastras] vividly describe how to understand the Supreme Lord, the source of all material and spiritual
energy. Indeed, they elaborately explain these two energies. The swan [hamsa] is one who
discriminates between matter and spirit, who accepts the essence of everything, and who explains the
means of bondage and the means of liberation. The words of scriptures consist of variegated vibrations.
If a foolish rascal leaves aside the study of these sastras to engage in temporary activities, what will be
the result?
19. [Narada Muni had spoken of a physical object made of sharp blades and thunderbolts. The
Haryasvas understood this allegory as follows.] Eternal time moves very sharply, as if made of razors
and thunderbolts. Uninterrupted and fully independent, it drives the activities of the entire world. If one
does not try to study the eternal element of time, what benefit can he derive from performing temporary
material activities?
20. [Narada Muni had asked how one could ignorantly defy one's own father. The Haryasvas
understood the meaning of this question.] One must accept the original instructions of the sastra.
According to Vedic civilization, one is offered a sacred thread as a sign of second birth. One takes his
second birth by dint of having received instructions in the sastra from a bona fide spiritual master.
Therefore, sastra, scripture, is the real father. All the sastras instruct that one should end his material
way of life. If one does not know the purpose of the father's orders, the sastras, he is ignorant. The
words of a material father who endeavors to engage his son in material activities are not the real
instructions of the father.
21. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, after hearing the instructions of Narada, the
Haryasvas, the sons of Prajapati Daksa, were firmly convinced. They all believed in his instructions and
reached the same conclusion. Having accepted him as their spiritual master, they circumambulated that
great sage and followed the path by which one never returns to this world.
22. The seven musical notes--sa, r, ga, ma, pa, dha and ni--are used in musical instruments, but
originally they come from the Sama Veda. The great sage Narada vibrates sounds describing the
pastimes of the Supreme Lord. By such transcendental vibrations, such as Hare Krsna, Hare Krsna,
Krsna Krsna, Hare Hare/ Hare Rama, Hare Rama, Rama Rama, Hare Hare, he fixes his mind at the
lotus feet of the Lord. Thus he directly perceives Hrsikesa, the master of the senses. After delivering the
Haryasvas, Narada Muni continued traveling throughout the planetary systems, his mind always fixed at
the lotus feet of the Lord.
23. The Haryasvas, the sons of Prajapati Daksa, were very well behaved, cultured sons, but
unfortunately, because of the instructions of Narada Muni, they deviated from the order of their father.
When Daksa heard this news, which was brought to him by Narada Muni, he began to lament. Although
he was the father of such good sons, he had lost them all. Certainly this was lamentable.
24. When Prajapati Daksa was lamenting for his lost children, Lord Brahma pacified him with
instructions, and thereafter Daksa begot one thousand more children in the womb of his wife,
Pancajani. This time his sons were known as the Savalasvas.
25. In accordance with their father's order to beget children, the second group of sons also went to
Narayana-saras, the same place where their brothers had previously attained perfection by following
the instructions of Narada. Undertaking great vows of austerity, the Savalasvas remained at that holy
place.
26. At Narayana-saras, the second group of sons performed penances in the same way as the first.
They bathed in the holy water, and by its touch all the dirty material desires in their hearts were
cleansed away. They murmured mantras beginning with omkara and underwent a severe course of
austerities.
27-28. For a few months the sons of Prajapati Daksa drank only water and ate only air. Thus
undergoing great austerities, they recited this mantra: "Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 281
Narayana, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is always situated in His transcendental abode.
Since He is the Supreme Person [paramahamsa], let us offer our respectful obeisances unto Him."
29. O King Pariksit, Narada Muni approached these sons of Prajapati Daksa, who were engaged in
tapasya to beget children, and spoke enigmatic words to them just as he had spoken to their elder
brothers.
30. O sons of Daksa, please hear my words of instruction attentively. You are all very affectionate to
your elder brothers, the Haryasvas. Therefore you should follow their path.
31. A brother aware of the principles of religion follows in the footsteps of his elder brothers. Because of
being highly elevated, such a pious brother gets the opportunity to associate and enjoy with demigods
like the Maruts, who are all affectionate to their brothers.
32. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O best of the advanced Aryans, after saying this much to the sons of
Prajapati Daksa, Narada Muni, whose merciful glance never goes in vain, left as he had planned. The
sons of Daksa followed their elder brothers. Not attempting to produce children, they engaged
themselves in Krsna consciousness.
33. The Savalasvas took to the correct path, which is obtainable by a mode of life meant to achieve
devotional service, or the mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Like nights that have gone to
the west, they have not returned even until now.
34. At this time, Prajapati Daksa observed many inauspicious signs, and he heard from various sources
that his second group of sons, the Savalasvas, had followed the path of their elder brothers in
accordance with the instructions of Narada.
35. When he heard that the Savalasvas had also left this world to engage in devotional service, Daksa
was angry at Narada, and he almost fainted due to lamentation. When Daksa met Narada, Daksa's lips
began trembling in anger, and he spoke as follows.
36. Prajapati Daksa said: Alas, Narada Muni, you wear the dress of a saintly person, but you are not
actually a saint. Indeed, although I am now in grhastha life, I am a saintly person. By showing my sons
the path of renunciation, you have done me an abominable injustice.
37. Prajapati Daksa said: My sons were not at all freed from their three debts. Indeed, they did not
properly consider their obligations. O Narada Muni, O personality of sinful action, you have obstructed
their progress toward good fortune in this world and the next because they are still indebted to the
saintly persons, the demigods and their father.
38. Prajapati Daksa continued: Thus committing violence against other living entities and yet claiming to
be an associate of Lord Visnu, you are defaming the Supreme Personality of Godhead. You needlessly
created a mentality of renunciation in innocent boys, and therefore you are shameless and devoid of
compassion. How could you travel with the personal associates of the Supreme Lord ?
39. All the devotees of the Lord but you are very kind to the conditioned souls and are eager to benefit
others. Although you wear the dress of a devotee, you create enmity with people who are not your
enemies, or you break friendship and create enmity between friends. Are you not ashamed of posing as
a devotee while performing these abominable actions?
40. Prajapati Daksa continued: If you think that simply awakening the sense of renunciation will detach
one from the material world, I must say that unless full knowledge is awakened, simply changing
dresses as you have done cannot possibly bring detachment.
41. Material enjoyment is indeed the cause of all unhappiness, but one cannot give it up unless one has
personally experienced how much suffering it is. Therefore one should be allowed to remain in so-called
material enjoyment while simultaneously advancing in knowledge to experience the misery of this false
material happiness. Then, without help from others, one will find material enjoyment detestful. Those
whose minds are changed by others do not become as renounced as those who have personal
experience.
42. Although I live in household life with my wife and children, I honestly follow the Vedic injunctions by
engaging in fruitive activities to enjoy life without sinful reactions. I have performed all kinds of yajnas,
including the deva-yajna, rsi-yajna, pitr-yajna and nr-yajna. Because these yajnas are called vratas
[vows], I am known as a grhavrata. Unfortunately, you have given me great displeasure by misguiding
my sons, for no reason, to the path of renunciation. This can be tolerated once.
43. You have made me lose my sons once, and now you have again done the same inauspicious thing.
Therefore you are a rascal who does not know how to behave toward others. You may travel all over
the universe, but I curse you to have no residence anywhere.
44. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, since Narada Muni is an approved saintly person,
when cursed by Prajapati Daksa he replied, "tad badham: Yes, what you have said is good. I accept
this curse." He could have cursed Prajapati Daksa in return, but because he is a tolerant and merciful
sadhu, he took no action.
282 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Six The Progeny of the Daughters of Daksa
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, thereafter, at the request of Lord Brahma, Prajapati
Daksa, who is known as Pracetasa, begot sixty daughters in the womb of his wife Asikni. All the
daughters were very affectionate toward their father.
2. He gave ten daughters in charity to Dharmaraja [Yamaraja], thirteen to Kasyapa [first twelve and then
one more], twenty-seven to the moon-god, and two each to Angira, Krsasva and Bhuta. The other four
daughters were given to Kasyapa. [Thus Kasyapa received seventeen daughters in all.]
3. Now please hear from me the names of all these daughters and their descendants, who filled all the
three worlds.
4. The ten daughters given to Yamaraja were named Bhanu, Lamba, Kakud, Yami, Visva, Sadhya,
Marutvati, Vasu, Muhurta and Sankalpa. Now hear the names of their sons.
5. O King, a son named Deva-rsabha was born from the womb of Bhanu, and from him came a son
named Indrasena. From the womb of Lamba came a son named Vidyota, who generated all the clouds.
6. From the womb of Kakud came the son named Sankata, whose son was named Kikata. From Kikata
came the demigods named Durga. From Yami came the son named Svarga, whose son was named
Nandi.
7. The sons of Visva were the Visvadevas, who had no progeny. From the womb of Sadhya came the
Sadhyas, who had a son named Arthasiddhi.
8. The two sons who took birth from the womb of Marutvati were Marutvari and Jayanta. Jayanta, who
is an expansion of Lord Vasudeva, is known as Upendra.
9. The demigods named the Mauhurtikas took birth from the womb of Muhurta. These demigods deliver
the results of actions to the living entities of their respective times.
10-11. The son of Sankalpa was known as Sankalpa, and from him lust was born. The sons of Vasu
were known as the eight Vasus. Just hear their names from me: Drona, Prana, Dhruva, Arka, Agni,
Dosa, Vastu and Vibhavasu. From Abhimati, the wife of the Vasu named Drona, were generated the
sons named Harsa, Soka, Bhaya and so on.
12. Urjasvati, the wife of Prana, gave birth to three sons, named Saha, Ayus and Purojava. The wife of
Dhruva was known as Dharani, and from her womb various cities took birth.
13. From the womb of Vasana, the wife of Arka, came many sons, headed by Tarsa. Dhara, the wife of
the Vasu named Agni, gave birth to many sons, headed by Dravinaka.
14. From Krttika, another wife of Agni, came the son named Skanda, Karttikeya, whose sons were
headed by Visakha. From the womb of Sarvari, the wife of the Vasu named Dosa, came the son named
Sisumara, who was an expansion of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
15. From Angirasi, the wife of the Vasu named Vastu, was born the great architect Visvakarma.
Visvakarma became the husband of Akrti, from whom the Manu named Caksusa was born. The sons of
Manu were known as the Visvadevas and Sadhyas.
16. Usa, the wife of Vibhavasu, gave birth to three sons--Vyusta, Rocisa and Atapa. From Atapa came
Pancayama, the span of day, who awakens all living entities to material activities.
17-18. Sarupa, the wife of Bhuta, gave birth to the ten million Rudras, of whom the eleven principle
Rudras were Raivata, Aja, Bhava, Bhima, Vama, Ugra, Vrsakapi, Ajaikapat, Ahirbradhna, Bahurupa
and Mahan. Their associates, the ghosts and goblins, who are very fearful, were born of the other wife
of Bhuta.
19. The prajapati Angira had two wives, named Svadha and Sati. The wife named Svadha accepted all
the Pitas as her sons, and Sati accepted the Atharvangirasa Veda as her son.
20. Krsasva had two wives, named Arcis and Dhisana. In the wife named Arcis he begot Dhumaketu
and in Dhisana he begot four sons, named Vedasira, Devala, Vayuna and Manu.
21-22. Kasyapa, who is also named Tarksya, had four wives--Vinata [Suparna], Kadru, Patangi and
Yamini. Patangi gave birth to many kinds of birds, and Yamini gave birth to locusts. Vinata [Suparna]
gave birth to Garuda, the carrier of Lord Visnu, and to Anuru, or Aruna, the chariot driver of the sun-god.
Kadru gave birth to different varieties of serpents.
23. O Maharaja Pariksit, best of the Bharatas, the constellations named Krttika were all wives of the
moon-god. However, because Prajapati Daksa had cursed him to suffer from a disease causing gradual
destruction, the moon-god could not beget children in any of his wives.
24-26. Thereafter the King of the moon pacified Prajapati Daksa with courteous words and thus
regained the portions of light he had lost during his disease. Nevertheless he could not beget children.
The moon loses his shining power during the dark fortnight, and in the bright fortnight it is manifest
again. O King Pariksit, now please hear from me the names of Kasyapa's wives, from whose wombs
the population of the entire universe has come. They are the mothers of almost all the population of the
entire universe, and their names are very auspicious to hear. They are Aditi, Diti, Danu, Kastha, Arista,
Surasa, Ila, Muni, Krodhavasa, Tamra, Surabhi, Sarama and Timi. From the womb of Timi all the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 283
aquatics took birth, and from the womb of Sarama the ferocious animals like the tigers and lions took
birth.
27. My dear King Pariksit, from the womb of Surabhi the buffalo, cow and other animals with cloven
hooves took birth, from the womb of Tamra the eagles, vultures and other large birds of prey took birth,
and from the womb of Muni the angels took birth.
28. The sons born of Krodhavasa were the serpents known as dandasuka, as well as other serpents
and the mosquitoes. All the various creepers and trees were born from the womb of Ila. The Raksasas,
bad spirits, were born from the womb of Surasa.
29-31. The Gandharvas were born from the womb of Arista, and animals whose hooves are not split,
such as the horse, were born from the womb of Kastha. O King, from the womb of Danu came sixty-one
sons, of whom these eighteen were very important: Dvimurdha, Sambara, Arista, Hayagriva,
Vibhavasu, Ayomukha, Sankusira, Svarbhanu, Kapila, Aruna, Puloma, Vrsaparva, Ekacakra,
Anutapana, Dhumrakesa, Virupaksa, Vipracitti and Durjaya.
32. The daughter of Svarbhanu named Suprabha was married by Namuci. The daughter of Vrsaparva
named Sarmistha was given to the powerful King Yayati, the son of Nahusa.
33-36. Vaisvanara, the son of Danu, had four beautiful daughters, named Upadanavi, Hayasira, Puloma
and Kalaka. Hiranyaksa married Upadanavi, and Kratu married Hayasira. Thereafter, at the request of
Lord Brahma, Prajapati Kasyapa married Puloma and Kalaka, the other two daughters of Vaisvanara.
From the wombs of these two wives of Kasyapa came sixty thousand sons, headed by Nivatakavaca,
who are known as the Paulomas and the Kalakeyas. They were physically very strong and expert in
fighting, and their aim was to disturb the sacrifices performed by the great sages. My dear King, when
your grandfather Arjuna went to the heavenly planets, he alone killed all these demons, and thus King
Indra became extremely affectionate toward him.
37. In his wife Simhika, Vipracitti begot one hundred and one sons, of whom the eldest is Rahu and the
others are the one hundred Ketus. All of them attained positions in the influential planets.
38-39. Now please hear me as I describe the descendants of Aditi in chronological order. In this dynasty
the Supreme Personality of Godhead Narayana descended by His plenary expansion. The names of
the sons of Aditi are as follows: Vivasvan, Aryama, Pusa, Tvasta, Savita, Bhaga, Dhata, Vidhata,
Varuna, Mitra, Satru and Urukrama.
40. Samjna, the wife of Vivasvan, the sun-god, gave birth to the Manu named Sraddhadeva, and the
same fortunate wife also gave birth to the twins Yamaraja and the River Yamuna. Then Yami, while
wandering on the earth in the form of a mare, gave birth to the Asvini-kumaras.
41. Chaya, another wife of the sun-god, begot two sons named Sanaiscara and Savarni Manu, and one
daughter, Tapati, who married Samvarana.
42. From the womb of Matrka, the wife of Aryama, were born many learned scholars. Among them Lord
Brahma created the human species, which are endowed with an aptitude for self-examination.
43. Pusa had no sons. When Lord Siva was angry at Daksa, Pusa had laughed at Lord Siva and shown
his teeth. Therefore he lost his teeth and had to live by eating only ground flour.
44. Racana, the daughter of the Daityas, became the wife of Prajapati Tvasta. By his semina he begot
in her womb two very powerful sons named Sannivesa and Visvarupa.
45. Although Visvarupa was the son of the daughter of their eternal enemies the demons, the demigods
accepted him as their priest in accordance with the order of Brahma when they were abandoned by
their spiritual master, Brhaspati, whom they had disrespected.
Chapter Seven Indra Offends His Spiritual Master, Brhaspati.
1. Maharaja Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: O great sage, why did the spiritual master of the
demigods, Brhaspati, reject the demigods, who were his own disciples? What offense did the demigods
commit against their spiritual master? Please describe to me this incident.
2-8. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, once upon a time, the King of heaven, Indra, being extremely
proud because of his great opulence of the three worlds, transgressed the law of Vedic etiquette.
Seated on his throne, he was surrounded by the Maruts, Vasus, Rudras, Adityas, Rbhus, Visvadevas,
Sadhyas, Asvini-kumaras, Siddhas, Caranas and Gandharvas and by great saintly persons. Also
surrounding him were the Vidyadharas, Apsaras, Kinnaras, Patagas [birds] and Uragas [snakes]. All of
them were offering Indra their respects and services, and the Apsaras and Gandharvas were dancing
and singing with very sweet musical instruments. Over Indra's head was a white umbrella as effulgent
as the full moon. Fanned by yak-tail whisks and served with all the paraphernalia of a great king, Indra
was sitting with his wife, Sacidevi, who occupied half the throne, when the great sage Brhaspati
appeared in that assembly. Brhaspati, the best of the sages, was the spiritual master of Indra and the
demigods and was respected by the demigods and demons alike. Nevertheless, although Indra saw his
spiritual master before him, he did not rise from his own seat or offer a seat to his spiritual master, nor
did Indra offer him a respectful welcome. Indra did nothing to show him respect.
284 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
9. Brhaspati knew everything that would happen in the future. Seeing Indra's transgression of etiquette,
he completely understood that Indra was puffed up by his material opulence. Although able to curse
Indra, he did not do so. Instead, he left the assembly and in silence returned to his home.
10. Indra, the King of heaven, could immediately understand his mistake. Realizing he had disrespected
his spiritual master, he condemned himself in the presence of all the members of the assembly.
11. Alas, what a regrettable deed I have committed because of my lack of intelligence and my pride in
my material opulences. I failed to show respect to my spiritual master when he entered this assembly,
and thus I have insulted him.
12. Although I am King of the demigods, who are situated in the mode of goodness, I was proud of a
little opulence and polluted by false ego. Under the circumstances, who in this world would accept such
riches at the risk of falling down ? Alas! I condemn my wealth and opulence.
13. If a person says, "One who is situated on the exalted throne of a king should not stand up to show
respect to another king or a brahmana," it is to be understood that he does not know the superior
religious principles.
14. Leaders who have fallen into ignorance and who mislead people by directing them to the path of
destruction [as described in the previous verse] are, in effect, boarding a stone boat, and so too are
those who blindly follow them. A stone boat would be unable to float and would sink in the water with its
passengers. Similarly, those who mislead people go to hell, and their followers go with them.
15. King Indra said: Therefore with great frankness and without duplicity I shall now bow my head at the
lotus feet of Brhaspati, the spiritual master of the demigods. Because he is in the mode of goodness, he
is fully aware of all knowledge and is the best of the brahmanas. Now I shall touch his lotus feet and
offer my obeisances unto him to try to satisfy him.
16. While Indra, the King of the demigods, thought in this way and repented in his own assembly,
Brhaspati, the most powerful spiritual master, understood his mind. Thus he became invisible to Indra
and left home, for Brhaspati was spiritually more powerful than King Indra.
17. Although Indra searched vigorously with the assistance of the other demigods, he could not find
Brhaspati. Then Indra thought, "Alas, my spiritual master has become dissatisfied with me, and now I
have no means of achieving good fortune." Although Indra was surrounded by demigods, he could not
find peace of mind.
18. Hearing of the pitiable condition of King Indra, the demons, following the instructions of their guru,
Sukracarya, equipped themselves with weapons and declared war against the demigods.
19. The demigods' heads, thighs and arms and the other parts of their bodies were injured by the sharp
arrows of the demons. The demigods, headed by Indra, saw no other course than to immediately
approach Lord Brahma with bowed heads for shelter and proper instruction.
20. When the most powerful Lord Brahma saw the demigods coming toward him, their bodies gravely
injured by the arrows of the demons, he pacified them by his great causeless mercy and spoke as
follows.
21. Lord Brahma said: O best of the demigods, unfortunately, because of madness resulting from your
material opulence, you failed to receive Brhaspati properly when he came to your assembly. Because
he is aware of the Supreme Brahman and fully in control of his senses, he is the best of the brahmanas.
Therefore it is very astonishing that you have acted impudently toward him.
22. Because of your misbehavior toward Brhaspati, you have been defeated by the demons. My dear
demigods, since the demons were weak, having been defeated by you several times, how else could
you, who were so advanced in opulence, be defeated by them?
23. O Indra, your enemies, the demons, were extremely weak because of their disrespect toward
Sukracarya, but since they have now worshiped Sukracarya with great devotion, they have again
become powerful. By their devotion to Sukracarya, they have increased their strength so much that now
they are even able to easily seize my abode from me.
24. Because of their firm determination to follow the instructions of Sukracarya, his disciples, the
demons, are now unconcerned about the demigods. In fact, kings or others who have determined faith
in the mercy of brahmanas, cows and the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, and who always
worship these three are always strong in their position.
25. O demigods, I instruct you to approach Visvarupa, the son of Tvasta, and accept him as your guru.
He is a pure and very powerful brahmana undergoing austerity and penances. Pleased by your
worship, he will fulfill your desires, provided that you tolerate his being inclined to side with the demons.
26. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thus advised by Lord Brahma and relieved of their anxiety, all
the demigods went to the sage Visvarupa, the son of Tvasta. My dear King, they embraced him and
spoke as follows.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 285
27. The demigods said: Beloved Visvarupa, may there be all good fortune for you. We, the demigods,
have come to your asrama as your guests. Please try to fulfill our desires according to the time, since
we are on the level of your parents.
28. O brahmana, the highest duty of a son, even though he has sons of his own, is to serve his parents,
and what to speak of a son who is a brahmacari?
29-30. The acarya, the spiritual master who teaches all the Vedic knowledge and gives initiation by
offering the sacred thread, is the personification of all the Vedas. Similarly, a father personifies Lord
Brahma; a brother, King Indra; a mother, the planet earth; and a sister, mercy. A guest personifies
religious principles, an invited guest personifies the demigod Agni, and all living entities personify Lord
Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
31. Dear son, we have been defeated by our enemies, and therefore we are very much aggrieved.
Please mercifully fulfill our desires by relieving our distress through the strength of your austerities.
Please fulfill our prayers.
32. Since you are completely aware of the Supreme Brahman, you are a perfect brahmana, and
therefore you are the spiritual master of all orders of life. We accept you as our spiritual master and
director so that by the power of your austerity we may easily defeat the enemies who have conquered
us.
33. The demigods continued: Do not fear criticism for being younger than us. Such etiquette does not
apply in regard to Vedic mantras. Except in relationship to Vedic mantras, seniority is determined by
age, but one may offer respectful obeisances even to a younger person who is advanced in chanting
Vedic mantras. Therefore although you are junior in relationship to us, you may become our priest
without hesitation.
34. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When all the demigods requested the great Visvarupa to be their
priest, Visvarupa, who was advanced in austerities, was very pleased. He replied to them as follows.
35. Sri Visvarupa said: O demigods, although the acceptance of priesthood is decried as causing the
loss of previously acquired brahminical power, how can someone like me refuse to accept your
personal request? You are all exalted commanders of the entire universe. I am your disciple and must
take many lessons from you. Therefore I cannot refuse you. I must agree for my own benefit.
36. O exalted governors of various planets, the true brahmana, who has no material possessions,
maintains himself by the profession of accepting silonchana. In other words, he picks up grains left in
the field and on the ground in the wholesale marketplace. By this means, householder brahmanas who
actually abide by the principles of austerity and penance maintain themselves and their families and
perform all necessary pious activities. A brahmana who desires to achieve happiness by gaining wealth
through professional priesthood must certainly have a very low mind. How shall I accept such
priesthood?
37. All of you are my superiors. Therefore although accepting priesthood is sometimes reproachable, I
cannot refuse even a small request from you. I agree to be your priest. I shall fulfill your request by
dedicating my life and possessions.
38. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King, after making this promise to the demigods, the exalted
Visvarupa, surrounded by the demigods, performed the necessary priestly activities with great
enthusiasm and attention.
39. The opulence of the demons, who are generally known as the enemies of the demigods, was
protected by the talents and tactics of Sukracarya, but Visvarupa, who was most powerful, composed a
protective prayer known as the Narayana-kavaca. By this intelligent mantra, he took away the opulence
of the demons and gave it to Mahendra, the King of heaven.
40. Visvarupa, who was most liberal, spoke to King Indra [Sahasraksa] the secret hymn that protected
Indra and conquered the military power of the demons.
Chapter Eight The Narayana-kavaca Shield
1-2. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: My lord, kindly explain the Visnu mantra armor that
protected King Indra and enabled him to conquer his enemies, along with their carriers, and enjoy the
opulence of the three worlds. Please explain to me that Narayana armor, by which King Indra achieved
success in battle, conquering the enemies who were endeavoring to kill him.
3. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: King Indra, the leader of the demigods, inquired about the armor known
as Narayana-kavaca from Visvarupa, who was engaged by the demigods as their priest. Please hear
Visvarupa's reply with great attention.
4-6. Visvarupa said: If some form of fear arrives, one should first wash his hands and legs clean and
then perform acamana by chanting this mantra: om apavitrah pavitro va sarvavastham gato 'pi va/ yah
smaret pundarikaksam sa bahyabhyantarah sucih/ sri-visnu sri-visnu sri-visnu. Then one should touch
kusa grass and sit gravely and silently, facing north. When completely purified, one should touch the
mantra composed of eight syllables to the eight parts of his body and touch the mantra composed of
286 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
twelve syllables to his hands. Thus, in the following manner, he should bind himself with the Narayana
coat of armor. First, while chanting the mantra composed of eight syllables [om namo narayanaya],
beginning with the pranava, the syllable om, one should touch his hands to eight parts of his body,
starting with the two feet and progressing systematically to the knees, thighs, abdomen, heart, chest,
mouth and head. Then one should chant the mantra in reverse, beginning from the last syllable [ya],
while touching the parts of his body in the reverse order. These two processes are known as utpatti-
nyasa and samhara-nyasa respectively.
7. Then one should chant the mantra composed of twelve syllables [om namo bhagavate vasudevaya].
Preceding each syllable by the omkara, one should place the syllables of the mantra on the tips of his
fingers, beginning with the index finger of the right hand and concluding with the index finger of the left.
The four remaining syllables should be placed on the joints of the thumbs.
8-10. One must then chant the mantra of six syllables [om visnave namah]. One should place the
syllable om on his heart, the syllable vi on the top of his head, the syllable sa between his eyebrows, the
syllable na on his tuft of hair [sikha], and the syllable ve between his eyes. The chanter of the mantra
should then place the syllable na on all the joints of his body and meditate on the syllable ma as being a
weapon. He should thus become the perfect personification of the mantra. Thereafter, adding visarga to
the final syllable ma, he should chant the mantra mah astraya phat in all directions, beginning from the
east. In this way, all directions will be bound by the protective armor of the mantra.
11. After finishing this chanting, one should think himself qualitatively one with the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, who is full in six opulences and is worthy to be meditated upon. Then one should chant the
following protective prayer to Lord Narayana, the Narayana-kavaca.
12. The Supreme Lord, who sits on the back of the bird Garuda, touching him with His lotus feet, holds
eight weapons--the conchshell, disc, shield, sword, club, arrows, bow and ropes. May that Supreme
Personality of Godhead protect me at all times with His eight arms. He is all-powerful because He fully
possesses the eight mystic powers [anima, laghima, etc.].
13. May the Lord, who assumes the body of a great fish, protect me in the water from the fierce animals
that are associates of the demigod Varuna. By expanding His illusory energy, the Lord assumed the
form of the dwarf Vamana. May Vamana protect me on the land. Since the gigantic form of the Lord,
Visvarupa, conquers the three worlds, may He protect me in the sky.
14. May Lord Nrsimhadeva, who appeared as the enemy of Hiranyakasipu, protect me in all directions.
His loud laughing vibrated in all directions and caused the pregnant wives of the asuras to have
miscarriages. May that Lord be kind enough to protect me in difficult places like the forest and
battlefront.
15. The Supreme indestructible Lord is ascertained through the performance of ritualistic sacrifices and
is therefore known as Yajnesvara. In His incarnation as Lord Boar, He raised the planet earth from the
water at the bottom of the universe and kept it on His pointed tusks. May that Lord protect me from
rogues on the street. May Parasurama protect me on the tops of mountains, and may the elder brother
of Bharata, Lord Ramacandra, along with His brother Laksmana, protect me in foreign countries.
16. May Lord Narayana protect me from unnecessarily following false religious systems and falling from
my duties due to madness. May the Lord in His appearance as Nara protect me from unnecessary
pride. May Lord Dattatreya, the master of all mystic power, protect me from falling while performing
bhakti-yoga, and may Lord Kapila, the master of all good qualities, protect me from the material
bondage of fruitive activities.
17. May Sanat-kumara protect me from lusty desires. As I begin some auspicious activity, may Lord
Hayagriva protect me from being an offender by neglecting to offer respectful obeisances to the
Supreme Lord. May Devarsi Narada protect me from committing offenses in worshiping the Deity, and
may Lord Kurma, the tortoise, protect me from falling to the unlimited hellish planets.
18. May the Supreme Personality of Godhead in His incarnation as Dhanvantari relieve me from
undesirable eatables and protect me from physical illness. May Lord Rsabhadeva, who conquered His
inner and outer senses, protect me from fear produced by the duality of heat and cold. May Yajna
protect me from defamation and harm from the populace, and may Lord Balarama as Sesa protect me
from envious serpents.
19. May the Personality of Godhead in His incarnation as Vyasadeva protect me from all kinds of
ignorance resulting from the absence of Vedic knowledge. May Lord Buddhadeva protect me from
activities opposed to Vedic principles and from laziness that causes one to madly forget the Vedic
principles of knowledge and ritualistic action. May Kalkideva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
appeared as an incarnation to protect religious principles, protect me from the dirt of the age of Kali.
20. May Lord Kesava protect me with His club in the first portion of the day, and may Govinda, who is
always engaged in playing His flute, protect me in the second portion of the day. May Lord Narayana,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 287
who is equipped with all potencies, protect me in the third part of the day, and may Lord Visnu, who
carries a disc to kill His enemies, protect me in the fourth part of the day.
21. May Lord Madhusudana, who carries a bow very fearful for the demons, protect me during the fifth
part of the day. In the evening, may Lord Madhava, appearing as Brahma, Visnu and Mahesvara,
protect me, and in the beginning of night may Lord Hrsikesa protect me. At the dead of night [in the
second and third parts of night] may Lord Padmanabha alone protect me.
22. May the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who bears the Srivatsa on His chest, protect me after
midnight until the sky becomes pinkish. May Lord Janardana, who carries a sword in His hand, protect
me at the end of night [during the last four ghatikas of night]. May Lord Damodara protect me in the
early morning, and may Lord Visvesvara protect me during the junctions of day and night.
23. Set into motion by the Supreme Personality of Godhead and wandering in all the four directions, the
disc of the Supreme Lord has sharp edges as destructive as the fire of devastation at the end of the
millennium. As a blazing fire burns dry grass to ashes with the assistance of the breeze, may that
Sudarsana cakra burn our enemies to ashes.
24. O club in the hand of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, you produce sparks of fire as powerful
as thunderbolts, and you are extremely dear to the Lord. I am also His servant. Therefore kindly help
me pound to pieces the evil living beings known as Kusmandas, Vainayakas, Yaksas, Raksasas,
Bhutas and Grahas. Please pulverize them.
25. O best of conchshells, O Pancajanya in the hands of the Lord, you are always filled with the breath
of Lord Krsna. Therefore you create a fearful sound vibration that causes trembling in the hearts of
enemies like the Raksasas, pramatha ghosts, Pretas, Matas, Pisacas and brahmana ghosts with fearful
eyes.
26. O king of sharp-edged swords, you are engaged by the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Please
cut the soldiers of my enemies to pieces. Please cut them to pieces! O shield marked with a hundred
brilliant moonlike circles, please cover the eyes of the sinful enemies. Pluck out their sinful eyes.
27-28. May the glorification of the transcendental name, form, qualities and paraphernalia of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead protect us from the influence of bad planets, meteors, envious human
beings, serpents, scorpions, and animals like tigers and wolves. May it protect us from ghosts and the
material elements like earth, water, fire and air, and may it also protect us from lightning and our past
sins. We are always afraid of these hindrances to our auspicious life. Therefore, may they all be
completely destroyed by the chanting of the Hare Krsna maha-mantra.
29. Lord Garuda, the carrier of Lord Visnu, is the most worshipable lord, for he is as powerful as the
Supreme Lord Himself. He is the personified Vedas and is worshiped by selected verses. May he
protect us from all dangerous conditions, and may Lord Visvaksena, the Personality of Godhead, also
protect us from all dangers by His holy names.
30. May the Supreme Personality of Godhead's holy names, His transcendental forms, His carriers and
all the weapons decorating Him as personal associates protect our intelligence, senses, mind and life
air from all dangers.
31. The subtle and gross cosmic manifestation is material, but nevertheless it is nondifferent from the
Supreme Personality of Godhead because He is ultimately the cause of all causes. Cause and effect
are factually one because the cause is present in the effect. Therefore the Absolute Truth, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, can destroy all our dangers by any of His potent parts.
32-33. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, the living entities, the material energy, the spiritual energy
and the entire creation are all individual substances. In the ultimate analysis, however, together they
constitute the supreme one, the Personality of Godhead. Therefore those who are advanced in spiritual
knowledge see unity in diversity. For such advanced persons, the Lord's bodily decorations, His name,
His fame, His attributes and forms and the weapons in His hand are manifestations of the strength of
His potency. According to their elevated spiritual understanding, the omniscient Lord, who manifests
various forms, is present everywhere. May He always protect us everywhere from all calamities.
34. Prahlada Maharaja loudly chanted the holy name of Lord Nrsimhadeva. May Lord Nrsimhadeva,
roaring for His devotee Prahlada Maharaja, protect us from all fear of dangers created by stalwart
leaders in all directions through poison, weapons, water, fire, air and so on. May the Lord cover their
influence by His own transcendental influence. May Nrsimhadeva protect us in all directions and in all
corners, above, below, within and without.
35. Visvarupa continued: O Indra, this mystic armor related to Lord Narayana has been described by
me to you. By putting on this protective covering, you will certainly be able to conquer the leaders of the
demons.
36. If one employs this armor, whomever he sees with his eyes or touches with his feet is immediately
freed from all the above-mentioned dangers.
288 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
37. This prayer, Narayana-kavaca, constitutes subtle knowledge transcendentally connected with
Narayana. One who employs this prayer is never disturbed or put in danger by the government, by
plunderers, by evil demons or by any type of disease.
38. O King of heaven, a brahmana named Kausika formerly used this armor when he purposely gave
up his body in the desert by mystic power.
39. Surrounded by many beautiful women, Citraratha, the King of Gandharvaloka, was once passing in
his airplane over the brahmana's body at the spot where the brahmana had died.
40. Suddenly Citraratha was forced to fall from the sky headfirst with his airplane. Struck with wonder,
he was ordered by the great sages named the Valikhilyas to throw the brahmana's bones in the nearby
River Sarasvati. He had to do this and bathe in the river before returning to his own abode.
41. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear Maharaja Pariksit, one who employs this armor or hears about
it with faith and veneration when afraid because of any conditions in the material world is immediately
freed from all dangers and is worshiped by all living entities.
42. King Indra, who performed one hundred sacrifices, received this prayer of protection from
Visvarupa. After conquering the demons, he enjoyed all the opulences of the three worlds.
Chapter Nine Appearance of the Demon Vrtrasura
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Visvarupa, who was engaged as the priest of the demigods, had
three heads. He used one to drink the beverage soma-rasa, another to drink wine and the third to eat
food. O King Pariksit, thus I have heard from authorities.
2. O Maharaja Pariksit, the demigods were related to Visvarupa from his father's side, and therefore he
visibly offered clarified butter in the fire while chanting mantras such as indraya idam svaha ["this is
meant for King Indra"] and idam agnaye ["this is for the demigod of fire"]. He loudly chanted these
mantras and offered each of the demigods his proper share.
3. Although offering clarified butter in the sacrificial fire in the name of the demigods, without the
knowledge of the demigods he also offered oblations to the demons because they were his relatives
through his mother.
4. Once upon a time, however, the King of heaven, Indra, understood that Visvarupa was secretly
cheating the demigods by offering oblations on behalf of the demons. He became extremely afraid of
being defeated by the demons, and in great anger at Visvarupa he cut Visvarupa's three heads from his
shoulders.
5. Thereafter, the head meant for drinking soma-rasa was transformed into a kapinjala [francolin
partridge]. Similarly, the head meant for drinking wine was transformed into a kalavinka [sparrow], and
the head meant for eating food became a tittiri [common partridge].
6. Although Indra was so powerful that he could neutralize the sinful reactions for killing a brahmana, he
repentantly accepted the burden of these reactions with folded hands. He suffered for one year, and
then to purify himself he distributed the reactions for this sinful killing among the earth, water, trees and
women.
7. In return for King Indra's benediction that ditches in the earth would be filled automatically, the land
accepted one fourth of the sinful reactions for killing a brahmana. Because of those sinful reactions, we
find many deserts on the surface of the earth.
8. In return for Indra's benediction that their branches and twigs would grow back when trimmed, the
trees accepted one fourth of the reactions for killing a brahmana. These reactions are visible in the
flowing of sap from trees. [Therefore one is forbidden to drink this sap.]
9. In return for Lord Indra's benediction that they would be able to enjoy lusty desires continuously, even
during pregnancy for as long as sex is not injurious to the embryo, women accepted one fourth of the
sinful reactions. As a result of those reactions, women manifest the signs of menstruation every month.
10. And in return for King Indra's benediction that water would increase the volume of other substances
with which it was mixed, water accepted one fourth of the sinful reactions. Therefore there are bubbles
and foam in water. When one collects water, these should be avoided.
11. After Visvarupa was killed, his father, Tvasta, performed ritualistic ceremonies to kill Indra. He
offered oblations in the sacrificial fire, saying, "O enemy of Indra, flourish to kill your enemy without
delay."
12. Thereafter, from the southern side of the sacrificial fire known as Anvaharya came a fearful
personality who looked like the destroyer of the entire creation at the end of the millennium.
13-17. Like arrows released in the four directions, the demon's body grew, day after day. Tall and
blackish, he appeared like a burnt hill and was as lustrous as a bright array of clouds in the evening.
The hair on the demon's body and his beard and moustache were the color of melted copper, and his
eyes were piercing like the midday sun. He appeared unconquerable, as if holding the three worlds on
the points of his blazing trident. Dancing and shouting with a loud voice, he made the entire surface of
the earth tremble as if from an earthquake. As he yawned again and again, he seemed to be trying to
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 289
swallow the whole sky with his mouth, which was as deep as a cave. He seemed to be licking up all the
stars in the sky with his tongue and eating the entire universe with his long, sharp teeth. Seeing this
gigantic demon, everyone, in great fear, ran here and there in all directions.
18. That very fearful demon, who was actually the son of Tvasta, covered all the planetary systems by
dint of austerity. Therefore he was named Vrtra, or one who covers everything.
19. The demigods, headed by Indra, charged the demon with their soldiers, striking him with their own
transcendental bows and arrows and other weapons but Vrtrasura swallowed all their weapons.
20. Struck with wonder and disappointment upon seeing the strength of the demon, the demigods lost
their own strength. Therefore they all met together to try to please the Supersoul, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Narayana, by worshiping Him.
21. The demigods said: The three worlds are created by the five elements--namely ether, air, fire, water
and earth--which are controlled by various demigods, beginning from Lord Brahma. Being very much
afraid that the time factor will end our existence, we offer presentations unto time by performing our
work as time dictates. The time factor himself, however, is afraid of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. Therefore let us now worship that Supreme Lord, who alone can give us full protection.
22. Free from all material conceptions of existence and never wonder-struck by anything, the Lord is
always jubilant and fully satisfied by His own spiritual perfection. He has no material designations, and
therefore He is steady and unattached. That Supreme Personality of Godhead is the only shelter of
everyone. Anyone desiring to be protected by others is certainly a great fool who desires to cross the
sea by holding the tail of a dog.
23. The Manu named King Satyavrata formerly saved himself by tying the small boat of the entire world
to the horn of the Matsya avatara, the fish incarnation. By the grace of the Matsya avatara, Mahu saved
himself from the great danger of the flood. May that same fish incarnation save us from the great and
fearful danger caused by the son of Tvasta.
24. In the beginning of creation, a tremendous wind caused fierce waves of inundating water. The great
waves made such a horrible sound that Lord Brahma almost fell from his seat on the lotus into the water
of devastation, but he was saved with the help of the Lord. Thus we also expect the Lord to protect us
from this dangerous condition.
25. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who created us by His external potency and by whose
mercy we expand the creation of the universe, is always situated before us as the Supersoul, but we
cannot see His form. We are unable to see Him because all of us think that we are separate and
independent gods.
26-27. By His inconceivable internal potency, the Supreme Personality of Godhead expands into
various transcendental bodies as Vamanadeva, the incarnation of strength among the demigods;
Parasurama, the incarnation among saints; Nrsimhadeva and Varaha, incarnations among animals;
and Matsya and Kurma, incarnations among aquatics. He accepts various transcendental bodies
among all types of living entities, and among human beings He especially appears as Lord Krsna and
Lord Rama. By His causeless mercy, He protects the demigods, who are always harassed by the
demons. He is the supreme worshipable Deity of all living entities. He is the supreme cause,
represented as the male and female creative energies. Although different from this universe, He exists
in His universal form [virata-rupa]. In our fearful condition, let us take shelter of Him, for we are sure that
the Supreme Lord, the Supreme Soul, will give us His protection.
28. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, when all the demigods offered Him their prayers, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Hari, carrying His weapons, the conchshell, disc and club,
appeared first within their hearts and then before them.
29-30. Surrounding and serving the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, were sixteen personal
attendants, decorated with ornaments and appearing exactly like Him but without the mark of Srivatsa
and the Kaustubha jewel. O King, when all the demigods saw the Supreme Lord in that posture, smiling
with eyes like the petals of lotuses grown in autumn, they were overwhelmed with happiness and
immediately fell down like rods, offering dandavats. Then they slowly rose and pleased the Lord by
offering Him prayers.
31. The demigods said: O Supreme Personality of Godhead, You are competent to give the results of
sacrifice, and You are also the time factor that destroys all such results in due course. You are the one
who releases the cakra to kill the demons. O Lord, who possesses many varieties of names, we offer
our respectful obeisances unto You.
32. O supreme controller, You control the three destinations [promotion to the heavenly planets, birth as
a human being, and condemnation in hell], yet Your supreme abode is Vaikuntha-dhama. Since we
appeared after You created this cosmic manifestation, Your activities are impossible for us to
understand. We therefore have nothing to offer You but our humble obeisances.
290 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
33. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, O Narayana, O Vasudeva, original person! O most exalted
person, supreme experience, welfare personified! O supreme benediction, supremely merciful and
changeless! O support of the cosmic manifestation, sole proprietor of all planetary systems, master of
everything and husband of the goddess of fortune! Your Lordship is realized by the topmost sannyasis,
who wander about the world to preach Krsna consciousness, fully absorbed in samadhi through bhakti-
yoga. Because their minds are concentrated upon You, they can receive the conception of Your
personality in their fully purified hearts. When the darkness in their hearts is completely eradicated and
You are revealed to them, the transcendental bliss they enjoy is the transcendental form of Your
Lordship. No one but such persons can realize You. Therefore we simply offer You our respectful
obeisances.
34. O Lord, You need no support, and although You have no material body, You do not need
cooperation from us. Since You are the cause of the cosmic manifestation and You supply its material
ingredients without being transformed, You create, maintain and annihilate this cosmic manifestation by
Yourself. Nevertheless, although You appear engaged in material activity, You are transcendental to all
material qualities. Consequently these transcendental activities of Yours are extremely difficult to
understand.
35. These are our inquiries. The ordinary conditioned soul is subject to the material laws, and he thus
receives the fruits of his actions. Does Your Lordship, like an ordinary human being, exist within this
material world in a body produced by the material modes? Do You enjoy or suffer the good or bad
results of actions under the influence of time, past work and so forth? Or, on the contrary, are You
present here only as a neutral witness who is self-sufficient, free from all material desires, and always
full of spiritual potency? We certainly cannot understand Your actual position.
36. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, all contradictions can be reconciled in You. O Lord, since You
are the Supreme Person, the reservoir of unlimited spiritual qualities, the supreme controller, Your
unlimited glories are inconceivable to the conditioned souls. Many modern theologians argue about
right and wrong without knowing what is actually right. Their arguments are always false and their
judgments inconclusive because they have no authorized evidence with which to gain knowledge of
You. Because their minds are agitated by scriptures containing false conclusions, they are unable to
understand the truth concerning You. Furthermore, because of polluted eagerness to arrive at the right
conclusion, their theories are incapable of revealing You, who are transcendental to their material
conceptions. You are one without a second, and therefore in You contradictions like doing and not
doing, happiness and distress, are not contradictory. Your potency is so great that it can do and undo
anything as You like. With the help of that potency, what is impossible for You? Since there is no duality
in Your constitutional position, You can do everything by the influence of Your energy.
37. A rope causes fear for a bewildered person who considers it a snake, but not for a person with
proper intelligence who knows it to be only a rope. Similarly, You, as the Supersoul in everyone's heart,
inspire fear or fearlessness according to one's intelligence, but in You there is no duality.
38. With deliberation, one will see that the Supreme Soul, although manifested in different ways, is
actually the basic principle of everything. The total material energy is the cause of the material
manifestation, but the material energy is caused by Him. Therefore He is the cause of all causes, the
manifester of intelligence and the senses. He is perceived as the Supersoul of everything. Without Him,
everything would be dead. You, as that Supersoul, the supreme controller, are the only one remaining.
39. Therefore, O killer of the Madhu demon, incessant transcendental bliss flows in the minds of those
who have even once tasted but a drop of the nectar from the ocean of Your glories. Such exalted
devotees forget the tiny reflection of so-called material happiness produced from the material senses of
sight and sound. Free from all desires, such devotees are the real friends of all living entities. Offering
their minds unto You and enjoying transcendental bliss, they are expert in achieving the real goal of life.
O Lord, You are the soul and dear friend of such devotees, who never need return to this material
world. How could they give up engagement in Your devotional service?
40. O Lord, O personified three worlds, father of the three worlds! O strength of the three worlds, in the
form of the Vamana incarnation! O three-eyed form of Nrsimhadeva! O most beautiful person within the
three worlds! Everything and everyone, including human beings and even the Daitya demons and the
Danavas, is but an expansion of Your energy. O supremely powerful one, You have always appeared in
Your forms as the various incarnations to punish the demons as soon as they become very powerful.
You appear as Lord Vamanadeva, Lord Rama and Lord Krsna. You appear sometimes as an animal
like Lord Boar, sometimes a mixed incarnation like Lord Nrsimhadeva and Lord Hayagriva, and
sometimes an aquatic like Lord Fish and Lord Tortoise. Assuming such various forms, You have always
punished the demons and Danavas. We therefore pray that Your Lordship appear today as another
incarnation, if You so desire, to kill the great demon Vrtrasura.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 291
41. O supreme protector, O grandfather, O supreme pure, O Lord! We are all surrendered souls at Your
lotus feet. Indeed, our minds are bound to Your lotus feet in meditation by chains of love. Now please
manifest Your incarnation. Accepting us as Your own eternal servants and devotees, be pleased with
us and sympathetic toward us. By Your love-filled glance, with its cool and pleasing smile of sympathy,
and by the sweet, nectarean words emanating from Your beautiful face, free us from the anxiety caused
by this Vrtrasura, who always pains the cores of our hearts.
42. O Lord, as the small sparks of a fire cannot possibly perform the actions of the whole fire, we sparks
of Your Lordship cannot inform You of the necessities of our lives. You are the complete whole.
Therefore, of what do we need to inform You? You know everything because You are the original cause
of the cosmic manifestation, the maintainer and the annihilator of the entire universal creation. You
always engage in Your pastimes with Your spiritual and material energies, for You are the controller of
all these varied energies. You exist within all living entities, within the cosmic manifestation, and also
beyond them. You exist internally as Parabrahman and externally as the ingredients of the material
creation. Therefore, although manifested in various stages, at different times and places, and in various
bodies, You, the Personality of Godhead, are the original cause of all causes. Indeed, You are the
original element. You are the witness of all activities, but because You are as great as the sky, You are
never touched by any of them. You are the witness of everything as Parabrahman and Paramatma. O
Supreme Personality of Godhead, nothing is unknown to You.
43. Dear Lord, You are omniscient, and therefore You know very well why we have taken shelter at
Your lotus feet, which provide shade that gives relief from all material disturbances. Since You are the
supreme spiritual master and You know everything, we have sought shelter of Your lotus feet for
instruction. Please give us relief by counteracting our present distress. Your lotus feet are the only
shelter for a fully surrendered devotee and are the only means for subduing all the tribulations of this
material world.
44. Therefore, O Lord, O supreme controller, O Lord Krsna, please annihilate this dangerous demon
Vrtrasura, Tvasta's son, who has already swallowed all our weapons, our paraphernalia for fighting, and
our strength and influence.
45. O Lord, O supreme pure, You live within the core of everyone's heart and observe all the desires
and activities of the conditioned souls. O Supreme Personality of Godhead known as Lord Krsna, Your
reputation is bright and illuminating. You have no beginning, for You are the beginning of everything.
This is understood by pure devotees because You are easily accessible to the pure and truthful. When
the conditioned souls are liberated and sheltered at Your lotus feet after roving throughout the material
world for many millions of years, they attain the highest success of life. Therefore, O Lord, O Supreme
Personality of Godhead, we offer our respectful obeisances at Your lotus feet.
46. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King Pariksit, when the demigods offered the Lord their sincere
prayers in this way, the Lord listened by His causeless mercy. Being pleased, He then replied to the
demigods.
47. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O beloved demigods, you have offered your prayers to
Me with great knowledge, and I am certainly most pleased with you. A person is liberated by such
knowledge, and thus he remembers My exalted position, which is above the conditions of material life.
Such a devotee is fully purified by offering prayers in full knowledge. This is the source of devotional
service to Me.
48. O best of the intelligent demigods, although it is true that nothing is difficult for one to obtain when I
am pleased with him, a pure devotee, whose mind is exclusively fixed upon Me, does not ask Me for
anything but the opportunity to engage in devotional service.
49. Those who think material assets to be everything or to be the ultimate goal of life are called misers
[krpanas]. They do not know the ultimate necessity of the soul. Moreover, if one awards that which is
desired by such fools, he must also be considered foolish.
50. A pure devotee who is fully accomplished in the science of devotional service will never instruct a
foolish person to engage in fruitive activities for material enjoyment, not to speak of helping him in such
activities. Such a devotee is like an experienced physician, who never encourages a patient to eat food
injurious to his health, even if the patient desires it.
51. O Maghavan [Indra], all good fortune unto you. I advise you to approach the exalted saint
Dadhyanca [Dadhici]. He has become very accomplished in knowledge, vows and austerities, and his
body is very strong. Go ask him for his body without delay.
52. That saintly Dadhyanca, who is also known as Dadhici, personally assimilated the spiritual science
and then delivered it to the Asvini-kumaras. It is said that Dadhyanca gave them mantras through the
head of a horse. Therefore the mantras are called Asvasira. After obtaining the mantras of spiritual
science from Dadhici, the Asvini-kumaras became jivan-mukta, liberated even in this life.
292 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
53. Dadhyanca's invincible protective covering known as the Narayana-kavaca was given to Tvasta,
who delivered it to his son Visvarupa, from whom you have received it. Because of this Narayana-
kavaca, Dadhici's body is now very strong. You should therefore beg him for his body.
54. When the Asvini-kumaras beg for Dadhyanca's body on your behalf, he will surely give it because of
affection. Do not doubt this, for Dadhyanca is very experienced in religious understanding. When
Dadhyanca awards you his body, Visvakarma will prepare a thunderbolt from his bones. This
thunderbolt will certainly kill Vrtrasura because it will be invested with My power.
55. When Vrtrasura is killed because of My spiritual strength, you will regain your strength, weapons
and wealth. Thus there will be all good fortune for all of you. Although Vrtrasura can destroy all the three
worlds, do not fear that he will harm you. He is also a devotee and will never be envious of you.
Chapter Ten The Battle Between the Demigods and Vrtrasura
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: After instructing Indra in this way, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Hari, the cause of the cosmic manifestation, then and there disappeared from the presence of the
onlooking demigods.
2. O King Pariksit, following the Lord's instructions, the demigods approached Dadhici, the son of
Atharva. He was very liberal, and when they begged him to give them his body, he at once partially
agreed. However, just to hear religious instructions from them, he smiled and jokingly spoke as follows.
3. O elevated demigods, at the time of death, severe, unbearable pain takes away the consciousness of
all living entities who have accepted material bodies. Don't you know about this pain?
4. In this material world, every living entity is very much addicted to his material body. Struggling to keep
his body forever, everyone tries to protect it by all means, even at the sacrifice of all his possessions.
Therefore, who would be prepared to deliver his body to anyone, even if it were demanded by Lord
Visnu?
5. The demigods replied: O exalted brahmana, pious persons like you, whose activities are
praiseworthy, are very kind and affectionate to people in general. What can't such pious souls give for
the benefit of others? They can give everything, including their bodies.
6. Those who are too self-interested beg something from others, not knowing of others' pain. But if the
beggar knew the difficulty of the giver, he would not ask for anything. Similarly, he who is able to give
charity does not know the beggar's difficulty, for otherwise he would not refuse to give the beggar
anything he might want as charity.
7. The great sage Dadhici said: Just to hear from you about religious principles, I refused to offer my
body at your request. Now, although my body is extremely dear to me, I must give it up for your better
purposes since I know that it will leave me today or tomorrow.
8. O demigods, one who has no compassion for humanity in its suffering and does not sacrifice his
impermanent body for the higher causes of religious principles or eternal glory is certainly pitied even by
the immovable beings.
9. If one is unhappy to see the distress of other living beings and happy to see their happiness, his
religious principles are appreciated as imperishable by exalted persons who are considered pious and
benevolent.
10. This body, which is eatable by jackals and dogs after death, does not actually do any good for me,
the spirit soul. It is usable only for a short time and may perish at any moment. The body and its
possessions, its riches and relatives, must all be engaged for the benefit of others, or else they will be
sources of tribulation and misery.
11. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Dadhici Muni, the son of Atharva, thus resolved to give his body to the
service of the demigods. He placed himself, the spirit soul, at the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead and in this way gave up his gross material body made of five elements.
12. Dadhici Muni controlled his senses, life force, mind and intelligence and became absorbed in trance.
Thus he cut all his material bonds. He could not perceive how his material body became separated from
his self.
13-14. Thereafter, King Indra very firmly took up the thunderbolt manufactured by Visvakarma from the
bones of Dadhici. Charged with the exalted power of Dadhici Muni and enlightened by the power of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Indra rode on the back of his carrier, Airavata, surrounded by all the
demigods, while all the great sages offered him praise. Thus he shone very beautifully, pleasing the
three worlds as he rode off to kill Vrtrasura.
15. My dear King Pariksit, as Rudra, being very angry at Antaka [Yamaraja] had formerly run toward
Antaka to kill him, Indra angrily and with great force attacked Vrtrasura, who was surrounded by the
leaders of the demoniac armies.
16. Thereafter, at the end of Satya-yuga and the beginning of Treta-yuga, a fierce battle took place
between the demigods and the demons on the bank of the Narmada.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 293
17-18. O King, when all the asuras came onto the battlefield, headed by Vrtrasura, they saw King Indra
carrying the thunderbolt and surrounded by the Rudras, Vasus, Adityas, Asvini-kumaras, Pitas, Vahnis,
Maruts, Rbhus, Sadhyas and Visvadevas. Surrounded by his company, Indra shone so brightly that his
effulgence was intolerable to the demons.
19-22. Many hundreds and thousands of demons, demi-demons, Yaksas, Raksasas [man-eaters] and
others, headed by Sumali and Mali, resisted the armies of King Indra, which even death personified
cannot easily overcome. Among the demons were Namuci, Sambara, Anarva, Dvimurdha, Rsabha,
Asura, Hayagriva, Sankusira, Vipracitti, Ayomukha, Puloma, Vrsaparva, Praheti, Heti and Utkala.
Roaring tumultuously and fearlessly like lions, these invincible demons, all dressed in golden
ornaments, gave pain to the demigods with weapons like clubs, bludgeons, arrows, barbed darts,
mallets and lances.
23. Armed with lances, tridents, axes, swords and other weapons like sataghnis and bhusundis, the
demons attacked from different directions and scattered all the chiefs of the demigod armies.
24. As the stars in the sky cannot be seen when covered by dense clouds, the demigods, being
completely covered by networks of arrows falling upon them one after another, could not be seen.
25. The showers of various weapons and arrows released to kill the soldiers of the demigods did not
reach them because the demigods, acting quickly, cut the weapons into thousands of pieces in the sky.
26. As their weapons and mantras decreased, the demons began showering mountain peaks, trees and
stones upon the demigod soldiers, but the demigods were so powerful and expert that they nullified all
these weapons by breaking them to pieces in the sky as before.
27. When the soldiers of the demons, commanded by Vrtrasura, saw that the soldiers of King Indra
were quite well, having not been injured at all by their volleys of weapons, not even by the trees, stones
and mountain peaks, the demons were very much afraid.
28. When insignificant persons use rough words to cast false, angry accusations against saintly
persons, their fruitless words do not disturb the great personalities. Similarly, all the efforts of the
demons against the demigods, who were favorably situated under the protection of Krsna, were futile.
29. The asuras, who are never devotees of Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, lost their
pride in fighting when they found all their endeavors futile. Leaving aside their leader even in the very
beginning of the fight, they decided to flee because all their prowess had been taken away by the
enemy.
30. Seeing his army broken and all the asuras, even those known as great heroes, fleeing the battlefield
out of intense fear, Vrtrasura, who was truly a great-minded hero, smiled and spoke the following words.
31. According to his position and the time and circumstances, Vrtrasura, the hero among heroes, spoke
words that were much to be appreciated by thoughtful men. He called to the heroes of the demons, "O
Vipracitti! O Namuci! O Puloma! O Maya, Anarva and Sambara! Please hear me and do not flee."
32. Vrtrasura said: All living entities who have taken birth in this material world must die. Surely, no one
in this world has found any means to be saved from death. Even providence has not provided a means
to escape it. Under the circumstances, death being inevitable, if one can gain promotion to the higher
planetary systems and be always celebrated here by dying a suitable death, what man will not accept
such a glorious death?
33. There are two ways to meet a glorious death, and both are very rare. One is to die after performing
mystic yoga, especially bhakti-yoga, by which one can control the mind and living force and die
absorbed in thought of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. The second is to die on the battlefield,
leading the army and never showing one's back. These two kinds of death are recommended in the
sastra as glorious.
Chapter Eleven The Transcendental Qualities of Vrtrasura
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, Vrtrasura, the commander in chief of the demons, advised his
lieutenants in the principles of religion, but the cowardly demoniac commanders, intent upon fleeing the
battlefield, were so disturbed by fear that they could not accept his words.
2-3. O King Pariksit, the demigods, taking advantage of a favorable opportunity presented by time,
attacked the army of the demons from the rear and began driving away the demoniac soldiers,
scattering them here and there as if their army had no leader. Seeing the pitiable condition of his
soldiers, Vrtrasura, the best of the asuras, who was called Indrasatru, the enemy of Indra, was very
much aggrieved. Unable to tolerate such reverses, he stopped and forcefully rebuked the demigods,
speaking the following words in an angry mood.
4. O demigods, these demoniac soldiers have taken birth uselessly. Indeed, they have come from the
bodies of their mothers exactly like stool. What is the benefit of killing such enemies from behind while
they are running in fear? One who considers himself a hero should not kill an enemy who is afraid of
losing his life. Such killing is never glorious, nor can it promote one to the heavenly planets.
294 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
5. O insignificant demigods, if you truly have faith in your heroism, if you have patience in the cores of
your hearts and if you are not ambitious for sense gratification, please stand before me for a moment.
6. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Vrtrasura, the angry and most powerful hero, terrified the demigods with his
stout and strongly built body. When he roared with a resounding voice, nearly all living entities fainted.
7. When all the demigods heard Vrtrasura's tumultuous roar, which resembled that of a lion, they fainted
and fell to the ground as if struck by thunderbolts.
8. As the demigods closed their eyes in fear, Vrtrasura, taking up his trident and making the earth
tremble with his great strength, trampled the demigods beneath his feet on the battlefield the way a mad
elephant tramples hollow bamboos in the forest.
9. Seeing Vrtrasura's disposition, Indra, the King of heaven, became intolerant and threw at him one of
his great clubs, which are extremely difficult to counteract. However, as the club flew toward him,
Vrtrasura easily caught it with his left hand.
10. O King Pariksit, the powerful Vrtrasura, the enemy of King Indra, angrily struck the head of Indra's
elephant with that club, making a tumultuous sound on the battlefield. For this heroic deed, the soldiers
on both sides glorified him.
11. Struck with the club by Vrtrasura like a mountain struck by a thunderbolt, the elephant Airavata,
feeling great pain and spitting blood from its broken mouth, was pushed back fourteen yards. In great
distress, the elephant fell, with Indra on its back.
12. When he saw Indra's carrier elephant thus fatigued and injured and when he saw Indra morose
because his carrier had been harmed in that way, the great soul Vrtrasura, following religious principles,
refrained from again striking Indra with the club. Taking this opportunity, Indra touched the elephant with
his nectar-producing hand, thus relieving the animal's pain and curing its injuries. Then the elephant and
Indra both stood silently.
13. O King, when the great hero Vrtrasura saw Indra, his enemy, the killer of his brother, standing
before him with a thunderbolt in his hand, desiring to fight, Vrtrasura remembered how Indra had cruelly
killed his brother. Thinking of Indra's sinful activities, he became mad with lamentation and
forgetfulness. Laughing sarcastically, he spoke as follows.
14. Sri Vrtrasura said: He who has killed a brahmana, he who has killed his spiritual master--indeed, he
who has killed my brother--is now, by good fortune, standing before me face to face as my enemy. O
most abominable one, when I pierce your stonelike heart with my trident, I shall be freed from my debt
to my brother.
15. Only for the sake of living in the heavenly planets, you killed my elder brother--a self-realized,
sinless, qualified brahmana who had been appointed your chief priest. He was your spiritual master, but
although you entrusted him with the performance of your sacrifice, you later mercilessly severed his
heads from his body the way one butchers an animal.
16. Indra, you are bereft of all shame, mercy, glory and good fortune. Deprived of these good qualities
by the reactions of your fruitive activities, you are to be condemned even by the man-eaters [Raksasas].
Now I shall pierce your body with my trident, and after you die with great pain, even fire will not touch
you; only the vultures will eat your body.
17. You are naturally cruel. If the other demigods, unaware of my prowess, follow you by attacking me
with raised weapons, I shall sever their heads with this sharp trident. With those heads I shall perform a
sacrifice to Bhairava and the other leaders of the ghosts, along with their hordes.
18. But if in this battle you cut off my head with your thunderbolt and kill my soldiers, O Indra, O great
hero, I shall take great pleasure in offering my body to other living entities [such as jackals and vultures].
I shall thus be relieved of my obligations to the reactions of my karma, and my fortune will be to receive
the dust from the lotus feet of great devotees like Narada Muni.
19. O King of the demigods, since I, your enemy, am standing before you, why don't you hurl your
thunderbolt at me? Although your attack upon me with your club was certainly useless, like a request of
money from a miser, the thunderbolt you carry will not be useless. You need have no doubts about this.
20. O Indra, King of heaven, the thunderbolt you carry to kill me has been empowered by the prowess
of Lord Visnu and the strength of Dadhici's austerities. Since you have come here to kill me in
accordance with Lord Visnu's order, there is no doubt that I shall be killed by the release of your
thunderbolt. Lord Visnu has sided with you. Therefore your victory, opulence and all good qualities are
assured.
21. By the force of your thunderbolt, I shall be freed of material bondage and shall give up this body and
this world of material desires. Fixing my mind upon the lotus feet of Lord Sankarsana, I shall attain the
destination of such great sages as Narada Muni, just as Lord Sankarsana has said.
22. Persons who fully surrender at the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and always
think of His lotus feet are accepted and recognized by the Lord as His own personal assistants or
servants. The Lord never bestows upon such servants the brilliant opulences of the upper, lower and
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 295
middle planetary systems of this material world. When one possesses material opulence in any of these
three divisions of the universe, his possessions naturally increase his enmity, anxiety, mental agitation,
pride and belligerence. Thus one goes through much endeavor to increase and maintain his
possessions, and he suffers great unhappiness when he loses them.
23. Our Lord, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, forbids His devotees to endeavor uselessly for
religion, economic development and sense gratification. O Indra, one can thus infer how kind the Lord
is. Such mercy is obtainable only by unalloyed devotees, not by persons who aspire for material gains.
24. O my Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, will I again be; able to be a servant of Your eternal
servants who find shelter only at Your lotus feet? O Lord of my life, may I again become their servant so
that my mind may always think of Your transcendental attributes, my words always glorify those
attributes, and my body always engage in the loving service of Your Lordship?
25. O my Lord, source of all opportunities, I do not desire to enjoy in Dhruvaloka, the heavenly planets
or the planet where Lord Brahma resides, nor do I want to be the supreme ruler of all the earthly planets
or the lower planetary systems. I do not desire to be master of the powers of mystic yoga, nor do I want
liberation if I have to give up Your lotus feet.
26. O lotus-eyed Lord, as baby birds that have not yet developed their wings always look for their
mother to return and feed them, as small calves tied with ropes await anxiously the time of milking,
when they will be allowed to drink the milk of their mothers, or as a morose wife whose husband is away
from home always longs for him to return and satisfy her in all respects, I always yearn for the
opportunity to render direct service unto You.
27. O my Lord, my master, I am wandering throughout this material world as a result of my fruitive
activities. Therefore I simply seek friendship in the association of Your pious and enlightened devotees.
My attachment to my body, wife, children and home is continuing by the spell of Your external energy,
but I wish to be attached to them no longer. Let my mind, my consciousness and everything I have be
attached only to You.
Chapter Twelve Vrtrasura's Glorious Death
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Desiring to give up his body, Vrtrasura considered death in the battle
preferable to victory. O King Pariksit, he vigorously took up his trident and with great force attacked Lord
Indra, the King of heaven, just as Kaitabha had forcefully attacked the Supreme Personality of Godhead
when the universe was inundated.
2. Then Vrtrasura, the great hero of the demons, whirled his trident, which had points like the flames of
the blazing fire at the end of the millennium. With great force and anger he threw it at Indra, roaring and
exclaiming loudly, "O sinful one, thus shall I kill you!"
3. Flying in the sky, Vrtrasura's trident resembled a brilliant meteor. Although the blazing weapon was
difficult to look upon, King Indra, unafraid, cut it to pieces with his thunderbolt. Simultaneously, he cut off
one of Vrtrasura's arms, which was as thick as the body of Vasuki, the King of the serpents.
4. Although one of his arms was severed from his body, Vrtrasura angrily approached King Indra and
struck him on the jaw with an iron mace. He also struck the elephant that carried Indra. Thus Indra
dropped the thunderbolt from his hand.
5. The denizens of various planets, like the demigods, demons, Caranas and Siddhas, praised
Vrtrasura's deed, but when they observed that Indra was in great danger, they lamented, "Alas! Alas!"
6. Having dropped the thunderbolt from his hand in the presence of his enemy, Indra was practically
defeated and was very much ashamed. He dared not pick up his weapon again. Vrtrasura, however,
encouraged him, saying, "Take up your thunderbolt and kill your enemy. This is not the time to lament
your fate."
7. Vrtrasura continued: O Indra, no one is guaranteed of being always victorious but the original
enjoyer, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Bhagavan. He is the cause of creation, maintenance
and annihilation, and He knows everything. Being dependent and being obliged to accept material
bodies, belligerent subordinates are sometimes victorious and sometimes defeated.
8. All living beings in all the planets of this universe, including the presiding deities of all the planets, are
fully under the control of the Lord. They work like birds caught in a net, who cannot move
independently.
9. Our sensory prowess, mental power, bodily strength, living force, immortality and mortality are all
subject to the superintendence of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Not knowing this, foolish
people think the dull material body to be the cause of their activities.
10. O King Indra, as a wooden doll that looks like a woman or as an animal made of grass and leaves
cannot move or dance independently, but depends fully on the person who handles it, all of us dance
according to the desire of the supreme controller, the Personality of Godhead. No one is independent.
11. The three purusas--Karanodakasayi Visnu, Garbhodakasayi Visnu and Ksirodakasayi-Visnu--the
material nature, the total material energy, the false ego, the five material elements, the material senses,
296 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
the mind, the intelligence and consciousness cannot create the material manifestation without the
direction of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
12. A foolish, senseless person cannot understand the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Although
always dependent, he falsely thinks himself the Supreme. If one thinks, "According to one's previous
fruitive actions, one's material body is created by the father and mother, and the same body is
annihilated by another agent, as another animal is devoured by a tiger," this is not proper
understanding. The Supreme Personality of Godhead Himself creates and devours the living beings
through other living beings.
13. Just as a person not inclined to die must nonetheless give up his longevity, opulence, fame and
everything else at the time of death, so, at the appointed time of victory, one can gain all these when the
Supreme Lord awards them by His mercy.
14. Since everything is dependent on the supreme will of the Personality of Godhead, one should be
equipoised in fame and defamation, victory and defeat, life and death. In their effects, represented as
happiness and distress, one should maintain oneself in equilibrium, without anxiety.
15. One who knows that the three qualities--goodness, passion and ignorance--are not qualities of the
soul but qualities of material nature, and who knows that the pure soul is simply an observer of the
actions and reactions of these qualities, should be understood to be a liberated person. He is not bound
by these qualities.
16. O my enemy, just look at me. I have already been defeated, for my weapon and arm have been cut
to pieces. You have already overwhelmed me, but nonetheless, with a desire to kill you, I am trying my
best to fight. I am not at all morose, even under such adverse conditions. Therefore you should give up
your moroseness and continue fighting.
17. O my enemy, consider this battle a gambling match in which our lives are the stakes, the arrows are
the dice, and the animals acting as carriers are the game board. No one can understand who will be
defeated and who will be victorious. It all depends on providence.
18. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hearing the straightforward, instructive words of Vrtrasura, King Indra
praised him and again took the thunderbolt in his hand. Without bewilderment or duplicity, he then
smiled and spoke to Vrtrasura as follows.
19. Indra said: O great demon, I see by your discrimination and endurance in devotional service,
despite your dangerous position, that you are a perfect devotee of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, the Supersoul and friend of everyone.
20. You have surmounted the illusory energy of Lord Visnu, and because of this liberation, you have
given up the demoniac mentality and have attained the position of an exalted devotee.
21. O Vrtrasura, demons are generally conducted by the mode of passion. Therefore, what a great
wonder it is that although you are a demon, you have adopted the mentality of a devotee and have fixed
your mind on the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, who is always situated in pure
goodness.
22. A person fixed in the devotional service of the Supreme Lord, Hari, the Lord of the highest
auspiciousness, swims in the ocean of nectar. For him what is the use of the water in small ditches?
23. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Vrtrasura and King Indra spoke about devotional service even on the
battlefield, and then as a matter of duty they again began fighting. My dear King, both of them were
great fighters and were equally powerful.
24. O Maharaja Pariksit, Vrtrasura, who was completely able to subdue his enemy, took his iron club,
whirled it around, aimed it at Indra and then threw it at him with his left hand.
25. With his thunderbolt named Sataparvan, Indra simultaneously cut to pieces Vrtrasura's club and his
remaining hand.
26. Vrtrasura, bleeding profusely, his two arms cut off at their roots, looked very beautiful, like a flying
mountain whose wings have been cut to pieces by Indra.
27-29. Vrtrasura was very powerful in physical strength and influence. He placed his lower jaw on the
ground and his upper jaw in the sky. His mouth became very deep, like the sky itself, and his tongue
resembled a large serpent. With his fearful, deathlike teeth, he seemed to be trying to devour the entire
universe. Thus assuming a gigantic body, the great demon Vrtrasura shook even the mountains and
began crushing the surface of the earth with his legs, as if he were the Himalayas walking about. He
came before Indra and swallowed him and Airavata, his carrier, just as a big python might swallow an
elephant.
30. When the demigods, along with Brahma, other prajapatis and other great saintly persons, saw that
Indra had been swallowed by the demon, they became very morose. "Alas," they lamented. "What a
calamity ! What a calamity !"
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 297
31. The protective armor of Narayana, which Indra possessed, was identical with Narayana Himself, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. Protected by that armor and by his own mystic power, King Indra,
although swallowed by Vrtrasura, did not die within the demon's belly.
32. With his thunderbolt, King Indra, who was also extremely powerful, pierced through Vrtrasura's
abdomen and came out. Indra, the killer of the demon Bala, then immediately cut off Vrtrasura's head,
which was as high as the peak of a mountain.
33. Although the thunderbolt revolved around Vrtrasura's neck with great speed, separating his head
from his body took one complete year--360 days, the time in which the sun, moon and other luminaries
complete a northern and southern journey. Then, at the suitable time for Vrtrasura to be killed, his head
fell to the ground.
34. When Vrtrasura was killed, the Gandharvas and Siddhas in the heavenly planets beat kettledrums
in jubilation. With Vedic hymns they celebrated the prowess of Indra, the killer of Vrtrasura, praising
Indra and showering flowers upon him with great pleasure.
35. O King Pariksit, subduer of enemies, the living spark then came forth from Vrtrasura's body and
returned home, back to Godhead. While all the demigods looked on, he entered the transcendental
world to become an associate of Lord Sankarsana.
Chapter Thirteen King Indra Afflicted by Sinful Reaction
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, who are so charitably disposed, when Vrtrasura was
killed, all the presiding deities and everyone else in the three planetary systems was immediately
pleased and free from trouble--everyone, that is, except Indra.
2. Thereafter, the demigods, the great saintly persons, the inhabitants of Pitrloka and Bhutaloka, the
demons, the followers of the demigods, and also Lord Brahma, Lord Siva and the demigods
subordinate to Indra all returned to their respective homes. While departing, however, no one spoke to
Indra.
3. Maharaja Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: O great sage, what was the reason for Indra's
unhappiness? I wish to hear about this. When he killed Vrtrasura, all the demigods were extremely
happy. Why, then, was Indra himself unhappy?
4. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami answered: When all the great sages and demigods were disturbed by the
extraordinary power of Vrtrasura, they had assembled to ask Indra to kill him. Indra, however, being
afraid of killing a brahmana, declined their request.
5. King Indra replied: When I killed Visvarupa, I received extensive sinful reactions, but I was favored by
the women, land, trees and water, and therefore I was able to divide the sin among them. But now if I
kill Vrtrasura, another brahmana, how shall I free myself from the sinful reactions?
6. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hearing this, the great sages replied to King Indra, "O King of heaven,
all good fortune unto you. Do not fear. We shall perform an asvamedha sacrifice to release you from
any sin you may accrue by killing the brahmana."
7. The rsis continued: O King Indra, by performing an asvamedha sacrifice and thereby pleasing the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the Supersoul, Lord Narayana, the supreme controller, one
can be relieved even of the sinful reactions for killing the entire world, not to speak of killing a demon
like Vrtrasura.
8-9. One who has killed a brahmana, one who has killed a cow or one who has killed his father, mother
or spiritual master can be immediately freed from all sinful reactions simply by chanting the holy name
of Lord Narayana. Other sinful persons, such as dog-eaters and candalas, who are less than sudras,
can also be freed in this way. But you are a devotee, and we shall help you by performing the great
horse sacrifice. If you please Lord Narayana in that way, why should you be afraid? You will be freed
even if you kill the entire universe, including the brahmanas, not to speak of killing a disturbing demon
like Vrtrasura.
10. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Encouraged by the words of the sages, Indra killed Vrtrasura, and
when he was killed the sinful reaction for killing a brahmana [brahma-hatya] certainly took shelter of
Indra.
11. Following the advice of the demigods, Indra killed Vrtrasura, and he suffered because of this sinful
killing. Although the other demigods were happy, he could not derive happiness from the killing of
Vrtrasura. Indra's other good qualities, such as tolerance and opulence, could not help him in his grief.
12-13. Indra saw personified sinful reaction chasing him, appearing like a candala woman, a woman of
the lowest class. She seemed very old, and all the limbs of her body trembled. Because she was
afflicted with tuberculosis, her body and garments were covered with blood. Breathing an unbearable
fishy odor that polluted the entire street, she called to Indra, "Wait! Wait!"
14. O King, Indra first fled to the sky, but there also he saw the woman of personified sin chasing him.
This witch followed him wherever he went. At last he very quickly went to the northeast and entered the
Mahasa-sarovara Lake.
298 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. Always thinking of how he could be relieved from the sinful reaction for killing a brahmana, King
Indra, invisible to everyone, lived in the lake for one thousand years in the subtle fibers of the stem of a
lotus. The fire-god used to bring him his share of all yajnas, but because the fire-god was afraid to enter
the water, Indra was practically starving.
16. As long as King Indra lived in the water, wrapped in the stem of the lotus, Nahusa was equipped
with the ability to rule the heavenly kingdom, due to his knowledge, austerity and mystic power. Nahusa,
however, blinded and maddened by power and opulence, made undesirable proposals to Indra's wife
with a desire to enjoy her. Thus Nahusa was cursed by a brahmana and later became a snake.
17. Indra's sins were diminished by the influence of Rudra, the demigod of all directions. Because Indra
was protected by the goddess of fortune, Lord Visnu's wife, who resides in the lotus clusters of Manasa-
sarovara Lake, Indra's sins could not affect him. Indra was ultimately relieved of all the reactions of his
sinful deeds by strictly worshiping Lord Visnu. Then he was called back to the heavenly planets by the
brahmanas and reinstated in his position.
18. O King, when Lord Indra reached the heavenly planets, the saintly brahmanas approached him and
properly initiated him into a horse sacrifice [asvamedha-yajna] meant to please the Supreme Lord.
19-20. The horse sacrifice performed by the saintly brahmanas relieved Indra of the reactions to all his
sins because he worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead in that sacrifice. O King, although he
had committed a gravely sinful act, it was nullified at once by that sacrifice, just as fog is vanquished by
the brilliant sunrise.
21. King Indra was favored by Marici and the other great sages. They performed the sacrifice just
according to the rules and regulations, worshiping the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Supersoul,
the original person. Thus Indra regained his exalted position and was again honored by everyone.
22-23. In this very great narrative there is glorification of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Narayana, there are statements about the exaltedness of devotional service, there are descriptions of
devotees like Indra and Vrtrasura, and there are statements about King Indra's release from sinful life
and about his victory in fighting the demons. By understanding this incident, one is relieved of all sinful
reactions. Therefore the learned are always advised to read this narration. If one does so, one will
become expert in the activities of the senses, his opulence will increase, and his reputation will become
widespread. One will also be relieved of all sinful reactions, he will conquer all his enemies, and the
duration of his life will increase. Because this narration is auspicious in all respects, learned scholars
regularly hear and repeat it on every festival day.
Chapter Fourteen King Citraketu's Lamentation
1. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: O learned brahmana, demons are generally sinful,
being obsessed with the modes of passion and ignorance. How, then, could Vrtrasura have attained
such exalted love for the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana?
2. Demigods situated in the mode of goodness and great saints cleansed of the dirt of material
enjoyment hardly ever render pure devotional service at the lotus feet of Mukunda. [Therefore how
could Vrtrasura have become such a great devotee?]
3. In this material world there are as many living entities as atoms. Among these living entities, a very
few are human beings, and among them, few are interested in following religious principles.
4. O best of the brahmanas, Sukadeva Gosvami, out of many persons who follow religious principles,
only a few desire liberation from the material world. Among many thousands who desire liberation, one
may actually achieve liberation, giving up material attachment to society, friendship, love, country,
home, wife and children. And among many thousands of such liberated persons, one who can
understand the true meaning of liberation is very rare.
5. O great sage, among many millions who are liberated and perfect in knowledge of liberation, one
may be a devotee of Lord Narayana, or Krsna. Such devotees, who are fully peaceful, are extremely
rare.
6. Vrtrasura was situated in the blazing fire of battle and was an infamous, sinful demon, always
engaged in giving troubles and anxieties to others. How could such a demon become so greatly Krsna
conscious?
7. My dear lord, Sukadeva Gosvami, although Vrtrasura was a sinful demon, he showed the prowess of
a most exalted ksatriya and satisfied Lord Indra in battle. How could such a demon be a great devotee
of Lord Krsna? These contradictions have caused me great doubt, and they have made me eager to
hear of this from you.
8. Sri Suta Gosvami said: After hearing Maharaja Pariksit's very intelligent question, Sukadeva
Gosvami, the most powerful sage, began answering his disciple with great affection.
9. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, I shall speak to you the same history I have heard from the
mouths of Vyasadeva, Narada and Devala. Please listen with attention.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 299
10. O King Pariksit, in the province of Surasena there was a king named Citraketu, who ruled the entire
earth. During his reign, the earth produced all the necessities for life.
11. This Citraketu had ten million wives, but although he was capable of producing children, he did not
receive a child from any of them. By chance, all the wives were barren.
12. Citraketu, the husband of these millions of wives, was endowed with a beautiful form, magnanimity
and youth. He was born in a high family, he had a complete education, and he was wealthy and
opulent. Nevertheless, in spite of being endowed with all these assets, he was full of anxiety because
he did not have a son.
13. His queens all had beautiful faces and attractive eyes, yet neither his opulences, his hundreds and
thousands of queens, nor the lands of which he was the supreme proprietor were sources of happiness
for him.
14. Once upon a time, when the powerful sage named Angira was traveling all over the universe
without engagement, by his sweet will he came to the palace of King Citraketu.
15. Citraketu immediately stood up from his throne and offered him worship. He offered drinking water
and eatables and in this way performed his duty as a host to a great guest. When the rsi was seated
very comfortably, the King, restraining his mind and senses, sat on the ground at the side of the rsi's
feet.
16. O King Pariksit, when Citraketu, bent low in humility, was seated at the lotus feet of the great sage,
the sage congratulated him for his humility and hospitality. The sage addressed him in the following
words.
17. The great sage Angira said: My dear King, I hope that your body and mind and your royal
associates and paraphernalia are well. When the seven properties of material nature [the total material
energy, the ego and the five objects of sense gratification] are in proper order, the living entity within the
material elements is happy. Without these seven elements one cannot exist. Similarly, a king is always
protected by seven elements--his instructor (svamor guru), his ministers, his kingdom, his fort, his
treasury, his royal order and his friends.
18. O King, O lord of humanity, when a king directly depends upon his associates and follows their
instructions, he is happy. Similarly, when his associates offer their gifts and activities to the king and
follow his orders, they are also happy.
19. O King, are your wives, citizens, secretaries and servants and the merchants who sell spices and oil
under your control? Are you also in full control of ministers, the inhabitants of your palace, your
provincial governors, your sons and your other dependents?
20. If the king's mind is fully controlled, all his family members and governmental officers are
subordinate to him. His provincial governors present taxes on time, without resistance, and what to
speak of lesser servants?
21. O King Citraketu, I can observe that your mind is not pleased. You seem not to have achieved your
desired goal. Is this because of you yourself, or has it been caused by others? Your pale face reflects
your deep anxiety.
22. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, although the great sage Angira knew everything, he
inquired from the King in this way. Thus King Citraketu, desiring a son, bent low in great humility and
spoke to the great sage as follows.
23. King Citraketu said: O great lord Angira, because of austerity, knowledge and transcendental
samadhi, you are freed from all the reactions of sinful life. Therefore, as a perfect yogi, you can
understand everything external and internal regarding embodied, conditioned souls like us.
24. O great soul, you are aware of everything, yet you are asking me why I am full of anxiety. Therefore,
in response to your order, let me disclose the cause.
25. As a person aggrieved by hunger and thirst is not pleased by the external gratification of flower
garlands or sandalwood pulp, I am not pleased with my empire, opulence or possessions, which are
desirable even for great demigods, because I have no son.
26. Therefore, O great sage, please save me and my forefathers, who are descending to the darkness
of hell because I have no progeny. Kindly do something so that I may have a son to deliver us from
hellish conditions.
27. In response to the request of Maharaja Citraketu, Angira Rsi, who was born of Lord Brahma's mind,
was very merciful toward him. Because the sage was a greatly powerful personality, he performed a
sacrifice by offering oblations of sweetrice to Tvasta.
28. O Pariksit Maharaja, best of the Bharatas, the remnants of the food offered in the yajna were given
by the great sage Angira to the first and most perfect among Citraketu's millions of queens, whose
name was Krtadyuti.
29. Thereafter, the great sage told the King, "O great King, now you will have a son who will be the
cause of both jubilation and lamentation." The sage then left, without waiting for Citraketu's response.
300 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
30. As Krttikadevi, after receiving the semen of Lord Siva from Agni, conceived a child named Skanda
[Karttikeya], Krtadyuti, having received semen from Citraketu, became pregnant after eating remnants
of food from the yajna performed by Angira.
31. After receiving semen from Maharaja Citraketu, the King of Surasena, Queen Krtadyuti gradually
developed in her pregnancy, O King Pariksit, just as the moon develops during the bright fortnight.
32. Thereafter, in due course of time, a son was born to the King. Hearing news of this, all the
inhabitants of the state of Surasena were extremely pleased.
33. King Citraketu was especially pleased. After purifying himself by bathing and by decorating himself
with ornaments, he engaged learned brahmanas in offering benedictions to the child and performing the
birth ceremony.
34. Unto the brahmanas who took part in the ritualistic ceremony the King gave charity of gold, silver,
garments, ornaments, villages, horses and elephants, as well as sixty crores of cows [six hundred
million cows].
35. As a cloud indiscriminately pours water on the earth, the beneficent King Citraketu, to increase the
reputation, opulence and longevity of his son, distributed like rainfall all desirable things to everyone.
36. When a poor man gets some money after great difficulty, his affection for the money increases daily.
Similarly, when King Citraketu, after great difficulty, received a son, his affection for the son increased
day after day.
37. The mother's attraction and attention to the son, like that of the child's father, excessively increased.
The other wives, seeing Krtadyuti's son, were very much agitated, as if by high fevers, with a desire to
have sons.
38. As King Citraketu fostered his son very carefully, his affection for Queen Krtadyuti increased, but
gradually he lost affection for the other wives, who had no sons.
39. The other queens were extremely unhappy due to their being sonless. Because of the King's
negligence toward them, they condemned themselves in envy and lamented.
40. A wife who has no sons is neglected at home by her husband and dishonored by her co-wives
exactly like a maidservant. Certainly such a woman is condemned in every respect because of her
sinful life.
41. Even maidservants who are constantly engaged in rendering service to the husband are honored by
the husband, and thus they have nothing for which to lament. Our position, however, is that we are
maidservants of the maidservant. Therefore we are most unfortunate.
42. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Being neglected by their husband and seeing Krtadyuti's
opulence in possessing a son, Krtadyuti's co-wives always burned in envy, which became extremely
strong.
43. As their envy increased, they lost their intelligence. Being extremely hardhearted and unable to
tolerate the King's neglect, they finally administered poison to the son.
44. Unaware of the poison administered by her co-wives, Queen Krtadyuti walked within the house,
thinking that her son was sleeping deeply. She did not understand that he was dead.
45. Thinking that her child had been sleeping for a long time, Queen Krtadyuti, who was certainly very
intelligent, ordered the nurse, "My dear friend, please bring my son here."
46. When the maidservant approached the child, who was lying down, she saw that his eyes were
turned upward. There were no signs of life, all his senses having stopped, and she could understand
that the child was dead. Seeing this, she immediately cried, "Now I am doomed," and fell to the ground.
47. In great agitation, the maidservant struck her breast with both hands and cried loudly in regretful
words. Hearing her loud voice, the Queen immediately came, and when she approached her son, she
saw that he was suddenly dead.
48. In great lamentation, her hair and dress in disarray, the Queen fell to the ground unconscious.
49. O King Pariksit, hearing the loud crying, all the inhabitants of the palace came, both men and
women. Being equally aggrieved, they also began to cry. The queens who had administered the poison
also cried pretentiously, knowing full well their offense.
50-51. When King Citraketu heard of his son's death from unknown causes, he became almost blind.
Because of his great affection for his son, his lamentation grew like a blazing fire, and as he went to see
the dead child, he kept slipping and falling on the ground. Surrounded by his ministers and other officers
and the learned brahmanas present, the King approached and fell unconscious at the child's feet, his
hair and dress scattered. When the King, breathing heavily, regained consciousness, his eyes were
tearful, and he could not speak.
52. When the Queen saw her husband, King Citraketu, merged in great lamentation and saw the dead
child, who was the only son in the family, she lamented in various ways. This increased the pain in the
cores of the hearts of all the inhabitants of the palace, the ministers and all the brahmanas.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 301
53. The garland of flowers decorating the Queen's head fell, and her hair scattered. Falling tears melted
the collyrium on her eyes and moistened her breasts, which were covered with kunkuma powder. As
she lamented the loss of her son, her loud crying resembled the sweet sound of a kurari bird.
54. Alas, O Providence, O Creator, You are certainly inexperienced in creation, for during the lifetime of
a father You have caused the death of his son, thus acting in opposition to Your creative laws. If You
are determined to contradict these laws, You are certainly the enemy of living entities and are never
merciful.
55. My Lord, You may say that there is no law that a father must die in the lifetime of his son and that a
son must be born in the lifetime of his father, since everyone lives and dies according to his own fruitive
activity. However, if fruitive activity is so strong that birth and death depend upon it, there is no need of a
controller, or God. Again, if You say that a controller is needed because the material energy does not
have the power to act, one may answer that if the bonds of affection You have created are disturbed by
fruitive action, no one will raise children with affection; instead, everyone will cruelly neglect his children.
Since You have cut the bonds of affection that compel a parent to raise his child, You appear
inexperienced and unintelligent.
56. My dear son, I am helpless and very much aggrieved. You should not give up my company. Just
look at your lamenting father. We are helpless because without a son we shall have to suffer the
distress of going to the darkest hellish regions. You are the only hope by which we can get out of these
dark regions. Therefore I request you not to go any further with the merciless Yama.
57. My dear son, you have slept a long time. Now please get up. Your playmates are calling you to play.
Since you must be very hungry, please get up and suck my breast and dissipate our lamentation.
58. My dear son, I am certainly most unfortunate, for I can no longer see your mild smiling. You have
closed your eyes forever. I therefore conclude that you have been taken from this planet to another,
from which you will not return. My dear son, I can no longer hear your pleasing voice.
59. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Accompanied by his wife, who was thus lamenting for her dead
son, King Citraketu began crying loudly with an open mouth, being greatly aggrieved.
60. As the King and Queen lamented, all their male and female followers joined them in crying.
Because of the sudden accident, all the citizens of the kingdom were almost unconscious.
61. When the great sage Angira understood that the King was almost dead in an ocean of lamentation,
he went there with Narada Rsi.
Chapter Fifteen The Saints Narada and Angira Instruct King Citraketu
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: While King Citraketu, overcome by lamentation, lay like a dead body at
the side of the dead body of his son, the two great sages Narada and Angira instructed him about
spiritual consciousness as follows.
2. O King, what relationship does the dead body for which you lament have with you, and what
relationship do you have with him? You may say that you are now related as father and son, but do you
think this relationship existed before? Does it truly exist now? Will it continue in the future?
3. O King, as small particles of sand sometimes come together and are sometimes separated due to
the force of the waves, the living entities who have accepted material bodies sometimes come together
and are sometimes separated by the force of time.
4. When seeds are sown in the ground, they sometimes grow into plants and sometimes do not.
Sometimes the ground is not fertile, and the sowing of seeds is unproductive. Similarly, sometimes a
prospective father, being impelled by the potency of the Supreme Lord, can beget a child, but
sometimes conception does not take place. Therefore one should not lament over the artificial
relationship of parenthood, which is ultimately controlled by the Supreme Lord.
5. O King, both you and us--your advisers, wives and ministers--as well as everything moving and not
moving throughout the entire cosmos at this time, are in a temporary situation. Before our birth this
situation did not exist, and after our death it will exist no longer. Therefore our situation now is
temporary, although it is not false.
6. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, the master and proprietor of everything, is certainly not
interested in the temporary cosmic manifestation. Nonetheless, just as a boy at the beach creates
something in which he is not interested, the Lord, keeping everything under His control, causes
creation, maintenance and annihilation. He creates by engaging a father to beget a son, He maintains
by engaging a government or king to see to the public's welfare, and He annihilates through agents for
killing, such as snakes. The agents for creation, maintenance and annihilation have no independent
potency, but because of the spell of the illusory energy, one thinks himself the creator, maintainer and
annihilator.
7. As from one seed another seed is generated, O King, so from one body [the body of the father],
through another body [the body of the mother], a third body is generated [the body of a son]. As the
302 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
elements of the material body are eternal, the living entity who appears through these material elements
is also eternal.
8. Divisions of generalization and specification, such as nationality and individuality, are the
imaginations of persons who are not advanced in knowledge.
9. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thus enlightened by the instructions of Narada and Angira, King
Citraketu became hopeful with knowledge. Wiping his shriveled face with his hand, the King began to
speak.
10. King Citraketu said: You have both come here dressed like avadhutas, liberated persons, just to
cover your identities, but I see that of all men, you are the most elevated in awareness. You know
everything as it is. Therefore you are the greatest of all great personalities.
11. Brahmanas who are exalted to the position of Vaisnavas, the most dear servants of Krsna,
sometimes dress like madmen. Just to benefit materialists like us, who are always attached to sense
gratification, and just to dissipate our ignorance, these Vaisnavas wander on the surface of the globe
according to their desire.
12-15. O great souls, I have heard that among the great and perfect persons wandering the surface of
the earth to instruct knowledge to people covered by ignorance are Sanat-kumara, Narada, Rbhu,
Angira, Devala, Asita, Apantaratama [Vyasadeva], Markandeya, Gautama, Vasistha, Bhagavan
Parasurama, Kapila, Sukadeva, Durvasa, Yajnavalkya, Jatukarna and Aruni. Others are Romasa,
Cyavana, Dattatreya, Asuri, Patanjali, the great sage Dhaumya who is like the head of the Vedas, the
sage Pancasikha, Hiranyanabha, Kausalya, Srutadeva and Rtadhvaja. You must certainly be among
them.
16. Because you are great personalities, you can give me real knowledge. I am as foolish as a village
animal like a pig or dog because I am merged in the darkness of ignorance. Therefore, please ignite the
torch of knowledge to save me.
17. Angira said: My dear King, when you desired to have a son, I approached you. Indeed, I am the
same Angira Rsi who gave you this son. As for this rsi, he is the great sage Narada, the direct son of
Lord Brahma
18-19. My dear King, you are an advanced devotee of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. To be
absorbed in lamentation for the loss of something material is unsuitable for a person like you. Therefore
we have both come to relieve you from this false lamentation, which is due to your being merged in the
darkness of ignorance. For those who are advanced in spiritual knowledge to be affected by material
loss and gain is not at all desirable.
20. When I first came to your home, I could have given you the supreme transcendental knowledge, but
when I saw that your mind was absorbed in material things, I gave you only a son, who caused you
jubilation and lamentation.
21-23. My dear King, now you are actually experiencing the misery of a person who has sons and
daughters. O King, owner of the state of Surasena, one's wife, his house, the opulence of his kingdom,
and his various other opulences and objects of sense perception are all the same in that they are
temporary. One's kingdom, military power, treasury, servants, ministers, friends and relatives are all
causes of fear, illusion, lamentation and distress. They are like a gandharva-nagara, a nonexistent
palace that one imagines to exist in the forest. Because they are impermanent, they are no better than
illusions, dreams and mental concoctions.
24. These visible objects like wife, children and property are like dreams and mental concoctions.
Actually what we see has no permanent existence. It is sometimes seen and sometimes not. Only
because of our past actions do we create such mental concoctions, and because of these concoctions,
we perform further activities.
25. The living entity in the bodily conception of life is absorbed in the body, which is a combination of the
physical elements, the five senses for gathering knowledge, and the five senses of action, along with
the mind. Through the mind the living entity suffers three kinds of tribulations--adhibhautika, adhidaivika
and adhyatmika. Therefore this body is a source of all miseries.
26. Therefore, O King Citraketu, carefully consider the position of the atma. In other words, try to
understand who you are--whether body, mind or soul. Consider where you have come from, where you
are going after giving up this body, and why you are under the control of material lamentation. Try to
understand your real position in this way, and then you will be able to give up your unnecessary
attachment. You will also be able to give up the belief that this material world, or anything not directly in
touch with service to Krsna, is eternal. Thus you will obtain peace.
27. The great sage Narada continued: My dear King, attentively receive from me a mantra, which is
most auspicious. After accepting it from me, in seven nights you will be able to see the Lord face to
face.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 303
28. My dear King, in former days Lord Siva and other demigods took shelter of the lotus feet of
Sankarsana. Thus they immediately got free from the illusion of duality and achieved unequaled and
unsurpassed glories in spiritual life. You will very soon attain that very same position.
Chapter Sixteen King Citraketu Meets the Supreme Lord
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King Pariksit, by his mystic power the great sage Narada
brought the dead son into the vision of all the lamenting relatives and then spoke as follows.
2. Sri Narada Muni said: O living entity, all good fortune unto you. Just see your father and mother. All
your friends and relatives are overwhelmed with grief because of your passing away.
3. Because you died untimely, the balance of your lifetime still remains. Therefore you may reenter your
body and enjoy the remainder of your life, surrounded by your friends and relatives. Accept the royal
throne and all the opulences given by your father.
4. By the mystic power of Narada Muni, the living entity reentered his dead body for a short time and
spoke in reply to Narada Muni's request. He said: According to the results of my fruitive activities, I, the
living being, transmigrate from one body to another, sometimes going to the species of the demigods,
sometimes to the species of lower animals, sometimes among the vegetables, and sometimes to the
human species. Therefore, in which birth were these my mother and father? No one is actually my
mother and father. How can I accept these two people as my parents?
5. In this material world, which advances like a river that carries away the living entity, all people
become friends, relatives and enemies in due course of time. They also act neutrally, they mediate, they
despise one another, and they act in many other relationships. Nonetheless, despite these various
transactions, no one is permanently related.
6. Just as gold and other commodities are continually transferred from one place to another in due
course of purchase and sale, so the living entity, as a result of his fruitive activities, wanders throughout
the entire universe, being injected into various bodies in different species of life by one kind of father
after another.
7. A few living entities are born in the human species, and others are born as animals. Although both
are living entities, their relationships are impermanent. An animal may remain in the custody of a human
being for some time, and then the same animal may be transferred to the possession of other human
beings. As soon as the animal goes away, the former proprietor no longer has a sense of ownership. As
long as the animal is in his possession he certainly has an affinity for it, but as soon as the animal is
sold, the affinity is lost.
8. Even though one living entity becomes connected with another because of a relationship based on
bodies that are perishable, the living entity is eternal. Actually it is the body that is born or lost, not the
living entity. One should not accept that the living entity takes birth or dies. The living being actually has
no relationship with so-called fathers and mothers. As long as he appears as the son of a certain father
and mother as a result of his past fruitive activities, he has a connection with the body given by that
father and mother. Thus he falsely accepts himself as their son and acts affectionately. After he dies,
however, the relationship is finished. Under these circumstances, one should not be falsely involved
with jubilation and lamentation.
9. The living entity is eternal and imperishable because he actually has no beginning and no end. He
never takes birth or dies. He is the basic principle of all types of bodies, yet he does not belong to the
bodily category. The living being is so sublime that he is equal in quality to the Supreme Lord.
Nonetheless, because he is extremely small, he is prone to be illusioned by the external energy, and
thus he creates various bodies for himself according to his different desires.
10. For this living entity, no one is dear, nor is anyone unfavorable. He makes no distinction between
that which is his own and that which belongs to anyone else. He is one without a second; in other
words, he is not affected by friends and enemies, well-wishers or mischief-mongers. He is only an
observer, a witness, of the different qualities of men.
11. The Supreme Lord [atma], the creator of cause and effect, does not accept the happiness and
distress that result from fruitive actions. He is completely independent of having to accept a material
body, and because He has no material body, He is always neutral. The living entities, being part and
parcel of the Lord, possess His qualities in a minute quantity. Therefore one should not be affected by
lamentation.
12. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When the conditioned soul [jiva] in the form of Maharaja
Citraketu's son had spoken in this way and then left, Citraketu and the other relatives of the dead son
were all astonished. Thus they cut off the shackles of their affection, which was due to their relationship
with him, and gave up their lamentation.
13. After the relatives had discharged their duties by performing the proper funeral ceremonies and
burning the dead child's body, they gave up the affection that leads to illusion, lamentation, fear and
pain. Such affection is undoubtedly difficult to give up, but they gave it up very easily.
304 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
14. Queen Krtyadyuti's co-wives, who had poisoned the child, were very much ashamed, and they lost
all their bodily luster. While lamenting, O King, they remembered the instructions of Angira and gave up
their ambition to bear children. Following the directions of the brahmanas, they went to the bank of the
Yamuna, where they bathed and atoned for their sinful activities.
15. Thus enlightened by the instructions of the brahmanas Angira and Narada, King Citraketu became
fully aware of spiritual knowledge. As an elephant becomes free from a muddy reservoir of water, King
Citraketu came out of the dark well of family life.
16. The King bathed in the water of the Yamuna, and according to prescribed duties, he offered
oblations of water to the forefathers and demigods. Very gravely controlling his senses and mind, he
then offered his respects and obeisances to the sons of Lord Brahma [Angira and Narada].
17. Thereafter, being very much pleased with Citraketu, who was a self-controlled devotee and
surrendered soul, Narada, the most powerful sage, spoke to him the following transcendental
instructions.
18-19. [Narada gave Citraketu the following mantra.] O Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
are addressed by the omkara [pranava], I offer my respectful obeisances unto You. O Lord Vasudeva, I
meditate upon You. O Lord Pradyumna, Lord Aniruddha and Lord Sankarsana, I offer You my
respectful obeisances. O reservoir of spiritual potency, O supreme bliss, I offer my respectful
obeisances unto You, who are self-sufficient and most peaceful. O ultimate truth, one without a second,
You are realized as Brahman, Paramatma and Bhagavan and are therefore the reservoir of all
knowledge. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
20. Perceiving Your personal bliss, You are always transcendental to the waves of material nature.
Therefore, my Lord, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You. You are the supreme controller of the
senses, and Your expansions of form are unlimited. You are the greatest, and therefore I offer my
respectful obeisances unto You.
21. The words and mind of the conditioned soul cannot approach the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
for material names and forms are not applicable to the Lord, who is entirely spiritual, beyond the
conception of gross and subtle forms. The impersonal Brahman is another of His forms. May He, by His
pleasure, protect us.
22. As pots made completely of earth are situated on earth after being created and are transformed into
earth again when broken, this cosmic manifestation is caused by the Supreme Brahman, situated in the
Supreme Brahman, and annihilated in the same Supreme Brahman. Therefore, since the Supreme
Lord is the cause of Brahman, let us offer Him our respectful obeisances.
23. The Supreme Brahman emanates from the Supreme Personality of Godhead and expands like the
sky. Although untouched by anything material, it exists within and without. Nonetheless, the mind,
intelligence, senses and living force can neither touch Him nor know Him. I offer unto Him my respectful
obeisances.
24. As iron has the power to burn when made red-hot in the association of fire, so the body, senses,
living force, mind and intelligence, although merely lumps of matter, can function in their activities when
infused with a particle of consciousness by the Supreme Personality of Godhead. As iron cannot burn
unless heated by fire, the bodily senses cannot act unless favored by the Supreme Brahman.
25. O transcendental Lord, who are situated in the topmost planet of the spiritual world, Your two lotus
feet are always massaged by a multitude of the best devotees with their lotus-bud hands. You are the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, complete in six opulences. You are the supreme person mentioned
in the Purusa-sukta prayers. You are the most perfect, self-realized master of all mystic power. Let me
offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
26. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Narada, having become the spiritual master of Citraketu,
instructed him fully in this prayer because Citraketu was fully surrendered. O King Pariksit, Narada then
left with the great sage Angira for the topmost planet, known as Brahmaloka.
27. Fasting and drinking only water, Citraketu for one week continuously chanted with great care and
attention the mantra given by Narada Muni.
28. O King Pariksit, after only one week of repeatedly practicing the mantra received from the spiritual
master, Citraketu achieved the rule of the planet of the Vidyadharas as an intermediate product of his
spiritual advancement in knowledge.
29. Thereafter, within a very few days, by the influence of the mantra that Citraketu had practiced, his
mind became increasingly enlightened in spiritual progress, and he attained shelter at the lotus feet of
Anantadeva.
30. Upon reaching the shelter of Lord Sesa, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Citraketu saw that
He was as white as the white fibers of a lotus flower. He was dressed in bluish garments and adorned
with a brilliantly glittering helmet, armlets, belt and bangles. His face was smiling, and His eyes were
reddish. He was surrounded by such exalted liberated persons as Sanat-kumara.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 305
31. As soon as Maharaja Citraketu saw the Supreme Lord, he was cleansed of all material
contamination and situated in his original Krsna consciousness, being completely purified. He became
silent and grave, and because of love for the Lord, tears fell from his eyes, and his hairs stood on end.
With great devotion and love, he offered his respectful obeisances unto the original Personality of
Godhead.
32. With tears of love and affection, Citraketu repeatedly moistened the resting place of the Supreme
Lord's lotus feet. Because his voice was choked in ecstasy, for a considerable time he was unable to
utter any of the letters of the alphabet to offer the Lord suitable prayers.
33. Thereafter, by controlling his mind with his intelligence and thus restricting his senses from external
engagements, he recovered suitable words with which to express his feelings. Thus he began offering
prayers to the Lord, who is the personification of the holy scriptures [the satvata-samhitas like the
Brahma-samhita and the Narada-pancaratra] and who is the spiritual master of all. He offered his
prayers as follows.
34. Citraketu said: O unconquerable Lord, although You cannot be conquered by anyone, You are
certainly conquered by devotees who have control of the mind and senses. They can keep You under
their control because You are causelessly merciful to devotees who desire no material profit from You.
Indeed, You give Yourself to them, and because of this You also have full control over Your devotees.
35. My dear Lord, this cosmic manifestation and its creation, maintenance and annihilation are all but
Your opulences. Since Lord Brahma and the other creators are nothing but small portions of a portion of
You, their partial power to create does not make them God [isvara]. Their consciousness of themselves
as separate Lords is therefore merely false prestige. It is not valid.
36. You exist in the beginning, middle and end of everything, from the most minute particle of the
cosmic manifestation--the atom--to the gigantic universes and total material energy. Nonetheless, You
are eternal, having no beginning, end or middle. You are perceived to exist in these three phases, and
thus You are permanent. When the cosmic manifestation does not exist, You exist as the original
potency.
37. Every universe is covered by seven layers--earth, water, fire, air, sky, the total energy and false
ego--each ten times greater than the previous one. There are innumerable universes besides this one,
and although they are unlimitedly large, they move about like atoms in You. Therefore You are called
unlimited [ananta].
38. O Lord, O Supreme, unintelligent persons who thirst for sense enjoyment and who worship various
demigods are no better than animals in the human form of life. Because of their animalistic propensities,
they fail to worship Your Lordship, and instead they worship the insignificant demigods, who are but
small sparks of Your glory. With the destruction of the entire universe, including the demigods, the
benedictions received from the demigods also vanish, just like the nobility when a king is no longer in
power.
39. O Supreme Lord, if persons obsessed with material desires for sense gratification through material
opulence worship You, who are the source of all knowledge and are transcendental to material
qualities, they are not subject to material rebirth, just as sterilized or fried seeds do not produce plants.
Living entities are subjected to the repetition of birth and death because they are conditioned by
material nature, but since You are transcendental, one who is inclined to associate with You in
transcendence escapes the conditions of material nature.
40. O unconquerable one, when You spoke about bhagavata-dharma, which is the uncontaminated
religious system for achieving the shelter of Your lotus feet, that was Your victory. Persons who have no
material desires, like the Kumaras, who are self-satisfied sages, worship You to be liberated from
material contamination. In other words, they accept the process of bhagavata-dharma to achieve
shelter at Your lotus feet.
41. Being full of contradictions, all forms of religion but bhagavata-dharma work under conceptions of
fruitive results and distinctions of "you and I" and "yours and mine." The followers of Srimad-
Bhagavatam have no such consciousness. They are all Krsna conscious, thinking that they are Krsna's
and Krsna is theirs. There are other, low-class religious systems, which are contemplated for the killing
of enemies or the gain of mystic power, but such religious systems, being full of passion and envy, are
impure and temporary. Because they are full of envy, they are full of irreligion.
42. How can a religious system that produces envy of one's self and of others be beneficial for oneself
and for them? What is auspicious about following such a system? What is actually to be gained? By
causing pain to one's own self due to self-envy and by causing pain to others, one arouses Your anger
and practices irreligion.
43. My dear Lord, one's occupational duty is instructed in Srimad-Bhagavatam and Bhagavad-gita
according to Your point of view, which never deviates from the highest goal of life. Those who follow
their occupational duties under Your supervision, being equal to all living entities, moving and
306 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
nonmoving, and not considering high and low, are called Aryans. Such Aryans worship You, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
44. My Lord, it is not impossible for one to be immediately freed from all material contamination by
seeing You. Not to speak of seeing You personally, merely by hearing the holy name of Your Lordship
only once, even candalas, men of the lowest class, are freed from all material contamination. Under the
circumstances, who will not be freed from material contamination simply by seeing You?
45. Therefore, my dear Lord, simply seeing You has now wiped away all the contamination of sinful
activities and their results of material attachment and lusty desires, which always filled my mind and the
core of my heart. Whatever is predicted by the great sage Narada Muni cannot be otherwise. In other
words, I have obtained Your audience as a result of being trained by Narada Muni.
46. O unlimited Supreme Personality of Godhead, whatever a living entity does in this material world is
well known to You because You are the Supersoul. In the presence of the sun there is nothing to be
revealed by the light of a glowworm. Similarly, because You know everything, in Your presence there is
nothing for me to make known.
47. My dear Lord, You are the creator, maintainer and annihilator of this cosmic manifestation, but
persons who are too materialistic and who always see separateness do not have eyes with which to
see You. They cannot understand Your real position, and therefore they conclude that the cosmic
manifestation is independent of Your opulence. My Lord, You are the supreme pure, and You are full in
all six opulences. Therefore I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
48. My dear Lord, it is after You endeavor that Lord Brahma, Indra and the other directors of the cosmic
manifestation become occupied with their activities. It is after You perceive the material energy, My
Lord, that the senses begin to perceive. The Supreme Personality of Godhead holds all the universes
on His heads like seeds of mustard. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, that Supreme
Personality, who has thousands of hoods.
49. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: The Lord, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Anantadeva, being
very much pleased with the prayers offered by Citraketu, the King of the Vidyadharas, replied to him as
follows, O best of the Kuru dynasty, Maharaja Pariksit.
50. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Anantadeva, replied as follows: O King, as a result of your
having accepted the instructions spoken about Me by the great sages Narada and Angira, you have
become completely aware of transcendental knowledge. Because you are now educated in the spiritual
science, you have seen Me face to face. Therefore you are now completely perfect.
51. All living entities, moving and nonmoving, are My expansions and are separate from Me. I am the
Supersoul of all living beings, who exist because I manifest them. I am the form of the transcendental
vibrations like omkara and Hare Krsna Hare Rama, and I am the Supreme Absolute Truth. These two
forms of Mine--namely, the transcendental sound and the eternally blissful spiritual form of the Deity,
are My eternal forms; they are not material.
52. In this world of matter, which the conditioned soul accepts as consisting of enjoyable resources, the
conditioned soul expands, thinking that he is the enjoyer of the material world. Similarly, the material
world expands in the living entity as a source of enjoyment. In this way they both expand, but because
they are My energies, they are both pervaded by Me. As the Supreme Lord, I am the cause of these
effects, and one should know that both of them rest in Me.
53-54. When a person is in deep sleep, he dreams and sees in himself many other objects, such as
great mountains and rivers or perhaps even the entire universe, although they are far away. Sometimes
when one awakens from a dream he sees that he is in a human form, lying in his bed in one place.
Then he sees himself, in terms of various conditions, as belonging to a particular nationality, family and
so on. All the conditions of deep sleep, dreaming and wakefulness are but energies of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. One should always remember the original creator of these conditions, the
Supreme Lord, who is unaffected by them.
55. Know Me to be the Supreme Brahman, the all-pervading Supersoul through whom the sleeping
living entity can understand his dreaming condition and his happiness beyond the activities of the
material senses. That is to say, I am the cause of the activities of the sleeping living being.
56. If one's dreams during sleep are merely subject matters witnessed by the Supersoul, how can the
living entity, who is different from the Supersoul, remember the activities of dreams? The experiences of
one person cannot be understood by another. Therefore the knower of the facts, the living entity who
inquires into the incidents manifested in dreams and wakefulness, is different from the circumstantial
activities. That knowing factor is Brahman. In other words, the quality of knowing belongs to the living
entities and to the Supreme Soul. Thus the living entity can also experience the activities of dreams and
wakefulness. In both stages the knower is unchanged, but is qualitatively one with the Supreme
Brahman.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 307
57. When a living entity, thinking himself different from Me, forgets his spiritual identity of qualitative
oneness with Me in eternity, knowledge and bliss, his material, conditional life begins. In other words,
instead of identifying his interest with Mine, he becomes interested in his bodily expansions like his wife,
children and material possessions. In this way, by the influence of his actions, one body comes from
another, and after one death, another death takes place.
58. A human being can attain perfection in life by self-realization through the Vedic literature and its
practical application. This is possible especially for a human being born in India, the land of piety. A
man who obtains birth in such a convenient position but does not understand his self is unable to
achieve the highest perfection, even if he is exalted to life in the higher planetary systems.
59. Remembering the great trouble found in the field of activities performed for fruitive results, and
remembering how one receives the reverse of the results one desires--whether from material actions or
from the fruitive activities recommended in the Vedic literatures--an intelligent man should cease from
the desire for fruitive actions, for by such endeavors one cannot achieve the ultimate goal of life. On the
other hand, if one acts without desires for fruitive results--in other words, if one engages in devotional
activities--he can achieve the highest goal of life with freedom from miserable conditions. Considering
this, one should cease from material desires.
60. As husband and wife, a man and woman plan together to attain happiness and decrease
unhappiness, working jointly in many ways, but because their activities are full of desires, these
activities are never a source of happiness, and they never diminish distress. On the contrary, they are a
cause of great unhappiness.
61-62. One should understand that the activities of persons who are proud of their material experience
bring only results contradictory to those such persons conceive while awake, sleeping and deeply
sleeping. One should further understand that the spirit soul, although very difficult for the materialist to
perceive, is above all these conditions, and by the strength of one's discrimination, one should give up
the desire for fruitive results in the present life and in the next. Thus becoming experienced in
transcendental knowledge, one should become My devotee.
63. Persons who try to reach the ultimate goal of life must expertly observe the Supreme Absolute
Person and the living entity, who are one in quality in their relationship as part and whole. This is the
ultimate understanding of life. There is no better truth than this.
64. O King, if you accept this conclusion of Mine, being unattached to material enjoyment, adhering to
Me with great faith and thus becoming proficient and fully aware of knowledge and its practical
application in life, you will achieve the highest perfection by attaining Me.
65. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After thus instructing Citraketu and assuring him of perfection in
this way, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the supreme spiritual master, the supreme soul,
Sankarsana, disappeared from that place as Citraketu looked on.
Chapter Seventeen Mother Parvati Curses Citraketu
1. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami said: After offering obeisances to the direction from which Ananta, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, had disappeared, Citraketu began traveling in outer space as the
head of the Vidyadharas.
2-3. Being praised by great sages and saints and by the inhabitants of Siddhaloka and Caranaloka,
Citraketu, the most powerful mystic yogi, wandered about enjoying life for millions of years. With bodily
strength and senses free from deterioration, he traveled within the valleys of Sumeru Mountain, which is
the place of perfection for various kinds of mystic power. In those valleys he enjoyed life with the
women of Vidyadhara-loka by chanting the glories of the Supreme Lord, Hari.
4-5. One time while King Citraketu was traveling in outer space on a brilliantly effulgent airplane given to
him by Lord Visnu, he saw Lord Siva, surrounded by Siddhas and Caranas. Lord Siva was sitting in an
assembly of great saintly persons and embracing Parvati on his lap with his arm. Citraketu laughed
loudly and spoke, within the hearing of Parvati.
6. Citraketu said: Lord Siva, the spiritual master of the general populace, is the best of all living entities
who have accepted material bodies. He enunciates the system of religion. Yet how wonderful it is that
he is embracing his wife, Parvati, in the midst of an assembly of great saintly persons.
7. Lord Siva, whose hair is matted on his head, has certainly undergone great austerities and
penances. Indeed, he is the president in the assembly of strict followers of Vedic principles.
Nonetheless, he is seated with his wife on his lap in the midst of saintly persons and is embracing her
as if he were a shameless, ordinary human being.
8. Ordinary conditioned persons generally embrace their wives and enjoy their company in solitary
places. How wonderful it is that Lord Mahadeva, although a great master of austerity, is embracing his
wife openly in the midst of an assembly of great saints.
308 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
9. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, after hearing Citraketu's statement, Lord Siva, the
most powerful personality, whose knowledge is fathomless, simply smiled and remained silent, and all
the members of the assembly followed the lord by not saying anything.
10. Not knowing the prowess of Lord Siva and Parvati, Citraketu strongly criticized them. His statements
were not at all pleasing, and therefore the goddess Parvati, being very angry, spoke as follows to
Citraketu, who thought himself better than Lord Siva in controlling the senses.
11. The goddess Parvati said: Alas, has this upstart now received a post from which to punish
shameless persons like us? Has he been appointed ruler, carrier of the rod of punishment? Is he now
the only master of everything?
12. Alas, Lord Brahma, who has taken his birth from the lotus flower, does not know the principles of
religion, nor do the great saints like Bhrgu and Narada, nor the four Kumaras, headed by Sanat-
kumara. Manu and Kapila have also forgotten the religious principles. I suppose it to be because of this
that they have not tried to stop Lord Siva from behaving improperly.
13. This Citraketu is the lowest of ksatriyas, for he has impudently overridden Brahma and the other
demigods by insulting Lord Siva, upon whose lotus feet they always meditate. Lord Siva is personified
religion and the spiritual master of the entire world, and therefore Citraketu must be punished.
14. This person is puffed up because of his achievements, thinking, "I am the best." He does not
deserve to approach the shelter of Lord Visnu's lotus feet, which are worshiped by all saintly persons,
for he is impudent, thinking himself greatly important.
15. O impudent one, my dear son, now take birth in a low, sinful family of demons so that you will not
commit such an offense again toward exalted, saintly persons in this world.
16. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King Pariksit, when Citraketu was cursed by Parvati, he
descended from his airplane, bowed before her with great humility and pleased her completely.
17. Citraketu said: My dear mother, with my own hands folded together I accept the curse upon me. I do
not mind the curse, for happiness and distress are given by the demigods as a result of one's past
deeds.
18. Deluded by ignorance, the living entity wanders in the forest of this material world, enjoying the
happiness and distress resulting from his past deeds, everywhere and at all times. [Therefore, my dear
mother, neither you nor I am to be blamed for this incident.]
19. In this material world, neither the living entity himself nor others [friends and enemies] are the cause
of material happiness and distress. But because of gross ignorance, the living entity thinks that he and
others are the cause.
20. This material world resembles the waves of a constantly flowing river. Therefore, what is a curse
and what is a favor? What are the heavenly planets, and what are the hellish planets? What is actually
happiness, and what is actually distress? Because the waves flow constantly, none of them has an
eternal effect.
21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is one. Unaffected by the conditions of the material world, He
creates all the conditioned souls by His own personal potency. Because of being contaminated by the
material energy, the living entity is put into ignorance and thus into different conditions of bondage.
Sometimes, by knowledge, the living entity is given liberation. In sattva-guna and rajo-guna, he is
subjected to happiness and distress.
22. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is equally disposed toward all living entities. Therefore no
one is very dear to Him, and no one is a great enemy for Him; no one is His friend, and no one is His
relative. Being unattached to the material world, He has no affection for so-called happiness or hatred
for so-called distress. The two terms happiness and distress are relative. Since the Lord is always
happy, for Him there is no question of distress.
23. Although the Supreme Lord is unattached to our happiness and distress according to karma, and
although no one is His enemy or favorite, He creates pious and impious activities through the agency of
His material potency. Thus for the continuation of the materialistic way of life He creates happiness and
distress, good fortune and bad, bondage and liberation, birth and death.
24. O mother, you are now unnecessarily angry, but since all my happiness and distress are destined
by my past activities, I do not plead to be excused or relieved from your curse. Although what I have
said is not wrong, please let whatever you think is wrong be pardoned.
25. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King Pariksit, subduer of the enemy, after Citraketu satisfied
Lord Siva and his wife, Parvati, he boarded his airplane and left as they looked on. When Lord Siva and
Parvati saw that Citraketu, although informed of the curse, was unafraid, they smiled, being fully
astonished by his behavior.
26. Thereafter, in the presence of the great sage Narada, the demons, the inhabitants of Siddhaloka,
and his personal associates, Lord Siva, who is most powerful, spoke to his wife, Parvati, while they all
listened.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 309
27. Lord Siva said: My dear beautiful Parvati, have you seen the greatness of the Vaisnavas? Being
servants of the servants of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, they are great souls and are not
interested in any kind of material happiness.
28. Devotees solely engaged in the devotional service of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Narayana, never fear any condition of life. For them the heavenly planets, liberation and the hellish
planets are all the same, for such devotees are interested only in the service of the Lord.
29. Because of the actions of the Supreme Lord's external energy, the living entities are conditioned in
contact with material bodies. The dualities of happiness and distress, birth and death, curses and
favors, are natural by-products of this contact in the material world.
30. As one mistakenly considers a flower garland to be a snake or experiences happiness and distress
in a dream, so, in the material world, by a lack of careful consideration, we differentiate between
happiness and distress, considering one good and the other bad.
31. Persons engaged in devotional service to Lord Vasudeva, Krsna, have naturally perfect knowledge
and detachment from this material world. Therefore such devotees are not interested in the so-called
happiness or so-called distress of this world.
32. Neither I [Lord Siva], nor Brahma, nor the Asvini-kumaras, nor Narada or the other great sages who
are Brahma's sons, nor even the demigods can understand the pastimes and personality of the
Supreme Lord. Although we are part of the Supreme Lord, we consider ourselves independent,
separate controllers, and thus we cannot understand His identity.
33. He holds no one as very dear and no one as inimical. He has no one for His own relative, and no
one is alien to Him. He is actually the soul of the soul of all living entities. Thus He is the auspicious
friend of all living beings and is very near and dear to all of them.
34-35. This magnanimous Citraketu is a dear devotee of the Lord. He is equal to all living entities and is
free from attachment and hatred. Similarly, I am also very dear to Lord Narayana. Therefore, no one
should be astonished to see the activities of the most exalted devotees of Narayana, for they are free
from attachment and envy. They are always peaceful, and they are equal to everyone.
36. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, after hearing this speech by her husband, the demigoddess
[Uma, the wife of Lord Siva] gave up her astonishment at the behavior of King Citraketu and became
steady in intelligence.
37. The great devotee Citraketu was so powerful that he was quite competent to curse mother Parvati
in retaliation, but instead of doing so he very humbly accepted the curse and bowed his head before
Lord Siva and his wife. This is very much to be appreciated as the standard behavior of a Vaisnava.
38. Being cursed by mother Durga [Bhavani, the wife of Lord Siva], that same Citraketu accepted birth
in a demoniac species of life. Although still fully equipped with transcendental knowledge and practical
application of that knowledge in life, he appeared as a demon at the fire sacrifice performed by Tvasta,
and thus he became famous as Vrtrasura.
39. My dear King Pariksit, you inquired from me how Vrtrasura, a great devotee, took birth in a
demoniac family.Thus I have tried to explain to you everything about this.
40. Citraketu was a great devotee [mahatma]. If one hears this history of Citraketu from a pure devotee,
the listener also is freed from the conditional life of material existence.
41. One who rises from bed early in the morning and recites this history of Citraketu, controlling his
words and mind and remembering the Supreme Personality of Godhead, will return home, back to
Godhead, without difficulty.
Chapter Eighteen Diti Vows to Kill King Indra
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Prsni, who was the wife of Savita, the fifth of the twelve sons of Aditi,
gave birth to three daughters--Savitri, Vyahrti and Trayi--and the sons named Agnihotra, Pasu, Soma,
Caturmasya and the five Mahayajnas.
2. O King, Siddhi, who was the wife of Bhaga, the sixth son of Aditi, bore three sons, named Mahima,
Vibhu and Prabhu, and one extremely beautiful daughter, whose name was Asi.
3-4. Bhata, the seventh son of Aditi, had four wives, named Kuhu, Sinivali, Raka and Anumati. These
wives begot four sons, named Sayam, Darsa, Pratah and Purnamasa respectively. The wife of Vidhata,
the eighth son of Aditi, was named Kriya. In her Vidhata begot the five fire-gods named the Purisyas.
The wife of Varuna, the ninth son of Aditi, was named Carsani. Bhrgu, the son of Brahma, took birth
again in her womb.
5. By the semen of Varuna, the great mystic Valmiki took birth from an anthill. Bhrgu and Valmiki were
specific sons of Varuna, whereas Agastya and Vasistha Rsis were the common sons of Varuna and
Mitra, the tenth son of Aditi.
6. Upon seeing Urvasi, the celestial society girl, both Mitra and Varuna discharged semen, which they
preserved in an earthen pot. The two sons Agastya and Vasistha later appeared from that pot, and they
310 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
are therefore the common sons of Mitra and Varuna. Mitra begot three sons in the womb of his wife,
whose name was Revati. Their names were Utsarga, Arista and Pippala.
7. O King Pariksit, Indra, the King of the heavenly planets and eleventh son of Aditi, begot three sons,
named Jayanta, Rsabha and Midhusa, in the womb of his wife, Paulomi. Thus we have heard.
8. By His own potency, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who has multifarious potencies, appeared
in the form of a dwarf as Urukrama, the twelfth son of Aditi. In the womb of His wife, whose name was
Kirti, He begot one son, named Brhatsloka, who had many sons, headed by Saubhaga.
9. Later [in the Eighth Canto of Srimad-Bhagavatam] I shall describe how Urukrama, Lord
Vamanadeva, appeared as the son of the great sage Kasyapa and how He covered the three worlds
with three steps. I shall describe the uncommon activities He performed, His qualities, His power and
how He took birth from the womb of Aditi.
10. Now let me describe the sons of Diti, who were begotten by Kasyapa but who became demons. In
this demoniac family the great devotee Prahlada Maharaja appeared, and Bali Maharaja also appeared
in that family. The demons are technically known as Daityas because they proceeded from the womb of
Diti.
11. First the two sons named Hiranyakasipu and Hiranyaksa took birth from Diti's womb. Both of them
were very powerful and were worshiped by the Daityas and Danavas.
12-13. The wife of Hiranyakasipu was known as Kayadhu. She was the daughter of Jambha and a
descendant of Danu. She gave birth to four consecutive sons, known as Samhlada, Anuhlada, Hlada
and Prahlada. The sister of these four sons was known as Simhika. She married the demon named
Vipracit and gave birth to another demon, named Rahu.
14. While Rahu, in disguise, was drinking nectar among the demigods, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead severed his head. The wife of Samhlada was named Krti. By union with Samhlada, Krti gave
birth to a son named Pancajana.
15. The wife of Hlada was named Dhamani. She gave birth to two sons, named Vatapi and Ilvala. When
Agastya Muni became Ilvala's guest, Ilvala served him a feast by cooking Vatapi, who was in the shape
of a ram.
16. The wife of Anuhlada was named Surya. She gave birth to two sons, named Baskala and Mahisa.
Prahlada had one son, Virocana, whose wife gave birth to Bali Maharaja.
17. Thereafter, Bali Maharaja begot one hundred sons in the womb of Asana. Of these one hundred
sons, King Bana was the eldest. The activities of Bali Maharaja, which are very laudable, will be
described later [in the Eighth Canto].
18. Since King Bana was a great worshiper of Lord Siva, he became one of Lord Siva's most celebrated
associates. Even now, Lord Siva protects King Bana's capital and always stands beside him.
19. The forty-nine Marut demigods were also born from the womb of Diti. None of them had sons.
Although they were born of Diti, King Indra gave them a position as demigods.
20. King Pariksit inquired: My dear lord, due to their birth, the forty-nine Maruts must have been
obsessed with a demoniac mentality. Why did Indra, the King of heaven, convert them into demigods?
Did they perform any rituals or pious activities?
21. My dear brahmana, I and all the sages present with me are eager to know about this. Therefore, O
great soul, kindly explain to us the reason.
22. Sri Suta Gosvami said: O great sage Saunaka, after hearing Maharaja Pariksit speak respectfully
and briefly on topics essential to hear, Sukadeva Gosvami, who was well aware of everything, praised
his endeavor with great pleasure and replied.
23. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Just to help Indra, Lord Visnu killed the two brothers Hiranyaksa and
Hiranyakasipu. Because of their being killed, their mother, Diti, overwhelmed with lamentation and
anger, contemplated as follows.
24. Lord Indra, who is very much fond of sense gratification, has killed the two brothers Hiranyaksa and
Hiranyakasipu by means of Lord Visnu. Therefore Indra is cruel, hardhearted and sinful. When will I,
having killed him, rest with a pacified mind?
25. When dead, the bodies of all the rulers known as kings and great leaders will be transformed into
worms, stool or ashes. If one enviously kills others for the protection of such a body, does he actually
know the true interest of life? Certainly he does not, for if one is envious of other entities, he surely goes
to hell.
26. Diti thought: Indra considers his body eternal, and thus he has become unrestrained. I therefore
wish to have a son who can remove Indra's madness. Let me adopt some means to help me in this.
27-28. Thinking in this way [with a desire for a son to kill Indra], Diti began constantly acting to satisfy
Kasyapa by her pleasing behavior. O King, Diti always carried out Kasyapa's orders very faithfully, as
he desired. With service, love, humility and control, with words spoken very sweetly to satisfy her
husband, and with smiles and glances at him, Diti attracted his mind and brought it under her control.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 311
29. Although Kasyapa Muni was a learned scholar, he was captivated by Diti's artificial behavior, which
brought him under her control. Therefore he assured his wife that he would fulfill her desires. Such a
promise by a husband is not at all astonishing.
30. In the beginning of creation, Lord Brahma, the father of the living entities of the universe, saw that all
the living entities were unattached. To increase population, he then created woman from the better half
of man's body, for woman's behavior carries away a man's mind.
31. O my dear one, the most powerful sage Kasyapa, being extremely pleased by the mild behavior of
his wife Diti, smiled and spoke to her as follows.
32. Kasyapa Muni said: O beautiful woman, O irreproachable lady, since I am very much pleased by
your behavior, you may ask me for any benediction you want. If a husband is pleased, what desires are
difficult for his wife to obtain, either in this world or in the next?
33-34. A husband is the supreme demigod for a woman. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord
Vasudeva, the husband of the goddess of fortune, is situated in everyone's heart and is worshiped
through the various names and forms of the demigods by fruitive workers. Similarly, a husband
represents the Lord as the object of worship for a woman.
35. My dear wife, whose body is so beautiful, your waist being thin, a conscientious wife should be
chaste and should abide by the orders of her husband. She should very devoutly worship her husband
as a representative of Vasudeva.
36. My dear gentle wife, because you have worshiped me with great devotion, considering me a
representative of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, I shall reward you by fulfilling your desires,
which are unobtainable for an unchaste wife.
37. Diti replied: O my husband, O great soul, I have now lost my sons. If you want to give me a
benediction, I ask you for an immortal son who can kill Indra. I pray for this because Indra, with the help
of Visnu, has killed my two sons Hiranyaksa and Hiranyakasipu.
38. Upon hearing Diti's request, Kasyapa Muni was very much aggrieved. "Alas," he lamented, "now I
face the danger of the impious act of killing Indra."
39. Kasyapa Muni thought: Alas, I have now become too attached to material enjoyment. Taking
advantage of this, my mind has been attracted by the illusory energy of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead in the form of a woman [my wife]. Therefore I am surely a wretched person who will glide
down toward hell.
40. This woman, my wife, has adopted a means that follows her nature, and therefore she is not to be
blamed. But I am a man. Therefore, all condemnation upon me! I am not at all conversant with what is
good for me, since I could not control my senses.
41. A woman's face is as attractive and beautiful as a blossoming lotus flower during autumn. Her
words are very sweet, and they give pleasure to the ear, but if we study a woman's heart, we can
understand it to be extremely sharp, like the blade of a razor. In these circumstances, who could
understand the dealings of a woman?
42. To satisfy their own interests, women deal with men as if the men were most dear to them, but no
one is actually dear to them. Women are supposed to be very saintly, but for their own interests they
can kill even their husbands, sons or brothers, or cause them to be killed by others.
43. I promised to give her a benediction, and this promise cannot be violated, but Indra does not
deserve to be killed. In these circumstances, the solution I have is quite suitable.
44. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Kasyapa Muni, thinking in this way, became somewhat angry.
Condemning himself, O Maharaja Pariksit, descendant of Kuru, he spoke to Diti as follows.
45. Kasyapa Muni said: My dear gentle wife, if you follow my instructions regarding this vow for at least
one year, you will surely get a son who will be able to kill Indra. However, if you deviate from this vow of
following the Vaisnava principles, you will get a son who will be favorable to Indra.
46. Diti replied: My dear brahmana, I must accept your advice and follow the vow. Now let me
understand what I have to do, what is forbidden and what will not break the vow. Please clearly state all
this to me.
47. Kasyapa Muni said: My dear wife, to follow this vow, do not be violent or cause harm to anyone. Do
not curse anyone, and do not speak lies. Do not cut your nails and hair, and do not touch impure things
like skulls and bones.
48. Kasyapa Muni continued: My dear gentle wife, never enter the water while bathing, never be angry,
and do not even speak or associate with wicked people. Never wear clothes that have not been
properly washed, and do not put on a garland that has already been worn.
49. Never eat leftover food, never eat prasada offered to the goddess Kali [Durga], and do not eat
anything contaminated by flesh or fish. Do not eat anything brought or touched by a sudra nor anything
seen by a woman in her menstrual period. Do not drink water by joining your palms.
312 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
50. After eating, you should not go out to the street without having washed your mouth, hands and feet.
You should not go out in the evening or with your hair loose, nor should you go out unless you are
properly decorated with ornaments. You should not leave the house unless you are very grave and are
sufficiently covered.
51. You should not lie down without having washed both of your feet or without being purified, nor with
wet feet or with your head pointed west or north. You should not lie naked, or with other women, or
during the sunrise or sunset.
52. Putting on washed clothing, being always pure and being adorned with turmeric, sandalwood pulp
and other auspicious items, before breakfast one should worship the cows, the brahmanas, the
goddess of fortune and the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
53. With flower garlands, sandalwood pulp, ornaments and other paraphernalia, a woman following this
vow should worship women who have sons and whose husbands are living. The pregnant wife should
worship her husband and offer him prayers. She should meditate upon him, thinking that he is situated
in her womb.
54. Kasyapa Muni continued: If you perform this ceremony called pumsavana, adhering to the vow with
faith for at least one year, you will give birth to a son destined to kill Indra. But if there is any
discrepancy in the discharge of this vow, the son will be a friend to Indra.
55. O King Pariksit, Diti, the wife of Kasyapa, agreed to undergo the purificatory process known as
pumsavana. "Yes," she said, "I shall do everything according to your instructions." With great jubilation
she became pregnant, having taken semen from Kasyapa, and faithfully began discharging the vow.
56. O King, who are respectful to everyone, Indra understood Diti's purpose, and thus he contrived to
fulfill his own interests. Following the logic that self-preservation is the first law of nature, he wanted to
break Diti's promise. Thus he engaged himself in the service of Diti, his aunt, who was residing in an
asrama.
57. Indra served his aunt daily by bringing flowers, fruits, roots and wood for yajnas from the forest. He
also brought kusa grass, leaves, sprouts, earth and water exactly at the proper time.
58. O King Pariksit, as the hunter of a deer becomes like a deer by covering his body with deerskin and
serving the deer, so Indra, although at heart the enemy of the sons of Diti, became outwardly friendly
and served Diti in a faithful way. Indra's purpose was to cheat Diti as soon as he could find some fault in
the way she discharged the vows of the ritualistic ceremony. However, he wanted to be undetected,
and therefore he served her very carefully.
59. O master of the entire world, when Indra could find no faults, he thought, "How will there be good
fortune for me?" Thus he was full of deep anxiety.
60. Having grown weak and thin because of strictly following the principles of the vow, Diti once
unfortunately neglected to wash her mouth, hands and feet after eating and went to sleep during the
evening twilight.
61. Finding this fault, Indra, who has all the mystic powers [the yoga-siddhis such as anima and
laghima], entered Diti's womb while she was unconscious, being fast asleep.
62. After entering Diti's womb, Indra, with the help of his thunderbolt, cut into seven pieces her embryo,
which appeared like glowing gold. In seven places, seven different living beings began crying. Indra told
them, "Do not cry," and then he cut each of them into seven pieces again.
63. O King, being very much aggrieved, they pleaded to Indra with folded hands, saying, "Dear Indra,
we are the Maruts, your brothers. Why are you trying to kill us?"
64. When Indra saw that actually they were his devoted followers, he said to them: If you are all my
brothers, you have nothing more to fear from me.
65. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King Pariksit, you were burned by the brahmastra of Asvatthama,
but when Lord Krsna entered the womb of your mother, you were saved. Similarly, although the one
embryo was cut into forty-nine pieces by the thunderbolt of Indra, they were all saved by the mercy of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
66-67. If one worships the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the original person, even once, he
receives the benefit of being promoted to the spiritual world and possessing the same bodily features as
Visnu. Diti worshiped Lord Visnu for almost one year, adhering to a great vow. Because of such
strength in spiritual life, the forty-nine Maruts were born. How, then, is it wonderful that the Maruts,
although born from the womb of Diti, became equal to the demigods by the mercy of the Supreme
Lord?
68. Because of worshiping the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Diti was completely purified. When
she got up from bed, she saw her forty-nine sons along with Indra. These forty-nine sons were all as
brilliant as fire and were in friendship with Indra, and therefore she was very pleased.
69. Thereafter, Diti said to Indra: My dear son, I adhered to this difficult vow just to get a son to kill you
twelve Adityas.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 313
70. I prayed for only one son, but now I see that there are forty-nine. How has this happened? My dear
son Indra, if you know, please tell me the truth. Do not try to speak lies.
71. Indra replied: My dear mother, because I was grossly blinded by selfish interests, I lost sight of
religion. When I understood that you were observing a great vow in spiritual life, I wanted to find some
fault in you. When I found such a fault, I entered your womb and cut the embryo to pieces.
72. First I cut the child in the womb into seven pieces, which became seven children. Then I cut each of
the children into seven pieces again. By the grace of the Supreme Lord, however, none of them died.
73. My dear mother, when I saw that all forty-nine sons were alive, I was certainly struck with wonder. I
decided that this was a secondary result of your having regularly executed devotional service in worship
of Lord Visnu.
74. Although those who are interested only in worshiping the Supreme Personality of Godhead do not
desire anything material from the Lord and do not even want liberation, Lord Krsna fulfills all their
desires.
75. The ultimate goal of all ambitions is to become a servant of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. If
an intelligent man serves the most dear Lord, who gives Himself to His devotees, how can he desire
material happiness, which is available even in hell?
76. O my mother, O best of all women, I am a fool. Kindly excuse me for whatever offenses I have
committed. Your forty-nine sons have been born unhurt because of your devotional service. As an
enemy, I cut them to pieces, but because of your great devotional service they did not die.
77. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Diti was extremely satisfied by Indra's good behavior. Then Indra
offered his respects to his aunt with profuse obeisances, and with her permission he went away to the
heavenly planets with his brothers the Maruts.
78. My dear King Pariksit, I have replied as far as possible to the questions you have asked me,
especially in regard to this pure, auspicious narration about the Maruts. Now you may inquire further,
and I shall explain more.
Chapter Nineteen Performing the Pumsavana Ritualistic Ceremony
1. Maharaja Pariksit said: My dear lord, you have already spoken about the pumsavana vow. Now I
want to hear about it in detail, for I understand that by observing this vow one can please the Supreme
Lord, Visnu.
2-3. Sukadeva Gosvami said: On the first day of the bright fortnight of the month of Agrahayana
[November-December], following the instructions of her husband, a woman should begin this regulative
devotional service with a vow of penance, for it can fulfill all one's desires. Before beginning the worship
of Lord Visnu, the woman should hear the story of how the Maruts were born. Under the instructions of
qualified brahmanas, in the morning she should wash her teeth, bathe, and dress herself with white
cloth and ornaments, and before taking breakfast she should worship Lord Visnu and Laksmi.
4. [She should then pray to the Lord as follows.] My dear Lord, You are full in all opulences, but I do not
beg You for opulence. I simply offer my respectful obeisances unto You. You are the husband and
master of Laksmidevi, the goddess of fortune, who has all opulences. Therefore You are the master of
all mystic yoga. I simply offer my obeisances unto You.
5. O my Lord, because You are endowed with causeless mercy, all opulences, all prowess and all
glories, strength and transcendental qualities, You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the master
of everyone.
6. [After profusely offering obeisances unto Lord Visnu, the devotee should offer respectful obeisances
unto mother Laksmi, the goddess of fortune, and pray as follows.] O wife of Lord Visnu, O internal
energy of Lord Visnu, you are as good as Lord Visnu Himself, for you have all of His qualities and
opulences. O goddess of fortune, please be kind to me. O mother of the entire world, I offer my
respectful obeisances unto you.
7. "My Lord Visnu, full in six opulences, You are the best of all enjoyers and the most powerful. O
husband of mother Laksmi, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, who are accompanied by many
associates, such as Visvaksena. I offer all the paraphernalia for worshiping You." One should chant this
mantra every day with great attention while worshiping Lord Visnu with all paraphernalia, such as water
for washing His feet, hands and mouth and water for His bath. One must offer Him various
presentations for His worship, such as garments, a sacred thread, ornaments, scents, flowers, incense
and lamps.
8. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After worshiping the Lord with all the paraphernalia mentioned above,
one should chant the following mantra while offering twelve oblations of ghee on the sacred fire: om
namo bhagavate maha-purusaya mahavibhutipataye svaha.
9. If one desires all opulences, his duty is to daily worship Lord Visnu with His wife, Laksmi. With great
devotion one should worship Him according to the above-mentioned process. Lord Visnu and the
314 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
goddess of fortune are an immensely powerful combination. They are the bestowers of all benedictions
and the sources of all good fortune. Therefore the duty of everyone is to worship Laksmi-Narayana.
10. One should offer obeisances unto the Lord with a mind humbled through devotion. While offering
dandavats by falling on the ground like a rod, one should chant the above mantra ten times. Then one
should chant the following prayer.
11. My Lord Visnu and mother Laksmi, goddess of fortune, you are the proprietors of the entire creation.
Indeed, you are the cause of the creation. Mother Laksmi is extremely difficult to understand because
she is so powerful that the jurisdiction of her power is difficult to overcome. Mother Laksmi is
represented in the material world as the external energy, but actually she is always the internal energy
of the Lord.
12. My Lord, You are the master of energy, and therefore You are the Supreme Person. You are
sacrifice [yajna] personified. Laksmi, the embodiment of spiritual activities, is the original form of worship
offered unto You, whereas You are the enjoyer of all sacrifices.
13. Mother Laksmi, who is here, is the reservoir of all spiritual qualities, whereas You manifest and
enjoy all these qualities. Indeed, You are actually the enjoyer of everything. You live as the Supersoul of
all living entities, aid the goddess of fortune is the form of their bodies, senses and minds. She also has
a holy name and form, whereas You are the support of all such names and forms and the cause for
their manifestation.
14. You are both the supreme rulers and benedictors of the three worlds. Therefore, my Lord,
Uttamasloka, may my ambitions be fulfilled by Your grace.
15. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thus one should worship Lord Visnu, who is known as Srinivasa,
along with mother Laksmi, the goddess of fortune, by offering prayers according to the process
mentioned above. After removing all the paraphernalia of worship, one should offer them water to wash
their hands and mouths, and then one should worship them again.
16. Thereafter, with devotion and humility, one should offer prayers to the Lord and mother Laksmi.
Then one should smell the remnants of the food offered and then again worship the Lord and Laksmiji.
17. Accepting her husband as the representative of the Supreme Person, a wife should worship him
with unalloyed devotion by offering him prasada. The husband, being very pleased with his wife, should
engage himself in the affairs of his family.
18. Between the husband and wife, one person is sufficient to execute this devotional service. Because
of their good relationship, both of them will enjoy the result. Therefore if the wife is unable to execute
this process, the husband should carefully do so, and the faithful wife will share the result.
19-20. One should accept this visnu-vrata, which is a vow in devotional service, and should not deviate
from its execution to engage in anything else. By offering the remnants of prasada, flower garlands,
sandalwood pulp and ornaments, one should daily worship the brahmanas and worship women who
peacefully live with their husbands and children. Every day the wife must continue following the
regulative principles to worship Lord Visnu with great devotion. Thereafter, Lord Visnu should be laid in
His bed, and then one should take prasada. In this way, husband and wife will be purified and will have
all their desires fulfilled.
21. The chaste wife must perform such devotional service continuously for one year. After one year
passes, she should fast on the full-moon day in the month of Karttika [October-November].
22. On the morning of the next day, one should wash oneself, and after worshiping Lord Krsna as
before, one should cook as one cooks for festivals as stated in the Grhya-sutras. Sweet rice should be
cooked with ghee, and with this preparation the husband should offer oblations to the fire twelve times.
23. Thereafter, he should satisfy the brahmanas. When the satisfied brahmanas bestow their blessings,
he should devotedly offer them respectful obeisances with his head, and with their permission he
should take prasada.
24. Before taking his meal, the husband must first seat the acarya comfortably, and, along with his
relatives and friends, should control his speech and offer prasada to the guru. Then the wife should eat
the remnants of the oblation of sweet rice cooked with ghee. Eating the remnants insures a learned,
devoted son and all good fortune.
25. If this vow or ritualistic ceremony is observed according to the description of sastra, even in this life
a man will be able to achieve all the benedictions he desires from the Lord. A wife who performs this
ritualistic ceremony will surely receive good fortune, opulence, sons, a long-living husband, a good
reputation and a good home.
26-28. If an unmarried girl observes this vrata, she will be able to get a very good husband. If a woman
who is avira--who has no husband or son--executes this ritualistic ceremony, she can be promoted to
the spiritual world. A woman whose children have died after birth can get a child with a long duration of
life and also become very fortunate in possessing wealth. If a woman is unfortunate she will become
fortunate, and if ugly she will become beautiful. By observing this vrata, a diseased man can gain relief
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 315
from his disease and have an able body with which to work. If one recites this narration while offering
oblations to the pitas and demigods, especially during the sraddha ceremony, the demigods and
inhabitants of Pitrloka will be extremely pleased with him and bestow upon him the fulfillment of all
desires. After one performs this ritualistic ceremony, Lord Visnu and His wife, mother Laksmi, the
goddess of fortune, are very pleased with him. O King Pariksit, now I have completely described how
Diti performed this ceremony and had good children--the Maruts--and a happy life. I have tried to
explain this to you as elaborately as possible.
CANTO SEVEN
Chapter One The Supreme Lord Is Equal to Everyone
1. King Pariksit inquired: My dear brahmana, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, being
everyone's well-wisher, is equal and extremely dear to everyone. How, then, did He become partial like
a common man for the sake of Indra and thus kill Indra's enemies? How can a person equal to
everyone be partial to some and inimical toward others?
2. Lord Visnu Himself, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is the reservoir of all pleasure. Therefore,
what benefit would He derive from siding with the demigods? What interest would He fulfill in this way?
Since the Lord is transcendental, why should He fear the asuras, and how could He be envious of
them?
3. O greatly fortunate and learned brahmana, whether Narayana is partial or impartial has become a
subject of great doubt. Kindly dispel my doubt with positive evidence that Narayana is always neutral
and equal to everyone.
4-5. The great sage Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, you have put before me an excellent
question. Discourses concerning the activities of the Lord, in which the glories of His devotees are also
found, are extremely pleasing to devotees. Such wonderful topics always counteract the miseries of the
materialistic way of life. Therefore great sages like Narada always speak upon Srimad-Bhagavatam
because it gives one the facility to hear and chant about the wonderful activities of the Lord. Let me
offer my respectful obeisances unto Srila Vyasadeva and then begin describing topics concerning the
activities of Lord Hari.
6. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, is always transcendental to material qualities, and
therefore He is called nirguna, or without qualities. Because He is unborn, He does not have a material
body to be subjected to attachment and hatred. Although the Lord is always above material existence,
through His spiritual potency He appeared and acted like an ordinary human being, accepting duties
and obligations, apparently like a conditioned soul.
7. My dear King Pariksit, the material qualities--sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna--all belong to the
material world and do not even touch the Supreme Personality of Godhead. These three gunas cannot
act by increasing or decreasing simultaneously.
8. When the quality of goodness is prominent, the sages and demigods flourish with the help of that
quality, with which they are infused and surcharged by the Supreme Lord. Similarly, when the mode of
passion is prominent the demons flourish, and when ignorance is prominent the Yaksas and Raksasas
flourish. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is present in everyone's heart, fostering the reactions of
sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna.
9. The all-pervading Personality of Godhead exists within the heart of every living being, and an expert
thinker can perceive how He is present there to a large or small extent. Just as one can understand the
supply of fire in wood, the water in a waterpot, or the sky within a pot, one can understand whether a
living entity is a demon or a demigod by understanding that living entity's devotional performances. A
thoughtful man can understand how much a person is favored by the Supreme Lord by seeing his
actions.
10. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead creates different types of bodies, offering a particular
body to each living entity according to his character and fruitive actions, the Lord revives all the qualities
of material nature--sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna. Then, as the Supersoul, He enters each
body and influences the qualities of creation, maintenance and annihilation, using sattva-guna for
maintenance, rajo-guna for creation and tamo-guna for annihilation.
11. O great King, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the controller of the material and spiritual
energies, who is certainly the creator of the entire cosmos, creates the time factor to allow the material
energy and the living entity to act within the limits of time. Thus the Supreme Personality is never under
the time factor nor under the material energy.
12. O King, this time factor enhances the sattva-guna. Thus although the Supreme Lord is the
controller, He favors the demigods, who are mostly situated in sattva-guna. Then the demons, who are
influenced by tamo-guna, are annihilated. The Supreme Lord induces the time factor to act in different
ways, but He is never partial. Rather, His activities are glorious, therefore He is called Urusrava.
316 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
13. Formerly, O King, when Maharaja Yudhisthira was performing the Rajasuya sacrifice, the great
sage Narada, responding to his inquiry, recited historical facts showing how the Supreme Personality of
Godhead is always impartial, even when killing demons. In this regard he gave a vivid example.
14-15. O King, at the Rajasuya sacrifice, Maharaja Yudhisthira, the son of Maharaja Pandu, personally
saw Sisupala merge into the body of the Supreme Lord, Krsna. Therefore, struck with wonder, he
inquired about the reason for this from the great sage Narada, who was seated there. While he
inquired, all the sages present also heard him ask his question.
16. Maharaja Yudhisthira inquired: It is very wonderful that the demon Sisupala merged into the body of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead even though extremely envious. This sayujya-mukti is impossible
to attain even for great transcendentalists. How then did the enemy of the Lord attain it?
17. O great sage, we are all eager to know the cause for this mercy of the Lord. I have heard that
formerly a king named Vena blasphemed the Supreme Personality of Godhead and that all the
brahmanas consequently obliged him to go to hell. Sisupala should also have been sent to hell. How
then did he merge into the Lord's existence?
18. From the very beginning of his childhood, when he could not even speak properly, Sisupala, the
most sinful son of Damaghosa, began blaspheming the Lord, and he continued to be envious of Sri
Krsna until death. Similarly, his brother Dantavakra continued the same habits.
19. Although these two men--Sisupala and Dantavakra--repeatedly blasphemed the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu [Krsna], the Supreme Brahman, they were quite healthy. Indeed,
their tongues were not attacked by white leprosy, nor did they enter the darkest region of hellish life. We
are certainly most surprised by this.
20. How was it possible for Sisupala and Dantavakra in the presence of many exalted persons, to enter
very easily into the body of Krsna, whose nature is difficult to attain?.
21. This matter is undoubtedly very wonderful. Indeed, my intelligence has become disturbed, just as
the flame of a candle is disturbed by a blowing wind. O Narada Muni, you know everything. Kindly let
me know the cause of this wonderful event.
22. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: After hearing the request of Maharaja Yudhisthira, Narada Muni, the
most powerful spiritual master, who knew everything, was very pleased. Thus he replied in the
presence of everyone taking part in the yajna.
23. The great sage Sri Naradaji said: O King, blasphemy and praise, chastisement and respect, are
experienced because of ignorance. The body of the conditioned soul is planned by the Lord for
suffering in the material world through the agency of the external energy.
24. My dear King, the conditioned soul, being in the bodily conception of life, considers his body to be
his self and considers everything in relationship with the body to be his. Because he has this wrong
conception of life, he is subjected to dualities like praise and chastisement.
25. Because of the bodily conception of life, the conditioned soul thinks that when the body is
annihilated the living being is annihilated. Lord Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is the
supreme controller, the Supersoul of all living entities. Because He has no material body, He has no
false conception of "I and mine." It is therefore incorrect to think that He feels pleasure or pain when
blasphemed or offered prayers. This is impossible for Him. Thus He has no enemy and no friend. When
He chastises the demons it is for their good, and when He accepts the prayers of the devotees it is for
their good. He is affected neither by prayers nor by blasphemy.
26. Therefore by enmity or by devotional service, by fear, by affection or by lusty desire--by all of these
or any one of them--if a conditioned soul somehow or other concentrates his mind upon the Lord, the
result is the same, for the Lord, because of His blissful position, is never affected by enmity or
friendship.
27. Narada Muni continued: By devotional service one cannot achieve such intense absorption in
thought of the Supreme Personality of Godhead as one can through enmity toward Him. That is my
opinion.
28-29. A grassworm confined in a hole of a wall by a bee always thinks of the bee in fear and enmity
and later becomes a bee simply because of such remembrance. Similarly, if the conditioned souls
somehow or other think of Krsna, who is sac-cid-ananda-vigraha, they will become free from their sins.
Whether thinking of Him as their worshipable Lord or an enemy, because of constantly thinking of Him
they will regain their spiritual bodies.
30. Many, many persons have attained liberation simply by thinking of Krsna with great attention and
giving up sinful activities. This great attention may be due to lusty desires, inimical feelings, fear,
affection or devotional service. I shall now explain how one receives Krsna's mercy simply by
concentrating one's mind upon Him.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 317
31. My dear King Yudhisthira, the gopis by their lusty desires, Kamsa by his fear, Sisupala and other
kings by envy, the Yadus by their familial relationship with Krsna, you Pandavas by your great affection
for Krsna, and we, the general devotees, by our devotional service, have obtained the mercy of Krsna.
32. Somehow or other, one must consider the form of Krsna very seriously. Then, by one of the five
different processes mentioned above, one can return home, back to Godhead. Atheists like King Vena,
however, being unable to think of Krsna's form in any of these five ways, cannot attain salvation.
Therefore, one must somehow think of Krsna, whether in a friendly way or inimically.
33. Narada Muni continued: O best of the Pandavas, your two cousins Sisupala and Dantavakra, the
sons of your maternal aunt, were formerly associates of Lord Visnu, but because they were cursed by
brahmanas, they fell from Vaikuntha to this material world.
34. Maharaja Yudhisthira inquired: What kind of great curse could affect even liberated visnu-bhaktas,
and what sort of person could curse even the Lord's associates? For unflinching devotees of the Lord to
fall again to this material world is impossible. I cannot believe this.
35. The bodies of the inhabitants of Vaikuntha are completely spiritual, having nothing to do with the
material body, senses or life air. Therefore, kindly explain how associates of the Personality of Godhead
were cursed to descend in material bodies like ordinary persons.
36. The great saint Narada said: Once upon a time when the four sons of Lord Brahma named Sanaka,
Sanandana, Sanatana and Sanat-kumara were wandering throughout the three worlds, they came by
chance to Visnuloka.
37. Although these four great sages were older than Brahma's other sons like Marici, they appeared like
small naked children only five or six years old. When Jaya and Vijaya saw them trying to enter
Vaikunthaloka, these two gatekeepers, thinking them ordinary children, forbade them to enter.
38. Thus checked by the doorkeepers Jaya and Vijaya, Sanandana and the other great sages very
angrily cursed them. "You two foolish doorkeepers," they said. "Being agitated by the material qualities
of passion and ignorance, you are unfit to live at the shelter of Madhudvisa's lotus feet, which are free
from such modes. It would be better for you to go immediately to the material world and take your birth
in a family of most sinful asuras."
39. While Jaya and Vijaya, thus cursed by the sages, were falling to the material world, they were
addressed as follows by the same sages, who were very kind to them. "O doorkeepers, after three
births you will be able to return to your positions in Vaikuntha, for then the duration of the curse will have
ended."
40. These two associates of the Lord--Jaya and Vijaya--later descended to the material world, taking
birth as the two sons of Diti, Hiranyakasipu being the elder and Hiranyaksa the younger. They were very
much respected by the Daityas and Danavas [demoniac species].
41. Appearing as Nrsimhadeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Hari, killed Hiranyakasipu.
When the Lord delivered the planet earth, which had fallen in the Garbhodaka Ocean, Hiranyaksa tried
to hinder Him, and then the Lord, as Varaha, killed Hiranyaksa.
42. Desiring to kill his son Prahlada, who was a great devotee of Lord Visnu, Hiranyakasipu tortured him
in many ways.
43. The Lord, the Supersoul of all living entities, is sober, peaceful and equal to everyone. Since the
great devotee Prahlada was protected by the Lord's potency, Hiranyakasipu was unable to kill him, in
spite of endeavoring to do so in various ways.
44. Thereafter the same Jaya and Vijaya, the two doorkeepers of Lord Visnu, took birth as Ravana and
Kumbhakarna, begotten by Visrava in the womb of Kesini. They were extremely troublesome to all the
people of the universe.
45. Narada Muni continued: My dear King, just to relieve Jaya and Vijaya of the brahmanas' curse, Lord
Ramacandra appeared in order to kill Ravana and Kumbhakarna. It will be better for you to hear
narrations about Lord Ramacandra's activities from Markandeya.
46. In their third birth, the same Jaya and Vijaya appeared in a family of ksatriyas as your cousins, the
sons of your aunt. Because Lord Krsna has struck them with His disc, all their sinful reactions have
been destroyed, and now they are free from the curse.
47. These two associates of Lord Visnu--Jaya and Vijaya--maintained a feeling of enmity for a very long
time. Because of always thinking of Krsna in this way, they regained the shelter of the Lord, having
returned home, back to Godhead.
48. Maharaja Yudhisthira inquired: O my lord, Narada Muni, why was there such enmity between
Hiranyakasipu and his beloved son Prahlada Maharaja? How did Prahlada Maharaja become such a
great devotee of Lord Krsna? Kindly explain this to me.
Chapter Two Hiranyakasipu, King of the Demons
1. Sri Narada Muni said: My dear King Yudhisthira, when Lord Visnu, in the form of Varaha, the boar,
killed Hiranyaksa, Hiranyaksa's brother Hiranyakasipu was extremely angry and began to lament.
318 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
2. Filled with rage and biting his lips, Hiranyakasipu gazed at the sky with eyes that blazed in anger,
making the whole sky smoky. Thus he began to speak.
3. Exhibiting his terrible teeth, fierce glance and frowning eyebrows, terrible to see, he took up his
weapon, a trident, and thus began speaking to his associates, the assembled demons.
4-5. O Danavas and Daityas! O Kaimurdha, Tryaksa, Sambara and Satabahu ! O Hayagriva, Namuci,
Paka and Ilvala! O Vipracitti, Puloman, Sakuna and other demons! All of you, kindly hear me attentively
and then act according to my words without delay.
6. My insignificant enemies the demigods have combined to kill my very dear and obedient well-wisher,
my brother Hiranyaksa. Although the Supreme Lord, Visnu, is always equal to both of us--namely, the
demigods and the demons--this time, being devoutly worshiped by the demigods, He has taken their
side and helped them kill Hiranyaksa.
7-8. The Supreme Personality of Godhead has given up His natural tendency of equality toward the
demons and demigods. Although He is the Supreme Person, now, influenced by maya, He has
assumed the form of a boar to please His devotees, the demigods, just as a restless child leans toward
someone. I shall therefore sever Lord Visnu's head from His trunk by my trident, and with the profuse
blood from His body I shall please my brother Hiranyaksa, who was so fond of sucking blood. Thus
shall I too be peaceful.
9. When the root of a tree is cut and the tree falls down, its branches and twigs automatically dry up.
Similarly, when I have killed this diplomatic Visnu, the demigods, for whom Lord Visnu is the life and
soul, will lose the source of their life and wither away.
10. While I am engaged in the business of killing Lord Visnu, go down to the planet earth, which is
flourishing due to brahminical culture and a ksatriya government. These people engage in austerity,
sacrifice, Vedic study, regulative vows, and charity. Destroy all the people thus engaged!
11. The basic principle of brahminical culture is to satisfy Lord Visnu, the personification of sacrificial
and ritualistic ceremonies. Lord Visnu is the personified reservoir of all religious principles, and He is the
shelter of all the demigods, the great pitas, and the people in general. When the brahmanas are killed,
no one will exist to encourage the ksatriyas to perform yajnas, and thus the demigods, not being
appeased by yajna, will automatically die.
12. Immediately go wherever there is good protection for the cows and brahmanas and wherever the
Vedas are studied in terms of the varnasrama principles. Set fire to those places and cut from the roots
the trees there, which are the source of life.
13. Thus the demons, being fond of disastrous activities, took Hiranyakasipu's instructions on their
heads with great respect and offered him obeisances. According to his directions, they engaged in
envious activities directed against all living beings.
14. The demons set fire to the cities, villages, pasturing grounds, cowpens, gardens, agricultural fields
and natural forests. They burned the hermitages of the saintly persons, the important mines that
produced valuable metals, the residential quarters of the agriculturalists, the mountain villages, and the
villages of the cow protectors, the cowherd men. They also burned the government capitals.
15. Some of the demons took digging instruments and broke down the bridges, the protective walls and
the gates [gopuras] of the cities. Some took axes and began cutting the important trees that produced
mango, jackfruit and other sources of food. Some of the demons took firebrands and set fire to the
residential quarters of the citizens.
16. Thus disturbed again and again by the unnatural occurrences caused by the followers of
Hiranyakasipu, all the people had to cease the activities of Vedic culture. Not receiving the results of
yajna, the demigods also became disturbed. They left their residential quarters in the heavenly planets
and, unobserved by the demons, began wandering on the planet earth to see the disasters.
17. After performing the ritualistic observances for the death of his brother, Hiranyakasipu, being
extremely unhappy, tried to pacify his nephews.
18-19. O King, Hiranyakasipu was extremely angry, but since he was a great politician, he knew how to
act according to the time and situation. With sweet words he began pacifying his nephews, whose
names were Sakuni, Sambara, Dhrsti, Bhutasantapana, Vrka, Kalanabha, Mahanabha, Harismasru and
Utkaca. He also consoled their mother, his sister-in-law, Rusabhanu, as well as his own mother, Diti. He
spoke to them all as follows.
20. Hiranyakasipu said: My dear mother, sister-in-law and nephews, you should not lament for the
death of the great hero, for a hero's death in front of his enemy is glorious and desirable.
21. My dear mother, in a restaurant or place for drinking cold water, many travelers are brought
together, and after drinking water they continue to their respective destinations. Similarly, living entities
join together in a family, and later, as a result of their own actions, they are led apart to their
destinations.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 319
22. The spirit soul, the living entity, has no death, for he is eternal and inexhaustible. Being free from
material contamination, he can go anywhere in the material or spiritual worlds. He is fully aware and
completely different from the material body, but because of being misled by misuse of his slight
independence, he is obliged to accept subtle and gross bodies created by the material energy and thus
be subjected to so-called material happiness and distress. Therefore, no one should lament for the
passing of the spirit soul from the body.
23. Because of the movements of the water, the trees on the bank of a river, when reflected on the
water, seem to move. Similarly, when the eyes move because of some mental derangement, the land
appears to move also.
24. In the same way, O my gentle mother, when the mind is agitated by the movements of the modes of
material nature, the living entity, although freed from all the different phases of the subtle and gross
bodies, thinks that he has changed from one condition to another.
25-26. In his bewildered state, the living entity, accepting the body and mind to be the self, considers
some people to be his kinsmen and others to be outsiders. Because of this misconception, he suffers.
Indeed, the accumulation of such concocted material ideas is the cause of suffering and so-called
happiness in the material world. The conditioned soul thus situated must take birth in different species
and work in various types of consciousness, thus creating new bodies. This continued material life is
called samsara. Birth, death, lamentation, foolishness and anxiety are due to such material
considerations. Thus we sometimes come to a proper understanding and sometimes fall again to a
wrong conception of life.
27. In this regard, an example is given from an old history. This involves a discourse between Yamaraja
and the friends of a dead person. Please hear it attentively.
28. In the state known as Usinara there was a celebrated King named Suyajna. When the King was
killed in battle by his enemies, his kinsmen sat down around the dead body and began to lament the
death of their friend.
29-31. His golden, bejeweled armor smashed, his ornaments and garlands fallen from their places, his
hair scattered and his eyes lusterless, the slain King lay on the battlefield, his entire body smeared with
blood, his heart pierced by the arrows of the enemy. When he died he had wanted to show his prowess,
and thus he had bitten his lips, and his teeth remained in that position. His beautiful lotuslike face was
now black and covered with dust from the battlefield. His arms, with his sword and other weapons, were
cut and broken. When the queens of the King of Usinara saw their husband lying in that position, they
began crying, "O lord, now that you have been killed, we also have been killed." Repeating these words
again and again, they fell down, pounding their breasts, at the feet of the dead King.
32. As the queens loudly cried, their tears glided down their breasts, becoming reddened by kunkuma
powder, and fell upon the lotus feet of their husband. Their hair became disarrayed, their ornaments fell,
and in a way that evoked sympathy from the hearts of others, the queens began lamenting their
husband's death.
33. O lord, you have now been removed by cruel providence to a state beyond our sight. You had
previously sustained the livelihood of the inhabitants of Usinara, and thus they were happy, but your
condition now is the cause of their unhappiness.
34. O King, O hero, you were a very grateful husband and the most sincere friend of all of us. How shall
we exist without you? O hero, wherever you are going, please direct us there so that we may follow in
your footsteps and engage again in your service. Let us go along with you!
35. The time was appropriate for the body to be burned, but the queens, not allowing it to be taken
away, continued lamenting for the dead body, which they kept on their laps. In the meantime, the sun
completed its movements for setting in the west.
36. While the queens were lamenting for the dead body of the King, their loud cries were heard even
from the abode of Yamaraja. Assuming the body of a boy, Yamaraja personally approached the
relatives of the dead body and advised them as follows.
37. Sri Yamaraja said: Alas, how amazing it is! These persons, who are older than me, have full
experience that hundreds and thousands of living entities have taken birth and died. Thus they should
understand that they also are apt to die, yet still they are bewildered. The conditioned soul comes from
an unknown place and returns after death to that same unknown place. There is no exception to this
rule, which is conducted by material nature. Knowing this, why do they uselessly lament?
38. It is wonderful that these elderly women do not have a higher sense of life than we do. Indeed, we
are most fortunate, for although we are children and have been left to struggle in material life,
unprotected by father and mother, and although we are very weak, we have not been vanquished or
eaten by ferocious animals. Thus we have a firm belief that the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
has given us protection even in the womb of the mother, will protect us everywhere.
320 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
39. The boy addressed the women: O weak women! Only by the will of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who is never diminished, is the entire world created, maintained and again annihilated. This
is the verdict of the Vedic knowledge. This material creation, consisting of the moving and nonmoving,
is exactly like His plaything. Being the Supreme Lord, He is completely competent to destroy and
protect.
40. Sometimes one loses his money on a public street, where everyone can see it, and yet his money is
protected by destiny and not seen by others. Thus the man who lost it gets it back. On the other hand, if
the Lord does not give protection, even money maintained very securely at home is lost. If the Supreme
Lord gives one protection, even though one has no protector and is in the jungle, one remains alive,
whereas a person well protected at home by relatives and others sometimes dies, no one being able to
protect him.
41. Every conditioned soul receives a different type of body according to his work, and when the
engagement is finished the body is finished. Although the spirit soul is situated in subtle and gross
material bodies in different forms of life, he is not bound by them, for he is always understood to be
completely different from the manifested body.
42. Just as a householder, although different from the identity of his house, thinks his house to be
identical with him, so the conditioned soul, due to ignorance, accepts the body to be himself, although
the body is actually different from the soul. This body is obtained through a combination of portions of
earth, water and fire, and when the earth, water and fire are transformed in the course of time, the body
is vanquished. The soul has nothing to do with this creation and dissolution of the body.
43. As fire, although situated in wood, is perceived to be different from the wood, as air, although
situated within the mouth and nostrils, is perceived to be separate, and as the sky, although all-
pervading, never mixes with anything, so the living entity, although now encaged within the material
body, of which it is the source, is separate from it.
44. Yamaraja continued: O lamenters, you are all fools! The person named Suyajna, for whom you
lament, is still lying before you and has not gone anywhere. Then what is the cause for your
lamentation? Previously he heard you and replied to you, but now, not finding him, you are lamenting.
This is contradictory behavior, for you have never actually seen the person within the body who heard
you and replied. There is no need for your lamentation, for the body you have always seen is lying here.
45. In the body the most important substance is the life air, but that also is neither the listener nor the
speaker. Beyond even the life air, the soul also can do nothing, for the Supersoul is actually the director,
in cooperation with the individual soul. The Supersoul conducting the activities of the body is different
from the body and living force.
46. The five material elements, the ten senses and the mind all combine to form the various parts of the
gross and subtle bodies. The living entity comes in contact with his material bodies, whether high or
low, and later gives them up by his personal prowess. This strength can be perceived in a living entity's
personal power to possess different types of bodies.
47. As long as the spirit soul is covered by the subtle body, consisting of the mind, intelligence and false
ego, he is bound to the results of his fruitive activities. Because of this covering, the spirit soul is
connected with the material energy and must accordingly suffer material conditions and reversals,
continually, life after life.
48. It is fruitless to see and talk of the material modes of nature and their resultant so-called happiness
and distress as if they were factual. When the mind wanders during the day and a man begins to think
himself extremely important, or when he dreams at night and sees a beautiful woman enjoying with him,
these are merely false dreams. Similarly, the happiness and distress caused by the material senses
should be understood to be meaningless.
49. Those who have full knowledge of self-realization, who know very well that the spirit soul is eternal
whereas the body is perishable, are not overwhelmed by lamentation. But persons who lack knowledge
of self-realization certainly lament. Therefore it is difficult to educate a person in illusion.
50. There was once a hunter who lured birds with food and captured them after spreading a net. He
lived as if appointed by death personified as the killer of the birds.
51. While wandering in the forest, the hunter saw a pair of kulinga birds. Of the two, the female was
captivated by the hunter's lure.
52. O queens of Suyajna, the male kulinga bird, seeing his wife put into the greatest danger in the grip
of Providence, became very unhappy. Because of affection, the poor bird, being unable to release her,
began to lament for his wife.
53. Alas, how merciless is Providence! My wife, unable to be helped by anyone, is in such an awkward
position and lamenting for me. What will Providence gain by taking away this poor bird? What will be the
profit?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 321
54. If unkind Providence takes away my wife, who is half my body, why should He not take me also?
What is the use of my living with half of my body, bereaved by loss of my wife? What shall I gain in this
way?
55. The unfortunate baby birds, bereft of their mother, are waiting in the nest for her to feed them. They
are still very small and have not yet grown their wings. How shall I be able to maintain them?
56. Because of the loss of his wife, the kulinga bird lamented with tears in his eyes. Meanwhile,
following the dictations of mature time, the hunter, who was very carefully hidden in the distance,
released his arrow, which pierced the body of the kulinga bird and killed him.
57. Thus Yamaraja, in the guise of a small boy, told all the queens: You are all so foolish that you
lament but do not see your own death. Afflicted by a poor fund of knowledge, you do not know that even
if you lament for your dead husband for hundreds of years, you will never get him back alive, and in the
meantime your lives will be finished.
58. Hiranyakasipu said: While Yamaraja, in the form of a small boy, was instructing all the relatives
surrounding the dead body of Suyajna, everyone was struck with wonder by his philosophical words.
They could understand that everything material is temporary, not continuing to exist.
59. After instructing all the foolish relatives of Suyajna, Yamaraja, in the form of a boy, disappeared
from their vision. Then the relatives of King Suyajna performed the ritualistic funeral ceremonies.
60. Therefore none of you should be aggrieved for the loss of the body--whether your own or those of
others. Only in ignorance does one make bodily distinctions, thinking "Who am I? Who are the others?
What is mine? What is for others?"
61. Sri Narada Muni continued: Diti, the mother of Hiranyakasipu and Hiranyaksa, heard the instructions
of Hiranyakasipu along with her daughter-in-law, Rusa-bhanu, Hiranyaksa's wife. She then forgot her
grief over her son's death and thus engaged her mind and attention in understanding the real
philosophy of life.
Chapter Three Hiranyakasipu's Plan to Become Immortal
1. Narada Muni said to Maharaja Yudhisthira: The demoniac king Hiranyakasipu wanted to be
unconquerable and free from old age and dwindling of the body. He wanted to gain all the yogic
perfections like anima and laghima, to be deathless, and to be the only king of the entire universe,
including Brahmaloka.
2. In the valley of Mandara Hill, Hiranyakasipu began performing his austerities by standing with his
toes on the ground, keeping his arms upward and looking toward the sky. This position was extremely
difficult, but he accepted it as a means to attain perfection.
3. From the hair on Hiranyakasipu's head there emanated an effulgent light as brilliant and intolerable
as the rays of the sun at the time of dissolution. Seeing the performance of such austere penances, the
demigods, who had been wandering throughout the planets, now returned to their respective homes.
4. Because of Hiranyakasipu's severe austerities, fire came from his head, and this fire and its smoke
spread throughout the sky, encompassing the upper and lower planets, which all became extremely
hot.
5. Because of the power of his severe austerities, all the rivers and oceans were agitated, the surface of
the globe, with its mountains and islands, began trembling, and the stars and planets fell. All directions
were ablaze.
6. Scorched and extremely disturbed because of Hiranyakasipu's severe penances, all the demigods
left the planets where they reside and went to the planet of Lord Brahma, where they informed the
creator as follows: O lord of the demigods, O master of the universe, because of the fire emanating from
Hiranyakasipu's head as a result of his severe austerities, we have become so disturbed that we could
not stay in our planets but have come to you.
7. O great person, chief of the universe, if you think it proper, kindly stop these disturbances, meant to
destroy everything, before all your obedient subjects are annihilated.
8. Hiranyakasipu has undertaken a most severe type of austerity. Although his plan is not unknown to
you, kindly listen as we submit his intentions.
9-10. "The supreme person within this universe, Lord Brahma, has gotten his exalted post by dint of
severe austerities, mystic power and trance. Consequently, after creating the universe, he has become
the most worshipable demigod within it. Since I am eternal and time is eternal, I shall endeavor for such
austerity, mystic power and trance for many, many births, and thus I shall occupy the same post
occupied by Lord Brahma.
11. "By dint of my severe austerities, I shall reverse the results of pious and impious activities. I shall
overturn all the established practices within this world. Even Dhruvaloka will be vanquished at the end
of the millennium. Therefore, what is the use of it? I shall prefer to remain in the position of Brahma."
322 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. O lord, we have heard from reliable sources that in order to obtain your post, Hiranyakasipu is now
engaged in severe austerity. You are the master of the three worlds. Please, without delay, take
whatever steps you deem appropriate.
13. O Lord Brahma, your position within this universe is certainly most auspicious for everyone,
especially the cows and brahmanas. Brahminical culture and the protection of cows can be increasingly
glorified, and thus all kinds of material happiness, opulence and good fortune will automatically
increase. But unfortunately, if Hiranyakasipu occupies your seat, everything will be lost.
14. O King, being thus informed by the demigods, the most powerful Lord Brahma, accompanied by
Bhrgu, Daksa and other great sages, immediately started for the place where Hiranyakasipu was
performing his penances and austerities.
15-16. Lord Brahma, who is carried by a swan airplane, at first could not see where Hiranyakasipu was,
for Hiranyakasipu's body was covered by an anthill and by grass and bamboo sticks. Because
Hiranyakasipu had been there for a long time, the ants had devoured his skin, fat, flesh and blood. Then
Lord Brahma and the demigods spotted him, resembling a cloud-covered sun, heating all the world by
his austerity. Struck with wonder, Lord Brahma began to smile and then addressed him as follows.
17. Lord Brahma said: O son of Kasyapa Muni, please get up, please get up. All good fortune unto you.
You are now perfect in the performance of your austerities, and therefore I may give you a benediction.
You may now ask from me whatever you desire, and I shall try to fulfill your wish.
18. I have been very much astonished to see your endurance. In spite of being eaten and bitten by all
kinds of worms and ants, you are keeping your life air circulating within your bones. Certainly this is
wonderful.
19. Even saintly persons like Bhrgu, born previously, could not perform such severe austerities, nor will
anyone in the future be able to do so. Who within these three worlds can sustain his life without even
drinking water for one hundred celestial years?
20. My dear son of Diti, with your great determination and austerity you have done what was impossible
even for great saintly persons, and thus I have certainly been conquered by you.
21. O best of the asuras, for this reason I am now prepared to give you all benedictions, according to
your desire. I belong to the celestial world of demigods, who do not die like human beings. Therefore,
although you are subject to death, your audience with me will not go in vain.
22-23. As soon as he was sprinkled with the water from Lord Brahma's waterpot, Hiranyakasipu arose,
endowed with a full body with limbs so strong that they could bear the striking of a thunderbolt. With
physical strength and a bodily luster resembling molten gold, he emerged from the anthill a completely
young man, just as fire springs from fuel wood.
24. Seeing Lord Brahma present before him in the sky, carried by his swan airplane, Hiranyakasipu was
extremely pleased. He immediately fell flat with his head on the ground and began to express his
obligation to the lord.
25. Then, getting up from the ground and seeing Lord Brahma before him, the head of the Daityas was
overwhelmed by jubilation. With tears in his eyes, his whole body shivering, he began praying in a
humble mood, with folded hands and a faltering voice, to satisfy Lord Brahma.
26-27. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the supreme lord within this universe. At the end of
each day of his life, the universe is fully covered with dense darkness by the influence of time, and then
again, during his next day, that self-effulgent lord, by his own effulgence, manifests, maintains and
destroys the entire cosmic manifestation through the material energy, which is invested with the three
modes of material nature. He, Lord Brahma, is the shelter of those modes of nature--sattva-guna, rajo-
guna and tamo-guna.
28. I offer my obeisances to the original personality within this universe, Lord Brahma, who is cognizant
and who can apply his mind and realized intelligence in creating this cosmic manifestation. It is because
of his activities that everything within the universe is visible. He is therefore the cause of all
manifestations.
29. Your Lordship, being the origin of the life of this material world, is the master and controller of the
living entities, both moving and stationary, and you inspire their consciousness. You maintain the mind
and the acting and knowledge-acquiring senses, and therefore you are the great controller of all the
material elements and their qualities, and you are the controller of all desires.
30. My dear lord, by your form as the Vedas personified and through knowledge relating to the activities
of all the yajnic brahmanas, you spread the Vedic ritualistic ceremonies of the seven kinds of sacrifices,
headed by agnistoma. Indeed, you inspire the yajnic brahmanas to perform the rituals mentioned in the
three Vedas. Being the Supreme Soul, the Supersoul of all living entities, you are beginningless,
endless and omniscient, beyond the limits of time and space.
31. O my lord, Your Lordship is eternally awake, seeing everything that happens. As eternal time, you
reduce the duration of life for all living entities through your different parts, such as moments, seconds,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 323
minutes and hours. Nonetheless, you are unchanged, resting in one place as the Supersoul, witness
and Supreme Lord, the birthless, all-pervading controller who is the cause of life for all living entities.
32. There is nothing separate from you, whether it be better or lower, stationary or moving. The
knowledge derived from the Vedic literatures like the Upanisads, and from all the sub-limbs of the
original Vedic knowledge, form your external body. You are Hiranyagarbha, the reservoir of the
universe, but nonetheless, being situated as the supreme controller, you are transcendental to the
material world, which consists of the three modes of material nature.
33. O my lord, being changelessly situated in your own abode, you expand your universal form within
this cosmic manifestation, thus appearing to taste the material world. You are Brahman, the Supersoul,
the oldest, the Personality of Godhead.
34. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme, who in his unlimited, unmanifested form
has expanded the cosmic manifestation, the form of the totality of the universe. He possesses external
and internal energies and the mixed energy called the marginal potency, which consists of all the living
entities.
35. O my lord, O best of the givers of benediction, if you will kindly grant me the benediction I desire,
please let me not meet death from any of the living entities created by you.
36. Grant me that I not die within any residence or outside any residence, during the daytime or at night,
nor on the ground or in the sky. Grant me that my death not be brought by any being other than those
created by you, nor by any weapon, nor by any human being or animal.
37-38. Grant me that I not meet death from any entity, living or nonliving. Grant me, further, that I not be
killed by any demigod or demon or by any great snake from the lower planets. Since no one can kill you
in the battlefield, you have no competitor. Therefore, grant me the benediction that I too may have no
rival. Give me sole lordship over all the living entities and presiding deities, and give me all the glories
obtained by that position. Furthermore, give me all the mystic powers attained by long austerities and
the practice of yoga, for these cannot be lost at any time.
Chapter Four Hiranyakasipu Terrorizes the Universe
1. Narada Muni continued: Lord Brahma was very much satisfied by Hiranyakasipu's austerities, which
were difficult to perform. Therefore, when solicited for benedictions, he indeed granted them, although
they were rarely to be achieved.
2. Lord Brahma said: O Hiranyakasipu, these benedictions for which you have asked are difficult to
obtain for most men. Nonetheless, O my son, I shall grant you them although they are generally not
available.
3. Then Lord Brahma, who awards infallible benedictions, departed, being worshiped by the best of the
demons, Hiranyakasipu, and being praised by great sages and saintly persons.
4. The demon Hiranyakasipu, having thus been blessed by Lord Brahma and having acquired a
lustrous golden body, continued to remember the death of his brother and therefore be envious of Lord
Visnu.
5-7. Hiranyakasipu became the conqueror of the entire universe. Indeed, that great demon conquered
all the planets in the three worlds--upper, middle and lower--including the planets of the human beings,
the Gandharvas, the Garudas, the great serpents, the Siddhas, Caranas and Vidyadharas, the great
saints, Yamaraja, the Manus, the Yaksas, the Raksasas, the Pisacas and their masters, and the
masters of the ghosts and Bhutas. He defeated the rulers of all the other planets where there are living
entities and brought them under his control. Conquering the abodes of all, he seized their power and
influence.
8. Hiranyakasipu, who possessed all opulence, began residing in heaven, with its famous Nandana
garden, which is enjoyed by the demigods. In fact, he resided in the most opulent palace of Indra, the
King of heaven. The palace had been directly constructed by the demigod architect Visvakarma and
was as beautifully made as if the goddess of fortune of the entire universe resided there.
9-12. The steps of King Indra's residence were made of coral, the floor was bedecked with invaluable
emeralds, the walls were of crystal, and the columns of vaidurya stone. The wonderful canopies were
beautifully decorated, the seats were bedecked with rubies, and the silk bedding, as white as foam, was
decorated with pearls. The ladies of the palace, who were blessed with beautiful teeth and the most
wonderfully beautiful faces, walked here and there in the palace, their ankle bells tinkling melodiously,
and saw their own beautiful reflections in the gems. The demigods, however, being very much
oppressed, had to bow down and offer obeisances at the feet of Hiranyakasipu, who chastised the
demigods very severely and for no reason. Thus Hiranyakasipu lived in the palace and severely ruled
everyone.
13. O my dear King, Hiranyakasipu was always drunk on strong-smelling wines and liquors, and
therefore his coppery eyes were always rolling. Nonetheless, because he had powerfully executed
great austerities in mystic yoga, although he was abominable, all but the three principal demigods--Lord
324 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Brahma, Lord Siva and Lord Visnu--personally worshiped him to please him by bringing him various
presentations with their own hands.
14. O Maharaja Yudhisthira, descendant of Pandu, by dint of his personal power, Hiranyakasipu, being
situated on the throne of King Indra, controlled the inhabitants of all the other planets. The two
Gandharvas Visvavasu and Tumburu, I myself and the Vidyadharas, Apsaras and sages all offered
prayers to him again and again just to glorify him.
15. Being worshiped by sacrifices offered with great gifts by those who strictly followed the principles of
varna and asrama, Hiranyakasipu, instead of offering shares of the oblations to the demigods, accepted
them himself.
16. As if in fear of Hiranyakasipu, the planet earth, which consists of seven islands, delivered food
grains without being plowed. Thus it resembled cows like the surabhi of the spiritual world or the kama-
dugha of heaven. The earth yielded sufficient food grains, the cows supplied abundant milk, and outer
space was beautifully decorated with wonderful phenomena.
17. By the flowing of their waves, the various oceans of the universe, along with their tributaries, the
rivers, which are compared to their wives, supplied various kinds of gems and jewels for
Hiranyakasipu's use. These oceans were the oceans of salt water, sugarcane juice, wine, clarified
butter, milk, yogurt, and sweet water.
18. The valleys between the mountains became fields of pleasure for Hiranyakasipu, by whose
influence all the trees and plants produced fruits and flowers profusely in all seasons. The qualities of
pouring water, drying and burning, which are all qualities of the three departmental heads of the
universe--namely Indra, Vayu and Agni--were all directed by Hiranyakasipu alone, without assistance
from the demigods.
19. In spite of achieving the power to control in all directions and in spite of enjoying all types of dear
sense gratification as much as possible, Hiranyakasipu was dissatisfied because instead of controlling
his senses he remained their servant.
20. Hiranyakasipu thus passed a long time being very much proud of his opulences and transgressing
the laws and regulations mentioned in the authoritative sastras. He was therefore subjected to a curse
by the four Kumaras, who were great brahmanas.
21. Everyone, including the rulers of the various planets, was extremely distressed because of the
severe punishment inflicted upon them by Hiranyakasipu. Fearful and disturbed, unable to find any
other shelter, they at last surrendered to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu.
22-23. "Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto that direction where the Supreme Personality of
Godhead is situated, where those purified souls in the renounced order of life, the great saintly persons,
go, and from which, having gone, they never return." Without sleep, fully controlling their minds, and
living on only their breath, the predominating deities of the various planets began worshiping Hrsikesa
with this meditation.
24. Then there appeared before them a transcendental sound vibration, emanating from a personality
not visible to material eyes. The voice was as grave as the sound of a cloud, and it was very
encouraging, driving away all fear.
25-26. The voice of the Lord vibrated as follows: O best of learned persons, do not fear! I wish all good
fortune to you. Become My devotees by hearing and chanting about Me and offering Me prayers, for
these are certainly meant to award benedictions to all living entities. I know all about the activities of
Hiranyakasipu and shall surely stop them very soon. Please wait patiently until that time.
27. When one is envious of the demigods, who represent the Supreme Personality of Godhead, of the
Vedas, which give all knowledge, of the cows, brahmanas, Vaisnavas and religious principles, and
ultimately of Me, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, he and his civilization will be vanquished without
delay.
28. When Hiranyakasipu teases the great devotee Prahlada, his own son, who is peaceful and sober
and who has no enemy, I shall kill Hiranyakasipu immediately, despite the benedictions of Brahma.
29. The great saint Narada Muni continued: When the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the spiritual
master of everyone, thus reassured all the demigods living in the heavenly planets, they offered their
respectful obeisances unto Him and returned, confident that the demon Hiranyakasipu was now
practically dead.
30. Hiranyakasipu had four wonderful, well-qualified sons, of whom the one named Prahlada was the
best. Indeed, Prahlada was a reservoir of all transcendental qualities because he was an unalloyed
devotee of the Personality of Godhead.
31-32. [The qualities of Maharaja Prahlada, the son of Hiranyakasipu, are described herewith.] He was
completely cultured as a qualified brahmana, having very good character and being determined to
understand the Absolute Truth. He had full control of his senses and mind. Like the Supersoul, he was
kind to every living entity and was the best friend of everyone. To respectable persons he acted exactly
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 325
like a menial servant, to the poor he was like a father, to his equals he was attached like a sympathetic
brother, and he considered his teachers, spiritual masters and older Godbrothers to be as good as the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. He was completely free from unnatural pride that might have arisen
from his good education, riches, beauty, aristocracy and so on.
33. Although Prahlada Maharaja was born in a family of asuras, he himself was not an asura but a great
devotee of Lord Visnu. Unlike the other asuras, he was never envious of Vaisnavas. He was not
agitated when put into danger, and he was neither directly nor indirectly interested in the fruitive
activities described in the Vedas. Indeed, he considered everything material to be useless, and
therefore he was completely devoid of material desires. He always controlled his senses and life air,
and being of steady intelligence and determination, he subdued all lusty desires.
34. O King, Prahlada Maharaja's good qualities are still glorified by learned saints and Vaisnavas. As all
good qualities are always found existing in the Supreme Personality of Godhead, they also exist forever
in His devotee Prahlada Maharaja.
35. In any assembly where there are discourses about saints and devotees, O King Yudhisthira, even
the enemies of the demons, namely the demigods, what to speak of you, would cite Prahlada Maharaja
as an example of a great devotee.
36. Who could list the innumerable transcendental qualities of Prahlada Maharaja? He had unflinching
faith in Vasudeva, Lord Krsna [the son of Vasudeva], and unalloyed devotion to Him. His attachment to
Lord Krsna was natural because of his previous devotional service. Although his good qualities cannot
be enumerated, they prove that he was a great soul [mahatma].
37. From the very beginning of his childhood, Prahlada Maharaja was uninterested in childish
playthings. Indeed, he gave them up altogether and remained silent and dull, being fully absorbed in
Krsna consciousness. Since his mind was always affected by Krsna consciousness, he could not
understand how the world goes on being fully absorbed in the activities of sense gratification.
38. Prahlada Maharaja was always absorbed in thought of Krsna. Thus, being always embraced by the
Lord, he did not know how his bodily necessities, such as sitting, walking, eating, lying down, drinking
and talking, were being automatically performed.
39. Because of advancement in Krsna consciousness, he sometimes cried, sometimes laughed,
sometimes expressed jubilation and sometimes sang loudly.
40. Sometimes, upon seeing the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Prahlada Maharaja would loudly
call in full anxiety. He sometimes lost his shyness in jubilation and began dancing in ecstasy, and
sometimes, being fully absorbed in thoughts of Krsna, he felt oneness and imitated the pastimes of the
Lord.
41. Sometimes, feeling the touch of the Lord's lotus hands, he became spiritually jubilant and remained
silent, his hairs standing on end and tears gliding down from his half-closed eyes because of his love for
the Lord.
42. Because of his association with perfect, unalloyed devotees who had nothing to do with anything
material, Prahlada Maharaja constantly engaged in the service of the Lord's lotus feet. By seeing his
bodily features when he was in perfect ecstasy, persons very poor in spiritual understanding became
purified. In other words, Prahlada Maharaja bestowed upon them transcendental bliss.
43. My dear King Yudhisthira, the demon Hiranyakasipu tormented this exalted, fortunate devotee,
although Prahlada was his own son.
44. Maharaja Yudhisthira said: O best of the saints among the demigods, O best of spiritual leaders,
how did Hiranyakasipu give so much trouble to Prahlada Maharaja, the pure and exalted saint, although
Prahlada was his own son? I wish to know about this subject from you.
45. A father and mother are always affectionate to their children. When the children are disobedient the
parents chastise them, not due to enmity but only for the child's instruction and welfare. How did
Hiranyakasipu, the father of Prahlada Maharaja, chastise such a noble son? This is what I am eager to
know.
46. Maharaja Yudhisthira further inquired: How was it possible for a father to be so violent toward an
exalted son who was obedient, well-behaved and respectful to his father? O brahmana, O master, I
have never heard of such a contradiction as an affectionate father's punishing his noble son with the
intention of killing him. Kindly dissipate our doubts in this regard.
Chapter Five Prahlada Maharaja, the Saintly Son of Hiranyakasipu
1. The great saint Narada Muni said: The demons, headed by Hiranyakasipu, accepted Sukracarya as
their priest for ritualistic ceremonies. Sukracarya's two sons, Sanda and Amarka, lived near
Hiranyakasipu's palace.
2. Prahlada Maharaja was already educated in devotional life, but when his father sent him to those two
sons of Sukracarya to be educated, they accepted him at their school along with the other sons of the
asuras.
326 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3. Prahlada certainly heard and recited the topics of politics and economics taught by the teachers, but
he understood that political philosophy involves considering someone a friend and someone else an
enemy, and thus he did not like it.
4. Krsna, who is situated in the core of everyone's heart as the Supersoul, dissipates all the ignorance
from the heart of a devotee. As a special favor, He enlightens the devotee with all knowledge by putting
before him the torch of light. Prahlada Maharaja, therefore, knew the best of knowledge, and when his
father inquired from him, Prahlada gave him that knowledge. Prahlada Maharaja was able to solve the
most difficult parts of problems because of his advanced Krsna consciousness. Therefore he replied as
follows.
5. Prahlada Maharaja replied: O best of the asuras, King of the demons, as far as I have learned from
my spiritual master, any person who has accepted a temporary body and temporary household life is
certainly embarrassed by anxiety because of having fallen in a dark well where there is no water but
only suffering. One should give up this position and go to the forest [vana]. More clearly, one should go
to Vrndavana, where only Krsna consciousness is prevalent, and should thus take shelter of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
6. Narada Muni continued: When Prahlada Maharaja spoke about the path of self-realization in
devotional service, thus being faithful to the camp of his father's enemies, Hiranyakasipu, the King of
the demons, heard Prahlada's words and he laughingly said, "Thus is the intelligence of children spoiled
by the words of the enemy."
7. Hiranyakasipu advised his assistants: My dear demons, give complete protection to this boy at the
guru-kula where he is instructed, so that his intelligence will not be further influenced by Vaisnavas who
may go there in disguise.
8. When Hiranyakasipu's servants brought the boy Prahlada back to the guru-kula [the place where the
brahmanas taught the boys], the priests of the demons, Sanda and Amarka, pacified him. With very
mild voices and affectionate words, they inquired from him as follows.
9. Dear son Prahlada, all peace and good fortune unto you. Kindly do not speak lies; just reply with the
truth. These boys you see are not like you, for they do not speak in a deviant way. How have you
learned these instructions? How has your intelligence been spoiled in this way?
10. O best of your family, has this pollution of your intelligence been brought about by you or by the
enemies? We are all your teachers and are very eager to hear about this. Please tell us the truth.
11. Prahlada Maharaja replied: Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, whose external energy has created the distinctions of "my friend" and "my enemy" by
deluding the intelligence of men. Indeed, I am now actually experiencing this, although I have previously
heard of it from authoritative sources.
12. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead is pleased with the living entity because of his
devotional service, one becomes a pandita and does not make distinctions between enemies, friends
and himself. Intelligently, he then thinks, "Every one of us is an eternal servant of God, and therefore we
are not different from one another."
13. Persons who always think in terms of "enemy" and "friend" are unable to ascertain the Supersoul
within themselves. Not to speak of them, even such exalted persons as Lord Brahma, who are fully
conversant with the Vedic literature, are sometimes bewildered in following the principles of devotional
service. The same Supreme Personality of Godhead who has created this situation has certainly given
me the intelligence to take the side of your so-called enemy.
14. O brahmanas [teachers], as iron attracted by a magnetic stone moves automatically toward the
magnet, my consciousness, having been changed by His will, is attracted by Lord Visnu, who carries a
disc in His hand. Thus I have no independence.
15. The great saint Narada Muni continued: The great soul Prahlada Maharaja became silent after
saying this to his teachers, Sanda and Amarka, the seminal sons of Sukracarya. These so-called
brahmanas then became angry at him. Because they were servants of Hiranyakasipu, they were very
sorry, and to chastise Prahlada Maharaja they spoke as follows.
16. Oh, please bring me a stick! This Prahlada is damaging our name and fame. Because of his bad
intelligence, he has become like a cinder in the dynasty of the demons. Now he needs to be treated by
the fourth of the four kinds of political diplomacy.
17. This rascal Prahlada has appeared like a thorn tree in a forest of sandalwood. To cut down
sandalwood trees, an axe is needed, and the wood of the thorn tree is very suitable for the handle of
such an axe. Lord Visnu is the axe for cutting down the sandalwood forest of the family of demons, and
this Prahlada is the handle for that axe.
18. Sanda and Amarka, the teachers of Prahlada Maharaja, chastised and threatened their disciple in
various ways and began teaching him about the paths of religion, economic development and sense
gratification. This is the way they educated him.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 327
19. After some time, the teachers Sanda and Amarka thought that Prahlada Maharaja was sufficiently
educated in the diplomatic affairs of pacifying public leaders, appeasing them by giving them lucrative
posts, dividing and ruling over them, and punishing them in cases of disobedience. Then, one day, after
Prahlada's mother had personally washed the boy and dressed him nicely with sufficient ornaments,
they presented him before his father.
20. When Hiranyakasipu saw that his child had fallen at his feet and was offering obeisances, as an
affectionate father he immediately began showering blessings upon the child and embraced him with
both arms. A father naturally feels happy to embrace his son, and Hiranyakasipu became very happy in
this way.
21. Narada Muni continued: My dear King Yudhisthira, Hiranyakasipu seated Prahlada Maharaja on his
lap and began smelling his head. With affectionate tears gliding down from his eyes and moistening the
child's smiling face, he spoke to his son as follows.
22. Hiranyakasipu said: My dear Prahlada, my dear son, O long-lived one, for so much time you have
heard many things from your teachers. Now please repeat to me whatever you think is the best of that
knowledge.
23-24. Prahlada Maharaja said: Hearing and chanting about the transcendental holy name, form,
qualities, paraphernalia and pastimes of Lord Visnu, remembering them, serving the lotus feet of the
Lord, offering the Lord respectful worship with sixteen types of paraphernalia, offering prayers to the
Lord, becoming His servant, considering the Lord one's best friend, and surrendering everything unto
Him (in other words, serving Him with the body, mind and words)--these nine processes are accepted
as pure devotional service. One who has dedicated his life to the service of Krsna through these nine
methods should be understood to be the most learned person, for he has acquired complete
knowledge.
25. After hearing these words of devotional service from the mouth of his son Prahlada, Hiranyakasipu
was extremely angry. His lips trembling, he spoke as follows to Sanda the son of his guru, Sukracarya.
26. O unqualified, most heinous son of a brahmana, you have disobeyed my order and taken shelter of
the party of my enemies. You have taught this poor boy about devotional service! What is this
nonsense?
27. In due course of time, various types of diseases are manifest in those who are sinful. Similarly, in
this world there are many deceptive friends in false garbs, but eventually, because of their false
behavior, their actual enmity becomes manifest.
28. The son of Sukracarya, Hiranyakasipu's spiritual master, said: O enemy of King Indra, O King!
Whatever your son Prahlada has said was not taught to him by me or anyone else. His spontaneous
devotional service has naturally developed in him. Therefore, please give up your anger and do not
unnecessarily accuse us. It is not good to insult a brahmana in this way.
29. Sri Narada Muni continued: When Hiranyakasipu received this reply from the teacher, he again
addressed his son Prahlada. Hiranyakasipu said: You rascal, most fallen of our family, if you have not
received this education from your teachers, where have you gotten it?
30. Prahlada Maharaja replied: Because of their uncontrolled senses, persons too addicted to
materialistic life make progress toward hellish conditions and repeatedly chew that which has already
been chewed. Their inclinations toward Krsna are never aroused, either by the instructions of others, by
their own efforts, or by a combination of both.
31. Persons who are strongly entrapped by the consciousness of enjoying material life, and who have
therefore accepted as their leader or guru a similar blind man attached to external sense objects,
cannot understand that the goal of life is to return home, back to Godhead, and engage in the service of
Lord Visnu. As blind men guided by another blind man miss the right path and fall into a ditch, materially
attached men led by another materially attached man are bound by the ropes of fruitive labor, which are
made of very strong cords, and they continue again and again in materialistic life, suffering the threefold
miseries.
32. Unless they smear upon their bodies the dust of the lotus feet of a Vaisnava completely freed from
material contamination, persons very much inclined toward materialistic life cannot be attached to the
lotus feet of the Lord, who is glorified for His uncommon activities. Only by becoming Krsna conscious
and taking shelter at the lotus feet of the Lord in this way can one be freed from material contamination.
33. After Prahlada Maharaja had spoken in this way and become silent, Hiranyakasipu, blinded by
anger, threw him off his lap and onto the ground.
34. Indignant and angry, his reddish eyes like molten copper, Hiranyakasipu said to his servants: O
demons, take this boy away from me! He deserves to be killed. Kill him as soon as possible!
35. This boy Prahlada is the killer of my brother, for he has given up his family to engage in the
devotional service of the enemy, Lord Visnu, like a menial servant.
328 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
36. Although Prahlada is only five years old, even at this young age he has given up his affectionate
relationship with his father and mother. Therefore, he is certainly untrustworthy. Indeed, it is not at all
believable that he will behave well toward Visnu.
37. Although a medicinal herb, being born in the forest, does not belong to the same category as a
man, if beneficial it is kept very carefully. Similarly, if someone outside one's family is favorable, he
should be given protection like a son. On the other hand, if a limb of one's body is poisoned by disease,
it must be amputated so that the rest of the body may live happily. Similarly, even one's own son, if
unfavorable, must be rejected, although born of one's own body.
38. Just as uncontrolled senses are the enemies of all yogis engaged in advancing in spiritual life, this
Prahlada, who appears to be a friend, is an enemy because I cannot control him. Therefore this enemy,
whether eating, sitting or sleeping, must be killed by all means.
39-40. The demons [Raksasas], the servants of Hiranyakasipu, thus began striking the tender parts of
Prahlada Maharaja's body with their tridents. The demons all had fearful faces, sharp teeth and reddish,
coppery beards and hair, and they appeared extremely threatening. Making a tumultuous sound,
shouting, "Chop him up! Pierce him!" they began striking Prahlada Maharaja, who sat silently,
meditating upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
41. Even though a person who has no assets in pious activities performs some good deed, it will have
no result. Thus the weapons of the demons had no tangible effects upon Prahlada Maharaja because
he was a devotee undisturbed by material conditions and fully engaged in meditating upon and serving
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is unchangeable, who cannot be realized by the material
senses, and who is the soul of the entire universe.
42. My dear King Yudhisthira, when all the attempts of the demons to kill Prahlada Maharaja were futile,
the King of the demons, Hiranyakasipu, being most fearful, began contriving other means to kill him.
43-44. Hiranyakasipu could not kill his son by throwing him beneath the feet of big elephants, throwing
him among huge, fearful snakes, employing destructive spells, hurling him from the top of a hill,
conjuring up illusory tricks, administering poison, starving him, exposing him to severe cold, winds, fire
and water, or throwing heavy stones to crush him. When Hiranyakasipu found that he could not in any
way harm Prahlada, who was completely sinless, he was in great anxiety about what to do next.
45. Hiranyakasipu thought: I have used many ill names in chastising this boy Prahlada and have
devised many means of killing him, but despite all my endeavors, he could not be killed. Indeed, he
saved himself by his own powers, without being affected in the least by these treacheries and
abominable actions.
46. Although he is very near to me and is merely a child, he is situated in complete fearlessness. He
resembles a dog's curved tail, which can never be straightened, because he never forgets my
misbehavior and his connection with his master, Lord Visnu.
47. I can see that this boy's strength is unlimited, for he has not feared any of my punishments. He
appears immortal. Therefore, because of my enmity toward him, I shall die. Or maybe this will not take
place.
48. Thinking in this way, the King of the Daityas, morose and bereft of bodily luster, remained silent with
his face downward. Then Sanda and Amarka, the two sons of Sukracarya, spoke to him in secret.
49. O lord, we know that when you simply move your eyebrows, all the commanders of the various
planets are most afraid. Without the help of any assistant, you have conquered all the three worlds.
Therefore, we do not find any reason for you to be morose and full of anxiety. As for Prahlada, he is
nothing but a child and cannot be a cause of anxiety. After all, his bad or good qualities have no value.
50. Until the return of our spiritual master, Sukracarya, arrest this child with the ropes of Varuna so that
he will not flee in fear. In any case, by the time he is somewhat grown up and has assimilated our
instructions or served our spiritual master, he will change in his intelligence. Thus there need be no
cause for anxiety.
51. After hearing these instructions of Sanda and Amarka, the sons of his spiritual master,
Hiranyakasipu agreed and requested them to instruct Prahlada in that system of occupational duty
which is followed by royal householder families.
52. Thereafter, Sanda and Amarka systematically and unceasingly taught Prahlada Maharaja, who was
very submissive and humble, about mundane religion, economic development and sense gratification.
53. The teachers Sanda and Amarka instructed Prahlada Maharaja in the three kinds of material
advancement called religion, economic development and sense gratification. Prahlada, however, being
situated above such instructions, did not like them, for such instructions are based on the duality of
worldly affairs, which involve one in a materialistic way of life marked by birth, death, old age and
disease.
54. When the teachers went home to attend to their household affairs, the students of the same age as
Prahlada Maharaja would call him to take the opportunity of leisure hours for play.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 329
55. Prahlada Maharaja, who was truly the supreme learned person, then addressed his class friends in
very sweet language. Smiling, he began to teach them about the uselessness of the materialistic way of
life. Being very kind to them, he instructed them as follows.
56-57. My dear King Yudhisthira, all the children were very much affectionate and respectful to
Prahlada Maharaja, and because of their tender age they were not so polluted by the instructions and
actions of their teachers, who were attached to condemned duality and bodily comfort. Thus the boys
surrounded Prahlada Maharaja, giving up their playthings, and sat down to hear him. Their hearts and
eyes being fixed upon him, they looked at him with great earnestness. Prahlada Maharaja, although
born in a demon family, was an exalted devotee, and he desired their welfare. Thus he began
instructing them about the futility of materialistic life.
Chapter Six Prahlada Instructs His Demoniac Schoolmates
1. Prahlada Maharaja said: One who is sufficiently intelligent should use the human form of body from
the very beginning of life--in other words, from the tender age of childhood--to practice the activities of
devotional service, giving up all other engagements. The human body is most rarely achieved, and
although temporary like other bodies, it is meaningful because in human life one can perform devotional
service. Even a slight amount of sincere devotional service can give one complete perfection.
2. The human form of life affords one a chance to return home, back to Godhead. Therefore every living
entity, especially in the human form of life, must engage in devotional service to the lotus feet of Lord
Visnu. This devotional service is natural because Lord Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is
the most beloved, the master of the soul, and the well-wisher of all other living beings.
3. Prahlada Maharaja continued: My dear friends born of demoniac families, the happiness perceived
with reference to the sense objects by contact with the body can be obtained in any form of life,
according to one's past fruitive activities. Such happiness is automatically obtained without endeavor,
just as we obtain distress.
4. Endeavors merely for sense gratification or material happiness through economic development are
not to be performed, for they result only in a loss of time and energy, with no actual profit. If one's
endeavors are directed toward Krsna consciousness, one can surely attain the spiritual platform of self-
realization. There is no such benefit from engaging oneself in economic development.
5. Therefore, while in material existence [bhavam asritah], a person fully competent to distinguish wrong
from right must endeavor to achieve the highest goal of life as long as the body is stout and strong and
is not embarrassed by dwindling.
6. Every human being has a maximum duration of life of one hundred years, but for one who cannot
control his senses, half of those years are completely lost because at night he sleeps twelve hours,
being covered by ignorance. Therefore such a person has a lifetime of only fifty years.
7. In the tender age of childhood, when everyone is bewildered, one passes ten years. Similarly, in
boyhood, engaged in sporting and playing, one passes another ten years. In this way, twenty years are
wasted. Similarly, in old age, when one is an invalid, unable to perform even material activities, one
passes another twenty years wastefully.
8. One whose mind and senses are uncontrolled becomes increasingly attached to family life because
of insatiable lusty desires and very strong illusion. In such a madman's life, the remaining years are also
wasted because even during those years he cannot engage himself in devotional service.
9. What person too attached to household life due to being unable to control his senses can liberate
himself? An attached householder is bound very strongly by ropes of affection for his family [wife,
children and other relatives].
10. Money is so dear that one conceives of money as being sweeter than honey. Therefore, who can
give up the desire to accumulate money, especially in household life? Thieves, professional servants
[soldiers] and merchants try to acquire money even by risking their very dear lives.
11-13. How can a person who is most affectionate to his family, the core of his heart being always filled
with their pictures, give up their association? Specifically, a wife is always very kind and sympathetic
and always pleases her husband in a solitary place. Who could give up the association of such a dear
and affectionate wife? Small children talk in broken language, very pleasing to hear, and their
affectionate father always thinks of their sweet words. Mow could he give up their association? One's
elderly parents and one's sons and daughters are also very dear. A daughter is especially dear to her
father, and while living at her husband's house she is always in his mind. Who could give up that
association? Aside from this, in household affairs there are many decorated items of household
furniture, and there are also animals and servants. Who could give up such comforts? The attached
householder is like a silkworm, which weaves a cocoon in which it becomes imprisoned, unable to get
out. Simply for the satisfaction of two important senses--the genitals and the tongue--one is bound by
material conditions. How can one escape?
330 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
14. One who is too attached cannot understand that he is wasting his valuable life for the maintenance
of his family. He also fails to understand that the purpose of human life, a life suitable for realization of
the Absolute Truth, is being imperceptibly spoiled. However, he is very cleverly attentive to seeing that
not a single farthing is lost by mismanagement. Thus although an attached person in material existence
always suffers from threefold miseries, he does not develop a distaste for the way of material existence.
15. If a person too attached to the duties of family maintenance is unable to control his senses, the core
of his heart is immersed in how to accumulate money. Although he knows that one who takes the
wealth of others will be punished by the law of the government, and by the laws of Yamaraja after
death, he continues cheating others to acquire money.
16. O my friends, sons of demons! In this material world, even those who are apparently advanced in
education have the propensity to consider, "This is mine, and that is for others." Thus they are always
engaged in providing the necessities of life to their families in a limited conception of family life, just like
uneducated cats and dogs. They are unable to take to spiritual knowledge; instead, they are bewildered
and overcome by ignorance.
17-18. My dear friends, O sons of the demons, it is certain that no one bereft of knowledge of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead has been able to liberate himself from material bondage at any time
or in any country. Rather, those bereft of knowledge of the Lord are bound by the material laws. They
are factually addicted to sense gratification, and their target is woman. Indeed, they are actually
playthings in the hands of attractive women. Victimized by such a conception of life, they become
surrounded by children, grandchildren and great-grandchildren, and thus they are shackled to material
bondage. Those who are very much addicted to this conception of life are called demons. Therefore,
although you are sons of demons, keep aloof from such persons and take shelter of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Narayana, the origin of all the demigods, because the ultimate goal for the
devotees of Narayana is liberation from the bondage of material existence.
19. My dear sons of demons, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, is the original
Supersoul, the father of all living entities. Consequently there are no impediments to pleasing Him or
worshiping Him under any conditions, whether one be a child or an old man. The relationship between
the living entities and the Supreme Personality of Godhead is always a fact, and therefore there is no
difficulty in pleasing the Lord.
20-23. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, the supreme controller, who is infallible and indefatigable,
is present in different forms of life, from the inert living beings [sthavara], such as the plants, to Brahma,
the foremost created living being. He is also present in the varieties of material creations and in the
material elements, the total material energy and the modes of material nature [sattva-guna, rajo-guna
and tamo-guna], as well as the unmanifested material nature and the false ego. Although He is one, He
is present everywhere, and He is also the transcendental Supersoul, the cause of all causes, who is
present as the observer in the cores of the hearts of all living entities. He is indicated as that which is
pervaded and as the all-pervading Supersoul, but actually He cannot be indicated. He is changeless
and undivided. He is simply perceived as the supreme sac-cid-ananda [eternity, knowledge and bliss].
Being covered by the curtain of the external energy, to the atheist He appears nonexistent.
24. Therefore, my dear young friends born of demons, please act in such a way that the Supreme Lord,
who is beyond the conception of material knowledge, will be satisfied. Give up your demoniac nature
and act without enmity or duality. Show mercy to all living entities by enlightening them in devotional
service, thus becoming their well-wishers.
25. Nothing is unobtainable for devotees who have satisfied the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
is the cause of all causes, the original source of everything. The Lord is the reservoir of unlimited
spiritual qualities. For devotees, therefore, who are transcendental to the modes of material nature,
what is the use of following the principles of religion, economic development, sense gratification and
liberation, which are all automatically obtainable under the influence of the modes of nature? We
devotees always glorify the lotus feet of the Lord, and therefore we need not ask for anything in terms of
dharma, kama, artha and moksa.
26. Religion, economic development and sense gratification--these are described in the Vedas as tri-
varga, or three ways to salvation. Within these three categories are education and self-realization;
ritualistic ceremonies performed according to Vedic injunction; logic; the science of law and order; and
the various means of earning one's livelihood. These are the external subject matters of study in the
Vedas, and therefore I consider them material. However, I consider surrender to the lotus feet of Lord
Visnu to be transcendental.
27. Narayana, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the well-wisher and friend of all living entities,
formerly explained this transcendental knowledge to the great saint Narada. Such knowledge is
extremely difficult to understand without the mercy of a saintly person like Narada, but everyone who
has taken shelter of Narada's disciplic succession can understand this confidential knowledge.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 331
28. Prahlada Maharaja continued: I received this knowledge from the great saint Narada Muni, who is
always engaged in devotional service. This knowledge, which is called bhagavata-dharma, is fully
scientific. It is based on logic and philosophy and is free from all material contamination.
29-30. The sons of the demons replied: Dear Prahlada, neither you nor we know any teacher or spiritual
master other than Sanda and Amarka, the sons of Sukracarya. After all, we are children and they our
controllers. For you especially, who always remain within the palace, it is very difficult to associate with
a great personality. Dear friend, most gentle one, would you kindly explain how it was possible for you
to hear Narada? Kindly dispel our doubts in this regard.
Chapter Seven What Prahlada Learned in the Womb
1. Narada Muni said: Although Prahlada Maharaja was born in a family of asuras, he was the greatest
of all devotees. Having thus been questioned by his class friends, the sons of the asuras, he
remembered the words spoken to him by me and replied to his friends as follows.
2. Prahlada Maharaja said: When our father, Hiranyakasipu, went to Mandaracala Mountain to execute
severe austerities, in his absence the demigods, headed by King Indra, made a severe attempt to
subdue all the demons in warfare.
3. "Alas, as a serpent is eaten by small ants, so the troublesome Hiranyakasipu, who always inflicted
miseries upon all types of people, has now been defeated by the reactions of his own sinful activities."
Saying this, the demigods, headed by King Indra, arranged to fight the demons.
4-5. When the great leaders of the demons, who were being killed one after another, saw the
unprecedented exertion of the demigods in fighting, they began to flee, scattering themselves in all
directions. Simply to protect their lives, they hastily fled from their homes, wives, children, animals and
household paraphernalia. Paying no heed to all these, the demons simply fled.
6. The victorious demigods plundered the palace of Hiranyakasipu, the King of the demons, and
destroyed everything within it. Then Indra, King of heaven, arrested my mother, the Queen.
7. As she was being led away, crying in fear like a kurari captured by a vulture, the great sage Narada,
who at that time had no engagement, appeared on the scene and saw her in that condition.
8. Narada Muni said: O Indra, King of the demigods, this woman is certainly sinless. You should not
drag her off in this merciless way. O greatly fortunate one, this chaste woman is the wife of another.
You must immediately release her.
9. King Indra said: In the womb of this woman, the wife of the demon Hiranyakasipu, is the seed of that
great demon. Therefore, let her remain in our custody until her child is delivered, and then we shall
release her.
10. Narada Muni replied: The child within this woman's womb is faultless and sinless. Indeed, he is a
great devotee, a powerful servant of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore you will not be
able to kill him.
11. When the great saint Narada Muni had thus spoken, King Indra, being respectful to Narada's words,
immediately released my mother. Because of my being a devotee of the Lord, all the demigods
circumambulated her. Then they returned to their celestial kingdom.
12. Prahlada Maharaja continued: The great saint Narada Muni brought my mother to his asrama and
assured her of all protection, saying, "My dear child, please remain at my asrama until the arrival of your
husband."
13. After accepting the instructions of Devarsi Narada, my mother stayed in his care, without fear from
any direction, as long as my father, the King of the Daityas, had not become free from his severe
austerities.
14. My mother, being pregnant, desired the safety of her embryo and desired to give birth after her
husband's arrival. Thus she stayed at Narada Muni's asrama, where she rendered service unto Narada
Muni with great devotion.
15. Narada Muni delivered his instructions both to me, who was within the womb, and to my mother,
who was engaged in rendering him service. Because he is naturally extremely kind to the fallen souls,
being in a transcendental position, he gave instructions on religion and transcendental knowledge.
These instructions were free from all material contamination.
16. Because of the long duration of time that has passed and because of her being a woman and
therefore less intelligent, my mother has forgotten all those instructions; but the great sage Narada
blessed me, and therefore I could not forget them.
17. Prahlada Maharaja continued: My dear friends, if you can place your faith in my words, simply by
that faith you can also understand transcendental knowledge, just like me, although you are small
children. Similarly, a woman can also understand transcendental knowledge and know what is spirit and
what is matter.
18. Just as the fruits and flowers of a tree in due course of time undergo six changes--birth, existence,
growth, transformation, dwindling and then death--the material body, which is obtained by the spirit soul
332 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
under different circumstances, undergoes similar changes. However, there are no such changes for the
spirit soul.
19-20. Atma refers to the Supreme Lord or the living entities. Both of them are spiritual, free from birth
and death, free from deterioration and free from material contamination. They are individual, they are
the knowers of the external body, and they are the foundation or shelter of everything. They are free
from material change, they are self-illuminated, they are the cause of all causes, and they are all-
pervading. They have nothing to do with the material body, and therefore they are always uncovered.
With these transcendental qualities, one who is actually learned must give up the illusory conception of
life, in which one thinks, "I am this material body, and everything in relationship with this body is mine."
21. An expert geologist can understand where there is gold and by various processes can extract it
from the gold ore. Similarly, a spiritually advanced person can understand how the spiritual particle
exists within the body, and thus by cultivating spiritual knowledge he can attain perfection in spiritual life.
However, as one who is not expert cannot understand where there is gold, a foolish person who has not
cultivated spiritual knowledge cannot understand how the spirit exists within the body.
22. The Lord's eight separated material energies, the three modes of material nature and the sixteen
transformations [the eleven senses and the five gross material elements like earth and water]--within all
these, the one spiritual soul exists as the observer. Therefore all the great acaryas have concluded that
the individual soul is conditioned by these material elements.
23. There are two kinds of bodies for every individual soul--a gross body made of five gross elements
and a subtle body made of three subtle elements. Within these bodies, however, is the spirit soul. One
must find the soul by analysis, saying, "This is not it. This is not it." Thus one must separate spirit from
matter.
24. Sober and expert persons should search for the spirit soul with minds purified through analytical
study in terms of the soul's connection with and distinction from all things that undergo creation,
maintenance and destruction.
25. Intelligence can be perceived in three states of activity--wakefulness, dreaming and deep sleep. The
person who perceives these three is to be considered the original master, the ruler, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
26. As one can understand the presence of the air by the aromas it carries, so, under the guidance of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, one can understand the living soul by these three divisions of
intelligence. These three divisions, however, are not the soul; they are constituted of the three modes
and are born of activities.
27. Through polluted intelligence one is subjected to the modes of nature, and thus one is conditioned
by material existence. Like a dreaming state in which one falsely suffers, material existence, which is
due to ignorance, must be considered unwanted and temporary.
28. Therefore, my dear friends, O sons of the demons, your duty is to take to Krsna consciousness,
which can burn the seed of fruitive activities artificially created by the modes of material nature and stop
the flow of the intelligence in wakefulness, dreaming and deep sleep. In other words, when one takes to
Krsna consciousness, his ignorance is immediately dissipated.
29. Of the different processes recommended for disentanglement from material life, the one personally
explained and accepted by the Supreme Personality of Godhead should be considered all-perfect. That
process is the performance of duties by which love for the Supreme Lord develops.
30-31. One must accept the bona fide spiritual master and render service unto him with great devotion
and faith. Whatever one has in one's possession should be offered to the spiritual master, and in the
association of saintly persons and devotees one should worship the Lord, hear the glories of the Lord
with faith, glorify the transcendental qualities and activities of the Lord, always meditate on the Lord's
lotus feet, and worship the Deity of the Lord strictly according to the injunctions of the sastra and guru.
32. One should always remember the Supreme Personality of Godhead in His localized representation
as the Paramatma, who is situated in the core of every living entity's heart. Thus one should offer
respect to every living entity according to that living entity's position or manifestation.
33. By these activities [as mentioned above] one is able to cut down the influence of the enemies,
namely lust, anger, greed, illusion, madness and jealousy, and when thus situated, one can render
service to the Lord. In this way one surely attains the platform of loving service to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
34. One who is situated in devotional service is certainly the controller of his senses, and thus he is a
liberated person. When such a liberated person, the pure devotee, hears of the transcendental qualities
and activities of the Lord's incarnations for the performance of various pastimes, his hair stands on end
on his body, tears fall from his eyes, and in his spiritual realization his voice falters. Sometimes he very
openly dances, sometimes he sings loudly, and sometimes he cries. Thus he expresses his
transcendental jubilation.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 333
35. When a devotee becomes like a person haunted by a ghost, he laughs and very loudly chants about
the qualities of the Lord. Sometimes he sits to perform meditation, and he offers respects to every living
entity, considering him a devotee of the Lord. Constantly breathing very heavily, he becomes careless
of social etiquette and loudly chants like a madman, "Hare Krsna, Hare Krsna! O my Lord, O master of
the universe!"
36. The devotee is then freed from all material contamination because he constantly thinks of the Lord's
pastimes and because his mind and body have been converted to spiritual qualities. Because of his
intense devotional service, his ignorance, material consciousness and all kinds of material desires are
completely burnt to ashes. This is the stage at which one can achieve the shelter of the Lord's lotus
feet.
37. The real problem of life is the repetition of birth and death, which is like a wheel rolling repeatedly up
and down. This wheel, however, completely stops when one is in touch with the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. In other words, by the transcendental bliss realized from constant engagement in devotional
service, one is completely liberated from material existence. All learned men know this. Therefore, my
dear friends, O sons of the asuras, immediately begin meditating upon and worshiping the Supersoul
within everyone's heart.
38. O my friends, sons of the asuras, the Supreme Personality of Godhead in His Supersoul feature
always exists within the cores of the hearts of all living entities. Indeed, He is the well-wisher and friend
of all living entities, and there is no difficulty in worshiping the Lord. Why, then, should people not
engage in His devotional service? Why are they so addicted to unnecessarily producing artificial
paraphernalia for sense gratification?
39. One's riches, beautiful wife and female friends, one's sons and daughters, one's residence, one's
domestic animals like cows, elephants and horses, one's treasury, economic development and sense
gratification--indeed, even the lifetime in which one can enjoy all these material opulences--are certainly
temporary and flickering. Since the opportunity of human life is temporary, what benefit can these
material opulences give to a sensible man who has understood himself to be eternal?
40. It is learned from Vedic literature that by performing great sacrifices one may elevate himself to the
heavenly planets. However, although life on the heavenly planets is hundreds and thousands of times
more comfortable than life on earth, the heavenly planets are not pure [nirmalam], or free from the taint
of material existence. The heavenly planets are also temporary, and therefore they are not the goal of
life. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, however, has never been seen or heard to possess
inebriety. Consequently, for your own benefit and self-realization, you must worship the Lord with great
devotion, as described in the revealed scriptures.
41. A materialistic person, thinking himself very advanced in intelligence, continually acts for economic
development. But again and again, as enunciated in the Vedas, he is frustrated by material activities,
either in this life or in the next. Indeed, the results one obtains are inevitably the opposite of those one
desires.
42. In this material world, every materialist desires to achieve happiness and diminish his distress, and
therefore he acts accordingly. Actually, however, one is happy as long as one does not endeavor for
happiness; as soon as one begins his activities for happiness, his conditions of distress begin.
43. A living entity desires comfort for his body and makes many plans for this purpose, but actually the
body is the property of others. Indeed, the perishable body embraces the living entity and then leaves
him aside.
44. Since the body itself is ultimately meant to become stool or earth, what is the meaning of the
paraphernalia related to the body, such as wives, residences, wealth, children, relatives, servants,
friends, kingdoms, treasuries, animals and ministers? They are also temporary. What more can be said
about this?
45. All this paraphernalia is very near and dear as long as the body exists, but as soon as the body is
destroyed, all things related to the body are also finished. Therefore, actually one has nothing to do with
them, but because of ignorance one accepts them as valuable. Compared to the ocean of eternal
happiness, they are most insignificant. What is the use of such insignificant relationships for the eternal
living being?
46. My dear friends, O sons of the asuras, the living entity receives different types of bodies according
to his previous fruitive activities. Thus he is seen to suffer with reference to his particular body in all
conditions of life, beginning with his infusion into the womb. Please tell me, therefore, after full
consideration, what is the living entity's actual interest in fruitive activities, which result in hardship and
misery?
47. The living entity, who has received his present body because of his past fruitive activity, may end
the results of his actions in this life, but this does not mean that he is liberated from bondage to material
bodies. The living entity receives one type of body, and by performing actions with that body he creates
334 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
another. Thus he transmigrates from one body to another, through repeated birth and death, because of
his gross ignorance.
48. The four principles of advancement in spiritual life--dharma, artha, kama and moksa--all depend on
the disposition of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Therefore, my dear friends, follow in the
footsteps of devotees. Without desire, fully depend upon the disposition of the Supreme Lord, worship
Him, the Supersoul, in devotional service.
49. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, is the soul and the Supersoul of all living entities. Every
living entity is a manifestation of His energy in terms of the living soul and the material body. Therefore
the Lord is the most dear, and He is the supreme controller.
50. If a demigod, demon, human being, Yaksa, Gandharva or anyone within this universe renders
service to the lotus feet of Mukunda, who can deliver liberation, he is actually situated in the most
auspicious condition of life, exactly like us [the mahajanas, headed by Prahlada Maharaja].
51-52. My dear friends, O sons of the demons, you cannot please the Supreme Personality of Godhead
by becoming perfect brahmanas, demigods or great saints or by becoming perfectly good in etiquette or
vast learning. None of these qualifications can awaken the pleasure of the Lord. Nor by charity,
austerity, sacrifice, cleanliness or vows can one satisfy the Lord. The Lord is pleased only if one has
unflinching, unalloyed devotion to Him. Without sincere devotional service, everything is simply a show.
53. My dear friends, O sons of the demons, in the same favorable way that one sees himself and takes
care of himself, take to devotional service to satisfy the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is
present everywhere as the Supersoul of all living entities.
54. O my friends, O sons of demons, everyone, including you (the Yaksas and Raksasas), the
unintelligent women, sudras and cowherd men, the birds, the lower animals and the sinful living entities,
can revive his original, eternal spiritual life and exist forever simply by accepting the principles of bhakti-
yoga.
55. In this material world, to render service to the lotus feet of Govinda, the cause of all causes, and to
see Him everywhere, is the only goal of life. This much alone is the ultimate goal of human life, as
explained by all the revealed scriptures.
Chapter Eight Lord Nrsimhadeva Slays the King of the Demons
1. Narada Muni continued: All the sons of the demons appreciated the transcendental instructions of
Prahlada Maharaja and took them very seriously. They rejected the materialistic instructions given by
their teachers, Sanda and Amarka.
2. When Sanda and Amarka, the sons of Sukracarya, observed that all the students, the sons of the
demons, were becoming advanced in Krsna consciousness because of the association of Prahlada
Maharaja, they were afraid. They approached the King of the demons and described the situation as it
was.
3-4. When Hiranyakasipu understood the entire situation, he was extremely angry, so much so that his
body trembled. Thus he finally decided to kill his son Prahlada. Hiranyakasipu was by nature very cruel,
and feeling insulted, he began hissing like a snake trampled upon by someone's foot. His son Prahlada
was peaceful, mild and gentle, his senses were under control, and he stood before Hiranyakasipu with
folded hands. According to Prahlada's age and behavior, he was not to be chastised. Yet with staring,
crooked eyes, Hiranyakasipu rebuked him with the following harsh words.
5. Hiranyakasipu said: O most impudent, most unintelligent disruptor of the family, O lowest of mankind,
you have violated my power to rule you, and therefore you are an obstinate fool. Today I shall send you
to the place of Yamaraja.
6. My son Prahlada, you rascal, you know that when I am angry all the planets of the three worlds
tremble, along with their chief rulers. By whose power has a rascal like you become so impudent that
you appear fearless and overstep my power to rule you?
7. Prahlada Maharaja said: My dear King, the source of my strength, of which you are asking, is also
the source of yours. Indeed, the original source of all kinds of strength is one. He is not only your
strength or mine, but the only strength for everyone. Without Him, no one can get any strength.
Whether moving or not moving, superior or inferior, everyone, including Lord Brahma, is controlled by
the strength of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
8. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the supreme controller and time factor, is the power of
the senses, the power of the mind, the power of the body, and the vital force of the senses. His
influence is unlimited. He is the best of all living entities, the controller of the three modes of material
nature. By His own power, He creates this cosmic manifestation, maintains it and annihilates it also.
9. Prahlada Maharaja continued: My dear father, please give up your demoniac mentality. Do not
discriminate in your heart between enemies and friends; make your mind equipoised toward everyone.
Except for the uncontrolled and misguided mind, there is no enemy within this world. When one sees
everyone on the platform of equality, one then comes to the position of worshiping the Lord perfectly.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 335
10. In former times there were many fools like you who did not conquer the six enemies that steal away
the wealth of the body. These fools were very proud, thinking, "I have conquered all enemies in all the
ten directions." But if a person is victorious over the six enemies and is equipoised toward all living
entities, for him there are no enemies. Enemies are merely imagined by one in ignorance.
11. Hiranyakasipu replied: You rascal, you are trying to minimize my value, as if you were better than
me at controlling the senses. This is over-intelligent. I can therefore understand that you desire to die at
my hands, for this kind of nonsensical talk is indulged in by those about to die.
12. O most unfortunate Prahlada, you have always described a supreme being other than me, a
supreme being who is above everything, who is the controller of everyone, and who is all-pervading. But
where is He? If He is everywhere, then why is He not present before me in this pillar?
13. Because you are speaking so much nonsense, I shall now sever your head from your body. Now let
me see your most worshipable God come to protect you. I want to see it.
14. Being obsessed with anger, Hiranyakasipu, who was very great in bodily strength, thus chastised
his exalted devotee-son Prahlada with harsh words. Cursing him again and again, Hiranyakasipu took
up his sword, got up from his royal throne, and with great anger struck his fist against the column.
15. Then from within the pillar came a fearful sound, which appeared to crack the covering of the
universe. O my dear Yudhisthira, this sound reached even the abodes of the demigods like Lord
Brahma, and when the demigods heard it, they thought, "Oh, now our planets are being destroyed!"
16. While showing his extraordinary prowess, Hiranyakasipu, who desired to kill his own son, heard that
wonderful, tumultuous sound, which had never before been heard. Upon hearing the sound, the other
leaders of the demons were afraid. None of them could find the origin of that sound in the assembly.
17. To prove that the statement of His servant Prahlada Maharaja was substantial--in other words, to
prove that the Supreme Lord is present everywhere, even within the pillar of an assembly hall--the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, exhibited a wonderful form never before seen. The form was
neither that of a man nor that of a lion. Thus the Lord appeared in His wonderful form in the assembly
hall.
18. While Hiranyakasipu looked all around to find the source of the sound, that wonderful form of the
Lord, which could not be ascertained to be either a man or a lion, emerged from the pillar. In
amazement, Hiranyakasipu wondered, "What is this creature that is half man and half lion?"
19-22. Hiranyakasipu studied the form of the Lord, trying to decide who the form of Nrsimhadeva
standing before him was. The Lord's form was extremely fearsome because of His angry eyes, which
resembled molten gold; His shining mane, which expanded the dimensions of His fearful face; His
deadly teeth; and His razor-sharp tongue, which moved about like a dueling sword. His ears were erect
and motionless, and His nostrils and gaping mouth appeared like caves of a mountain. His jaws parted
fearfully, and His entire body touched the sky. His neck was very short and thick, His chest broad, His
waist thin, and the hairs on His body as white as the rays of the moon. His arms, which resembled
flanks of soldiers, spread in all directions as He killed the demons, rogues and atheists with His
conchshell, disc, club, lotus and other natural weapons.
23. Hiranyakasipu murmured to himself, "Lord Visnu, who possesses great mystic power, has made
this plan to kill me, but what is the use of such an attempt? Who can fight with me?" Thinking like this
and taking up his club, Hiranyakasipu attacked the Lord like an elephant.
24. Just as a small insect falls forcefully into a fire and the insignificant creature becomes invisible,
when Hiranyakasipu attacked the Lord, who was full of effulgence, Hiranyakasipu became invisible.
This is not at all astonishing, for the Lord is always situated in pure goodness. Formerly, during creation,
He entered the dark universe and illuminated it by His spiritual effulgence.
25. Thereafter, the great demon Hiranyakasipu, who was extremely angry, swiftly attacked
Nrsimhadeva with his club and began to beat Him. Lord Nrsimhadeva, however, captured the great
demon, along with his club, just as Garuda might capture a great snake.
26. O Yudhisthira, O great son of Bharata, when Lord Nrsimhadeva gave Hiranyakasipu a chance to
slip from His hand, just as Garuda sometimes plays with a snake and lets it slip from his mouth, the
demigods, who had lost their abodes and who were hiding behind the clouds for fear of the demon, did
not consider that incident very good. Indeed, they were perturbed.
27. When Hiranyakasipu was freed from the hands of Nrsimhadeva, he falsely thought that the Lord
was afraid of his prowess. Therefore, after taking a little rest from the fight, he took up his sword and
shield and again attacked the Lord with great force.
28. Making a loud, shrill sound of laughter, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, who is
extremely strong and powerful, captured Hiranyakasipu, who was protecting himself with his sword and
shield, leaving no gaps open. With the speed of a hawk, Hiranyakasipu moved sometimes in the sky
and sometimes on the earth, his eyes closed because of fear of Nrsimhadeva's laughter.
336 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
29. As a snake captures a mouse or Garuda captures a very venomous snake, Lord Nrsimhadeva
captured Hiranyakasipu, who could not be pierced even by the thunderbolt of King Indra. As
Hiranyakasipu moved his limbs here, there and all around, very much afflicted at being captured, Lord
Nrsimhadeva placed the demon on His lap, supporting him with His thighs, and in the doorway of the
assembly hall the Lord very easily tore the demon to pieces with the nails of His hand.
30. Lord Nrsimhadeva's mouth and mane were sprinkled with drops of blood, and His fierce eyes, full of
anger, were impossible to look at. Licking the edge of His mouth with His tongue, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Nrsimhadeva, decorated with a garland of intestines taken from
Hiranyakasipu's abdomen, resembled a lion that has just killed an elephant.
31. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who had many, many arms, first uprooted Hiranyakasipu's
heart and then threw him aside and turned toward the demon's soldiers. These soldiers had come in
thousands to fight with Him with raised weapons and were very faithful followers of Hiranyakasipu, but
Lord Nrsimhadeva killed all of them merely with the ends of His nails.
32. The hair on Nrsimhadeva's head shook the clouds and scattered them here and there, His glaring
eyes stole the effulgence of the luminaries in the sky, and His breathing agitated the seas and oceans.
Because of His roaring, all the elephants in the world began to cry in fear.
33. Airplanes were thrown into outer space and the upper planetary system by the hair on
Nrsimhadeva's head. Because of the pressure of the Lord's lotus feet, the earth appeared to slip from
its position, and all the hills and mountains sprang up due to His intolerable force. Because of the Lord's
bodily effulgence, both the sky and all directions diminished in their natural illumination.
34. Manifesting a full effulgence and a fearsome countenance, Lord Nrsimha, being very angry and
finding no contestant to face His power and opulence, then sat down in the assembly hall on the
excellent throne of the king. Because of fear and obedience, no one could come forward to serve the
Lord directly.
35. Hiranyakasipu had been exactly like a fever of meningitis in the head of the three worlds. Thus
when the wives of the demigods in the heavenly planets saw that the great demon had been killed by
the personal hands of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, their faces blossomed in great joy. The
wives of the demigods again and again showered flowers from heaven upon Lord Nrsimhadeva like
rain.
36. At that time, the airplanes of the demigods, who desired to see the activities of the Supreme Lord,
Narayana, crowded the sky. The demigods began beating drums and kettledrums, and upon hearing
them the angelic women began to dance, while the chiefs of the Gandharvas sang sweetly.
37-39. My dear King Yudhisthira, the demigods then approached the Lord. They were headed by Lord
Brahma, King Indra and Lord Siva and included great saintly persons and the residents of Pitrloka,
Siddhaloka, Vidyadhara-loka and the planet of the snakes. The Manus approached, and so did the
chiefs of various other planets. The angelic dancers approached, as did the Gandharvas, the Caranas,
the Yaksas, the inhabitants of Kinnaraloka, the Vetalas, the inhabitants of Kimpurusa-loka, and the
personal servants of Visnu like Sunanda and Kumuda. All of them came near the Lord, who glowed with
intense light. They individually offered their obeisances and prayers, their hands folded at their heads.
40. Lord Brahma prayed: My Lord, You are unlimited, and You possess unending potencies. No one
can estimate or calculate Your prowess and wonderful influence, for Your actions are never polluted by
the material energy. Through the material qualities, You very easily create the universe, maintain it and
again annihilate it, yet You remain the same, without deterioration. I therefore offer my respectful
obeisances unto You.
41. Lord Siva said: The end of the millennium is the time for Your anger. Now that this insignificant
demon Hiranyakasipu has been killed, O my Lord, who are naturally affectionate to Your devotee, kindly
protect his son Prahlada Maharaja, who is standing nearby as Your fully surrendered devotee.
42. King Indra said: O Supreme Lord, You are our deliverer and protector. Our shares of sacrifices,
which are actually Yours, have been recovered from the demon by You. Because the demoniac king
Hiranyakasipu was most fearsome, our hearts, which are Your permanent abode, were all overtaken by
him. Now, by Your presence, the gloom and darkness in our hearts have been dissipated. O Lord, for
those who always engage in Your service, which is more exalted than liberation, all material opulence is
insignificant. They do not even care for liberation, not to speak of the benefits of kama, artha and
dharma.
43. All the saintly persons present offered their prayers in this way: O Lord, O supreme maintainer of
those sheltered at Your lotus feet, O original Personality of Godhead, the process of austerity and
penance, in which You instructed us before, is the spiritual power of Your very self. It is by austerity that
You create the material world, which lies dormant within You. This austerity was almost stopped by the
activities of this demon, but now, by Yourself appearing in the form of Nrsimhadeva, which is meant just
to give us protection, and by killing this demon, You have again approved the process of austerity.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 337
44. The inhabitants of Pitrloka prayed: Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto Lord Nrsimhadeva,
the maintainer of the religious principles of the universe. He has killed Hiranyakasipu, the demon who
by force enjoyed all the offerings of the sraddha ceremonies performed by our sons and grandsons on
the anniversaries of our death and who drank the water with sesame seeds offered in holy places of
pilgrimage. By killing this demon, O Lord, You have taken back all this stolen property from his
abdomen by piercing it with Your nails. We therefore wish to offer our respectful obeisances unto You.
45. The inhabitants of Siddhaloka prayed: O Lord Nrsimhadeva, because we belong to Siddhaloka, we
automatically achieve perfection in all eight kinds of mystic power. Yet Hiranyakasipu was so dishonest
that by the strength of his power and austerity, he took away our powers. Thus he became very proud
of his mystic strength. Now, because this rogue has been killed by Your nails, we offer our respectful
obeisances unto You.
46. The inhabitants of Vidyadhara-loka prayed: Our acquired power to appear and disappear in various
ways according to varieties of meditation was banned by that foolish Hiranyakasipu because of his
pride in his superior bodily strength and his ability to conquer others. Now the Supreme Personality of
Godhead has killed him just as if the demon were an animal. Unto that supreme pastime form of Lord
Nrsimhadeva, we eternally offer our respectful obeisances.
47. The inhabitants of Nagaloka said: The most sinful Hiranyakasipu took away all the jewels on our
hoods and all our beautiful wives. Now, since his chest has been pierced by Your nails, You are the
source of all pleasure to our wives. Thus we together offer our respectful obeisances unto You.
48. All the Manus offered their prayers as follows: As Your order carriers, O Lord, we, the Manus, are
the law-givers for human society, but because of the temporary supremacy of this great demon,
Hiranyakasipu, our laws for maintaining varnasrama-dharma were destroyed. O Lord, now that You
have killed this great demon, we are in our normal condition. Kindly order us, Your eternal servants,
what to do now.
49. The prajapatis offered their prayers as follows: O Supreme Lord, Lord of even Brahma and Siva,
we, the prajapatis, were created by You to execute Your orders, but we were forbidden by
Hiranyakasipu to create any more good progeny. Now the demon is lying dead before us, his chest
pierced by You. Let us therefore offer our respectful obeisances unto You, whose incarnation in this
form of pure goodness is meant for the welfare of the entire universe.
50. The inhabitants of Gandharvaloka prayed: Your Lordship, we ever engage in Your service by
dancing and singing in dramatic performances, but this Hiranyakasipu, by the influence of his bodily
strength and valor, brought us under his subjugation. Now he has been brought to this low condition by
Your Lordship. What benefit can result from the activities of such an upstart as Hiranyakasipu?
51. The inhabitants of the Carana planet said: O Lord, because You have destroyed the demon
Hiranyakasipu, who was always a stake in the hearts of all honest men, we are now relieved, and we
eternally take shelter of Your lotus feet, which award the conditioned soul liberation from materialistic
contamination.
52. The inhabitants of Yaksaloka prayed: O controller of the twenty-four elements, we are considered
the best servants of Your Lordship because of rendering services pleasing to You, yet we engaged as
palanquin carriers by the order of Hiranyakasipu, the son of Diti. O Lord in the form of Nrsimhadeva,
You know how this demon gave trouble to everyone, but now You have killed him, and his body is
mixing with the five material elements.
53. The inhabitants of Kimpurusa-loka said: We are insignificant living entities, and You are the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, the supreme controller. Therefore how can we offer suitable prayers
unto You? When this demon was condemned by devotees because they were disgusted with him, he
was then killed by You.
54. The inhabitants of Vaitalika-loka said: Dear Lord, because of chanting Your spotless glories in great
assemblies and arenas of sacrifice, we were accustomed to great respect from everyone. This demon,
however, usurped that position. Now, to our great fortune, You have killed this great demon, exactly as
one cures a chronic disease.
55. The Kinnaras said: O supreme controller, we are ever-existing servants of Your Lordship, but
instead of rendering service to You, we were engaged by this demon in his service, constantly and
without remuneration. This sinful man has now been killed by You. Therefore, O Lord Nrsimhadeva, our
master, we offer our respectful obeisances unto You. Please continue to be our patron.
56. The associates of Lord Visnu in Vaikuntha offered this prayer: O Lord, our supreme giver of shelter,
today we have seen Your wonderful form as Lord Nrsimhadeva, meant for the good fortune of all the
world. O Lord, we can understand that Hiranyakasipu was the same Jaya who engaged in Your service
but was cursed by brahmanas and who thus received the body of a demon. We understand that his
having now been killed is Your special mercy upon him.
338 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Nine Prahlada Pacifies Lord Nrsimhadeva with Prayers
1. The great saint Narada Muni continued: The demigods, headed by Lord Brahma, Lord Siva and other
great demigods, dared not come forward before the Lord, who at that time was extremely angry.
2. The goddess of fortune, Laksmiji, was requested to go before the Lord by all the demigods present,
who because of fear could not do so. But even she had never seen such a wonderful and extraordinary
form of the Lord, and thus she could not approach Him.
3. Thereafter Lord Brahma requested Prahlada Maharaja, who was standing very near him: My dear
son, Lord Nrsimhadeva is extremely angry at your demoniac father. Please go forward and appease the
Lord.
4. Narada Muni continued: O King, although the exalted devotee Prahlada Maharaja was only a little
boy, he accepted Lord Brahma's words. He gradually proceeded toward Lord Nrsimhadeva and fell
down to offer his respectful obeisances with folded hands.
5. When Lord Nrsimhadeva saw the small boy Prahlada Maharaja prostrated at the soles of His lotus
feet, He became most ecstatic in affection toward His devotee. Raising Prahlada, the Lord placed His
lotus hand upon the boy's head because His hand is always ready to create fearlessness in all of His
devotees.
6. By the touch of Lord Nrsimhadeva's hand on Prahlada Maharaja's head, Prahlada was completely
freed of all material contaminations and desires, as if he had been thoroughly cleansed. Therefore he at
once became transcendentally situated, and all the symptoms of ecstasy became manifest in his body.
His heart filled with love, and his eyes with tears, and thus he was able to completely capture the lotus
feet of the Lord within the core of his heart.
7. Prahlada Maharaja fixed his mind and sight upon Lord Nrsimhadeva with full attention in complete
trance. With a fixed mind, he began to offer prayers in love with a faltering voice.
8. Prahlada Maharaja prayed: How is it possible for me, who have been born in a family of asuras, to
offer suitable prayers to satisfy the Supreme Personality of Godhead? Even until now, all the demigods,
headed by Lord Brahma, and all the saintly persons, could not satisfy the Lord by streams of excellent
words, although such persons are very qualified, being in the mode of goodness. Then what is to be
said of me? I am not at all qualified.
9. Prahlada Maharaja continued: One may possess wealth, an aristocratic family, beauty, austerity,
education, sensory expertise, luster, influence, physical strength, diligence, intelligence and mystic
yogic power, but I think that even by all these qualifications one cannot satisfy the Supreme Personality
of Godhead. However, one can satisfy the Lord simply by devotional service. Gajendra did this, and
thus the Lord was satisfied with him.
10. If a brahmana has all twelve of the brahminical qualifications [as they are stated in the book called
Sanat-sujata] but is not a devotee and is averse to the lotus feet of the Lord, he is certainly lower than a
devotee who is a dog-eater but who has dedicated everything--mind, words, activities, wealth and life--
to the Supreme Lord. Such a devotee is better than such a brahmana because the devotee can purify
his whole family, whereas the so-called brahmana in a position of false prestige cannot purify even
himself.
11. The Supreme Lord, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is always fully satisfied in Himself.
Therefore when something is offered to Him, the offering, by the Lord's mercy, is for the benefit of the
devotee, for the Lord does not need service from anyone. To give an example, if one's face is
decorated, the reflection of one's face in a mirror is also seen to be decorated.
12. Therefore, although I was born in a demoniac family, I may without a doubt offer prayers to the Lord
with full endeavor, as far as my intelligence allows. Anyone who has been forced by ignorance to enter
the material world may be purified of material life if he offers prayers to the Lord and hears the Lord's
glories.
13. O my Lord, all the demigods, headed by Lord Brahma, are sincere servants of Your Lordship, who
are situated in a transcendental position. Therefore they are not like us [Prahlada and his father, the
demon Hiranyakasipu]. Your appearance in this fearsome form is Your pastime for Your own pleasure.
Such an incarnation is always meant for the protection and improvement of the universe.
14. My Lord Nrsimhadeva, please, therefore, cease Your anger now that my father, the great demon
Hiranyakasipu, has been killed. Since even saintly persons take pleasure in the killing of a scorpion or a
snake, all the worlds have achieved great satisfaction because of the death of this demon. Now they
are confident of their happiness, and they will always remember Your auspicious incarnation in order to
be free from fear.
15. My Lord, who are never conquered by anyone, I am certainly not afraid of Your ferocious mouth and
tongue, Your eyes bright like the sun or Your frowning eyebrows. I do not fear Your sharp, pinching
teeth, Your garland of intestines, Your mane soaked with blood, or Your high, wedgelike ears. Nor do I
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 339
fear Your tumultuous roaring, which makes elephants flee to distant places, or Your nails, which are
meant to kill Your enemies.
16. O most powerful, insurmountable Lord, who are kind to the fallen souls, I have been put into the
association of demons as a result of my activities, and therefore I am very much afraid of my condition
of life within this material world. When will that moment come when You will call me to the shelter of
Your lotus feet, which are the ultimate goal for liberation from conditional life?
17. O great one, O Supreme Lord, because of combination with pleasing and displeasing
circumstances and because of separation from them, one is placed in a most regrettable position, within
heavenly or hellish planets, as if burning in a fire of lamentation. Although there are many remedies by
which to get out of miserable life, any such remedies in the material world are more miserable than the
miseries themselves. Therefore I think that the only remedy is to engage in Your service. Kindly instruct
me in such service.
18. O my Lord Nrsimhadeva, by engaging in Your transcendental loving service in the association of
devotees who are liberated souls [hamsas], I shall become completely uncontaminated by the
association of the three modes of material nature and be able to chant the glories of Your Lordship, who
are so dear to me. I shall chant Your glories, following exactly in the footsteps of Lord Brahma and his
disciplic succession. In this way I shall undoubtedly be able to cross the ocean of nescience.
19. My Lord Nrsimhadeva, O Supreme, because of a bodily conception of life, embodied souls
neglected and not cared for by You cannot do anything for their betterment. Whatever remedies they
accept, although perhaps temporarily beneficial, are certainly impermanent. For example, a father and
mother cannot protect their child, a physician and medicine cannot relieve a suffering patient, and a
boat on the ocean cannot protect a drowning man.
20. My dear Lord, everyone in this material world is under the modes of material nature, being
influenced by goodness, passion and ignorance. Everyone--from the greatest personality, Lord Brahma,
down to the small ant--works under the influence of these modes. Therefore everyone in this material
world is influenced by Your energy. The cause for which they work, the place where they work, the time
when they work, the matter due to which they work, the goal of life they have considered final, and the
process for obtaining this goal--all are nothing but manifestations of Your energy. Indeed, since the
energy and energetic are identical, all of them are but manifestations of You.
21. O Lord, O supreme eternal, by expanding Your plenary portion You have created the subtle bodies
of the living entities through the agency of Your external energy, which is agitated by time. Thus the
mind entraps the living entity in unlimited varieties of desires to be fulfilled by the Vedic directions of
karma-kanda [fruitive activity] and the sixteen elements. Who can get free from this entanglement
unless he takes shelter at Your lotus feet?
22. My dear Lord, O supreme great, You have created this material world of sixteen constituents, but
You are transcendental to their material qualities. In other words, these material qualities are under
Your full control, and You are never conquered by them. Therefore the time element is Your
representation. My Lord, O Supreme, no one can conquer You. As for me, however, I am being crushed
by the wheel of time, and therefore I surrender fully unto You. Now kindly take me under the protection
of Your lotus feet.
23. My dear Lord, people in general want to be elevated to the higher planetary systems for a long
duration of life, opulence and enjoyment, but I have seen all of these through the activities of my father.
When my father was angry and he laughed sarcastically at the demigods, they were immediately
vanquished simply by seeing the movements of his eyebrows. Yet my father, who was so powerful, has
now been vanquished by You within a moment.
24. My dear Lord, now I have complete experience concerning the worldly opulence, mystic power,
longevity and other material pleasures enjoyed by all living entities, from Lord Brahma down to the ant.
As powerful time, You destroy them all. Therefore, because of my experience, I do not wish to possess
them. My dear Lord, I request You to place me in touch with Your pure devotee and let me serve him as
a sincere servant.
25. In this material world, every living entity desires some future happiness, which is exactly like a
mirage in the desert. Where is water in the desert, or, in other words, where is happiness in this material
world? As for this body, what is its value? It is merely a source of various diseases. The so-called
philosophers, scientists and politicians know this very well, but nonetheless they aspire for temporary
happiness. Happiness is very difficult to obtain, but because they are unable to control their senses,
they run after the so-called happiness of the material world and never come to the right conclusion.
26. O my Lord, O Supreme, because I was born in a family full of the hellish material qualities of
passion and ignorance, what is my position? And what is to be said of Your causeless mercy, which
was never offered even to Lord Brahma, Lord Siva or the goddess of fortune, Laksmi? You never put
Your lotus hand upon their heads, but You have put it upon mine.
340 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
27. Unlike an ordinary living entity, my Lord, You do not discriminate between friends and enemies, the
favorable and the unfavorable, because for You there is no conception of higher and lower.
Nonetheless, You offer Your benedictions according to the level of one's service, exactly as a desire
tree delivers fruits according to one's desires and makes no distinction between the lower and the
higher.
28. My dear Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, because of my association with material
desires, one after another, I was gradually falling into a blind well full of snakes, following the general
populace. But Your servant Narada Muni kindly accepted me as his disciple and instructed me how to
achieve this transcendental position. Therefore, my first duty is to serve him. Mow could I leave his
service?
29. My Lord, O unlimited reservoir of transcendental qualities, You have killed my father, Hiranyakasipu,
and saved me from his sword. He had said very angrily, "If there is any supreme controller other than
me, let Him save you. I shall now sever your head from your body." Therefore I think that both in saving
me and in killing him, You have acted just to prove true the words of Your devotee. There is no other
cause.
30. My dear Lord, You alone manifest Yourself as the entire cosmic manifestation, for You existed
before the creation, You exist after the annihilation, and You are the maintainer between the beginning
and the end. All this is done by Your external energy through actions and reactions of the three modes
of material nature. Therefore whatever exists--externally and internally--is You alone.
31. My dear Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, the entire cosmic creation is caused by You,
and the cosmic manifestation is an effect of Your energy. Although the entire cosmos is but You alone,
You keep Yourself aloof from it. The conception of "mine and yours," is certainly a type of illusion
[maya] because everything is an emanation from You and is therefore not different from You. Indeed,
the cosmic manifestation is nondifferent from You, and the annihilation is also caused by You. This
relationship between Your Lordship and the cosmos is illustrated by the example of the seed and the
tree, or the subtle cause and the gross manifestation.
32. O my Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, after the annihilation the creative energy is kept in
You, who appear to sleep with half-closed eyes. Actually, however, You do not sleep like an ordinary
human being, for You are always in a transcendental stage, beyond the creation of the material world,
and You always feel transcendental bliss. As Karanodakasayi Visnu, You thus remain in Your
transcendental status, not touching material objects. Although You appear to sleep, this sleeping is
distinct from sleeping in ignorance.
33. This cosmic manifestation, the material world, is also Your body. This total lump of matter is agitated
by Your potent energy known as kala-sakti, and thus the three modes of material nature are
manifested. You awaken from the bed of Sesa, Ananta, and from Your navel a small transcendental
seed is generated. It is from this seed that the lotus flower of the gigantic universe is manifested, exactly
as a banyan tree grows from a small seed.
34. From that great lotus flower, Brahma was generated, but Brahma certainly could see nothing but the
lotus. Therefore, thinking You to be outside, Lord Brahma dove into the water and attempted to find the
source of the lotus for one hundred years. He could find no trace of You, however, for when a seed
fructifies, the original seed cannot be seen.
35. Lord Brahma, who is celebrated as atma-yoni, having been born without a mother, was struck with
wonder. Thus he took shelter of the lotus flower, and when he had been purified after undergoing
severe austerities for many hundreds of years, he could see that the cause of all causes, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, was spread throughout his own body and senses, just as aroma, although very
subtle, is perceived in the earth.
36. Lord Brahma could then see You possessing thousands and thousands of faces, feet, heads,
hands, thighs, noses, ears and eyes. You were very nicely dressed, being decorated and bedecked
with varieties of ornaments and weapons. Seeing You in the form of Lord Visnu, Your symptoms and
form being transcendental, Your legs extending from the lower planets, Lord Brahma achieved
transcendental bliss.
37. My dear Lord, when You appeared as Hayagriva, with the head of a horse, You killed two demons
known as Madhu and Kaitabha, who were full of the modes of passion and ignorance. Then You
delivered the Vedic knowledge to Lord Brahma. For this reason, all the great saints accept Your forms
as transcendental, untinged by material qualities.
38. In this way, my Lord, You appear in various incarnations as a human being, an animal, a great saint,
a demigod, a fish or a tortoise, thus maintaining the entire creation in different planetary systems and
killing the demoniac principles. According to the age, O my Lord, You protect the principles of religion.
In the age of Kali, however, You do not assert Yourself as the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and
therefore You are known as Triyuga, or the Lord who appears in three yugas.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 341
39. My dear Lord of the Vaikuntha planets, where there is no anxiety, my mind is extremely sinful and
lusty, being sometimes so-called happy and sometimes so-called distressed. My mind is full of
lamentation and fear, and it always seeks more and more money. Thus it has become most polluted
and is never satisfied in topics concerning You. I am therefore most fallen and poor. In such a status of
life, how shall I be able to discuss Your activities?
40. My dear Lord, O infallible one, my position is like that of a person who has many wives, all trying to
attract him in their own way. For example, the tongue is attracted to palatable dishes, the genitals to sex
with an attractive woman, and the sense of touch to contact with soft things. The belly, although filled,
still wants to eat more, and the ear, not attempting to hear about You, is generally attracted to cinema
songs. The sense of smell is attracted to yet another side, the restless eyes are attracted to scenes of
sense gratification, and the active senses are attracted elsewhere. In this way I am certainly
embarrassed.
41. My dear Lord, You are always transcendentally situated on the other side of the river of death, but
because of the reactions of our own activities, we are suffering on this side. Indeed, we have fallen into
this river and are repeatedly suffering the pains of birth and death and eating horrible things. Now kindly
look upon us--not only upon me but also upon all others who are suffering--and by Your causeless
mercy and compassion, deliver us and maintain us.
42. O my Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, original spiritual master of the entire world, what is
the difficulty for You, who manage the affairs of the universe, in delivering the fallen souls engaged in
Your devotional service? You are the friend of all suffering humanity, and for great personalities it is
necessary to show mercy to the foolish. Therefore I think that You will show Your causeless mercy to
persons like us, who engage in Your service.
43. O best of the great personalities, I am not at all afraid of material existence, for wherever I stay I am
fully absorbed in thoughts of Your glories and activities. My concern is only for the fools and rascals
who are making elaborate plans for material happiness and maintaining their families, societies and
countries. I am simply concerned with love for them.
44. My dear Lord Nrsimhadeva, I see that there are many saintly persons indeed, but they are
interested only in their own deliverance. Not caring for the big cities and towns, they go to the
Himalayas or the forest to meditate with vows of silence [mauna-vrata]. They are not interested in
delivering others. As for me, however, I do not wish to be liberated alone, leaving aside all these poor
fools and rascals. I know that without Krsna consciousness, without taking shelter of Your lotus feet,
one cannot be happy. Therefore I wish to bring them back to shelter at Your lotus feet.
45. Sex life is compared to the rubbing of two hands to relieve an itch. Grhamedhis, so-called grhasthas
who have no spiritual knowledge, think that this itching is the greatest platform of happiness, although
actually it is a source of distress. The krpanas, the fools who are just the opposite of brahmanas, are
not satisfied by repeated sensuous enjoyment. Those who are dhira, however, who are sober and who
tolerate this itching, are not subjected to the sufferings of fools and rascals.
46. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, there are ten prescribed methods on the path to liberation--to
remain silent, not to speak to anyone, to observe vows, to amass all kinds of Vedic knowledge, to
undergo austerities, to study the Vedas and other Vedic literatures, to execute the duties of
varnasrama-dharma, to explain the sastras, to stay in a solitary place, to chant mantras silently, and to
be absorbed in trance. These different methods for liberation are generally only a professional practice
and means of livelihood for those who have not conquered their senses. Because such persons are
falsely proud, these procedures may not be successful.
47. By authorized Vedic knowledge one can see that the forms of cause and effect in the cosmic
manifestation belong to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, for the cosmic manifestation is His
energy. Both cause and effect are nothing but energies of the Lord. Therefore, O my Lord, just as a
wise man, by considering cause and effect, can see how fire pervades wood, those engaged in
devotional service understand how You are both the cause and effect.
48. O Supreme Lord, You are actually the air, the earth, fire, sky and water. You are the objects of
sense perception, the life airs, the five senses, the mind, consciousness and false ego. Indeed, You are
everything, subtle and gross. The material elements and anything expressed, either by the words or by
the mind, are nothing but You.
49. Neither the three modes of material nature [sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna], nor the
predominating deities controlling these three modes, nor the five gross elements, nor the mind, nor the
demigods nor the human beings can understand Your Lordship, for they are all subjected to birth and
annihilation. Considering this, the spiritually advanced have taken to devotional service. Such wise men
hardly bother with Vedic study. Instead, they engage themselves in practical devotional service.
50. Therefore, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, the best of all persons to whom prayers are offered,
I offer my respectful obeisances unto You because without rendering six kinds of devotional service
342 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
unto You--offering prayers, dedicating all the results of activities, worshiping You, working on Your
behalf, always remembering Your lotus feet and hearing about Your glories--who can achieve that
which is meant for the paramahamsas?
51. The great saint Narada said: Thus Lord Nrsimhadeva was pacified by the devotee Prahlada
Maharaja with prayers offered from the transcendental platform. The Lord gave up His anger, and being
very kind to Prahlada, who was offering prostrated obeisances, He spoke as follows.
52. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Prahlada, most gentle one, best of the family of
the asuras, all good fortune unto you. I am very much pleased with you. It is My pastime to fulfill the
desires of all living beings, and therefore you may ask from Me any benediction that you desire to be
fulfilled.
53. My dear Prahlada, may you live a long time. One cannot appreciate or understand Me without
pleasing Me, but one who has seen or pleased Me has nothing more for which to lament for his own
satisfaction.
54. My dear Prahlada, you are very fortunate. Please know from Me that those who are very wise and
highly elevated try to please Me in all different modes of mellows, for I am the only person who can fulfill
all the desires of everyone.
55. Narada Muni said: Prahlada Maharaja was the best person in the family of asuras, who always
aspire for material happiness. Nonetheless, although allured by the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who offered him all benedictions for material happiness, because of his unalloyed Krsna consciousness
he did not want to take any material benefit for sense gratification.
Chapter Ten Prahlada, the Best Among Exalted Devotees
1. The saint Narada Muni continued: Although Prahlada Maharaja was only a boy, when he heard the
benedictions offered by Lord Nrsimhadeva he considered them impediments on the path of devotional
service. Thus he smiled very mildly and spoke as follows.
2. Prahlada Maharaja said: My dear Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, because I was born in
an atheistic family I am naturally attached to material enjoyment. Therefore, kindly do not tempt me with
these illusions. I am very much afraid of material conditions, and I desire to be liberated from
materialistic life. It is for this reason that I have taken shelter of Your lotus feet.
3. O my worshipable Lord, because the seed of lusty desires, which is the root cause of material
existence, is within the core of everyone's heart, You have sent me to this material world to exhibit the
symptoms of a pure devotee.
4. Otherwise, O my Lord, O supreme instructor of the entire world, You are so kind to Your devotee that
You could not induce him to do something unbeneficial for him. On the other hand, one who desires
some material benefit in exchange for devotional service cannot be Your pure devotee. Indeed, he is no
better than a merchant who wants profit in exchange for service.
5. A servant who desires material profits from his master is certainly not a qualified servant or pure
devotee. Similarly, a master who bestows benedictions upon his servant because of a desire to
maintain a prestigious position as master is also not a pure master.
6. O my Lord, I am Your unmotivated servant, and You are my eternal master. There is no need of our
being anything other than master and servant. You are naturally my master, and I am naturally Your
servant. We have no other relationship.
7. O my Lord, best of the givers of benediction, if You at all want to bestow a desirable benediction upon
me, then I pray from Your Lordship that within the core of my heart there be no material desires.
8. O my Lord, because of lusty desires from the very beginning of one's birth, the functions of one's
senses, mind, life, body, religion, patience, intelligence, shyness, opulence, strength, memory and
truthfulness are vanquished.
9. O my Lord, when a human being is able to give up all the material desires in his mind, he becomes
eligible to possess wealth and opulence like Yours.
10. O my Lord, full of six opulences, O Supreme Person! O Supreme Soul, killer of all miseries! O
Supreme Person in the form of a wonderful lion and man, let me offer my respectful obeisances unto
You.
11. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Prahlada, a devotee like you never desires any
kind of material opulences, either in this life or in the next. Nonetheless, I order you to enjoy the
opulences of the demons in this material world, acting as their king until the end of the duration of time
occupied by Manu.
12. It does not matter that you are in the material world. You should always, continuously, hear the
instructions and messages given by Me and always be absorbed in thought of Me, for I am the
Supersoul existing in the core of everyone's heart. Therefore, give up fruitive activities and worship Me.
13. My dear Prahlada, while you are in this material world you will exhaust all the reactions of pious
activity by feeling happiness, and by acting piously you will neutralize impious activity. Because of the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 343
powerful time factor, you will give up your body, but the glories of your activities will be sung in the
upper planetary systems, and being fully freed from all bondage, you will return home, back to
Godhead.
14. One who always remembers your activities and My activities also, and who chants the prayers you
have offered, becomes free, in due course of time, from the reactions of material activities.
15-17. Prahlada Maharaja said: O Supreme Lord, because You are so merciful to the fallen souls, I ask
You for only one benediction. I know that my father, at the time of his death, had already been purified
by Your glance upon him, but because of his ignorance of Your beautiful power and supremacy, he was
unnecessarily angry at You, falsely thinking that You were the killer of his brother. Thus he directly
blasphemed Your Lordship, the spiritual master of all living beings, and committed heavily sinful
activities directed against me, Your devotee. I wish that he be excused for these sinful activities.
18. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Prahlada, O most pure, O great saintly person,
your father has been purified, along with twenty-one forefathers in your family. Because you were born
in this family, the entire dynasty has been purified.
19. Whenever and wherever there are peaceful, equipoised devotees who are well behaved and
decorated with all good qualities, that place and the dynasties there, even if condemned, are purified.
20. My dear Prahlada, King of the Daityas, because of being attached to devotional service to Me, My
devotee does not distinguish between lower and higher living entities. In all respects, he is never
jealous of anyone.
21. Those who follow your example will naturally become My pure devotees. You are the best example
of My devotee, and others should follow in your footsteps.
22. My dear child, your father has already been purified just by the touch of My body at the time of his
death. Nonetheless, the duty of a son is to perform the sraddha ritualistic ceremony after his father's
death so that his father may be promoted to a planetary system where he may become a good citizen
and devotee.
23. After performing the ritualistic ceremonies, take charge of your father's kingdom. Sit upon the throne
and do not be disturbed by materialistic activities. Please keep your mind fixed upon Me. Without
transgressing the injunctions of the Vedas, as a matter of formality you may perform your particular
duties.
24. Sri Narada Muni continued: Thus, as the Supreme Personality of Godhead ordered, Prahlada
Maharaja performed the ritualistic ceremonies for his father. O King Yudhisthira, he was then enthroned
in the kingdom of Hiranyakasipu, as directed by the brahmanas.
25. Lord Brahma, surrounded by the other demigods, was bright-faced because the Lord was pleased.
Thus he offered prayers to the Lord with transcendental words.
26. Lord Brahma said: O Supreme Lord of all lords, proprietor of the entire universe, O benedictor of all
living entities, O original person [adi-purusa], because of our good fortune You have now killed this
sinful demon, who was giving trouble to the entire universe.
27. This demon, Hiranyakasipu, received from me the benediction that he would not be killed by any
living being within my creation. With this assurance and with strength derived from austerities and
mystic power, he became excessively proud and transgressed all the Vedic injunctions.
28. By great fortune, Hiranyakasipu's son Prahlada Maharaja has now been released from death, for
although he is a child, he is an exalted devotee. Now he is fully under the protection of Your lotus feet.
29. My dear Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, You are the Supreme Soul. If one meditates
upon Your transcendental body, You naturally protect him from all sources of fear, even the imminent
danger of death.
30. The Personality of Godhead replied: My dear Lord Brahma, O great lord born from the lotus flower,
just as it is dangerous to feed milk to a snake, so it is dangerous to give benedictions to demons, who
are by nature ferocious and jealous. I warn you not to give such benedictions to any demon again.
31. Narada Muni continued: O King Yudhisthira, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is not
visible to an ordinary human being, spoke in this way, instructing Lord Brahma. Then, being worshiped
by Brahma, the Lord disappeared from that place.
32. Prahlada Maharaja then worshiped and offered prayers to all the demigods, such as Brahma, Siva
and the Prajapatis, who are all parts of the Lord.
33. Thereafter, along with Sukracarya and other great saints, Lord Brahma, whose seat is on the lotus
flower, made Prahlada the king of all the demons and giants in the universe.
34. O King Yudhisthira, after all the demigods, headed by Lord Brahma, were properly worshiped by
Prahlada Maharaja, they offered Prahlada their utmost benedictions and then returned to their
respective abodes.
344 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
35. Thus the two associates of Lord Visnu who had become Hiranyaksa and Hiranyakasipu, the sons of
Diti, were both killed. By illusion they had thought that the Supreme Lord, who is situated in everyone's
heart, was their enemy.
36. Being cursed by the brahmanas, the same two associates took birth again as Kumbhakarna and the
ten-headed Ravana. These two Raksasas were killed by Lord Ramacandra's extraordinary power.
37. Pierced by the arrows of Lord Ramacandra, both Kumbhakarna and Ravana lay on the ground and
left their bodies, fully absorbed in thought of the Lord, just as they had in their previous births as
Hiranyaksa and Hiranyakasipu.
38. They both took birth again in human society as Sisupala and Dantavakra and continued in the same
enmity toward the Lord. It is they who merged into the body of the Lord in your presence.
39. Not only Sisupala and Dantavakra but also many, many other kings who acted as enemies of Krsna
attained salvation at the time of death. Because they thought of the Lord, they received spiritual bodies
and forms the same as His, just as worms captured by a black drone obtain the same type of body as
the drone.
40. By devotional service, pure devotees who incessantly think of the Supreme Personality of Godhead
receive bodies similar to His. This is known as sarupya-mukti. Although Sisupala, Dantavakra and other
kings thought of Krsna as an enemy, they also achieved the same result.
41. Everything you asked me about how Sisupala and others attained salvation although they were
inimical has now been explained to you by me.
42. In this narration about Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, various expansions or
incarnations of the Lord have been described, and the killing of the two demons Hiranyaksa and
Hiranyakasipu has also been described.
43-44. This narration describes the characteristics of the great and exalted devotee Prahlada Maharaja,
his staunch devotional service, his perfect knowledge, and his perfect detachment from material
contamination. It also describes the Supreme Personality of Godhead as the cause of creation,
maintenance and annihilation. Prahlada Maharaja, in his prayers, has described the transcendental
qualities of the Lord and has also described how the various abodes of the demigods and demons,
regardless of how materially opulent, are destroyed by the mere direction of the Lord.
45. The principles of religion by which one can actually understand the Supreme Personality of
Godhead are called bhagavata-dharma. In this narration, therefore, which deals with these principles,
actual transcendence is properly described.
46. One who hears and chants this narration about the omnipotence of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Visnu, is certainly liberated from material bondage without fail.
47. Prahlada Maharaja was the best among exalted devotees. Anyone who with great attention hears
this narration concerning the activities of Prahlada Maharaja, the killing of Hiranyakasipu, and the
activities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Nrsimhadeva, surely reaches the spiritual world,
where there is no anxiety.
48. Narada Muni continued: My dear Maharaja Yudhisthira, all of you [the Pandavas] are extremely
fortunate, for the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, lives in your palace just like a human being.
Great saintly persons know this very well, and therefore they constantly visit this house.
49. The impersonal Brahman is Krsna Himself because Krsna is the source of the impersonal Brahman.
He is the origin of the transcendental bliss sought by great saintly persons, yet He, the Supreme
Person, is your most dear friend and constant well-wisher and is intimately related to you as the son of
your maternal uncle. Indeed, He is always like your body and soul. He is worshipable, yet He acts as
your servant and sometimes as your spiritual master.
50. Exalted persons like Lord Siva and Lord Brahma could not properly describe the truth of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna. May the Lord, who is always worshiped as the protector of all
devotees by great saints who observe vows of silence, meditation, devotional service and renunciation,
be pleased with us.
51. My dear King Yudhisthira, long, long ago in history, a demon known as Maya Danava, who was
very expert in technical knowledge, reduced the reputation of Lord Siva. In that situation, Krsna, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, saved Lord Siva.
52. Maharaja Yudhisthira said: For what reason did the demon Maya Danava vanquish Lord Siva's
reputation? How did Lord Krsna save Lord Siva and expand his reputation again? Kindly describe these
incidents.
53. Narada Muni said: When the demigods, who are always powerful by the mercy of Lord Krsna,
fought with the asuras, the asuras were defeated, and therefore they took shelter of Maya Danava, the
greatest of the demons.
54-55. Maya Danava, the great leader of the demons, prepared three invisible residences and gave
them to the demons. These dwellings resembled airplanes made of gold, silver and iron, and they
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 345
contained uncommon paraphernalia. My dear King Yudhisthira, because of these three dwellings the
commanders of the demons remained invisible to the demigods. Taking advantage of this opportunity,
the demons, remembering their former enmity, began to vanquish the three worlds--the upper, middle
and lower planetary systems.
56. Thereafter, when the demons had begun to destroy the higher planetary systems, the rulers of
those planets went to Lord Siva, fully surrendered unto him and said: Dear Lord, we demigods living in
the three worlds are about to be vanquished. We are your followers. Kindly save us.
57. The most powerful and able Lord Siva reassured them and said, "Do not be afraid." He then fixed
his arrows to his bow and released them toward the three residences occupied by the demons.
58. The arrows released by Lord Siva appeared like fiery beams emanating from the sun globe and
covered the three residential airplanes, which could then no longer be seen.
59. Attacked by Lord Siva's golden arrows, all the demoniac inhabitants of those three dwellings lost
their lives and fell down. Then the great mystic Maya Danava dropped the demons into a nectarean well
that he had created.
60. When the dead bodies of the demons came in touch with the nectar, their bodies became invincible
to thunderbolts. Endowed with great strength, they got up like lightning penetrating clouds.
61. Seeing Lord Siva very much aggrieved and disappointed, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Lord Visnu, considered how to stop this nuisance created by Maya Danava.
62. Then Lord Brahma became a calf and Lord Visnu a cow, and at noon they entered the residences
and drank all the nectar in the well.
63. The demons could see the calf and cow, but because of the illusion created by the energy of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, the demons could not forbid them. The great mystic Maya Danava
became aware that the calf and cow were drinking the nectar, and he could understand this to be the
unseen power of providence. Thus he spoke to the demons, who were grievously lamenting.
64. Maya Danava said: What has been destined by the Supreme Lord for oneself, for others, or for both
oneself and others cannot be undone anywhere or by anyone, whether one be a demigod, a demon, a
human being or anyone else.
65-66. Narada Muni continued: Thereafter, Lord Krsna, by His own personal potency, consisting of
religion, knowledge, renunciation, opulence, austerity, education and activities, equipped Lord Siva with
all the necessary paraphernalia, such as a chariot, a charioteer, a flag, horses, elephants, a bow, a
shield and arrows. When Lord Siva was fully equipped in this way, he sat down on the chariot with his
arrows and bow to fight with the demons.
67. My dear King Yudhisthira, the most powerful Lord Siva joined the arrows to his bow, and at noon he
set fire to all three residences of the demons and thus destroyed them.
68. Seated in their airplanes in the sky, the inhabitants of the higher planetary systems beat many
kettledrums. The demigods, saints, Pitas, Siddhas and various great personalities showered flowers on
the head of Lord Siva, wishing him all victory, and the Apsaras began to chant and dance with great
pleasure.
69. O King Yudhisthira, thus Lord Siva is known as Tripurari, the annihilator of the three dwellings of the
demons, because he burnt these dwellings to ashes. Being worshiped by the demigods, headed by
Lord Brahma, Lord Siva returned to his own abode.
70. The Lord, Sri Krsna, appeared as a human being, yet He performed many uncommon and
wonderful pastimes by His own potency. How can I say more about His activities than what has already
been said by great saintly persons? Everyone can be purified by His activities, simply by hearing about
them from the right source.
Chapter Eleven The Perfect Society: Four Social Classes
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After hearing about the activities and character of Prahlada Maharaja,
which are adored and discussed among great personalities like Lord Brahma and Lord Siva,
Yudhisthira Maharaja, the most respectful king among exalted personalities, again inquired from the
great saint Narada Muni in a mood of great pleasure.
2. Maharaja Yudhisthira said: My dear lord, I wish to hear from you about the principles of religion by
which one can attain the ultimate goal of life--devotional service. I wish to hear about the general
occupational duties of human society and the system of social and spiritual advancement known as
varnasrama-dharma.
3. O best of the brahmanas, you are directly the son of Prajapati [Lord Brahma]. Because of your
austerities, mystic yoga and trance, you are considered the best of all of Lord Brahma's sons.
4. No one is superior to you in peaceful life and mercy, and no one knows better than you how to
execute devotional service or how to become the best of the brahmanas. Therefore, you know all the
principles of confidential religious life, and no one knows them better than you.
346 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
5. Sri Narada Muni said: After first offering my obeisances unto Lord Krsna, the protector of the religious
principles of all living entities, let me explain the principles of the eternal religious system, of which I
have heard from the mouth of Narayana.
6. Lord Narayana, along with His partial manifestation Nara, appeared in this world through the
daughter of Daksa Maharaja known as Murti. He was begotten by Dharma Maharaja for the benefit of
all living entities. Even now, He is still engaged in executing great austerities near the place known as
Badarikasrama.
7. The Supreme Being, the Personality of Godhead, is the essence of all Vedic knowledge, the root of
all religious principles, and the memory of great authorities. O King Yudhisthira, this principle of religion
is to be understood as evidence. On the basis of this religious principle, everything is satisfied, including
one's mind, soul and even one's body.
8-12. These are the general principles to be followed by all human beings: truthfulness, mercy, austerity
(observing fasts on certain days of the month), bathing twice a day, tolerance, discrimination between
right and wrong, control of the mind, control of the senses, nonviolence, celibacy, charity, reading of
scripture, simplicity, satisfaction, rendering service to saintly persons, gradually taking leave of
unnecessary engagements, observing the futility of the unnecessary activities of human society,
remaining silent and grave and avoiding unnecessary talk, considering whether one is the body or the
soul, distributing food equally to all living entities (both men and animals), seeing every soul (especially
in the human form) as a part of the Supreme Lord, hearing about the activities and instructions given by
the Supreme Personality of Godhead (who is the shelter of the saintly persons), chanting about these
activities and instructions, always remembering these activities and instructions, trying to render
service, performing worship, offering obeisances, becoming a servant, becoming a friend, and
surrendering one's whole self. O King Yudhisthira, these thirty qualifications must be acquired in the
human form of life. Simply by acquiring these qualifications, one can satisfy the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
13. Those who have been reformed by the garbhadhana ceremony and other prescribed reformatory
methods, performed with Vedic mantras and without interruption, and who have been approved by Lord
Brahma, are dvijas, or twice-born. Such brahmanas, ksatriyas and vaisyas, purified by their family
traditions and by their behavior, should worship the Lord, study the Vedas and give charity. In this
system, they should follow the principles of the four asramas [brahmacarya, grhastha, vanaprastha and
sannyasa].
14. For a brahmana there are six occupational duties. A ksatriya should not accept charity, but he may
perform the other five of these duties. A king or ksatriya is not allowed to levy taxes on brahmanas, but
he may make his livelihood by levying minimal taxes, customs duties, and penalty fines upon his other
subjects.
15. The mercantile community should always follow the directions of the brahmanas and engage in
such occupational duties as agriculture, trade, and protection of cows. For the sudras the only duty is to
accept a master from a higher social order and engage in his service.
16. As an alternative, a brahmana may also take to the vaisya's occupational duty of agriculture, cow
protection, or trade. He may depend on that which he has received without begging, he may beg in the
paddy field every day, he may collect paddy left in a field by its proprietor, or he may collect food grains
left here and there in the shops of grain dealers. These are four means of livelihood that may also be
adopted by brahmanas. Among these four, each of them in succession is better than the one preceding
it.
17. Except in a time of emergency, lower persons should not accept the occupational duties of those
who are higher. When there is such an emergency, of course, everyone but the ksatriya may accept the
means of livelihood of others.
18-20. In time of emergency, one may accept any of the various types of professions known as rta,
amrta, mrta, pramrta and satyanrta, but one should not at any time accept the profession of a dog. The
profession of unchasila, collecting grains from the field, is called rta. Collecting without begging is called
amrta, begging grains is called mrta, tilling the ground is called pramrta, and trade is called satyanrta.
Engaging in the service of low-grade persons, however, is called sva-vrtti, the profession of the dogs.
Specifically, brahmanas and ksatriyas should not engage in the low and abominable service of sudras.
Brahmanas should be well acquainted with all the Vedic knowledge, and ksatriyas should be well
acquainted with the worship of demigods.
21. The symptoms of a brahmana are control of the mind, control of the senses, austerity and penance,
cleanliness, satisfaction, forgiveness, simplicity, knowledge, mercy, truthfulness, and complete
surrender to the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 347
22. To be influential in battle, unconquerable, patient, challenging and charitable, to control the bodily
necessities, to be forgiving, to be attached to the brahminical nature and to be always jolly and truthful--
these are the symptoms of the ksatriya.
23. Being always devoted to the demigods, the spiritual master and the Supreme Lord, Visnu;
endeavoring for advancement in religious principles, economic development and sense gratification
[dharma, artha and kama]; believing in the words of the spiritual master and scripture; and always
endeavoring with expertise in earning money--these are the symptoms of the vaisya.
24. Offering obeisances to the higher sections of society [the brahmanas, ksatriyas and vaisyas], being
always very clean, being free from duplicity, serving one's master, performing sacrifices without uttering
mantras, not stealing, always speaking the truth and giving all protection to the cows and brahmanas--
these are the symptoms of the sudra.
25. To render service to the husband, to be always favorably disposed toward the husband, to be
equally well disposed toward the husband's relatives and friends, and to follow the vows of the
husband--these are the four principles to be followed by women described as chaste.
26-27. A chaste woman must dress nicely and decorate herself with golden ornaments for the pleasure
of her husband. Always wearing clean and attractive garments, she should sweep and clean the
household with water and other liquids so that the entire house is always pure and clean. She should
collect the household paraphernalia and keep the house always aromatic with incense and flowers and
must be ready to execute the desires of her husband. Being modest and truthful, controlling her senses,
and speaking in sweet words, a chaste woman should engage in the service of her husband with love,
according to time and circumstances.
28. A chaste woman should not be greedy, but satisfied in all circumstances. She must be very expert
in handling household affairs and should be fully conversant with religious principles. She should speak
pleasingly and truthfully and should be very careful and always clean and pure. Thus a chaste woman
should engage with affection in the service of a husband who is not fallen.
29. The woman who engages in the service of her husband, following strictly in the footsteps of the
goddess of fortune, surely returns home, back to Godhead, with her devotee husband, and lives very
happily in the Vaikuntha planets.
30. Among the mixed classes known as sankara, those who are not thieves are known as antevasayi or
candalas [dog-eaters], and they also have their hereditary customs.
31. My dear King, brahmanas well conversant in Vedic knowledge have given their verdict that in every
age [yuga] the conduct of different sections of people according to their material modes of nature is
auspicious both in this life and after death.
32. If one acts in his profession according to his position in the modes of nature and gradually gives up
these activities, he attains the niskama stage.
33-34. My dear King, if an agricultural field is cultivated again and again, the power of its production
decreases, and whatever seeds are sown there are lost. Just as drops of ghee on a fire never
extinguish the fire but a flood of ghee will, similarly, overindulgence in lusty desires mitigates such
desires entirely.
35. If one shows the symptoms of being a brahmana, ksatriya, vaisya or sudra, as described above,
even if he has appeared in a different class, he should be accepted according to those symptoms of
classification.
Chapter Twelve The Perfect Society: Four Spiritual Classes
1. Narada Muni said: A student should practice completely controlling his senses. He should be
submissive and should have an attitude of firm friendship for the spiritual master. With a great vow, the
brahmacari should live at the guru-kula, only for the benefit of the guru.
2. At both junctions of day and night, namely, in the early morning and in the evening, he should be fully
absorbed in thoughts of the spiritual master, fire, the sun-god and Lord Visnu and by chanting the
Gayatri mantra he should worship them.
3. Being called by the spiritual master, the student should study the Vedic mantras regularly. Every day,
before beginning his studies and at the end of his studies, the disciple should respectfully offer
obeisances unto the spiritual master.
4. Carrying pure kusa grass in his hand, the brahmacari should dress regularly with a belt of straw and
with deerskin garments. He should wear matted hair, carry a rod and waterpot and be decorated with a
sacred thread, as recommended in the sastras.
5. The brahmacari should go out morning and evening to collect alms, and he should offer all that he
collects to the spiritual master. He should eat only if ordered to take food by the spiritual master;
otherwise, if the spiritual master does not give this order, he may sometimes have to fast.
6. A brahmacari should be quite well behaved and gentle and should not eat or collect more than
necessary. He must always be active and expert, fully believing in the instructions of the spiritual master
348 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
and the sastra. Fully controlling his senses, he should associate only as much as necessary with
women or those controlled by women.
7. A brahmacari, or one who has not accepted the grhastha-asrama [family life], must rigidly avoid
talking with women or about women, for the senses are so powerful that they may agitate even the
mind of a sannyasi, a member of the renounced order of life.
8. If the wife of the spiritual master is young, a young brahmacari should not allow her to care for his
hair, massage his body with oil, or bathe him with affection like a mother.
9. Woman is compared to fire, and man is compared to a butter pot. Therefore a man should avoid
associating even with his own daughter in a secluded place. Similarly, he should also avoid association
with other women. One should associate with women only for important business and not otherwise.
10. As long as a living entity is not completely self-realized--as long as he is not independent of the
misconception of identifying with his body, which is nothing but a reflection of the original body and
senses--he cannot be relieved of the conception of duality, which is epitomized by the duality between
man and woman. Thus there is every chance that he will fall down because his intelligence is
bewildered.
11. All the rules and regulations apply equally to the householder and the sannyasi, the member of the
renounced order of life. The grhastha, however, is given permission by the spiritual master to indulge in
sex during the period favorable for procreation.
12. Brahmacaris or grhasthas who have taken the vow of celibacy as described above should not
indulge in the following: applying powder or ointment to the eyes, massaging the head with oil,
massaging the body with the hands, seeing a woman or painting a woman's picture, eating meat,
drinking wine, decorating the body with flower garlands, smearing scented ointment on the body, or
decorating the body with ornaments. These they should give up.
13-14. According to the rules and regulations mentioned above, one who is twice-born, namely a
brahmana, ksatriya or vaisya, should reside in the guru-kula under the care of the spiritual master.
There he should study and learn all the Vedic literatures along with their supplements and the
Upanisads, according to his ability and power to study. If possible, the student or disciple should reward
the spiritual master with the remuneration the spiritual master requests, and then, following the master's
order, the disciple should leave and accept one of the other asramas, namely the grhastha-asrama,
vanaprastha-asrama or sannyasa-asrama, as he desires.
15. One should realize that in the fire, in the spiritual master, in one's self and in all living entities--in all
circumstances and conditions--the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, has simultaneously
entered and not entered. He is situated externally and internally as the full controller of everything.
16. By practicing in this way, whether one be in the brahmacari-asrama, grhastha-asrama,
vanaprastha-asrama or sannyasa-asrama, one must always realize the all-pervading presence of the
Supreme Lord, for in this way it is possible to understand the Absolute Truth.
17. O King, I shall now describe the qualifications for a vanaprastha, one who has retired from family
life. By rigidly following the rules and regulations for the vanaprastha, one can easily be elevated to the
upper planetary system known as Maharloka.
18. A person in vanaprastha life should not eat grains grown by tilling of the fields. He should also not
eat grains that have grown without tilling of the field but are not fully ripe. Nor should a vanaprastha eat
grains cooked in fire. Indeed, he should eat only fruit ripened by the sunshine.
19. A vanaprastha should prepare cakes to be offered in sacrifice from fruits and grains grown naturally
in the forest. When he obtains some new grains, he should give up his old stock of grains.
20. A vanaprastha should prepare a thatched cottage or take shelter of a cave in a mountain only to
keep the sacred fire, but he should personally practice enduring snowfall, wind, fire, rain and the shining
of the sun.
21. The vanaprastha should wear matted locks of hair on his head and let his body hair, nails and
moustache grow. He should not cleanse his body of dirt. He should keep a waterpot, deerskin and rod,
wear the bark of a tree as a covering, and use garments colored like fire.
22. Being very thoughtful, a vanaprastha should remain in the forest for twelve years, eight years, four
years, two years or at least one year. He should behave in such a way that he will not be disturbed or
troubled by too much austerity.
23. When because of disease or old age one is unable to perform his prescribed duties for
advancement in spiritual consciousness or study of the Vedas, he should practice fasting, not taking
any food.
24. He should properly place the fire element in his own self and in this way give up bodily affinity, by
which one thinks the body to be one's self or one's own. One should gradually merge the material body
into the five elements [earth, water, fire, air and sky].
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 349
25. A sober, self-realized person who has full knowledge should merge the various parts of the body in
their original sources. The holes in the body are caused by the sky, the process of breathing is caused
by the air, the heat of the body is caused by fire, and semen, blood and mucus are caused by water.
The hard substances, like skin, muscle and bone, are caused by earth. In this way all the constituents of
the body are caused by various elements, and they should be merged again into those elements.
26-28. Thereafter, the object of speech, along with the sense of speech [the tongue], should be
bestowed upon fire. Craftsmanship and the two hands should be given to the demigod Indra. The power
of movement and the legs should be given to Lord Visnu. Sensual pleasure, along with the genitals,
should be bestowed upon Prajapati. The rectum, with the power of evacuation, should be bestowed, in
its proper place, unto Mrtyu. The aural instrument, along with sound vibration, should be given to the
deities presiding over the directions. The instrument of touch, along with the sense objects of touch,
should be given to Vayu. Form, with the power of sight, should be bestowed upon the sun. The tongue,
along with the demigod Varuna, should be bestowed upon water, and the power of smell, along with the
two Asvini-kumara demigods, should be bestowed upon the earth.
29-30. The mind, along with all material desires, should be merged in the moon demigod. All the subject
matters of intelligence, along with the intelligence itself, should be placed in Lord Brahma. False ego,
which is under the influence of the material modes of nature and which induces one to think, "I am this
body, and everything connected with this body is mine," should be merged, along with material
activities, in Rudra, the predominating deity of false ego. Material consciousness, along with the goal of
thought, should be merged in the individual living being, and the demigods acting under the modes of
material nature should be merged, along with the perverted living being, into the Supreme Being. The
earth should be merged in water, water in the brightness of the sun, this brightness into the air, the air
into the sky, the sky into the false ego, the false ego into the total material energy, the total material
energy into the unmanifested ingredients [the pradhana feature of the material energy], and at last the
ingredient feature of material manifestation into the Supersoul.
31. When all the material designations have thus merged into their respective material elements, the
living beings, who are all ultimately completely spiritual, being one in quality with the Supreme Being,
should cease from material existence, as flames cease when the wood in which they are burning is
consumed. When the material body is returned to its various material elements, only the spiritual being
remains. This spiritual being is Brahman and is equal in quality with Parabrahman.
Chapter Thirteen The Behavior of a Perfect Person
1. Sri Narada Muni said: A person able to cultivate spiritual knowledge should renounce all material
connections, and merely keeping the body inhabitable, he should travel from one place to another,
passing only one night in each village. In this way, without dependence in regard to the needs of the
body, the sannyasi should travel all over the world.
2. A person in the renounced order of life may try to avoid even a dress to cover himself. If he wears
anything at all, it should be only a loincloth, and when there is no necessity, a sannyasi should not even
accept a danda. A sannyasi should avoid carrying anything but a danda and kamandalu.
3. The sannyasi, completely satisfied in the self, should live on alms begged from door to door. Not
being dependent on any person or any place, he should always be a friendly well-wisher to all living
beings and be a peaceful, unalloyed devotee of Narayana. In this way he should move from one place
to another.
4. The sannyasi should always try to see the Supreme pervading everything and see everything,
including this universe, resting on the Supreme.
5. During unconsciousness and consciousness, and between the two, he should try to understand the
self and be fully situated in the self. In this way, he should realize that the conditional and liberated
stages of life are only illusory and not actually factual. With such a higher understanding, he should see
only the Absolute Truth pervading everything.
6. Since the material body is sure to be vanquished and the duration of one's life is not fixed, neither
death nor life is to be praised. Rather, one should observe the eternal time factor, in which the living
entity manifests himself and disappears.
7. Literature that is a useless waste of time--in other words, literature without spiritual benefit--should be
rejected. One should not become a professional teacher as a means of earning one's livelihood, nor
should one indulge in arguments and counter-arguments. Nor should one take shelter of any cause or
faction.
8. A sannyasi must not present allurements of material benefits to gather many disciples, nor should he
unnecessarily read many books or give discourses as a means of livelihood. He must never attempt to
increase material opulences unnecessarily.
350 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
9. A peaceful, equipoised person who is factually advanced in spiritual consciousness does not need to
accept the symbols of a sannyasi, such as the tridanda and kamandalu. According to necessity, he may
sometimes accept those symbols and sometimes reject them.
10. Although a saintly person may not expose himself to the vision of human society, by his behavior his
purpose is disclosed. To human society he should present himself like a restless child, and although he
is the greatest thoughtful orator, he should present himself like a dumb man.
11. As a historical example of this, learned sages recite the story of an ancient discussion between
Prahlada Maharaja and a great saintly person who was feeding himself like a python.
12-13. Prahlada Maharaja, the most dear servitor of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, once went
out touring the universe with some of his confidential associates just to study the nature of saintly
persons. Thus he arrived at the bank of the Kaveri, where there was a mountain known as Sahya.
There he found a great saintly person who was lying on the ground, covered with dirt and dust, but who
was deeply spiritually advanced.
14. Neither by that saintly person's activities, by his bodily features, by his words nor by the symptoms
of his varnasrama status could people understand whether he was the same person they had known.
15. The advanced devotee Prahlada Maharaja duly worshiped and offered obeisances to the saintly
person who had adopted a python's means of livelihood. After thus worshiping the saintly person and
touching his own head to the saint's lotus feet, Prahlada Maharaja, in order to understand him, inquired
very submissively as follows.
16-17. Seeing the saintly person to be quite fat, Prahlada Maharaja said: My dear sir, you undergo no
endeavor to earn your livelihood, but you have a stout body, exactly like that of a materialistic enjoyer. I
know that if one is very rich and has nothing to do, he becomes extremely fat by eating and sleeping
and performing no work.
18. O brahmana, fully in knowledge of transcendence, you have nothing to do, and therefore you are
lying down. It is also understood that you have no money for sense enjoyment. How then has your body
become so fat? Under the circumstances, if you do not consider my question impudent, kindly explain
how this has happened.
19. Your Honor appears learned, expert and intelligent in every way. You can speak very well, saying
things that are pleasing to the heart. You see that people in general are engaged in fruitive activities, yet
you are lying here inactive.
20. Narada Muni continued: When the saintly person was thus questioned by Prahlada Maharaja, the
King of the Daityas, he was captivated by this shower of nectarean words, and he replied to the
inquisitiveness of Prahlada Maharaja with a smiling face.
21. The saintly brahmana said: O best of the asuras, Prahlada Maharaja, who are recognized by
advanced and civilized men, you are aware of the different stages of life because of your inherent
transcendental eyes, with which you can see a man's character and thus know clearly the results of
acceptance and rejection of things as they are.
22. Narayana, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is full of all opulences, is predominant within
the core of your heart because of your being a pure devotee. He always drives away all the darkness of
ignorance, as the sun drives away the darkness of the universe.
23. My dear King, although you know everything, you have posed some questions, which I shall try to
answer according to what I have learned by hearing from authorities. I cannot remain silent in this
regard, for a personality like you is just fit to be spoken to by one who desires self-purification.
24. Because of insatiable material desires, I was being carried away by the waves of material nature's
laws, and thus I was engaging in different activities, struggling for existence in various forms of life.
25. In the course of the evolutionary process, which is caused by fruitive activities due to undesirable
material sense gratification, I have received this human form of life, which can lead to the heavenly
planets, to liberation, to the lower species, or to rebirth among human beings.
26. In this human form of life, a man and women unite for the sensual pleasure of sex, but by actual
experience we have observed that none of them are happy. Therefore, seeing the contrary results, I
have stopped taking part in materialistic activities.
27. The actual form of life for the living entities is one of spiritual happiness, which is real happiness.
This happiness can be achieved only when one stops all materialistic activities. Material sense
enjoyment is simply imagination. Therefore, considering this subject matter, I have ceased from all
material activities and am lying down here.
28. In this way the conditioned soul living within the body forgets his self-interest because he identifies
himself with the body. Because the body is material, his natural tendency is to be attracted by the
varieties of the material world. Thus the living entity suffers the miseries of material existence.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 351
29. Just as a deer, because of ignorance, cannot see the water within a well covered by grass, but runs
after water elsewhere, the living entity covered by the material body does not see the happiness within
himself, but runs after happiness in the material world.
30. The living entity tries to achieve happiness and rid himself of the causes of distress, but because the
various bodies of the living entities are under the full control of material nature, all his plans in different
bodies, one after another, are ultimately baffled.
31. Materialistic activities are always mixed with three kinds of miserable conditions--adhyatmika,
adhidaivika and adhibautika. Therefore, even if one achieves some success by performing such
activities, what is the benefit of this success? One is still subjected to birth, death, old age, disease and
the reactions of his fruitive activities.
32. The brahmana continued: I am actually seeing how a rich man, who is a victim of his senses, is very
greedy to accumulate wealth, and therefore suffers from insomnia due to fear from all sides, despite his
wealth and opulence.
33. Those who are considered materially powerful and rich are always full of anxieties because of
governmental laws, thieves and rogues, enemies, family members, animals, birds, persons seeking
charity, the inevitable time factor and even their own selves. Thus they are invariably afraid.
34. Those in human society who are intelligent should give up the original cause of lamentation, illusion,
fear, anger, attachment, poverty and unnecessary labor. The original cause of all of these is the desire
for unnecessary prestige and money.
35. The bee and the python are two excellent spiritual masters who give us exemplary instructions
regarding how to be satisfied by collecting only a little and how to stay in one place and not move.
36. From the bumblebee I have learned to be unattached to accumulating money, for although money is
as good as honey, anyone can kill its owner and take it away.
37. I do not endeavor to get anything, but am satisfied with whatever is achieved in its own way. If I do
not get anything, I am patient and unagitated like a python and lie down in this way for many days.
38. Sometimes I eat a very small quantity and sometimes a great quantity. Sometimes the food is very
palatable, and sometimes it is stale. Sometimes prasada is offered with great respect, and sometimes
food is given neglectfully. Sometimes I eat during the day and sometimes at night. Thus I eat what is
easily available.
39. To cover my body I use whatever is available, whether it be linen, silk, cotton, bark or deerskin,
according to my destiny, and I am fully satisfied and unagitated.
40. Sometimes I lie on the surface of the earth, sometimes on leaves, grass or stone, sometimes on a
pile of ashes, or sometimes, by the will of others, in a palace on a first-class bed with pillows.
41. O my lord, sometimes I bathe myself very nicely, smear sandalwood pulp all over my body, put on a
flower garland, and dress in fine garments and ornaments. Then I travel like a king on the back of an
elephant or on a chariot or horse. Sometimes, however, I travel naked, like a person haunted by a
ghost.
42. Different people are of different mentalities. Therefore it is not my business either to praise them or
to blaspheme them. I only desire their welfare, hoping that they will agree to become one with the
Supersoul, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna.
43. The mental concoction of discrimination between good and bad should be accepted as one unit and
then invested in the mind, which should then be invested in the false ego. The false ego should be
invested in the total material energy. This is the process of fighting false discrimination.
44. A learned, thoughtful person must realize that material existence is illusion. This is possible only by
self-realization. A self-realized person, who has actually seen the truth, should retire from all material
activities, being situated in self-realization.
45. Prahlada Maharaja, you are certainly a self-realized soul and a devotee of the Supreme Lord. You
do not care for public opinion or so-called scriptures. For this reason I have described to you without
hesitation the history of my self-realization.
46. Narada Muni continued: After Prahlada Maharaja, the King of the demons, heard these instructions
from the saint, he understood the occupational duties of a perfect person [paramahamsa]. Thus he duly
worshiped the saint, took his permission and then left for his own home.
Chapter Fourteen Ideal Family Life
1. Maharaja Yudhisthira inquired from Narada Muni: O my lord, O great sage, kindly explain how we
who are staying at home without knowledge of the goal of life may also easily attain liberation,
according to the instructions of the Vedas.
2. Narada Muni replied: My dear King, those who stay at home as householders must act to earn their
livelihood, and instead of trying to enjoy the results of their work themselves, they should offer these
results to Krsna, Vasudeva. How to satisfy Vasudeva in this life can be perfectly understood through the
association of great devotees of the Lord.
352 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3-4. A grhastha must associate again and again with saintly persons, and with great respect he must
hear the nectar of the activities of the Supreme Lord and His incarnations as these activities are
described in Srimad-Bhagavatam and other Puranas. Thus one should gradually become detached
from affection for his wife and children, exactly like a man awakening from a dream.
5. While working to earn his livelihood as much as necessary to maintain body and soul together, one
who is actually learned should live in human society unattached to family affairs, although externally
appearing very much attached.
6. An intelligent man in human society should make his own program of activities very simple. If there
are suggestions from his friends, children, parents, brothers or anyone else, he should externally agree,
saying, "Yes, that is all right," but internally he should be determined not to create a cumbersome life in
which the purpose of life will not be fulfilled.
7. The natural products created by the Supreme Personality of Godhead should be utilized to maintain
the bodies and souls of all living entities. The necessities of life are of three types: those produced from
the sky [from rainfall], from the earth [from the mines, the seas or the fields], and from the atmosphere
[that which is obtained suddenly and unexpectedly].
8. One may claim proprietorship to as much wealth as required to maintain body and soul together, but
one who desires proprietorship over more than that must be considered a thief, and he deserves to be
punished by the laws of nature.
9. One should treat animals such as deer, camels, asses, monkeys, mice, snakes, birds and flies
exactly like one's own son. How little difference there actually is between children and these innocent
animals.
10. Even if one is a householder rather than a brahmacari, a sannyasi or a vanaprastha, one should not
endeavor very hard for religiosity, economic development or satisfaction of the senses. Even in
householder life, one should be satisfied to maintain body and soul together with whatever is available
with minimum endeavor, according to place and time, by the grace of the Lord. One should not engage
oneself in ugra-karma.
11. Dogs, fallen persons and untouchables, including candalas [dog-eaters], should all be maintained
with their proper necessities, which should be contributed by the householders. Even one's wife at
home, with whom one is most intimately attached, should be offered for the reception of guests and
people in general.
12. One so seriously considers one's wife to be his own that he sometimes kills himself for her or kills
others, including even his parents or his spiritual master or teacher. Therefore if one can give up his
attachment to such a wife, he conquers the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is never conquered
by anyone.
13. Through proper deliberation, one should give up attraction to his wife's body because that body will
ultimately be transformed into small insects, stool or ashes. What is the value of this insignificant body?
How much greater is the Supreme Being, who is all-pervading like the sky?
14. An intelligent person should be satisfied with eating prasada [food offered to the Lord] or with
performing the five different kinds of yajna [panca-suna]. By such activities, one can give up attachment
for the body and so-called proprietorship with reference to the body. When one is able to do this, he is
firmly fixed in the position of a mahatma.
15. Every day, one should worship the Supreme Being who is situated in everyone's heart, and on this
basis one should separately worship the demigods, the saintly persons, ordinary human beings and
living entities, one's forefathers and one's self. In this way one is able to worship the Supreme Being in
the core of everyone's heart.
16. When one is enriched with wealth and knowledge which are under his full control and by means of
which he can perform yajna or please the Supreme Personality of Godhead, one must perform
sacrifices, offering oblations to the fire according to the directions of the sastras. In this way one should
worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
17. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, is the enjoyer of sacrificial offerings. Yet although
His Lordship eats the oblations offered in the fire, my dear King, He is still more satisfied when nice food
made of grains and ghee is offered to Him through the mouths of qualified brahmanas.
18. Therefore, my dear King, first offer prasada unto the brahmanas and the demigods, and after
sumptuously feeding them you may distribute prasada to other living entities according to your ability. In
this way you will be able to worship all living entities--or, in other words, the supreme living entity within
every living entity.
19. A brahmana who is sufficiently rich must offer oblations to the forefathers during the dark-moon
fortnight in the latter part of the month of Bhadra. Similarly, he should offer oblations to the relatives of
the forefathers during the mahalaya ceremonies in the month of Asvina.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 353
20-23. One should perform the sraddha ceremony on the Makara-sankranti [the day when the sun
begins to move north] or on the Karkata-sankranti [the day when the sun begins to move south]. One
should also perform this ceremony on the Mesa-sankranti day and the Tula-sankranti day, in the yoga
named Vyatipata, on that day in which three lunar tithis are conjoined, during an eclipse of either the
moon or the sun, on the twelfth lunar day, and in the Sravana-naksatra. One should perform this
ceremony on the Aksaya-trtiya day, on the ninth lunar day of the bright fortnight of the month of Kartika,
on the four astakas in the winter season and cool season, on the seventh lunar day of the bright
fortnight of the month of Magha, during the conjunction of Magha-naksatra and the full-moon day, and
on the days when the moon is completely full, or not quite completely full, when these days are
conjoined with the naksatras from which the names of certain months are derived. One should also
perform the sraddha ceremony on the twelfth lunar day when it is in conjunction with any of the
naksatras named Anuradha, Sravana, Uttara-phalguni, Uttarasadha or Uttara-bhadrapada. Again, one
should perform this ceremony when the eleventh lunar day is in conjunction with either Uttara-phalguni,
Uttarasadha or Uttara-bhadrapada. Finally, one should perform this ceremony on days conjoined with
one's own birth star [janma-naksatra] or with Sravana-naksatra.
24. All of these seasonal times are considered extremely auspicious for humanity. At such times, one
should perform all auspicious activities, for by such activities a human being attains success in his short
duration of life.
25. During these periods of seasonal change, if one bathes in the Ganges, in the Yamuna or in another
sacred place, if one chants, offers fire sacrifices or executes vows, or if one worships the Supreme
Lord, the brahmanas, the forefathers, the demigods and the living entities in general, whatever he gives
in charity yields a permanently beneficial result.
26. O King Yudhisthira, at the time prescribed for reformatory ritualistic ceremonies for one's self, one's
wife or one's children, or during funeral ceremonies and annual death ceremonies, one must perform
the auspicious ceremonies mentioned above in order to flourish in fruitive activities.
27-28. Narada Muni continued: Now I shall describe the places where religious performances may be
well executed. Any place where a Vaisnava is available is an excellent place for all auspicious activities.
The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the support of this entire cosmic manifestation, with all its
moving and nonmoving living entities, and the temple where the Deity of the Lord is installed is a most
sacred place. Furthermore, places where learned brahmanas observe Vedic principles by means of
austerity, education and mercy are also most auspicious and sacred.
29. Auspicious indeed are the places where there is a temple of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Krsna, in which He is duly worshiped, and also the places where there flow the celebrated sacred rivers
mentioned in the Puranas, the supplementary Vedic literatures. Anything spiritual done there is certainly
very effective.
30-33. The sacred lakes like Puskara and places where saintly persons live, like Kuruksetra, Gaya,
Prayaga, Pulahasrama, Naimisaranya, the banks of the Phalgu River, Setubandha, Prabhasa, Dvaraka,
Varanasi, Mathura, Pampa, Bindu-sarovara, Badarikasrama [Narayanasrama], the places where the
Nanda River flows, the places where Lord Ramacandra and mother Sita took shelter, such as Citrakuta,
and also the hilly tracts of land known as Mahendra and Malaya--all of these are to be considered most
pious and sacred. Similarly, places outside India where there are centers of the Krsna consciousness
movement and where Radha-Krsna Deities are worshiped must all be visited and worshiped by those
who want to be spiritually advanced. One who intends to advance in spiritual life may visit all these
places and perform ritualistic ceremonies to get results a thousand times better than the results of the
same activities performed in any other place.
34. O King of the earth, it has been decided by expert, learned scholars that only the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Krsna, in whom all that is moving or nonmoving within this universe is resting
and from whom everything is coming, is the best person to whom everything must be given.
35. O King Yudhisthira, the demigods, many great sages and saints including even the four sons of
Lord Brahma, and I myself were present at your Rajasuya sacrificial ceremony, but when there was a
question of who should be the first person worshiped, everyone decided upon Lord Krsna, the Supreme
Person.
36. The entire universe, which is full of living entities, is like a tree whose root is the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Acyuta [Krsna]. Therefore simply by worshiping Lord Krsna one can worship all
living entities.
37. The Supreme Personality of Godhead has created many residential places like the bodies of human
beings, animals, birds, saints and demigods. In all of these innumerable bodily forms, the Lord resides
with the living being as Paramatma. Thus He is known as the purusavatara.
38. O King Yudhisthira, the Supersoul in every body gives intelligence to the individual soul according to
his capacity for understanding. Therefore the Supersoul is the chief within the body. The Supersoul is
354 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
manifested to the individual soul according to the individual's comparative development of knowledge,
austerity, penance and so on.
39. My dear King, when great sages and saintly persons saw mutually disrespectful dealings at the
beginning of Treta-yuga, Deity worship in the temple was introduced with all paraphernalia.
40. Sometimes a neophyte devotee offers all the paraphernalia for worshiping the Lord, and he factually
worships the Lord as the Deity, but because he is envious of the authorized devotees of Lord Visnu, the
Lord is never satisfied with his devotional service.
41. My dear King, of all persons a qualified brahmana must be accepted as the best within this material
world because such a brahmana, by practicing austerity, Vedic studies and satisfaction, becomes the
counterpart body of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
42. My dear King Yudhisthira, the brahmanas, especially those engaged in preaching the glories of the
Lord throughout the entire world, are recognized and worshiped by the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who is the heart and soul of all creation. The brahmanas, by their preaching, sanctify the
three worlds with the dust of their lotus feet, and thus they are worshipable even for Krsna.
Chapter Fifteen Instructions for Civilized Human Beings
1. Narada Muni continued: My dear King, some brahmanas are very much attached to fruitive activities,
some are attached to austerities and penances, and still others study the Vedic literature, whereas
some, although very few, cultivate knowledge and practice different yogas, especially bhakti-yoga.
2. A person desiring liberation for his forefathers or himself should give charity to a brahmana who
adheres to impersonal monism [jnana-nistha]. In the absence of such an advanced brahmana, charity
may be given to a brahmana addicted to fruitive activities [karma-kanda].
3. During the period for offering oblations to the demigods, one should invite only two brahmanas, and
while offering oblations to the forefathers, one may invite three brahmanas. Or, in either case, only one
brahmana will suffice. Even though one is very opulent, he should not endeavor to invite more
brahmanas or make various expensive arrangements on those occasions.
4. If one arranges to feed many brahmanas or relatives during the sraddha ceremony, there will be
discrepancies in the time, place, respectability and ingredients, the person to be worshiped, and the
method of offering worship.
5. When one gets the opportunity of a suitable auspicious time and place, one should, with love, offer
food prepared with ghee to the Deity of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and then offer the
prasada to a suitable person--a Vaisnava or brahmana. This will be the cause of everlasting prosperity.
6. One should offer prasada to the demigods, the saintly persons, one's forefathers, the people in
general, one's family members, one's relatives and one's friends, seeing them all as devotees of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
7. A person fully aware of religious principles should never offer anything like meat, eggs or fish in the
sraddha ceremony, and even if one is a ksatriya, he himself should not eat such things. When suitable
food prepared with ghee is offered to saintly persons, the function is pleasing to the forefathers and the
Supreme Lord, who are never pleased when animals are killed in the name of sacrifice.
8. Persons who want to advance in superior religion are advised to give up all envy of other living
entities, whether in relationship to the body, words or mind. There is no religion superior to this.
9. Because of an awakening of spiritual knowledge, those who are intelligent in regard to sacrifice, who
are actually aware of religious principles and who are free from material desires, control the self in the
fire of spiritual knowledge, or knowledge of the Absolute Truth. They may give up the process of
ritualistic ceremonies.
10. Upon seeing the person engaged in performing the sacrifice, animals meant to be sacrificed are
extremely afraid, thinking, "This merciless performer of sacrifices, being ignorant of the purpose of
sacrifice and being most satisfied by killing others, will surely kill us."
11. Therefore, day by day, one who is actually aware of religious principles and is not heinously envious
of poor animals should happily perform daily sacrifices and those for certain occasions with whatever
food is available easily by the grace of the Lord.
12. There are five branches of irreligion, appropriately known as irreligion [vidharma], religious principles
for which one is unfit [para-dharma], pretentious religion [abhasa], analogical religion [upadharma] and
cheating religion [chala-dharma]. One who is aware of real religious life must abandon these five as
irreligious.
13. Religious principles that obstruct one from following his own religion are called vidharma. Religious
principles introduced by others are called para-dharma. A new type of religion created by one who is
falsely proud and who opposes the principles of the Vedas is called upadharma. And interpretation by
one's jugglery of words is called chala-dharma.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 355
14. A pretentious religious system manufactured by one who willfully neglects the prescribed duties of
his order of life is called abhasa [a dim reflection or false similarity]. But if one performs the prescribed
duties for his particular asrama or varna, why are they not sufficient to mitigate all material distresses?
15. Even if a man is poor, he should not endeavor to improve his economic condition just to maintain his
body and soul together or to become a famous religionist. Just as a great python, although lying in one
place, not endeavoring for its livelihood, gets the food it needs to maintain body and soul, one who is
desireless also obtains his livelihood without endeavor.
16. One who is content and satisfied and who links his activities with the Supreme Personality of
Godhead residing in everyone's heart enjoys transcendental happiness without endeavoring for his
livelihood. Where is such happiness for a materialistic man who is impelled by lust and greed and who
therefore wanders in all directions with a desire to accumulate wealth?
17. For a person who has suitable shoes on his feet, there is no danger even when he walks on
pebbles and thorns. For him, everything is auspicious. Similarly, for one who is always self-satisfied
there is no distress; indeed, he feels happiness everywhere.
18. My dear King, a self-satisfied person can be happy even with only drinking water. However, one
who is driven by the senses, especially by the tongue and genitals, must accept the position of a
household dog to satisfy his senses.
19. Because of greed for the sake of the senses, the spiritual strength, education, austerity and
reputation of a devotee or brahmana who is not self-satisfied dwindle, and his knowledge gradually
vanishes.
20. The strong bodily desires and needs of a person disturbed by hunger and thirst are certainly
satisfied when he eats. Similarly, if one becomes very angry, that anger is satisfied by chastisement and
its reaction. But as for greed, even if a greedy person has conquered all the directions of the world or
has enjoyed everything in the world, still he will not be satisfied.
21. O King Yudhisthira, many persons with varied experience, many legal advisers, many learned
scholars and many persons eligible to become presidents of learned assemblies fall down into hellish
life because of not being satisfied with their positions.
22. By making plans with determination, one should give up lusty desires for sense gratification.
Similarly, by giving up envy one should conquer anger, by discussing the disadvantages of
accumulating wealth one should give up greed, and by discussing the truth one should give up fear.
23. By discussing spiritual knowledge one can conquer lamentation and illusion, by serving a great
devotee one can become prideless, by keeping silent one can avoid obstacles on the path of mystic
yoga, and simply by stopping sense gratification one can conquer envy.
24. By good behavior and freedom from envy one should counteract sufferings due to other living
entities, by meditation in trance one should counteract sufferings due to providence, and by practicing
hatha-yoga, pranayama and so forth one should counteract sufferings due to the body and mind.
Similarly, by developing the mode of goodness, especially in regard to eating, one should conquer
sleep.
25. One must conquer the modes of passion and ignorance by developing the mode of goodness, and
then one must become detached from the mode of goodness by promoting oneself to the platform of
suddha-sattva. All this can be automatically done if one engages in the service of the spiritual master
with faith and devotion. In this way one can conquer the influence of the modes of nature.
26. The spiritual master should be considered to be directly the Supreme Lord because he gives
transcendental knowledge for enlightenment. Consequently, for one who maintains the material
conception that the spiritual master is an ordinary human being, everything is frustrated. His
enlightenment and his Vedic studies and knowledge are like the bathing of an elephant.
27. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Krsna, is the master of all other living entities and of the
material nature. His lotus feet are sought and worshiped by great saintly persons like Vyasa.
Nonetheless, there are fools who consider Lord Krsna an ordinary human being.
28. Ritualistic ceremonies, regulative principles, austerities and the practice of yoga are all meant to
control the senses and mind, but even after one is able to control the senses and mind, if he does not
come to the point of meditation upon the Supreme Lord, all such activities are simply labor in frustration.
29. As professional activities or business profits cannot help one in spiritual advancement but are a
source of material entanglement, the Vedic ritualistic ceremonies cannot help anyone who is not a
devotee of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
30. One who desires to conquer the mind must leave the company of his family and live in a solitary
place, free from contaminated association. To maintain the body and soul together, he should beg as
much as he needs for the bare necessities of life.
356 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
31. My dear King, in a sacred and holy place of pilgrimage one should select a place in which to
perform yoga. The place must be level and not too high or low. There one should sit very comfortably,
being steady and equipoised, keeping his body straight, and thus begin chanting the Vedic pranava.
32-33. While continuously staring at the tip of the nose, a learned yogi practices the breathing exercises
through the technical means known as puraka, kumbhaka and recaka--controlling inhalation and
exhalation and then stopping them both. In this way the yogi restricts his mind from material
attachments and gives up all mental desires. As soon as the mind, being defeated by lusty desires,
drifts toward feelings of sense gratification, the yogi should immediately bring it back and arrest it within
the core of his heart.
34. When the yogi regularly practices in this way, in a short time his heart becomes fixed and free from
disturbance, like a fire without flames or smoke.
35. When one's consciousness is uncontaminated by material lusty desires, it becomes calm and
peaceful in all activities, for one is situated in eternal blissful life. Once situated on that platform, one
does not return to materialistic activities.
36. One who accepts the sannyasa order gives up the three principles of materialistic activities in which
one indulges in the field of household life--namely religion, economic development and sense
gratification. One who first accepts sannyasa but then returns to such materialistic activities is to be
called a vantasi, or one who eats his own vomit. He is indeed a shameless person.
37. Sannyasis who first consider that the body is subject to death, when it will be transformed into stool,
worms or ashes, but who again give importance to the body and glorify it as the self, are to be
considered the greatest rascals.
38-39. It is abominable for a person living in the grhastha-asrama to give up the regulative principles, for
a brahmacari not to follow the brahmacari vows while living under the care of the guru, for a
vanaprastha to live in the village and engage in so-called social activities, or for a sannyasi to be
addicted to sense gratification. One who acts in this way is to be considered the lowest renegade. Such
a pretender is bewildered by the external energy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and one
should either reject him from any position, or taking compassion upon him, teach him, if possible, to
resume his original position.
40. The human form of body is meant for understanding the self and the Supreme Self, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, both of whom are transcendentally situated. If both of them can be understood
when one is purified by advanced knowledge, for what reason and for whom does a foolish, greedy
person maintain the body for sense gratification?
41. Transcendentalists who are advanced in knowledge compare the body, which is made by the order
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, to a chariot. The senses are like the horses; the mind, the
master of the senses, is like the reins; the objects of the senses are the destinations; intelligence is the
chariot driver; and consciousness, which spreads throughout the body, is the cause of bondage in this
material world.
42. The ten kinds of air acting within the body are compared to the spokes of the chariot's wheels, and
the top and bottom of the wheel itself are called religion and irreligion. The living entity in the bodily
concept of life is the owner of the chariot. The Vedic mantra pranava is the bow, the pure living entity
himself is the arrow, and the target is the Supreme Being.
43-44. In the conditioned stage, one's conceptions of life are sometimes polluted by passion and
ignorance, which are exhibited by attachment, hostility, greed, lamentation, illusion, fear, madness, false
prestige, insults, fault-finding, deception, envy, intolerance, passion, bewilderment, hunger and sleep.
All of these are enemies. Sometimes one's conceptions are also polluted by goodness.
45. As long as one has to accept a material body, with its different parts and paraphernalia, which are
not fully under one's control, one must have the lotus feet of his superiors, namely his spiritual master
and the spiritual master's predecessors. By their mercy, one can sharpen the sword of knowledge, and
with the power of the Supreme Personality of Godhead's mercy one must then conquer the enemies
mentioned above. In this way, the devotee should be able to merge into his own transcendental bliss,
and then he may give up his body and resume his spiritual identity.
46. Otherwise, if one does not take shelter of Acyuta and Baladeva, then the senses, acting as the
horses, and the intelligence, acting as the driver, both being prone to material contamination,
inattentively bring the body, which acts as the chariot, to the path of sense gratification. When one is
thus attracted again by the rogues of visaya--eating, sleeping and mating--the horses and chariot driver
are thrown into the blinding dark well of material existence, and one is again put into a dangerous and
extremely fearful situation of repeated birth and death.
47. According to the Vedas, there are two kinds of activities--pravrtti and nivrtti. Pravrtti activities involve
raising oneself from a lower to a higher condition of materialistic life, whereas nivrtti means the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 357
cessation of material desire. Through pravrtti activities one suffers from material entanglement, but by
nivrtti activities one is purified and becomes fit to enjoy eternal, blissful life.
48-49. The ritualistic ceremonies and sacrifices known as agni-hotra-yajna, darsa-yajna, purnamasa-
yajna, caturmasya-yajna, pasu-yajna and soma-yajna are all symptomized by the killing of animals and
the burning of many valuables, especially food grains, all for the fulfillment of material desires and the
creation of anxiety. Performing such sacrifices, worshiping Vaisvadeva, and performing the ceremony of
Baliharana, which all supposedly constitute the goal of life, as well as constructing temples for
demigods, building resting houses and gardens, digging wells for the distribution of water, establishing
booths for the distribution of food, and performing activities for public welfare--these are all
symptomized by attachment to material desires.
50-51. My dear King Yudhisthira, when oblations of ghee and food grains like barley and sesame are
offered in sacrifice, they turn into celestial smoke, which carries one to successively higher planetary
systems like the kingdoms of Dhuma, Ratri, Krsnapaksa, Daksinam and ultimately the moon. Then,
however, the performers of sacrifice descend again to earth to become herbs, creepers, vegetables and
food grains. These are eaten by different living entities and turned to semen, which is injected into
female bodies. Thus one takes birth again and again.
52. A twice-born brahmana [dvija] gains his life by the grace of his parents through the process of
purification known as garbhadhana. There are also other processes of purification, until the end of life,
when the funeral ceremony [antyesti-kriya] is performed. Thus in due course a qualified brahmana
becomes uninterested in materialistic activities and sacrifices, but he offers the sensual sacrifices, in full
knowledge, into the working senses, which are illuminated by the fire of knowledge.
53. The mind is always agitated by waves of acceptance and rejection. Therefore all the activities of the
senses should be offered into the mind, which should be offered into one's words. Then one's words
should be offered into the aggregate of all alphabets, which should be offered into the concise form
omkara. Omkara should be offered into the point bindu, bindu into the vibration of sound, and that
vibration into the life air. Then the living entity, who is all that remains, should be placed in Brahman, the
Supreme. This is the process of sacrifice.
54. On his path of ascent, the progressive living entity enters the different worlds of fire, the sun, the
day, the end of the day, the bright fortnight, the full moon, and the passing of the sun in the north, along
with their presiding demigods. When he enters Brahmaloka, he enjoys life for many millions of years,
and finally his material designation comes to an end. He then comes to a subtle designation, from which
he attains the causal designation, witnessing all previous states. Upon the annihilation of this causal
state, he attains his pure state, in which he identifies with the Supersoul. In this way the living entity
becomes transcendental.
55. This gradual process of elevation for self-realization is meant for those who are truly aware of the
Absolute Truth. After repeated birth on this path, which is known as deva-yana, one attains these
consecutive stages. One who is completely free from all material desires, being situated in the self,
need not traverse the path of repeated birth and death.
56. Even though situated in a material body, one who is fully aware of the paths known as pitr-yana and
deva-yana, and who thus opens his eyes in terms of Vedic knowledge, is never bewildered in this
material world.
57. He who exists internally and externally, at the beginning and end of everything and of all living
beings, as that which is enjoyable and as the enjoyer of everything, superior and inferior, is the
Supreme Truth. He always exists as knowledge and the object of knowledge, as expression and the
object of understanding, as darkness and as light. Thus He, the Supreme Lord, is everything.
58. Although one may consider the reflection of the sun from a mirror to be false, it has its factual
existence. Accordingly, to prove by speculative knowledge that there is no reality would be extremely
difficult.
59. In this world there are five elements--namely earth, water, fire, air and ether--but the body is not a
reflection of them, nor a combination or transformation of them. Because the body and its ingredients
are neither distinct nor amalgamated, all such theories are insubstantial.
60. Because the body is formed of the five elements, it cannot exist without the subtle sense objects.
Therefore, since the body is false, the sense objects are also naturally false or temporary.
61. When a substance and its parts are separated, the acceptance of similarity between one and the
other is called illusion. While dreaming, one creates a separation between the existences called
wakefulness and sleep. It is in such a state of mind that the regulative principles of the scriptures,
consisting of injunctions and prohibitions, are recommended.
62. After considering the oneness of existence, activity and paraphernalia and after realizing the self to
be different from all actions and reactions, the mental speculator [muni], according to his own
realization, gives up the three states of wakefulness, dreaming and sleep.
358 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
63. When one understands that result and cause are one and that duality is ultimately unreal, like the
idea that the threads of a cloth are different from the cloth itself, one reaches the conception of oneness
called bhavadvaita.
64. My dear Yudhisthira [Partha], when all the activities one performs with his mind, words and body are
dedicated directly to the service of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, one reaches oneness of
activities, called kriyadvaita.
65. When the ultimate goal and interest of one's self, one's wife, one's children, one's relatives and all
other embodied living beings is one, this is called dravyadvaita, or oneness of interest.
66. In normal conditions, in the absence of danger, O King Yudhisthira, a man should perform his
prescribed activities according to his status of life with the things, endeavors, process and living place
that are not forbidden for him, and not by any other means.
67. O King, one should perform his occupational duties according to these instructions, as well as other
instructions given in the Vedic literature, just to remain a devotee of Lord Krsna. Thus, even while at
home, one will be able to reach the destination.
68. O King Yudhisthira, because of your service to the Supreme Lord, all of you Pandavas defeated the
greatest dangers posed by numerous kings and demigods. By serving the lotus feet of Krsna, you
conquered great enemies, who were like elephants, and thus you collected ingredients for sacrifice. By
His grace, may you be delivered from material involvement.
69. Long, long ago, in another maha-kalpa [millennium of Brahma], I existed as the Gandharva known
as Upabarhana. I was very respected by the other Gandharvas.
70. I had a beautiful face and a pleasing, attractive bodily structure. Decorated with flower garlands and
sandalwood pulp, I was most pleasing to the women of my city. Thus I was bewildered, always feeling
lusty desires.
71. Once there was a sankirtana festival to glorify the Supreme Lord in an assembly of the demigods,
and the Gandharvas and Apsaras were invited by the prajapatis to take part in it.
72. Narada Muni continued: Being invited to that festival, I also joined, and, surrounded by women, I
began musically singing the glories of the demigods. Because of this, the prajapatis, the great demigods
in charge of the affairs of the universe, forcefully cursed me with these words: "Because you have
committed an offense, may you immediately become a sudra, devoid of beauty."
73. Although I took birth as a sudra from the womb of a maidservant, I engaged in the service of
Vaisnavas who were well-versed in Vedic knowledge. Consequently, in this life I got the opportunity to
take birth as the son of Lord Brahma.
74. The process of chanting the holy name of the Lord is so powerful that by this chanting even
householders [grhasthas] can very easily gain the ultimate result achieved by persons in the renounced
order. Maharaja Yudhisthira, I have now explained to you that process of religion.
75. My dear Maharaja Yudhisthira, you Pandavas are so very fortunate in this world that many, many
great saints, who can purify all the planets of the universe, come to your house just like ordinary visitors.
Furthermore, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, is living confidentially with you in your
house, just like your brother.
76. How wonderful it is that the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Parabrahman, Krsna, who is
sought by great, great sages for the sake of liberation and transcendental bliss, is acting as your best
well-wisher, your friend, your cousin, your heart and soul, your worshipable director, and your spiritual
master.
77. Present here now is the same Supreme Personality of Godhead whose true form cannot be
understood even by such great personalities as Lord Brahma and Lord Siva. He is realized by devotees
because of their unflinching surrender. May that same Personality of Godhead, who is the maintainer of
His devotees and who is worshiped by silence, by devotional service and by cessation of material
activities, be pleased with us.
78. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Maharaja Yudhisthira, the best member of the Bharata dynasty, thus
learned everything from the descriptions of Narada Muni. After hearing these instructions, he felt great
pleasure from within his heart, and in great ecstasy, love and affection, he worshiped Lord Krsna.
79. Narada Muni, being worshiped by Krsna and Maharaja Yudhisthira, bade them farewell and went
away. Yudhisthira Maharaja, having heard that Krsna, his cousin, is the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, was struck with wonder.
80. On all the planets within this universe, the varieties of living entities, moving and nonmoving,
including the demigods, demons and human beings, were all generated from the daughters of Maharaja
Daksa. I have now described them and their different dynasties.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 359
CANTO EIGHT
Chapter One The Manus, Administrators of the Universe
1. King Pariksit said: O my lord, my spiritual master, now I have fully heard from Your Grace about the
dynasty of Svayambhuva Manu. But there are also other Manus, and I want to hear about their
dynasties. Kindly describe them to us.
2. O learned brahmana, Sukadeva Gosvami, the great learned persons who are completely intelligent
describe the activities and appearance of the Supreme Personality of Godhead during the various
manvantaras. We are very eager to hear about these narrations. Kindly describe them.
3. O learned brahmana, kindly describe to us whatever activities the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who created this cosmic manifestation, has performed in the past manvantaras, is performing at
present, and will perform in the future manvantaras.
4. Sukadeva Gosvami said: In the present kalpa there have already been six Manus. I have described
to you Svayambhuva Manu and the appearance of many demigods. In this kalpa of Brahma,
Svayambhuva is the first Manu.
5. Svayambhuva Manu had two daughters, named Akuti and Devahuti. From their wombs, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead appeared as two sons named Yajnamurti and Kapila respectively. These sons
were entrusted with preaching about religion and knowledge.
6. O best of the Kurus, I have already described [in the Third Canto] the activities of Kapila, the son of
Devahuti. Now I shall describe the activities of Yajnapati, the son of Akuti.
7. Svayambhuva Manu, the husband of Satarupa, was by nature not at all attached to enjoyment of the
senses. Thus he gave up his kingdom of sense enjoyment and entered the forest with his wife to
practice austerities.
8. O scion of Bharata, after Svayambhuva Manu had thus entered the forest with his wife, he stood on
one leg on the bank of the River Sunanda, and in this way, with only one leg touching the earth, he
performed great austerities for one hundred years. While performing these austerities, he spoke as
follows.
9. Lord Manu said: The supreme living being has created this material world of animation; it is not that
He was created by this material world. When everything is silent, the Supreme Being stays awake as a
witness. The living entity does not know Him, but He knows everything.
10. Within this universe, the Supreme Personality of Godhead in His Supersoul feature is present
everywhere, wherever there are animate or inanimate beings. Therefore, one should accept only that
which is allotted to him; one should not desire to infringe upon the property of others.
11. Although the Supreme Personality of Godhead constantly watches the activities of the world, no one
sees Him. However, one should not think that because no one sees Him, He does not see, for His
power to see is never diminished. Therefore, everyone should worship the Supersoul, who always stays
with the individual soul as a friend.
12. The Supreme Personality of Godhead has no beginning, no end and no middle. Nor does He
belong to a particular person or nation. He has no inside or outside. The dualities found within this
material world, such as beginning and end, mine and theirs, are all absent from the personality of the
Supreme Lord. The universe, which emanates from Him, is another feature of the Lord. Therefore the
Supreme Lord is the ultimate truth, and He is complete in greatness.
13. The entire cosmic manifestation is the body of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Absolute
Truth, who has millions of names and unlimited potencies. He is self-effulgent, unborn and changeless.
He is the beginning of everything, but He has no beginning. Because He has created this cosmic
manifestation by His external energy, the universe appears to be created, maintained and annihilated
by Him. Nonetheless, He remains inactive in His spiritual energy and is untouched by the activities of
the material energy.
14. Therefore, to enable people to reach the stage of activities that are not tinged by fruitive results,
great saints first engage people in fruitive activities, for unless one begins by performing activities as
recommended in the sastras, one cannot reach the stage of liberation, or activities that produce no
reactions.
15. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is full in opulence by His own gain, yet He acts as the
creator, maintainer and annihilator of this material world. In spite of acting in that way, He is never
entangled. Hence devotees who follow in His footsteps are also never entangled.
16. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, works just like an ordinary human being, yet He does
not desire to enjoy the fruits of work. He is full in knowledge, free from material desires and diversions,
and completely independent. As the supreme teacher of human society, He teaches His own way of
activities, and thus He inaugurates the real path of religion. I request everyone to follow Him.
360 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
17. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Svayambhuva Manu was thus in a trance, chanting the mantras of
Vedic instruction known as the Upanisads. Upon seeing him, the Raksasas and asuras, being very
hungry, wanted to devour him. Therefore they ran after him with great speed.
18. The Supreme Lord, Visnu, who sits in everyone's heart, appearing as Yajnapati, observed that the
Raksasas and demons were going to devour Svayambhuva Manu. Thus the Lord, accompanied by His
sons named the Yamas and by all the other demigods, killed the demons and Raksasas. He then took
the post of Indra and began to rule the heavenly kingdom.
19. The son of Agni named Svarocisa became the second Manu. His several sons were headed by
Dyumat, Susena and Rocismat.
20. During the reign of Svarocisa, the post of Indra was assumed by Rocana, the son of Yajna. Tusita
and others became the principal demigods, and Urja, Stambha and others became the seven saints. All
of them were faithful devotees of the Lord.
21. Vedasira was a very celebrated rsi. From the womb of his wife, whose name was Tusita, came the
avatara named Vibhu.
22. Vibhu remained a brahmacari and never married throughout his life. From him, eighty-eight
thousand other saintly persons took lessons on self-control, austerity and similar behavior.
23. O King, the third Manu, Uttama, was the son of King Priyavrata. Among the sons of this Manu were
Pavana, Srnjaya and Yajnahotra.
24. During the reign of the third Mahu, Pramada and other sons of Vasistha became the seven sages.
The Satyas, Vedasrutas and Bhadras became demigods, and Satyajit was selected to be Indra, the
King of heaven.
25. In this manvantara, the Supreme Personality of Godhead appeared from the womb of Sunrta, who
was the wife of Dharma, the demigod in charge of religion. The Lord was celebrated as Satyasena, and
He appeared with other demigods, known as the Satyavratas.
26. Satyasena, along with His friend Satyajit, who was the King of heaven, Indra, killed all the untruthful,
impious and misbehaved Yaksas, Raksasas and ghostly living entities, who gave pains to other living
beings.
27. The brother of the third Manu, Uttama, was celebrated by the name Tamasa, and he became the
fourth Manu. Tamasa had ten sons, headed by Prthu, Khyati, Nara and Ketu.
28. During the reign of Tamasa Manu, among the demigods were the Satyakas, Haris and Viras. The
heavenly King, Indra, was Trisikha. The sages in saptarsi-dhama were headed by Jyotirdhama.
29. O King, in the Tamasa manvantara the sons of Vidhrti, who were known as the Vaidhrtis, also
became demigods. Since in course of time the Vedic authority was lost, these demigods, by their own
powers, protected the Vedic authority.
30. Also in this manvantara, the Supreme Lord, Visnu, took birth from the womb of Harini, the wife of
Harimedha, and He was known as Hari. Hari saved His devotee Gajendra, the King of the elephants,
from the mouth of a crocodile.
31. King Pariksit said: My lord, Badarayani, we wish to hear from you in detail how the King of the
elephants, when attacked by a crocodile, was delivered by Hari.
32. Any literature or narration in which the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Uttamasloka, is described
and glorified is certainly great, pure, glorious, auspicious and all good.
33. Sri Suta Gosvami said: O brahmanas, when Pariksit Maharaja, who was awaiting impending death,
thus requested Sukadeva Gosvami to speak, Sukadeva Gosvami, encouraged by the King's words,
offered respect to the King and spoke with great pleasure in the assembly of sages, who desired to
hear him.
Chapter Two The Elephant Gajendra's Crisis
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, there is a very large mountain called Trikuta. It is ten
thousand yojanas [eighty thousand miles] high. Being surrounded by the ocean of milk, it is very
beautifully situated.
2-3. The length and breadth of the mountain are of the same measurement [eighty thousand miles]. Its
three principal peaks, which are made of iron, silver and gold, beautify all directions and the sky. The
mountain also has other peaks, which are full of jewels and minerals and are decorated with nice trees,
creepers and shrubs. The sounds of the waterfalls on the mountain create a pleasing vibration. In this
way the mountain stands, increasing the beauty of all directions.
4. The ground at the foot of the mountain is always washed by waves of milk that produce emeralds all
around in the eight directions [north, south, east, west and the directions midway between them].
5. The inhabitants of the higher planets--the Siddhas, Caranas, Gandharvas, Vidyadharas, serpents,
Kinnaras and Apsaras--go to that mountain to sport. Thus all the caves of the mountain are full of these
denizens of the heavenly planets.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 361
6. Because of the resounding vibrations of the denizens of heaven singing in the caves, the lions there,
being very proud of their strength, roar with unbearable envy, thinking that another lion is roaring in that
way.
7. The valleys beneath Trikuta Mountain are beautifully decorated by many varieties of jungle animals,
and in the trees, which are maintained in gardens by the demigods, varieties of birds chirp with sweet
voices.
8. Trikuta Mountain has many lakes and rivers, with beaches covered by small gems resembling grains
of sand. The water is as clear as crystal, and when the demigod damsels bathe in it, their bodies lend
fragrance to the water and the breeze, thus enriching the atmosphere.
9-13. In a valley of Trikuta Mountain there was a garden called Rtumat. This garden belonged to the
great devotee Varuna and was a sporting place for the damsels of the demigods. Flowers and fruits
grew there in all seasons. Among them were mandaras, parijatas, patalas, asokas, campakas, cutas,
piyalas, panasas, mangos, amratakas, kramukas, coconut trees, date trees and pomegranates. There
were madhukas, palm trees, tamalas, asanas, arjunas, aristas, udumbaras, plaksas, banyan trees,
kimsukas and sandalwood trees. There were also picumardas, kovidaras, saralas, sura-darus, grapes,
sugarcane, bananas, jambu, badaris, aksas, abhayas and amalakis.
14-19. In that garden there was a very large lake filled with shining golden lotus flowers and the flowers
known as kumuda, kahlara, utpala and satapatra, which added excellent beauty to the mountain. There
were also bilva, kapittha, jambira and bhallataka trees. Intoxicated bumblebees drank honey and
hummed with the chirping of the birds, whose songs were very melodious. The lake was crowded with
swans, karandavas, cakravakas, cranes, and flocks of water chickens, datyuhas, koyastis and other
murmuring birds. Because of the agitating movements of the fish and tortoises, the water was
decorated with pollen that had fallen from the lotus flowers. The lake was surrounded by kadamba
flowers, vetasa flowers, nalas, nipas, vanjulakas, kundas, kurubakas, asokas, sirisas, kutajas, ingudas,
kubjakas, svarna-yuthis, nagas, punnagas, jatis, mallikas, satapatras, jalakas and madhavi-latas. The
banks were also abundantly adorned with varieties of trees that yielded flowers and fruits in all seasons.
Thus the entire mountain stood gloriously decorated.
20. The leader of the elephants who lived in the forest of the mountain Trikuta once wandered toward
the lake with his female elephants. He broke many plants, creepers, thickets and trees, not caring for
their piercing thorns.
21. Simply by catching scent of that elephant, all the other elephants, the tigers and the other ferocious
animals, such as lions, rhinoceroses, great serpents and black and white sarabhas, fled in fear. The
camari deer also fled.
22. By the mercy of this elephant, animals like the foxes, wolves, buffalos, bears, boars, gopucchas,
porcupines, monkeys, rabbits, the other deer and many other small animals loitered elsewhere in the
forest. They were not afraid of him.
23-24. Surrounded by the herd's other elephants, including females, and followed by the young ones,
Gajapati, the leader of the elephants, made Trikuta Mountain tremble all around because of the weight
of his body. He was perspiring, liquor dripped from his mouth, and his vision was overwhelmed by
intoxication. He was being served by bumblebees who drank honey, and from a distance he could smell
the dust of the lotus flowers, which was carried from the lake by the breeze. Thus surrounded by his
associates, who were afflicted by thirst, he soon arrived at the bank of the lake.
25. The King of the elephants entered the lake, bathed thoroughly and was relieved of his fatigue. Then,
with the aid of his trunk, he drank the cold, clear, nectarean water, which was mixed with the dust of
lotus flowers and water lilies, until he was fully satisfied.
26. Like a human being who lacks spiritual knowledge and is too attached to the members of his family,
the elephant, being illusioned by the external energy of Krsna, had his wives and children bathe and
drink the water. Indeed, he raised water from the lake with his trunk and sprayed it over them. He did
not mind the hard labor involved in this endeavor.
27. By the arrangement of providence, O King, a strong crocodile was angry at the elephant and
attacked the elephant's leg in the water. The elephant was certainly strong, and he tried his best to get
free from this danger sent by providence.
28. Thereafter, seeing Gajendra in that grave condition, his wives felt very, very sorry and began to cry.
The other elephants wanted to help Gajendra, but because of the crocodile's great strength, they could
not rescue him by grasping him from behind.
29. O King, the elephant and the crocodile fought in this way, pulling one another in and out of the
water, for one thousand years. Upon seeing the fight, the demigods were very surprised.
30. Thereafter, because of being pulled into the water and fighting for many long years, the elephant
became diminished in his mental, physical and sensual strength. The crocodile, on the contrary, being
an animal of the water, increased in enthusiasm, physical strength and sensual power.
362 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
31. When the King of the elephants saw that he was under the clutches of the crocodile by the will of
providence and, being embodied and circumstantially helpless, could not save himself from danger, he
was extremely afraid of being killed. He consequently thought for a long time and finally reached the
following decision.
32. The other elephants, who are my friends and relatives, could not rescue me from this danger. What
then to speak of my wives? They cannot do anything. It is by the will of providence that I have been
attacked by this crocodile, and therefore I shall seek shelter of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who is always the shelter of everyone, even of great personalities.
33. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is certainly not known to everyone, but He is very powerful
and influential. Therefore, although the serpent of eternal time, which is fearful in force, endlessly
chases everyone, ready to swallow him, if one who fears this serpent seeks shelter of the Lord, the Lord
gives him protection, for even death runs away in fear of the Lord. I therefore surrender unto Him, the
great and powerful supreme authority who is the actual shelter of everyone.
Chapter Three Gajendra's Prayers of Surrender
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thereafter, the King of the elephants, Gajendra, fixed his mind in
his heart with perfect intelligence and chanted a mantra which he had learned in his previous birth as
Indradyumna and which he remembered by the grace of Krsna.
2. The King of the elephants, Gajendra, said: I offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme
Person, Vasudeva [om namo bhagavate vasudevaya]. Because of Him this material body acts due to
the presence of spirit, and He is therefore the root cause of everyone. He is worshipable for such
exalted persons as Brahma and Siva, and He has entered the heart of every living being. Let me
meditate upon Him.
3. The Supreme Godhead is the supreme platform on which everything rests, the ingredient by which
everything has been produced, and the person who has created and is the only cause of this cosmic
manifestation. Nonetheless, He is different from the cause and the result. I surrender unto Him, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is self-sufficient in everything.
4. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, by expanding His own energy, keeps this cosmic
manifestation visible and again sometimes renders it invisible. He is both the supreme cause and the
supreme result, the observer and the witness, in all circumstances. Thus He is transcendental to
everything. May that Supreme Personality of Godhead give me protection.
5. In due course of time, when all the causative and effective manifestations of the universe, including
the planets and their directors and maintainers, are annihilated, there is a situation of dense darkness.
Above this darkness, however, is the Supreme Personality of Godhead. I take shelter of His lotus feet.
6. An artist onstage, being covered by attractive dresses and dancing with different movements, is not
understood by his audience; similarly, the activities and features of the supreme artist cannot be
understood even by the demigods or great sages, and certainly not by those who are unintelligent like
animals. Neither the demigods and sages nor the unintelligent can understand the features of the Lord,
nor can they express in words His actual position. May that Supreme Personality of Godhead give me
protection.
7. Renunciants and great sages who see all living beings equally, who are friendly to everyone and who
flawlessly practice in the forest the vows of brahmacarya, vanaprastha and sannyasa desire to see the
all-auspicious lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. May that same Supreme Personality
of Godhead be my destination.
8-9. The Supreme Personality of Godhead has no material birth, activities, name, form, qualities or
faults. To fulfill the purpose for which this material world is created and destroyed, He comes in the form
of a human being like Lord Rama or Lord Krsna by His original internal potency. He has immense
potency, and in various forms, all free from material contamination, He acts wonderfully. He is therefore
the Supreme Brahman. I offer my respects to Him.
10. I offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the self-effulgent
Supersoul, who is the witness in everyone's heart, who enlightens the individual soul and who cannot
be reached by exercises of the mind, words or consciousness.
11. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is realized by pure devotees who act in the transcendental
existence of bhakti-yoga. He is the bestower of uncontaminated happiness and is the master of the
transcendental world. Therefore I offer my respect unto Him.
12. I offer my respectful obeisances to Lord Vasudeva, who is all-pervading, to the Lord's fierce form as
Lord Nrsimhadeva, to the Lord's form as an animal [Lord Varahadeva], to Lord Dattatreya, who
preached impersonalism, to Lord Buddha, and to all the other incarnations. I offer my respectful
obeisances unto the Lord, who has no material qualities but who accepts the three qualities goodness,
passion and ignorance within this material world. I also offer my respectful obeisances unto the
impersonal Brahman effulgence.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 363
13. I beg to offer my respectful obeisances unto You, who are the Supersoul, the superintendent of
everything, and the witness of all that occurs. You are the Supreme Person, the origin of material nature
and of the total material energy. You are also the owner of the material body. Therefore, You are the
supreme complete. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
14. My Lord, You are the observer of all the objectives of the senses. Without Your mercy, there is no
possibility of solving the problem of doubts. The material world is just like a shadow resembling You.
Indeed, one accepts this material world as real because it gives a glimpse of Your existence.
15. My Lord, You are the cause of all causes, but You Yourself have no cause. Therefore You are the
wonderful cause of everything. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, who are the shelter of the
Vedic knowledge contained in the sastras like the Pancaratras and Vedanta-sutra, which are Your
representations, and who are the source of the parampara system. Because it is You who can give
liberation, You are the only shelter for all transcendentalists. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto
You.
16. My Lord, as the fire in arani wood is covered, You and Your unlimited knowledge are covered by the
material modes of nature. Your mind, however, is not attentive to the activities of the modes of nature.
Those who are advanced in spiritual knowledge are not subject to the regulative principles directed in
the Vedic literatures. Because such advanced souls are transcendental, You personally appear in their
pure minds. Therefore I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
17. Since an animal such as I has surrendered unto You, who are supremely liberated, certainly You
will release me from this dangerous position. Indeed, being extremely merciful, You incessantly try to
deliver me. By your partial feature as Paramatma, You are situated in the hearts of all embodied beings.
You are celebrated as direct transcendental knowledge, and You are unlimited. I offer my respectful
obeisances unto You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
18. My Lord, those who are completely freed from material contamination always meditate upon You
within the cores of their hearts. You are extremely difficult to attain for those like me who are too
attached to mental concoction, home, relatives, friends, money, servants and assistants. You are the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, uncontaminated by the modes of nature. You are the reservoir of all
enlightenment, the supreme controller. I therefore offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
19. After worshiping the Supreme Personality of Godhead, those who are interested in the four
principles of religion, economic development, sense gratification and liberation obtain from Him what
they desire. What then is to be said of other benedictions? Indeed, sometimes the Lord gives a spiritual
body to such ambitious worshipers. May that Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is unlimitedly
merciful, bestow upon me the benediction of liberation from this present danger and from the
materialistic way of life.
20-21. Unalloyed devotees, who have no desire other than to serve the Lord, worship Him in full
surrender and always hear and chant about His activities, which are most wonderful and auspicious.
Thus they always merge in an ocean of transcendental bliss. Such devotees never ask the Lord for any
benediction. I, however, am in danger. Thus I pray to that Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is
eternally existing, who is invisible, who is the Lord of all great personalities, such as Brahma, and who is
available only by transcendental bhakti-yoga. Being extremely subtle, He is beyond the reach of my
senses and transcendental to all external realization. He is unlimited, He is the original cause, and He is
completely full in everything. I offer my obeisances unto Him.
22-24. The Supreme Personality of Godhead creates His minor parts and parcels, the jiva-tattva,
beginning with Lord Brahma, the demigods and the expansions of Vedic knowledge [Sama, Rg, Yajur
and Atharva] and including all other living entities, moving and nonmoving, with their different names
and characteristics. As the sparks of a fire or the shining rays of the sun emanate from their source and
merge into it again and again, the mind, the intelligence, the senses, the gross and subtle material
bodies, and the continuous transformations of the different modes of nature all emanate from the Lord
and again merge into Him. He is neither demigod nor demon, neither human nor bird or beast. He is not
woman, man, or neuter, nor is He an animal. He is not a material quality, a fruitive activity, a
manifestation or nonmanifestation. He is the last word in the discrimination of "not this, not this," and He
is unlimited. All glories to the Supreme Personality of Godhead!
25. I do not wish to live anymore after I am released from the attack of the crocodile. What is the use of
an elephant's body covered externally and internally by ignorance? I simply desire eternal liberation
from the covering of ignorance. That covering is not destroyed by the influence of time.
26. Now, fully desiring release from material life, I offer my respectful obeisances unto that Supreme
Person who is the creator of the universe, who is Himself the form of the universe and who is
nonetheless transcendental to this cosmic manifestation. He is the supreme knower of everything in this
world, the Supersoul of the universe. He is the unborn, supremely situated Lord. I offer my respectful
obeisances unto Him.
364 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
27. I offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme, the Supersoul, the master of all mystic yoga,
who is seen in the core of the heart by perfect mystics when they are completely purified and freed from
the reactions of fruitive activity by practicing bhakti-yoga.
28. My Lord, You are the controller of formidable strength in three kinds of energy. You appear as the
reservoir of all sense pleasure and the protector of the surrendered souls. You possess unlimited
energy, but You are unapproachable by those who are unable to control their senses. I offer my
respectful obeisances unto You again and again.
29. I offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, by whose illusory
energy the jiva, who is part and parcel of God, forgets his real identity because of the bodily concept of
life. I take shelter of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose glories are difficult to understand.
30. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When the King of the elephants was describing the supreme
authority, without mentioning any particular person, he did not invoke the demigods, headed by Lord
Brahma, Lord Siva, Indra and Candra. Thus none of them approached him. However, because Lord
Hari is the Supersoul, Purusottama, the Personality of Godhead, He appeared before Gajendra.
31. After understanding the awkward condition of Gajendra, who had offered his prayers, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Hari, who lives everywhere, appeared with the demigods, who were offering
prayers to Him. Carrying His disc and other weapons, He appeared there on the back of His carrier,
Garuda, with great speed, according to His desire. Thus He appeared before Gajendra.
32. Gajendra had been forcefully captured by the crocodile in the water and was feeling acute pain, but
when he saw that Narayana, wielding His disc, was coming in the sky on the back of Garuda, he
immediately took a lotus flower in his trunk, and with great difficulty due to his painful condition, he
uttered the following words: "O my Lord, Narayana, master of the universe, O Supreme Personality of
Godhead, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You."
33. Thereafter, seeing Gajendra in such an aggrieved position, the unborn Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Hari, immediately got down from the back of Garuda by His causeless mercy and pulled the
King of the elephants, along with the crocodile, out of the water. Then, in the presence of all the
demigods, who were looking on, the Lord severed the crocodile's mouth from its body with His disc. In
this way He saved Gajendra, the King of the elephants.
Chapter Four Gajendra Returns to the Spiritual World
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: When the Lord delivered Gajendra, King of the elephants, all the
demigods, sages and Gandharvas, headed by Brahma and Siva, praised this activity of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead and showered flowers upon both the Lord and Gajendra.
2. There was a beating of kettledrums in the heavenly planets, the inhabitants of Gandharvaloka began
to dance and sing, while great sages and the inhabitants of Caranaloka and Siddhaloka offered prayers
to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Purusottama.
3-4. The best of the Gandharvas, King Huhu, having been cursed by Devala Muni, had become a
crocodile. Now, having been delivered by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, he assumed a very
beautiful form as a Gandharva. Understanding by whose mercy this had happened, he immediately
offered his respectful obeisances with his head and began chanting prayers just suitable for the
transcendental Lord, the supreme eternal, who is worshiped by the choicest verses.
5. Having been favored by the causeless mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and having
regained his original form, King Huhu circumambulated the Lord and offered his obeisances. Then, in
the presence of all the demigods, headed by Brahma, he returned to Gandharvaloka. He had been
freed of all sinful reactions.
6. Because Gajendra, King of the elephants, had been touched directly by the hands of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, he was immediately freed of all material ignorance and bondage. Thus he
received the salvation of sarupya-mukti, in which he achieved the same bodily features as the Lord,
being dressed in yellow garments and possessing four hands.
7. This Gajendra had formerly been a Vaisnava and the king of the country known as Pandya, which is
in the province of Dravida [South India]. In his previous life, he was known as Indradyumna Maharaja.
8. Indradyumna Maharaja retired from family life and went to the Malaya Hills, where he had a small
cottage for his asrama. He wore matted locks on his head and always engaged in austerities. Once,
while observing a vow of silence, he was fully engaged in the worship of the Lord and absorbed in the
ecstasy of love of Godhead.
9. While Indradyumna Maharaja was engaged in ecstatic meditation, worshiping the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, the great sage Agastya Muni arrived there, surrounded by his disciples. When
the Muni saw that Maharaja Indradyumna, who was sitting in a secluded place, remained silent and did
not follow the etiquette of offering him a reception, he was very angry.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 365
10. Agastya Muni then spoke this curse against the King: This King Indradyumna is not at all gentle.
Being low and uneducated, he has insulted a brahmana. May he therefore enter the region of darkness
and receive the dull, dumb body of an elephant.
11-12. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, after Agastya Muni had thus cursed King
Indradyumna, the Muni left that place along with his disciples. Since the King was a devotee, he
accepted Agastya Muni's curse as welcome because it was the desire of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. Therefore, although in his next life he got the body of an elephant, because of devotional
service he remembered how to worship and offer prayers to the Lord.
13. Upon delivering the King of the elephants from the clutches of the crocodile, and from material
existence, which resembles a crocodile, the Lord awarded him the status of sarupya-mukti. In the
presence of the Gandharvas, the Siddhas and the other demigods, who were praising the Lord for His
wonderful transcendental activities, the Lord, sitting on the back of His carrier, Garuda, returned to His
all-wonderful abode and took Gajendra with Him.
14. My dear King Pariksit, I have now described the wonderful power of Krsna, as displayed when the
Lord delivered the King of the elephants. O best of the Kuru dynasty, those who hear this narration
become fit to be promoted to the higher planetary systems. Simply because of hearing this narration,
they gain a reputation as devotees, they are unaffected by the contamination of Kali-yuga, and they
never see bad dreams.
15. Therefore, after getting up from bed in the morning, those who desire their own welfare--especially
the brahmanas, ksatriyas, vaisyas and in particular the brahmana Vaisnavas--should chant this
narration as it is, without deviation, to counteract the troubles of bad dreams.
16. O best of the Kuru dynasty, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Supersoul of everyone, being
thus pleased, addressed Gajendra in the presence of everyone there. He spoke the following blessings.
17-24. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Freed from all sinful reactions are those who rise
from bed at the end of night, early in the morning, and fully concentrate their minds with great attention
upon My form; your form; this lake; this mountain; the caves; the gardens; the cane plants; the bamboo
plants; the celestial trees; the residential quarters of Me, Lord Brahma and Lord Siva; the three peaks of
Trikuta Mountain, made of gold, silver and iron; My very pleasing abode [the ocean of milk]; the white
island, Svetadvipa, which is always brilliant with spiritual rays; My mark of Srivatsa; the Kaustubha gem;
My Vaijayanti garland; My club, Kaumodaki; My Sudarsana disc and Pancajanya conchshell; My
bearer, Garuda, the king of the birds; My bed, Sesa Naga; My expansion of energy the goddess of
fortune; Lord Brahma; Narada Muni; Lord Siva; Prahlada; My incarnations like Matsya, Kurma and
Varaha; My unlimited all-auspicious activities, which yield piety to he who hears them; the sun; the
moon; fire; the mantra omkara; the Absolute Truth; the total material energy; the cows and brahmanas;
devotional service; the wives of Soma and Kasyapa, who are all daughters of King Daksa; the Rivers
Ganges, Sarasvati, Nanda and Yamuna [Kalindi]; the elephant Airavata; Dhruva Maharaja; the seven
rsis; and the pious human beings.
25. My dear devotee, unto those who rise from bed at the end of night and offer Me the prayers offered
by you, I give an eternal residence in the spiritual world at the end of their lives.
26. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After giving this instruction, the Lord, who is known as Hrsikesa,
bugled with His Pancajanya conchshell, in this way pleasing all the demigods, headed by Lord Brahma.
Then He mounted the back of His carrier, Garuda.
Chapter Five The Demigods Appeal to the Lord for Protection
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King, I have described to you the pastime of Gajendra-moksana,
which is most pious to hear. By hearing of such activities of the Lord, one can be freed from all sinful
reactions. Now please listen as I describe Raivata Manu.
2. The brother of Tamasa Manu was the fifth Manu, named Raivata. His sons were headed by Arjuna,
Bali and Vindhya.
3. O King, in the millennium of Raivata Manu the King of heaven was known as Vibhu, among the
demigods were the Bhutamyas, and among the seven brahmanas who occupied the seven planets
were Hiranyaroma, Vedasira and Urdhvabahu.
4. From the combination of Subhra and his wife, Vikuntha, there appeared the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Vaikuntha, along with demigods who were His personal plenary expansions.
5. Just to please the goddess of fortune, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vaikuntha, at her
request, created another Vaikuntha planet, which is worshiped by everyone.
6. Although the great activities and transcendental qualities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead's
various incarnations are wonderfully described, sometimes we are unable to understand them. Yet
everything is possible for Lord Visnu. If one could count the atoms of the universe, then he could count
the qualities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. But no one can count the atoms of the universe,
nor can anyone count the transcendental qualities of the Lord.
366 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
7. The son of Caksu known as Caksusa was the sixth Manu. He had many sons, headed by Puru,
Purusa and Sudyumna.
8. During the reign of Caksusa Manu, the King of heaven was known as Mantradruma. Among the
demigods were the Apyas, and among the great sages were Havisman and Viraka.
9. In this sixth manvantara millennium, Lord Visnu, the master of the universe, appeared in His partial
expansion. He was begotten by Vairaja in the womb of his wife, Devasambhuti, and His name was
Ajita.
10. By churning the ocean of milk, Ajita produced nectar for the demigods. In the form of a tortoise, He
moved here and there, carrying on His back the great mountain known as Mandara.
11-12. King Pariksit inquired: O great brahmana, Sukadeva Gosvami, why and how did Lord Visnu
churn the ocean of milk? For what reason did He stay in the water as a tortoise and hold up Mandara
Mountain? Mow did the demigods obtain the nectar, and what other things were produced from the
churning of the ocean? Kindly describe all these wonderful activities of the Lord.
13. My heart, which is disturbed by the three miserable conditions of material life, is not yet sated with
hearing you describe the glorious activities of the Lord, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the
master of the devotees.
14. Sri Suta Gosvami said: O learned brahmanas assembled here at Naimisaranya, when Sukadeva
Gosvami, the son of Dvaipayana, was thus questioned by the King, he congratulated the King and then
endeavored to describe further the glories of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
15-16. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When the asuras, with their serpent weapons, severely attacked the
demigods in a fight, many of the demigods fell and lost their lives. Indeed, they could not be revived. At
that time, O King, the demigods had been cursed by Durvasa Muni, the three worlds were poverty-
stricken, and therefore ritualistic ceremonies could not be performed. The effects of this were very
serious.
17-18. Lord Indra, Varuna and the other demigods, seeing their lives in such a state, consulted among
themselves, but they could not find any solution. Then all the demigods assembled and went together to
the peak of Sumeru Mountain. There, in the assembly of Lord Brahma, they fell down to offer Lord
Brahma their obeisances, and then they informed him of all the incidents that had taken place.
19-20. Upon seeing that the demigods were bereft of all influence and strength and that the three
worlds were consequently devoid of auspiciousness, and upon seeing that the demigods were in an
awkward position whereas all the demons were flourishing, Lord Brahma, who is above all the
demigods and who is most powerful, concentrated his mind on the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
Thus being encouraged, he became bright-faced and spoke to the demigods as follows.
21. Lord Brahma said: I, Lord Siva, all of you demigods, the demons, the living entities born of
perspiration, the living beings born of eggs, the trees and plants sprouting from the earth, and the living
entities born from embryos--all come from the Supreme Lord, from His incarnation of rajo-guna [Lord
Brahma, the guna-avatara] and from the great sages [rsis] who are part of me. Let us therefore go to
the Supreme Lord and take shelter of His lotus feet.
22. For the Supreme Personality of Godhead there is no one to be killed, no one to be protected, no
one to be neglected and no one to be worshiped. Nonetheless, for the sake of creation, maintenance
and annihilation according to time, He accepts different forms as incarnations either in the mode of
goodness, the mode of passion or the mode of ignorance.
23. Now is the time to invoke the mode of goodness of the living entities who have accepted material
bodies. The mode of goodness is meant to establish the Supreme Lord's rule, which will maintain the
existence of the creation. Therefore, this is the opportune moment to take shelter of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. Because He is naturally very kind and dear to the demigods, He will certainly
bestow good fortune upon us.
24. O Maharaja Pariksit, subduer of all enemies, after Lord Brahma finished speaking to the demigods,
he took them with him to the abode of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, which is beyond this
material world. The Lord's abode is on an island called Svetadvipa, which is situated in the ocean of
milk.
25. There [at Svetadvipa], Lord Brahma offered prayers to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, even
though he had never seen the Supreme Lord. Simply because Lord Brahma had heard about the
Supreme Personality of Godhead from Vedic literature, with a fixed mind he offered the Lord prayers as
written or approved by Vedic literature.
26. Lord Brahma said: O Supreme Lord, O changeless, unlimited supreme truth. You are the origin of
everything. Being all-pervading, You are in everyone's heart and also in the atom. You have no material
qualities. Indeed, You are inconceivable. The mind cannot catch You by speculation, and words fail to
describe You. You are the supreme master of everyone, and therefore You are worshipable for
everyone. We offer our respectful obeisances unto You.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 367
27. The Supreme Personality of Godhead directly and indirectly knows how everything, including the
living force, mind and intelligence, is working under His control. He is the illuminator of everything and
has no ignorance. He does not have a material body subject to the reactions of previous activities, and
He is free from the ignorance of partiality and materialistic education. I therefore take shelter of the lotus
feet of the Supreme Lord, who is eternal, all-pervading and as great as the sky and who appears with
six opulences in three yugas [Satya, Treta and Dvapara].
28. In the cycle of material activities, the material body resembles the wheel of a mental chariot. The ten
senses [five for working and five for gathering knowledge] and the five life airs within the body form the
fifteen spokes of the chariot's wheel. The three modes of nature [goodness, passion and ignorance] are
its center of activities, and the eight ingredients of nature [earth, water, fire, air, sky, mind, intelligence
and false ego] comprise the rim of the wheel. The external, material energy moves this wheel like
electrical energy. Thus the wheel revolves very quickly around its hub or central support, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who is the Supersoul and the ultimate truth. We offer our respectful
obeisances unto Him.
29. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is situated in pure goodness [suddha-sattva], and therefore
He is eka-varna--the omkara [pranava]. Because the Lord is beyond the cosmic manifestation, which is
considered to be darkness, He is not visible to material eyes. Nonetheless, He is not separated from us
by time or space, but is present everywhere. Seated on His carrier, Garuda, He is worshiped by means
of mystical yogic power by those who have achieved freedom from agitation. Let us all offer our
respectful obeisances unto Him.
30. No one can overcome the Supreme Personality of Godhead's illusory energy [maya], which is so
strong that it bewilders everyone, making one lose the sense to understand the aim of life. That same
maya, however, is subdued by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who rules everyone and who is
equally disposed toward all living entities. Let us offer our obeisances unto Him.
31. Since our bodies are made of sattva-guna, we, the demigods, are internally and externally situated
in goodness. All the great saints are also situated in that way. Therefore, if even we cannot understand
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, what is to be said of those who are most insignificant in their
bodily constitutions, being situated in the modes of passion and ignorance? How can they understand
the Lord? Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto Him.
32. On this earth there are four kinds of living entities, who are all created by Him. The material creation
rests on His lotus feet. He is the great Supreme Person, full of opulence and power. May He be pleased
with us.
33. The entire cosmic manifestation has emerged from water, and it is because of water that all living
entities endure, live and develop. This water is nothing but the semen of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. Therefore, may the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who has such great potency, be
pleased with us.
34. Soma, the moon, is the source of food grains, strength and longevity for all the demigods. He is also
the master of all vegetation and the source of generation for all living entities. As stated by learned
scholars, the moon is the mind of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. May that Supreme Personality
of Godhead, the source of all opulences, be pleased with us.
35. Fire, which is born for the sake of accepting oblations in ritualistic ceremonies, is the mouth of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. Fire exists within the depths of the ocean to produce wealth, and fire
is also present in the abdomen to digest food and produce various secretions for the maintenance of
the body. May that supremely powerful Personality of Godhead be pleased with us.
36. The sun-god marks the path of liberation, which is called arciradi-vartma. He is the chief source for
understanding of the Vedas, he is the abode where the Absolute Truth can be worshiped, He is the
gateway to liberation, and he is the source of eternal life as well as the cause of death. The sun-god is
the eye of the Lord. May that Supreme Lord, who is supremely opulent, be pleased with us.
37. All living entities, moving and nonmoving, receive their vital force, their bodily strength and their very
lives from the air. All of us follow the air for our vital force, exactly as servants follow an emperor. The
vital force of air is generated from the original vital force of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. May
that Supreme Lord be pleased with us.
38. May the supremely powerful Personality of Godhead be pleased with us. The different directions are
generated from His ears, the holes of the body come from His heart, and the vital force, the senses, the
mind, the air within the body, and the ether, which is the shelter of the body, come from His navel.
39. Mahendra, the King of Heaven, was generated from the prowess of the Lord, the demigods were
generated from the mercy of the Lord, Lord Siva was generated from the anger of the Lord, and Lord
Brahma from His sober intelligence. The Vedic mantras were generated from the bodily holes of the
Lord, and the great saints and prajapatis were generated from His genitals. May that supremely
powerful Lord be pleased with us.
368 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
40. The goddess of fortune was generated from His chest, the inhabitants of Pitrloka from His shadow,
religion from His bosom, and irreligion [the opposite of religion] from His back. The heavenly planets
were generated from the top of His head, and the Apsaras from His sense enjoyment. May that
supremely powerful Personality of Godhead be pleased with us.
41. The bramanas and Vedic knowledge come from the mouth of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
the ksatriyas and bodily strength come from His arms, the vaisyas and their expert knowledge in
productivity and wealth come from His thighs, and the sudras, who are outside of Vedic knowledge,
come from His feet. May that Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is full in prowess, be pleased with
us.
42. Greed is generated from His lower lip, affection from His upper lip, bodily luster from His nose,
animalistic lusty desires from His sense of touch, Yamaraja from His eyebrows, and eternal time from
His eyelashes. May that Supreme Lord be pleased with us.
43. All learned men say that the five elements, eternal time, fruitive activity, the three modes of material
nature, and the varieties produced by these modes are all creations of yogamaya. This material world is
therefore extremely difficult to understand, but those who are highly learned have rejected it. May the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the controller of everything, be pleased with us.
44. Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is completely
silent, free from endeavor, and completely satisfied by His own achievements. He is not attached to the
activities of the material world through His senses. Indeed, in performing His pastimes in this material
world, He is just like the unattached air.
45. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, we are surrendered unto You, yet we wish to see You. Please
make Your original form and smiling lotus face visible to our eyes and appreciable to our other senses.
46. O Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, by Your sweet will You appear in various incarnations,
millennium after millennium, and act wonderfully, performing uncommon activities that would be
impossible for us.
47. Karmis are always anxious to accumulate wealth for their sense gratification, but for that purpose
they must work very hard. Yet even though they work hard, the results are not satisfying. Indeed,
sometimes their work results only in frustration. But devotees who have dedicated their lives to the
service of the Lord can achieve substantial results without working very hard. These results exceed the
devotee's expectations.
48. Activities dedicated to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, even if performed in small measure,
never go in vain. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, being the supreme father, is naturally very dear
and always ready to act for the good of the living entities.
49. When one pours water on the root of a tree, the trunk and branches of the tree are automatically
pleased. Similarly, when one becomes a devotee of Lord Visnu, everyone is served, for the Lord is the
Supersoul of everyone.
50. My Lord, all obeisances unto You, who are eternal, beyond time's limits of past, present and future.
You are inconceivable in Your activities, You are the master of the three modes of material nature, and,
being transcendental to all material qualities, You are free from material contamination. You are the
controller of all three of the modes of nature, but at the present You are in favor of the quality of
goodness. Let us offer our respectful obeisances unto You.
Chapter Six The Demigods and Demons Declare a Truce
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, being thus
worshiped with prayers by the demigods and Lord Brahma, appeared before them. His bodily
effulgence resembled the simultaneous rising of thousands of suns.
2. The vision of all the demigods was blocked by the Lord's effulgence. Thus they could see neither the
sky, the directions, the land, nor even themselves, what to speak of seeing the Lord, who was present
before them.
3-7. Lord Brahma, along with Lord Siva, saw the crystal-clear personal beauty of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, whose blackish body resembles a marakata gem, whose eyes are reddish like
the depths of a lotus, who is dressed with garments that are yellow like molten gold, and whose entire
body is attractively decorated. They saw His beautiful, smiling, lotuslike face, crowned by a helmet
bedecked with valuable jewels. The Lord has attractive eyebrows, and His cheeks are adorned with
earrings. Lord Brahma and Lord Siva saw the belt on the Lord's waist, the bangles on Mis arms, the
necklace on His chest, and the ankle bells on His legs. The Lord is bedecked with flower garlands, His
neck is decorated with the Kaustubha gem, and He carries with Him the goddess of fortune and His
personal weapons, like His disc and club. When Lord Brahma, along with Lord Siva and the other
demigods, thus saw the form of the Lord, they all immediately fell to the ground, offering their
obeisances.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 369
8. Lord Brahma said: Although You are never born, Your appearance and disappearance as an
incarnation never cease. You are always free from the material qualities, and You are the shelter of
transcendental bliss resembling an ocean. Eternally existing in Your transcendental form, You are the
supreme subtle of the most extremely subtle. We therefore offer our respectful obeisances unto You,
the Supreme, whose existence is inconceivable.
9. O best of persons, O supreme director, those who actually aspire for supreme good fortune worship
this form of Your Lordship according to the Vedic Tantras. My Lord, we can see all the three worlds in
You.
10. My dear Lord, who are always fully independent, this entire cosmic manifestation arises from You,
rests upon You and ends in You. Your Lordship is the beginning, sustenance and end of everything, like
the earth, which is the cause of an earthen pot, which supports the pot, and to which the pot, when
broken, finally returns.
11. O Supreme, You are independent in Your self and do not take help from others. Through Your own
potency, You create this cosmic manifestation and enter into it. Those who are advanced in Krsna
consciousness, who are fully in knowledge of the authoritative sastra, and who, through the practice of
bhakti-yoga, are cleansed of all material contamination, can see with clear minds that although You
exist within the transformations of the material qualities, Your presence is untouched by these qualities.
12. As one can derive fire from wood, milk from the milk bag of the cow, food grains and water from the
land, and prosperity in one's livelihood from industrial enterprises, so, by the practice of bhakti-yoga,
even within this material world, one can achieve Your favor or intelligently approach You. Those who
are pious all affirm this.
13. Elephants afflicted by a forest fire become very happy when they get water from the Ganges.
Similarly, O my Lord, from whose navel grows a lotus flower, since You have now appeared before us,
we have become transcendentally happy. By seeing Your Lordship, whom we have desired to see for a
very long time, we have achieved our ultimate goal in life.
14. My Lord, we, the various demigods, the directors of this universe, have come to Your lotus feet.
Please fulfill the purpose for which we have come. You are the witness of everything, from within and
without. Nothing is unknown to You, and therefore it is unnecessary to inform You again of anything.
15. I [Lord Brahma], Lord Siva and all the demigods, accompanied by the prajapatis like Daksa, are
nothing but sparks illuminated by You, who are the original fire. Since we are particles of You, what can
we understand about our welfare? O Supreme Lord, please give us the means of deliverance that is
suitable for the brahmanas and demigods.
16. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When the Lord was thus offered prayers by the demigods, headed
by Lord Brahma, He understood the purpose for which they had approached Him. Therefore, in a deep
voice that resembled the rumbling of clouds, the Lord replied to the demigods, who all stood there
attentively with folded hands.
17. Although the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the master of the demigods, was capable of
performing the activities of the demigods by Himself, He wanted to enjoy pastimes in churning the
ocean. Therefore He spoke as follows.
18. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O Lord Brahma, Lord Siva and other demigods, please
hear Me with great attention, for what I say will bring good fortune for all of you.
19. As long as you are not flourishing, you should make a truce with the demons and asuras, who are
now being favored by time.
20. O demigods, fulfilling one's own interests is so important that one may even have to make a truce
with one's enemies. For the sake of one's self-interest, one has to act according to the logic of the
snake and the mouse.
21. Immediately endeavor to produce nectar, which a person who is about to die may drink to become
immortal.
22-23. O demigods, cast into the ocean of milk all kinds of vegetables, grass, creepers and drugs.
Then, with My help, making Mandara Mountain the churning rod and Vasuki the rope for churning,
churn the ocean of milk with undiverted attention. Thus the demons will be engaged in labor, but you,
the demigods, will gain the actual result, the nectar produced from the ocean.
24. My dear demigods, with patience and peace everything can be done, but if one is agitated by anger,
the goal is not achieved. Therefore, whatever the demons ask, agree to their proposal.
25. A poison known as kalakuta will be generated from the ocean of milk, but you should not fear it. And
when various products are churned from the ocean, you should not be greedy for them or anxious to
obtain them, nor should you be angry.
26. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King Pariksit, after advising the demigods in this way, the
independent Supreme Personality of Godhead, the best of all living entities, disappeared from their
presence.
370 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
27. Then Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, after offering their respectful obeisances to the Lord, returned to
their abodes. All the demigods then approached Maharaja Bali.
28. Maharaja Bali, a most celebrated king of the demons, knew very well when to make peace and
when to fight. Thus although his commanders and captains were agitated and were about to kill the
demigods, Maharaja Bali, seeing that the demigods were coming to him without a militant attitude,
forbade his commanders to kill them.
29. The demigods approached Bali Maharaja, the son of Virocana, and sat down near him. Bali
Maharaja was protected by the commanders of the demons and was most opulent, having conquered
all the universes.
30. After pleasing Bali Maharaja with mild words, Lord Indra, the King of the demigods, who was most
intelligent, very politely submitted all the proposals he had learned from the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Lord Visnu.
31. The proposals submitted by King Indra were immediately accepted by Bali Maharaja and his
assistants, headed by Sambara and Aristanemi, and by all the other residents of Tripura.
32. O Maharaja Pariksit, chastiser of enemies, the demigods and the demons thereafter made an
armistice between them. Then, with great enterprise, they arranged to produce nectar, as proposed by
Lord Indra.
33. Thereafter, with great strength, the demons and demigods, who were all very powerful and who had
long, stout arms, uprooted Mandara Mountain. Crying very loudly, they brought it toward the ocean of
milk.
34. Because of conveying the great mountain for a long distance, King Indra, Maharaja Bali and the
other demigods and demons became fatigued. Being unable to carry the mountain, they left it on the
way.
35. The mountain known as Mandara, which was extremely heavy, being made of gold, fell and
smashed many demigods and demons.
36. The demigods and demons were frustrated and disheartened, and their arms, thighs and shoulders
were broken. Therefore the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who knows everything, appeared there
on the back of His carrier, Garuda.
37. Observing that most of the demons and the demigods had been crushed by the falling of the
mountain, the Lord glanced over them and brought them back to life. Thus they became free from grief,
and they even had no bruises on their bodies.
38. The Lord very easily lifted the mountain with one hand and placed it on the back of Garuda. Then,
He too got on the back of Garuda and went to the ocean of milk, surrounded by the demigods and
demons.
39. Thereafter, Garuda, the chief of birds, unloaded Mandara Mountain from his shoulder and brought it
near the water. Then he was asked by the Lord to leave that place, and he left.
Chapter Seven Lord Siva Saves the Universe by Drinking Poison
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O best of the Kurus, Maharaja Pariksit, the demigods and demons
summoned Vasuki, king of the serpents, requesting him to come and promising to give him a share of
the nectar. They coiled Vasuki around Mandara Mountain as a churning rope, and with great pleasure
they endeavored to produce nectar by churning the ocean of milk.
2. The Personality of Godhead, Ajita, grasped the front portion of the snake, and then the demigods
followed.
3. The leaders of the demons thought it unwise to hold the tail, the inauspicious portion of the snake.
Instead, they wanted to hold the front, which had been taken by the Personality of Godhead and the
demigods, because that portion was auspicious and glorious. Thus the demons, on the plea that they
were all highly advanced students of Vedic knowledge and were all famous for their birth and activities,
protested that they wanted to hold the front of the snake.
4. Thus the demons remained silent, opposing the desire of the demigods. Seeing the demons and
understanding their motive, the Personality of Godhead smiled. Without discussion, He immediately
accepted their proposal by grasping the tail of the snake, and the demigods followed Him.
5. After thus adjusting how the snake was to be held, the sons of Kasyapa, both demigods and demons,
began their activities, desiring to get nectar by churning the ocean of milk.
6. O son of the Pandu dynasty, when Mandara Mountain was thus being used as a churning rod in the
ocean of milk, it had no support, and therefore although held by the strong hands of the demigods and
demons, it sank into the water.
7. Because the mountain had been sunk by the strength of providence, the demigods and demons were
disappointed, and their faces seemed to shrivel.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 371
8. Seeing the situation that had been created by the will of the Supreme, the unlimitedly powerful Lord,
whose determination is infallible, took the wonderful shape of a tortoise, entered the water, and lifted the
great Mandara Mountain.
9. When the demigods and demons saw that Mandara Mountain had been lifted, they were enlivened
and encouraged to begin churning again. The mountain rested on the back of the great tortoise, which
extended for eight hundred thousand miles like a large island.
10. O King, when the demigods and demons, by the strength of their arms, rotated Mandara Mountain
on the back of the extraordinary tortoise, the tortoise accepted the rolling of the mountain as a means of
scratching His body, and thus He felt a pleasing sensation.
11. Thereafter, Lord Visnu entered the demons as the quality of passion, the demigods as the quality of
goodness, and Vasuki as the quality of ignorance to encourage them and increase their various types of
strength and energy.
12. Manifesting Himself with thousands of hands, the Lord then appeared on the summit of Mahdara
Mountain, like another great mountain, and held Mandara Mountain with one hand. In the upper
planetary systems, Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, along with Indra, King of heaven, and other demigods,
offered prayers to the Lord and showered flowers upon Him.
13. The demigods and demons worked almost madly for the nectar, encouraged by the Lord, who was
above and below the mountain and who had entered the demigods, the demons, Vasuki and the
mountain itself. Because of the strength of the demigods and demons, the ocean of milk was so
powerfully agitated that all the alligators in the water were very much perturbed. Nonetheless the
churning of the ocean continued in this way.
14. Vasuki had thousands of eyes and mouths. From his mouths he breathed smoke and blazing fire,
which affected the demons, headed by Pauloma, Kaleya, Bali and Ilvala. Thus the demons, who
appeared like sarala trees burned by a forest fire, gradually became powerless.
15. Because the demigods were also affected by the blazing breath of Vasuki, their bodily lusters
diminished, and their garments, garlands, weapons and faces were blackened by smoke. However, by
the grace of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, clouds appeared on the sea, pouring torrents of rain,
and breezes blew, carrying particles of water from the sea waves, to give the demigods relief.
16. When nectar did not come from the ocean of milk, despite so much endeavor by the best of the
demigods and demons, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Ajita, personally began to churn the
ocean.
17. The Lord appeared like a blackish cloud. He was dressed with yellow garments, His earrings shone
on His ears like lightning, and His hair spread over His shoulders. He wore a garland of flowers, and His
eyes were pinkish. With His strong, glorious arms, which award fearlessness throughout the universe,
He took hold of Vasuki and began churning the ocean, using Mandara Mountain as a churning rod.
When engaged in this way, the Lord appeared like a beautifully situated mountain named Indranila.
18. The fish, sharks, tortoises and snakes were most agitated and perturbed. The entire ocean became
turbulent, and even the large aquatic animals like whales, water elephants, crocodiles and timingila fish
[large whales that can swallow small whales] came to the surface. While the ocean was being churned
in this way, it first produced a fiercely dangerous poison called halahala.
19. O King, when that uncontrollable poison was forcefully spreading up and down in all directions, all
the demigods, along with the Lord Himself, approached Lord Siva [Sadasiva]. Feeling unsheltered and
very much afraid, they sought shelter of him.
20. The demigods observed Lord Siva sitting on the summit of Kailasa Hill with his wife, Bhavani, for the
auspicious development of the three worlds. He was being worshiped by great saintly persons desiring
liberation. The demigods offered him their obeisances and prayers with great respect.
21. The prajapatis said: O greatest of all demigods, Mahadeva, Supersoul of all living entities and cause
of their happiness and prosperity, we have come to the shelter of your lotus feet. Now please save us
from this fiery poison, which is spreading all over the three worlds.
22. O lord, you are the cause of bondage and liberation of the entire universe because you are its ruler.
Those who are advanced in spiritual consciousness surrender unto you, and therefore you are the
cause of mitigating their distresses, and you are also the cause of their liberation. We therefore worship
Your Lordship.
23. O lord, you are self-effulgent and supreme. You create this material world by your personal energy,
and you assume the names Brahma, Visnu and Mahesvara when you act in creation, maintenance and
annihilation.
24. You are the cause of all causes, the self-effulgent, inconceivable, impersonal Brahman, which is
originally Parabrahman. You manifest various potencies in this cosmic manifestation.
25. O lord, you are the original source of Vedic literature. You are the original cause of material creation,
the life force, the senses, the five elements, the three modes and the mahat-tattva. You are eternal
372 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
time, determination and the two religious systems called truth [satya] and truthfulness [rta]. You are the
shelter of the syllable om, which consists of three letters a-u-m.
26. O father of all planets, learned scholars know that fire is your mouth, the surface of the globe is your
lotus feet, eternal time is your movement, all the directions are your ears, and Varuna, master of the
waters, is your tongue.
27. O lord, the sky is your navel, the air is your breathing, the sun is your eyes, and the water is your
semen. You are the shelter of all kinds of living entities, high and low. The god of the moon is your
mind, and the upper planetary system is your head.
28. O lord, you are the three Vedas personified. The seven seas are your abdomen, and the mountains
are your bones. All drugs, creepers and vegetables are the hairs on your body, the Vedic mantras like
Gayatri are the seven layers of your body, and the Vedic religious system is the core of your heart.
29. O lord, the five important Vedic mantras are represented by your five faces, from which the thirty-
eight most celebrated Vedic mantras have been generated. Your Lordship, being celebrated as Lord
Siva, is self-illuminated. You are directly situated as the supreme truth, known as Paramatma.
30. O lord, your shadow is seen in irreligion, which brings about varieties of irreligious creations. The
three modes of nature--goodness, passion and ignorance--are your three eyes. All the Vedic literatures,
which are full of verses, are emanations from you because their compilers wrote the various scriptures
after receiving your glance.
31. O Lord Girisa, since the impersonal Brahman effulgence is transcendental to the material modes of
goodness, passion and ignorance, the various directors of this material world certainly cannot
appreciate it or even know where it is. It is not understandable even to Lord Brahma, Lord Visnu or the
King of heaven, Mahendra.
32. When annihilation is performed by the flames and sparks emanating from your eyes, the entire
creation is burned to ashes. Nonetheless, you do not know how this happens. What then is to be said of
your destroying the Daksa-yajna, Tripurasura and the kalakuta poison? Such activities cannot be
subject matters for prayers offered to you.
33. Exalted, self-satisfied persons who preach to the entire world think of your lotus feet constantly
within their hearts. However, when persons who do not know your austerity see you moving with Uma,
they misunderstand you to be lusty, or when they see you wandering in the crematorium they
mistakenly think that you are ferocious and envious. Certainly they are shameless. They cannot
understand your activities.
34. Even personalities like Lord Brahma and other demigods cannot understand your position, for you
are beyond the moving and nonmoving creation. Since no one can understand you in truth, how can
one offer you prayers? It is impossible. As far as we are concerned, we are creatures of Lord Brahma's
creation. Under the circumstances, therefore, we cannot offer you adequate prayers, but as far as our
ability allows, we have expressed our feelings.
35. O greatest of all rulers, your actual identity is impossible for us to understand. As far as we can see,
your presence brings flourishing happiness to everyone. Beyond this, no one can appreciate your
activities. We can see this much, and nothing more.
36. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Lord Siva is always benevolent toward all living entities. When
he saw that the living entities were very much disturbed by the poison, which was spreading
everywhere, he was very compassionate. Thus he spoke to his eternal consort, Sati, as follows.
37. Lord Siva said: My dear Bhavani, just see how all these living entities have been placed in danger
because of the poison produced from the churning of the ocean of milk.
38. It is my duty to give protection and safety to all living entities struggling for existence. Certainly it is
the duty of the master to protect his suffering dependents.
39. People in general, being bewildered by the illusory energy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
are always engaged in animosity toward one another. But devotees, even at the risk of their own
temporary lives, try to save them.
40. My dear gentle wife Bhavani, when one performs benevolent activities for others, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Hari, is very pleased. And when the Lord is pleased, I am also pleased, along
with all other living creatures. Therefore, let me drink this poison, for all the living entities may thus
become happy because of me.
41. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After informing Bhavani in this way, Lord Siva began to drink
the poison, and Bhavani, who knew perfectly well the capabilities of Lord Siva, gave him her permission
to do so.
42. Thereafter, Lord Siva, who is dedicated to auspicious, benevolent work for humanity,
compassionately took the whole quantity of poison in his palm and drank it.
43. As if in defamation, the poison born from the ocean of milk manifested its potency by marking Lord
Siva's neck with a bluish line. That line, however, is now accepted as an ornament of the Lord.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 373
44. It is said that great personalities almost always accept voluntary suffering because of the suffering
of people in general. This is considered the highest method of worshiping the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who is present in everyone's heart.
45. Upon hearing of this act, everyone, including Bhavani [the daughter of Maharaja Daksa], Lord
Brahma, Lord Visnu, and the people in general, very highly praised this deed performed by Lord Siva,
who is worshiped by the demigods and who bestows benedictions upon the people.
46. Scorpions, cobras, poisonous drugs and other animals whose bites are poisonous took the
opportunity to drink whatever little poison had fallen and scattered from Lord Siva's hand while he was
drinking.
Chapter Eight The Churning of the Milk Ocean
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Upon Lord Siva's drinking the poison, both the demigods and the
demons, being very pleased, began to churn the ocean with renewed vigor. As a result of this, there
appeared a cow known as surabhi.
2. O King Pariksit, great sages who were completely aware of the Vedic ritualistic ceremonies took
charge of that surabhi cow, which produced all the yogurt, milk and ghee absolutely necessary for
offering oblations into the fire. They did this just for the sake of pure ghee, which they wanted for the
performance of sacrifices to elevate themselves to the higher planetary systems, up to Brahmaloka.
3. Thereafter, a horse named Uccaihsrava, which was as white as the moon, was generated. Bali
Maharaja desired to possess this horse, and Indra, the King of heaven, did not protest, for he had
previously been so advised by the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
4. As the next result of the churning, the king of elephants, named Airavata, was generated. This
elephant was white, and with its four tusks it defied the glories of Kailasa Mountain, the glorious abode
of Lord Siva.
5. Thereafter, O King, eight great elephants, which could go in any direction, were generated. They
were headed by Airavana. Eight she-elephants, headed by Abhramu, were also generated.
6. Generated thereafter from the great ocean were the celebrated gems Kaustubha-mani and
Padmaraga-mani. Lord Visnu, to decorate His chest, desired to possess them. Generated next was the
parijata flower, which decorates the celestial planets. O King, as you fulfill the desires of everyone on
this planet by fulfilling all ambitions, the parijata fulfills the desires of everyone.
7. Next there appeared the Apsaras [who are used as prostitutes on the heavenly planets]. They were
fully decorated with golden ornaments and lockets and were dressed in fine and attractive clothing. The
Apsaras move very slowly in an attractive style that bewilders the inhabitants of the heavenly planets.
8. Then there appeared the goddess of fortune, Rama, who is absolutely dedicated to being enjoyed by
the Supreme Personality of Godhead. She appeared like electricity, surpassing the lightning that might
illuminate a marble mountain.
9. Because of her exquisite beauty, her bodily features, her youth, her complexion and her glories,
everyone, including the demigods, the demons and the human beings, desired her. They were attracted
because she is the source of all opulences.
10. The King of heaven, Indra, brought a suitable sitting place for the goddess of fortune. All the rivers
of sacred water, such as the Ganges and Yamuna, personified themselves, and each of them brought
pure water in golden waterpots for mother Laksmi, the goddess of fortune.
11. The land became a person and collected all the drugs and herbs needed for installing the Deity. The
cows delivered five products, namely milk, yogurt, ghee, urine and cow dung, and spring personified
collected everything produced in spring, during the months of Caitra and Vaisakha [April and May].
12. The great sages performed the bathing ceremony of the goddess of fortune as directed in the
authorized scriptures, the Gandharvas chanted all-auspicious Vedic mantras, and the professional
women dancers very nicely danced and sang authorized songs prescribed in the Vedas.
13. The clouds in personified form beat various types of drums, known as mrdangas, panavas, murajas
and anakas. They also blew conchshells and bugles known as gomukhas and played flutes and
stringed instruments. The combined sound of these instruments was tumultuous.
14. Thereafter, the great elephants from all the directions carried big water jugs full of Ganges water
and bathed the goddess of fortune, to the accompaniment of Vedic mantras chanted by learned
brahmanas. While thus being bathed, the goddess of fortune maintained her original style, with a lotus
flower in her hand, and she appeared very beautiful. The goddess of fortune is the most chaste, for she
does not know anyone but the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
15. The ocean, which is the source of all valuable jewels, supplied the upper and lower portions of a
yellow silken garment. The predominating deity of the water, Varuna, presented flower garlands
surrounded by six-legged bumblebees, drunken with honey.
374 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. Visvakarma, one of the prajapatis, supplied varieties of decorated ornaments. The goddess of
learning, Sarasvati, supplied a necklace, Lord Brahma supplied a lotus flower, and the inhabitants of
Nagaloka supplied earrings.
17. Thereafter, mother Laksmi, the goddess of fortune, having been properly celebrated with an
auspicious ritualistic ceremony, began moving about, holding in her hand a garland of lotus flowers,
which were surrounded by humming bumblebees. Smiling with shyness, her cheeks decorated by her
earrings, she looked extremely beautiful.
18. Her two breasts, which were symmetrical and nicely situated, were covered with sandalwood pulp
and kunkuma powder, and her waist was very thin. As she walked here and there, her ankle bells
jingling softly, she appeared like a creeper of gold.
19. While walking among the Gandharvas, Yaksas, asuras, Siddhas, Caranas and denizens of heaven,
Laksmidevi, the goddess of fortune, was scrutinizingly examining them, but she could not find anyone
naturally endowed with all good qualities. None of them was devoid of faults, and therefore she could
not take shelter of any of them.
20. The goddess of fortune, examining the assembly, thought in this way: Someone who has
undergone great austerity has not yet conquered anger. Someone possesses knowledge, but he has
not conquered material desires. Someone is a very great personality, but he cannot conquer lusty
desires. Even a great personality depends on something else. How, then, can he be the supreme
controller?
21. Someone may possess full knowledge of religion but still not be kind to all living entities. In
someone, whether human or demigod, there may be renunciation, but that is not the cause of liberation.
Someone may possess great power and yet be unable to check the power of eternal time. Someone
else may have renounced attachment to the material world, yet he cannot compare to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. Therefore, no one is completely freed from the influence of the material modes
of nature.
22. Someone may have longevity but not have auspiciousness or good behavior. Someone may have
both auspiciousness and good behavior, but the duration of his life is not fixed. Although such demigods
as Lord Siva have eternal life, they have inauspicious habits like living in crematoriums. And even if
others are well qualified in all respects, they are not devotees of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
23. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: In this way, after full deliberation, the goddess of fortune accepted
Mukunda as her husband because although He is independent and not in want of her, He possesses all
transcendental qualities and mystic powers and is therefore the most desirable.
24. Approaching the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the goddess of fortune placed upon His
shoulders the garland of newly grown lotus flowers, which was surrounded by humming bumblebees
searching for honey. Then, expecting to get a place on the bosom of the Lord, she remained standing
by His side, her face smiling in shyness.
25. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the father of the three worlds, and His bosom is the
residence of mother Laksmi, the goddess of fortune, the proprietor of all opulences. The goddess of
fortune, by her favorable and merciful glance, can increase the opulence of the three worlds, along with
their inhabitants and their directors, the demigods.
26. The inhabitants of Gandharvaloka and Caranaloka then took the opportunity to play their musical
instruments, such as conchshells, bugles and drums. They began dancing and singing along with their
wives.
27. Lord Brahma, Lord Siva, the great sage Angira, and similar directors of universal management
showered flowers and chanted mantras indicating the transcendental glories of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
28. All the demigods, along with the prajapatis and their descendants, being blessed by Laksmiji's
glance upon them, were immediately enriched with good behavior and transcendental qualities. Thus
they were very much satisfied.
29. O King, because of being neglected by the goddess of fortune, the demons and Raksasas were
depressed, bewildered and frustrated, and thus they became shameless.
30. Next appeared Varuni, the lotus-eyed goddess who controls drunkards. With the permission of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, the demons, headed by Bali Maharaja, took possession of
this young girl.
31. O King, thereafter, while the sons of Kasyapa, both demons and demigods, were engaged in
churning the ocean of milk, a very wonderful male person appeared.
32. He was strongly built; his arms were long, stout and strong; his neck, which was marked with three
lines, resembled a conchshell; his eyes were reddish; and his complexion was blackish. He was very
young, he was garlanded with flowers, and his entire body was fully decorated with various ornaments.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 375
33. He was dressed in yellow garments and wore brightly polished earrings made of pearls. The tips of
his hair were anointed with oil, and his chest was very broad. His body had all good features, he was
stout and strong like a lion, and he was decorated with bangles. In his hand he carried a jug filled to the
top with nectar.
34. This person was Dhanvantari, a plenary portion of a plenary portion of Lord Visnu. He was very
conversant with the science of medicine, and as one of the demigods he was permitted to take a share
in sacrifices.
35. Upon seeing Dhanvantari carrying the jug of nectar, the demons, desiring the jug and its contents,
immediately snatched it away by force.
36. When the jug of nectar was carried off by the demons, the demigods were morose. Thus they
sought shelter at the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari.
37. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who always desires to fulfill the ambitions of His
devotees, saw that the demigods were morose, He said to them, "Do not be aggrieved. By My own
energy I shall bewilder the demons by creating a quarrel among them. In this way I shall fulfill your
desire to have the nectar."
38. O King, a quarrel then arose among the demons over who would get the nectar first. Each of them
said, "You cannot drink it first. I must drink it first. Me first, not you!"
39-40. Some of the demons said, "All the demigods have taken part in churning the ocean of milk. Now,
as everyone has an equal right to partake in any public sacrifice, according to the eternal religious
system it is befitting that the demigods now have a share of the nectar." O King, in this way the weaker
demons forbade the stronger demons to take the nectar.
41-46. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, who can counteract any unfavorable situation,
then assumed the form of an extremely beautiful woman. This incarnation as a woman, Mohini-murti,
was most pleasing to the mind. Her complexion resembled in color a newly grown blackish lotus, and
every part of Her body was beautifully situated. Her ears were equally decorated with earrings, Her
cheeks were very beautiful, Her nose was raised and Her face full of youthful luster. Her large breasts
made Her waist seem very thin. Attracted by the aroma of Her face and body, bumblebees hummed
around Her, and thus Her eyes were restless. Her hair, which was extremely beautiful, was garlanded
with mallika flowers. Her attractively constructed neck was decorated with a necklace and other
ornaments, Her arms were decorated with bangles, Her body was covered with a clean sari, and Her
breasts seemed like islands in an ocean of beauty. Her legs were decorated with ankle bells. Because
of the movements of Her eyebrows as She smiled with shyness and glanced over the demons, all the
demons were saturated with lusty desires, and every one of them desired to possess Her.
Chapter Nine The Lord Incarnates as Mohini-Murti
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thereafter, the demons became inimical toward one another. Throwing and
snatching the container of nectar, they gave up their friendly relationship. Meanwhile, they saw a very
beautiful young woman coming forward toward them.
2. Upon seeing the beautiful woman, the demons said, "Alas, how wonderful is Her beauty, how
wonderful the luster of Her body, and how wonderful the beauty of Her youthful age!" Speaking in this
way, they quickly approached Her, full of lusty desires to enjoy Her, and began to inquire from Her in
many ways.
3. O wonderfully beautiful girl, You have such nice eyes, resembling the petals of a lotus flower. Who
are You? Where do You come from? What is Your purpose in coming here, and to whom do You
belong? O You whose thighs are extraordinarily beautiful, our minds are becoming agitated simply
because of seeing You.
4. What to speak of human beings, even the demigods, demons, Siddhas, Gandharvas, Caranas and
the various directors of the universe, the Prajapatis, have never touched You before. It is not that we
are unable to understand Your identity.
5. O beautiful girl with beautiful eyebrows, certainly Providence, by His causeless mercy, has sent You
to please the senses and minds of all of us. Is this not a fact?
6. We are now all engaged in enmity among ourselves because of this one subject matter--the
container of nectar. Although we have been born in the same family, we are becoming increasingly
inimical. O thin-waisted woman, who are so beautiful in Your prestigious position, we therefore request
You to favor us by settling our dispute.
7. All of us, both demons and demigods, have been born of the same father, Kasyapa, and thus we are
related as brothers. But now we are exhibiting our personal prowess in dissension. Therefore we
request You to settle our dispute and divide the nectar equally among us.
8. Having thus been requested by the demons, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who had
assumed the form of a beautiful woman, began to smile. Looking at them with attractive feminine
gestures, She spoke as follows.
376 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
9. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, in the form of Mohini, told the demons: O sons of Kasyapa
Muni, I am only a prostitute. Mow is it that you have so much faith in Me? A learned person never puts
his faith in a woman.
10. O demons, as monkeys, jackals and dogs are unsteady in their sexual relationships and want newer
and newer friends every day, women who live independently seek new friends daily. Friendship with
such a woman is never permanent. This is the opinion of learned scholars.
11. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After the demons heard the words of Mohini-murti, who had
spoken as if jokingly, they were all very confident. They laughed with gravity, and ultimately they
delivered the container of nectar into Her hands.
12. Thereafter, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, having taken possession of the container of
nectar, smiled slightly and spoke in attractive words. She said: My dear demons, if you accept whatever
I may do, whether honest or dishonest, then I can take responsibility for dividing the nectar among you.
13. The chiefs of the demons were not very expert in deciding things. Upon hearing the sweet words of
Mohini-murti, they immediately assented. "Yes," they answered. "What You have said is all right." Thus
the demons agreed to accept Her decision.
14-15. The demigods and demons then observed a fast. After bathing, they offered clarified butter and
oblations into the fire and gave charity to the cows and to the brahmanas and members of the other
orders of society, namely the ksatriyas, vaisyas and sudras, who were all rewarded as they deserved.
Thereafter, the demigods and demons performed ritualistic ceremonies under the directions of the
brahmanas. Then they dressed themselves with new garments according to their own choice,
decorated their bodies with ornaments, and sat facing east on seats made of kusa grass.
16-17. O King, as the demigods and demons sat facing east in an arena fully decorated with flower
garlands and lamps and fragrant with the smoke of incense, that woman, dressed in a most beautiful
sari, Her ankle bells tinkling, entered the arena, walking very slowly because of Her big, low hips. Her
eyes were restless due to youthful pride, Her breasts were like water jugs, Her thighs resembled the
trunks of elephants, and She carried a waterpot in Her hand.
18. Her attractive nose and cheeks and Her ears, adorned with golden earrings, made Her face very
beautiful. As She moved, Her sari's border on Her breasts moved slightly aside. When the demigods
and demons saw these beautiful features of Mohini-murti, who was glancing at them and slightly
smiling, they were all completely enchanted.
19. Demons are by nature crooked like snakes. Therefore, to distribute a share of the nectar to them
was not at all feasible, since this would be as dangerous as supplying milk to a snake. Considering this,
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who never falls down, did not deliver a share of nectar to the
demons.
20. The Supreme Personality of Godhead as Mohini-murti, the master of the universe, arranged
separate lines of sitting places and seated the demigods and demons according to their positions.
21. Taking the container of nectar in Her hands, She first approached the demons, satisfied them with
sweet words and thus cheated them of their share of the nectar. Then She administered the nectar to
the demigods, who were sitting at a distant place, to make them free from invalidity, old age and death.
22. O King, since the demons had promised to accept whatever the woman did, whether just or unjust,
now, to keep this promise, to show their equilibrium and to save themselves from fighting with a woman,
they remained silent.
23. The demons had developed affection for Mohini-murti and a kind of faith in Her, and they were
afraid of disturbing their relationship. Therefore they showed respect and honor to Her words and did
not say anything that might disturb their friendship with Her.
24. Rahu, the demon who causes eclipses of the sun and moon, covered himself with the dress of a
demigod and thus entered the assembly of the demigods and drank nectar without being detected by
anyone, even by the Supreme Personality of Godhead. The moon and the sun, however, because of
permanent animosity toward Rahu, understood the situation. Thus Rahu was detected.
25. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, using His disc, which was sharp like a razor, at once
cut off Rahu's head. When Rahu's head was severed from his body, the body, being untouched by the
nectar, could not survive.
26. Rahu's head, however, having been touched by the nectar, became immortal. Thus Lord Brahma
accepted Rahu's head as one of the planets. Since Rahu is an eternal enemy of the moon and the sun,
he always tries to attack them on the nights of the full moon and the dark moon.
27. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the best friend and well-wisher of the three worlds. Thus
when the demigods had almost finished drinking the nectar, the Lord, in the presence of all the demons,
disclosed His original form.
28. The place, the time, the cause, the purpose, the activity and the ambition were all the same for both
the demigods and the demons, but the demigods achieved one result and the demons another.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 377
Because the demigods are always under the shelter of the dust of the Lord's lotus feet, they could very
easily drink the nectar and get its result. The demons, however, not having sought shelter at the lotus
feet of the Lord, were unable to achieve the result they desired.
29. In human society there are various activities performed for the protection of one's wealth and life by
one's words, one's mind and one's actions, but they are all performed for one's personal or extended
sense gratification with reference to the body. All these activities are baffled because of being separate
from devotional service. But when the same activities are performed for the satisfaction of the Lord, the
beneficial results are distributed to everyone, just as water poured on the root of a tree is distributed
throughout the entire tree.
Chapter Ten The Battle Between the Demigods and the Demons
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, the demons and Daityas all engaged with full attention and effort in
churning the ocean, but because they were not devotees of Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Krsna, they were not able to drink the nectar.
2. O King, after the Supreme Personality of Godhead had brought to completion the affairs of churning
the ocean and feeding the nectar to the demigods, who are His dear devotees, He left the presence of
them all and was carried by Garuda to His own abode.
3. Seeing the victory of the demigods, the demons became intolerant of their superior opulence. Thus
they began to march toward the demigods with raised weapons.
4. Thereafter, being enlivened because of drinking the nectar, the demigods, who are always at the
shelter of the lotus feet of Narayana, used their various weapons to counterattack the demons in a
fighting spirit.
5. O King, a fierce battle on the beach of the ocean of milk ensued between the demigods and the
demons. The fighting was so terrible that simply hearing about it would make the hair on one's body
stand on end.
6. Both parties in that fight were extremely angry at heart, and in enmity they beat one another with
swords, arrows and varieties of other weapons.
7. The sounds of the conchshells, bugles, drums, bheris and danis [kettledrums], as well as the sounds
made by the elephants, horses and soldiers, who were both on chariots and on foot, were tumultuous.
8. On that battlefield, the charioteers fought with the opposing charioteers, the infantry soldiers with the
opposing infantry, the soldiers on horseback with the opposing soldiers on horseback, and the soldiers
on the backs of elephants with the enemy soldiers on elephants. In this way, the fighting took place
between equals.
9. Some soldiers fought on the backs of camels, some on the backs of elephants, some on asses,
some on white-faced and red-faced monkeys, some on tigers and some on lions. In this way, they all
engaged in fighting.
10-12. O King, some soldiers fought on the backs of vultures, eagles, ducks, hawks and bhasa birds.
Some fought on the backs of timingilas, which can devour huge whales, some on the backs of
sarabhas, and some on buffalo, rhinoceroses, cows, bulls, jungle cows and arunas. Others fought on
the backs of jackals, rats, lizards, rabbits, human beings, goats, black deer, swans and boars. In this
way, mounted on animals of the water, land and sky, including animals with deformed bodies, both
armies faced each other and went forward.
13-15. O King, O descendant of Maharaja Pandu, the soldiers of both the demigods and demons were
decorated by canopies, colorful flags, and umbrellas with handles made of valuable jewels and pearls.
They were further decorated by fans made of peacock feathers and by other fans also. The soldiers,
their upper and lower garments waving in the breeze, naturally looked very beautiful, and in the light of
the glittering sunshine their shields, ornaments and sharp, clean weapons appeared dazzling. Thus the
ranks of soldiers seemed like two oceans with bands of aquatics.
16-18. For that battle the most celebrated commander in chief, Maharaja Bali, son of Virocana, was
seated on a wonderful airplane named Vaihayasa. O King, this beautifully decorated airplane had been
manufactured by the demon Maya and was equipped with weapons for all types of combat. It was
inconceivable and indescribable. Indeed, it was sometimes visible and sometimes not. Seated in this
airplane under a beautiful protective umbrella and being fanned by the best of camaras, Maharaja Bali,
surrounded by his captains and commanders, appeared just like the moon rising in the evening,
illuminating all directions.
19-24. Surrounding Maharaja Bali on all sides were the commanders and captains of the demons,
sitting on their respective chariots. Among them were the following demons: Namuci, Sambara, Bana,
Vipracitti, Ayomukha, Dvimurdha, Kalanabha, Praheti, Heti, Ilvala, Sakuni, Bhutasantapa, Vajradamstra,
Virocana, Hayagriva, Sankusira, Kapila, Meghadundubhi, Taraka, Cakradrk, Sumbha, Nisumbha,
Jambha, Utkala, Arista, Aristanemi, Tripuradhipa, Maya, the sons of Puloma, the Kaleyas and
Nivatakavaca. All of these demons had been deprived of their share of the nectar and had shared
378 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
merely in the labor of churning the ocean. Now, they fought against the demigods, and to encourage
their armies, they made a tumultuous sound like the roaring of lions and blew loudly on conchshells.
Balabhit, Lord Indra, upon seeing this situation of his ferocious rivals, became extremely angry.
25. Sitting on Airavata, an elephant who can go anywhere and who holds water and wine in reserve for
showering, Lord Indra looked just like the sun rising from Udayagiri, where there are reservoirs of water.
26. Surrounding Lord Indra, King of heaven, were the demigods, seated on various types of vehicles
and decorated with flags and weapons. Present among them were Vayu, Agni, Varuna and other rulers
of various planets, along with their associates.
27. The demigods and demons came before each other and reproached one another with words
piercing to the heart. Then they drew near and began fighting face to face in pairs.
28. O King, Maharaja Bali fought with Indra, Karttikeya with Taraka, Varuna with Heti, and Mitra with
Praheti.
29. Yamaraja fought with Kalanabha, Visvakarma with Maya Danava, Tvasta with Sambara, and the
sun-god with Virocana.
30-31. The demigod Aparajita fought with Namuci, and the two Asvini-kumara brothers fought with
Vrsaparva. The sun-god fought with the one hundred sons of Maharaja Bali, headed by Bana, and the
moon-god fought with Rahu. The demigod controlling air fought with Puloma, and Sumbha and
Nisumbha fought the supremely powerful material energy, Durgadevi, who is called Bhadra Kali.
32-34. O Maharaja Pariksit, suppressor of enemies [Arindama], Lord Siva fought with Jambha, and
Vibhavasu fought with Mahisasura. Ilvala, along with his brother Vatapi, fought the sons of Lord
Brahma. Durmarsa fought with Cupid, the demon Utkala with the Matrka demigoddesses, Brhaspati
with Sukracarya, and Sanaiscara [Saturn] with Narakasura. The Maruts fought Nivatakavaca, the Vasus
fought the Kalakeya demons, the Visvedeva demigods fought the Pauloma demons, and the Rudras
fought the Krodhavasa demons, who were victims of anger.
35. All of these demigods and demons assembled on the battlefield with a fighting spirit and attacked
one another with great strength. All of them desiring victory, they fought in pairs, hitting one another
severely with sharpened arrows, swords and lances.
36. They severed one another's heads, using weapons like bhusundis, cakras, clubs, rstis, pattisas,
saktis, ulmukas, prasas, parasvadhas, nistrimsas, lances, parighas, mudgaras and bhindipalas.
37. The elephants, horses, chariots, charioteers, infantry soldiers and various kinds of carriers, along
with their riders, were slashed to pieces. The arms, thighs, necks and legs of the soldiers were severed,
and their flags, bows, armor and ornaments were torn apart.
38. Because of the impact on the ground of the legs of the demons and demigods and the wheels of the
chariots, particles of dust flew violently into the sky and made a dust cloud that covered all directions of
outer space, as far as the sun. But when the particles of dust were followed by drops of blood being
sprinkled all over space, the dust cloud could no longer float in the sky.
39. In the course of the battle, the warfield became strewn with the severed heads of heroes, their eyes
still staring and their teeth still pressed against their lips in anger. Helmets and earrings were scattered
from these severed heads. Similarly, many arms, decorated with ornaments and clutching various
weapons, were strewn here and there, as were many legs and thighs, which resembled the trunks of
elephants.
40. Many headless trunks were generated on that battlefield. With weapons in their arms, those ghostly
trunks, which could see with the eyes in the fallen heads, attacked the enemy soldiers.
41. Maharaja Bali then attacked Indra with ten arrows and attacked Airavata, Indra's carrier elephant,
with three arrows. With four arrows he attacked the four horsemen guarding Airavata's legs, and with
one arrow he attacked the driver of the elephant.
42. Before Bali Maharaja's arrows could reach him, Indra, King of heaven, who is expert in dealing with
arrows, smiled and counteracted the arrows with arrows of another type, known as bhalla, which were
extremely sharp.
43. When Bali Maharaja saw the expert military activities of Indra, he could not restrain his anger. Thus
he took up another weapon, known as sakti, which blazed like a great firebrand. But Indra cut that
weapon to pieces while it was still in Bali's hand.
44. Thereafter, one by one, Bali Maharaja used a lance, prasa, tomara, rstis and other weapons, but
whatever weapons he took up, Indra immediately cut them to pieces.
45. My dear King, Bali Maharaja then disappeared and resorted to demoniac illusions. A giant
mountain, generated from illusion, then appeared above the heads of the demigod soldiers.
46. From that mountain fell trees blazing in a forest fire. Chips of stone, with sharp edges like picks, also
fell and smashed the heads of the demigod soldiers.
47. Scorpions, large snakes and many other poisonous animals, as well as lions, tigers, boars and
great elephants, all began falling upon the demigod soldiers, crushing everything.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 379
48. O my King, many hundreds of male and female carnivorous demons, completely naked and
carrying tridents in their hands, then appeared, crying the slogans "Cut them to pieces! Pierce them!"
49. Fierce clouds, harassed by strong winds, then appeared in the sky. Rumbling very gravely with the
sound of thunder, they began to shower live coals.
50. A great devastating fire created by Bali Maharaja began burning all the soldiers of the demigods.
This fire, accompanied by blasting winds, seemed as terrible as the Samvartaka fire, which appears at
the time of dissolution.
51. Thereafter, whirlpools and sea waves, agitated by fierce blasts of wind, appeared everywhere,
before everyone's vision, in a furious flood.
52. While this magical atmosphere in the fight was being created by the invisible demons, who were
expert in such illusions, the soldiers of the demigods became morose.
53. O King, when the demigods could find no way to counteract the activities of the demons, they
wholeheartedly meditated upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the creator of the universe, who
then immediately appeared.
54. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose eyes resemble the petals of a newly blossomed lotus,
sat on the back of Garuda, spreading His lotus feet over Garuda's shoulders. Dressed in yellow,
decorated by the Kaustubha gem and the goddess of fortune, and wearing an invaluable helmet and
earrings, the Supreme Lord, holding various weapons in His eight hands, became visible to the
demigods.
55. As the dangers of a dream cease when the dreamer awakens, the illusions created by the jugglery
of the demons were vanquished by the transcendental prowess of the Supreme Personality of Godhead
as soon as He entered the battlefield. Indeed, simply by remembrance of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, one becomes free from all dangers.
56. O King, when the demon Kalanemi, who was carried by a lion, saw that the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, carried by Garuda, was on the battlefield, the demon immediately took his trident, whirled it
and discharged it at Garuda's head. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, the master of the three
worlds, immediately caught the trident, and with the very same weapon he killed the enemy Kalanemi,
along with his carrier, the lion.
57. Thereafter, two very powerful demons named Mali and Sumali were killed by the Supreme Lord,
who severed their heads with His disc. Then Malyavan, another demon, attacked the Lord. With his
sharp club, the demon, who was roaring like a lion, attacked Garuda, the lord of the birds, who are born
from eggs. But the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the original person, used His disc to cut off the
head of that enemy also.
Chapter Eleven King Indra Annihilates the Demons
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thereafter, by the supreme grace of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Sri Hari, all the demigods, headed by Indra and Vayu, were brought back to life. Being enlivened, the
demigods began severely beating the very same demons who had defeated them before.
2. When the most powerful Indra became angry and took his thunderbolt in hand to kill Maharaja Bali,
the demons began lamenting, "Alas, alas!"
3. Sober and tolerant and well equipped with paraphernalia for fighting, Bali Maharaja moved before
Indra on the great battlefield. King Indra, who always carries the thunderbolt in his hand, rebuked Bali
Maharaja as follows.
4. Indra said: O rascal, as a cheater sometimes binds the eyes of a child and takes away his
possessions, you are trying to defeat us by displaying some mystic power, although you know that we
are the masters of all such mystic powers.
5. Those fools and rascals who want to ascend to the upper planetary system by mystic power or
mechanical means, or who endeavor to cross even the upper planets and achieve the spiritual world or
liberation, I cause to be sent to the lowest region of the universe.
6. Today, with my thunderbolt, which has hundreds of sharp edges, I, the same powerful person, shall
sever your head from your body. Although you can produce so much jugglery through illusion, you are
endowed with a poor fund of knowledge. Now, try to exist on this battlefield with your relatives and
friends.
7. Bali Maharaja replied: All those present on this battlefield are certainly under the influence of eternal
time, and according to their prescribed activities, they are destined to receive fame, victory, defeat and
death, one after another.
8. Seeing the movements of time, those who are cognizant of the real truth neither rejoice nor lament
for different circumstances. Therefore, because you are jubilant due to your victory, you should be
considered not very learned.
380 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
9. You demigods think that your own selves are the cause of your attaining fame and victory. Because
of your ignorance, saintly persons feel sorry for you. Therefore, although your words afflict the heart, we
do not accept them.
10. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After thus rebuking Indra, King of heaven, with sharp words, Bali
Maharaja, who could subdue any other hero, drew back to his ear the arrows known as naracas and
attacked Indra with these arrows. Then he again chastised Indra with strong words.
11. Since Maharaja Bali's rebukes were truthful, King Indra did not at all become sorry, just as an
elephant beaten by its driver's rod does not become agitated.
12. When Indra, the defeater of enemies, released his infallible thunderbolt scepter at Bali Maharaja
with a desire to kill him, Bali Maharaja indeed fell to the ground with his airplane, like a mountain with its
wings cut off.
13. When the demon Jambhasura saw that his friend Bali had fallen, he appeared before Indra, the
enemy, just to serve Bali Maharaja with friendly behavior.
14. The greatly powerful Jambhasura, carried by a lion, approached Indra and forcefully struck him on
the shoulder with his club. He also struck Indra's elephant.
15. Being beaten by Jambhasura's club, Indra's elephant was confused and aggrieved. Thus it touched
its knees to the ground and fell unconscious.
16. Thereafter, Matali, Indra's chariot driver, brought Indra's chariot, which was drawn by one thousand
horses. Indra then left his elephant and got onto the chariot.
17. Appreciating Matali's service, Jambhasura, the best of the demons, smiled. Nonetheless, he struck
Matali in the battle with a trident of blazing fire.
18. Although the pain was extremely severe, Matali tolerated it with great patience. Indra, however,
became extremely angry at Jambhasura. He struck Jambhasura with his thunderbolt and thus severed
his head from his body.
19. When Narada Rsi informed Jambhasura's friends and relatives that Jambhasura had been killed,
the three demons named Namuci, Bala and Paka arrived on the battlefield in great haste.
20. Rebuking Indra with harsh, cruel words that were piercing to the heart, these demons showered him
with arrows, just as torrents of rain wash a great mountain.
21. Quickly handling the situation on the battlefield, the demon Bala put all of Indra's one thousand
horses into tribulation by simultaneously piercing them all with an equal number of arrows.
22. Paka, another demon, attacked both the chariot, with all its paraphernalia, and the chariot driver,
Matali, by fitting two hundred arrows to his bow and releasing them all simultaneously. This was indeed
a wonderful act on the battlefield.
23. Then Namuci, another demon, attacked Indra and injured him with fifteen very powerful golden-
feathered arrows, which roared like a cloud full of water.
24. Other demons covered Indra, along with his chariot and chariot driver, with incessant showers of
arrows, just as clouds cover the sun in the rainy season.
25. The demigods, being severely oppressed by their enemies and being unable to see Indra on the
battlefield, were very anxious. Having no captain or leader, they began lamenting like traders in a
wrecked vessel in the midst of the ocean.
26. Thereafter, Indra released himself from the cage of the network of arrows. Appearing with his
chariot, flag, horses and chariot driver and thus pleasing the sky, the earth and all directions, he shone
effulgently like the sun at the end of night. Indra was bright and beautiful in the vision of everyone.
27. When Indra, who is known as Vajra-dhara, the carrier of the thunderbolt, saw his own soldiers so
oppressed by the enemies on the battlefield, he became very angry. Thus he took up his thunderbolt to
kill the enemies.
28. O King Pariksit, King Indra used his thunderbolt to cut off the heads of both Bala and Paka in the
presence of all their relatives and followers. In this way he created a very fearful atmosphere on the
battlefield.
29. O King, when Namuci, another demon, saw the killing of both Bala and Paka, he was full of grief
and lamentation. Thus he angrily made a great attempt to kill Indra.
30. Being angry and roaring like a lion, the demon Namuci took up a steel spear, which was bound with
bells and decorated with ornaments of gold. He loudly cried, "Now you are killed!" Thus coming before
Indra to kill him, Namuci released his weapon.
31. O King, when Indra, King of heaven, saw this very powerful spear falling toward the ground like a
blazing meteor, he immediately cut it to pieces with his arrows. Then, being very angry, he struck
Namuci's shoulder with his thunderbolt to cut off Namuci's head.
32. Although King Indra hurled his thunderbolt at Namuci with great force, it could not even pierce his
skin. It is very wonderful that the famed thunderbolt that had pierced the body of Vrtrasura could not
even slightly injure the skin of Namuci's neck.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 381
33. When Indra saw the thunderbolt return from the enemy, he was very much afraid. He began to
wonder whether this had happened because of some miraculous superior power.
34. Indra thought: Formerly, when many mountains flying in the sky with wings would fall to the ground
and kill people, I cut their wings with this same thunderbolt.
35. Vrtrasura was the essence of the austerities undergone by Tvasta, yet the thunderbolt killed him.
Indeed, not only he but also many other stalwart heroes, whose very skin could not be injured even by
all kinds of weapons, were killed by the same thunderbolt.
36. But now, although the same thunderbolt has been released against a less important demon, it has
been ineffectual. Therefore, although it was as good as a brahmastra, it has now become useless like
an ordinary rod. I shall therefore hold it no longer.
37. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: While the morose Indra was lamenting in this way, an ominous,
unembodied voice said from the sky, "This demon Namuci is not to be annihilated by anything dry or
moist."
38. The voice also said, "O Indra, because I have given this demon the benediction that he will never be
killed by any weapon that is dry or moist, you have to think of another way to kill him."
39. After hearing the ominous voice, Indra, with great attention, began to meditate on how to kill the
demon. He then saw that foam would be the means, for it is neither moist nor dry.
40. Thus Indra, King of heaven, severed Namuci's head with a weapon of foam, which was neither dry
nor moist. Then all the sages satisfied Indra, the exalted personality, by showering flowers and garlands
upon him, almost covering him.
41. Visvavasu and Paravasu, the two chiefs of the Gandharvas, sang in great happiness. The
kettledrums of the demigods sounded, and the Apsaras danced in jubilation.
42. Vayu, Agni, Varuna and other demigods began killing the demons who opposed them, just as lions
kill deer in a forest.
43. O King, when Lord Brahma saw the imminent total annihilation of the demons, he sent a message
with Narada, who went before the demigods to make them stop fighting.
44. The great sage Narada said: All of you demigods are protected by the arms of Narayana, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, and by His grace you have gotten the nectar. By the grace of the
goddess of fortune, you are glorious in every way. Therefore, please stop this fighting.
45. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Accepting the words of Narada, the demigods gave up their anger and
stopped fighting. Being praised by their followers, they returned to their heavenly planets.
46. Following the order of Narada Muni, whatever demons remained on the battlefield took Bali
Maharaja, who was in a precarious condition, to the hill known as Astagirim.
47. There, on that hill, Sukracayra brought to life all the dead demoniac soldiers who had not lost their
heads, trunks and limbs. He achieved this by his own mantra, known as Samjivani.
48. Bali Maharaja was very experienced in universal affairs. When he regained his senses and memory
by the grace of Sukracarya, he could understand everything that had happened. Therefore, although he
had been defeated, he did not lament.
Chapter Twelve The Mohini-murti Incarnation Bewilders Lord Siva
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, in the form of a woman,
captivated the demons and enabled the demigods to drink the nectar. After hearing of these pastimes,
Lord Siva, who is carried by a bull, went to the place where Madhusudana, the Lord, resides.
Accompanied by his wife, Uma, and surrounded by his companions, the ghosts, Lord Siva went there to
see the Lord's form as a woman.
3. The Supreme Personality of Godhead welcomed Lord Siva and Uma with great respect, and after
being seated comfortably, Lord Siva duly worshiped the Lord and smilingly spoke as follows.
4. Lord Mahadeva said: O chief demigod among the demigods, O all-pervading Lord, master of the
universe, by Your energy You are transformed into the creation. You are the root and efficient cause of
everything. You are not material. Indeed, You are the Supersoul or supreme living force of everything.
Therefore, You are Paramesvara, the supreme controller of all controllers.
5. The manifest, the unmanifest, false ego and the beginning, maintenance and annihilation of this
cosmic manifestation all come from You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. But because You are
the Absolute Truth, the supreme absolute spirit soul, the Supreme Brahman, such changes as birth,
death and sustenance do not exist in You.
6. Pure devotees or great saintly persons who desire to achieve the highest goal in life and who are
completely free from all material desires for sense gratification engage constantly in the transcendental
service of Your lotus feet.
7. My Lord, You are the Supreme Brahman, complete in everything. Being completely spiritual, You are
eternal, free from the material modes of nature, and full of transcendental bliss. Indeed, for You there is
no question of lamentation. Since You are the supreme cause, the cause of all causes, nothing can
382 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
exist without You. Yet we are different from You in a relationship of cause and effect, for in one sense
the cause and effect are different. You are the original cause of creation, manifestation and annihilation,
and You bestow benedictions upon all living entities. Everyone depends upon You for the results of his
activities, but You are always independent.
8. My dear Lord, Your Lordship alone is the cause and the effect. Therefore, although You appear to be
two, You are the absolute one. As there is no difference between the gold of a golden ornament and the
gold in a mine, there is no difference between cause and effect; both of them are the same. Only
because of ignorance do people concoct differences and dualities. You are free from material
contamination, and since the entire cosmos is caused by You and cannot exist without You, it is an
effect of Your transcendental qualities. Thus the conception that Brahman is true and the world false
cannot be maintained.
9. Those who are known as the impersonalist Vedantists regard You as the impersonal Brahman.
Others, known as the Mimamsaka philosophers, regard You as religion. The Sankhya philosophers
regard You as the transcendental person who is beyond prakrti and purusa and who is the controller of
even the demigods. The followers of the codes of devotional service known as the Pancaratras regard
You as being endowed with nine different potencies. And the Patanjala philosophers, the followers of
Patanjali Muni, regard You as the supreme independent Personality of Godhead, who has no equal or
superior.
10. O my Lord, I, who am considered to be the best of the demigods, and Lord Brahma and the great
rsis, headed by Marici, are born of the mode of goodness. Nonetheless, we are bewildered by Your
illusory energy and cannot understand what this creation is. Aside from us, what is to be said of others,
like the demons and human beings, who are in the base modes of material nature [rajo-guna and tamo-
guna]? How will they know You?
11. My Lord, You are the supreme knowledge personified. You know everything about this creation and
its beginning, maintenance and annihilation, and You know all the endeavors made by the living
entities, by which they are either implicated in this material world or liberated from it. As the air enters
the vast sky and also enters the bodies of all moving and nonmoving entities, You are present
everywhere, and therefore You are the knower of all.
12. My Lord, I have seen all kinds of incarnations You have exhibited by Your transcendental qualities,
and now that You have appeared as a beautiful young woman, I wish to see that form of Your Lordship.
13. My Lord, we have come here desiring to see that form of Your Lordship which You showed to the
demons to captivate them completely and in this way enable the demigods to drink nectar. I am very
eager to see that form.
14. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When Lord Visnu was thus requested by Lord Siva, who carries a trident
in his hand, He smiled with gravity and replied to Lord Siva as follows.
15. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: When the demons took away the jug of nectar, I
assumed the form of a beautiful woman to bewilder them by directly cheating them and thus to act in
the interest of the demigods.
16. O best of the demigods, I shall now show you My form that is very much appreciated by those who
are lusty. Since you want to see that form, I shall reveal it in your presence.
17. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After speaking in this way, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Visnu, immediately disappeared, and Lord Siva remained there with Uma, looking for Him all around
with moving eyes.
18. Thereafter, in a nice forest nearby, full of trees with reddish-pink leaves and varieties of flowers,
Lord Siva saw a beautiful woman playing with a ball. Her hips were covered with a shining sari and
ornamented with a belt.
19. Because the ball was falling down and bouncing up, as She played with it Her breasts trembled, and
because of the weight of those breasts and Her heavy flower garlands, Her waist appeared to be all but
breaking at every step, as Her two soft feet, which were reddish like coral, moved here and there.
20. The woman's face was decorated by broad, beautiful, restless eyes, which moved as the ball
bounced here and there from Her hand. The two brilliant earrings on Her ears decorated Her shining
cheeks like bluish reflections, and the hair scattered on Her face made Her even more beautiful to see.
21. As She played with the ball, the sari covering Her body became loose, and Her hair scattered. She
tried to bind Her hair with Her beautiful left hand, and at the same time She played with the ball by
striking it with Her right hand. This was so attractive that the Supreme Lord, by His internal potency, in
this way captivated everyone.
22. While Lord Siva observed the beautiful woman playing with the ball, She sometimes glanced at him
and slightly smiled in bashfulness. As he looked at the beautiful woman and She watched him, he forgot
both himself and Uma, his most beautiful wife, as well as his associates nearby.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 383
23. When the ball leaped from Her hand and fell at a distance, the woman began to follow it, but as Lord
Siva observed these activities, a breeze suddenly blew away the fine dress and belt that covered her.
24. Thus Lord Siva saw the woman, every part of whose body was beautifully formed, and the beautiful
woman also looked at him. Therefore, thinking that She was attracted to him, Lord Siva became very
much attracted to Her.
25. Lord Siva, his good sense taken away by the woman because of lusty desires to enjoy with Her,
became so mad for Her that even in the presence of Bhavani he did not hesitate to approach Her.
26. The beautiful woman was already naked, and when She saw Lord Siva coming toward Her, She
became extremely bashful. Thus She kept smiling, but She hid Herself among the trees and did not
stand in one place.
27. His senses being agitated, Lord Siva, victimized by lusty desires, began to follow Her, just as a lusty
elephant follows a she-elephant.
28. After following Her with great speed, Lord Siva caught Her by the braid of Her hair and dragged Her
near him. Although She was unwilling, he embraced Her with his arms.
29-30. Being embraced by Lord Siva like a female elephant embraced by a male, the woman, whose
hair was scattered, swirled like a snake. O King, this woman, who had large, high hips, was a woman of
yogamaya presented by the Supreme Personality of Godhead. She released Herself somehow or other
from the fond embrace of Lord Siva's arms and ran away.
31. As if harassed by an enemy in the form of lusty desires, Lord Siva followed the path of Lord Visnu,
who acts very wonderfully and who had taken the form of Mohini.
32. Just as a maddened bull elephant follows a female elephant who is able to conceive pregnancy,
Lord Siva followed the beautiful woman and discharged semen, even though his discharge of semen
never goes in vain.
33. O King, wheresoever on the surface of the globe fell the semen of the great personality of Lord Siva,
mines of gold and silver later appeared.
34. Following Mohini, Lord Siva went everywhere--near the shores of the rivers and lakes, near the
mountains, near the forests, near the gardens, and wherever there lived great sages.
35. O Maharaja Pariksit, best of kings, when Lord Siva had fully discharged semen, he could see how
he himself had been victimized by the illusion created by the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Thus he
restrained himself from any further maya.
36. Thus Lord Siva could understand his position and that of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
has unlimited potencies. Having reached this understanding, he was not at all surprised by the
wonderful way Lord Visnu had acted upon him.
37. Seeing Lord Siva unagitated and unashamed, Lord Visnu [Madhusudana] was very pleased. Thus
He resumed His original form and spoke as follows.
38. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O best of the demigods, although you have been amply
harassed because of My potency in assuming the form of a woman, you are established in your
position. Therefore, may all good fortune be upon you.
39. My dear Lord Sambhu, who within this material world but you can surpass My illusory energy?
People are generally attached to sense enjoyment and conquered by its influence. Indeed, the influence
of material nature is very difficult for them to surmount.
40. The material, external energy [maya], who cooperates with Me in creation and who is manifested in
the three modes of nature, will not be able to bewilder you any longer.
41. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, having thus been praised by the Supreme Personality, who bears
the mark of Srivatsa on His chest, Lord Siva circumambulated Him. Then, after taking permission from
Him, Lord Siva returned to his abode, Kailasa, along with his associates.
42. O descendant of Bharata Maharaja, Lord Siva, in jubilation, then addressed his wife, Bhavani, who
is accepted by all authorities as the potency of Lord Visnu.
43. Lord Siva said: O Goddess, you have now seen the illusory energy of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who is the unborn master of everyone. Although I am one of the principal expansions of His
Lordship, even I was illusioned by His energy. What then is to be said of others, who are fully
dependent on maya?
44. When I finished performing mystic yoga for one thousand years, you asked me upon whom I was
meditating. Now, here is that Supreme Person to whom time has no entrance and who the Vedas
cannot understand.
45. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, the person who bore the great mountain on His back for the
churning of the ocean of milk is the same Supreme Personality of Godhead, known as Sarnga-dhanva.
I have now described to you His prowess.
384 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
46. The endeavor of one who constantly hears or describes this narration of the churning of the ocean
of milk will never be fruitless. Indeed, chanting the glories of the Supreme Personality of Godhead is the
only means to annihilate all sufferings in this material world.
47. Assuming the form of a young woman and thus bewildering the demons, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead distributed to His devotees, the demigods, the nectar produced from the churning of the
ocean of milk. Unto that Supreme Personality of Godhead, who always fulfills the desires of His
devotees, I offer my respectful obeisances.
Chapter Thirteen Description of Future Manus
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The present Manu, who is named Sraddhadeva, is the son of Vivasvan, the
predominating deity on the sun planet. Sraddhadeva is the seventh Manu. Now please hear from me as
I describe his sons.
2-3. O King Pariksit, among the ten sons of Manu are Iksvaku, Nabhaga, Dhrsta, Saryati, Narisyanta
and Nabhaga. The seventh son is known as Dista. Then come Tarusa and Prsadhra, and the tenth son
is known as Vasuman.
4. In this manvantara, O King, the Adityas, the Vasus, the Rudras, the Visvedevas, the Maruts, the two
Asvini-kumara brothers and the Rbhus are the demigods. Their head king [Indra] is Purandara.
5. Kasyapa, Atri, Vasistha, Visvamitra, Gautama, Jamadagni and Bharadvaja are known as the seven
sages.
6. In this manvantara, the Supreme Personality of Godhead appeared as the youngest of all the
Adityas, known as Vamana, the dwarf. His father was Kasyapa and His mother Aditi.
7. I have briefly explained to you the position of the seven Manus. Now I shall describe the future
Manus, along with the incarnations of Lord Visnu.
8. O King, I have previously described [in the Sixth Canto] the two daughters of Visvakarma, named
Samjna and Chaya, who were the first two wives of Vivasvan.
9. It is said that the sun-god had a third wife, named Vadava. Of the three wives, the wife named
Samjna had three children--Yama, Yami and Sraddhadeva. Now let me describe the children of Chaya.
10. Chaya had a son named Savarni and a daughter named Tapati, who later became the wife of King
Samvarana. Chaya's third child is known as Sanaiscara [Saturn]. Vadava gave birth to two sons,
namely the Asvini brothers.
11. O King, when the period of the eighth Manu arrives, Savarni will become the Manu. Nirmoka and
Virajaska will be among his sons.
12. In the period of the eighth Manu, among the demigods will be the Sutapas, the Virajas and the
Amrtaprabhas. The king of the demigods, Indra, will be Bali Maharaja, the son of Virocana.
13. Bali Maharaja gave a gift of three paces of land to Lord Visnu, and because of this charity he lost all
the three worlds. Later, however, when Lord Visnu is pleased because of Bali's giving everything to
Him, Bali Maharaja will achieve the perfection of life.
14. With great affection, the Personality of Godhead bound Bali and then installed him in the kingdom of
Sutala, which is more opulent than the heavenly planets. Maharaja Bali now resides on that planet and
is more comfortably situated than Indra.
15-16. O King, during the eighth manvantara, the great personalities Galava, Diptimari, Parasurama,
Asvatthama, Krpacarya, Rsyasrnga and our father, Vyasadeva, the incarnation of Narayana, will be the
seven sages. For the present, they are all residing in their respective asramas.
17. In the eighth manvantara, the greatly powerful Personality of Godhead Sarvabhauma will take birth.
His father will be Devaguhya, and His mother will be Sarasvati. He will take the kingdom away from
Purandara [Lord Indra] and give it to Bali Maharaja.
18. O King, the ninth Manu will be Daksa-savarni, who is born of Varuna. Among his sons will be
Bhutaketu, and Diptaketu.
19. In this ninth manvantara, the Paras and Maricigarbhas will be among the demigods. The king of
heaven, Indra, will be named Adbhuta, and Dyutiman will be among the seven sages.
20. Rsabhadeva, a partial incarnation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, will take birth from his
father, Ayusman, and his mother, Ambudhara. He will enable the Indra named Adbhuta to enjoy the
opulence of the three worlds.
21. The son of Upasloka known as Brahma-savarni will be the tenth Manu. Bhurisena will be among his
sons, and the brahmanas headed by Havisman will be the seven sages.
22. Havisman, Sukrta, Satya, Jaya, Murti and others will be the seven sages, the Suvasanas and
Viruddhas will be among the demigods, and Sambhu will be their king, Indra.
23. In the home of Visvasrasta, a plenary portion of the Supreme Personality of Godhead will appear
from the womb of Visuci as the incarnation known as Visvaksena. He will make friends with Sambhu.
24. In the eleventh manvantara, the Manu will be Dharma-savarni, who will be extremely learned in
spiritual knowledge. From him there will come ten sons, headed by Satyadharma.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 385
25. The Vihangamas, Kamagamas, Nirvanarucis and others will be the demigods. The king of the
demigods, Indra, will be Vaidhrta, and the seven sages will be headed by Aruna.
26. The son of Aryaka known as Dharmasetu, a partial incarnation of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, will appear from the womb of Vaidhrta, the wife of Aryaka, and will rule the three worlds.
27. O King, the twelfth Manu will be named Rudra-savarni. Devavan, Upadeva and Devasrestha will be
among his sons.
28. In this manvantara, the name of Indra will be Rtadhama, and the demigods will be headed by the
Maritas. Among the sages will be Tapomurti, Tapasvi and Agnidhraka.
29. From the mother named Sunrta and the father named Satyasaha will come Svadhama, a partial
incarnation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. He will rule that manvantara.
30. The thirteenth Manu will be named Deva-savarni, and he will be very advanced in spiritual
knowledge. Among his sons will be Citrasena and Vicitra.
31. In the thirteenth manvantara, the Sukarmas and Sutramas will be among the demigods, Divaspati
will be the king of heaven, and Nirmoka and Tattvadarsa will be among the seven sages.
32. The son of Devahotra known as Yogesvara will appear as a partial incarnation of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. His mother's name will be Brhati. He will perform activities for the welfare of
Divaspati.
33. The name of the fourteenth Manu will be Indra-savarni. He will have sons like Uru, Gambhira and
Budha.
34. The Pavitras and Caksusas will be among the demigods, and Suci will be Indra, the king of heaven.
Agni, Bahu, Suci, Suddha, Magadha and others of great austerity will be the seven sages.
35. O King Pariksit, in the fourteenth manvantara the Supreme Personality of Godhead will appear from
the womb of Vitana, and His father's name will be Satrayana. This incarnation will be celebrated as
Brhadbhanu, and He will administer spiritual activities.
36. O King, I have now described to you the fourteen Manus appearing in the past, present and future.
The total duration of time ruled by these Manus is one thousand yuga cycles. This is called a kalpa, or
one day of Lord Brahma.
Chapter Fourteen The System of Universal Management
1. Maharaja Pariksit inquired: O most opulent Sukadeva Gosvami, please explain to me how Manu and
the others in each manvantara are engaged in their respective duties, and by whose order they are so
engaged.
2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The Manus, the sons of Manu, the great sages, the Indras and all the
demigods, O King, are appointed by the Supreme Personality of Godhead in His various incarnations
such as Yajna.
3. O King, I have already described to you various incarnations of the Lord, such as Yajna. The Manus
and others are chosen by these incarnations, under whose direction they conduct the universal affairs.
4. At the end of every four yugas, the great saintly persons, upon seeing that the eternal occupational
duties of mankind have been misused, reestablish the principles of religion.
5. Thereafter, O King, the Manus, being fully engaged according to the instructions of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, directly reestablish the principles of occupational duty in its full four parts.
6. To enjoy the results of sacrifices [yajnas], the rulers of the world, namely the sons and grandsons of
Manu, discharge the orders of the Supreme Personality of Godhead until the end of Manu's reign. The
demigods also share the results of these sacrifices.
7. Indra, King of heaven, receiving benedictions from the Supreme Personality of Godhead and thus
enjoying highly developed opulences, maintains the living entities all over the three worlds by pouring
sufficient rain on all the planets.
8. In every yuga, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, assumes the form of Siddhas such as
Sanaka to preach transcendental knowledge, He assumes the form of great saintly persons such as
Yajnavalkya to teach the way of karma, and He assumes the form of great yogis such as Dattatreya to
teach the system of mystic yoga.
9. In the form of Prajapati Marici, the Supreme Personality of Godhead creates progeny; becoming the
king, He kills the thieves and rogues; and in the form of time, He annihilates everything. All the different
qualities of material existence should be understood to be qualities of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
10. People in general are bewildered by the illusory energy, and therefore they try to find the Absolute
Truth, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, through various types of research and philosophical
speculation. Nonetheless, they are unable to see the Supreme Lord.
11. In one kalpa, or one day of Brahma, there take place the many changes called vikalpas. O King, all
of these have been previously described to you by me. Learned scholars who know the past, present
and future have ascertained that in one day of Brahma there are fourteen Manus.
386 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Fifteen Bali Maharaja Conquers the Heavenly Planets
1-2. Maharaja Pariksit inquired: The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the proprietor of everything.
Why did He beg three paces of land from Bali Maharaja like a poor man, and when He got the gift for
which He had begged, why did He nonetheless arrest Bali Maharaja? I am very much anxious to know
the mystery of these contradictions.
3. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, when Bali Maharaja lost all his opulence and died in the fight,
Sukracarya, a descendant of Bhrgu Muni, brought him back to life. Because of this, the great soul Bali
Maharaja became a disciple of Sukracarya and began to serve him with great faith, offering everything
he had.
4. The brahmana descendants of Bhrgu Muni were very pleased with Bali Maharaja, who desired to
conquer the kingdom of Indra. Therefore, after purifying him and properly bathing him according to
regulative principles, they engaged him in performing the yajna known as Visvajit.
5. When ghee [clarified butter] was offered in the fire of sacrifice, there appeared from the fire a celestial
chariot covered with gold and silk. There also appeared yellow horses like those of Indra, and a flag
marked with a lion.
6. A gilded bow, two quivers of infallible arrows, and celestial armor also appeared. Bali Maharaja's
grandfather Prahlada Maharaja offered Bali a garland of flowers that would never fade, and Sukracarya
gave him a conchshell.
7. When Maharaja Bali had thus performed the special ritualistic ceremony advised by the brahmanas
and had received, by their grace, the equipment for fighting, he circumambulated the brahmanas and
offered them obeisances. He also saluted Prahlada Maharaja and offered obeisances to him.
8-9. Then, after getting on the chariot given by Sukracarya, Bali Maharaja, decorated with a nice
garland, put protective armor on his body, equipped himself with a bow, and took up a sword and a
quiver of arrows. When he sat down on the seat of the chariot, his arms decorated with golden bangles
and his ears with sapphire earrings, he shone like a worshipable fire.
10-11. When he assembled with his own soldiers and the demon chiefs, who were equal to him in
strength, opulence and beauty, they appeared as if they would swallow the sky and burn all directions
with their vision. After thus gathering the demoniac soldiers, Bali Maharaja departed for the opulent
capital of Indra. Indeed, he seemed to make the entire surface of the world tremble.
12. King Indra's city was full of pleasing orchards and gardens, such as the Nandana garden. Because
of the weight of the flowers, leaves and fruit, the branches of the eternally existing trees were bending
down. The gardens were visited by pairs of chirping birds and singing bees. The entire atmosphere was
celestial.
13. Beautiful women protected by the demigods sported in the gardens, which had lotus ponds full of
swans, cranes, cakravakas and ducks.
14. The city was surrounded by trenches full of Ganges water, known as Akasa-ganga, and by a high
wall, which was the color of fire. Upon this wall were parapets for fighting.
15. The doors were made of solid gold plates, and the gates were of excellent marble. These were
linked by various public roads. The entire city had been constructed by Visvakarma.
16. The city was full of courtyards, wide roads, assembly houses, and not less than one hundred million
airplanes. The crossroads were made of pearl, and there were sitting places made of diamond and
coral.
17. Everlastingly beautiful and youthful women, who were dressed with clean garments, glittered in the
city like fires with flames. They all possessed the quality of syama.
18. The breezes blowing in the streets of the city bore the fragrance of the flowers falling from the hair of
the women of the demigods.
19. Apsaras passed on the streets, which were covered with the white, fragrant smoke of aguru incense
emanating from windows with golden filigree.
20. The city was shaded by canopies decorated with pearls, and the domes of the palaces had flags of
pearl and gold. The city always resounded with the vibrations of peacocks, pigeons and bees, and
above the city flew airplanes full of beautiful women who constantly chanted auspicious songs that were
very pleasing to the ear.
21. The city was filled with the sounds of mrdangas, conchshells, kettledrums, flutes and well-tuned
stringed instruments all playing in concert. There was constant dancing and the Gandharvas sang. The
combined beauty of Indrapuri defeated beauty personified.
22. No one who was sinful, envious, violent toward other living entities, cunning, falsely proud, lusty or
greedy could enter that city. The people who lived there were all devoid of these faults.
23. Bali Maharaja, who was the commander of numberless soldiers, gathered his soldiers outside this
abode of Indra and attacked it from all directions. He sounded the conchshell given him by his spiritual
master, Sukracarya, thus creating a fearful situation for the women protected by Indra.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 387
24. Seeing Bali Maharaja's indefatigable endeavor and understanding his motive, King Indra, along with
the other demigods, approached his spiritual master, Brhaspati, and spoke as follows.
25. My lord, our old enemy Bali Maharaja now has new enthusiasm, and he has obtained such
astonishing power that we think that perhaps we cannot resist his prowess.
26. No one anywhere can counteract this military arrangement of Bali's. It now appears that Bali is
trying to drink up the entire universe with his mouth, lick up the ten directions with his tongue, and raise
fire in every direction with his eyes. Indeed, he has arisen like the annihilating fire known as
samvartaka.
27. Kindly inform me. What is the cause for Bali Maharaja's strength, endeavor, influence and victory?
How has he become so enthusiastic?
28. Brhaspati, the spiritual master of the demigods, said: O Indra, I know the cause for your enemy's
becoming so powerful. The brahmana descendants of Bhrgu Muni, being pleased by Bali Maharaja,
their disciple, endowed him with such extraordinary power.
29. Neither you nor your men can conquer the most powerful Bali. Indeed, no one but the Supreme
Personality of Godhead can conquer him, for he is now equipped with the supreme spiritual power
[brahma-tejas]. As no one can stand before Yamaraja, no one can now stand before Bali Maharaja.
30. Therefore, waiting until the situation of your enemies is reversed, you should all leave this heavenly
planet and go elsewhere, where you will not be seen.
31. Bali Maharaja has now become extremely powerful because of the benedictions given him by the
brahmanas, but when he later insults the brahmanas, he will be vanquished, along with his friends and
assistants.
32. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: The demigods, being thus advised by Brhaspati for their benefit,
immediately accepted his words. Assuming forms according to their desire, they left the heavenly
kingdom and scattered, without being observed by the demons.
33. When the demigods had disappeared, Bali Maharaja, the son of Virocana, entered the heavenly
kingdom, and from there he brought the three worlds under his control.
34. The brahmana descendants of Bhrgu, being very pleased with their disciple, who had conquered
the entire universe, now engaged him in performing one hundred asvamedha sacrifices.
35. When Bali Maharaja performed these sacrifices, he gained a great reputation in all directions,
throughout the three worlds. Thus he shone in his position, like the brilliant moon in the sky.
36. Because of the favor of the brahmanas, the great soul Bali Maharaja, thinking himself very satisfied,
became very opulent and prosperous and began to enjoy the kingdom.
Chapter Sixteen Executing the Payo-vrata Process of Worship
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, when Aditi's sons, the demigods, had thus disappeared from
heaven and the demons had occupied their places, Aditi began lamenting, as if she had no protector.
2. After many, many days, the great powerful sage Kasyapa Muni arose from a trance of meditation and
returned home to see the asrama of Aditi neither jubilant nor festive.
3. O best of the Kurus, when Kasyapa Muni had been properly received and welcomed, he took his
seat and then spoke as follows to his wife, Aditi, who was very morose.
4. O most gentle one, I wonder whether anything inauspicious has now taken place in regard to
religious principles, the brahmanas or the people in general, who are subject to the whims of death.
5. O my wife, who are very much attached to household life, if the principles of religion, economic
development and satisfaction of the senses are properly followed in household life, one's activities are
as good as those of a transcendentalist. I wonder whether there have been any discrepancies in
following these principles.
6. I wonder whether because of being too attached to the members of your family, you failed to properly
receive uninvited guests, who therefore were not welcomed and went away.
7. In a field there may be holes made by snakes and mice, but when there are very big holes, it may be
supposed that jackals live there. Certainly no one goes to take shelter in such homes. Thus the homes
of human beings where atithis, uninvited guests, are not properly received are like the homes of jackals.
8. O chaste and auspicious woman, when I left home for other places, were you in so much anxiety that
you did not offer oblations of ghee into the fire?
9. By worshiping the fire and the brahmanas, a householder can achieve the desired goal of residing in
the higher planets, for the sacrificial fire and the brahmanas are to be considered the mouth of Lord
Visnu, who is the Supersoul of all the demigods.
10. O great-minded lady, are all your sons faring well? Seeing your withered face, I can perceive that
your mind is not tranquil. How is this so?
11. Aditi said: O my respected brahmana husband, all is well with the brahmanas, the cows, religion
and the welfare of other people. O master of the house, the three principles of dharma, artha and kama
flourish in household life, which is consequently full of good fortune.
388 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. O beloved husband, the fires, guests, servants and beggars are all being properly cared for by me.
Because I always think of you, there is no possibility that any of the religious principles will be
neglected.
13. O my lord, since you are a Prajapati and are personally my instructor in the principles of religion,
where is the possibility that all my desires will not be fulfilled?
14. O son of Marici, because you are a great personality you are equal toward all the demons and
demigods, who are born either from your body or from your mind and who possess one or another of
the three qualities--sattva-guna, rajo-guna or tamo-guna. But although the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, the supreme controller, is equal toward all living entities, He is especially favorable to the
devotees.
15. Therefore, most gentle lord, kindly favor your maidservant. We have now been deprived of our
opulence and residence by our competitors, the demons. Kindly give us protection.
16. The demons, our formidably powerful enemies, have taken away our opulence, our beauty, our
fame and even our residence. Indeed, we have now been exiled, and we are drowning in an ocean of
trouble.
17. O best of sages, best of all those who grant auspicious benedictions, please consider our situation
and bestow upon my sons the benedictions by which they can regain what they have lost.
18. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When Kasyapa Muni was thus requested by Aditi, he slightly smiled.
"Alas," he said, "how powerful is the illusory energy of Lord Visnu, by which the entire world is bound by
affection for children!"
19. Kasyapa Muni continued: What is this material body, made of five elements? It is different from the
spirit soul. Indeed, the spirit soul is completely different from the material elements from which the body
is made. But because of bodily attachment, one is regarded as a husband or son. These illusory
relationships are caused by misunderstanding.
20. My dear Aditi, engage in devotional service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the
master of everything, who can subdue everyone's enemies, and who sits within everyone's heart. Only
that Supreme Person--Krsna, or Vasudeva--can bestow all auspicious benedictions upon everyone, for
He is the spiritual master of the universe.
21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is very merciful to the poor, will fulfill all of your desires,
for devotional service unto Him is infallible. Any method other than devotional service is useless. That is
my opinion.
22. Srimati Aditi said: O brahmana, tell me the regulative principles by which I may worship the supreme
master of the world so that the Lord will be pleased with me and fulfill all my desires.
23. O best of the brahmanas, kindly instruct me in the perfect method of worshiping the Supreme
Personality of Godhead in devotional service, by which the Lord may very soon be pleased with me and
save me, along with my sons, from this most dangerous condition.
24. Sri Kasyapa Muni said: When I desired offspring, I placed inquiries before Lord Brahma, who is born
from a lotus flower. Now I shall explain to you the same process Lord Brahma instructed me, by which
Kesava, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is satisfied.
25. In the bright fortnight of the month of Phalguna [February and March], for twelve days ending with
Dvadasi, one should observe the vow of subsisting only on milk and should worship the lotus-eyed
Supreme Personality of Godhead with all devotion.
26. If dirt dug up by a boar is available, on the day of the dark moon one should smear this dirt on his
body and then bathe in a flowing river. While bathing, one should chant the following mantra.
27. O mother earth, you were raised by the Supreme Personality of Godhead in the form of a boar
because of your desiring to have a place to stay. I pray that you kindly vanquish all the reactions of my
sinful life. I offer my respectful obeisances unto you.
28. Thereafter, one should perform his daily spiritual duties and then, with great attention, offer worship
to the Deity of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and also to the altar, the sun, water, fire and the
spiritual master.
29. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, greatest of all, who lives in everyone's heart and in whom
everyone lives, O witness of everything, O Vasudeva, supreme and all-pervading person, I offer my
respectful obeisances unto You.
30. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, the Supreme Person. Being very subtle, You are never
visible to material eyes. You are the knower of the twenty-four elements, and You are the inaugurator of
the sankhya-yoga system.
31. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who have two
heads [prayaniya and udayaniya], three legs [savana-traya], four horns [the four Vedas] and seven
hands [the seven chandas, such as Gayatri]. I offer my obeisances unto You, whose heart and soul are
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 389
the three Vedic rituals [karma-kanda, jnana-kanda and upasana-kanda] and who expand these rituals in
the form of sacrifice.
32. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, Lord Siva, or Rudra, who are the reservoir of all
potencies, the reservoir of all knowledge, and the master of everyone.
33. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, who are situated as Hiranyagarbha, the source of life, the
Supersoul of every living entity. Your body is the source of the opulence of all mystic power. I offer my
respectful obeisances unto You.
34. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, who are the original Personality of Godhead, the witness
in everyone's heart, and the incarnation of Nara-Narayana Rsi in the form of a human being. O
Personality of Godhead, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
35. My Lord, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, who are dressed in yellow garments, whose
bodily hue resembles the marakata gem, and who have full control over the goddess of fortune. O my
Lord Kesava, I offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
36. O most exalted and worshipable Lord, best of those who bestow benediction, You can fulfill the
desires of everyone, and therefore those who are sober, for their own welfare, worship the dust of Your
lotus feet.
37. All the demigods, as well as the goddess of fortune, engage in the service of His lotus feet. Indeed,
they respect the fragrance of those lotus feet. May the Supreme Personality of Godhead be pleased
with me.
38. Kasyapa Muni continued: By chanting all these mantras, welcoming the Supreme Personality of
Godhead with faith and devotion, and offering Him items of worship [such as padya and arghya], one
should worship Kesava, Hrsikesa, Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
39. In the beginning, the devotee should chant the dvadasaksara-mantra and offer flower garlands,
incense and so on. After worshiping the Lord in this way, one should bathe the Lord with milk and dress
Him with proper garments, a sacred thread, and ornaments. After offering water to wash the Lord's feet,
one should again worship the Lord with fragrant flowers, incense and other paraphernalia.
40. If one can afford to, one should offer the Deity fine rice boiled in milk with clarified butter and
molasses. While chanting the same original mantra, one should offer all this to the fire.
41. One should offer all the prasada to a Vaisnava or offer him some of the prasada and then take
some oneself. After this, one should offer the Deity acamana and then betel nut and then again worship
the Lord.
42. Thereafter, one should silently murmur the mantra 108 times and offer prayers to the Lord for His
glorification. Then one should circumambulate the Lord and finally, with great delight and satisfaction,
offer obeisances, falling straight like a rod [dandavat].
43. After touching to one's head all the flowers and water offered to the Deity, one should throw them
into a sacred place. Then one should feed at least two brahmanas with sweet rice.
44-45. One should perfectly honor the respectable brahmanas one has fed, and then, after taking their
permission, one should take prasada with his friends and relatives. For that night, one should observe
strict celibacy, and the next morning, after bathing again, with purity and attention one should bathe the
Deity of Visnu with milk and worship Him according to the methods formerly stated in detail.
46. Worshiping Lord Visnu with great faith and devotion and living only by drinking milk, one should
follow this vow. One should also offer oblations to the fire and feed the brahmanas as mentioned
before.
47. In this way, until twelve days have passed, one should observe this payo-vrata, worshiping the Lord
every day, executing the routine duties, performing sacrifices and feeding the brahmanas.
48. From pratipat until the thirteenth day of the next bright moon [sukla-trayodasi], one should observe
complete celibacy, sleep on the floor, bathe three times a day and thus execute the vow.
49. During this period, one should not unnecessarily talk of material subjects or topics of sense
gratification, one should be completely free from envy of all living entities, and one should be a pure and
simple devotee of Lord Vasudeva.
50. Thereafter, following the directions of the sastra with help from brahmanas who know the sastra, on
the thirteenth day of the moon one should bathe Lord Visnu with five substances [milk, yogurt, ghee,
sugar and honey].
51-52. Giving up the miserly habit of not spending money, one should arrange for the gorgeous worship
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, who is situated in the heart of every living entity. With
great attention, one must prepare an oblation of grains boiled in ghee and milk and must chant the
Purusa-sukta mantra. The offerings of food should be of varieties of tastes. In this way, one should
worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
53. One should satisfy the spiritual master [acarya], who is very learned in Vedic literature, and should
satisfy his assistant priests [known as hota, udgata, adhvaryu and brahma]. One should please them by
390 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
offering them clothing, ornaments and cows. This is the ceremony called visnu-aradhana, or worship of
Lord Visnu.
54. O most auspicious lady, one should perform all the ceremonies under the direction of learned
acaryas and should satisfy them and their priests. By distributing prasada, one should also satisfy the
brahmanas and others who have assembled.
55. One should satisfy the spiritual master and assistant priests by giving them cloth, ornaments, cows
and also some monetary contribution. And by distributing prasada one should satisfy everyone
assembled, including even the lowest of men, the candalas [eaters of dog flesh].
56. One should distribute visnu-prasada to everyone, including the poor man, the blind man, the
nondevotee and the non-brahmana. Knowing that Lord Visnu is very pleased when everyone is
sumptuously fed with visnu-prasada, the performer of yajna should then take prasada with his friends
and relatives.
57. Every day from pratipat to trayodasi, one should continue the ceremony, to the accompaniment of
dancing, singing, the beating of a drum, the chanting of prayers and all-auspicious mantras, and
recitation of Srimad-Bhagavatam. In this way, one should worship the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
58. This is the religious ritualistic ceremony known as payo-vrata, by which one may worship the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. I received this information from Brahma, my grandfather, and now I
have described it to you in all details.
59. O most fortunate lady, establishing your mind in a good spirit, execute this process of payo-vrata
and thus worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Kesava, who is inexhaustible.
60. This payo-vrata is also known as sarva-yajna. In other words, by performing this sacrifice one can
perform all other sacrifices automatically. This is also acknowledged to be the best of all ritualistic
ceremonies. O gentle lady, it is the essence of all austerities, and it is the process of giving charity and
pleasing the supreme controller.
61. This is the best process for pleasing the transcendental Supreme Personality of Godhead, known
as Adhoksaja. It is the best of all regulative principles, the best austerity, the best process of giving
charity, and the best process of sacrifice.
62. Therefore, my dear gentle lady, follow this ritualistic vow, strictly observing the regulative principles.
By this process, the Supreme Person will very soon be pleased with you and will satisfy all your desires.
Chapter Seventeen The Supreme Lord Agrees to Become Aditi's Son
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, after Aditi was thus advised by her husband, Kasyapa Muni, she
strictly followed his instructions without laziness and in this way performed the payo-vrata ritualistic
ceremony.
2-3. With full, undiverted attention, Aditi thought of the Supreme Personality of Godhead and in this way
brought under full control her mind and senses, which resembled forceful horses. She concentrated her
mind upon the Supreme Lord, Vasudeva. Thus she performed the ritualistic ceremony known as payo-
vrata.
4. My dear King, the original Supreme Personality of Godhead, dressed in yellow garments and bearing
a conchshell, disc, club and lotus in His four hands, then appeared before Aditi.
5. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead became visible to Aditi's eyes, Aditi was so overwhelmed
by transcendental bliss that she at once stood up and then fell to the ground like a rod to offer the Lord
her respectful obeisances.
6. Aditi stood silently with folded hands, unable to offer prayers to the Lord. Because of transcendental
bliss, tears filled her eyes, and the hairs on her body stood on end. Because she could see the
Supreme Personality of Godhead face to face, she felt ecstasy, and her body trembled.
7. O Maharaja Pariksit, the demigoddess Aditi then began offering her prayers to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead in a faltering voice and with great love. She appeared as though drinking
through her eyes the Supreme Lord, who is the husband of the goddess of fortune, the enjoyer of all
sacrificial ceremonies, and the master and Lord of the entire universe.
8. The goddess Aditi said: O master and enjoyer of all sacrificial ceremonies, O infallible and most
famous person, whose name, when chanted, spreads all good fortune! O original Supreme Personality
of Godhead, supreme controller, shelter of all holy places, You are the shelter of all poor, suffering living
entities, and You have appeared to diminish their suffering. Please be kind to us and spread our good
fortune.
9. My Lord, You are the all-pervading universal form, the fully independent creator, maintainer and
destroyer of this universe. Although You engage Your energy in matter, You are always situated in Your
original form and never fall from that position, for Your knowledge is infallible and always suitable to any
situation. You are never bewildered by illusion. O my Lord, let me offer my respectful obeisances unto
You.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 391
10. O unlimited one, if Your Lordship is satisfied, one can very easily obtain a lifetime as long as that of
Lord Brahma, a body either in the upper, lower or middle planetary systems, unlimited material
opulence, religion, economic development and satisfaction of the senses, full transcendental
knowledge, and the eight yogic perfections, what to speak of such petty achievements as conquering
one's rivals.
11. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, best of the Bharata dynasty, when the lotus-eyed Lord,
the Supersoul of all living entities, was thus worshiped by Aditi, He replied as follows.
12. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O mother of the demigods, I have already understood
your long-cherished desires for the welfare of your sons, who have been deprived of all opulences and
driven from their residence by their enemies.
13. O Devi, O goddess, I can understand that you want to regain your sons and be together with them
to worship Me, after defeating the enemies in battle and retrieving your abode and opulences.
14. You want to see the wives of the demons lamenting for the death of their husbands when those
demons, the enemies of your sons, are killed in battle by the demigods, of whom Indra is the chief.
15. You want your sons to regain their lost reputation and opulence and live again on their heavenly
planet as usual.
16. O mother of the demigods, in My opinion almost all the chiefs of the demons are now
unconquerable, for they are being protected by brahmanas, whom the Supreme Lord always favors.
Thus the use of power against them now will not at all be a source of happiness.
17. Yet because I have been satisfied by the activities of your vow, O goddess Aditi, I must find some
means to favor you, for worship of Me never goes in vain but certainly gives the desired result according
to what one deserves.
18. You have prayed to Me and properly worshiped Me by performing the great payo-vrata ceremony
for the sake of protecting your sons. Because of Kasyapa Muni's austerities, I shall agree to become
your son and thus protect your other sons.
19. Always thinking of Me as being situated within the body of your husband, Kasyapa, go worship your
husband, who has been purified by his austerity.
20. O lady, even if someone inquires, you should not disclose this fact to anyone. That which is very
confidential is successful if kept secret.
21. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After speaking in this way, the Supreme Personality of Godhead
disappeared from that very spot. Aditi, having received the extremely valuable benediction that the Lord
would appear as her son, considered herself very successful, and with great devotion she approached
her husband.
22. Being situated in a meditational trance, Kasyapa Muni, whose vision is never mistaken, could see
that a plenary portion of the Supreme Personality of Godhead had entered within him.
23. O King, as the wind promotes friction between two pieces of wood and thus gives rise to fire,
Kasyapa Muni, whose transcendental position was fully absorbed in the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, transferred his potency into the womb of Aditi.
24. When Lord Brahma understood that the Supreme Personality of Godhead was now within the
womb of Aditi, he began to offer prayers to the Lord by reciting transcendental names.
25. Lord Brahma said: O Supreme Personality of Godhead, all glories unto You, who are glorified by all
and whose activities are all uncommon. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, O Lord of the
transcendentalists, controller of the three modes of nature. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You
again and again.
26. I offer my respectful obeisances unto You, the all-pervading Lord Visnu, who have entered the
cores of the hearts of all living entities. All the three worlds reside within Your navel, yet You are above
the three worlds. Formerly You appeared as the son of Prsni. To You, the supreme creator, who are
understood only through Vedic knowledge, I offer my respectful obeisances.
27. O my Lord, You are the beginning, the manifestation and the ultimate dissolution of the three
worlds, and You are celebrated in the Vedas as the reservoir of unlimited potencies, the Supreme
Person. O my Lord, as waves attract branches and leaves that have fallen into deep water, You, the
supreme eternal time factor, attract everything in this universe.
28. My Lord, You are the original generator of all living entities, stationary or moving, and You are also
the generator of the Prajapatis. O my Lord, as a boat is the only hope for a person drowning in the
water, You are the only shelter for the demigods, who are now bereft of their heavenly position.
Chapter Eighteen Lord Vamanadeva, the Dwarf Incarnation
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After Lord Brahma had thus spoken, glorifying the Supreme Lord's activities
and prowess, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is never subject to death like an ordinary living
being, appeared from the womb of Aditi. His four hands were decorated with a conchshell, club, lotus
392 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
and disc, He was dressed in yellow garments, and His eyes appeared like the petals of a blooming
lotus.
2. The body of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, blackish in complexion, was free from all
inebrieties. His lotus face, decorated with earrings resembling sharks, appeared very beautiful, and on
His bosom was the mark of Srivatsa. He wore bangles on His wrists, armlets on His arms, a helmet on
His head, a belt on His waist, a sacred thread across His chest, and ankle bells decorating His lotus
feet.
3. An uncommonly beautiful garland of flowers decorated His bosom, and because the flowers were
extremely fragrant, a large group of bees, making their natural humming sounds, invaded them for
honey. When the Lord appeared, wearing the Kaustubha gem on His neck, His effulgence vanquished
the darkness in the home of the Prajapati Kasyapa.
4. At that time, there was happiness in all directions, in the reservoirs of water like the rivers and
oceans, and in the core of everyone's heart. The various seasons displayed their respective qualities,
and all living entities in the upper planetary system, in outer space and on the surface of the earth were
jubilant. The demigods, the cows, the brahmanas and the hills and mountains were all filled with joy.
5. On the day of Sravana-dvadasi [the twelfth day of the bright fortnight in the month of Bhadra], when
the moon came into the lunar mansion Sravana, at the auspicious moment of Abhijit, the Lord appeared
in this universe. Considering the Lord's appearance very auspicious, all the stars and planets, from the
sun to Saturn, were munificently charitable.
6. O King, when the Lord appeared--on dvadasi, the twelfth day of the moon--the sun was at the
meridian, as every learned scholar knows. This dvadasi is called Vijaya.
7. Conchshells, kettledrums, drums, panavas and anakas vibrated in concert. The sound of these and
various other instruments was tumultuous.
8. Being very pleased, the celestial dancing girls [Apsaras] danced in jubilation, the best of the
Gandharvas sang songs, and the great sages, demigods, Manus, Pitas and fire-gods offered prayers to
satisfy the Lord.
9-10. The Siddhas, Vidyadharas, Kimpurusas, Kinnaras, Caranas, Yaksas, Raksasas, Suparnas, the
best of serpents, and the followers of the demigods all showered flowers on Aditi's residence, covering
the entire house, while glorifying and praising the Lord and dancing.
11. When Aditi saw the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who had appeared from her own womb,
having accepted a transcendental body by His own spiritual potency, she was struck with wonder and
was very happy. Upon seeing the child, Prajapati Kasyapa exclaimed, "Jaya! Jaya!" in great happiness
and wonder.
12. The Lord appeared in His original form, with ornaments and weapons in His hands. Although this
ever-existing form is not visible in the material world, He nonetheless appeared in this form. Then, in the
presence of His father and mother, He assumed the form of Vamana, a brahmana-dwarf, a brahmacari,
just like a theatrical actor.
13. When the great sages saw the Lord as the brahmacari-dwarf Vamana, they were certainly very
pleased. Thus they placed before them Kasyapa Muni, the Prajapati, and performed all the ritualistic
ceremonies, such as the birthday ceremony.
14. At the sacred thread ceremony of Vamanadeva, the sun-god personally uttered the Gayatri mantra,
Brhaspati offered the sacred thread, and Kasyapa Muni offered a straw belt.
15. Mother earth gave Him a deerskin, and the demigod of the moon, who is the king of the forest, gave
Him a brahma-danda [the rod of a brahmacari]. His mother, Aditi, gave Him cloth for underwear, and
the deity presiding over the heavenly kingdom offered Him an umbrella.
16. O King, Lord Brahma offered a waterpot to the inexhaustible Supreme Personality of Godhead, the
seven sages offered Him kusa grass, and mother Sarasvati gave Him a string of Rudraksa beads.
17. When Vamanadeva had thus been given the sacred thread, Kuvera, King of the Yaksas, gave Him
a pot for begging alms, and mother Bhagavati, the wife of Lord Siva and most chaste mother of the
entire universe, gave Him His first alms.
18. Having thus been welcomed by everyone, Lord Vamanadeva, the best of the brahmacaris, exhibited
His Brahman effulgence. Thus He surpassed in beauty that entire assembly, which was filled with great
saintly brahmanas.
19. After Lord Sri Vamanadeva set a sacrificial fire, He offered worship and performed a fire sacrifice on
the sacrificial field.
20. When the Lord heard that Bali Maharaja was performing asvamedha sacrifices under the patronage
of brahmanas belonging to the Bhrgu dynasty, the Supreme Lord, who is full in every respect,
proceeded there to show His mercy to Bali Maharaja. By His weight, He pushed down the earth with
every step.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 393
21. While engaged in performing the sacrifice in the field known as Bhrgukaccha, on the northern bank
of the Narmada River, the brahminical priests, the descendants of Bhrgu, saw Vamanadeva to be like
the sun rising nearby.
22. O King, because of Vamanadeva's bright effulgence, the priests, along with Bali Maharaja and all
the members of the assembly, were robbed of their splendor. Thus they began to ask one another
whether the sun-god himself, Sanat-kumara or the fire-god had personally come to see the sacrificial
ceremony.
23. While the priests of the Bhrgu dynasty and their disciples talked and argued in various ways, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vamanadeva, holding in His hands the rod, the umbrella and a
waterpot full of water, entered the arena of the asvamedha sacrifice.
24-25. Appearing as a brahmana boy, wearing a belt of straw, a sacred thread, an upper garment of
deerskin, and matted locks of hair, Lord Vamanadeva entered the arena of sacrifice. His brilliant
effulgence diminished the brilliance of all the priests and their disciples, who thus stood from their seats
and welcomed the Lord properly by offering obeisances.
26. Bali Maharaja, jubilant at seeing Lord Vamanadeva, whose beautiful limbs contributed equally to the
beauty of His entire body, offered Him a seat with great satisfaction.
27. Thus offering a proper reception to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is always beautiful to
the liberated souls, Bali Maharaja worshiped Him by washing His lotus feet.
28. Lord Siva, the best of demigods, who carries on his forehead the emblem of the moon, receives on
his head with great devotion the Ganges water emanating from the toe of Visnu. Being aware of
religious principles, Bali Maharaja knew this. Consequently, following in the footsteps of Lord Siva, he
also placed on his head the water that had washed the Lord's lotus feet.
29. Bali Maharaja then said to Lord Vamanadeva: O brahmana, I offer You my hearty welcome and my
respectful obeisances. Please let us know what we may do for You. We think of You as the personified
austerity of the great brahmana-sages.
30. O my Lord, because You have kindly arrived at our home, all my forefathers are satisfied, our family
and entire dynasty have been sanctified, and the sacrifice we are performing is now complete because
of Your presence.
31. O son of a brahmana, today the fire of sacrifice is ablaze according to the injunction of the sastra,
and I have been freed from all the sinful reactions of my life by the water that has washed Your lotus
feet. O my Lord, by the touch of Your small lotus feet the entire surface of the world has been sanctified.
32. O son of a brahmana, it appears that You have come here to ask me for something. Therefore,
whatever You want You may take from me. O best of those who are worshipable. You may take from
me a cow, gold, a furnished house, palatable food and drink, the daughter of a brahmana for Your wife,
prosperous villages, horses, elephants, chariots or whatever You desire.
Chapter Nineteen Lord Vamanadeva Begs Charity from Bali Maharaja
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vamanadeva, heard Bali
Maharaja speaking in this pleasing way, He was very satisfied, for Bali Maharaja had spoken in terms of
religious principles. Thus the Lord began to praise him.
2. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O King, you are indeed exalted because your present
advisors are the brahmanas who are descendants of Bhrgu and because your instructor for your future
life is your grandfather, the peaceful and venerable Prahlada Maharaja. Your statements are very true,
and they completely agree with religious etiquette. They are in keeping with the behavior of your family,
and they enhance your reputation.
3. I know that even until now, no one taking birth in your family has been poor-minded or miserly. No
one has refused to give charity to brahmanas, nor after promising to give charity has anyone failed to
fulfill his promise.
4. O King Bali, never in your dynasty has the low-minded King been born who upon being requested
has refused charity to brahmanas in holy places or a fight to ksatriyas on a battlefield. And your dynasty
is even more glorious due to the presence of Prahlada Maharaja, who is like the beautiful moon in the
sky.
5. It was in your dynasty that Hiranyaksa was born. Carrying only his own club, he wandered the globe
alone, without assistance, to conquer all directions, and no hero he met could rival him.
6. When delivering the earth from the Garbhodaka Sea, Lord Visnu, in His incarnation as a boar, killed
Hiranyaksa, who had appeared before Him. The fight was severe, and the Lord killed Hiranyaksa with
great difficulty. Later, as the Lord thought about the uncommon prowess of Hiranyaksa, He felt Himself
victorious indeed.
7. When Hiranyakasipu heard the news of his brother's being killed, with great anger he went to the
residence of Visnu, the killer of his brother, wanting to kill Lord Visnu.
394 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
8. Seeing Hiranyakasipu coming forward bearing a trident in his hand like personified death, Lord Visnu,
the best of all mystics and the knower of the progress of time, thought as follows.
9. Wheresoever I go, Hiranyakasipu will follow Me, as death follows all living entities. Therefore it is
better for Me to enter the core of his heart, for then, because of his power to see only externally, he will
not see Me.
10. Lord Vamanadeva continued: O King of the demons, after Lord Visnu made this decision, He
entered the body of His enemy Hiranyakasipu, who was running after Him with great force. In a subtle
body inconceivable to Hiranyakasipu, Lord Visnu, who was in great anxiety, entered Hiranyakasipu's
nostril along with his breath.
11. Upon seeing that the residence of Lord Visnu was vacant, Hiranyakasipu began searching for Lord
Visnu everywhere. Angry at not seeing Him, Hiranyakasipu screamed loudly and searched the entire
universe, including the surface of the earth, the higher planetary systems, all directions and all the
caves and oceans. But Hiranyakasipu, the greatest hero, did not see Visnu anywhere.
12. Unable to see Him, Hiranyakasipu said, "I have searched the entire universe, but I could not find
Visnu, who has killed my brother. Therefore, He must certainly have gone to that place from which no
one returns. [In other words, He must now be dead.]"
13. Hiranyakasipu's anger against Lord Visnu persisted until his death. Other people in the bodily
concept of life maintain anger only because of false ego and the great influence of ignorance.
14. Your father, Virocana, the son of Maharaja Prahlada, was very affectionate toward brahmanas.
Although he knew very well that it was the demigods who had come to him in the dress of brahmanas,
at their request he delivered to them the duration of his life.
15. You also have observed the principles followed by great personalities who are householder
brahmanas, by your forefathers and by great heroes who are extremely famous for their exalted
activities.
16. O King of the Daityas, from Your Majesty, who come from such a noble family and who are able to
give charity munificently, I ask only three paces of land, to the measurement of My steps.
17. O King, controller of the entire universe, although you are very munificent and are able to give Me
as much land as I want, I do not want anything from you that is unnecessary. If a learned brahmana
takes charity from others only according to his needs, he does not become entangled in sinful activities.
18. Bali Maharaja said: O son of a brahmana, Your instructions are as good as those of learned and
elderly persons. Nonetheless, You are a boy, and Your intelligence is insufficient. Thus You are not very
prudent in regard to Your self-interest.
19. I am able to give You an entire island because I am the proprietor of the three divisions of the
universe. You have come to take something from me and have pleased me by Your sweet words, but
You are asking only three paces of land. Therefore You are not very intelligent.
20. O small boy, one who approaches me to beg something should not have to ask anything more,
anywhere. Therefore, if You wish, You may ask from me as much land as will suffice to maintain You
according to Your needs.
21. The Personality of Godhead said: O my dear King, even the entirety of whatever there may be
within the three worlds to satisfy one's senses cannot satisfy a person whose senses are uncontrolled.
22. If I were not satisfied with three paces of land, then surely I would not be satisfied even with
possessing one of the seven islands, consisting of nine varsas. Even if I possessed one island, I would
hope to get others.
23. We have heard that although powerful kings like Maharaja Prthu and Maharaja Gaya achieved
proprietorship over the seven dvipas, they could not achieve satisfaction or find the end of their
ambitions.
24. One should be satisfied with whatever he achieves by his previous destiny, for discontent can never
bring happiness. A person who is not self-controlled will not be happy even with possessing the three
worlds.
25. Material existence causes discontent in regard to fulfilling one's lusty desires and achieving more
and more money. This is the cause for the continuation of material life, which is full of repeated birth
and death. But one who is satisfied by that which is obtained by destiny is fit for liberation from this
material existence.
26. A brahmana who is satisfied with whatever is providentially obtained is increasingly enlightened with
spiritual power, but the spiritual potency of a dissatisfied brahmana decreases, as fire diminishes in
potency when water is sprinkled upon it.
27. Therefore, O King, from you, the best of those who give charity, I ask only three paces of land. By
such a gift I shall be very pleased, for the way of happiness is to be fully satisfied to receive that which
is absolutely needed.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 395
28. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When the Supreme Personality of Godhead had thus spoken to Bali
Maharaja, Bali smiled and told Him, "All right. Take whatever You like." To confirm his promise to give
Vamanadeva the desired land, he then took up his waterpot.
29. Understanding Lord Visnu's purpose, Sukracarya, the best of the learned, immediately spoke as
follows to his disciple, who was about to offer everything to Lord Vamanadeva.
30. Sukracarya said: O son of Virocana, this brahmacari in the form of a dwarf is directly the
imperishable Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu. Accepting Kasyapa Muni as His father and Aditi
as His mother, He has now appeared in order to fulfill the interests of the demigods.
31. You do not know what a dangerous position you have accepted by promising to give Him land. I do
not think that this promise is good for you. It will bring great harm to the demons.
32. This person falsely appearing as a brahmacari is actually the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Hari, who has come in this form to take away all your land, wealth, beauty, power, fame and education.
After taking everything from you, He will deliver it to Indra, your enemy.
33. You have promised to give Him three steps of land in charity, but when you give it He will occupy
the three worlds. You are a rascal! You do not know what a great mistake you have made. After giving
everything to Lord Visnu, you will have no means of livelihood. How then shall you live?
34. Vamanadeva will first occupy the three worlds with one step, then He will take His second step and
occupy everything in outer space, and then He will expand His universal body to occupy everything.
Where will you offer Him the third step?
35. You will certainly be unable to fulfill your promise, and I think that because of this inability your
eternal residence will be in hell.
36. Learned scholars do not praise that charity which endangers one's own livelihood. Charity, sacrifice,
austerity and fruitive activities are possible for one who is competent to earn his livelihood properly.
[They are not possible for one who cannot maintain himself.]
37. Therefore one who is in full knowledge should divide his accumulated wealth in five parts--for
religion, for reputation, for opulence, for sense gratification and for the maintenance of his family
members. Such a person is happy in this world and in the next.
38. One might argue that since you have already promised, how can you refuse? O best of the demons,
just take from me the evidence of the Bahvrca-sruti, which says that a promise is truthful preceded by
the word om and untruthful if not.
39. The Vedas enjoin that the factual result of the tree of the body is the good fruits and flowers derived
from it. But if the bodily tree does not exist, there is no possibility of factual fruits and flowers. Even if the
body is based on untruth, there cannot be factual fruits and flowers without the help of the bodily tree.
40. When a tree is uprooted it immediately falls down and begins to dry up. Similarly, if one doesn't take
care of the body, which is supposed to be untruth--in other words, if the untruth is uprooted--the body
undoubtedly becomes dry.
41. The utterance of the word om signifies separation from one's monetary assets. In other words, by
uttering this word one becomes free from attachment to money because his money is taken away from
him. To be without money is not very satisfactory, for in that position one cannot fulfill one's desires. In
other words, by using the word om one becomes poverty-stricken. Especially when one gives charity to
a poor man or beggar, one remains unfulfilled in self-realization and in sense gratification.
42. Therefore, the safe course is to say no. Although it is a falsehood, it protects one completely, it
draws the compassion of others toward oneself, and it gives one full facility to collect money from others
for oneself. Nonetheless, if one always pleads that he has nothing, he is condemned, for he is a dead
body while living, or while still breathing he should be killed.
43. In flattering a woman to bring her under control, in joking, in a marriage ceremony, in earning one's
livelihood, when one's life is in danger, in protecting cows and brahminical culture, or in protecting a
person from an enemy's hand, falsity is never condemned.
Chapter Twenty Bali Maharaja Surrenders the Universe
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, when Bali Maharaja was thus advised by his spiritual
master, Sukracarya, his family priest, he remained silent for some time, and then, after full deliberation,
he replied to his spiritual master as follows.
2. Bali Maharaja said: As you have already stated, the principle of religion that does not hinder one's
economic development, sense gratification, fame and means of livelihood is the real occupational duty
of the householder. I also think that this religious principle is correct.
3. I am the grandson of Maharaja Prahlada. How can I withdraw my promise because of greed for
money when I have already said that I shall give this land? How can I behave like an ordinary cheater,
especially toward a brahmana?
4. There is nothing more sinful than untruthfulness. Because of this, mother earth once said, "I can bear
any heavy thing except a person who is a liar."
396 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
5. I do not fear hell, poverty, an ocean of distress, falldown from my position or even death itself as
much as I fear cheating a brahmana.
6. My lord, you can also see that all the material opulences of this world are certainly separated from
their possessor at death. Therefore, if the brahmana Vamanadeva is not satisfied by whatever gifts one
has given, why not please Him with the riches one is destined to lose at death?
7. Dadhici, Sibi and many other great personalities were willing to sacrifice even their lives for the
benefit of the people in general. This is the evidence of history. So why not give up this insignificant
land? What is the serious consideration against it?
8. O best of the brahmanas, certainly the great demoniac kings who were never reluctant to fight
enjoyed this world, but in due course of time everything they had was taken away, except their
reputation, by which they continue to exist. In other words, one should try to achieve a good reputation
instead of anything else.
9. O best of the brahmanas, many men have laid down their lives on the battlefield, being unafraid of
fighting, but rarely has one gotten the chance to give his accumulated wealth faithfully to a saintly
person who creates holy places.
10. By giving charity, a benevolent and merciful person undoubtedly becomes even more auspicious,
especially when he gives charity to a person like your good self. Under the circumstances, I must give
this little brahmacari whatever charity He wants from me.
11. O great sage, great saintly persons like you, being completely aware of the Vedic principles for
performing ritualistic ceremonies and yajnas, worship Lord Visnu in all circumstances. Therefore,
whether that same Lord Visnu has come here to give me all benedictions or to punish me as an enemy,
I must carry out His order and give Him the requested tract of land without hesitation.
12. Although He is Visnu Himself, out of fear He has covered Himself in the form of a brahmana to
come to me begging. Under the circumstances, because He has assumed the form of a brahmana,
even if He irreligiously arrests me or even kills me, I shall not retaliate, although He is my enemy.
13. If this brahmana really is Lord Visnu, who is worshiped by Vedic hymns, He would never give up His
widespread reputation; either He would lie down having been killed by me, or He would kill me in a fight.
14. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thereafter, the spiritual master, Sukracarya, being inspired by
the Supreme Lord, cursed his exalted disciple Bali Maharaja, who was so magnanimous and fixed in
truthfulness that instead of respecting his spiritual master's instructions, he wanted to disobey his order.
15. Although you have no knowledge, you have become a so-called learned person, and therefore you
dare be so impudent as to disobey my order. Because of disobeying me, you shall very soon be bereft
of all your opulence.
16. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Even after being cursed in this way by his own spiritual master, Bali
Maharaja, being a great personality, never deviated from his determination. Therefore, according to
custom, he first offered water to Vamanadeva and then offered Him the gift of land he had promised.
17. Bali Maharaja's wife, known as Vindhyavali, who was decorated with a necklace of pearls,
immediately came and had a large golden waterpot brought there, full of water with which to worship the
Lord by washing His feet.
18. Bali Maharaja, the worshiper of Lord Vamanadeva, jubilantly washed the Lord's lotus feet and then
took the water on his head, for that water delivers the entire universe.
19. At that time, the residents of the higher planetary system, namely the demigods, the Gandharvas,
the Vidyadharas, the Siddhas and the Caranas, all being very pleased by Bali Maharaja's simple,
nonduplicitous act, praised his qualities and showered upon him millions of flowers.
20. The Gandharvas, the Kimpurusas and the Kinnaras sounded thousands and thousands of
kettledrums and trumpets again and again, and they sang in great jubilation, declaring, "How exalted a
person is Bali Maharaja, and what a difficult task he has performed! Even though he knew that Lord
Visnu was on the side of his enemies, he nonetheless gave the Lord the entire three worlds in charity."
21. The unlimited Supreme Personality of Godhead, who had assumed the form of Vamana, then
began increasing in size, acting in terms of the material energy, until everything in the universe was
within His body, including the earth, the planetary systems, the sky, the directions, the various holes in
the universe, the seas, the oceans, the birds, beasts, human beings, the demigods and the great saintly
persons.
22. Bali Maharaja, along with all the priests, acaryas and members of the assembly, observed the
Supreme Personality of Godhead's universal body, which was full of six opulences. That body
contained everything within the universe, including all the gross material elements, the senses, the
sense objects, the mind, intelligence and false ego, the various kinds of living entities, and the actions
and reactions of the three modes of material nature.
23. Thereafter, Bali Maharaja, who was occupying the seat of King Indra, could see the lower planetary
systems, such as Rasatala, on the soles of the feet of the Lord's universal form. He saw on the Lord's
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 397
feet the surface of the globe, on the surface of His calves all the mountains, on His knees the various
birds, and on His thighs the varieties of air.
24. Bali Maharaja saw beneath the garments of the Lord, who acts wonderfully, the evening twilight. In
the Lord's private parts he saw the Prajapatis, and in the round portion of the waist he saw himself with
his confidential associates. In the Lord's navel he saw the sky, on the Lord's waist he saw the seven
oceans, and on the Lord's bosom he saw all the clusters of stars.
25-29. My dear King, on the heart of Lord Murari he saw religion; on the chest, both pleasing words and
truthfulness; in the mind, the moon; on the bosom, the goddess of fortune, with a lotus flower in her
hand; on the neck, all the Vedas and all sound vibrations; on the arms, all the demigods, headed by
King Indra; in both ears, all the directions; on the head, the upper planetary systems; on the hair, the
clouds; in the nostrils, the wind; on the eyes, the sun; and in the mouth, fire. From His words came all
the Vedic mantras, on His tongue was the demigod of water, Varunadeva, on His eyebrows were the
regulative principles, and on His eyelids were day and night. [When His eyes were open it was daytime,
and when they were closed it was night.] On His forehead was anger, and on His lips was greed. O
King, in His touch were lusty desires, in His semen were all the waters, on His back was irreligion, and
in His wonderful activities or steps was the fire of sacrifice. On His shadow was death, in His smile was
the illusory energy, and on the hairs of His body were all the drugs and herbs. In His veins were all the
rivers, on His nails were all the stones, in His intelligence were Lord Brahma, the demigods and the
great saintly persons, and throughout His entire body and senses were all living entities, moving and
stationary. Bali Maharaja thus saw everything in the gigantic body of the Lord.
30. O King, when all the demons, the followers of Maharaja Bali, saw the universal form of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, who held everything within His body, when they saw in the Lord's hand His
disc, known as the Sudarsana cakra, which generates intolerable heat, and when they heard the
tumultuous sound of His bow, all of these caused lamentation within their hearts.
31. The Lord's conchshell, named Pancajanya, which made sounds like that of a cloud; the very forceful
club named Kaumodaki; the sword named Vidyadhara, with a shield decorated with hundreds of
moonlike spots; and also Aksayasayaka, the best of quivers--all of these appeared together to offer
prayers to the Lord.
32-33. These associates, headed by Sunanda and other chief associates and accompanied by all the
predominating deities of the various planets, offered prayers to the Lord, who wore a brilliant helmet,
bracelets, and glittering earrings that resembled fish. On the Lord's bosom were the lock of hair called
Srivatsa and the transcendental jewel named Kaustubha. He wore a yellow garment, covered by a belt,
and He was decorated by a flower garland, surrounded by bees. Manifesting Himself in this way, O
King, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose activities are wonderful, covered the entire surface
of the earth with one footstep, the sky with His body, and all directions with His arms.
34. As the Lord took His second step, He covered the heavenly planets. And not even a spot remained
for the third step, for the Lord's foot extended higher and higher, beyond Maharloka, Janaloka,
Tapoloka and even Satyaloka.
Chapter Twenty-one Bali Maharaja Arrested by the Lord
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When Lord Brahma, who was born of a lotus flower, saw that the
effulgence of his residence, Brahmaloka, had been reduced by the glaring effulgence from the toenails
of Lord Vamanadeva, he approached the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Lord Brahma was
accompanied by all the great sages, headed by Marici, and by yogis like Sanandana, but in the
presence of that glaring effulgence, O King, even Lord Brahma and his associates seemed insignificant.
2-3. Among the great personalities who came to worship the lotus feet of the Lord were those who had
attained perfection in self-control and regulative principles, as well as experts in logic, history, general
education and the Vedic literature known as kalpe [dealing with old historical incidents]. Others were
experts in the Vedic corollaries like Brahma-samhita, all the other knowledge of the Vedas [Sama,
Yajur, Rg and Atharva], and also the supplementary Vedic knowledge [Ayur-veda, Dhanur-veda, etc.].
Others were those who had been freed of the reactions to fruitive activities by transcendental
knowledge awakened by practice of yoga. And still others were those who had attained residence in
Brahmaloka not by ordinary karma but by advanced Vedic knowledge. After devotedly worshiping the
upraised lotus feet of the Supreme Lord with oblations of water, Lord Brahma, who was born of the lotus
emanating from Lord Visnu's navel, offered prayers to the Lord.
4. O King, the water from Lord Brahma's kamandalu washed the lotus feet of Lord Vamanadeva, who is
known as Urukrama, the wonderful actor. Thus that water became so pure that it was transformed into
the water of the Ganges, which went flowing down from the sky, purifying the three worlds like the pure
fame of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
398 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
5. Lord Brahma and all the predominating deities of the various planetary systems began to worship
Lord Vamanadeva, their supreme master, who had reduced Himself from His all-pervading form to His
original form. They collected all the ingredients and paraphernalia for this worship.
6-7. They worshiped the Lord by offering fragrant flowers, water, padya and arghya, sandalwood pulp
and aguru pulp, incense, lamps, fused rice, unbroken grains, fruits, roots and sprouts. While so doing,
they offered prayers indicating the glorious activities of the Lord and shouted "Jaya! Jaya!" They also
danced, played instruments, sang, sounded conchshells and beat kettledrums, in this way worshiping
the Lord.
8. Jambavan, king of the bears, also joined in the ceremony. Sounding his bugle in all directions, he
declared a great festival for Lord Vamanadeva's victory.
9. When the demoniac followers of Maharaja Bali saw that their master, who had been determined in
performing sacrifice, had lost all his possessions to Vamanadeva, who had taken them away on the
plea of begging three paces of land, they were very angry and spoke as follows.
10. "This Vamana is certainly not a brahmana but the best of cheaters, Lord Visnu. Assuming the form
of a brahmana, He has covered His own form, and thus He is working for the interests of the demigods.
11. "Our lord, Bali Maharaja, because of his position in performing the yajna, has given up the power to
punish. Taking advantage of this, our eternal enemy, Visnu, dressed in the form of a brahmacari
beggar, has taken away all his possessions.
12. "Our lord, Bali Maharaja, is always fixed in truthfulness, and this is especially so at present, since he
has been initiated into performing a sacrifice. He is always kind and merciful toward the brahmanas,
and he cannot at any time speak lies.
13. "Therefore it is our duty to kill this Vamanadeva, Lord Visnu. It is our religious principle and the way
to serve our master." After making this decision, the demoniac followers of Maharaja Bali took up their
various weapons with a view to killing Vamanadeva.
14. O King, the demons, aggravated by their usual anger, took their lances and tridents in hand, and
against the will of Bali Maharaja they pushed forward to kill Lord Vamanadeva.
15. O King, when the associates of Lord Visnu saw the soldiers of the demons coming forward in
violence, they smiled. Taking up their weapons, they forbade the demons to continue their attempt.
16-17. Nanda, Sunanda, Jaya, Vijaya, Prabala, Bala, Kumuda, Kumudaksa, Visvaksena, Patattrirat
[Garuda], Jayanta, Srutadeva, Puspadanta and Satvata were all associates of Lord Visnu. They were
as powerful as ten thousand elephants, and now they began killing the soldiers of the demons.
18. When Bali Maharaja saw that his own soldiers were being killed by the associates of Lord Visnu, he
remembered the curse of Sukracarya and forbade his soldiers to continue fighting.
19. O Vipracitti, O Rahu, O Nemi, please hear my words! Don't fight. Stop immediately, for the present
time is not in our favor.
20. O Daityas, by human efforts no one can supersede the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who can
bring happiness and distress to all living entities.
21. The supreme time factor, which represents the Supreme Person, was previously in our favor and
not in favor of the demigods, but now that same time factor is against us.
22. No one can surpass the time representation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead by material
power, by the counsel of ministers, by intelligence, by diplomacy, by fortresses, by mystic mantras, by
drugs, by herbs or by any other means.
23. Previously, being empowered by providence, you defeated a great number of such followers of Lord
Visnu. But today those same followers, having defeated us, are roaring in jubilation like lions.
24. Unless providence is in our favor, we shall not be able to gain victory. Therefore we must wait for
that favorable time when our defeating them will be possible.
25. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King, in accordance with the order of their master, Bali Maharaja,
all the chiefs of the demons and the Daityas entered the lower regions of the universe, to which they
were driven by the soldiers of Visnu.
26. Thereafter, on the day of soma-pana, after the sacrifice was finished, Garuda, king of the birds,
understanding the desire of his master, arrested Bali Maharaja with the ropes of Varuna.
27. When Bali Maharaja was thus arrested by Lord Visnu, who is the most powerful, there was a great
roar of lamentation in all directions throughout the upper and lower planetary systems of the universe.
28. O King, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vamanadeva, then spoke to Bali Maharaja, the most
liberal and celebrated personality whom He had arrested with the ropes of Varuna. Bali Maharaja had
lost all bodily luster, but he was nonetheless fixed in his determination.
29. O King of the demons, you have promised to give Me three steps of land, but I have occupied the
entire universe with two steps. Now think about where I should put My third.
30. As far as the sun and moon shine with the stars and as far as the clouds pour rain, all the land
throughout the universe is in your possession.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 399
31. Of these possessions, with one step I have occupied Bhurloka, and with My body I have occupied
the entire sky and all directions. And in your presence, with My second step, I have occupied the upper
planetary system.
32. Because you have been unable to give charity according to your promise, the rule is that you should
go down to live in the hellish planets. Therefore, in accordance with the order of Sukracarya, your
spiritual master, now go down and live there.
33. Far from being elevated to the heavenly planets or fulfilling one's desire, one who does not properly
give a beggar what he has promised falls down to a hellish condition of life.
34. Being falsely proud of your possessions, you promised to give Me land, but you could not fulfill your
promise. Therefore, because your promise was false, you must live for a few years in hellish life.
Chapter Twenty-two Bali Maharaja Surrenders His Life
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, although the Supreme Personality of Godhead was superficially
seen to have acted mischievously toward Bali Maharaja, Bali Maharaja was fixed in his determination.
Considering himself not to have fulfilled his promise, he spoke as follows.
2. Bali Maharaja said: O best Personality of Godhead, most worshipable for all the demigods, if You
think that my promise has become false, I shall certainly rectify matters to make it truthful. I cannot allow
my promise to be false. Please, therefore, place Your third lotus footstep on my head.
3. I do not fear being deprived of all my possessions, living in hellish life, being arrested for poverty by
the ropes of Varuna or being punished by You as much as I fear defamation.
4. Although a father, mother, brother or friend may sometimes punish one as a well-wisher, they never
punish their subordinate like this. But because You are the most worshipable Lord, I regard the
punishment You have given me as most exalted.
5. Since Your Lordship is indirectly the greatest well-wisher of us demons, You act for our best welfare
by posing as if our enemy. Because demons like us always aspire for a position of false prestige, by
chastising us You give us the eyes by which to see the right path.
6-7. Many demons who were continuously inimical toward You finally achieved the perfection of great
mystic yogis. Your Lordship can perform one work to serve many purposes, and consequently, although
You have punished me in many ways, I do not feel ashamed of having been arrested by the ropes of
Varuna, nor do I feel aggrieved.
8. My grandfather Prahlada Maharaja is famous, being recognized by all Your devotees. Although
harassed in many ways by his father, Hiranyakasipu, he still remained faithful, taking shelter at Your
lotus feet.
9. What is the use of the material body, which automatically leaves its owner at the end of life? And
what is the use of all one's family members, who are actually plunderers taking away money that is
useful for the service of the Lord in spiritual opulence? What is the use of a wife? She is only the source
of increasing material conditions. And what is the use of family, home, country and community?
Attachment for them merely wastes the valuable energy of one's lifetime.
10. My grandfather, the best of all men, who achieved unlimited knowledge and was worshipable for
everyone, was afraid of the common men in this world. Being fully convinced of the substantiality
afforded by shelter at Your lotus feet, He took shelter of Your lotus feet, against the will of his father and
demoniac friends, who were killed by Your own self.
11. Only by providence have I been forcibly brought under Your lotus feet and deprived of all my
opulence. Because of the illusion created by temporary opulence, people in general, who live under
material conditions, facing accidental death at every moment, do not understand that this life is
temporary. Only by providence have I been saved from that condition.
12. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O best of the Kurus, while Bali Maharaja was describing his fortunate
position in this way, the most dear devotee of the Lord, Prahlada Maharaja, appeared there, like the
moon rising in the nighttime.
13. Then Bali Maharaja saw his grandfather Prahlada Maharaja, the most fortunate personality, whose
dark body resembled black ointment for the eyes. His tall, elegant figure was dressed in yellow
garments, he had long arms, and his beautiful eyes were like the petals of a lotus. He was very dear
and pleasing to everyone.
14. Being bound by the ropes of Varuna, Bali Maharaja could not offer befitting respect to Prahlada
Maharaja as he had before. Rather, he simply offered respectful obeisances with his head, his eyes
being inundated with tears and his face lowered in shame.
15. When the great personality Prahlada Maharaja saw that the Supreme Lord was sitting there,
surrounded and worshiped by His intimate associates like Sunanda, he was overwhelmed with tears of
jubilation. Approaching the Lord and falling to the ground, he offered obeisances to the Lord with his
head.
400 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. Prahlada Maharaja said: My Lord, it is Your Lordship who gave this Bali the very great opulence of
the post of heavenly king, and now, today, it is You who have taken it all away. I think You have acted
with equal beauty in both ways. Because his exalted position as King of heaven was putting him in the
darkness of ignorance, You have done him a very merciful favor by taking away all his opulence.
17. Material opulence is so bewildering that it makes even a learned, self-controlled man forget to
search for the goal of self-realization. But the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, the Lord of
the universe, can see everything by His will. Therefore I offer my respectful obeisances unto Him.
18. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King Pariksit, Lord Brahma then began to speak to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, within the hearing of Prahlada Maharaja, who stood nearby with folded hands.
19. But Bali Maharaja's chaste wife, afraid and aggrieved at seeing her husband arrested, immediately
offered obeisances to Lord Vamanadeva [Upendra]. She folded her hands and spoke as follows.
20. Srimati Vindhyavali said: O my Lord, You have created the entire universe for the enjoyment of Your
personal pastimes, but foolish, unintelligent men have claimed proprietorship for material enjoyment.
Certainly they are shameless agnostics. Falsely claiming proprietorship, they think they can give charity
and enjoy. In such a condition, what good can they do for You, who are the independent creator,
maintainer and annihilator of this universe?
21. Lord Brahma said: O well-wisher and master of all living entities, O worshipable Deity of all the
demigods, O all-pervading Personality of Godhead, now this man has been sufficiently punished, for
You have taken everything. Now You can release him. He does not deserve to be punished more.
22. Bali Maharaja had already offered everything to Your Lordship. Without hesitation, he has offered
his land, the planets and whatever else he earned by his pious activities, including even his own body.
23. By offering even water, newly grown grass, or flower buds at Your lotus feet, those who maintain no
mental duplicity can achieve the most exalted position within the spiritual world. This Bali Maharaja,
without duplicity, has now offered everything in the three worlds. How then can he deserve to suffer
from arrest?
24. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Lord Brahma, because of material opulence a
foolish person becomes dull-witted and mad. Thus he has no respect for anyone within the three worlds
and defies even My authority. To such a person I show special favor by first taking away all his
possessions.
25. While rotating in the cycle of birth and death again and again in different species because of his own
fruitive activities, the dependent living entity, by good fortune, may happen to become a human being.
This human birth is very rarely obtained.
26. If a human being is born in an aristocratic family or a higher status of life, if he performs wonderful
activities, if he is youthful, if he has personal beauty, a good education and good wealth, and if he is
nonetheless not proud of his opulences, it is to be understood that he is especially favored by the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
27. Although aristocratic birth and other such opulences are impediments to advancement in devotional
service because they are causes of false prestige and pride, these opulences never disturb a pure
devotee of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
28. Bali Maharaja has become the most famous among the demons and nonbelievers, for in spite of
being bereft of all material opulences, he is fixed in his devotional service.
29-30. Although bereft of his riches, fallen from his original position, defeated and arrested by his
enemies, rebuked and deserted by his relatives and friends, although suffering the pain of being bound
and although rebuked and cursed by his spiritual master, Bali Maharaja, being fixed in his vow, did not
give up his truthfulness. It was certainly with pretension that I spoke about religious principles, but he
did not give up religious principles, for he is true to his word.
31. The Lord continued: Because of his great tolerance, I have given him a place not obtainable even
by the demigods. He will become King of the heavenly planets during the period of the Manu known as
Savarni.
32. Until Bali Maharaja achieves the position of King of heaven, he shall live on the planet Sutala, which
was made by Visvakarma according to My order. Because it is especially protected by Me, it is free
from mental and bodily miseries, fatigue, dizziness, defeat and all other disturbances. Bali Maharaja,
you may now go live there peacefully.
33. O Bali Maharaja [Indrasena], now you may go to the planet Sutala, which is desired even by the
demigods. Live there peacefully, surrounded by your friends and relatives. All good fortune unto you.
34. On the planet Sutala, not even the predominating deities of other planets, what to speak of ordinary
people, will be able to conquer you. As far as the demons are concerned, if they transgress your rule,
My disc will kill them.
35. O great hero, I shall always be with you and give you protection in all respects along with your
associates and paraphernalia. Moreover, you will always be able to see Me there.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 401
36. Because there you will see My supreme prowess, your materialistic ideas and anxieties that have
arisen from your association with the demons and Danavas will immediately be vanquished.
Chapter Twenty-three The Demigods Regain the Heavenly Planets
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When the supreme, ancient, eternal Personality of Godhead had thus
spoken to Bali Maharaja, who is universally accepted as a pure devotee of the Lord and therefore a
great soul, Bali Maharaja, his eyes filled with tears, his hands folded and his voice faltering in devotional
ecstasy, responded as follows.
2. Bali Maharaja said: What a wonderful effect there is in even attempting to offer respectful obeisances
to You! I merely endeavored to offer You obeisances, but nonetheless the attempt was as successful as
those of pure devotees. The causeless mercy You have shown to me, a fallen demon, was never
achieved even by the demigods or the leaders of the various planets.
3. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After speaking in this way, Bali Maharaja offered his obeisances first
to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, and then to Lord Brahma and Lord Siva. Thus he was
released from the bondage of the naga-pasa [the ropes of Varuna], and in full satisfaction he entered
the planet known as Sutala.
4. Thus having delivered the proprietorship of the heavenly planets to Indra and having fulfilled the
desire of Aditi, mother of the demigods, the Supreme Personality of Godhead ruled the affairs of the
universe.
5. When Prahlada Maharaja heard how Bali Maharaja, his grandson and descendant, had been
released from bondage and had achieved the benediction of the Lord, he spoke as follows in a tone of
greatly ecstatic devotion.
6. Prahlada Maharaja said: O Supreme Personality of Godhead, You are universally worshiped; even
Lord Brahma and Lord Siva worship Your lotus feet. Yet although You are such a great personality, You
have kindly promised to protect us, the demons. I think that such kindness has never been achieved
even by Lord Brahma, Lord Siva or the goddess of fortune, Laksmi, what to speak of other demigods or
common people.
7. O supreme shelter of everyone, great personalities like Brahma enjoy their perfection simply by
tasting the honey of rendering service at Your lotus feet. But as for us, who are all rogues and
debauchees born of an envious family of demons, how have we received Your mercy? It has been
possible only because Your mercy is causeless.
8. O my Lord, Your pastimes are all wonderfully performed by Your inconceivable spiritual energy; and
by her perverted reflection, the material energy, You have created all the universes. As the Supersoul of
all living entities, You are aware of everything, and therefore You are certainly equal toward everyone.
Nonetheless, You favor Your devotees. This is not partiality, however, for Your characteristic is just like
that of a desire tree, which yields everything according to one's desire.
9. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear son Prahlada, all good fortune unto you. For the
time being, please go to the place known as Sutala and there enjoy happiness with your grandson and
your other relatives and friends.
10. The Supreme Personality of Godhead assured Prahlada Maharaja: You shall be able to see Me
there in My usual feature with conchshell, disc, club and lotus in My hand. Because of your
transcendental bliss due to always personally seeing Me, you will have no further bondage to fruitive
activities.
11-12. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami said: Accompanied by Bali Maharaja, my dear King Pariksit, Prahlada
Maharaja, the master of all the chiefs of the demons, took the Supreme Lord's order on his head with
folded hands. After saying yes to the Lord, circumambulating Him and offering Him respectful
obeisances, he entered the lower planetary system known as Sutala.
13. Hari, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, thereafter addressed Sukracarya, who was
sitting nearby in the midst of the assembly with the priests [brahma, hota, udgata and adhvaryu]. O
Maharaja Pariksit, these priests were all brahma-vadis, followers of the Vedic principles for performing
sacrifices.
14. O best of the brahmanas, Sukracarya, please describe the fault or discrepancy in your disciple Bali
Maharaja, who engaged in performing sacrifices. This fault will be nullified when judged in the presence
of qualified brahmanas.
15. Sukracarya said: My Lord, You are the enjoyer and lawgiver in all performances of sacrifice, and
You are the yajna-purusa, the person to whom all sacrifices are offered. If one has fully satisfied You,
where is the chance of discrepancies or faults in his performances of sacrifice?
16. There may be discrepancies in pronouncing the mantras and observing the regulative principles,
and, moreover, there may be discrepancies in regard to time, place, person and paraphernalia. But
when Your Lordship's holy name is chanted, everything becomes faultless.
402 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
17. Lord Visnu, I must nonetheless act in obedience to Your order because obeying Your order is most
auspicious and is the first duty of everyone.
18. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: In this way, the most powerful Sukracarya accepted the order of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead with full respect. Along with the best brahmanas, he began to
compensate for the discrepancies in the sacrifices performed by Bali Maharaja.
19. O King Pariksit, thus having taken all the land of Bali Maharaja by begging, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, Lord Vamanadeva, delivered to His brother Indra all the land taken away by Indra's
enemy.
20-21. Lord Brahma [the master of King Daksa and all other Prajapatis], accompanied by all the
demigods, the great saintly persons, the inhabitants of Pitrloka, the Manus, the munis, and such leaders
as Daksa, Bhrgu and Angira, as well as Karttikeya and Lord Siva, accepted Lord Vamanadeva as the
protector of everyone. He did this for the pleasure of Kasyapa Muni and his wife Aditi and for the
welfare of all the inhabitants of the universe, including their various leaders.
22-23. O King Pariksit, Indra was considered the King of all the universe, but the demigods, headed by
Lord Brahma, wanted Upendra, Lord Vamanadeva, as the protector of the Vedas, the principles of
religion, fame, opulence, auspiciousness, vows, elevation to the higher planetary system, and liberation.
Thus they accepted Upendra, Lord Vamanadeva, as the supreme master of everything. This decision
made all living entities extremely happy.
24. Thereafter, along with all the leaders of the heavenly planets, Indra, the King of heaven, placed Lord
Vamanadeva before him and, with the approval of Lord Brahma, brought Him to the heavenly planet in
a celestial airplane.
25. Indra, King of heaven, being protected by the arms of Vamanadeva, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, thus regained his rule of the three worlds and was reinstated in his own position, supremely
opulent, fearless and fully satisfied.
26-27. Lord Brahma, Lord Siva, Lord Karttikeya, the great sage Bhrgu, other saintly persons, the
inhabitants of Pitrloka and all other living entities present, including the inhabitants of Siddhaloka and
living entities who travel in outer space by airplane, all glorified the uncommon activities of Lord
Vamanadeva. O King, while chanting about and glorifying the Lord, they returned to their respective
heavenly planets. They also praised the position of Aditi.
28. O Maharaja Pariksit, pleasure of your dynasty, I have now described to you everything about the
wonderful activities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead Vamanadeva. Those who hear about this
are certainly freed from all the results of sinful activities.
29. One who is subject to death cannot measure the glories of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Trivikrama, Lord Visnu, any more than he can count the number of atoms on the entire planet earth. No
one, whether born already or destined to take birth, is able to do this. This has been sung by the great
sage Vasistha.
30. If one hears about the uncommon activities of the Supreme Personality of Godhead in His various
incarnations, he is certainly elevated to the higher planetary system or even brought back home, back
to Godhead.
31. Whenever the activities of Vamanadeva are described in the course of a ritualistic ceremony,
whether the ceremony be performed to please the demigods, to please one's forefathers in Pitrloka, or
to celebrate a social event like a marriage, that ceremony should be understood to be extremely
auspicious.
Chapter Twenty-four Matsya, the Lord's Fish Incarnation
1. Maharaja Pariksit said: The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, is eternally situated in His
transcendental position, yet He descends to this material world and manifests Himself in various
incarnations. His first incarnation was that of a great fish. O most powerful Sukadeva Gosvami, I wish to
hear from you the pastimes of that fish incarnation.
2-3. What was the purpose for which the Supreme Personality of Godhead accepted the abominable
form of a fish, exactly as an ordinary living being accepts different forms under the laws of karma? The
form of a fish is certainly condemned and full of terrible pain. O my lord, what was the purpose of this
incarnation? Kindly explain this to us, for hearing about the pastimes of the Lord is auspicious for
everyone.
4. Suta Gosvami said: When Pariksit Maharaja thus inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami, that most
powerful saintly person began describing the pastimes of the Lord's incarnation as a fish.
5. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, for the sake of protecting the cows, brahmanas, demigods,
devotees, the Vedic literature, religious principles, and principles to fulfill the purpose of life, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead accepts the forms of incarnations.
6. Like the air passing through different types of atmosphere, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
although appearing sometimes as a human being and sometimes as a lower animal, is always
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 403
transcendental. Because He is above the material modes of nature, He is unaffected by higher and
lower forms.
7. O King Pariksit, at the end of the past millennium, at the end of Brahma's day, because Lord Brahma
sleeps during the night, annihilation took place, and the three worlds were covered by the water of the
ocean.
8. At the end of Brahma's day, when Brahma felt sleepy and desired to lie down, the Vedas were
emanating from his mouth, and the great demon named Hayagriva stole the Vedic knowledge.
9. Understanding the acts of the great demon Hayagriva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari,
who is full of all opulences, assumed the form of a fish and saved the Vedas by killing the demon.
10. During the Caksusa-manvantara there was a great king named Satyavrata who was a great
devotee of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Satyavrata performed austerities by subsisting only
on water.
11. In this [the present] millennium King Satyavrata later became the son of Vivasvan, the king of the
sun planet, and was known as Sraddhadeva. By the mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, he
was given the post of Manu.
12. One day while King Satyavrata was performing austerities by offering water on the bank of the River
Krtamala, a small fish appeared in the water in his palms.
13. Satyavrata, the King of Dravidadesa, threw the fish into the water of the river along with the water in
his palm, O King Pariksit, descendant of Bharata.
14. With an appealing voice, the poor small fish said to King Satyavrata, who was very merciful: My
dear King, protector of the poor, why are you throwing Me in the water of the river, where there are
other aquatics who can kill Me? I am very much afraid of them.
15. To please himself, King Satyavrata, not knowing that the fish was the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, decided with great pleasure to give the fish protection.
16. The merciful King, being moved by the pitiable words of the fish, placed the fish in a water jug and
brought Him to his own residence.
17. But in one night that fish grew so much that He could not move His body comfortably in the water of
the pot. He then spoke to the King as follows.
18. O My dear King, I do not like living in this waterpot with such great difficulty. Therefore, please find
some better reservoir of water where I can live comfortably.
19. Then, taking the fish out of the waterpot, the King threw Him in a large well. But within a moment the
fish developed to the length of three cubits.
20. The fish then said: My dear King, this reservoir of water is not fit for My happy residence. Please
give Me a more extensive pool of water, for I have taken shelter of you.
21. O Maharaja Pariksit, the King took the fish from the well and threw Him in a lake, but the fish then
assumed a gigantic form exceeding the extent of the water.
22. The fish then said: O King, I am a large aquatic, and this water is not at all suitable for Me. Now
kindly find some way to save Me. It would be better to put Me in the water of a lake that will never
reduce.
23. When thus requested, King Satyavrata took the fish to the largest reservoir of water. But when that
also proved insufficient, the King at last threw the gigantic fish into the ocean.
24. While being thrown in the ocean, the fish said to King Satyavrata: O hero, in this water there are
very powerful and dangerous sharks that will eat Me. Therefore you should not throw Me in this place.
25. After hearing these sweet words from the Supreme Personality of Godhead in the form of a fish, the
King, being bewildered, asked Him: Who are You, sir? You simply bewilder us.
26. My Lord, in one day You have expanded Yourself for hundreds of miles, covering the water of the
river and the ocean. Before this I had never seen or heard of such an aquatic animal.
27. My Lord, You are certainly the inexhaustible Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, Sri Hari.
It is to show Your mercy to the living entities that You have now assumed the form of an aquatic.
28. O my Lord, master of creation, maintenance and annihilation, O best of enjoyers, Lord Visnu, You
are the leader and destination of surrendered devotees like us. Therefore let me offer my respectful
obeisances unto You.
29. All Your pastimes and incarnations certainly appear for the welfare of all living entities. Therefore,
my Lord, I wish to know the purpose for which You have assumed this form of a fish.
30. O my Lord, possessing eyes like the petals of a lotus, the worship of the demigods, who are in the
bodily concept of life, is fruitless in all respects. But because You are the supreme friend and dearmost
Supersoul of everyone, worship of Your lotus feet is never useless. You have therefore manifested Your
form as a fish.
404 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
31. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When King Satyavrata spoke in this way, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who at the end of the yuga had assumed the form of a fish to benefit His devotee and enjoy
His pastimes in the water of inundation, responded as follows.
32. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O King, who can subdue your enemies, on the seventh
day from today the three worlds--Bhuh, Bhuvah and Svah--will all merge into the water of inundation.
33. When all the three worlds merge into the water, a large boat sent by Me will appear before you.
34-35. Thereafter, O King, you shall collect all types of herbs and seeds and load them on that great
boat. Then, accompanied by the seven rsis and surrounded by all kinds of living entities, you shall get
aboard that boat, and without moroseness you shall easily travel with your companions on the ocean of
inundation, the only illumination being the effulgence of the great rsis.
36. Then, as the boat is tossed about by the powerful winds, attach the vessel to My horn by means of
the great serpent Vasuki, for I shall be present by your side.
37. Pulling the boat, with you and all the rsis in it, O King, I shall travel in the water of devastation until
the night of Lord Brahma's slumber is over.
38. You will be thoroughly advised and favored by Me, and because of your inquiries, everything about
My glories, which are known as param brahma, will be manifest within your heart. Thus you will know
everything about Me.
39. After thus instructing the King, the Supreme Personality of Godhead immediately disappeared.
Then King Satyavrata began to wait for that time of which the Lord had instructed.
40. After spreading kusa with its tips pointing east, the saintly King, himself facing the northeast, sat
down on the grass and began to meditate upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, who had
assumed the form of a fish.
41. Thereafter, gigantic clouds pouring incessant water swelled the ocean more and more. Thus the
ocean began to overflow onto the land and inundate the entire world.
42. As Satyavrata remembered the order of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, he saw a boat
coming near him. Thus he collected herbs and creepers, and, accompanied by saintly brahmanas, he
got aboard the boat.
43. The saintly brahmanas, being pleased with the King, said to him: O King, please meditate upon the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Kesava. He will save us from this impending danger and arrange for
our well-being.
44. Then, while the King constantly meditated upon the Supreme Personality of Godhead, a large
golden fish appeared in the ocean of inundation. The fish had one horn and was eight million miles long.
45. Following the instructions formerly given by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the King
anchored the boat to the fish's horn, using the serpent Vasuki as a rope. Thus being satisfied, he began
offering prayers to the Lord.
46. The King said: By the grace of the Lord, those who have lost their self-knowledge since time
immemorial, and who because of this ignorance are involved in a material, conditional life full of
miseries, obtain the chance to meet the Lord's devotee. I accept that Supreme Personality of Godhead
as the supreme spiritual master.
47. In hopes of becoming happy in this material world, the foolish conditioned soul performs fruitive
activities that result only in suffering. But by rendering service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
one becomes free from such false desires for happiness. May my supreme spiritual master cut the knot
of false desires from the core of my heart.
48. One who wants to be free of material entanglement should take to the service of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead and give up the contamination of ignorance, involving pious and impious
activities. Thus one regains his original identity, just as a block of gold or silver sheds all dirt and
becomes purified when treated with fire. May that inexhaustible Supreme Personality of Godhead
become our spiritual master, for He is the original spiritual master of all other spiritual masters.
49. Neither all the demigods, nor the so-called gurus nor all other people, either independently or
together, can offer mercy that equals even one ten-thousandth of Yours. Therefore I wish to take shelter
of Your lotus feet.
50. As a blind man, being unable to see, accepts another blind man as his leader, people who do not
know the goal of life accept someone as a guru who is a rascal and a fool. But we are interested in self-
realization. Therefore we accept You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, as our spiritual master, for
You are able to see in all directions and are omniscient like the sun.
51. A materialistic so-called guru instructs his materialistic disciples about economic development and
sense gratification, and because of such instructions the foolish disciples continue in the materialistic
existence of ignorance. But Your Lordship gives knowledge that is eternal, and the intelligent person
receiving such knowledge is quickly situated in his original constitutional position.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 405
52. My Lord, You are the supreme well-wishing friend of everyone, the dearmost friend, the controller,
the Supersoul, the supreme instructor and the giver of supreme knowledge and the fulfillment of all
desires. But although You are within the heart, the foolish, because of lusty desires in the heart, cannot
understand You.
53. O Supreme Lord, for self-realization I surrender unto You, who are worshiped by the demigods as
the supreme controller of everything. By Your instructions, exposing life's purpose, kindly cut the knot
from the core of my heart and let me know the destination of my life.
54. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When Satyavrata had thus prayed to the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who had assumed the form of a fish, the Lord, while moving in the water of inundation,
explained to him the Absolute Truth.
55. The Supreme Personality of Godhead thus explained to King Satyavrata the spiritual science known
as sankhya-yoga, the science by which one distinguishes between matter and spirit [in other words,
bhakti-yoga], along with the instructions contained in the Puranas [the old histories] and the samhitas.
The Lord explained Himself in all these literatures.
56. While sitting in the boat, King Satyavrata, accompanied by the great saintly persons, listened to the
instructions of the Supreme Personality of Godhead in regard to self-realization. These instructions
were all from the eternal Vedic literature [brahma]. Thus the King and sages had no doubt about the
Absolute Truth.
57. At the end of the last inundation [during the period of Svayambhuva Manu] the Supreme Personality
of Godhead killed the demon named Hayagriva and delivered all the Vedic literatures to Lord Brahma
when Lord Brahma awakened from sleeping.
58. King Satyavrata was illuminated with all Vedic knowledge by the mercy of Lord Visnu, and in this
period he has now taken birth as Vaivasvata Manu, the son of the sun-god.
59. This story concerning the great King Satyavrata and the fish incarnation of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, Visnu, is a great transcendental narration. Anyone who hears it is delivered from the
reactions of sinful life.
60. One who narrates this description of the Matsya incarnation and King Satyavrata will certainly have
all his ambitions fulfilled, and he will undoubtedly return home, back to Godhead.
61. I offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who pretended to be a
gigantic fish, who restored the Vedic literature to Lord Brahma when Lord Brahma awakened from
sleep, and who explained the essence of Vedic literature to King Satyavrata and the great saintly
persons.
CANTO NINE
Chapter One King Sudyumna Becomes a Woman
1. King Pariksit said: My lord, Sukadeva Gosvami, you have elaborately described all the periods of the
various Manus and, within those periods, the wonderful activities of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who has unlimited potency. I am fortunate to have heard all of this from you.
2-3. Satyavrata, the saintly king of Dravidadesa who received spiritual knowledge at the end of the last
millennium by the grace of the Supreme, later became Vaivasvata Manu, the son of Vivasvan, in the
next manvantara [period of Manu]. I have received this knowledge from you. I also understand that such
kings as Iksvaku were his sons, as you have already explained.
4. O greatly fortunate Sukadeva Gosvami, O great brahmana, kindly describe to us separately the
dynasties and characteristics of all those kings, for we are always eager to hear such topics from you.
5. Kindly tell us about the abilities of all the celebrated kings born in the dynasty of Vaivasvata Manu,
including those who have already passed, those who may appear in the future, and those who exist at
present.
6. Suta Gosvami said: When Sukadeva Gosvami, the greatest knower of religious principles, was thus
requested by Maharaja Pariksit in the assembly of all the scholars learned in Vedic knowledge, he then
proceeded to speak.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King, subduer of your enemies, now hear from me in great detail
about the dynasty of Manu. I shall explain as much as possible, although one could not say everything
about it, even in hundreds of years.
8. The transcendental Supreme Person, the Supersoul of all living entities, who are in different statuses
of life, high and low, existed at the end of the millennium, when neither this manifested cosmos nor
anything else but Him existed.
9. O King Pariksit, from the navel of the Supreme Personality of Godhead was generated a golden
lotus, on which the four-faced Lord Brahma took his birth.
10. From the mind of Lord Brahma, Marici took birth, and from the semen of Marici, Kasyapa appeared
from the womb of the daughter of Daksa Maharaja. From Kasyapa, by the womb of Aditi, Vivasvan took
birth.
406 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
11-12. O King, best of the Bharata dynasty, from Vivasvan, by the womb of Samjna, Sraddhadeva
Manu was born. Sraddhadeva Manu, having conquered his senses, begot ten sons in the womb of his
wife, Sraddha. The names of these sons were Iksvaku, Nrga, Saryati, Dista, Dhrsta, Karusaka,
Narisyanta, Prsadhra, Nabhaga and Kavi.
13. Manu at first had no sons. Therefore, in order to get a son for him, the great saint Vasistha, who
was very powerful in spiritual knowledge, performed a sacrifice to satisfy the demigods Mitra and
Varuna.
14. During that sacrifice, Sraddha, Manu's wife, who was observing the vow of subsisting only by
drinking milk, approached the priest offering the sacrifice, offered obeisances to him and begged for a
daughter.
15. Told by the chief priest "Now offer oblations," the person in charge of oblations took clarified butter
to offer. He then remembered the request of Manu's wife and performed the sacrifice while chanting the
word vasat.
16. Manu had begun that sacrifice for the sake of getting a son, but because the priest was diverted by
the request of Manu's wife, a daughter named Ila was born. Upon seeing the daughter, Manu was not
very satisfied. Thus he spoke to his guru, Vasistha, as follows.
17. My lord, all of you are expert in chanting the Vedic mantras. How then has the result been opposite
to the one desired? This is a matter for lamentation. There should not have been such a reversal of the
results of the Vedic mantras.
18. You are all self-controlled, well balanced in mind, and aware of the Absolute Truth. And because of
austerities and penances you are completely cleansed of all material contamination. Your words, like
those of the demigods, are never baffled. Then how is it possible that your determination has failed?
19. The most powerful great-grandfather Vasistha, after hearing these words of Manu, understood the
discrepancy on the part of the priest. Thus he spoke as follows to the son of the sun-god.
20. This discrepancy in the objective is due to your priest's deviation from the original purpose.
However, by my own prowess I shall give you a good son.
21. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, after the most famous and powerful Vasistha made this
decision, he offered prayers to the Supreme Person, Visnu, to transform Ila into a male.
22. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, the supreme controller, being pleased with Vasistha, gave
him the benediction he desired. Thus Ila was transformed into a very fine male named Sudyumna.
23-24. O King Pariksit, that hero Sudyumna, accompanied by a few ministers and associates and riding
on a horse brought from Sindhupradesa, once went into the forest to hunt. He wore armor and was
decorated with bows and arrows, and he was very beautiful. While following the animals and killing
them, he reached the northern part of the forest.
25. There in the north, at the bottom of Mount Meru, is a forest known as Sukumara where Lord Siva
always enjoys with Uma. Sudyumna entered that forest.
26. O King Pariksit, as soon as Sudyumna, who was expert in subduing enemies, entered the forest, he
saw himself transformed into a female and his horse transformed into a mare.
27. When his followers also saw their identities transformed and their sex reversed, they were all very
morose and just looked at one another.
28. Maharaja Pariksit said: O most powerful brahmana, why was this place so empowered, and who
made it so powerful? Kindly answer this question, for I am very eager to hear about this.
29. Sukadeva Gosvami answered: Great saintly persons who strictly observed the spiritual rules and
regulations and whose own effulgence dissipated all the darkness of all directions once came to see
Lord Siva in that forest.
30. When the goddess Ambika saw the great saintly persons, she was very much ashamed because at
that time she was naked. She immediately got up from the lap of her husband and tried to cover her
breast.
31. Seeing Lord Siva and Parvati engaged in sexual affairs, all the great saintly persons immediately
desisted from going further and departed for the asrama of Nara-Narayana.
32. Thereupon, just to please his wife, Lord Siva said, "Any male entering this place shall immediately
become a female!"
33. Since that time, no male had entered that forest. But now King Sudyumna, having been transformed
into a female, began to walk with his associates from one forest to another.
34. Sudyumna had been transformed into the best of beautiful women who excite sexual desire and
was surrounded by other women. Upon seeing this beautiful woman loitering near his asrama, Budha,
the son of the moon, immediately desired to enjoy her.
35. The beautiful woman also desired to accept Budha, the son of the king of the moon, as her
husband. Thus Budha begot in her womb a son named Pururava.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 407
36. I heard from reliable sources that King Sudyumna, the son of Manu, having thus achieved
femininity, remembered his familial spiritual master, Vasistha.
37. Upon seeing Sudyumna's deplorable condition, Vasistha was very much aggrieved. Desiring for
Sudyumna to regain his maleness, Vasistha again began to worship Lord Sankara [Siva].
38-39. O King Pariksit, Lord Siva was pleased with Vasistha. Therefore, to satisfy him and to keep his
own word to Parvati, Lord Siva said to that saintly person, "Your disciple Sudyumna may remain a male
for one month and a female for the next. In this way he may rule the world as he likes."
40. Thus being favored by the spiritual master, according to the words of Lord Siva, Sudyumna
regained his desired maleness every alternate month and in this way ruled the kingdom, although the
citizens were not satisfied with this.
41. O King, Sudyumna had three very pious sons, named Utkala, Gaya and Vimala, who became the
kings of the Daksina-patha.
42. Thereafter, when the time was ripe, when Sudyumna, the king of the world, was sufficiently old, he
delivered the entire kingdom to his son Pururava and entered the forest.
Chapter Two The Dynasties of the Sons of Manu
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thereafter, when his son Sudyumna had thus gone to the forest to accept
the order of vanaprastha, Vaivasvata Manu [Sraddhadeva], being desirous of getting more sons,
performed severe austerities on the bank of the Yamuna for one hundred years.
2. Then, because of this desire for sons, the Manu known as Sraddhadeva worshiped the Supreme
Lord, the Personality of Godhead, the Lord of the demigods. Thus he got ten sons exactly like himself.
Among them all, Iksvaku was the eldest.
3. Among these sons, Prsadhra, following the order of his spiritual master, was engaged as a protector
of cows. He would stand all night with a sword to give the cows protection.
4. Once at night, while it was raining, a tiger entered the land of the cowshed. Upon seeing the tiger, all
the cows, who were lying down, got up in fear and scattered here and there on the land.
5-6. When the very strong tiger seized the cow, the cow screamed in distress and fear, and Prsadhra,
hearing the screaming, immediately followed the sound. He took up his sword, but because the stars
were covered by clouds, he mistook the cow for the tiger and mistakenly cut off the cows' head with
great force.
7. Because the tiger's ear had been cut by the edge of the sword, the tiger was very afraid, and it fled
from that place, while bleeding on the street.
8. In the morning, when Prsadhra, who was quite able to subdue his enemy, saw that he had killed the
cow although at night he thought he had killed the tiger, he was very unhappy.
9. Although Prsadhra had committed the sin unknowingly, his family priest, Vasistha, cursed him,
saying, "In your next life you shall not be able to become a ksatriya. Instead, you shall take birth as a
sudra because of killing the cow."
10. When the hero Prsadhra was thus cursed by his spiritual master, he accepted the curse with folded
hands. Then, having controlled his senses, he took the vow of brahmacarya, which is approved by all
great sages.
11-13. Thereafter, Prsadhra gained relief from all responsibilities, became peaceful in mind, and
established control over all his senses. Being unaffected by material conditions, being pleased with
whatever was available by the grace of the Lord to maintain body and soul together, and being equal
toward everyone, he gave full attention to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, who is the
transcendental Supersoul, free from material contamination. Thus Prsadhra, fully satisfied in pure
knowledge, always keeping his mind on the Supreme Personality of Godhead, achieved pure
devotional service to the Lord and began traveling all over the world, without affection for material
activities, as if he were deaf, dumb and blind.
14. With this attitude, Prsadhra became a great saint, and when he entered the forest and saw a
blazing forest fire, he took this opportunity to burn his body in the fire. Thus he achieved the
transcendental, spiritual world.
15. Being reluctant to accept material enjoyment, Manu's youngest son, whose name was Kavi, gave
up the kingdom before attaining full youth. Accompanied by his friends, he went to the forest, always
thinking of the self-effulgent Supreme Personality of Godhead within the core of his heart. Thus he
attained perfection.
16. From Karusa, another son of Manu, came the Karusa dynasty, a family of ksatriyas. The Karusa
ksatriyas were the kings of the northern direction. They were celebrated protectors of brahminical
culture and were all firmly religious.
17. From the son of Manu named Dhrsta came a ksatriya caste called Dharsta, whose members
achieved the position of brahmanas in this world. Then, from the son of Manu named Nrga came
Sumati. From Sumati came Bhutajyoti, and from Bhutajyoti came Vasu.
408 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
18. The son of Vasu was Pratika, whose son was Oghavan. Oghavan's son was also known as
Oghavan, and his daughter was Oghavati. Sudarsana married that daughter.
19. From Narisyanta came a son named Citrasena and from him a son named Rksa. From Rksa came
Midhvan, from Midhvan came Purna, and from Purna came Indrasena.
20. From Indrasena came Vitihotra, from Vitihotra came Satyasrava, from Satyasrava came the son
named Urusrava, and from Urusrava came Devadatta.
21. From Devadatta came a son known as Agnivesya, who was the fire-god Agni himself. This son, who
was a celebrated saint, was well known as Kanina and Jatukarnya.
22. O King, from Agnivesya came a brahminical dynasty known as Agnivesyayana. Now that I have
described the descendants of Narisyanta, let me describe the descendants of Dista. Please hear from
me.
23-24. Dista had a son by the name Nabhaga. This Nabhaga, who was different from the Nabhaga
described later, became a vaisya by occupational duty. The son of Nabhaga was known as
Bhalandana, the son of Bhalandana was Vatsapriti, and his son was Pramsu. Pramsu's son was
Pramati, Pramati's son was Khanitra, Khanitra's son was Caksusa, and his son was Vivimsati.
25. The son of Vivimsati was Rambha, whose son was the great and religious King Khaninetra. O King,
the son of Khaninetra was King Karandhama.
26. From Karandhama came a son named Aviksit, and from Aviksit a son named Marutta, who was the
emperor. The great mystic Samvarta, the son of Angira, engaged Marutta in performing a sacrifice
[yajna].
27. The sacrificial paraphernalia of King Marutta was extremely beautiful, for everything was made of
gold. Indeed, no other sacrifice could compare to his.
28. In that sacrifice, King Indra became intoxicated by drinking a large quantity of soma-rasa. The
brahmanas received ample contributions, and therefore they were satisfied. For that sacrifice, the
various demigods who control the winds offered foodstuffs, and the Visvedevas were members of the
assembly.
29. Marutta's son was Dama, Dama's son was Rajyavardhana, Rajyavardhana's son was Sudhrti, and
his son was Nara.
30. The son of Nara was Kevala, and his son was Dhundhuman, whose son was Vegavan. Vegavan's
son was Budha, and Budha's son was Trnabindu, who became the king of this earth.
31. The best of the Apsaras, the highly qualified girl named Alambusa, accepted the similarly qualified
Trnabindu as her husband. She gave birth to a few sons and a daughter known as Ilavila.
32. After the great saint Visrava, the master of mystic yoga, received absolute knowledge from his
father, he begot in the womb of Ilavila the greatly celebrated son known as Kuvera, the giver of money.
33. Trnabindu had three sons, named Visala, Sunyabandhu and Dhumraketu. Among these three,
Visala created a dynasty and constructed a palace called Vaisali.
34. The son of Visala was known as Hemacandra, his son was Dhumraksa, and his son was
Samyama, whose sons were Devaja and Krsasva.
35-36. The son of Krsasva was Somadatta, who performed asvamedha sacrifices and thus satisfied the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu. By worshiping the Supreme Lord, he achieved the most
exalted post, a residence on the planet to which great mystic yogis are elevated. The son of Somadatta
was Sumati, whose son was Janamejaya. All these kings appearing in the dynasty of Visala properly
maintained the celebrated position of King Trnabindu.
Chapter Three The Marriage of Sukanya and Cyavana Muni
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King, Saryati, another son of Manu, was a ruler completely
aware of Vedic knowledge. He gave instructions about the functions for the second day of the yajna to
be performed by the descendants of Angira.
2. Saryati had a beautiful lotus-eyed daughter named Sukanya, with whom he went to the forest to see
the asrama of Cyavana Muni.
3. While that Sukanya, surrounded by her friends, was collecting various types of fruits from the trees in
the forest, she saw within the hole of an earthworm two things glowing like luminaries.
4. As if induced by providence, the girl ignorantly pierced those two glowworms with a thorn, and when
they were pierced, blood began to ooze out of them.
5. Thereupon, all the soldiers of Saryati were immediately obstructed from passing urine and stool.
Upon perceiving this, Saryati spoke to his associates in surprise.
6. How strange it is that one of us has attempted to do something wrong to Cyavana Muni, the son of
Bhrgu. It certainly appears that someone among us has polluted this asrama.
7. Being very much afraid, the girl Sukanya said to her father: I have done something wrong, for I have
ignorantly pierced these two luminous substances with a thorn.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 409
8. After hearing this statement by his daughter, King Saryati was very much afraid. In various ways, he
tried to appease Cyavana Muni, for it was he who sat within the hole of the earthworm.
9. King Saryati, being very contemplative and thus understanding Cyavana Muni's purpose, gave his
daughter in charity to the sage. Thus released from danger with great difficulty, he took permission from
Cyavana Muni and returned home.
10. Cyavana Muni was very irritable, but since Sukanya had gotten him as her husband, she dealt with
him carefully, according to his mood. Knowing his mind, she performed service to him without being
bewildered.
11. Thereafter, some time having passed, the Asvini-kumara brothers, the heavenly physicians,
happened to come to Cyavana Muni's asrama. After offering them respectful obeisances, Cyavana
Muni requested them to give him youthful life, for they were able to do so.
12. Cyavana Muni said: Although you are ineligible to drink soma-rasa in sacrifices, I promise to give
you a full pot of it. Kindly arrange beauty and youth for me, because they are attractive to young
women.
13. The great physicians, the Asvini-kumaras, very gladly accepted Cyavana Muni's proposal. Thus
they told the brahmana, "Just dive into this lake of successful life." [One who bathes in this lake has his
desires fulfilled.]
14. After saying this, the Asvini-kumaras caught hold of Cyavana Muni, who was an old, diseased
invalid with loose skin, white hair, and veins visible all over his body, and all three of them entered the
lake.
15. Thereafter, three men with very beautiful bodily features emerged from the lake. They were nicely
dressed and decorated with earrings and garlands of lotuses. All of them were of the same standard of
beauty.
16. The chaste and very beautiful Sukanya could not distinguish her husband from the two Asvini-
kumaras, for they were equally beautiful. Not understanding who her real husband was, she took
shelter of the Asvini-kumaras.
17. The Asvini-kumaras were very pleased to see Sukanya's chastity and faithfulness. Thus they
showed her Cyavana Muni, her husband, and after taking permission from him, they returned to the
heavenly planets in their plane.
18. Thereafter, King Saryati, desiring to perform a sacrifice, went to the residence of Cyavana Muni.
There he saw by the side of his daughter a very beautiful young man, as bright as the sun.
19. After receiving obeisances from his daughter, the King, instead of offering blessings to her,
appeared very displeased and spoke as follows.
20. O unchaste girl, what is this that you have desired to do? You have cheated the most respectable
husband, who is honored by everyone, for I see that because he was old, diseased and therefore
unattractive, you have left his company to accept as your husband this young man, who appears to be
a beggar from the street.
21. O my daughter, who were born in a respectable family, how have you degraded your consciousness
in this way? How is it that you are shamelessly maintaining a paramour? You will thus degrade the
dynasties of both your father and your husband to hellish life.
22. Sukanya, however, being very proud of her chastity, smiled upon hearing the rebukes of her father.
She smilingly told him, "My dear father, this young man by my side is your actual son-in-law, the great
sage Cyavana, who was born in the family of Bhrgu."
23. Thus Sukanya explained how her husband had received the beautiful body of a young man. When
the King heard this he was very surprised, and in great pleasure he embraced his beloved daughter.
24. Cyavana Muni, by his own prowess, enabled King Saryati to perform the soma-yajna. The muni
offered a full pot of soma-rasa to the Asvini-kumaras, although they were unfit to drink it.
25. King Indra, being perturbed and angry, wanted to kill Cyavana Muni, and therefore he impetuously
took up his thunderbolt. But Cyavana Muni, by his powers, paralyzed Indra's arm that held the
thunderbolt.
26. Although the Asvini-kumaras were only physicians and were therefore excluded from drinking
soma-rasa in sacrifices, the demigods agreed to allow them henceforward to drink it.
27. King Saryati begot three sons, named Uttanabarhi, Anarta and Bhurisena. From Anarta came a son
named Revata.
28. O Maharaja Pariksit, subduer of enemies, this Revata constructed a kingdom known as Kusasthali
in the depths of the ocean. There he lived and ruled such tracts of land as Anarta, etc. He had one
hundred very nice sons, of whom the eldest was Kakudmi.
29. Taking his own daughter, Revati, Kakudmi went to Lord Brahma in Brahmaloka, which is
transcendental to the three modes of material nature, and inquired about a husband for her.
410 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
30. When Kakudmi arrived there, Lord Brahma was engaged in hearing musical performances by the
Gandharvas and had not a moment to talk with him. Therefore Kakudmi waited, and at the end of the
musical performances he offered his obeisances to Lord Brahma and thus submitted his long-standing
desire.
31. After hearing his words, Lord Brahma, who is most powerful, laughed loudly and said to Kakudmi: O
King, all those whom you may have decided within the core of your heart to accept as your son-in-law
have passed away in the course of time.
32. Twenty-seven catur-yugas have already passed. Those upon whom you may have decided are now
gone, and so are their sons, grandsons and other descendants. You cannot even hear about their
names.
33. O King, leave here and offer your daughter to Lord Baladeva, who is still present. He is most
powerful. Indeed, He is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, whose plenary portion is Lord Visnu.
Your daughter is fit to be given to Him in charity.
34. Lord Baladeva is the Supreme Personality of Godhead. One who hears and chants about Him is
purified. Because He is always the well-wisher of all living entities, He has descended with all His
paraphernalia to purify the entire world and lessen its burden.
35. Having received this order from Lord Brahma, Kakudmi offered obeisances unto him and returned
to his own residence. He then saw that his residence was vacant, having been abandoned by his
brothers and other relatives, who were living in all directions because of fear of such higher living beings
as the Yaksas.
36. Thereafter, the King gave his most beautiful daughter in charity to the supremely powerful Baladeva
and then retired from worldly life and went to Badarikasrama to please Nara-Narayana.
Chapter Four Ambarisa Maharaja Offended by Durvasa Muni
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The son of Nabhaga named Nabhaga lived for a long time at the place of
his spiritual master. Therefore, his brothers thought that he was not going to become a grhastha and
would not return. Consequently, without providing a share for him, they divided the property of their
father among themselves. When Nabhaga returned from the place of his spiritual master, they gave him
their father as his share.
2. Nabhaga inquired, "My dear brothers, what have you given to me as my share of our father's
property?" His elder brothers answered, "We have kept our father as your share." But when Nabhaga
went to his father and said, "My dear father, my elder brothers have given you as my share of property,"
the father replied, "My dear son, do not rely upon their cheating words. I am not your property."
3. Nabhaga's father said: All the descendants of Angira are now going to perform a great sacrifice, but
although they are very intelligent, on every sixth day they will be bewildered in performing sacrifice and
will make mistakes in their daily duties.
4-5. Nabhaga's father continued: "Go to those great souls and describe two Vedic hymns pertaining to
Vaisvadeva. When the great sages have completed the sacrifice and are going to the heavenly planets,
they will give you the remnants of the money they have received from the sacrifice. Therefore, go there
immediately." Thus Nabhaga acted exactly according to the advice of his father, and the great sages of
the Angira dynasty gave him all their wealth and then went to the heavenly planets.
6. Thereafter, while Nabhaga was accepting the riches, a black-looking person from the north came to
him and said, "All the wealth from this sacrificial arena belongs to me."
7. Nabhaga then said, "These riches belong to me. The great saintly persons have delivered them to
me." When Nabhaga said this, the black-looking person replied, "Let us go to your father and ask him to
settle our disagreement." In accordance with this, Nabhaga inquired from his father.
8. The father of Nabhaga said: Whatever the great sages sacrificed in the arena of the Daksa-yajna,
they offered to Lord Siva as his share. Therefore, everything in the sacrificial arena certainly belongs to
Lord Siva.
9. Thereupon, after offering obeisances to Lord Siva, Nabhaga said: O worshipable lord, everything in
this arena of sacrifice is yours. This is the assertion of my father. Now, with great respect, I bow my
head before you, begging your mercy.
10. Lord Siva said: Whatever your father has said is the truth, and you also are speaking the same
truth. Therefore, I, who know the Vedic mantras, shall explain transcendental knowledge to you.
11. Lord Siva said, "Now you may take all the wealth remaining from the sacrifice, for I give it to you."
After saying this, Lord Siva, who is most adherent to the religious principles, disappeared from that
place.
12. If one hears and chants or remembers this narration in the morning and evening with great
attention, he certainly becomes learned, experienced in understanding the Vedic hymns, and expert in
self-realization.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 411
13. From Nabhaga, Maharaja Ambarisa took birth. Maharaja Ambarisa was an exalted devotee,
celebrated for his great merits. Although he was cursed by an infallible brahmana, the curse could not
touch him.
14. King Pariksit inquired: O great personality, Maharaja Ambarisa was certainly most exalted and
meritorious in character. I wish to hear about him. How surprising it is that the curse of a brahmana,
which is insurmountable, could not act upon him.
15-16. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Maharaja Ambarisa, the most fortunate personality, achieved the rule
of the entire world, consisting of seven islands, and achieved inexhaustible, unlimited opulence and
prosperity on earth. Although such a position is rarely obtained, Maharaja Ambarisa did not care for it at
all, for he knew very well that all such opulence is material. Like that which is imagined in a dream, such
opulence will ultimately be destroyed. The King knew that any nondevotee who attains such opulence
merges increasingly into material nature's mode of darkness.
17. Maharaja Ambarisa was a great devotee of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, and of
the saintly persons who are the Lord's devotees. Because of this devotion, he thought of the entire
universe as being as insignificant as a piece of stone.
18-20. Maharaja Ambarisa always engaged his mind in meditating upon the lotus feet of Krsna, his
words in describing the glories of the Lord, his hands in cleansing the Lord's temple, and his ears in
hearing the words spoken by Krsna or about Krsna. He engaged his eyes in seeing the Deity of Krsna,
Krsna's temples and Krsna's places like Mathura and Vrndavana, he engaged his sense of touch in
touching the bodies of the Lord's devotees, he engaged his sense of smell in smelling the fragrance of
tulasi offered to the Lord, and he engaged his tongue in tasting the Lord's prasada. He engaged his legs
in walking to the holy places and temples of the Lord, his head in bowing down before the Lord, and all
his desires in serving the Lord, twenty-four hours a day. Indeed, Maharaja Ambarisa never desired
anything for his own sense gratification. He engaged all his senses in devotional service, in various
engagements related to the Lord. This is the way to increase attachment for the Lord and be completely
free from all material desires.
21. In performing his prescribed duties as king, Maharaja Ambarisa always offered the results of his
royal activities to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, who is the enjoyer of everything and is
beyond the perception of material senses. He certainly took advice from brahmanas who were faithful
devotees of the Lord, and thus he ruled the planet earth without difficulty.
22. In desert countries where there flowed the River Sarasvati, Maharaja Ambarisa performed great
sacrifices like the asvamedha-yajna and thus satisfied the master of all yajnas, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead. Such sacrifices were performed with great opulence and suitable paraphernalia and with
contributions of daksina to the brahmanas, who were supervised by great personalities like Vasistha,
Asita and Gautama, representing the king, the performer of the sacrifices.
23. In the sacrifice arranged by Maharaja Ambarisa, the members of the assembly and the priests
[especially hota, udgata, brahma and adhvaryu] were gorgeously dressed, and they all looked exactly
like demigods. They eagerly saw to the proper performance of the yajna.
24. The citizens of the state of Maharaja Ambarisa were accustomed to chanting and hearing about the
glorious activities of the Personality of Godhead. Thus they never aspired to be elevated to the
heavenly planets, which are extremely dear even to the demigods.
25. Those who are saturated with the transcendental happiness of rendering service to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead are uninterested even in the achievements of great mystics, for such
achievements do not enhance the transcendental bliss felt by a devotee who always thinks of Krsna
within the core of his heart.
26. The king of this planet, Maharaja Ambarisa, thus performed devotional service to the Lord and in
this endeavor practiced severe austerity. Always satisfying the Supreme Personality of Godhead by his
constitutional activities, he gradually gave up all material desires.
27. Maharaja Ambarisa gave up all attachment to household affairs, wives, children, friends and
relatives, to the best of powerful elephants, to beautiful chariots, carts, horses and inexhaustible jewels,
and to ornaments, garments and an inexhaustible treasury. He gave up attachment to all of them,
regarding them as temporary and material.
28. Being very pleased by the unalloyed devotion of Maharaja Ambarisa, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead gave the King His disc, which is fearful to enemies and which always protects the devotee
from enemies and adversities.
29. To worship Lord Krsna, Maharaja Ambarisa, along with his queen, who was equally qualified,
observed the vow of Ekadasi and Dvadasi for one year.
30. In the month of Kartika, after observing that vow for one year, after observing a fast for three nights
and after bathing in the Yamuna, Maharaja Ambarisa worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Hari, in Madhuvana.
412 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
31-32. Following the regulative principles of mahabhiseka, Maharaja Ambarisa performed the bathing
ceremony for the Deity of Lord Krsna with all paraphernalia, and then he dressed the Deity with fine
clothing, ornaments, fragrant flower garlands and other paraphernalia for worship of the Lord. With
attention and devotion, he worshiped Krsna and all the greatly fortunate brahmanas who were free from
material desires.
33-35. Thereafter, Maharaja Ambarisa satisfied all the guests who arrived at his house, especially the
brahmanas. He gave in charity sixty crores of cows whose horns were covered with gold plate and
whose hooves were covered with silver plate. All the cows were well decorated with garments and had
full milk bags. They were mild-natured, young and beautiful and were accompanied by their calves.
After giving these cows, the King first sumptuously fed all the brahmanas, and when they were fully
satisfied, he was about to observe the end of Ekadasi, with their permission, by breaking the fast.
Exactly at that time, however, Durvasa Muni, the great and powerful mystic, appeared on the scene as
an uninvited guest.
36. After standing up to receive Durvasa Muni, King Ambarisa offered him a seat and paraphernalia of
worship. Then, sitting at his feet, the King requested the great sage to eat.
37. Durvasa Muni gladly accepted the request of Maharaja Ambarisa, but to perform the regulative
ritualistic ceremonies he went to the River Yamuna. There he dipped into the water of the auspicious
Yamuna and meditated upon the impersonal Brahman.
38. In the meantime, only a muhurta of the Dvadasi day was left on which to break the fast.
Consequently, it was imperative that the fast be broken immediately. In this dangerous situation, the
King consulted learned brahmanas.
39-40. The King said: "To transgress the laws of respectful behavior toward the brahmanas is certainly
a great offense. On the other hand, if one does not observe the breaking of the fast within the time of
Dvadasi, there is a flaw in one's observance of the vow. Therefore, O brahmanas, if you think that it will
be auspicious and not irreligious, I shall break the fast by drinking water." In this way, after consulting
with the brahmanas, the King reached this decision, for according to brahminical opinion, drinking water
may be accepted as eating and also as not eating.
41. O best of the Kuru dynasty, after he drank some water, King Ambarisa, meditating upon the
Supreme Personality of Godhead within his heart, waited for the return of the great mystic Durvasa
Muni.
42. After executing the ritualistic ceremonies to be performed at noon, Durvasa returned from the bank
of the Yamuna. The King received him well, offering all respects, but Durvasa Muni, by his mystic
power, could understand that King Ambarisa had drunk water without his permission.
43. Still hungry, Durvasa Muni, his body trembling, his face curved and his eyebrows crooked in a
frown, angrily spoke as follows to King Ambarisa, who stood before him with folded hands.
44. Alas, just see the behavior of this cruel man! He is not a devotee of Lord Visnu. Being proud of his
material opulence and his position, he considers himself God. Just see how he has transgressed the
laws of religion.
45. Maharaja Ambarisa, you have invited me to eat as a guest, but instead of feeding me, you yourself
have eaten first. Because of your misbehavior, I shall show you something to punish you.
46. As Durvasa Muni said this, his face became red with anger. Uprooting a bunch of hair from his
head, he created a demon resembling the blazing fire of devastation to punish Maharaja Ambarisa.
47. Taking a trident in his hand and making the surface of the earth tremble with his footsteps, that
blazing creature came before Maharaja Ambarisa. But the King, upon seeing him, was not at all
disturbed and did not move even slightly from his position.
48. As fire in the forest immediately burns to ashes an angry snake, so, by the previous order of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, His disc, the Sudarsana cakra, immediately burnt to ashes the
created demon to protect the Lord's devotee.
49. Upon seeing that his own attempt had failed and that the Sudarsana cakra was moving toward him,
Durvasa Muni became very frightened and began to run in all directions to save his life.
50. As the blazing flames of a forest fire pursue a snake, the disc of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead began following Durvasa Muni. Durvasa Muni saw that the disc was almost touching his back,
and thus he ran very swiftly, desiring to enter a cave of Sumeru Mountain.
51. Just to protect himself, Durvasa Muni fled everywhere, in all directions--in the sky, on the surface of
the earth, in caves, in the ocean, on different planets of the rulers of the three worlds, and even on the
heavenly planets--but wherever he went he immediately saw following him the unbearable fire of the
Sudarsana cakra.
52. With a fearful heart, Durvasa Muni went here and there seeking shelter, but when he could find no
shelter, he finally approached Lord Brahma and said, "O my lord, O Lord Brahma, kindly protect me
from the blazing Sudarsana cakra sent by the Supreme Personality of Godhead."
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 413
53-54. Lord Brahma said: At the end of the dvi-parardha, when the pastimes of the Lord come to an
end, Lord Visnu, by a flick of His eyebrows, vanquishes the entire universe, including our places of
residence. Such personalities as me and Lord Siva, as well as Daksa, Bhrgu and similar great saints of
which they are the head, and also the rulers of the living entities, the rulers of human society and the
rulers of the demigods--all of us surrender to that Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu, bowing
our heads, to carry out His orders for the benefit of all living entities.
55. When Durvasa, who was greatly afflicted by the blazing fire of the Sudarsana cakra, was thus
refused by Lord Brahma, he tried to take shelter of Lord Siva, who always resides on his planet, known
as Kailasa.
56. Lord Siva said: My dear son, I, Lord Brahma and the other demigods, who rotate within this universe
under the misconception of our greatness, cannot exhibit any power to compete with the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, for innumerable universes and their inhabitants come into existence and are
annihilated by the simple direction of the Lord.
57-59. Past, present and future are known to me [Lord Siva], Sanat-kumara, Narada, the most revered
Lord Brahma, Kapila [the son of Devahuti], Apantaratama [Lord Vyasadeva], Devala, Yamaraja, Asuri,
Marici and many saintly persons headed by him, as well as many others who have achieved perfection.
Nonetheless, because we are covered by the illusory energy of the Lord, we cannot understand how
expansive that illusory energy is. You should simply approach that Supreme Personality of Godhead to
get relief, for this Sudarsana cakra is intolerable even to us. Go to Lord Visnu. He will certainly be kind
enough to bestow all good fortune upon you.
60. Thereafter, being disappointed even in taking shelter of Lord Siva, Durvasa Muni went to Vaikuntha-
dhama, where the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, resides with His consort, the goddess
of fortune.
61. Durvasa Muni, the great mystic, scorched by the heat of the Sudarsana cakra, fell at the lotus feet of
Narayana. His body trembling, he spoke as follows: O infallible, unlimited Lord, protector of the entire
universe, You are the only desirable objective for all devotees. I am a great offender, my Lord. Please
give me protection.
62. O my Lord, O supreme controller, without knowledge of Your unlimited prowess I have offended
Your most dear devotee. Very kindly save me from the reaction of this offense. You can do everything,
for even if a person is fit for going to hell, You can deliver him simply by awakening within his heart the
holy name of Your Lordship.
63. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said to the brahmana: I am completely under the control of
My devotees. Indeed, I am not at all independent. Because My devotees are completely devoid of
material desires, I sit only within the cores of their hearts. What to speak of My devotee, even those who
are devotees of My devotee are very dear to Me.
64. O best of the brahmanas, without saintly persons for whom I am the only destination, I do not desire
to enjoy My transcendental bliss and My supreme opulences.
65. Since pure devotees give up their homes, wives, children, relatives, riches and even their lives
simply to serve Me, without any desire for material improvement in this life or in the next, how can I give
up such devotees at any time?
66. As chaste women bring their gentle husbands under control by service, the pure devotees, who are
equal to everyone and completely attached to Me in the core of the heart, bring Me under their full
control.
67. My devotees, who are always satisfied to be engaged in My loving service, are not interested even
in the four principles of liberation [salokya, sarupya, samipya and sarsti], although these are
automatically achieved by their service. What then is to be said of such perishable happiness as
elevation to the higher planetary systems?
68. The pure devotee is always within the core of My heart, and I am always in the heart of the pure
devotee. My devotees do not know anything else but Me, and I do not know anyone else but them.
69. O brahmana, let Me now advise you for your own protection. Please hear from Me. By offending
Maharaja Ambarisa, you have acted with self-envy. Therefore you should go to him immediately,
without a moment's delay. One's so-called prowess, when employed against the devotee, certainly
harms he who employs it. Thus it is the subject, not the object, who is harmed.
70. For a brahmana, austerity and learning are certainly auspicious, but when acquired by a person
who is not gentle, such austerity and learning are most dangerous.
71. O best of the brahmanas, you should therefore go immediately to King Ambarisa, the son of
Maharaja Nabhaga. I wish you all good fortune. If you can satisfy Maharaja Ambarisa, then there will be
peace for you.
414 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Five Durvasa Muni's Life Spared
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When thus advised by Lord Visnu, Durvasa Muni, who was very much
harassed by the Sudarsana cakra, immediately approached Maharaja Ambarisa. Being very much
aggrieved, the muni fell down and clasped the King's lotus feet.
2. When Durvasa touched his lotus feet, Maharaja Ambarisa was very much ashamed, and when he
saw Durvasa attempting to offer prayers, because of mercy he was aggrieved even more. Thus he
immediately began offering prayers to the great weapon of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
3. Maharaja Ambarisa said: O Sudarsana cakra, you are fire, you are the most powerful sun, and you
are the moon, the master of all luminaries. You are water, earth and sky, you are the air, you are the
five sense objects [sound, touch, form, taste and smell], and you are the senses also.
4. O most favorite of Acyuta, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, you have thousands of spokes. O
master of the material world, destroyer of all weapons, original vision of the Personality of Godhead, I
offer my respectful obeisances unto you. Kindly give shelter and be auspicious to this brahmana.
5. O Sudarsana wheel, you are religion, you are truth, you are encouraging statements, you are
sacrifice, and you are the enjoyer of the fruits of sacrifice. You are the maintainer of the entire universe,
and you are the supreme transcendental prowess in the hands of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
You are the original vision of the Lord, and therefore you are known as Sudarsana. Everything has
been created by your activities, and therefore you are all-pervading.
6. O Sudarsana, you have a very auspicious hub, and therefore you are the upholder of all religion. You
are just like an inauspicious comet for the irreligious demons. Indeed, you are the maintainer of the
three worlds, you are full of transcendental effulgence, you are as quick as the mind, and you are able
to work wonders. I can simply utter the word namah, offering all obeisances unto you.
7. O master of speech, by your effulgence, full of religious principles, the darkness of the world is
dissipated, and the knowledge of learned persons or great souls is manifested. Indeed, no one can
surpass your effulgence, for all things, manifested and unmanifested, gross and subtle, superior and
inferior, are but various forms of you that are manifested by your effulgence.
8. O indefatigable one, when you are sent by the Supreme Personality of Godhead to enter among the
soldiers of the Daityas and the Danavas, you stay on the battlefield and unendingly separate their arms,
bellies, thighs, legs and heads.
9. O protector of the universe, you are engaged by the Supreme Personality of Godhead as His all-
powerful weapon in killing the envious enemies. For the benefit of our entire dynasty, kindly favor this
poor brahmana. This will certainly be a favor for all of us.
10. If our family has given charity to the proper persons, if we have performed ritualistic ceremonies and
sacrifices, if we have properly carried out our occupational duties, and if we have been guided by
learned brahmanas, I wish, in exchange, that this brahmana be freed from the burning caused by the
Sudarsana cakra.
11. If the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is one without a second, who is the reservoir of all
transcendental qualities, and who is the life and soul of all living entities, is pleased with us, we wish that
this brahmana, Durvasa Muni, be freed from the pain of being burned.
12. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: When the King offered prayers to the Sudarsana cakra and Lord
Visnu, because of his prayers the Sudarsana cakra became peaceful and stopped burning the
brahmana known as Durvasa Muni.
13. Durvasa Muni, the greatly powerful mystic, was indeed satisfied when freed from the fire of the
Sudarsana cakra. Thus he praised the qualities of Maharaja Ambarisa and offered him the highest
benedictions.
14. Durvasa Muni said: My dear King, today I have experienced the greatness of devotees of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, for although I have committed an offense, you have prayed for my
good fortune.
15. For those who have achieved the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the master of the pure
devotees, what is impossible to do, and what is impossible to give up?
16. What is impossible for the servants of the Lord? By the very hearing of His holy name one is
purified.
17. O King, overlooking my offenses, you have saved my life. Thus I am very much obliged to you
because you are so merciful.
18. Expecting the return of Durvasa Muni, the King had not taken his food. Therefore, when the sage
returned, the King fell at his lotus feet, pleasing him in all respects, and fed him sumptuously.
19. Thus the King respectfully received Durvasa Muni, who after eating varieties of palatable food was
so satisfied that with great affection he requested the King to eat also, saying, "Please take your meal."
20. Durvasa Muni said: I am very pleased with you, my dear King. At first I thought of you as an ordinary
human being and accepted your hospitality, but later I could understand, by my own intelligence, that
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 415
you are the most exalted devotee of the Lord. Therefore, simply by seeing you, touching your feet and
talking with you, I have been pleased and have become obliged to you.
21. All the blessed women in the heavenly planets will continuously chant about your spotless character
at every moment, and the people of this world will also chant your glories continuously.
22. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thus being satisfied in all respects, the great mystic yogi
Durvasa took permission and left, continuously glorifying the King. Through the skyways, he went to
Brahmaloka, which is devoid of agnostics and dry philosophical speculators.
23. Durvasa Muni had left the place of Maharaja Ambarisa, and as long as he had not returned--for one
complete year--the King had fasted, maintaining himself simply by drinking water.
24. After one year, when Durvasa Muni had returned, King Ambarisa sumptuously fed him all varieties
of pure food, and then he himself also ate. When the King saw that the brahmana Durvasa had been
released from the great danger of being burned, he could understand that by the grace of the Lord he
himself was also powerful, but he did not take any credit, for everything had been done by the Lord.
25. In this way, because of devotional service, Maharaja Ambarisa, who was endowed with varieties of
transcendental qualities, was completely aware of Brahman, Paramatma and the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, and thus he executed devotional service perfectly. Because of his devotion, he thought
even the topmost planet of this material world no better than the hellish planets.
26. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thereafter, because of his advanced position in devotional life,
Maharaja Ambarisa, who no longer desired to live with material things, retired from active family life. He
divided his property among his sons, who were equally as qualified, and he himself took the order of
vanaprastha and went to the forest to concentrate his mind fully upon Lord Vasudeva.
27. Anyone who chants this narration or even thinks of this narration about the activities of Maharaja
Ambarisa certainly becomes a pure devotee of the Lord.
28. By the grace of the Lord, those who hear about the activities of Maharaja Ambarisa, the great
devotee, certainly become liberated or become devotees without delay.
Chapter Six The Downfall of Saubhari Muni
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O Maharaja Pariksit, Ambarisa had three sons, named Virupa, Ketuman
and Sambhu. From Virupa came a son named Prsadasva, and from Prsadasva came a son named
Rathitara.
2. Rathitara had no sons, and therefore he requested the great sage Angira to beget sons for him.
Because of this request, Angira begot sons in the womb of Rathitara's wife. All these sons were born
with brahminical prowess.
3. Having been born from the womb of Rathitara's wife, all these sons were known as the dynasty of
Rathitara, but because they were born from the semen of Angira, they were also known as the dynasty
of Angira. Among all the progeny of Rathitara, these sons were the most prominent because, owing to
their birth, they were considered brahmanas.
4. The son of Manu was Iksvaku. When Manu was sneezing, Iksvaku was born from Manu's nostrils.
King Iksvaku had one hundred sons, of whom Vikuksi, Nimi and Dandaka were the most prominent.
5. Of the one hundred sons, twenty-five became kings in the western side of Aryavarta, a place
between the Himalaya and Vindhya mountains. Another twenty-five sons became kings in the east of
Aryavarta, and the three principal sons became kings in the middle. The other sons became kings in
various other places.
6. During the months of January, February and March, oblations offered to the forefathers are called
astaka-sraddha. The sraddha ceremony is held during the dark fortnight of the month. When Maharaja
Iksvaku was performing his oblations in this ceremony, he ordered his son Vikuksi to go immediately to
the forest to bring some pure flesh.
7. Thereafter, Iksvaku's son Vikuksi went to the forest and killed many animals suitable for being offered
as oblations. But when fatigued and hungry he became forgetful and ate a rabbit he had killed.
8. Vikuksi offered the remnants of the flesh to King Iksvaku, who gave it to Vasistha for purification. But
Vasistha could immediately understand that part of the flesh had already been taken by Vikuksi, and
therefore he said that it was unfit to be used in the sraddha ceremony.
9. When King Iksvaku, thus informed by Vasistha, understood what his son Vikuksi had done, he was
extremely angry. Thus he ordered Vikuksi to leave the country because Vikuksi had violated the
regulative principles.
10. Having been instructed by the great and learned brahmana Vasistha, who discoursed about the
Absolute Truth, Maharaja Iksvaku became renounced. By following the principles for a yogi, he certainly
achieved the supreme perfection after giving up his material body.
11. After his father's disappearance, Vikuksi returned to the country and thus became the king, ruling
the planet earth and performing various sacrifices to satisfy the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
Vikuksi later became celebrated as Sasada.
416 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. The son of Sasada was Puranjaya, who is also known as Indravaha and sometimes as Kakutstha.
Please hear from me how he received different names for different activities.
13. Formerly, there was a devastating war between the demigods and the demons. The demigods,
having been defeated, accepted Puranjaya as their assistant and then conquered the demons.
Therefore this hero is known as Puranjaya, "he who conquered the residence of the demons."
14. Puranjaya agreed to kill all the demons, on the condition that Indra would be his carrier. Because of
pride, Indra could not accept this proposal, but later, by the order of the Supreme Lord, Visnu, Indra did
accept it and became a great bull carrier for Puranjaya.
15-16. Well protected by armor and desiring to fight, Puranjaya took up a transcendental bow and very
sharp arrows, and, while being highly praised by the demigods, he got up on the back of the bull [Indra]
and sat on its hump. Thus he is known as Kakutstha. Being empowered by Lord Visnu, who is the
Supersoul and the Supreme Person, Puranjaya sat on the great bull and is therefore known as
Indravaha. Surrounded by the demigods, he attacked the residence of the demons in the west.
17. There was a fierce battle between the demons and Puranjaya. Indeed, it was so fierce that when
one hears about it one's hairs stand on end. All the demons bold enough to come before Puranjaya
were immediately sent to the residence of Yamaraja by his arrows.
18. To save themselves from the blazing arrows of Indravaha, which resembled the flames of
devastation at the end of the millennium, the demons who remained when the rest of their army was
killed fled very quickly to their respective homes.
19. After conquering the enemy, the saintly king Puranjaya gave everything, including the enemy's
riches and wives, to Indra, who carries a thunderbolt. For this he is celebrated as Puranjaya. Thus
Puranjaya is known by different names because of his different activities.
20. The son of Puranjaya was known as Anena, Anena's son was Prthu, and Prthu's son was
Visvagandhi. Visvagandhi's son was Candra, and Candra's son was Yuvanasva.
21. The son of Yuvanasva was Sravasta, who constructed a township known as Sravasti Puri. The son
of Sravasta was Brhadasva, and his son was Kuvalayasva. In this way the dynasty increased.
22. To satisfy the sage Utanka, the greatly powerful Kuvalayasva killed a demon named Dhundhu. He
did this with the assistance of his twenty-one thousand sons.
23-24. O Maharaja Pariksit, for this reason Kuvalayasva is celebrated as Dhundhumara ["the killer of
Dhundhu"]. All but three of his sons, however, were burned to ashes by the fire emanating from
Dhundhu's mouth. The remaining sons were Drdhasva, Kapilasva and Bhadrasva. From Drdhasva
came a son named Haryasva, whose son is celebrated as Nikumbha.
25. The son of Nikumbha was Bahulasva, the son of Bahulasva was Krsasva, the son of Krsasva was
Senajit, and the son of Senajit was Yuvanasva. Yuvanasva had no sons, and thus he retired from family
life and went to the forest.
26. Although Yuvanasva went into the forest with his one hundred wives, all of them were very morose.
The sages in the forest, however, being very kind to the King, began very carefully and attentively
performing an Indra-yajna so that the King might have a son.
27. Being thirsty one night, the King entered the arena of sacrifice, and when he saw all the brahmanas
lying down, he personally drank the sanctified water meant to be drunk by his wife.
28. When the brahmanas got up from bed and saw the waterpot empty, they inquired who had done
this work of drinking the water meant for begetting a child.
29. When the brahmanas came to understand that the King, inspired by the supreme controller, had
drunk the water, they all exclaimed "Alas! The power of providence is real power. No one can
counteract the power of the Supreme." In this way they offered their respectful obeisances unto the
Lord.
30. Thereafter, in due course of time, a son with all the good symptoms of a powerful king came forth
from the lower right side of King Yuvanasva's abdomen.
31. The baby cried so much for breast milk that all the brahmanas were very unhappy. "Who will take
care of this baby?" they said. Then Indra, who was worshiped in that yajna, came and solaced the baby.
"Do not cry," Indra said. Then Indra put his index finger in the baby's mouth and said, "You may drink
me."
32. Because Yuvanasva, the father of the baby, was blessed by the brahmanas, he did not fall a victim
to death. After this incident, he performed severe austerities and achieved perfection in that very spot.
33-34. Mahdhata, the son of Yuvanasva, was the cause of fear for Ravana and other thieves and
rogues who caused anxiety. O King Pariksit, because they feared him, the son of Yuvanasva was
known as Trasaddasyu. This name was given by King Indra. By the mercy of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, the son of Yuvanasva was so powerful that when he became emperor he ruled the entire
world, consisting of seven islands, without any second ruler.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 417
35-36. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is not different from the auspicious aspects of great
sacrifices, such as the ingredients of the sacrifice, the chanting of Vedic hymns, the regulative
principles, the performer, the priests, the result of the sacrifice, the arena of sacrifice, and the time of
sacrifice. Knowing the principles of self-realization, Mahdhata worshiped that transcendentally situated
Supreme Soul, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu, who comprises all the demigods. He
also gave immense charity to the brahmanas, and thus he performed yajna to worship the Lord.
37. All places, from where the sun rises on the horizon, shining brilliantly, to where the sun sets, are
known as the possession of the celebrated Mandhata, the son of Yuvanasva.
38. Mandhata begot three sons in the womb of Bindumati, the daughter of Sasabindu. These sons were
Purukutsa, Ambarisa, and Mucukunda, a great mystic yogi. These three brothers had fifty sisters, who
all accepted the great sage Saubhari as their husband.
39-40. Saubhari Rsi was engaged in austerity, deep in the water of the River Yamuna, when he saw a
pair of fish engaged in sexual affairs. Thus he perceived the pleasure of sex life, and induced by this
desire he went to King Mandhata and begged for one of the King's daughters. In response to this
request, the King said, "O brahmana, any of my daughters may accept any husband according to her
personal selection."
41-42. Saubhari Muni thought: I am now feeble because of old age. My hair has become grey, my skin
is slack, and my head always trembles. Besides, I am a yogi. Therefore women do not like me. Since
the King has thus rejected me, I shall reform my body in such a way as to be desirable even to celestial
women, what to speak of the daughters of worldly kings.
43. Thereafter, when Saubhari Muni became quite a young and beautiful person, the messenger of the
palace took him inside the residential quarters of the princesses, which were extremely opulent. All fifty
princesses then accepted him as their husband, although he was only one man.
44. Thereafter, the princesses, being attracted by Saubhari Muni, gave up their sisterly relationship and
quarreled among themselves, each one of them contending, "This man is just suitable for me, and not
for you." In this way there ensued a great disagreement.
45-46. Because Saubhari Muni was expert in chanting mantras perfectly, his severe austerities resulted
in an opulent home, with garments, ornaments, properly dressed and decorated maidservants and
manservants, and varieties of parks with clear-water lakes and gardens. In the gardens, fragrant with
varieties of flowers, birds chirped and bees hummed, surrounded by professional singers. Saubhari
Muni's home was amply provided with valuable beds, seats, ornaments, and arrangements for bathing,
and there were varieties of sandalwood creams, flower garlands, and palatable dishes. Thus
surrounded by opulent paraphernalia, the muni engaged in family affairs with his numerous wives.
47. Mandhata, the King of the entire world, consisting of seven islands, was struck with wonder when he
saw the household opulence of Saubhari Muni. Thus he gave up his false prestige in his position as
emperor of the world.
48. In this way, Saubhari Muni enjoyed sense gratification in the material world, but he was not at all
satisfied, just as a fire never ceases blazing if constantly supplied with drops of fat.
49. Thereafter, one day while Saubhari Muni, who was expert in chanting mantras, was sitting in a
secluded place, he thought to himself about the cause of his falldown, which was simply that he had
associated himself with the sexual affairs of the fish.
50. Alas! While practicing austerity, even within the depths of the water, and while observing all the
rules and regulations practiced by saintly persons, I lost the results of my long austerities simply by
association with the sexual affairs of fish. Everyone should observe this falldown and learn from it.
51. A person desiring liberation from material bondage must give up the association of persons
interested in sex life and should not employ his senses externally [in seeing, hearing, talking, walking
and so on]. One should always stay in a secluded place, completely fixing his mind at the lotus feet of
the unlimited Personality of Godhead, and if one wants any association at all, he should associate with
persons similarly engaged.
52. In the beginning I was alone and engaged in performing the austerities of mystic yoga, but later,
because of the association of fish engaged in sex, I desired to marry. Then I became the husband of
fifty wives, and in each of them I begot one hundred sons, and thus my family increased to five
thousand members. By the influence of the modes of material nature, I became fallen and thought that I
would be happy in material life. Thus there is no end to my material desires for enjoyment, in this life
and the next.
53. In this way he passed his life in household affairs for some time, but then he became detached from
material enjoyment. To renounce material association, he accepted the vanaprastha order and went to
the forest. His devoted wives followed him, for they had no shelter other than their husband.
418 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
54. When Saubhari Muni, who was quite conversant with the self, went to the forest, he performed
severe penances. In this way, in the fire at the time of death, he ultimately engaged himself in the
service of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
55. O Maharaja Pariksit, by observing their husband progressing in spiritual existence, Saubhari Muni's
wives were also able to enter the spiritual world by his spiritual power, just as the flames of a fire cease
when the fire is extinguished.
Chapter Seven The Descendants of King Mandhata
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The most prominent among the sons of Mahdhata was he who is
celebrated as Ambarisa. Ambarisa was accepted as son by his grandfather Yuvanasva. Ambarisa's son
was Yauvanasva, and Yauvanasva's son was Harita. In Mahdhata's dynasty, Ambarisa, Harita and
Yauvanasva were very prominent.
2. The serpent brothers of Narmada gave Narmada to Purukutsa. Being sent by Vasuki, she took
Purukutsa to the lower region of the universe.
3. There in Rasatala, the lower region of the universe, Purukutsa, being empowered by Lord Visnu, was
able to kill all the Gandharvas who deserved to be killed. Purukutsa received the benediction from the
serpents that anyone who remembers this history of his being brought by Narmada to the lower region
of the universe will be assured of safety from the attack of snakes.
4. The son of Purukutsa was Trasaddasyu, who was the father of Anaranya. Anaranya's son was
Haryasva, the father of Praruna. Praruna was the father of Tribandhana.
5-6. The son of Tribandhana was Satyavrata, who is celebrated by the name Trisanku. Because he
kidnapped the daughter of a brahmana when she was being married, his father cursed him to become a
candala, lower than a sudra. Thereafter, by the influence of Visvamitra, he went to the higher planetary
system, the heavenly planets, in his material body, but because of the prowess of the demigods he fell
back downward. Nonetheless, by the power of Visvamitra, he did not fall all the way down; even today
he can still be seen hanging in the sky, head downward.
7. The son of Trisanku was Hariscandra. Because of Hariscandra there was a quarrel between
Visvamitra and Vasistha, who for many years fought one another, having been transformed into birds.
8. Hariscandra had no son and was therefore extremely morose. Once, therefore, following the advice
of Narada, he took shelter of Varuna and said to him "My lord I have no son. Would you kindly give me
one?"
9. O King Pariksit, Hariscandra begged Varuna, "My lord, if a son is born to me, with that son I shall
perform a sacrifice for your satisfaction." When Hariscandra said this, Varuna replied, "Let it be so."
Because of Varuna's benediction, Hariscandra begot a son named Rohita.
10. Thereafter, when the child was born, Varuna approached Hariscandra and said, "Now you have a
son. With this son you can offer me a sacrifice." In answer to this, Hariscandra said, "After ten days
have passed since an animal's birth, the animal becomes fit to be sacrificed."
11. After ten days, Varuna came again and said to Hariscandra, "Now you can perform the sacrifice."
Hariscandra replied, "When an animal grows teeth, then it becomes pure enough to be sacrificed."
12. When the teeth grew, Varuna came and said to Hariscandra, "Now the animal has grown teeth, and
you can perform the sacrifice." Hariscandra replied, "When all its teeth have fallen out, then it will be fit
for sacrifice."
13. When the teeth had fallen out, Varuna returned and said to Hariscandra, "Now the animal's teeth
have fallen out, and you can perform the sacrifice." But Hariscandra replied, "When the animal's teeth
grow in again, then he will be pure enough to be sacrificed."
14. When the teeth grew in again, Varuna came and said to Hariscandra, "Now you can perform the
sacrifice." But Hariscandra then said, "O King, when the sacrificial animal becomes a ksatriya and is
able to shield himself to fight with the enemy, then he will be purified."
15. Hariscandra was certainly very much attached to his son. Because of this affection, he asked the
demigod Varuna to wait. Thus Varuna waited and waited for the time to come.
16. Rohita could understand that his father intended to offer him as the animal for sacrifice. Therefore,
just to save himself from death, he equipped himself with bow and arrows and went to the forest.
17. When Rohita heard that his father had been attacked by dropsy due to Varuna and that his
abdomen had grown very large, he wanted to return to the capital, but King Indra forbade him to do so.
18. King Indra advised Rohita to travel to different pilgrimage sites and holy places, for such activities
are pious indeed. Following this instruction, Rohita went to the forest for one year.
19. In this way, at the end of the second, third, fourth and fifth years, when Rohita wanted to return to
his capital, the King of heaven, Indra, approached him as an old brahmana and forbade him to return,
repeating the same words as in the previous year.
20. Thereafter, in the sixth year, after wandering in the forest, Rohita returned to the capital of his father.
He purchased from Ajigarta his second son, named Sunahsepha. Then he offered Sunahsepha to his
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 419
father, Hariscandra, to be used as the sacrificial animal and offered Hariscandra his respectful
obeisances.
21. Thereafter, the famous King Hariscandra, one of the exalted persons in history, performed grand
sacrifices by sacrificing a man and pleased all the demigods. In this way his dropsy created by Varuna
was cured.
22. In that great human sacrifice, Visvamitra was the chief priest to offer oblations, the perfectly self-
realized Jamadagni had the responsibility for chanting the mantras from the Yajur Veda, Vasistha was
the chief brahminical priest, and the sage Ayasya was the reciter of the hymns of the Sama Veda.
23. King Indra, being very pleased with Hariscandra, offered him a gift of a golden chariot.
Sunahsepha's glories will be presented along with the description of the son of Visvamitra.
24. The great sage Visvamitra saw that Maharaja Hariscandra, along with his wife, was truthful,
forbearing and concerned with the essence. Thus he gave them imperishable knowledge for fulfillment
of the human mission.
25-26. Maharaja Hariscandra first purified his mind, which was full of material enjoyment, by
amalgamating it with the earth. Then he amalgamated the earth with water, the water with fire, the fire
with the air, and the air with the sky. Thereafter, he amalgamated the sky with the total material energy,
and the total material energy with spiritual knowledge. This spiritual knowledge is realization of one's
self as part of the Supreme Lord. When the self-realized spiritual soul is engaged in service to the Lord,
he is eternally imperceptible and inconceivable. Thus established in spiritual knowledge, he is
completely freed from material bondage.
Chapter Eight The Sons of Sagara Meet Lord Kapiladeva
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: The son of Rohita was Harita, and Harita's son was Campa, who
constructed the town of Campapuri. The son of Campa was Sudeva, and his son was Vijaya.
2. The son of Vijaya was Bharuka, Bharuka's son was Vrka, and Vrka's son was Bahuka. The enemies
of King Bahuka took away all his possessions, and therefore the King entered the order of vanaprastha
and went to the forest with his wife.
3. Bahuka died when he was old, and one of his wives wanted to die with him, following the sati rite. At
that time, however, Aurva Muni, knowing her to be pregnant, forbade her to die.
4. Knowing that she was pregnant, the co-wives of the wife of Bahuka conspired to give her poison with
her food, but it did not act. Instead, the son was born along with the poison. Therefore he became
famous as Sagara ["one who is born with poison"]. Sagara later became the emperor. The place known
as Gangasagara was excavated by his sons.
5-6. Sagara Maharaja, following the order of his spiritual master, Aurva, did not kill the uncivilized men
like the Talajanghas, Yavanas, Sakas, Haihayas and Barbaras. Instead, some of them he made dress
awkwardly, some of them he shaved clean but allowed to wear mustaches, some of them he left
wearing loose hair, some he half shaved, some he left without underwear, and some without external
garments. Thus these different clans were made to dress differently, but King Sagara did not kill them.
7. Following the instructions of the great sage Aurva, Sagara Maharaja performed asvamedha
sacrifices and thus satisfied the Supreme Lord, who is the supreme controller, the Supersoul of all
learned scholars, and the knower of all Vedic knowledge, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. But
Indra, the King of heaven, stole the horse meant to be offered at the sacrifice.
8. [King Sagara had two wives, Sumati and Kesini.] The sons of Sumati, who were very proud of their
prowess and influence, following the order of their father, searched for the lost horse. While doing so,
they dug into the earth very extensively.
9-10. Thereafter, in the northeastern direction, they saw the horse near the asrama of Kapila Muni.
"Here is the man who has stolen the horse," they said. "He is staying there with closed eyes. Certainly
he is very sinful. Kill him! Kill him!" Shouting like this, the sons of Sagara, sixty thousand all together,
raised their weapons. When they approached the sage, the sage opened His eyes.
11. By the influence of Indra, the King of heaven, the sons of Sagara had lost their intelligence and
disrespected a great personality. Consequently, fire emanated from their own bodies, and they were
immediately burned to ashes.
12. It is sometimes argued that the sons of King Sagara were burned to ashes by the fire emanating
from the eyes of Kapila Muni. This statement, however, is not approved by great learned persons, for
Kapila Muni's body is completely in the mode of goodness and therefore cannot manifest the mode of
ignorance in the form of anger, just as the pure sky cannot be polluted by the dust of the earth.
13. Kapila Muni enunciated in this material world the Sankhya philosophy, which is a strong boat with
which to cross over the ocean of nescience. Indeed, a person eager to cross the ocean of the material
world may take shelter of this philosophy. In such a greatly learned person, situated on the elevated
platform of transcendence, how can there be any distinction between enemy and friend?
420 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
14. Among the sons of Sagara Maharaja was one named Asamanjasa, who was born from the King's
second wife, Kesini. The son of Asamanjasa was known as Amsuman, and he was always engaged in
working for the good of Sagara Maharaja, his grandfather.
15-16. Formerly, in his previous birth, Asamanjasa had been a great mystic yogi, but by bad association
he had fallen from his exalted position. Now, in this life, he was born in a royal family and was a jati-
smara; that is, he had the special advantage of being able to remember his past birth. Nonetheless, he
wanted to display himself as a miscreant, and therefore he would do things that were abominable in the
eyes of the public and unfavorable to his relatives. He would disturb the boys sporting in the River
Sarayu by throwing them into the depths of the water.
17. Because Asamanjasa engaged in such abominable activities, his father gave up affection for him
and had him exiled. Then Asamanjasa exhibited his mystic power by reviving the boys and showing
them to the King and their parents. After this, Asamanjasa left Ayodhya.
18. O King Pariksit, when all the inhabitants of Ayodhya saw that their boys had come back to life, they
were astounded, and King Sagara greatly lamented the absence of his son.
19. Thereafter, Amsuman, the grandson of Maharaja Sagara, was ordered by the King to search for the
horse. Following the same path traversed by his uncles, Amsuman gradually reached the stack of
ashes and found the horse nearby.
20. The great Amsuman saw the sage named Kapila, the saint who is an incarnation of Visnu, sitting
there by the horse. Amsuman offered Him respectful obeisances, folded his hands and offered Him
prayers with great attention.
21. Amsuman said: My Lord, even Lord Brahma is to this very day unable to understand Your position,
which is far beyond himself, either by meditation or by mental speculation. So what to speak of others
like us, who have been created by Brahma in various forms as demigods, animals, human beings, birds
and beasts? We are completely in ignorance. Therefore, how can we know You, who are the
Transcendence?
22. My Lord, You are fully situated in everyone's heart, but the living entities, covered by the material
body, cannot see You, for they are influenced by the external energy, conducted by the three modes of
material nature. Their intelligence being covered by sattva-guna, rajo-guna and tamo-guna, they can
see only the actions and reactions of these three modes of material nature. Because of the actions and
reactions of the mode of ignorance, whether the living entities are awake or sleeping, they can see only
the workings of material nature; they cannot see Your Lordship.
23. O my Lord, sages freed from the influence of the three modes of material nature--sages such as the
four Kumaras [Sanat, Sanaka, Sanandana and Sanatana]--are able to think of You, who are
concentrated knowledge. But how can an ignorant person like me think of You?
24. O completely peaceful Lord, although material nature, fruitive activities and their consequent
material names and forms are Your creation, You are unaffected by them. Therefore, Your
transcendental name is different from material names, and Your form is different from material forms.
You assume a form resembling a material body just to give us instructions like those of Bhagavad-gita,
but actually You are the supreme original person. I therefore offer my respectful obeisances unto You.
25. O my Lord, those whose hearts are bewildered by the influence of lust, greed, envy and illusion are
interested only in false hearth and home in this world created by Your maya. Attached to home, wife
and children, they wander in this material world perpetually.
26. O Supersoul of all living entities, O Personality of Godhead, simply by seeing You I have now been
freed from all lusty desires, which are the root cause of insurmountable illusion and bondage in the
material world.
27. O King Pariksit, when Amsuman had glorified the Lord in this way, the great sage Kapila, the
powerful incarnation of Visnu, being very merciful to him, explained to him the path of knowledge.
28. The Personality of Godhead said: My dear Amsuman, here is the animal sought by your grandfather
for sacrifice. Please take it. As for your forefathers, who have been burnt to ashes, they can be
delivered only by Ganges water, and not by any other means.
29. Thereafter, Amsuman circumambulated Kapila Muni and offered Him respectful obeisances, bowing
his head. After fully satisfying Him in this way, Amsuman brought back the horse meant for sacrifice,
and with this horse Maharaja Sagara performed the remaining ritualistic ceremonies.
30. After delivering charge of his kingdom to Amsuman and thus being freed from all material anxiety
and bondage, Sagara Maharaja, following the means instructed by Aurva Muni, achieved the supreme
destination.
Chapter Nine The Dynasty of Amsuman
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: King Amsuman, like his grandfather, performed austerities for a very
long time. Nonetheless, he could not bring the Ganges to this material world, and thereafter, in due
course of time, he died.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 421
2. Like Amsuman himself, Dilipa, his son, was unable to bring the Ganges to this material world, and he
also became a victim of death in due course of time. Then Dilipa's son, Bhagiratha, performed very
severe austerities to bring the Ganges to this material world.
3. Thereafter, mother Ganges appeared before King Bhagiratha and said, "I am very much satisfied
with your austerities and am now prepared to give you benedictions as you desire." Being thus
addressed by Gangadevi, mother Ganges, the King bowed his head before her and explained his
desire.
4. Mother Ganges replied: When I fall from the sky to the surface of the planet earth, the water will
certainly be very forceful. Who will sustain that force? If I am not sustained, I shall pierce the surface of
the earth and go down to Rasatala, the Patala area of the universe.
5. O King, I do not wish to go down to the planet earth, for there the people in general will bathe in my
water to cleanse themselves of the reactions of their sinful deeds. When all these sinful reactions
accumulate in me, how shall I become free from them? You must consider this very carefully.
6. Bhagiratha said: Those who are saintly because of devotional service and are therefore in the
renounced order, free from material desires, and who are pure devotees, expert in following the
regulative principles mentioned in the Vedas, are always glorious and pure in behavior and are able to
deliver all fallen souls. When such pure devotees bathe in your water, the sinful reactions accumulated
from other people will certainly be counteracted, for such devotees always keep in the core of their
hearts the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who can vanquish all sinful reactions.
7. Like a cloth woven of threads extending for its length and breadth, this entire universe, in all its
latitude and longitude, is situated under different potencies of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
Lord Siva is the incarnation of the Lord, and thus he represents the Supersoul in the embodied soul. He
can sustain your forceful waves on his head.
8. After saying this, Bhagiratha satisfied Lord Siva by performing austerities. O King Pariksit, Lord Siva
was very quickly satisfied with Bhagiratha.
9. When King Bhagiratha approached Lord Siva and requested him to sustain the forceful waves of the
Ganges, Lord Siva accepted the proposal by saying, "Let it be so." Then, with great attention, he
sustained the Ganges on his head, for the water of the Ganges is purifying, having emanated from the
toes of Lord Visnu.
10. The great and saintly king Bhagiratha brought the Ganges, which can deliver all the fallen souls, to
that place on earth where the bodies of his forefathers lay burnt to ashes.
11. Bhagiratha mounted a swift chariot and drove before mother Ganges, who followed him, purifying
many countries, until they reached the ashes of Bhagiratha's forefathers, the sons of Sagara, who were
thus sprinkled with water from the Ganges.
12. Because the sons of Sagara Maharaja had offended a great personality, the heat of their bodies
had increased, and they were burnt to ashes. But simply by being sprinkled with water from the
Ganges, all of them became eligible to go to the heavenly planets. What then is to be said of those who
use the water of mother Ganges to worship her?
13. Simply by having water from the Ganges come in contact with the ashes of their burnt bodies, the
sons of Sagara Maharaja were elevated to the heavenly planets. Therefore, what is to be said of a
devotee who worships mother Ganges faithfully with a determined vow? One can only imagine the
benefit that accrues to such a devotee.
14. Because mother Ganges emanates from the lotus toe of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Anantadeva, she is able to liberate one from material bondage. Therefore whatever is described
herewith about her is not at all wonderful.
15. Great sages, completely freed from material lusty desires, devote their minds fully to the service of
the Lord. Such persons are liberated from material bondage without difficulty, and they become
transcendentally situated, acquiring the spiritual quality of the Lord. This is the glory of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead.
16-17. Bhagiratha had a son named Sruta, whose son was Nabha. This son was different from the
Nabha previously described. Nabha had a son named Sindhudvipa, from Sindhudvipa came Ayutayu,
and from Ayutayu came Rtuparna, who became a friend of Nalaraja. Rtuparna taught Nalaraja the art of
gambling, and Nalaraja gave Rtuparna lessons in controlling and maintaining horses. The son of
Rtuparna was Sarvakama.
18. Sarvakama had a son named Sudasa, whose son, known as Saudasa, was the husband of
Damayanti. Saudasa is sometimes known as Mitrasaha or Kalmasapada. Because of his own misdeed,
Mitrasaha was sonless and was cursed by Vasistha to become a man-eater [Raksasa].
19. King Pariksit said: O Sukadeva Gosvami, why did Vasistha, the spiritual master of Saudasa, curse
that great soul? I wish to know of this. If it is not a confidential matter, please describe it to me.
422 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
20-21. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Once Saudasa went to live in the forest, where he killed a man-eater
[Raksasa] but forgave and released the man-eater's brother. That brother, however, decided to take
revenge. Thinking to harm the King, he became the cook at the King's house. One day, the King's
spiritual master, Vasistha Muni, was invited for dinner, and the Raksasa cook served him human flesh.
22. While examining the food given to him, Vasistha Muni, by his mystic power, could understand that it
was unfit to eat, being the flesh of a human being. He was very angry at this and immediately cursed
Saudasa to become a man-eater.
23-24. When Vasistha understood that the human flesh had been served by the Raksasa, not by the
King, he undertook twelve years of austerity to cleanse himself for having cursed the faultless King.
Meanwhile, King Saudasa took water and chanted the sapa-mantra, preparing to curse Vasistha, but
his wife, Madayanti, forbade him to do so. Then the King saw that the ten directions, the sky and the
surface of the globe were full of living entities everywhere.
25. Saudasa thus acquired the propensity of a man-eater and received on his leg a black spot, for
which he was known as Kalmasapada. Once King Kalmasapada saw a brahmana couple engaged in
sexual intercourse in the forest.
26-27. Being influenced by the propensity of a Raksasa and being very hungry, King Saudasa seized
the brahmana. Then the poor woman, the brahmana's wife, said to the King: O hero, you are not
actually a man-eater; rather, you are among the descendants of Maharaja Iksvaku. Indeed, you are a
great fighter, the husband of Madayanti. You should not act irreligiously in this way. I desire to have a
son. Please, therefore, return my husband, who has not yet impregnated me.
28. O King, O hero, this human body is meant for universal benefits. If you kill this body untimely, you
will kill all the benefits of human life.
29. Here is a learned, highly qualified brahmana, engaged in performing austerity and eagerly desiring
to worship the Supreme Lord, the Supersoul who lives within the core of the heart in all living entities.
30. My lord, you are completely aware of the religious principles. As a son never deserves to be killed
by his father, here is a brahmana who should be protected by the king, and never killed. How does he
deserve to be killed by a rajarsi like you?
31. You are well known and worshiped in learned circles. How dare you kill this brahmana, who is a
saintly, sinless person, well versed in Vedic knowledge? Killing him would be like destroying the embryo
within the womb or killing a cow.
32. Without my husband, I cannot live for a moment. If you want to eat my husband, it would be better
to eat me first, for without my husband I am as good as a dead body.
33. Being condemned by the curse of Vasistha, King Saudasa devoured the brahmana, exactly as a
tiger eats its prey. Even though the brahmana's wife spoke so pitiably, Saudasa was unmoved by her
lamentation.
34. When the chaste wife of the brahmana saw that her husband, who was about to discharge semen,
had been eaten by the man-eater, she was overwhelmed with grief and lamentation. Thus she angrily
cursed the King.
35. O foolish, sinful person, because you have eaten my husband when I was sexually inclined and
desiring to have the seed of a child, I shall also see you die when you attempt to discharge semen in
your wife. In other words, whenever you attempt to sexually unite with your wife, you shall die.
36. Thus the wife of the brahmana cursed King Saudasa, known as Mitrasaha. Then, being inclined to
go with her husband, she set fire to her husband's bones, fell into the fire herself, and went with him to
the same destination.
37. After twelve years, when King Saudasa was released from the curse by Vasistha, he wanted to
have sexual intercourse with his wife. But the Queen reminded him about the curse by the brahmani,
and thus he was checked from sexual intercourse.
38. After being thus instructed, the King gave up the future happiness of sexual intercourse and by
destiny remained sonless. Later, with the King's permission, the great saint Vasistha begot a child in the
womb of Madayanti.
39. Madayanti bore the child within the womb for seven years and did not give birth. Therefore Vasistha
struck her abdomen with a stone, and then the child was born. Consequently, the child was known as
Asmaka ["the child born of a stone"].
40. From Asmaka, Balika took birth. Because Balika was surrounded by women and was therefore
saved from the anger of Parasurama, he was known as Narikavaca ["one who is protected by women"].
When Parasurama vanquished all the ksatriyas, Balika became the progenitor of more ksatriyas.
Therefore he was known as Mulaka, the root of the ksatriya dynasty.
41. From Balika came a son named Dasaratha, from Dasaratha came a son named Aidavidi, and from
Aidavidi came King Visvasaha. The son of King Visvasaha was the famous Maharaja Khatvanga.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 423
42. King Khatvanga was unconquerable in any fight. Requested by the demigods to join them in fighting
the demons, he won victory, and the demigods, being very pleased, wanted to give him a benediction.
The King inquired from them about the duration of his life and was informed that he had only one
moment more. Thus he immediately left his palace and went to his own residence, where he engaged
his mind fully on the lotus feet of the Lord.
43. Maharaja Khatvanga thought: Not even my life is dearer to me than the brahminical culture and the
brahmanas, who are worshiped by my family. What then is to be said of my kingdom, land, wife,
children and opulence? Nothing is dearer to me than the brahmanas.
44. I was never attracted, even in my childhood, by insignificant things or irreligious principles. I did not
find anything more substantial than the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
45. The demigods, the directors of the three worlds, wanted to give me whatever benediction I desired. I
did not want their benedictions, however, because I am interested in the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who created everything in this material world. I am more interested in the Supreme
Personality of Godhead than in all material benedictions.
46. Even though the demigods have the advantages of being situated in the higher planetary system,
their minds, senses and intelligence are agitated by material conditions. Therefore, even such elevated
persons fail to realize the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is eternally situated in the core of the
heart. What then is to be said of others, such as human beings, who have fewer advantages?
47. Therefore I should now give up my attachment for things created by the external energy of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. I should engage in thought of the Lord and should thus surrender
unto Him. This material creation, having been created by the external energy of the Lord, is like an
imaginary town visualized on a hill or in a forest. Every conditioned soul has a natural attraction and
attachment for material things, but one must simply give up this attachment and surrender unto the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
48. Thus Maharaja Khatvanga, by his advanced intelligence in rendering service to the Lord, gave up
false identification with the body full of ignorance. In his original position of eternal servitorship, he
engaged himself in rendering service to the Lord.
49. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, Krsna, is extremely difficult to understand for
unintelligent men who accept Him as impersonal or void, which He is not. The Lord is therefore
understood and sung about by pure devotees.
Chapter Ten The Pastimes of the Supreme Lord, Ramacandra
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The son of Maharaja Khatvanga was Dirghabahu, and his son was the
celebrated Maharaja Raghu. From Maharaja Raghu came Aja, and from Aja was born the great
personality Maharaja Dasaratha.
2. Being prayed for by the demigods, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Absolute Truth Himself,
directly appeared with His expansion and expansions of the expansion. Their holy names were Rama,
Laksmana, Bharata and Satrughna. These celebrated incarnations thus appeared in four forms as the
sons of Maharaja Dasaratha.
3. O King Pariksit, the transcendental activities of Lord Ramacandra have been described by great
saintly persons who have seen the truth. Because you have heard again and again about Lord
Ramacandra, the husband of mother Sita, I shall describe these activities only in brief. Please listen.
4. To keep the promise of His father intact, Lord Ramacandra immediately gave up the position of king
and, accompanied by His wife, mother Sita, wandered from one forest to another on His lotus feet,
which were so delicate that they were unable to bear even the touch of Sita's palms. The Lord was also
accompanied by Hanuman [or by another monkey, Sugriva], king of the monkeys, and by His own
younger brother Lord Laksmana, both of whom gave Him relief from the fatigue of wandering in the
forest. Having cut off the nose and ears of Surpanakha, thus disfiguring her, the Lord was separated
from mother Sita. He therefore became angry, moving His eyebrows and thus frightening the ocean,
who then allowed the Lord to construct a bridge to cross the ocean. Subsequently, the Lord entered the
kingdom of Ravana to kill him, like a fire devouring a forest. May that Supreme Lord, Ramacandra, give
us all protection.
5. In the arena of the sacrifice performed by Visvamitra, Lord Ramacandra, the King of Ayodhya, killed
many demons, Raksasas and uncivilized men who wandered at night in the mode of darkness. May
Lord Ramacandra, who killed these demons in the presence of Laksmana, be kind enough to give us
protection.
6-7. O King, the pastimes of Lord Ramacandra were wonderful, like those of a baby elephant. In the
assembly where mother Sita was to choose her husband, in the midst of the heroes of this world, He
broke the bow belonging to Lord Siva. This bow was so heavy that it was carried by three hundred men,
but Lord Ramacandra bent and strung it and broke it in the middle, just as a baby elephant breaks a
stick of sugarcane. Thus the Lord achieved the hand of mother Sita, who was equally as endowed with
424 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
transcendental qualities of form, beauty, behavior, age and nature. Indeed, she was the goddess of
fortune who constantly rests on the chest of the Lord. While returning from Sita's home after gaining her
at the assembly of competitors, Lord Ramacandra met Parasurama. Although Parasurama was very
proud, having rid the earth of the royal order twenty-one times, he was defeated by the Lord, who
appeared to be a ksatriya of the royal order.
8. Carrying out the order of His father, who was bound by a promise to his wife, Lord Ramacandra left
behind His kingdom, opulence, friends, well-wishers, residence and everything else, just as a liberated
soul gives up his life, and went to the forest with Sita.
9. While wandering in the forest, where He accepted a life of hardship, carrying His invincible bow and
arrows in His hand, Lord Ramacandra deformed Ravana's sister, who was polluted with lusty desires,
by cutting off her nose and ears. He also killed her fourteen thousand Raksasa friends, headed by
Khara, Trisira and Dusana.
10. O King Pariksit, when Ravana, who had ten heads on his shoulders, heard about the beautiful and
attractive features of Sita, his mind was agitated by lusty desires, and he went to kidnap her. To distract
Lord Ramacandra from His asrama, Ravana sent Marica in the form of a golden deer, and when Lord
Ramacandra saw that wonderful deer, He left His residence and followed it and finally killed it with a
sharp arrow, just as Lord Siva killed Daksa.
11. When Ramacandra entered the forest and Laksmana was also absent, the worst of the Raksasas,
Ravana, kidnapped Sitadevi, the daughter of the King of Videha, just as a tiger seizes unprotected
sheep when the shepherd is absent. Then Lord Ramacandra wandered in the forest with His brother
Laksmana as if very much distressed due to separation from His wife. Thus He showed by His personal
example the condition of a person attached to women.
12. Lord Ramacandra, whose lotus feet are worshiped by Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, had assumed
the form of a human being. Thus He performed the funeral ceremony of Jatayu, who was killed by
Ravana. The Lord then killed the demon named Kabandha, and after making friends with the monkey
chiefs, killing Vali and arranging for the deliverance of mother Sita, He went to the beach of the ocean.
13. After reaching the beach, Lord Ramacandra fasted for three days, awaiting the arrival of the ocean
personified. When the ocean did not come, the Lord exhibited His pastimes of anger, and simply by His
glancing over the ocean, all the living entities within it, including the crocodiles and sharks, were
agitated by fear. Then the personified ocean fearfully approached Lord Ramacandra, taking all
paraphernalia to worship Him. Falling at the Lord's lotus feet, the personified ocean spoke as follows.
14. O all-pervading Supreme Person, we are dull-minded and did not understand who You are, but now
we understand that You are the Supreme Person, the master of the entire universe, the unchanging
and original Personality of Godhead. The demigods are infatuated with the mode of goodness, the
Prajapatis with the mode of passion, and the lord of ghosts with the mode of ignorance, but You are the
master of all these qualities.
15. My Lord, You may use my water as You like. Indeed, You may cross it and go to the abode of
Ravana, who is the great source of disturbance and crying for the three worlds. He is the son of
Visrava, but is condemned like urine. Please go kill him and thus regain Your wife, Sitadevi. O great
hero, although my water presents no impediment to Your going to Lanka, please construct a bridge
over it to spread Your transcendental fame. Upon seeing this wonderfully uncommon deed of Your
Lordship, all the great heroes and kings in the future will glorify You.
16. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After constructing a bridge over the ocean by throwing into the water the
peaks of mountains whose trees and other vegetation had been shaken by the hands of great
monkeys, Lord Ramacandra went to Lanka to release Sitadevi from the clutches of Ravana. With the
direction and help of Vibhisana, Ravana's brother, the Lord, along with the monkey soldiers, headed by
Sugriva, Nila and Hanuman, entered Ravana's kingdom, Lanka, which had previously been burnt by
Hanuman.
17. After entering Lanka, the monkey soldiers, led by chiefs like Sugriva, Nila and Hanuman, occupied
all the sporting houses, granaries, treasuries, palace doorways, city gates, assembly houses, palace
frontages and even the resting houses of the pigeons. When the city's crossroads, platforms, flags and
golden waterpots on its domes were all destroyed, the entire city of Lanka appeared like a river
disturbed by a herd of elephants.
18. When Ravana, the master of the Raksasas, saw the disturbances created by the monkey soldiers,
he called for Nikumbha, Kumbha, Dhumraksa, Durmukha, Surantaka, Narantaka and other Raksasas
and also his son Indrajit. Thereafter he called for Prahasta, Atikaya, Vikampana and finally
Kumbhakarna. Then he induced all his followers to fight against the enemies.
19. Lord Ramacandra, surrounded by Laksmana and monkey soldiers like Sugriva, Hanuman,
Gandhamada, Nila, Angada, Jambavan and Panasa, attacked the soldiers of the Raksasas, who were
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 425
fully equipped with various invincible weapons like swords, lances, bows, prasas, rstis, sakti arrows,
khadgas and tomaras.
20. Angada and the other commanders of the soldiers of Ramacandra faced the elephants, infantry,
horses and chariots of the enemy and hurled against them big trees, mountain peaks, clubs and arrows.
Thus the soldiers of Lord Ramacandra killed Ravana's soldiers, who had lost all good fortune because
Ravana had been condemned by the anger of mother Sita.
21. Thereafter, when Ravana, the king of the Raksasas, observed that his soldiers had been lost, he
was extremely angry. Thus he mounted his airplane, which was decorated with flowers, and proceeded
toward Lord Ramacandra, who sat on the effulgent chariot brought by Matali, the chariot driver of Indra.
Then Ravana struck Lord Ramacandra with sharp arrows.
22. Lord Ramacandra said to Ravana: You are the most abominable of the man-eaters. Indeed, you are
like their stool. You resemble a dog, for as a dog steals eatables from the kitchen in the absence of the
householder, in My absence you kidnapped My wife, Sitadevi. Therefore as Yamaraja punishes sinful
men, I shall also punish you. You are most abominable, sinful and shameless. Today, therefore, I,
whose attempt never fails, shall punish you.
23. After thus rebuking Ravana, Lord Ramacandra fixed an arrow to His bow, aimed at Ravana, and
released the arrow, which pierced Ravana's heart like a thunderbolt. Upon seeing this, Ravana's
followers raised a tumultuous sound, crying, "Alas! Alas! What has happened? What has happened?"
as Ravana, vomiting blood from his ten mouths, fell from his airplane, just as a pious man falls to earth
from the heavenly planets when the results of his pious activities are exhausted.
24. Thereafter, all the women whose husbands had fallen in the battle, headed by Mandodari, the wife
of Ravana, came out of Lanka. Continuously crying, they approached the dead bodies of Ravana and
the other Raksasas.
25. Striking their breasts in affliction because their husbands had been killed by the arrows of
Laksmana, the women embraced their respective husbands and cried piteously in voices appealing to
everyone.
26. O my lord, O master! You epitomized trouble for others, and therefore you were called Ravana. But
now that you have been defeated, we also are defeated, for without you the state of Lanka has been
conquered by the enemy. To whom will it go for shelter?
27. O greatly fortunate one, you came under the influence of lusty desires, and therefore you could not
understand the influence of mother Sita. Now, because of her curse, you have been reduced to this
state, having been killed by Lord Ramacandra.
28. O pleasure of the Raksasa dynasty, because of you the state of Lanka and also we ourselves now
have no protector. By your deeds you have made your body fit to be eaten by vultures and your soul fit
to go to hell.
29. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Vibhisana, the pious brother of Ravana and devotee of Lord
Ramacandra, received approval from Lord Ramacandra, the King of Kosala. Then he performed the
prescribed funeral ceremonies for his family members to save them from the path to hell.
30. Thereafter, Lord Ramacandra found Sitadevi sitting in a small cottage beneath the tree named
Simsapa in a forest of Asoka trees. She was lean and thin, being aggrieved because of separation from
Him.
31. Seeing His wife in that condition, Lord Ramacandra was very compassionate. When Ramacandra
came before her, she was exceedingly happy to see her beloved, and her lotuslike mouth showed her
joy.
32. After giving Vibhisana the power to rule the Raksasa population of Lanka for the duration of one
kalpa, Lord Ramacandra, the Supreme Personality of Godhead [Bhagavan], placed Sitadevi on an
airplane decorated with flowers and then got on the plane Himself. The period for His living in the forest
having ended, the Lord returned to Ayodhya, accompanied by Hanuman, Sugriva and His brother
Laksmana.
33. When Lord Ramacandra returned to His capital, Ayodhya, He was greeted on the road by the
princely order, who showered His body with beautiful, fragrant flowers, while great personalities like
Lord Brahma and other demigods glorified the activities of the Lord in great jubilation.
34. Upon reaching Ayodhya, Lord Ramacandra heard that in His absence His brother Bharata was
eating barley cooked in the urine of a cow, covering His body with the bark of trees, wearing matted
locks of hair, and lying on a mattress of kusa. The most merciful Lord very much lamented this.
35-38. When Lord Bharata understood that Lord Ramacandra was returning to the capital, Ayodhya, He
immediately took upon His own head Lord Ramacandra's wooden shoes and came out from His camp
at Nandigrama. Lord Bharata was accompanied by ministers, priests and other respectable citizens, by
professional musicians vibrating pleasing musical sounds, and by learned brahmanas loudly chanting
Vedic hymns. Following in the procession were chariots drawn by beautiful horses with harnesses of
426 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
golden rope. These chariots were decorated by flags with golden embroidery and by other flags of
various sizes and patterns. There were soldiers bedecked with golden armor, servants bearing betel
nut, and many well-known and beautiful prostitutes. Many servants followed on foot, bearing an
umbrella, whisks, different grades of precious jewels, and other paraphernalia befitting a royal
reception. Accompanied in this way, Lord Bharata, His heart softened in ecstasy and His eyes full of
tears, approached Lord Ramacandra and fell at His lotus feet with great ecstatic love.
39-40. After offering the wooden shoes before Lord Ramacandra, Lord Bharata stood with folded
hands, His eyes full of tears, and Lord Ramacandra bathed Bharata with tears while embracing Him
with both arms for a long time. Accompanied by mother Sita and Laksmana, Lord Ramacandra then
offered His respectful obeisances unto the learned brahmanas and the elderly persons in the family,
and all the citizens of Ayodhya offered their respectful obeisances unto the Lord.
41. The citizens of Ayodhya, upon seeing their King return after a long absence, offered Him flower
garlands, waved their upper cloths, and danced in great jubilation.
42-43. O King, Lord Bharata carried Lord Ramacandra's wooden shoes, Sugriva and Vibhisana carried
a whisk and an excellent fan, Hanuman carried a white umbrella, Satrughna carried a bow and two
quivers, and Sitadevi carried a waterpot filled with water from holy places. Angada carried a sword, and
Jambavan, King of the Rksas, carried a golden shield.
44. O King Pariksit, as the Lord sat on His airplane of flowers, with women offering Him prayers and
reciters chanting about His characteristics, He appeared like the moon with the stars and planets.
45-46. Thereafter, having been welcomed by His brother Bharata, Lord Ramacandra entered the city of
Ayodhya in the midst of a festival. When He entered the palace, He offered obeisances to all the
mothers, including Kaikeyi and the other wives of Maharaja Dasaratha, and especially His own mother,
Kausalya. He also offered obeisances to the spiritual preceptors, such as Vasistha. Friends of His own
age and younger friends worshiped Him, and He returned their respectful obeisances, as did Laksmana
and mother Sita. In this way they all entered the palace.
47. Upon seeing their sons, the mothers of Rama, Laksmana, Bharata and Satrughna immediately
arose, like unconscious bodies returning to consciousness. The mothers placed their sons on their laps
and bathed Them with tears, thus relieving themselves of the grief of long separation.
48. The family priest or spiritual master, Vasistha, had Lord Ramacandra cleanly shaved, freeing Him
from His matted locks of hair. Then, with the cooperation of the elderly members of the family, he
performed the bathing ceremony [abhiseka] for Lord Ramacandra with the water of the four seas and
with other substances, just as it was performed for King Indra.
49. Lord Ramacandra, fully bathed and His head clean-shaven, dressed Himself very nicely and was
decorated with a garland and ornaments. Thus He shone brightly, surrounded by His brothers and wife,
who were similarly dressed and ornamented.
50. Being pleased by the full surrender and submission of Lord Bharata, Lord Ramacandra then
accepted the throne of the state. He cared for the citizens exactly like a father, and the citizens, being
fully engaged in their occupational duties of varna and asrama, accepted Him as their father.
51. Lord Ramacandra became King during Treta-yuga, but because of His good government, the age
was like Satya-yuga. Everyone was religious and completely happy.
52. O Maharaja Pariksit, best of the Bharata dynasty, during the reign of Lord Ramacandra the forests,
the rivers, the hills and mountains, the states, the seven islands and the seven seas were all favorable
in supplying the necessities of life for all living beings.
53. When Lord Ramacandra, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, was the King of this world, all bodily
and mental suffering, disease, old age, bereavement, lamentation, distress, fear and fatigue were
completely absent. There was even no death for those who did not want it.
54. Lord Ramacandra took a vow to accept only one wife and have no connection with any other
women. He was a saintly king, and everything in His character was good, untinged by qualities like
anger. He taught good behavior for everyone, especially for householders, in terms of varnasrama-
dharma. Thus He taught the general public by His personal activities.
55. Mother Sita was very submissive, faithful, shy and chaste, always understanding the attitude of her
husband. Thus by her character and her love and service she completely attracted the mind of the Lord.
Chapter Eleven Lord Ramacandra Rules the World
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thereafter, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Ramacandra,
accepted an acarya and performed sacrifices [yajnas] with opulent paraphernalia. Thus He Himself
worshiped Himself, for He is the Supreme Lord of all demigods.
2. Lord Ramacandra gave the entire east to the hota priest, the entire south to the brahma priest, the
west to the adhvaryu priest, and the north to the udgata priest, the reciter of the Sama Veda. In this
way, He donated His kingdom.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 427
3. Thereafter, thinking that because the brahmanas have no material desires they should possess the
entire world, Lord Ramacandra delivered the land between the east, west, north and south to the
acarya.
4. After thus giving everything in charity to the brahmanas, Lord Ramacandra retained only His personal
garments and ornaments, and similarly the Queen, mother Sita, was left with only her nose ring, and
nothing else.
5. All the brahmanas who were engaged in the various activities of the sacrifice were very pleased with
Lord Ramacandra, who was greatly affectionate and favorable to the brahmanas. Thus with melted
hearts they returned all the property received from Him and spoke as follows.
6. O Lord, You are the master of the entire universe. What have You not given to us? You have entered
the core of our hearts and dissipated the darkness of our ignorance by Your effulgence. This is the
supreme gift. We do not need a material donation.
7. O Lord, You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who have accepted the brahmanas as Your
worshipable deity. Your knowledge and memory are never disturbed by anxiety. You are the chief of all
famous persons within this world, and Your lotus feet are worshiped by sages who are beyond the
jurisdiction of punishment. O Lord Ramacandra, let us offer our respectful obeisances unto You.
8. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Once while Lord Ramacandra was walking at night incognito, hiding
Himself by a disguise to find out the people's opinion of Himself, He heard a man speaking unfavorably
about His wife, Sitadevi.
9. [Speaking to his unchaste wife, the man said] You go to another man's house, and therefore you are
unchaste and polluted. I shall not maintain you any more. A henpecked husband like Lord Rama may
accept a wife like Sita, who went to another man's house, but I am not henpecked like Him, and
therefore I shall not accept you again.
10. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Men with a poor fund of knowledge and a heinous character speak
nonsensically. Fearing such rascals, Lord Ramacandra abandoned His wife, Sitadevi, although she was
pregnant. Thus Sitadevi went to the asrama of Valmiki Muni.
11. When the time came, the pregnant mother Sitadevi gave birth to twin sons, later celebrated as Lava
and Kusa. The ritualistic ceremonies for their birth were performed by Valmiki Muni.
12. O Maharaja Pariksit, Lord Laksmana had two sons, named Angada and Citraketu, and Lord
Bharata also had two sons, named Taksa and Puskala.
13-14. Satrughna had two sons, named Subahu and Srutasena. When Lord Bharata went to conquer
all directions, He had to kill many millions of Gandharvas, who are generally pretenders. Taking all their
wealth, He offered it to Lord Ramacandra. Satrughna also killed a Raksasa named Lavana, who was
the son of Madhu Raksasa. Thus He established in the great forest known as Madhuvana the town
known as Mathura.
15. Being forsaken by her husband, Sitadevi entrusted her two sons to the care of Valmiki Muni. Then,
meditating upon the lotus feet of Lord Ramacandra, she entered into the earth.
16. After hearing the news of mother Sita's entering the earth, the Supreme Personality of Godhead
was certainly aggrieved. Although He is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, upon remembering the
exalted qualities of mother Sita, He could not check His grief in transcendental love.
17. The attraction between man and woman, or male and female, always exists everywhere, making
everyone always fearful. Such feelings are present even among the controllers like Brahma and Lord
Siva and is the cause of fear for them, what to speak of others who are attached to household life in this
material world.
18. After mother Sita entered the earth, Lord Ramacandra observed complete celibacy and performed
an uninterrupted Agnihotra-yajna for thirteen thousand years.
19. After completing the sacrifice, Lord Ramacandra, whose lotus feet were sometimes pierced by
thorns when He lived in Dandakaranya, placed those lotus feet in the hearts of those who always think
of Him. Then He entered His own abode, the Vaikuntha planet beyond the brahmajyoti.
20. Lord Ramacandra's reputation for having killed Ravana with showers of arrows at the request of the
demigods and for having built a bridge over the ocean does not constitute the factual glory of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead Lord Ramacandra, whose spiritual body is always engaged in various
pastimes. Lord Ramacandra has no equal or superior, and therefore He had no need to take help from
the monkeys to gain victory over Ravana.
21. Lord Ramacandra's spotless name and fame, which vanquish all sinful reactions, are celebrated in
all directions, like the ornamental cloth of the victorious elephant that conquers all directions. Great
saintly persons like Markandeya Rsi still glorify His characteristics in the assemblies of great emperors
like Maharaja Yudhisthira. Similarly, all the saintly kings and all the demigods, including Lord Siva and
Lord Brahma, worship the Lord by bowing down with their helmets. Let me offer my obeisances unto
His lotus feet.
428 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. Lord Ramacandra returned to His abode, to which bhakti-yogis are promoted. This is the place to
which all the inhabitants of Ayodhya went after they served the Lord in His manifest pastimes by
offering Him obeisances, touching His lotus feet, fully observing Him as a fatherlike King, sitting or lying
down with Him like equals, or even just accompanying Him.
23. O King Pariksit, anyone who aurally receives the narrations concerning the characteristics of Lord
Ramacandra's pastimes will ultimately be freed from the disease of envy and thus be liberated from the
bondage of fruitive activities.
24. Maharaja Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: How did the Lord conduct Himself, and how did
He behave in relationship with His brothers, who were expansions of His own self? And how did His
brothers and the inhabitants of Ayodhya treat Him?
25. Sukadeva Gosvami replied: After accepting the throne of the government by the fervent request of
His younger brother Bharata, Lord Ramacandra ordered His younger brothers to go out and conquer
the entire world, while He personally remained in the capital to give audience to all the citizens and
residents of the palace and supervise the governmental affairs with His other assistants.
26. During the reign of Lord Ramacandra, the streets of the capital, Ayodhya, were sprinkled with
perfumed water and drops of perfumed liquor, thrown about by elephants from their trunks. When the
citizens saw the Lord personally supervising the affairs of the city in such opulence, they appreciated
this opulence very much.
27. The palaces, the palace gates, the assembly houses, the platforms for meeting places, the temples
and all such places were decorated with golden waterpots and bedecked with various types of flags.
28. Wherever Lord Ramacandra visited, auspicious welcome gates were constructed, with banana
trees and betel nut trees, full of flowers and fruits. The gates were decorated with various flags made of
colorful cloth and with tapestries, mirrors and garlands.
29. Wherever Lord Ramacandra visited, the people approached Him with paraphernalia of worship and
begged the Lord's blessings. "O Lord," they said, "as You rescued the earth from the bottom of the sea
in Your incarnation as a boar, may You now maintain it. Thus we beg Your blessings."
30. Thereafter, not having seen the Lord for a long time, the citizens, both men and women, being very
eager to see Him, left their homes and got up on the roofs of the palaces. Being incompletely satiated
with seeing the face of the lotus-eyed Lord Ramacandra, they showered flowers upon Him.
31-34. Thereafter, Lord Ramacandra entered the palace of His forefathers. Within the palace were
various treasures and valuable wardrobes. The sitting places on the two sides of the entrance door
were made of coral, the yards were surrounded by pillars of vaidurya-mani, the floor was made of highly
polished marakata-mani, and the foundation was made of marble. The entire palace was decorated with
flags and garlands and bedecked with valuable stones, shining with a celestial effulgence. The palace
was fully decorated with pearls and surrounded by lamps and incense. The men and women within the
palace all resembled demigods and were decorated with various ornaments, which seemed beautiful
because of being placed on their bodies.
35. Lord Ramacandra, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, chief of the best learned scholars, resided
in that palace with His pleasure potency, mother Sita, and enjoyed complete peace.
36. Without transgressing the religious principles, Lord Ramacandra, whose lotus feet are worshiped by
devotees in meditation, enjoyed with all the paraphernalia of transcendental pleasure for as long as
needed.
Chapter Twelve The Dynasty of Kusa, the Son of Lord Ramacandra
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The son of Ramacandra was Kusa, the son of Kusa was Atithi, the son of
Atithi was Nisadha, and the son of Nisadha was Nabha. The son of Nabha was Pundarika, and from
Pundarika came a son named Ksemadhanva.
2. The son of Ksemadhanva was Devanika, Devanika's son was Aniha, Aniha's son was Pariyatra, and
Pariyatra's son was Balasthala. The son of Balasthala was Vajranabha, who was said to have been
born from the effulgence of the sun-god.
3-4. The son of Vajranabha was Sagana, and his son was Vidhrti. The son of Vidhrti was
Hiranyanabha, who became a disciple of Jaimini and became a great acarya of mystic yoga. It is from
Hiranyanabha that the great saint Yajnavalkya learned the highly elevated system of mystic yoga
known as adhyatma-yoga, which can loosen the knots of material attachment in the heart.
5. The son of Hiranyanabha was Puspa, and the son of Puspa was Dhruvasandhi. The son of
Dhruvasandhi was Sudarsana, whose son was Agnivarna. The son of Agnivarna was named Sighra,
and his son was Maru.
6. Having achieved perfection in the power of mystic yoga, Maru still lives in a place known as Kalapa-
grama. At the end of Kali-yuga, he will revive the lost Surya dynasty by begetting a son.
7. From Maru was born a son named Prasusruta, from Prasusruta came Sandhi, from Sandhi came
Amarsana, and from Amarsana a son named Mahasvan. From Mahasvan, Visvabahu took his birth.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 429
8. From Visvabahu came a son named Prasenajit, from Prasenajit came Taksaka, and from Taksaka
came Brhadbala, who was killed in a fight by your father.
9. All these kings in the dynasty of Iksvaku have passed away. Now please listen as I describe the kings
who will be born in the future. From Brhadbala will come Brhadrana.
10. The son of Brhadrana will be Urukriya, who will have a son named Vatsavrddha. Vatsavrddha will
have a son named Prativyoma, and Prativyoma will have a son named Bhanu, from whom Divaka, a
great commander of soldiers, will take birth.
11. Thereafter, from Divaka will come a son named Sahadeva, and from Sahadeva a great hero named
Brhadasva. From Brhadasva will come Bhanuman, and from Bhanuman will come Pratikasva. The son
of Pratikasva will be Supratika.
12. Thereafter, from Supratika will come Marudeva; from Marudeva, Sunaksatra; from Sunaksatra,
Puskara; and from Puskara, Antariksa. The son of Antariksa will be Sutapa, and his son will be Amitrajit.
13. From Amitrajit will come a son named Brhadraja, from Brhadraja will come Barhi, and from Barhi will
come Krtanjaya. The son of Krtanjaya will be known as Rananjaya, and from him will come a son
named Sanjaya.
14. From Sanjaya will come Sakya, from Sakya will come Suddhoda, and from Suddhoda will come
Langala. From Langala will come Prasenajit, and from Prasenajit, Ksudraka.
15. From Ksudraka will come Ranaka, from Ranaka will come Suratha, and from Suratha will come
Sumitra, ending the dynasty. This is a description of the dynasty of Brhadbala.
16. The last king in the dynasty of Iksvaku will be Sumitra; after Sumitra there will be no more sons in
the dynasty of the sun-god, and thus the dynasty will end.
Chapter Thirteen The Dynasty of Maharaja Nimi
1. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami said: After beginning sacrifices, Maharaja Nimi, the son of Iksvaku,
requested the great sage Vasistha to take the post of chief priest. At that time, Vasistha replied, "My
dear Maharaja Nimi, I have already accepted the same post in a sacrifice begun by Lord Indra.
2. "I shall return here after finishing the yajna for Indra. Kindly wait for me until then." Maharaja Nimi
remained silent, and Vasistha began to perform the sacrifice for Lord Indra.
3. Maharaja Nimi, being a self-realized soul, considered that this life is flickering. Therefore, instead of
waiting long for Vasistha, he began performing the sacrifice with other priests.
4. After completing the sacrificial performance for King Indra, the spiritual master Vasistha returned and
found that his disciple Maharaja Nimi had disobeyed his instructions. Thus Vasistha cursed him, saying,
"May the material body of Nimi, who considers himself learned, immediately fall."
5. For unnecessarily cursing him when he had committed no offense, Maharaja Nimi countercursed his
spiritual master. "For the sake of getting contributions from the King of heaven," he said, "you have lost
your religious intelligence. Therefore I pronounce this curse: your body also will fall."
6. After saying this, Maharaja Nimi, who was expert in the science of spiritual knowledge, gave up his
body. Vasistha, the great-grandfather, gave up his body also, but through the semen discharged by
Mitra and Varuna when they saw Urvasi, he was born again.
7. During the performance of the yajna, the body relinquished by Maharaja Nimi was preserved in
fragrant substances, and at the end of the Satra-yaga the great saints and brahmanas made the
following request to all the demigods assembled there.
8. "If you are satisfied with this sacrifice and if you are actually able to do so, kindly bring Maharaja Nimi
back to life in this body." The demigods said yes to this request by the sages, but Maharaja Nimi said,
"Please do not imprison me again in a material body."
9. Maharaja Nimi continued: Mayavadis generally want freedom from accepting a material body
because they fear having to give it up again. But devotees whose intelligence is always filled with the
service of the Lord are unafraid. Indeed, they take advantage of the body to render transcendental
loving service.
10. I do not wish to accept a material body, for such a body is the source of all distress, lamentation and
fear, everywhere in the universe, just as it is for a fish in the water, which lives always in anxiety
because of fear of death.
11. The demigods said: Let Maharaja Nimi live without a material body. Let him live in a spiritual body
as a personal associate of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and, according to his desire, let him
be manifest or unmanifest to common materially embodied people.
12. Thereafter, to save the people from the danger of an unregulated government, the sages churned
Maharaja Nimi's material body, from which, as a result, a son was born.
13. Because he was born in an unusual way, the son was called Janaka, and because he was born
from the dead body of his father, he was known as Vaideha. Because he was born from the churning of
his father's material body, he was known as Mithila, and because he constructed a city as King Mithila,
the city was called Mithila.
430 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
14. O King Pariksit, from Mithila came a son named Udavasu; from Udavasu, Nandivardhana; from
Nandivardhana, Suketu; and from Suketu, Devarata.
15. From Devarata came a son named Brhadratha and from Brhadratha a son named Mahavirya, who
became the father of Sudhrti. The son of Sudhrti was known as Dhrstaketu, and from Dhrstaketu came
Haryasva. From Haryasva came a son named Maru.
16. The son of Maru was Pratipaka, and the son of Pratipaka was Krtaratha. From Krtaratha came
Devamidha; from Devamidha, Visruta; and from Visruta, Mahadhrti.
17. From Mahadhrti was born a son named Krtirata, from Krtirata was born Maharoma, from Maharoma
came a son named Svamaroma, and from Svarnaroma came Hrasvaroma.
18. From Hrasvaroma came a son named Siradhvaja [also called Janaka]. When Siradhvaja was
plowing a field, from the front of his plow [sim] appeared a daughter named Sitadevi, who later became
the wife of Lord Ramacandra. Thus he was known as Simdhvaja.
19. The son of Siradhvaja was Kusadhvaja, and the son of Kusadhvaja was King Dharmadhvaja, who
had two sons, namely Krtadhvaja and Mitadhvaja.
20-21. O Maharaja Pariksit, the son of Krtadhvaja was Kesidhvaja, and the son of Mitadhvaja was
Khandikya. The son of Krtadhvaja was expert in spiritual knowledge, and the son of Mitadhvaja was
expert in Vedic ritualistic ceremonies. Khandikya fled in fear of Kesidhvaja. The son of Kesidhvaja was
Bhanuman, and the son of Bhanuman was Satadyumna.
22. The son of Satadyumna was named Suci. From Suci, Sanadvaja was born, and from Sanadvaja
came a son named Urjaketu. The son of Urjaketu was Aja, and the son of Aja was Purujit.
23. The son of Purujit was Aristanemi, and his son was Srutayu. Srutayu begot a son named
Suparsvaka, and Suparsvaka begot Citraratha. The son of Citraratha was Kremadhi, who became the
king of Mithila.
24. The son of Ksemadhi was Samaratha, and his son was Satyaratha. The son of Satyaratha was
Upaguru, and the son of Upaguru was Upagupta, a partial expansion of the fire-god.
25. The son of Upagupta was Vasvananta, the son of Vasvananta was Yuyudha, the son of Yuyudha
was Subhasana, and the son of Subhasana was Sruta. The son of Sruta was Jaya, from whom there
came Vijaya. The son of Vijaya was Rta.
26. The son of Rta was Sunaka, the son of Sunaka was Vitahavya, the son of Vitahavya was Dhrti, and
the son of Dhrti was Bahulasva. The son of Bahulasva was Krti, and his son was Mahavasi.
27. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King Pariksit, all the kings of the dynasty of Mithila were
completely in knowledge of their spiritual identity. Therefore, even though staying at home, they were
liberated from the duality of material existence.
Chapter Fourteen King Pururava Enchanted by Urvasi
1. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami said to Maharaja Pariksit: O King, thus far you have heard the description of
the dynasty of the sun-god. Now hear the most glorious and purifying description of the dynasty of the
moon-god. This description mentions kings like Aila [Pururava] of whom it is glorious to hear.
2. Lord Visnu [Garbhodakasayi Visnu] is also known as Sahasra-sirsa Purusa. From the lake of His
navel sprang a lotus, on which Lord Brahma was generated. Atri, the son of Lord Brahma, was as
qualified as his father.
3. From Atri's tears of jubilation was born a son named Soma, the moon, who was full of soothing rays.
Lord Brahma appointed him the director of the brahmanas, drugs and luminaries.
4. After conquering the three worlds [the upper, middle and lower planetary systems], Soma, the moon-
god, performed a great sacrifice known as the Rajasuya-yajna. Because he was very much puffed up,
he forcibly kidnapped Brhaspati's wife, whose name was Tara.
5. Although requested again and again by Brhaspati, the spiritual master of the demigods, Soma did not
return Tara. This was due to his false pride. Consequently, a fight ensued between the demigods and
the demons.
6. Because of enmity between Brhaspati and Sukra, Sukra took the side of the moon-god and was
joined by the demons. But Lord Siva, because of affection for the son of his spiritual master, joined the
side of Brhaspati and was accompanied by all the ghosts and hobgoblins.
7. King Indra, accompanied by all kinds of demigods, joined the side of Brhaspati. Thus there was a
great fight, destroying both demons and demigods, only for the sake of Tara, Brhaspati's wife.
8. When Lord Brahma was fully informed by Angira about the entire incident, he severely chastised the
moon-god, Soma. Thus Lord Brahma delivered Tara to her husband, who could then understand that
she was pregnant.
9. Brhaspati said: You foolish woman, your womb, which was meant for me to impregnate, has been
impregnated by someone other than me. Immediately deliver your child! Immediately deliver it! Be
assured that after the child is delivered, I shall not burn you to ashes. I know that although you are
unchaste, you wanted a son. Therefore I shall not punish you.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 431
10. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: By Brhaspati's order, Tara, who was very much ashamed,
immediately gave birth to the child, who was very beautiful, with a golden bodily hue. Both Brhaspati
and the moon-god, Soma, desired the beautiful child.
11. Fighting again broke out between Brhaspati and the moon-god, both of whom claimed, "This is my
child, not yours!" All the saints and demigods present asked Tara whose child the newborn baby
actually was, but because she was ashamed she could not immediately answer.
12. The child then became very angry and demanded that his mother immediately tell the truth. "You
unchaste woman," he said, "what is the use of your unnecessary shame? Why do you not admit your
fault? Immediately tell me about your faulty behavior."
13. Lord Brahma then brought Tara to a secluded place, and after pacifying her he asked to whom the
child actually belonged. She replied very slowly, "This is the son of Soma, the moon-god." Then the
moon-god immediately took charge of the child.
14. O Maharaja Pariksit, when Lord Brahma saw that the child was deeply intelligent, he gave the child
the name Budha. The moon-god, the ruler of the stars, enjoyed great jubilation because of this son.
15-16. Thereafter, from Budha, through the womb of Ila, a son was born named Pururava, who was
described in the beginning of the Ninth Canto. When his beauty, personal qualities, magnanimity,
behavior, wealth and power were described by Narada in the court of Lord Indra, the celestial woman
Urvasi was attracted to him. Pierced by the arrow of Cupid, she thus approached him.
17-18. Having been cursed by Mitra and Varuna, the celestial woman Urvasi had acquired the habits of
a human being. Therefore, upon seeing Pururava, the best of males, whose beauty resembled that of
Cupid, she controlled herself and then approached him. When King Pururava saw Urvasi, his eyes
became jubilant in the ecstasy of joy, and the hairs on his body stood on end. With mild, pleasing
words, he spoke to her as follows.
19. King Pururava said: O most beautiful woman, you are welcome. Please sit here and tell me what I
can do for you. You may enjoy with me as long as you desire. Let us pass our life happily in a sexual
relationship.
20. Urvasi replied: O most handsome man, who is the woman whose mind and sight would not be
attracted by you? If a woman takes shelter of your chest, she cannot refuse to enjoy with you in a
sexual relationship.
21. My dear King Pururava, please give protection to these two lambs, who have fallen down with me.
Although I belong to the heavenly planets and you belong to earth, I shall certainly enjoy sexual union
with you. I have no objection to accepting you as my husband, for you are superior in every respect.
22. Urvasi said: "My dear hero, only preparations made in ghee [clarified butter] will be my eatables,
and I shall not want to see you naked at any time, except at the time of sexual intercourse." The great-
minded King Pururava accepted these proposals.
23. Pururava replied: O beautiful one, your beauty is wonderful and your gestures are also wonderful.
Indeed, you are attractive to all human society. Therefore, since you have come of your own accord
from the heavenly planets, who on earth would not agree to serve a demigoddess such as you.
24. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: The best of human beings, Pururava, began freely enjoying the
company of Urvasi, who engaged in sexual activities with him in many celestial places, such as
Caitraratha and Nandana-kanana, where the demigods enjoy.
25. Urvasi's body was as fragrant as the saffron of a lotus. Being enlivened by the fragrance of her face
and body, Pururava enjoyed her company for many days with great jubilation.
26. Not seeing Urvasi in his assembly, the King of heaven, Lord Indra, said, "Without Urvasi my
assembly is no longer beautiful." Considering this, he requested the Gandharvas to bring her back to
his heavenly planet.
27. Thus the Gandharvas came to earth, and at midnight, when everything was dark, they appeared in
the house of Pururava and stole the two lambs entrusted to the King by his wife, Urvasi.
28. Urvasi treated the two lambs like her own sons. Therefore, when they were being taken by the
Gandharvas and began crying, Urvasi heard them and rebuked her husband. "Now I am being killed,"
she said, "under the protection of an unworthy husband, who is a coward and a eunuch although he
thinks himself a great hero.
29. "Because I depended on him, the plunderers have deprived me of my two sons the lambs, and
therefore I am now lost. My husband lies down at night in fear, exactly like a woman, although he
appears to be a man during the day."
30. Pururava, stricken by the sharp words of Urvasi like an elephant struck by its driver's pointed rod,
became very angry. Not even dressing himself properly, he took a sword in hand and went out naked
into the night to follow the Gandharvas who had stolen the lambs.
432 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
31. After giving up the two lambs, the Gandharvas shone brightly like lightning, thus illuminating the
house of Pururava. Urvasi then saw her husband returning with the lambs in hand, but he was naked,
and therefore she left.
32. No longer seeing Urvasi on his bed, Pururava was most aggrieved. Because of his great attraction
for her, he was very much disturbed. Thus, lamenting, he began traveling about the earth like a
madman.
33. Once during his travels all over the world, Pururava saw Urvasi, accompanied by five companions,
on the bank of the Sarasvati at Kuruksetra. With jubilation in his face, he then spoke to her in sweet
words as follows.
34. O my dear wife, O most cruel one, kindly stay, kindly stay. I know that I have never made you happy
until now, but you should not give me up for that reason. This is not proper for you. Even if you have
decided to give up my company, let us nonetheless talk for some time.
35. O goddess, now that you have refused me, my beautiful body will fall down here, and because it is
unsuitable for your pleasure, it will be eaten by foxes and vultures.
36. Urvasi said: My dear King, you are a man, a hero. Don't be impatient and give up your life. Be sober
and don't allow the senses to overcome you like foxes. Don't let the foxes eat you. In other words, you
should not be controlled by your senses. Rather, you should know that the heart of a woman is like that
of a fox. There is no use making friendship with women.
37. Women as a class are merciless and cunning. They cannot tolerate even a slight offense. For their
own pleasure they can do anything irreligious, and therefore they do not fear killing even a faithful
husband or brother.
38. Women are very easily seduced by men. Therefore, polluted women give up the friendship of a man
who is their well-wisher and establish false friendship among fools. Indeed, they seek newer and newer
friends, one after another.
39. O my dear King, you will be able to enjoy with me as my husband at the end of every year, for one
night only. In this way you will have other children, one after another.
40. Understanding that Urvasi was pregnant, Pururava returned to his palace. At the end of the year,
there at Kuruksetra, he again obtained the association of Urvasi, who was then the mother of a heroic
son.
41. Having regained Urvasi at the end of the year, King Pururava was most jubilant, and he enjoyed her
company in sex for one night. But then he was very sorry at the thought of separation from her, so
Urvasi spoke to him as follows.
42. Urvasi said: "My dear King, seek shelter of the Gandharvas, for they will be able to deliver me to you
again." In accordance with these words, the King satisfied the Gandharvas by prayers, and the
Gandharvas, being pleased with him, gave him an Agnisthali girl who looked exactly like Urvasi.
Thinking that the girl was Urvasi, the King began walking with her in the forest, but later he could
understand that she was not Urvasi but Agnisthali.
43. King Pururava then left Agnisthali in the forest and returned home, where he meditated all night
upon Urvasi. In the course of his meditation, the Treta millennium began, and therefore the principles of
the three Vedas, including the process of performing yajna to fulfill fruitive activities, appeared within his
heart.
44-45. When the process of fruitive yajna became manifest within his heart, King Pururava went to the
same spot where he had left Agnisthali. There he saw that from the womb of a sami tree, an asvattha
tree had grown. He then took a piece of wood from that tree and made it into two aranis. Desiring to go
to the planet where Urvasi resided, he chanted mantras, meditating upon the lower arani as Urvasi, the
upper one as himself, and the piece of wood between them as his son. In this way he began to ignite a
fire.
46. From Pururava's rubbing of the aranis came a fire. By such a fire one can achieve all success in
material enjoyment and be purified in seminal birth, initiation and in the performance of sacrifice, which
are invoked with the combined letters a-u-m. Thus the fire was considered the son of King Pururava.
47. By means of that fire, Pururava, who desired to go to the planet where Urvasi resided, performed a
sacrifice, by which he satisfied the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, the enjoyer of the results of
sacrifice. Thus he worshiped the Lord, who is beyond the perception of the senses and is the reservoir
of all the demigods.
48. In the Satya-yuga, the first millennium, all the Vedic mantras were included in one mantra--pranava,
the root of all Vedic mantras. In other words, the Atharva Veda alone was the source of all Vedic
knowledge. The Supreme Personality of Godhead Narayana was the only worshipable Deity; there was
no recommendation for worship of the demigods. Fire was one only, and the only order of life in human
society was known as hamsa.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 433
49. O Maharaja Pariksit, at the beginning of Treta-yuga, King Pururava inaugurated a karma-kanda
sacrifice. Thus Pururava, who considered the yajnic fire his son, was able to go to Gandharvaloka as he
desired.
Chapter Fifteen Parasurama, the Lord's Warrior Incarnation
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King Pariksit, from the womb of Urvasi, six sons were generated by
Pururava. Their names were Ayu, Srutayu, Satyayu, Raya, Vijaya and Jaya.
2-3. The son of Srutayu was Vasuman; the son of Satyayu, Srutanjaya; the son of Raya, Eka; the son
of Jaya, Amita; and the son of Vijaya, Bhima. The son of Bhima was Kancana; the son of Kancana was
Hotraka; and the son of Hotraka was Jahnu, who drank all the water of the Ganges in one sip.
4. The son of Jahnu was Puru, the son of Puru was Balaka, the son of Balaka was Ajaka, and the son
of Ajaka was Kusa. Kusa had four sons, named Kusambu, Tanaya, Vasu and Kusanabha. The son of
Kusambu was Gadhi.
5-6. King Gadhi had a daughter named Satyavati, whom a brahmana sage named Rcika requested
from the King to be his wife. King Gadhi, however, regarded Rcika as an unfit husband for his daughter,
and therefore he told the brahmana, "My dear sir, I belong to the dynasty of Kusa. Because we are
aristocratic ksatriyas, you have to give some dowry for my daughter. Therefore, bring at least one
thousand horses, each as brilliant as moonshine and each having one black ear, whether right or left."
7. When King Gadhi made this demand, the great sage Rcika could understand the King's mind.
Therefore he went to the demigod Varuna and brought from him the one thousand horses that Gadhi
had demanded. After delivering these horses, the sage married the King's beautiful daughter.
8. Thereafter, Rcika Muni's wife and mother-in-law, each desiring a son, requested the Muni to prepare
an oblation. Thus Rcika Muni prepared one oblation for his wife with a brahmana mantra and another
for his mother-in-law with a ksatriya mantra. Then he went out to bathe.
9. Meanwhile, because Satyavati's mother thought that the oblation prepared for her daughter, Rcika's
wife, must be better, she asked her daughter for that oblation. Satyavati therefore gave her own oblation
to her mother and ate her mother's oblation herself.
10. When the great sage Rcika returned home after bathing and understood what had happened in his
absence, he said to his wife, Satyavati, "You have done a great wrong. Your son will be a fierce
ksatriya, able to punish everyone, and your brother will be a learned scholar in spiritual science."
11. Satyavati, however, pacified Rcika Muni with peaceful words and requested that her son not be like
a fierce ksatriya. Rcika Muni replied, "Then your grandson will be of a ksatriya spirit." Thus Jamadagni
was born as the son of Satyavati.
12-13. Satyavati later became the sacred river Kausiki to purify the entire world, and her son,
Jamadagni, married Renuka, the daughter of Renu. By the semen of Jamadagni, many sons, headed
by Vasuman, were born from the womb of Renuka. The youngest of them was named Rama, or
Parasurama.
14. Learned scholars accept this Parasurama as the celebrated incarnation of Vasudeva who
annihilated the dynasty of Kartavirya. Parasurama killed all the ksatriyas on earth twenty-one times.
15. When the royal dynasty, being excessively proud because of the material modes of passion and
ignorance, became irreligious and ceased to care for the laws enacted by the brahmanas, Parasurama
killed them. Although their offense was not very severe, he killed them to lessen the burden of the
world.
16. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: What was the offense that the ksatriyas who could
not control their senses committed before Lord Parasurama, the incarnation of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, for which the Lord annihilated the ksatriya dynasty again and again?
17-19. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The best of the ksatriyas, Kartaviryarjuna, the King of the Haihayas,
received one thousand arms by worshiping Dattatreya, the plenary expansion of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Narayana. He also became undefeatable by enemies and received
unobstructed sensory power, beauty, influence, strength, fame and the mystic power by which to
achieve all the perfections of yoga, such as anima and laghima. Thus having become fully opulent, he
roamed all over the universe without opposition, just like the wind.
20. Once while enjoying in the water of the River Narmada, the puffed-up Kartaviryarjuna, surrounded
by beautiful women and garlanded with a garland of victory, stopped the flow of the water with his arms.
21. Because Kartaviryarjuna made the water flow in the opposite direction, the camp of Ravana, which
was set up on the bank of the Narmada near the city of Mahismati, was inundated. This was unbearable
to the ten-headed Ravana, who considered himself a great hero and could not tolerate Kartaviryarjuna's
power.
22. When Ravana attempted to insult Kartaviryarjuna in the presence of the women and thus offended
him, Kartaviryarjuna easily arrested Ravana and put him in custody in the city of Mahismati, just as one
captures a monkey, and then released him neglectfully.
434 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
23. Once while Kartaviryarjuna was wandering unengaged in a solitary forest and hunting, he
approached the residence of Jamadagni.
24. The sage Jamadagni, who was engaged in great austerities in the forest, received the King very
well, along with the King's soldiers, ministers and carriers. He supplied all the necessities to worship
these guests, for he possessed a kamadhenu cow that was able to supply everything.
25. Kartaviryarjuna thought that Jamadagni was more powerful and wealthy than himself because of
possessing a jewel in the form of the kamadhenu. Therefore he and his own men, the Haihayas, were
not very much appreciative of Jamadagni's reception. On the contrary, they wanted to possess that
kamadhenu, which was useful for the execution of the agnihotra sacrifice.
26. Being puffed up by material power, Kartaviryarjuna encouraged his men to steal Jamadagni's
kamadhenu. Thus the men forcibly took away the crying kamadhenu, along with her calf, to Mahismati,
Kartaviryarjuna's capital.
27. Thereafter, Kartaviryarjuna having left with the kamadhenu, Parasurama returned to the asrama.
When Parasurama, the youngest son of Jamadagni, heard about Kartaviryarjuna's nefarious deed, he
became as angry as a trampled snake.
28. Taking up his fierce chopper, his shield, his bow and a quiver of arrows, Lord Parasurama,
exceedingly angry, chased Kartaviryarjuna just as a lion chases an elephant.
29. As King Kartaviryarjuna entered his capital, Mahismati Puri, he saw Lord Parasurama, the best of
the Bhrgu dynasty, coming after him, holding a chopper, shield, bow and arrows. Lord Parasurama was
covered with a black deerskin, and his matted locks of hair appeared like the sunshine.
30. Upon seeing Parasurama, Kartaviryarjuna immediately feared him and sent many elephants,
chariots, horses and infantry soldiers equipped with clubs, swords, arrows, rstis, sataghnis, saktis, and
many similar weapons to fight against him. Kartaviryarjuna sent seventeen full aksauhinis of soldiers to
check Parasurama. But Lord Parasurama alone killed all of them.
31. Lord Parasurama, being expert in killing the military strength of the enemy, worked with the speed of
the mind and the wind, slicing his enemies with his chopper [parasu]. Wherever he went, the enemies
fell, their legs, arms and shoulders being severed, their chariot drivers killed, and their carriers, the
elephants and horses all annihilated.
32. By manipulating his axe and arrows, Lord Parasurama cut to pieces the shields, flags, bows and
bodies of Kartaviryarjuna's soldiers, who fell on the battlefield, muddying the ground with their blood.
Seeing these reverses, Kartaviryarjuna, infuriated, rushed to the battlefield.
33. Then Kartaviryarjuna, with his one thousand arms, simultaneously fixed arrows on five hundred
bows to kill Lord Parasurama. But Lord Parasurama, the best of fighters, released enough arrows with
only one bow to cut to pieces immediately all the arrows and bows in the hands of Kartaviryarjuna.
34. When his arrows were cut to pieces, Kartaviryarjuna uprooted many trees and hills with his own
hands and again rushed strongly toward Lord Parasurama to kill him. But Parasurama then used his
axe with great force to cut off Kartaviryarjuna's arms, just as one might lop off the hoods of a serpent.
35-36. Thereafter, Parasurama cut off like a mountain peak the head of Kartaviryarjuna, who had
already lost his arms. When Kartaviryarjuna's ten thousand sons saw their father killed, they all fled in
fear. Then Parasurama, having killed the enemy, released the kamadhenu, which had undergone great
suffering, and brought it back with its calf to his residence, where he gave it to his father, Jamadagni.
37. Parasurama described to his father and brothers his activities in killing Kartaviryarjuna. Upon
hearing of these deeds, Jamadagni spoke to his son as follows.
38. O great hero, my dear son Parasurama, you have unnecessarily killed the king, who is supposed to
be the embodiment of all the demigods. Thus you have committed a sin.
39. My dear son, we are all brahmanas and have become worshipable for the people in general
because of our quality of forgiveness. It is because of this quality that Lord Brahma, the supreme
spiritual master of this universe, has achieved his post.
40. The duty of a brahmana is to culture the quality of forgiveness, which is illuminating like the sun.
The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, is pleased with those who are forgiving.
41. My dear son, killing a king who is an emperor is more severely sinful than killing a brahmana. But
now, if you become Krsna conscious and worship the holy places, you can atone for this great sin.
Chapter Sixteen Lord Parasurama Destroys the World's Ruling Class
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear Maharaja Pariksit, son of the Kuru dynasty, when Lord
Parasurama was given this order by his father, he immediately agreed, saying, "Let it be so." For one
complete year he traveled to holy places. Then he returned to his father's residence.
2. Once when Renuka, the wife of Jamadagni, went to the bank of the Ganges to get water, she saw
the King of the Gandharvas, decorated with a garland of lotuses and sporting in the Ganges with
celestial women [Apsaras].
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 435
3. She had gone to bring water from the Ganges, but when she saw Citraratha, the King of the
Gandharvas, sporting with the celestial girls, she was somewhat inclined toward him and failed to
remember that the time for the fire sacrifice was passing.
4. Later, understanding that the time for offering the sacrifice had passed, Renuka feared a curse from
her husband. Therefore when she returned she simply put the waterpot before him and stood there with
folded hands.
5. The great sage Jamadagni understood the adultery in the mind of his wife. Therefore he was very
angry and told his sons, "My dear sons, kill this sinful woman!" But the sons did not carry out his order.
6. Jamadagni then ordered his youngest son, Parasurama, to kill his brothers, who had disobeyed this
order, and his mother, who had mentally committed adultery. Lord Parasurama, knowing the power of
his father, who was practiced in meditation and austerity, killed his mother and brothers immediately.
7. Jamadagni, the son of Satyavati, was very much pleased with Parasurama and asked him to take
any benediction he liked. Lord Parasurama replied, "Let my mother and brothers live again and not
remember having been killed by me. This is the benediction I ask."
8. Thereafter, by the benediction of Jamadagni, Lord Parasurama's mother and brothers immediately
came alive and were very happy, as if awakened from sound sleep. Lord Parasurama had killed his
relatives in accordance with his father's order because he was fully aware of his father's power,
austerity and learning.
9. My dear King Pariksit, the sons of Kartaviryarjuna, who were defeated by the superior strength of
Parasurama, never achieved happiness, for they always remembered the killing of their father.
10. Once when Parasurama left the asrama for the forest with Vasuman and his other brothers, the
sons of Kartaviryarjuna took the opportunity to approach Jamadagni's residence to seek vengeance for
their grudge.
11. The sons of Kartaviryarjuna were determined to commit sinful deeds. Therefore when they saw
Jamadagni sitting by the side of the fire to perform yajna and meditating upon the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, who is praised by the best of selected prayers, they took the opportunity to kill him.
12. With pitiable prayers, Renuka, the mother of Parasurama and wife of Jamadagni, begged for the life
of her husband. But the sons of Kartaviryarjuna, being devoid of the qualities of ksatriyas, were so cruel
that despite her prayers they forcibly cut off his head and took it away.
13. Lamenting in grief for the death of her husband, the most chaste Renuka struck her own body with
her hands and cried very loudly, "O Rama, my dear son Rama!"
14. Although the sons of Jamadagni, including Lord Parasurama, were a long distance from home, as
soon as they heard Renuka loudly calling "O Rama, O my son," they hastily returned to the asrama,
where they saw their father already killed.
15. Virtually bewildered by grief, anger, indignation, affliction and lamentation, the sons of Jamadagni
cried, "O father, most religious, saintly person, you have left us and gone to the heavenly planets !"
16. Thus lamenting, Lord Parasurama entrusted his father's dead body to his brothers and personally
took up his axe, having decided to put an end to all the ksatriyas on the surface of the world.
17. O King, Lord Parasurama then went to Mahismati, which was already doomed by the sinful killing of
a brahmana. In the midst of that city he made a mountain of heads, severed from the bodies of the sons
of Kartaviryarjuna.
18-19. With the blood of the bodies of these sons, Lord Parasurama created a ghastly river, which
brought great fear to the kings who had no respect for brahminical culture. Because the ksatriyas, the
men of power in government, were performing sinful activities, Lord Parasurama, on the plea of
retaliating for the murder of his father, rid all the ksatriyas from the face of the earth twenty-one times.
Indeed, in the place known as Samanta-pancaka he created nine lakes filled with their blood.
20. Thereafter, Parasurama joined his father's head to the dead body and placed the whole body and
head upon kusa grass. By offering sacrifices, he began to worship Lord Vasudeva, who is the all-
pervading Supersoul of all the demigods and of every living entity.
21-22. After completing the sacrifice, Lord Parasurama gave the eastern direction to the hota as a gift,
the south to the brahma, the west to the adhvaryu, the north to the udgata, and the four corners--
northeast, southeast, northwest and southwest--to the other priests. He gave the middle to Kasyapa
and the place known as Aryavarta to the upadrasta. Whatever remained he distributed among the
sadasyas, the associate priests.
23. Thereafter, having completed the ritualistic sacrificial ceremonies, Lord Parasurama took the bath
known as the avabhrtha-snana. Standing on the bank of the great river Sarasvati, cleared of all sins,
Lord Parasurama appeared like the sun in a clear, cloudless sky.
24. Thus Jamadagni, being worshiped by Lord Parasurama, was brought back to life with full
remembrance, and he became one of the seven sages in the group of seven stars.
436 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
25. My dear King Pariksit, in the next manvantara the lotus-eyed Personality of Godhead Lord
Parasurama, the son of Jamadagni, will be a great propounder of Vedic knowledge. In other words, he
will be one of the seven sages.
26. Lord Parasurama still lives as an intelligent brahmana in the mountainous country known as
Mahendra. Completely satisfied, having given up all the weapons of a ksatriya, he is always worshiped,
adored and offered prayers for his exalted character and activities by such celestial beings as the
Siddhas, Caranas and Gandharvas.
27. In this way the supreme soul, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Lord and the supreme
controller, descended as an incarnation in the Bhrgu dynasty and released the universe from the
burden of undesirable kings by killing them many times.
28. Visvamitra, the son of Maharaja Gadhi, was as powerful as the flames of fire. From the position of a
ksatriya, he achieved the position of a powerful brahmana by undergoing penances and austerities.
29. O King Pariksit, Visvamitra had 101 sons, of whom the middle one was known as Madhucchanda.
In relation to him, all the other sons were celebrated as the Madhucchandas.
30. Visvamitra accepted the son of Ajigarta known as Sunahsepha, who was born in the Bhrgu dynasty
and was also known as Devarata, as one of his own sons. Visvamitra ordered his other sons to accept
Sunahsepha as their eldest brother.
31. Sunahsepha's father sold Sunahsepha to be sacrificed as a man-animal in the yajna of King
Hariscandra. When Sunahsepha was brought into the sacrificial arena, he prayed to the demigods for
release and was released by their mercy.
32. Although Sunahsepha was born in the Bhargava dynasty, he was greatly advanced in spiritual life,
and therefore the demigods involved in the sacrifice protected him. Consequently he was also
celebrated as the descendant of Gadhi named Devarata.
33. When requested by their father to accept Sunahsepha as the eldest son, the elder fifty of the
Madhucchandas, the sons of Visvamitra, did not agree. Therefore Visvamitra, being angry, cursed
them. "May all of you bad sons become mlecchas," he said, "being opposed to the principles of Vedic
culture."
34. When the elder Madhucchandas were cursed, the younger fifty, along with Madhucchanda himself,
approached their father and agreed to accept his proposal. "Dear father," they said, "we shall abide by
whatever arrangement you like."
35. Thus the younger Madhucchandas accepted Sunahsepha as their eldest brother and told him, "We
shall follow your orders." Visvamitra then said to his obedient sons, "Because you have accepted
Sunahsepha as your eldest brother, I am very satisfied. By accepting my order, you have made me a
father of worthy sons, and therefore I bless all of you to become the fathers of sons also."
36. Visvamitra said, "O Kusikas [descendants of Kausika], this Devarata is my son and is one of you.
Please obey his orders." O King Pariksit, Visvamitra had many other sons, such as Astaka, Harita, Jaya
and Kratuman.
37. Visvamitra cursed some of his sons and blessed the others, and he also adopted a son. Thus there
were varieties in the Kausika dynasty, but among all the sons, Devarata was considered the eldest.
Chapter Seventeen The Dynasties of the Sons of Pururava
1-3. Sukadeva Gosvami said: From Pururava came a son named Ayu, whose very powerful sons were
Nahusa, Ksatravrddha, Raji, Rabha and Anena. O Maharaja Pariksit, now hear about the dynasty of
Ksatravrddha. Ksatravrddha's son was Suhotra, who had three sons, named Kasya, Kusa and
Grtsamada. From Grtsamada came Sunaka, and from him came Saunaka, the great saint, the best of
those conversant with the Rg Veda.
4. The son of Kasya was Kasi, and his son was Rastra, the father of Dirghatama. Dirghatama had a son
named Dhanvantari, who was the inaugurator of the medical science and an incarnation of Lord
Vasudeva, the enjoyer of the results of sacrifices. One who remembers the name of Dhanvantari can be
released from all disease.
5. The son of Dhanvantari was Ketuman, and his son was Bhimaratha. The son of Bhimaratha was
Divodasa, and the son of Divodasa was Dyuman, also known as Pratardana.
6. Dyuman was also known as Satrujit, Vatsa, Rtadhvaja and Kuvalayasva. From him were born Alarka
and other sons.
7. Alarka, the son of Dyuman, reigned over the earth for sixty-six thousand years, my dear King Pariksit.
No one other than him has reigned over the earth for so long as a young man.
8. From Alarka came a son named Santati, and his son was Sunitha. The son of Sunitha was Niketana,
the son of Niketana was Dharmaketu, and the son of Dharmaketu was Satyaketu.
9. O King Pariksit, from Satyaketu came a son named Dhrstaketu, and from Dhrstaketu came
Sukumara, the emperor of the entire world. From Sukumara came a son named Vitihotra; from
Vitihotra, Bharga; and from Bharga, Bhargabhumi.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 437
10. O Maharaja Pariksit, all of these kings were descendants of Kasi, and they could also be called
descendants of Ksatravrddha. The son of Rabha was Rabhasa, from Rabhasa came Gambhira, and
from Gambhira came a son named Akriya.
11. The son of Akriya was known as Brahmavit, O King. Now hear about the descendants of Anena.
From Anena came a son named Suddha, and his son was Suci. The son of Suci was Dharmasarathi,
also called Citrakrt.
12. From Citrakrt was born a son named Santaraja, a self-realized soul who performed all kinds of
Vedic ritualistic ceremonies and therefore did not beget any progeny. The sons of Raji were five
hundred, all very powerful.
13. On the request of the demigods, Raji killed the demons and thus returned the kingdom of heaven to
Lord Indra. But Indra, fearing such demons as Prahlada, returned the kingdom of heaven to Raji and
surrendered himself at Raji's lotus feet.
14. Upon Raji's death, Indra begged Raji's sons for the return of the heavenly planet. They did not
return it, however, although they agreed to return Indra's shares in ritualistic ceremonies.
15. Thereafter, Brhaspati, the spiritual master of the demigods, offered oblations in the fire so that the
sons of Raji would fall from moral principles. When they fell, Lord Indra killed them easily because of
their degradation. Not a single one of them remained alive.
16. From Kusa, the grandson of Ksatravrddha, was born a son named Prati. The son of Prati was
Sanjaya, and the son of Sanjaya was Jaya. From Jaya, Krta was born, and from Krta, King Haryabala.
17. From Haryabala came a son named Sahadeva, and from Sahadeva came Hina. The son of Hina
was Jayasena, and the son of Jayasena was Sankrti. The son of Sankrti was the powerful and expert
fighter named Jaya. These kings were the members of the Ksatravrddha dynasty. Now let me describe
to you the dynasty of Nahusa.
Chapter Eighteen King Yayati Regains His Youth
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, as the embodied soul has six senses, King Nahusa had six
sons, named Yati, Yayati, Samyati, Ayati, Viyati and Krti.
2. When one enters the post of king or head of the government, one cannot understand the meaning of
self-realization. Knowing this, Yati, the eldest son of Nahusa, did not accept the power to rule, although
it was offered by his father.
3. Because Nahusa, the father of Yayati, molested Indra's wife, Saci, who then complained to Agastya
and other brahmanas, these saintly brahmanas cursed Nabusa to fall from the heavenly planets and be
degraded to the status of a python. Consequently, Yayati became the king.
4. King Yayati had four younger brothers, whom he allowed to rule the four directions. Yayati himself
married Devayani, the daughter of Sukracarya, and Sarmistha, the daughter of Vrsaparva, and ruled
the entire earth.
5. Maharaja Pariksit said: Sukracarya was a very powerful brahmana, and Maharaja Yayati was a
ksatriya. Therefore I am curious to know how there occurred this pratiloma marriage between a ksatriya
and a brahmana.
6-7. Sukadeva Gosvami said: One day Vrsaparva's daughter Sarmistha, who was innocent but angry
by nature, was walking with Devayani, the daughter of Sukracarya, and with thousands of friends, in the
palace garden. The garden was full of lotuses and trees of flowers and fruits and was inhabited by
sweetly singing birds and bumblebees.
8. When the young, lotus-eyed girls came to the bank of a reservoir of water, they wanted to enjoy by
bathing. Thus they left their clothing on the bank and began sporting, throwing water on one another.
9. While sporting in the water, the girls suddenly saw Lord Siva passing by, seated on the back of his
bull with his wife, Parvati. Ashamed because they were naked, the girls quickly got out of the water and
covered themselves with their garments.
10. Sarmistha unknowingly put Devayani's dress on her own body, thus angering Devayani, who then
spoke as follows.
11. Oh, just see the activities of this servant-maid Sarmistha! Disregarding all etiquette, she has put on
my dress, just like a dog snatching clarified butter meant for use in a sacrifice.
12-14. We are among the qualified brahmanas, who are accepted as the face of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. The brahmanas have created the entire universe by their austerity, and they
always keep the Absolute Truth within the core of their hearts. They have directed the path of good
fortune, the path of Vedic civilization, and because they are the only worshipable objects within this
world, they are offered prayers and worshiped even by the great demigods, the directors of the various
planets, and even by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Supersoul, the supreme purifier, the
husband of the goddess of fortune. And we are even more respectable because we are in the dynasty
of Bhrgu. Yet although this woman's father, being among the demons, is our disciple, she has put on
my dress, exactly like a sudra taking charge of Vedic knowledge.
438 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When thus rebuked in cruel words, Sarmistha was very angry. Breathing
heavily like a serpent and biting her lower lip with her teeth, she spoke to the daughter of Sukracarya as
follows.
16. You beggar, since you don't understand your position, why should you unnecessarily talk so much?
Don't all of you wait at our house, depending on us for your livelihood like crows?
17. Using such unkind words, Sarmistha rebuked Devayani, the daughter of Sukracarya. In anger, she
took away Devayani's garments and threw Devayani into a well.
18. After throwing Devayani into the well, Sarmistha went home. Meanwhile, King Yayati, while
engaged in a hunting excursion, went to the well to drink water and by chance saw Devayani.
19. Seeing Devayani naked in the well, King Yayati immediately gave her his upper cloth. Being very
kind to her, he caught her hand with his own and lifted her out.
20-21. With words saturated with love and affection, Devayani said to King Yayati: O great hero, O
King, conqueror of the cities of your enemies, by accepting my hand you have accepted me as your
married wife. Let me not be touched by others, for our relationship as husband and wife has been made
possible by providence, not by any human being.
22. Because of falling in the well, I met you. Indeed, this has been arranged by providence. After I
cursed Kaca, the son of the learned scholar Brhaspati, he cursed me by saying that I would not have a
brahmana for a husband. Therefore, O mighty-armed one, there is no possibility of my becoming the
wife of a brahmana.
23. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Because such a marriage is not sanctioned by regular scriptures,
King Yayati did not like it, but because it was arranged by providence and because he was attracted by
Devayani's beauty, he accepted her request.
24. Thereafter, when the learned King returned to his palace, Devayani returned home crying and told
her father, Sukracarya, about all that had happened because of Sarmistha. She told how she had been
thrown into the well but was saved by the King.
25. As Sukracarya listened to what had happened to Devayani, his mind was very much aggrieved.
Condemning the profession of priesthood and praising the profession of uncha-vrtti [collecting grains
from the fields], he left home with his daughter.
26. King Vrsaparva understood that Sukracarya was coming to chastise or curse him. Consequently,
before Sukracarya came to his house, Vrsaparva went out and fell down in the street at the feet of his
guru and satisfied him, checking his wrath.
27. The powerful Sukracarya was angry for a few moments, but upon being satisfied he said to
Vrsaparva: My dear King, kindly fulfill the desire of Devayani, for she is my daughter and in this world I
cannot give her up or neglect her.
28. After hearing Sukracarya's request, Vrsaparva agreed to fulfill Devayani's desire, and he awaited
her words. Devayani then expressed her desire as follows: "Whenever I marry by the order of my father,
my friend Sarmistha must go with me as my maidservant, along with her friends."
29. Vrsaparva wisely thought that Sukracarya's displeasure would bring danger and that his pleasure
would bring material gain. Therefore he carried out Sukracarya's order and served him like a slave. He
gave his daughter Sarmistha to Devayani, and Sarmistha served Devayani like a slave, along with
thousands of other women.
30. When Sukracarya gave Devayani in marriage to Yayati, he had Sarmistha go with her, but he
warned the King, "My dear King, never allow this girl Sarmistha to lie with you in your bed."
31. O King Pariksit, upon seeing Devayani with a nice son, Sarmistha once approached King Yayati at
the appropriate time for conception. In a secluded place, she requested the King, the husband of her
friend Devayani, to enable her to have a son also.
32. When Princess Sarmistha begged King Yayati for a son, the King was certainly aware of the
principles of religion, and therefore he agreed to fulfill her desire. Although he remembered the warning
of Sukracarya, he thought of this union as the desire of the Supreme, and thus he had sex with
Sarmistha.
33. Devayani gave birth to Yadu and Turvasu, and Sarmistha gave birth to Druhyu, Anu and Puru.
34. When the proud Devayani understood from outside sources that Sarmistha was pregnant by her
husband, she was frenzied with anger. Thus she departed for her father's house.
35. King Yayati, who was very lusty, followed his wife, caught her and tried to appease her by speaking
pleasing words and massaging her feet, but he could not satisfy her by any means.
36. Sukracarya was extremely angry. "You untruthful fool, lusting after women! You have done a great
wrong," he said. "I therefore curse you to be attacked and disfigured by old age and invalidity."
37. King Yayati said, "O learned, worshipable brahmana, I have not yet satisfied my lusty desires with
your daughter." Sukracarya then replied, "You may exchange your old age with someone who will
agree to transfer his youth to you."
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 439
38. When Yayati received this benediction from Sukracarya, he requested his eldest son: My dear son
Yadu, please give me your youth in exchange for my old age and invalidity.
39. My dear son, I am not yet satisfied in my sexual desires. But if you are kind to me, you can take the
old age given by your maternal grandfather, and I may take your youth so that I may enjoy life for a few
years more.
40. Yadu replied: My dear father, you have already achieved old age, although you also were a young
man. But I do not welcome your old age and invalidity, for unless one enjoys material happiness, one
cannot attain renunciation.
41. O Maharaja Pariksit, Yayati similarly requested his sons Turvasu, Druhyu and Anu to exchange
their youth for his old age, but because they were unaware of religious principles, they thought that their
flickering youth was eternal, and therefore they refused to carry out their father's order.
42. King Yayati then requested Puru, who was younger than these three brothers but more qualified,
"My dear son, do not be disobedient like your elder brothers, for that is not your duty."
43. Puru replied: O Your Majesty, who in this world can repay his debt to his father? By the mercy of
one's father, one gets the human form of life, which can enable one to become an associate of the
Supreme Lord.
44. A son who acts by anticipating what his father wants him to do is first class, one who acts upon
receiving his father's order is second class, and one who executes his father's order irreverently is third
class. But a son who refuses his father's order is like his father's stool.
45. Sukadeva Gosvami said: In this way, O Maharaja Pariksit, the son named Puru was very pleased to
accept the old age of his father, Yayati, who took the youth of his son and enjoyed this material world as
he required.
46. Thereafter, King Yayati became the ruler of the entire world, consisting of seven islands, and ruled
the citizens exactly like a father. Because he had taken the youth of his son, his senses were
unimpaired, and he enjoyed as much material happiness as he desired.
47. In secluded places, engaging her mind, words, body and various paraphernalia, Devayani, the dear
wife of Maharaja Yayati, always brought her husband the greatest possible transcendental bliss.
48. King Yayati performed various sacrifices, in which he offered abundant gifts to the brahmanas to
satisfy the Supreme Lord, Hari, who is the reservoir of all the demigods and the object of all Vedic
knowledge.
49. The Supreme Lord, Vasudeva, who created the cosmic manifestation, exhibits Himself as all-
pervading, like the sky that holds clouds. And when the creation is annihilated, everything enters into
the Supreme Lord, Visnu, and varieties are no longer manifested.
50. Without material desires, Maharaja Yayati worshiped the Supreme Lord, who is situated in
everyone's heart as Narayana and is invisible to material eyes, although existing everywhere.
51. Although Maharaja Yayati was the king of the entire world and he engaged his mind and five senses
in enjoying material possessions for one thousand years, he was unable to be satisfied.
Chapter Nineteen King Yayati Achieves Liberation
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O Maharaja Pariksit, Yayati was very much attached to woman. In due
course of time, however, when disgusted with sexual enjoyment and its bad effects, he renounced this
way of life and narrated the following story to his beloved wife.
2. My dearly beloved wife, daughter of Sukracarya, in this world there was someone exactly like me.
Please listen as I narrate the history of his life. By hearing about the life of such a householder, those
who have retired from householder life always lament.
3. While wandering in the forest, eating to satisfy his senses, a he-goat by chance approached a well, in
which he saw a she-goat standing helplessly, having fallen into it by the influence of the results of
fruitive activities.
4. After planning how to get the she-goat out of the well, the lusty he-goat dug up the earth on the well's
edge with the point of his horns in such a way that she was able to come out very easily.
5-6. When the she-goat, who had very nice hips, got out of the well and saw the very handsome he-
goat, she desired to accept him as her husband. When she did so, many other she-goats also desired
him as their husband because he had a very beautiful bodily structure and a nice mustache and beard
and was expert in discharging semen and in the art of sexual intercourse. Therefore, just as a person
haunted by a ghost exhibits madness, the best of the he-goats, attracted by the many she-goats,
engaged in erotic activities and naturally forgot his real business of self-realization.
7. When the she-goat who had fallen into the well saw her beloved goat engaged in sexual affairs with
another she-goat, she could not tolerate the goat's activities.
8. Aggrieved by her husband's behavior with another, the she-goat thought that the he-goat was not
actually her friend but was hardhearted and was her friend only for the time being. Therefore, because
her husband was lusty, she left him and returned to her former maintainer.
440 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
9. Being very sorry, the he-goat, who was subservient to his wife, followed the she-goat on the road and
tried his best to flatter her, but he could not pacify her.
10. The she-goat went to the residence of a brahmana who was the maintainer of another she-goat,
and that brahmana angrily cut off the he-goat's dangling testicles. But at the he-goat's request, the
brahmana later rejoined them by the power of mystic yoga.
11. My dear wife, when the he-goat had his testicles restored, he enjoyed the she-goat he had gotten
from the well, but although he continued to enjoy for many, many years, even now he has not been fully
satisfied.
12. O my dear wife with beautiful eyebrows, I am exactly like that he-goat, for I am so poor in
intelligence that I am captivated by your beauty and have forgotten the real task of self-realization.
13. A person who is lusty cannot satisfy his mind even if he has enough of everything in this world,
including rice, barley and other food grains, gold, animals and women. Nothing can satisfy him.
14. As supplying butter to a fire does not diminish the fire but instead increases it more and more, the
endeavor to stop lusty desires by continual enjoyment can never be successful. [In fact, one must
voluntarily cease from material desires.]
15. When a man is nonenvious and does not desire ill fortune for anyone, he is equipoised. For such a
person, all directions appear happy.
16. For those who are too attached to material enjoyment, sense gratification is very difficult to give up.
Even when one is an invalid because of old age, one cannot give up such desires for sense
gratification. Therefore, one who actually desires happiness must give up such unsatisfied desires,
which are the cause of all tribulations.
17. One should not allow oneself to sit on the same seat even with one's own mother, sister or
daughter, for the senses are so strong that even though one is very advanced in knowledge, he may be
attracted by sex.
18. I have spent a full one thousand years enjoying sense gratification, yet my desire to enjoy such
pleasure increases daily.
19. Therefore, I shall now give up all these desires and meditate upon the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. Free from the dualities of mental concoction and free from false prestige, I shall wander in the
forest with the animals.
20. One who knows that material happiness, whether good or bad, in this life or in the next, on this
planet or on the heavenly planets, is temporary and useless, and that an intelligent person should not
try to enjoy or even think of such things, is the knower of the self. Such a self-realized person knows
quite well that material happiness is the very cause of continued material existence and forgetfulness of
one's own constitutional position.
21. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After speaking in this way to his wife, Devayani, King Yayati, who was
now free from all material desires, called his youngest son, Puru, and returned Puru's youth in
exchange for his own old age.
22. King Yayati gave the southeast to his son Druhyu, the south to his son Yadu, the west to his son
Turvasu, and the north to his son Anu. In this way he divided the kingdom.
23. Yayati enthroned his youngest son, Puru, as the emperor of the entire world and the proprietor of all
its riches, and he placed all the other sons, who were older than Puru, under Puru's control.
24. Having enjoyed sense gratification for many, many years, O King Pariksit, Yayati was accustomed
to it, but he gave it up entirely in a moment, just as a bird flies away from the nest as soon as its wings
have grown.
25. Because King Yayati completely surrendered unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva,
he was freed from all contamination of the material modes of nature. Because of his self-realization, he
was able to fix his mind upon the Transcendence [Parabrahman, Vasudeva], and thus he ultimately
achieved the position of an associate of the Lord.
26. When Devayani heard Maharaja Yayati's story of the he-goat and she-goat, she understood that
this story, which was presented as if a funny joke for entertainment between husband and wife, was
intended to awaken her to her constitutional position.
27-28. Thereafter, Devayani, the daughter of Sukracarya, understood that the materialistic association
of husband, friends and relatives is like the association in a hotel full of tourists. The relationships of
society, friendship and love are created by the maya of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, exactly
as in a dream. By the grace of Krsna, Devayani gave up her imaginary position in the material world.
Completely fixing her mind upon Krsna, she achieved liberation from the gross and subtle bodies.
29. O Lord Vasudeva, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, You are the creator of the entire cosmic
manifestation. You live as the Supersoul in everyone's heart and are smaller than the smallest, yet You
are greater than the greatest and are all-pervading. You appear completely silent, having nothing to do,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 441
but this is due to Your all-pervading nature and Your fullness in all opulences. I therefore offer my
respectful obeisances unto You.
Chapter Twenty The Dynasty of Puru
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O Maharaja Pariksit, descendant of Maharaja Bharata, I shall now describe
the dynasty of Puru, in which you were born, in which many saintly kings appeared, and from which
many dynasties of brahmanas began.
2. King Janamejaya was born of this dynasty of Puru. Janamejaya's son was Pracinvan, and his son
was Pravira. Thereafter, Pravira's son was Manusyu, and from Manusyu came the son named
Carupada.
3. The son of Carupada was Sudyu, and the son of Sudyu was Bahugava. Bahugava's son was
Samyati. From Samyati came a son named Ahamyati, from whom Raudrasva was born.
4-5. Raudrasva had ten sons, named Rteyu, Kakseyu, Sthandileyu, Krteyuka, Jaleyu, Sannateyu,
Dharmeyu, Satyeyu, Vrateyu and Vaneyu. Of these ten sons, Vaneyu was the youngest. As the ten
senses, which are products of the universal life, act under the control of life, these ten sons of
Raudrasva acted under Raudrasva's full control. All of them were born of the Apsara named Ghrtaci.
6. Rteyu had a son named Rantinava, who had three sons, named Sumati, Dhruva and Apratiratha.
Apratiratha had only one son, whose name was Kanva.
7. The son of Kanva was Medhatithi, whose sons, all brahmanas, were headed by Praskanna. The son
of Rantinava named Sumati had a son named Rebhi. Maharaja Dusmanta is well known as the son of
Rebhi.
8-9. Once when King Dusmanta went to the forest to hunt and was very much fatigued, he approached
the residence of Kanva Muni. There he saw a most beautiful woman who looked exactly like the
goddess of fortune and who sat there illuminating the entire asrama by her effulgence. The King was
naturally attracted by her beauty, and therefore he approached her, accompanied by some of his
soldiers, and spoke to her.
10. Seeing the beautiful woman, the King was very much enlivened, and the fatigue of his hunting
excursion was relieved. He was of course very much attracted because of lusty desires, and thus he
inquired from her as follows, in a joking mood.
11. O beautiful lotus-eyed woman, who are you? Whose daughter are you? What purpose do you have
in this solitary forest? Why are you staying here?
12. O most beautiful one, it appears to my mind that you must be the daughter of a ksatriya. Because I
belong to the Puru dynasty, my mind never endeavors to enjoy anything irreligiously.
13. Sakuntala said: I am the daughter of Visvamitra. My mother, Menaka, left me in the forest. O hero,
the most powerful saint Kanva Muni knows all about this. Now let me know, how may I serve you?
14. O King with eyes like the petals of a lotus, kindly come sit down and accept whatever reception we
can offer. We have a supply of nivara rice that you may kindly take. And if you so desire, stay here
without hesitation.
15. King Dusmanta replied: O Sakuntala, with beautiful eyebrows, you have taken your birth in the
family of the great saint Visvamitra, and your reception is quite worthy of your family. Aside from this,
the daughters of a king generally select their own husbands.
16. When Sakuntala responded to Maharaja Dusmanta's proposal with silence, the agreement was
complete. Then the King, who knew the laws of marriage, immediately married her by chanting the
Vedic pranava [omkara], in accordance with the marriage ceremony as performed among the
Gandharvas.
17. King Dusmanta, who never discharged semen without a result, placed his semen at night in the
womb of his Queen, Sakuntala, and in the morning he returned to his palace. Thereafter, in due course
of time, Sakuntala gave birth to a son.
18. In the forest, Kanva Muni performed all the ritualistic ceremonies concerning the newborn child.
Later, the boy became so powerful that he would capture a lion and play with it.
19. Sakuntala, the best of beautiful women, along with her son, whose strength was insurmountable
and who was a partial expansion of the Supreme Godhead, approached her husband, Dusmanta.
20. When the King refused to accept his wife and son, who were both irreproachable, an unembodied
voice spoke from the sky as an omen and was heard by everyone present.
21. The voice said: O Maharaja Dusmanta, a son actually belongs to his father, whereas the mother is
only a container, like the skin of a bellows. According to Vedic injunctions, the father is born as the son.
Therefore, maintain your own son and do not insult Sakuntala.
22. O King Dusmanta, he who discharges semen is the actual father, and his son saves him from the
custody of Yamaraja. You are the actual procreator of this child. Indeed, Sakuntala is speaking the
truth.
442 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
23. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When Maharaja Dusmanta passed away from this earth, his son became
the emperor of the world, the proprietor of the seven islands. He is referred to as a partial
representation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead in this world.
24-26. Maharaja Bharata, the son of Dusmanta, had the mark of Lord Krsna's disc on the palm of his
right hand, and he had the mark of a lotus whorl on the soles of his feet. By worshiping the Supreme
Personality of Godhead with a grand ritualistic ceremony, he became the emperor and master of the
entire world. Then, under the priesthood of Mamateya, Bhrgu Muni, he performed fifty-five horse
sacrifices on the bank of the Ganges, beginning from its mouth and ending at its source, and seventy-
eight horse sacrifices on the bank of the Yamuna, beginning from the confluence at Prayaga and
ending at the source. He established the sacrificial fire on an excellent site, and he distributed great
wealth to the brahmanas. Indeed, he distributed so many cows that each of thousands of brahmanas
had one badva [13,084] as his share.
27. Bharata, the son of Maharaja Dusmanta, bound thirty-three hundred horses for those sacrifices, and
thus he astonished all other kings. He surpassed even the opulence of the demigods, for he achieved
the supreme spiritual master, Hari.
28. When Maharaja Bharata performed the sacrifice known as Masnara [or a sacrifice in the place
known as Masnara], he gave in charity fourteen lakhs of excellent elephants with white tusks and black
bodies, completely covered with golden ornaments.
29. As one cannot approach the heavenly planets simply by the strength of his arms (for who can touch
the heavenly planets with his hands?), one cannot imitate the wonderful activities of Maharaja Bharata.
No one could perform such activities in the past, nor will anyone be able to do so in the future.
30. When Maharaja Bharata was on tour, he defeated or killed all the Kiratas, Hunas, Yavanas,
Paundras, Kankas, Khasas, Sakas and the kings who were opposed to the Vedic principles of
brahminical culture.
31. Formerly, after conquering the demigods, all the demons had taken shelter in the lower planetary
system known as Rasatala and had brought all the wives and daughters of the demigods there also.
Maharaja Bharata, however, rescued all those women, along with their associates, from the clutches of
the demons, and he returned them to the demigods.
32. Maharaja Bharata provided all necessities for his subjects, both on this earth and in the heavenly
planets, for twenty-seven thousand years. He circulated his orders and distributed his soldiers in all
directions.
33. As the ruler of the entire universe, Emperor Bharata had the opulences of a great kingdom and
unconquerable soldiers. His sons and family had seemed to him to be his entire life. But finally he
thought of all this as an impediment to spiritual advancement, and therefore he ceased from enjoying it.
34. O King Pariksit, Maharaja Bharata had three pleasing wives, who were daughters of the King of
Vidarbha. When all three of them bore children who did not resemble the King, these wives thought that
he would consider them unfaithful queens and reject them, and therefore they killed their own sons.
35. The King, his attempt for progeny frustrated in this way, performed a sacrifice named marut-stoma
to get a son. The demigods known as the Maruts, being fully satisfied with him, then presented him a
son named Bharadvaja.
36. When the demigod named Brhaspati was attracted by his brother's wife, Mamata, who at that time
was pregnant, he desired to have sexual relations with her. The son within her womb forbid this, but
Brhaspati cursed him and forcibly discharged semen into the womb of Mamata.
37. Mamata very much feared being forsaken by her husband for giving birth to an illegitimate son, and
therefore she considered giving up the child. But then the demigods solved the problem by enunciating
a name for the child.
38. Brhaspati said to Mamata, "You foolish woman, although this child was born from the wife of one
man through the semen discharged by another, you should maintain him." Upon hearing this, Mamata
replied, "O Brhaspati, you maintain him!" After speaking in this way, Brhaspati and Mamata both left.
Thus the child was known as Bharadvaja.
39. Although encouraged by the demigods to maintain the child, Mamata considered him useless
because of his illicit birth, and therefore she left him. Consequently, the demigods known as the Maruts
maintained the child, and when Maharaja Bharata was disappointed for want of a child, this child was
given to him as his son.
Chapter Twenty-one The Dynasty of Bharata
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Because Bharadvaja was delivered by the Marut demigods, he was known
as Vitatha. The son of Vitatha was Manyu, and from Manyu came five sons--Brhatksatra, Jaya,
Mahavirya, Nara and Garga. Of these five, the one known as Nara had a son named Sankrti.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 443
2. O Maharaja Pariksit, descendant of Pandu, Sankrti had two sons, named Guru and Rantideva.
Rantideva is famous in both this world and the next, for he is glorified not only in human society but also
in the society of the demigods.
3-5. Rantideva never endeavored to earn anything. He would enjoy whatever he got by the
arrangement of providence, but when guests came he would give them everything. Thus he underwent
considerable suffering, along with the members of his family. Indeed, he and his family members
shivered for want of food and water, yet Rantideva always remained sober. Once, after fasting for forty-
eight days, in the morning Rantideva received some water and some foodstuffs made with milk and
ghee, but when he and his family were about to eat, a brahmana guest arrived.
6. Because Rantideva perceived the presence of the Supreme Godhead everywhere, and in every
living entity, he received the guest with faith and respect and gave him a share of the food. The
brahmana guest ate his share and then went away.
7. Thereafter, having divided the remaining food with his relatives, Rantideva was just about to eat his
own share when a sudra guest arrived. Seeing the sudra in relationship with the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, King Rantideva gave him also a share of the food.
8. When the sudra went away, another guest arrived, surrounded by dogs, and said, "O King, I and my
company of dogs are very hungry. Please give us something to eat."
9. With great respect, King Rantideva offered the balance of the food to the dogs and the master of the
dogs, who had come as guests. The King offered them all respects and obeisances.
10. Thereafter, only the drinking water remained, and there was only enough to satisfy one person, but
when the King was just about to drink it, a candala appeared and said, "O King, although I am lowborn,
kindly give me some drinking water."
11. Aggrieved at hearing the pitiable words of the poor fatigued candala, Maharaja Rantideva spoke the
following nectarean words.
12. I do not pray to the Supreme Personality of Godhead for the eight perfections of mystic yoga, nor for
salvation from repeated birth and death. I want only to stay among all the living entities and suffer all
distresses on their behalf, so that they may be freed from suffering.
13. By offering my water to maintain the life of this poor candala, who is struggling to live, I have been
freed from all hunger, thirst, fatigue, trembling of the body, moroseness, distress, lamentation and
illusion.
14. Having spoken thus, King Rantideva, although on the verge of death because of thirst, gave his own
portion of water to the candala without hesitation, for the King was naturally very kind and sober.
15. Demigods like Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, who can satisfy all materially ambitious men by giving
them the rewards they desire, then manifested their own identities before King Rantideva, for it was
they who had presented themselves as the brahmana, sudra, candala and so on.
16. King Rantideva had no ambition to enjoy material benefits from the demigods. He offered them
obeisances, but because he was factually attached to Lord Visnu, Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, he fixed his mind at Lord Visnu's lotus feet.
17. O Maharaja Pariksit, because King Rantideva was a pure devotee, always Krsna conscious and
free from all material desires, the Lord's illusory energy, maya, could not exhibit herself before him. On
the contrary, for him maya entirely vanished, exactly like a dream.
18. All those who followed the principles of King Rantideva were totally favored by his mercy and
became pure devotees, attached to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana. Thus they all
became the best of yogis.
19-20. From Garga came a son named Sini, and his son was Gargya. Although Gargya was a ksatriya,
there came from him a generation of brahmanas. From Mahavirya came a son named Duritaksaya,
whose sons were Trayyaruni, Kavi and Puskararuni. Although these sons of Duritaksaya took birth in a
dynasty of ksatriyas, they too attained the position of brahmanas. Brhatksatra had a son named Hasti,
who established the city of Hastinapura [now New Delhi].
21. From King Hasti came three sons, named Ajamidha, Dvimidha and Purumidha. The descendants of
Ajamidha, headed by Priyamedha, all achieved the position of brahmanas.
22. From Ajamidha came a son named Brhadisu, from Brhadisu came a son named Brhaddhanu, from
Brhaddhanu a son named Brhatkaya, and from Brhatkaya a son named Jayadratha.
23. The son of Jayadratha was Visada, and his son was Syenajit. The sons of Syenajit were Rucirasva,
Krdhahanu, Kasya and Vatsa.
24. The son of Rucirasva was Para, and the sons of Para were Prthusena and Nipa. Nipa had one
hundred sons.
25. King Nipa begot a son named Brahmadatta through the womb of his wife, Krtvi, who was the
daughter of Suka. And Brahmadatta, who was a great yogi, begot a son named Visvaksena through the
womb of his wife, Sarasvati.
444 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
26. Following the instructions of the great sage Jaigisavya, Visvaksena compiled an elaborate
description of the mystic yoga system. From Visvaksena, Udaksena was born, and from Udaksena,
Bhallata. All these sons are known as descendants of Brhadisu.
27. The son of Dvimidha was Yavinara, whose son was Krtiman. The son of Krtiman was well known as
Satyadhrti. From Satyadhrti came a son named Drdhanemi, who became the father of Suparsva.
28-29. From Suparsva came a son named Sumati, from Sumati came Sannatiman, and from
Sannatiman came Krti, who achieved mystic power from Brahma and taught six samhitas of the
Pracyasama verses of the Sama Veda. The son of Krti was Nipa; the son of Nipa, Udgrayudha; the son
of Udgrayudha, Ksemya; the son of Ksemya, Suvira; and the son of Suvira, Ripunjaya.
30. From Ripunjaya came a son named Bahuratha. Purumidha was sonless. Ajamidha had a son
named Nila by his wife known as Nalini, and the son of Nila was Santi.
31-33. The son of Santi was Susanti, the son of Susanti was Puruja, and the son of Puruja was Arka.
From Arka came Bharmyasva, and from Bharmyasva came five sons--Mudgala, Yavinara, Brhadvisva,
Kampilla and Sanjaya. Bharmyasva prayed to his sons, "O my sons, please take charge of my five
states, for you are quite competent to do so." Thus his five sons were known as the Pancalas. From
Mudgala came a dynasty of brahmanas known as Maudgalya.
34. Mudgala, the son of Bharmyasva, had twin children, one male and the other female. The male child
was named Divodasa, and the female child was named Ahalya. From the womb of Ahalya by the
semen of her husband, Gautama, came a son named Satananda.
35. The son of Satananda was Satyadhrti, who was expert in archery, and the son of Satyadhrti was
Saradvan. When Saradvan met Urvasi, he discharged semen, which fell on a clump of sara grass.
From this semen were born two all-auspicious babies, one male and the other female.
36. While Maharaja Santanu was on a hunting excursion, he saw the male and female children lying in
the forest, and out of compassion he took them home. Consequently, the male child was known as
Krpa, and the female child was named Krpi. Krpi later became the wife of Dronacarya.
Chapter Twenty-two The Descendants of Ajamidha
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, the son of Divodasa was Mitrayu, and from Mitrayu came four
sons, named Cyavana, Sudasa, Sahadeva and Somaka. Somaka was the father of Jantu.
2. Somaka had one hundred sons, of whom the youngest was Prsata. From Prsata was born King
Drupada, who was opulent in all supremacy.
3. From Maharaja Drupada, Draupadi was born. Maharaja Drupada also had many sons, headed by
Dhrstadyumna. From Dhrstadyumna came a son named Dhrstaketu. All these personalities are known
as descendants of Bharmyasva or as the dynasty of Pancala.
4-5. Another son of Ajamidha was known as Rksa. From Rksa came a son named Samvarana, and
from Samvarana through the womb of his wife, Tapati, the daughter of the sun-god, came Kuru, the
King of Kuruksetra. Kuru had four sons--Pariksi, Sudhanu, Jahnu and Nisadha. From Sudhanu, Suhotra
was born, and from Suhotra, Cyavana. From Cyavana, Krti was born.
6. The son of Krti was Uparicara Vasu, and among his sons, headed by Brhadratha, were Kusamba,
Matsya, Pratyagra and Cedipa. All the sons of Uparicara Vasu became rulers of the Cedi state.
7. From Brhadratha, Kusagra was born; from Kusagra, Rsabha; and from Rsabha, Satyahita. The son
of Satyahita was Puspavan, and the son of Puspavan was Jahu.
8. Through the womb of another wife, Brhadratha begot two halves of a son. When the mother saw
those two halves she rejected them, but later a she-demon named Jara playfully joined them and said,
"Come to life, come to life!" Thus the son named Jarasandha was born.
9. From Jarasandha came a son named Sahadeva; from Sahadeva, Somapi; and from Somapi,
Srutasrava. The son of Kuru called Pariksi had no sons, but the son of Kuru called Jahnu had a son
named Suratha.
10. From Suratha came a son named Viduratha, from whom Sarvabhauma was born. From
Sarvabhauma came Jayasena; from Jayasena, Radhika; and from Radhika, Ayutayu.
11. From Ayutayu came a son named Akrodhana, and his son was Devatithi. The son of Devatithi was
Rksa, the son of Rksa was Dilipa, and the son of Dilipa was Pratipa.
12-13. The sons of Pratipa were Devapi, Santanu and Bahlika. Devapi left the kingdom of his father and
went to the forest, and therefore Santanu became the king. Santanu, who in his previous birth was
known as Mahabhisa, had the ability to transform anyone from old age to youth simply by touching that
person with his hands.
14-15. Because the King was able to make everyone happy for sense gratification, primarily by the
touch of his hand, his name was Santanu. Once, when there was no rainfall in the kingdom for twelve
years and the King consulted his learned brahminical advisors, they said, "You are faulty for enjoying
the property of your elder brother. For the elevation of your kingdom and home, you should return the
kingdom to him."
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 445
16-17. When the brahmanas said this, Maharaja Santanu went to the forest and requested his elder
brother Devapi to take charge of the kingdom, for it is the duty of a king to maintain his subjects.
Previously, however, Santanu's minister Asvavara had instigated some brahmanas to induce Devapi to
transgress the injunctions of the Vedas and thus make himself unfit for the post of ruler. The brahmanas
deviated Devapi from the path of the Vedic principles, and therefore when asked by Santanu he did not
agree to accept the post of ruler. On the contrary, he blasphemed the Vedic principles and therefore
became fallen. Under the circumstances, Santanu again became the king, and Indra, being pleased,
showered rains. Devapi later took to the path of mystic yoga to control his mind and senses and went to
the village named Kalapagrama, where he is still living.
18-19. After the dynasty of the moon-god comes to an end in this age of Kali, Devapi, in the beginning
of the next Satya-yuga, will reestablish the Soma dynasty in this world. From Bahlika [the brother of
Santanu] came a son named Somadatta, who had three sons, named Bhuri, Bhurisrava and Sala. From
Santanu, through the womb of his wife named Ganga, came Bhisma, the exalted, self-realized devotee
and learned scholar.
20. Bhismadeva was the foremost of all warriors. When he defeated Lord Parasurama in a fight, Lord
Parasurama was very satisfied with him. By the semen of Santanu in the womb of Satyavati, the
daughter of a fisherman, Citrangada took birth.
21-24. Citrangada, of whom Vicitravirya was the younger brother, was killed by a Gandharva who was
also named Citrangada. Satyavati, before her marriage to Santanu, gave birth to the master authority of
the Vedas, Vyasadeva, known as Krsna Dvaipayana, who was begotten by Parasara Muni. From
Vyasadeva, I [Sukadeva Gosvami] was born, and from him I studied this great work of literature,
Srimad-Bhagavatam. The incarnation of Godhead Vedavyasa, rejecting his disciples, headed by Paila,
instructed Srimad-Bhagavatam to me because I was free from all material desires. After Ambika and
Ambalika, the two daughters of Kasiraja, were taken away by force, Vicitravirya married them, but
because he was too attached to these two wives, he had a heart attack and died of tuberculosis.
25. Badarayana, Sri Vyasadeva, following the order of his mother, Satyavati, begot three sons, two by
the womb of Ambika and Ambalika, the two wives of his brother Vicitravirya, and the third by
Vicitravirya's maidservant. These sons were Dhrtarastra, Pandu and Vidura.
26. Dhrtarastra's wife, Gandhari, gave birth to one hundred sons and one daughter, O King. The oldest
of the sons was Duryodhana, and the daughter's name was Duhsala.
27-28. Pandu was restrained from sexual life because of having been cursed by a sage, and therefore
his three sons Yudhisthira, Bhima and Arjuna were begotten through the womb of his wife, Kunti, by
Dharmaraja, by the demigod controlling the wind, and by the demigod controlling the rain. Pandu's
second wife, Madri, gave birth to Nakula and Sahadeva, who were begotten by the two Asvini-kumaras.
The five brothers, headed by Yudhisthira, begot five sons through the womb of Draupadi. These five
sons were your uncles.
29. From Yudhisthira came a son named Prativindhya, from Bhima a son named Srutasena, from
Arjuna a son named Srutakirti, and from Nakula a son named Satanika.
30-31. O King, the son of Sahadeva was Srutakarma. Furthermore, Yudhisthira and his brothers begot
other sons in other wives. Yudhisthira begot a son named Devaka through the womb of Pauravi, and
Bhimasena begot a son named Ghatotkaca through his wife Hidimba and a son named Sarvagata
through his wife Kali. Similarly, Sahadeva had a son named Suhotra through his wife named Vijaya,
who was the daughter of the king of the mountains.
32. Nakula begot a son named Naramitra through his wife named Karenumati. Similarly, Arjuna begot a
son named Iravan through his wife known as Ulupi, the daughter of the Nagas, and a son named
Babhruvahana by the womb of the princess of Manipura. Babhruvahana became the adopted son of
the king of Manipura.
33. My dear King Pariksit, your father, Abhimanyu, was born from the womb of Subhadra as the son of
Arjuna. He was the conqueror of all atirathas [those who could fight with one thousand charioteers].
From him, by the womb of Uttara, the daughter of Viradraja, you were born.
34. After the Kuru dynasty was annihilated in the Battle of Kuruksetra, you also were about to be
destroyed by the brahmastra atomic weapon released by the son of Dronacarya, but by the mercy of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, you were saved from death.
35. My dear King, your four sons--Janamejaya, Srutasena, Bhimasena and Ugrasena--are very
powerful. Janamejaya is the eldest.
36. Because of your death by the Taksaka snake, your son Janamejaya will be very angry and will
perform a sacrifice to kill all the snakes in the world.
37. After conquering throughout the world and after accepting Tura, the son of Kalasa, as his priest,
Janamejaya will perform asvamedha-yajnas, for which he will be known as Turaga-medhasat.
446 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
38. The son of Janamejaya known as Satanika will learn from Yajnavalkya the three Vedas and the art
of performing ritualistic ceremonies. He will also learn the military art from Krpacarya and the
transcendental science from the sage Saunaka.
39. The son of Satanika will be Sahasranika, and from him will come the son named Asvamedhaja.
From Asvamedhaja will come Asimakrsna, and his son will be Nemicakra.
40. When the town of Hastinapura [New Delhi] is inundated by the river, Nemicakra will live in the place
known as Kausambi. His son will be celebrated as Citraratha, and the son of Citraratha will be
Suciratha.
41. From Suciratha will come the son named Vrstiman, and his son, Susena, will be the emperor of the
entire world. The son of Susena will be Sunitha, his son will be Nrcaksu, and from Nrcaksu will come a
son named Sukhinala.
42. The son of Sukhinala will be Pariplava, and his son will be Sunaya. From Sunaya will come a son
named Medhavi; from Medhavi, Nrpanjaya; from Nrpanjaya, Durva; and from Durva, Timi.
43. From Timi will come Brhadratha; from Brhadratha, Sudasa; and from Sudasa, Satanika. From
Satanika will come Durdamana, and from him will come a son named Mahinara.
44-45. The son of Mahinara will be Dandapani, and his son will be Nimi, from whom King Ksemaka will
be born. I have now described to you the moon-god's dynasty, which is the source of brahmanas and
ksatriyas and is worshiped by demigods and great saints. In this Kali-yuga, Ksemaka will be the last
monarch. Now I shall describe to you the future of the Magadha dynasty. Please listen.
46-48. Sahadeva, the son of Jarasandha, will have a son named Marjari. From Marjari will come
Srutasrava; from Srutasrava, Yutayu; and from Yutayu, Niramitra. The son of Niramitra will be
Sunaksatra, from Sunaksatra will come Brhatsena, and from Brhatsena, Karmajit. The son of Karmajit
will be Sutanjaya, the son of Sutanjaya will be Vipra, and his son will be Suci. The son of Suci will be
Ksema, the son of Ksema will be Suvrata, and the son of Suvrata will be Dharmasutra. From
Dharmasutra will come Sama; from Sama, Dyumatsena; from Dyumatsena, Sumati; and from Sumati,
Subala.
49. From Subala will come Sunitha; from Sunitha, Satyajit; from Satyajit, Visvajit; and from Visvajit,
Ripunjaya. All of these personalities will belong to the dynasty of Brhadratha, which will rule the world
for one thousand years.
Chapter Twenty-three The Dynasties of the Sons of Yayati
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Anu, the fourth son of Yayati, had three sons, named Sabhanara, Caksu
and Paresnu. O King, from Sabhanara came a son named Kalanara, and from Kalanara came a son
named Srnjaya.
2. From Srnjaya came a son named Janamejaya. From Janamejaya came Mahasala; from Mahasala,
Mahamana; and from Mahamana two sons, named Usinara and Titiksu.
3-4. The four sons of Usinara were Sibi, Vara, Krmi and Daksa, and from Sibi again came four sons,
named Vrsadarbha, Sudhira, Madra and atma-tattva-vit Kekaya. The son of Titiksu was Rusadratha.
From Rusadratha came Homa; from Homa, Sutapa; and from Sutapa, Bali.
5. By the semen of Dirghatama in the wife of Bali, the emperor of the world, six sons took birth, namely
Anga, Vanga, Kalinga, Suhma, Pundra and Odra.
6. These six sons, headed by Anga, later became kings of six states in the eastern side of India. These
states were known according to the names of their respective kings. From Anga came a son named
Khalapana, and from Khalapana came Diviratha.
7-10. From Diviratha came a son named Dharmaratha, and his son was Citraratha, who was celebrated
as Romapada. Romapada, however, was without issue, and therefore his friend Maharaja Dasaratha
gave him his own daughter, named Santa. Romapada accepted her as his daughter, and thereafter she
married Rsyasrnga. When the demigods from the heavenly planets failed to shower rain, Rsyasrnga
was appointed the priest for performing a sacrifice, after being brought from the forest by the allurement
of prostitutes, who danced, staged theatrical performances accompanied by music, and embraced and
worshiped him. After Rsyasrnga came, the rain fell. Thereafter, Rsyasrnga performed a son-giving
sacrifice on behalf of Maharaja Dasaratha, who had no issue, and then Maharaja Dasaratha had sons.
From Romapada, by the mercy of Rsyasrnga, Caturanga was born, and from Caturanga came
Prthulaksa.
11. The sons of Prthulaksa were Brhadratha, Brhatkarma and Brhadbhanu. From the eldest,
Brhadratha, came a son named Brhanmana, and from Brhanmana came a son named Jayadratha.
12. The son of Jayadratha, by the womb of his wife Sambhuti, was Vijaya, and from Vijaya, Dhrti was
born. From Dhrti came Dhrtavrata; from Dhrtavrata, Satkarma; and from Satkarma, Adhiratha.
13. While playing on the bank of the Ganges, Adhiratha found a baby wrapped up in a basket. The baby
had been left by Kunti because he was born before she was married. Because Adhiratha had no sons,
he raised this baby as his own. [This son was later known as Karna.]
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 447
14. O King, the only son of Karna was Vrsasena. Druhyu, the third son of Yayati, had a son named
Babhru, and the son of Babhru was known as Setu.
15. The son of Setu was Arabdha, Arabdha's son was Gandhara, and Gandhara's son was Dharma.
Dharma's son was Dhrta, Dhrta's son was Durmada, and Durmada's son was Praceta, who had one
hundred sons.
16. The Pracetas [the sons of Praceta] occupied the northern side of India, which was devoid of Vedic
civilization, and became kings there. Yayati's second son was Turvasu. The son of Turvasu was Vahni;
the son of Vahni, Bharga; the son of Bharga, Bhanuman.
17. The son of Bhanuman was Tribhanu, and his son was the magnanimous Karandhama.
Karandhama's son was Maruta, who had no sons and who therefore adopted a son of the Puru dynasty
[Maharaja Dusmanta] as his own.
18-19. Maharaja Dusmanta, desiring to occupy the throne, returned to his original dynasty [the Puru
dynasty], even though he had accepted Maruta as his father. O Maharaja Pariksit, let me now describe
the dynasty of Yadu, the eldest son of Maharaja Yayati. This description is supremely pious, and it
vanquishes the reactions of sinful activities in human society. Simply by hearing this description, one is
freed from all sinful reactions.
20-21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, the Supersoul in the hearts of all living entities,
descended in His original form as a human being in the dynasty or family of Yadu. Yadu had four sons,
named Sahasrajit, Krosta, Nala and Ripu. Of these four, the eldest, Sahasrajit, had a son named Satajit,
who had three sons, named Mahahaya, Renuhaya and Haihaya.
22. The son of Haihaya was Dharma, and the son of Dharma was Netra, the father of Kunti. From Kunti
came a son named Sohanji, from Sohanji came Mahisman, and from Mahisman, Bhadrasenaka.
23. The sons of Bhadrasena were known as Durmada and Dhanaka. Dhanaka was the father of
Krtavirya and also of Krtagni, Krtavarma and Krtauja.
24. The son of Krtavirya was Arjuna. He [Kartaviryarjuna] became the emperor of the entire world,
consisting of seven islands, and received mystic power from Dattatreya, the incarnation of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. Thus he obtained the mystic perfections known as asta-siddhi.
25. No other king in this world could equal Kartaviryarjuna in sacrifices, charity, austerity, mystic power,
education, strength or mercy.
26. For eighty-five thousand years, Kartaviryarjuna continuously enjoyed material opulences with full
bodily strength and unimpaired memory. In other words, he enjoyed inexhaustible material opulences
with his six senses.
27. Of the one thousand sons of Kartaviryarjuna, only five remained alive after the fight with
Parasurama. Their names were Jayadhvaja, Surasena, Vrsabha, Madhu and Urjita.
28. Jayadhvaja had a son named Talajangha, who had one hundred sons. All the ksatriyas in that
dynasty, known as Talajangha, were annihilated by the great power received by Maharaja Sagara from
Aurva Rsi.
29. Of the sons of Talajangha, Vitihotra was the eldest. The son of Vitihotra named Madhu had a
celebrated son named Vrsni. Madhu had one hundred sons, of whom Vrsni was the eldest. The
dynasties known as Yadava, Madhava and Vrsni had their origin from Yadu, Madhu and Vrsni.
30-31. O Maharaja Pariksit, because Yadu, Madhu and Vrsni each inaugurated a dynasty, their
dynasties are known as Yadava, Madhava and Vrsni. The son of Yadu named Krosta had a son named
Vrjinavan. The son of Vrjinavan was Svahita; the son of Svahita, Visadgu; the son of Visadgu,
Citramtha; and the son of Citraratha, Sasabindu. The greatly fortunate Sasabindu, who was a great
mystic, possessed fourteen opulences and was the owner of fourteen great jewels. Thus he became
the emperor of the world.
32. The famous Sasabindu had ten thousand wives, and by each he begot a lakh of sons. Therefore the
number of his sons was ten thousand lakhs.
33. Among these many sons, six were the foremost, such as Prthusrava and Prthukirti. The son of
Prthusrava was known as Dharma, and his son was known as Usana. Usana was the performer of one
hundred horse sacrifices.
34. The son of Usana was Rucaka, who had five sons--Purujit, Rukma, Rukmesu, Prthu and
Jyamagha. Please hear of these sons from me.
35-36. Jyamagha had no sons, but because he was fearful of his wife, Saibya, he could not accept
another wife. Jyamagha once took from the house of some royal enemy a girl who was a prostitute, but
upon seeing her Saibya was very angry and said to her husband, "My husband, you cheater, who is this
girl sitting upon my seat on the chariot?" Jyamagha then replied, "This girl will be your daughter-in-law."
Upon hearing these joking words, Saibya smilingly replied.
448 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
37. Saibya said, "I am sterile and have no co-wife. How can this girl be my daughter-in-law? Please tell
me." Jyamagha replied, "My dear Queen, I shall see that you indeed have a son and that this girl will be
your daughter-in-law."
38. Long, long ago, Jyamagha had satisfied the demigods and Pitas by worshiping them. Now, by their
mercy, Jyamagha's words came true. Although Saibya was barren, by the grace of the demigods she
became pregnant and in due course of time gave birth to a child named Vidarbha. Before the child's
birth, the girl had been accepted as a daughter-in-law, and therefore Vidarbha actually married her
when he grew up.
Chapter Twenty-four Krsna the Supreme Personality of Godhead
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: By the womb of the girl brought by his father, Vidarbha begot three sons,
named Kusa, Kratha and Romapada. Romapada was the favorite in the dynasty of Vidarbha.
2. The son of Romapada was Babhru, from whom there came a son named Krti. The son of Krti was
Usika, and the son of Usika was Cedi. From Cedi was born the king known as Caidya and others.
3-4. The son of Kratha was Kunti; the son of Kunti, Vrsni; the son of Vrsni, Nirvrti; and the son of Nirvrti,
Dasarha. From Dasarha came Vyoma; from Vyoma came Jimuta; from Jimuta, Vikrti; from Vikrti,
Bhimaratha; from Bhimaratha, Navaratha; and from Navaratha, Dasaratha.
5. From Dasaratha came a son named Sakuni and from Sakuni a son named Karambhi. The son of
Karambhi was Devarata, and his son was Devaksatra. The son of Devaksatra was Madhu, and his son
was Kuruvasa, from whom there came a son named Anu.
6-8. The son of Anu was Puruhotra, the son of Puruhotra was Ayu, and the son of Ayu was Satvata. O
great Aryan King, Satvata had seven sons, named Bhajamana, Bhaji, Divya, Vrsni, Devavrdha,
Andhaka and Mahabhoja. From Bhajamana by one wife came three sons--Nimloci, Kinkana and Dhrsti.
And from his other wife came three other sons--Satajit, Sahasrajit and Ayutajit.
9. The son of Devavrdha was Babhru. Concerning Devavrdha and Babhru there are two famous songs
of prayer, which were sung by our predecessors and which we have heard from a distance. Even now I
hear the same prayers about their qualities [because that which was heard before is still sung
continuously].
10-11. "It has been decided that among human beings Babhru is the best and that Devavrdha is equal
to the demigods. Because of the association of Babhru and Devavrdha, all of their descendants,
numbering 14,065, achieved liberation." In the dynasty of King Mahabhoja, who was exceedingly
religious, there appeared the Bhoja kings.
12. O King, Maharaja Pariksit, who can suppress your enemies, the sons of Vrsni were Sumitra and
Yudhajit. From Yudhajit came Sini and Anamitra, and from Anamitra came a son named Nighna.
13. The two sons of Nighna were Satrajita and Prasena. Another son of Anamitra was another Sini, and
his son was Satyaka.
14. The son of Satyaka was Yuyudhana, whose son was Jaya. From Jaya came a son named Kuni and
from Kuni a son named Yugandhara. Another son of Anamitra was Vrsni.
15. From Vrsni came the sons named Svaphalka and Citraratha. From Svaphalka by his wife Gandini
came Akrura. Akrura was the eldest, but there were twelve other sons, all of whom were most
celebrated.
16-18. The names of these twelve were Asanga, Sarameya, Mrdura, Mrduvit, Giri, Dharmavrddha,
Sukarma, Ksetropeksa, Arimardana, Satrughna, Gandhamada and Pratibahu. These brothers also had
a sister named Sucara. From Akrura came two sons, named Devavan and Upadeva. Citraratha had
many sons, headed by Prthu and Viduratha, all of whom were known as belonging to the dynasty of
Vrsni.
19. Kukura, Bhajamana, Suci and Kambalabarhisa were the four sons of Andhaka. The son of Kukura
was Vahni, and his son was Viloma.
20. The son of Viloma was Kapotaroma, and his son was Anu, whose friend was Tumburu. From Anu
came Andhaka; from Andhaka, Dundubhi; and from Dundubhi, Avidyota. From Avidyota came a son
named Punarvasu.
21-23. Punarvasu had a son and a daughter, named Ahuka and Ahuki respectively, and Ahuka had two
sons, named Devaka and Ugrasena. Devaka had four sons, named Devavan, Upadeva, Sudeva and
Devavardhana, and he also had seven daughters, named Santideva, Upadeva, Srideva, Devaraksita,
Sahadeva, Devaki and Dhrtadeva. Dhrtadeva was the eldest. Vasudeva, the father of Krsna, married all
these sisters.
24. Kamsa, Sunama, Nyagrodha, Kanka, Sanku, Suhu, Rastrapala, Dhrsti and Tustiman were the sons
of Ugrasena.
25. Kamsa, Kamsavati, Kanka, Surabhu and Rastrapalika were the daughters of Ugrasena. They
became the wives of Vasudeva's younger brothers.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 449
26. The son of Citraratha was Viduratha, the son of Viduratha was Sura, and his son was Bhajamana.
The son of Bhajamana was Sini, the son of Sini was Bhoja, and the son of Bhoja was Hrdika.
27. The three sons of Hrdika were Devamidha, Satadhanu and Krtavarma. The son of Devamidha was
Sura, whose wife was named Marisa.
28-31. Through Marisa, King Sura begot Vasudeva, Devabhaga, Devasrava, Anaka, Srnjaya,
Syamaka, Kanka, Samika, Vatsaka and Vrka. These ten sons were spotlessly pious personalities.
When Vasudeva was born, the demigods from the heavenly kingdom sounded kettledrums. Therefore
Vasudeva, who provided the proper place for the appearance of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Krsna, was also known as Anakadundubhi. The five daughters of King Sura, named Prtha, Srutadeva,
Srutakirti, Srutasrava and Rajadhidevi, were Vasudeva's sisters. Sura gave Prtha to his friend Kunti,
who had no issue, and therefore another name of Prtha was Kunti.
32. Once when Durvasa was a guest at the house of Prtha's father, Kunti, Prtha satisfied Durvasa by
rendering service. Therefore she received a mystic power by which she could call any demigod. To
examine the potency of this mystic power, the pious Kunti immediately called for the sun-god.
33. As soon as Kunti called for the demigod of the sun, he immediately appeared before her, and she
was very much surprised. She told the sun-god, "I was simply examining the effectiveness of this mystic
power. I am sorry I have called you unnecessarily. Please return and excuse me."
34. The sun-god said: O beautiful Prtha, your meeting with the demigods cannot be fruitless. Therefore,
let me place my seed in your womb so that you may bear a son. I shall arrange to keep your virginity
intact, since you are still an unmarried girl.
35. After saying this, the sun-god discharged his semen into the womb of Prtha and then returned to the
celestial kingdom. Immediately thereafter, from Kunti a child was born, who was like a second sun-god.
36. Because Kunti feared people's criticisms, with great difficulty she had to give up her affection for her
child. Unwillingly, she packed the child in a basket and let it float down the waters of the river. O
Maharaja Pariksit, your great-grandfather the pious and chivalrous King Pandu later married Kunti.
37. Vrddhasarma, the King of Karusa, married Kunti's sister Srutadeva, and from her womb Dantavakra
was born. Having been cursed by the sages headed by Sanaka, Dantavakra had formerly been born as
the son of Diti named Hiranyaksa.
38. King Dhrstaketu, the King of Kekaya, married Srutakirti, another sister of Kunti's. Srutakirti had five
sons, headed by Santardana.
39. Through the womb of Rajadhidevi, another sister of Kunti's, Jayasena begot two sons, named Vinda
and Anuvinda. Similarly, the king of the Cedi state married Srutasrava. This king's name was
Damaghosa.
40. The son of Srutasrava was Sisupala, whose birth has already been described [in the Seventh Canto
of Srimad-Bhagavatam]. Vasudeva's brother named Devabhaga had two sons born of his wife, Kamsa.
These two sons were Citraketu and Brhadbala.
41. Vasudeva's brother named Devasrava married Kamsavati, by whom he begot two sons, named
Suvira and Isuman. Kanka, by his wife Kanka, begot three sons, named Baka, Satyajit and Purujit.
42. King Srnjaya, by his wife, Rastrapalika, begot sons headed by Vrsa and Durmarsana. King
Syamaka, by his wife, Surabhumi, begot two sons, named Harikesa and Hiranyaksa.
43. Thereafter, King Vatsaka, by the womb of his wife, Misrakesi, who was an Apsara, begot sons
headed by Vrka. Vrka, by his wife, Durvaksi, begot Taksa, Puskara, Sala and so on.
44. From Samika, by the womb of his wife, Sudamani, came Sumitra, Arjunapala and other sons. King
Anaka, by his wife, Karnika, begot two sons, namely Rtadhama and Jaya.
45. Devaki, Paumvi, Rohini, Bhadra, Madira, Rocana, Ila and others were all wives of Anakadundubhi
[Vasudeva]. Among them all, Devaki was the chief.
46. Vasudeva, by the womb of his wife Rohini, begot sons such as Bala, Gada, Sarana, Durmada,
Vipula, Dhruva, Krta and others.
47-48. From the womb of Pauravi came twelve sons, including Bhuta, Subhadra, Bhadrabahu,
Durmada and Bhadra. Nanda, Upananda, Krtaka, Sura and others were born from the womb of Madira.
Bhadra [Kausalya] gave birth to only one son, named Kesi.
49. Vasudeva, by another of his wives, whose name was Rocana, begot Hasta, Hemangada and other
sons. And by his wife named Ila he begot sons headed by Uruvalka, all of whom were chief
personalities in the dynasty of Yadu.
50. From the womb of Dhrtadeva, one of the wives of Anakadundubhi [Vasudeva], came a son named
Viprstha. The sons of Santideva, another wife of Vasudeva, were Prasama, Prasita and others.
51. Vasudeva also had a wife named Upadeva, from whom came ten sons, headed by Rajanya, Kalpa
and Varsa. From Srideva, another wife, came six sons, such as Vasu, Hamsa and Suvamsa.
450 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
52. By the semen of Vasudeva in the womb of Devaraksita, nine sons were born, headed by Gada.
Vasudeva, who was religion personified, also had a wife named Sahadeva, by whose womb he begot
eight sons, headed by Sruta and Pravara.
53-55. The eight sons born of Sahadeva such as Pravara and Sruta, were exact incarnations of the
eight Vasus in the heavenly planets. Vasudeva also begot eight highly qualified sons through the womb
of Devaki. These included Kirtiman, Susena, Bhadrasena, Rju, Saminardana, Bhadra and Sankarsana,
the controller and serpent incarnation. The eighth son was the Supreme Personality of Godhead
Himself--Krsna. The highly fortunate Subhadra, the one daughter, was your grandmother.
56. Whenever the principles of religion deteriorate and the principles of irreligion increase, the supreme
controller, the Personality of Godhead Sri Hari, appears by His own will.
57. O King, Maharaja Pariksit, but for the Lord's personal desire, there is no cause for His appearance,
disappearance or activities. As the Supersoul, He knows everything. Consequently there is no cause
that affects Him, not even the results of fruitive activities.
58. The Supreme Personality of Godhead acts through His material energy in the creation,
maintenance and annihilation of this cosmic manifestation just to deliver the living entity by His
compassion and stop the living entity's birth, death and duration of materialistic life. Thus He enables
the living being to return home, back to Godhead.
59. Although the demons who take possession of the government are dressed like men of government,
they do not know the duty of the government. Consequently, by the arrangement of God, such demons,
who possess great military strength, fight with one another, and thus the great burden of demons on the
surface of the earth is reduced. The demons increase their military power by the will of the Supreme, so
that their numbers will be diminished and the devotees will have a chance to advance in Krsna
consciousness.
60. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, with the cooperation of Sankarsana, Balarama,
performed activities beyond the mental comprehension of even such personalities as Lord Brahma and
Lord Siva. [For instance, Krsna arranged the Battle of Kuruksetra to kill many demons for the relief of
the entire world.]
61. To show causeless mercy to the devotees who would take birth in the future in this age of Kali, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, acted in such a way that simply by remembering Him one will
be freed from all the lamentation and unhappiness of material existence. [In other words, He acted so
that all future devotees, by accepting the instructions of Krsna consciousness stated in Bhagavad-gita,
could be relieved from the pangs of material existence.]
62. Simply by receiving the glories of the Lord through purified transcendental ears, the devotees of the
Lord are immediately freed from strong material desires and engagement in fruitive activities.
63-64. Assisted by the descendants of Bhoja, Vrsni, Andhaka, Madhu, Surasena, Dasarha, Kuru,
Srnjaya and Pandu, Lord Krsna performed various activities. By His pleasing smiles, His affectionate
behavior, His instructions and His uncommon pastimes like raising Govardhana Hill, the Lord,
appearing in His transcendental body, pleased all of human society.
65. Krsna's face is decorated with ornaments, such as earrings resembling sharks. His ears are
beautiful, His cheeks brilliant, and His smiling attractive to everyone. Whoever sees Lord Krsna sees a
festival. His face and body are fully satisfying for everyone to see, but the devotees are angry at the
creator for the disturbance caused by the momentary blinking of their eyes.
66. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, known as lila-purusottama, appeared as the son
of Vasudeva but immediately left His father's home and went to Vrndavana to expand His loving
relationship with His confidential devotees. In Vrndavana the Lord killed many demons, and afterwards
He returned to Dvaraka, where according to Vedic principles He married many wives who were the best
of women, begot through them hundreds of sons, and performed sacrifices for His own worship to
establish the principles of householder life.
67. Thereafter, Lord Sri Krsna created a misunderstanding between family members just to diminish the
burden of the world. Simply by His glance, He annihilated all the demoniac kings on the Battlefield of
Kuruksetra and declared victory for Arjuna. Finally, He instructed Uddhava about transcendental life and
devotion and then returned to His abode in His original form.
CANTO TEN
Chapter One The Advent of Lord Krsna: Introduction
1. King Pariksit said: My dear lord, you have elaborately described the dynasties of both the moon-god
and the sun-god, with the exalted and wonderful character of their kings.
2. O best of munis, you have also described the descendants of Yadu, who were very pious and strictly
adherent to religious principles. Now, if you will, kindly describe the wonderful, glorious activities of Lord
Visnu, or Krsna, who appeared in that Yadu dynasty with Baladeva, His plenary expansion.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 451
3. The Supersoul, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, the cause of the cosmic
manifestation, appeared in the dynasty of Yadu. Please tell me elaborately about His glorious activities
and character, from the beginning to the end of His life.
4. Glorification of the Supreme Personality of Godhead is performed in the parampara system; that is, it
is conveyed from spiritual master to disciple. Such glorification is relished by those no longer interested
in the false, temporary glorification of this cosmic manifestation. Descriptions of the Lord are the right
medicine for the conditioned soul undergoing repeated birth and death. Therefore, who will cease
hearing such glorification of the Lord except a butcher or one who is killing his own self?
5-7. Taking the boat of Krsna's lotus feet, my grandfather Arjuna and others crossed the ocean of the
Battlefield of Kuruksetra, in which such commanders as Bhismadeva resembled great fish that could
very easily have swallowed them. By the mercy of Lord Krsna, my grandfathers crossed this ocean,
which was very difficult to cross, as easily as one steps over the hoofprint of a calf. Because my mother
surrendered unto Lord Krsna's lotus feet, the Lord, Sudarsana-cakra in hand, entered her womb and
saved my body, the body of the last remaining descendant of the Kurus and the Pandavas, which was
almost destroyed by the fiery weapon of Asvatthama. Lord Sri Krsna, appearing within and outside of all
materially embodied living beings by His own potency in the forms of eternal time--that is, as
Paramatma and as virat-rupa--gave liberation to everyone, either as cruel death or as life. Kindly
enlighten me by describing His transcendental characteristics.
8. My dear Sukadeva Gosvami, you have already explained that Sankarsana, who belongs to the
second quadruple, appeared as the son of Rohini named Balarama. If Balarama was not transferred
from one body to another, how is it possible that He was first in the womb of Devaki and then in the
womb of Rohini? Kindly explain this to me.
9. Why did Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, leave the house of His father, Vasudeva, and
transfer Himself to the house of Nanda in Vrndavana? Where did the Lord, the master of the Yadu
dynasty, live with His relatives in Vrndavana?
10. Lord Krsna lived both in Vrndavana and in Mathura. What did He do there? Why did He kill Kamsa,
His mother's brother? Such killing is not at all sanctioned in the sastras.
11. Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, has no material body, yet He appears as a human
being. For how many years did He live with the descendants of Vrsni? How many wives did He marry,
and for how many years did He live in Dvaraka?
12. O great sage, who know everything about Krsna, please describe in detail all the activities of which I
have inquired and also those of which I have not, for I have full faith and am very eager to hear of them.
13. Because of my vow on the verge of death, I have given up even drinking water, yet because I am
drinking the nectar of topics about Krsna, which is flowing from the lotus mouth of Your Lordship, my
hunger and thirst, which are extremely difficult to bear, cannot hinder me.
14. Suta Gosvami said: O son of Bhrgu [Saunaka Rsi], after Sukadeva Gosvami, the most respectable
devotee, the son of Vyasadeva, heard the pious questions of Maharaja Pariksit, he thanked the King
with great respect. Then he began to discourse on topics concerning Krsna, which are the remedy for
all sufferings in this age of Kali.
15. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami said: O Your Majesty, best of all saintly kings, because you are greatly
attracted to topics of Vasudeva, it is certain that your intelligence is firmly fixed in spiritual
understanding, which is the only true goal for humanity. Because that attraction is unceasing, it is
certainly sublime.
16. The Ganges, emanating from the toe of Lord Visnu, purifies the three worlds, the upper, middle and
lower planetary systems. Similarly, when one asks questions about the pastimes and characteristics of
Lord Vasudeva, Krsna, three varieties of men are purified: the speaker or preacher, he who inquires,
and the people in general who listen.
17. Once when mother earth was overburdened by hundreds of thousands of military phalanxes of
various conceited demons dressed like kings, she approached Lord Brahma for relief.
18. Mother earth assumed the form of a cow. Very much distressed, with tears in her eyes, she
appeared before Lord Brahma and told him about her misfortune.
19. Thereafter, having heard of the distress of mother earth, Lord Brahma, with mother earth, Lord Siva
and all the other demigods, approached the shore of the ocean of milk.
20. After reaching the shore of the ocean of milk, the demigods worshiped the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Lord Visnu, the master of the whole universe, the supreme God of all gods, who provides for
everyone and diminishes everyone's suffering. With great attention, they worshiped Lord Visnu, who
lies on the ocean of milk, by reciting the Vedic mantras known as the Purusa-sukta.
21. While in trance, Lord Brahma heard the words of Lord Visnu vibrating in the sky. Thus he told the
demigods: O demigods, hear from me the order of Ksirodakasayi Visnu, the Supreme Person, and
execute it attentively without delay.
452 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. Lord Brahma informed the demigods: Before we submitted our petition to the Lord, He was already
aware of the distress on earth. Consequently, for as long as the Lord moves on earth to diminish its
burden by His own potency in the form of time, all of you demigods should appear through plenary
portions as sons and grandsons in the family of the Yadus.
23. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, who has full potency, will personally appear as the
son of Vasudeva. Therefore all the wives of the demigods should also appear in order to satisfy Him.
24. The foremost manifestation of Krsna is Sankarsana, who is known as Ananta. He is the origin of all
incarnations within this material world. Previous to the appearance of Lord Krsna, this original
Sankarsana will appear as Baladeva, just to please the Supreme Lord Krsna in His transcendental
pastimes.
25. The potency of the Lord, known as visnu-maya, who is as good as the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, will also appear with Lord Krsna. This potency, acting in different capacities, captivates all the
worlds, both material and spiritual. At the request of her master, she will appear with her different
potencies in order to execute the work of the Lord.
26. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After thus advising the demigods and pacifying mother earth, the
very powerful Lord Brahma, who is the master of all other Prajapatis and is therefore known as
Prajapati-pati, returned to his own abode, Brahmaloka.
27. Formerly, Surasena, the chief of the Yadu dynasty, had gone to live in the city of Mathura. There he
enjoyed the places known as Mathura and Surasena.
28. Since that time, the city of Mathura had been the capital of all the kings of the Yadu dynasty. The
city and district of Mathura are very intimately connected with Krsna, for Lord Krsna lives there eternally.
29. Some time ago, Vasudeva, who belonged to the demigod family [or to the Sura dynasty], married
Devaki. After the marriage, he mounted his chariot to return home with his newly married wife.
30. Kamsa, the son of King Ugrasena, in order to please his sister Devaki on the occasion of her
marriage, took charge of the reins of the horses and became the chariot driver. He was surrounded by
hundreds of golden chariots.
31-32. Devaki's father, King Devaka, was very much affectionate to his daughter. Therefore, while she
and her husband were leaving home, he gave her a dowry of four hundred elephants nicely decorated
with golden garlands. He also gave ten thousand horses, eighteen hundred chariots, and two hundred
very beautiful young maidservants, fully decorated with ornaments.
33. O beloved son, Maharaja Pariksit, when the bride and bridegroom were ready to start, conchshells,
bugles, drums and kettledrums all vibrated in concert for their auspicious departure.
34. While Kamsa, controlling the reins of the horses, was driving the chariot along the way, an
unembodied voice addressed him, "You foolish rascal, the eighth child of the woman you are carrying
will kill you!"
35. Kamsa was a condemned personality in the Bhoja dynasty because he was envious and sinful.
Therefore, upon hearing this omen from the sky, he caught hold of his sister's hair with his left hand and
took up his sword with his right hand to sever her head from her body.
36. Wanting to pacify Kamsa, who was so cruel and envious that he was shamelessly ready to kill his
sister, the great soul Vasudeva, who was to be the father of Krsna, spoke to him in the following words.
37. Vasudeva said: My dear brother-in-law Kamsa, you are the pride of your family, the Bhoja dynasty,
and great heroes praise your qualities. How could such a qualified person as you kill a woman, your
own sister, especially on the occasion of her marriage?
38. O great hero, one who takes birth is sure to die, for death is born with the body. One may die today
or after hundreds of years, but death is sure for every living entity.
39. When the present body turns to dust and is again reduced to five elements--earth, water, fire, air
and ether--the proprietor of the body, the living being, automatically receives another body of material
elements according to his fruitive activities. When the next body is obtained, he gives up the present
body.
40. Just as a person traveling on the road rests one foot on the ground and then lifts the other, or as a
worm on a vegetable transfers itself to one leaf and then gives up the previous one, the conditioned
soul takes shelter of another body and then gives up the one he had before.
41. Having experienced a situation by seeing or hearing about it, one contemplates and speculates
about that situation, and thus one surrenders to it, not considering his present body. Similarly, by mental
adjustments one dreams at night of living under different circumstances, in different bodies, and forgets
his actual position. Under this same process, one gives up his present body and accepts another [tatha
dehantara-praptih].
42. At the time of death, according to the thinking, feeling and willing of the mind, which is involved in
fruitive activities, one receives a particular body. In other words, the body develops according to the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 453
activities of the mind. Changes of body are due to the flickering of the mind, for otherwise the soul could
remain in its original, spiritual body.
43. When the luminaries in the sky, such as the moon, the sun and the stars, are reflected in liquids like
oil or water, they appear to be of different shapes--sometimes round, sometimes long, and so on--
because of the movements of the wind. Similarly, when the living entity, the soul, is absorbed in
materialistic thoughts, he accepts various manifestations as his own identity because of ignorance. In
other words, one is bewildered by mental concoctions because of agitation from the material modes of
nature.
44. Therefore, since envious, impious activities cause a body in which one suffers in the next life, why
should one act impiously? Considering one's welfare, one should not envy anyone, for an envious
person must always fear harm from his enemies, either in this life or in the next.
45. As your younger sister, this poor girl Devaki is like your own daughter and deserves to be
affectionately maintained. You are merciful, and therefore you should not kill her. Indeed, she deserves
your affection.
46. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O best of the Kuru dynasty, Kamsa was fiercely cruel and was
actually a follower of the Raksasas. Therefore he could be neither pacified nor terrified by the good
instructions given by Vasudeva. He did not care about the results of sinful activities, either in this life or
in the next.
47. When Vasudeva saw that Kamsa was determined to kill his sister Devaki, he thought to himself very
deeply. Considering the imminent danger of death, he thought of another plan to stop Kamsa.
48. As long as he has intelligence and bodily strength, an intelligent person must try to avoid death. This
is the duty of every embodied person. But if death cannot be avoided in spite of one's endeavors, a
person facing death commits no offense.
49-50. Vasudeva considered: By delivering all my sons to Kamsa, who is death personified, I shall save
the life of Devaki. Perhaps Kamsa will die before my sons take birth, or, since he is already destined to
die at the hands of my son, one of my sons may kill him. For the time being, let me promise to hand
over my sons so that Kamsa will give up this immediate threat, and if in due course of time Kamsa dies,
I shall have nothing to fear.
51. When a fire, for some unseen reason, leaps over one piece of wood and sets fire to the next, the
reason is destiny. Similarly, when a living being accepts one kind of body and leaves aside another,
there is no other reason than unseen destiny.
52. After thus considering the matter as far as his knowledge would allow, Vasudeva submitted his
proposal to the sinful Kamsa with great respect.
53. Vasudeva's mind was full of anxiety because his wife was facing danger, but in order to please the
cruel, shameless and sinful Kamsa, he externally smiled and spoke to him as follows.
54. Vasudeva said: O best of the sober, you have nothing to fear from your sister Devaki because of
what you have heard from the unseen omen. The cause of death will be her sons. Therefore I promise
that when she gives birth to the sons from whom your fear has arisen, I shall deliver them all unto your
hands.
55. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Kamsa agreed to the logical arguments of Vasudeva, and,
having full faith in Vasudeva's words, he refrained from killing his sister. Vasudeva, being pleased with
Kamsa, pacified him further and entered his own house.
56. Each year thereafter, in due course of time, Devaki, the mother of God and all the demigods, gave
birth to a child. Thus she bore eight sons, one after another, and a daughter named Subhadra.
57. Vasudeva was very much disturbed by fear of becoming a liar by breaking his promise. Thus with
great pain he delivered his first-born son, named Kirtiman, into the hands of Kamsa.
58. What is painful for saintly persons who strictly adhere to the truth? How could there not be
independence for pure devotees who know the Supreme Lord as the substance? What deeds are
forbidden for persons of the lowest character? And what cannot be given up for the sake of Lord Krsna
by those who have fully surrendered at His lotus feet?
59. My dear King Pariksit, when Kamsa saw that Vasudeva, being situated in truthfulness, was
completely equipoised in giving him the child, he was very happy. Therefore, with a smiling face, he
spoke as follows.
60. O Vasudeva, you may take back your child and go home. I have no fear of your first child. It is the
eighth child of you and Devaki I am concerned with because that is the child by whom I am destined to
be killed.
61. Vasudeva agreed and took his child back home, but because Kamsa had no character and no self-
control, Vasudeva knew that he could not rely on Kamsa's word.
62-63. The inhabitants of Vrndavana, headed by Nanda Maharaja and including his associate cowherd
men and their wives, were none but denizens of the heavenly planets, O Maharaja Pariksit, best of the
454 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
descendants of Bharata, and so too were the descendants of the Vrsni dynasty, headed by Vasudeva,
and Devaki and the other women of the dynasty of Yadu. The friends, relatives and well-wishers of both
Nanda Maharaja and Vasudeva and even those who externally appeared to be followers of Kamsa
were all demigods.
64. Once the great saint Narada approached Kamsa and informed him of how the demoniac persons
who were a great burden on the earth were going to be killed. Thus Kamsa was placed into great fear
and doubt.
65-66. After the departure of the great saint Narada, Kamsa thought that all the members of the Yadu
dynasty were demigods and that any of the children born from the womb of Devaki might be Visnu.
Fearing his death, Kamsa arrested Vasudeva and Devaki and chained them with iron shackles.
Suspecting each of the children to be Visnu, Kamsa killed them one after another because of the
prophecy that Visnu would kill him.
67. Kings greedy for sense gratification on this earth almost always kill their enemies indiscriminately.
To satisfy their own whims, they may kill anyone, even their mothers, fathers, brothers or friends.
68. In his previous birth, Kamsa had been a great demon named Kalanemi and been killed by Visnu.
Upon learning this information from Narada, Kamsa became envious of everyone connected with the
Yadu dynasty.
69. Kamsa, the most powerful son of Ugrasena, even imprisoned his own father, the King of the Yadu,
Bhoja and Andhaka dynasties, and personally ruled the states known as Surasena.
Chapter Two Prayers by the Demigods for Lord Krsna in the Womb
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Under the protection of Magadharaja, Jarasandha, the powerful Kamsa
began persecuting the kings of the Yadu dynasty. In this he had the cooperation of demons like
Pralamba, Baka, Canura, Trnavarta, Aghasura, Mustika, Arista, Dvivida, Putana, Kesi, Dhenuka,
Banasura, Narakasura and many other demoniac kings on the surface of the earth.
3. Persecuted by the demoniac kings, the Yadavas left their own kingdom and entered various others,
like those of the Kurus, Pancalas, Kekayas, Salvas, Vidarbhas, Nisadhas, Videhas and Kosalas.
4-5. Some of their relatives, however, began to follow Kamsa's principles and act in his service. After
Kamsa, the son of Ugrasena, killed the six sons of Devaki, a plenary portion of Krsna entered her womb
as her seventh child, arousing her pleasure and her lamentation. That plenary portion is celebrated by
great sages as Ananta, who belongs to Krsna's second quadruple expansion.
6. To protect the Yadus, His personal devotees, from Kamsa's attack, the Personality of Godhead,
Visvatma, the Supreme Soul of everyone, ordered Yogamaya as follows.
7. The Lord ordered Yogamaya: O My potency, who are worshipable for the entire world and whose
nature is to bestow good fortune upon all living entities, go to Vraja, where there live many cowherd
men and their wives. In that very beautiful land, where many cows reside, Rohini, the wife of Vasudeva,
is living at the home of Nanda Maharaja. Other wives of Vasudeva are also living there incognito
because of fear of Kamsa. Please go there.
8. Within the womb of Devaki is My partial plenary expansion known as Sankarsana or Sesa. Without
difficulty, transfer Him into the womb of Rohini.
9. O all-auspicious Yogamaya, I shall then appear with My full six opulences as the son of Devaki, and
you will appear as the daughter of mother Yasoda, the queen of Maharaja Nanda.
10. By sacrifices of animals, ordinary human beings will worship you gorgeously, with various
paraphernalia, because you are supreme in fulfilling the material desires of everyone.
11-12. Lord Krsna blessed Mayadevi by saying: In different places on the surface of the earth, people
will give you different names, such as Durga, Bhadrakali, Vijaya, Vaisnavi, Kumuda, Candika, Krsna,
Madhavi, Kanyaka, Maya, Narayani, Isani, Sarada and Ambika.
13. The son of Rohini will also be celebrated as Sankarsana because of being sent from the womb of
Devaki to the womb of Rohini. He will be called Rama because of His ability to please all the inhabitants
of Gokula, and He will be known as Balabhadra because of His extensive physical strength.
14. Thus instructed by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Yogamaya immediately agreed. With the
Vedic mantra om, she confirmed that she would do what He asked. Thus having accepted the order of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, she circumambulated Him and started for the place on earth
known as Nanda-gokula. There she did everything just as she had been told.
15. When the child of Devaki was attracted and transferred into the womb of Rohini by Yogamaya,
Devaki seemed to have a miscarriage. Thus all the inhabitants of the palace loudly lamented, "Alas,
Devaki has lost her child!"
16. Thus the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the Supersoul of all living entities and who
vanquishes all the fear of His devotees, entered the mind of Vasudeva in full opulence.
17. While carrying the form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead within the core of his heart,
Vasudeva bore the Lord's transcendentally illuminating effulgence, and thus he became as bright as the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 455
sun. He was therefore very difficult to see or approach through sensory perception. Indeed, he was
unapproachable and unperceivable even for such formidable men as Kamsa, and not only for Kamsa
but for all living entities.
18. Thereafter, accompanied by plenary expansions, the fully opulent Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who is all-auspicious for the entire universe, was transferred from the mind of Vasudeva to the mind of
Devaki. Devaki, having thus been initiated by Vasudeva, became beautiful by carrying Lord Krsna, the
original consciousness for everyone, the cause of all causes, within the core of her heart, just as the
east becomes beautiful by carrying the rising moon.
19. Devaki then kept within herself the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the cause of all causes, the
foundation of the entire cosmos, but because she was under arrest in the house of Kamsa, she was like
the flames of a fire covered by the walls of a pot, or like a person who has knowledge but cannot
distribute it to the world for the benefit of human society.
20. Because the Supreme Personality of Godhead was within her womb, Devaki illuminated the entire
atmosphere in the place where she was confined. Seeing her jubilant, pure and smiling, Kamsa
thought, "The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, who is now within her, will kill me. Devaki has
never before looked so brilliant and jubilant."
21. Kamsa thought: What is my duty now? The Supreme Lord, who knows His purpose, will not give up
His prowess. Devaki is a woman, she is my sister, and moreover she is now pregnant. If I kill her, my
reputation, opulence and duration of life will certainly be vanquished.
22. A person who is very cruel is regarded as dead even while living, for while he is living or after his
death, everyone condemns him. And after the death of a person in the bodily concept of life, he is
undoubtedly transferred to the hell known as Andhatama.
23. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Deliberating in this way, Kamsa, although determined to continue in
enmity toward the Supreme Personality of Godhead, refrained from the vicious killing of his sister. He
decided to wait until the Lord was born and then do what was needed.
24. While sitting on his throne or in his sitting room, while lying on his bed, or, indeed, while situated
anywhere, and while eating, sleeping or walking, Kamsa saw only his enemy, the Supreme Lord,
Hrsikesa. In other words, by thinking of his all-pervading enemy, Kamsa became unfavorably Krsna
conscious.
25. Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, accompanied by great sages like Narada, Devala and Vyasa and by
other demigods like Indra, Candra and Varuna, invisibly approached the room of Devaki, where they all
joined in offering their respectful obeisances and prayers to please the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who can bestow blessings upon everyone.
26. The demigods prayed: O Lord, You never deviate from Your vow, which is always perfect because
whatever You decide is perfectly correct and cannot be stopped by anyone. Being present in the three
phases of cosmic manifestation--creation, maintenance and annihilation--You are the Supreme Truth.
Indeed, unless one is completely truthful, one cannot achieve Your favor, which therefore cannot be
achieved by hypocrites. You are the active principle, the real truth, in all the ingredients of creation, and
therefore you are known as antaryami, the inner force. You are equal to everyone, and Your
instructions apply for everyone, for all time. You are the beginning of all truth. Therefore, offering our
obeisances, we surrender unto You. Kindly give us protection.
27. The body [the total body and the individual body are of the same composition] may figuratively be
called "the original tree." From this tree, which fully depends on the ground of material nature, come two
kinds of fruit--the enjoyment of happiness and the suffering of distress. The cause of the tree, forming
its three roots, is association with the three modes of material nature--goodness, passion and
ignorance. The fruits of bodily happiness have four tastes--religiosity, economic development, sense
gratification and liberation--which are experienced through five senses for acquiring knowledge in the
midst of six circumstances: lamentation, illusion, old age, death, hunger and thirst. The seven layers of
bark covering the tree are skin, blood, muscle, fat, bone, marrow and semen, and the eight branches of
the tree are the five gross and three subtle elements--earth, water, fire, air, ether, mind, intelligence and
false ego. The tree of the body has nine hollows--the eyes, the ears, the nostrils, the mouth, the rectum
and the genitals--and ten leaves, the ten airs passing through the body. In this tree of the body there are
two birds: one is the individual soul, and the other is the Supersoul.
28. The efficient cause of this material world, manifested with its many varieties as the original tree, is
You, O Lord. You are also the maintainer of this material world, and after annihilation You are the one in
whom everything is conserved. Those who are covered by Your external energy cannot see You behind
this manifestation, but theirs is not the vision of learned devotees.
29. O Lord, You are always in full knowledge, and to bring all good fortune to all living entities, You
appear in different incarnations, all of them transcendental to the material creation. When You appear in
456 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
these incarnations, You are pleasing to the pious and religious devotees, but for nondevotees You are
the annihilator.
30. O lotus-eyed Lord, by concentrating one's meditation on Your lotus feet, which are the reservoir of
all existence, and by accepting those lotus feet as the boat by which to cross the ocean of nescience,
one follows in the footsteps of mahajanas [great saints, sages and devotees]. By this simple process,
one can cross the ocean of nescience as easily as one steps over the hoofprint of a calf.
31. O Lord, who resemble the shining sun, You are always ready to fulfill the desire of Your devotee,
and therefore You are known as a desire tree [vancha-kalpataru]. When acaryas completely take
shelter under Your lotus feet in order to cross the fierce ocean of nescience, they leave behind on earth
the method by which they cross, and because You are very merciful to Your other devotees, You
accept this method to help them.
32. [Someone may say that aside from devotees, who always seek shelter at the Lord's lotus feet, there
are those who are not devotees but who have accepted different processes for attaining salvation. What
happens to them? In answer to this question, Lord Brahma and the other demigods said:] O lotus-eyed
Lord, although nondevotees who accept severe austerities and penances to achieve the highest
position may think themselves liberated, their intelligence is impure. They fall down from their position of
imagined superiority because they have no regard for Your lotus feet.
33. O Madhava, Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord of the goddess of fortune, if devotees
completely in love with You sometimes fall from the path of devotion, they do not fall like nondevotees,
for You still protect them. Thus they fearlessly traverse the heads of their opponents and continue to
progress in devotional service.
34. O Lord, during the time of maintenance You manifest several incarnations, all with transcendental
bodies, beyond the material modes of nature. When You appear in this way, You bestow all good
fortune upon the living entities by teaching them to perform Vedic activities such as ritualistic
ceremonies, mystic yoga, austerities, penances, and ultimately samadhi, ecstatic absorption in thoughts
of You. Thus You are worshiped by the Vedic principles.
35. O Lord, cause of all causes, if Your transcendental body were not beyond the modes of material
nature, one could not understand the difference between matter and transcendence. Only by Your
presence can one understand the transcendental nature of Your Lordship, who are the controller of
material nature. Your transcendental nature is very difficult to understand unless one is influenced by
the presence of Your transcendental form.
36. O Lord, Your transcendental name and form are not ascertained by those who merely speculate on
the path of imagination. Your name, form and attributes can be ascertained only through devotional
service.
37. Even while engaged in various activities, devotees whose minds are completely absorbed at Your
lotus feet, and who constantly hear, chant, contemplate and cause others to remember Your
transcendental names and forms, are always on the transcendental platform, and thus they can
understand the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
38. O Lord, we are fortunate because the heavy burden of the demons upon this earth is immediately
removed by Your appearance. Indeed, we are certainly fortunate, for we shall be able to see upon this
earth and in the heavenly planets the marks of lotus, conchshell, club and disc that adorn Your lotus
feet.
39. O Supreme Lord, You are not an ordinary living entity appearing in this material world as a result of
fruitive activities. Therefore Your appearance or birth in this world has no other cause than Your
pleasure potency. Similarly, the living entities, who are part of You, have no cause for miseries like birth,
death and old age, except when these living entities are conducted by Your external energy.
40. O supreme controller, Your Lordship previously accepted incarnations as a fish, a horse, a tortoise,
Narasimhadeva, a boar, a swan, Lord Ramacandra, Parasurama and, among the demigods,
Vamanadeva, to protect the entire world by Your mercy. Now please protect us again by Your mercy by
diminishing the disturbances in this world. O Krsna, best of the Yadus, we respectfully offer our
obeisances unto You.
41. O mother Devaki, by your good fortune and ours, the Supreme Personality of Godhead Himself,
with all His plenary portions, such as Baladeva, is now within your womb. Therefore you need not fear
Kamsa, who has decided to be killed by the Lord. Your eternal son, Krsna, will be the protector of the
entire Yadu dynasty.
42. After thus offering prayers to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu, the Transcendence,
all the demigods, with Lord Brahma and Lord Siva before them, returned to their homes in the heavenly
planets.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 457
Chapter Three The Birth of Lord Krsna
1-5. Thereafter, at the auspicious time for the appearance of the Lord, the entire universe was
surcharged with all the qualities of goodness, beauty and peace. The constellation Rohini appeared, as
did stars like Asvini. The sun, the moon and the other stars and planets were very peaceful. All
directions appeared extremely pleasing, and the beautiful stars twinkled in the cloudless sky. Decorated
with towns, villages, mines and pasturing grounds, the earth seemed all-auspicious. The rivers flowed
with clear water, and the lakes and vast reservoirs, full of lilies and lotuses, were extraordinarily
beautiful. In the trees and green plants, full of flowers and leaves, pleasing to the eyes, birds like
cuckoos and swarms of bees began chanting with sweet voices for the sake of the demigods. A pure
breeze began to blow, pleasing the sense of touch and bearing the aroma of flowers, and when the
brahmanas engaging in ritualistic ceremonies ignited their fires according to Vedic principles, the fires
burned steadily, undisturbed by the breeze. Thus when the birthless Lord Visnu, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, was about to appear, the saints and brahmanas, who had always been
disturbed by demons like Kamsa and his men, felt peace within the core of their hearts, and kettledrums
simultaneously vibrated from the upper planetary system.
6. The Kinnaras and Gandharvas began to sing auspicious songs, the Siddhas and Caranas offered
auspicious prayers, and the Vidyadharis, along with the Apsaras, began to dance in jubilation.
7-8. The demigods and great saintly persons showered flowers in a joyous mood, and clouds gathered
in the sky and very mildly thundered, making sounds like those of the ocean's waves. Then the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, who is situated in the core of everyone's heart, appeared from
the heart of Devaki in the dense darkness of night, like the full moon rising on the eastern horizon,
because Devaki was of the same category as Sri Krsna.
9-10. Vasudeva then saw the newborn child, who had very wonderful lotuslike eyes and who bore in His
four hands the four weapons sankha, cakra, gada and padma. On His chest was the mark of Srivatsa
and on His neck the brilliant Kaustubha gem. Dressed in yellow, His body blackish like a dense cloud,
His scattered hair fully grown, and His helmet and earrings sparkling uncommonly with the valuable
gem Vaidurya, the child, decorated with a brilliant belt, armlets, bangles and other ornaments, appeared
very wonderful.
11. When Vasudeva saw his extraordinary son, his eyes were struck with wonder. In transcendental
jubilation, he mentally collected ten thousand cows and distributed them among the brahmanas as a
transcendental festival.
12. O Maharaja Pariksit, descendant of King Bharata, Vasudeva could understand that this child was
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana. Having concluded this without a doubt, he became
fearless. Bowing down with folded hands and concentrating his attention, he began to offer prayers to
the child, who illuminated His birthplace by His natural influence.
13. Vasudeva said: My Lord, You are the Supreme Person, beyond material existence, and You are the
Supersoul. Your form can be perceived by transcendental knowledge, by which You can be understood
as the Supreme Personality of Godhead. I now understand Your position perfectly.
14. My Lord, You are the same person who in the beginning created this material world by His personal
external energy. After the creation of this world of three gunas [sattva, rajas and tamas], You appear to
have entered it, although in fact You have not.
15-17. The mahat-tattva, the total material energy, is undivided, but because of the material modes of
nature, it appears to separate into earth, water, fire, air and ether. Because of the living energy [jiva-
bhuta], these separated energies combine to make the cosmic manifestation visible, but in fact, before
the creation of the cosmos, the total energy is already present. Therefore, the total material energy
never actually enters the creation. Similarly, although You are perceived by our senses because of Your
presence, You cannot be perceived by the senses, nor experienced by the mind or words [avan-
manasa-gocara]. With our senses we can perceive some things, but not everything; for example, we
can use our eyes to see, but not to taste. Consequently, You are beyond perception by the senses.
Although in touch with the modes of material nature, You are unaffected by them. You are the prime
factor in everything, the all-pervading, undivided Supersoul. For You, therefore, there is no external or
internal. You never entered the womb of Devaki; rather, You existed there already.
18. One who considers his visible body, which is a product of the three modes of nature, to be
independent of the soul is unaware of the basis of existence, and therefore he is a rascal. Those who
are learned have rejected his conclusion because one can understand through full discussion that with
no basis in soul, the visible body and senses would be insubstantial. Nonetheless, although his
conclusion has been rejected, a foolish person considers it a reality.
19. O my Lord, learned Vedic scholars conclude that the creation, maintenance and annihilation of the
entire cosmic manifestation are performed by You, who are free from endeavor, unaffected by the
modes of material nature, and changeless in Your spiritual situation. There are no contradictions in You,
458 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
who are the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Parabrahman. Because the three modes of material
nature--sattva, rajas and tamas--are under Your control, everything takes place automatically.
20. My Lord, Your form is transcendental to the three material modes, yet for the maintenance of the
three worlds, You assume the white color of Visnu in goodness; for creation, which is surrounded by the
quality of passion, You appear reddish; and at the end, when there is a need for annihilation, which is
surrounded by ignorance, You appear blackish.
21. O my Lord, proprietor of all creation, You have now appeared in my house, desiring to protect this
world. I am sure that You will kill all the armies that are moving all over the world under the leadership of
politicians who are dressed as ksatriya rulers but who are factually demons. They must be killed by You
for the protection of the innocent public.
22. O my Lord, Lord of the demigods, after hearing the prophecy that You would take birth in our home
and kill him, this uncivilized Kamsa killed so many of Your elder brothers. As soon as he hears from his
lieutenants that You have appeared, he will immediately come with weapons to kill You.
23. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thereafter, having seen that her child had all the symptoms of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Devaki, who was very much afraid of Kamsa and unusually
astonished, began to offer prayers to the Lord.
24. Sri Devaki said: My dear Lord, there are different Vedas, some of which describe You as
unperceivable through words and the mind. Yet You are the origin of the entire cosmic manifestation.
You are Brahman, the greatest of everything, full of effulgence like the sun. You have no material
cause, You are free from change and deviation, and You have no material desires. Thus the Vedas say
that You are the substance. Therefore, my Lord, You are directly the origin of all Vedic statements, and
by understanding You, one gradually understands everything. You are different from the light of
Brahman and Paramatma, yet You are not different from them. Everything emanates from You. Indeed,
You are the cause of all causes, Lord Visnu, the light of all transcendental knowledge.
25. After millions of years, at the time of cosmic annihilation, when everything, manifested and
unmanifested, is annihilated by the force of time, the five gross elements enter into the subtle
conception, and the manifested categories enter into the unmanifested substance. At that time, You
alone remain, and You are known as Ananta Sesa-naga.
26. O inaugurator of the material energy, this wonderful creation works under the control of powerful
time, which is divided into seconds, minutes, hours and years. This element of time, which extends for
many millions of years, is but another form of Lord Visnu. For Your pastimes, You act as the controller
of time, but You are the reservoir of all good fortune. Let me offer my full surrender unto Your Lordship.
27. No one in this material world has become free from the four principles birth, death, old age and
disease, even by fleeing to various planets. But now that You have appeared, My Lord, death is fleeing
in fear of You, and the living entities, having obtained shelter at Your lotus feet by Your mercy, are
sleeping in full mental peace.
28. My Lord, because You dispell all the fear of Your devotees, I request You to save us and give us
protection from the terrible fear of Kamsa. Your form as Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is
appreciated by yogis in meditation. Please make this form invisible to those who see with material eyes.
29. O Madhusudana, because of Your appearance, I am becoming more and more anxious in fear of
Kamsa. Therefore, please arrange for that sinful Kamsa to be unable to understand that You have
taken birth from my womb.
30. O my Lord, You are the all-pervading Supreme Personality of Godhead, and Your transcendental
four-armed form, holding conchshell, disc, club and lotus, is unnatural for this world. Please withdraw
this form [and become just like a natural human child so that I may try to hide You somewhere].
31. At the time of devastation, the entire cosmos, containing all created moving and nonmoving entities,
enters Your transcendental body and is held there without difficulty. But now this transcendental form
has taken birth from my womb. People will not be able to believe this, and I shall become an object of
ridicule.
32. The Supreme Personality of Godhead replied: My dear mother, best of the chaste, in your previous
birth, in the Svayambhuva millennium, you were known as Prsni, and Vasudeva, who was the most
pious Prajapati, was named Sutapa.
33. When both of you were ordered by Lord Brahma to create progeny, you first underwent severe
austerities by controlling your senses.
34-35. My dear father and mother, you endured rain, wind, strong sun, scorching heat and severe cold,
suffering all sorts of inconvenience according to different seasons. By practicing pranayama to control
the air within the body through yoga, and by eating only air and dry leaves fallen from the trees, you
cleansed from your minds all dirty things. In this way, desiring a benediction from Me, you worshiped
Me with peaceful minds.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 459
36. Thus you spent twelve thousand celestial years performing difficult activities of tapasya in
consciousness of Me [Krsna consciousness].
37-38. O sinless mother Devaki, after the expiry of twelve thousand celestial years, in which you
constantly contemplated Me within the core of your heart with great faith, devotion and austerity, I was
very much satisfied with you. Since I am the best of all bestowers of benediction, I appeared in this
same form as Krsna to ask you to take from Me the benediction you desired. You then expressed your
desire to have a son exactly like Me.
39. Being husband and wife but always sonless, you were attracted by sexual desires, for by the
influence of devamaya, transcendental love, you wanted to have Me as your son. Therefore you never
desired to be liberated from this material world.
40. After you received that benediction and I disappeared, you engaged yourselves in sex to have a son
like Me, and I fulfilled your desire.
41. Since I found no one else as highly elevated as you in simplicity and other qualities of good
character, I appeared in this world as Prsnigarbha, or one who is celebrated as having taken birth from
Prsni.
42. In the next millennium, I again appeared from the two of you, who appeared as My mother, Aditi,
and My father, Kasyapa. I was known as Upendra, and because of being a dwarf, I was also known as
Vamana.
43. O supremely chaste mother, I, the same personality, have now appeared of you both as your son
for the third time. Take My words as the truth.
44. I have shown you this form of Visnu just to remind you of My previous births. Otherwise, if I
appeared like an ordinary human child, you would not believe that the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Visnu, has indeed appeared.
45. Both of you, husband and wife, constantly think of Me as your son, but always know that I am the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. By thus thinking of Me constantly with love and affection, you will
achieve the highest perfection: returning home, back to Godhead.
46. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After thus instructing His father and mother, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Krsna, remained silent. In their presence, by His internal energy, He then transformed
Himself into a small human child. [In other words, He transformed Himself into His original form: krsnas
tu bhagavan svayam.]
47. Thereafter, exactly when Vasudeva, being inspired by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, was
about to take the newborn child from the delivery room, Yogamaya, the Lord's spiritual energy, took
birth as the daughter of the wife of Maharaja Nanda.
48-49. By the influence of Yogamaya, all the doorkeepers fell fast asleep, their senses unable to work,
and the other inhabitants of the house also fell deeply asleep. When the sun rises, the darkness
automatically disappears; similarly, when Vasudeva appeared, the closed doors, which were strongly
pinned with iron and locked with iron chains, opened automatically. Since the clouds in the sky were
mildly thundering and showering, Ananta-naga, an expansion of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
followed Vasudeva, beginning from the door, with hoods expanded to protect Vasudeva and the
transcendental child.
50. Because of constant rain sent by the demigod Indra, the River Yamuna was filled with deep water,
foaming about with fiercely whirling waves. But as the great Indian Ocean had formerly given way to
Lord Ramacandra by allowing Him to construct a bridge, the River Yamuna gave way to Vasudeva and
allowed him to cross.
51. When Vasudeva reached the house of Nanda Maharaja, he saw that all the cowherd men were fast
asleep. Thus he placed his own son on the bed of Yasoda, picked up her daughter, an expansion of
Yogamaya, and then returned to his residence, the prison house of Kamsa.
52. Vasudeva placed the female child on the bed of Devaki, bound his legs with the iron shackles, and
thus remained there as before.
53. Exhausted by the labor of childbirth, Yasoda was overwhelmed with sleep and unable to understand
what kind of child had been born to her.
Chapter Four The Atrocities of King Kamsa
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King Pariksit, the doors inside and outside the house closed
as before. Thereafter, the inhabitants of the house, especially the watchmen, heard the crying of the
newborn child and thus awakened from their beds.
2. Thereafter, all the watchmen very quickly approached King Kamsa, the ruler of the Bhoja dynasty,
and submitted the news of the birth of Devaki's child. Kamsa, who had awaited this news very
anxiously, immediately took action.
460 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3. Kamsa immediately got up from bed, thinking, "Here is Kala, the supreme time factor, which has
taken birth to kill me!" Thus overwhelmed, Kamsa, his hair scattered on his head, at once approached
the place where the child had been born.
4. Devaki helplessly, piteously appealed to Kamsa: My dear brother, all good fortune unto you. Don't kill
this girl. She will be your daughter-in-law. Indeed, it is unworthy of you to kill a woman.
5. My dear brother, by the influence of destiny you have already killed many babies, each of them as
bright and beautiful as fire. But kindly spare this daughter. Give her to me as your gift.
6. My lord, my brother, I am very poor, being bereft of all my children, but still I am your younger sister,
and therefore it would be worthy of you to give me this last child as a gift.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: piteously embracing her daughter and crying, Devaki begged Kamsa
for the child, but he was so cruel that he chastised her and forcibly snatched the child from her hands.
8. Having uprooted all relationships with his sister because of intense selfishness, Kamsa, who was
sitting on his knees, grasped the newborn child by the legs and tried to dash her against the surface of
a stone.
9. The child, Yogamaya-devi, the younger sister of Lord Visnu, slipped upward from Kamsa's hands and
appeared in the sky as Devi, the goddess Durga, with eight arms, completely equipped with weapons.
10-11. The goddess Durga was decorated with flower garlands, smeared with sandalwood pulp and
dressed with excellent garments and ornaments made of valuable jewels. Holding in her hands a bow,
a trident, arrows, a shield, a sword, a conchshell, a disc and a club, and being praised by celestial
beings like Apsaras, Kinnaras, Uragas, Siddhas, Caranas and Gandharvas, who worshiped her with all
kinds of presentations, she spoke as follows.
12. O Kamsa, you fool, what will be the use of killing me? The Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
has been your enemy from the very beginning and who will certainly kill you, has already taken His birth
somewhere else. Therefore, do not unnecessarily kill other children.
13. After speaking to Kamsa in this way, the goddess Durga, Yogamaya, appeared in different places,
such as Varanasi, and became celebrated by different names, such as Annapurna, Durga, Kali and
Bhadra.
14. After hearing the words of the goddess Durga, Kamsa was struck with wonder. Thus he approached
his sister Devaki and brother-in-law Vasudeva, released them immediately from their shackles, and very
humbly spoke as follows.
15. Alas, my sister! Alas, my brother-in-law! I am indeed so sinful that exactly like a man-eater
[Raksasa] who eats his own child, I have killed so many sons born of you.
16. Being merciless and cruel, I have forsaken all my relatives and friends. Therefore, like a person who
has killed a brahmana, I do not know to which planet I shall go, either after death or while breathing.
17. Alas, not only human beings but sometimes even providence lies. And I am so sinful that I believed
the omen of providence and killed so many of my sister's children.
18. O great souls, your children have suffered their own misfortune. Therefore, please do not lament for
them. All living entities are under the control of the Supreme, and they cannot always live together.
19. In this world, we can see that pots, dolls and other products of the earth appear, break and then
disappear, mixing with the earth. Similarly, the bodies of all conditioned living entities are annihilated,
but the living entities, like the earth itself, are unchanging and never annihilated [na hanyate
hanyamansarire].
20. One who does not understand the constitutional position of the body and the soul [atma] becomes
too attached to the bodily concept of life. Consequently, because of attachment to the body and its by-
products, he feels affected by union with and separation from his family, society and nation. As long as
this continues, one continues his material life. [Otherwise, one is liberated.]
21. My dear sister Devaki, all good fortune unto you. Everyone suffers and enjoys the results of his own
work under the control of providence. Therefore, although your sons have unfortunately been killed by
me, please do not lament for them.
22. In the bodily conception of life, one remains in darkness, without self-realization, thinking, "I am
being killed" or "I have killed my enemies." As long as a foolish person thus considers the self to be the
killer or the killed, he continues to be responsible for material obligations, and consequently he suffers
the reactions of happiness and distress.
23. Kamsa begged, "My dear sister and brother-in-law, please be merciful to such a poor-hearted
person as me, since both of you are saintly persons. Please excuse my atrocities." Having said this,
Kamsa fell at the feet of Vasudeva and Devaki, his eyes full of tears of regret.
24. Fully believing in the words of the goddess Durga, Kamsa exhibited his familial affection for Devaki
and Vasudeva by immediately releasing them from their iron shackles.
25. When Devaki saw her brother actually repentant while explaining ordained events, she was relieved
of all anger. Similarly, Vasudeva was also free from anger. Smiling, he spoke to Kamsa as follows.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 461
26. O great personality Kamsa, only by the influence of ignorance does one accept the material body
and bodily ego. What you have said about this philosophy is correct. Persons in the bodily concept of
life, lacking self-realization, differentiate in terms of "This is mine" and "This belongs to another."
27. Persons with the vision of differentiation are imbued with the material qualities lamentation,
jubilation, fear, envy, greed, illusion and madness. They are influenced by the immediate cause, which
they are busy counteracting, because they have no knowledge of the remote, supreme cause, the
Personality of Godhead.
28. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thus having been addressed in purity by Devaki and Vasudeva,
who were very much appeased, Kamsa felt pleased, and with their permission he entered his home.
29. After that night passed, Kamsa summoned his ministers and informed them of all that had been
spoken by Yogamaya [who had revealed that He who was to slay Kamsa had already been born
somewhere else].
30. After hearing their master's statement, the envious asuras, who were enemies of the demigods and
were not very expert in their dealings, advised Kamsa as follows.
31. If this is so, O King of the Bhoja dynasty, beginning today we shall kill all the children born in all the
villages, towns and pasturing grounds within the past ten days or slightly more.
32. The demigods always fear the sound of your bowstring. They are constantly in anxiety, afraid of
fighting. Therefore, what can they do by their endeavors to harm you?
33. While being pierced by your arrows, which you discharged on all sides, some of them, who were
injured by the multitude of arrows but who desired to live, fled the battlefield, intent on escaping.
34. Defeated and bereft of all weapons, some of the demigods gave up fighting and praised you with
folded hands, and some of them, appearing before you with loosened garments and hair, said, "O lord,
we are very much afraid of you."
35. When the demigods are bereft of their chariots, when they forget how to use weapons, when they
are fearful or attached to something other than fighting, or when their bows are broken and they have
thus lost the ability to fight, Your Majesty does not kill them.
36. The demigods boast uselessly while away from the battlefield. Only where there is no fighting can
they show their prowess. Therefore, from such demigods we have nothing to fear. As for Lord Visnu, He
is in seclusion in the core of the hearts of the yogis. As for Lord Siva, he has gone to the forest. And as
for Lord Brahma, he is always engaged in austerities and meditation. The other demigods, headed by
Indra, are devoid of prowess. Therefore you have nothing to fear.
37. Nonetheless, because of their enmity, our opinion is that the demigods should not be neglected.
Therefore, to uproot them completely, engage us in fighting with them, for we are ready to follow you.
38. As a disease, if initially neglected, becomes acute and impossible to cure, or as the senses, if not
controlled at first, are impossible to control later, an enemy, if neglected in the beginning, later becomes
insurmountable.
39. The foundation of all the demigods is Lord Visnu, who lives and is worshiped wherever there are
religious principles, traditional culture, the Vedas, cows, brahmanas, austerities, and sacrifices with
proper remuneration.
40. O King, we, who are your adherents in all respects, shall therefore kill the Vedic brahmanas, the
persons engaged in offering sacrifices and austerities, and the cows that supply milk, from which
clarified butter is obtained for the ingredients of sacrifice.
41. The brahmanas, the cows, Vedic knowledge, austerity, truthfulness, control of the mind and senses,
faith, mercy, tolerance and sacrifice are the different parts of the body of Lord Visnu, and they are the
paraphernalia for a godly civilization.
42. Lord Visnu, the Supersoul within the core of everyone's heart, is the ultimate enemy of the asuras
and is therefore known as asura-dvit. He is the leader of all the demigods because all the demigods,
including Lord Siva and Lord Brahma, exist under His protection. The great saintly persons, sages and
Vaisnavas also depend upon Him. To persecute the Vaisnavas, therefore, is the only way to kill Visnu.
43. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thus, having considered the instructions of his bad ministers,
Kamsa, who was bound by the laws of Yamaraja and devoid of good intelligence because he was a
demon, decided to persecute the saintly persons, the brahmanas, as the only way to achieve his own
good fortune.
44. These demons, the followers of Kamsa, were expert at persecuting others, especially the
Vaisnavas, and could assume any form they desired. After giving these demons permission to go
everywhere and persecute the saintly persons, Kamsa entered his palace.
45. Surcharged with passion and ignorance and not knowing what was good or bad for them, the
asuras, for whom impending death was waiting, began the persecution of the saintly persons.
46. My dear King, when a man persecutes great souls, all his benedictions of longevity, beauty, fame,
religion, blessings and promotion to higher planets will be destroyed.
462 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Five The Meeting of Nanda Maharaja and Vasudeva
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Nanda Maharaja was naturally very magnanimous, and when Lord Sri
Krsna appeared as his son, he was overwhelmed by jubilation. Therefore, after bathing and purifying
himself and dressing himself properly, he invited brahmanas who knew how to recite Vedic mantras.
After having these qualified brahmanas recite auspicious Vedic hymns, he arranged to have the Vedic
birth ceremony celebrated for his newborn child according to the rules and regulations, and he also
arranged for worship of the demigods and forefathers.
3. Nanda Maharaja gave two million cows, completely decorated with cloth and jewels, in charity to the
brahmanas. He also gave them seven hills of grain, covered with jewels and with cloth decorated with
golden embroidery.
4. O King, by the passing of time, land and other material possessions are purified; by bathing, the body
is purified; and by being cleansed, unclean things are purified. By purificatory ceremonies, birth is
purified; by austerity, the senses are purified; and by worship and charity offered to the brahmanas,
material possessions are purified. By satisfaction, the mind is purified; and by self-realization, or Krsna
consciousness, the soul is purified.
5. The brahmanas recited auspicious Vedic hymns, which purified the environment by their vibration.
The experts in reciting old histories like the Puranas, the experts in reciting the histories of royal
families, and general reciters all chanted, while singers sang and many kinds of musical instruments,
like bheris and dundubhis, played in accompaniment.
6. Vrajapura, the residence of Nanda Maharaja, was fully decorated with varieties of festoons and flags,
and in different places, gates were made with varieties of flower garlands, pieces of cloth, and mango
leaves. The courtyards, the gates near the roads, and everything within the rooms of the houses were
perfectly swept and washed with water.
7. The cows, the bulls and the calves were thoroughly smeared with a mixture of turmeric and oil, mixed
with varieties of minerals. Their heads were bedecked with peacock feathers, and they were garlanded
and covered with cloth and golden ornaments.
8. O King Pariksit, the cowherd men dressed very opulently with valuable ornaments and garments
such as coats and turbans. Decorated in this way and carrying various presentations in their hands,
they approached the house of Nanda Maharaja.
9. The gopi wives of the cowherd men were very pleased to hear that mother Yasoda had given birth to
a son, and they began to decorate themselves very nicely with proper dresses, ornaments, black
ointment for the eyes, and so on.
10. Their lotuslike faces extraordinarily beautiful, being decorated with saffron and newly grown
kunkuma, the wives of the cowherd men hurried to the house of mother Yasoda with presentations in
their hands. Because of natural beauty, the wives had full hips and full breasts, which moved as they
hurried along.
11. In the ears of the gopis were brilliantly polished jeweled earrings, and from their necks hung metal
lockets. Their hands were decorated with bangles, their dresses were of varied colors, and from their
hair, flowers fell onto the street like showers. Thus while going to the house of Maharaja Nanda, the
gopis, their earrings, breasts and garlands moving, were brilliantly beautiful.
12. Offering blessings to the newborn child, Krsna, the wives and daughters of the cowherd men said,
"May You become the King of Vraja and long maintain all its inhabitants." They sprinkled a mixture of
turmeric powder, oil and water upon the birthless Supreme Lord and offered their prayers.
13. Now that the all-pervading, unlimited Lord Krsna, the master of the cosmic manifestation, had
arrived within the estate of Maharaja Nanda, various types of musical instruments resounded to
celebrate the great festival.
14. In gladness, the cowherd men enjoyed the great festival by splashing one another's bodies with a
mixture of curd, condensed milk, butter and water. They threw butter on one another and smeared it on
one another's bodies.
15-16. The great-minded Maharaja Nanda gave clothing, ornaments and cows in charity to the cowherd
men in order to please Lord Visnu, and thus he improved the condition of his own son in all respects.
He distributed charity to the sutas, the magadhas, the vandis, and men of all other professions,
according to their educational qualifications, and satisfied everyone's desires.
17. The most fortunate Rohini, the mother of Baladeva, was honored by Nanda Maharaja and Yasoda,
and thus she also dressed gorgeously and decorated herself with a necklace, a garland and other
ornaments. She was busy wandering here and there to receive the women who were guests at the
festival.
18. O Maharaja Pariksit, the home of Nanda Maharaja is eternally the abode of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead and His transcendental qualities and is therefore always naturally endowed with
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 463
the opulence of all wealth. Yet beginning from Lord Krsna's appearance there, it became the place for
the pastimes of the goddess of fortune.
19. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Thereafter, my dear King Pariksit, O best protector of the Kuru
dynasty, Nanda Maharaja appointed the local cowherd men to protect Gokula and then went to Mathura
to pay the yearly taxes to King Kamsa.
20. When Vasudeva heard that Nanda Maharaja, his very dear friend and brother, had come to Mathura
and already paid the taxes to Kamsa, he went to Nanda Maharaja's residence.
21. When Nanda Maharaja heard that Vasudeva had come, he was overwhelmed with love and
affection, being as pleased as if his body had regained its life. Seeing Vasudeva suddenly present, he
got up and embraced him with both arms.
22. O Maharaja Pariksit, having thus been received and welcomed by Nanda Maharaja with honor,
Vasudeva sat down very peacefully and inquired about his own two sons because of intense love for
them.
23. My dear brother Nanda Maharaja, at an advanced age you had no son at all and were hopeless of
having one. Therefore, that you now have a son is a sign of great fortune.
24. It is also by good fortune that I am seeing you. Having obtained this opportunity, I feel as if I have
taken birth again. Even though one is present in this world, to meet with intimate friends and dear
relatives in this material world is extremely difficult.
25. Many planks and sticks, unable to stay together, are carried away by the force of a river's waves.
Similarly, although we are intimately related with friends and family members, we are unable to stay
together because of our varied past deeds and the waves of time.
26. My dear friend Nanda Maharaja, in the place where you are living with your friends, is the forest
favorable for the animals, the cows? I hope there is no disease or inconvenience. The place must be full
of water, grass and other plants.
27. My son Baladeva, being raised by you and your wife, Yasodadevi, considers you His father and
mother. Is he living very peacefully in your home with His real mother, Rohini?
28. When one's friends and relatives are properly situated, one's religion, economic development and
sense gratification, as described in the Vedic literatures, are beneficial. Otherwise, if one's friends and
relatives are in distress, these three cannot offer any happiness.
29. Nanda Maharaja said: Alas, King Kamsa killed so many of your children, born of Devaki. And your
one daughter, the youngest child of all, entered the heavenly planets.
30. Every man is certainly controlled by destiny, which determines the results of one's fruitive activities.
In other words, one has a son or daughter because of unseen destiny, and when the son or daughter is
no longer present, this also is due to unseen destiny. Destiny is the ultimate controller of everyone. One
who knows this is never bewildered.
31. Vasudeva said to Nanda Maharaja: Now, my dear brother, since you have paid the annual taxes to
Kamsa and have also seen me, do not stay in this place for many days. It is better to return to Gokula,
since I know that there may be some disturbances there.
32. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After Vasudeva advised Nanda Maharaja in this way, Nanda Maharaja
and his associates, the cowherd men, took permission from Vasudeva, yoked their bulls to the bullock
carts, and started riding for Gokula.
Chapter Six The Killing of the Demon Putana
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, while Nanda Maharaja was on the way home, he
considered that what Vasudeva had said could not be false or useless. There must have been some
danger of disturbances in Gokula. As Nanda Maharaja thought about the danger for his beautiful son,
Krsna, he was afraid, and he took shelter at the lotus feet of the supreme controller.
2. While Nanda Maharaja was returning to Gokula, the same fierce Putana whom Kamsa had
previously engaged to kill babies was wandering about in the towns, cities and villages, doing her
nefarious duty.
3. My dear King, wherever people in any position perform their occupational duties of devotional service
by chanting and hearing [sravanam kirtanam visnoh], there cannot be any danger from bad elements.
Therefore there was no need for anxiety about Gokula while the Supreme Personality of Godhead was
personally present.
4. Once upon a time, Putana Raksasi, who could move according to her desire and was wandering in
outer space, converted herself by mystic power into a very beautiful woman and thus entered Gokula,
the abode of Nanda Maharaja.
5-6. Her hips were full, her breasts were large and firm, seeming to overburden her slim waist, and she
was dressed very nicely. Her hair, adorned with a garland of mallika flowers, was scattered about her
beautiful face. Her earrings were brilliant, and as she smiled very attractively, glancing upon everyone,
her beauty drew the attention of all the inhabitants of Vraja, especially the men. When the gopis saw
464 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
her, they thought that the beautiful goddess of fortune, holding a lotus flower in her hand, had come to
see her husband, Krsna.
7. While searching for small children, Putana, whose business was to kill them, entered the house of
Nanda Maharaja unobstructed, having been sent by the superior potency of the Lord. Without asking
anyone's permission, she entered Nanda Maharaja's room, where she saw the child sleeping in bed,
His unlimited power covered like a powerful fire covered by ashes. She could understand that this child
was not ordinary, but was meant to kill all demons.
8. Lord Sri Krsna, the all-pervading Supersoul, lying on the bed, understood that Putana, a witch who
was expert in killing small children, had come to kill Him. Therefore, as if afraid of her, Krsna closed His
eyes. Thus Putana took upon her lap Him who was to be her own annihilation, just as an unintelligent
person places a sleeping snake on his lap, thinking the snake to be a rope.
9. Putana Raksasi's heart was fierce and cruel, but she looked like a very affectionate mother. Thus she
resembled a sharp sword in a soft sheath. Although seeing her within the room, Yasoda and Rohini,
overwhelmed by her beauty, did not stop her, but remained silent because she treated the child like a
mother.
10. On that very spot, the fiercely dangerous Raksasi took Krsna on her lap and pushed her breast into
His mouth. The nipple of her breast was smeared with a dangerous, immediately effective poison, but
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, becoming very angry at her, took hold of her breast,
squeezed it very hard with both hands, and sucked out both the poison and her life.
11. Unbearably pressed in every vital point, the demon Putana began to cry, "Please leave me, leave
me! Suck my breast no longer!" Perspiring, her eyes wide open and her arms and legs flailing, she cried
very loudly again and again.
12. As Putana screamed loudly and forcefully, the earth with its mountains, and outer space with its
planets, trembled. The lower planets and all directions vibrated, and people fell down, fearing that
thunderbolts were falling upon them.
13. In this way the demon Putana, very much aggrieved because her breast was being attacked by
Krsna, lost her life. O King Pariksit, opening her mouth wide and spreading her arms, legs and hair, she
fell down in the pasturing ground in her original form as a Raksasi, as Vrtrasura had fallen when killed
by the thunderbolt of Indra.
14. O King Pariksit, when the gigantic body of Putana fell to the ground, it smashed all the trees within a
limit of twelve miles. Appearing in a gigantic body, she was certainly extraordinary.
15-17. The Raksasi's mouth was full of teeth, each resembling the front of a plow, her nostrils were
deep like mountain caves, and her breasts resembled big slabs of stone fallen from a hill. Her scattered
hair was the color of copper. The sockets of her eyes appeared like deep blind wells, her fearful thighs
resembled the banks of a river, her arms, legs and feet seemed like big bridges, and her abdomen
appeared like a dried-up lake. The hearts, ears and heads of the cowherd men and women were
already shocked by the Raksasi's screaming, and when they saw the fierce wonder of her body, they
were even more frightened.
18. Without fear, the child Krsna was playing on the upper portion of Putana Raksasi's breast, and
when the gopis saw the child's wonderful activities, they immediately came forward with great jubilation
and picked Him up.
19. Thereafter, mother Yasoda and Rohini, along with the other elderly gopis, waved about the switch of
a cow to give full protection to the child Sri Krsna.
20. The child was thoroughly washed with cow urine and then smeared with the dust raised by the
movements of the cows. Then different names of the Lord were applied with cow dung on twelve
different parts of His body, beginning with the forehead, as done in applying tilaka. In this way, the child
was given protection.
21. The gopis first executed the process of acamana, drinking a sip of water from the right hand. They
purified their bodies and hands with the nyasa-mantra and then applied the same mantra upon the body
of the child.
22-23. [Sukadeva Gosvami informed Maharaja Pariksit that the gopis, following the proper system,
protected Krsna, their child, with this mantra.] May Aja protect Your legs, may Maniman protect Your
knees, Yajna Your thighs, Acyuta the upper part of Your waist, and Hayagriva Your abdomen. May
Kesava protect Your heart, Isa Your chest, the sun-god Your neck, Visnu Your arms, Urukrama Your
face, and Isvara Your head. May Cakri protect You from the front; may Sri Hari, Gadadhari, the carrier
of the club, protect You from the back; and may the carrier of the bow, who is known as the enemy of
Madhu, and Lord Ajana, the carrier of the sword, protect Your two sides. May Lord Urugaya, the carrier
of the conchshell, protect You from all corners; may Upendra protect You from above; may Garuda
protect You on the ground; and may Lord Haladhara, the Supreme Person, protect You on all sides.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 465
24. May Hrsikesa protect Your senses, and Narayana Your life air. May the master of Svetadvipa
protect the core of Your heart, and may Lord Yogesvara protect Your mind.
25-26. May Lord Prsnigarbha protect Your intelligence, and the Supreme Personality of Godhead Your
soul. While You are playing, may Govinda protect You, and while You are sleeping may Madhava
protect You. May Lord Vaikuntha protect You while You are walking, and may Lord Narayana, the
husband of the goddess of fortune, protect You while You are sitting. Similarly, may Lord Yajnabhuk,
the fearful enemy of all evil planets, always protect You while You enjoy life.
27-29. The evil witches known as Dakinis, Yatudhanis and Kusmandas are the greatest enemies of
children, and the evil spirits like Bhutas, Pretas, Pisacas, Yaksas, Raksasas and Vinayakas, as well as
witches like Kotara, Revati, Jyestha, Putana and Matrka, are always ready to give trouble to the body,
the life air and the senses, causing loss of memory, madness and bad dreams. Like the most
experienced evil stars, they all create great disturbances, especially for children, but one can vanquish
them simply by uttering Lord Visnu's name, for when Lord Visnu's name resounds, all of them become
afraid and go away.
30. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: All the gopis, headed by mother Yasoda, were bound by
maternal affection. After they thus chanted mantras to protect the child, mother Yasoda gave the child
the nipple of her breast to suck and then got Him to lie down on His bed.
31. Meanwhile, all the cowherd men, headed by Nanda Maharaja, returned from Mathura, and when
they saw on the way the gigantic body of Putana lying dead, they were struck with great wonder.
32. Nanda Maharaja and the other gopas exclaimed: My dear friends, you must know that
Anakadundubhi, Vasudeva, has become a great saint or a master of mystic power. Otherwise how
could he have foreseen this calamity and predicted it to us?
33. The inhabitants of Vraja cut the gigantic body of Putana into pieces with the help of axes. Then they
threw the pieces far away, covered them with wood and burned them to ashes.
34. Because of Krsna's having sucked the breast of the Raksasi Putana, when Krsna killed her she was
immediately freed of all material contamination. Her sinful reactions automatically vanished, and
therefore when her gigantic body was being burnt, the smoke emanating from her body was fragrant
like aguru incense.
35-36. Putana was always hankering for the blood of human children, and with that desire she came to
kill Krsna; but because she offered her breast to the Lord, she attained the greatest achievement. What
then is to be said of those who had natural devotion and affection for Krsna as mothers and who offered
Him their breasts to suck or offered something very dear, as a mother offers something to a child?
37-38. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, is always situated within the core of the heart of
the pure devotee, and He is always offered prayers by such worshipable personalities as Lord Brahma
and Lord Siva. Because Krsna embraced Putana's body with great pleasure and sucked her breast,
although she was a great witch, she attained the position of a mother in the transcendental world and
thus achieved the highest perfection. What then is to be said of the cows whose nipples Krsna sucked
with great pleasure and who offered their milk very jubilantly with affection exactly like that of a mother?
39-40. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, is the bestower of many benedictions, including
liberation [kaivalya], or oneness with the Brahman effulgence. For that Personality of Godhead, the
gopis always felt maternal love, and Krsna sucked their breasts with full satisfaction. Therefore,
because of their relationship as mother and son, although the gopis were engaged in various family
activities, one should never think that they returned to this material world after leaving their bodies.
41. Upon smelling the fragrance of the smoke emanating from Putana's burning body, many inhabitants
of Vrajabhumi in distant places were astonished. "Where is this fragrance coming from?" they asked.
Thus they went to the spot where Putana's body was being burnt.
42. When the inhabitants of Vraja who had come from distant places heard the whole story of how
Putana had come and then been killed by Krsna, they were certainly astonished, and they offered their
blessings to the child for His wonderful deed of killing Putana. Nanda Maharaja, of course, was very
much obliged to Vasudeva, who had foreseen the incident, and simply thanked him, thinking how
wonderful Vasudeva was.
43. O Maharaja Pariksit, best of the Kurus, Nanda Maharaja was very liberal and simple. He
immediately took his son Krsna on his lap as if Krsna had returned from death, and by formally smelling
his son's head, Nanda Maharaja undoubtedly enjoyed transcendental bliss.
44. Any person who hears with faith and devotion about how Krsna, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, killed Putana, and who thus invests his hearing in such childhood pastimes of Krsna,
certainly attains attachment for Govinda, the supreme, original person.
Chapter Seven The Killing of the Demon Trnavarta
1-2. King Pariksit said: My lord, Sukadeva Gosvami, all the various activities exhibited by the
incarnations of the Supreme Personality of Godhead are certainly pleasing to the ear and to the mind.
466 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Simply by one's hearing of these activities, the dirty things in one's mind immediately vanish. Generally
we are reluctant to hear about the activities of the Lord, but Krsna's childhood activities are so attractive
that they are automatically pleasing to the mind and ear. Thus one's attachment for hearing about
material things, which is the root cause of material existence, vanishes, and one gradually develops
devotional service to the Supreme Lord, attachment for Him, and friendship with devotees who give us
the contribution of Krsna consciousness. If you think it fit, kindly speak about those activities of the Lord.
3. Please describe other pastimes of Krsna, the Supreme Personality, who appeared on this planet
earth, imitating a human child and performing wonderful activities like killing Putana.
4. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When mother Yasoda's baby was slanting His body to attempt to rise and
turn around, this attempt was observed by a Vedic ceremony. In such a ceremony, called utthana,
which is performed when a child is due to leave the house for the first time, the child is properly bathed.
Just after Krsna turned three months old, mother Yasoda celebrated this ceremony with other women of
the neighborhood. On that day, there was a conjunction of the moon with the constellation Rohini. As
the brahmanas joined by chanting Vedic hymns and professional musicians also took part, this great
ceremony was observed by mother Yasoda
5. After completing the bathing ceremony for the child, mother Yasoda received the brahmanas by
worshiping them with proper respect and giving them ample food grains and other eatables, clothing,
desirable cows, and garlands. The brahmanas properly chanted Vedic hymns to observe the auspicious
ceremony, and when they finished and mother Yasoda saw that the child felt sleepy, she lay down on
the bed with the child until He was peacefully asleep.
6. The liberal mother Yasoda, absorbed in celebrating the utthana ceremony, was busy receiving
guests, worshiping them with all respect and offering them clothing, cows, garlands and grains. Thus
she could not hear the child crying for His mother. At that time, the child Krsna, demanding to drink the
milk of His mother's breast, angrily threw His legs upward.
7. Lord Sri Krsna was lying down underneath the handcart in one corner of the courtyard, and although
His little legs were as soft as leaves, when He struck the cart with His legs, it turned over violently and
collapsed. The wheels separated from the axle, the hubs and spokes fell apart, and the pole of the
handcart broke. On the cart there were many little utensils made of various metals, and all of them
scattered hither and thither.
8. When mother Yasoda and the other ladies who had assembled for the utthana festival, and all the
men, headed by Nanda Maharaja, saw the wonderful situation, they began to wonder how the handcart
had collapsed by itself. They began to wander here and there, trying to find the cause, but were unable
to do so.
9. The assembled cowherd men and ladies began to contemplate how this thing had happened. "Is it
the work of some demon or evil planet?" they asked. At that time, the small children present asserted
that the cart had been kicked apart by the baby Krsna. As soon as the crying baby bad kicked the cart's
wheel, the cart had collapsed. There was no doubt about it.
10. The assembled gopis and gopas, unaware that Krsna is always unlimited, could not believe that
baby Krsna had such inconceivable power. They could not believe the statements of the children, and
therefore they neglected these statements as being childish talk.
11. Thinking that some bad planet had attacked Krsna, mother Yasoda picked up the crying child and
allowed Him to suck her breast. Then she called for experienced brahmanas to chant Vedic hymns and
perform an auspicious ritualistic ceremony.
12. After the strong, stout cowherd men assembled the pots and paraphernalia on the handcart and set
it up as before, the brahmanas performed a ritualistic ceremony with a fire sacrifice to appease the bad
planet, and then, with rice grains, kusa, water and curd, they worshiped the Supreme Lord.
13-15. When brahmanas are free from envy, untruthfulness, unnecessary pride, grudges, disturbance
by the opulence of others, and false prestige, their blessings never go in vain. Considering this, Nanda
Maharaja soberly took Krsna on his lap and invited such truthful brahmanas to perform a ritualistic
ceremony according to the holy hymns of the Sama Veda, Rg Veda and Yajur Veda. Then, while the
hymns were being chanted, he bathed the child with water mixed with pure herbs, and after performing
a fire ceremony, he sumptuously fed all the brahmanas with first-class grains and other food.
16. Nanda Maharaja, for the sake of the affluence of his own son Krsna, gave the brahmanas cows fully
decorated with garments, flower garlands and gold necklaces. These cows, fully qualified to give ample
milk, were given to the brahmanas in charity, and the brahmanas accepted them and bestowed
blessings upon the whole family, and especially upon Krsna.
17. The brahmanas, who were completely expert in chanting the Vedic hymns, were all yogis fully
equipped with mystic powers. Whatever blessings they spoke were certainly never fruitless.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 467
18. One day, a year after Krsna's appearance, mother Yasoda was patting her son on her lap. But
suddenly she felt the child to be heavier than a mountain peak, and she could no longer bear His
weight.
19. Feeling the child to be as heavy as the entire universe and therefore being anxious, thinking that
perhaps the child was being attacked by some other ghost or demon, the astonished mother Yasoda
put the child down on the ground and began to think of Narayana. Foreseeing disturbances, she called
for the brahmanas to counteract this heaviness, and then she engaged in her other household affairs.
She had no alternative than to remember the lotus feet of Narayana, for she could not understand that
Krsna was the original source of everything.
20. While the child was sitting on the ground, a demon named Trnavarta, who was a servant of
Kamsa's, came there as a whirlwind, at Kamsa's instigation, and very easily carried the child away into
the air.
21. Covering the whole land of Gokula with particles of dust, that demon, acting as a strong whirlwind,
covered everyone's vision and began vibrating everywhere with a greatly fearful sound.
22. For a moment, the whole pasturing ground was overcast with dense darkness from the dust storm,
and mother Yasoda was unable to find her son where she had placed Him.
23. Because of the bits of sand thrown about by Trnavarta, people could not see themselves or anyone
else, and thus they were illusioned and disturbed.
24. Because of the dust storm stirred up by the strong whirlwind, mother Yasoda could find no trace of
her son, nor could she understand why. Thus she fell down on the ground like a cow who has lost her
calf and began to lament very pitifully.
25. When the force of the dust storm and the winds subsided, Yasoda's friends, the other gopis,
approached mother Yasoda, hearing her pitiful crying. Not seeing Krsna present, they too felt very
much aggrieved and joined mother Yasoda in crying, their eyes full of tears.
26. Having assumed the form of a forceful whirlwind, the demon Trnavarta took Krsna very high in the
sky, but when Krsna became heavier than the demon, the demon had to stop his force and could go no
further.
27. Because of Krsna's weight, Trnavarta considered Him to be like a great mountain or a hunk of iron.
But because Krsna had caught the demon's neck, the demon was unable to throw Him off. He therefore
thought of the child as wonderful, since he could neither bear the child nor cast aside the burden.
28. With Krsna grasping him by the throat, Trnavarta choked, unable to make even a sound or even to
move his hands and legs. His eyes popping out, the demon lost his life and fell, along with the little boy,
down to the ground of Vraja.
29. While the gopis who had gathered were crying for Krsna, the demon fell from the sky onto a big slab
of stone, his limbs dislocated, as if he had been pierced by the arrow of Lord Siva like Tripurasura.
30. The gopis immediately picked Krsna up from the chest of the demon and delivered Him, free from
all inauspiciousness, to mother Yasoda. Because the child, although taken into the sky by the demon,
was unhurt and now free from all danger and misfortune, the gopis and cowherd men, headed by
Nanda Maharaja, were extremely happy.
31. It is most astonishing that although this innocent child was taken away by the Raksasa to be eaten,
He has returned without having been killed or even injured. Because this demon was envious, cruel and
sinful, he has been killed for his own sinful activities. This is the law of nature. An innocent devotee is
always protected by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and a sinful person is always vanquished for
his sinful life.
32. Nanda Maharaja and the others said: We must previously have performed austerities for a very long
time, worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead, performed pious activities for public life,
constructing public roads and wells, and also given charity, as a result of which this boy, although faced
with death, has returned to give happiness to His relatives.
33. Having seen all these incidents in Brhadvana, Nanda Maharaja became more and more astonished,
and he remembered the words spoken to him by Vasudeva in Mathura.
34. One day mother Yasoda, having taken Krsna up and placed Him on her lap, was feeding Him milk
from her breast with maternal affection. The milk was flowing from her breast, and the child was drinking
it.
35-36. O King Pariksit, when the child Krsna was almost finished drinking His mother's milk and mother
Yasoda was touching Him and looking at His beautiful, brilliantly smiling face, the baby yawned, and
mother Yasoda saw in His mouth the whole sky, the higher planetary system and the earth, the
luminaries in all directions, the sun, the moon, fire, air, the seas, islands, mountains, rivers, forests, and
all kinds of living entities, moving and nonmoving.
37. When mother Yasoda saw the whole universe within the mouth of her child, her heart began to
throb, and in astonishment she wanted to close her restless eyes.
468 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Eight Lord Krsna Shows the Universal Form Within His Mouth
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O Maharaja Pariksit, the priest of the Yadu dynasty, namely Gargamuni,
who was highly elevated in austerity and penance, was then inspired by Vasudeva to go see Nanda
Maharaja at his home.
2. When Nanda Maharaja saw Gargamuni present at his home, Nanda was so pleased that he stood up
to receive him with folded hands. Although seeing Gargamuni with his eyes, Nanda Maharaja could
appreciate that Gargamuni was adhoksaja; that is, he was not an ordinary person seen by material
senses.
3. When Gargamuni had been properly received as a guest and was very comfortably seated, Nanda
Maharaja submitted with gentle and submissive words: Dear sir, because you are a devotee, you are
full in everything. Yet my duty is to serve you. Kindly order me. What can I do for you?
4. O my lord, O great devotee, persons like you move from one place to another not for their own
interests but for the sake of poor-hearted grhasthas [householders]. Otherwise they have no interest in
going from one place to another.
5. O great saintly person, you have compiled the astrological knowledge by which one can understand
past and present unseen things. By the strength of this knowledge, any human being can understand
what he has done in his past life and how it affects his present life. This is known to you.
6. My lord, you are the best of the brahmanas, especially because you are fully aware of the jyotih-
sastra, the astrological science. Therefore you are naturally the spiritual master of every human being.
This being so, since you have kindly come to my house, kindly execute the reformatory activities for my
two sons.
7. Gargamuni said: My dear Nanda Maharaja, I am the priestly guide of the Yadu dynasty. This is
known everywhere. Therefore, if I perform the purificatory process for your sons, Kamsa will consider
Them the sons of Devaki.
8-9. Kamsa is both a great diplomat and a very sinful man. Therefore, having heard from Yogamaya,
the daughter of Devaki, that the child who will kill him has already been born somewhere else, having
heard that the eighth pregnancy of Devaki could not bring forth a female child, and having understood
your friendship with Vasudeva, Kamsa, upon hearing that the purificatory process has been performed
by me, the priest of the Yadu dynasty, may certainly consider all these points and suspect that Krsna is
the son of Devaki and Vasudeva. Then he might take steps to kill Krsna. That would be a catastrophe.
10. Nanda Maharaja said: My dear great sage, if you think that your performing this process of
purification will make Kamsa suspicious, then secretly chant the Vedic hymns and perform the purifying
process of second birth here in the cow shed of my house, without the knowledge of anyone else, even
my relatives, for this process of purification is essential.
11. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Having thus been especially requested by Nanda Maharaja to do
that which he already desired to do, Gargamuni performed the name-giving ceremony for Krsna and
Balarama in a solitary place.
12. Gargamuni said: This child, the son of Rohini, will give all happiness to His relatives and friends by
His transcendental qualities. Therefore He will be known as Rama. And because He will manifest
extraordinary bodily strength, He will also be known as Bala. Moreover, because He unites two families-
-Vasudeva's family and the family of Nanda Maharaja--He will be known as Sankarsana.
13. Your son Krsna appears as an incarnation in every millennium. In the past, He assumed three
different colors--white, red and yellow--and now He has appeared in a blackish color. [In another
Dvapara-yuga, He appeared (as Lord Ramacandra) in the color of suka, a parrot. All such incarnations
have now assembled in Krsna.]
14. For many reasons, this beautiful son of yours sometimes appeared previously as the son of
Vasudeva. Therefore, those who are learned sometimes call this child Vasudeva.
15. For this son of yours there are many forms and names according to His transcendental qualities and
activities. These are known to me, but people in general do not understand them.
16. To increase the transcendental bliss of the cowherd men of Gokula, this child will always act
auspiciously for you. And by His grace only, you will surpass all difficulties.
17. O Nanda Maharaja, as recorded in history, when there was an irregular, incapable government,
Indra having been dethroned, and people were being harassed and disturbed by thieves, this child
appeared in order to protect the people and enable them to flourish, and He curbed the rogues and
thieves.
18. Demons [asuras] cannot harm the demigods, who always have Lord Visnu on their side. Similarly,
any person or group attached to Krsna is extremely fortunate. Because such persons are very much
affectionate toward Krsna, they cannot be defeated by demons like the associates of Kamsa [or by the
internal enemies, the senses].
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 469
19. In conclusion, therefore, O Nanda Maharaja, this child of yours is as good as Narayana. In His
transcendental qualities, opulence, name, fame and influence, He is exactly like Narayana. You should
all raise this child very carefully and cautiously.
20. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After Gargamuni, having instructed Nanda Maharaja about
Krsna, departed for his own home, Nanda Maharaja was very pleased and considered himself full of all
good fortune.
21. After a short time passed, both brothers, Rama and Krsna, began to crawl on the ground of Vraja
with the strength of Their hands and knees and thus enjoy Their childhood play.
22. When Krsna and Balarama, with the strength of Their legs, crawled in the muddy places created in
Vraja by cow dung and cow urine, Their crawling resembled the crawling of serpents, and the sound of
Their ankle bells was very charming. Very much pleased by the sound of other people's ankle bells,
They used to follow these people as if going to Their mothers, but when They saw that these were other
people, They became afraid and returned to Their real mothers, Yasoda and Rohini.
23. Dressed with muddy earth mixed with cow dung and cow urine, the babies looked very beautiful,
and when They went to Their mothers, both Yasoda and Rohini picked Them up with great affection,
embraced Them and allowed Them to suck the milk flowing from their breasts. While sucking the
breast, the babies smiled, and Their small teeth were visible. Their mothers, upon seeing those
beautiful teeth, enjoyed great transcendental bliss.
24. Within the house of Nanda Maharaja, the cowherd ladies would enjoy seeing the pastimes of the
babies Rama and Krsna. The babies would catch the ends of the calves' tails, and the calves would
drag Them here and there. When the ladies saw these pastimes, they certainly stopped their household
activities and laughed and enjoyed the incidents.
25. When mother Yasoda and Rohini were unable to protect the babies from calamities threatened by
horned cows, by fire, by animals with claws and teeth such as monkeys, dogs and cats, and by thorns,
swords and other weapons on the ground, they were always in anxiety, and their household
engagements were disturbed. At that time, they were fully equipoised in the transcendental ecstasy
known as the distress of material affection, for this was aroused within their minds.
26. O King Pariksit, within a very short time both Rama and Krsna began to walk very easily in Gokula
on Their legs, by Their own strength, without the need to crawl.
27. Thereafter, Lord Krsna, along with Balarama, began to play with the other children of the cowherd
men, thus awakening the transcendental bliss of the cowherd women.
28. Observing the very attractive childish restlessness of Krsna, all the gopis in the neighborhood, to
hear about Krsna's activities again and again, would approach mother Yasoda and speak to her as
follows.
29. "Our dear friend Yasoda, your son sometimes comes to our houses before the milking of the cows
and releases the calves, and when the master of the house becomes angry, your son merely smiles.
Sometimes He devises some process by which He steals palatable curd, butter and milk, which He then
eats and drinks. When the monkeys assemble, He divides it with them, and when the monkeys have
their bellies so full that they won't take more, He breaks the pots. Sometimes, if He gets no opportunity
to steal butter or milk from a house, He will be angry at the householders, and for His revenge He will
agitate the small children by pinching them. Then, when the children begin crying, Krsna will go away.
30. "When the milk and curd are kept high on a swing hanging from the ceiling and Krsna and Balarama
cannot reach it, They arrange to reach it by piling up various planks and turning upside down the mortar
for grinding spices. Being quite aware of the contents of a pot, They pick holes in it. While the elderly
gopis go about their household affairs, Krsna and Balarama sometimes go into a dark room, brightening
the place with the valuable jewels and ornaments on Their bodies and taking advantage of this light by
stealing.
31. "When Krsna is caught in His naughty activities, the master of the house will say to Him, `Oh, You
are a thief,' and artificially express anger at Krsna. Krsna will then reply, `I am not a thief. You are a
thief.' Sometimes, being angry, Krsna passes urine and stool in a neat, clean place in our houses. But
now, our dear friend Yasoda, this expert thief is sitting before you like a very good boy." Sometimes all
the gopis would look at Krsna sitting there, His eyes fearful so that His mother would not chastise Him,
and when they saw Krsna's beautiful face, instead of chastising Him they would simply look upon His
face and enjoy transcendental bliss. Mother Yasoda would mildly smile at all this fun, and she would not
want to chastise her blessed transcendental child.
32. One day while Krsna was playing with His small playmates, including Balarama and other sons of
the gopas, all His friends came together and lodged a complaint to mother Yasoda. "Mother," they
submitted, "Krsna has eaten earth."
470 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
33. Upon hearing this from Krsna's playmates, mother Yasoda, who was always full of anxiety over
Krsna's welfare, picked Krsna up with her hands to look into His mouth and chastise Him. Her eyes
fearful, she spoke to her son as follows.
34. Dear Krsna, why are You so restless that You have eaten dirt in a solitary place? This complaint has
been lodged against You by all Your playmates, including Your elder brother, Balarama. How is this?
35. Lord Sri Krsna replied: My dear mother, I have never eaten dirt. All My friends complaining against
Me are liars. If you think they are being truthful, you can directly look into My mouth and examine it.
36. Mother Yasoda challenged Krsna, "If You have not eaten earth, then open Your mouth wide." When
challenged by His mother in this way, Krsna, the son of Nanda Maharaja and Yasoda, to exhibit
pastimes like a human child, opened His mouth. Although the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna,
who is full of all opulences, did not disturb His mother's parental affection, His opulence was
automatically displayed, for Krsna's opulence is never lost at any stage, but is manifest at the proper
time.
37-39. When Krsna opened His mouth wide by the order of mother Yasoda, she saw within His mouth
all moving and nonmoving entities, outer space, and all directions, along with mountains, islands,
oceans, the surface of the earth, the blowing wind, fire, the moon and the stars. She saw the planetary
systems, water, light, air, sky, and creation by transformation of ahankara. She also saw the senses, the
mind, sense perception, and the three qualities goodness, passion and ignorance. She saw the time
allotted for the living entities, she saw natural instinct and the reactions of karma, and she saw desires
and different varieties of bodies, moving and nonmoving. Seeing all these aspects of the cosmic
manifestation, along with herself and Vrndavana-dhama, she became doubtful and fearful of her son's
nature.
40. [Mother Yasoda began to argue within herself:] Is this a dream, or is it an illusory creation by the
external energy? Has this been manifested by my own intelligence, or is it some mystic power of my
child?
41. Therefore let me surrender unto the Supreme Personality of Godhead and offer my obeisances unto
Him, who is beyond the conception of human speculation, the mind, activities, words and arguments,
who is the original cause of this cosmic manifestation, by whom the entire cosmos is maintained, and by
whom we can conceive of its existence. Let me simply offer my obeisances, for He is beyond my
contemplation, speculation and meditation. He is beyond all of my material activities.
42. It is by the influence of the Supreme Lord's maya that I am wrongly thinking that Nanda Maharaja is
my husband, that Krsna is my son, and that because I am the queen of Nanda Maharaja, all the wealth
of cows and calves are my possessions and all the cowherd men and their wives are my subjects.
Actually, I also am eternally subordinate to the Supreme Lord. He is my ultimate shelter.
43. Mother Yasoda, by the grace of the Lord, could understand the real truth. But then again, the
supreme master, by the influence of the internal potency, yogamaya, inspired her to become absorbed
in intense maternal affection for her son.
44. Immediately forgetting yogamaya's illusion that Krsna had shown the universal form within His
mouth, mother Yasoda took her son on her lap as before, feeling increased affection in her heart for her
transcendental child.
45. The glories of the Supreme Personality of Godhead are studied through the three Vedas, the
Upanisads, the literature of Sankhya-yoga, and other Vaisnava literature, yet mother Yasoda
considered that Supreme Person her ordinary child.
46. Having heard of the great fortune of mother Yasoda, Pariksit Maharaja inquired from Sukadeva
Gosvami: O learned brahmana, mother Yasoda's breast milk was sucked by the Supreme Personality
of Godhead. What past auspicious activities did she and Nanda Maharaja perform to achieve such
perfection in ecstatic love?
47. Although Krsna was so pleased with Vasudeva and Devaki that He descended as their son, they
could not enjoy Krsna's magnanimous childhood pastimes, which are so great that simply chanting
about them vanquishes the contamination of the material world. Nanda Maharaja and Yasoda,
however, enjoyed these pastimes fully, and therefore their position is always better than that of
Vasudeva and Devaki.
48. Sukadeva Gosvami said: To follow the orders of Lord Brahma, Drona, the best of the Vasus, along
with his wife, Dhara, spoke to Lord Brahma in this way.
49. Drona and Dhara said: Please permit us to be born on the planet earth so that after our
appearance, the Supreme Lord, the Personality of Godhead, the supreme controller and master of all
planets, will also appear and spread devotional service, the ultimate goal of life, so that those born in
this material world may very easily be delivered from the miserable condition of materialistic life by
accepting this devotional service.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 471
50. When Brahma said, "Yes, let it be so," the most fortune Drona, who was equal to Bhagavan,
appeared in Vrajapura, Vrndavana, as the most famous Nanda Maharaja, and his wife, Dhara,
appeared as mother Yasoda.
51. Thereafter, O Maharaja Pariksit, best of the Bharatas, when the Supreme Personality of Godhead
became the son of Nanda Maharaja and Yasoda, they maintained continuous, unswerving devotional
love in parental affection. And in their association, all the other inhabitants of Vrndavana, the gopas and
gopis, developed the culture of krsna-bhakti.
52. Thus the Supreme Personality, Krsna, along with Balarama, lived in Vrajabhumi, Vrndavana, just to
substantiate the benediction of Brahma. By exhibiting different pastimes in His childhood, He increased
the transcendental pleasure of Nanda and the other inhabitants of Vrndavana.
Chapter Nine Mother Yasoda Binds Lord Lord Krsna
1-2. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: One day when mother Yasoda saw that all the maidservants
were engaged in other household affairs, she personally began to churn the yogurt. While churning, she
remembered the childish activities of Krsna, and in her own way she composed songs and enjoyed
singing to herself about all those activities.
3. Dressed in a saffron-yellow sari, with a belt tied about her full hips, mother Yasoda pulled on the
churning rope, laboring considerably, her bangles and earrings moving and vibrating and her whole
body shaking. Because of her intense love for her child, her breasts were wet with milk. Her face, with
its very beautiful eyebrows, was wet with perspiration, and malati flowers were falling from her hair.
4. While mother Yasoda was churning butter, Lord Krsna, desiring to drink the milk of her breast,
appeared before her, and in order to increase her transcendental pleasure, He caught hold of the
churning rod and began to prevent her from churning.
5. Mother Yasoda then embraced Krsna, allowed Him to sit down on her lap, and began to look upon
the face of the Lord with great love and affection. Because of her intense affection, milk was flowing
from her breast. But when she saw that the milk pan on the oven was boiling over, she immediately left
her son to take care of the overflowing milk, although the child was not yet fully satisfied with drinking
the milk of His mother's breast.
6. Being very angry and biting His reddish lips with His teeth, Krsna, with false tears in His eyes, broke
the container of yogurt with a piece of stone. Then He entered a room and began to eat the freshly
churned butter in a solitary place.
7. Mother Yasoda, after taking down the hot milk from the oven, returned to the churning spot, and
when she saw that the container of yogurt was broken and that Krsna was not present, she concluded
that the breaking of the pot was the work of Krsna.
8. Krsna, at that time, was sitting on an upside-down wooden mortar for grinding spices and was
distributing milk preparations such as yogurt and butter to the monkeys as He liked. Because of having
stolen, He was looking all around with great anxiety, suspecting that He might be chastised by His
mother. Mother Yasoda, upon seeing Him, very cautiously approached Him from behind.
9. When Lord Sri Krsna saw His mother, stick in hand, He very quickly got down from the top of the
mortar and began to flee as if very much afraid. Although yogis try to capture Him as Paramatma by
meditation, desiring to enter into the effulgence of the Lord with great austerities and penances, they fail
to reach Him. But mother Yasoda, thinking that same Personality of Godhead, Krsna, to be her son,
began following Krsna to catch Him.
10. While following Krsna, mother Yasoda, her thin waist overburdened by her heavy breasts, naturally
had to reduce her speed. Because of following Krsna very swiftly, her hair became loose, and the
flowers in her hair were falling after her. Yet she did not fail to capture her son Krsna.
11. When caught by mother Yasoda, Krsna became more and more afraid and admitted to being an
offender. As she looked upon Him, she saw that He was crying, His tears mixing with the black ointment
around His eyes, and as He rubbed His eyes with His hands, He smeared the ointment all over His
face. Mother Yasoda, catching her beautiful son by the hand, mildly began to chastise Him.
12. Mother Yasoda was always overwhelmed by intense love for Krsna, not knowing who Krsna was or
how powerful He was. Because of maternal affection for Krsna, she never even cared to know who He
was. Therefore, when she saw that her son had become excessively afraid, she threw the stick away
and desired to bind Him so that He would not commit any further naughty activities.
13-14. The Supreme Personality of Godhead has no beginning and no end, no exterior and no interior,
no front and no rear. In other words, He is all-pervading. Because He is not under the influence of the
element of time, for Him there is no difference between past, present and future; He exists in His own
transcendental form at all times. Being absolute, beyond relativity, He is free from distinctions between
cause and effect, although He is the cause and effect of everything. That unmanifested person, who is
beyond the perception of the senses, had now appeared as a human child, and mother Yasoda,
considering Him her own ordinary child, bound Him to the wooden mortar with a rope.
472 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. When mother Yasoda was trying to bind the offending child, she saw that the binding rope was
short by a distance the width of two fingers. Thus she brought another rope to join to it.
16. This new rope also was short by a measurement of two fingers, and when another rope was joined
to it, it was still two fingers too short. As many ropes as she joined, all of them failed; their shortness
could not be overcome.
17. Thus mother Yasoda joined whatever ropes were available in the household, but still she failed in
her attempt to bind Krsna. Mother Yasoda's friends, the elderly gopis in the neighborhood, were smiling
and enjoying the fun. Similarly, mother Yasoda, although laboring in that way, was also smiling. All of
them were struck with wonder.
18. Because of mother Yasoda's hard labor, her whole body became covered with perspiration, and the
flowers and comb were falling from her hair. When child Krsna saw His mother thus fatigued, He
became merciful to her and agreed to be bound.
19. O Maharaja Pariksit, this entire universe, with its great, exalted demigods like Lord Siva, Lord
Brahma and Lord Indra, is under the control of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Yet the Supreme
Lord has one transcendental attribute: He comes under the control of His devotees. This was now
exhibited by Krsna in this pastime.
20. Neither Lord Brahma, nor Lord Siva, nor even the goddess of fortune, who is always the better half
of the Supreme Lord, can obtain from the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the deliverer from this
material world, such mercy as received by mother Yasoda.
21. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, the son of mother Yasoda, is accessible to devotees
engaged in spontaneous loving service, but He is not as easily accessible to mental speculators, to
those striving for self-realization by severe austerities and penances, or to those who consider the body
the same as the self.
22. While mother Yasoda was very busy with household affairs, the Supreme Lord, Krsna, observed
twin trees known as yamala-arjuna, which in a former millennium had been the demigod sons of
Kuvera.
23. In their former birth, these two sons, known as Nalakuvara and Manigriva, were extremely opulent
and fortunate. But because of pride and false prestige, they did not care about anyone, and thus
Narada Muni cursed them to become trees.
Chapter Ten Deliverance of the Yamala-arjuna Trees
1. King Pariksit inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami: O great and powerful saint, what was the cause of
Nalakuvara's and Manigriva's having been cursed by Narada Muni? What did they do that was so
abominable that even Narada, the great sage, became angry at them? Kindly describe this to me.
2-3. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, because the two sons of Kuvera had been elevated to
the association of Lord Siva, of which they were very much proud, they were allowed to wander in a
garden attached to Kailasa Hill, on the bank of the Mandakini River. Taking advantage of this, they used
to drink a kind of liquor called Varuni. Accompanied by women singing after them, they would wander in
that garden of flowers, their eyes always rolling in intoxication.
4. Within the waters of the Mandakini Ganges, which were crowded with gardens of lotus flowers, the
two sons of Kuvera would enjoy young girls, just like two male elephants enjoying in the water with
female elephants.
5. O Maharaja Pariksit, by some auspicious opportunity for the two boys, the great saint Devarsi Narada
once appeared there by chance. Seeing them intoxicated, with rolling eyes, he could understand their
situation.
6. Upon seeing Narada, the naked young girls of the demigods were very much ashamed. Afraid of
being cursed, they covered their bodies with their garments. But the two sons of Kuvera did not do so;
instead, not caring about Narada, they remained naked.
7. Seeing the two sons of the demigods naked and intoxicated by opulence and false prestige, Devarsi
Narada, in order to show them special mercy, desired to give them a special curse. Thus he spoke as
follows.
8. Narada Muni said: Among all the attractions of material enjoyment, the attraction of riches bewilders
one's intelligence more than having beautiful bodily features, taking birth in an aristocratic family, and
being learned. When one is uneducated but falsely puffed up by wealth, the result is that one engages
his wealth in enjoying wine, women and gambling.
9. Unable to control their senses, rascals who are falsely proud of their riches or their birth in aristocratic
families are so cruel that to maintain their perishable bodies, which they think will never grow old or die,
they kill poor animals without mercy. Sometimes they kill animals merely to enjoy an excursion.
10. While living one may be proud of one's body, thinking oneself a very big man, minister, president or
even demigod, but whatever one may be, after death this body will turn either into worms, into stool or
into ashes. If one kills poor animals to satisfy the temporary whims of this body, one does not know that
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 473
he will suffer in his next birth, for such a sinful miscreant must go to hell and suffer the results of his
actions.
11. While alive, does this body belong to its employer, to the self, to the father, the mother, or the
mother's father? Does it belong to the person who takes it away by force, to the slave master who
purchases it, or to the sons who burn it in the fire? Or, if the body is not burned, does it belong to the
dogs that eat it? Among the many possible claimants, who is the rightful claimant? Not to ascertain this
but instead to maintain the body by sinful activities is not good.
12. This body, after all, is produced by the unmanifested nature and again annihilated and merged in
the natural elements. Therefore, it is the common property of everyone. Under the circumstances, who
but a rascal claims this property as his own and while maintaining it commits such sinful activities as
killing animals just to satisfy his whims? Unless one is a rascal, one cannot commit such sinful activities.
13. Atheistic fools and rascals who are very much proud of wealth fail to see things as they are.
Therefore, returning them to poverty is the proper ointment for their eyes so they may see things as
they are. At least a poverty-stricken man can realize how painful poverty is, and therefore he will not
want others to be in a painful condition like his own.
14. By seeing their faces, one whose body has been pricked by pins can understand the pain of others
who are pinpricked. Realizing that this pain is the same for everyone, he does not want others to suffer
in this way. But one who has never been pricked by pins cannot understand this pain.
15. A poverty-stricken man must automatically undergo austerities and penances because he does not
have the wealth to possess anything. Thus his false prestige is vanquished. Always in need of food,
shelter and clothing, he must be satisfied with what is obtained by the mercy of providence. Undergoing
such compulsory austerities is good for him because this purifies him and completely frees him from
false ego.
16. Always hungry, longing for sufficient food, a poverty-stricken man gradually becomes weaker and
weaker. Having no extra potency, his senses are automatically pacified. A poverty-stricken man,
therefore, is unable to perform harmful, envious activities. In other words, such a man automatically
gains the results of the austerities and penances adopted voluntarily by saintly persons.
17. Saintly persons may freely associate with those who are poverty-stricken, but not with those who
are rich. A poverty-stricken man, by association with saintly persons, very soon becomes uninterested
in material desires, and the dirty things within the core of his heart are cleansed away.
18. Saintly persons [sadhus] think of Krsna twenty-four hours a day. They have no other interest. Why
should people neglect the association of such exalted spiritual personalities and try to associate with
materialists, taking shelter of nondevotees, most of whom are proud and rich?
19. Therefore, since these two persons, drunk with the liquor named Varuni, or Madhvi, and unable to
control their senses, have been blinded by the pride of celestial opulence and have become attached to
women, I shall relieve them of their false prestige.
20-22. These two young men, Nalakuvara and Manigriva, are by fortune the sons of the great demigod
Kuvera, but because of false prestige and madness after drinking liquor, they are so fallen that they are
naked but cannot understand that they are. Therefore, because they are living like trees (for trees are
naked but are not conscious), these two young men should receive the bodies of trees. This will be
proper punishment. Nonetheless, after they become trees and until they are released, by my mercy
they will have remembrance of their past sinful activities. Moreover, by my special favor, after the expiry
of one hundred years by the measurement of the demigods, they will be able to see the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, face to face, and thus revive their real position as devotees.
23. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Having thus spoken, the great saint Devarsi Narada returned to his
asrama, known as Narayana-asrama, and Nalakuvara and Manigriva became twin arjuna trees.
24. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, to fulfill the truthfulness of the words of the
greatest devotee, Narada, slowly went to that spot where the twin arjuna trees were standing.
25. "Although these two young men are the sons of the very rich Kuvera and I have nothing to do with
them, Devarsi Narada is My very dear and affectionate devotee, and therefore because he wanted Me
to come face to face with them, I must do so for their deliverance."
26. Having thus spoken, Krsna soon entered between the two arjuna trees, and thus the big mortar to
which He was bound turned crosswise and stuck between them.
27. By dragging behind Him with great force the wooden mortar tied to His belly, the boy Krsna
uprooted the two trees. By the great strength of the Supreme Person, the two trees, with their trunks,
leaves and branches, trembled severely and fell to the ground with a great crash.
28. Thereafter, in that very place where the two arjuna trees had fallen, two great, perfect personalities,
who appeared like fire personified, came out of the two trees. The effulgence of their beauty illuminating
all directions, with bowed heads they offered obeisances to Krsna, and with hands folded they spoke
the following words.
474 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
29. O Lord Krsna, Lord Krsna, Your opulent mysticism is inconceivable. You are the supreme, original
person, the cause of all causes, immediate and remote, and You are beyond this material creation.
Learned brahmanas know [on the basis of the Vedic statement sarvam khalv idam brahma] that You
are everything and that this cosmic manifestation, in its gross and subtle aspects, is Your form.
30-31. You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the controller of everything. The body, life, ego
and senses of every living entity are Your own self. You are the Supreme Person, Visnu, the
imperishable controller. You are the time factor, the immediate cause, and You are material nature,
consisting of the three modes passion, goodness and ignorance. You are the original cause of this
material manifestation. You are the Supersoul, and therefore You know everything within the core of the
heart of every living entity.
32. O Lord, You exist before the creation. Therefore, who, trapped by a body of material qualities in this
material world, can understand You?
33. O Lord, whose glories are covered by Your own energy, You are the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. You are Sankarsana, the origin of creation, and You are Vasudeva, the origin of the
caturvyuha. Because You are everything and are therefore the Supreme Brahman, we simply offer our
respectful obeisances unto You.
34-35. Appearing in bodies like those of an ordinary fish, tortoise and hog, You exhibit activities
impossible for such creatures to perform--extraordinary, incomparable, transcendental activities of
unlimited power and strength. These bodies of Yours, therefore, are not made of material elements, but
are incarnations of Your Supreme Personality. You are the same Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who have now appeared, with full potency, for the benefit of all living entities within this material world.
36. O supremely auspicious, we offer our respectful obeisances unto You, who are the supreme good.
O most famous descendant and controller of the Yadu dynasty, O son of Vasudeva, O most peaceful,
let us offer our obeisances unto Your lotus feet.
37. O supreme form, we are always servants of Your servants, especially of Narada Muni. Now give us
permission to leave for our home. It is by the grace and mercy of Narada Muni that we have been able
to see You face to face.
38. Henceforward, may all our words describe Your pastimes, may our ears engage in aural reception
of Your glories, may our hands, legs and other senses engage in actions pleasing to You, and may our
minds always think of Your lotus feet. May our heads offer our obeisances to everything within this
world, because all things are also Your different forms, and may our eyes see the forms of Vaisnavas,
who are nondifferent from You.
39. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: The two young demigods thus offered prayers to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. Although Sri Krsna, the Supreme Godhead, is the master of all and was
certainly Gokulesvara, the master of Gokula, He was bound to the wooden mortar by the ropes of the
gopis, and therefore, smiling widely, He spoke to the sons of Kuvera the following words.
40. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: The great saint Narada Muni is very merciful. By his
curse, he showed the greatest favor to both of you, who were mad after material opulence and who had
thus become blind. Although you fell from the higher planet Svargaloka and became trees, you were
most favored by him. I knew of all these incidents from the very beginning.
41. When one is face to face with the sun, there is no longer darkness for one's eyes. Similarly, when
one is face to face with a sadhu, a devotee, who is fully determined and surrendered to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, one will no longer be subject to material bondage.
42. O Nalakuvara and Manigriva, now you may both return home. Since you desire to be always
absorbed in My devotional service, your desire to develop love and affection for Me will be fulfilled, and
now you will never fall from that platform.
43. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The Supreme Personality of Godhead having spoken to the two demigods
in this way, they circumambulated the Lord, who was bound to the wooden mortar, and offered
obeisances to Him. After taking the permission of Lord Krsna, they returned to their respective homes.
Chapter Eleven The Childhood Pastimes of Krsna
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O Maharaja Pariksit, when the yamala-arjuna trees fell, all the
cowherd men in the neighborhood, hearing the fierce sound and fearing thunderbolts, went to the spot.
2. There they saw the fallen yamala-arjuna trees on the ground, but they were bewildered because
even though they could directly perceive that the trees had fallen, they could not trace out the cause for
their having done so.
3. Krsna was bound by the rope to the ulukhala, the mortar, which He was dragging. But how could He
have pulled down the trees? Who had actually done it? Where was the source for this incident?
Considering all these astounding things, the cowherd men were doubtful and bewildered.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 475
4. Then all the cowherd boys said: It is Krsna who has done this. When He was in between the two
trees, the mortar fell crosswise. Krsna dragged the mortar, and the two trees fell down. After that, two
beautiful men came out of the trees. We have seen this with our own eyes.
5. Because of intense paternal affection, the cowherd men, headed by Nanda, could not believe that
Krsna could have uprooted the trees in such a wonderful way. Therefore they could not put their faith in
the words of the boys. Some of the men, however, were in doubt. "Since Krsna was predicted to equal
Narayana," they thought, "it might be that He could have done it."
6. When Nanda Maharaja saw his own son bound with ropes to the wooden mortar and dragging it, he
smiled and released Krsna from His bonds.
7. The gopis would say, "If You dance, my dear Krsna, then I shall give You half a sweetmeat." By
saying these words or by clapping their hands, all the gopis encouraged Krsna in different ways. At
such times, although He was the supremely powerful Personality of Godhead, He would smile and
dance according to their desire, as if He were a wooden doll in their hands. Sometimes He would sing
very loudly, at their bidding. In this way, Krsna came completely under the control of the gopis.
8. Sometimes mother Yasoda and her gopi friends would tell Krsna, "Bring this article" or "Bring that
article." Sometimes they would order Him to bring a wooden plank, wooden shoes or a wooden
measuring pot, and Krsna, when thus ordered by the mothers, would try to bring them. Sometimes,
however, as if unable to raise these things, He would touch them and stand there. Just to invite the
pleasure of His relatives, He would strike His body with His arms to show that He had sufficient
strength.
9. To pure devotees throughout the world who could understand His activities, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, Krsna, exhibited how much He can be subdued by His devotees, His servants. In this way
He increased the pleasure of the Vrajavasis by His childhood activities.
10. Once a woman selling fruit was calling, "O inhabitants of Vrajabhumi, if you want to purchase some
fruits, come here!" Upon hearing this, Krsna immediately took some grains and went to barter as if He
needed some fruits.
11. While Krsna was going to the fruit vendor very hastily, most of the grains He was holding fell.
Nonetheless, the fruit vendor filled Krsna's hands with fruits, and her fruit basket was immediately filled
with jewels and gold.
12. Once, after the uprooting of the yamala-arjuna trees, Rohinidevi went to call Rama and Krsna, who
had both gone to the riverside and were playing with the other boys with deep attention.
13. Because of being too attached to playing with the other boys, Krsna and Balarama did not return
upon being called by Rohini. Therefore Rohini sent mother Yasoda to call Them back, because mother
Yasoda was more affectionate to Krsna and Balarama.
14. Krsna and Balarama, being attached to Their play, were playing with the other boys although it was
very late. Therefore mother Yasoda called Them back for lunch. Because of her ecstatic love and
affection for Krsna and Balarama, milk flowed from her breasts.
15. Mother Yasoda said: My dear son Krsna, lotus-eyed Krsna, come here and drink the milk of my
breast. My dear darling, You must be very tired because of hunger and the fatigue of playing so long.
There is no need to play any more.
16. My dear Baladeva, best of our family, please come immediately with Your younger brother, Krsna.
You both ate in the morning, and now You ought to eat something more.
17. Nanda Maharaja, the King of Vraja, is now waiting to eat. O my dear son Balarama, he is waiting for
You. Therefore, come back to please us. All the boys playing with You and Krsna should now go to their
homes.
18. Mother Yasoda further told Krsna: My dear son, because of playing all day, Your body has become
covered with dust and sand. Therefore, come back, take Your bath and cleanse Yourself. Today the
moon is conjoined with the auspicious star of Your birth. Therefore, be pure and give cows in charity to
the brahmanas.
19. Just see how all Your playmates of Your own age have been cleansed and decorated with beautiful
ornaments by their mothers. You should come here, and after You have taken Your bath, eaten Your
lunch and been decorated with ornaments, You may play with Your friends again.
20. My dear Maharaja Pariksit, because of intense love and affection, mother Yasoda, Krsna's mother,
considered Krsna, who was at the peak of all opulences, to be her own son. Thus she took Krsna by the
hand, along with Balarama, and brought Them home, where she performed her duties by fully bathing
Them, dressing Them and feeding Them.
21. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Then one time, having seen the great disturbances in
Brhadvana, all the elderly persons among the cowherd men, headed by Nanda Maharaja, assembled
and began to consider what to do to stop the continuous disturbing situations in Vraja.
476 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. At this meeting of all the inhabitants of Gokula, a cowherd man named Upananda, who was the
most mature in age and knowledge and was very experienced according to time, circumstances and
country, made this suggestion for the benefit of Rama and Krsna.
23. He said: My dear friends the cowherd men, in order to do good to this place, Gokula, we should
leave it, because so many disturbances are always occurring here, just for the purpose of killing Rama
and Krsna.
24. The child Krsna, simply by the mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, was somehow or
other rescued from the hands of the Raksasi Putana, who was determined to kill Him. Then, again by
the mercy of the Supreme Godhead, the handcart missed falling upon the child.
25. Then again, the demon Trnavarta, in the form of a whirlwind, took the child away into the dangerous
sky to kill Him, but the demon fell down onto a slab of stone. In that case also, by the mercy of Lord
Visnu or His associates, the child was saved.
26. Even the other day, neither Krsna nor any of His playmates died from the falling of the two trees,
although the children were near the trees or even between them. This also is to be considered the
mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
27. All these incidents are being caused by some unknown demon. Before he comes here to create
another disturbance, it is our duty to go somewhere else with the boys until there are no more
disturbances.
28. Between Nandesvara and Mahavana is a place named Vrndavana. This place is very suitable
because it is lush with grass, plants and creepers for the cows and other animals. It has nice gardens
and tall mountains and is full of facilities for the happiness of all the gopas and gopis and our animals.
29. Therefore, let us immediately go today. There is no need to wait any further. If you agree to my
proposal, let us prepare all the bullock carts and put the cows in front of us, and let us go there.
30. Upon hearing this advice from Upananda, the cowherd men unanimously agreed. "Very nice," they
said. "Very nice." Thus they sorted out their household affairs, placed their clothing and other
paraphernalia on the carts, and immediately started for Vrndavana.
31-32. Keeping all the old men, women, children and household paraphernalia on the bullock carts and
keeping all the cows in front, the cowherd men picked up their bows and arrows with great care and
sounded bugles made of horn. O King Pariksit, in this way, with bugles vibrating all around, the cowherd
men, accompanied by their priests, began their journey.
33. The cowherd women, riding on the bullock carts, were dressed very nicely with excellent garments,
and their bodies, especially their breasts, were decorated with fresh kunkuma powder. As they rode,
they began to chant with great pleasure the pastimes of Krsna.
34. Thus hearing about the pastimes of Krsna and Balarama with great pleasure, mother Yasoda and
Rohinidevi, so as not to be separated from Krsna and Balarama for even a moment, got up with Them
on one bullock cart. In this situation, they all looked very beautiful.
35. In this way they entered Vrndavana, where it is always pleasing to live in all seasons. They made a
temporary place to inhabit by placing their bullock carts around them in the shape of a half moon.
36. O King Pariksit, when Rama and Krsna saw Vrndavana, Govardhana and the banks of the River
Yamuna, They both enjoyed great pleasure.
37. In this way, Krsna and Balarama, acting like small boys and talking in half-broken language, gave
transcendental pleasure to all the inhabitants of Vraja. In due course of time, They became old enough
to take care of the calves.
38. Not far away from Their residential quarters, both Krsna and Balarama, equipped with all kinds of
playthings, played with other cowherd boys and began to tend the small calves.
39-40. Sometimes Krsna and Balarama would play on Their flutes, sometimes They would throw ropes
and stones devised for getting fruits from the trees, sometimes They would throw only stones, and
sometimes, Their ankle bells tinkling, They would play football with fruits like bael and amalaki.
Sometimes They would cover Themselves with blankets and imitate cows and bulls and fight with one
another, roaring loudly, and sometimes They would imitate the voices of the animals. In this way They
enjoyed sporting, exactly like two ordinary human children.
41. One day while Rama and Krsna, along with Their playmates, were tending the calves on the bank of
the River Yamuna, another demon arrived there, desiring to kill Them.
42. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead saw that the demon had assumed the form of a calf
and entered among the groups of other calves, He pointed out to Baladeva, "Here is another demon."
Then He very slowly approached the demon, as if He did not understand the demon's intentions.
43. Thereafter, Sri Krsna caught the demon by the hind legs and tail, twirled the demon's whole body
very strongly until the demon was dead, and threw him into the top of a kapittha tree, which then fell
down, along with the body of the demon, who had assumed a great form.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 477
44. Upon seeing the dead body of the demon, all the cowherd boys exclaimed, "Well done, Krsna! Very
good, very good! Thank You." In the upper planetary system, all the demigods were pleased, and
therefore they showered flowers on the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
45. After the killing of the demon, Krsna and Balarama finished Their breakfast in the morning, and
while continuing to take care of the calves, They wandered here and there. Krsna and Balarama, the
Supreme Personalities of Godhead, who maintain the entire creation, now took charge of the calves as
if cowherd boys.
46. One day all the boys, including Krsna and Balarama, each boy taking his own group of calves,
brought the calves to a reservoir of water, desiring to allow them to drink. After the animals drank water,
the boys drank water there also.
47. Right by the reservoir, the boys saw a gigantic body resembling a mountain peak broken and struck
down by a thunderbolt. They were afraid even to see such a huge living being.
48. That great-bodied demon was named Bakasura. He had assumed the body of a duck with a very
sharp beak. Having come there, he immediately swallowed Krsna.
49. When Balarama and the other boys saw that Krsna had been devoured by the gigantic duck, they
became almost unconscious, like senses without life.
50. Krsna, who was the father of Lord Brahma but who was acting as the son of a cowherd man,
became like fire, burning the root of the demon's throat, and the demon Bakasura immediately
disgorged Him. When the demon saw that Krsna, although having been swallowed, was unharmed, he
immediately attacked Krsna again with his sharp beak.
51. When Krsna, the leader of the Vaisnavas, saw that the demon Bakasura, the friend of Kamsa, was
endeavoring to attack Him, with His arms He captured the demon by the two halves of the beak, and in
the presence of all the cowherd boys Krsna very easily bifurcated Him, as a child splits a blade of virana
grass. By thus killing the demon, Krsna very much pleased the denizens of heaven.
52. At that time, the celestial denizens of the higher planetary system showered mallika-puspa, flowers
grown in Nandana-kanana, upon Krsna, the enemy of Bakasura. They also congratulated Him by
sounding celestial kettledrums and conchshells and by offering prayers. Seeing this, the cowherd boys
were struck with wonder.
53. Just as the senses are pacified when consciousness and life return, so when Krsna was freed from
this danger, all the boys, including Balarama, thought that their life had been restored. They embraced
Krsna in good consciousness, and then they collected their own calves and returned to Vrajabhumi,
where they declared the incident loudly.
54. When the cowherd men and women heard about the killing of Bakasura in the forest, they were very
much astonished. Upon seeing Krsna and hearing the story, they received Krsna very eagerly, thinking
that Krsna and the other boys had returned from the mouth of death. Thus they looked upon Krsna and
the boys with silent eyes, not wanting to turn their eyes aside now that the boys were safe.
55. The cowherd men, headed by Nanda Maharaja, began to contemplate: It is very astonishing that
although this boy Krsna has many times faced many varied causes of death, by the grace of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead it was these causes of fear that were killed, instead of Him.
56. Although the causes of death, the daityas, were very fierce, they could not kill this boy Krsna.
Rather, because they came to kill innocent boys, as soon as they approached they themselves were
killed, exactly like flies attacking a fire.
57. The words of persons in full knowledge of Brahman never become untrue. It is very wonderful that
whatever Gargamuni predicted we are now actually experiencing in all detail.
58. In this way all the cowherd men, headed by Nanda Maharaja, enjoyed topics about the pastimes of
Krsna and Balarama with great transcendental pleasure, and they could not even perceive material
tribulations.
59. In this way Krsna and Balarama passed Their childhood age in Vrajabhumi by engaging in activities
of childish play, such as playing hide-and-seek, constructing a make-believe bridge on the ocean, and
jumping here and there like monkeys.
Chapter Twelve The Killing of the Demon Aghasura
1. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: O King, one day Krsna decided to take His breakfast as a picnic in the
forest. Having risen early in the morning, He blew His bugle made of horn and woke all the cowherd
boys and calves with its beautiful sound. Then Krsna and the boys, keeping their respective groups of
calves before them, proceeded from Vrajabhumi to the forest.
2. At that time, hundreds and thousands of cowherd boys came out of their respective homes in
Vrajabhumi and joined Krsna, keeping before them their hundreds and thousands of groups of calves.
The boys were very beautiful, and they were equipped with lunch bags, bugles, flutes, and sticks for
controlling the calves.
478 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3. Along with the cowherd boys and their own groups of calves, Krsna came out with an unlimited
number of calves assembled. Then all the boys began to sport in the forest in a greatly playful spirit.
4. Although all these boys were already decorated by their mothers with ornaments of kaca, gunja,
pearls and gold, when they went into the forest they further decorated themselves with fruits, green
leaves, bunches of flowers, peacock feathers and soft minerals.
5. All the cowherd boys used to steal one another's lunch bags. When a boy came to understand that
his bag had been taken away, the other boys would throw it farther away, to a more distant place, and
those standing there would throw it still farther. When the proprietor of the bag became disappointed,
the other boys would laugh, the proprietor would cry, and then the bag would be returned.
6. Sometimes Krsna would go to a somewhat distant place to see the beauty of the forest. Then all the
other boys would run to accompany Him, each one saying, "I shall be the first to run and touch Krsna! I
shall touch Krsna first!" In this way they enjoyed life by repeatedly touching Krsna.
7-11. All the boys would be differently engaged. Some boys blew their flutes, and others blew bugles
made of horn. Some imitated the buzzing of the bumblebees, and others imitated the voice of the
cuckoo. Some boys imitated flying birds by running after the birds' shadows on the ground, some
imitated the beautiful movements and attractive postures of the swans, some sat down with the ducks,
sitting silently, and others imitated the dancing of the peacocks. Some boys attracted young monkeys in
the trees, some jumped into the trees, imitating the monkeys, some made faces as the monkeys were
accustomed to do, and others jumped from one branch to another. Some boys went to the waterfalls
and crossed over the river, jumping with the frogs, and when they saw their own reflections on the water
they would laugh. They would also condemn the sounds of their own echoes. In this way, all the
cowherd boys used to play with Krsna, who is the source of the Brahman effulgence for jnanis desiring
to merge into that effulgence, who is the Supreme Personality of Godhead for devotees who have
accepted eternal servitorship, and who for ordinary persons is but another ordinary child. The cowherd
boys, having accumulated the results of pious activities for many lives, were able to associate in this
way with the Supreme Personality of Godhead. How can one explain their great fortune?
12. Yogis may undergo severe austerities and penances for many births by practicing yama, niyama,
asana and pranayama, none of which are easily performed. Yet in due course of time, when these
yogis attain the perfection of controlling the mind, they will still be unable to taste even a particle of dust
from the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. What then can we describe about the great
fortune of the inhabitants of Vrajabhumi, Vrndavana, with whom the Supreme Personality of Godhead
personally lived and who saw the Lord face to face?
13. My dear King Pariksit, thereafter there appeared a great demon named Aghasura, whose death was
being awaited even by the demigods. The demigods drank nectar every day, but still they feared this
great demon and awaited his death. This demon could not tolerate the transcendental pleasure being
enjoyed in the forest by the cowherd boys.
14. Aghasura, who had been sent by Kamsa, was the younger brother of Putana and Bakasura.
Therefore when he came and saw Krsna at the head of all the cowherd boys, he thought, "This Krsna
has killed my sister and brother, Putana and Bakasura. Therefore, in order to please them both, I shall
kill this Krsna, along with His assistants, the other cowherd boys."
15. Aghasura thought: If somehow or other I can make Krsna and His associates serve as the last
offering of sesame and water for the departed souls of my brother and sister, then the inhabitants of
Vrajabhumi, for whom these boys are the life and soul, will automatically die. If there is no life, there is
no need for the body; consequently, when their sons are dead, naturally all the inhabitants of Vraja will
die.
16. After thus deciding, that crooked Aghasura assumed the form of a huge python, as thick as a big
mountain and as long as eight miles. Having assumed this wonderful python's body, he spread his
mouth like a big cave in the mountains and lay down on the road, expecting to swallow Krsna and His
associates the cowherd boys.
17. His lower lip rested on the surface of the earth, and his upper lip was touching the clouds in the sky.
The borders of his mouth resembled the sides of a big cave in a mountain, and the middle of his mouth
was as dark as possible. His tongue resembled a broad traffic-way, his breath was like a warm wind,
and his eyes blazed like fire.
18. Upon seeing this demon's wonderful form, which resembled a great python, the boys thought that it
must be a beautiful scenic spot of Vrndavana. Thereafter, they imagined it to be similar to the mouth of
a great python. In other words, the boys, unafraid, thought that it was a statue made in the shape of a
great python for the enjoyment of their pastimes.
19. The boys said: Dear friends, is this creature dead, or is it actually a living python with its mouth
spread wide just to swallow us all? Kindly clear up this doubt.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 479
20. Thereafter they decided: Dear friends, this is certainly an animal sitting here to swallow us all. Its
upper lip resembles a cloud reddened by the sunshine, and its lower lip resembles the reddish shadows
of a cloud.
21. On the left and right, the two depressions resembling mountain caves are the corners of its mouth,
and the high mountain peaks are its teeth.
22. In length and breadth the animal's tongue resembles a broad traffic-way, and the inside of its mouth
is very, very dark, like a cave in a mountain.
23. The hot fiery wind is the breath coming out of his mouth, which is giving off the bad smell of burning
flesh because of all the dead bodies he has eaten.
24. Then the boys said, "Has this living creature come to swallow us? If he does so, he will immediately
be killed like Bakasura, without delay." Thus they looked at the beautiful face of Krsna, the enemy of
Bakasura, and, laughing loudly and clapping their hands, they entered the mouth of the python.
25. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, who is situated as antaryami, the Supersoul, in
the core of everyone's heart, heard the boys talking among themselves about the artificial python.
Unknown to them, it was actually Aghasura, a demon who had appeared as a python. Krsna, knowing
this, wanted to forbid His associates to enter the demon's mouth.
26. In the meantime, while Krsna was considering how to stop them, all the cowherd boys entered the
mouth of the demon. The demon, however, did not swallow them, for he was thinking of his own
relatives who had been killed by Krsna and was just waiting for Krsna to enter his mouth.
27. Krsna saw that all the cowherd boys, who did not know anyone but Him as their Lord, had now gone
out of His hand and were helpless, having entered like straws into the fire of the abdomen of Aghasura,
who was death personified. It was intolerable for Krsna to be separated from His friends the cowherd
boys. Therefore, as if seeing that this had been arranged by His internal potency, Krsna was
momentarily struck with wonder and unsure of what to do.
28. Now, what was to be done? How could both the killing of this demon and the saving of the devotees
be performed simultaneously? Krsna, being unlimitedly potent, decided to wait for an intelligent means
by which He could simultaneously save the boys and kill the demon. Then He entered the mouth of
Aghasura.
29. When Krsna entered the mouth of Aghasura, the demigods hidden behind the clouds exclaimed,
"Alas! Alas!" But the friends of Aghasura, like Kamsa and other demons, were jubilant.
30. When the invincible Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, heard the demigods crying "Alas!
Alas!" from behind the clouds, He immediately enlarged Himself within the demon's throat, just to save
Himself and the cowherd boys, His own associates, from the demon who wished to smash them.
31. Then, because Krsna had increased the size of His body, the demon extended his own body to a
very large size. Nonetheless, his breathing stopped, he suffocated, and his eyes rolled here and there
and popped out. The demon's life air, however, could not pass through any outlet, and therefore it finally
burst out through a hole in the top of the demon's head.
32. When all the demon's life air had passed away through that hole in the top of his head, Krsna
glanced over the dead calves and cowherd boys and brought them back to life. Then Mukunda, who
can give one liberation, came out from the demon's mouth with His friends and the calves.
33. From the body of the gigantic python, a glaring effulgence came out, illuminating all directions, and
stayed individually in the sky until Krsna came out from the corpse's mouth. Then, as all the demigods
looked on, this effulgence entered into Krsna's body.
34. Thereafter, everyone being pleased, the demigods began to shower flowers from Nandana-kanana,
the celestial dancing girls began to dance, and the Gandharvas, who are famous for singing, offered
songs of prayer. The drummers began to beat their kettledrums, and the brahmanas offered Vedic
hymns. In this way, both in the heavens and on earth, everyone began to perform his own duties,
glorifying the Lord.
35. When Lord Brahma heard the wonderful ceremony going on near his planet, accompanied by music
and songs and sounds of "Jaya! Jaya!" he immediately came down to see the function. Upon seeing so
much glorification of Lord Krsna, he was completely astonished.
36. O King Pariksit, when the python-shaped body of Aghasura dried up into merely a big skin, it
became a wonderful place for the inhabitants of Vrndavana to visit, and it remained so for a long, long
time.
37. This incident of Krsna's saving Himself and His associates from death and of giving deliverance to
Aghasura, who had assumed the form of a python, took place when Krsna was five years old. It was
disclosed in Vrajabhumi after one year, as if it had taken place on that very day.
38. Krsna is the cause of all causes. The causes and effects of the material world, both higher and
lower, are all created by the Supreme Lord, the original controller. When Krsna appeared as the son of
Nanda Maharaja and Yasoda, He did so by His causeless mercy. Consequently, for Him to exhibit His
480 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
unlimited opulence was not at all wonderful. Indeed, He showed such great mercy that even Aghasura,
the most sinful miscreant, was elevated to being one of His associates and achieving sarupya-mukti,
which is actually impossible for materially contaminated persons to attain.
39. If even only once or even by force one brings the form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead into
one's mind, one can attain the supreme salvation by the mercy of Krsna, as did Aghasura. What then is
to be said of those whose hearts the Supreme Personality of Godhead enters when He appears as an
incarnation, or those who always think of the lotus feet of the Lord, who is the source of transcendental
bliss for all living entities and by whom all illusion is completely removed?
40. Sri Suta Gosvami said: O learned saints, the childhood pastimes of Sri Krsna are very wonderful.
Maharaja Pariksit, after hearing about those pastimes of Krsna, who had saved him in the womb of his
mother, became steady in his mind and again inquired from Sukadeva Gosvami to hear about those
pious activities.
41. Maharaja Pariksit inquired: O great sage, how could things done in the past have been described as
being done at the present? Lord Sri Krsna performed this pastime of killing Aghasura during His
kaumara age. How then, during His pauganda age, could the boys have described this incident as
having happened recently?
42. O greatest yogi, my spiritual master, kindly describe why this happened. I am very much curious to
know about it. I think that it was nothing but another illusion due to Krsna.
43. O my lord, my spiritual master, although we are the lowest of ksatriyas, we are glorified and
benefited because we have the opportunity of always hearing from you the nectar of the pious activities
of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
44. Suta Gosvami said: O Saunaka, greatest of saints and devotees, when Maharaja Pariksit inquired
from Sukadeva Gosvami in this way, Sukadeva Gosvami, immediately remembering subject matters
about Krsna within the core of his heart, externally lost contact with the actions of his senses.
Thereafter, with great difficulty, he revived his external sensory perception and began to speak to
Maharaja Pariksit about krsna-katha.
Chapter Thirteen The Stealing of the Boys and Calves by Brahma
1. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami said: O best of devotees, most fortunate Pariksit, you have inquired very
nicely, for although constantly hearing the pastimes of the Lord, you are perceiving His activities to be
newer and newer.
2. Paramahamsas, devotees who have accepted the essence of life, are attached to Krsna in the core
of their hearts, and He is the aim of their lives. It is their nature to talk only of Krsna at every moment, as
if such topics were newer and newer. They are attached to such topics, just as materialists are attached
to topics of women and sex.
3. O King, kindly hear me with great attention. Although the activities of the Supreme Lord are very
confidential, no ordinary man being able to understand them, I shall speak about them to you, for
spiritual masters explain to a submissive disciple even subject matters that are very confidential and
difficult to understand.
4. Then, after saving the boys and calves from the mouth of Aghasura, who was death personified, Lord
Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, brought them all to the bank of the river and spoke the
following words.
5. My dear friends, just see how this riverbank is extremely beautiful because of its pleasing
atmosphere. And just see how the blooming lotuses are attracting bees and birds by their aroma. The
humming and chirping of the bees and birds is echoing throughout the beautiful trees in the forest. Also,
here the sands are clean and soft. Therefore, this must be considered the best place for our sporting
and pastimes.
6. I think we should take our lunch here, since we are already hungry because the time is very late.
Here the calves may drink water and go slowly here and there and eat the grass.
7. Accepting Lord Krsna's proposal, the cowherd boys allowed the calves to drink water from the river
and then tied them to trees where there was green, tender grass. Then the boys opened their baskets
of food and began eating with Krsna in great transcendental pleasure.
8. Like the whorl of a lotus flower surrounded by its petals and leaves, Krsna sat in the center, encircled
by lines of His friends, who all looked very beautiful. Every one of them was trying to look forward
toward Krsna, thinking that Krsna might look toward him. In this way they all enjoyed their lunch in the
forest.
9. Among the cowherd boys, some placed their lunch on flowers, some on leaves, fruits, or bunches of
leaves, some actually in their baskets, some on the bark of trees and some on rocks. This is what the
children imagined to be their plates as they ate their lunch.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 481
10. All the cowherd boys enjoyed their lunch with Krsna, showing one another the different tastes of the
different varieties of preparations they had brought from home. Tasting one another's preparations, they
began to laugh and make one another laugh.
11. Krsna is yajna-bhuk--that is, He eats only offerings of yajna--but to exhibit His childhood pastimes,
He now sat with His flute tucked between His waist and His tight cloth on His right side and with His
horn bugle and cow-driving stick on His left. Holding in His hand a very nice preparation of yogurt and
rice, with pieces of suitable fruit between His fingers, He sat like the whorl of a lotus flower, looking
forward toward all His friends, personally joking with them and creating jubilant laughter among them as
He ate. At that time, the denizens of heaven were watching, struck with wonder at how the Personality
of Godhead, who eats only in yajna, was now eating with His friends in the forest.
12. O Maharaja Pariksit, while the cowherd boys, who knew nothing within the core of their hearts but
Krsna, were thus engaged in eating their lunch in the forest, the calves went far away, deep into the
forest, being allured by green grass.
13. When Krsna saw that His friends the cowherd boys were frightened, He, the fierce controller even of
fear itself, said, just to mitigate their fear, "My dear friends, do not stop eating. I shall bring your calves
back to this spot by personally going after them Myself."
14. "Let Me go and search for the calves," Krsna said. "Don't disturb your enjoyment." Then, carrying
His yogurt and rice in His hand, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, immediately went out to
search for the calves of His friends. To please His friends, He began searching in all the mountains,
mountain caves, bushes and narrow passages.
15. O Maharaja Pariksit, Brahma, who resides in the higher planetary system in the sky, had observed
the activities of the most powerful Krsna in killing and delivering Aghasura, and he was astonished. Now
that same Brahma wanted to show some of his own power and see the power of Krsna, who was
engaged in His childhood pastimes, playing as if with ordinary cowherd boys. Therefore, in Krsna's
absence, Brahma took all the boys and calves to another place. Thus he became entangled, for in the
very near future he would see how powerful Krsna was.
16. Thereafter, when Krsna was unable to find the calves, He returned to the bank of the river, but there
He was also unable to see the cowherd boys. Thus He began to search for both the calves and the
boys, as if He could not understand what had happened.
17. When Krsna was unable to find the calves and their caretakers, the cowherd boys, anywhere in the
forest, He could suddenly understand that this was the work of Lord Brahma.
18. Thereafter, just to create pleasure both for Brahma and for the mothers of the calves and cowherd
boys, Krsna, the creator of the entire cosmic manifestation, expanded Himself as calves and boys.
19. By His Vasudeva feature, Krsna simultaneously expanded Himself into the exact number of missing
cowherd boys and calves, with their exact bodily features, their particular types of hands, legs and other
limbs, their sticks, bugles and flutes, their lunch bags, their particular types of dress and ornaments
placed in various ways, their names, ages and forms, and their special activities and characteristics. By
expanding Himself in this way, beautiful Krsna proved the statement samagra-jagad visnumayam: "Lord
Visnu is all-pervading."
20. Now expanding Himself so as to appear as all the calves and cowherd boys, all of them as they
were, and at the same time appear as their leader, Krsna entered Vrajabhumi, the land of His father,
Nanda Maharaja, just as He usually did while enjoying their company.
21. O Maharaja Pariksit, Krsna, who had divided Himself as different calves and also as different
cowherd boys, entered different cow sheds as the calves and then different homes as different boys.
22. The mothers of the boys, upon hearing the sounds of the flutes and bugles being played by their
sons, immediately rose from their household tasks, lifted their boys onto their laps, embraced them with
both arms and began to feed them with their breast milk, which flowed forth because of extreme love
specifically for Krsna. Actually Krsna is everything, but at that time, expressing extreme love and
affection, they took special pleasure in feeding Krsna, the Parabrahman, and Krsna drank the milk from
His respective mothers as if it were a nectarean beverage.
23. Thereafter, O Maharaja Pariksit, as required according to the scheduled round of His pastimes,
Krsna returned in the evening, entered the house of each of the cowherd boys, and engaged exactly
like the former boys, thus enlivening their mothers with transcendental pleasure. The mothers took care
of the boys by massaging them with oil, bathing them, smearing their bodies with sandalwood pulp,
decorating them with ornaments, chanting protective mantras, decorating their bodies with tilaka and
giving them food. In this way, the mothers served Krsna personally.
24. Thereafter, all the cows entered their different sheds and began mooing loudly, calling for their
respective calves. When the calves arrived, the mothers began licking the calves' bodies again and
again and profusely feeding them with the milk flowing from their milk bags.
482 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
25. Previously, from the very beginning, the gopis had motherly affection for Krsna. Indeed, their
affection for Krsna exceeded even their affection for their own sons. In displaying their affection, they
had thus distinguished between Krsna and their sons, but now that distinction disappeared.
26. Although the inhabitants of Vrajabhumi, the cowherd men and cowherd women, previously had
more affection for Krsna than for their own children, now, for one year, their affection for their own sons
continuously increased, for Krsna had now become their sons. There was no limit to the increment of
their affection for their sons, who were now Krsna. Every day they found new inspiration for loving their
children as much as they loved Krsna.
27. In this way, Lord Sri Krsna, having Himself become the cowherd boys and groups of calves,
maintained Himself by Himself. Thus He continued His pastimes, both in Vrndavana and in the forest,
for one year.
28. One day, five or six nights before the completion of the year, Krsna, tending the calves, entered the
forest along with Balarama.
29. Thereafter, while pasturing atop Govardhana Hill, the cows looked down to find some green grass
and saw their calves pasturing near Vrndavana, not very far away.
30. When the cows saw their own calves from the top of Govardhana Hill, they forgot themselves and
their caretakers because of increased affection, and although the path was very rough, they ran toward
their calves with great anxiety, each running as if with one pair of legs. Their milk bags full and flowing
with milk, their heads and tails raised, and their humps moving with their necks, they ran forcefully until
they reached their calves to feed them.
31. The cows had given birth to new calves, but while coming down from Govardhana Hill, the cows,
because of increased affection for the older calves, allowed the older calves to drink milk from their milk
bags and then began licking the calves' bodies in anxiety, as if wanting to swallow them.
32. The cowherd men, having been unable to check the cows from going to their calves, felt
simultaneously ashamed and angry. They crossed the rough road with great difficulty, but when they
came down and saw their own sons, they were overwhelmed by great affection.
33. At that time, all the thoughts of the cowherd men merged in the mellow of paternal love, which was
aroused by the sight of their sons. Experiencing a great attraction, their anger completely disappearing,
they lifted their sons, embraced them in their arms and enjoyed the highest pleasure by smelling their
sons' heads.
34. Thereafter the elderly cowherd men, having obtained great feeling from embracing their sons,
gradually and with great difficulty and reluctance ceased embracing them and returned to the forest. But
as the men remembered their sons, tears began to roll down from their eyes.
35. Because of an increase of affection, the cows had constant attachment even to those calves that
were grown up and had stopped sucking milk from their mothers. When Baladeva saw this attachment,
He was unable to understand the reason for it, and thus He began to consider as follows.
36. What is this wonderful phenomenon? The affection of all the inhabitants of Vraja, including Me,
toward these boys and calves is increasing as never before, just like our affection for Lord Krsna, the
Supersoul of all living entities.
37. Who is this mystic power, and where has she come from? Is she a demigod or a demoness? She
must be the illusory energy of My master, Lord Krsna, for who else can bewilder Me?
38. Thinking in this way, Lord Balarama was able to see, with the eye of transcendental knowledge, that
all these calves and Krsna's friends were expansions of the form of Sri Krsna.
39. Lord Baladeva said, "O supreme controller! These boys are not great demigods, as I previously
thought. Nor are these calves great sages like Narada. Now I can see that You alone are manifesting
Yourself in all varieties of difference. Although one, You are existing in the different forms of the calves
and boys. Please briefly explain this to Me." Having thus been requested by Lord Baladeva, Krsna
explained the whole situation, and Baladeva understood it.
40. When Lord Brahma returned after a moment of time had passed (according to his own
measurement), he saw that although by human measurement a complete year had passed, Lord Krsna,
after all that time, was engaged just as before in playing with the boys and calves, who were His
expansions.
41. Lord Brahma thought: Whatever boys and calves there were in Gokula, I have kept them sleeping
on the bed of my mystic potency, and to this very day they have not yet risen again.
42. A similar number of boys and calves have been playing with Krsna for one whole year, yet they are
different from the ones illusioned by my mystic potency. Who are they? Where did they come from?
43. Thus Lord Brahma, thinking and thinking for a long time, tried to distinguish between those two sets
of boys, who were each separately existing. He tried to understand who was real and who was not real,
but he couldn't understand at all.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 483
44. Thus because Lord Brahma wanted to mystify the all-pervading Lord Krsna, who can never be
mystified, but who, on the contrary, mystifies the entire universe, he himself was put into bewilderment
by his own mystic power.
45. As the darkness of snow on a dark night and the light of a glowworm in the light of day have no
value, the mystic power of an inferior person who tries to use it against a person of great power is
unable to accomplish anything; instead, the power of that inferior person is diminished.
46. Then, while Lord Brahma looked on, all the calves and the boys tending them immediately
appeared to have complexions the color of bluish rainclouds and to be dressed in yellow silken
garments.
47-48. All those personalities had four arms, holding conchshell, disc, mace and lotus flower in Their
hands. They wore helmets on Their heads, earrings on Their ears and garlands of forest flowers around
Their necks. On the upper portion of the right side of Their chests was the emblem of the goddess of
fortune. Furthermore, They wore armlets on Their arms, the Kaustubha gem around Their necks, which
were marked with three lines like a conchshell, and bracelets on Their wrists. With bangles on Their
ankles, ornaments on Their feet, and sacred belts around Their waists, They all appeared very
beautiful.
49. Every part of Their bodies, from Their feet to the top of Their heads, was fully decorated with fresh,
tender garlands of tulasi leaves offered by devotees engaged in worshiping the Lord by the greatest
pious activities, namely hearing and chanting.
50. Those Visnu forms, by Their pure smiling, which resembled the increasing light of the moon, and by
the sidelong glances of Their reddish eyes, created and protected the desires of Their own devotees, as
if by the modes of passion and goodness.
51. All beings, both moving and nonmoving, from the four-headed Lord Brahma down to the most
insignificant living entity, had taken forms and were differently worshiping those visnu-murtis, according
to their respective capacities, with various means of worship, such as dancing and singing.
52. All the visnu-murtis were surrounded by the opulences, headed by anima-siddhi; by the mystic
potencies, headed by Aja; and by the twenty-four elements for the creation of the material world,
headed by the mahat-tattva.
53. Then Lord Brahma saw that kala (the time factor), svabhava (one's own nature by association),
samskara (reformation), kama (desire), karma (fruitive activity) and the gunas (the three modes of
material nature), their own independence being completely subordinate to the potency of the Lord, had
all taken forms and were also worshiping those visnu-murtis.
54. The visnu-murtis all had eternal, unlimited forms, full of knowledge and bliss and existing beyond
the influence of time. Their great glory was not even to be touched by the jnanis engaged in studying
the Upanisads.
55. Thus Lord Brahma saw the Supreme Brahman, by whose energy this entire universe, with its
moving and nonmoving living beings, is manifested. He also saw at the same time all the calves and
boys as the Lord's expansions.
56. Then, by the power of the effulgence of those visnu-murtis, Lord Brahma, his eleven senses jolted
by astonishment and stunned by transcendental bliss, became silent, just like a child's clay doll in the
presence of the village deity.
57. The Supreme Brahman is beyond mental speculation, He is self-manifest, existing in His own bliss,
and He is beyond the material energy. He is known by the crest jewels of the Vedas by refutation of
irrelevant knowledge. Thus in relation to that Supreme Brahman, the Personality of Godhead, whose
glory had been shown by the manifestation of all the four-armed forms of Visnu, Lord Brahma, the lord
of Sarasvati, was mystified. "What is this?" he thought, and then he was not even able to see. Lord
Krsna, understanding Brahma's position, then at once removed the curtain of His yogamaya.
58. Lord Brahma's external consciousness then revived, and he stood up, just like a dead man coming
back to life. Opening his eyes with great difficulty, he saw the universe, along with himself.
59. Then, looking in all directions, Lord Brahma immediately saw Vrndavana before him, filled with
trees, which were the means of livelihood for the inhabitants and which were equally pleasing in all
seasons.
60. Vrndavana is the transcendental abode of the Lord, where there is no hunger, anger or thirst.
Though naturally inimical, both human beings and fierce animals live there together in transcendental
friendship.
61. Then Lord Brahma saw the Absolute Truth--who is one without a second, who possesses full
knowledge and who is unlimited--assuming the role of a child in a family of cowherd men and standing
all alone, just as before, with a morsel of food in His hand, searching everywhere for the calves and His
cowherd friends.
484 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
62. After seeing this, Lord Brahma hastily got down from his swan carrier, fell down like a golden rod
and touched the lotus feet of Lord Krsna with the tips of the four crowns on his heads. Offering his
obeisances, he bathed the feet of Krsna with the water of his tears of joy.
63. Rising and falling again and again at the lotus feet of Lord Krsna for a long time, Lord Brahma
remembered over and over the Lord's greatness he had just seen.
64. Then, rising very gradually and wiping his two eyes, Lord Brahma looked up at Mukunda. Lord
Brahma, his head bent low, his mind concentrated and his body trembling, very humbly began, with
faltering words, to offer praises to Lord Krsna.
Chapter Fourteen Brahma’s Prayers to Lord Krsna
1. Lord Brahma said: My dear Lord, You are the only worshipable Lord, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, and therefore I offer my humble obeisances and prayers just to please You. O son of the king
of the cowherds, Your transcendental body is dark blue like a new cloud, Your garment is brilliant like
lightning, and the beauty of Your face is enhanced by Your gunja earrings and the peacock feather on
Your head. Wearing garlands of various forest flowers and leaves, and equipped with a herding stick, a
buffalo horn and a flute, You stand beautifully with a morsel of food in Your hand.
2. My dear Lord, neither I nor anyone else can estimate the potency of this transcendental body of
Yours, which has shown such mercy to me and which appears just to fulfill the desires of Your pure
devotees. Although my mind is completely withdrawn from material affairs, I cannot understand Your
personal form. How, then, could I possibly understand the happiness You experience within Yourself?
3. Those who, even while remaining situated in their established social positions, throw away the
process of speculative knowledge and with their body, words and mind offer all respects to descriptions
of Your personality and activities, dedicating their lives to these narrations, which are vibrated by You
personally and by Your pure devotees, certainly conquer Your Lordship, although You are otherwise
unconquerable by anyone within the three worlds.
4. My dear Lord, devotional service unto You is the best path for self-realization. If someone gives up
that path and engages in the cultivation of speculative knowledge, he will simply undergo a troublesome
process and will not achieve his desired result. As a person who beats an empty husk of wheat cannot
get grain, one who simply speculates cannot achieve self-realization. His only gain is trouble.
5. O almighty Lord, in the past many yogis in this world achieved the platform of devotional service by
offering all their endeavors unto You and faithfully carrying out their prescribed duties. Through such
devotional service, perfected by the processes of hearing and chanting about You, they came to
understand You, O infallible one, and could easily surrender to You and achieve Your supreme abode.
6. Nondevotees, however, cannot realize You in Your full personal feature. Nevertheless, it may be
possible for them to realize Your expansion as the impersonal Supreme by cultivating direct perception
of the Self within the heart. But they can do this only by purifying their mind and senses of all
conceptions of material distinctions and all attachment to material sense objects. Only in this way will
Your impersonal feature manifest itself to them.
7. In time, learned philosophers or scientists might be able to count all the atoms of the earth, the
particles of snow, or perhaps even the shining molecules radiating from the sun, the stars and other
luminaries. But among these learned men, who could possibly count the unlimited transcendental
qualities possessed by You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who have descended onto the
surface of the earth for the benefit of all living entities?
8. My dear Lord, one who earnestly waits for You to bestow Your causeless mercy upon him, all the
while patiently suffering the reactions of his past misdeeds and offering You respectful obeisances with
his heart, words and body, is surely eligible for liberation, for it has become his rightful claim.
9. My Lord, just see my uncivilized impudence! To test Your power I tried to extend my illusory potency
to cover You, the unlimited and primeval Supersoul, who bewilder even the masters of illusion. What
am I compared to You? I am just like a small spark in the presence of a great fire.
10. Therefore, O infallible Lord, kindly excuse my offenses. I have taken birth in the mode of passion
and am therefore simply foolish, presuming myself a controller independent of Your Lordship. My eyes
are blinded by the darkness of ignorance, which causes me to think of myself as the unborn creator of
the universe. But please consider that I am Your servant and therefore worthy of Your compassion.
11. What am I, a small creature measuring seven spans of my own hand? I am enclosed in a potlike
universe composed of material nature, the total material energy, false ego, ether, air, water and earth.
And what is Your glory? Unlimited universes pass through the pores of Your body just as particles of
dust pass through the openings of a screened window.
12. O Lord Adhoksaja, does a mother take offense when the child within her womb kicks with his legs?
And is there anything in existence—whether designated by various philosophers as real or as unreal—
that is actually outside Your abdomen?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 485
13. My dear Lord, it is said that when the three planetary systems are merged into the water at the time
of dissolution, Your plenary portion, Narayana, lies down on the water, gradually a lotus flower grows
from His navel, and Brahma takes birth upon that lotus flower. Certainly, these words are not false.
Thus am I not born from You?
14. Are You not the original Narayana, O supreme controller, since You are the Soul of every embodied
being and the eternal witness of all created realms? Indeed, Lord Narayana is Your expansion, and He
is called Narayana because He is the generating source of the primeval water of the universe. He is
real, not a product of Your illusory Maya.
15. My dear Lord, if Your transcendental body, which shelters the entire universe, is actually lying upon
the water, then why were You not seen by me when I searched for You? And why, though I could not
envision You properly within my heart, did You then suddenly reveal Yourself?
16. My dear Lord, in this incarnation You have proved that You are the supreme controller of Maya.
Although You are now within this universe, the whole universal creation is within Your transcendental
body—a fact You demonstrated by exhibiting the universe within Your abdomen before Your mother,
Yasoda.
17. Just as this entire universe, including You, was exhibited within Your abdomen, so it is now
manifested here externally in the same exact form. How could such things happen unless arranged by
Your inconceivable energy?
18. Have You not shown me today that both You Yourself and everything within this creation are
manifestations of Your inconceivable potency? First You appeared alone, and then You manifested
Yourself as all of Vrndavana’s calves and cowherd boys, Your friends. Next You appeared as an equal
number of four-handed Visnu forms, who were worshiped by all living beings, including me, and after
that You appeared as an equal number of complete universes. Finally, You have now returned to Your
unlimited form as the Supreme Absolute Truth, one without a second.
19. To persons ignorant of Your actual transcendental position, You appear as part of the material
world, manifesting Yourself by the expansion of Your inconceivable energy. Thus for the creation of the
universe You appear as me [Brahma], for its maintenance You appear as Yourself [Visnu], and for its
annihilation You appear as Lord Trinetra [Siva].
20. O Lord, O supreme creator and master, You have no material birth, yet to defeat the false pride of
the faithless demons and show mercy to Your saintly devotees, You take birth among the demigods,
sages, human beings, animals and even the aquatics.
21. O supreme great one! O Supreme Personality of Godhead! O Supersoul, master of all mystic
power! Your pastimes are taking place continuously in these three worlds, but who can estimate where,
how and when You are employing Your spiritual energy and performing these innumerable pastimes?
No one can understand the mystery of how Your spiritual energy acts.
22. Therefore this entire universe, which like a dream is by nature unreal, nevertheless appears real,
and thus it covers one’s consciousness and assails one with repeated miseries. This universe appears
real because it is manifested by the potency of illusion emanating from You, whose unlimited
transcendental forms are full of eternal happiness and knowledge.
23. You are the one Supreme Soul, the primeval Supreme Personality, the Absolute Truth—self-
manifested, endless and beginningless. You are eternal and infallible, perfect and complete, without any
rival and free from all material designations. Your happiness can never be obstructed, nor have You
any connection with material contamination. Indeed, You are the indestructible nectar of immortality.
24. Those who have received the clear vision of knowledge from the sunlike spiritual master can see
You in this way, as the very Soul of all souls, the Supersoul of everyone’s own self. Thus understanding
Your original personality, they are able to cross over the ocean of illusory material existence.
25. A person who mistakes a rope for a snake becomes fearful, but he then gives up his fear upon
realizing that the so-called snake does not exist. Similarly, for those who fail to recognize You as the
Supreme Soul of all souls, the expansive illusory material existence arises, but knowledge of You at
once causes it to subside.
26. The conception of material bondage and the conception of liberation are both manifestations of
ignorance. Being outside the scope of true knowledge, they cease to exist when one correctly
understands that the pure spirit soul is distinct from matter and always fully conscious. At that time
bondage and liberation no longer have any significance, just as day and night have no significance from
the perspective of the sun.
27. Just see the foolishness of those ignorant persons who consider You to be some separated
manifestation of illusion and who consider the self, which is actually You, to be something else, the
material body. Such fools conclude that the supreme soul is to be searched for somewhere outside
Your supreme personality.
486 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
28. O unlimited Lord, the saintly devotees seek You out within their own bodies by rejecting everything
separate from You. Indeed, how can discriminating persons appreciate the real nature of a rope lying
before them until they refute the illusion that it is a snake.
29. My Lord, if one is favored by even a slight trace of the mercy of Your lotus feet, he can understand
the greatness of Your personality. But those who speculate to understand the Supreme Personality of
Godhead are unable to know You, even though they continue to study the Vedas for many years.
30. My dear Lord, I therefore pray to be so fortunate that in this life as Lord Brahma or in another life,
wherever I take my birth, I may be counted as one of Your devotees. I pray that wherever I may be,
even among the animal species, I can engage in devotional service to Your lotus feet.
31. O almighty Lord, how greatly fortunate are the cows and ladies of Vrndavana, the nectar of whose
breast-milk You have happily drunk to Your full satisfaction, taking the form of their calves and children!
All the Vedic sacrifices performed from time immemorial up to the present day have not given You as
much satisfaction.
32. How greatly fortunate are Nanda Maharaja, the cowherd men and all the other inhabitants of
Vrajabhumi! There is no limit to their good fortune, because the Absolute Truth, the source of
transcendental bliss, the eternal Supreme Brahman, has become their friend.
33. Yet even though the extent of the good fortune of these residents of Vrndavana is inconceivable, we
eleven presiding deities of the various senses, headed by Lord Siva, are also most fortunate, because
the senses of these devotees of Vrndavana are the cups through which we repeatedly drink the
nectarean, intoxicating beverage of the honey of Your lotus feet.
34. My greatest possible good fortune would be to take any birth whatever in this forest of Gokula and
have my head bathed by the dust falling from the lotus feet of any of its residents. Their entire life and
soul is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Mukunda, the dust of whose lotus feet is still being
searched for in the Vedic mantras.
35. My mind becomes bewildered just trying to think of what reward other than You could be found
anywhere. You are the embodiment of all benedictions, which You bestow upon these residents of the
cowherd community of Vrndavana. You have already arranged to give Yourself to Putana and her
family members in exchange for her disguising herself as a devotee. So what is left for You to give
these devotees of Vrndavana, whose homes, wealth, friends, dear relations, bodies, children and very
lives and hearts are all dedicated only to You?
36. My dear Lord Krsna, until people become Your devotees, their material attachments and desires
remain thieves, their homes remain prisons, and their affectionate feelings for their family members
remain foot-shackles.
37. My dear master, although You have nothing to do with material existence, You come to this earth
and imitate material life just to expand the varieties of ecstatic enjoyment for Your surrendered
devotees.
38. There are people who say, “I know everything about Krsna.” Let them think that way. As far as I am
concerned, I do not wish to speak very much about this matter. O my Lord, let me say this much: As far
as Your opulences are concerned, they are all beyond the reach of my mind, body and words.
39. My dear Krsna, I now humbly request permission to leave. Actually, You are the knower and seer of
all things. Indeed, You are the Lord of all the universes, and yet I offer this one universe unto You.
40. My dear Sri Krsna, You bestow happiness upon the lotuslike Vrsni dynasty and expand the great
oceans consisting of the earth, the demigods, the brahmanas and the cows. You dispel the dense
darkness of irreligion and oppose the demons who have appeared on this earth. O Supreme
Personality of Godhead, as long as this universe exists and as long as the sun shines, I will offer my
obeisances unto You.
41. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus offered his prayers, Brahma circumambulated his
worshipable Lord, the unlimited Personality of Godhead, three times and then bowed down at His lotus
feet. The appointed creator of the universe then returned to his own residence.
42. After granting His son Brahma permission to leave, the Supreme Personality of Godhead took the
calves, who were still where they had been a year earlier, and brought them to the riverbank, where He
had been taking His meal and where His cowherd boyfriends remained just as before.
43. O King, although the boys had passed an entire year apart from the Lord of their very lives, they had
been covered by Lord Krsna’s illusory potency and thus considered that year merely half a moment.
44. What indeed is not forgotten by those whose minds are bewildered by the Lord’s illusory potency?
By that power of Maya, this entire universe remains in perpetual bewilderment, and in this atmosphere
of forgetfulness no one can understand his own identity.
45. The cowherd boyfriends said to Lord Krsna: You have returned so quickly! We have not eaten even
one morsel in Your absence. Please come here and take Your meal without distraction.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 487
46. Then Lord Hrsikesa, smiling, finished His lunch in the company of His cowherd friends. While they
were returning from the forest to their homes in Vraja, Lord Krsna showed the cowherd boys the skin of
the dead serpent Aghasura.
47. Lord Krsna’s transcendental body was decorated with peacock feathers and flowers and painted
with forest minerals, and His bamboo flute loudly and festively resounded. As He called out to His
calves by name, His cowherd boyfriends purified the whole world by chanting His glories. Thus Lord
Krsna entered the cow pasture of His father, Nanda Maharaja, and the sight of His beauty at once
produced a great festival for the eyes of all the cowherd women.
48. As the cowherd boys reached the village of Vraja, they sang, “Today Krsna saved us by killing a
great serpent!” Some of the boys described Krsna as the son of Yasoda, and others as the son of
Nanda Maharaja.
49. King Pariksit said: O brahmana, how could the cowherd women have developed for Krsna,
someone else’s son, such unprecedented pure love—love they never felt even for their own children?
Please explain this.
50. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, for every created being the dearmost thing is certainly his own
self. The dearness of everything else—children, wealth and so on—is due only to the dearness of the
self.
51. For this reason, O best of kings, the embodied soul is self-centered: he is more attached to his own
body and self than to his so-called possessions like children, wealth and home.
52. Indeed, for persons who think the body is the self, O best of kings, those things whose importance
lies only in their relationship to the body are never as dear as the body itself.
53. If a person comes to the stage of considering the body “mine” instead of “me,” he will certainly not
consider the body as dear as his own self. After all, even as the body is growing old and useless, one’s
desire to continue living remains strong.
54. Therefore it is his own self that is most dear to every embodied living being, and it is simply for the
satisfaction of this self that the whole material creation of moving and nonmoving entities exists.
55. You should know Krsna to be the original Soul of all living entities. For the benefit of the whole
universe, He has, out of His causeless mercy, appeared as an ordinary human being. He has done this
by the strength of His internal potency.
56. Those in this world who understand Lord Krsna as He is see all things, whether stationary or
moving, as manifest forms of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Such enlightened persons
recognize no reality apart from the Supreme Lord Krsna.
57. The original, unmanifested form of material nature is the source of all material things, and the
source of even that subtle material nature is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna. What, then,
could one ascertain to be separate from Him?
58. For those who have accepted the boat of the lotus feet of the Lord, who is the shelter of the cosmic
manifestation and is famous as Murari, the enemy of the Mura demon, the ocean of the material world
is like the water contained in a calf’s hoof-print. Their goal is paraà padam, Vaikuntha, the place where
there are no material miseries, not the place where there is danger at every step.
59. Since you inquired from me, I have fully described to you those activities of Lord Hari that were
performed in His fifth year but not celebrated until His sixth.
60. Any person who hears or chants these pastimes Lord Murari performed with His cowherd friends—
the killing of Aghasura, the taking of lunch on the forest grass, the Lord’s manifestation of
transcendental forms, and the wonderful prayers offered by Lord Brahma—is sure to achieve all his
spiritual desires.
61. In this way the boys spent their childhood in the land of Vrndavana playing hide-and-go-seek,
building play bridges, jumping about like monkeys and engaging in many other such games.
Chapter Fifteen The Killing of Dhenuka, the Ass Demon
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When Lord Rama and Lord Krsna attained the age of pauganda [six to ten]
while living in Vrndavana, the cowherd men allowed Them to take up the task of tending the cows.
Engaging thus in the company of Their friends, the two boys rendered the land of Vrndavana most
auspicious by imprinting upon it the marks of Their lotus feet.
2. Thus desiring to enjoy pastimes, Lord Madhava, sounding His flute, surrounded by cowherd boys
who were chanting His glories, and accompanied by Lord Baladeva, kept the cows before Him and
entered the Vrndavana forest, which was full of flowers and rich with nourishment for the animals.
3. The Supreme Personality of Godhead looked over that forest, which resounded with the charming
sounds of bees, animals and birds, and which was enhanced by a lake whose clear water resembled
the minds of great souls and by a breeze carrying the fragrance of hundred-petaled lotuses. Seeing all
this, Lord Krsna decided to enjoy the auspicious atmosphere.
488 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
4. The primeval Lord saw that the stately trees, with their beautiful reddish buds and their heavy burden
of fruits and flowers, were bending down to touch His feet with the tips of their branches. Thus He
smiled gently and addressed His elder brother.
5. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O greatest of Lords, just see how these trees are bowing
their heads at Your lotus feet, which are worshipable by the immortal demigods. The trees are offering
You their fruits and flowers to eradicate the dark ignorance that has caused their birth as trees.
6. O original personality, these bees must all be great sages and most elevated devotees of Yours, for
they are worshiping You by following You along the path and chanting Your glories, which are
themselves a holy place for the entire world. Though You have disguised Yourself within this forest, O
sinless one, they refuse to abandon You, their worshipable Lord.
7. O worshipable one, these peacocks are dancing before You out of joy, these doe are pleasing You
with affectionate glances, just as the gopis do, and these cuckoos are honoring You with Vedic prayers.
All these residents of the forest are most fortunate, and their behavior toward You certainly befits great
souls receiving another great soul at home.
8. This earth has now become most fortunate, because You have touched her grass and bushes with
Your feet and her trees and creepers with Your fingernails, and because You have graced her rivers,
mountains, birds and animals with Your merciful glances. But above all, You have embraced the young
cowherd women between Your two arms—a favor hankered after by the goddess of fortune herself.
9. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus expressing His satisfaction with the beautiful forest of Vrndavana and
its inhabitants, Lord Krsna enjoyed tending the cows and other animals with His friends on the banks of
the river Yamuna below Govardhana Hill.
10-12. Sometimes the honeybees in Vrndavana became so mad with ecstasy that they closed their
eyes and began to sing. Lord Krsna, moving along the forest path with His cowherd boyfriends and
Baladeva, would then respond to the bees by imitating their singing while His friends sang about His
pastimes. Sometimes Lord Krsna would imitate the chattering of a parrot, sometimes, with a sweet
voice, the call of a cuckoo, and sometimes the cooing of swans. Sometimes He vigorously imitated the
dancing of a peacock, making His cowherd boyfriends laugh. Sometimes, with a voice as deep as the
rumbling of clouds, He would call out with great affection the names of the animals who had wandered
far from the herd, thus enchanting the cows and the cowherd boys.
13. Sometimes He would cry out in imitation of birds such as the cakoras, krauncas, cakrahvas,
bharadvajas and peacocks, and sometimes He would run away with the smaller animals in mock fear of
lions and tigers.
14. When His elder brother, fatigued from playing, would lie down with His head upon the lap of a
cowherd boy, Lord Krsna would help Him relax by personally massaging His feet and offering other
services.
15. Sometimes, as the cowherd boys danced, sang, moved about and playfully fought with each other,
Krsna and Balarama, standing nearby hand in hand, would glorify Their friends’ activities and laugh.
16. Sometimes Lord Krsna grew tired from fighting and lay down at the base of a tree, resting upon a
bed made of soft twigs and buds and using the lap of a cowherd friend as His pillow.
17. Some of the cowherd boys, who were all great souls, would then massage His lotus feet, and
others, qualified by being free of all sin, would expertly fan the Supreme Lord.
18. My dear King, other boys would sing enchanting songs appropriate to the occasion, and their hearts
would melt out of love for the Lord.
19. In this way the Supreme Lord, whose soft lotus feet are personally attended by the goddess of
fortune, concealed His transcendental opulences by His internal potency and acted like the son of a
cowherd. Yet even while enjoying like a village boy in the company of other village residents, He often
exhibited feats only God could perform.
20. Once, some of the cowherd boys—Sridama, the very close friend of Rama and Krsna, along with
Subala, Stokakrsna and others—lovingly spoke the following words.
21. [The cowherd boys said:] O Rama, Rama, mighty-armed one! O Krsna, destroyer of the
miscreants! Not far from here is a very great forest filled with rows of palm trees.
22. In that Talavana forest many fruits are falling from the trees, and many are already lying on the
ground. But all the fruits are being guarded by the evil Dhenuka.
23. O Rama, O Krsna! Dhenuka is a most powerful demon and has assumed the form of an ass. He is
surrounded by many friends who have assumed a similar shape and who are just as powerful as he.
24. The demon Dhenuka has eaten men alive, and therefore all people and animals are terrified of
going to the Tala forest. O killer of the enemy, even the birds are afraid to fly there.
25. In the Tala forest are sweet-smelling fruits no one has ever tasted. Indeed, even now we can smell
the fragrance of the tala fruits spreading all about.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 489
26. O Krsna! Please get those fruits for us. Our minds are so attracted by their aroma! Dear Balarama,
our desire to have those fruits is very great. If You think it’s a good idea, let’s go to that Tala forest.
27. Hearing the words of Their dear companions, Krsna and Balarama laughed and, desiring to please
them, set off for the Talavana surrounded by Their cowherd boyfriends.
28. Lord Balarama entered the Tala forest first. Then with His two arms He began forcefully shaking the
trees with the power of a maddened elephant, causing the tala fruits to fall to the ground.
29. Hearing the sound of the falling fruits, the ass demon Dhenuka ran forward to attack, making the
earth and trees tremble.
30. The powerful demon rushed up to Lord Baladeva and sharply struck the Lord’s chest with the
hooves of his hind legs. Then Dhenuka began to run about, braying loudly.
31. Moving again toward Lord Balarama, O King, the furious ass situated himself with his back toward
the Lord. Then, screaming in rage, the demon hurled his two hind legs at Him.
32. Lord Balarama seized Dhenuka by his hooves, whirled him about with one hand and threw him into
the top of a palm tree. The violent wheeling motion killed the demon.
33. Lord Balarama threw the dead body of Dhenukasura into the tallest palm tree in the forest, and
when the dead demon landed in the treetop, the tree began shaking. The great palm tree, causing a
tree by its side also to shake, broke under the weight of the demon. The neighboring tree caused yet
another tree to shake, and this one struck yet another tree, which also began shaking. In this way many
trees in the forest shook and broke.
34. Because of Lord Balarama’s pastime of throwing the body of the ass demon into the top of the
tallest palm tree, all the trees began shaking and striking against one another as if blown about by
powerful winds.
35. My dear Pariksit, that Lord Balarama killed Dhenukasura is not such a wonderful thing, considering
that He is the unlimited Personality of Godhead, the controller of the entire universe. Indeed, the entire
cosmos rests upon Him just as a woven cloth rests upon its own horizontal and vertical threads.
36. The other ass demons, close friends of Dhenukasura, were enraged upon seeing his death, and
thus they all immediately ran to attack Krsna and Balarama.
37. O King, as the demons attacked, Krsna and Balarama easily seized them one after another by their
hind legs and threw them all into the tops of the palm trees.
38. The earth then appeared beautifully covered with heaps of fruits and with the dead bodies of the
demons, which were entangled in the broken tops of the palm trees. Indeed, the earth shone like the
sky decorated with clouds.
39. Hearing of this magnificent feat of the two brothers, the demigods and other elevated living beings
rained down flowers and offered music and prayers in glorification.
40. People now felt free to return to the forest where Dhenuka had been killed, and without fear they ate
the fruits of the palm trees. Also, the cows could now graze freely upon the grass there.
41. Then lotus-eyed Lord Sri Krsna, whose glories are most pious to hear and chant, returned home to
Vraja with His elder brother, Balarama. Along the way, the cowherd boys, His faithful followers, chanted
His glories.
42. Lord Krsna’s hair, powdered with the dust raised by the cows, was decorated with a peacock
feather and forest flowers. The Lord glanced charmingly and smiled beautifully, playing upon His flute
while His companions chanted His glories. The gopis, all together, came forward to meet Him, their
eyes very eager to see Him.
43. With their beelike eyes, the women of Vrndavana drank the honey of the beautiful face of Lord
Mukunda, and thus they gave up the distress they had felt during the day because of separation from
Him. The young Vrndavana ladies cast sidelong glances at the Lord—glances filled with bashfulness,
laughter and submission—and Sri Krsna completely accepting these glances as a proper offering of
respect, entered the cowherd village.
44. Mother Yasoda and mother Rohini, acting most affectionately toward their two sons, offered all the
best things to Them in response to Their every desire and at the various appropriate times.
45. By being bathed and massaged, the two young Lords were relieved of the weariness caused by
walking on the country roads. Then They were dressed in attractive robes and decorated with
transcendental garlands and fragrances.
46. After dining sumptuously on the delicious food given Them by Their mothers and being pampered in
various ways, the two brothers lay down upon Their excellent beds and happily went to sleep in the
village of Vraja.
47. O King, the Supreme Lord Krsna thus wandered about the Vrndavana area, performing His
pastimes. Once, surrounded by His boyfriends, He went without Balarama to the Yamuna River.
48. At that time the cows and cowherd boys were feeling acute distress from the glaring summer sun.
Afflicted by thirst, they drank the water of the Yamuna River. But it had been contaminated with poison.
490 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
49-50. As soon as they touched the poisoned water, all the cows and boys lost their consciousness by
the divine power of the Lord and fell lifeless at the water’s edge. O hero of the Kurus, seeing them in
such a condition, Lord Krsna, the master of all masters of mystic potency, felt compassion for these
devotees, who had no Lord other than Him. Thus He immediately brought them back to life by
showering His nectarean glance upon them.
51. Regaining their full consciousness, the cows and boys stood up out of the water and began to look
at one another in great astonishment.
52. O King, the cowherd boys then considered that although they had drunk poison and in fact had
died, simply by the merciful glance of Govinda they had regained their lives and stood up by their own
strength.
Chapter Sixteen Krsna Chastises the Serpent Kaliya
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Lord Sri Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, seeing that the
Yamuna River had been contaminated by the black snake Kaliya, desired to purify the river, and thus
the Lord banished him from it.
2. King Pariksit inquired: O learned sage, please explain how the Supreme Personality of Godhead
chastised the serpent Kaliya within the unfathomable waters of the Yamuna, and how it was that Kaliya
had been living there for so many ages.
3. O brahmana, the unlimited Supreme Personality of Godhead freely acts according to His own
desires. Who could be satiated when hearing the nectar of the magnanimous pastimes He performed
as a cowherd boy in Vrndavana?
4. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Within the river Kalindi [Yamuna] was a lake inhabited by the serpent
Kaliya, whose fiery poison constantly heated and boiled its waters. Indeed, the vapors thus created
were so poisonous that birds flying over the contaminated lake would fall down into it.
5. The wind blowing over that deadly lake carried droplets of water to the shore. Simply by coming in
contact with that poisonous breeze, all vegetation and creatures on the shore died.
6. Lord Krsna saw how the Kaliya serpent had polluted the Yamunä River with his terribly powerful
poison. Since Krsna had descended from the spiritual world specifically to subdue envious demons, the
Lord immediately climbed to the top of a very high kadamba tree and prepared Himself for battle. He
tightened His belt, slapped His arms and then jumped into the poisonous water.
7. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead landed in the serpent’s lake, the snakes there became
extremely agitated and began breathing heavily, further polluting it with volumes of poison. The force of
the Lord’s entrance into the lake caused it to overflow on all sides, and poisonous, fearsome waves
flooded the surrounding lands up to a distance of one hundred bow-lengths. This is not at all amazing,
however, for the Supreme Lord possesses infinite strength.
8. Krsna began sporting in Kaliya’s lake like a lordly elephant—swirling His mighty arms and making the
water resound in various ways. When Kaliya heard these sounds, he understood that someone was
trespassing in his lake. The serpent could not tolerate this and immediately came forward.
9. Kaliya saw that Sri Krsna, who wore yellow silken garments, was very delicate, His attractive body
shining like a glowing white cloud, His chest bearing the mark of Srivatsa, His face smiling beautifully
and His feet resembling the whorl of a lotus flower. The Lord was playing fearlessly in the water.
Despite His wonderful appearance, the envious Kaliya furiously bit Him on the chest and then
completely enwrapped Him in his coils.
10. When the members of the cowherd community, who had accepted Krsna as their dearmost friend,
saw Him enveloped in the snake’s coils, motionless, they were greatly disturbed. They had offered
Krsna everything—their very selves, their families, their wealth, wives and all pleasures. At the sight of
the Lord in the clutches of the Kaliya snake, their intelligence became deranged by grief, lamentation
and fear, and thus they fell to the ground.
11. The cows, bulls and female calves, in great distress, called out piteously to Krsna. Fixing their eyes
on Him, they stood still in fear, as if ready to cry but too shocked to shed tears.
12. In the Vrndavana area there then arose all three types of fearful omens—those on the earth, those
in the sky and those in the bodies of living creatures—which announced imminent danger.
13-15. Seeing the inauspicious omens, Nanda Maharaja and the other cowherd men were fearful, for
they knew that Krsna had gone to herd the cows that day without His elder brother, Balarama. Because
they had dedicated their minds to Krsna, accepting Him as their very life, they were unaware of His
great power and opulence. Thus they concluded that the inauspicious omens indicated He had met with
death, and they were overwhelmed with grief, lamentation and fear. All the inhabitants of Vrndavana,
including the children, women and elderly persons, thought of Krsna just as a cow thinks of her helpless
young calf, and thus these poor, suffering people rushed out of the village, intent upon finding Him.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 491
16. The Supreme Lord Balarama, the master of all transcendental knowledge, smiled and said nothing
when He saw the residents of Vrndavana in such distress, since He understood the extraordinary power
of His younger brother.
17. The residents hurried toward the banks of the Yamuna in search of their dearmost Krsna, following
the path marked by His footprints, which bore the unique signs of the Personality of Godhead.
18. The footprints of Lord Krsna, the master of the entire cowherd community, were marked with the
lotus flower, barleycorn, elephant goad, thunderbolt and flag. My dear King Pariksit, seeing His
footprints on the path among the cows’ hoofprints, the residents of Vrndavana rushed along in great
haste.
19. As they hurried along the path to the bank of the Yamuna River, they saw from a distance that
Krsna was in the lake, motionless within the coils of the black serpent. They further saw that the
cowherd boys had fallen unconscious and that the animals were standing on all sides, crying out for
Krsna. Seeing all this, the residents of Vrndavana were overwhelmed with anguish and confusion.
20. When the young gopis, whose minds were constantly attached to Krsna, the unlimited Supreme
Lord, saw that He was now within the grips of the serpent, they remembered His loving friendship, His
smiling glances and His talks with them. Burning with great sorrow, they saw the entire universe as
void.
21. Although the elder gopis were feeling just as much distress as she and were pouring forth a flood of
sorrowful tears, they had to forcibly hold back Krsna’s mother, whose consciousness was totally
absorbed in her son. Standing like corpses, with their eyes fixed upon His face, these gopis each took
turns recounting the pastimes of the darling of Vraja.
22. Lord Balarama then saw that Nanda Maharaja and the other cowherd men, who had dedicated their
very lives to Krsna, were beginning to enter the serpent’s lake. As the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Lord Balarama fully knew Lord Krsna’s actual power, and therefore He restrained them.
23. The Lord remained for some time within the coils of the serpent, imitating the behavior of an
ordinary mortal. But when He understood that the women, children and other residents of His village of
Gokula were in acute distress because of their love for Him, their only shelter and goal in life, He
immediately rose up from the bonds of the Kaliya serpent.
24. His coils tormented by the expanding body of the Lord, Kaliya released Him. In great anger the
serpent then raised his hoods high and stood still, breathing heavily. His nostrils appeared like vessels
for cooking poison, and the staring eyes in his face like firebrands. Thus the serpent looked at the Lord.
25. Again and again Kaliya licked his lips with his bifurcated tongues as He stared at Krsna with a
glance full of terrible, poisonous fire. But Krsna playfully circled around him, just as Garuòa would play
with a snake. In response, Kaliya also moved about, looking for an opportunity to bite the Lord.
26. Having severely depleted the serpent’s strength with His relentless circling, Sri Krsna, the origin of
everything, pushed down Kaliya’s raised shoulders and mounted his broad serpentine heads. Thus
Lord Sri Krsna, the original master of all fine arts, began to dance, His lotus feet deeply reddened by the
touch of the numerous jewels upon the serpent’s heads.
27. Seeing the Lord dancing, His servants in the heavenly planets—the Gandharvas, Siddhas, sages,
Caranas and wives of the demigods—immediately arrived there. With great pleasure they began
accompanying the Lord’s dancing by playing drums such as mrdangas, panavas and anakas. They also
made offerings of songs, flowers and prayers.
28. My dear King, Kaliya had 101 prominent heads, and when one of them would not bow down, Lord
Sri Krsna, who inflicts punishment on cruel wrong-doers, would smash that stubborn head by striking it
with His feet. Then, as Kaliya entered his death throes, he began wheeling his heads around and
vomiting ghastly blood from his mouths and nostrils. The serpent thus experienced extreme pain and
misery.
29. Exuding poisonous waste from his eyes, Kaliya, would occasionally dare to raise up one of his
heads, which would breathe heavily with anger. Then the Lord would dance on it and subdue it, forcing
it to bow down with His foot. The demigods took each of these exhibitions as an opportunity to worship
Him, the primeval Personality of Godhead, with showers of flowers.
30. My dear King Pariksit, Lord Krsna’s wonderful, powerful dancing trampled and broke all of Kaliya’s
one thousand hoods. Then the serpent, profusely vomiting blood from his mouths, finally recognized Sri
Krsna to be the eternal Personality of Godhead, the supreme master of all moving and nonmoving
beings, Sri Narayana. Thus within his mind Kaliya took shelter of the Lord.
31. When Kaliya’s wives saw how the serpent had become so fatigued from the excessive weight of
Lord Krsna, who carries the entire universe in His abdomen, and how Kaliya’s umbrellalike hoods had
been shattered by the striking of Krsna’s heels, they felt great distress. With their clothing, ornaments
and hair scattered in disarray, they then approached the eternal Personality of Godhead.
492 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
32. Their minds very much disturbed, those saintly ladies placed their children before them and then
bowed down to the Lord of all creatures, laying their bodies flat upon the ground. They desired the
liberation of their sinful husband and the shelter of the Supreme Lord, the giver of ultimate shelter, and
thus they folded their hands in supplication and approached Him.
33. The wives of the Kaliya serpent said: The punishment this offender has been subjected to is
certainly just. After all, You have incarnated within this world to curb down envious and cruel persons.
You are so impartial that You look equally upon Your enemies and Your own sons, for when You
impose a punishment on a living being You know it to be for his ultimate benefit.
34. What You have done here is actually mercy for us, since the punishment You give to the wicked
certainly drives away all their contamination. Indeed, because this conditioned soul, our husband, is so
sinful that he has assumed the body of a serpent, Your anger toward him is obviously to be understood
as Your mercy.
35. Did our husband carefully perform austerities in a previous life, with his mind free of pride and full of
respect for others? Is that why You are pleased with him? Or did he in some previous existence
carefully execute religious duties with compassion for all living beings, and is that why You, the life of all
living beings, are now satisfied with Him?
36. O Lord, we do not know how the serpent Kaliya has attained this great opportunity of being touched
by the dust of Your lotus feet. For this end, the goddess of fortune performed austerities for centuries,
giving up all other desires and taking austere vows.
37. Those who have attained the dust of Your lotus feet never hanker for the kingship of heaven,
limitless sovereignty, the position of Brahma or rulership over the earth. They are not interested even in
the perfections of yoga or in liberation itself.
38. O Lord, although this Kaliya, the king of the serpents, has taken birth in the mode of ignorance and
is controlled by anger, he has achieved that which is difficult for others to achieve. Embodied souls, who
are full of desires and are thus wandering in the cycle of birth and death, can have all benedictions
manifested before their eyes simply by receiving the dust of Your lotus feet.
39. We offer our obeisances unto You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Although present in the
hearts of all living beings as the Supersoul, You are all-pervasive. Although the original shelter of all
created material elements, You exist prior to their creation. And although the cause of everything, You
are transcendental to all material cause and effect, being the Supreme Soul.
40. Obeisances unto You, the Absolute Truth, who are the reservoir of all transcendental
consciousness and potency and the possessor of unlimited energies. Although completely free of
material qualities and transformations, You are the prime mover of material nature.
41. Obeisances unto You, who are time itself, the shelter of time and the witness of time in all its
phases. You are the universe, and also its separate observer. You are its creator, and also the totality of
all its causes.
42-43. Obeisances unto You, who are the ultimate soul of the physical elements, of the subtle basis of
perception, of the senses, of the vital air of life, and of the mind, intelligence and consciousness. By
Your arrangement the infinitesimal spirit souls falsely identify with the three modes of material nature,
and their perception of their own true self thus becomes clouded. We offer our obeisances unto You,
the unlimited Supreme Lord, the supremely subtle one, the omniscient Personality of Godhead, who are
always fixed in unchanging transcendence, who sanction the opposing views of different philosophies,
and who are the power upholding expressed ideas and the words that express them.
44. We offer our obeisances again and again to You, who are the basis of all authoritative evidence,
who are the author and ultimate source of the revealed scriptures, and who have manifested Yourself in
those Vedic literatures encouraging sense gratification as well as in those encouraging renunciation of
the material world.
45. We offer our obeisances to Lord Krsna and Lord Rama, the sons of Vasudeva, and to Lord
Pradyumna and Lord Aniruddha. We offer our respectful obeisances unto the master of all the saintly
devotees of Visnu.
46. Obeisances to You, O Lord, who manifest varieties of material and spiritual qualities. You disguise
Yourself with the material qualities, and yet the functioning of those same material qualities ultimately
reveals Your existence. You stand apart from the material qualities as a witness and can be fully known
only by Your devotees.
47. O Lord Hrsikesa, master of the senses, please let us offer our obeisances unto You, whose
pastimes are inconceivably glorious. Your existence can be inferred from the necessity for a creator and
revealer of all cosmic manifestations. But although Your devotees can understand You in this way, to
the nondevotees You remain silent, absorbed in self-satisfaction.
48. Obeisances unto You, who know the destination of all things, superior and inferior, and who are the
presiding regulator of all that be. You are distinct from the universal creation, and yet You are the basis
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 493
upon which the illusion of material creation evolves, and also the witness of this illusion. Indeed, You
are the root cause of the entire world.
49. O almighty Lord, although You have no reason to become involved in material activity, still You act
through Your eternal potency of time to arrange for the creation, maintenance and destruction of this
universe. You do this by awakening the distinct functions of each of the modes of nature, which before
the creation lie dormant. Simply by Your glance You perfectly execute all these activities of cosmic
control in a sporting mood.
50. Therefore all material bodies throughout the three worlds—those that are peaceful, in the mode of
goodness; those that are agitated, in the mode of passion; and those that are foolish, in the mode of
ignorance—all are Your creations. Still, those living entities whose bodies are in the mode of goodness
are especially dear to You, and it is to maintain them and protect their religious principles that You are
now present on the earth.
51. At least once, a master should tolerate an offense committed by his child or subject. O supreme
peaceful Soul, You should therefore forgive our foolish husband, who did not understand who You are.
52. O Supreme Lord, please be merciful. It is proper for the saintly to feel compassion for women like
us. This serpent is about to give up his life. Please give us back our husband, who is our life and soul.
53. Now please tell us, Your maidservants, what we should do. Certainly anyone who faithfully executes
Your order is automatically freed from all fear.
54. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus praised by the Naga-patnis, the Supreme Personality of Godhead
released the serpent Kaliya, who had fallen unconscious, his heads battered by the striking of the Lord’s
lotus feet.
55. Kaliya slowly regained his vital force and sensory functions. Then, breathing loudly and painfully, the
poor serpent addressed Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, in humble submission.
56. The serpent Kaliya said: Our very birth as a snake has made us envious, ignorant and constantly
angry. O my Lord, it is so difficult for people to give up their conditioned nature, by which they identify
with that which is unreal.
57. O supreme creator, it is You who generate this universe, composed of the variegated arrangement
of the material modes, and in the process You manifest various kinds of personalities and species,
varieties of sensory and physical strength, and varieties of mothers and fathers with variegated
mentalities and forms.
58. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, among all the species within Your material creation, we
serpents are by nature always enraged. Being thus deluded by Your illusory energy, which is very
difficult to give up, how can we possibly give it up on our own?
59. O Lord, since You are the omniscient Lord of the universe, You are the actual cause of freedom
from illusion. Please arrange for us whatever You consider proper, whether it be mercy or punishment.
60. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After hearing Kaliya’s words, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
was acting the role of a human being, replied: O serpent, you may not remain here any longer. Go back
to the ocean immediately, accompanied by your retinue of children, wives, other relatives and friends.
Let this river be enjoyed by the cows and humans.
61. If a mortal being attentively remembers My command to you—to leave Vrndavana and go to the
ocean—and narrates this account at sunrise and sunset, he will never be afraid of you.
62. If one bathes in this place of My pastimes and offers the water of this lake to the demigods and
other worshipable personalities, or if one observes a fast and duly worships and remembers Me, he is
sure to become free from all sinful reactions.
63. Out of fear of Garuda, you left Ramanaka Island and came to take shelter of this lake. But because
you are now marked with My footprints, Garuda will no longer try to eat you.
64. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, having been released by Lord Krsna, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, whose activities are wonderful, Kaliya joined his wives in worshiping Him with
great joy and reverence.
65-67. Kaliya worshiped the Lord of the universe by offering Him fine garments, along with necklaces,
jewels and other valuable ornaments, wonderful scents and ointments, and a large garland of lotus
flowers. Having thus pleased the Lord, whose flag is marked with the emblem of Garuda, Kaliya felt
satisfied. Receiving the Lord’s permission to leave, Kaliya circumambulated Him and offered Him
obeisances. Then, taking his wives, friends and children, he went to his island in the sea. The very
moment Kaliya left, the Yamuna was immediately restored to her original condition, free from poison
and full of nectarean water. This happened by the mercy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
was manifesting a humanlike form to enjoy His pastimes.
494 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Chapter Seventeen The History of Kaliya
1. [Having thus heard how Lord Krsna chastised Kaliya,] King Pariksit inquired: Why did Kaliya leave
Ramanaka Island, the abode of the serpents, and why did Garuda become so antagonistic toward him
alone?
2-3. Sukadeva Gosvami said: To avoid being eaten by Garuda, the serpents had previously made an
arrangement with him whereby they would each make a monthly offering of tribute at the base of a tree.
Thus every month on schedule, O mighty-armed King Pariksit, each serpent would duly make his
offering to that powerful carrier of Visnu as a purchase of protection.
4. Although all the other serpents were dutifully making offerings to Garuda, one serpent—the arrogant
Kaliya, son of Kadru—would eat all these offerings before Garuda could claim them. Thus Kaliya
directly defied the carrier of Lord Visnu.
5. O King, the greatly powerful Garuda, who is very dear to the Supreme Lord, became angry when he
heard of this. Desiring to kill Kaliya, he rushed toward the serpent with tremendous speed.
6. As Garuda swiftly fell upon him, Kaliya, who had the weapon of poison, raised his numerous heads to
counterattack. Showing his ferocious tongues and expanding his horrible eyes, Kaliya then bit Garuda
with the weapons of his fangs.
7. The angry son of Tarksya moved with overwhelming speed in repelling Kaliya’s attack. That terribly
powerful carrier of Lord Madhusudana struck the son of Kadru with his left wing, which shone like gold.
8. Beaten by Garuda’s wing, Kaliya was extremely distraught, and thus he took shelter of a lake
adjoining the river Yamuna. Garuda could not enter this lake. Indeed, he could not even approach it.
9. In that very lake Garuda had once desired to eat a fish—fish being, after all, his normal food.
Although forbidden by the sage Saubhari, who was meditating there within the water, Garuda took
courage and, feeling hungry, seized the fish.
10. Seeing how the unfortunate fish in that lake had become most unhappy at the death of their leader,
Saubhari uttered the following curse under the impression that he was mercifully acting for the benefit of
the lake’s residents.
11. If Garuda ever again enters this lake and eats the fish here, he will immediately lose his life. What I
am saying is the truth.
12. Of all the serpents, only Kaliya came to know of this affair, and in fear of Garuda he took up
residence in that Yamuna lake. Later Lord Krsna drove him out.
13-14. [Resuming his description of Krsna’s chastisement of Kaliya, Sukadeva Gosvami continued:]
Krsna rose up out of the lake wearing divine garlands, fragrances and garments, covered with many
fine jewels, and decorated with gold. When the cowherds saw Him they all stood up immediately, just
like an unconscious person’s senses coming back to life. Filled with great joy, they affectionately
embraced Him.
15. Having regained their vital functions, Yasoda, Rohini, Nanda and all the other cowherd women and
men went up to Krsna. O descendant of Kuru, even the dried-up trees came back to life.
16. Lord Balarama embraced His infallible brother and laughed, knowing well the extent of Krsna’s
potency. Out of great feelings of love, Balarama lifted Krsna up on His lap and repeatedly looked at
Him. The cows, bulls and young female calves also achieved the highest pleasure.
17. All the respectable brahmanas, together with their wives, came forward to greet Nanda Maharaja.
They said to him, “Your son was in the grips of Kaliya, but by the grace of Providence He is now free.”
18. The brahmanas then advised Nanda Maharaja, “To assure that your son Krsna will always be free
from danger, you should give charity to the brahmanas.” With a satisfied mind, O King, Nanda Maharaja
then very gladly gave them gifts of cows and gold.
19. The greatly fortunate mother Yasoda, having lost her son and then regained Him, placed Him on
her lap. That chaste lady cried constant torrents of tears as she repeatedly embraced Him.
20. O best of kings [Pariksit], because the residents of Vrndavana were feeling very weak from hunger,
thirst and fatigue, they and the cows spent the night where they were, lying down near the bank of the
Kalindi.
21. During the night, while all the people of Vrndavana were asleep, a great fire blazed up within the dry
summer forest. The fire surrounded the inhabitants of Vraja on all sides and began to scorch them.
22. Then the residents of Vrndavana woke up, extremely disturbed by the great fire threatening to burn
them. Thus they took shelter of Krsna, the Supreme Lord, who by His spiritual potency appeared like an
ordinary human being.
23. [Vrndavana’s residents said:] Krsna, Krsna, O Lord of all opulence! O Rama, possessor of unlimited
power! This most terrible fire is about to devour us, Your devotees!
24. O Lord, we are Your true friends and devotees. Please protect us from this insurmountable fire of
death. We can never give up Your lotus feet, which drive away all fear.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 495
25. Seeing His devotees so disturbed, Sri Krsna, the infinite Lord of the universe and possessor of
infinite power, then swallowed the terrible forest fire.
Chapter Eighteen Lord Balarama Slays the Demon Pralamba
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Surrounded by His blissful companions, who constantly chanted His
glories, Sri Krsna then entered the village of Vraja, which was decorated with herds of cows.
2. While Krsna and Balarama were thus enjoying life in Vrndavana in the guise of ordinary cowherd
boys, the summer season gradually appeared. This season is not very pleasing to embodied souls.
3. Nevertheless, because the Supreme Personality of Godhead was personally staying in Vrndavana
along with Balarama, summer manifested the qualities of spring. Such are the features of the land of
Vrndavana.
4. In Vrndavana, the loud sound of waterfalls covered the crickets’ noise, and clusters of trees
constantly moistened by spray from those waterfalls beautified the entire area.
5. The wind wafting over the waves of the lakes and flowing rivers carried away the pollen of many
varieties of lotuses and water lilies and then cooled the entire Vrndavana area. Thus the residents there
did not suffer from the heat generated by the blazing summer sun and seasonal forest fires. Indeed,
Vrndavana was abundant with fresh green grass.
6. With their flowing waves the deep rivers drenched their banks, making them damp and muddy. Thus
the rays of the sun, which were as fierce as poison, could not evaporate the earth’s sap or parch its
green grass.
7. Flowers beautifully decorated the forest of Vrndavana, and many varieties of animals and birds filled
it with sound. The peacocks and bees sang, and the cuckoos and cranes cooed.
8. Intending to engage in pastimes, Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, accompanied by
Lord Balarama and surrounded by the cowherd boys and the cows, entered the forest of Vrndavana as
He played His flute.
9. Decorating themselves with newly grown leaves, along with peacock feathers, garlands, clusters of
flower buds, and colored minerals, Balarama, Krsna and Their cowherd friends danced, wrestled and
sang.
10. As Krsna danced, some of the boys accompanied Him by singing, and others by playing flutes,
hand cymbals and buffalo horns, while still others praised His dancing.
11. O King, demigods disguised themselves as members of the cowherd community and, just as
dramatic dancers praise another dancer, worshiped Krsna and Balarama, who were also appearing as
cowherd boys.
12. Krsna and Balarama played with their cowherd boyfriends by whirling about, leaping, hurling,
slapping and fighting. Sometimes Krsna and Balarama would pull the hair on the boys’ heads.
13. While the other boys were dancing, O King, Krsna and Balarama would sometimes accompany
them with song and instrumental music, and sometimes the two Lords would praise the boys, saying,
“Very good! Very good!”
14. Sometimes the cowherd boys would play with bilva or kumbha fruits, and sometimes with handfuls
of amalaka fruits. At other times they would play the games of trying to touch one another or of trying to
identify somebody while one is blindfolded, and sometimes they would imitate animals and birds.
15. They would sometimes jump around like frogs, sometimes play various jokes, sometimes ride in
swings and sometimes imitate monarchs.
16. In this way Krsna and Balarama played all sorts of well-known games as They wandered among the
rivers, hills, valleys, bushes, trees and lakes of Vrndavana.
17. While Rama, Krsna and Their cowherd friends were thus tending the cows in that Vrndavana forest,
the demon Pralamba entered their midst. He had assumed the form of a cowherd boy with the intention
of kidnapping Krsna and Balarama.
18. Since the Supreme Lord Krsna, who had appeared in the Dasarha dynasty, sees everything, He
understood who the demon was. Still, the Lord pretended to accept the demon as a friend, while at the
same time seriously considering how to kill him.
19. Krsna, who knows all sports and games, then called together the cowherd boys and spoke as
follows: “Hey cowherd boys! Let’s play now! We’ll divide ourselves into two even teams.”
20. The cowherd boys chose Krsna and Balarama as the leaders of the two parties. Some of the boys
were on Krsna’s side, and others joined Balarama.
21. The boys played various games involving carriers and passengers. In these games the winners
would climb up on the backs of the losers, who would have to carry them.
22. Thus carrying and being carried by one another, and at the same time tending the cows, the boys
followed Krsna to a banyan tree known as Bhandiraka.
23. My dear King Pariksit, when Sridama, Vrsabha and the other members of Lord Balarama’s party
were victorious in these games, Krsna and His followers had to carry them.
496 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. Defeated, the Supreme Lord Krsna carried Sridama. Bhadrasena carried Vrsabha, and Pralamba
carried Balarama, the son of Rohini.
25. Considering Lord Krsna invincible, that foremost demon [Pralamba] quickly carried Balarama far
beyond the spot where he was supposed to put his passenger down.
26. As the great demon carried Balarama, the Lord became as heavy as massive Mount Sumeru, and
Pralamba had to slow down. He then resumed his actual form—an effulgent body that was covered with
golden ornaments and that resembled a cloud flashing with lightning and carrying the moon.
27. When Lord Balarama, who carries the plow weapon, saw the gigantic body of the demon as he
moved swiftly in the sky—with his blazing eyes, fiery hair, terrible teeth reaching toward his scowling
brows, and an amazing effulgence generated by his armlets, crown and earrings—the Lord seemed to
become a little frightened.
28. Remembering the actual situation, the fearless Balarama understood that the demon was trying to
kidnap Him and take Him away from His companions. The Lord then became furious and struck the
demon’s head with His hard fist, just as Indra, the king of the demigods, strikes a mountain with his
thunderbolt weapon.
29. Thus smashed by Balarama’s fist, Pralamba’s head immediately cracked open. The demon vomited
blood from his mouth and lost all consciousness, and then with a great noise he fell lifeless on the
ground, like a mountain devastated by Indra.
30. The cowherd boys were most astonished to see how the powerful Balarama had killed the demon
Pralamba, and they exclaimed, “Excellent! Excellent!”
31. They offered Balarama profuse benedictions and then glorified Him, who deserves all glorification.
Their minds overwhelmed with ecstatic love, they embraced Him as if He had come back from the
dead.
32. The sinful Pralamba having been killed, the demigods felt extremely happy, and they showered
flower garlands upon Lord Balarama and praised the excellence of His deed.
Chapter Nineteen Swallowing the Forest Fire
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: While the cowherd boys were completely absorbed in playing, their cows
wandered far away. They hungered for more grass, and with no one to watch them they entered a
dense forest.
2. Passing from one part of the great forest to another, the goats, cows and buffalo eventually entered
an area overgrown with sharp canes. The heat of a nearby forest fire made them thirsty, and they cried
out in distress.
3. Not seeing the cows before them, Krsna, Rama and Their cowherd friends suddenly felt repentant for
having neglected them. The boys searched all around, but could not discover where they had gone.
4. Then the boys began tracing out the cows’ path by noting their hoofprints and the blades of grass the
cows had broken with their hooves and teeth. All the cowherd boys were in great anxiety because they
had lost their source of livelihood.
5. Within the Munja forest the cowherd boys finally found their valuable cows, who had lost their way
and were crying. Then the boys, thirsty and tired, herded the cows onto the path back home.
6. The Supreme Personality of Godhead called out to the animals in a voice that resounded like a
rumbling cloud. Hearing the sound of their own names, the cows were overjoyed and called out to the
Lord in reply.
7. Suddenly a great forest fire appeared on all sides, threatening to destroy all the forest creatures. Like
a chariot driver, the wind swept the fire onward, and terrible sparks shot in all directions. Indeed, the
great fire extended its tongues of flame toward all moving and nonmoving creatures.
8. As the cows and cowherd boys stared at the forest fire attacking them on all sides, they became
fearful. The boys then approached Krsna and Balarama for shelter, just as those who are disturbed by
fear of death approach the Supreme Personality of Godhead. The boys addressed Them as follows.
9. [The cowherd boys said:] O Krsna! Krsna! Most powerful one! O Rama! You whose prowess never
fails! Please save Your devotees, who are about to be burned by this forest fire and have come to take
shelter of You!
10. Krsna! Certainly Your own friends shouldn’t be destroyed. O knower of the nature of all things, we
have accepted You as our Lord, and we are souls surrendered unto You!
11. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hearing these pitiful words from His friends, the Supreme Lord Krsna told
them, “Just close your eyes and do not be afraid.”
12. “All right,” the boys replied, and immediately closed their eyes. Then the Supreme Lord, the master
of all mystic power, opened His mouth and swallowed the terrible fire, saving His friends from danger.
13. The cowherd boys opened their eyes and were amazed to find not only that they and the cows had
been saved from the terrible fire but that they had all been brought back to the Bhandira tree.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 497
14. When the cowherd boys saw that they had been saved from the forest fire by the Lord’s mystic
power, which is manifested by His internal potency, they began to think that Krsna must be a demigod.
15. It was now late in the afternoon, and Lord Krsna, accompanied by Balarama, turned the cows back
toward home. Playing His flute in a special way, Krsna returned to the cowherd village in the company
of His cowherd friends, who chanted His glories.
16. The young gopis took the greatest pleasure in seeing Govinda come home, since for them even a
moment without His association seemed like a hundred ages.
Chapter Twenty The Rainy Season and Autumn in Vrndavana
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: To the ladies of Vrndavana, the cowherd boys then related in full detail
Krsna’s and Balarama’s wonderful activities of delivering them from the forest fire and killing the demon
Pralamba.
2. The elder cowherd men and ladies were amazed to hear this account, and they concluded that Krsna
and Balarama must be exalted demigods who had appeared in Vrndavana.
3. Then the rainy season began, giving life and sustenance to all living beings. The sky began to rumble
with thunder, and lightning flashed on the horizon.
4. The sky was then covered by dense blue clouds accompanied by lightning and thunder. Thus the sky
and its natural illumination were covered in the same way that the spirit soul is covered by the three
modes of material nature.
5. With its rays, the sun had for eight months drunk up the earth’s wealth in the form of water. Now that
the proper time had arrived, the sun began releasing this accumulated wealth.
6. Flashing with lightning, great clouds were shaken and swept about by fierce winds. Just like merciful
persons, the clouds gave their lives for the pleasure of this world.
7. The earth had been emaciated by the summer heat, but she became fully nourished again when
moistened by the god of rain. Thus the earth was like a person whose body has been emaciated by
austerities undergone for a material purpose, but who again becomes fully nourished when he achieves
the fruit of those austerities.
8. In the evening twilight during the rainy season, the darkness allowed the glowworms but not the stars
to shine forth, just as in the age of Kali the predominance of sinful activities allows atheistic doctrines to
overshadow the true knowledge of the Vedas.
9. The frogs, who had all along been lying silent, suddenly began croaking when they heard the
rumbling of the rain clouds, in the same way that brahmana students, who perform their morning duties
in silence begin reciting their lessons when called by their teacher.
10. With the advent of the rainy season, the insignificant streams, which had become dry, began to
swell and then strayed from their proper courses, like the body, property and money of a man controlled
by the urges of his senses.
11. The newly grown grass made the earth emerald green, the indragopa insects added a reddish hue,
and white mushrooms added further color and circles of shade. Thus the earth appeared like a person
who has suddenly become rich.
12. With their wealth of grains, the fields gave joy to the farmers. But those fields created remorse in the
hearts of those who were too proud to engage in farming and who failed to understand how everything
is under the control of the Supreme.
13. As all creatures of the land and water took advantage of the newly fallen rainwater, their forms
became attractive and pleasing, just as a devotee becomes beautiful by engaging in the service of the
Supreme Lord.
14. Where the rivers joined the ocean it became agitated, its waves blown about by the wind, just as the
mind of an immature yogi becomes agitated because he is still tainted by lust and attached to the
objects of sense gratification.
15. Just as devotees whose minds are absorbed in the Personality of Godhead remain peaceful even
when attacked by all sorts of dangers, the mountains in the rainy season were not at all disturbed by the
repeated striking of the rain-bearing clouds.
16. During the rainy season the roads, not being cleansed, became covered with grass and debris and
were thus difficult to make out. These roads were like religious scriptures that brahmanas no longer
study and that thus become corrupted and covered over with the passage of time.
17. Though the clouds are the well-wishing friends of all living beings, the lightning, fickle in its affinities,
moved from one group of clouds to another, like lusty women unfaithful even to virtuous men.
18. When the curved bow of Indra [the rainbow] appeared in the sky, which had the quality of
thundering sound, it was unlike ordinary bows because it did not rest upon a string. Similarly, when the
Supreme Lord appears in this world, which is the interaction of the material qualities, He is unlike
ordinary persons because He remains free from all material qualities and independent of all material
conditions.
498 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
19. During the rainy season the moon was prevented from appearing directly by the covering of the
clouds, which were themselves illumined by the moon’s rays. Similarly, the living being in material
existence is prevented from appearing directly by the covering of the false ego, which is itself illumined
by the consciousness of the pure soul.
20. The peacocks became festive and cried out a joyful greeting when they saw the clouds arrive, just
as people distressed in household life feel pleasure when the pure devotees of the infallible Supreme
Lord visit them.
21. The trees had grown thin and dry, but after they drank the newly fallen rainwater through their feet,
their various bodily features blossomed. Similarly, one whose body has grown thin and weak from
austerity again exhibits his healthy bodily features upon enjoying the material objects gained through
that austerity.
22. The cranes continued dwelling on the shores of the lakes, although the shores were agitated during
the rainy season, just as materialistic persons with contaminated minds always remain at home, despite
the many disturbances there.
23. When Indra sent forth his rains, the floodwaters broke through the irrigation dikes in the agricultural
fields, just as in the Kali-yuga the atheists’ false theories break down the boundaries of Vedic
injunctions.
24. The clouds, impelled by the winds, released their nectarean water for the benefit of all living beings,
just as kings, instructed by their brahmana priests, dispense charity to the citizens.
25. When the Vrndavana forest had thus become resplendent, filled with ripe dates and jambu fruits,
Lord Krsna, surrounded by His cows and cowherd boyfriends and accompanied by Sri Balarama,
entered that forest to enjoy.
26. The cows had to move slowly because of their weighty milk bags, but they quickly ran to the
Supreme Personality of Godhead as soon as He called them, their affection for Him causing their
udders to become wet.
27. The Lord saw the joyful aborigine girls of the forest, the trees dripping sweet sap, and the mountain
waterfalls, whose resounding indicated that there were caves nearby.
28. When it rained, the Lord would sometimes enter a cave or the hollow of a tree to play and to eat
roots and fruits.
29. Lord Krsna would take His meal of boiled rice and yogurt, sent from home, in the company of Lord
Sankarsana and the cowherd boys who regularly ate with Him. They would all sit down to eat on a large
stone near the water.
30-31. Lord Krsna watched the contented bulls, calves and cows sitting on the green grass and grazing
with closed eyes, and He saw that the cows were tired from the burden of their heavy milk bags. Thus
observing the beauty and opulence of Vrndavana’s rainy season, a perennial source of great
happiness, the Lord offered all respect to that season, which was expanded from His own internal
potency.
32. While Lord Rama and Lord Kesava were thus dwelling in Vrndavana, the fall season arrived, when
the sky is cloudless, the water clear and the wind gentle.
33. The autumn season, which regenerated the lotus flowers, also restored the various bodies of water
to their original purity, just as the process of devotional service purifies the minds of the fallen yogis
when they return to it.
34. Autumn cleared the sky of clouds, let the animals get out of their crowded living conditions, cleaned
the earth of its covering of mud, and purified the water of contamination, in the same way that loving
service rendered to Lord Krsna frees the members of the four spiritual orders from their respective
troubles.
35. The clouds, having given up all they possessed, shone forth with purified effulgence, just like
peaceful sages who have given up all material desires and are thus free of all sinful propensities.
36. During this season the mountains sometimes released their pure water and sometimes did not, just
as experts in transcendental science sometimes give the nectar of transcendental knowledge and
sometimes do not.
37. The fish swimming in the increasingly shallow water did not at all understand that the water was
diminishing, just as foolish family men cannot see how the time they have left to live is diminishing with
every passing day.
38. Just as a miserly, poverty-stricken person overly absorbed in family life suffers because he cannot
control his senses, the fish swimming in the shallow water had to suffer the heat of the autumn sun.
39. Gradually the different areas of land gave up their muddy condition and the plants grew past their
unripe stage, in the same way that sober sages give up egotism and possessiveness. These are based
on things different from the real self—namely, the material body and its by-products.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 499
40. With the arrival of autumn, the ocean and the lakes became silent, their water still, just like a sage
who has desisted from all material activities and given up his recitation of Vedic mantras.
41. In the same way that the practitioners of yoga bring their senses under strict control to check their
consciousness from flowing out through the agitated senses, the farmers erected strong mud banks to
keep the water within their rice fields from draining out.
42. The autumn moon relieved all creatures of the suffering caused by the sun’s rays, just as wisdom
relieves a person of the misery caused by his identifying with his material body and as Lord Mukunda
relieves Vrndavana’s ladies of the distress caused by their separation from Him.
43. Free of clouds and filled with clearly visible stars, the autumn sky shone brilliantly, just like the
spiritual consciousness of one who has directly experienced the purport of the Vedic scriptures.
44. The full moon shone in the sky, surrounded by stars, just as Sri Krsna, the Lord of the Yadu
dynasty, shone brilliantly on the earth, surrounded by all the Vrsnis.
45. Except for the gopis, whose hearts had been stolen by Krsna, the people could forget their suffering
by embracing the wind coming from the flower-filled forest. This wind was neither hot nor cold.
46. By the influence of the autumn season, all the cows, doe, women and female birds became fertile
and were followed by their respective mates in search of sexual enjoyment, just as activities performed
for the service of the Supreme Lord are automatically followed by all beneficial results.
47. O King Pariksit, when the autumn sun rose, all the lotus flowers blossomed happily, except the
night-blooming kumut, just as in the presence of a strong ruler everyone becomes fearless, except the
thieves.
48. In all the towns and villages people held great festivals, performing the Vedic fire sacrifice for
honoring and tasting the first grains of the new harvest, along with similar celebrations that followed
local custom and tradition. Thus the earth, rich with newly grown grain and especially beautified by the
presence of Krsna and Balarama, shone beautifully as an expansion of the Supreme Lord.
49. The merchants, sages, kings and brahmacari students, kept in by the rain, were at last free to go
out and attain their desired objects, just as those who achieve perfection in this life can, when the
proper time comes, leave the material body and attain their respective forms.
Chapter Twenty-One The Gopis Glorify the Song of Krsna’s Flute
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus the Vrndavana forest was filled with transparent autumnal waters and
cooled by breezes perfumed with the fragrance of lotus flowers growing in the clear lakes. The infallible
Lord, accompanied by His cows and cowherd boyfriends, entered that Vrndavana forest.
2. The lakes, rivers and hills of Vrndavana resounded with the sounds of maddened bees and flocks of
birds moving about the flowering trees. In the company of the cowherd boys and Balarama, Madhupati
[Sri Krsna] entered that forest, and while herding the cows He began to vibrate His flute.
3. When the young ladies in the cowherd village of Vraja heard the song of Krsna’s flute, which arouses
the influence of Cupid, some of them privately began describing Krsna’s qualities to their intimate
friends.
4. The cowherd girls began to speak about Krsna, but when they remembered His activities, O King, the
power of Cupid disturbed their minds, and thus they could not speak.
5. Wearing a peacock-feather ornament upon His head, blue karnikara flowers on His ears, a yellow
garment as brilliant as gold, and the Vaijayanti garland, Lord Krsna exhibited His transcendental form as
the greatest of dancers as He entered the forest of Vrndavana, beautifying it with the marks of His
footprints. He filled the holes of His flute with the nectar of His lips, and the cowherd boys sang His
glories.
6. O King, when the young ladies in Vraja heard the sound of Krsna’s flute, which captivates the minds
of all living beings, they all embraced one another and began describing it.
7. The cowherd girls said: O friends, those eyes that see the beautiful faces of the sons of Maharaja
Nanda are certainly fortunate. As these two sons enter the forest, surrounded by Their friends, driving
the cows before Them, They hold Their flutes to Their mouths and glance lovingly upon the residents of
Vrndavana. For those who have eyes, we think there is no greater object of vision.
8. Dressed in a charming variety of garments, upon which Their garlands rest, and decorating
Themselves with peacock feathers, lotuses, lilies, newly grown mango sprouts and clusters of flower
buds, Krsna and Balarama shine forth magnificently among the assembly of cowherd boys. They look
just like the best of dancers appearing on a dramatic stage, and sometimes They sing.
9. My dear gopis, what auspicious activities must the flute have performed to enjoy the nectar of Krsna’s
lips independently and leave only a taste for us gopis, for whom that nectar is actually meant! The
forefathers of the flute, the bamboo trees, shed tears of pleasure. His mother, the river on whose bank
the bamboo was born, feels jubilation, and therefore her blooming lotus flowers are standing like hair on
her body.
500 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
10. O friend, Vrndavana is spreading the glory of the earth, having obtained the treasure of the lotus
feet of Krsna, the son of Devaki. The peacocks dance madly when they hear Govinda’s flute, and when
other creatures see them from the hilltops, they all become stunned.
11. Blessed are all these foolish deer because they have approached Maharaja Nanda’s son, who is
gorgeously dressed and is playing on His flute. Indeed, both the doe and the bucks worship the Lord
with looks of love and affection.
12. Krsna’s beauty and character create a festival for all women. Indeed, when the demigods’ wives
flying in airplanes with their husbands catch sight of Him and hear His resonant flute-song, their hearts
are shaken by Cupid, and they become so bewildered that the flowers fall out of their hair and their belts
loosen.
13. Using their upraised ears as vessels, the cows are drinking the nectar of the flute-song flowing out
of Krsna’s mouth. The calves, their mouths full of milk from their mothers’ moist nipples, stand still as
they take Govinda within themselves through their tear-filled eyes and embrace Him within their hearts.
14. O mother, in this forest all the birds have risen onto the beautiful branches of the trees to see Krsna.
With closed eyes they are simply listening in silence to the sweet vibrations of His flute, and they are not
attracted by any other sound. Surely these birds are on the same level as great sages.
15. When the rivers hear the flute-song of Krsna, their minds begin to desire Him, and thus the flow of
their currents is broken and their waters are agitated, moving around in whirlpools. Then with the arms
of their waves the rivers embrace Murari’s lotus feet and, holding on to them, present offerings of lotus
flowers.
16. In the company of Balarama and the cowherd boys, Lord Krsna is continually vibrating His flute as
He herds all the animals of Vraja, even under the full heat of the summer sun. Seeing this, the cloud in
the sky has expanded himself out of love. He is rising high and constructing out of his own body, with its
multitude of flower-like droplets of water, an umbrella for the sake of his friend.
17. The aborigine women of the Vrndavana area become disturbed by lust when they see the grass
marked with reddish kunkuma powder. Endowed with the color of Krsna’s lotus feet, this powder
originally decorated the breasts of His beloveds, and when the aborigine women smear it on their faces
and breasts, they give up all their anxiety.
18. Of all the devotees, this Govardhana Hill is the best! O my friends, this hill supplies Krsna and
Balarama, along with Their calves, cows and cowherd friends, with all kinds of necessities—water for
drinking, very soft grass, caves, fruits, flowers and vegetables. In this way the hill offers respects to the
Lord. Being touched by the lotus feet of Krsna and Balarama, Govardhana Hill appears very jubilant.
19. My dear friends, as Krsna and Balarama pass through the forest with Their cowherd friends, leading
Their cows, They carry ropes to bind the cows’ rear legs at the time of milking. When Lord Krsna plays
on His flute, the sweet music causes the moving living entities to become stunned and the nonmoving
trees to tremble with ecstasy. These things are certainly very wonderful.
20. Thus narrating to one another the playful pastimes of the Supreme Personality of Godhead as He
wandered about in the Vrndavana forest, the gopis became fully absorbed in thoughts of Him.
Chapter Twenty-Two Krsna Steals the Garments of the Unmarried Gopis
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: During the first month of the winter season, the young unmarried girls of
Gokula observed the vow of worshiping goddess Katyayani. For the entire month they ate only
unspiced khichri.
2-3. My dear King, after they had bathed in the water of the Yamuna just as the sun was rising, the
gopis made an earthen deity of goddess Durga on the riverbank. Then they worshiped her with such
aromatic substances as sandalwood pulp, along with other items both opulent and simple, including
lamps, fruits, betel nuts, newly grown leaves, and fragrant garlands and incense.
4. Each of the young unmarried girls performed her worship while chanting the following mantra. “O
goddess Katyayani, O great potency of the Lord, O possessor of great mystic power and mighty
controller of all, please make the son of Nanda Maharaja my husband. I offer my obeisances unto you.”
5. Thus for an entire month the girls carried out their vow and properly worshiped the goddess
Bhadrakali, fully absorbing their minds in Krsna and meditating upon the following thought: ”May the son
of King Nanda become my husband.”
6. Each day they rose at dawn. Calling out to one another by name, they all held hands and loudly sang
the glories of Krsna while going to the Kalindi to take their bath.
7. One day they came to the riverbank and, putting aside their clothing as they had done before, happily
played in the water while singing the glories of Krsna.
8. Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead and master of all masters of mystic yoga, was
aware of what the gopis were doing, and thus He went there surrounded by His young companions to
award the gopis the perfection of their endeavor.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 501
9. Taking the girls’ garments, He quickly climbed to the top of a kadamba tree. Then, as He laughed
loudly and His companions also laughed, He addressed the girls jokingly.
10. [Lord Krsna said:] My dear girls, you may each come here as you wish and take back your
garments. I’m telling you the truth and am not joking with you, since I see you’re fatigued from executing
austere vows.
11. I have never before spoken a lie, and these boys know it. Therefore, O slender-waisted girls, please
come forward, either one by one or all together, and pick out your clothes.
12. Seeing how Krsna was joking with them, the gopis became fully immersed in love for Him, and as
they glanced at each other they began to laugh and joke among themselves, even in their
embarrassment. But still they did not come out of the water.
13. As Sri Govinda spoke to the gopis in this way, His joking words completely captivated their minds.
Submerged up to their necks in the cold water, they began to shiver. Thus they addressed Him as
follows.
14. [The gopis said:] Dear Krsna, don’t be unfair! We know that You are the respectable son of Nanda
and that You are honored by everyone in Vraja. You are also very dear to us. Please give us back our
clothes. We are shivering in the cold water.
15. O Syamasundara, we are Your maidservants and must do whatever You say. But give us back our
clothing. You know what the religious principles are, and if You don’t give us our clothes we will have to
tell the king. Please!
16. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: If you girls are actually My maidservants, and if you will
really do what I say, then come here with your innocent smiles and let each girl pick out her clothes. If
you don’t do what I say, I won’t give them back to you. And even if the king becomes angry, what can
he do?
17. Then, shivering from the painful cold, all the young girls rose up out of the water, covering their
pubic area with their hands.
18. When the Supreme Lord saw how the gopis were struck with embarrassment, He was satisfied by
their pure loving affection. Putting their clothes on His shoulder, the Lord smiled and spoke to them with
affection.
19. [Lord Krsna said:] You girls bathed naked while executing your vow, and that is certainly an offense
against the demigods. To counteract your sin you should offer obeisances while placing your joined
palms above your heads. Then you should take back your lower garments.
20. Thus the young girls of Vrndavana, considering what Lord Acyuta had told them, accepted that they
had suffered a falldown from their vow by bathing naked in the river. But they still desired to
successfully complete their vow, and since Lord Krsna is Himself the ultimate result of all pious
activities, they offered their obeisances to Him to cleanse away all their sins.
21. Seeing them bow down like that, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the son of Devaki, gave
them back their garments, feeling compassionate toward them and satisfied by their act.
22. Although the gopés had been thoroughly cheated, deprived of their modesty, ridiculed and made to
act just like toy dolls, and although their clothing had been stolen, they did not feel at all inimical toward
Sri Krsna. Rather, they were simply joyful to have this opportunity to associate with their beloved.
23. The gopis were addicted to associating with their beloved Krsna, and thus they became captivated
by Him. Thus, even after putting their clothes on they did not move. They simply remained where they
were, shyly glancing at Him.
24. The Supreme Lord understood the determination of the gopis in executing their strict vow. The Lord
also knew that the girls desired to touch His lotus feet, and thus Lord Damodara, Krsna, spoke to them
as follows.
25. [Lord Krsna said:] O saintly girls, I understand that your real motive in this austerity has been to
worship Me. That intent of yours is approved of by Me, and indeed it must come to pass.
26. The desire of those who fix their minds on Me does not lead to material desire for sense
gratification, just as barleycorns burned by the sun and then cooked can no longer grow into new
sprouts.
27. Go now, girls, and return to Vraja. Your desire is fulfilled, for in My company you will enjoy the
coming nights. After all, this was the purpose of your vow to worship goddess Katyayani, O pure-
hearted ones.
28. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus instructed by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the young girls,
their desire now fulfilled, could bring themselves only with great difficulty to return to the village of Vraja,
meditating all the while upon His lotus feet.
29. Some time later Lord Krsna, the son of Devaki, surrounded by His cowherd friends and
accompanied by His elder brother, Balarama, went a good distance away from Vrndavana, herding the
cows.
502 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
30. Then the sun’s heat became intense, Lord Krsna saw that the trees were acting as umbrellas by
shading Him, and thus He spoke as follows to His boyfriends.
31-32. [Lord Krsna said:] O Stoka Krsna and Amsu, O Sridama, Subala and Arjuna, O Vrsabha, Ojasvi,
Devaprastha and Varuthapa, just see these greatly fortunate trees, whose lives are completely
dedicated to the benefit of others. Even while tolerating the wind, rain, heat and snow, they protect us
from these elements.
33. Just see how these trees are maintaining every living entity! Their birth is successful. Their behavior
is just like that of great personalities, for anyone who asks anything from a tree never goes away
disappointed.
34. These trees fulfill one’s desires with their leaves, flowers and fruits, their shade, roots, bark and
wood, and also with their fragrance, sap, ashes, pulp and shoots.
35. It is the duty of every living being to perform welfare activities for the benefit of others with his life,
wealth, intelligence and words.
36. Thus moving among the trees, whose branches were bent low by their abundance of twigs, fruits,
flowers and leaves, Lord Krsna came to the Yamuna River.
37. The cowherd boys let the cows drink the clear, cool and wholesome water of the Yamuna. O King
Pariksit, the cowherd boys themselves also drank that sweet water to their full satisfaction.
38. Then, O King, the cowherd boys began herding the animals in a leisurely way within a small forest
along the Yamuna. But soon they became afflicted by hunger and, approaching Krsna and Balarama,
spoke as follows.
Chapter Twenty-Three The Brahmanas’ Wives Blessed
1. The cowherd boys said: O Rama, Rama, mighty-armed one! O Krsna, chastiser of the wicked! We
are being harassed by hunger, and You should do something about it.
2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus entreated by the cowherd boys, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, the son of Devaki, replied as follows, desiring to please certain of His devotees who were
brahmanas’ wives.
3. [Lord Krsna said:] Please go to the sacrificial arena where a group of brahmanas, learned in the
Vedic injunctions, are now performing the Angirasa sacrifice to gain promotion to heaven.
4. When you go there, My dear cowherd boys, simply request some food. Declare to them the name of
My elder brother, the Supreme Lord Balarama, and also My name, and explain that you have been sent
by Us.
5. Thus instructed by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the cowherd boys went there and submitted
their request. They stood before the brahmanas with palms joined in supplication and then fell flat on
the ground to offer respect.
6. [The cowherd boys said:] O earthly gods, please hear us. We cowherd boys are executing the
orders of Krsna, and we have been sent here by Balarama. We wish all good for you. Please
acknowledge our arrival.
7. Lord Rama and Lord Acyuta are tending Their cows not far from here. They are hungry and want you
to give Them some of your food. Therefore, O brahmanas, O best of the knowers of religion, if you have
faith please give some food to Them.
8. Except during the interval between the initiation of the performer of a sacrifice and the actual sacrifice
of the animal, O most pure brahmanas, it is not contaminating for even the initiated to partake of food,
at least in sacrifices other than the Sautramani.
9. The brahmanas heard this supplication from the Supreme Personality of Godhead, yet they refused
to pay heed. Indeed, they were full of petty desires and entangled in elaborate rituals. Though
presuming themselves advanced in Vedic learning, they were actually inexperienced fools.
10-11. Although the ingredients of sacrificial performance—the place, time, particular paraphernalia,
mantras, rituals, priests, fires, demigods, performer, offering and the as yet unseen beneficial results—
are all simply aspects of His opulences, the brahmanas saw Lord Krsna as an ordinary human because
of their perverted intelligence. They failed to recognize that He is the Supreme Absolute Truth, the
directly manifest Personality of Godhead, whom the material senses cannot ordinarily perceive. Thus
bewildered by their false identification with the mortal body, they did not show Him proper respect.
12. When the brahmanas failed to reply even with a simple yes or no, O chastiser of the enemy
[Pariksit], the cowherd boys returned disappointed to Krsna and Rama and reported this to Them.
13. Hearing what had happened, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Lord of the universe, simply
laughed. Then He again addressed the cowherd boys, showing them the way men act in this world.
14. [Lord Krsna said:] Tell the wives of the brahmanas that I have come here with Lord Sankarsana.
They will certainly give you all the food you want, for they are most affectionate toward Me and, indeed,
with their intelligence reside in Me alone.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 503
15. The cowherd boys then went to the house where the brahmanas’ wives were staying. There the
boys saw those chaste ladies sitting, nicely decorated with fine ornaments. Bowing down to the
brahmana ladies, the boys addressed them in all humility.
16. [The cowherd boys said:] Obeisances unto you, O wives of the learned brahmanas. Kindly hear our
words. We have been sent here by Lord Krsna, who is passing by not far from here.
17. He has come a long way with the cowherd boys and Lord Balarama, tending the cows. Now He is
hungry, so some food should be given for Him and His companions.
18. The wives of the brahmanas were always eager to see Krsna, for their minds had been enchanted
by descriptions of Him. Thus as soon as they heard that He had come, they became very excited.
19. Taking along in large vessels the four kinds of foods, full of fine tastes and aromas, all the ladies
went forth to meet their beloved, just as rivers flow toward the sea.
20-21. Although their husbands, brothers, sons and other relatives tried to forbid them from going, their
hope of seeing Krsna, cultivated by extensive hearing of His transcendental qualities, won out. Along
the river Yamuna, within a garden decorated with buds of asoka trees, they caught sight of Him strolling
along in the company of the cowherd boys and His elder brother, Balarama.
22. His complexion was dark blue and His garment golden. Wearing a peacock feather, colored
minerals, sprigs of flower buds, and a garland of forest flowers and leaves, He was dressed just like a
dramatic dancer. He rested one hand upon the shoulder of a friend and with the other twirled a lotus.
Lilies graced His ears, His hair hung down over His cheeks, and His lotuslike face was smiling.
23. O ruler of men, for a long time those brahmana ladies had heard about Krsna, their beloved, and
His glories had become the constant ornaments of their ears. Indeed, their minds were always
absorbed in Him. Through the apertures of their eyes they now forced Him to enter within their hearts,
and then they embraced Him within for a long time. In this way they finally gave up the pain of
separation from Him, just as sages give up the anxiety of false ego by embracing their innermost
consciousness.
24. Lord Krsna, who witnesses the thoughts of all creatures, understood how those ladies had
abandoned all worldly hopes and come there simply to see Him. Thus He addressed them as follows
with a smile upon His face.
25. [Lord Krsna said:] Welcome, O most fortunate ladies. Please sit down and make yourselves
comfortable. What can I do for you? That you have come here to see Me is most appropriate.
26. Certainly expert personalities, who can see their own true interest, render unmotivated and
uninterrupted devotional service directly unto Me, for I am most dear to the soul.
27. It is only by contact with the self that one’s vital breath, intelligence, mind, friends, body, wife,
children, wealth and so on are dear. Therefore what object can possibly be more dear than one’s own
self?
28. You should thus return to the sacrificial arena, because your husbands, the learned brahmanas, are
householders and need your assistance to finish their respective sacrifices.
29. The wives of the brahmanas replied: O almighty one, please do not speak such cruel words. Rather,
You should fulfill Your promise that You always reciprocate with Your devotees in kind. Now that we
have attained Your lotus feet, we simply wish to remain here in the forest so we may carry upon our
heads the garlands of tulasi leaves You may neglectfully kick away with Your lotus feet. We are ready to
give up all material relationships.
30. Our husbands, fathers, sons, brothers, other relatives and friends will no longer take us back, and
how could anyone else be willing to give us shelter? Therefore, since we have thrown ourselves at Your
lotus feet and have no other destination, please, O chastiser of enemies, grant our desire.
31. The Supreme Personality of Godhead replied: Rest assured that your husbands will not be inimical
toward you, nor will your fathers, brothers, sons, other relatives or the general populace. I will personally
advise them of the situation. Indeed, even the demigods will express their approval.
32. For you to remain in My bodily association would certainly not please people in this world, nor would
it be the best way for you to increase your love for Me. Rather, you should fix your minds on Me, and
very soon you will achieve Me.
33. It is by hearing about Me, seeing My Deity form, meditating upon Me and chanting My names and
glories that love for Me develops, not by physical proximity. Therefore please go back to your homes.
34. Srila Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus instructed, the wives of the brahmanas returned to the place of
sacrifice. The brahmanas did not find any fault with their wives, and together with them they finished the
sacrifice.
35. One of the ladies had been forcibly kept back by her husband. When she heard the others describe
the Supreme Lord Krsna, she embraced Him within her heart and gave up her material body, the basis
of bondage to material activity.
504 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
36. Govinda, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, fed the cowherd boys with that food of four
varieties. Then the all-powerful Lord Himself partook of the preparations.
37. Thus the Supreme Lord, appearing like a human being to perform His pastimes, imitated the ways
of human society. He enjoyed pleasing His cows, cowherd boyfriends and cowherd girlfriends with His
beauty, words and actions.
38. The brahmanas then came to their senses and began to feel great remorse. They thought, “We
have sinned, for we have denied the request of the two Lords of the universe, who deceptively
appeared as ordinary human beings.”
39. Taking note of their wives’ pure, transcendental devotion for Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, and seeing their own lack of devotion, the brahmanas felt most sorrowful and began to
condemn themselves.
40. [The brahmanas said:] To hell with our threefold birth, our vow of celibacy and our extensive
learning! To hell with our aristocratic background and our expertise in the rituals of sacrifice! These are
all condemned because we were inimical to the transcendental Personality of Godhead.
41. The illusory potency of the Supreme Lord certainly bewilders even the great mystics, what to speak
of us. As brahmanas we are supposed to be the spiritual masters of all classes of men, yet we have
been bewildered about our own real interest.
42. Just see the unlimited love these women have developed for Lord Krsna, the spiritual master of the
entire universe! This love has broken for them the very bonds of death—their attachment to family life.
43-44. These women have never undergone the purificatory rites of the twice-born classes, nor have
they lived as brahmacaris in the asrama of a spiritual master, nor have they executed austerities,
speculated on the nature of the self, followed the formalities of cleanliness or engaged in pious rituals.
Nevertheless, they have firm devotion for Lord Krsna, whose glories are chanted by the exalted hymns
of the Vedas and who is the supreme master of all masters of mystic power. We, on the other hand,
have no such devotion for the Lord, although we have executed all these processes.
45. Indeed, infatuated as we are with our household affairs, we have deviated completely from the real
aim of our life. But now just see how the Lord, through the words of these simple cowherd boys, has
reminded us of the ultimate destination of all true transcendentalists.
46. Otherwise, why would the supreme controller—whose every desire is already fulfilled and who is the
master of liberation and all other transcendental benedictions—enact this pretense with us, who are
always to be controlled by Him?
47. Hoping for the touch of His lotus feet, the goddess of fortune perpetually worships Him alone,
leaving aside all others and renouncing her pride and fickleness. That He begs is certainly astonishing
to everyone.
48-49. All the aspects of sacrifice—the auspicious place and time, the various items of paraphernalia,
the Vedic hymns, the prescribed rituals, the priests and sacrificial fires, the demigods, the patron of the
sacrifice, the sacrificial offering and the pious results obtained—all are simply manifestations of His
opulences. Yet even though we had heard that the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, the Lord of
all mystic controllers, had taken birth in the Yadu dynasty, we were so foolish that we could not
recognize Sri Krsna to be none other than Him.
50. Let us offer our obeisances unto Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. His intelligence
is never bewildered, whereas we, confused by His power of illusion, are simply wandering about on the
paths of fruitive work.
51. We were bewildered by Lord Krsna’s illusory potency and thus could not understand His influence
as the original Personality of Godhead. Now we hope He will kindly forgive our offense.
52. Thus reflecting on the sin they had committed by neglecting Lord Krsna, they became very eager to
see Him. But being afraid of King Kamsa, they did not dare go to Vraja.
Chapter Twenty-Four Worshiping Govardhana Hill
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: While staying in that very place with His brother Baladeva, Lord Krsna
happened to see the cowherd men busily arranging for a sacrifice to Indra.
2. Being the omniscient Supersoul, the Supreme Lord Krsna already understood the situation, yet He
still humbly inquired from the elders, headed by His father, Nanda Maharaja.
3. [Lord Krsna said:] My dear father, kindly explain to Me what this great endeavor of yours is all about.
What is it meant to accomplish? If this is a ritual sacrifice, then for whose satisfaction is it intended and
by what means is it going to be executed?
4. Please tell Me about it, O father. I have a great desire to know and am ready to hear in good faith.
Certainly, no secrets are to be kept by saintly personalities, who see all others as equal to themselves,
who have no conception of “mine” or “another’s” and who do not consider who is a friend, who is an
enemy and who is neutral.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 505
5. One who is neutral may be avoided like an enemy, but a friend should be considered like one’s own
self.
6. When people in this world perform activities, sometimes they understand what they are doing and
sometimes they don’t. Those who know what they are doing achieve success in their work, whereas
ignorant people do not.
7. Such being the case, this ritualistic endeavor of yours should be clearly explained to Me. Is it a
ceremony based on scriptural injunction, or simply a custom of ordinary society?
8. Nanda Maharaja replied: The great Lord Indra is the controller of the rain. The clouds are his
personal representatives, and they directly provide rainwater, which gives happiness and sustenance to
all creatures.
9. Not only we, my dear son, but also many other men worship him, the lord and master of the rain-
giving clouds. We offer him grain and other paraphernalia of worship produced through his own
discharge in the form of rain.
10. By accepting the remnants of sacrifices performed to Indra, people sustain their lives and
accomplish the threefold aims of religiosity, economic development and sense gratification. Thus Lord
Indra is the agent responsible for the fruitive success of industrious people.
11. This religious principle is based on sound tradition. Anyone who rejects it out of lust, enmity, fear or
greed will certainly fail to achieve good fortune.
12. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When Lord Kesava [Krsna] heard the statements of His father, Nanda,
and other senior residents of Vraja, He addressed His father as follows, to arouse anger in Lord Indra.
13. Lord Krsna said: It is by the force of karma that a living entity takes birth, and it is by karma alone
that he meets his destruction. His happiness, distress, fear and sense of security all arise as the effects
of karma.
14. Even if there is some supreme controller who awards all others the results of their activities, He
must also depend upon a performer’s engaging in activity. After all, there is no question of being the
bestower of fruitive results unless fruitive activities have actually been performed.
15. Living beings in this world are forced to experience the consequences of their own particular
previous work. Since Lord Indra cannot in any way change the destiny of human beings, which is born
of their own nature, why should people worship him?
16. Every individual is under the control of his own conditioned nature, and thus he must follow that
nature. This entire universe, with all its demigods, demons and human beings, is based on the
conditioned nature of the living entities.
17. Because it is karma that causes the conditioned living entity to accept and then give up different
high-and low-grade material bodies, this karma is his enemy, friend and neutral witness, his spiritual
master and controlling lord.
18. Therefore one should seriously worship work itself. A person should remain in the position
corresponding to his nature and should perform his own duty. Indeed, that by which we may live nicely
is really our worshipable deity.
19. If one thing is actually sustaining our life but we take shelter of something else, how can we achieve
any real benefit? We would be like an unfaithful woman, who can never achieve any actual benefit by
consorting with her paramour.
20. The brahmana maintains his life by studying and teaching the Vedas, the member of the royal order
by protecting the earth, the vaisya by trade, and the sudra by serving the higher, twice-born classes.
21. The occupational duties of the vaiçya are conceived in four divisions: farming, commerce, cow
protection and moneylending. Out of these, we as a community are always engaged in cow protection.
22. The causes of creation, maintenance and destruction are the three modes of nature—namely
goodness, passion and ignorance. In particular, the mode of passion creates this universe and through
sexual combination causes it to become full of variety.
23. Impelled by the material mode of passion, the clouds pour down their rain everywhere, and by this
rain all creatures gain their sustenance. What has the great Indra to do with this arrangement?
24. My dear father, our home is not in the cities or towns or villages. Being forest dwellers, we always
live in the forest and on the hills.
25. Therefore may a sacrifice for the pleasure of the cows, the brahmanas and Govardhana Hill begin!
With all the paraphernalia collected for worshiping Indra, let this sacrifice be performed instead.
26. Let many different kinds of food be cooked, from sweet rice to vegetable soups! Many kinds of fancy
cakes, both baked and fried, should be prepared. And all the available milk products should be taken for
this sacrifice.
27. The brahmanas who are learned in the Vedic mantras must properly invoke the sacrificial fires.
Then you should feed the priests with nicely prepared food and reward them with cows and other gifts.
506 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
28. After giving the appropriate food to everyone else, including such fallen souls as dogs and dog-
eaters, you should give grass to the cows and then present your respectful offerings to Govardhana Hill.
29. After everyone has eaten to his satisfaction, you should all dress and decorate yourselves
handsomely, smear your bodies with sandalwood paste and then circumambulate the cows, the
brahmanas, the sacrificial fires and Govardhana Hill.
30. This is My idea, O father, and you may carry it out if it appeals to you. Such a sacrifice will be very
dear to the cows, the brahmanas and Govardhana Hill, and also to Me.
31. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Lord Krsna, who is Himself powerful time, desired to destroy the false
pride of Lord Indra. When Nanda and the other senior men of Vrndavana heard Sri Krsna’s statement,
they accepted His words as proper.
32-33. The cowherd community then did all that Madhusudana had suggested. They arranged for the
brahmanas to recite the auspicious Vedic mantras, and using the paraphernalia that had been intended
for Indra’s sacrifice, they presented offerings to Govardhana Hill and the brahmanas with reverential
respect. They also gave grass to the cows. Then, placing the cows, bulls and calves in front of them,
they circumambulated Govardhana.
34. As the beautifully ornamented cowherd ladies followed along, riding on wagons drawn by oxen, they
sang the glories of Lord Krsna, and their songs mingled with the brahmanas’ chanting of benedictions.
35. Krsna then assumed an unprecedented, huge form to instill faith in the cowherd men. Declaring “I
am Govardhana Mountain!” He ate the abundant offerings.
36. Together with the people of Vraja, the Lord bowed down to this form of Govardhana Hill, thus in
effect offering obeisances to Himself. Then He said, “Just see how this hill has appeared in person and
bestowed mercy upon us!
37. “This Govardhana Hill, assuming any form he wishes, will kill any residents of the forest who
neglect him. Therefore let us pay our obeisances to him for the safety of ourselves and our cows.”
38. The members of the cowherd community, having thus been inspired by Lord Vasudeva to properly
execute the sacrifice to Govardhana Hill, the cows and the brahmanas, returned with Lord Krsna to their
village, Vraja.
Chapter Twenty-Five Lord Krsna Lifts Govardhana Hill
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King Pariksit, when Indra understood that his sacrifice had been
put aside, he became furious with Nanda Maharaja and the other cowherd men, who were accepting
Krsna as their Lord.
2. Angry Indra sent forth the clouds of universal destruction, known as Samvartaka. Imagining himself
the supreme controller, he spoke as follows.
3. [Indra said:] Just see how these cowherd men living in the forest have become so greatly intoxicated
by their prosperity! They have surrendered to an ordinary human being, Krsna, and thus they have
offended the gods.
4. Their taking shelter of Krsna is just like the foolish attempt of men who abandon transcendental
knowledge of the self and instead try to cross over the great ocean of material existence in the false
boats of fruitive, ritual sacrifices.
5. These cowherd men have acted inimically toward me by taking shelter of this ordinary human being,
Krsna, who thinks Himself very wise but who is simply a foolish, arrogant, overtalkative child.
6. [To the clouds of destruction King Indra said:] The prosperity of these people has made them mad
with pride, and their arrogance is backed up by Krsna. Now go and remove their pride and bring their
animals to destruction.
7. I will follow you to Vraja, riding on my elephant Airavata and taking with me the swift and powerful
wind-gods to decimate the cowherd village of Nanda Maharaja.
8. Sukadeva Gosvami said: On Indra’s order the clouds of universal destruction, released untimely from
their bonds, went to the cowherd pastures of Nanda Maharaja. There they began to torment the
inhabitants by powerfully pouring down torrents of rain upon them.
9. Propelled by the fearsome wind-gods, the clouds blazed with lightning bolts and roared with thunder
as they hurled down hailstones.
10. As the clouds released torrents of rain as thick as massive columns, the earth was submerged in
the flood, and high ground could no longer be distinguished from low.
11. The cows and other animals, shivering from the excessive rain and wind, and the cowherd men and
ladies, pained by the cold, all approached Lord Govinda for shelter.
12. Trembling from the distress brought about by the severe rainfall, and trying to cover their heads and
calves with their own bodies, the cows approached the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 507
13. [The cowherd men and women addressed the Lord:] Krsna, Krsna, O most fortunate one, please
deliver the cows from the wrath of Indra! O Lord, You are so affectionate to Your devotees. Please save
us also.
14. Seeing the inhabitants of His Gokula rendered practically unconscious by the onslaught of hail and
blasting wind, the Supreme Lord Hari understood that this was the work of angry Indra.
15. [Sri Krsna said to Himself:] Because We have stopped his sacrifice, Indra has caused this unusually
fierce, unseasonable rain, together with terrible winds and hail.
16. By My mystic power I will completely counteract this disturbance caused by Indra. Demigods like
Indra are proud of their opulence, and out of foolishness they falsely consider themselves the Lord of
the universe. I will now destroy such ignorance.
17. Since the demigods are endowed with the mode of goodness, the false pride of considering oneself
the Lord should certainly not affect them. When I break the false prestige of those bereft of goodness,
My purpose is to bring them relief.
18. I must therefore protect the cowherd community by My transcendental potency, for I am their
shelter, I am their master, and indeed they are My own family. After all, I have taken a vow to protect My
devotees.
19. Having said this, Lord Krsna, who is Visnu Himself, picked up Govardhana Hill with one hand and
held it aloft just as easily as a child holds up a mushroom.
20. The Lord then addressed the cowherd community: O Mother, O Father, O residents of Vraja, if you
wish you may now come under this hill with your cows.
21. You should have no fear that this mountain will fall from My hand. And don’t be afraid of the wind
and rain, for your deliverance from these afflictions has already been arranged.
22. Their minds thus pacified by Lord Krsna, they all entered beneath the hill, where they found ample
room for themselves and all their cows, wagons, servants and priests, and for all other members of the
community as well.
23. Lord Krsna, forgetting hunger and thirst and putting aside all considerations of personal pleasure,
stood there holding up the hill for seven days as the people of Vraja gazed upon Him.
24. When Indra observed this exhibition of Lord Krsna’s mystic power, he became most astonished.
Pulled down from his platform of false pride, and his intentions thwarted, he ordered his clouds to
desist.
25. Seeing that the fierce wind and rain had now ceased, the sky had become clear of rainclouds, and
the sun had risen, Lord Krsna, the lifter of Govardhana Hill, spoke to the cowherd community as follows.
26. [Lord Krsna said:] My dear cowherd men, please go out with your wives, children and possessions.
Give up your fear. The wind and rain have stopped, and the rivers’ high waters have subsided.
27. After collecting their respective cows and loading their paraphernalia into their wagons, the cowherd
men went out. The women, children and elderly persons gradually followed them.
28. While all living creatures looked on, the Supreme Personality of Godhead put down the hill in its
original place, just as it had stood before.
29. All the residents of Vrndavana were overwhelmed with ecstatic love, and they came forward and
greeted Sri Krsna according to their individual relationships with Him—some embracing Him, others
bowing down to Him, and so forth. The cowherd women presented water mixed with yogurt and
unbroken barleycorns as a token of honor, and they showered auspicious benedictions upon Him.
30. Mother Yasoda, mother Rohini, Nanda Maharaja and Balarama, the greatest of the strong, all
embraced Krsna. Overwhelmed with affection, they offered Him their blessings.
31. In the heavens, O King, all the demigods, including the Siddhas, Sadhyas, Gandharvas and
Caranas, sang the praises of Lord Krsna and showered down flowers in great satisfaction.
32. My dear Pariksit, the demigods in heaven resoundingly played their conchshells and kettledrums,
and the best of the Gandharvas, led by Tumburu, began to sing.
33. Surrounded by His loving cowherd boyfriends and Lord Balarama, Krsna then went off to the place
where He had been tending His cows. The cowherd girls returned to their homes, singing joyfully about
the lifting of Govardhana Hill and other glorious deeds performed by Lord Krsna, who had so deeply
touched their hearts.
Chapter Twenty-Six Wonderful Krsna
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The cowherd men were astonished when they saw Krsna’s activities, such
as lifting Govardhana Hill. Unable to understand His transcendental potency, they approached Nanda
Maharaja and spoke as follows.
2. [The cowherd men said:] Since this boy performs such extraordinary activities, how could He warrant
a birth among worldly men like us—a birth that for Him would seem contemptible?
3. How could this seven-year-old boy playfully hold up the great hill Govardhana with one hand, just as
a mighty elephant holds up a lotus flower?
508 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
4. As a mere infant who had hardly yet opened His eyes, He drank the breast milk of the powerful
demoness Putana and then sucked out her very life air as well, just as the force of time sucks out the
youth of one’s body.
5. Once, when only three months old, little Krsna was crying and kicking up His feet as He lay beneath
a huge cart. Then the cart fell and turned upside-down simply because it was struck by the tip of His
toe.
6. At the age of one, while sitting peacefully He was taken up into the sky by the demon Trnavarta. But
baby Krsna grabbed the demon’s neck, causing him great pain, and thus killed him.
7. Once, His mother tied Him with ropes to a mortar because she had caught Him stealing butter. Then,
crawling on His hands, He dragged the mortar between a pair of arjuna trees and pulled them down.
8. Another time, when Krsna was tending the calves in the forest together with Balarama and the
cowherd boys, the demon Bakasura came with the intention of killing Krsna. But Krsna seized this
inimical demon by the mouth and tore him apart.
9. Desiring to kill Krsna, the demon Vatsa disguised himself as a calf and entered among Krsna’s
calves. But Krsna killed the demon and, using his body, enjoyed the sport of knocking kapittha fruits
down from the trees.
10. Together with Lord Balarama, Krsna killed the jackass demon and all his friends, thereby securing
the safety of the Talavana forest, which abounded with fully ripened palm fruits.
11. After arranging for the mighty Lord Balarama to kill the terrible demon Pralamba, Krsna saved
Vraja’s cowherd boys and their animals from a forest fire.
12. Krsna chastised the most poisonous serpent, Kaliya, and after humbling him He drove him forcibly
from the lake of the Yamuna. In this way the Lord made the water of that river free of the snake’s
powerful poison.
13. Dear Nanda, how is it that we and all the other residents of Vraja cannot give up our constant
affection for your son? And how is it that He is so spontaneously attracted to us?
14. On the one hand this boy is only seven years old, and on the other we see that He has lifted the
great hill Govardhana. Therefore, O King of Vraja, a doubt about your son arises within us.
15. Nanda Maharaja replied: O cowherd men, just hear my words and let all your doubts concerning my
son be gone. Some time ago Garga Muni spoke to me as follows about this boy.
16. [Garga Muni had said:] Your son Krsna appears as an incarnation in every millennium. In the past
He assumed three different colors—white, red and yellow—and now He has appeared in a blackish
color.
17. For many reasons, this beautiful son of yours sometimes appeared previously as the son of
Vasudeva. Therefore, those who are learned sometimes call this child Vasudeva.
18. For this son of yours there are many forms and names according to His transcendental qualities and
activities. These are known to me, but people in general do not understand them.
19. To increase the transcendental bliss of the cowherd men of Gokula, this child will always act
auspiciously for you. And by His grace only, you will surpass all difficulties.
20. O Nanda Maharaja, as recorded in history, when there was an irregular, incapable government,
Indra having been dethroned, and when honest people were being harassed and disturbed by thieves,
this child appeared in order to curb the rogues and to protect the people and enable them to flourish.
21. Demons cannot harm the demigods, who always have Lord Visnu on their side. Similarly, any
person or group attached to all-auspicious Krsna cannot be defeated by enemies
22. Therefore, O Nanda Maharaja, this child of yours is as good as Narayana. In His transcendental
qualities, opulence, name, fame and influence, He is exactly like Narayana. Thus you should not be
astonished hy His activities.
23. [Nanda Maharaja continued:] After Garga Rsi spoke these words to me and returned home, I began
to consider that Krsna, who keeps us free from trouble, is actually an expansion of Lord Narayana.
24. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Having heard Nanda Maharaja relate the statements of Garga
Muni, the residents of Vrndavana became enlivened. Their perplexity was gone, and they worshiped
Nanda and Lord Krsna with great respect.
25. Indra became angry when his sacrifice was disrupted, and thus he caused rain and hail to fall on
Gokula, accompanied by lightning and powerful winds, all of which brought great suffering to the
cowherds, animals and women there. When Lord Krsna, who is by nature always compassionate, saw
the condition of those who had only Him as their shelter, He smiled broadly and lifted Govardhana Hill
with one hand, just as a small child picks up a mushroom to play with it. In this way He protected the
cowherd community. May He, Govinda, the Lord of the cows and the destroyer of Indra’s false pride, be
pleased with us.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 509
ChapterTwenty-Seven Lord Indra and Mother Surabhi Offer Prayers
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After Krsna had lifted Govardhana Hill and thus protected the inhabitants of
Vraja from the terrible rainfall, Surabhi, the mother of the cows, came from her planet to see Krsna. She
was accompanied by Indra.
2. Indra was very ashamed of having offended the Lord. Approaching Him in a solitary place, Indra fell
down and lay his helmet, whose effulgence was as brilliant as the sun, upon the Lord’s lotus feet.
3. Indra had now heard of and seen the transcendental power of omnipotent Krsna, and his false pride
in being the lord of the three worlds was thus defeated. Holding his hands together in supplication, he
addressed the Lord as follows.
4. King Indra said: Your transcendental form, a manifestation of pure goodness, is undisturbed by
change, shining with knowledge and devoid of passion and ignorance. In You does not exist the mighty
flow of the modes of material nature, which is based on illusion and ignorance.
5. How, then, could there exist in You the symptoms of an ignorant person—such as greed, lust, anger
and envy—which are produced by one’s previous involvement in material existence and which cause
one to become further entangled in material existence? And yet as the Supreme Lord You impose
punishment to protect religious principles and curb down the wicked.
6. You are the father and spiritual master of this entire universe, and also its supreme controller. You
are insurmountable time, imposing punishment upon the sinful for their own benefit. Indeed, in Your
various incarnations, selected by Your own free will, You act decisively to remove the false pride of
those who presume themselves masters of this world.
7. Even fools like me, who proudly think themselves universal lords, quickly give up their conceit and
directly take to the path of the spiritually progressive when they see You are fearless even in the face of
time. Thus You punish the mischievous only to instruct them.
8. Engrossed in pride over my ruling power, ignorant of Your majesty, I offended You. O Lord, may You
forgive me. My intelligence was bewildered, but let my consciousness never again be so impure.
9. You descend into this world, O transcendent Lord, to destroy the warlords who burden the earth and
create many terrible disturbances. O Lord, you simultaneously act for the welfare of those who faithfully
serve Your lotus feet.
10. Obeisances unto You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the great Soul, who are all-pervading
and who reside in the hearts of all. My obeisances unto You, Krsna, the chief of the Yadu dynasty.
11. Unto Him who assumes transcendental bodies according to the desires of His devotees, unto Him
whose form is itself pure consciousness, unto Him who is everything, who is the seed of everything and
who is the Soul of all creatures, I offer my obeisances.
12. My dear Lord, when my sacrifice was disrupted I became fiercely angry because of false pride.
Thus I tried to destroy Your cowherd community with severe rain and wind.
13. O Lord, You have shown mercy to me by shattering my false pride and defeating my attempt [to
punish Vrndavana]. To You, the Supreme Lord, spiritual master and Supreme Soul, I have now come
for shelter.
14. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus glorified by Indra, Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
smiled and then spoke to him as follows in a voice resonant like the clouds.
15. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Indra, it was out of mercy that I stopped the
sacrifice meant for you. You were greatly intoxicated by your opulence as King of heaven, and I wanted
you to always remember Me.
16. A man blinded by intoxication with his power and opulence cannot see Me nearby with the rod of
punishment in My hand. If I desire his real welfare, I drag him down from his materially fortunate
position.
17. Indra, you may now go. Execute My order and remain in your appointed position as King of heaven.
But be sober, without false pride.
18. Mother Surabhi, along with her progeny, the cows, then offered her obeisances to Lord Krsna.
Respectfully requesting His attention, the gentle lady addressed the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who was present before her as a cowherd boy.
19. Mother Surabhi said: O Krsna, Krsna, greatest of mystics! O Soul and origin of the universe! You
are the master of the world, and by Your grace, O infallible Lord, we have You as our master.
20. You are our worshipable Deity. Therefore, O Lord of the universe, for the benefit of the cows, the
brahmanas, the demigods and all other saintly persons, please become our Indra.
21. As ordered by Lord Brahma, we shall perform Your bathing ceremony to coronate You as Indra. O
Soul of the universe, You descend to this world to relieve the burden of the earth.
22-23. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus appealed to Lord Krsna, mother Surabhi performed His
bathing ceremony with her own milk, and Indra, ordered by Aditi and other mothers of the demigods,
anointed the Lord with heavenly Ganga water from the trunk of Indra’s elephant carrier, Airavata. Thus,
510 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
in the company of the demigods and great sages, Indra coronated Lord Krsna, the descendant of
Dasarha, and gave Him the name Govinda.
24. Tumburu, Narada and other Gandharvas, along with the Vidyadharas, Siddhas and Caranas, came
there to sing the glories of Lord Hari, which purify the entire world. And the wives of the demigods, filled
with joy, danced together in the Lord’s honor.
25. The most eminent demigods chanted the praises of the Lord and scattered wonderful showers of
flowers all around Him. All three worlds felt supreme satisfaction, and the cows drenched the surface of
the earth with their milk.
26. Rivers flowed with various kinds of tasty liquids, trees exuded honey, edible plants came to maturity
without cultivation, and hills gave forth jewels formerly hidden in their interiors.
27. O Pariksit, beloved of the Kuru dynasty, upon the ceremonial bathing of Lord Krsna, all living
creatures, even those cruel by nature, became entirely free of enmity.
28. After he had ceremonially bathed Lord Govinda, who is the master of the cows and the cowherd
community, King Indra took the Lord’s permission and, surrounded by the demigods and other higher
beings, returned to his heavenly abode.
Chapter Twenty-Eight Krsna Rescues Nanda Maharaja from the Abode of Varuna
1. Sri Badarayani said: Having worshiped Lord Janardana and fasted on the Ekadasi day, Nanda
Maharaja entered the water of the Kalindi on the Dvadasi to take his bath.
2. Because Nanda Maharaja entered the water in the dark of night, disregarding that the time was
inauspicious, a demoniac servant of Varuna seized him and brought him to his master.
3. O King, not seeing Nanda Maharaja, the cowherd men loudly cried out, ”O Krsna! O Rama!” Lord
Krsna heard their cries and understood that His father had been captured by Varuna. Therefore the
almighty Lord, who makes His devotees fearless, went to the court of Varunadeva.
4. Seeing that the Lord, Hrsikesa, had arrived, the demigod Varuna worshiped Him with elaborate
offerings. Varuna was in a state of great jubilation upon seeing the Lord, and he spoke as follows.
5. Sri Varuna said: Now my body has fulfilled its function. Indeed, now the goal of my life is achieved, O
Lord. Those who accept Your lotus feet, O Personality of Godhead, can transcend the path of material
existence.
6. My obeisances unto You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Absolute Truth, the Supreme
Soul, within whom there is no trace of the illusory energy, which orchestrates the creation of this world.
7. Your father, who is sitting here, was brought to me by a foolish, ignorant servant of mine who did not
understand his proper duty. Therefore, please forgive us.
8. O Krsna, O seer of everything, please give Your mercy even to me. O Govinda, You are most
affectionate to Your father. Please take him home.
9. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus satisfied by Lord Varuna, Sri Krsna, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Lord of lords, took His father and returned home, where their relatives were overjoyed to see
them.
10. Nanda Maharaja had been astonished to see for the first time the great opulence of Varuna, the
ruler of the ocean planet, and also to see how Varuna and his servants had offered such humble
respect to Krsna. Nanda described all this to his fellow cowherd men.
11. [Hearing about Krsna’s pastimes with Varuna,] the cowherd men considered that Krsna must be
the Supreme Lord, and their minds, O King, were filled with eagerness. They thought, “Will the
Supreme Lord bestow upon us His transcendental abode?”
12. Because He sees everything, Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, automatically
understood what the cowherd men were conjecturing. Wanting to show His compassion to them by
fulfilling their desires, the Lord thought as follows.
13. [Lord Krsna thought:] Certainly people in this world are wandering among higher and lower
destinations, which they achieve through activities performed according to their desires and without full
knowledge. Thus people do not know their real destination.
14. Thus deeply considering the situation, the all-merciful Supreme Personality of Godhead Hari
revealed to the cowherd men His abode, which is beyond material darkness.
15. Lord Krsna revealed the indestructible spiritual effulgence, which is unlimited, conscious and
eternal. Sages see that spiritual existence in trance, when their consciousness is free of the modes of
material nature.
16. The cowherd men were brought by Lord Krsna to the Brahma-hrada, made to submerge in the
water, and then lifted up. From the same vantage point that Akrura saw the spiritual world, the cowherd
men saw the planet of the Absolute Truth.
17. Nanda Maharaja and the other cowherd men felt the greatest happiness when they saw that
transcendental abode. They were especially amazed to see Krsna Himself there, surrounded by the
personified Vedas, who were offering Him prayers.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 511
Chapter Twenty-Nine Krsna and the Gopis Meet for the Rasa Dance
1. Sri Badarayani said: Sri Krsna is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, full in all opulences, yet upon
seeing those autumn nights scented with blossoming jasmine flowers, He turned His mind toward loving
affairs. To fulfill His purposes He employed His internal potency.
2. The moon then rose, anointing the face of the western horizon with the reddish hue of his comforting
rays, and thus dispelling the pain of all who watched him rise. The moon was like a beloved husband
who returns after a long absence and adorns the face of his beloved wife with red kunkuma.
3. Lord Krsna saw the unbroken disk of the full moon glowing with the red effulgence of newly applied
vermilion, as if it were the face of the goddess of fortune. He also saw the kumuda lotuses opening in
response to the moon’s presence and the forest gently illumined by its rays. Thus the Lord began to
play sweetly on His flute, attracting the minds of the beautiful-eyed gopis.
4. When the young women of Vrndavana heard Krsna’s flute song, which arouses romantic feelings,
their minds were captivated by the Lord. They went to where their lover waited, each unknown to the
others, moving so quickly that their earrings swung back and forth.
5. Some of the gopis were milking cows when they heard Krsna’s flute. They stopped milking and went
off to meet Him. Some left milk curdling on the stove, and others left cakes burning in the oven.
6-7. Some of them were getting dressed, feeding milk to their infants or rendering personal service to
their husbands, but they all gave up these duties and went to meet Krsna. Other gopis were taking their
evening meals, washing themselves, putting on cosmetics or applying kajjala to their eyes. But all the
gopis stopped these activities at once and, though their clothes and ornaments were in complete
disarray, rushed off to Krsna.
8. Their husbands, fathers, brothers and other relatives tried to stop them, but Krsna had already stolen
their hearts. Enchanted by the sound of His flute, they refused to turn back.
9. Some of the gopis, however, could not manage to get out of their houses, and instead they remained
home with eyes closed, meditating upon Him in pure love.
10-11. For those gopis who could not go to see Krsna, intolerable separation from their beloved caused
an intense agony that burned away all impious karma. By meditating upon Him they realized His
embrace, and the ecstasy they then felt exhausted their material piety. Although Lord Krsna is the
Supreme Soul, these girls simply thought of Him as their male lover and associated with Him in that
intimate mood. Thus their karmic bondage was nullified and they abandoned their gross material
bodies.
12. Sri Pariksit Maharaja said: O sage, the gopis knew Krsna only as their lover, not as the Supreme
Absolute Truth. So how could these girls, their minds caught up in the waves of the modes of nature,
free themselves from material attachment?
13. Sukadeva Gosvami said: This point was explained to you previously. Since even Sisupala, who
hated Krsna, achieved perfection, then what to speak of the Lord’s dear devotees.
14. O King, the Supreme Lord is inexhaustible and immeasurable, and He is untouched by the material
modes because He is their controller. His personal appearance in this world is meant for bestowing the
highest benefit on humanity.
15. Persons who constantly direct their lust, anger, fear, protective affection, feeling of impersonal
oneness or friendship toward Lord Hari are sure to become absorbed in thought of Him.
16. You should not be so astonished by Krsna, the unborn master of all masters of mystic power, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. After all, it is the Lord who liberates this world.
17. Seeing that the girls of Vraja had arrived, Lord Krsna, the best of speakers, greeted them with
charming words that bewildered their minds.
18. Lord Krsna said: O most fortunate ladies, welcome. What may I do to please you? Is everything well
in Vraja? Please tell Me the reason for your coming here.
19. This night is quite frightening, and frightening creatures are lurking about. Return to Vraja, slender-
waisted girls. This is not a proper place for women.
20. Not finding you at home, your mothers, fathers, sons, brothers and husbands are certainly
searching for you. Don’t cause anxiety for your family members.
21-22. Now you have seen this Vrndavana forest, full of flowers and resplendent with the light of the full
moon. You have seen the beauty of the trees, with their leaves trembling in the gentle breeze coming
from the Yamuna. So now go back to the cowherd village. Don’t delay. O chaste ladies, serve your
husbands and give milk to your crying babies and calves.
23. On the other hand, perhaps you have come here out of your great love for Me, which has taken
control of your hearts. This is of course quite commendable on your part, since all living entities possess
natural affection for Me.
24. The highest religious duty for a woman is to sincerely serve her husband, behave well toward her
husband’s family and take good care of her children.
512 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
25. Women who desire a good destination in the next life should never abandon a husband who has not
fallen from his religious standards, even if he is obnoxious, unfortunate, old, unintelligent, sickly or poor.
26. For a woman from a respectable family, petty adulterous affairs are always condemned. They bar
her from heaven, ruin her reputation and bring her difficulty and fear.
27. Transcendental love for Me arises by the devotional processes of hearing about Me, seeing My
Deity form, meditating on Me and faithfully chanting My glories. The same result is not achieved by
mere physical proximity. So please go back to your homes.
28. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hearing these unpleasant words spoken by Govinda, the gopis became
morose. Their great hopes were frustrated and they felt insurmountable anxiety.
29. Their heads hanging down and their heavy, sorrowful breathing drying up their reddened lips, the
gopis scratched the ground with their toes. Tears flowed from their eyes, carrying their kajjala and
washing away the vermilion smeared on their breasts. Thus they stood, silently bearing the burden of
their unhappiness.
30. Although Krsna was their beloved, and although they had abandoned all other objects of desire for
His sake, He had been speaking to them unfavorably. Nonetheless, they remained unflinching in their
attachment to Him. Stopping their crying, they wiped their eyes and began to speak, their voices
stammering with agitation.
31. The beautiful gopis said: O all-powerful one, You should not speak in this cruel way. Do not reject
us, who have renounced all material enjoyment to render devotional service to Your lotus feet.
Reciprocate with us, O stubborn one, just as the primeval Lord, Sri Narayana, reciprocates with His
devotees in their endeavors for liberation.
32. Our dear Krsna, as an expert in religion You have advised us that the proper religious duty for
women is to faithfully serve their husbands, children and other relatives. We agree that this principle is
valid, but actually this service should be rendered to You. After all, O Lord, You are the dearmost friend
of all embodied souls. You are their most intimate relative and indeed their very Self.
33. Expert transcendentalists always direct their affection toward You because they recognize You as
their true Self and eternal beloved. What use do we have for these husbands, children and relatives of
ours, who simply give us trouble? Therefore, O supreme controllers grant us Your mercy. O lotus-eyed
one, please do not cut down our long-cherished hope to have Your association.
34. Until today our minds were absorbed in household affairs, but You easily stole both our minds and
our hands away from our housework. Now our feet won’t move one step from Your lotus feet. How can
we go back to Vraja? What would we do there?
35. Dear Krsna, please pour the nectar of Your lips upon the fire within our hearts—a fire You ignited
with Your smiling glances and the sweet song of Your flute. If You do not, we will consign our bodies to
the fire of separation from You, O friend, and thus like yogis attain to the abode of Your lotus feet by
meditation.
36. O lotus-eyed one, the goddess of fortune considers it a festive occasion whenever she touches the
soles of Your lotus feet. You are very dear to the residents of the forest, and therefore we will also touch
those lotus feet. From that time on we will be unable even to stand in the presence of any other man, for
we will have been fully satisfied by You.
37. Goddess Laksmi, whose glance is sought after by the demigods with great endeavor, has achieved
the unique position of always remaining on the chest of her Lord, Narayana. Still, she desires the dust
of His lotus feet, even though she has to share that dust with Tulasi-devi and indeed with the Lord’s
many other servants. Similarly, we have approached the dust of Your lotus feet for shelter.
38. Therefore, O vanquisher of all distress, please show us mercy. To approach Your lotus feet we
abandoned our families and homes, and we have no desire other than to serve You. Our hearts are
burning with intense desires generated by Your beautiful smiling glances. O jewel among men, please
make us Your maidservants.
39. Seeing Your face encircled by curling locks of hair, Your cheeks beautified by earrings, Your lips full
of nectar, and Your smiling glance, and also seeing Your two imposing arms, which take away our fear,
and Your chest, which is the only source of pleasure for the goddess of fortune, we must become Your
maidservants.
40. Dear Krsna, what woman in all the three worlds wouldn’t deviate from religious behavior when
bewildered by the sweet, drawn-out melody of Your flute? Your beauty makes all three worlds
auspicious. Indeed, even the cows, birds, trees and deer manifest the ecstatic symptom of bodily hair
standing on end when they see Your beautiful form.
41. Clearly You have taken birth in this world to relieve the fear and distress of the people of Vraja, just
as the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the primeval Lord, protects the domain of the demigods.
Therefore, O friend of the distressed, kindly place Your lotus hand on Your maidservants’ heads and
burning breasts.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 513
42. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Smiling upon hearing these despondent words from the gopis, Lord Krsna,
the supreme master of all masters of mystic yoga, mercifully enjoyed with them, although He is self-
satisfied.
43. Among the assembled gopis, the infallible Lord Krsna appeared just like the moon surrounded by
stars. He whose activities are so magnanimous made their faces blossom with His affectionate glances,
and His broad smiles revealed the effulgence of His jasmine-bud-like teeth.
44. As the gopis sang His praises, that leader of hundreds of women sang loudly in reply. He moved
among them, wearing His Vaijayanti garland, beautifying the Vrndavana forest.
45-46. Sri Krsna went with the gopis to the bank of the Yamuna, where the sand was cooling and the
wind, enlivened by the river’s waves, bore the fragrance of lotuses. There Krsna threw His arms around
the gopis and embraced them. He aroused Cupid in the beautiful young ladies of Vraja by touching their
hands, hair, thighs, belts and breasts, by playfully scratching them with His fingernails, and also by
joking with them, glancing at them and laughing with them. In this way the Lord enjoyed His pastimes.
47. The gopis became proud of themselves for having received such special attention from Krsna, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, and each of them thought herself the best woman on earth.
48. Lord Kesava, seeing the gopis too proud of their good fortune, wanted to relieve them of this pride
and show them further mercy. Thus He immediately disappeared.
Chapter Thirty The Gopis Search for Krsna
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When Lord Krsna disappeared so suddenly, the gopis felt great sorrow at
losing sight of Him, like a group of female elephants who have lost their mate.
2. As the cowherd women remembered Lord Krsna, their hearts were overwhelmed by His movements
and loving smiles, His playful glances and enchanting talks, and by the many other pastimes He would
enjoy with them. Thus absorbed in thoughts of Krsna, the Lord of Rama, the gopis began acting out His
various transcendental pastimes.
3. Because the beloved gopis were absorbed in thoughts of their beloved Krsna, their bodies imitated
His way of moving and smiling, His way of beholding them, His speech and His other distinctive
features. Deeply immersed in thinking of Him and maddened by remembering His pastimes, they
declared to one another, “I am Krsna!”
4. Singing loudly of Krsna, they searched for Him throughout the Vrndavana forest like a band of
madwomen. They even asked the trees about Him, who as the Supersoul is present inside and outside
of all created things, just like the sky.
5. [The gopis said:] O asvattha tree, O plaksa, O nyagrodha, have you seen Krsna? That son of Nanda
Maharaja has gone away after stealing our minds with His loving smiles and glances.
6. O kurabaka tree, O asoka, O naga, punnaga and campaka, has Balarama’s younger brother, whose
smile removes the audacity of all proud women, passed this way?
7. O most kind tulasi, to whom the feet of Govinda are so dear, have you seen that infallible one walk
by, wearing you and encircled by swarms of bees?
8. O malati, O mallika, O jati and yuthika, has Madhava gone by here, giving you pleasure with the
touch of His hand?
9. O cuta, O priyala, O panasa, asana and kovidara, O jambu, O arka, O bilva, bakula and amra, O
kadamba and nipa and all you other plants and trees living by the banks of the Yamuna who have
dedicated your very existence to the welfare of others, we gopis have lost our minds, so please tell us
where Krsna has gone.
10. O mother earth, what austerity did you perform to attain the touch of Lord Kesava’s lotus feet, which
has brought you such great joy that your bodily hairs are standing on end? You appear very beautiful in
this condition. Was it during the Lord’s current appearance that you acquired this ecstatic symptom, or
was it perhaps much earlier, when He stepped upon you in His form of the dwarf Vamanadeva, or even
earlier, when He embraced you in His form of the boar Varahadeva?
11. O friend, wife of the deer, has Lord Acyuta been here with His beloved, bringing great joy to your
eyes? Indeed, blowing this way is the fragrance of His garland of kunda flowers, which was smeared
with the kunkuma from the breasts of His girlfriend when He embraced Her.
12. O trees, we see that you are bowing down. When the younger brother of Rama walked by here,
followed by intoxicated bees swarming around the tulasi manjaris decorating His garland, did He
acknowledge your obeisances with His affectionate glances? He must have been resting His arm on the
shoulder of His beloved and carrying a lotus flower in His free hand.
13. Let us ask these creepers about Krsna. Even though they are embracing the arms of their husband,
this tree, they certainly must have been touched by Krsna’s fingernails, since out of joy they are
manifesting eruptions on their skin.
14. Having spoken these words, the gopis, distraught from searching for Krsna, began to act out His
various pastimes, fully absorbed in thoughts of Him.
514 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. One gopi imitated Putana, while another acted like infant Krsna and pretended to suck her breast.
Another gopi, crying in imitation of infant Krsna, kicked a gopi who was taking the role of the cart
demon, Sakatasura.
16. One gopi took the role of Trnavarta and carried away another, who was acting like infant Krsna,
while yet another gopi crawled about, her ankle bells tinkling as she pulled her feet.
17. Two gopis acted like Rama and Krsna in the midst of several others, who took the role of cowherd
boys. One gopi enacted Krsna’s killing of the demon Vatsasura, represented by another gopi, and a pair
of gopis acted out the killing of Bakasura.
18. When one gopi perfectly imitated how Krsna would call the cows who had wandered far away, how
He would play His flute and how He would engage in various sports, the others congratulated her with
exclamations of “Well done! Well done!”
19. Another gopi, her mind fixed on Krsna, walked about with her arm resting on the shoulder of a friend
and declared, “I am Krsna! Just see how gracefully I move!”
20. “Don’t be afraid of the wind and rain,” said one gopi. “I will save you.” And with that she lifted her
shawl above her head.
21. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] O King, one gopi climbed on another’s shoulders and, putting her
foot on the other’s head, said, “Go away from here, O wicked snake! You should know that I have taken
birth in this world just to punish the envious.”
22. Then another gopi spoke up: My dear cowherd boys, look al this raging forest fire! Quickly close
your eyes and I will easily protect you.
23. One gopi tied up her slender companion with a flower garland and said, “Now I will bind this boy
who has broken the butter pots and stolen the butter.” The second gopi then covered her face and
beautiful eyes, pretending to be afraid.
24. While the gopis were thus imitating Krsna’s pastimes and asking Vrndavana’s creepers and trees
where Krsna, the Supreme Soul, might be, they happened to see His footprints in a corner of the forest.
25. [The gopis said:] The marks of a flag, lotus, thunderbolt, elephant goad, barleycorn and so forth on
these footprints clearly distinguish them as belonging to that great soul, the son of Nanda Maharaja.
26. The gopis began following Krsna’s path, as shown by His many footprints, but when they saw that
these prints were thoroughly intermixed with those of His dearmost consort, they became perturbed and
spoke as follows.
27. [The gopis said:] Here we see the footprints of some gopi who must have been walking along with
the son of Nanda Maharaja. He must have put His arm on Her shoulder, just as an elephant rests His
trunk on the shoulder of an accompanying she-elephant.
28. Certainly this particular gopi has perfectly worshiped the all-powerful Personality of Godhead,
Govinda, since He was so pleased with Her that He abandoned the rest of us and brought Her to a
secluded place.
29. O girls! The dust of Govinda’s lotus feet is so sacred that even Brahma, Siva and the goddess
Rama take that dust upon their heads to dispel sinful reactions.
30. These footprints of that special gopi greatly disturb us. Of all the gopis, She alone was taken away
to a secluded place, where She is enjoying the lips of Krsna. Look, we can’t see Her footprints over
here! It’s obvious that the grass and sprouts were hurting the tender soles of Her feet, and so the lover
lifted up His beloved.
31. Please observe, my dear gopis, how in this place lusty Krsna’s footprints are pressed more deeply
into the ground. Carrying the weight of His beloved must have been difficult for Him. And over here that
intelligent boy must have put Her down to gather some flowers.
32. Just see how in this place dear Krsna collected flowers for His beloved. Here He has left the
impression of only the front part of His feet because He was standing on His toes to reach the flowers.
33. Certainly Krsna sat down here with His girlfriend to arrange Her hair. The lusty boy must have made
a crown for that lusty girl out of the flowers He had collected.
34. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Lord Krsna enjoyed with that gopi, although He enjoys only within,
being self-satisfied and complete in Himself. Thus by contrast He showed the wretchedness of ordinary
lusty men and hardhearted women.
35-36. As the gopis wandered about, their minds completely bewildered, they pointed out various signs
of Krsna’s pastimes. The particular gopi whom Krsna had led into a secluded forest when He had
abandoned all the other young girls began to think Herself the best of women. “My beloved has rejected
all the other gopis, “She thought, “even though they are driven by Cupid himself. He has chosen to
reciprocate with Me alone.”
37. As the two lovers passed through one part of the Vrndavana forest, the special gopi began feeling
proud of Herself. She told Lord Kesava, “I cannot walk any further. Please carry Me wherever You want
to go.”
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 515
38. Thus addressed, Lord Krsna replied, “Just climb on My shoulder.” But as soon as He said this, He
disappeared. His beloved consort then immediately felt great remorse.
39. She cried out: O master! My lover! O dearmost, where are You? Where are You? Please, O mighty-
armed one, O friend, show Yourself to Me, Your poor servant!
40. Sukadeva Gosvami said: While continuing to search out Krsna’s path, the gopis discovered their
unhappy friend close by. She was bewildered by separation from Her lover.
41. She told them how Madhava had given Her much respect, but how She then suffered dishonor
because of Her misbehavior. The gopis were extremely amazed to hear this.
42. In search of Krsna, the gopis then entered the depths of the forest as far as the light of the moon
shone. But when they found themselves engulfed in darkness, they decided to turn back.
43. Their minds absorbed in thoughts of Him, they conversed about Him, acted out His pastimes and
felt themselves filled with His presence. They completely forgot about their homes as they loudly sang
the glories of Krsna’s transcendental qualities.
44. The gopis again came to the bank of the Kalindi. Meditating on Krsna and eagerly hoping He would
come, they sat down together to sing of Him.
Chapter Thirty-One The Gopis’ Songs of Separation
1. The gopis said: O beloved, Your birth in the land of Vraja has made it exceedingly glorious, and thus
Indira, the goddess of fortune, always resides here. It is only for Your sake that we, Your devoted
servants, maintain our lives. We have been searching everywhere for You, so please show Yourself to
us.
2. O Lord of love, in beauty Your glance excels the whorl of the finest, most perfectly formed lotus within
the autumn pond. O bestower of benedictions, You are killing the maidservants who have given
themselves to You freely, without any price. Isn’t this murder?
3. O greatest of personalities, You have repeatedly saved us from all kinds of danger—from poisoned
water, from the terrible man-eater Agha, from the great rains, from the wind demon, from the fiery
thunderbolt of Indra, from the bull demon and from the son of Maya Danava.
4. You are not actually the son of the gopi Yasoda, O friend, but rather the indwelling witness in the
hearts of all embodied souls. Because Lord Brahma prayed for You to come and protect the universe,
You have now appeared in the Satvata dynasty.
5. O best of the Vrsnis, Your lotuslike hand, which holds the hand of the goddess of fortune, grants
fearlessness to those who approach Your feet out of fear of material existence. O lover, please place
that wish-fulfilling lotus hand on our heads.
6. O You who destroy the suffering of Vraja’s people, O hero of all women, Your smile shatters the false
pride of Your devotees. Please, dear friend, accept us as Your maidservants and show us Your
beautiful lotus face.
7. Your lotus feet destroy the past sins of all embodied souls who surrender to them. Those feet follow
after the cows in the pastures and are the eternal abode of the goddess of fortune. Since You once put
those feet on the hoods of the great serpent Kaliya, please place them upon our breasts and tear away
the lust in our hearts.
8. O lotus-eyed one, Your sweet voice and charming words, which attract the minds of the intelligent,
are bewildering us more and more. Our dear hero, please revive Your maidservants with the nectar of
Your lips.
9. The nectar of Your words and the descriptions of Your activities are the life and soul of those
suffering in this material world. These narrations, transmitted by learned sages, eradicate one’s sinful
reactions and bestow good fortune upon whoever hears them. These narrations are broadcast all over
the world and are filled with spiritual power. Certainly those who spread the message of Godhead are
most munificent.
10. Your smiles, Your sweet, loving glances, the intimate pastimes and confidential talks we enjoyed
with You—all these are auspicious to meditate upon, and they touch our hearts. But at the same time,
O deceiver, they very much agitate our minds.
11. Dear master, dear lover, when You leave the cowherd village to herd the cows, our minds are
disturbed with the thought that Your feet, more beautiful than a lotus, will be pricked by the spiked husks
of grain and the rough grass and plants.
12. At the end of the day You repeatedly show us Your lotus face, covered with dark blue locks of hair
and thickly powdered with dust. Thus, O hero, You arouse lusty desires in our minds.
13. Your lotus feet, which are worshiped by Lord Brahma, fulfill the desires of all who bow down to
them. They are the ornament of the earth, they give the highest satisfaction, and in times of danger they
are the appropriate object of meditation. O lover, O destroyer of anxiety, please put those lotus feet
upon our breasts.
516 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
14. O hero, kindly distribute to us the nectar of Your lips, which enhances conjugal pleasure and
vanquishes grief. That nectar is thoroughly relished by Your vibrating flute and makes people forget any
other attachment.
15. When You go off to the forest during the day, a tiny fraction of a second becomes like a millennium
for us because we cannot see You. And even when we can eagerly look upon Your beautiful face, so
lovely with its adornment of curly locks, our pleasure is hindered by our eyelids, which were fashioned
by the foolish creator.
16. Dear Acyuta, You know very well why we have come here. Who but a cheater like You would
abandon young women who come to see Him in the middle of the night, enchanted by the loud song of
His flute? Just to see You, we have completely rejected our husbands, children, ancestors, brothers
and other relatives.
17. Our minds are repeatedly bewildered as we think of the intimate conversations we had with You in
secret, feel the rise of lust in our hearts and remember Your smiling face, Your loving glances and Your
broad chest, the resting place of the goddess of fortune. Thus we experience the most severe
hankering for You.
18. O beloved, Your all-auspicious appearance vanquishes the distress of those living in Vraja’s forests.
Our minds long for Your association. Please give to us just a bit of that medicine, which counteracts the
disease in Your devotees’ hearts.
19. O dearly beloved! Your lotus feet are so soft that we place them gently on our breasts, fearing that
Your feet will be hurt. Our life rests only in You. Our minds, therefore, are filled with anxiety that Your
tender feet might be wounded by pebbles as You roam about on the forest path.
Chapter Thirty-Two The Reunion
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, having thus sung and spoken their hearts out in various charming
ways, the gopis began to weep loudly. They were very eager to see Lord Krsna.
2. Then Lord Krsna, a smile on His lotus face, appeared before the gopis. Wearing a garland and a
yellow garment, He directly appeared as one who can bewilder the mind of Cupid, who himself
bewilders the minds of ordinary people.
3. When the gopis saw that their dearmost Krsna had returned to them, they all stood up at once, and
out of their affection for Him their eyes bloomed wide. It was as if the air of life had reentered their
bodies.
4. One gopi joyfully took Krsna’s hand between her folded palms, and another placed His arm, anointed
with sandalwood paste, on her shoulder.
5. A slender gopi respectfully took in her joined hands the betel nut He had chewed, and another gopi,
burning with desire, put His lotus feet on her breasts.
6. One gopi, beside herself with loving anger, bit her lips and stared at Him with frowning eyebrows, as
if to wound Him with her harsh glances.
7. Another gopi looked with unblinking eyes upon His lotus face, but even after deeply relishing its
sweetness She did not feel satiated, just as mystic saints are never satiated when meditating upon the
Lord’s feet.
8. One gopi took the Lord through the aperture of her eyes and placed Him within her heart. Then, with
her eyes closed and her bodily hairs standing on end, she continuously embraced Him within. Thus
immersed in transcendental ecstasy, she resembled a yogi meditating upon the Lord.
9. All the gopis enjoyed the greatest festivity when they saw their beloved Kesava again. They gave up
the distress of separation, just as people in general forget their misery when they gain the association of
a spiritually enlightened person.
10. Encircled by the gopis, who were now relieved of all distress, Lord Acyuta, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, shone forth splendidly. My dear King, Krsna thus appeared like the Supersoul encircled by
His spiritual potencies.
11-12. The almighty Lord then took the gopis with Him to the bank of the Kalindi, who with the hands of
her waves had scattered piles of soft sand upon the shore. In that auspicious place the breeze, bearing
the fragrance of blooming kunda and mandara flowers, attracted many bees, and the abundant rays of
the autumn moon dispelled the darkness of night.
13. Their heartache vanquished by the ecstasy of seeing Krsna, the gopis, like the personified Vedas
before them, felt their desires completely fulfilled. For their dear friend Krsna they arranged a seat with
their shawls which were smeared with the kunkuma powder from their breasts.
14. Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, for whom the great masters of mystic meditation
arrange a seat within their hearts, took His seat in the assembly of gopis. His transcendental body, the
exclusive abode of beauty and opulence within the three worlds, shone brilliantly as the gopis
worshiped Him.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 517
15. Sri Krsna had awakened romantic desires within the gopis, and they honored Him by glancing at
Him with playful smiles, gesturing amorously with their eyebrows, and massaging His hands and feet as
they held them in their laps. Even while worshiping Him, however, they felt somewhat angry, and thus
they addressed Him as follows.
16. The gopis said: Some people reciprocate the affection only of those who are affectionate toward
them, while others show affection even to those who are indifferent or inimical. And yet others will not
show affection toward anyone. Dear Krsna, please properly explain this matter to us.
17. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: So-called friends who show affection for each other only
to benefit themselves are actually selfish. They have no true friendship, nor are they following the true
principles of religion. Indeed, if they did not expect benefit for themselves, they would not reciprocate.
18. My dear slender-waisted gopis, some people are genuinely merciful or, like parents, naturally
affectionate. Such persons, who devotedly serve even those who fail to reciprocate with them, are
following the true, faultless path of religion, and they are true well-wishers.
19. Then there are those individuals who are spiritually self-satisfied, materially fulfilled or by nature
ungrateful or simply envious of superiors. Such persons will not love even those who love them, what to
speak of those who are inimical.
20. But the reason I do not immediately reciprocate the affection of living beings even when they
worship Me, O gopis, is that I want to intensify their loving devotion. They then become like a poor man
who has gained some wealth and then lost it, and who thus becomes so anxious about it that he can
think of nothing else.
21. My dear girls, understanding that simply for My sake you had rejected the authority of worldly
opinion, of the Vedas and of your relatives, I acted as I did only to increase your attachment to Me.
Even when I removed Myself from your sight by suddenly disappearing, I never stopped loving you.
Therefore, My beloved gopés, please do not harbor any bad feelings toward Me, your beloved.
22. I am not able to repay My debt for your spotless service, even within a lifetime of Brahma. Your
connection with Me is beyond reproach. You have worshiped Me, cutting off all domestic ties, which are
difficult to break. Therefore please let your own glorious deeds be your compensation.
Chapter Thirty-Three The Rasa Dance
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When the cowherd girls heard the Supreme Personality of Godhead speak
these most charming words, they forgot their distress caused by separation from Him. Touching His
transcendental limbs, they felt all their desires fulfilled.
2. There on the Yamuna’s banks Lord Govinda then began the pastime of the rasa dance in the
company of those jewels among women, the faithful gopis, who joyfully linked their arms together.
3. The festive rasa dance commenced, with the gopis arrayed in a circle. Lord Krsna expanded Himself
and entered between each pair of gopis, and as that master of mystic power placed His arms around
their necks, each girl thought He was standing next to her alone. The demigods and their wives were
overwhelmed with eagerness to witness the rasa dance, and they soon crowded the sky with their
hundreds of celestial airplanes.
4. Kettledrums then resounded in the sky while flowers rained down and the chief Gandharvas and their
wives sang Lord Krsna’s spotless glories.
5. A tumultuous sound arose from the armlets, ankle bells and waist bells of the gopis as they sported
with their beloved Krsna in the circle of the rasa dance.
6. In the midst of the dancing gopis, Lord Krsna appeared most brilliant, like an exquisite sapphire in the
midst of golden ornaments.
7. As the gopis sang in praise of Krsna, their feet danced, their hands gestured, and their eyebrows
moved with playful smiles. With their braids and belts tied tight, their waists bending, their faces
perspiring, the garments on their breasts moving this way and that, and their earrings swinging on their
cheeks, Lord Krsna’s young consorts shone like streaks of lightning in a mass of clouds.
8. Eager to enjoy conjugal love, their throats colored with various pigments, the gopis sang loudly and
danced. They were overjoyed by Krsna’s touch, and they sang songs that filled the entire universe.
9. One gopi, joining Lord Mukunda in His singing, sang pure melodious tones that rose harmoniously
above His. Krsna was pleased and showed great appreciation for her performance, saying “Excellent!
Excellent!” Then another gopé repeated the same melody, but in a special metrical pattern, and Krsna
praised her also.
10. When one gopi grew tired from the rasa dance, She turned to Krsna, standing at Her side holding a
baton, and grasped His shoulder with Her arm. The dancing had loosened Her bracelets and the
flowers in Her hair.
11. Upon the shoulder of one gopi Krsna placed His arm, whose natural blue-lotus fragrance was mixed
with that of the sandalwood pulp anointing it. As the gopi relished that fragrance, her bodily hair stood
on end in jubilation, and she kissed His arm.
518 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. Next to Krsna’s cheek one gopi put her own, beautified by the effulgence of her earrings, which
glittered as she danced. Krsna then carefully gave her the betel nut He was chewing.
13. Another gopi became fatigued as she danced and sang, the bells on her ankles and waist tinkling.
So she placed upon her breasts the comforting lotus hand of Lord Acyuta, who was standing by her
side.
14. Having attained as their intimate lover Lord Acyuta, the exclusive consort of the goddess of fortune,
the gopis enjoyed great pleasure. They sang His glories as He held their necks with His arms.
15. Enhancing the beauty of the gopis’ faces were the lotus flowers behind their ears, the locks of hair
decorating their cheeks, and drops of perspiration. The reverberation of their armlets and ankle bells
made a loud musical sound, and their chaplets scattered. Thus the gopis danced with the Supreme
Lord in the arena of the räsa dance as swarms of bees sang in accompaniment.
16. In this way Lord Krsna, the original Lord Narayana, master of the goddess of fortune, took pleasure
in the company of the young women of Vraja by embracing them, caressing them and glancing lovingly
at them as He smiled His broad, playful smiles. It was just as if a child were playing with his own
reflection.
17. Their senses overwhelmed by the joy of having His physical association, the gopis could not
prevent their hair, their dresses and the cloths covering their breasts from becoming disheveled. Their
garlands and ornaments scattered, O hero of the Kuru dynasty.
18. The wives of the demigods, observing Krsna’s playful activities from their airplanes, were entranced
and became agitated with lust. Indeed, even the moon and his entourage, the stars, became
astonished.
19. Expanding Himself us many times as there were cowherd women to associate with, the Supreme
Lord, though self-satisfied, playfully enjoyed their company.
20. Seeing that the gopis were fatigued from conjugal enjoyment, my dear King, merciful Krsna lovingly
wiped their faces with His comforting hand.
21. The gopis honored their hero with smiling glances sweetened by the beauty of their cheeks and the
effulgence of their curly locks and glittering golden earrings. Overjoyed from the touch of His fingernails,
they chanted the glories of His all-auspicious transcendental pastimes.
22. Lord Krsna’s garland had been crushed during His conjugal dalliance with the gopis and colored
vermilion by the kunkuma powder on their breasts. To dispel the fatigue of the gopis, Krsna entered the
water of the Yamuna, followed swiftly by bees who were singing like the best of the Gandharvas. He
appeared like a lordly elephant entering the water to relax in the company of his consorts. Indeed, the
Lord had transgressed all worldly and Vedic morality just as a powerful elephant might break the dikes
in a paddy field.
23. My dear King, in the water Krsna found Himself being splashed on all sides by the laughing gopis,
who looked at Him with love. As the demigods worshiped Him by showering flowers from their
airplanes, the self-satisfied Lord took pleasure in playing like the king of the elephants.
24. Then the Lord strolled through a small forest on the bank of the Yamuna. This forest was filled to its
limits with breezes carrying the fragrances of all the flowers growing on the land and in the water.
Followed by His entourage of bees and beautiful women, Lord Krsna appeared like an intoxicated
elephant with his she-elephants.
25. Although the gopis were firmly attached to Lord Krsna, whose desires are always fulfilled, the Lord
was not internally affected by any mundane sex desire. Still, to perform His pastimes the Lord took
advantage of all those moonlit autumn nights, which inspire poetic descriptions of transcendental affairs.
26-27. Pariksit Maharaja said: O brahmana, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Lord of the
universe, has descended to this earth along with His plenary portion to destroy irreligion and reestablish
religious principles. Indeed, He is the original speaker, follower and guardian of moral laws. How, then,
could He have violated them by touching other men’s wives?
28. O faithful upholder of vows, please destroy our doubt by explaining to us what purpose the self-
satisfied Lord of the Yadus had in mind when He behaved so contemptibly.
29. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The status of powerful controllers is not harmed by any apparently
audacious transgression of morality we may see in them, for they are just like fire, which devours
everything fed into it and remains unpolluted.
30. One who is not a great controller should never imitate the behavior of ruling personalities, even
mentally. If out of foolishness an ordinary person does imitate such behavior, he will simply destroy
himself, just as a person who is not Rudra would destroy himself if he tried to drink an ocean of poison.
31. The statements of the Lord’s empowered servants are always true, and the acts they perform are
exemplary when consistent with those statements. Therefore one who is intelligent should carry out
their instructions.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 519
32. My dear Prabhu, when these great persons who are free from false ego act piously in this world,
they have no selfish motives to fulfill, and even when they act in apparent contradiction to the laws of
piety, they are not subject to sinful reactions.
33. How, then, could the Lord of all created beings—animals, men and demigods—have any
connection with the piety and impiety that affect His subject creatures?
34. Material activities never entangle the devotees of the Supreme Lord, who are fully satisfied by
serving the dust of His lotus feet. Nor do material activities entangle those intelligent sages who have
freed themselves from the bondage of all fruitive reactions by the power of yoga. So how could there be
any question of bondage for the Lord Himself, who assumes His transcendental forms according to His
own sweet will?
35. He who lives as the overseeing witness within the gopis and their husbands, and indeed within all
embodied living beings, assumes forms in this world to enjoy transcendental pastimes.
36. When the Lord assumes a humanlike body to show mercy to His devotees, He engages in such
pastimes as will attract those who hear about them to become dedicated to Him.
37. The cowherd men, bewildered by Krsna’s illusory potency, thought their wives had remained home
at their sides. Thus they did not harbor any jealous feelings against Him.
38. After an entire night of Brahma had passed, Lord Krsna advised the gopis to return to their homes.
Although they did not wish to do so, the Lord’s beloved consorts complied with His command.
39. Anyone who faithfully hears or describes the Lord’s playful affairs with the young gopis of
Vrndavana will attain the Lord’s pure devotional service. Thus he will quickly become sober and
conquer lust, the disease of the heart.
Chapter Thirty-Four Nanda Maharaja Saved and Sankhacuda Slain
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: One day the cowherd men, eager to take a trip to worship Lord Siva,
traveled by bullock carts to the Ambika forest.
2. O King, after arriving there, they bathed in the Sarasvati and then devotedly worshiped with various
paraphernalia the powerful Lord Pasupati and his consort, goddess Ambika.
3. The cowherd men gave the brahmanas gifts of cows, gold, clothing and cooked grains mixed with
honey. Then the cowherds prayed, “May the lord be pleased with us.”
4. Nanda, Sunanda and the other greatly fortunate cowherds spent that night on the bank of the
Sarasvati, strictly observing their vows. They fasted, taking only water.
5. During the night a huge and extremely hungry snake appeared in that thicket. Slithering on his belly
up to the sleeping Nanda Maharaja, the snake began swallowing him.
6. In the clutches of the snake, Nanda Maharaja cried out, “Krsna, Krsna, my dear boy! This huge
serpent is swallowing me! Please save me, who am surrendered to You!”
7. When the cowherd men heard the cries of Nanda, they immediately rose up and saw that he was
being swallowed. Distraught, they beat the serpent with blazing torches.
8. But even though the firebrands were burning him, the serpent would not release Nanda Maharaja.
Then the Supreme Lord Krsna, master of His devotees, came to the spot and touched the snake with
His foot.
9. The snake had all his sinful reactions destroyed by the touch of the Supreme Lord’s divine foot, and
thus he gave up his serpent body and appeared in the form of a worshipable Vidyadhara.
10. The Supreme Lord Hrsikesa then questioned this personality, who was standing before Him with his
head bowed, his brilliantly effulgent body bedecked with golden necklaces.
11. [Lord Krsna said:] My dear sir, you appear so wonderful, glowing with such great beauty. Who are
you? And who forced you to assume this terrible body of a snake?
12-13. The serpent replied: I am the well-known Vidyadhara named Sudarsana. I was very opulent and
beautiful, and I used to wander freely in all directions in my airplane. Once I saw some homely sages of
the lineage of Angira Muni. Proud of my beauty, I ridiculed them, and because of my sin they made me
assume this lowly form.
14. It was actually for my benefit that those merciful sages cursed me, since now I have been touched
by the foot of the supreme spiritual master of all the worlds and have thus been relieved of all
inauspiciousness.
15. My Lord, You destroy all fear for those who, fearing this material world, take shelter of You. By the
touch of Your feet I am now freed from the curse of the sages. O destroyer of distress, please let me
return to my planet.
16. O master of mystic power, O great personality, O Lord of the devotees, I surrender to You. Please
command me as You will, O supreme God, Lord of all lords of the universe.
17. O infallible one, I was immediately freed from the brahmanas’ punishment simply by seeing You.
Anyone who chants Your name purifies all who hear his chanting, as well as himself. How much more
beneficial, then, is the touch of Your lotus feet?
520 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
18. Thus receiving the permission of Lord Krsna, the demigod Sudarsana circumambulated Him, bowed
down to offer Him homage and then returned to his heavenly planet. Nanda Maharaja was thus
delivered from peril.
19. The inhabitants of Vraja were astonished to see the mighty power of Sri Krsna. Dear King, they then
completed their worship of Lord Siva and returned to Vraja, along the way respectfully describing
Krsna’s powerful acts.
20. Once Lord Govinda and Lord Rama, the performers of wonderful feats, were playing in the forest at
night with the young girls of Vraja.
21. Krsna and Balarama wore flower garlands and spotless garments, and Their limbs were beautifully
decorated and anointed. The women sang Their glories in a charming way, bound to Them by affection.
22. The two Lords praised the nightfall, signaled by the rising of the moon and the appearance of stars,
a lotus-scented breeze and bees intoxicated by the fragrance of jasmine flowers.
23. Krsna and Balarama sang, producing the entire range of musical sounds simultaneously. Their
singing brought happiness to the ears and minds of all living beings.
24. The gopis became stunned when they heard that song. Forgetting themselves, O King, they did not
notice that their fine garments were becoming loose and their hair and garlands disheveled.
25. While Lord Krsna and Lord Balarama thus played according to Their own sweet will and sang to the
point of apparent intoxication, a servant of Kuvera named Sankhacuda came upon the scene.
26. O King, even as the two Lords looked on, Sankhacuda brazenly began driving the women off
toward the north. The women, who had accepted Krsna and Balarama as their Lords, began to cry out
to Them.
27. Hearing Their devotees crying out “Krsna! Rama!” and seeing that they were just like cows being
stolen by a thief, Krsna and Balarama began to run after the demon.
28. The Lords called out in reply, “Do not fear! “Then They picked up logs of the sala tree and quickly
pursued that lowest of Guhyakas, who swiftly ran away.
29. When Sankhacuda saw the two of Them coming toward him like the personified forces of Time and
Death, he was filled with anxiety. Confused, he abandoned the women and fled for his life.
30. Lord Govinda chased the demon wherever he ran, eager to take his crest jewel. Meanwhile Lord
Balarama stayed with the women to protect them.
31. The mighty Lord overtook Sankhacuda from a great distance as if from nearby, my dear King, and
then with His fist the Lord removed the wicked demon’s head, together with his crest jewel.
32. Having thus killed the demon Sankhacuda and taken away his shining jewel, Lord Krsna gave it to
His elder brother with great satisfaction as the gopis watched.
Chapter Thirty-Five The Gopis Sing of Krsna as He Wanders in the Forest
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Whenever Krsna went to the forest, the minds of the gopis would run after
Him, and thus the young girls sadly spent their days singing of His pastimes.
2-3. The gopis said: When Mukunda vibrates the flute He has placed to His lips, stopping its holes with
His tender fingers, He rests His left cheek on His left arm and makes His eyebrows dance. At that time
the demigoddesses traveling in the sky with their husbands, the Siddhas, become amazed. As those
ladies listen, they are embarrassed to find their minds yielding to the pursuit of lusty desires, and in their
distress they are unaware that the belts of their garments are loosening.
4-5. O girls! This son of Nanda, who gives joy to the distressed, bears steady lightning on His chest and
has a smile like a jeweled necklace. Now please hear something wonderful. When He vibrates His flute,
Vraja’s bulls, deer and cows, standing in groups at a great distance, are all captivated by the sound,
and they stop chewing the food in their mouths and cock their ears. Stunned, they appear as if asleep,
or like figures in a painting.
6-7. My dear gopi, sometimes Mukunda imitates the appearance of a wrestler by decorating Himself
with leaves, peacock feathers and colored minerals. Then, in the company of Balarama and the
cowherd boys, He plays His flute to call the cows. At that time the rivers stop flowing, their water
stunned by the ecstasy they feel as they eagerly wait for the wind to bring them the dust of His lotus
feet. But like us, the rivers are not very pious, and thus they merely wait with their arms trembling out of
love.
8-11. Krsna moves about the forest in the company of His friends, who vividly chant the glories of His
magnificent deeds. He thus appears just like the Supreme Personality of Godhead exhibiting His
inexhaustible opulences. When the cows wander onto the mountainsides and Krsna calls out to them
with the sound of His flute, the trees and creepers in the forest respond by becoming so luxuriant with
fruits and flowers that they seem to be manifesting Lord Visnu within their hearts. As their branches
bend low with the weight, the filaments on their trunks and vines stand erect out of the ecstasy of love of
God, and both the trees and the creepers pour down a rain of sweet sap. Maddened by the divine,
honeylike aroma of the tulasi flowers on the garland Krsna wears, swarms of bees sing loudly for Him,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 521
and that most beautiful of all persons thankfully acknowledges and acclaims their song by taking His
flute to His lips and playing it. The charming flute song then steals away the minds of the cranes, swans
and other lake-dwelling birds. Indeed they approach Krsna, close their eyes and, maintaining strict
silence, worship Him by fixing their consciousness upon Him in deep meditation.
12-13. O goddesses of Vraja, when Krsna is enjoying Himself with Balarama on the mountain slopes,
playfully wearing a flower garland on the top of His head, He engladdens all with the resonant vibrations
of His flute. Thus He delights the entire world. At that time the nearby cloud, afraid of offending a great
personality, thunders very gently in accompaniment. The cloud showers flowers onto his dear friend
Krsna and shades Him from the sun like an umbrella.
14-15. O pious mother Yasoda, your son, who is expert in all the arts of herding cows, has invented
many new styles of flute-playing. When He takes His flute to His bimba-red lips and sends forth the
tones of the harmonic scale in variegated melodies, Brahma, Siva, Indra and other chief demigods
become confused upon hearing the sound. Although they are the most learned authorities, hey cannot
ascertain the essence of that music, and thus they bow down their heads and hearts.
16-17. As Krsna strolls through Vraja with His lotus-petal-like feet, marking the ground with the
distinctive emblems of flag, thunderbolt, lotus and elephant goad, He relieves the distress the ground
feels from the cows’ hooves. As He plays His renowned flute, His body moves with the grace of an
elephant. Thus we gopis, who become agitated by Cupid when Krsna playfully glances at us, stand as
still as trees, unaware that our hair and garments are slackening.
18-19. Now Krsna is standing somewhere counting His cows on a string of gems. He wears a garland
of tulasi flowers that bear the fragrance of His beloved, and He has thrown His arm over the shoulder of
an affectionate cowherd boyfriend. As Krsna plays His flute and sings, the music attracts the black
deer’s wives, who approach that ocean of transcendental qualities and sit down beside Him. Just like us
cowherd girls, they have given up all hope for happiness in family life.
20-21. O sinless Yasoda, your darling child, the son of Maharaja Nanda, has festively enhanced His
attire with a jasmine garland, and He is now playing along the Yamuna in the company of the cows and
cowherd boys, amusing His dear companions. The gentle breeze honors Him with its soothing
fragrance of sandalwood, while the various Upadevas, standing on all sides like panegyrists, offer their
music, singing and gifts of tribute.
22-23. Out of great affection for the cows of Vraja, Krsna became the lifter of Govardhana Hill. At the
end of the day, having rounded up all His own cows, He plays a song on His flute, while exalted
demigods standing along the path worship His lotus feet and the cowherd boys accompanying Him
chant His glories. His garland is powdered by the dust raised by the cows’ hooves, and His beauty,
enhanced by His fatigue, creates an ecstatic festival for everyone’s eyes. Eager to fulfill His friends’
desires, Krsna is the moon arisen from the womb of mother Yasoda.
24-25. As Krsna respectfully greets His well-wishing friends, His eyes roll slightly as if from intoxication.
He wears a flower garland, and the beauty of His soft cheeks is accentuated by the brilliance of His
golden earrings and the whiteness of His face, which has the color of a badara berry. With His cheerful
face resembling the moon, lord of the night, the Lord of the Yadus moves with the grace of u regal
elephant. Thus He returns in the evening, delivering the cows of Vraja from the heat of the day.
26. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, thus during the daytime the women of Vrndavana took
pleasure in continuously singing about the pastimes of Krsna, and those ladies’ minds and hearts,
absorbed in Him, were filled with great festivity.
Chapter Thirty-Six The Slaying of Arista, the Bull Demon
1. Sukadeva Goswami said: The demon Arista then came to the cowherd village. Appearing in the form
of a bull with a large hump, he made the earth tremble as he tore it apart with his hooves.
2. Aristasura bellowed very harshly and pawed the ground. With his tail raised and his eyes glaring, he
began to tear up the embankments with the tips of his horns, every now and then passing a little stool
and urine.
3-4. My dear King, clouds hovered about sharp-horned Aristasura’s hump, mistaking it for a mountain,
and when the cowherd men and ladies caught sight of the demon, they were struck with terror. Indeed,
the strident reverberation of his roar so frightened the pregnant cows and women that they lost their
fetuses in miscarriages.
5. The domestic animals fled the pasture in fear, O King, and all the inhabitants rushed to Lord Govinda
for shelter, crying, “Krsna, Krsna!”
6. When the Supreme Lord saw the cowherd community distraught and fleeing in fear, He calmed them,
saying, “Don’t be afraid.” Then He called out to the bull demon as follows.
7. You fool! What do you think you’re doing, you wicked rascal, frightening the cowherd community and
their animals when I am here just to punish corrupt miscreants like you!
522 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
8. Having spoken these words, the infallible Lord Hari slapped His arms with His palms, further angering
Arista with the loud sound. The Lord then casually threw His mighty, serpentine arm over the shoulder
of a friend and stood facing the demon.
9. Thus provoked, Arista pawed the ground with one of his hooves and then, with the clouds hovering
around his upraised tail, furiously charged Krsna.
10. Pointing the tips of his horns straight ahead and glaring menacingly at Lord Krsna from the corners
of his bloodshot eyes, Arista rushed toward Him at full speed, like a thunderbolt hurled by Indra.
11. The Supreme Lord Krsna seized Aristasura by the horns and threw him back eighteen steps, just as
an elephant might do when fighting a rival elephant.
12. Thus repulsed by the Supreme Lord, the bull demon got up and, breathing hard and sweating all
over his body, again charged Him in a mindless rage.
13. As Arista attacked, Lord Krsna seized him by the horns and knocked him to the ground with His
foot. The Lord then thrashed him as if he were a wet cloth, and finally He yanked out one of the
demon’s horns and struck him with it until he lay prostrate.
14. Vomiting blood and profusely excreting stool and urine, kicking his legs and rolling his eyes about,
Aristasura thus went painfully to the abode of Death. The demigods honored Lord Krsna by scattering
flowers upon Him.
15. Having thus killed the bull demon Arista, He who is a festival for the gopis’ eyes entered the
cowherd village with Balarama.
16. After Aristasura had been killed by Krsna, who acts wonderfully, Narada Muni went to speak to King
Kamsa. That powerful sage of godly vision addressed the King as follows.
17. [Narada told Kamsa:] Yasoda’s child was actually a daughter, and Krsna is the son of Devaki. Also,
Rama is the son of Rohini. Out of fear, Vasudeva entrusted Krsna and Balarama to his friend Nanda
Maharaja, and it is these two boys who have killed your men.
18. Upon hearing this, the master of the Bhojas became furious and lost control of his senses. He
picked up a sharp sword to kill Vasudeva.
19. But Narada restrained Kamsa by reminding him that it was the two sons of Vasudeva who would
cause his death. Kamsa then had Vasudeva and his wife shackled in iron chains.
20. After Narada left, King Kamsa summoned Kesi and ordered him, “Go kill Rama and Krsna.”
21. The King of the Bhojas next called for his ministers, headed by Mustika, Canura, Sala and Tosala,
and also for his elephant-keepers. The King addressed them as follows.
22-23. My dear heroic Canura and Mustika, please hear this. Rama and Krsna, the sons of
Anakadundubhi [Vasudeva], are living in Nanda’s cowherd village. It has been predicted that these two
boys will be the cause of my death. When They are brought here, kill Them on the pretext of engaging
Them in a wrestling match.
24. Erect a wrestling ring with many surrounding viewing stands, and bring all the residents of the city
and the outlying districts to see the open competition.
25. You, elephant-keeper, my good man, should position the elephant Kuvalayapida at the entrance to
the wrestling arena and have him kill my two enemies.
26. Commence the bow sacrifice on the Caturdasi day in accordance with the relevant Vedic
injunctions. In ritual slaughter offer the appropriate kinds of animals to the magnanimous Lord Siva.
27. Having thus commanded his ministers, Kamsa next called for Akrura, the most eminent of the
Yadus. Kamsa knew the art of securing personal advantage, and thus he took Akrura’s hand in his own
and spoke to him as follows.
28. My dear Akrura, most charitable one, please do me a friendly favor out of respect. Among the
Bhojas and Vrsnis, there is no one else as kind to us as you.
29. Gentle Akrura, you always carry out your duties soberly, and therefore I am depending on you, just
as powerful Indra took shelter of Lord Visnu to achieve his goals.
30. Please go to Nanda’s village, where the two sons of Anakadundubhi are living, and without delay
bring Them here on this chariot.
31. The demigods, who are under the protection of Visnu, have sent these two boys as my death. Bring
Them here, and also have Nanda and the other cowherd men come with gifts of tribute.
32. After you bring Krsna and Balarama, I will have Them killed by my elephant, who is as powerful as
death itself. And if by chance They escape from him, I will have Them killed by my wrestlers, who are as
strong as lightning.
33. When these two have been killed, I will kill Vasudeva and all Their lamenting relatives—the Vrsnis,
Bhojas and Dasarhas.
34. I will also kill my old father, Ugrasena, who is greedy for my kingdom, and I will kill his brother
Devaka and all my other enemies as well.
35. Then, my friend, this earth will be free of thorns.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 523
36. My elder relative Jarasandha and my dear friend Dvivida are solid well-wishers of mine, as are
Sambara, Naraka and Bana. I will use them all to kill off those kings who are allied with the demigods,
and then I will rule the earth.
37. Now that you understand my intentions, please go at once and bring Krsna and Balarama to watch
the bow sacrifice and see the opulence of the Yadus’ capital.
38. Sri Akrura said: O King, you have expertly devised a process to free yourself of misfortune. Still, one
should be equal in success and failure, since it is certainly destiny that produces the results of one’s
work.
39. An ordinary person is determined lo act on his desires even when fate prevents their fulfillment.
Therefore he encounters both happiness and distress. Yet even though such is the case, I will execute
your order.
40. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus instructed Akrura, King Kamsa dismissed his ministers and
retired to his quarters, and Akrura returned home.
Chapter Thirty-Seven The Killing of the Demons Kesi and Vyoma
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The demon Kesi, sent by Kamsa, appeared in Vraja as a great horse.
Running with the speed of the mind, he tore up the earth with his hooves. The hairs of his mane
scattered the clouds and the demigods’ airplanes throughout the sky, and he terrified everyone present
with his loud neighing. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead saw how the demon was frightening
His village of Gokula by neighing terribly and shaking the clouds with his tail, the Lord came forward to
meet him. Kesi was searching for Krsna to fight, so when the Lord stood before him and challenged him
to approach, the horse responded by roaring like a lion.
3. Seeing the Lord standing before him, Kesi ran toward Him in extreme rage, his mouth gaping as if to
swallow up the sky. Rushing with furious speed, the unconquerable and unapproachable horse demon
tried to strike the lotus-eyed Lord with his two front legs.
4. But the transcendental Lord dodged Kesi’s blow and then with His arms angrily seized the demon by
the legs, whirled him around in the air and contemptuously threw him the distance of one hundred bow-
lengths, just as Garuda might throw a snake. Lord Krsna then stood there.
5. Upon regaining consciousness Kesi angrily got up, opened his mouth wide and again rushed to
attack Lord Krsna. But the Lord just smiled and thrust His left arm into the horse’s mouth as easily as
one would make a snake enter a hole in the ground.
6. Kesi’s teeth immediately fell out when they touched the Supreme Lord’s arm, which to the demon felt
as hot as molten iron. Within Kesi’s body the Supreme Personality’s arm then expanded greatly, like a
diseased stomach swelling because of neglect.
7. As Lord Krsna’s expanding arm completely blocked Kesi’s breathing, his legs kicked convulsively, his
body became covered with sweat, and his eyes rolled around. The demon then passed stool and fell on
the ground, dead.
8. The mighty-armed Krsna withdrew His arm from Kesi’s body, which now appeared like a long
karkatika fruit. Without the least display of pride at having so effortlessly killed His enemy, the Lord
accepted the demigods’ worship in the form of flowers rained down from above.
9. My dear King, thereafter Lord Krsna was approached in a solitary place by the great sage among the
demigods, Narada Muni. That most exalted devotee spoke as follows to the Lord, who effortlessly
performs His pastimes.
10-11. [Narada Muni said:] O Krsna, Krsna, unlimited Lord, source of all mystic power, Lord of the
universe! O Vasudeva, shelter of all beings and best of the Yadus! O master, You are the Supreme
Soul of all created beings, sitting unseen within the cave of the heart like the fire dormant within kindling
wood. You are the witness within everyone, the Supreme Personality and the ultimate controlling Deity.
12. You are the shelter of all souls, and being the supreme controller, You fulfill Your desires simply by
Your will. By Your personal creative potency You manifested in the beginning the primal modes of
material nature, and through their agency You create, maintain and then destroy this universe.
13. You, that very same creator, have now descended on the earth to annihilate the Daitya, Pramatha
and Raksasa demons who are posing as kings, and also to protect the godly.
14. The horse demon was so terrifying that his neighing frightened the demigods into leaving their
heavenly kingdom. But by our good fortune You have enjoyed the sport of killing him.
15-20. In just two days, O almighty Lord, I will see the deaths of Canura, Mustika and other wrestlers,
along with those of the elephant Kuvalayapida and King Kamsa—all by Your hand. Then I will see You
kill Kalayavana, Mura, Naraka and the conch demon, and I will also see You steal the parijata flower
and defeat Indra. I will then see You marry many daughters of heroic kings after paying for them with
Your valor. Then, O Lord of the universe, in Dvaraka You will deliver King Nrga from a curse and take
for Yourself the Syamantaka jewel, together with another wife. You will bring back a brahmana’s dead
son from the abode of Your servant Yamaraja, and thereafter You will kill Paundraka, burn down the city
524 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
of Kasi and annihilate Dantavakra and the King of Cedi during the great Rajasuya sacrifice. I shall see
all these heroic pastimes, along with many others You will perform during Your residence in Dvaraka.
These pastimes are glorified on this earth in the songs of transcendental poets.
21. Subsequently I will see You appear as time personified, serving as Arjuna’s chariot driver and
destroying entire armies of soldiers to rid the earth of her burden.
22. Let us approach You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, for shelter. You are full of perfectly pure
spiritual awareness and are always situated in Your original identity. Since Your will is never thwarted,
You have already achieved all possible desirable things, and by the power of Your spiritual energy You
remain eternally aloof from the flow of the qualities of illusion.
23. I bow down to You, the supreme controller, who are dependent only on Yourself. By Your potency
You have constructed the unlimited particular arrangements of this universe. Now you have appeared
as the greatest hero among the Yadus, Vrsnis and Satvatas and have chosen to participate in human
warfare.
24. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus addressed Lord Krsna, the chief of the Yadu dynasty, Narada
bowed down and offered Him obeisances. Then that great sage and most eminent devotee took his
leave from the Lord and went away, feeling great joy at having directly seen Him.
25. After killing the demon Kesi in battle, the Supreme Personality of Godhead continued to tend the
cows and other animals in the company of His joyful cowherd boyfriends. Thus He brought happiness to
all the residents of Vrndavana.
26. One day the cowherd boys, while grazing their animals on the mountain slopes, played the game of
stealing and hiding, acting out the roles of rival thieves and herders.
27. In that game, O King, some acted as thieves, others as shepherds and others as sheep. They
played their game happily, without fear of danger.
28. A powerful magician named Vyoma, son of the demon Maya, then appeared on the scene in the
guise of a cowherd boy. Pretending to join the game as a thief, he proceeded to steal most of the
cowherd boys who were acting as sheep.
29. Gradually the great demon abducted more and more of the cowherd boys and cast them into a
mountain cave, which he sealed shut with a boulder. Finally only four or five boys acting as sheep
remained in the game.
30. Lord Krsna, who shelters all saintly devotees, understood perfectly well what Vyomasura was doing.
Just as a lion grabs a wolf, Krsna forcefully seized the demon as he was taking away more cowherd
boys.
31. The demon changed into his original form, as big and powerful as a great mountain. But try as he
might to free himself, he could not do so, having lost his strength from being held in the Lord’s tight grip.
32. Lord Acyuta clutched Vyomasura between His arms and threw him to the ground. Then, while the
demigods in heaven looked on, Krsna killed him in the same way that one kills a sacrificial animal.
33. Krsna then smashed the boulder blocking the cave’s entrance and led the trapped cowherd boys to
safety. Thereafter, as the demigods and cowherd boys sang His glories, He returned to His cowherd
village, Gokula.
Chapter Thirty-Eight Akrura’s Arrival in Vrndavana
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After passing the night in the city of Mathura, the high-minded Akrura
mounted his chariot and set off for the cowherd village of Nanda Maharaja.
2. As he traveled on the road, the great soul Akrura felt tremendous devotion for the lotus-eyed
Personality of Godhead, and thus he began to consider as follows.
3. [Sri Akrura thought:] What pious deeds have I done, what severe austerities undergone, what
worship performed or charity given so that today I will see Lord Kesava?
4. Since I am a materialistic person absorbed simply in sense gratification, I think it is as difficult for me
to have gotten this opportunity to see Lord Uttamahsloka as it would be for one born a sudra to be
allowed to recite the Vedic mantras.
5. But enough of such thoughts! After all, even a fallen soul like me can have the chance to behold the
infallible Supreme Lord, for one of the conditioned souls being swept along in the river of time may
sometimes reach the shore.
6. Today all my sinful reactions have been eradicated and my birth has become worthwhile, since I will
offer my obeisances to the Supreme Lord’s lotus feet, which mystic yogis meditate upon.
7. Indeed, today King Kamsa has shown me extreme mercy by sending me to see the lotus feet of Lord
Hari, who has now appeared in this world. Simply by the effulgence of His toenails, many souls in the
past have transcended the insurmountable darkness of material existence and achieved liberation.
8. Those lotus feet are worshiped by Brahma, Siva and all the other demigods, by the goddess of
fortune, and also by the great sages and Vaisnavas. Upon those lotus feet the Lord walks about the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 525
forest while herding the cows with His companions, and those feet are smeared with the kunkuma from
the gopis’ breasts.
9. Surely I shall see the face of Lord Mukunda, since the deer are now walking past me on my right.
That face, framed by His curly hair, is beautified by His attractive cheeks and nose, His smiling glances
and His reddish lotus eyes.
10. I am going to see the Supreme Lord Visnu, the reservoir of all beauty, who by His own sweet will
has now assumed a humanlike form to relieve the earth of her burden. Thus there is no denying that my
eyes will achieve the perfection of their existence.
11. He is the witness of material cause and effect, yet He is always free from false identification with
them. By His internal potency He dispels the darkness of separation and confusion. The individual souls
in this world, who are manifested here when He glances upon His material creative energy, indirectly
perceive Him in the activities of their life airs, senses and intelligence.
12. All sins are destroyed and all good fortune created by the Supreme Lord’s qualities, activities and
appearances, and words that describe these three things animate, beautify and purify the world. On the
other hand, words bereft of His glories are like the decorations on a corpse.
13. That same Supreme Lord has descended into the dynasty of the Satvatas to delight the exalted
demigods, who maintain the principles of religion He has created. Residing in Vrndavana, He spreads
His fame, which the demigods glorify in song and which brings auspiciousness to all.
14. Today I shall certainly see Him, the goal and spiritual master of the great souls. Seeing Him brings
jubilation to all who have eyes, for He is the true beauty of the universe. Indeed, His personal form is
the shelter desired by the goddess of fortune. Now all the dawns of my life have become auspicious.
15. Then I will at once alight from my chariot and bow down to the lotus feet of Krsna and Balarama, the
Supreme Personalities of Godhead. Theirs are the same feet that great mystic yogis striving for self-
realization bear within their minds. I will also offer my obeisances to the Lords’ cowherd boyfriends and
to all the other residents of Vrndavana.
16. And when I have fallen at His feet, the almighty Lord will place His lotus hand upon my head. For
those who seek shelter in Him because they are greatly disturbed by the powerful serpent of time, that
hand removes all fear.
17. By offering charity to that lotus hand, Purandara and Bali earned the status of Indra, King of heaven,
and during the pleasure pastimes of the rasa dance, when the Lord wiped away the gopis’ perspiration
and removed their fatigue, the touch of their faces made that hand as fragrant as a sweet flower.
18. The infallible Lord will not consider me an enemy,, even though Kamsa has sent me here as his
messenger. After all, the omniscient Lord is the actual knower of the field of this material body, and with
His perfect vision He witnesses, both externally and internally, all the endeavors of the conditioned
soul’s heart.
19. Thus He will cast His smiling, affectionate glance upon me as I remain fixed with joined palms, fallen
in obeisances at His feet. Then all my contamination will at once be dispelled, and I will give up all
doubts and feel the most intense bliss.
20. Recognizing me as an intimate friend and relative, Krsna will embrace me with His mighty arms,
instantly sanctifying my body and diminishing to nil all my material bondage, which is due to fruitive
activities.
21. Having been embraced by the all-famous Lord Krsna, I will humbly stand before Him with bowed
head and joined palms, and He will address me, “My dear Akrura.” At that very moment my life’s
purpose will be fulfilled. Indeed, the life of anyone whom the Supreme Personality fails to recognize is
simply pitiable.
22. The Supreme Lord has no favorite and no dearmost friend, nor does He consider anyone
undesirable, despicable or fit to be neglected. All the same, He lovingly reciprocates with His devotees
in whatever manner they worship Him, just as the trees of heaven fulfill the desires of whoever
approaches them.
23. And then Lord Krsna’s elder brother, the foremost of the Yadus, will grasp my joined hands while I
am still standing with my head bowed, and after embracing me He will take me to His house. There He
will honor me with all items of ritual welcome and inquire from me about how Kamsa has been treating
His family members.
24. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: My dear King, while the son of Svaphalka, traveling on the road,
thus meditated deeply on Sri Krsna, he reached Gokula as the sun was beginning to set.
25. In the cowherd pasture Akrura saw the footprints of those feet whose pure dust the rulers of all the
planets in the universe hold on their crowns. Those footprints of the Lord, distinguished by such marks
as the lotus, barleycorn and elephant goad, made the ground wonderfully beautiful.
526 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
26. Increasingly agitated by ecstasy at seeing the Lord’s footprints, his bodily hairs standing on end
because of his pure love, and his eyes filled with tears, Akrura jumped down from his chariot and began
rolling about among those footprints, exclaiming, “Ah, this is the dust from my master’s feet!”
27. The very goal of life for all embodied beings is this ecstasy, which Akrura experienced when, upon
receiving Kamsa’s order, he put aside all pride, fear and lamentation and absorbed himself in seeing,
hearing and describing the things that reminded him of Lord Krsna.
28-33. Akrura then saw Krsna and Balarama in the village of Vraja, going to milk the cows. Krsna wore
yellow garments, Balarama blue, and Their eyes resembled autumnal lotuses. One of those two mighty-
armed youths, the shelters of the goddess of fortune, had a dark-blue complexion, and the other’s was
white. With Their fine-featured faces They were the most beautiful of all persons. As They walked with
the gait of young elephants, glancing about with compassionate smiles, Those two exalted personalities
beautified the cow pasture with the impressions of Their feet, which bore the marks of the flag, lightning
bolt, elephant goad and lotus. The two Lords, whose pastimes are most magnanimous and attractive,
were ornamented with jeweled necklaces and flower garlands, anointed with auspicious, fragrant
substances, freshly bathed, and dressed in spotless raiment. They were the primeval Supreme
Personalities, the masters and original causes of the universes, who had for the welfare of the earth
now descended in Their distinct forms of Kesava and Balarama. O King Pariksit, They resembled two
gold-bedecked mountains, one of emerald and the other of silver, as with Their effulgence They
dispelled the sky’s darkness in all directions.
34. Akrura, overwhelmed with affection, quickly jumped down from his chariot and fell at the feet of
Krsna and Balarama like a rod.
35. The joy of seeing the Supreme Lord flooded Akrura’s eyes with tears and decorated his limbs with
eruptions of ecstasy. He felt such eagerness that he could not speak to present himself, O King.
36. Recognizing Akrura, Lord Krsna drew him close with His hand, which bears the sign of the chariot
wheel, and then embraced him. Krsna felt pleased, for He is always benignly disposed toward His
surrendered devotees.
37-38. As Akrura stood with his head bowed, Lord Sankarsana [BaIarama] grasped his joined hands,
and then Balaräma took him to His house in the company of Lord Krsna. After inquiring from Akrura
whether his trip had been comfortable, Balarama offered him a first-class seat, bathed his feet in
accordance with the injunctions of scripture and respectfuly served him milk with honey.
39. The almighty Lord Balarama presented Akrura with the gift of a cow, massaged his feet to relieve
him of fatigue and then with great respect and faith fed him suitably prepared food of various fine tastes.
40. When Akrura had eaten to his satisfaction, Lord Balarama, the supreme knower of religious duties,
offered him aromatic herbs for sweetening his mouth, along with fragrances and flower garlands. Thus
Akrura once again enjoyed the highest pleasure.
41. Nanda Maharaja asked Akrura: O descendant of Dasarha, how are all of you maintaining
yourselves while that merciless Kamsa remains alive? You are just like sheep under the care of a
butcher.
42. That cruel, self-serving Kamsa murdered the infants of his own sister in her presence, even as she
cried in anguish. So why should we even ask about the well-being of you, his subjects?
43. Honored by Nanda Maharaja with these true and pleasing words of inquiry, Akrura forgot the fatigue
of his journey.
Chapter Thirty-Nine Akrura’s Vision
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having been honored so much by Lord Balarama and Lord Krsna, Akrura,
seated comfortably on a couch, felt that all the desires he had contemplated on the road were now
fulfilled.
2. My dear King, what is unattainable for one who has satisfied the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
the shelter of the goddess of fortune? Even so, those who are dedicated to His devotional service never
want anything from Him.
3. After the evening meal, Lord Krsna, the son of Devaké, asked Akrura how Kamsa was treating their
dear relatives and friends and what the King was planning to do.
4. The Supreme Lord said: My dear, gentle Uncle Akrura, was your trip here comfortable? May all good
fortune be yours. Are our well-wishing friends and our relatives, both close and distant, happy and in
good health?
5. But, my dear Akrura, as long as King Kamsa—that disease of our family who goes by the name
“maternal uncle”—is still prospering, why should I even bother to ask about the well-being of our family
members and his other subjects?
6. Just see how much suffering I have caused My offenseless parents! Because of Me their sons were
killed and they themselves imprisoned.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 527
7. By good fortune We have today fulfilled Our desire to see you, Our dear relative. O gentle uncle,
please tell Us why you have come.
8. Sukadeva Gosvami said: In response to the Supreme Lord’s request, Akrura, the descendant of
Madhu, described the whole situation, including King Kamsa’s enmity toward the Yadus and his attempt
to murder Vasudeva.
9. Akrura relayed the message he had been sent to deliver. He also described Kamsa’s real intentions
and how Narada had informed Kamsa that Krsna had been born as the son of Vasudeva.
10. Lord Krsna and Lord Balarama, the vanquisher of heroic opponents, laughed when They heard
Akrura’s words. The Lords then informed Their father, Nanda Maharaja, of King Kamsa’s orders.
11-12. Nanda Maharaja then issued orders to the cowherd men by having the village constable make
the following announcement throughout Nanda’s domain of Vraja: “Go collect all the available milk
products. Bring valuable gifts and yoke your wagons. Tomorrow we shall go to Mathura, present our
milk products to the King and see a very great festival. The residents of all the outlying districts are also
going.”
13. When the young gopis heard that Akrüra had come to Vraja to take Krsna and Balarama to the city,
they became extremely distressed.
14. Some gopis felt so pained at heart that their faces turned pale from their heavy breathing. Others
were so anguished that their dresses, bracelets and braids became loose.
15. Other gopis entirely stopped their sensory activities and became fixed in meditation on Krsna. They
lost all awareness of the external world, just like those who attain the platform of self-realization.
16. And still other young women fainted simply by remembering the words of Lord Sauri [Krsna]. These
words, decorated with wonderful phrases and expressed with affectionate smiles, would deeply touch
the young girls’ hearts.
17-18. The gopis were frightened at the prospect of even the briefest separation from Lord Mukunda, so
now, as they remembered His graceful gait, His pastimes, His affectionate, smiling glances, His heroic
deeds and His joking words, which would relieve their distress, they were beside themselves with
anxiety at the thought of the great separation about to come. They gathered in groups and spoke to one
another, their faces covered with tears and their minds fully absorbed in Acyuta.
19. The gopis said: O Providence, you have no mercy! You bring embodied creatures together in
friendship and love and then senselessly separate them before they fulfill their desires. This whimsical
play of yours is like a child’s game.
20. Having shown us Mukunda’s face, framed by dark locks and beautified by His fine cheeks, raised
nose and gentle smiles, which eradicate all misery, you are now making that face invisible. This
behavior of yours is not at all good.
21. O Providence, though you come here with the name Akrura, you are indeed cruel, for like a fool you
are taking away what you once gave us—those eyes with which we have seen, even in one feature of
Lord Madhudvisa’s form, the perfection of your entire creation.
22. Alas, Nanda’s son, who breaks loving friendships in a second, will not even look directly at us.
Forcibly brought under His control, we abandoned our homes, relatives, children and husbands just to
serve Him, but He is always looking for new lovers.
23. The dawn following this night will certainly be auspicious for the women of Mathura. All their hopes
will now be fulfilled, for as the Lord of Vraja enters their city, they will be able to drink from His face the
nectar of the smile emanating from the corners of His eyes.
24. O gopis, although our Mukunda is intelligent and very obedient to His parents, once He has fallen
under the spell of the honey-sweet words of the women of Mathura and been enchanted by their
alluring, shy smiles, how will He ever return to us unsophisticated village girls?
25. When the Dasarhas, Bhojas, Andhakas, Vrsnis and Satvatas see the son of Devaki in Mathura, they
will certainly enjoy a great festival for their eyes, as will all those who see Him traveling along the road
to the city. After all, He is the darling of the goddess of fortune and the reservoir of all transcendental
qualities.
26. He who is doing this merciless deed should not be called Akrura. He is so extremely cruel that
without even trying to console the sorrowful residents of Vraja, he is taking away Krsna, who is more
dear to us than life itself.
27. Hard-hearted Krsna has already mounted the chariot, and now the foolish cowherds are hurrying
after Him in their bullock carts. Even the elders are saying nothing to stop Him. Today fate is working
against us.
28. Let us directly approach Madhava and stop Him from going. What can our family elders and other
relatives do to us? Now that fate is separating us from Mukunda, our hearts are already wretched, for
we cannot bear to give up His association even for a fraction of a second.
528 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
29. When He brought us to the assembly of the rasa dance, where we enjoyed His affectionate and
charming smiles, His delightful secret talks, His playful glances and His embraces, we passed many
nights as if they were a single moment. O gopis, how can we possibly cross over the insurmountable
darkness of His absence?
30. How can we exist without Ananta’s friend Krsna, who in the evening would return to Vraja in the
company of the cowherd boys, His hair and garland powdered with the dust raised by the cows’
hooves? As He played His flute, He would captivate our minds with His smiling sidelong glances.
31. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After speaking these words, the ladies of Vraja, who were so attached to
Krsna, felt extremely agitated by their imminent separation from Him. They forgot all shame and loudly
cried out, “O Govinda! O Damodara! O Madhava!”
32. But even as the gopés cried out in this way, Akrura, having at sunrise performed His morning
worship and other duties, began to drive the chariot.
33. Led by Nanda Maharaja, the cowherd men followed behind Lord Krsna in their wagons. The men
brought along many offerings for the King, including clay pots filled with ghee and other milk products.
34. [With His glances] Lord Krsna somewhat pacified the gopis, and they also followed behind for some
time. Then, hoping He would give them some instruction, they stood still.
35. As He departed, that best of the Yadus saw how the gopis, were lamenting, and thus He consoled
them by sending a messenger with this loving promise: “I will return.”
36. Sending their minds aher Krsna, the gopis stood as motionless as figures in a painting. They
remained there as long as the flag atop the chariot was visible, and even until they could no longer see
the dust raised by the chariot wheels.
37. The gopis then turned back, without hope that Govinda would ever return to them. Full of sorrow,
they began to spend their days and nights chanting about the pastimes of their beloved.
38. My dear King, the Supreme Lord Krsna, traveling as swiftly as the wind in that chariot with Lord
Balarama and Akrura, arrived at the river Kalindi, which destroys all sins.
39. The river’s sweet water was more effulgent than brilliant jewels. After Lord Krsna had touched it for
purification, He drank some from His hand. Then He had the chariot moved near a grove of trees and
climbed back on, along with Balarama.
40. Akrura asked the two Lords to take Their seats on the chariot. Then, taking Their permission, he
went to a pool in the Yamuna and took his bath as enjoined in the scriptures.
41. While immersing himself in the water and reciting eternal mantras from the Vedas, Akrura suddenly
saw Balarama and Krsna before him.
42-43. Akrura thought, “How can the two sons of Anakadundubhi, who are sitting in the chariot, be
standing here in the water? They must have left the chariot.” But when he came out of the river, there
They were on the chariot, just as before. Asking himself “Was the vision I had of Them in the water an
illusion?” Akrura reentered the pool.
44-45. There Akrura now saw Ananta Sesa, the Lord of the serpents, receiving praise from Siddhas,
Caranas, Gandharvas and demons, who all had their heads bowed. The Personality of Godhead whom
Akrura saw had thousands of heads, thousands of hoods and thousands of helmets. His blue garment
and His fair complexion, as white as the filaments of a lotus stem, made Him appear like white Kailasa
Mountain with its many peaks.
46-48. Akrura then saw the Supreme Personality of Godhead lying peacefully on the lap of Lord Ananta
Sesa. The complexion of that Supreme Person was like a dark-blue cloud. He wore yellow garments
and had four arms and reddish lotus-petal eyes. His face looked attractive and cheerful with its smiling,
endearing glance and lovely eyebrows, its raised nose and finely formed ears, and its beautiful cheeks
and reddish lips. The Lord’s broad shoulders and expansive chest were beautiful, and His arms long
and stout. His neck resembled a conchshell, His navel was deep, and His abdomen bore lines like
those on a banyan leaf.
49-50. He had large loins and hips, thighs like an elephant’s trunk, and shapely knees and shanks. His
raised ankles reflected the brilliant effulgence emanating from the nails on His petallike toes, which
beautified His lotus feet.
51-52. Adorned with a helmet, bracelets and armlets, which were all bedecked with many priceless
jewels, and also with a belt, a sacred thread, necklaces, ankle bells and earrings, the Lord shone with
dazzling effulgence. In one hand He held a lotus flower, in the others a conchshell, discus and club.
Gracing His chest were the Srivatsa mark, the brilliant Kaustubha gem and a flower garland.
53-55. Encircling the Lord and worshiping Him were Nanda, Sunanda and His other personal
attendants; Sanaka and the other Kumaras; Brahma, Rudra and other chief demigods; the nine chief
brahmanas; and the best of the saintly devotees, headed by Prahlada, Narada and Uparicara Vasu.
Each of these great personalities was worshiping the Lord by chanting sanctified words of praise in his
own unique mood. Also in attendance were the Lord’s principal internal potencies—Sri, Pusti, Gur,
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 529
Kanti, Kirti, Tusti, Ila and Urja—as were His material potencies Vidya, Avidya and Maya, and His
internal pleasure potency, Sakti.
56-57. As the great devotee Akrura beheld all this, he became extremely pleased and felt enthused with
transcendental devotion. His intense ecstasy caused His bodily hairs to stand on end and tears to flow
from his eyes, drenching his entire body. Somehow managing to steady himself, Akrura bowed his head
to the ground. Then he joined his palms in supplication and, in a voice choked with emotion, very slowly
and attentively began to pray.
Chapter Forty The Prayers of Akrura
1. Sri Akrura said: I bow down to You, the cause of all causes, the original and inexhaustible Supreme
Person, Narayana. From the whorl of the lotus born from Your navel, Brahma appeared, and by his
agency this universe has come into being.
2. Earth; water; fire; air; ether and its source, false ego; the mahat-tattva, the total material nature and
her source, the Supreme Lord’s purusa expansion; the mind; the senses; the sense objects; and the
senses’ presiding deities—all these causes of the cosmic manifestation are born from Your
transcendental body.
3. The total material nature and these other elements of creation certainly cannot know You as You are,
for they are manifested in the realm of dull matter. Since You are beyond the modes of nature, even
Lord Brahma, who is bound up in these modes, does not know Your true identity.
4. Pure yogis worship You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, by conceiving of You in the threefold
form comprising the living entities, the material elements that constitute the living entities’ bodies, and
the controlling deities of those elements.
5. Brahmanas who follow the regulations concerning the three sacred fires worship You by chanting
mantras from the three Vedas and performing elaborate fire sacrifices for the various demigods, who
have many forms and names.
6. In pursuit of spiritual knowledge, some persons renounce all material activities and, having thus
become peaceful, perform the sacrifice of philosophic investigation to worship You, the original form of
all knowledge.
7. And yet others—those whose intelligence is pure—follow the injunctions of Vaisnava scriptures
promulgated by You. Absorbing their minds in thought of You, they worship You as the one Supreme
Lord manifesting in multiple forms.
8. There are still others, who worship You, the Supreme Lord, in the form of Lord Siva. They follow the
path described by him and interpreted in various ways by many teachers.
9. But all these people, my Lord, even those who have turned their attention away from You and are
worshiping other deities, are actually worshiping You alone, O embodiment of all the demigods.
10. As rivers born from the mountains and filled by the rain flow from all sides into the sea, so do all
these paths in the end reach You, O master.
11. Goodness, passion and ignorance, the qualities of Your material nature, entangle all conditioned
living beings, from Brahma down to the nonmoving creatures.
12. I offer My obeisances to You, who as the Supreme Soul of all beings witness everyone’s
consciousness with unbiased vision. The current of Your material modes, produced by the force of
ignorance, flows strongly among the living beings who assume identities as demigods, humans and
animals.
13-14. Fire is said to be Your face, the earth Your feet, the sun Your eye, and the sky Your navel. The
directions are Your sense of hearing, the chief demigods Your arms, and the oceans Your abdomen.
Heaven is thought to be Your head, and the wind Your vital air and physical strength. The trees and
plants are the hairs on Your body, the clouds the hair on Your head, and the mountains the bones and
nails of You, the Supreme. The passage of day and night is the blinking of Your eyes, the progenitor of
mankind Your genitals, and the rain Your semen.
15. All the worlds, with their presiding demigods and teeming populations, originate in You, the
inexhaustible Supreme Personality of Godhead. These worlds travel within You, the basis of the mind
and senses, just as aquatics swim in the sea or tiny insects burrow within an udumbara fruit.
16. To enjoy Your pastimes You manifest Yourself in various forms in this material world, and these
incarnations cleanse away all the unhappiness of those who joyfully chant Your glories.
17-18. I offer my obeisances to You, the cause of the creation, Lord Matsya, who swam about in the
ocean of dissolution, to Lord Hayagriva, the killer of Madhu and Kaitabha, to the immense tortoise [Lord
Kurma], who supported Mandara Mountain, and to the boar incarnation [Lord Varaha], who enjoyed
lifting the earth.
19. Obeisances to You, the amazing lion [Lord Nrsimha], who remove Your saintly devotees’ fear, and
to the dwarf Vamana, who stepped over the three worlds.
530 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
20. Obeisances to You, Lord of the Bhrgus, who cut down the forest of the conceited royal order, and to
Lord Rama, the best of the Raghu dynasty, who put an end to the demon Ravana.
21. Obeisances to You, Lord of the Satvatas, and to Your forms of Vasudeva, Sankarsana, Pradyumna
and Aniruddha.
22. Obeisances to Your form as the faultless Lord Buddha, who will bewilder the Daityas and Danavas,
and to Lord Kalki, the annihilator of the meat-eaters posing as kings.
23. O Supreme Lord, the living entities in this world are bewildered by Your illusory energy. Becoming
involved in the false concepts of “I” and “my,” they are forced to wander along the paths of fruitive work.
24. I too am deluded in this way, O almighty Lord, foolishly thinking my body, children, home, wife,
money and followers to be real, though they are actually as unreal as a dream.
25. Thus mistaking the temporary for the eternal, my body for my self, and sources of misery for
sources of happiness, I have tried to take pleasure in material dualities. Covered in this way by
ignorance, I could not recognize You as the real object of my love.
26. Just as a fool overlooks a body of water covered by the vegetation growing in it and chases a
mirage, so I have turned away from You.
27. My intelligence is so crippled that I cannot find the strength to curb my mind, which is disturbed by
material desires and activities and constantly dragged here and there by my obstinate senses.
28. Being thus fallen, I am approaching Your feet for shelter, O Lord, because although the impure can
never attain Your feet, I think it is nevertheless possible by Your mercy. Only when one’s material life
has ceased, O lotus-naveled Lord, can one develop consciousness of You by serving Your pure
devotees.
29. Obeisances to the Supreme Absolute Truth, the possessor of unlimited energies. He is the
embodiment of pure, transcendental knowledge, the source of all kinds of awareness, and the
predominator of the forces of nature that rule over the living being.
30. O son of Vasudeva, obeisances to You, within whom all living beings reside. O Lord of the mind and
senses, again I offer You my obeisances. O master, please protect me, who am surrendered unto You.
Chapter Forty-One Krsna and Balarama Enter Mathura
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: While Akrura was still offering prayers, the Supreme Lord Krsna withdrew
His form that He had revealed in the water, just as an actor winds up his performance.
2. When Akrura saw the vision disappear, he came out of the water and quickly finished his various
ritual duties. He then returned to the chariot, astonished.
3. Lord Krsna asked Akrura: Have you seen something wonderful on the earth, in the sky or in the
water? From your appearance, We think you have.
4. Sri Akrura said: Whatever wonderful things the earth, sky or water contain, all exist in You. Since You
encompass everything, when I am seeing You, what have I not seen?
5. And now that I am seeing You, O Supreme Absolute Truth, in whom reside all amazing things on the
earth, in the sky and in the water, what amazing things could I see in this world?
6. With these words, Akrura, the son of Gandini, began driving the chariot onward. At the end of the day
he arrived in Mathura with Lord Balarama and Lord Krsna.
7. Wherever they passed along the road, O King, the village people came forward and looked upon the
two sons of Vasudeva with great pleasure. In fact, the villagers could not withdraw their eyes from
Them.
8. Nanda Maharaja and the other residents of Vrndavana, having reached Mathura ahead of the
chariot, had stopped at a garden on the outskirts of the city to wait for Krsna and Balarama.
9. After joining Nanda and the others, the Supreme Lord Krsna, the controller of the universe, took
humble Akrura’s hand in His own and, smiling, spoke as follows.
10. [Lord Krsna said:] Take the chariot and enter the city ahead of us. Then go home. After resting here
a while, we will go to see the city.
11. Sri Akrura said: O master, without the two of You I shall not enter Mathura. I am Your devotee, O
Lord, so it is not fair for You to abandon me, since You are always affectionate to Your devotees.
12. Come, let us go to my house with Your elder brother, the cowherd men and Your companions. O
best of friends, O transcendental Lord, in this way please grace my house with its master.
13. I am simply an ordinary householder attached to ritual sacrifices, so please purify my home with the
dust of Your lotus feet. By that act of purification, my forefathers, the sacrificial fires and the demigods
will all become satisfied.
14. By bathing Your feet, the exalted Bali Maharaja attained not only glorious fame and unequaled
power but also the final destination of pure devotees.
15. The water of the river Ganges has purified the three worlds, having become transcendental by
bathing Your feet. Lord Siva accepted that water on his head, and by that water’s grace the sons of
King Sagara attained to heaven.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 531
16. O Lord of lords, master of the universe, O You whose glories it is most pious to hear and chant! O
best of the Yadus, O You whose fame is recounted in excellent poetry! O Supreme Lord Narayana, I
offer You my obeisances.
17. The Supreme Lord said: I will come to Your house with My elder brother, but first I must satisfy My
friends and well-wishers by killing the enemy of the Yadu clan.
18. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus addressed by the Lord, Akrura entered the city with a heavy heart.
He informed King Kamsa of the success of his mission and then went home.
19. Lord Krsna desired to see Mathura, so toward evening He took Lord Balarama and the cowherd
boys with Him and entered the city.
20-23. The Lord saw Mathura, with its tall gates and household entrances made of crystal, its immense
archways and main doors of gold, its granaries and other storehouses of copper and brass, and its
impregnable moats. Beautifying the city were pleasant gardens and parks. The main intersections were
fashioned of gold, and there were mansions with private pleasure gardens, along with guildhalls and
many other buildings. Mathura resounded with the calls of peacocks and pet turtledoves, who sat in the
small openings of the lattice windows and on the gem-studded floors, and also on the columned
balconies and on the ornate rafters in front of the houses. These balconies and rafters were adorned
with vaidurya stones, diamonds, crystal quartz, sapphires, coral, pearls and emeralds. All the royal
avenues and commercial streets were sprinkled with water, as were the side roads and courtyards, and
flower garlands, newly grown sprouts, parched grains and rice had been scattered about everywhere.
Gracing the houses’ doorways were elaborately decorated pots filled with water, which were bedecked
with mango leaves, smeared with yogurt and sandalwood paste, and encircled by flower petals and
ribbons. Near the pots were flags, rows of lamps, bunches of flowers and the trunks of banana and
betel-nut trees.
24. The women of Mathura hurriedly assembled and went forth to see the two sons of Vasudeva as
They entered the city on the King’s road, surrounded by Their cowherd boyfriends. Some of the women,
my dear King, eagerly climbed to the roofs of their houses to see Them.
25. Some of the ladies put their clothes and ornaments on backwards, others forgot one of their
earrings or ankle bells, and others applied makeup to one eye but not the other.
26. Those who were taking their meals abandoned them, others went out without finishing their baths or
massages, women who were sleeping at once rose when they heard the commotion, and mothers
breast-feeding their infants simply put them aside.
27. The lotus-eyed Lord, smiling as He recalled His bold pastimes, captivated those ladies’ minds with
His glances. He walked with the gait of a lordly elephant in rut, creating a festival for their eyes with His
transcendental body, which is the source of pleasure for the divine goddess of fortune.
28. The ladies of Mathura had repeatedly heard about Krsna, and thus as soon as they saw Him their
hearts melted. They felt honored that He was sprinkling upon them the nectar of His glances and broad
smiles. Taking Him into their hearts through their eyes, they embraced Him, the embodiment of all
ecstasy, and as their bodily hairs stood on end, O subduer of enemies, they forgot the unlimited distress
caused by His absence.
29. Their lotus faces blooming with affection, the ladies who had climbed to the roofs of the mansions
rained down showers of flowers upon Lord Balarama and Lord Krsna.
30. Brahmanas standing along the way honored the two Lords with presentations of yogurt, unbroken
barleycorns, pots full of water, garlands, fragrant substances such as sandalwood paste, and other
items of worship.
31. The women of Mathura exclaimed: Oh, what severe austerities the gopis must have performed to
be able to regularly see Krsna and Balarama, who are the greatest source of pleasure for all mankind!
32. Seeing a washerman approaching who had been dyeing some clothes, Krsna asked him for the
finest laundered garments he had.
33. [Lord Krsna said:] Please give suitable garments to the two of Us, who certainly deserve them. If
you grant this charity, you will undoubtedly receive the greatest benefit.
34. Thus requested by the Supreme Lord, who is perfectly complete in all respects, that arrogant
servant of the King became angry and replied insultingly.
35. [The washerman said:] You impudent boys! You’re accustomed to roaming the mountains and
forests, and yet You would dare put on such clothes as these! These are the King’s possessions You’re
asking for!
36. Fools, get out of here quickly! Don’t beg like this if You want to stay alive. When someone is too
bold, the King’s men arrest him and kill him and take all his property.
37. As the washerman thus spoke brazenly, the son of Devaki became angry, and then merely with His
fingertips He separated the man’s head from his body.
532 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
38. The washerman’s assistants all dropped their bundles of clothes and fled down the road, scattering
in all directions. Lord Krsna then took the clothes.
39. Krsna and Balarama put on pairs of garments that especially pleased Them, and then Krsna
distributed the remaining clothes among the cowherd boys, leaving some scattered on the ground.
40. Thereupon a weaver came forward and, feeling affection for the Lords, nicely adorned Their attire
with cloth ornaments of various colors.
41. Krsna and Balarama looked resplendent, each in His own unique, wonderfully ornamented outfit.
They resembled a pair of young elephants, one white and the other black, decorated for a festive
occasion.
42. Pleased with the weaver, the Supreme Lord Krsna blessed him that after death he would achieve
the liberation of attaining a form like the Lord’s, and that while in this world he would enjoy supreme
opulence, physical strength, influence, memory and sensory vigor.
43. The two Lords then went to the house of the garland-maker Sudama. When Sudama saw Them he
at once stood up and then bowed down, placing his head on the ground.
44. After offering Them seats and bathing Their feet, Sudama worshiped Them and Their companions
with arghya, garlands, pan, sandalwood paste and other presentations.
45. [Sudama said:] O Lord, my birth is now sanctified and my family free of contamination. Now that
You both have come here, my forefathers, the demigods and the great sages are certainly all satisfied
with me.
46. You two Lords are the ultimate cause of this entire universe. To bestow sustenance and prosperity
upon this realm, You have descended with Your plenary expansions.
47. Because You are the well-wishing friends and Supreme Soul of the whole universe, You regard all
with unbiased vision. Therefore, although You reciprocate Your devotees’ loving worship, You always
remain equally disposed toward all living beings.
48. Please order me, Your servant, to do whatever You wish. To be engaged by You in some service is
certainly a great blessing for anyone.
49. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] O best of kings, having spoken these words, Sudama could
understand what Krsna and Balarama wanted. Thus with great pleasure he presented Them with
garlands of fresh, fragrant flowers.
50. Beautifully adorned with these garlands, Krsna and Balarama were delighted, and so were Their
companions. The two Lords then offered the surrendered Sudama, who was bowing down before
Them, whatever benedictions he desired.
51. Sudama chose unshakable devotion for Krsna, the Supreme Soul of all existence; friendship with
His devotees; and transcendental compassion for all living beings.
52. Not only did Lord Krsna grant Sudama these benedictions, but He also awarded him strength, long
life, fame, beauty and ever-increasing prosperity for his family. Then Krsna and His elder brother took
Their leave.
Chapter Forty-Two The Breaking of the Sacrificial Bow
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: As He walked down the King’s road, Lord Madhava then saw a young
hunchback woman with an attractive face, who carried a tray of fragrant ointments as she walked along.
The bestower of the ecstasy of love smiled and inquired from her as follows.
2. [Lord Krsna said:] Who are you, O beautiful-thighed one? Ah, ointment! Who is it for, my dear lady?
Please tell Us truthfully. Give Us both some of your finest ointment and you will soon gain a great boon.
3. The maidservant replied: O handsome one, I am a servant of King Kamsa, who highly regards me for
the ointments I make. My name is Trivakra. Who else but You two deserve my ointments, which the lord
of the Bhojas likes so much?
4. Her mind overwhelmed by Krsna’s beauty, charm, sweetness, smiles, words and glances, Trivakra
gave both Krsna and Balarama generous amounts of ointment.
5. Anointed with these most excellent cosmetics, which adorned Them with hues that contrasted with
Their complexions, the two Lords appeared extremely beautiful.
6. Lord Krsna was pleased with Trivakra, so He decided to straighten that hunchbacked girl with the
lovely face just to demonstrate the result of seeing Him.
7. Pressing down on her toes with both His feet, Lord Acyuta placed one upward-pointing finger of each
hand under her chin and straightened up her body.
8. Simply by Lord Mukunda’s touch, Trivakra was suddenly transformed into an exquisitely beautiful
woman with straight, evenly proportioned limbs and large hips and breasts.
9. Now endowed with beauty, character and generosity Trivakra began to feel lusty desires for Lord
Kesava. Taking hold of the end of His upper cloth, she smiled and addressed Him as follows.
10. [Trivakra said:] Come, O hero, let us go to my house. I cannot bear to leave You here. O best of
males, please take pity on me, since You have agitated my mind.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 533
11. Thus entreated by the woman, Lord Krsna first glanced at the face of Balarama, who was watching
the incident, and then at the faces of the cowherd boys. Then with a laugh Krsna replied to her as
follows.
12. [Lord Krsna said:] O lady with beautiful eyebrows, as soon as I fulfill My purpose I will certainly visit
your house, where men can relieve their anxiety. Indeed, you are the best refuge for Us homeless
travelers.
13. Leaving her with these sweet words, Lord Krsna walked further down the road. The merchants
along the way worshiped Him and His elder brother by presenting Them with various respectful
offerings, including pan, garlands and fragrant substances.
14. The sight of Krsna aroused Cupid in the hearts of the city women. Thus agitated, they forgot
themselves. Their clothes, braids and bangles became disheveled, and they stood as still as figures in a
painting.
15. Lord Krsna then asked the local people where the arena was in which the bow sacrifice would take
place. When He went there He saw the amazing bow, which resembled Lord Indra’s.
16. That most opulent bow was guarded by a large company of men, who were respectfully worshiping
it. Krsna pushed His way forward and, despite the guards’ attempts to stop Him, picked it up.
17. Easily lifting the bow with His left hand, Lord Urukrama strung it in a fraction of a second as the
King’s guards looked on. He then powerfully pulled the string and snapped the bow in half, just as an
excited elephant might break a stalk of sugar cane.
18. The sound of the bow’s breaking filled the earth and sky in all directions. Upon hearing it, Kamsa
was struck with terror.
19. The enraged guards then took up their weapons and, wanting to seize Krsna and His companions,
surrounded them and shouted, “Grab Him! Kill Him!”
20. Seeing the guards coming upon Them with evil intent, Balarama and Kesava took up the two halves
of the bow and began striking them down.
21. After also killing a contingent of soldiers sent by Kamsa, Krsna and Balarama left the sacrificial
arena by its main gate and continued Their walk about the city, happily looking at the opulent sights.
22. Having witnessed the amazing deed Krsna and Balarama had performed, and seeing Their
strength, boldness and beauty, the people of the city thought They must be two prominent demigods.
23. As They strolled about at will, the sun began to set, so They left the city with the cowherd boys and
returned to the cowherds’ wagon encampment.
24. At the time of Mukunda’s [Krsna’s] departure from Vrndavana, the gopis had foretold that the
residents of Mathura would enjoy many benedictions, and now the gopis’ predictions were coming true,
for those residents were gazing upon the beauty of Krsna, the jewel among men. Indeed, the goddess
of fortune desired the shelter of that beauty so much that she abandoned many other men, although
they worshiped her.
25. After Krsna’s and Balarama’s feet were bathed, the two Lords ate rice with milk. Then, although
knowing what Kamsa intended to do, They spent the night there comfortably.
26-27. Wicked King Kamsa, on the other hand, was terrified, having heard how Krsna and Balarama
had broken the bow and killed his guards and soldiers, all simply as a game. He remained awake for a
long time, and both while awake and while dreaming he saw many bad omens, messengers of death.
28-31. When he looked at his reflection he could not see his head; for no reason the moon and stars
appeared double; he saw a hole in his shadow; he could not hear the sound of his life air; trees seemed
covered with a golden hue; and he could not see his footprints. He dreamt that he was being embraced
by ghosts, riding a donkey and drinking poison, and also that a naked man smeared with oil was
passing by wearing a garland of nalada flowers. Seeing these and other such omens both while
dreaming and while awake, Kamsa was terrified by the prospect of death, and out of anxiety he could
not sleep.
32. When the night had finally passed and the sun rose up again from the water, Kamsa set about
arranging for the grand wrestling festival.
33. The King’s men performed the ritual worship of the wrestling arena, sounded their drums and other
instruments and decorated the viewing galleries with garlands, flags, ribbons and arches.
34. The city-dwellers and residents of the outlying districts, led by brahmanas and ksatriyas, came and
sat down comfortably in the galleries. The royal guests received special seats.
35. Surrounded by his ministers, Kamsa took his seat on the imperial dais. But even as he sat amidst
his various provincial rulers, his heart trembled.
36. While the musical instruments loudly played in the rhythmic meters appropriate for wrestling
matches, the lavishly ornamented wrestlers proudly entered the arena with their coaches and sat down.
37. Enthused by the pleasing music, Canura, Mustika, Kuta, Sala and Tosala sat down on the wrestling
mat.
534 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
38. Nanda Maharaja and the other cowherds, summoned by the King of the Bhojas, presented him with
their offerings and then took their seats in one of the galleries.
Chapter Forty-Three Krsna Kills the Elephant Kuvalayapida
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O chastiser of enemies, Krsna and Balarama, having executed all
necessary purification, then heard the kettledrums resounding at the wrestling arena, and They went
there to see what was happening.
2. When Lord Krsna reached the entrance to the arena, He saw the elephant Kuvalayapida blocking His
way at the urging of his keeper.
3. Securely binding up His clothes and tying back His curly locks, Lord Krsna addressed the elephant-
keeper with words as grave as the rumbling of a cloud.
4. [Lord Krsna said:] O driver, driver, move aside at once and let Us pass! If you don’t, this very day I
will send both you and your elephant to the abode of Yamaraja!
5. Thus threatened, the elephant-keeper became angry. He goaded his furious elephant, who appeared
equal to time, death and Yamaraja, into attacking Lord Krsna.
6. The lord of the elephants charged Krsna and violently seized Him with his trunk. But Krsna slipped
away, struck him a blow and disappeared from his view among his legs.
7. Infuriated at being unable to see Lord Kesava, the elephant sought Him out with his sense of smell.
Once again Kuvalayapida seized the Lord with the end of his trunk, only to have the Lord forcefully free
Himself.
8. Lord Krsna then grabbed the powerful Kuvalayapida by the tail and playfully dragged him twenty-five
bow-lengths as easily as Garuda might drag a snake.
9. As Lord Acyuta held on to the elephant’s tail, the animal tried to twist away to the left and to the right,
making the Lord swerve in the opposite direction, as a young boy would swerve when pulling a calf by
the tail.
10. Krsna then came face to face with the elephant and slapped him and ran away. Kuvalayapida
pursued the Lord, managing to touch Him again and again with each step, but Krsna outmaneuvered
the elephant and made him trip and fall.
11. As Krsna dodged about, He playfully fell on the ground and quickly got up again. The raging
elephant, thinking Krsna was down, tried to gore Him with his tusks but struck the earth instead.
12. His prowess foiled, the lordly elephant Kuvalayapida went into a frenzied rage out of frustration. But
the elephant-keepers goaded him on, and he furiously charged Krsna once again.
13. The Supreme Lord, killer of the demon Madhu, confronted the elephant as he attacked. Seizing his
trunk with one hand, Krsna threw him to the ground.
14. Lord Hari then climbed onto the elephant with the ease of a mighty lion, pulled out a tusk, and with it
killed the beast and his keepers.
15. Leaving the dead elephant aside, Lord Krsna held on to the tusk and entered the wrestling arena.
With the tusk resting on His shoulder, drops of the elephant’s blood and sweat sprinkled all over Him,
and His lotus face covered with fine drops of His own perspiration, the Lord shone with great beauty.
16. My dear King, Lord Baladeva and Lord Janardana, each carrying one of the elephant’s tusks as His
chosen weapon, entered the arena with several cowherd boys.
17. The various groups of people in the arena regarded Krsna in different ways when He entered it with
His elder brother. The wrestlers saw Krsna as a lightning bolt, the men of Mathura as the best of males,
the women as Cupid in person, the cowherd men as their relative, the impious rulers as a chastiser, His
parents as their child, the King of the Bhojas as death, the unintelligent as the Supreme Lord’s universal
form, the yogés as the Absolute Truth and the Vrsnis as their supreme worshipable Deity.
18. When Kamsa saw that Kuvalayapida was dead and the two brothers were invincible, he was
overwhelmed with anxiety, O King.
19. Arrayed with variegated ornaments, garlands and garments, just like a pair of excellently costumed
actors, the two mighty-armed Lords shone splendidly in the arena. Indeed, They overpowered the
minds of all onlookers with Their effulgences.
20. O King, as the citizens of the city and the people from outlying districts gazed upon those two
Supreme Personalities from their seats in the galleries, the force of the people’s happiness caused their
eyes to open wide and their faces to blossom. They drank in the vision of the Lords’ faces without
becoming satiated.
21-22. The people seemed to be drinking Krsna and Balarama with their eyes, licking Them with their
tongues, smelling Them with their nostrils and embracing Them with their arms. Reminded of the Lords’
beauty, character, charm and bravery, the members of the audience began describing these features to
one another according to what they had seen and heard.
23. [The people said:] These two boys are certainly expansions of the Supreme Lord Narayana who
have descended to this world in the home of Vasudeva.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 535
24. This one [Krsna] took birth from mother Devaké and was brought to Gokula, where He has
remained concealed all this time, growing up in the house of King Nanda.
25. He made Putana and the whirlwind demon meet with death, pulled down the twin Arjuna trees and
killed Sankhacuda, Kesi, Dhenuka and similar demons.
26-27. He saved the cows and the cowherds from a forest fire and subdued the serpent Kaliya. He
removed Lord Indra’s false pride by holding up the best of mountains with one hand for an entire week,
thus protecting the inhabitants of Gokula from rain, wind and hail.
28. The gopis overcame all kinds of distress and experienced great happiness by seeing His face,
which is always cheerful with smiling glances and ever free of fatigue.
29. It is said that under His full protection the Yadu dynasty will become extremely famous and attain
wealth, glory and power.
30. This lotus-eyed elder brother of His, Lord Balarama, is the proprietor of all transcendental
opulences. He has killed Pralamba, Vatsaka, Baka and other demons.
31. While the people talked in this way and the musical instruments resounded, the wrestler Canura
addressed Krsna and Balarama with the following words.
32. [Canura said:l O son of Nanda, O Rama, You two are well respected by courageous men and are
both skillful at wrestling. Having heard of Your prowess, the King has called You here, wanting to see
for himself.
33. Subjects of the King who try to please him with their thoughts, acts and words are sure to achieve
good fortune, but those who fail to do so will suffer the opposite fate.
34. It is well known that cowherd boys are always joyful as they tend their calves, and that the boys
playfully wrestle with each other while grazing their animals in the various forests.
35. Therefore let’s do what the King wants. Everyone will be pleased with us, for the king embodies all
living beings.
36. Hearing this, Lord Krsna, who liked to wrestle and welcomed the challenge, replied with words
appropriate to the time and place.
37. [Lord Krsna said:] Although forest-dwellers, We are also subjects of the Bhoja king. We must gratify
his desires, for such behavior will confer upon Us the greatest benefit.
38. We are just young boys and should play with those of equal strength. The wrestling match must go
on properly so that irreligion does not taint the respectable members of the audience.
39. Canura said: You aren’t really a child or even a young man, and neither is Balarama, the strongest
of the strong. After all, You playfully killed an elephant who had the strength of a thousand other
elephants.
40. Therefore You two should fight powerful wrestlers. There’s certainly nothing unfair about that. You,
O descendant of Vrsni, can show Your prowess against me, and Balarama can fight with Mustika.
Chapter Forty-Four The Killing of Kamsa
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus addressed, Lord Krsna made up His mind to accept the challenge. He
paired off with Canura, and Lord Balarama with Mustika.
2. Seizing each other’s hands and locking legs with each other, the opponents struggled powerfully,
eager for victory.
3. They each struck fists against fists, knees against knees, head against head and chest against chest.
4. Each fighter contended with his opponent by dragging him about in circles, shoving and crushing
him, throwing him down and running before and behind him.
5. Forcefully lifting and carrying each other, pushing each other away and holding each other down, the
fighters hurt even their own bodies in their great eagerness for victory.
6. My dear King, all the women present, considering the match an unfair fight between the strong and
the weak, felt extreme anxiety due to compassion. They assembled in groups around the arena and
spoke to one another as follows.
7. [The women said:] Alas, what a greatly irreligious act the members of this royal assembly are
committing! As the King watches this fight between the strong and the weak, they also want to see it.
8. What comparison can there be between these two professional wrestlers, with limbs as strong as
lightning bolts and bodies resembling mighty mountains, and these two young, immature boys with
exceedingly tender limbs?
9. Religious principles have certainly been violated in this assembly. One should not remain for even a
moment in a place where irreligion is flourishing.
10. A wise person should not enter an assembly if he knows the participants there are committing acts
of impropriety. And if, having entered such an assembly, he fails to speak the truth, speaks falsely or
pleads ignorance, he will certainly incur sin.
11. Just see the lotus face of Krsna as He darts around His foe! That face, covered with drops of
perspiration brought on by the strenuous fight, resembles a lotus covered with dew.
536 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. Don’t you see the face of Lord Balarama, with its eyes copper-red from His anger toward Mustika
and its beauty enhanced by His laughter and His absorption in the fight?
13. How pious are the tracts of land in Vraja, for there the primeval Personality of Godhead, disguising
Himself with human traits, wanders about, enacting His many pastimes! Adorned with wonderfully
variegated forest garlands, He whose feet are worshiped by Lord Siva and goddess Rama vibrates His
flute as He tends the cows in the company of Balarama.
14. What austerities must the gopis have performed! With their eyes they always drink the nectar of
Lord Krsna’s form, which is the essence of loveliness and is not to be equaled or surpassed. That
loveliness is the only abode of beauty, fame and opulence. It is self-perfect, ever fresh and extremely
rare.
15. The ladies of Vraja are the most fortunate of women because, with their minds fully attached to
Krsna and their throats always choked up with tears, they constantly sing about Him while milking the
cows, winnowing grain, churning butter, gathering cow dung for fuel, riding on swings, taking care of
their crying babies, sprinkling the ground with water, cleaning their houses, and so on. By their exalted
Krsna consciousness they automatically acquire all desirable things.
16. When the gopis hear Krsna playing His flute as He leaves Vraja in the morning with His cows or
returns with them at sunset, the young girls quickly come out of their houses to see Him. They must
have performed many pious activities to be able to see Him as He walks on the road, His smiling face
mercifully glancing upon them.
17. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] As the women spoke thus, O hero of the Bharatas, Lord Krsna, the
master of all mystic power, made up His mind to kill His opponent.
18. Out of affection for the two Lords, Their parents [Devaki and Vasudeva] became overwhelmed with
sorrow when they heard the women’s fearful statements. They grieved, not knowing their sons’
strength.
19. Lord Balarama and Mustika, expertly displaying numerous wrestling techniques, battled each other
in the same way that Lord Krsna and His opponent did.
20. The harsh blows from the Supreme Lord’s limbs fell like crushing lightning bolts upon Canura,
breaking every part of his body and causing him more and more pain and fatigue.
21. Furious, Canura attacked Lord Vasudeva with the speed of a hawk and struck His chest with both
fists.
22-23. No more shaken by the demon’s mighty blows than an elephant struck with a flower garland,
Lord Krsna grabbed Canura by his arms, swung him around several times and hurled him onto the
ground with great force. His clothes, hair and garland scattering, the wrestler fell down dead, like a huge
festival column collapsing.
24-25. Similarly, Mustika struck Lord Balabhadra with his fist and was slain. Receiving a violent blow
from the mighty Lord’s palm, the demon trembled all over in great pain, vomited blood and then fell
lifeless onto the ground, like a tree blown down by the wind.
26. Confronted next by the wrestler Kuta, Lord Balarama, the best of fighters, playfully and nonchalantly
killed him with His left fist, O King.
27. Then Krsna struck the wrestler Sala in the head with His toes and tore him in half. The Lord dealt
with Tosala in the same way, and both wrestlers fell down dead.
28. Canura, Mustika, Kuta, Sala and Tosala having been killed, the remaining wrestlers all fled for their
lives.
29. Krsna and Balarama then called Their young cowherd boyfriends to join Them, and in their
company the Lords danced about and sported, Their ankle bells resounding as musical instruments
played.
30. Everyone except Kamsa rejoiced at the wonderful feat Krsna and Balarama had performed. The
exalted brahmanas and great saints exclaimed, “Excellent! Excellent!”
31. The Bhoja king, seeing that his best wrestlers had all been killed or had fled, stopped the musical
performance originally meant for his pleasure and spoke the following words.
32. [Kamsa said:] Drive the two wicked sons of Vasudeva out of the city! Confiscate the cowherds’
property and arrest that fool Nanda!
33. Kill that most evil fool Vasudeva! And also kill my father, Ugrasena, along with his followers, who
have all sided with our enemies!
34. As Kamsa thus raved so audaciously, the infallible Lord Krsna, intensely angry, quickly and easily
jumped up onto the high royal dais.
35. Seeing Lord Krsna approaching like death personified, the quick-witted Kamsa instantly rose from
his seat and took up his sword and shield.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 537
36. Sword in hand, Kamsa moved quickly from side to side like a hawk in the sky. But Lord Krsna,
whose fearsome strength is irresistible, powerfully seized the demon just as the son of Tarksya might
capture a snake.
37. Grabbing Kamsa by the hair and knocking off his crown, the lotus-naveled Lord threw him off the
elevated dais onto the wrestling mat. Then the independent Lord, the support of the entire universe,
threw Himself upon the King.
38. As a lion drags a dead elephant, the Lord then dragged Kamsa’s dead body along the ground in full
view of everyone present. O King, all the people in the arena tumultuously cried out, “Oh! Oh!”
39. Kamsa had always been disturbed by the thought that the Supreme Lord was to kill him. Therefore
when drinking, eating, moving about, sleeping or simply breathing, the King had always seen the Lord
before him with the disc weapon in His hand. Thus Kamsa achieved the rare boon of attaining a form
like the Lord’s.
40. Kamsa’s eight younger brothers, led by Kanka and Nyagrodhaka, then attacked the Lords in a rage,
seeking to avenge their brother’s death.
41. As they ran swiftly toward the two Lords, ready to strike, the son of Rohini slew them with His club
just as a lion easily kills other animals.
42. Kettledrums resounded in the sky as Brahma, Siva and other demigods, the Lord’s expansions,
rained down flowers upon Him with pleasure. They chanted His praises, and their wives danced.
43. My dear King, the wives of Kamsa and his brothers, aggrieved by the death of their well-wishing
husbands, came forward with tearful eyes, beating their heads.
44. Embracing their husbands, who lay on a hero’s final bed, the sorrowful women loudly lamented
while shedding constant tears.
45. [The women cried out:] Alas, O master, O dear one, O knower of religious principles! O kind and
compassionate protector of the shelterless! By your being slain we have also been slain, together with
your household and offspring.
46. O great hero among men, bereft of you, its master, this city has lost its beauty, just as we have, and
all festivity and good fortune within it have come to an end.
47. O dear one, you have been brought to this state because of the terrible violence you committed
against innocent creatures. How can one who harms others attain happiness?
48. Lord Krsna causes the appearance and disappearance of all beings in this world, and He is their
maintainer as well. One who disrespects Him can never prosper happily.
49. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After consoling the royal ladies, Lord Krsna, sustainer of all the worlds,
arranged for the prescribed funeral rites to be performed.
50. Then Krsna and Balarama released Their mother and father from bondage and offered obeisances
to them, touching their feet with Their heads.
51. Devaki and Vasudeva, now knowing Krsna and Balarama to be the Lords of the universe, simply
stood with joined palms. Being apprehensive, they did not embrace their sons.
Chapter Forty-Five Krsna Rescues His Teacher’s Son
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Understanding that His parents were becoming aware of His
transcendental opulences, the Supreme Personality of Godhead thought that this should not be allowed
to happen. Thus He expanded His Yogamaya, which bewilders His devotees.
2. Lord Krsna, the greatest of the Satvatas, approached His parents with His elder brother. Humbly
bowing His head and gratifying them by respectfully addressing them as “My dear mother” and “My
dear father,” Krsna spoke as follows.
3. [Lord Krsna said:] Dear Father, because of Us, your two sons, you and mother Devaki always
remained in anxiety and could never enjoy Our childhood, boyhood or youth.
4. Deprived by fate, We could not live with you and enjoy the pampered happiness most children enjoy
in their parents’ home.
5. With one’s body one can acquire all goals of life, and it is one’s parents who give the body birth and
sustenance. Therefore no mortal man can repay his debt to his parents, even if he serves them for a full
lifetime of a hundred years.
6. A son who, though able to do so, fails to provide for his parents with his physical resources and
wealth is forced after his death to eat his own flesh.
7. A man who, though able to do so, fails to support his elderly parents, chaste wife, young child or
spiritual master, or who neglects a brahmana or anyone who comes to him for shelter, is considered
dead, though breathing.
8. Thus We have wasted all these days, unable as We were to properly honor you because Our minds
were always disturbed by fear of Kamsa.
9. Dear Father and Mother, please forgive Us for not serving you. We are not independent and have
been greatly frustrated by cruel Kamsa.
538 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
10. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus beguiled by the words of Lord Hari, the Supreme Soul of the
universe, who by His internal illusory potency appeared to be a human, His parents joyfully raised Him
up on their laps and embraced Him.
11. Pouring out a shower of tears upon the Lord, His parents, who were bound up by the rope of
affection, could not speak. They were overwhelmed, O King, and their throats choked up with tears.
12. Thus having comforted His mother and father, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, appearing as
the son of Devaki, installed His maternal grandfather, Ugrasena, as King of the Yadus.
13. The Lord told him: O mighty King, We are your subjects, so please command Us. Indeed, because
of the curse of Yayati, no Yadu may sit on the royal throne.
14. Since I am present in your entourage as your personal attendant, all the demigods and other
exalted personalities will come with heads bowed to offer you tribute. What, then, to speak of the rulers
of men?
15-16. The Lord then brought all His close family members and other relatives back from the various
places to which they had fled in fear of Kamsa. He received the Yadus, Vrsnis, Andhakas, Madhus,
Dasarhas, Kukuras and other clans with due honor, and He also consoled them, for they were weary of
living in foreign lands. Then Lord Krsna, the creator of the universe, resettled them in their homes and
gratified them with valuable gifts.
17-18. The members of these clans, protected by the arms of Lord Krsna and Lord Sankarsana, felt that
all their desires were fulfilled. Thus they enjoyed perfect happiness while living at home with their
families. Because of the presence of Krsna and Balarama, they no longer suffered from the fever of
material existence. Every day these loving devotees could see Mukunda’s ever-cheerful lotus face,
which was decorated with beautiful, merciful smiling glances.
19. Even the most elderly inhabitants of the city appeared youthful, full of strength and vitality, for with
their eyes they constantly drank the elixir of Lord Mukunda’s lotus face.
20. Then, O exalted Pariksit, the Supreme Lord Krsna, the son of Devaki, along with Lord Balarama,
approached Nanda Maharaja. The two Lords embraced him and then addressed him as follows.
21. [Krsna and Balarama said:] O Father, you and mother Yasoda have affectionately maintained Us
and cared for Us so much! Indeed, parents love their children more than their own lives.
22. They are the real father and mother who care for, as they would their own sons, children abandoned
by relatives unable to maintain and protect them.
23. Now you should all return to Vraja, dear Father. We shall come to see you, Our dear relatives who
suffer in separation from Us, as soon as We have given some happiness to your well-wishing friends.
24. Thus consoling Nanda Maharaja and the other men of Vraja, the infallible Supreme Lord
respectfully honored them with gifts of clothing, jewelry, household utensils and so on.
25. Nanda Maharaja was overwhelmed with affection upon hearing Krsna’s words, and his eyes
brimmed with tears as he embraced the two Lords. Then he went back to Vraja with the cowherd men.
26. My dear King, then Vasudeva, the son of Surasena, arranged for a priest and other brahmanas to
perform his two sons’ second-birth initiation.
27. Vasudeva honored these brahmanas by worshiping them and giving them fine ornaments and well-
ornamented cows with their calves. All these cows wore gold necklaces and linen wreaths.
28. The magnanimous Vasudeva then remembered the cows he had mentally given away on the
occasion of Krsna’s and Balarama’s birth. Kamsa had stolen those cows, and Vasudeva now recovered
them and gave them away in charity also.
29. After attaining twice-born status through initiation, the Lords, sincere in Their vows, took the further
vow of celibacy from Garga Muni, the spiritual master of the Yadus.
30-31. Concealing Their innately perfect knowledge by Their humanlike activities, those two omniscient
Lords of the universe, Themselves the origin of all branches of knowledge, next desired to reside at the
school of a spiritual master. Thus They approached Sandipani Muni, a native of Kasi living in the city of
Avanti.
32. Sandipani thought very highly of these two self-controlled disciples, whom he had obtained so
fortuitously. By serving him as devotedly as one would serve the Supreme Lord Himself, They showed
others an irreproachable example of how to worship the spiritual master.
33. That best of brahmanas, the spiritual master Sandipani, was satisfied with Their submissive
behavior, and thus he taught Them the entire Vedas, together with their six corollaries and the
Upanisads.
34. He also taught Them the Dhanur-veda, with its most confidential secrets; the standard books of law;
the methods of logical reasoning and philosophical debate; and the sixfold science of politics.
35-36. O King, those best of persons, Krsna and Balarama, being Themselves the original promulgators
of all varieties of knowledge, could immediately assimilate each and every subject after hearing it
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 539
explained just once. Thus with fixed concentration They learned the sixty-four arts and skills in as many
days and nights. Thereafter, O King, They satisfied Their spiritual master by offering him guru-daksina.
37. O King, the learned brahmana Sandipani carefully considered the two Lords’ glorious and amazing
qualities and Their superhuman intelligence. Then, after consulting with his wife, he chose as his
remuneration the return of his young son, who had died in the ocean at Prabhasa.
38. “So be it,” replied those two great charioteers of limitless might, and They at once mounted Their
chariot and set off for Prabhasa. When They reached that place, They walked up to the shore and sat
down. In a moment the deity of the ocean, recognizing Them to be the Supreme Lords, approached
Them with offerings of tribute.
39. The Supreme Lord Krsna addressed the lord of the ocean: Let the son of My guru be presented at
once—the one you seized here with your mighty waves.
40. The ocean replied: O Lord Krsna, it was not I who abducted him, but a demonic descendant of Diti
named Pancajana, who travels in the water in the form of a conch.
41. “Indeed,” the ocean said, “that demon has taken him away.” Hearing this, Lord Krsna entered the
ocean, found Pancajana and killed him. But the Lord did not find the boy within the demon’s belly.
42-44. Lord Janardana took the conchshell that had grown around the demon’s body and went back to
the chariot. Then He proceeded to Samyamani, the beloved capital of Yamaraja, the lord of death.
Upon arriving there with Lord Balarama, He loudly blew His conchshell, and Yamaraja, who keeps the
conditioned souls in check, came as soon as he heard the resounding vibration. Yamaraja elaborately
worshiped the two Lords with great devotion, and then he addressed Lord Krsna, who lives in
everyone’s heart: “O Supreme Lord Visnu, what shall I do for You and Lord Balarama, who are playing
the part of ordinary humans?”
45. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Suffering the bondage of his past activity, My spiritual
master’s son was brought here to you. O great King, obey My command and bring this boy to Me
without delay.
46. Yamaraja said, “So be it,” and brought forth the guru’s son. Then those two most exalted Yadus
presented the boy to Their spiritual master and said to him, “Please select another boon.”
47. The spiritual master said: My dear boys, You two have completely fulfilled the disciple’s obligation to
reward his spiritual master. Indeed, with disciples like You, what further desires could a guru have?
48. O heroes, now please return home. May Your fame sanctify the world, and may the Vedic hymns be
ever fresh in Your minds, both in this life and the next.
49. Thus receiving Their guru’s permission to leave, the two Lords returned to Their city on Their
chariot, which moved as swiftly as the wind and resounded like a cloud.
50. All the citizens rejoiced upon seeing Krsna and Balarama, whom they had not seen for many days.
The people felt just like those who have lost their wealth and then regained it.
Chapter Forty-Six Uddhava Visits Vrndavana
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The supremely intelligent Uddhava was the best counselor of the Vrsni
dynasty, a beloved friend of Lord Sri Krsna and a direct disciple of Brhaspati.
2. The Supreme Lord Hari, who relieves the distress of all who surrender to Him, once took the hand of
His fully devoted, dearmost friend Uddhava and addressed him as follows.
3. [Lord Krsna said:] Dear gentle Uddhava, go to Vraja and give pleasure to Our parents. And also
relieve the gopis, suffering in separation from Me, by giving them My message.
4. The minds of those gopis are always absorbed in Me, and their very lives are ever devoted to Me.
For My sake they have abandoned everything related to their bodies, renouncing ordinary happiness in
this life, as well as religious duties necessary for such happiness in the next life. I alone am their
dearmost beloved and, indeed, their very Self. Therefore I take it upon Myself to sustain them in all
circumstances.
5. My dear Uddhava, for those women of Gokula I am the most cherished object of love. Thus when
they remember Me, who am so far away, they are overwhelmed by the anxiety of separation.
6. Simply because I have promised to return to them, My fully devoted cowherd girlfriends struggle to
maintain their lives somehow or other.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus addressed, O King, Uddhava respectfully accepted his master’s
message, mounted his chariot and set off for Nanda-gokula.
8. The fortunate Uddhava reached Nanda Maharaja’s pastures just as the sun was setting, and since
the returning cows and other animals were raising dust with their hooves, his chariot passed unnoticed.
9-13. Gokula resounded on all sides with the sounds of bulls in rut fighting with one another for fertile
cows; with the mooing of cows, burdened by their udders, chasing after their calves; with the noise of
milking and of the white calves jumping here and there; with the loud reverberation of flute-playing; and
with the singing of the all-auspicious deeds of Krsna and Balarama by the cowherd men and women,
who made the village resplendent with their wonderfully ornamented attire. The cowherds’ homes in
540 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Gokula appeared most charming with their abundant paraphernalia for worship of the sacrificial fire, the
sun, unexpected guests, the cows, the brahmanas, the forefathers and the demigods. On all sides lay
the flowering forest, echoing with flocks of birds and swarms of bees and beautified by its lakes
crowded with swans, karandava ducks and bowers of lotuses.
14. As soon as Uddhava arrived at Nanda Maharaja’s home, Nanda came forward to meet him. The
cowherd King embraced him in great happiness and worshiped him as nondifferent from Lord
Vasudeva.
15. After Uddhava had eaten first-class food, been seated comfortably on a bed and been relieved of
his fatigue by a foot massage and other means, Nanda inquired from him as follows.
16. [Nanda Maharaja said:] My dear most fortunate one, does the son of Sura fare well, now that he is
free and has rejoined his children and other relatives?
17. Fortunately, because of his own sins, the sinful Kamsa has been killed, along with all his brothers.
He always hated the saintly and righteous Yadus.
18. Does Krsna remember us? Does He remember His mother and His friends and well-wishers? Does
He remember the cowherds and their village of Vraja, of which He is the master? Does He remember
the cows, Vrndavana forest and Govardhana Hill?
19. Will Govinda return even once to see His family? If He ever does, we may then glance upon His
beautiful face, with its beautiful eyes, nose and smile.
20. We were saved from the forest fire, the wind and rain, the bull and serpent demons—from all such
insurmountable, deadly dangers—by that very great soul, Krsna.
21. As we remember the wonderful deeds Krsna performed, His playful sidelong glances, His smiles
and His words, O Uddhava, we forget all our material engagements.
22. When we see the places where Mukunda enjoyed His sporting pastimes—the rivers, hills and
forests He decorated with His feet—our minds become totally absorbed in Him.
23. In my opinion, Krsna and Balarama must be two exalted demigods who have come to this planet to
fulfill some great mission of the demigods. Such was foretold by Garga Rsi.
24. After all, Krsna and Balarama killed Kamsa, who was as strong as ten thousand elephants, as well
as the wrestlers Canura and Mustika and the elephant Kuvalayapida. They killed them all sportingly, as
easily as a lion disposes of small animals.
25. With the ease of a royal elephant breaking a stick, Krsna broke a powerful, giant bow three talas
long. He also held a mountain aloft for seven days with just one hand.
26. Here in Vrndavana, Krsna and Balarama easily destroyed demons like Pralamba, Dhenuka, Arista,
Trnavarta and Baka, who had themselves defeated both demigods and other demons.
27. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus intensely remembering Krsna again and again, Nanda Maharaja, his
mind completely attached to the Lord, felt extreme anxiety and fell silent, overcome by the strength of
his love.
28. As mother Yasoda heard the descriptions of her son’s activities, she poured out her tears, and milk
flowed from her breasts out of love.
29. Uddhava then joyfully addressed Nanda Maharaja, having clearly seen the supreme loving
attraction he and Yasoda felt for Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
30. Sri Uddhava said: O respectful Nanda, certainly you and mother Yasoda are the most praiseworthy
persons in the entire world, since you have developed such a loving attitude toward Lord Narayana, the
spiritual master of all living beings.
31. These two Lords, Mukunda and Balarama, are each the seed and womb of the universe, the creator
and His creative potency. They enter the hearts of living beings and control their conditioned
awareness. They are the primeval Supreme.
32-33. Anyone, even a person in an impure state, who absorbs his mind in Him for just a moment at the
time of death burns up all traces of sinful reactions and immediately attains the supreme transcendental
destination in a pure, spiritual form as effulgent as the sun. You two have rendered exceptional loving
service to Him, Lord Narayana, the Supersoul of all and the cause of all existence, the great soul who,
although the original cause of everything, has a humanlike form. What pious deeds could still be
required of you?
34. Infallible Krsna, the Lord of the devotees, will soon return to Vraja to satisfy His parents.
35. Having killed Kamsa, the enemy of all the Yadus, in the wrestling arena, Krsna will now surely fulfill
His promise to you by coming back.
36. O most fortunate ones, do not lament. You will see Krsna again very soon. He is present in the
hearts of all living beings, just as fire lies dormant in wood.
37. For Him no one is especially dear or despicable, superior or inferior, and yet He is not indifferent to
anyone. He is free from all desire for respect and yet gives respect to all others.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 541
38. He has no mother, no father, no wife, children or other relatives. No one is related to Him, and yet
no one is a stranger to Him. He has no material body and no birth.
39. He has no work to do in this world that would oblige Him to take birth in pure, impure or mixed
species of life. Yet to enjoy His pastimes and deliver His saintly devotees, He manifests Himself.
40. Although beyond the three modes of material nature—goodness, passion and ignorance—the
transcendental Lord accepts association with them as His play. Thus the unborn Supreme Lord utilizes
the material modes to create, maintain and destroy.
41. Just as a person who is whirling around perceives the ground to be turning, one who is affected by
false ego thinks himself the doer, when actually only his mind is acting.
42. The Supreme Lord Hari is certainly not your son alone. Rather, being the Lord, He is the son, Soul,
father and mother of everyone.
43. Nothing can be said to exist independent of Lord Acyuta—nothing heard or seen, nothing in the
past, present or future, nothing moving or unmoving, great or small. He indeed is everything, for He is
the Supreme Soul.
44. While Krsna’s messenger continued speaking with Nanda, the night ended, O King. The women of
the cowherd village rose from bed and, lighting lamps, worshiped their household deities. Then they
began churning the yogurt into butter.
45. As they pulled on the churning ropes with their bangled arms, the women of Vraja shone with the
splendor of their jewels, which reflected the lamps’ light. Their hips, breasts and necklaces moved
about, and their faces, anointed with reddish kunkuma, glowed radiantly with the luster of their earrings
reflecting from their cheeks.
46. As the ladies of Vraja loudly sang the glories of lotus-eyed Krsna, their songs blended with the
sound of their churning, ascended to the sky and dissipated all inauspiciousness in every direction.
47. When the godly sun had risen, the people of Vraja noticed the golden chariot in front of Nanda
Maharaja’s doorway. “Who does this belong to?” they asked.
48. “Perhaps Akrura has returned—he who fulfilled Kamsa’s desire by taking lotus-eyed Krsna to
Mathura.
49. “Is he going to use our flesh to offer funeral oblations for his master, who was so satisfied with his
service?” As the women were speaking in this way, Uddhava appeared, having finished his early-
morning duties.
Chapter Forty-Seven The Song of the Bee
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The young women of Vraja became astonished upon seeing Lord Krsna’s
servant, who had long arms, whose eyes resembled a newly grown lotus, who wore a yellow garment
and a lotus garland, and whose lotuslike face glowed with brightly polished earrings. “Who is this
handsome man?” the gopis asked. “Where has he come from, and whom does he serve? He’s wearing
Krsna’s clothes and ornaments!” Saying this, the gopis eagerly crowded around Uddhava, whose
shelter was the lotus feet of Lord Uttamahsloka, Sri Krsna.
3. Bowing their heads in humility, the gopis duly honored Uddhava with their shy, smiling glances and
pleasing words. They took him to a quiet place, seated him comfortably and began to question him, for
they recognized him to be a messenger from Krsna, the master of the goddess of fortune.
4. [The gopis said:] We know that you are the personal servant of Krsna, the chief of the Yadus, and
that you have come here on the order of your good master, who desires to give pleasure to His parents.
5. We see nothing else He might consider worth remembering in these cow pastures of Vraja. Indeed,
the bonds of affection for one’s family members are difficult to break, even for a sage.
6. The friendship shown toward others—those who are not family members—is motivated by personal
interest, and thus it is a pretense that lasts only until one’s purpose is fulfilled. Such friendship is just like
the interest men take in women, or bees in flowers.
7. Prostitutes abandon a penniless man, subjects an incompetent king, students their teacher once they
have finished their education, and priests a man who has remunerated them for a sacrifice.
8. Birds abandon a tree when its fruits are gone, guests a house after they have eaten, animals a forest
that has burnt down, and a lover the woman he has enjoyed, even though she remains attached to him.
9-10. Thus speaking, the gopis, whose words, bodies and minds were fully dedicated to Lord Govinda,
put aside all their regular work now that Krsna’s messenger, Sri Uddhava, had arrived among them.
Constantly remembering the activities their beloved Krsna had performed in His childhood and youth,
they sang about them and cried without shame.
11. One of the gopis, while meditating on Her previous association with Krsna, saw a honeybee before
Her and imagined it to be a messenger sent by Her beloved. Thus She spoke as follows.
12. The gopi said: O honeybee, O friend of a cheater, don’t touch My feet with your whiskers, which are
smeared with the kunkuma that rubbed onto Krsna’s garland when it was crushed by the breasts of a
542 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
rival lover! Let Krsna satisfy the women of Mathura. One who sends a messenger like you will certainly
be ridiculed in the Yadus’ assembly.
13. After making us drink the enchanting nectar of His lips only once, Krsna suddenly abandoned us,
just as you might quickly abandon some flowers. How is it, then, that Goddess Padma willingly serves
His lotus feet? Alas! The answer must certainly be that her mind has been stolen away by His deceitful
words.
14. O bee, why do you sing here so much about the Lord of the Yadus, in front of us homeless people?
These topics are old news to us. Better you sing about that friend of Arjuna in front of His new
girlfriends, the burning desire in whose breasts He has now relieved. Those ladies will surely give you
the charity you are begging.
15. In heaven, on earth or in the subterranean sphere, what women are unavailable to Him? He simply
arches His eyebrows and smiles with deceptive charm, and they all become His. The supreme goddess
herself worships the dust of His feet, so what is our position in comparison? But at least those who are
wretched can chant His name, Uttamahsloka.
16. Keep your head off My feet! I know what you’re doing. You expertly learned diplomacy from
Mukunda, and now you come as His messenger with flattering words. But He abandoned those who for
His sake alone gave up their children, husbands and all other relations. He’s simply ungrateful. Why
should I make up with Him now?
17. Like a hunter, He cruelly shot the king of the monkeys with arrows. Because He was conquered by
a woman, He disfigured another woman who came to Him with lusty desires. And even after consuming
the gifts of Bali Maharaja, He bound him up with ropes as if he were a crow. So let us give up all
friendship with this dark-complexioned boy, even if we can’t give up talking about Him.
18. To hear about the pastimes that Krsna regularly performs is nectar for the ears. For those who relish
just a single drop of that nectar, even once, their dedication to material duality is ruined. Many such
persons have suddenly given up their wretched homes and families and, themselves becoming
wretched, traveled here to Vrndavana to wander about like birds, begging for their living.
19. Faithfully taking His deceitful words as true, we became just like the black deer’s foolish wives, who
trust the cruel hunter’s song. Thus we repeatedly felt the sharp pain of lust caused by the touch of His
nails. O messenger, please talk about something besides Krsna.
20. O friend of My dear one, has My beloved sent you here again? I should honor you, friend, so please
choose whatever boon you wish. But why have you come back here to take us to Him, whose conjugal
love is so difficult to give up? After all, gentle bee, His consort is the goddess Sri, and she is always with
Him, staying upon His chest.
21. O Uddhava! It is indeed regrettable that Krsna resides in Mathura. Does He remember His father’s
household affairs and His friends, the cowherd boys? O great soul! Does He ever talk about us, His
maidservants? When will He lay on our heads His aguru-scented hand?
22. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having heard this, Uddhava then tried to pacify the gopis, who were most
eager to see Lord Krsna. He thus began relating to them the message of their beloved.
23. Sri Uddhava said: Certainly you gopis are all-successful and are universally worshiped because you
have dedicated your minds in this way to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva.
24. Devotional service unto Lord Krsna is attained by charity, strict vows, austerities and fire sacrifices,
by japa, study of Vedic texts, observance of regulative principles and, indeed, by the performance of
many other auspicious practices.
25. By your great fortune you have established an unexcelled standard of pure devotion for the Lord,
Uttamahsloka—a standard even the sages can hardly attain.
26. By your great fortune you have left your sons, husbands, bodily comforts, relatives and homes in
favor of the supreme male, who is known as Krsna.
27. You have rightfully claimed the privilege of unalloyed love for the transcendental Lord, O most
glorious gopis. Indeed, by exhibiting your love for Krsna in separation from Him, you have shown me
great mercy.
28. My good ladies, now please hear your beloved’s message, which I, the confidential servant of my
master, have come here to bring you.
29. The Supreme Lord said: You are never actually separated from Me, for I am the Soul of all creation.
Just as the elements of nature—ether, air, fire, water and earth—are present in every created thing, so I
am present within everyone’s mind, life air and senses, and also within the physical elements and the
modes of material nature.
30. By Myself I create, sustain and withdraw Myself within Myself by the power of My personal energy,
which comprises the material elements, the senses and the modes of nature.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 543
31. Being composed of pure consciousness, or knowledge, the soul is distinct from everything material
and is uninvolved in the entanglements of the modes of nature. We can perceive the soul through the
three functions of material nature known as wakefulness, sleep and deep sleep.
32. As a person just arisen from sleep may continue to meditate on a dream even though it is illusory,
so by the agency of the mind one meditates on the sense objects, which the senses can then obtain.
Therefore one should become fully alert and bring the mind under control.
33. According to intelligent authorities, this is the ultimate conclusion of all the Vedas, as well as all
practice of yoga, Sankhya, renunciation, austerity, sense control and truthfulness, just as the sea is the
ultimate destination of all rivers.
34. But the actual reason why I, the beloved object of your sight, have stayed far away from you is that I
wanted to intensify your meditation upon Me and thus draw your minds closer to Me.
35. When her lover is far away, a woman thinks of him more than when he is present before her.
36. Because your minds are totally absorbed in Me and free from all other engagement, you remember
Me always, and so you will very soon have Me again in your presence.
37. Although some gopis had to remain in the cowherd village and so could not join the rasa dance to
sport with Me at night in the forest, they were nonetheless fortunate. Indeed, they attained Me by
thinking of My potent pastimes.
38. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The women of Vraja were pleased to hear this message from their
dearmost Krsna. His words having revived their memory, they addressed Uddhava as follows.
39. The gopis said: It is very good that Kaàsa, the enemy and persecutor of the Yadus, has now been
killed, along with his followers. And it is also very good that Lord Acyuta is living happily in the company
of His well-wishing friends and relatives, whose every desire is now fulfilled.
40. Gentle Uddhava, is the elder brother of Gada now bestowing on the city women the pleasure that
actually belongs to us? We suppose those ladies worship Him with generous glances full of
affectionate, shy smiles.
41. Sri Krsna is expert in all kinds of conjugal affairs and is the darling of the city women. How can He
not become entangled, now that He’s constantly adored by their enchanting words and gestures?
42. O saintly one, does Govinda ever remember us during His conversations with the city women?
Does He ever mention us village girls as He freely talks with them?
43. Does He recall those nights in the Vrndavana forest, lovely with lotus, jasmine and the bright moon?
As we glorified His charming pastimes, He enjoyed with us, His beloved girlfriends, in the circle of the
rasa dance, which resounded with the music of ankle bells.
44. Will that descendant of Dasarha return here and by the touch of His limbs bring back to life those
who are now burning with the grief He Himself has caused? Will He save us in that way, just as Lord
Indra brings a forest back to life with his water-bearing clouds?
45. But why should Krsna come here after winning a kingdom, killing His enemies and marrying the
daughters of kings? He’s satisfied there, surrounded by all His friends and well-wishers.
46. The great soul Krsna is the Lord of the goddess of fortune, and He automatically achieves whatever
He desires. How can we forest-dwellers or any other women fulfill His purposes when He is already
fulfilled within Himself?
47. Indeed, the greatest happiness is to renounce all desires, as even the prostitute Pingala has
declared. Yet even though we know this, we cannot give up our hopes of attaining Krsna.
48. Who can bear to give up intimate talks with Lord Uttamahsloka? Although He shows no interest in
her, Goddess Sri never moves from her place on His chest.
49. Dear Uddhava Prabhu, when Krsna was here in the company of Sankarsana, He enjoyed all these
rivers, hills, forests, cows and flute sounds.
50. All these remind us constantly of Nanda’s son. Indeed, because we see Krsna’s footprints, which
are marked with divine symbols, we can never forget Him.
51. O Uddhava, how can we forget Him when our hearts have been stolen away by the charming way
He walks, His generous smile and playful glances, and His honeylike words?
52. O master, O master of the goddess of fortune, O master of Vraja! O destroyer of all suffering,
Govinda, please lift Your Gokula out of the ocean of distress in which it is drowning!
53. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Lord Krsna’s messages having relieved their fever of separation, the
gopis then worshiped Uddhava, recognizing him as nondifferent from their Lord, Krsna.
54. Uddhava remained there for several months, dispelling the gopis’ sorrow by chanting the topics of
Lord Krsna’s pastimes. Thus he brought joy to all the people of Gokula.
55. All the days that Uddhava dwelled in Nanda’s cowherd village seemed like a single moment to the
residents of Vraja, for Uddhava was always discussing Krsna.
56. That servant of Lord Hari, seeing the rivers, forests, mountains, valleys and flowering trees of Vraja,
enjoyed inspiring the inhabitants of Vrndavana by reminding them of Lord Krsna.
544 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
57. Thus seeing how the gopis were always disturbed because of their total absorption in Krsna,
Uddhava was supremely pleased. Desiring to offer them all respect, he sang as follows.
58. [Uddhava sang:] Among all persons on earth, these cowherd women alone have actually perfected
their embodied lives, for they have achieved the perfection of unalloyed love for Lord Govinda. Their
pure love is hankered after by those who fear material existence, by great sages, and by ourselves as
well. For one who has tasted the narrations of the infinite Lord, what is the use of taking birth as a high-
class brahmana, or even as Lord Brahma himself?
59. How amazing it is that these simple women who wander about the forest, seemingly spoiled by
improper behavior, have achieved the perfection of unalloyed love for Krsna, the Supreme Soul! Still, it
is true that the Supreme Lord Himself awards His blessings even to an ignorant worshiper, just as the
best medicine works even when taken by a person ignorant of its ingredients.
60. When Lord Sri Krsna was dancing with the gopis in the rasa-lila, the gopis were embraced by the
arms of the Lord. This transcendental favor was never bestowed upon the goddess of fortune or other
consorts in the spiritual world. Indeed, never was such a thing even imagined by the most beautiful girls
in the heavenly planets, whose bodily luster and aroma resemble the lotus flower. And what to speak of
worldly women who are very beautiful according to material estimation?
61. The gopis of Vrndavana have given up the association of their husbands, sons and other family
members, who are very difficult to give up, and they have forsaken the path of chastity to take shelter of
the lotus feet of Mukunda, Krsna, which one should search for by Vedic knowledge. Oh, let me be
fortunate enough to be one of the bushes, creepers or herbs in Vrndavana, because the gopis trample
them and bless them with the dust of their lotus feet.
62. The goddess of fortune herself, along with Lord Brahma and all the other demigods, who are
masters of yogic perfection, can worship the lotus feet of Krsna only within her mind. But during the rasa
dance Lord Krsna placed His feet upon these gopis’ breasts, and by embracing those feet the gopis
gave up all distress.
63. I repeatedly offer my respects to the dust from the feet of the women of Nanda Maharaja’s cowherd
village. When these gopis loudly chant the glories of Sri Krsna, the vibration purifies the three worlds.
64. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Uddhava, the descendant of Dasarha, then took permission to leave from
the gopis and from mother Yasoda and Nanda Maharaja. He bade farewell to all the cowherd men and,
about to depart, mounted his chariot.
65. As Uddhava was about to leave, Nanda and the others approached him bearing various items of
worship. With tears in their eyes they addressed him as follows.
66. [Nanda and the other cowherds said:] May our mental functions always take shelter of Krsna’s lotus
feet, may our words always chant His names, and may our bodies always bow down to Him and serve
Him.
67. Wherever we are made to wander about this world by the Supreme Lord’s will, in accordance with
the reactions to our fruitive work, may our good works and charity always grant Us love for Lord Krsna.
68. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] O ruler of men, thus honored by the cowherd men with expressions
of devotion for Lord Krsna, Uddhava went back to the city of Mathura, which was under Krsna’s
protection.
69. After falling down to pay his homage, Uddhava described to Lord Krsna the immense devotion of
the residents of Vraja. Uddhava also described it to Vasudeva, Lord Balarama and King Ugrasena and
presented to them the gifts of tribute he had brought with him.
Chapter Forty-Eight Krsna Pleases His Devotees
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Next, after assimilating Uddhava’s report, Lord Krsna, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, the omniscient Soul of all that be, desired to satisfy the serving girl Trivakra,
who was troubled by lust. Thus He went to her house.
2. Trivakra’s home was opulently appointed with expensive furnishings and replete with sensual
accouterments meant to inspire sexual desire. There were banners, rows of strung pearls, canopies,
fine beds and sitting places, and also fragrant incense, oil lamps, flower garlands and aromatic
sandalwood paste.
3. When Trivakra saw Him arriving at her house, she at once rose from her seat in a flurry. Coming
forward graciously with her girlfriends, she respectfully greeted Lord Acyuta by offering Him an excellent
seat and other articles of worship.
4. Uddhava also received a seat of honor, since he was a saintly person, but he simply touched it and
sat on the floor. Then Lord Krsna, imitating the manners of human society, quickly made Himself
comfortable on an opulent bed.
5. Trivakra prepared herself by bathing, anointing her body, and dressing in fine garments, by putting on
jewelry, garlands and perfume, and also by chewing betel nut, drinking fragrant liquor, and so on. She
then approached Lord Madhava with shy, playful smiles and coquettish glances.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 545
6. Calling forward His beloved, who was anxious and shy at the prospect of this new contact, the Lord
pulled her by her bangled hands onto the bed. Thus He enjoyed with that beautiful girl, whose only trace
of piety was her having offered ointment to the Lord.
7. Simply by smelling the fragrance of Krsna’s lotus feet, Trivakra cleansed away the burning lust Cupid
had aroused in her breasts, chest and eyes. With her two arms she embraced between her breasts her
lover, Sri Krsna, the personification of bliss, and thus she gave up her long-standing distress.
8. Having thus gotten the hard-to-get Supreme Lord by the simple act of offering Him body ointment,
unfortunate Trivakra submitted to that Lord of freedom the following request.
9. [Trivakra said:] O beloved, please stay here with me for a few days more and enjoy. I cannot bear to
give up Your association, O lotus-eyed one!
10. Promising her the fulfillment of this lusty desire, considerate Krsna, Lord of all beings, paid Trivakra
His respects and then returned with Uddhava to His own supremely opulent residence.
11. Lord Visnu, the Supreme Lord of all lords, is ordinarily difficult to approach. One who has properly
worshiped Him and then chooses the benediction of mundane sense gratification is certainly of poor
intelligence, for he is satisfied with an insignificant result.
12. Then Lord Krsna, wanting to have some things done, went to Akrura’s house with Balarama and
Uddhava. The Lord also desired to please Akrura.
13-14. Akrura stood up in great joy when he saw them, his own relatives and the greatest of exalted
personalities, coming from a distance. After embracing them and greeting them, Akrura bowed down to
Krsna and Balarama and was greeted by Them in return. Then, when his guests had taken their seats,
he worshiped them in accordance with scriptural rules.
15-16. O King, Akrura bathed the feet of Lord Krsna and Lord Balarama and then poured the bath water
on his head. He presented Them with gifts of fine clothing, aromatic sandalwood paste, flower garlands
and excellent jewelry. After thus worshiping the two Lords, he bowed his head to the floor. He then
began to massage Lord Krsna’s feet, placing them on his lap, and with his head bowed in humility he
addressed Krsna and Balarama as follows.
17. [Akrura said:] It is our good fortune that You two Lords have killed the evil Kamsa and his followers,
thus delivering Your dynasty from endless suffering and causing it to flourish.
18. You both are the original Supreme Person, the cause of the universe and its very substance. Not
the slightest subtle cause or manifest product of creation exists apart from You.
19. O Supreme Absolute Truth, with Your personal energies You create this universe and then enter
into it. Thus one can perceive You in many different forms by hearing from authorities and by direct
experience.
20. Just as the primary elements—earth and so on—manifest themselves in abundant variety among all
the species of mobile and immobile life, so You, the one independent Supreme Soul, appear to be
manifold among the variegated objects of Your creation.
21. You create, destroy and also maintain this universe with Your personal energies—the modes of
passion, ignorance and goodness—yet You are never entangled by these modes or the activities they
generate. Since You are the original source of all knowledge, what could ever cause You to be bound
by illusion?
22. Since it has never been demonstrated that You are covered by material, bodily designations, it must
be concluded that for You there is neither birth in a literal sense nor any duality. Therefore You never
undergo bondage or liberation, and if You appear to, it is only because of Your desire that we see You
in that way, or simply because of our lack of discrimination.
23. You originally enunciated the ancient religious path of the Vedas for the benefit of the whole
universe. Whenever that path becomes obstructed by wicked persons following the path of atheism,
You assume one of Your incarnations, which are all in the transcendental mode of goodness.
24. You are that very same Supreme Person, my Lord, and You have now appeared in the home of
Vasudeva with Your plenary portion. You have done this to relieve the earth’s burden by killing
hundreds of armies led by kings who are expansions of the demigods’ enemies, and also to spread the
fame of our dynasty.
25. Today, O Lord, my home has become most fortunate because You have entered it. As the Supreme
Truth, You embody the forefathers, ordinary creatures, human beings and demigods, and the water that
has washed Your feet purifies the three worlds. Indeed, O transcendent one, You are the spiritual
master of the universe.
26. What learned person would approach anyone but You for shelter, when You are the affectionate,
grateful and truthful well-wisher of Your devotees? To those who worship You in sincere friendship You
reward everything whey desire, even Your own self, yet You never increase or diminish.
27. It is by our great fortune, Janardana, that You are now visible to us, for even the masters of yoga
and the foremost demigods can achieve this goal only with great difficulty. Please quickly cut the ropes
546 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
of our illusory attachment for children, wife, wealth, influential friends, home and body. All such
attachment is simply the effect of Your illusory material energy.
28. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus worshiped and fully glorified by His devotee, the Supreme
Lord Hari smilingly addressed Akrura, completely charming him with His words.
29. The Supreme Lord said: You are Our spiritual master, paternal uncle and praiseworthy friend, and
We are like your sons, always dependent on your protection, sustenance and compassion.
30. Exalted souls like you are the true objects of service and the most worshipable authorities for those
who desire the highest good in life. Demigods are generally concerned with their own interests, but
saintly devotees never are.
31. No one can deny that there are holy places with sacred rivers, or that the demigods appear in deity
forms made of earth and stone. But these purify the soul only after a long time, whereas saintly persons
purify just by being seen.
32. You are indeed the best of Our friends, so please go to Hastinapura and, as the well-wisher of the
Pandavas, find out how they are doing.
33. We have heard that when their father passed away, the young Pandavas were brought with their
anguished mother to the capital city by King Dhrtarastra, and that they are now living there.
34. Indeed, weak-minded Dhrtarastra, the son of Ambika, has come under the control of his wicked
sons, and therefore that blind King is not treating his brother’s sons fairly.
35. Go and see whether Dhrtarastra is acting properly or not. When We find out, We will make the
necessary arrangements to help Our dear friends.
36. [Sukadeva Gosvamicontinued:] Thus fully instructing Akrura, the Supreme Personality of Godhead
Hari then returned to His residence, accompanied by Lord Sankarsana and Uddhava.
Chapter Forty-Nine Akrura’s Mission in Hastinapura
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Akrura went to Hastinapura, the city distinguished by the glory of the
Paurava rulers. There he saw Dhrtarastra, Bhisma, Vidura and Kunti, along with Bahlika and his son
Somadatta. He also saw Dronacarya, Krpacarya, Karna, Duryodhana, Asvatthama, the Pandavas and
other close friends.
3. After Akrura, the son of Gandini, had appropriately greeted all his relatives and friends, they asked
him for news of their family members, and he in turn asked about their welfare.
4. He remained in Hastinapura for several months to scrutinize the conduct of the weak-willed King,
who had bad sons and who was inclined to give in to the whims of mischievous advisers.
5-6. Kunti and Vidura described to Akrura in detail the evil intentions of Dhrtarastra’s sons, who could
not tolerate the great qualities of Kunti’s sons—such as their powerful influence, military skill, physical
strength, bravery and humility—or the intense affection the citizens had for them. Kunti and Vidura also
told Akrura about how the sons of Dhrtarastra had tried to poison the Pandavas and carry out other
such plots.
7. Kuntidevi, taking advantage of her brother Akrura’s visit, approached him confidentially. While
remembering her birthplace, she spoke with tears in her eyes.
8. [Queen Kunti said:] O gentle one, do my parents, brothers, sisters, nephews, family women and
girlhood friends still remember us?
9. Does my nephew Krsna, the Supreme Personality and the compassionate shelter of His devotees,
still remember His aunt’s sons? And does lotus-eyed Rama remember them also?
10. Now that I am suffering in the midst of my enemies like a doe in the midst of wolves, will Krsna
come to console me and my fatherless sons with His words?
11. Krsna, Krsna! O great yogi! O Supreme Soul and protector of the universe! O Govinda! Please
protect me, who have surrendered to You. I and my sons are being overwhelmed by trouble.
12. For persons fearful of death and rebirth, I see no shelter other than Your liberating lotus feet, for You
are the Supreme Lord.
13. I offer my obeisances unto You, Krsna, the supreme pure, the Absolute Truth and the Supersoul,
the Lord of pure devotional service and the source of all knowledge. I have come to You for shelter.
14. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus meditating on her family members and also on Krsna, the Lord of the
universe, your great-grandmother Kuntidevi began to cry out in grief, O King.
15. Both Akrura, who shared Queen Kunti’s distress and happiness, and the illustrious Vidura consoled
the Queen by reminding her of the extraordinary way her sons had taken birth.
16. The ardent affection King Dhrtarastra felt for his sons had made him act unjustly toward the
Pandavas. Just before leaving, Akrura approached the King, who was seated among his friends and
supporters, and related to him the message that his relatives—Lord Krsna and Lord Balarama—had
sent out of friendship.
17. Akrura said: O my dear son of Vicitravirya, O enhancer of the Kurus’ glory, your brother Pandu
having passed away, you have now assumed the royal throne.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 547
18. By religiously protecting the earth, delighting your subjects with your noble character, and treating all
your relatives equally, you will surely achieve success and glory.
19. If you act otherwise, however, people will condemn you in this world, and in the next life you will
enter the darkness of hell. Remain equally disposed, therefore, toward Pandu’s sons and your own.
20. In this world no one has any permanent relationship with anyone else, O King. We cannot stay
forever even with our own body, what to speak of our wife, children and the rest.
21. Every creature is born alone and dies alone, and alone one experiences the just rewards of his
good and evil deeds.
22. In the guise of dear dependents, strangers steal the sinfully acquired wealth of a foolish man, just as
the offspring of a fish drink up the water that sustains the fish.
23. A fool indulges in sin to maintain his life, wealth and children and other relatives, for he thinks,
“These things are mine.” In the end, however, these very things all abandon him, leaving him frustrated.
24. Abandoned by his so-called dependents, ignorant of the actual goal of life, indifferent to his real
duty, and having failed to fulfill his purposes, the foolish soul enters the blindness of hell, taking his
sinful reactions with him.
25. Therefore, O King, looking upon this world as a dream, a magician’s illusion or a flight of fancy,
please control your mind with intelligence and become equipoised and peaceful, my lord.
26. Dhrtarastra said: O master of charity, I can never be satiated while hearing your auspicious words.
Indeed, I am like a mortal who has obtained the nectar of the gods.
27. Even so, gentle Akrura, because my unsteady heart is prejudiced by affection for my sons, these
pleasing words of yours cannot remain fixed there, just as lightning cannot remain fixed in a cloud.
28. Who can defy the injunctions of the Supreme Lord, who has now descended in the Yadu dynasty to
diminish the earth’s burden?
29. I offer my obeisances to Him, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who creates this universe by
the inconceivable activity of His material energy and then distributes the various modes of nature by
entering within the creation. From Him, the meaning of whose pastimes is unfathomable, come both the
entangling cycle of birth and death and the process of deliverance from it.
30. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus apprised himself of the King’s attitude, Akrura, the
descendant of Yadu, took permission from his well-wishing relatives and friends and returned to the
capital of the Yadavas.
31. Akrura reported to Lord Balarama and Lord Krsna how Dhrtarastra was behaving toward the
Pandavas. Thus, O descendant of the Kurus, he fulfilled the purpose for which he had been sent.
Chapter Fifty Krsna Establishes the City of Dvaraka
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When Kamsa was killed, O heroic descendant of Bharata, his two queens,
Asti and Prapti, went to their father’s house in great distress.
2. The sorrowful queens told their father, King Jarasandha of Magadha, all about how they had become
widows.
3. Hearing this odious news, O King, Jarasandha was filled with sorrow and anger, and he began the
greatest possible endeavor to rid the earth of the Yadavas.
4. With a force of twenty-three aksauhini divisions, he laid siege to the Yadu capital, Mathura, on all
sides.
5-6. Although Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is the original cause of this world,
when He descended to the earth He played the role of a human being. Thus when He saw
Jarasandha’s assembled army surrounding His city like a great ocean overflowing its shores, and when
He saw how this army was striking fear into His subjects, the Lord considered what His suitable
response should be according to the time, place and specific purpose of His current incarnation.
7-8. [The Supreme Lord thought:] Since it is such a burden on the earth, I will destroy Jarasandha’s
army, consisting of aksauhinis of foot soldiers, horses, chariots and elephants, which the King of
Magadha has assembled from all subservient kings and brought together here. But Jarasandha himself
should not be killed, since in the future he will certainly assemble another army.
9. This is the purpose of My present incarnation—to relieve the earth of its burden, protect the pious
and kill the impious.
10. I also assume other bodies to protect religion and to end irreligion whenever it flourishes in the
course of time.
11. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] As Lord Govinda was thinking in this way, two chariots as effulgent
as the sun suddenly descended from the sky. They were complete with drivers and equipment.
12. The Lord’s eternal divine weapons also appeared before Him spontaneously. Seeing these, Sri
Krsna, Lord of the senses, addressed Lord Sankarsana.
13-14. [The Supreme Lord said:] My respected elder brother, see this danger which has beset Your
dependents, the Yadus! And see, dear master, how Your personal chariot and favorite weapons have
548 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
come before You. The purpose for which We have taken birth, My Lord, is to secure the welfare of Our
devotees. Please now remove from the earth the burden of these twenty-three armies.
15. After Lord Krsna had thus invited His brother, the two Dasarhas, Krsna and Balarama, wearing
armor and displaying Their resplendent weapons, drove out of the city in Their chariots. Only a very
small contingent of soldiers accompanied Them.
16. As Lord Krsna came out of the city with Daruka at the reins of His chariot, He blew His conchshell,
and the enemy soldiers’ hearts began to tremble with fear.
17. Jarasandha looked at the two of Them and said: O Krsna, lowest of men! I do not wish to fight alone
with You, since it would be a shame to fight with a mere boy. You fool who keep Yourself hidden, O
murderer of Your relatives, go away! I will not fight with You.
18. You, Rama, should gather Your courage and fight with me, if You think You can do it. You may
either give up Your body when it is cut to pieces by my arrows, and thus attain to heaven, or else kill
me.
19. The Supreme Lord said: Real heroes do not simply boast but rather show their prowess in action.
We cannot take seriously the words of one who is full of anxiety and who wants to die.
20. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Just as the wind covers the sun with clouds or a fire with dust, the son of
Jara marched toward the two descendants of Madhu and with his huge assemblage of armies
surrounded Them and Their soldiers, chariots, flags, horses and charioteers.
21. The women stood in the watchtowers, palaces and high gates of the city. When they could no
longer see Krsna’s and Balarama’s chariots, identified by banners marked with the emblems of Garuda
and a palm tree, they were struck with grief and fainted.
22. Seeing His army tormented by the relentless and savage rain of arrows from the massive opposing
forces gathered like clouds about Him, Lord Hari twanged His excellent bow, Sarnga, which both gods
and demons worship.
23. Lord Krsna took arrows from His quiver, fixed them on the bowstring, pulled back, and released
endless torrents of sharp shafts, which struck the enemy’s chariots, elephants, horses and infantrymen.
The Lord shooting His arrows resembled a blazing circle of fire.
24. Elephants fell to the ground, their foreheads split open, cavalry horses fell with severed necks,
chariots fell with their horses, flags, drivers and masters all shattered, and foot soldiers collapsed with
severed arms, thighs and shoulders.
25-28. On the battlefield, hundreds of rivers of blood flowed from the limbs of the humans, elephants
and horses who had been cut to pieces. In these rivers arms resembled snakes; human heads, turtles;
dead elephants, islands; and dead horses, crocodiles. Hands and thighs appeared like fish, human hair
like waterweeds, bows like waves, and various weapons like clumps of bushes. The rivers of blood
teemed with all of these. Chariot wheels looked like terrifying whirlpools, and precious gems and
ornaments resembled stones and gravel in the rushing red rivers, which aroused fear in the timid, joy in
the wise. With the blows of His plow weapon the immeasurably powerful Lord Balarama destroyed
Magadhendra’s military force. And though this force was as unfathomable and fearsome as an
impassable ocean, for the two sons of Vasudeva, the Lords of the universe, the battle was hardly more
than play.
29. For Him who orchestrates the creation, maintenance and destruction of the three worlds and who
possesses unlimited spiritual qualities, it is hardly amazing that He subdues an opposing party. Still,
when the Lord does so, imitating human behavior, sages glorify His acts.
30. Jarasandha, with his chariot lost and all his soldiers dead, was left with only his breath. At that point
Lord Balarama forcibly seized the powerful warrior, just as one lion takes hold of another.
31. With the divine noose of Varuna and other, mortal ropes, Balarama began tying up Jarasandha,
who had killed so many foes. But Lord Govinda still had a purpose to fulfill through Jarasandha, and
thus He asked Balarama to stop.
32-33. Jarasandha, whom fighters had highly honored, was ashamed after being released by the two
Lords of the universe, and thus he decided to undergo penances. On the road, however, several kings
convinced him with both spiritual wisdom and mundane arguments that he should give up his idea of
self-abnegation. They told him, “Your defeat by the Yadus was simply the unavoidable reaction of your
past karma.”
34. All of his armies having been killed, and himself neglected by the Personality of Godhead, King
Jarasandha, son of Brhadratha, then sadly returned to the kingdom of the Magadhas.
35-36. Lord Mukunda had crossed the ocean of His enemy’s armies with His own military force
completely intact. He received congratulations from the denizens of heaven, who showered Him with
flowers. The people of Mathura, relieved of their feverish anxiety and filled with joy, came out to meet
Him as professional bards, heralds and panegyrists sang in praise of His victory.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 549
37-38. As the Lord entered His city, conchshells and kettledrums sounded, and many drums, horns,
vinas, flutes and mrdangas played in concert. The boulevards were sprinkled with water, there were
banners everywhere, and the gateways were decorated for the celebration. The citizens were elated,
and the city resounded with the chanting of Vedic hymns.
39. As the women of the city affectionately looked at the Lord, their eyes wide open with love, they
scattered flower garlands, yogurt, parched rice and newly grown sprouts upon Him.
40. Lord Krsna then presented to the Yadu king all the wealth that had fallen on the battlefield—namely,
the countless ornaments of the dead warriors.
41. Seventeen times the King of Magadha met defeat in this very way. And yet throughout these
defeats he fought on with his aksauhini divisions against the forces of the Yadu dynasty who were
protected by Sri Krsna.
42. By the power of Lord Krsna, the Vrsnis would invariably annihilate all of Jarasandha’s forces, and
when all his soldiers had been killed, the King, released by his enemies, would again go away.
43. Just as the eighteenth battle was about to take place, a barbarian warrior named Kalayavana, sent
by Narada, appeared on the battlefield.
44. Arriving at Mathura, this Yavana laid siege to the city with thirty million barbarian soldiers. He had
never found a human rival worth fighting, but he had heard that the Vrsnis were his equals.
45. When Lord Krsna and Lord Sankarsana saw Kalayavana, Krsna thought about the situation and
said, “Ah, a great danger now threatens the Yadus from two sides.
46. “This Yavana is besieging us already, and the mighty King of Magadha will soon arrive here, if not
today then tomorrow or the next day.
47. “If powerful Jarasandha comes while We two are busy fighting Kalayavana, Jarasandha may kill
Our relatives or else take them away to his capital.
48. “Therefore We will immediately construct a fortress that no human force can penetrate. Let Us settle
our family members there and then kill the barbarian king.”
49. After thus discussing the matter with Balarama, the Supreme Personality of Godhead had a fortress
twelve yojanas in circumference built within the sea. Inside that fort He had a city built containing all
kinds of wonderful things.
50-53. In the construction of that city could be seen the full scientific knowledge and architectural skill of
Visvakarma. There were wide avenues, commercial roads and courtyards laid out on ample plots of
land; there were splendid parks, and also gardens stocked with trees and creepers from the heavenly
planets. The gateway towers were topped with golden turrets touching the sky, and their upper levels
were fashioned of crystal quartz. The gold-covered houses were adorned in front with golden pots and
on top with jeweled roofs, and their floors were inlaid with precious emeralds. Beside the houses stood
treasury buildings, warehouses, and stables for fine horses, all built of silver and brass. Each residence
had a watchtower, and also a temple for its household deity. Filled with citizens of all four social orders,
the city was especially beautified by the palaces of Sri Krsna, the Lord of the Yadus.
54. Lord Indra brought Sri Krsna the Sudharma assembly hall, standing within which a mortal man is
not subject to the laws of mortality. Indra also gave the parijata tree.
55. Lord Varuna offered horses as swift as the mind, some of which were pure dark-blue, others white.
The treasurer of the demigods, Kuvera, gave his eight mystic treasures, and the rulers of various
planets each presented their own opulences.
56. The Supreme Lord having come to the earth, O King, these demigods now offered Him whatever
powers of control He had previously delegated to them for the exercise of their particular authority.
57. After transporting all His subjects to the new city by the power of His mystic Yogamaya, Lord Krsna
consulted with Lord Balarama, who had remained in Mathura to protect it. Then, wearing a garland of
lotuses but bearing no weapons, Lord Krsna went out of Mathura by its main gate.
Chapter Fifty-One The Deliverance of Mucukunda
1-6. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Kalayavana saw the Lord come out from Mathura like the rising moon.
The Lord was most beautiful to behold, with His dark-blue complexion and yellow silk garment. Upon
His chest He bore the mark of Srivatsa, and the Kaustubha gem adorned His neck. His four arms were
sturdy and long. He displayed His ever-joyful lotuslike face, with eyes pink like lotuses, beautifully
effulgent cheeks, a pristine smile and glittering shark-shaped earrings. The barbarian thought, “This
person must indeed be Vasudeva, since He possesses the characteristics Narada mentioned: He is
marked with Srivatsa, He has four arms, His eyes are like lotuses, He wears a garland of forest flowers,
and He is extremely handsome. He cannot be anyone else. Since He goes on foot and unarmed, I will
fight Him without weapons.” Resolving thus, he ran after the Lord, who turned His back and ran away.
Kalayavana hoped to catch Lord Krsna, though great mystic yogis cannot attain Him.
7. Appearing virtually within reach of Kalayavana’s hands at every moment, Lord Hari led the King of
the Yavanas far away to a mountain cave.
550 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
8. While chasing the Lord, the Yavana cast insults at Him, saying “You took birth in the Yadu dynasty.
It’s not proper for You to run away!” But still Kalayavana could not reach Lord Krsna, because his sinful
reactions had not been cleansed away.
9. Although insulted in this way, the Supreme Lord entered the mountain cave. Kalayavana also
entered, and there he saw another man lying asleep.
10. “So, after leading me such a long distance, now He is lying here like some saint!” Thus thinking the
sleeping man to be Lord Krsna, the deluded fool kicked him with all his strength.
11. The man awoke aher a long sleep and slowly opened his eyes. Looking all about, he saw
Kalayavana standing beside him.
12. The awakened man was angry and cast his glance at Kalayavana, whose body burst into flames. In
a single moment, O King Pariksit, Kalayavana was burnt to ashes.
13. King Pariksit said: Who was that person, O brahmana? To which family did he belong, and what
were his powers? Why did that destroyer of the barbarian lie down to sleep in the cave, and whose son
was he?
14. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Mucukunda was the name of this great personality, who was born in the
Iksvaku dynasty as the son of Mandhata. He was devoted to brahminical culture and always true to his
vow in battle.
15. Begged by Indra and the other demigods to help protect them when they were terrorized by the
demons, Mucukunda defended them for a long time.
16. When the demigods obtained Karttikeya as their general, they told Mucukunda, “O King, you may
now give up your troublesome duty of guarding us.
17. “Abandoning an unopposed kingdom in the world of men, O valiant one, you neglected all your
personal desires while engaged in protecting us.
18. “The children, queens, relatives, ministers, advisers and subjects who were your contemporaries
are no longer alive. They have all been swept away by time.
19. “Inexhaustible time, stronger than the strong, is the Supreme Personality of Godhead Himself. Like
a herdsman moving his animals along, He moves mortal creatures as His pastime.
20. “All good fortune to you! Now please choose a benediction from us—anything but liberation, since
only the infallible Supreme Lord, Visnu, can bestow that.”
21. Addressed thus, King Mucukunda took his respectful leave of the demigods and went to a cave,
where he lay down to enjoy the sleep they had granted him.
22. After the Yavana was burnt to ashes, the Supreme Lord, chief of the Satvatas, revealed Himself to
the wise Mucukunda.
23-26. As he gazed at the Lord, King Mucukunda saw that He was dark blue like a cloud, had four
arms, and wore a yellow silk garment. On His chest He bore the Srivatsa mark and on His neck the
brilliantly glowing Kaustubha gem. Adorned with a Vaijayanti garland, the Lord displayed His
handsome, peaceful face, which attracts the eyes of all mankind with its shark-shaped earrings and
affectionately smiling glance. The beauty of His youthful form was unexcelled, and He moved with the
nobility of an angry lion. The highly intelligent King was overwhelmed by the Lord’s effulgence, which
showed Him to be invincible. Expressing his uncertainty, Mucukunda hesitantly questioned Lord Krsna
as follows.
27. Sri Mucukunda said: Who are You who have come to this mountain cave in the forest, having
walked on the thorny ground with feet as soft as lotus petals?
28. Perhaps You are the potency of all potent beings. Or maybe You are the powerful god of fire, or the
sun-god, the moon-god, the King of heaven or the ruling demigod of some other planet.
29. I think You are the Supreme Personality among the three chief gods, since You drive away the
darkness of this cave as a lamp dispels darkness with its light.
30. O best among men, if You like, please truly describe Your birth, activities and lineage to us, who are
eager to hear.
31. As for ourselves, O tiger among men, we belong to a family of fallen ksatriyas, descendants of King
Iksvaku. My name is Mucukunda, my Lord, and I am the son of Yauvanasva.
32. I was fatigued after remaining awake for a long time, and my senses were overwhelmed by sleep.
Thus I slept comfortably here in this solitary place until, just now, someone woke me.
33. Kalayavana had declared himself the enemy of Sri Krsna and the Yadu dynasty. Through
Mucukunda, Sri Krsna destroyed the opposition of that foolish barbarian.
34. Your unbearably brilliant effulgence overwhelms our strength, and thus we cannot fix our gaze upon
You. O exalted one, You are to be honored by all embodied beings.
35. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus addressed by the King, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
origin of all creation, smiled and then replied to him in a voice as deep as the rumbling of clouds.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 551
36. The Supreme Lord said: My dear friend, I have taken thousands of births, lived thousands of lives
and accepted thousands of names. In fact My births, activities and names are limitless, and thus even I
cannot count them.
37. After many lifetimes someone might count the dust particles on the earth, but no one can ever finish
counting My qualities, activities, names and births.
38. O King, the greatest sages enumerate My births and activities, which take place throughout the
three phases of time, but never do they reach the end of them.
39-40. Nonetheless, O friend, I will tell you about My current birth, name and activities. Kindly hear.
Some time ago, Lord Brahma requested Me to protect religious principles and destroy the demons who
were burdening the earth. Thus I descended in the Yadu dynasty, in the home of Anakadundubhi.
Indeed, because I am the son of Vasudeva, people call Me Vasudeva.
41. I have killed Kalanemi, reborn as Kamsa, as well as Pralamba and other enemies of the pious. And
now, O King, this barbarian has been burnt to ashes by your piercing glance.
42. Since in the past you repeatedly prayed to Me, I have personally come to this cave to show you
mercy, for I am affectionately inclined to My devotees.
43. Now choose some benedictions from Me, O saintly King. I will fulfill all your desires. One who has
satisfied Me need never again lament.
44. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Mucukunda bowed down to the Lord when he heard this. Remembering
the words of the sage Garga, he joyfully recognized Krsna to be the Supreme Lord, Narayana. The King
then addressed Him as follows.
45. Sri Mucukunda said: O Lord, the people of this world, both men and women, are bewildered by Your
illusory energy. Unaware of their real benefit, they do not worship You but instead seek happiness by
entangling themselves in family affairs, which are actually sources of misery.
46. That person has an impure mind who, despite having somehow or other automatically obtained the
rare and highly evolved human form of life, does not worship Your lotus feet. Like an animal that has
fallen into a blind well, such a person has fallen into the darkness of a material home.
47. I have wasted all this time, O unconquerable one, becoming more and more intoxicated by my
domain and opulence as an earthly king. Misidentifying the mortal body as the self, becoming attached
to children, wives, treasury and land, I suffered endless anxiety.
48. With deep arrogance I took myself to be the body, which is a material object like a pot or a wall.
Thinking myself a god among men, I traveled the earth surrounded by my charioteers, elephants,
cavalry, foot soldiers and generals, disregarding You in my deluding pride.
49. A man obsessed with thoughts of what he thinks needs to be done, intensely greedy, and delighting
in sense enjoyment is suddenly confronted by You, who are ever alert. Like a hungry snake licking its
fangs before a mouse, You appear before him as death.
50. The body that at first rides high on fierce elephants or chariots adorned with gold and is known by
the name “king” is later, by Your invincible power of time, called “feces,” “worms,” or “ashes.”
51. Having conquered the entire circle of directions and being thus free of conflict, a man sits on a
splendid throne, receiving praise from leaders who were once his equals. But when he enters the
women’s chambers, where sex pleasure is found, he is led about like a pet animal, O Lord.
52. A king who desires even greater power than he already has strictly performs his duties, carefully
practicing austerity and forgoing sense enjoyment. But he whose urges are so rampant, thinking “I am
independent and supreme,” cannot attain happiness.
53. When the material life of a wandering soul has ceased, O Acyuta, he may attain the association of
Your devotees. And when he associates with them, there awakens in him devotion unto You, who are
the goal of the devotees and the Lord of all causes and their effects.
54. My Lord, I think You have shown me mercy, since my attachment to my kingdom has
spontaneously ceased. Such freedom is prayed for by saintly rulers of vast empires who desire to enter
the forest for a life of solitude.
55. The Lord offered Mucukunda anything he desired, but Mucukunda desired only the Lord. This is
pure Krsna consciousness.
56. Therefore, O Lord, having put aside all objects of material desire, which are bound to the modes of
passion, ignorance and goodness, I am approaching You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, for
shelter. You are not covered by mundane designations; rather, You are the Supreme Absolute Truth,
full in pure knowledge and transcendental to the material modes.
57. For so long I have been pained by troubles in this world and have been burning with lamentation.
My six enemies are never satiated, and I can find no peace. Therefore, O giver of shelter, O Supreme
Soul, please protect me. O Lord, in the midst of danger I have by good fortune approached Your lotus
feet, which are the truth and which thus make one fearless and free of sorrow.
552 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
58. The Supreme Lord said: O emperor, great ruler, your mind is pure and potent. Though I enticed You
with benedictions, your mind was not overcome by material desires.
59. Understand that I enticed you with benedictions just to prove that you would not be deceived. The
intelligence of My unalloyed devotees is never diverted by material blessings.
60. The minds of nondevotees who engage in such practices as pranayama are not fully cleansed of
material desires. Thus, O King, material desires are again seen to arise in their minds.
61. Wander this earth at will, with your mind fixed on Me. May you always possess such unfailing
devotion for Me.
62. Because you followed the principles of a ksatriya, you killed living beings while hunting and
performing other duties. You must vanquish the sins thus incurred by carefully executing penances
while remaining surrendered to Me.
63. O King, in your very next life you will become an excellent brahmana, the greatest well-wisher of all
creatures, and certainly come to Me alone.
Chapter Fifty-Two Rukmini’s Message to Lord Krsna
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, thus graced by Lord Krsna, Mucukunda circumambulated
Him and bowed down to Him. Then Mucukunda, the beloved descendant of Iksvaku, exited through the
mouth of the cave.
2. Seeing that the size of all the human beings, animals, trees and plants was severely reduced, and
thus realizing that the age of Kali was at hand, Mucukunda left for the north.
3. The sober King, beyond material association and free of doubt, was convinced of the value of
austerity. Absorbing his mind in Lord Krsna, he came to Gandhamadana Mountain.
4. There he arrived at Badarikasrama, the abode of Lord Nara-Narayana, where, remaining tolerant of
all dualities, he peacefully worshiped the Supreme Lord Hari by performing severe austerities.
5. The Lord returned to Mathura, which was still surrounded by Yavanas. Then He destroyed the army
of barbarians and began taking their valuables to Dvaraka.
6. As the wealth was being carried by oxen and men under Lord Krsna’s direction, Jaräsandha
appeared at the head of twenty-three armies.
7. O King, seeing the fierce waves of the enemy’s army, the two Madhavas, imitating human behavior,
ran swiftly away.
8. Abandoning the abundant riches, fearless but feigning fear, They went many yojanas on Their
lotuslike feet.
9. When he saw Them fleeing, powerful Jarasandha laughed loudly and then pursued Them with
charioteers and foot soldiers. He could not understand the exalted position of the two Lords.
10. Apparently exhausted after fleeing a long distance, the two Lords climbed a high mountain named
Pravarsana, upon which Lord Indra showers incessant rain.
11. Although he knew They were hiding on the mountain, Jarasandha could find no trace of Them.
Therefore, O King, he placed firewood on all sides and set the mountain ablaze.
12. The two of Them then suddenly jumped from the burning mountain, which was eleven yojanas high,
and fell to the ground.
13. Unseen by Their opponent or his followers, O King, those two most exalted Yadus returned to Their
city of Dvaraka, which had the ocean as a protective moat.
14. Jarasandha, moreover, mistakenly thought that Balarama and Kesava had burned to death in the
fire. Thus he withdrew his vast military force and returned to the Magadha kingdom.
15. As ordered by Lord Brahma, Raivata, the opulent ruler of Anarta, gave Lord Balarama his daughter
Raivati in marriage. This has already been discussed.
16-17. O hero among the Kurus, the Supreme Lord Himself, Govinda, married Bhismaka’s daughter,
Vaidarbhi, who was a direct expansion of the goddess of fortune. The Lord did this by her desire, and in
the process He beat down Salva and other kings who took Sisupala’s side. Indeed, as everyone
watched, Sri Krsna took Rukminié just as Garuda boldly stole nectar from the demigods.
18. King Pariksit said: The Supreme Lord married Rukmini, the beautiful-faced daughter of Bhismaka, in
the Raksasa style—or so I have heard.
19. My lord, I wish to hear how the immeasurably powerful Lord Krsna took away His bride while
defeating such kings as Magadha and Salva.
20. What experienced listener, O brahmana, could ever grow satiated while listening to the pious,
charming and ever-fresh topics of Lord Krsna, which cleanse away the world’s contamination?
21. Sri Badarayani said: There was a king named Bhismaka, the powerful ruler of Vidarbha. He had five
sons and one daughter of lovely countenance.
22. Rukmi was the first-born son, followed by Rukmaratha, Rukmabahu, Rukmakesa and Rukmamali.
Their sister was the exalted Rukmini.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 553
23. Hearing of the beauty, prowess, transcendental character and opulence of Mukunda from visitors to
the palace who sang His praises, Rukmini decided that He would be the perfect husband for her.
24. Lord Krsna knew that Rukmini possessed intelligence, auspicious bodily markings, beauty, proper
behavior and all other good qualities. Concluding that she would be an ideal wife for Him, He made up
His mind to marry her.
25. Because Rukmi envied the Lord, O King, he forbade his family members to give his sister to Krsna
although they wanted to. Instead, Rukmi decided to give Rukmini to Sisupala.
26. Dark-eyed Vaidarbhi was aware of this plan, and it deeply upset her. Analyzing the situation, she
quickly sent a trustworthy brahmana to Krsna.
27. Upon reaching Dvaraka, the brahmana was brought inside by the gatekeepers and saw the
primeval Personality of Godhead sitting on a golden throne.
28. Seeing the brahmana, Sri Krsna, Lord of the brahmanas, came down from His throne and seated
him. Then the Lord worshiped him just as He Himself is worshiped by the demigods.
29. After the brahmana had eaten and rested, Sri Krsna, the goal of saintly devotees, came forward,
and while massaging the brahmana’s feet with His own hands, He patiently questioned him as follows.
30. [The Supreme Lord said:] O best of exalted brahmanas, are your religious practices, sanctioned by
senior authorities, proceeding without great difficulty? Is your mind always fully satisfied?
31. When a brahmana is satisfied with whatever comes his way and does not fall away from his
religious duties, those very religious principles become his desire cow, fulfilling all his wishes.
32. An unsatisfied brahmana wanders restlessly from one planet to another, even if he becomes King of
heaven. But a satisfied brahmana, though he may possess nothing, rests peacefully, all his limbs free of
distress.
33. I repeatedly bow My head in respect to those brähmaëas who are satisfied with their lot. Saintly,
prideless and peaceful, they are the best well-wishers of all living beings.
34. O brahmana, is your King attending to your welfare? Indeed, that king in whose country the citizens
are happy and protected is very dear to Me.
35. Whence have you come, crossing the impassable sea, and for what purpose? Explain all this to Us
if it is not a secret, and tell Us what We may do for you.
36. Thus questioned by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who incarnates to perform His pastimes,
the brahmana told Him everything.
37. Sri Rukmini said [in her letter, as read by the brahmana]: O beauty of the worlds, having heard of
Your qualities, which enter the ears of those who hear and remove their bodily distress, and having also
heard of Your beauty, which fulfills all the visual desires of those who see, I have fixed my shameless
mind upon You, O Krsna.
38. O Mukunda, You are equal only to Yourself in lineage, character, beauty, knowledge, youthfulness,
wealth and influence. O lion among men, You delight the minds of all mankind. What aristocratic, sober-
minded and marriageable girl of a good family would not choose You as her husband when the proper
time has come?
39. Therefore, my dear Lord, I have chosen You as my husband, and I surrender myself to You. Please
come swiftly, O almighty one, and make me Your wife. My dear lotus-eyed Lord, let Sisupala never
touch the hero’s portion like a jackal stealing the property of a lion.
40. If I have sufficiently worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead by pious works, sacrifices,
charity, rituals and vows, and also by worshiping the demigods, brahmanas and gurus, then may
Gadagraja come and take my hand, and not Damaghosa’s son or anyone else.
41. O unconquerable one, tomorrow when my marriage ceremony is about to begin, You should arrive
unseen in Vidarbha and surround Yourself with the leaders of Your army. Then crush the forces of
Caidya and Magadhendra and marry me in the Raksasa style, winning me with Your valor.
42. Since I will be staying within the inner chambers of the palace, You may wonder, “How can I carry
you away without killing some of your relatives?” But I shall tell You a way: On the day before the
marriage there is a grand procession to honor the royal family’s deity, and in this procession the new
bride goes outside the city to visit Goddess Girija.
43. O lotus-eyed one, great souls like Lord Siva hanker to bathe in the dust of Your lotus feet and
thereby destroy their ignorance. If I cannot obtain Your mercy, I shall simply give up my vital force,
which will have become weak from the severe penances I will perform. Then, after hundreds of lifetimes
of endeavor, I may obtain Your mercy.
44. The brahmana said: This is the confidential message I have brought with me, O Lord of the Yadus.
Please consider what must be done in these circumstances, and do it at once.
Chaptert Fifty-Three Krsna Kidnaps Rukmini
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus hearing the confidential message of Princess Vaidarbhi, Lord
Yadunandana took the brahmana’s hand and, smiling, spoke to him as follows.
554 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
2. The Supreme Lord said: Just as Rukmini’s mind is fixed on Me, My mind is fixed on her. I can’t even
sleep at night. I know that Rukmi, out of envy, has forbidden our marriage.
3. She has dedicated herself exclusively to Me, and her beauty is flawless. I will bring her here after
thrashing those worthless kings in battle, just as one brings a blazing flame out of firewood.
4. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Lord Madhusudana also understood the exact lunar time for Rukmini’s
wedding. Thus He told His driver, “Daruka, ready My chariot immediately.”
5. Daruka brought the Lord’s chariot, yoked with the horses named Saibya, Sugriva, Meghapuspa and
Balahaka. He then stood before Lord Krsna with joined palms.
6. Lord Sauri mounted His chariot and had the brahmana do likewise. Then the Lord’s swift horses took
them from the Anarta district to Vidarbha in a single night.
7. King Bhismaka, the master of Kundina, having succumbed to the sway of affection for his son, was
about to give his daughter to Sisupala. The King saw to all the required preparations.
8-9. The king had the main avenues, commercial roads and intersections thoroughly cleaned and then
sprinkled with water, and he also had the city decorated with triumphant archways and multicolored
banners on poles. The men and women of the city, arrayed in spotless raiment and anointed with
fragrant sandalwood paste, wore precious necklaces, flower garlands and jeweled ornaments, and their
opulent homes were filled with the aroma of aguru.
10. O King, in accordance with prescribed rituals, Maharaja Bhismaka worshiped the forefathers,
demigods and brahmanas, feeding them all properly. Then He had the traditional mantras chanted for
the well-being of the bride.
11. The bride cleaned her teeth and bathed, after which she put on the auspicious wedding necklace.
Then she was dressed in brand-new upper and lower garments and adorned with most excellent
jeweled ornaments.
12. The best of brahmanas chanted mantras of the Rg, Sama and Yajur Vedas for the bride’s
protection, and the priest learned in the Atharva Veda offered oblations to pacify the controlling planets.
13. Outstanding in his knowledge of regulative principles, the King rewarded the brahmanas with gold,
silver, clothing, cows and sesame seeds mixed with raw sugar.
14. Raja Damaghosa, lord of Cedi, had also engaged brahmanas expert in chanting mantras to perform
all rituals necessary to assure his son’s prosperity.
15. King Damaghosa traveled to Kundina accompanied by armies of elephants exuding mada, chariots
hung with golden chains, and numerous cavalry and infantry soldiers.
16. Bhismaka, the lord of Vidarbha, came out of the city and met King Damaghosa, offering him tokens
of respect. Bhismaka then settled Damaghosa in a residence especially constructed for the occasion.
17. Sisupala’s supporters—Salva, Jarasandha, Dantavakra and Viduratha—all came, along with
Paundraka and thousands of other kings.
18-19.To secure the bride for Sisupala, the kings who envied Krsna and Balarama came to the
following decision among themselves: “If Krsna comes here with Balarama and the other Yadus to steal
the bride, we shall band together and fight Him.” Thus those envious kings went to the wedding with
their entire armies and a full complement of military conveyances.
20-21. When Lord Balarama heard about these preparations of the inimical kings and how Lord Krsna
had set off alone to steal the bride, He feared that a fight would ensue. Immersed in affection for His
brother, He hurried to Kundina with a mighty army consisting of infantry and of soldiers riding on
elephants, horses and chariots.
22. The lovely daughter of Bhismaka anxiously awaited the arrival of Krsna, but when she did not see
the brahmana return she thought as follows.
23. [Princess Rukmini thought:] Alas, my wedding is to take place when the night ends! How unlucky I
am! Lotus-eyed Krsna does not come. I don’t know why. And even the brahmana messenger has not
yet returned.
24. Perhaps the faultless Lord, even while preparing to come here, saw something contemptible in me
and therefore has not come to take my hand.
25. I am extremely unfortunate, for the creator is not favorably disposed toward me, nor is the great
Lord Siva. Or perhaps Siva’s wife, Devi, who is known as Gauri, Rudrani, Girija and Sati, has turned
against me.
26. As she thought in this way, the young maiden, whose mind had been stolen by Krsna, closed her
tear-filled eyes, remembering that there was still time.
27. O King, as the bride thus awaited the arrival of Govinda, she felt a twitch in her left thigh, arm and
eye. This was a sign that something desirable would happen.
28. Just then the purest of learned brahmanas, following Krsna’s order, came to see the divine Princess
Rukmini within the inner chambers of the palace.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 555
29. Noting the brahmana’s joyful face and serene movements, saintly Rukmini, who could expertly
interpret such symptoms, inquired from him with a pure smile.
30. The brahmana announced to her the arrival of Lord Yadunandana and relayed the Lord’s promise to
marry her.
31. Princess Vaidarbhi was overjoyed to learn of Krsna’s arrival. Not finding anything at hand suitable to
offer the brahmana, she simply bowed down to him.
32. The King, upon hearing that Krsna and Balarama had come and were eager to witness his
daughter’s wedding, went forth with abundant offerings to greet Them as music resounded.
33. Presenting Them with madhu-parka, new clothing and other desirable gifts, he worshiped Them
according to standard rituals.
34. Generous King Bhismaka arranged opulent accommodations for the two Lords, and also for Their
army and entourage. In this way he afforded Them proper hospitality.
35. Thus it was that Bhismaka gave all desirable things to the kings who had assembled for the
occasion, honoring them as befitted their political power, age, physical prowess and wealth.
36. When the residents of Vidarbha-pura heard that Lord Krsna had come, they all went to see Him.
With the cupped palms of their eyes they drank the honey of His lotus face.
37. [The people of the city said:] Rukmini, and no one else, deserves to become His wife, and He also,
possessing such flawless beauty, is the only suitable husband for Princess Bhaismi.
38. May Acyuta, the creator of the three worlds, be satisfied with whatever pious work we may have
done and show His mercy by taking the hand of Vaidarbhi.
39. Bound by their swelling love, the city’s residents spoke in this way. Then the bride, protected by
guards, left the inner palace to visit the temple of Ambika.
40-41. Rukmini silently went out on foot to see the lotus feet of the deity Bhavani. Accompanied by her
mothers and girlfriends and protected by the King’s valiant soldiers, who held their upraised weapons at
the ready, she simply absorbed her mind in the lotus feet of Krsna. And all the while mrdangas,
conchshells, panavas, horns and other instruments resounded.
42-43. Behind the bride followed thousands of prominent courtesans bearing various offerings and
presents, along with well-adorned brahmanas’ wives singing and reciting prayers and bearing gifts of
garlands, scents, clothing and jewelry. There were also professional singers, musicians, bards,
chroniclers and heralds.
44. Upon reaching the goddess’s temple, Rukmini first washed her lotus feet and hands and then
sipped water for purification. Thus sanctified and peaceful, she came into the presence of mother
Ambika.
45. The older wives of brahmanas, expert in the knowledge of rituals, led young Rukmini in offering
respects to Bhavani, who appeared with her consort, Lord Bhava.
46. [Princess Rukmini prayed:] O mother Ambika, wife of Lord Siva, I repeatedly offer my obeisances
unto you, together with your children. May Lord Krsna become my husband. Please grant this!
47-48. Rukmini worshiped the goddess with water, scents, whole grains, incense, clothing, garlands,
necklaces, jewelry and other prescribed offerings and gifts, and also with arrays of lamps. The married
brahmana women each performed worship simultaneously with the same items, also offering savories
and cakes, prepared betel nut, sacred threads, fruit and sugar-cane juice.
49. The ladies gave the bride the remnants of the offerings and then blessed her. She in turn bowed
down to them and the deity and accepted the remnants as prasadam.
50. The princess then gave up her vow of silence and left the Ambika temple, holding on to a
maidservant with her hand, which was adorned with a jeweled ring.
51-55. Rukmini appeared as enchanting as the Lord’s illusory potency, who enchants even the sober
and grave. Thus the kings gazed upon her virgin beauty, her shapely waist, and her lovely face adorned
with earrings. Her hips were graced with a jewel-studded belt, her breasts were just budding, and her
eyes seemed apprehensive of her encroaching locks of hair. She smiled sweetly, her jasmine-bud teeth
reflecting the glow of her bimba-red lips. As she walked with the motions of a royal swan, the effulgence
of her tinkling ankle bells beautified her feet. Seeing her, the assembled heroes were totally bewildered.
Lust tore at their hearts. Indeed, when the kings saw her broad smile and shy glance, they became
stupefied, dropped their weapons and fell unconscious to the ground from their elephants, chariots and
horses. On the pretext of the procession, Rukmini displayed her beauty for Krsna alone. Slowly she
advanced the two moving lotus-whorls of her feet, awaiting the arrival of the Supreme Lord. With the
fingernails of her left hand she pushed some strands of hair away from her face and shyly looked from
the corners of her eyes at the kings standing before her. At that moment she saw Krsna. Then, while
His enemies looked on, the Lord seized the princess, who was eager to mount His chariot.
556 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
56. Lifting the princess onto His chariot, whose flag bore the emblem of Garuda, Lord Madhava drove
back the circle of kings. With Balarama in the lead, He slowly exited, like a lion removing his prey from
the midst of jackals.
57. The kings inimical to the Lord, headed by Jarasandha, could not tolerate this humiliating defeat.
They exclaimed, “Oh, damn us! Though we are mighty archers, mere cowherds have stolen our honor,
just as puny animals might steal the honor of lions!”
Chapter Fifty-Four The Marriage of Krsna and Rukmini
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus spoken, all those infuriated kings donned their armor and
mounted their conveyances. Each king, bow in hand, was surrounded by his own army as he went after
Lord Krsna.
2. The commanders of the Yadava army, seeing the enemy racing to attack, turned to face them and
stood firm, O King, twanging their bows.
3. Mounted on the backs of horses, the shoulders of elephants and the seats of chariots, the enemy
kings, expert with weapons, rained down arrows upon the Yadus like clouds pouring rain on mountains.
4. Slender-waisted Rukmini, seeing her Lord’s army covered by torrents of arrows, shyly looked at His
face with fear-stricken eyes.
5. In response the Lord laughed and assured her, “Do not be afraid, beautiful-eyed one. This enemy
force is about to be destroyed by your soldiers.”
6. The heroes of the Lord’s army, headed by Gada and Sankarsana, could not tolerate the aggression
of the opposing kings. Thus with iron arrows they began to strike down the enemy’s horses, elephants
and chariots.
7. The heads of soldiers fighting on chariots, horses and elephants fell to the ground by the millions;
some heads wore earrings and helmets, others turbans.
8. Lying all around were thighs, legs and fingerless hands, along with hands clutching swords, clubs
and bows, and also the heads of horses, donkeys, elephants, camels, wild asses and humans.
9. Seeing their armies being struck down by the Vrsnis, who were eager for victory, the kings headed by
Jarasandha were discouraged and left the battlefield.
10. The kings approached Sisupala, who was disturbed like a man who has lost his wife. His
complexion was drained of color, his enthusiasm was gone, and his face appeared dried up. The kings
spoke to him as follows.
11. [Jarasandha said:] Listen, Sisupala, O tiger among men, give up your depression. After all,
embodied beings’ happiness and unhappiness is never seen to be permanent, O King.
12. Just as a puppet in the form of a woman dances by the desire of the puppeteer, so this world,
controlled by the Supreme Lord, struggles in both happiness and misery.
13. In battle with Krsna I and my twenty-three armies lost seventeen times; only once did I defeat Him.
14. But still I never lament or rejoice, because I know this world is driven by time and fate.
15. And now all of us, great commanders of military leaders, have been defeated by the Yadus and
their small entourage, who are protected by Krsna.
16. Now our enemies have conquered because time favors them, but in the future, when time is
auspicious for us, we shall conquer.
17. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus persuaded by his friends, Sisupala took his followers and went back
to his capital. The surviving warriors also returned to their respective cities.
18. Powerful Rukmi, however, was especially envious of Krsna. He could not bear the fact that Krsna
had carried off his sister to marry her in the Raksasa style. Thus he pursued the Lord with an entire
military division.
19-20. Frustrated and enraged, mighty-armed Rukmi, dressed in armor and wielding his bow, had
sworn before all the kings, “I shall not again enter Kundina if I do not kill Krsna in battle and bring
Rukmini back with me. I swear this to you.”
21. Having said this, he had mounted his chariot and told his charioteer, “Drive the horses quickly to
where Krsna is. He and I must fight.
22. “This wicked-minded cowherd boy, infatuated with His prowess, has violently abducted my sister.
But today I will remove His pride with my sharp arrows.”
23. Boasting thus, foolish Rukmi, ignorant of the true extent of the Supreme Lord’s power, approached
Lord Govinda in his lone chariot and challenged Him, “Just stand and fight!”
24. Rukmi drew his bow with great strength and struck Lord Krsna with three arrows. Then he said,
“Stand here for a moment, O defiler of the Yadu dynasty!
25. “Wherever You go, carrying off my sister like a crow stealing sacrificial butter, I will follow. This very
day I shall relieve You of Your false pride, You fool, You deceiver, You cheater in battle!
26. “Release the girl before You are struck dead by my arrows and made to lie down!” In response to
this, Lord Krsna smiled, and with six arrows He struck Rukmi and broke his bow.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 557
27. The Lord struck Rukmi’s four horses with eight arrows, his chariot driver with two, and the chariot’s
flag with three. Rukmi grabbed another bow and struck Lord Krsna with five arrows.
28. Although hit by these many arrows, Lord Acyuta again broke Rukmi’s bow. Rukmi picked up yet
another bow, but the infallible Lord broke that one to pieces as well.
29. Iron bludgeon, three-pointed spear, sword and shield, pike, javelin—whatever weapon Rukmi
picked up, Lord Hari smashed it to bits.
30. Then Rukmi leaped down from his chariot and, sword in hand, rushed furiously toward Krsna to kill
Him, like a bird flying into the wind.
31. As Rukmi attacked Him, the Lord shot arrows that broke Rukmi’s sword and shield into small
pieces. Krsna then took up His own sharp sword and prepared to kill Rukmi.
32. Seeing Lord Krsna ready to kill her brother, saintly Rukmini was filled with alarm. She fell at her
husband’s feet and piteously spoke as follows.
33. Sri Rukmini said: O controller of all mystic power, immeasurable one, Lord of lords, master of the
universe! O all auspicious and mighty-armed one, please do not kill my brother!
34. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Rukmini’s utter fear caused her limbs to tremble and her mouth to dry up,
while her throat choked up out of sorrow. And in her agitation her golden necklace scattered. She
grasped Krsna’s feet, and the Lord, feeling compassionate, desisted.
35. Lord Krsna tied up the evil-doer with a strip of cloth. He then proceeded to disfigure Rukmi by
comically shaving him, leaving parts of his mustache and hair. By that time the Yadu heroes had
crushed the extraordinary army of their opponents, just as elephants crush a lotus flower.
36. As the Yadus approached Lord Krsna, they saw Rukmi in this sorry condition, practically dying of
shame. When the all-powerful Lord Balarama saw Rukmi, He compassionately released him and spoke
the following to Lord Krsna.
37. [Lord Balarama said:] My dear Krsna, You have acted improperly! This deed will bring shame on
Us, for to disfigure a 38. Saintly lady, please do not be displeased with Us out of anxiety for your
brother’s disfigurement. No one but oneself is responsible for one’s joy and grief, for a man experiences
the result of his own deeds.
39. [Again addressing Krsna, Balarama said:] A relative should not be killed even if his wrongdoing
warrants capital punishment. Rather, he should be thrown out of the family. Since he has already been
killed by his own sin, why kill him again?
40. [Turning to Rukmini, Balarama continued:] The code of sacred duty for warriors established by Lord
Brahma enjoins that one may have to kill even his own brother. That is indeed a most dreadful law.
41. [Again Balarama addressed Krsna:] Blinded by conceit with their personal opulences, proud men
offend others for the sake of such things as kingdom, land, wealth, women, honor and power.
42. [To Rukmini Balarama said:] Your attitude is unfair, for like an ignorant person you wish good to
those who are inimical to all living beings and who have done evil to your true well-wishers.
43. The Supreme Lord’s Maya makes men forget their real selves, and thus, taking the body for the
self, they consider others to be friends, enemies or neutral parties.
44. Those who are bewildered perceive the one Supreme Soul, who resides in all embodied beings, as
many, just as one may perceive the light in the sky, or the sky itself, as many.
45. This material body, which has a beginning and an end, is composed of the physical elements, the
senses and the modes of nature. The body, imposed on the self by material ignorance, causes one to
experience the cycle of birth and death.
46. O intelligent lady, the soul never undergoes contact with or separation from insubstantial, material
objects, because the soul is their very origin and illuminator. Thus the soul resembles the sun, which
neither comes in contact with nor separates from the sense of sight and what is seen.
47. Birth and other transformations are undergone by the body but never by the self, just as change
occurs for the moon’s phases but never for the moon, though the new-moon day may be called the
moon’s “death.”
48. As a sleeping person perceives himself, the objects of sense enjoyment and the fruits of his acts
within the illusion of a dream, so one who is unintelligent undergoes material existence.
49. Therefore, with transcendental knowledge dispel the grief that is weakening and confounding your
mind. Please resume your natural mood, O princess of the pristine smile.
50. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus enlightened by Lord Balarama, slender Rukmini forgot her
depression and steadied her mind by spiritual intelligence.
51. Left with only his life air, cast out by his enemies and deprived of his strength and bodily radiance,
Rukmi could not forget how he had been disfigured. In frustration he constructed for his residence a
large city, which he called Bhojakata.
52. Because he had promised “I will not reenter Kundina until I have killed wicked Krsna and brought
back my younger sister,” in a mood of angry frustration Rukmi took up residence at that very place.
558 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
53. Thus defeating all the opposing kings, the Supreme Personality of Godhead brought the daughter of
Bhismaka to His capital and married her according to the Vedic injunctions, O protector of the Kurus.
54. At that time, O King, there was great rejoicing in all the homes of Yadupuri, whose citizens loved
only Krsna, chief of the Yadus.
55. All the men and women, full of joy and adorned with shining jewels and earrings, brought wedding
presents, which they reverently offered to the exquisitely dressed groom and bride.
56. The city of the Vrsnis appeared most beautiful: there were tall, festive columns, and also archways
decorated with flower garlands, cloth banners and precious gems. Arrangements of auspicious, full
waterpots, aguru-scented incense, and lamps graced every doorway.
57. The city’s streets were cleansed by the intoxicated elephants belonging to the beloved kings who
were guests at the wedding, and these elephants further enhanced the beauty of the city by placing
trunks of plantain and betel-nut trees in all the doorways.
58. Those who belonged to the royal families of the Kuru, Srnjaya, Kaikeya, Vidarbha, Yadu and Kunti
clans joyfully met one another in the midst of the crowds of people excitedly running here and there.
59. The kings and their daughters were totally astonished to hear the story of Rukmini’s abduction,
which was being glorified in song everywhere.
60. Dvaraka’s citizens were overjoyed to see Krsna, the Lord of all opulence, united with Rukmini, the
goddess of fortune.
Chapter Fifty-Five The History of Pradyumna
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Kamadeva [Cupid], an expansion of Vasudeva, had previously been
burned to ashes by Rudra’s anger. Now, to obtain a new body, he merged back into the body of Lord
Vasudeva.
2. He took birth in the womb of Vaidarbhi from the seed of Lord Krsna and received the name
Pradyumna. In no respect was He inferior to His father.
3. The demon Sambara, who could assume any form he desired, kidnapped the infant before He was
even ten days old. Understanding Pradyumna to be his enemy, Sambara threw Him into the sea and
then returned home.
4. A powerful fish swallowed Pradyumna, and this fish, along with others, was caught in a huge net and
seized by fishermen.
5. The fishermen presented that extraordinary fish to Sambara, who had his cooks bring it to the
kitchen, where they began cutting it up with a butcher knife.
6. Seeing a male child in the belly of the fish, the cooks gave the infant to Mayavati, who was
astonished. Narada Muni then appeared and explained to her everything about the child’s birth and His
entering the fish’s abdomen.
7-8. Mayavati was in fact Cupid’s renowned wife, Rati. While waiting for her husband to obtain a new
body–his previous one having been burnt up–she had been assigned by Sambara to prepare
vegetables and rice. Mayavati understood that this infant was actually Kamadeva, and thus she began
to feel love for Him.
9. After a short time, this son of –Pradyumna– attained His full youth. He enchanted all women who
gazed upon Him.
10. My dear King, with a bashful smile and raised eyebrows, Mayavati exhibited various gestures of
conjugal attraction as she lovingly approached her husband, whose eyes were broad like the petals of a
lotus, whose arms were very long and who was the most beautiful of men.
11. Lord Pradyumna told her, “O mother, your attitude has changed. You are overstepping the proper
feelings of a mother and behaving like a lover.”
12. Rati said: You are the son of Lord Narayana and were kidnapped from Your parents’ home by
Sambara. I, Rati, am Your legitimate wife, O master, because You are Cupid.
13. That demon, Sambara, threw You into the sea when You were not even ten days old, and a fish
swallowed You. Then in this very place we recovered You from the fish’s abdomen, O master.
14. Now kill this dreadful Sambara, Your formidable enemy. Although he knows hundreds of magic
spells, You can defeat him with bewildering magic and other techniques.
15. Your poor mother, having lost her son, cries for You like a kurari bird. She is overwhelmed with love
for her child, just like a cow that has lost its calf.
16. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Speaking thus, Mayavati gave to the great soul Pradyumna the
mystic knowledge called Mahamaya, which vanquishes all other deluding spells.
17. Pradyumna approached Sambara and called him to battle, hurling intolerable insults at him to
foment a conflict.
18. Offended by these harsh words, Sambara became as agitated as a kicked snake. He came out,
club in hand, his eyes red with rage.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 559
19. Sambara whirled his club swiftly about and then hurled it at the wise Pradyumna, producing a sound
as sharp as a thunder crack.
20. As Sambara’s club came flying toward Him, Lord Pradyumna knocked it away with His own. Then,
O King, Pradyumna angrily threw His club at the enemy.
21. Resorting to the black magic of the Daityas taught to him by Maya Danava, Sambara suddenly
appeared in the sky and released a downpour of weapons upon Krsna’s son.
22. Harassed by this rain of weapons, Lord Raukmienya, the greatly powerful warrior, made use of the
mystic science called Maha-maya, which was created from the mode of goodness and which could
defeat all other mystic power.
23. The demon then unleashed hundreds of mystic weapons belonging to the Guhyakas, Gandharvas,
Pisacas, Uragas and Raksasas, but Lord Karsni, Pradyumna, struck them all down.
24. Drawing His sharp-edged sword, Pradyumna forcefully cut off Sambara’s head, complete with red
mustache, helmet and earrings.
25. As the residents of the higher planets showered Pradyumna with flowers and chanted His praises,
His wife appeared in the sky and transported Him through the heavens, back to the city of Dvaraka.
26. O King, Lord Pradyumna and His wife resembled a cloud accompanied by lightning as they
descended from the sky into the inner quarters of Krsna’s most excellent palace, which were crowded
with lovely women.
27-28. The women of the palace thought He was Lord Krsna when they saw His dark-blue complexion
the color of a rain cloud, His yellow silk garments, His long arms and red-tinged eyes, His charming
lotus face adorned with a pleasing smile, His fine ornaments and His thick, curly blue hair. Thus the
women became bashful and hid themselves here and there.
29. Gradually, from the slight differences between His appearance and Krsna’s, the ladies realized He
was not the Lord. Delighted and astonished, they approached Pradyumna and His consort, who was a
jewel among women.
30. Seeing Pradyumna, sweet-voiced, dark-eyed Rukmini remembered her lost son, and her breasts
became moist out of affection.
31. [Srimaté Rukmini-devi said:] Who is this lotus-eyed jewel among men? What man’s son is He, and
what woman carried Him in her womb? And who is this woman He has taken as His wife?
32. If my lost son, who was kidnapped from the maternity room, were still alive somewhere, He would
be of the same age and appearance as this young man.
33. But how is it that this young man so much resembles my own Lord, Krsna, the wielder of Sarnga, in
His bodily form and His limbs, in His gait and the tone of His voice, and in His smiling glance?
34. Yes, He must be the same child I bore in my womb, since I feel great affection for Him and my left
arm is quivering.
35. As Queen Rukmini conjectured in this way, Lord Krsna, the son of Devaki, arrived on the scene with
Vasudeva and Devaki.
36. Although Lord Janardana knew perfectly well what had transpired, He remained silent. The sage
Narada, however, explained everything, beginning with Sambara’s kidnapping of the child.
37. When the women of Lord Krsna’s palace heard this most amazing account, they joyfully greeted
Pradyumna, who had been lost for many years but who had now returned as if from the dead.
38. Devaki, Vasudeva, Krsna, Balarama and all the women of the palace, especially Queen Rukmini,
embraced the young couple and rejoiced.
39. Hearing that lost Pradyumna had come home, the residents of Dvaraka declared, “Ah, providence
has allowed this child to return as if from death!”
40. It is not astonishing that the palace women, who should have felt maternal affection for Pradyumna,
privately felt ecstatic attraction for Him as if He were their own Lord. After all, the son exactly resembled
His father. Indeed, Pradyumna was a perfect reflection of the beauty of Lord Krsna, the shelter of the
goddess of fortune, and appeared before their eyes as Cupid Himself. Since even those on the level of
His mother felt conjugal attraction for Him, then what to speak of how other women felt when they saw
Him?
Chapter Fifty-Six The Syamantaka Jewel
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having offended Lord Krsna, Satrajit tried as best he could to atone by
presenting Him with his daughter and the Syamantaka jewel.
2. Maharaja Pariksit inquired: O brahmana, what did King Satrajit do to offend Lord Krsna? Where did
he get the Syamantaka jewel, and why did he give his daughter to the Supreme Lord?
3. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Surya, the sun-god, felt great affection for his devotee Satrajit. Acting as his
greatest friend, the demigod gave him the jewel called Syamantaka as a token of his satisfaction.
4. Wearing the jewel on his neck, Satrajit entered Dvaraka. He shone as brightly as the sun itself, O
King, and thus he went unrecognized because of the jewel’s effulgence.
560 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
5. As the people looked at Satrajit from a distance, his brilliance blinded them. They presumed he was
the sun-god, Surya, and went to tell Lord Krsna, who was at that time playing at dice.
6. [The residents of Dvaraka said:] Obeisances unto You, O Narayana, O holder of the conch, disc and
club, O lotus-eyed Damodara, O Govinda, O cherished descendant of Yadu!
7. Lord Savita has come to see You, O Lord of the universe. He is blinding everyone’s eyes with his
intensely effulgent rays.
8. The most exalted demigods in the three worlds are certainly anxious to seek You out, O Lord, now
that You have hidden Yourself among the Yadu dynasty. Thus the unborn sun-god has come to see
You here.
9. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Hearing these innocent words, the lotus-eyed Lord smiled broadly
and said, “This is not the sun-god, Ravi, but rather Satrajit, who is glowing because of his jewel.”
10. King Satrajit entered his opulent home, festively executing auspicious rituals. He had qualified
brahmanas install the Syamantaka jewel in the house’s temple room.
11. Each day the gem would produce eight bharas of gold, my dear Prabhu, and the place in which it
was kept and properly worshiped would be free of calamities such as famine or untimely death, and
also of evils like snake bites, mental and physical disorders and the presence of deceitful persons.
12. On one occasion Lord Krsna requested Satrajit to give the jewel to the Yadu king, Ugrasena, but
Satrajit was so greedy that he refused. He gave no thought to the seriousness of the offense he
committed by denying the Lord’s request.
13. Once Satrajit’s brother, Prasena, having hung the brilliant jewel about his neck, mounted a horse
and went hunting in the forest.
14. A lion killed Prasena and his horse and took the jewel. But when the lion entered a mountain cave
he was killed by Jambavan, who wanted the jewel.
15. Within the cave Jambavan let his young son have the Syamantaka jewel as a toy to play with.
Meanwhile Satrajit, not seeing his brother return, became deeply troubled.
16. He said, “Krsna probably killed my brother, who went to the forest wearing the jewel on his neck.”
The general populace heard this accusation and began whispering it in one another’s ears.
17. When Lord Krsna heard this rumor, He wanted to remove the stain on His reputation. So He took
some of Dvaraka’s citizens with Him and set out to retrace Prasena’s path.
18. In the forest they found Prasena and his horse, both killed by the lion. Further on they found the lion
dead on a mountainside, slain by Rksa [Jambavan].
19. The Lord stationed His subjects outside the terrifying, pitch-dark cave of the king of the bears, and
then He entered alone.
20. There Lord Krsna saw that the most precious of jewels had been made into a child’s plaything.
Determined to take it away, He approached the child.
21. The child’s nurse cried out in fear upon seeing that extraordinary person standing before them.
Jambavan, strongest of the strong, heard her cries and angrily ran toward the Lord.
22. Unaware of His true position and thinking Him an ordinary man, Jambavan angrily began fighting
with the Supreme Lord, his master.
23. The two fought furiously in single combat, each determined to win. Contending against each other
with various weapons and then with stones, tree trunks and finally their bare arms, they struggled like
two hawks battling over a piece of flesh.
24. The fight went on without rest for twenty-eight days, the two opponents striking each other with their
fists, which fell like the cracking blows of lightning.
25. His bulging muscles pummeled by the blows of Lord Krsna’s fists, his strength faltering and his
limbs perspiring, Jambavan, greatly astonished, finally spoke to the Lord.
26. [Jambavan said:] I know now that You are the life air and the sensory, mental and bodily strength of
all living beings. You are Lord Visnu, the original person, the supreme, all-powerful controller.
27. You are the ultimate creator of all creators of the universe, and of everything created You are the
underlying substance. You are the subduer of all subduers, the Supreme Lord and Supreme Soul of all
souls.
28. You are He who impelled the ocean to give way when His sidelong glances, slightly manifesting His
anger, disturbed the crocodiles and timingila fish within the watery depths. You are He who built a great
bridge to establish His fame, who burned down the city of Lanka, and whose arrows severed the heads
of Ravana, which then fell to the ground.
29-30. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] O King, Lord Krsna then addressed the king of the bears, who
had understood the truth. The lotus-eyed Personality of Godhead, the son of Devaki, touched
Jambavan with His hand, which bestows all blessings, and spoke to His devotee with sublime
compassion, His grave voice deeply resounding like a cloud.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 561
31. [Lord Krsna said:] It is for this jewel, O lord of the bears, that we have come to your cave. I intend to
use the jewel to disprove the false accusations against Me.
32. Thus addressed, Jambavan happily honored Lord Krsna by offering Him his maiden daughter,
Jambavati, together with the jewel.
33. After Lord Sauri had entered the cave, the people of Dvaraka who had accompanied Him had
waited twelve days without seeing Him come out again. Finally they had given up and returned to their
city in great sorrow.
34. When Devaki, Rukmini-devi, Vasudeva and the Lord’s other relatives and friends heard that He had
not come out of the cave, they all lamented.
35. Cursing Satrajit, the sorrowful residents of Dvaraka approached the Durga deity named
Candrabhaga and prayed to her for Krsna’s return.
36. When the citizens had finished worshiping the demigoddess, she spoke to them in response,
promising to grant their request. Just then Lord Krsna, who had achieved His purpose, appeared before
them in the company of His new wife, filling them with joy.
37. Seeing Lord Hrsikesa return as if from death, accompanied by His new wife and wearing the
Syamantaka jewel on His neck, all the people were roused to jubilation.
38. Lord Krsna summoned Satrajit to the royal assembly. There, in the presence of King Ugrasena,
Krsna announced the recovery of the jewel and then formally presented it to Satrajit.
39. Hanging his head in great shame, Satrajit took the gem and returned home, all the while feeling
remorse for his sinful behavior.
40-42. Pondering over his grievous offense and worried about the possibility of conflict with the Lord’s
mighty devotees, King Satrajit thought, “How can I cleanse myself of my contamination, and how may
Lord Acyuta become satisfied with me? What can I do to regain my good fortune and avoid being
cursed by the populace for being so short-sighted, miserly, foolish and avaricious? I shall give my
daughter, the jewel of all women, to the Lord, together with the Syamantaka jewel. That, indeed, is the
only proper way to pacify Him.”
43. Having thus intelligently made up his mind, King Satrajit personally arranged to present Lord Krsna
with his fair daughter and the Syamantaka jewel.
44. The Lord married Satyabhama in proper religious fashion. Possessed of excellent behavior, along
with beauty, broad-mindedness and all other good qualities, she had been sought by many men.
45. The Supreme Personality of Godhead told Satrajit: We do not care to take this jewel back, O King.
You are the sun-god’s devotee, so let it stay in your possession. Thus We will also enjoy its benefits.
Chapter Fifty-Seven Satrajit Murdered, the Jewel Returned
1. Sri Badarayani said: Although Lord Govinda was fully aware of what had actually occurred, when He
heard reports that the Pandavas and Queen Kunti had burned to death, He went with Lord Balarama to
the kingdom of the Kurus to fulfill the family obligations expected of Him.
2. The two Lords met with Bhisma, Krpa, Vidura, Gandhari and Drona. Showing sorrow equal to theirs,
They cried out, “Alas, how painful this is!”
3. Taking advantage of this opportunity, O King, Akrura and Krtavarma went to Satadhanva and said,
“Why not take the Syamantaka jewel?
4. “Satrajit promised his jewellike daughter to us but then gave her to Krsna instead, contemptuously
neglecting us. So why should Satrajit not follow his brother’s path?”
5. His mind thus influenced by their advice, wicked Satadhanva murdered Satrajit in his sleep simply out
of greed. In this way the sinful Satadhanva shortened his own life span.
6. As the women of Satrajit’s palace screamed and helplessly wept, Satadhanva took the jewel and left,
like a butcher after he has killed some animals.
7. When Satyabhama saw her dead father, she was plunged into grief. Lamenting “My father, my father!
Oh, I am killed!” she fell unconscious.
8. Queen Satyabhama put her father’s corpse in a large vat of oil and went to Hastinapura, where she
sorrowfully told Lord Krsna, who was already aware of the situation, about her father’s murder.
9. When Lord Krsna and Lord Balarama heard this news, O King, They exclaimed, “Alas! This is the
greatest tragedy for Us! “Thus imitating the ways of human society, They lamented, Their eyes
brimming with tears.
10. The Supreme Lord returned to His capital with His wife and elder brother. After arriving in Dvaraka,
He readied Himself to kill Satadhanva and retrieve the jewel from him.
11. Upon learning that Lord Krsna was preparing to kill him, Satadhanva was struck with fear. To save
his life he approached Krtavarma and begged him for help, but Krtavarma replied as follows.
12-13. [Krtavarma said:] I dare not offend the Supreme Lords, Krsna and Balarama. Indeed, how can
one who troubles Them expect any good fortune? Kamsa and all his followers lost both their wealth and
562 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
their lives because of enmity toward Them, and after battling Them seventeen times Jarasandha was
left without even a chariot.
14. His appeal refused, Satadhanva went to Akrura and begged him for protection. But Akrura similarly
told him, “Who would oppose the two Personalities of Godhead if he knew Their strength?
15. “It is the Supreme Lord who creates, maintains and destroys this universe simply as His pastime.
The cosmic creators cannot even understand His purpose, bewildered as they are by His illusory Maya.
16. “As a child of seven, Krsna uprooted an entire mountain and held it aloft as easily as a young boy
picks up a mushroom.
17. “I offer my obeisances to that Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, whose every deed is
amazing. He is the Supreme Soul, the unlimited source and fixed center of all existence.”
18. His appeal thus rejected by Akrura also, Satadhanva placed the precious jewel in Akrura’s care and
fled on a horse that could travel one hundred yojanas [eight hundred miles].
19. My dear King, Krsna and Balarama mounted Krsna’s chariot, which flew the flag of Garuda and was
yoked with tremendously swift horses, and pursued Their elder’s murderer.
20. In a garden on the outskirts of Mithila, the horse Satadhanva was riding collapsed. Terrified, he
abandoned the horse and began to flee on foot, with Krsna in angry pursuit.
21. As Satadhanva fled on foot, the Supreme Lord, also going on foot, cut off his head with His sharp-
edged disc. The Lord then searched Satadhanva’s upper and lower garments for the Syamantaka
jewel.
22. Not finding the jewel, Lord Krsna went to His elder brother and said, “We have killed Satadhanva
uselessly. The jewel isn’t here.”
23. To this Lord Balarama replied, “Indeed, Satadhanva must have placed the jewel in the care of
someone. You should return to Our city and find that person.
24. “I wish to visit King Videha, who is most dear to Me.” O King, having said this, Lord Balarama, the
beloved descendant of Yadu, entered the city of Mithila.
25. The King of Mithila immediately rose from his seat when he saw Lord Balarama approaching. With
great love the King honored the supremely worshipable Lord by offering Him elaborate worship, as
stipulated by scriptural injunctions.
26. The almighty Lord Balarama stayed in Mithila for several years, honored by His affectionate devotee
Janaka Maharaja. During that time Dhrtarastra’s son Duryodhana learned from Balarama the art of
fighting with a club.
27. Lord Kesava arrived in Dvaraka and described the demise of Satadhanva and His own failure to find
the Syamantaka jewel. He spoke in a way that would please His beloved, Satyabhama.
28. Lord Krsna then had the various funeral rites performed for His deceased relative, Satrajit. The Lord
attended the funeral along with well-wishers of the family.
29. When Akrura and Krtavarma, who had originally incited Satadhanva to commit his crime, heard that
he had been killed, they fled Dvaraka in terror and took up residence elsewhere.
30. In Akrura’s absence ill omens arose in Dvaraka, and the citizens began to suffer continually from
physical and mental distresses, as well as from disturbances caused by higher powers and by creatures
of the earth.
31. Some men proposed [that the troubles were due to Akrura’s absence], but they had forgotten the
glories of the Supreme Lord, which they themselves had so often described. Indeed, how can
calamities occur in a place where the Personality of Godhead, the residence of all the sages, resides?
32. [The elders said:] Previously, when Lord Indra had withheld rain from Kasi [Benares], the king of
that city gave his daughter Gandini to Svaphalka, who was then visiting him. It soon rained in the
kingdom of Kasi.
33. Wherever his equally powerful son Akrura stays, Lord Indra will provide sufficient rain. Indeed, that
place will be free of miseries and untimely deaths.
34. Hearing these words from the elders, Lord Janardana, though aware that the absence of Akrura
was not the only cause of the evil omens, had him summoned back to Dvaraka and spoke to him.
35-36. Lord Krsna honored Akrura, greeted him confidentially and spoke pleasant words with him. Then
the Lord, who was fully aware of Akrura’s heart by virtue of His being the knower of everything, smiled
and addressed him: “O master of charity, surely the opulent Syamantaka jewel was left in your care by
Satadhanva and is still with you. Indeed, We have known this all along.
37. “Since Satrajit had no sons, his daughter’s sons should receive his inheritance. They should pay for
memorial offerings of waler and pinda, clear their grandfather’s outstanding debts and keep the
remainder of the inheritance for themselves.
38-39. “Nevertheless, the jewel should remain in your care, O trustworthy Akrura, because no one else
can keep it safely. But please show the jewel just once, since My elder brother does not fully believe
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 563
what I have told Him about it. In this way, O most fortunate one, you will pacify My relatives. [Everyone
knows you have the jewel, for] you are now continually performing sacrifices on altars of gold.”
40. Thus shamed by Lord Krsna’s conciliatory words, the son of Svaphalka brought out the jewel from
where he had concealed it in his clothing and gave it to the Lord. The brilliant gem shone like the sun.
41. After the almighty Lord had shown the Syamantaka jewel to His relatives, thus dispelling the false
accusations against Him, He returned it to Akrura.
42. This narration, rich with descriptions of the prowess of Lord Sri Visnu, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, removes sinful reactions and bestows all auspiciousness. Anyone who recites, hears or
remembers it will drive away his own infamy and sins and attain peace.
Chapter Fifty-Eight Krsna Marries Five Princesses
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Once, the supremely opulent Personality of Godhead went to Indraprastha
to visit the Pandavas, who had again appeared in public. Accompanying the Lord were Yuyudhana and
other associates.
2. When the Pandavas saw that Lord Mukunda had arrived, those heroic sons of Prtha all stood up at
once, like the senses responding to the return of the life air.
3. The heroes embraced Lord Acyuta, and the touch of His body freed them of sin. Looking at His
affectionate, smiling face, they were overwhelmed with joy.
4. After the Lord bowed down at the feet of Yudhisthira and Bhima and firmly embraced Arjuna, He
accepted obeisances from the twin brothers, Nakula and Sahadeva.
5. Faultless Draupadi, the Pandavas’ newly married wife, slowly and somewhat timidly approached Lord
Krsna, who sat on an exalted seat, and offered Him her obeisances.
6. Satyaki also accepted a seat of honor after receiving worship and welcome from the Pandavas, and
the Lord’s other companions, being duly honored, sat down in various places.
7. The Lord then went to see His aunt, Queen Kunti. He bowed down to her and she embraced Him,
her eyes moist with great affection. Lord Krsna inquired from her and her daughter-in-law, Draupadi,
about their welfare, and they in turn questioned Him at length about His relatives [in Dvaraka].
8. So overcome by love that her throat choked up and her eyes filled with tears, Queen Kunti
remembered the many troubles she and her sons had endured. Thus she addressed Lord Krsna, who
appears before His devotees to drive away their distress
9. [Queen Kunti said:] My dear Krsna, our welfare was assured only when You remembered us, Your
relatives, and gave us Your protection by sending my brother to visit us.
10. For You, the well-wishing friend and Supreme Soul of the universe, there is never any illusion of “us”
and “them.” Yet even so, residing within the hearts of all, You eradicate the sufferings of those who
remember You constantly.
11. King Yudhisthira said: O supreme controller, I do not know what pious deeds we fools have done so
that we can see You, whom the masters of yogic perfection rarely see.
12. Requested by the King to stay with them, the almighty Lord remained happily in Indraprastha during
the months of the rainy season, giving joy to the eyes of the city’s residents.
13-14. Once Arjuna, the slayer of powerful enemies, donned his armor, mounted his chariot flying the
flag of Hanuman, took up his bow and his two inexhaustible quivers, and went to sport with Lord Krsna
in a large forest filled with fierce animals.
15. With his arrows Arjuna shot tigers, boars and buffalo in that forest, along with rurus, sarabhas,
gavayas, rhinoceroses, black deer, rabbits and porcupines.
16. A crew of servants carried to King Yudhisthira the slain animals fit to be offered in sacrifice on some
special occasion. Then, feeling thirsty and tired, Arjuna went to the bank of the Yamuna.
17. After the two Krsnas bathed there, they drank the river’s clear water. The great warriors then saw an
attractive young girl walking nearby.
18. Sent by his friend, Arjuna approached the exceptional young woman, who possessed beautiful hips,
fine teeth and a lovely face, and inquired from her as follows.
19. [Arjuna said:] Who are you, O fine-waisted lady? Whose daughter are you, and where do you come
from? What are you doing here? I think you must be looking for a husband. Please explain everything,
O beautiful one.
20. Sri Kalindi said: I am the daughter of the sun-god. I desire to get as my husband the most excellent
and munificent Lord Visnu, and to that end I am performing severe penances.
21. I will accept no husband other than Him, the abode of the goddess of fortune. May that Mukunda,
the Supreme Personality, the shelter of the helpless, be pleased with me.
22. I am known as Kalindi, and I live in a mansion my father built for me within the water of the Yamuna.
There I will stay until I meet Lord Acyuta.
23. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Arjuna repeated all this to Lord Vasudeva, who was already aware
of it. The Lord then took Kalindi onto His chariot and went back to see King Yudhisthira.
564 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. [Describing a previous incident, Sukadeva Gosvami said:] Upon the request of the Pandavas, Lord
Krsna had Visvakarma build them a most wonderful and amazing city.
25. The Supreme Lord stayed in that city for some time to please His devotees. On one occasion, Sri
Krsna wanted to give the Khandava forest as a gift to Agni, and so the Lord became Arjuna’s
charioteer.
26. Being pleased, O King, Lord Agni presented Arjuna with a bow, a set of white horses, a chariot, a
pair of inexhaustible quivers, and armor that no fighter could pierce with weapons.
27. When the demon Maya was saved from the fire by his friend Arjuna, Maya presented him with an
assembly hall, in which Duryodhana would later mistake water for a solid floor.
28. Then Lord Krsna, given leave by Arjuna and other well-wishing relatives and friends, returned to
Dvaraka with Satyaki and the rest of His entourage.
29. The supremely auspicious Lord then married Kalindi on a day when the season, the lunar asterism
and the configurations of the sun and other heavenly bodies were all propitious. In this way He brought
the greatest pleasure to His devotees.
30. Vindya and Anuvindya, who shared the throne of Avanti, were followers of Duryodhana’s. When the
time came for their sister [Mitravinda] to select her husband in the svayamvara ceremony, they forbade
her to choose Krsna, although she was attracted to Him.
31. My dear King, Lord Krsna forcibly took away Princess Mitravinda, the daughter of His aunt
Rajadhidevi, before the eyes of the rival kings.
32. O King, Nagnajit, the very pious King of Kausalya, had a lovely daughter named Satya, or Nagnajiti.
33. The kings who came as suitors were not allowed to marry her unless they could subdue seven
sharp-horned bulls. These bulls were extremely vicious and uncontrollable, and they could not tolerate
even the smell of warriors.
34. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the master of the Vaisnavas, heard of the princess
who was to be won by the conqueror of the bulls, He went to the capital of Kausalya with a large army.
35. The King of Kosala, pleased to see Lord Krsna, worshiped Him by rising from his throne and
offering Him a seat of honor and substantial gifts. Lord Krsna also greeted the King respectfully.
36. When the King’s daughter saw that most agreeable suitor arrive, she immediately desired to have
Him, the Lord of Goddess Rama. She prayed, “May He become my husband. If I have kept my vows,
may the sacred fire bring about the fulfillment of my hopes.
37. “Goddess Laksmi, Lord Brahma, Lord Siva and the rulers of the various planets place the dust of
His lotus feet on their heads, and to protect the codes of religion, which He has created, He assumes
pastime incarnations at various times. How may that Supreme Personality of Godhead become pleased
with me?”
38. King Nagnajit first worshiped the Lord properly and then addressed Him: “O Narayana, Lord of the
universe, You are full in Your own spiritual pleasure. Therefore what can this insignificant person do for
You?”
39. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O beloved descendant of Kuru, the Supreme Lord was pleased, and after
accepting a comfortable seat He smiled and addressed the King in a voice as deep as the rumbling of a
cloud.
40. The Supreme Lord said: O ruler of men, learned authorities condemn begging for a person in the
royal order who is executing his religious duties. Even so, desiring your friendship, I ask you for your
daughter, though We offer no gifts in exchange.
41. The King said: My Lord, who could be a better husband for my daughter than You, the exclusive
abode of all transcendental qualities? On Your body the goddess of fortune herself resides, never
leaving You for any reason.
42. But to ascertain the proper husband for my daughter, O chief of the Satvatas, we previously set a
condition to test the prowess of her suitors.
43. These seven wild bulls are impossible to tame, O hero. They have defeated many princes, breaking
their limbs.
44. If You can subdue them, O descendant of Yadu, You will certainly be the appropriate bridegroom for
my daughter, O Lord of Sri.
45. Upon hearing these terms, the Lord tightened His clothing, expanded Himself into seven forms and
easily subdued the bulls.
46. Lord Sauri tied up the bulls, whose pride and strength were now broken, and pulled them with ropes
just as a child playfully pulls wooden toy bulls.
47. Then King Nagnajit, pleased and astonished, presented his daughter to Lord Krsna. The Supreme
Personality of Godhead accepted this suitable bride in the proper Vedic fashion.
48. The King’s wives felt the greatest ecstasy upon attaining Lord Krsna as the dear husband of the
royal princess, and a mood of great festivity arose.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 565
49. Conchshells, horns and drums resounded, along with vocal and instrumental music and the sounds
of brahmanas, invoking blessings. The joyful men and women adorned themselves with fine clothing
and garlands.
50-51. As the dowry, powerful King Nagnajit gave ten thousand cows, three thousand young
maidservants wearing golden ornaments on their necks and bedecked in fine clothing, nine thousand
elephants, a hundred times as many chariots as elephants, a hundred times as many horses as
chariots, and a hundred times as many manservants as horses.
52. The King of Kosala, his heart melting with affection, had the bride and groom seated on their
chariot, and then he sent them on their way surrounded by a great army.
53. When the intolerant kings who had been rival suitors heard what had happened, they tried to stop
Lord Krsna on the road as He took His bride home. But just as the bulls had broken the kings’ strength
before, the Yadu warriors broke it now.
54. Arjuna, wielder of the Gandiva bow, was always eager to please his friend Krsna, and thus he drove
back those opponents, who were shooting torrents of arrows at the Lord. He did this just as a lion drives
away insignificant animals.
55. Lord Devaki-suta, the chief of the Yadus, then took His dowry and Satya to Dvaraka and continued
to live there happily.
56. Bhadrawas a princess of the Kaikeya kingdom and the daughter of Lord Krsna’s paternal aunt
Srutakirti. The Lord married Bhadra when her brothers, headed by Santardana, offered her to Him.
57. Then the Lord married Laksmana, the daughter of the King of Madra. Krsna appeared alone at her
svayamvara ceremony and took her away, just as Garuda once stole the demigods’ nectar.
58. Lord Krsna also acquired thousands of other wives equal to these when He killed Bhaumasura and
freed the beautiful maidens the demon was holding captive.
Chapter Fifty-Nine The Killing of the Demon Naraka
1. [King Pariksit said:] How was Bhaumasura, who kidnapped so many women, killed by the Supreme
Lord? Please narrate this adventure of Lord Sarngadhanva’s.
2-3. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After Bhauma had stolen the earrings belonging to Indra’s mother, along
with Varuna’s umbrella and the demigods’ playground at the peak of Mandara mountain, Indra went to
Lord Krsna and informed Him of these misdeeds. The Lord, taking His wife Satyabhama with Him, then
rode on Garuda to Pragyotisa-pura, which was surrounded on all sides by fortifications consisting of
hills, unmanned weapons, water, fire and wind, and by obstructions of mura-pasa wire.
4. With His club the Lord broke through the rock fortifications; with His arrows, the weapon fortifications;
with His disc, the fire, water and wind fortifications; and with His sword, the mura-pasa cables.
5. With the sound of His conchshell Lord Gadadhara then shattered the magic seals of the fortress,
along with the hearts of its brave defenders, and with His heavy club He demolished the surrounding
earthen ramparts.
6. The five-headed demon Mura, who slept at the bottom of the city’s moat, awoke and rose up out of
the water when he heard the vibration of Lord Krsna’s Pancajanya conchshell, a sound as terrifying as
the thunder at the end of the cosmic age.
7. Shining with the blinding, terrible effulgence of the sun’s fire at the end of a millennium, Mura seemed
to be swallowing up the three worlds with his five mouths. He lifted up his trident and fell upon Garuda,
the son of Tarksya, like an attacking snake.
8. Mura whirled his trident and then hurled it fiercely at Garuda, roaring from all five mouths. The sound
filled the earth and sky, all directions and the limits of outer space, until it reverberated against the very
shell of the universe.
9. Then with two arrows Lord Hari struck the trident flying toward Garuda and broke it into three pieces.
Next the Lord hit Mura’s faces with several arrows, and the demon angrily hurled his club at the Lord.
10. As Mura’s club sped toward Him on the battlefield, Lord Gadagraja intercepted it with His own and
broke it into thousands of pieces. Mura then raised his arms high and rushed at the unconquerable
Lord, who easily sliced off his heads with His disc weapon.
11. Lifeless, Mura’s decapitated body fell into the water like a mountain whose peak has been severed
by the power of Lord Indra’s thunderbolt. The demon’s seven sons, enraged by their father’s death,
prepared to retaliate.
12. Ordered by Bhaumasura, Mura’s seven sons—Tamra, Antariksa, Sravana, Vibhavasu, Vasu,
Nabhasvan and Aruna—followed their general, Pitha, onto the battlefield bearing their weapons.
13. These fierce warriors furiously attacked invincible Lord Krsna with arrows, swords, clubs, spears,
lances and tridents, but the Supreme Lord, with unfailing prowess, cut this mountain of weapons into
tiny pieces with His arrows.
14. The Lord severed the heads, thighs, arms, legs and armor of these opponents led by Pitha and sent
them all to the abode of Yamaraja. Narakasura, the son of the earth, could not contain his fury when he
566 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
saw the fate of his military leaders. Thus he went out of the citadel with elephants born from the Milk
Ocean who were exuding mada from their foreheads out of excitement.
15. Lord Krsna and His wife, mounted upon Garuda, looked like a cloud with lightning sitting above the
sun. Seeing the Lord, Bhauma released his Sataghni weapon at Him, whereupon all of Bhauma’s
soldiers simultaneously attacked with their weapons.
16. At that moment Lord Gadagraja shot His sharp arrows at Bhaumasura’s army. These arrows,
displaying variegated feathers, soon reduced that army to a mass of bodies with severed arms, thighs
and necks. The Lord similarly killed the opposing horses and elephants.
17-19. Lord Hari then struck down all the missiles and weapons the enemy soldiers threw at Him, O
hero of the Kurus, destroying each and every one with three sharp arrows. Meanwhile Garuda, as he
carried the Lord, struck the enemy’s elephants with his wings. Beaten by Garuda’s wings, beak and
talons, the elephants fled back into the city, leaving Narakasura alone on the battlefield to oppose
Krsna.
20. Seeing his army driven back and tormented by Garuda, Bhauma attacked him with his spear, which
had once defeated Lord Indra’s thunderbolt. But though struck by that mighty weapon, Garuda was not
shaken. Indeed, he was like an elephant hit with a flower garland.
21. Bhauma, frustrated in all his attempts, took up his trident to kill Lord Krsna. But even before he
could release it, the Lord cut off his head with His razor-sharp cakra as the demon sat atop his
elephant.
22. Fallen on the ground, Bhaumasura’s head shone brilliantly, decorated as it was with earrings and an
attractive helmet. As cries of “Alas, alas!” and “Well done!” arose, the sages and principal demigods
worshiped Lord Mukunda by showering Him with flower garlands.
23. The goddess of the earth then approached Lord Krsna and presented Him with Aditi’s earrings,
which were made of glowing gold inlaid with shining jewels. She also gave Him a Vaijayanti flower
garland, Varuna’s umbrella and the peak of Mandara Mountain.
24. O King, after bowing down to Him and then standing with joined palms, the goddess, her mind filled
with devotion, began to praise the Lord of the universe, whom the best of demigods worship.
25. Goddess Bhumi said: Obeisances unto You, O Lord of the chief demigods, O holder of the
conchshell, disc and club. O Supreme Soul within the heart, You assume Your various forms to fulfill
Your devotees’ desires. Obeisances unto You.
26. My respectful obeisances are unto You, O Lord, whose abdomen is marked with a depression like a
lotus flower, who are always decorated with garlands of lotus flowers, whose glance is as cool as the
lotus and whose feet are engraved with lotuses.
27. Obeisances unto You, the Supreme Lord Vasudeva, Visnu, the primeval person, the original seed.
Obeisances unto You, the omniscient one.
28. Obeisances unto You of unlimited energies, the unborn progenitor of this universe, the Absolute. O
Soul of the high and the low, O Soul of the created elements, O all-pervading Supreme Soul,
obeisances unto You.
29. Desiring to create, O unborn master, You increase and then assume the mode of passion. You do
likewise with the mode of ignorance when You wish to annihilate the universe and with goodness when
You wish to maintain it. Nonetheless, You remain uncovered by these modes. You are time, the
pradhana, and the purusa, O Lord of the universe, yet still You are separate and distinct.
30. This is illusion: that earth, water, fire, air, ether, sense objects, demigods, mind, the senses, false
ego and the total material energy exist independent of You. In fact, they are all within You, my Lord,
who are one without a second.
31. Here is the son of Bhaumasura. Frightened, he is approaching Your lotus feet, since You remove
the distress of all who seek refuge in You. Please protect him. Place Your lotus hand, which dispels all
sins, upon his head.
32. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus entreated by Goddess Bhumi in words of humble devotion, the
Supreme Lord bestowed fearlessness upon her grandson and then entered Bhaumasura’s palace,
which was filled with all manner of riches.
33. There Lord Krsna saw sixteen thousand royal maidens, whom Bhauma had taken by force from
various kings.
34. The women became enchanted when they saw that most excellent of males enter. In their minds
they each accepted Him, who had been brought there by destiny, as their chosen husband.
35. With the thought “May providence grant that this man become my husband,” each and every
princess absorbed her heart in contemplation of Krsna.
36. The Lord had the princesses arrayed in clean, spotless garments and then sent them in palanquins
to Dvaraka, together with great treasures of chariots, horses and other valuables.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 567
37. Lord Krsna also dispatched sixty-four swift white elephants, descendants of Airavata, who each
sported four tusks.
38-39. The Lord then went to the abode of Indra, the demigods’ king, and gave mother Aditi her
earrings; there Indra and his wife worshiped Krsna and His beloved consort Satyabhama. Then, at
Satyabhama’s behest the Lord uprooted the heavenly parijata tree and put it on the back of Garuda.
After defeating Indra and all the other demigods, Krsna brought the parijata to His capital.
40. Once planted, the parijata tree beautified the garden of Queen Satyabhama’s palace. Bees followed
the tree all the way from heaven, greedy for its fragrance and sweet sap.
41. Even after Indra had bowed down to Lord Acyuta, touched His feet with the tips of his crown and
begged the Lord to fulfill his desire, that exalted demigod, having achieved his purpose, chose to fight
with the Supreme Lord. What ignorance there is among the gods! To hell with their opulence!
42. Then the imperishable Supreme Personality, assuming a separate form for each bride, duly married
all the princesses simultaneously, each in her own palace.
43. The Lord, performer of the inconceivable, constantly remained in each of His queens’ palaces,
which were unequaled and unexcelled by any other residence. There, although fully satisfied within
Himself, He enjoyed with His pleasing wives, and like an ordinary husband He carried out His
household duties.
44. Thus those women obtained as their husband the husband of the goddess of fortune, although even
great demigods like Brahma do not know how to approach Him. With ever-increasing pleasure they
experienced loving attraction for Him, exchanged smiling glances with Him and reciprocated with Him in
ever-fresh intimacy, replete with joking and feminine shyness.
45. Although the Supreme Lord’s queens each had hundreds of maidservants, they chose to personally
serve the Lord by approaching Him humbly, offering Him a seat, worshiping Him with excellent
paraphernalia, bathing and massaging His feet, giving Him pan to chew, fanning Him, anointing Him
with fragrant sandalwood paste, adorning Him with flower garlands, dressing His hair, arranging His
bed, bathing Him, and presenting Him with various gifts.
Chapter Sixty Lord Krsna Teases Queen Rukmini.
1. Sri Badarayani said: Once, in the company of her maidservants, Queen Rukmini was personally
serving her husband, the spiritual master of the universe, by fanning Him as He relaxed on her bed.
2. The unborn Personality of Godhead, the supreme controller, who creates, maintains and then
devours this universe simply as His play, took birth among the Yadus to preserve His own laws.
3-6. Queen Rukmini’s quarters were extremely beautiful, boasting a canopy hung with brilliant strings of
pearls, as well as effulgent jewels serving as lamps. Garlands of jasmine and other flowers hung here
and there, attracting swarms of humming bees, and the spotless rays of the moon shone through the
holes of the lattice windows. As aguru incense drifted out of the window holes, my dear King, the breeze
wafting the scent of the parijata grove carried the mood of a garden into the room. There the Queen
served her husband, the Supreme Lord of all the worlds, as He reclined upon an opulent pillow on her
bed, which was as soft and white as the foam of milk.
7. From her maidservant’s hand Goddess Rukmini took a yak-hair fan with a jeweled handle, and then
she began to worship her master by fanning Him.
8. Her hand adorned with rings, bangles and the camara fan, Queen Rukmini looked resplendent
standing near Lord Krsna. Her jeweled ankle-bells tinkled, and her necklace glittered, reddened by the
kunkuma from her breasts, which were covered by the end of her sari. On her hips she wore a priceless
belt.
9. As He contemplated her, the goddess of fortune herself, who desires only Him, Lord Krsna smiled.
The Lord assumes various forms to enact His pastimes, and He was pleased that the form the goddess
of fortune had assumed was just suitable for her to serve as His consort. Her charming face was
adorned with curling hair, earrings, a locket on her neck, and the nectar of her bright, happy smile. The
Lord then spoke to Her as follows.
10. The Supreme Lord said: My dear princess, you were sought after by many kings as powerful as the
rulers of planets. They were all abundantly endowed with political influence, wealth, beauty, generosity
and physical strength.
11. Since your brother and father offered you to them, why did you reject the King of Cedi and all those
other suitors, who stood before you, maddened by Cupid? Why, instead, did you choose Us, who are
not at all your equal?
12. Terrified of these kings, O lovely-browed one, We took shelter in the ocean. We have become
enemies of powerful men, and We practically abandoned Our royal throne.
13. O fine-browed lady, women are usually destined to suffer when they stay with men whose behavior
is uncertain and who pursue a path not approved by society.
568 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
14. We have no material possessions, and We are dear to those who similarly have nothing. Therefore,
O slender one, the wealthy hardly ever worship Me.
15. Marriage and friendship are proper between two people who are equal in terms of their wealth, birth,
influence, physical appearance and capacity for good progeny, but never between a superior and an
inferior.
16. O Vaidarbhi, not being farsighted, you didn’t realize this, and therefore you chose Us as your
husband, even though We have no good qualities and are glorified only by deluded beggars.
17. Now you should definitely accept a more suitable husband, a first-class man of the royal order who
can help you achieve everything you want, both in this life and the next.
18. Kings like Sisupala, Salva, Jarasandha and Dantavakra all hate Me, O beautiful-thighed one, and so
does your elder brother Rukmi.
19. It was to dispel the arrogance of these kings that I carried you away, My good woman, for they were
blinded by the intoxication of power. My purpose was to curb the strength of the wicked.
20. We care nothing for wives, children and wealth. Always satisfied within Ourselves, We do not work
for body and home, but like a light, We merely witness.
21. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Rukmini had thought herself especially beloved by the Lord because He
never left her company. By saying these things to her He vanquished her pride, and then He stopped
speaking.
22. Goddess Rukmini had never before heard such unpleasantries from her beloved, the Lord of
universal rulers, and she became frightened. A tremor arose in her heart, and in terrible anxiety she
began to cry.
23. With her tender foot, effulgent with the reddish glow of her nails, she scratched the ground, and
tears darkened by her eye makeup sprinkled her kunkuma-reddened breasts. There she stood, face
downward, her voice choked up by extreme sorrow.
24. Rukmini’s mind was overwhelmed with unhappiness, fear and grief. Her bangles slipped from her
hand, and her fan fell to the ground. In her bewilderment she suddenly fainted, her hair scattering all
about as her body fell to the ground like a plantain tree blown over by the wind.
25. Seeing that His beloved was so bound to Him in love that she could not understand the full meaning
of His teasing, merciful Lord Krsna felt compassion for her.
26. The Lord quickly got down from the bed. Manifesting four arms, He picked her up, gathered her hair
and caressed her face with His lotus hand.
27-28. Wiping her tear-filled eyes and her breasts, which were stained by tears of grief, the Supreme
Lord, the goal of His devotees, embraced His chaste wife, who desired nothing but Him, O King. Expert
in the art of pacification, Sri Krsna tenderly consoled pitiable Rukmini, whose mind was bewildered by
His clever joking and who did not deserve to suffer so.
29. The Supreme Lord said: O Vaidarbhi, do not be displeased with Me. I know that you are fully
devoted to Me. I only spoke in jest, dear lady, because I wanted to hear what you would say.
30. I also wanted to see your face with lips trembling in loving anger, the reddish corners of your eyes
throwing sidelong glances and the line of your beautiful eyebrows knit in a frown.
31. The greatest pleasure worldly householders can enjoy at home is to spend time joking with their
beloved wives, My dear timid and temperamental one.
32. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, Queen Vaidarbhi was fully pacified by the Supreme Personality of
Godhead and understood that His words had been spoken in jest. Thus she gave up her fear that her
beloved would reject her.
33. Smiling bashfully as she cast charming, affectionate glances upon the face of the Lord, the best of
males, Rukmini spoke the following, O descendant of Bharata.
34. Sri Rukmini said: Actually, what You have said is true, O lotus-eyed one. I am indeed unsuitable for
the almighty Personality of Godhead. What comparison is there between that Supreme Lord, who is
master of the three primal deities and who delights in His own glory, and myself, a woman of mundane
qualities whose feet are grasped by fools?
35. Yes, my Lord Urukrama, You lay down within the ocean as if afraid of the material modes, and thus
in pure consciousness You appear within the heart as the Supersoul. You are always battling against
the foolish material senses, and indeed even Your servants reject the privilege of royal dominion, which
leads to the blindness of ignorance.
36. Your movements, inscrutuble even for sages who relish the honey of Your lotus feet, are certainly
incomprehensible for human beings who behave like animals. And just as Your activities are
transcendental, O all-powerful Lord, so too are those of Your followers.
37. You possess nothing because there is nothing beyond You. Even the great enjoyers of tribute—
Brahma and other demigods—pay tribute to You. Those who are blinded by their wealth and absorbed
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 569
in gratifying their senses do not recognize You in the form of death. But to the gods, the enjoyers of
tribute, You are the most dear, as they are to You.
38. You are the embodiment of all human goals and are Yourself the final aim of life. Desiring to attain
You, O all-powerful Lord, intelligent persons abandon everything else. It is they who are worthy of Your
association, not men and women absorbed in the pleasure and grief resulting from their mutual lust.
39. Knowing that great sages who have renounced the sannyasi’s danda proclaim Your glories, that
You are the Supreme Soul of all the worlds, and that You are so gracious that You give away even Your
own self, I chose You as my husband, rejecting Lord Brahma, Lord Siva and the rulers of heaven,
whose aspirations are all frustrated by the force of time, which is born from Your eyebrows. What
interest, then, could I have in any other suitors?
40. My Lord, as a lion drives away lesser animals to claim his proper tribute, You drove off the
assembled kings with the resounding twang of Your Sarnga bow and then claimed me, Your fair share.
Thus it is sheer foolishness, my dear Gadagraja, for You to say You took shelter in the ocean out of fear
of those kings.
41. Wanting Your association, the best of kings—Anga, Vainya, Jayanta, Nahusa, Gaya and others—
abandoned their absolute sovereignty and entered the forest to seek You out. How could those kings
suffer frustration in this world, O lotus-eyed one?
42. The aroma of Your lotus feet, which is glorified by great saints, awards people liberation and is the
abode of Goddess Laksmi. What woman would take shelter of any other man after savoring that
aroma? Since You are the abode of transcendental qualities, what mortal woman with the insight to
distinguish her own true interest would disregard that fragrance and depend instead on someone who is
always subject to terrible fear?
43. Because You are suitable for me, I have chosen You, the master and Supreme Soul of all the
worlds, who fulfill our desires in this life and the next. May Your feet, which give freedom from illusion by
approaching their worshiper, give shelter to me, who have been wandering from one material situation
to another.
44. O infallible Krsna, let each of the kings You named become the husband of a woman whose ears
have never heard Your glories, which are sung in the assemblies of Siva and Brahma. After all, in the
households of such women these kings live like asses, oxen, dogs, cats and slaves.
45. A woman who fails to relish the fragrance of the honey of Your lotus feet becomes totally befooled,
and thus she accepts as her husband or lover a living corpse covered with skin, whiskers, nails, head-
hair and body-hair and filled with flesh, bones, blood, parasites, feces, mucus, bile and air.
46. O lotus-eyed one, though You are satisfied within Yourself and thus rarely turn Your attention
toward me, please bless me with steady love for Your feet. It is when You assume a predominance of
passion in order to manifest the universe that You glance upon me, showing me what is indeed Your
greatest mercy.
47. Actually, I don’t consider Your words false, Madhusudana. Quite often an unmarried girl is attracted
to a man, as in the case of Amba.
48. The mind of a promiscuous woman always hankers for new lovers, even if she is married. An
intelligent man should not keep such an unchaste wife, for if he does he will lose his good fortune both
in this life and the next.
49. The Supreme Lord said: O saintly lady, O princess, We deceived you only because We wanted to
hear you speak like this. Indeed, everything you said in reply to My words is most certainly true.
50. Whatever benedictions you hope for in order to become bee of material desires are ever yours, O
fair and noble lady, for you are My unalloyed devotee.
51. O sinless one, I have now seen firsthand the pure love and chaste attachment you have for your
husband. Even though shaken by My words, your mind could not be pulled away from Me.
52. Although I have the power to award spiritual liberation, lusty persons worship Me with penance and
vows in order to get My blessings for their mundane family life. Such persons are bewildered by My
illusory energy.
53. O supreme reservoir of love, unfortunate are they who even after obtaining Me, the Lord of both
liberation and material riches, hanker only for material treasures. These worldly gains can be found
even in hell. Since such persons are obsessed with sense gratification, hell is a fitting place for them.
54. Fortunately, O mistress of the house, you have always rendered Me faithful devotional service,
which liberates one from material existence. This service is very difficult for the envious to perform,
especially for a woman whose intentions are wicked, who lives only to gratify her bodily demands, and
who indulges in duplicity.
55. In all My palaces I can find no other wife as loving as you, O most respectful one. When you were to
be married, you disregarded all the kings who had assembled to seek your hand, and simply because
570 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
you had heard authentic accounts concerning Me, you sent a brahmana to Me with your confidential
message.
56. When your brother, who had been defeated in battle and then disfigured, was later killed during a
gambling match on Aniruddha’s wedding day, you felt unbearable grief, yet out of fear of losing Me you
spoke not a word. By this silence you have conquered Me.
57. When you sent the messenger with your most confidential plan and yet I delayed going to you, you
began to see the whole world as void and wanted to quit your body, which could never have been given
to anyone but Me. May this greatness of yours remain with you always; I can do nothing to reciprocate
except joyfully thank you for your devotion.
58. Sukadeva Gosvami said: And so the self-satisfied Supreme Lord of the universe enjoyed with the
goddess of fortune, engaging her in lovers’ talks and thus imitating the ways of human society.
59. The almighty Lord Hari, preceptor of all the worlds, similarly behaved like a conventional
householder in the palaces of His other queens, performing the religious duties of a family man.
Chapter Sixty-One Lord Balarama Slays Rukmi
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Each of Lord Krsna wives gave birth to ten sons, who were not less than
their father, having all His personal opulence.
2. Because each of these princesses saw that Lord Acyuta never left her palace, each thought herself
the Lord’s favorite. These women did not understand the full truth about Him.
3. The Supreme Lord’s wives were fully enchanted by His lovely, lotuslike face, His long arms and large
eyes, His loving glances imbued with laughter, and His charming talks with them. But with all their
charms these ladies could not conquer the mind of the all-powerful Lord.
4. The arched eyebrows of these sixteen thousand queens enchantingly expressed those ladies’ secret
intentions through coyly smiling sidelong glances. Thus their eyebrows boldly sent forth conjugal
messages. Yet even with these arrows of Cupid, and with other means as well, they could not agitate
Lord Krsna’s senses.
5. Thus these women obtained as their husband the master of the goddess of fortune, although even
great demigods like Brahma do not know how to approach Him. With ever-increasing pleasure, they felt
loving attraction for Him, exchanged smiling glances with Him, eagerly anticipated associating with Him
in ever-fresh intimacy and enjoyed in many other ways.
6. Although the Supreme Lord’s queens each had hundreds of maidservants, they chose to personally
serve the Lord by approaching Him humbly, offering Him a seat, worshiping Him with excellent
paraphernalia, bathing and massaging His feet, giving Him pan to chew, fanning Him, anointing Him
with fragrant sandalwood paste, adorning Him with flower garlands, dressing His hair, arranging His
bed, bathing Him and presenting Him with various gifts.
7. Among Lord Krsna’s wives, each of whom had ten sons, I previously mentioned eight principal
queens. I shall now recite for you the names of those eight queens’ sons, headed by Pradyumna.
8-9. The first son of Queen Rukmini was Pradyumna, and also born of her were Carudesna, Sudesna
and the powerful Carudeha, along with Sucaru, Carugupta, Bhadracaru, Carucandra, Vicaru and Caru,
the tenth. None of these sons of Lord Hari was less than his father.
10-12. The ten sons of Satyabhama were Bhanu, Subhanu, Svarbhanu, Prabhanu, Bhanuman,
Candrabhanu, Brhadbhanu, Atibhanu (the eighth), Sribhanu and Pratibhanu. Samba, Sumitra, Purujit,
Satajit, Sahasrajit, Vijaya, Citraketu, Vasuman, Dravida and Kratu were the sons of Jambavati. These
ten, headed by Samba, were their father’s favorites.
13. The sons of Nagnajiti were Vira, Candra, Asvasena, Citragu, Vegavan, Vrsa, Ama, Sanku, Vasu
and the opulent Kunti.
14. Sruta, Kavi, Vrsa, Vira, Subahu, Bhadra, Santi, Darsa and Purnamasa were sons of Kalindi. Her
youngest son was Somaka.
15. Madra’s sons were Praghosa, Gatravan, Simha, Bala, Prabala, Urdhaga, Mahasakti, Saha, Oja and
Aparajita.
16. Mitravinda’s sons were Vrka, Harsa, Anila, Grdhra, Vardhana, Unnada, Mahamsa, Pavana, Vahni
and Ksudhi.
17. Sangramajit, Brhatsena, Sura, Praharana, Arijit, Jaya and Subhadra were the sons of Bhadra,
together with Vama, Ayur and Satyaka.
18. Diptiman, Tamratapta and others were the sons of Lord Krsna and Rohini. Lord Krsna’s son
Pradyumna fathered the greatly powerful Aniruddha in the womb of Rukmavati, the daughter of Rukmi.
O King, this took place while they were living in the city of Bhojakata.
19. My dear King, the sons and grandsons of Lord Krsna’s children numbered in the tens of millions.
Sixteen thousand mothers gave rise to this dynasty.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 571
20. King Pariksit said: How could Rukmi give his daughter to his enemy’s son? After all, Rukmi had
been defeated by Lord Krsna in battle and was waiting for an opportunity to kill Him. Please explain this
to me, O learned one—how these two inimical parties became united through marriage.
21. Mystic yogis can perfectly see that which has not yet happened, as well as things in the past or
present, beyond the senses, remote or blocked by physical obstacles.
22. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: At her svayamvara ceremony, Rukmavati herself chose Pradyumna,
who was the re-embodiment of Cupid. Then, although He fought alone on a single chariot, Pradyumna
defeated the assembled kings in battle and took her away.
23. The answer to King Pariksit’s question is given here. Ultimately Rukmi approved his daughter’s
marriage to Pradyumna in order to please his sister, Rukmini.
24. O King, Bali, the son of Krtavarma, married Rukmini’s young daughter, large-eyed Carumati.
25. Rukmi gave his granddaughter Rocana to his daughter’s son, Aniruddha, despite Rukmi’s relentless
feud with Lord Hari. Although Rukmi considered this marriage irreligious, he wanted to please his sister,
bound as he was by the ropes of affection.
26. On the joyous occasion of that marriage, O King, Queen Rukmini, Lord Balarama, Lord Krsna and
several of the Lord’s sons, headed by Samba and Pradyumna, went to the city of Bhojakata.
27-28. After the wedding, a group of arrogant kings headed by the King of Kalinga told Rukmi, “You
should defeat Balarama at dice. He’s not expert at dice, O King, but still He’s quite addicted to it.” Thus
advised, Rukmi challenged Balarama and began a gambling match with Him.
29. In that match Lord Balarama first accepted a wager of one hundred coins, then one thousand, then
ten thousand. Rukmi won this first round, and the King of Kalinga laughed loudly at Lord Balarama,
showing all his teeth. Lord Balarama could not tolerate this.
30. Next Rukmi accepted a bet of one hundred thousand coins, which Lord Balarama won. But Rukmi
tried to cheat, declaring “I’m the winner!”
31. Shaking with anger like the ocean on the full-moon day, handsome Lord Balarama, His naturally
reddish eyes even redder in His fury, accepted a wager of one hundred million gold coins.
32. Lord Balarama fairly won this wager also, but Rukmi again resorted to cheating and declared, “I
have won! Let these witnesses here say what they saw.”
33. Just then a voice from the sky declared, “Balarama has fairly won this wager. Rukmi is surely lying.”
34. Urged on by the wicked kings, Rukmi ignored the divine voice. In fact destiny itself was urging
Rukmi on, and thus he ridiculed Lord Balarama as follows.
35. [Rukmi said:] You cowherds who wander about the forests know nothing about dice. Playing with
dice and sporting with arrows are only for kings, not for the likes of You.
36. Thus insulted by Rukmi and ridiculed by the kings, Lord Balarama was provoked to anger. In the
midst of the auspicious wedding assembly, He raised His club and struck Rukmi dead.
37. The King of Kalinga, who had laughed at Lord Balarama and shown his teeth, tried to run away, but
the furious Lord quickly seized him on his tenth step and knocked out all his teeth.
38. Tormented by Lord Balarama’s club, the other kings fled in fear, their arms, thighs and heads
broken and their bodies drenched in blood.
39. When His brother-in-law Rukmi was slain, Lord Kåñëa neither applauded nor protested, O King, for
He feared jeopardizing His affectionate ties with either Rukmini or Balarama.
40. Then the descendants of Dasarha, headed by Lord Balarama, seated Aniruddha and His bride on a
fine chariot and set off from Bhojakata for Dvaraka. Having taken shelter of Lord Madhusudana, they
had fulfilled all their purposes.
Chapter Sixty-Two The Meeting of Usa and Aniruddha
1. King Pariksit said: The best of the Yadus married Banasura’s daughter, Usa, and as a result a great,
fearsome battle occurred between Lord Hari and Lord Sankara. Please explain everything about this
incident, O most powerful of mystics.
2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Bana was the oldest of the hundred sons fathered by the great saint Bali
Maharaja, who gave the whole earth in charity to Lord Hari when He appeared as Vamanadeva.
Banasura, born from Bali’s semen, became a great devotee of Lord Siva. His behavior was always
respectable, and he was generous, intelligent, truthful and firm in his vows. The beautiful city of
Sonitapura was under his dominion. Because Lord Siva had favored him, the very demigods waited on
Banasura like menial servants. Once, when Siva was dancing his tandava-nrtya, Bana especially
satisfied the lord by playing a musical accompaniment with his one thousand arms.
3. The lord and master of all created beings, the compassionate refuge of his devotees, gladdened
Banasura by offering him the benediction of his choice. Bana chose to have him, Lord Siva, as the
guardian of his city.
572 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
4. Banasura was intoxicated with his strength. One day, when Lord Siva was standing beside him,
Banasura touched the lord’s lotus feet with his helmet, which shone like the sun, and spoke to him as
follows.
5. [Banasura said:] O Lord Mahadeva, I bow down to you, the spiritual master and controller of the
worlds. You are like the heavenly tree that fulfills the desires of those whose desires are unfulfilled.
6. These one thousand arms you bestowed upon me have become merely a heavy burden. Besides
you, I find no one in the three worlds worthy to fight.
7. Eager to fight with the elephants who rule the directions, O primeval lord, I went forth, pulverizing
mountains with my arms, which were itching for battle. But even those great elephants fled in fear.
8. Hearing this, Lord Siva became angry and replied, “Your flag will be broken, fool, when you have
done battle with one who is my equal. That fight will vanquish your conceit.”
9. Thus advised, unintelligent Banasura was delighted. The fool then went home, O King, to wait for that
which Lord Girisa had predicted: the destruction of his prowess.
10. In a dream Bana’s daughter, the maiden Usa, had an amorous encounter with the son of
Pradyumna, though she had never before seen or heard of her lover.
11. Losing sight of Him in her dream, Usa suddenly sat up in the midst of her girlfriends, crying out
“Where are You, my lover?” She was greatly disturbed and embarrassed.
12. Banasura had a minister named Kumbhanda, whose daughter was Citralekha. A companion of
Usa’s, she was filled with curiosity, and thus she inquired from her friend.
13. [Citralekha said:] Who are you searching for, O fine-browed one? What is this hankering you’re
feeling? Until now, O princess, I haven’t seen any man take your hand in marriage.
14. [Usa said:] In my dream I saw a certain man who had a darkblue complexion, lotus eyes, yellow
garments and mighty arms. He was the kind who touches women’s hearts.
15. It is that lover I search for. After making me drink the honey of His lips, He has gone elsewhere, and
thus He has thrown me, hankering fervently for Him, into the ocean of distress.
16. Citralekha said: I will remove your distress. If He is to be found anywhere in the three worlds, I will
bring this future husband of yours who has stolen your heart. Please show me who He is.
17. Saying this, Citralekha proceeded to draw accurate pictures of various demigods, Gandharvas,
Siddhas, Caranas, Pannagas, Daityas, Vidyadharas, Yaksas and humans.
18-19. O King, among the humans, Citralekha drew pictures of the Vrsnis, including Surasena,
Anakadundubhi, Balarama and Krsna. When Usa saw the picture of Pradyumna she became bashful,
and when she saw Aniruddha’s picture she bent her head down in embarrassment. Smiling, she
exclaimed, “He’s the one! It’s Him!”
20. Citralekha, endowed with mystic powers, recognized Him as Krsna’s grandson [Aniruddha]. My dear
King, she then traveled by the mystic skyway to Dvaraka, the city under Lord Krsna’s protection.
21. There she found Pradyumna’s son Aniruddha sleeping upon a fine bed. With her yogic power she
took Him away to Sonitapura, where she presented her girlfriend Usa with her beloved.
22. When Usa beheld Him, the most beautiful of men, her face lit up with joy. She took the son of
Pradyumna to her private quarters, which men were forbidden even to see, and there enjoyed with Him.
23-24. Usa worshiped Aniruddha with faithful service, offering Him priceless garments, along with
garlands, fragrances, incense, lamps, sitting places and so on. She also offered Him beverages, all
types of food, and sweet words. As He thus remained hidden in the young ladies’ quarters, Aniruddha
did not notice the passing of the days, for His senses were captivated by Usa, whose affection for Him
ever increased.
25-26. The female guards eventually noticed unmistakable symptoms of romantic involvement in Usa,
who, having broken her maiden vow, was being enjoyed by the Yadu hero and showing signs of
conjugal happiness. The guards went to Banasura and told him, “O King, we have detected in your
daughter the kind of improper behavior that spoils the reputation of a young girl’s family.
27. “We have been carefully watching over her, never leaving our posts, O master, so we cannot
understand how this maiden, whom no man can even see, has been corrupted within the palace.”
28. Very agitated to hear of his daughter’s corruption, Banasura rushed at once to the maidens’
quarters. There he saw the pride of the Yadus, Aniruddha.
29-30. Banasura saw before him Cupid’s own son, possessed of unrivaled beauty, with dark-blue
complexion, yellow garments, lotus eyes and formidable arms. His face was adorned with effulgent
earrings and hair, and also with smiling glances. As He sat opposite His most auspicious lover, playing
with her at dice, there hung between His arms a garland of spring jasmines that had been smeared with
kunkuma powder from her breasts when He had embraced her. Banasura was astonished to see all
this.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 573
31. Seeing Banasura enter with many armed guards, Aniruddha raised His iron club and stood resolute,
ready to strike anyone who attacked Him. He resembled death personified holding his rod of
punishment.
32. As the guards converged on Him from all sides, trying to capture Him, Aniruddha struck them just as
the leader of a pack of boars strikes back at dogs. Hit by His blows, the guards fled the palace, running
for their lives with shattered heads, thighs and arms.
33. But even as Aniruddha was striking down the army of Bana, that powerful son of Bali angrily caught
Him with the mystic naga-pasa ropes. When Usa heard of Aniruddha’s capture, she was overwhelmed
with grief and depression; her eyes filled with tears, and she wept.
Chapter Sixty-Three Lord Krsna Fights with Banasura
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O descendant of Bharata, the relatives of Aniruddha, not seeing Him return,
continued to lament as the four rainy months passed.
2. After hearing from Narada the news of Aniruddha’s deeds and His capture, the Vrsnis, who
worshiped Lord Krsna as their personal Deity, went to Sonitapura.
3-4. With Lord Balarama and Lord Krsna in the lead, the chiefs of the Satvata clan—Pradyumna,
Satyaki, Gada, Samba, Sarana, Nanda, Upananda, Bhadra and others—converged with an army of
twelve divisions and laid siege to Banasura’s capital, completely surrounding the city on all sides.
5. Banasura became filled with anger upon seeing them destroy his city’s suburban gardens, ramparts,
watchtowers and gateways, and thus he went out to confront them with an army of equal size.
6. Lord Rudra, accompanied by his son Kartikeya and the Pramathas, came riding on Nandi, his bull
carrier, to fight Balarama and Krsna on Bana’s behalf.
7. A most astonishing, tumultuous and hair-raising battle then commenced, with Lord Krsna matched
against Lord Sankara, and Pradyumna against Kartikeya.
8. Lord Balarama fought with Kumbhanda and Kupakarna, Samba with Bana’s son, and Satyaki with
Bana.
9. Brahma and the other ruling demigods, along with Siddhas, Caranas and great sages, as well as
Gandharvas, Apsaras and Yaksas, all came in their celestial airplanes to watch.
10-11. With sharp-pointed arrows discharged from His bow Sarnga, Lord Krsna drove away the various
followers of Lord Siva—Bhutas, Pramathas, Guhyakas, Dakinis, Yatudhanas, Vetalas, Vinayakas,
Pretas, Matas, Pisacas, Kusmandas and Brahma-raksasas.
12. Lord Siva, wielder of the trident, shot various weapons at Lord Krsna, wielder of Sarnga. But Lord
Krsna was not in the least perplexed: He neutralized all these weapons with appropriate
counterweapons.
13. Lord Krsna counteracted a brahmastra with another brahmastra, a wind weapon with a mountain
weapon, a fire weapon with a rain weapon, and Lord Siva’s personal pasupatastra weapon with His
own personal weapon, the narayanastra.
14. After bewildering Lord Siva by making him yawn with a yawning weapon, Lord Krsna proceeded to
strike down Banasura’s army with His sword, club and arrows.
15. Lord Kartikeya was distressed by the flood of Pradyumna’s arrows raining down from all sides, and
thus he fled the battlefield on his peacock as blood poured from his limbs.
16. Kumbhanda and Kupakarna, tormented by Lord Balarama’s club, fell down dead. When the soldiers
of these two demons saw that their leaders had been killed, they scattered in all directions.
17. Banasura was furious to see his entire military force being torn apart. Leaving his fight with Satyaki,
he charged across the battlefield on his chariot and attacked Lord Krsna.
18. Excited to a frenzy by the fighting, Bana simultaneously pulled taut all the strings of his five hundred
bows and fixed two arrows on each string.
19. Lord Sri Hari split every one of Banasura’s bows simultaneously, and also struck down his chariot
driver, chariot and horses. The Lord then sounded His conchshell.
20. Just then Banasura’s mother, Krsna, desiring to save her son’s life, appeared before Lord Krsna
naked and with her hair undone.
21. Lord Gadagraja turned His face away to avoid seeing the naked woman, and Banasura—deprived
of his chariot, his bow shattered—took the opportunity to flee into his city.
22. After Lord Siva’s followers had been driven away, the Siva-jvara, who had three heads and three
feet, pressed forward to attack Lord Krsna. As the Siva-jvara approached, he seemed to burn
everything in the ten directions.
23. Seeing this personified weapon approach, Lord Narayana then released His own personified fever
weapon, the Visnu-jvara. The Siva-jvara and Visnu-jvara thus battled each other.
24. The Siva-jvara, overwhelmed by the strength of the Visnu-jvara, cried out in pain. But finding no
refuge, the frightened Siva-jvara approached Lord Krsna, the master of the senses, hoping to attain His
shelter. Thus with joined palms he began to praise the Lord.
574 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
25. The Siva-jvara said: I bow down to You of unlimited potencies, the Supreme Lord, the Supersoul of
all beings. You possess pure and complete consciousness and are the cause of cosmic creation,
maintenance and dissolution. Perfectly peaceful, You are the Absolute Truth to whom the Vedas
indirectly refer.
26. Time; fate; karma; the jiva and his propensities; the subtle material elements; the material body; the
life air; false ego; the various senses; and the totality of these as reflected in the living being’s subtle
body—all this constitutes your material illusory energy, maya, an endless cycle like that of seed and
plant. I take shelter of You, the negation of this maya.
27. With various intentions, You perform pastimes to maintain the demigods, the saintly persons and
the codes of religion for this world. By these pastimes You also kill those who stray from the right path
and live by violence. Indeed, your present incarnation is meant to relieve the earth’s burden.
28. I am tortured by the fierce power of Your terrible fever weapon, which is cold yet burning. All
embodied souls must suffer as long as they remain bound to material ambitions and thus averse to
serving Your feet.
29. The Supreme Lord said: O three-headed one, I am pleased with you. May your fear of My fever
weapon be dispelled, and may whoever remembers our conversation here have no reason to fear you.
30. Thus addressed, the Mahesvara-jvara bowed down to the infallible Lord and went away. But
Banasura then appeared, riding forth on his chariot to fight Lord Krsna.
31. Carrying numerous weapons in his thousand hands, O King, the terribly infuriated demon shot many
arrows at Lord Krsna, the carrier of the disc weapon.
32. As Bana continued hurling weapons at Him, the Supreme Lord began using His razor-sharp cakra
to cut off Banasura’s arms as if they were tree branches.
33. Lord Siva felt compassion for his devotee Banasura, whose arms were being cut off, and thus he
approached Lord Cakrayudha [Krsna] and spoke to Him as follows.
34. Sri Rudra said: You alone are the Absolute Truth, the supreme light, the mystery hidden within the
verbal manifestation of the Absolute. Those whose hearts are spotless can see You, for You are
uncontaminated, like the sky.
35-36. The sky is Your navel, fire Your face, water Your semen, and heaven Your head. The cardinal
directions are Your sense of hearing, herbal plants the hairs on Your body, and water-bearing clouds
the hair on Your head. The earth is Your foot, the moon Your mind, and the sun Your vision, while I am
Your ego. The ocean is Your abdomen, Indra Your arm, Lord Brahma Your intelligence, the progenitor
of mankind Your genitals, and religion Your heart. You are indeed the original purusa, creator of the
worlds.
37. Your current descent into the material realm, O Lord of unrestricted power, is meant for upholding
the principles of justice and benefiting the entire universe. We demigods, each depending on Your
grace and authority, develop the seven planetary systems.
38. You are the original person, one without a second, transcendental and self-manifesting. Uncaused,
you are the cause of all, and You are the ultimate controller. You are nonetheless perceived in terms of
the transformations of matter effected by Your illusory energy—transformations You sanction so that the
various material qualities can fully manifest.
39. O almighty one, just as the sun, though hidden by a cloud, illuminates the cloud and all other visible
forms as well, so You, although hidden by the material qualities, remain self-luminous and thus reveal
all those qualities, along with the living entities who possess them.
40. Their intelligence bewildered by Your maya, fully attached to children, wife, home and so on,
persons immersed in the ocean of material misery sometimes rise to the surface and sometimes sink
down.
41. One who has attained this human form of life as a gift from God, yet who fails to control his senses
and honor Your feet, is surely to be pitied, for he is only cheating himself.
42. That mortal who rejects You—his true Self, dearmost friend, and Lord—for the sake of sense
objects, whose nature is just the opposite, refuses nectar and instead consumes poison.
43. I, Lord Brahma, the other demigods and the pure-minded sages have all surrendered
wholeheartedly unto You, our dearmost Self and Lord.
44. Let us worship You, the Supreme Lord, to be freed from material life. You are the maintainer of the
universe and the cause of its creation and demise. Equipoised and perfectly at peace, You are the true
friend, Self and worshipable Lord. You are one without a second, the shelter of all the worlds and all
souls.
45. This Banasura is my dear and faithful follower, and I have awarded him freedom from fear.
Therefore, my Lord, please grant him Your mercy, just as You showed mercy to Prahlada, the lord of
the demons.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 575
46. The Supreme Lord said: My dear lord, for your pleasure We must certainly do what you have
requested of Us. I fully agree with your conclusion.
47. I will not kill this demonic son of Vairocani, for I gave Prahlada Maharaja the benediction that I would
not kill any of his descendants.
48. It was to subdue Banasura’s false pride that I severed his arms. And I slew his mighty army
because it had become a burden upon the earth.
49. This demon, who still has four arms, will be immune to old age and death, and he will serve as one
of your principal attendants. Thus he will have nothing to fear on any account.
50. Thus attaining freedom from fear, Banasura offered obeisances to Lord Krsna by touching his head
to the ground. Bana then seated Aniruddha and His bride on their chariot and brought them before the
Lord.
51. At the front of the party Lord Krsna then placed Aniruddha and His bride, both beautifully adorned
with fine clothes and ornaments, and surrounded them with a full military division. Thus Lord Krsna took
His leave of Lord Siva and departed.
52. The Lord then entered His capital. The city was lavishly decorated with flags and victory arches, and
its avenues and crossways were all sprinkled with water. As conchshells, anakas and dundubhi drums
resounded, the Lord’s relatives, the brahmanas and the general populace all came forward to greet Him
respectfully.
53. Whoever rises early in the morning and remembers Lord Krsna’s victory in His battle with Lord Siva
will never experience defeat.
Chapter Sixty-Four The Deliverance of King Nrga
1. Sri Badarayani said: O King, one day Samba, Pradyumna, Caru, Bhanu, Gada and other young boys
of the Yadu dynasty went to a small forest to play.
2. After playing for a long time, they became thirsty. As they searched for water, they looked inside a
dry well and saw a peculiar creature.
3. The boys were astonished to behold this creature, a lizard who looked like a hill. They felt sorry for it
and tried to lift it out of the well.
4. They caught on to the trapped lizard with leather thongs and then with woven ropes, but still they
could not lift it out. So they went to Lord Krsna and excitedly told Him about the creature.
5. The lotus-eyed Supreme Lord, maintainer of the universe, went to the well and saw the lizard. Then
with His left hand He easily lifted it out.
6. Touched by the hand of the glorious Supreme Lord, the being at once gave up its lizard form and
assumed that of a resident of heaven. His complexion was beautifully colored like molten gold, and he
was adorned with wonderful ornaments, clothes and garlands.
7. Lord Krsna understood the situation, but to inform people in general He inquired as follows: “Who are
you, O greatly fortunate one? Seeing your excellent form, I think you must surely be an exalted
demigod.
8. “By what past activity were you brought to this condition? It seems you did not deserve such a fate,
O good soul. We are eager to know about you, so please inform us about yourself—if, that is, you think
this the proper time and place to tell us.”
9. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus questioned by Krsna, whose forms are unlimited, the King, his helmet
as dazzling as the sun, bowed down to Lord Madhava and replied as follows.
10. King Nrga said: I am a king known as Nrga, the son of Iksvaku. Perhaps, Lord, You have heard of
me when lists of charitable men were recited.
11. What could possibly be unknown to You, O master? With vision undisturbed by time, You witness
the minds of all living beings. Nevertheless, on Your order I will speak.
12. I gave in charity as many cows as there are grains of sand on the earth, stars in the heavens, or
drops in a rain shower.
13. Young, brown, milk-laden cows, who were well behaved, beautiful and endowed with good qualities,
who were all acquired honestly, and who had gilded horns, silver-plated hooves and decorations of fine
ornamental cloths and garlands—such were the cows, along with their calves, that I gave in charity.
14-15. I first honored the brahmanas who were recipients of my charity by decorating them with fine
ornaments. Those most exalted brahmanas, whose families were in need, were young and possessed
of excellent character and qualities. They were dedicated to truth, famous for their austerity, vastly
learned in the Vedic scriptures and saintly in their behavior. I gave them cows, land, gold and houses,
along with horses, elephants and marriageable girls with maidservants, as well as sesame, silver, fine
beds, clothing, jewels, furniture and chariots. In addition, I performed Vedic sacrifices and executed
various pious welfare activities.
16. Once a cow belonging to a certain first-class brahmana wandered away and entered my herd.
Unaware of this, I gave that cow in charity to a different brahmana.
576 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
17. When the cow’s first owner saw her being led away, he said, “She is mine!” The second brahmana,
who had accepted her as a gift, replied, “No, she’s mine! Nrga gave her to me.”
18. As the two brahmanas argued, each trying to fulfill his own purpose, they came to me. One of them
said, “You gave me this cow,” and the other said, “But you stole her from me.” Hearing this, I was
bewildered.
19-20. Finding myself in a terrible dilemma concerning my duty in the situation, I humbly entreated both
the brahmanas: “I will give one hundred thousand of the best cows in exchange for this one. Please
give her back to me. Your good selves should be merciful to me, your servant. I did not know what I was
doing. Please save me from this difficult situation, or I’ll surely fall into a filthy hell.”
21. The present owner of the cow said, “I don’t want anything in exchange for this cow, O King,” and
went away. The other brahmana declared, “I don’t want even ten thousand more cows [than you are
offering],” and he too went away.
22. O Lord of lords, O master of the universe, the agents of Yamaraja, taking advantage of the
opportunity thus created, later carried me to his abode. There Yamaraja himself questioned me.
23. [Yamaraja said:] My dear King, do you wish to experience the results of your sins first, or those of
your piety? Indeed, I see no end to the dutiful charity you have performed, or to your consequent
enjoyment in the radiant heavenly planets.
24. I replied, “First, my lord, let me suffer my sinful reactions,” and Yamaraja said, “Then fall!” “At once I
fell, and while falling I saw myself becoming a lizard, O master.
25. O Kesava, as Your servant I was devoted to the brahmanas and generous to them, and I always
hankered for Your audience. Therefore even till now I have never forgotten [my past life].
26. O almighty one, how is it that my eyes see You here before me? You are the Supreme Soul, whom
the greatest masters of mystic yoga can meditate upon within their pure hearts only by employing the
spiritual eye of the Vedas. Then how, O transcendental Lord, are You directly visible to me, since my
intelligence has been blinded by the severe tribulations of material life? Only one who has finished his
material entanglement in this world should be able to see You.
27-28. O Devadeva, Jagannatha, Govinda, Purusottama, Narayana, Hrsikesa, Punyasloka, Acyuta,
Avyaya! O Krsna, please permit me to depart for the world of the demigods. Wherever I live, O master,
may my mind always take shelter of Your feet.
29. I offer my repeated obeisances unto You, Krsna, the son of Vasudeva. You are the source of all
beings, the Supreme Absolute Truth, the possessor of unlimited potencies, the master of all spiritual
disciplines.
30. Having spoken thus, Maharaja Nrga circumambulated Lord Krsna and touched his crown to the
Lord’s feet. Granted permission to depart, King Nrga then boarded a wonderful celestial airplane as all
the people present looked on.
31. The Supreme Personality of Godhead—Lord Krsna, the son of Devaki—who is especially devoted
to the brahmanas and who embodies the essence of religion, then spoke to His personal associates
and thus instructed the royal class in general.
32. [Lord Krsna said:] How indigestible is the property of a brahmana, even when enjoyed just slightly
and by one more potent than fire! What then to speak of kings who try to enjoy it, presuming
themselves lords.
33. I do not consider halahala to be real poison, because it has an antidote. But a brahmana’s property,
when stolen, can truly be called poison, for it has no antidote in this world.
34. Poison kills only the person who ingests it, and an ordinary fire may be extinguished with water. But
the fire generated from the kindling wood of a brahmana’s property burns the thief’s entire family down
to the root.
35. If a person enjoys a brähmaëa’s property without receiving due permission, that property destroys
three generations of his family. But if he takes it by force or gets the government or other outsiders to
help him usurp it, then ten generations of his ancestors and ten generations of his descendants are all
destroyed.
36. Members of the royal order, blinded by royal opulence, fail to foresee their own downfall. Childishly
hankering to enjoy a brahmana’s property, they are actually hankering to go to hell.
37-38. For as many years as there are particles of dust touched by the tears of generous brahmanas
who have dependent families and whose property is stolen, uncontrolled kings who usurp a brahmana’s
property are cooked, along with their royal families, in the hell known as Kumbhipaka.
39. Whether it be his own gift or someone else’s, a person who steals a brahmana’s property will take
birth as a worm in feces for sixty thousand years.
40. I do not desire brahmanas’ wealth. Those who lust after it become short-lived and are defeated.
They lose their kingdoms and become snakes, who trouble others.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 577
41. My dear followers, never treat a learned brahmana harshly, even if he has sinned. Even if he
attacks you physically or repeatedly curses you, always continue to offer him obeisances.
42. Just us I always carefully bow down to brahmanas, so all of you should likewise bow down to them.
I will punish anyone who acts otherwise.
43. When a brahmana’s property is stolen, even unknowingly, it certainly causes the person who takes
it to fall down, just as the brahmana’s cow did to Nrga.
44. Having thus instructed the residents of Dvaraka, Lord Mukunda, purifier of all the worlds, entered
His palace.
Chapter Sixty-Five Lord Balarama Visits Vrndavana
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O best of the Kurus, once Lord Balarama, eager to visit His well-wishing
friends, mounted His chariot and traveled to Nanda Gokula.
2. Having long suffered the anxiety of separation, the cowherd men and their wives embraced Lord
Balarama. The Lord then offered respects to His parents, and they joyfully greeted Him with prayers.
3. [Nanda and Yasoda prayed,] “O descendant of Dasarha, O Lord of the universe, may You and Your
younger brother Krsna ever protect us.” Saying this, they raised Sri Balarama onto their laps, embraced
Him and moistened Him with tears from their eyes.
4-6. Lord Balarama then paid proper respects to the elder cowherd men, and the younger ones all
greeted Him respectfully. He met them all with smiles, handshakes and so on, dealing personally with
each one according to age, degree of friendship, and family relationship. Then, after resting, the Lord
accepted a comfortable seat, and they all gathered around Him. With voices faltering out of love for
Him, those cowherds, who had dedicated everything to lotus-eyed Krsna, asked about the health of
their dear ones [in Dvaraka], and Balarama in turn asked about the cowherds’ welfare.
7. [The cowherds said:] O Rama, are all our relatives doing well? And Rama, do all of you, with your
wives and children, still remember us?
8. It is our great fortune that sinful Kamsa has been killed and our dear relatives freed. And it is also our
good fortune that our relatives have killed and defeated their enemies and found complete security in a
great fortress.
9. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Honored to have the personal audience of Lord Balarama, the
young gopis, smiled and asked Him, “Is Krsna, the darling of the city women, living happily?
10. “Does He remember His family members, especially His father and mother? Do you think He will
ever come back even once to see His mother? And does mighty-armed Krsna remember the service
we always did for Him?
11-12. “For Krsna’s sake, O descendant of Dasarha, we abandoned our mothers, fathers, brothers,
husbands, children and sisters, even though these family relations are difficult to give up. But now, O
Lord, that same Krsna has suddenly abandoned us and gone away, breaking off all affectionate ties
with us. And yet how could any woman fail to trust His promises?
13. “How can intelligent city women possibly trust the words of one whose heart is so unsteady and
who is so ungrateful? They must believe Him because He speaks so wonderfully, and also because His
beautiful smiling glances arouse their lust.
14. “Why bother talking about Him, dear gopi? Please talk of something else. If He passes His time
without us, then we shall similarly pass ours [without Him].”
15. While speaking these words, the young cowherd women remembered Lord Sauri’s laughter, His
pleasing conversations with them, His attractive glances, His style of walking and His loving embraces.
Thus they began to cry.
16. The Supreme Lord Balarama, the attractor of all, being expert at various kinds of conciliation,
consoled the gopis by relaying to them the confidential messages Lord Krsna had sent with Him. These
messages deeply touched the gopis’ hearts.
17. Lord Balarama, the Personality of Godhead, resided there for the two months of Madhu and
Madhava, and during the nights He gave His cowherd girlfriends conjugal pleasure.
18. In the company of numerous women, Lord Balarama enjoyed in a garden by the Yamuna River.
This garden was bathed in the rays of the full moon and caressed by breezes bearing the fragrance of
night-blooming lotuses.
19. Sent by the demigod Varuna, the divine Varuni liquor flowed from a tree hollow and made the entire
forest even more fragrant with its sweet aroma.
20. The wind carried to Balarama the fragrance of that flood of sweet liquor, and when He smelled it He
went [to the tree]. There He and His female companions drank.
21. As the Gandharvas sang His glories, Lord Balarama enjoyed within the brilliant circle of young
women. He appeared just like Indra’s elephant, the lordly Airavata, enjoying in the company of she-
elephants.
578 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. At that time kettledrums resounded in the sky, the Gandharvas joyfully rained down flowers, and the
great sages praised Lord Balarama’s heroic deeds.
23. As His deeds were sung, Lord Halayudha wandered as if inebriated among the various forests with
His girlfriends. His eyes rolled from the effects of the liquor.
24-25. Intoxicated with joy, Lord Balarama sported flower garlands, including the famous Vaijayanti. He
wore a single earring, and beads of perspiration decorated His smiling lotus face like snowflakes. The
Lord then summoned the Yamuna River so that He could play in her waters, but she disregarded His
command, thinking He was drunk. This angered Balarama, and He began dragging the river with the tip
of His plow.
26. [Lord Balarama said:] O sinful one disrespecting Me, you do not come when I call you but rather
move only by your own whim. Therefore with the tip of My plow I shall bring you here in a hundred
streams!
27. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus scolded by the Lord, O King, the frightened river-goddess
Yamuna came and fell at the feet of Sri Balarama, the beloved descendant of Yadu. Trembling, she
spoke to Him the following words.
28. [Goddess Yamuna said:] Rama, Rama, O mighty-armed one! I know nothing of Your prowess. With
a single portion of Yourself You hold up the earth, O Lord of the universe.
29. My Lord, please release me. O soul of the universe, I didn’t understand Your position as the
Supreme Godhead, but now I have surrendered unto You, and You are always kind to Your devotees.
30. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thereupon Lord Balarama released the Yamuna and, like the king
of the elephants with his entourage of she-elephants, entered the river’s water with His female
companions.
31. The Lord played in the water to His full satisfaction, and when He came out Goddess Kanti
presented Him with blue garments, precious ornaments and a brilliant necklace.
32. Lord Balarama dressed Himself in the blue garments and put on the gold necklace. Anointed with
fragrances and beautifully adorned, He appeared as resplendent as Indra’s royal elephant.
33. Even today, O King, one can see how the Yamuna flows through the many channels created when
it was dragged by the unlimitedly powerful Lord Balarama. Thus she demonstrates His prowess.
34. Thus for Lord Balarama all the nights passed like a single night as He enjoyed in Vraja, His mind
enchanted by the exquisite charm and beauty of Vraja’s young ladies.
Chapter Sixty-Six Paundraka, the False Vasudeva
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, while Lord Balarama was away visiting Nanda’s village of Vraja, the
ruler of Karusa, foolishly thinking “I am the Supreme Lord, Vasudeva,” sent a messenger to Lord Krsna.
2. Paundraka was emboldened by the flattery of childish men, who told him, “You are Vasudeva, the
Supreme Lord and master of the universe, who have now descended to the earth.” Thus he imagined
himself to be the infallible Personality of Godhead.
3. Thus slow-witted King Paundraka sent a messenger to the inscrutable Lord Krsna at Dvaraka.
Paundraka was acting just like an unintelligent child whom other children are pretending is a king.
4. Arriving in Dvaraka, the messenger found lotus-eyed Krsna in His royal assembly and relayed the
King’s message to that almighty Lord.
5. [On Paundraka’s behalf, the messenger said:] I am the one and only Lord Vasudeva, and there is no
other. It is I who have descended to this world to show mercy to the living beings. Therefore give up
Your false name.
6. O Satvata, give up my personal symbols, which out of foolishness You now carry, and come to me
for shelter. If You do not, then You must give me battle.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami said: King Ugrasena and the other members of the assembly laughed loudly
when they heard this vain boasting of unintelligent Paundraka.
8. The Personality of Godhead, aher enjoying the jokes of the assembly, told the messenger [to relay a
message to his master:] “You fool, I will indeed let loose the weapons you boast of in this way.
9. “When you lie dead, O fool, your face covered by vultures, herons and vata birds, you will become
the shelter of dogs.”
10. When the Lord had thus spoken, the messenger conveyed His insulting reply to his master in its
entirety. Lord Krsna then mounted His chariot and went to the vicinity of Kasi.
11. Upon observing Lord Krsna’s preparations for battle, the mighty warrior Paundraka quickly went out
of the city with two full military divisions.
12-14. Paundraka’s friend, the King of Kasi, followed behind, O King, leading the rear guard with three
aksauhini divisions. Lord Krsna saw that Paundraka was carrying the Lord’s own insignia, such as the
conchshell, disc, sword and club, and also an imitation Srnga bow and Srivatsa mark. He wore a mock
Kaustubha gem, was decorated with a garland of forest flowers and was dressed in upper and lower
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 579
garments of fine yellow silk. His banner bore the image of Garuda, and he wore a valuable crown and
gleaming, shark-shaped earrings.
15. Lord Hari laughed heartily when He saw how the King had dressed up in exact imitation of His own
appearance, just like an actor on a stage.
16. The enemies of Lord Hari attacked Him with tridents, clubs, bludgeons, pikes, rstis, barbed darts,
lances, swords, axes and arrows.
17. But Lord Krsna fiercely struck back at the army of Paundraka and Kasiraja, which consisted of
elephants, chariots, cavalry and infantry. The Lord tormented His enemies with His club, sword,
Sudarsana disc and arrows, just as the fire of annihilation torments the various kinds of creatures at the
end of a cosmic age.
18. The battlefield, strewn with the dismembered chariots, horses, elephants, humans, mules and
camels that had been cut to pieces by the Lord’s disc weapon, shone like the gruesome playground of
Lord Bhutapati, giving pleasure to the wise.
19. Lord Krsna then addressed Paundraka: My dear Paundraka, the very weapons you spoke of
through your messenger, I now release unto you.
20. O fool, now I shall make you renounce My name, which you have falsely assumed. And I will
certainly take shelter of you if I do not wish to fight you.
21. Having thus derided Paundraka, Lord Krsna destroyed his chariot with His sharp arrows. The Lord
then cut off his head with the Sudarsana disc, just as Lord Indra lops off a mountain peak with his
thunderbolt weapon.
22. With His arrows, Lord Krsna similarly severed Kasiraja’s head from his body, sending it flying into
Kasi city like a lotus flower thrown by the wind.
23. Having thus killed envious Paundraka and his ally, Lord Krsna returned to Dvaraka. As He entered
the city, the Siddhas of heaven chanted His immortal, nectarean glories.
24. By constantly meditating upon the Supreme Lord, Paundraka shattered all his material bonds.
Indeed, by imitating Lord Krsna’s appearance, O King, he ultimately became Krsna conscious.
25. Seeing a head decorated with earrings lying at the gate of the royal palace, the people present were
puzzled. Some of them asked, “What is this?” and others said, “It is a head, but whose is it?”
26. My dear King, when they recognized it as the head of their King—the lord of Kasi—his queens, sons
and other relatives, along with all the citizens of the city, began to cry pitifully: “Alas, we are killed! O my
lord, my lord!”
27-28. After the King’s son Sudaksina had performed the obligatory funeral rituals for his father, he
resolved within his mind: “Only by killing my father’s murderer can I avenge his death.” Thus the
charitable Sudaksina, together with his priests, began worshiping Lord Mahesvara with great attention.
29. Satisfied by the worship, the powerful Lord Siva appeared in the sacred precinct of Avimukta and
offered Sudaksina his choice of benedictions. The prince chose as his benediction a means to slay his
father’s killer.
30-31. Lord Siva told him, “Accompanied by brahmanas, serve the Daksinagni fire—the original priest—
following the injunctions of the abhicara ritual. Then the Daksinagni fire, together with many Pramathas,
will fulfill your desire if you direct it against someone inimical to the brahmanas.” So instructed,
Sudaksina strictly observed the ritualistic vows and invoked the abhicara against Lord Krsna.
32-33. Thereupon the fire rose up out of the altar pit, assuming the form of an extremely fearsome,
naked person. The fiery creature’s beard and tuft of hair were like molten copper, and his eyes emitted
blazing hot cinders. His face looked most frightful with its fangs and terrible arched and furrowed brows.
As he licked the corners of his mouth with his tongue, the demon shook his flaming trident.
34. On legs as tall as palm trees, the monster raced toward Dvaraka in the company of ghostly spirits,
shaking the ground and burning the world in all directions.
35. Seeing the approach of the fiery demon created by the abhicara ritual, the residents of Dvaraka
were all struck with fear, like animals terrified by a forest fire.
36. Distraught with fear, the people cried out to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who was then
playing at dice in the royal court: “Save us! Save us, O Lord of the three worlds, from this fire burning up
the city!”
37. When Lord Krsna heard the people’s agitation and saw that even His own men were disturbed, that
most worthy giver of shelter simply laughed and told them, “Do not fear; I shall protect you.”
38. The almighty Lord, the internal and external witness of all, understood that the monster had been
produced by Lord Siva from the sacrificial fire. To defeat the demon, Krsna dispatched His disc weapon,
who was waiting at His side.
39. That Sudarsana, the disc weapon of Lord Mukunda, blazed forth like millions of suns. His effulgence
blazed like the fire of universal annihilation, and with his heat he pained the sky, all the directions,
heaven and earth, and also the fiery demon.
580 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
40. Frustrated by the power of Lord Krsna’s weapon, O King, the fiery creature produced by black
magic turned his face away and retreated. Created for violence, the demon then returned to Varanasi,
where he surrounded the city and then burned Sudaksina and his priests to death, even though
Sudaksina was his creator.
41. Lord Visnu’s disc also entered Varanasi, in pursuit of the fiery demon, and proceeded to burn the
city to the ground, including all its assembly halls and residential palaces with raised porches, its
numerous marketplaces, gateways, watchtowers, warehouses and treasuries, and all the buildings
housing elephants, horses, chariots and grains.
42. After burning down the entire city of Varanasi, Lord Visnu’s Sudarsana cakra returned to the side of
Sri Krsna, whose actions are effortless.
43. Any mortal who recounts this heroic pastime of Lord Uttamahsloka’s, or who simply hears it
attentively, will become freed from all sins.
Chapter Sixty-Seven Lord Balarama Slays Dvivida Gorilla
1. The glorious King Pariksit said: I wish to hear further about Sri Balarama, the unlimited and
immeasurable Supreme Lord, whose activities are all astounding. What else did He do?
2. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: There was an ape named Dvivida who was a friend of Narakasura’s.
This powerful Dvivida, the brother of Mainda, had been instructed by King Sugriva.
3. To avenge the death of his friend [Naraka], the ape Dvivida ravaged the land, setting fires that burned
cities, villages, mines and cowherd dwellings.
4. Once Dvivida tore up a number of mountains and used them to devastate all the neighboring
kingdoms, especially the province of Anarta, wherein dwelt his friend’s killer, Lord Hari.
5. Another time he entered the ocean and, with the strength of ten thousand elephants, churned up its
water with his arms and thus submerged the coastal regions.
6. The wicked ape tore down the trees in the hermitages of exalted sages and contaminated their
sacrificial fires with his feces and urine.
7. Just as a wasp imprisons smaller insects, he arrogantly threw both men and women into caves in a
mountain valley and sealed the caves shut with boulders.
8. Once, while Dvivida was thus engaged in harassing the neighboring kingdoms and polluting women
of respectable families, he heard very sweet singing coming from Raivataka Mountain. So he went
there.
9-10. There he saw Sri Balarama, the Lord of the Yadus, adorned with a garland of lotuses and
appearing most attractive in every limb. He was singing amidst a crowd of young women, and since He
had drunk varuni liquor, His eyes rolled as if He were intoxicated. His body shone brilliantly as He
behaved like an elephant in rut.
11. The mischievous ape climbed a tree branch and then revealed his presence by shaking the trees
and making the sound kilakila.
12. When Lord Baladeva’s consorts saw the ape’s impudence, they began to laugh. They were, after
all, young girls who were fond of joking and prone to silliness.
13. Even as Lord Balarama looked on, Dvivida insulted the girls by making odd gestures with his
eyebrows, coming right in front of them, and showing them his anus.
14-15. Angered, Lord Balarama, the best of fighters, hurled a rock at him, but the cunning ape dodged
the rock and grabbed the Lord’s pot of liquor. Further infuriating Lord Balarama by laughing and by
ridiculing Him, wicked Dvivida then broke the pot and offended the Lord even more by pulling at the
girls’ clothing. Thus the powerful ape, puffed up with false pride, continued to insult Sri Balarama.
16. Lord Balarama saw the ape’s rude behavior and thought of the disruptions he had created in the
surrounding kingdoms. Thus the Lord angrily took up His club and His plow weapon, having decided to
put His enemy to death.
17. Mighty Dvivida also came forward to do battle. Uprooting a sala tree with one hand, he rushed
toward Balarama and struck Him on the head with the tree trunk.
18. But Lord Sankarsana remained as motionless as a mountain and simply grabbed the log as it fell
upon His head. He then struck Dvivida with His club, named Sunanda.
19-21. Struck on the skull by the Lord’s club, Dvivida became brilliantly decorated by the outpour of
blood, like a mountain beautified by red oxide. Ignoring the wound, Dvivida uprooted another tree,
stripped it of leaves by brute force and struck the Lord again. Now enraged, Lord Balarama shattered
the tree into hundreds of pieces, upon which Dvivida grabbed yet another tree and furiously hit the Lord
again. This tree, too, the Lord smashed into hundreds of pieces.
22. Thus fighting the Lord, who again and again demolished the trees He was attacked with, Dvivida
kept on uprooting trees from all sides until the forest was left treeless.
23. The angry ape then released a rain of stones upon Lord Balarama, but the wielder of the club easily
pulverized them all.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 581
24. Dvivida, the most powerful of apes, now clenched his fists at the end of his palm-tree-sized arms,
came before Lord Balarama and beat his fists against the Lord’s body.
25. The furious Lord of the Yadavas then threw aside His club and plow and with His bare hands
hammered a blow upon Dvivida’s collarbone. The ape collapsed, vomiting blood.
26. When he fell, O tiger among the Kurus, Raivataka Mountain shook, along with its cliffs and trees,
like a wind-tossed boat at sea.
27. In the heavens the demigods, perfect mystics and great sages cried out, “Victory to You!
Obeisances to You! Excellent! Well done!” and showered flowers upon the Lord.
28. Having thus killed Dvivida, who had disturbed the whole world, the Supreme Lord returned to His
capital as the people along the way chanted His glories.
Chaptrer Sixty-Eight The Marriage of Samba
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, Jambavati’s son Samba, ever victorious in battle, kidnapped
Duryodhana’s daughter Laksmana from her svayamvara ceremony.
2. The angry Kurus said: This ill-behaved boy has offended us, forcibly kidnapping our unmarried
daughter against her will.
3. Arrest this ill-behaved Samba! What will the Vrsnis do? By our grace they are ruling land that we
have granted them.
4. If the Vrsnis come here when they learn that their son has been captured, we will break their pride.
Thus they’ll become subdued, like bodily senses brought under strict control.
5. After saying this and having their plan sanctioned by the senior member of the Kuru dynasty, Karna,
Sala, Bhuri, Yajnaketu and Suyodhana set out to attack Samba.
6. Seeing Duryodhana and his companions rushing toward him, Samba, the great chariot-fighter, took
up his splendid bow and stood alone like a lion.
7. Determined to capture him, the angry bowmen led by Karna shouted at Samba, ‘Stand and fight!
Stand and fight!’ They came straight for him and showered him with arrows.
8. O best of the Kurus, as Krsna’s son Samba was being unjustly harassed by the Kurus, that darling of
the Yadu dynasty did not tolerate their attack, any more than a lion would tolerate an attack by puny
animals.
9-10. Twanging his wonderful bow, heroic Samba struck with arrows the six warriors headed by Karna.
He pierced the six chariots with as many arrows, each team of four horses with four arrows, and each
chariot driver with a single arrow, and he similarly struck the great bowmen who commanded the
chariots. The enemy warriors congratulated Samba for this display of prowess.
11. But they forced him down from his chariot, and thereupon four of them struck his four horses, one of
them struck down his chariot driver, and another broke his bow.
12. Having deprived Samba of his chariot during the fight, the Kuru warriors tied him up with great
difficulty and then returned victorious to their city, taking the young boy and their princess.
13. O King, when the Yadavas heard news of this from Sri Narada, they became angry. Urged on by
King Ugrasena, they prepared for war against the Kurus.
14-15. Lord Balarama, however, cooled the tempers of the Vrsni heroes, who had already put on their
armor. He who purifies the age of quarrel did not want a quarrel between the Kurus and Vrsnis. Thus,
accompanied by brahmanas and family elders, He went to Hastinapura on His chariot, which was as
effulgent as the sun. As He went, He appeared like the moon surrounded by the ruling planets.
16. Upon arriving at Hastinapura, Lord Balarama remained in a garden outside the city and sent
Uddhava ahead to probe King Dhrtarastra’s intentions.
17. After he had offered proper respects to the son of Ambika [Dhrtarastra] and to Bhisma, Drona,
Bahlika and Duryodhana, Uddhava informed them that Lord Balarama had arrived.
18. Overjoyed to hear that Balaräma, their dearmost friend, had come, they first honored Uddhava and
then went forth to meet the Lord, carrying auspicious offerings in their hands.
19. They approached Lord Balarama and worshiped Him with gifts of cows and arghya, as was fitting.
Those among the Kurus who understood His true power bowed down to Him, touching their heads to
the ground.
20. After both parties had heard that their relatives were doing well and both had inquired into each
other’s welfare and health, Lord Balarama forthrightly spoke to the Kurus as follows.
21. [Lord Balarama said:] King Ugrasena is our master and the ruler of kings. With undivided attention
you should hear what he has ordered you to do, and then you should do it at once.
22. [King Ugrasena has said:] Even though by irreligious means several of you defeated a single
opponent who follows the religious codes, still I am tolerating this for the sake of unity among family
members.
23. Upon hearing these words of Lord Baladeva’s, which were full of potency, courage and strength and
were appropriate to His transcendental power, the Kauravas became furious and spoke as follows.
582 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. [The Kuru nobles said:] Oh, how amazing this is! The force of time is indeed insurmountable: a lowly
shoe now wants to climb on the head that bears the royal crown.
25. It is because these Vrsnis are bound to us by marital ties that we have granted them equality,
allowing them to share our beds, seats and meals. Indeed, it is we who have given them their royal
thrones.
26. Only because we looked the other way could they enjoy the pair of yak-tail fans and the conchshell,
white umbrella, throne, and royal bed.
27. No longer should the Yadus be allowed to use these royal symbols, which now cause trouble for
those who gave them, like milk fed to poisonous snakes. Having prospered by our grace, these
Yadavas have now lost all shame and are daring to command us!
28. How would even Indra dare usurp anything that Bhisma, Drona, Arjuna or the other Kurus have not
given him? It would be like a lamb claiming the lion’s kill.
29. Sri Badarayani said: O best of the Bharatas, after the arrogant Kurus, thoroughly puffed up by the
opulence of their high birth and relations, had spoken these harsh words to Lord Balarama, they turned
and went back to their city.
30. Seeing the bad character of the Kurus and hearing their nasty words, the infallible Lord Balarama
became filled with rage. His countenance frightful to behold, He laughed repeatedly and spoke as
follows.
31. [Lord Balarama said:] “Clearly the many passions of these scoundrels have made them so proud
that they do not want peace. Then let them be pacified by physical punishment, as animals are with a
stick.
32-33. “Ah, only gradually was I able to calm the furious Yadus and Lord Krsna, who was also enraged.
Desiring peace for these Kauravas, I came here. But they are so dull-headed, fond of quarrel and
mischievous by nature that they have repeatedly disrespected Me. Out of conceit they dared to address
Me with harsh words!
34. “King Ugrasena, the lord of the Bhojas, Vrsnis and Andhakas, is not fit to command, when Indra and
other planetary rulers obey his orders?
35. “That same Krsna who occupies the Sudharma assembly hall and for His enjoyment took the
parijata tree from the immortal demigods—that very Krsna is indeed not fit to sit on a royal throne?
36. “The goddess of fortune herself, ruler of the entire universe, worships His feet. And the master of
the goddess of fortune does not deserve the paraphernalia of a mortal king?
37. “The dust of Krsna’s lotus feet, which is the source of holiness for all places of pilgrimage, is
worshiped by all the great demigods. The principal deities of all planets are engaged in His service, and
they consider themselves most fortunate to take the dust of the lotus feet of Krsna on their crowns.
Great demigods like Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, and even the goddess of fortune and I, are simply
parts of His spiritual identity, and we also carefully carry that dust on our heads. And still Krsna is not fit
to use the royal insignia or even sit on the royal throne?
38. “We Vrsnis enjoy only whatever small parcel of land the Kurus allow us? And we are indeed shoes,
whereas the Kurus are the head?
39. “Just see how these puffed-up Kurus are intoxicated with their so-called power, like ordinary
drunken men! What actual ruler, with the power to command, would tolerate their foolish, nasty words?
40. “Today I shall rid the earth of the Kauravas!” declared the furious Balarama. Thus He took His plow
weapon and rose up as if to set the three worlds ablaze.
41. The Lord angrily dug up Hastinapura with the tip of His plow and began to drag it, intending to cast
the entire city into the Ganges.
42-43. Seeing that their city was tumbling about like a raft at sea as it was being dragged away, and
that it was about to fall into the Ganges, the Kauravas became terrified. To save their lives they
approached the Lord for shelter, taking their families with them. Placing Samba and Laksmana in front,
they joined their palms in supplication.
44. [The Kauravas said:] O Rama, Rama, foundation of everything! We know nothing of Your power.
Please excuse our offense, for we are ignorant and misguided.
45. You alone cause the creation, maintenance and annihilation of the cosmos, and of You there is no
prior cause. Indeed, O Lord, authorities say that the worlds are mere playthings for You as You perform
Your pastimes.
46. O unlimited one of a thousand heads, as Your pastime You carry this earthly globe upon one of
Your heads. At the time of annihilation You withdraw the entire universe within Your body and,
remaining all alone, lie down to rest.
47. Your anger is meant for instructing everyone; it is not a manifestation of hatred or envy. O Supreme
Lord, You sustain the pure mode of goodness, and You become angry only to maintain and protect this
world.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 583
48. We bow down to You, O Soul of all beings, O wielder of all potencies, O tireless maker of the
universe! Offering You obeisances, we take shelter of You.
49. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus propitiated by the Kurus, whose city was trembling and who were
surrendering to Him in great distress, Lord Balarama became very calm and kindly disposed toward
them. “Do not be afraid,” He said, and took away their fear.
50-51. Duryodhana, being very affectionate to his daughter, gave as her dowry 1,200 sixty-year-old
elephants, 120,000 horses, 6,000 golden chariots shining like the sun, and 1,000 maidservants with
jeweled lockets on their necks.
52. The Supreme Lord, chief of the Yadavas, accepted all these gifts and then departed with His son
and daughter-in-law as His well-wishers bid Him farewell.
53. Then Lord Halayudha entered His city [Dvaraka] and met His relatives, whose hearts were all bound
to him in loving attachment. In the assembly hall He reported to the Yadu leaders everything about His
dealings with the Kurus.
54. Even today the city of Hastinapura is visibly elevated on its southern side along the Ganges, thus
showing the signs of Lord Balarama’s prowess.
Chapter Sixty-Nine Narada Muni Visits Lord Krsna’s Palaces in Dvaraka
1-6. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hearing that Lord Krsna had killed Narakasura and had alone married
many brides, Narada Muni desired to see the Lord in this situation. He thought, “It is quite amazing that
in a single body Lord Krsna simultaneously married sixteen thousand women, each in a separate
palace.” Thus the sage of the demigods eagerly went to Dvaraka. The city was filled with the sounds of
birds and bees flying about the parks and pleasure gardens, while its lakes, crowded with blooming
indivara, ambhoja, kahlara, kumuda and utpala lotuses, resounded with the calls of swans and cranes.
Dvaraka boasted nine hundred thousand royal palaces, all constructed with crystal and silver and
splendorously decorated with huge emeralds. Inside these palaces, the furnishings were bedecked with
gold and jewels. Traffic moved along a well laid-out system of boulevards, roads, intersections and
marketplaces, and many assembly houses and temples of demigods graced the charming city. The
roads, courtyards, commercial streets and residential patios were all sprinkled with water and shaded
from the sun’s heat by banners waving from flagpoles.
7-8. In the city of Dvaraka was a beautiful private quarter worshiped by the planetary rulers. This district,
where the demigod Visvakarma had shown all his divine skill, was the residential area of Lord Hari, and
thus it was gorgeously decorated by the sixteen thousand palaces of Lord Krsna’s queens. Narada
Muni entered one of these immense palaces.
9-12. Supporting the palace were coral pillars decoratively inlaid with vaidurya gems. Sapphires
bedecked the walls, and the floors glowed with perpetual brilliance. In that palace Tvasta had arranged
canopies with hanging strands of pearls; there were also seats and beds fashioned of ivory and
precious jewels. In attendance were many well-dressed maidservants bearing lockets on their necks,
and also armor-clad guards with turbans, fine uniforms and jeweled earrings. The glow of numerous
jewel-studded lamps dispelled all darkness in the palace. My dear King, on the ornate ridges of the roof
danced loudly crying peacocks, who saw the fragrant aguru incense escaping through the holes of the
latticed windows and mistook it for a cloud.
13. In that palace the learned brahmana saw the Lord of the Satvatas, Sri Krsna, together with His wife,
who fanned Him with a gold-handled yak-tail fan. She personally served Him in this way, even though
she was constantly attended by a thousand maidservants equal to her in personal character, beauty,
youth and fine dress.
14. The Supreme Lord is the greatest upholder of religious principles. Thus when He noticed Narada,
He rose at once from Goddess Sri’s bed, bowed His crowned head at Narada’s feet and, joining His
palms, had the sage sit in His own seat.
15. The Lord bathed Narada’s feet and then put the water on His own head. Although Lord Krsna is the
supreme spiritual authority of the universe and the master of His devotees, it was proper for Him to
behave in this way, for His name is Brahmanya-deva, “the Lord who favors the brahmanas.” Thus Sri
Krsna honored the sage Narada by bathing his feet, even though the water that bathes the Lord’s own
feet becomes the Ganges, the ultimate holy shrine.
16. After fully worshiping the great sage of the demigods according to Vedic injunctions, Lord Krsna,
who is Himself the original sage—Narayana, the friend of Nara—conversed with Narada, and the Lord’s
measured speech was as sweet as nectar. Finally the Lord asked Narada, “What may We do for you,
Our lord and master?”
17. Sri Narada said: O almighty Lord, it is no surprise that You, the ruler of all worlds, show friendship
for all people and yet subdue the envious. As we well know, You descend by Your sweet will in order to
bestow the highest good on this universe by maintaining and protecting it. Thus Your glories are widely
sung.
584 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
18. Now I have seen Your feet, which grant liberation to Your devotees, which even Lord Brahma and
other great personalities of unfathomable intelligence can only meditate upon within their hearts, and
which those who have fallen into the well of material existence resort to for deliverance. Please favor
me so that I may constantly think of You as I travel about. Please grant Me the power to remember You.
19. Narada then entered the palace of another of Lord Krsna’s wives, my dear King. He was eager to
witness the spiritual potency possessed by the master of all masters of mystic power.
20-22. There he saw the Lord playing at dice with His beloved consort and His friend Uddhava. Lord
Krsna worshiped Narada by standing up, offering him a seat, and so on, and then, as if He did not
know, asked him, “When did you arrive? What can needy persons like Us do for those who are full in
themselves? In any case, My dear brahmana, please make My life auspicious.” Thus addressed,
Narada was astonished. He simply stood up silently and went to another palace.
23. This time Naradaji saw that Lord Krsna was engaged as an affectionate father petting His small
children. From there he entered another palace and saw Lord Krsna preparing to lake His bath.
24. In one place the Lord was offering oblations into the sacrificial fires; in another, worshiping through
the five maha-yajnas; in another, feeding brahmanas; and in yet another, eating the remnants of food
left by brahmanas.
25. Somewhere Lord Krsna was observing the rituals for worship at sunset by refraining from speech
and quietly chanting the Gayatri mantra, and elsewhere He was moving about with sword and shield in
the areas set aside for sword practice.
26. In one place Lord Gadagraja was riding on horses, elephants and chariots, and in another place He
was resting on His bed while bards recited His glories.
27. Somewhere He was consulting with royal ministers like Uddhava, and somewhere else He was
enjoying in the water, surrounded by many society girls and other young women.
28. Somewhere He was giving well-decorated cows to exalted brahmanas, and elsewhere he was
listening to the auspicious narration of epic histories and Puranas.
29. Somewhere Lord Krsna was found enjoying the company of a particular wife by exchanging joking
words with her. Somewhere else He was found engaged, along with His wife, in religious ritualistic
functions. Somewhere Krsna was found engaged in matters of economic development, and somewhere
else He was found enjoying family life according to the regulative principles of the sastras.
30. Somewhere He was sitting alone, meditating on the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is
transcendental to material nature, and somewhere He was rendering menial service to His elders,
offering them desirable things and reverential worship.
31. In one place He was planning battles in consultation with some of His advisers, and in another place
He was making peace. Somewhere Lord Kesava and Lord Balarama were together pondering the
welfare of the pious.
32. Narada saw Lord Krsna engaged in getting His sons and daughters married to suitable brides and
bridegrooms at the appropriate time, and the marriage ceremonies were being performed with great
pomp.
33. Narada observed how Sri Krsna, the master of all yoga masters, arranged to send away His
daughters and sons-in-law, and also to receive them home again, at the time of great holiday
celebrations. All the citizens were astonished to see these celebrations.
34. Somewhere He was worshiping all the demigods with elaborate sacrifices, and elsewhere He was
fulfilling His religious obligations by doing public welfare work, such as the construction of wells, public
parks and monasteries.
35. In another place He was on a hunting expedition. Mounted on His Sindhi horse and accompanied
by the most heroic of the Yadus, He was killing animals meant for offering in sacrifice.
36. Somewhere Krsna, the Lord of mystic power, was moving about in disguise among the homes of
ministers and other citizens in order to understand what each of them was thinking.
37. Having thus seen this display of the Lord’s Yogamaya, Narada mildly laughed and then addressed
Lord Hrsikesa, who was adopting the behavior of a human being.
38. [Narada said:] Now we understand Your mystic potencies, which are difficult to comprehend, even
for great mystics, O Supreme Soul, master of all mystic power. Only by serving Your feet have I been
able to perceive Your powers.
39. O Lord, please give me Your leave. I will wander about the worlds, which are flooded with Your
fame, loudly singing about Your pastimes, which purify the universe.
40. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O brahmana, I am the speaker of religion, its performer
and sanctioner. I observe religious principles to teach them to the world, My child, so do not be
disturbed.
41. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus in every palace Narada saw the Lord in His same personal form,
executing the transcendental principles of religion that purify those engaged in household affairs.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 585
42. Having repeatedly seen the vast mystic display of Lord Krsna, whose power is unlimited, the sage
was amazed and filled with wonder.
43. Lord Krsna greatly honored Narada, faithfully presenting him with gifts related to economic
prosperity, sense gratification and religious duties. Thus fully satisfied, the sage departed, constantly
remembering the Lord.
44. In this way Lord Narayana imitated the ways of ordinary humans, manifesting His divine potencies
for the benefit of all beings. Thus He enjoyed, dear King, in the company of His sixteen thousand
exalted consorts, who served the Lord with their shy, affectionate glances and laughter.
45. Lord Hari is the ultimate cause of universal creation, maintenance and destruction. My dear King,
anyone who chants about, hears about or simply appreciates the extraordinary activities He performed
in this world, which are impossible to imitate, will surely develop devotion for the Supreme Lord, the
bestower of liberation.
Chapter Seventy Lord Krsna’s Daily Activities
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: As dawn approached, the wives of Lord Madhava, each embraced around
the neck by her husband, cursed the crowing roosters. The ladies were disturbed that now they would
be separated from Him.
2. The bees’ buzzing, caused by the fragrant breeze from the parijata garden, roused the birds from
sleep. And when the birds began to sing loudly, they woke Lord Krsna like court poets reciting His
glories.
3. Lying in her beloved’s arms, Queen Vaidarbhi did not like this most auspicious hour, for it meant she
would lose His embrace.
4-5. Lord Madhava would rise during the brahma-muhurta period and touch water. With a clear mind He
would then meditate upon Himself, the single, self-luminous, unequaled and infallible Supreme Truth,
known as Brahman, who by His very nature ever dispels all contamination, and who through His
personal energies, which cause the creation and destruction of this universe, manifests His own pure
and blissful existence.
6. That most saintly of personalities would then bathe in sanctified water, dress Himself in lower and
upper garments and perform the entire sequence of prescribed rituals, beginning with worship at dawn.
After offering oblations into the sacred fire, Lord Krsna would silently chant the Gayatri mantra.
7-9. Each day the Lord worshiped the rising sun and propitiated the demigods, sages and forefathers,
who are all His expansions. The self-possessed Lord would then carefully worship His elders and the
brahmanas. To those well-attired brahmanas He would offer herds of tame and peaceful cows with
gold-plated horns and pearl necklaces. These cows were also dressed in fine cloth, and the fronts of
their hooves were plated with silver. Providers of abundant milk, they had each given birth only once
and were accompanied by their calves. Daily the Lord gave many groups of 13,084 cows to the learned
brahmanas, together with linen, deerskins and sesame seeds.
10. Lord Krsna would offer obeisances to the cows, brähmaëas and demigods, His elders and spiritual
masters, and all living beings—all of whom are expansions of His supreme personality. Then He would
touch auspicious things.
11. He would decorate His body, the very ornament of human society, with His own special clothes and
jewelry and with divine flower garlands and ointments.
12. He would then look at ghee, a mirror, the cows and bulls, the brahmanas and the demigods and see
to it that the members of all the social classes living in the palace and throughout the city were satisfied
with gifts. After this He would greet His ministers, gratifying them by fulfilling all their desires.
13. After first distributing flower garlands, pan and sandalwood paste to the brahmanas, He would give
these gifts to His friends, ministers and wives, and finally He would partake of them Himself.
14. By then the Lord’s driver would have brought His supremely wonderful chariot, yoked with Sugriva
and His other horses. His charioteer would bow down to the Lord and then stand before Him.
15. Holding on to His charioteer’s hands, Lord Krsna would mount the chariot, together with Satyaki and
Uddhava, just like the sun rising over the easternmost mountain.
16. The palace women would look upon Lord Krsna with shy, loving glances, and thus He would get
free from them only with difficulty. He would then set off, His smiling face captivating their minds.
17. The Lord, attended by all the Vrsnis, would enter the Sudharmä assembly hall, which protects those
who enter it from the six waves of material life, dear King.
18. As the almighty Supreme Lord would seat Himself upon His exalted throne there in the assembly
hall, He shone with His unique effulgence, illuminating all the quarters of space. Surrounded by the
Yadus, lions among men, that best of the Yadus appeared like the moon amidst many stars.
19. And there, O King, jesters would entertain the Lord by displaying various comic moods, expert
entertainers would perform for Him, and female dancers would dance energetically.
586 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
20. These performers would dance and sing to the sounds of mrdanìgas, vinas, murajas, flutes,
cymbals and conchshells, while professional poets, chroniclers and panegyrists would recite the Lord’s
glories.
21. Some brahmanas sitting in that assembly hall would fluently chant Vedic mantras, while others
recounted stories of past kings of pious renown.
22. Once a certain person arrived in the assembly, O King, who had never been seen there before. The
doorkeepers announced him to the Lord and then escorted him inside.
23. That person bowed down to Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and with joined palms he
described to the Lord how a number of kings were suffering because Jarasandha had imprisoned them.
24. Twenty thousand kings who had refused to submit absolutely to Jarasandha during his world
conquest had been forcibly imprisoned by him in the fortress named Girivraja.
25. The kings said [as related through their messenger]: O Krsna, Krsna, O immeasurable Soul,
destroyer of fear for those surrendered to You ! Despite our separatist attitude, we have come to You
for shelter out of fear of material existence.
26. People in this world are always engaged in sinful activities and are thus bewildered about their real
duty, which is to worship You according to Your commandments. This activity would truly bring them
good fortune. Let us offer our obeisances unto the all-powerful Lord, who appears as time and suddenly
cuts down one’s stubborn hope for a long life in this world.
27. You are the predominating Lord of the universe and have descended into this world with Your
personal power to protect the saintly and suppress the wicked. We cannot understand, O Lord, how
anyone can transgress Your law and still continue to enjoy the fruits of his work.
28. O Lord, with this corpselike body, always full of fear, we bear the burden of the relative happiness of
kings, which is just like a dream. Thus we have rejected the real happiness of the soul, which comes by
rendering selfless service to You. Being so very wretched, we simply suffer in this life under the spell of
Your illusory energy.
29. Therefore, since Your feet relieve the sorrow of those who surrender to them, please release us
prisoners from the shackles of karma, manifest as the King of Magadha. Wielding alone the prowess of
ten thousand maddened elephants, he has locked us up in his house just as a lion captures sheep.
30. O wielder of the disc! Your strength is unlimited, and thus seventeen times You crushed Jarasandha
in battle. But then, absorbed in human affairs, You allowed him to defeat You once. Now he is so filled
with pride that he dares to torment us, Your subjects. O unconquerable one, please rectify this situation.
31. The messenger continued: This is the message of the kings imprisoned by Jarasandha, who all
hanker for Your audience, having surrendered to Your feet. Please bestow good fortune on these poor
souls.
32. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When the kings’ messenger had thus spoken, the sage of the demigods,
Narada, suddenly appeared. Bearing a mass of golden matted locks on his head, the supremely
effulgent sage entered like the brilliant sun.
33. Lord Krsna is the worshipable master of even planetary rulers like Lord Brahma and Lord Siva, yet
as soon as He saw that Narada Muni had arrived, He joyfully stood up along with His ministers and
secretaries to receive the great sage and offer His respectful obeisances by bowing His head.
34. After Narada had accepted the seat offered to him, Lord Krsna honored the sage according to
scriptural injunctions and, gratifying him with His reverence, spoke the following truthful and pleasing
words.
35. [Lord Krsna said:] It is certain that today the three worlds have attained freedom from all fear, for
that is the influence of such a great personality as you, who travel at will throughout all the worlds.
36. There is nothing unknown to you within God’s creation. Therefore please tell Us what the Pandavas
intend to do.
37. Sri Narada said: I have seen many times the insurmountable power of Your Maya, O almighty one,
by which You bewilder even the creator of the universe, Brahma. O all-encompassing Lord, it does not
surprise me that You disguise Yourself by Your own energies while moving among the created beings,
as a fire covers its own light with smoke.
38. Who can properly understand Your purpose? With Your material energy You expand and also
withdraw this creation, which thus appears to have substantial existence. Obeisances to You, whose
transcendental position is inconceivable.
39. The living being caught in the cycle of birth and death does not know how he can be delivered from
the material body, which brings him so much trouble. But You, the Supreme Lord, descend to this world
in various personal forms, and by performing Your pastimes You illumine the soul’s path with the
blazing torch of Your fame. Therefore I surrender unto You.
40. Nonetheless, O Supreme Truth playing the part of a human being, I shall tell You what Your
devotee Yudhisthira Maharaja, the son of Your father’s sister, intends to do.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 587
41. Desiring unrivaled sovereignty, King Yudhisthira intends to worship You with the greatest fire
sacrifice, the Rajasuya. Please bless his endeavor.
42. O Lord, exalted demigods and glorious kings, eager to see You, will all come to that best of
sacrifices.
43. O Lord, even outcastes are purified by hearing and chanting Your glories and meditating upon You,
the Absolute Truth. What then to speak of those who see and touch You?
44. My dear Lord, You are the symbol of everything auspicious. Your transcendental name and fame is
spread like a canopy all over the universe, including the higher, middle and lower planetary systems.
The transcendental water that washes Your lotus feet is known in the higher planetary systems as the
Mandakini River, in the lower planetary systems as the Bhogavati and in this earthly planetary system
as the Ganges. This sacred, transcendental water flows throughout the entire universe, purifying
wherever it goes.
45. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When His supporters, the Yadavas, objected to this proposal out of
eagerness to defeat Jarasandha, Lord Kesava turned to His servant Uddhava and, smiling, addressed
him with fine words.
46. The Personality of Godhead said: You are indeed Our best eye and closest friend, for you know
perfectly the relative value of various kinds of counsel. Therefore please tell Us what should be done in
this situation. We trust your judgment and shall do as you say.
47. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus requested by his master, who, though omniscient, acted as if
perplexed, Uddhava took this order upon his head and replied as follows.
Chapter Seventy-One The Lord Travels to Indraprastha
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus heard the statements of Devarsi Narada, and understanding
the opinions of both the assembly and Lord Krsna, the great-minded Uddhava began to speak.
2. Sri Uddhava said: O Lord, as the sage advised, You should help Your cousin fulfill his plan for
performing the Rajasuya sacrifice, and You should also protect the kings who are begging for Your
shelter.
3. Only one who has conquered all opponents in every direction can perform the Rajasuya sacrifice, O
almighty one. Thus, in my opinion, conquering Jarasandha will serve both purposes.
4. By this decision there will be great gain for us, and You will save the kings. Thus, Govinda, You will
be glorified.
5. The invincible King Jarasandha is as strong as ten thousand elephants. Indeed, other powerful
warriors cannot defeat him. Only Bhima is equal to him in strength.
6. He will be defeated in a match of single chariots, not when he is with his hundred military divisions.
Now, Jarasandha is so devoted to brahminical culture that he never refuses requests from brahmanas.
7. Bhima should go to him disguised as a brahmana and beg charity. Thus he will obtain single combat
with Jarasandha, and in Your presence Bhima will no doubt kill him.
8. Even Lord Brahma and Lord Siva act only as Your instruments in cosmic creation and annihilation,
which are ultimately done by You, the Supreme Lord, in Your invisible aspect of time.
9. In their homes, the godly wives of the imprisoned kings sing of Your noble deeds—about how You
will kill their husbands’ enemy and deliver them. The gopis also sing Your glories—how You killed the
enemy of the elephant king, Gajendra; the enemy of Sita, daughter of Janaka; and the enemies of Your
own parents as well. So also do the sages who have obtained Your shelter glorify You, as do we
ourselves.
10. O Krsna, the killing of Jarasandha, which is certainly a reaction of his past sins, will bring immense
benefit. Indeed, it will make possible the sacrificial ceremony You desire.
11. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, Devarsi Narada, the Yadu elders and Lord Krsna all welcomed
Uddhava’s proposal, which was entirely auspicious and infallible.
12. The almighty Personality of Godhead, the son of Devaki, begged His superiors for permission to
leave. Then He ordered His servants, headed by Daruka and Jaitra, to prepare for departure.
13. O slayer of enemies, after He had arranged for the departure of His wives, children and baggage
and taken leave of Lord Sankarsena and King Ugrasena, Lord Krsna mounted His chariot, which had
been brought by His driver. It flew a flag marked with the emblem of Garuda.
14. As the vibrations resounding from mrdangas, bheris, kettledrums, conchshells and gomukhas filled
the sky in all directions, Lord Krsna set out on His journey. He was accompanied by the chief officers of
His corps of chariots, elephants, infantry and cavalry and surrounded on all sides by His fierce personal
guard.
15. Lord Acyuta’s faithful wives, along with their children, followed the Lord on golden palanquins
carried by powerful men. The queens were adorned with fine clothing, ornaments, fragrant oils and
flower garlands, and they were surrounded on all sides by soldiers carrying swords and shields in their
hands.
588 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. On all sides proceeded finely adorned women—attendants of the royal household, as well as
courtesans. They rode on palanquins and camels, bulls and buffalo, donkeys, mules, bullock carts and
elephants. Their conveyances were fully loaded with grass tents, blankets, clothes and other items for
the trip.
17. The Lord’s army boasted royal umbrellas, camara fans and huge flagpoles with waving banners.
During the day the sun’s rays reflected brightly from the soldiers’ fine weapons, jewelry, helmets and
armor. Thus Lord Krsna’s army, noisy with shouts and clatter, appeared like an ocean stirring with
agitated waves and timingila fish.
18. Honored by Sri Krsna, the chief of the Yadus, Narada Muni bowed down to the Lord. All of Narada’s
senses were satisfied by his meeting with Lord Krsna. Thus, having heard the decision of the Lord and
having been worshiped by Him, Narada placed Him firmly within his heart and departed through the
sky.
19. With pleasing words the Lord addressed the messenger sent by the kings: “My dear messenger, I
wish all good fortune to you. I shall arrange for the killing of King Magadha. Do not fear.”
20. Thus addressed, the messenger departed and accurately relayed the Lord’s message to the kings.
Eager for freedom, they then waited expectantly for their meeting with Lord Krsna.
21. As He traveled through the provinces of Anarta, Sauvira, Marudesa and Vinasana, Lord Hari
crossed rivers and passed mountains, cities, villages, cow pastures and quarries.
22. After crossing the rivers Drsadvati and Sarasvati, He passed through Pancala and Matsya and
finally came to Indraprastha.
23. King Yudhisthira was delighted to hear that the Lord, whom human beings rarely see, had now
arrived. Accompanied by his priests and dear associates, the King came out to meet Lord Krsna.
24. As songs and musical instruments resounded along with the loud vibration of Vedic hymns, the King
went forth with great reverence to meet Lord Hrsikesa, just as the senses go forth to meet the
consciousness of life.
25. The heart of King Yudhisthira melted with affection when he saw his dearmost friend, Lord Krsna,
after such a long separation, and he embraced the Lord again and again.
26. The eternal form of Lord Krsna is the everlasting residence of the goddess of fortune. As soon as
King Yudhisthira embraced Him, the King became free of all the contamination of material existence.
He immediately felt transcendental bliss and merged in an ocean of happiness. There were tears in his
eyes, and his body shook due to ecstasy. He completely forgot that he was living in this material world.
27. Then Bhima, his eyes brimming with tears, laughed with joy as he embraced his maternal cousin,
Krsna. Arjuna and the twins—Nakula and Sahadeva—also joyfully embraced their dearmost friend, the
infallible Lord, and they cried profusely.
28. After Arjuna had embraced Him once more and Nakula and Sahadeva had offered Him their
obeisances, Lord Krsna bowed down to the brahmanas and elders present, thus properly honoring the
respectable members of the Kuru, Srnjaya and Kaikaya clans.
29. Sutas, Magadhas, Gandharvas, Vandis, jesters and brahmanas all glorified the lotus-eyed Lord—
some reciting prayers, some dancing and singing—as mrdangas, conchshells, kettledrums, vinas,
panavas and gomukhas resounded.
30. Thus surrounded by His well-wishing relatives and praised on all sides, Lord Krsna, the crest jewel
of the justly renowned, entered the decorated city.
31-32. The roads of Indraprastha were sprinkled with water perfumed by the liquid from elephants’
foreheads, and colorful flags, golden gateways and full waterpots enhanced the city’s splendor. Men
and young girls were beautifully arrayed in fine, new garments, adorned with flower garlands and
ornaments, and anointed with aromatic sandalwood paste. Every home displayed glowing lamps and
respectful offerings, and from the holes of the latticed windows drifted incense, further beautifying the
city. Banners waved, and the roofs were decorated with golden domes on broad silver bases. Thus
Lord Krsna saw the royal city of the King of the Kurus.
33. When the young women of the city heard that Lord Krsna, the reservoir of pleasure for human eyes,
had arrived, they hurriedly went onto the royal road to see Him. They abandoned their household duties
and even left their husbands in bed, and in their eagerness the knots of their hair and garments came
loose.
34. The royal road being quite crowded with elephants, horses, chariots and foot soldiers, the women
climbed to the top of their houses, where they caught sight of Lord Krsna and His queens. The city
ladies scattered flowers upon the Lord, embraced Him in their minds and expressed their heartfelt
welcome with broadly smiling glances.
35. Observing Lord Mukunda’s wives passing on the road like stars accompanying the moon, the
women exclaimed, “What have these ladies done so that the best of men bestows upon their eyes the
joy of His generous smiles and playful sidelong glances?”
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 589
36. In various places citizens of the city came forward holding auspicious offerings for Lord Krsna, and
sinless leaders of occupational guilds came forward to worship the Lord.
37. With wide-open eyes, the members of the royal household came forward in a flurry to lovingly greet
Lord Mukunda, and thus the Lord entered the royal palace.
38. When Queen Prtha saw her nephew Krsna, the master of the three worlds, her heart became filled
with love. Rising from her couch with her daughter-in-law, she embraced the Lord.
39. King Yudhisthira respectfully brought Lord Govinda, the Supreme God of gods, to his personal
quarters. The King was so overcome with joy that he could not remember all the rituals of worship.
40. Lord Krsna bowed down to His aunt and the wives of His elders, O King, and then Draupadi and the
Lord’s sister bowed down to Him.
41-42. Encouraged by her mother-in-law, Draupadi worshiped all of Lord Krsna’s wives, including
Rukmini; Satyabhama; Bhadra; Jambavati; Kalindi; Mitravinda, the descendant of Sibi; the chaste
Nagnajiti; and the other queens of the Lord who were present. Draupadi honored them all with such
gifts as clothing, flower garlands and jewelry.
43. King Yudhisthira arranged for Krsna’s rest and saw to it that all who came along with Him—namely
His queens, soldiers, ministers and secretaries—were comfortably situated. He arranged that they
would experience a new feature of reception every day while staying as guests of the Pandavas.
44-45. Desiring to please King Yudhisthira, the Lord resided at Indraprastha for several months. During
His stay, He and Arjuna satisfied the fire-god by offering him the Khandava forest, and they saved Maya
Danava, who then built King Yudhisthira a celestial assembly hall. The Lord also took the opportunity to
go riding in His chariot in the company of Arjuna, surrounded by a retinue of soldiers.
Chapter Seventy-Two The Slaying of the Demon Jarasandha
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: One day, as King Yudhisthira sat in the royal assembly surrounded by
eminent sages, brahmanas, ksatriyas and vaisyas, and also by his brothers, spiritual masters, family
elders, blood relations, in-laws and friends, he addressed Lord Krsna as everyone listened.
3. Sri Yudhisthira said: O Govinda, I desire to worship Your auspicious, opulent expansions by the
Rajasuya sacrifice, the king of Vedic ceremonies. Please make our endeavor a success, my Lord.
4. Purified persons who constantly serve, meditate upon and glorify Your shoes, which destroy
everything inauspicious, are sure to obtain freedom from material existence, O lotus-naveled one. Even
if they desire something in this world, they obtain it, whereas others—those who do not take shelter of
You—are never satisfied, O Lord.
5. Therefore, O Lord of lords, let the people of this world see the power of devotional service rendered
to Your lotus feet. Please show them, O almighty one, the position of those Kurus and Srnjayas who
worship You, and the position of those who do not.
6. Within Your mind there can be no such differentiation as “This one is mine, and that is another’s,”
because You are the Supreme Absolute Truth, the Soul of all beings, always equipoised and enjoying
transcendental happiness within Yourself. Just like the heavenly desire tree, You bless all who properly
worship You, granting their desired fruits in proportion to the service they render You. There is nothing
wrong in this.
7. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Your decision is perfect, O King, and thus your noble
fame will spread to all the worlds, O tormentor of your enemies.
8. Indeed, My lord, for the great sages, the forefathers and the demigods, for Our well-wishing friends
and, indeed, for all living beings, the performance of this king of Vedic sacrifices is desirable.
9. First conquer all kings, bring the earth under your control and collect all the required paraphernalia;
then execute this great sacrifice.
10. These brothers of yours, O King, have taken birth as partial expansions of the demigods ruling
various planets. And you are so self-controlled that you have conquered even Me, who am
unconquerable for those who cannot control their senses.
11. No one in this world, even a demigod—what to speak of an earthly king—can defeat My devotee
with his strength, beauty, fame or riches.
12. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Upon hearing these words sung by the Supreme Lord, King Yudhisthira
became joyful, and his face blossomed like a lotus. Thus he sent forth his brothers, who were
empowered with Lord Visnu’s potency, to conquer all directions.
13. He sent Sahadeva to the south with the Srnjayas, Nakula to the west with the Matsyas, Arjuna to
the north with the Kekayas, and Bhima to the east with the Madrakas.
14. After defeating many kings with their prowess, these heroic brothers brought back abundant wealth
for Yudhisthira Maharaja, who was intent on performing the sacrifice, O King.
15. When King Yudhisthira heard that Jarasandha remained undefeated, he set to pondering, and then
the primeval Lord, Hari, told him the means Uddhava had described for defeating Jarasandha.
590 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. Thus Bhimasena, Arjuna and Krsna disguised themselves as brahmanas and went to Girivraja, my
dear King, where the son of Brhadratha was to be found.
17. Disguised as brahmanas, the royal warriors approached Jaräsandha at home during the appointed
hour for receiving guests. They submitted their entreaty to that dutiful householder, who was especially
respectful to the brahminical class.
18. [Krsna, Arjuna and Bhima said:] O King, know us to be needy guests who have come to you from
afar. We wish all good unto you. Please grant us whatever we desire.
19. What can the tolerant not bear? What will the wicked not do? What will the generous not give in
charity? And who will those of equal vision see as an outsider?
20. He indeed is to be censured and pitied who, though able to do so, fails to achieve with his
temporary body the lasting fame glorified by great saints.
21. Hariscandra, Rantideva, Unchavrtti Mudgala, Sibi, Bali, the legendary hunter and pigeon, and many
others have attained the permanent by means of the impermanent.
22. Sukadeva Gosvami said: From the sound of their voices, their physical stature and the marks of
bowstrings on their forearms, Jarasandha could tell that his guests were of the royal order. He began to
think he had seen them somewhere before.
23. [Jarasandha thought:] These are surely members of the royal order dressed as brahmanas, but still
I must grant their request for charity, even if they beg me for my own body.
24-25. Indeed, the spotless glories of Bali Maharaja are heard throughout the world. Lord Visnu, wishing
to recover Indra’s opulence from Bali, appeared before him in the guise of a brahmana and made him
fall from his powerful position. Though aware of the ruse and forbidden by his guru, Bali, king of the
demons, still gave Visnu the whole earth in charity.
26. What is the use of an unqualified ksatriya who goes on living but fails to gain everlasting glory by
working with his perishable body for the benefit of brahmanas?
27. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus making up his mind, the generous Jarasandha addressed
Krsna, Arjuna and Bhima: “O learned brahmanas, choose whatever you wish. I will give it to you, even if
it is my own head.”
28. The Supreme Lord said: O exalted King, give us battle in the form of a duel, if you think it fitting. We
are princes and have come to beg a fight. We have no other request to make of you.
29. Over there is Bhima, son of Prtha, and this is his brother Arjuna. Know Me to be their maternal
cousin, Krsna, your enemy.
30. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus challenged, Magadharaja laughed out loud and
contemptuously said, “All right, you fools, I’ll give you a fight!
31. “But I will not fight with You, Krsna, for You are a coward. Your strength abandoned You in the midst
of battle, and You fled Your own capital of Mathura to take shelter in the sea.
32. “As for this one, Arjuna, he is not as old as I, nor is he very strong. Since he is no match for me, he
should not be the contender. Bhima, however, is as strong as I am.”
33. Having said this, Jarasandha offered Bhimasena a huge club, took up another himself and went
outside the city.
34. The two heroes thus began battling each other on the level fighting grounds outside the city.
Maddened with the fury of combat, they struck each other with their lightning-bolt-like clubs.
35. As they skillfully circled left and right, like actors dancing on a stage, the fight presented a
magnificent spectacle.
36. When Jarasandha’s and Bhimasena’s clubs loudly collided, O King, the sound was like the impact
of the big tusks of two fighting elephants, or the crash of a thunderbolt in a flashing electrical storm.
37. They swung their clubs at each other with such speed and force that as the clubs struck their
shoulders, hips, feet, hands, thighs and collarbones, the weapons were crushed and broken like
branches of arka trees with which two enraged elephants furiously attack each other.
38. Their clubs thus ruined, those great heroes among men angrily pummeled each other with their
iron-hard fists. As they slapped each other, the sound resembled the crash of elephants colliding or
harsh thunderclaps.
39. As they thus fought, this contest between opponents of equal training, strength and stamina
reached no conclusion. And so they kept on fighting, O King, without any letup.
40. Lord Krsna knew the secret of His enemy Jarasandha’s birth and death, and also how he had been
given life by the demoness Jara. Considering all this, Lord Krsna imparted His special power to Bhima.
41. Having determined how to kill the enemy, that Lord of infallible vision made a sign to Bhima by
tearing in half a small branch of a tree.
42. Understanding this sign, mighty Bhima, the best of fighters, seized his opponent by the feet and
threw him to the ground.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 591
43. Bhima pressed down on one leg with his foot while grabbing Jarasandha’s other leg in his hands,
and just as a great elephant might break the branch of a tree, Bhima tore Jarasandha apart from the
anus upward.
44. The King’s subjects then saw him lying in two separate pieces, each with a single leg, thigh, testicle,
hip, shoulder, arm, eye, eyebrow and ear, and with half a back and chest.
45. With the death of the lord of Magadha, a great cry of lamentation arose, while Arjuna and Krsna
congratulated Bhima by embracing him.
46. The immeasurable Supreme Personality of Godhead, the sustainer and benefactor of all living
beings, coronated Jarasandha’s son, Sahadeva, as the new ruler of the Magadhas. The Lord then freed
all the kings Jarasandha had imprisoned.
Chapter Seventy-Three Lord Krsna Blesses the Liberated Kings
1-6. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Jarasandha had defeated 20,800 kings in combat and thrown them into
prison. As these kings emerged from the Giridroni fortress, they appeared dirty and shabbily dressed.
They were emaciated by hunger, their faces were dried up, and they were greatly weakened by their
long imprisonment. The kings then beheld the Lord before them. His complexion was dark blue like the
color of a cloud, and He wore a yellow silk garment. He was distinguished by the Srivatsa mark on His
chest, His four mighty arms, the pinkish hue of His eyes, which resembled the whorl of a lotus, His
lovely, cheerful face, His gleaming makara earrings and the lotus, club, conchshell and disc in His
hands. A helmet, a jeweled necklace, a golden belt, and golden bracelets and armlets decorated His
form, and on His neck He wore both the brilliant, precious Kaustubha gem and a garland of forest
flowers. The kings seemed to drink His beauty with their eyes, lick Him with their tongues, relish His
fragrance with their nostrils and embrace Him with their arms. Their past sins now eradicated, the kings
all bowed down to Lord Hari, placing their heads at His feet.
7. The ecstasy of beholding Lord Krsna having dispelled the weariness of their imprisonment, the kings
stood with joined palms and offered words of praise to that supreme master of the senses.
8. The kings said: Obeisances to You, O Lord of the ruling demigods, O destroyer of Your surrendered
devotees’ distress. Since we have surrendered to You, O inexhaustible Krsna, please save us from this
terrible material life, which has made us so despondent.
9. O master, Madhusudana, we do not blame this King of Magadha, since it is actually by Your mercy
that kings fall from their royal position, O almighty Lord.
10. Infatuated with his opulence and ruling power, a king loses all self-restraint and cannot obtain his
true welfare. Thus bewildered by Your illusory energy, he imagines his temporary assets to be
permanent.
11. Just as men of childish intelligence consider a mirage in the desert to be a pond of water, so those
who are irrational look upon the illusory transformations of Maya as substantial.
12-13. Previously, blinded by the intoxication of riches, we wanted to conquer this earth, and thus we
fought one another to achieve victory, mercilessly harassing our own subjects. We arrogantly
disregarded You, O Lord, who stood before us as death. But now, O Krsna, that powerful form of Yours
called time, moving mysteriously and irresistibly, has deprived us of our opulences. Now that You have
mercifully destroyed our pride, we beg simply to remember Your lotus feet.
14. Never again will we hanker for a miragelike kingdom—a kingdom that must be slavishly served by
this mortal body, which is simply a source of disease and suffering and which is declining at every
moment. Nor, O almighty Lord, will we hanker to enjoy the heavenly fruits of pious work in the next life,
since the promise of such rewards is simply an empty enticement for the ears.
15. Please tell us how we may constantly remember Your lotus feet, though we continue in the cycle of
birth and death in this world.
16. Again and again we offer our obeisances unto Lord Krsna, Hari, the son of Vasudeva. That
Supreme Soul, Govinda, vanquishes the suffering of all who surrender to Him.
17. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus the kings, now freed from bondage, glorified the Supreme Lord.
Then, my dear Pariksit, that merciful bestower of shelter spoke to them in a gentle voice.
18. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: From now on, my dear kings, you will have firm
devotion to Me, the Supreme Self and the Lord of all that be. I assure you this will come to pass, just as
you desire.
19. Fortunately you have come to the proper conclusion, my dear kings, and what you have spoken is
true. I can see that human beings’ lack of self-restraint, which arises from their intoxication with
opulence and power, simply leads to madness.
20. Haihaya, Nahusa, Vena, Ravana, Naraka and many other rulers of demigods, men and demons fell
from their elevated positions because of infatuation with material opulence.
592 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
21. Understanding that this material body and everything connected with it have a beginning and an
end, worship Me by Vedic sacrifices, and with clear intelligence protect your subjects in accordance with
the principles of religion.
22. As you live your lives, begetting generations of progeny and encountering happiness and distress,
birth and death, always keep your minds fixed on Me.
23. Be detached from the body and everything connected to it. Remaining self-satisfied, steadfastly
keep your vows while concentrating your minds fully on Me. In this way you will ultimately attain Me, the
Supreme Absolute Truth.
24. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus instructed the kings, Lord Krsna, the supreme master of all
the worlds, engaged male and female servants in bathing and grooming them.
25. O descendant of Bharata, the Lord then had King Sahadeva honor them with offerings of clothing,
jewelry, garlands and sandalwood paste, all suitable for royalty.
26. After they had been properly bathed and adorned, Lord Krsna saw to it that they dined on excellent
food. He also presented them with various items befitting the pleasure of kings, such as betel nut.
27. Honored by Lord Mukunda and freed from tribulation, the kings shone splendidly, their earrings
gleaming, just as the moon and other celestial bodies shine brilliantly in the sky at the end of the rainy
season.
28. Then the Lord arranged for the kings to be seated on chariots drawn by fine horses and adorned
with jewels and gold, and pleasing them with gracious words, He sent them off to their own kingdoms.
29. Thus liberated from all difficulty by Krsna, the greatest of personalities, the kings departed, and as
they went they thought only of Him, the Lord of the universe, and of His wonderful deeds.
30. The kings told their ministers and other associates what the Personality of Godhead had done, and
then they diligently carried out the orders He had imparted to them.
31. Having arranged for Bhimasena to kill Jarasandha, Lord Kesava accepted worship from King
Sahadeva and then departed with the two sons of Prtha.
32. When they arrived at Indraprastha, the victorious heroes blew their conchshells, bringing joy to their
well-wishing friends and sorrow to their enemies.
33. The residents of Indraprastha were very pleased to hear that sound, for they understood that now
the King of Magadha had been put to rest. King Yudhisthira felt that his desires were now fulfilled.
34. Bhima, Arjuna and Janardana offered their respects to the King and informed him fully about what
they had done.
35. Upon hearing their account of the great favor Lord Kesava had mercifully shown him, King
Dharmaraja shed tears of ecstasy. He felt such love that he could not say anything.
Chapter Seventy-Four The Deliverance of Sisupala at the Rajasuya Sacrifice
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus heard of the killing of Jarasandha, and also of almighty Krsna’s
wonderful power, King Yudhisthira addressed the Lord as follows with great pleasure.
2. Sri Yudhisthira said: All the exalted spiritual masters of the three worlds, together with the inhabitants
and rulers of the various planets, carry on their heads Your command, which is rarely obtained.
3. That You, the lotus-eyed Supreme Lord, accept the orders of wretched fools who presume
themselves rulers is a great pretense on Your part, O all-pervading one.
4. But of course the power of the Absolute Truth, the Supreme Soul, the primeval one without a second,
is neither increased nor diminished by His activities, any more than the sun’s power is by its
movements.
5. O unconquerable Madhava, even Your devotees make no distinctions of “I” and “mine,” “you” and
“yours,” for this is the perverted mentality of animals.
6. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having said this, King Yudhisthira waited until the proper time for the
sacrifice was at hand. Then with Lord Krsna’s permission he selected suitable priests, all expert
authorities on the Vedas, to execute the sacrifice.
7-9. He selected Krsna-dvaipayana, Bharadvaja, Sumantu, Gotama and Asita, along with Vasistha,
Cyavana, Kanva, Maitreya, Kavasa and Trita. He also selected Visvamitra, Vamadeva, Sumati, Jaimini,
Kratu, Paila and Parasara, as well as Garga, Vaisampayana, Atharva, Kasyapa, Dhaumya, Rama of
the Bhargavas, Asuri, Vitihotra, Madhucchanda, Virasena and Akrtavrana.
10-11. O King, others who were invited included Drona, Bhisma, Krpa, Dhrtarastra with his sons, the
wise Vidura, and many other brahmanas, ksatriyas, vaisyas and sudras, all eager to witness the
sacrifice. Indeed, all the kings came there with their entourages.
12. The brahmana priests then plowed the sacrificial ground with golden plowshares and initiated King
Yudhisthira for the sacrifice in accordance with the traditions set down by standard authorities.
13-15. The utensils used in the sacrifice were made of gold, just as in the ancient Raasuya performed
by Lord Varuna. Indra, Brahma, Siva and many other planetary rulers; the Siddhas and Gandharvas
with their entourage; the Vidyadharas; great serpents; sages; Yaksas; Raksasas; celestial birds;
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 593
Kinnaras; Caranas; and earthly kings—all were invited, and indeed they all came from every direction to
the Rajasuya sacrifice of King Yudhisthira, the son of Pandu. They were not in the least astonished to
see the opulence of the sacrifice, since it was quite appropriate for a devotee of Lord Krsna.
16. The priests, as powerful as gods, performed the Rajasuya sacrifice for King Yudhisthira in
accordance with the Vedic injunctions, just as the demigods had previously performed it for Varuna.
17. On the day of extracting the soma juice, King Yudhisthira properly and very attentively worshiped
the priests and the most exalted personalities of the assembly.
18. The members of the assembly then pondered over who among them should be worshiped first, but
since there were many personalities qualified for this honor, they were unable to decide. Finally
Sahadeva spoke up.
19. [Sahadeva said:] Certainly it is Acyuta, the Supreme Personality of Godhead and chief of the
Yadavas, who deserves the highest position. In truth, He Himself comprises all the demigods worshiped
in sacrifice, along with such aspects of the worship as the sacred place, the time and the paraphernalia.
20-21. This entire universe is founded upon Him, as are the great sacrificial performances, with their
sacred fires, oblations and mantras. Sankhya and yoga both aim toward Him, the one without a second.
O assembly members, that unborn Lord, relying solely on Himself, creates, maintains and destroys this
cosmos by His personal energies, and thus the existence of this universe depends on Him alone.
22. He creates the many activities of this world, and thus by His grace the whole world endeavors for
the ideals of religiosity, economic development, sense gratification and liberation.
23. Therefore we should give the highest honor to Krsna, the Supreme Lord. If we do so, we will be
honoring all living beings and also our own selves.
24. Anyone who wishes the honor he gives to be reciprocated infinitely should honor Krsna, the
perfectly peaceful and perfectly complete Soul of all beings, the Supreme Lord, who views nothing as
separate from Himself.
25. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Having said this, Sahadeva, who understood Lord Krsna’s powers,
fell silent. And having heard his words, all the saintly persons present congratulated him, exclaiming
“Excellent! Excellent!”
26. The King was delighted to hear this pronouncement of the brahmanas, from which he understood
the mood of the entire assembly. Overwhelmed with love, he fully worshiped Lord Krsna, the master of
the senses.
27-28. After bathing Lord Krsna’s feet, Maharaja Yudhisthira joyfully sprinkled the water upon his own
head, and then upon the heads of his wife, brothers, other family members and ministers. That water
purifies the whole world. As he honored the Lord with presentations of yellow silken garments and
precious jeweled ornaments, the King’s tear-filled eyes prevented him from looking directly at the Lord.
29. When they saw Lord Krsna thus honored, nearly all who were present joined their palms
reverentially, exclaiming “Obeisances to You! All victory to You!” and then bowed down to Him. Flowers
rained down from above.
30. The intolerant son of Damaghosa became infuriated upon hearing the glorification of Lord Krsna’s
transcendental qualities. He stood up from his seat and, angrily waving his arms, fearlessly spoke to the
entire assembly the following harsh words against the Supreme Lord.
31. [Sisupala said:] The statement of the Vedas that time is the unavoidable controller of all has indeed
been proven true, since the intelligence of wise elders has now become diverted by the words of a mere
boy.
32. O leaders of the assembly, you know best who is a fit candidate for being honored. Therefore you
should not heed the words of a child when he claims that Krsna deserves to be worshiped.
33-34. How can you pass over the most exalted members of this assembly—topmost sages dedicated
to the Absolute Truth endowed with powers of austerity, divine insight and strict adherence to severe
vows, sanctified by knowledge and worshiped even by the rulers of the universe? How does this
cowherd boy, the disgrace of His family, deserve your worship, any more than a crow deserves to eat
the sacred purodasa rice cake?
35. How does one who follows no principles of the social and spiritual orders or of family ethics, who
has been excluded from all religious duties, who behaves whimsically, and who has no good qualities—
how does such a person deserve to be worshiped?
36. Yayati cursed the dynasty of these Yadavas, and ever since then they have been ostracized by
honest men and addicted to liquor. How, then, does Krsna deserve to be worshiped?
37. These Yadavas have abandoned the holy lands inhabited by saintly sages and have instead taken
shelter of a fortress in the sea, a place where no brahminical principles are observed. There, just like
thieves, they harass their subjects.
38. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Bereft of all good fortune, Sisupala spoke these and other insults.
But the Supreme Lord said nothing, just as a lion ignores a jackal’s cry.
594 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
39. Upon hearing such intolerable blasphemy of the Lord, several members of the assembly covered
their ears and walked out, angrily cursing the King of Cedi.
40. Anyone who fails to immediately leave the place where he hears criticism of the Supreme Lord or
His faithful devotee will certainly fall down, bereft of his pious credit.
41. Then the sons of Pandu became furious, and together with the warriors of the Matsya, Kaikaya and
Srnjaya clans, they rose up from their seats with weapons poised, ready to kill Sisupala.
42. Undaunted, Sisupala then took up his sword and shield in the midst of all the assembled kings, O
Bharata, and hurled insults at those who sided with Lord Krsna.
43. At that point the Supreme Lord stood up and checked His devotees. He then angrily sent forth His
razor-sharp disc and severed the head of His enemy as he was attacking.
44. When Sisupala was thus killed, a great roar and howl went up from the crowd. Taking advantage of
that disturbance, the few kings who were supporters of Sisupala quickly left the assembly out of fear for
their lives.
45. An effulgent light rose from Sisupala’s body and, as everyone watched, entered Lord Krsna just like
a meteor falling from the sky to the earth.
46. Obsessed with hatred of Lord Krsna throughout three lifetimes, Sisupala attained the Lord’s
transcendental nature. Indeed, one’s consciousness determines one’s future birth.
47. Emperor Yudhisthira gave generous gifts to the sacrificial priests and the members of the assembly,
properly honoring them all in the manner prescribed by the Vedas. He then took the avabhrtha bath.
48. Thus Sri Krsna, the Lord of all masters of mystic yoga, saw to the successful execution of this great
sacrifice on behalf of King Yudhisthira. Afterwards, the Lord stayed with His intimate friends for a few
months at their earnest request.
49. Then the Lord, the son of Devaki, took the reluctant permission of the King and returned to His
capital with His wives and ministers.
50. I have already described to you in detail the history of the two residents of Vaikuntha who had to
undergo repeated births in the material world because of being cursed by brahmanas.
51. Purified in the final, avabhrthya ritual, which marked the successful completion of the Rajasuya
sacrifice, King Yudhisthira shone among the assembled brahmanas and ksatriyas like the King of the
demigods himself.
52. The demigods, humans and residents of intermediate heavens, all properly honored by the King,
happily set off for their respective domains while singing the praises of Lord Krsna and the great
sacrifice.
53. [All were satisfied] except sinful Duryodhana, the personification of the age of quarrel and the
disease of the Kuru dynasty. He could not bear to see the flourishing opulence of the son of Pandu.
54. One who recites these activities of Lord Visnu, including the killing of Sisupala, the deliverance of
the kings and the performance of the Rajasuya sacrifice, is freed from all sins.
Chapter Seventy-Five Duryodhana Humiliated
1-2. Maharaja Pariksit said: O brahmana, according to what I have heard from you, all the assembled
kings, sages and demigods were delighted to see the wonderful festivities of King Ajatasatru’s Rajasuya
sacrifice, with the sole exception of Duryodhana. Please tell me why this was so, my lord.
3. Sri Badarayani said: At the Rajasuya sacrifice of your saintly grandfather, his family members, bound
by their love for him, engaged themselves in humble services on his behalf.
4-7. Bhima supervised the kitchen, Duryodhana looked after the treasury, while Sahadeva respectfully
greeted the arriving guests. Nakula procured needed items, Arjuna attended the respectable elders,
and Krsna washed everyone’s feet, while Draupadi served food, and generous Karna gave out the gifts.
Many others, such as Yuyudhana; Vikarna, Hardikya; Vidura; Bhurisrava and other sons of Bahlika; and
Santardana, similarly volunteered for various duties during the elaborate sacrifice. They did so because
of their eagerness to please Maharaja Yudhisthira, O best of kings.
8. After the priests, the prominent delegates, the greatly learned saints and the King’s most intimate
well-wishers had all been properly honored with pleasing words, auspicious offerings and various gifts
as remuneration, and after the King of Cedi had entered the lotus feet of the Lord of the Satvatas, the
avabhrtha bath was performed in the divine river Yamuna.
9. During the avabhrtha celebration, the music of many kinds of instruments resounded, including
mrdangas, conchshells, panavas, dhundhuris, kettledrums and gomukha horns.
10. Female dancers danced with great joy, and choruses sang, while the loud vibrations of vinas, flutes
and hand cymbals reached all the way to the heavenly regions.
11. All the kings, wearing gold necklaces, then set off for the Yamuna. They had flags and banners of
various colors and were accompanied by infantrymen and well-adorned soldiers riding lordly elephants,
chariots and horses.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 595
12. The massed armies of the Yadus, Srnjayas, Kambojas, Kurus, Kekayas and Kosalas made the
earth tremble as they followed Yudhisthira Maharaja, the performer of the sacrifice, in procession.
13. The assembly officials, the priests and other excellent brahmanas resoundingly vibrated Vedic
mantras, while the demigods, divine sages, Pitas and Gandharvas sang praises and rained down
flowers.
14. Men and women, all adorned with sandalwood paste, flower garlands, jewelry and fine clothing,
sported by smearing and sprinkling one another with various liquids.
15. The men smeared the courtesans with plentiful oil, yogurt, perfumed water, turmeric and kunkuma
powder, and the courtesans playfully smeared the men with the same substances.
16. Surrounded by guards, King Yudhisthira’s queens came out on their chariots to see the fun, just as
the demigods’ wives appeared in the sky in celestial airplanes. As maternal cousins and intimate friends
sprinkled the queens with liquids, the ladies’ faces bloomed with shy smiles, enhancing the queens’
splendid beauty.
17. As the queens squirted water from syringes at their brothers-in-law and other male companions,
their own garments became drenched, revealing their arms, breasts, thighs and waists. In their
excitement, the flowers fell from their loosened braids. By these charming pastimes they agitated those
with contaminated consciousness.
18. The emperor, mounted upon his chariot drawn by excellent horses wearing golden collars,
appeared splendid in the company of his wives, just like the brilliant Rajasuya sacrifice surrounded by
its various rituals.
19. The priests led the King through the execution of the final rituals of patni-samyaja and avabhrthya.
Then they had him and Queen Draupadi sip water for purification and bathe in the Ganges.
20. The kettledrums of the gods resounded, along with those of human beings. Demigods, sages,
forefathers and humans all poured down showers of flowers.
21. All the citizens belonging to the various orders of varna and asrama then bathed in that place,
where even the most grievous sinner can immediately be freed from all sinful reactions.
22. Next the King put on new silken garments and adorned himself with fine jewelry. He then honored
the priests, assembly officials, learned brahmanas and other guests by presenting them with ornaments
and clothing.
23. In various ways King Yudhisthira, who had totally dedicated his life to Lord Narayana, continuously
honored his relatives, his immediate family, the other kings, his friends and well-wishers, and all others
present as well.
24. All the men there shone like demigods. They were adorned with jeweled earrings, flower garlands,
turbans, waistcoats, silk dhotis and valuable pearl necklaces. The lovely faces of the women were
beautified by their matched earrings and locks of hair, and they all wore golden belts.
25-26. Then the highly cultured priests, the great Vedic authorities who had served as sacrificial
witnesses, the specially invited kings, the brahmanas, ksatriyas, vaisyas, sudras, demigods, sages,
forefathers and mystic spirits, and the chief planetary rulers and their followers—all of them, having
been worshiped by King Yudhisthira, took his permission and departed, O King, each for his own
abode.
27. As they all glorified the wonderful Rajasuya-yajna performed by that great saintly King and servant
of Lord Hari, they were not satiated, just as an ordinary man is never satiated when drinking nectar.
28. At that time Raja Yudhisthira stopped a number of his friends, immediate family members and other
relatives from departing, among them Lord Krsna. Out of love Yudhisthira could not let them go, for he
felt the pain of imminent separation.
29. My dear Pariksit, the Supreme Lord remained there for some time to please the King, after first
sending Samba and the other Yadu heroes back to Dvaraka.
30. Thus King Yudhisthira, the son of Dharma, was at last relieved of his burning ambition, having by
the grace of Lord Krsna successfully crossed the vast and formidable ocean of his desires.
31. One day Duryodhana, while observing the riches of King Yudhisthira’s palace, felt greatly disturbed
by the magnificence of both the Rajasuya sacrifice and its performer, the King, whose life and soul was
Lord Acyuta.
32. In that palace all the collected opulences of the kings of men, demons and gods were brilliantly
manifest, having been brought there by the cosmic inventor, Maya Danava. With those riches Draupadi
served her husbands, and Duryodhana, the prince of the Kurus, lamented because he was very much
attracted to her.
33. Lord Madhupati’s thousands of queens were also staying in the palace. Their feet moved slowly,
weighed down by their hips, and the bells on their feet tinkled charmingly. Their waists were very
slender, the kunkuma from their breasts reddened their pearl necklaces, and their swaying earrings and
flowing locks of hair enhanced the exquisite beauty of their faces.
596 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
34-35. It so happened that Emperor Yudhisthira, the son of Dharma, was sitting just like Indra on a
golden throne in the assembly hall built by Maya Danava. Present with him were his attendants and
family members, and also Lord Krsna, his special eye. Displaying the opulences of Brahma himself,
King Yudhisthira was being praised by the court poets.
36. Proud Duryodhana, holding a sword in his hand and wearing a crown and necklace, angrily went
into the palace in the company of his brothers, O King, insulting the doorkeepers as he entered.
37. Bewildered by the illusions created through Maya Danava’s magic, Duryodhana mistook the solid
floor for water and lifted the end of his garment. And elsewhere he fell into the water, mistaking it for the
solid floor.
38. My dear Pariksit, Bhima laughed to see this, and so did the women, kings and others. King
Yudhisthira tried to stop them, but Lord Krsna showed His approval.
39. Humiliated and burning with anger, Duryodhana turned his face down, left without uttering a word
and went back to Hastinapura. The saintly persons present loudly cried out, “Alas, alas!” and King
Yudhisthira was somewhat saddened. But the Supreme Lord, whose mere glance had bewildered
Duryodhana, remained silent, for His intention was to remove the burden of the earth.
40. I have now replied to your question, O King, concerning why Duryodhana was dissatisfied on the
occasion of the great Rajasuya sacrifice.
Chapter Seventy-Six The Battle Between Salva and the Vrsnis
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Now please hear, O King, another wondrous deed performed by Lord
Krsna, who appeared in His humanlike body to enjoy transcendental pastimes. Hear how He killed the
master of Saubha.
2. Salva was a friend of Sisupala’s. When he attended the wedding of Rukmini, the Yadu warriors
defeated him in battle, along with Jarasandha and the other kings.
3. Salva swore in the presence of all the kings: “I will rid the earth of Yadavas. Just see my prowess!”
4. Having thus made his vow, the foolish King proceeded to worship Lord Pasupati [Siva] as his deity by
eating a handful of dust each day, and nothing more.
5. The great Lord Umapati is known as “he who is quickly pleased,” yet only at the end of a year did he
gratify Salva, who had approached him for shelter, by offering him a choice of benedictions.
6. Salva chose a vehicle that could be destroyed by neither demigods, demons, humans, Gandharvas,
Uragas nor Raksasas, that could travel anywhere he wished to go, and that would terrify the Vrsnis.
7. Lord Siva said, “So be it.” On his order, Maya Danava, who conquers his enemies’ cities, constructed
a flying iron city named Saubha and presented it to Salva.
8. This unassailable vehicle was filled with darkness and could go anywhere. Upon obtaining it, Salva
went to Dvaraka, remembering the Vrsnis’ enmity toward him.
9-11. Salva besieged the city with a large army, O best of the Bharatas, decimating the outlying parks
and gardens, the mansions along with their observatories, towering gateways and surrounding walls,
and also the public recreational areas. From his excellent airship he threw down a torrent of weapons,
including stones, tree trunks, thunderbolts, snakes and hailstones. A fierce whirlwind arose and
blanketed all directions with dust.
12. Thus terribly tormented by the airship Saubha, Lord Krsna’s city had no peace, O King, just like the
earth when it was attacked by the three aerial cities of the demons.
13. Seeing His subjects so harassed, the glorious and heroic Lord Pradyumna told them, “Do not fear,”
and mounted His chariot.
14-15. The chief commanders of the chariot warriors—Satyaki, Carudesna, Samba, Akrura and his
younger brothers, along with Hardikya, Bhanuvinda, Gada, Suka and Sarana—went out of the city with
many other eminent bowmen, all girded in armor and protected by contingents of soldiers riding on
chariots, elephants and horses, and also by companies of infantry.
16. A tumultuous, hair-raising battle then commenced between Salva’s forces and the Yadus. It equaled
the great battles between the demons and demigods.
17. With His divine weapons Pradyumna instantly destroyed all of Salva’s magic illusions, in the same
way that the warm rays of the sun dissipate the darkness of night.
18-19. Lord Pradyumna’s arrows all had gold shafts, iron heads and perfectly smooth joints. With
twenty-five of them He struck down Salva’s commander-in-chief [Dyuman], and with one hundred He
struck Salva himself. Then He pierced Salva’s officers with one arrow each, his chariot drivers with ten
arrows each, and his horses and other carriers with three arrows each.
20. When they saw the glorious Pradyumna perform that amazing and mighty feat, all the soldiers on
both sides praised Him.
21. At one moment the magic airship built by Maya Danava appeared in many identical forms, and the
next moment it was again only one. Sometimes it was visible, and sometimes not. Thus Salva’s
opponents could never be sure where it was.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 597
22. From one moment to the next the Saubha airship appeared on the earth, in the sky, on a mountain
peak or in the water. Like a whirling, flaming baton, it never remained in any one place.
23. Wherever Salva would appear with his Saubha ship and his army, there the Yadu commanders
would shoot their arrows.
24. Salva became bewildered upon seeing his army and aerial city thus harassed by his enemy’s
arrows, which struck like fire and the sun and were as intolerable as snake venom.
25. Because the heroes of the Vrsni clan were eager for victory in this world and the next, they did not
abandon their assigned posts on the battlefield, even though the downpour of weapons hurled by
Salva’s commanders tormented them.
26. Salva’s minister Dyuman, previously wounded by Sri Pradyumna, now ran up to Him and, roaring
loudly, struck Him with his club of black steel.
27. Pradyumna’s driver, the son of Daruka, thought that his valiant master’s chest had been shattered
by the club. Knowing well his religious duty, he removed Pradyumna from the battlefield.
28. Quickly regaining consciousness, Lord Krsna’s son Pradyumna said to His charioteer, “O driver, this
is abominable—for Me to have been removed from the battlefield!
29. “Except for Me, no one born in the Yadu dynasty has ever been known to abandon the battlefield.
My reputation has now been stained by a driver who thinks like a eunuch.
30. “What will I say to My fathers, Rama and Kesava, when I return to Them after having simply fled the
battle? What can I tell Them that will befit My honor?
31. “Certainly My sisters-in-law will laugh at Me and say, ‘O hero, tell us how in the world Your enemies
turned You into such a coward in battle.’ ”
32. The driver replied: O long-lived one, I have done this knowing full well my prescribed duty. O my
Lord, the chariot driver must protect the master of the chariot when he is in danger, and the master
must also protect his driver.
33. With this rule in mind, I removed You from the battlefield, since You had been struck unconscious
by Your enemy’s club and I thought You were seriously injured.
Chapter Seventy-Seven Lord Krsna Slays the Demon Salva
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After refreshing Himself with water, putting on His armor and picking up His
bow, Lord Pradyumna told His driver, “Take Me back to where the hero Dyuman is standing.”
2. In Pradyumna’s absence, Dyuman had been devastating His army, but now Pradyumna
counterattacked Dyuman and, smiling, pierced him with eight naraca arrows.
3. With four of these arrows He struck Dyuman’s four horses, with one arrow, his driver, with two more
arrows, his bow and chariot flag, and with the last arrow, Dyuman’s head.
4. Gada, Satyaki, Samba and others began killing Salva’s army, and thus all the soldiers inside the
airship began falling into the ocean, their necks severed.
5. As the Yadus and Salva’s followers thus went on attacking one another, the tumultuous, fearsome
battle continued for twenty-seven days and nights.
6-7. Invited by Yudhisthira, the son of Dharma, Lord Krsna had gone to Indraprastha. Now that the
Rajasuya sacrifice had been completed and Sisupala killed, the Lord began to see inauspicious omens.
So He took leave of the Kuru elders and the great sages, and also of Prtha and her sons, and returned
to Dvaraka.
8. The Lord said to Himself: Because I have come here with My respected elder brother, kings partial to
Sisupala may well be attacking My capital city.
9. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] After He arrived at Dvaraka and saw how His people were
threatened with destruction, and also saw Salva and his Saubha airship, Lord Kesava arranged for the
city’s defense and then addressed Daruka as follows.
10. [Lord Krsna said:] O driver, quickly take My chariot near Salva. This lord of Saubha is a powerful
magician; don’t let him bewilder you.
11. Thus ordered, Daruka took command of the Lord’s chariot and drove forth. As the chariot entered
the battlefield, everyone there, both friend and foe, caught sight of the emblem of Garuda.
12. When Salva, the master of a decimated army, saw Lord Krsna approaching, he hurled his spear at
the Lord’s charioteer. The spear roared frighteningly as it flew across the battlefield.
13. Salva’s hurtling spear lit up the whole sky like a mighty meteor, but Lord Sauri tore the great
weapon into hundreds of pieces with His arrows.
14. Lord Krsna then pierced Salva with sixteen arrows and struck the Saubha airship with a deluge of
arrows as it darted about the sky. Firing His arrows, the Lord appeared like the sun flooding the
heavens with its rays.
15. Salva then managed to strike Lord Krsna’s left arm, which held His bow Sarnga, and, amazingly,
Sarnga fell from His hand.
598 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. Those who witnessed this all cried out in dismay. Then the master of Saubha roared loudly and
addressed Lord Janardana.
17-18. [Salva said:] You fool! Because in our presence You kidnapped the bride of our friend Sisupala,
Your own cousin, and because You later murdered him in the sacred assembly while he was
inattentive, today with my sharp arrows I will send You to the land of no return! Though You think
Yourself invincible, I will kill You now if You dare stand before me.
19. The Supreme Lord said: O dullard, you boast in vain, since you fail to see death standing near you.
Real heroes do not talk much but rather show their prowess in action.
20. Having said this, the furious Lord swung His club with frightening power and speed and hit Salva on
the collarbone, making him tremble and vomit blood.
21. But as soon as Lord Acyuta withdrew His club, Salva disappeared from sight, and a moment later a
man approached the Lord. Bowing his head down to Him, he announced, “Devaki has sent me,” and,
sobbing, spoke the following words.
22. [The man said:] O Krsna, Krsna, mighty-armed one, who are so affectionate to Your parents! Salva
has seized Your father and taken him away, as a butcher leads an animal to slaughter.
23. When He heard this disturbing news, Lord Krsna, who was playing the role of a mortal man, showed
sorrow and compassion, and out of love for His parents He spoke the following words like an ordinary
conditioned soul.
24. [Lord Krsna said:] Balarama is ever vigilant, and no demigod or demon can defeat Him. So how
could this insignificant Salva defeat Him and abduct My father? Indeed, fate is all-powerful!
25. After Govinda spoke these words, the master of Saubha again appeared, apparently leading
Vasudeva before the Lord. Salva then spoke as follows.
26. [Salva said:] Here is Your dear father, who begot You and for whose sake You are living in this
world. I shall now kill him before Your very eyes. Save him if You can, weakling!
27. After he had mocked the Lord in this way, the magician Salva appeared to cut off Vasudeva’s head
with his sword. Taking the head with him, he entered the Saubha vehicle, which was hovering in the
sky.
28. By nature Lord Krsna is full in knowledge, and He possesses unlimited powers of perception. Yet for
a moment, out of great affection for His loved ones, He remained absorbed in the mood of an ordinary
human being. He soon recalled, however, that this was all a demoniac illusion engineered by Maya
Danava and employed by Salva.
29. Now alert to the actual situation, Lord Acyuta saw before Him on the battlefield neither the
messenger nor His father’s body. It was as if He had awakened from a dream. Seeing His enemy flying
above Him in his Saubha plane, the Lord then prepared to kill him.
30. Such is the account given by some sages, O wise King, but those who speak in this illogical way are
contradicting themselves, having forgotten their own previous statements.
31. How can lamentation, bewilderment, material affection or fear, all born out of ignorance, be ascribed
to the infinite Supreme Lord, whose perception, knowledge and power are all similarly infinite?
32. By virtue of self-realization fortified by service rendered to His feet, devotees of the Lord dispel the
bodily concept of life, which has bewildered the soul since time immemorial. Thus they attain eternal
glory in His personal association. How, then, can that Supreme Truth, the destination of all genuine
saints, be subject to illusion?
33. While Salva continued to hurl torrents of weapons at Him with great force, Lord Krsna, whose
prowess never fails, shot His arrows at Salva, wounding him and shattering his armor, bow and crest
jewel. Then with His club the Lord smashed His enemy’s Saubha airship.
34. Shattered into thousands of pieces by Lord Krsna’s club, the Saubha airship plummeted into the
water. Salva abandoned it, stationed himself on the ground, took up his club and rushed toward Lord
Acyuta.
35. As Salva rushed at Him, the Lord shot a bhalla dart and cut off his arm that held the club. Having
finally decided to kill Salva, Krsna then raised His Sudarsana disc weapon, which resembled the sun at
the time of universal annihilation. The brilliantly shining Lord appeared like the easternmost mountain
bearing the rising sun.
36. Employing His disc, Lord Hari removed that great magician’s head with its earrings and crown, just
as Purandara had used his thunderbolt to cut off Vrtra’s head. Seeing this, all of Salva’s followers cried
out, “Alas, alas!”
37. With the sinful Salva now dead and his Saubha airship destroyed, the heavens resounded with
kettledrums played by groups of demigods. Then Dantavakra, wanting to avenge the death of his
friends, furiously attacked the Lord.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 599
Chapter Seventy-Eight The Killing of Dantavakra, Viduratha and Romaharsana
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Acting out of friendship for Sisupala, Salva and Paundraka, who had all
passed on to the next world, the wicked Dantavakra appeared on the battlefield in a great rage, O King.
All alone, on foot and wielding a club in his hand, the mighty warrior shook the earth with his footsteps.
3. Seeing Dantavakra approach, Lord Krsna quickly picked up His club, jumped down from His chariot
and stopped His advancing opponent just as the shore holds back the ocean.
4. Raising his club, the reckless King of Karusa said to Lord Mukunda, “What luck! What luck—to have
You come before me today!
5. “You are our maternal cousin, Krsna, but You committed violence against my friends, and now You
want to kill me also. Therefore, fool, I will kill You with my thunderbolt club.
6. “Then, O unintelligent one, I who am obliged to my friends will have repaid my debt to them by killing
You, my enemy disguised as a relative, who are like a disease within my body.”
7, Thus trying to harass Lord Krsna with harsh words, as one might prick an elephant with sharp goads,
Dantavakra struck the Lord on the head with his club and roared like a lion.
8. Although hit by Dantavakra’s club, Lord Krsna, the deliverer of the Yadus, did not budge from His
place on the battlefield. Rather, with His massive Kaumodaki club the Lord struck Dantavakra in the
middle of his chest.
9. His heart shattered by the club’s blow, Dantavakra vomited blood and fell lifeless to the ground, his
hair disheveled and his arms and legs sprawling.
10. A most subtle and wondrous spark of light then [rose from the demon’s body and] entered Lord
Krsna while everyone looked on, O King, just as when Sisupala was killed.
11. But then Dantavakra’s brother Viduratha, immersed in sorrow over his brother’s death, came
forward breathing heavily, sword and shield in hand. He wanted to kill the Lord.
12. O best of kings, as Viduratha fell upon Him, Lord Krsna used His razor-edged Sudarsana disc to
remove his head, complete with its helmet and earrings.
13-15. Having thus destroyed Salva and his Saubha airship, along with Dantavakra and his younger
brother, all of whom were invincible before any other opponent, the Lord was praised by demigods,
human beings and great sages, by Siddhas, Gandharvas, Vidyadharas and Mahoragas, and also by
Apsaras, Pitas, Yaksas, Kinnaras and Caranas. As they sang His glories and showered Him with
flowers, the Supreme Lord entered His festively decorated capital city in the company of the most
eminent Vrsnis.
16. Thus Lord Krsna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the master all mystic power and Lord of the
universe, is ever victorious. Only those of beastly vision think He sometimes suffers defeat.
17. Lord Balarama then heard that the Kurus were preparing for war with the Pandavas. Being neutral,
He departed on the pretext of going to bathe in holy places.
18. After bathing at Prabhasa and honoring the demigods, sages, forefathers and prominent human
beings, He went in the company of brahmanas to the portion of the Sarasvati that flows westward into
the sea.
19-20. Lord Balarama visited the broad Bindu-saras Lake, Tritakupa, Sudarsana, Visala, Brahma-tirtha,
Cakra-tirtha and the eastward-flowing Sarasvati. He also went to all the holy places along the Yamuna
and the Ganges, O Bharata, and then He came to the Naimisa forest, where great sages were
performing an elaborate sacrifice.
21. Recognizing the Lord upon His arrival, the sages, who had been engaged in their sacrificial rituals
for a long time, greeted Him properly by standing up, bowing down and worshiping Him.
22. After being thus worshiped along with His entourage, the Lord accepted a seat of honor. Then He
noticed that Romaharsana, Vyasadeva’s disciple, had remained seated.
23. Lord Balarama became extremely angry upon seeing how this member of the suta caste had failed
to stand up, bow down or join his palms, and also how he was sitting above all the learned brahmanas.
24. [Lord Balarama said:] Because this fool born from an improperly mixed marriage sits above all these
brahmanas and even above Me, the protector of religion, he deserves to die.
25-26. Although he is a disciple of the divine sage Vyasa and has thoroughly learned many scriptures
from him, including the lawbooks of religious duties and the epic histories and Puranas, all this study
has not produced good qualities in him. Rather, his study of the scriptures is like an actor’s studying his
part, for he is not self-controlled or humble and vainly presumes himself a scholarly authority, though he
has failed to conquer his own mind.
27. The very purpose of My descent into this world is to kill such hypocrites who pretend to be religious.
Indeed, they are the most sinful rascals.
28. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Although Lord Balarama had stopped killing the impious,
Romaharsana’s death was inevitable. Thus, having spoken, the Lord killed him by picking up a blade of
kusa grass and touching him with its tip.
600 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
29. All the sages cried out, “Alas, alas!” in great distress. They told Lord Sankarsana, “O master, You
have committed an irreligious act!
30. “O favorite of the Yadus, we gave him the seat of the spiritual master and promised him long life
and freedom from physical pain for as long as this sacrifice continues.
31-32. “You have unknowingly killed a brahmana. Of course, even the injunctions of revealed scripture
cannot dictate to You, the Lord of all mystic power. But if by Your own free will You nonetheless carry
out the prescribed purification for this slaying of a brahmana, O purifier of the whole world, people in
general will greatly benefit by Your example.”
33. The Personality of Godhead said: I will certainly perform the atonement for this killing, since I wish to
show compassion to the people in general. Please, therefore, prescribe for Me whatever ritual is to be
done first.
34. O sages, just say the word, and by My mystic power I shall restore everything you promised him—
long life, strength and sensory power.
35. The sages said: Please see to it, O Rama, that Your power and that of Your kusa weapon, as well
as our promise and Romaharsana’s death, all remain intact.
36. The Supreme Lord said: The Vedas instruct us that one’s own self takes birth again as one’s son.
Thus let Romaharsana’s son become the speaker of the Puranas, and let him be endowed with long
life, strong senses and stamina.
37. Please tell Me your desire, O best of sages, and I shall certainly fulfill it. And, O wise souls, please
carefully determine My proper atonement, since I do not know what it might be.
38. The sages said: A fearsome demon named Balvala, the son of Ilvala, comes here every new-moon
day and contaminates our sacrifice.
39. O descendant of Dasarha, please kill that sinful demon, who pours down pus, blood, feces, urine,
wine and meat upon us. This is the best service You can do for us.
40. Thereafter, for twelve months, You should circumambulate the land of Bharata in a mood of serious
meditation, executing austerities and bathing at various holy pilgrimage sites. In this way You will
become purified.
Chapter Seventy-Nine Lord Balarama Goes on Pilgrimage
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Then, on the new-moon day, O King, a fierce and frightening wind arose,
scattering dust all about and spreading the smell of pus everywhere.
2. Next, onto the sacrificial arena came a downpour of abominable things sent by Balvala, after which
the demon himself appeared, trident in hand.
3-4. The immense demon resembled a mass of black carbon. His topknot and beard were like molten
copper, and his face had horrible fangs and furrowed eyebrows. Upon seeing him, Lord Balarama
thought of His club, which tears to pieces His enemies’ armies, and His plow weapon, which punishes
the demons. Thus summoned, His two weapons appeared before Him at once.
5. With the tip of His plow Lord Balarama caught hold of the demon Balvala as he flew through the sky,
and with His club the Lord angrily struck that harasser of brahmanas on the head.
6. Balvala cried out in agony and fell to the ground, his forehead cracked open and gushing blood. He
resembled a red mountain struck by a lightning bolt.
7. The exalted sages honored Lord Rama with sincere prayers and awarded Him infallible blessings.
Then they performed His ritual bath, just as the demigods had formally bathed Indra when he killed
Vrtra.
8. They gave Lord Balarama a Vaijayanti garland of unfading lotuses in which resided the goddess of
fortune, and they also gave Him a set of divine garments and jewelry.
9. Then, given leave by the sages, the Lord went with a contingent of brahmanas to the Kausiki River,
where He bathed. From there He went to the lake from which flows the river Sarayu.
10. The Lord followed the course of the Sarayu until He came to Prayaga, where He bathed and then
performed rituals to propitiate the demigods and other living beings. Next He went to the asrama of
Pulaha Rsi.
11-15. Lord Balarama bathed in the Gomati, Gandaki and Vipasa rivers, and also immersed Himself in
the Sona. He went to Gaya, where He worshiped His forefathers, and to the mouth of the Ganges,
where He performed purifying ablutions. At Mount Mahendra He saw Lord Parasurama and offered Him
prayers, and then He bathed in the seven branches of the Godavari River, and also in the rivers Vena,
Pampa and Bhimarathi. Then Lord Balarama met Lord Skanda and visited Sri-saila, the abode of Lord
Girisa. In the southern provinces known as Dravida-desa the Supreme Lord saw the sacred Venkata
Hill, as well as the cities of Kamakosni and Kanci, the exalted Kaveri River and the most holy Sri-ranga,
where Lord Krsna has manifested Himself. From there He went to Rsabha Mountain, where Lord Krsna
also lives, and to the southern Mathura. Then He came to Setubandha, where the most grievous sins
are destroyed.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 601
16-17. There at Setubandha [Ramesvaram] Lord Halayudha gave brahmanas ten thousand cows in
charity. He then visited the Krtamala and Tamraparni rivers and the great Malaya Mountains. In the
Malaya range Lord Balarama found Agastya Rsi sitting in meditation. After bowing down to the sage,
the Lord offered him prayers and then received blessings from him. Taking leave from Agastya, He
proceeded to the shore of the southern ocean, where He saw Goddess Durga in her form of
Kanyakumari.
18. Next He went to Phalguna-tirtha and bathed in the sacred Pancapsara Lake, where Lord Visnu had
directly manifested Himself. At this place He gave away another ten thousand cows.
19-21. The Supreme Lord then traveled through the kingdoms of Kerala and Trigarta, visiting Lord
Siva’s sacred city of Gokarna, where Lord Dhurjati [Siva] directly manifests himself. After also visiting
Goddess Parvati, who dwells on an island, Lord Balarama went to the holy district of Surparaka and
bathed in the Tapi, Payosni and Nirvindhya rivers. He next entered the Dandaka forest and went to the
river Reva, along which the city of Mahismati is found. Then He bathed at Manu-tirtha and finally
returned to Prabhasa.
22. The Lord heard from some brahmanas how all the kings involved in the battle between the Kurus
and Pandavas had been killed. From this He concluded that the earth was now relieved of her burden.
23. Wanting to stop the club fight then raging between Bhima and Duryodhana on the battlefield, Lord
Balarama went to Kuruksetra.
24. When Yudhisthira, Lord Krsna, Arjuna and the twin brothers Nakula and Sahadeva saw Lord
Balarama, they offered Him respectful obeisances but said nothing, thinking “What has He come here
to tell us?”
25. Lord Balarama found Duryodhana and Bhima with clubs in their hands, each furiously striving for
victory over the other as they circled about skillfully. The Lord addressed them as follows.
26. [Lord Balarama said:] King Duryodhana! And Bhima! Listen! You two warriors are equal in fighting
prowess. I know that one of you has greater physical power, while the other is better trained in
technique.
27. Since you are so evenly matched in fighting prowess, I do not see how either of you can win or lose
this duel. Therefore please stop this useless battle.
28. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] They did not accept Lord Balarama’s request, O King, although it
was logical, for their mutual enmity was irrevocable. Each of them constantly remembered the insults
and injuries he had suffered from the other.
29. Concluding that the battle was the arrangement of fate, Lord Balarama went back to Dvaraka. There
He was greeted by Ugrasena and His other relatives, who were all delighted to see Him.
30. Later Lord Balarama returned to Naimisaranya, where the sages joyfully engaged Him, the
embodiment of all sacrifice, in performing various kinds of Vedic sacrifice. Lord Balarama was now
retired from warfare.
31. The all-powerful Lord Balarama bestowed upon the sages pure spiritual knowledge, by which they
could see the whole universe within Him and also see Him pervading everything.
32. After executing with His wife the avabhrtha ablutions, the beautifully dressed and ornamented Lord
Balarama, encircled by His immediate family and other relatives and friends, looked as splendid as the
moon surrounded by its effulgent rays.
33. Countless other such pastimes were performed by mighty Balarama, the unlimited and
immeasurable Supreme Lord, whose mystic Yogamaya power makes Him appear to be a human being.
34. All the activities of the unlimited Lord Balarama are amazing. Anyone who regularly remembers
them at dawn and dusk will become very dear to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Sri Visnu.
Chapter Eighty The Brahmana Sudama Visits Lord Krsna in Dvaraka
1. King Pariksit said: My lord, O master, I wish to hear about other valorous deeds performed by the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Mukunda, whose valor is unlimited.
2. O brahmana, how could anyone who knows the essence of life and is disgusted with endeavoring for
sense gratification give up the transcendental topics of Lord Uttamahsloka after hearing them
repeatedly?
3. Actual speech is that which describes the qualities of the Lord, real hands are those that work for
Him, a true mind is that which always remembers Him dwelling within everything moving and
nonmoving, and actual ears are those that listen to sanctifying topics about Him.
4. An actual head is one that bows down to the Lord in His manifestations among the moving and
nonmoving creatures, real eyes are those that see only the Lord, and actual limbs are those which
regularly honor the water that has bathed the Lord’s feet or those of His devotees.
5. Suta Gosvami said: Thus questioned by King Visnurata, the powerful sage Badarayani replied, his
heart fully absorbed in meditation on the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva.
602 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
6. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Lord Krsna had a certain brahmana friend [named Sudama] who was most
learned in Vedic knowledge and detached from all sense enjoyment. Furthermore, his mind was
peaceful and his senses subdued.
7. Living as a householder, he maintained himself with whatever came of its own accord. The wife of
that poorly dressed brahmana suffered along with him and was emaciated from hunger.
8. The chaste wife of the poverty-stricken brahmana once approached him, her face dried up because
of her distress. Trembling with fear, she spoke as follows.
9. [Sudama’s wife said:] O brahmana, isn’t it true that the husband of the goddess of fortune is the
personal friend of your exalted self? That greatest of Yadavas, the Supreme Lord Krsna, is
compassionate to brahmanas and very willing to grant them His shelter.
10. O fortunate one, please approach Him, the real shelter of all saints. He will certainly give abundant
wealth to such a suffering householder as you.
11. Lord Krsna is now the ruler of the Bhojas, Vrsnis and Andhakas and is staying at Dvaraka. Since He
gives even His own self to anyone who simply remembers His lotus feet, what doubt is there that He,
the spiritual master of the universe, will bestow upon His sincere worshiper prosperity and material
enjoyment, which are not even very desirable?
12-13. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] When his wife thus repeatedly implored him in various ways, the
brahmana thought to himself, “To see Lord Krsna is indeed the greatest achievement in life.” Thus he
decided to go, but first he told her, “My good wife, if there is anything in the house I can bring as a gift,
please give it to me.”
14. Sudama’s wife begged four handfuls of flat rice from neighboring brahmanas, tied up the rice in a
torn piece of cloth and gave it to her husband as a present for Lord Krsna.
15. Taking the flat rice, the saintly brahmana set off for Dvaraka, all the while wondering “How will I be
able to have Krsna’s audience?”
16-17. The learned brahmana, joined by some local brahmanas, passed three guard stations and went
through three gateways, and then he walked by the homes of Lord Krsna’s faithful devotees, the
Andhakas and Vrsnis, which ordinarily no one could do. He then entered one of the opulent palaces
belonging to Lord Hari’s sixteen thousand queens, and when he did so he felt as if he were attaining the
bliss of liberation.
18. At that time Lord Acyuta was seated on His consort’s bed. Spotting the brahmana at some distance,
the Lord immediately stood up, went forward to meet him and with great pleasure embraced him.
19. The lotus-eyed Supreme Lord felt intense ecstasy upon touching the body of His dear friend, the
wise brahmana, and thus He shed tears of love.
20-22. Lord Krsna seated His friend Sudama upon the bed. Then the Lord, who purifies the whole
world, personally offered him various tokens of respect and washed his feet, O King, after which He
sprinkled the water on His own head. He anointed him with divinely fragrant sandalwood, aguru and
kuìkuma pastes and happily worshiped him with aromatic incense and arrays of lamps. After finally
offering him betel nut and the gift of a cow, He welcomed him with pleasing words.
23. By fanning him with her camara, the divine goddess of fortune personally served that poor
brahmana, whose clothing was torn and dirty and who was so thin that veins were visible all over his
body.
24. The people in the royal palace were astonished to see Krsna, the Lord of spotless glory, so lovingly
honor this shabbily dressed brahmana.
25-26. [The residents of the palace said:] What pious acts has this unkempt, impoverished brahmana
performed? People regard him as lowly and contemptible, yet the spiritual master of the three worlds,
the abode of Goddess Sri, is serving him reverently. Leaving the goddess of fortune sitting on her bed,
the Lord has embraced this brahmana as if he were an older brother.
27. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Taking each other’s hands, O King, Krsna and Sudama talked
pleasantly about how they once lived together in the school of their guru.
28. The Supreme Lord said: My dear brahmana, you know well the ways of dharma. After you offered
the gift of remuneration to our guru and returned home from his school, did you marry a compatible wife
or not?
29. Even though you are mostly involved in household affairs, your mind is not affected by material
desires. Nor, O learned one, do you take much pleasure in the pursuit of material wealth. This I am well
aware of.
30. Having renounced all material propensities, which spring from the Lord’s illusory energy, some
people execute worldly duties with their minds undisturbed by mundane desires. They act as I do, to
instruct the general populace.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 603
31. My dear brahmana, do you remember how we lived together in our spiritual master’s school? When
a twice-born student has learned from his guru all that is to be learned, he can enjoy spiritual life, which
lies beyond all ignorance.
32. My dear friend, he who gives a person his physical birth is his first spiritual master, and he who
initiates him as a twice-born brahmana and engages him in religious duties is indeed more directly his
spiritual master. But the person who bestows transcendental knowledge upon the members of all the
spiritual orders of society is one’s ultimate spiritual master. Indeed, he is as good as My own self.
33. Certainly, O brahmana, of all the followers of the varnasrama system, those who take advantage of
the words I speak in My form as the spiritual master and thus easily cross over the ocean of material
existence best understand their own true welfare.
34. I, the Soul of all beings, am not as satisfied by ritual worship, brahminical initiation, penances or self-
discipline as I am by faithful service rendered to one’s spiritual master.
35-36. O brahmana, do you remember what happened to us while we were living with our spiritual
master? Once our guru’s wife sent us to fetch firewood, and after we entered the vast forest, O twice-
born one, an unseasonal storm arose, with fierce wind and rain and harsh thunder.
37. Then, as the sun set, the forest was covered by darkness in every direction, and with all the flooding
we could not distinguish high land from low.
38. Constantly besieged by the powerful wind and rain, we lost our way amidst the flooding waters. We
simply held each other’s hands and, in great distress, wandered aimlessly about the forest.
39. Our guru, Sandipani, understanding our predicament, set out after sunrise to search for us, his
disciples, and found us in distress.
40. [Sandipani said:] O my children, you have suffered so much for my sake! The body is most dear to
every living creature, but you are so dedicated to me that you completely disregarded your own comfort.
41. This indeed is the duty of all true disciples: to repay the debt to their spiritual master by offering him,
with pure hearts, their wealth and even their very lives.
42. You boys are first-class brahmanas, and I am satisfied with you. May all your desires be fulfilled,
and may the Vedic mantras you have learned never lose their meaning for you, in this world or the next.
43. [Lord Krsna continued:] We had many similar experiences while living in our spiritual master’s
home. Simply by the grace of the spiritual master a person can fulfill life’s purpose and attain eternal
peace.
44. The brahmana said: What could I possibly have failed to achieve, O Lord of lords, O universal
teacher, since I was able to personally live with You, whose every desire is fulfilled, at the home of our
spiritual master?
45. O almighty Lord, Your body comprises the Absolute Truth in the form of the Vedas and is thus the
source of all auspicious goals of life. That You took up residence at the school of a spiritual master is
simply one of Your pastimes in which You play the role of a human being.
Chapter Eighty-One The Lord Blesses Sudama Brahmana
1-2. [Sukadeva Gosvami said:] Lord Hari, Krsna, perfectly knows the hearts of all living beings, and He
is especially devoted to the brahmanas. While the Supreme Lord, the goal of all saintly persons,
conversed in this way with the best of the twice-born, He laughed and spoke the following words to that
dear friend of His, the brahmana Sudama, all the while smiling and looking upon him with affection.
3. The Supreme Lord said: O brahmana, what gift have you brought Me from home? I regard as great
even the smallest gift offered by My devotees in pure love, but even great offerings presented by
nondevotees do not please Me.
4. If one offers Me with love and devotion a leaf, a flower, a fruit or water, I will accept it.
5. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Even after being addressed in this way, O King, the brahmana felt
too embarrassed to offer his palmfuls of flat rice to the husband of the goddess of fortune. He simply
kept his head bowed in shame.
6-7. Being the direct witness in the hearts of all living beings, Lord Krsna fully understood why Sudama
had come to see Him. Thus He thought, “In the past My friend has never worshiped Me out of a desire
for material opulence, but now he comes to Me to satisfy his chaste and devoted wife. I will give him
riches that even the immortal demigods cannot obtain.”
8. Thinking like this, the Lord snatched from the brahmana’s garment the grains of flat rice tied up in an
old piece of cloth and exclaimed, “What is this?
9. “My friend, have You brought this for Me? It gives Me extreme pleasure. Indeed, these few grains of
flat rice will satisfy not only Me but also the entire universe.”
10. After saying this, the Supreme Lord ate one palmful and was about to eat a second when the
devoted goddess Rukmini took hold of His hand.
604 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
11. [Queen Rukmini said:] This is more than enough, O Soul of the universe, to secure him an
abundance of all kinds of wealth in this world and the next. After all, one’s prosperity depends simply on
Your satisfaction.
12. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] The brahmana spent that night in Lord Acyuta’s palace after eating
and drinking to his full satisfaction. He felt as if he had gone to the spiritual world.
13. The next day, Sudama set off for home while being honored by Lord Krsna, the self-satisfied
maintainer of the universe. The brahmana felt greatly delighted, my dear King, as he walked along the
road.
14. Although he had apparently received no wealth from Lord Krsna, Sudama was too shy to beg for it
on his own. He simply returned home, feeling perfectly satisfied to have had the Supreme Lord’s
audience.
15. [Sudama thought:] Lord Krsna is known to be devoted to the brahmanas, and now I have personally
seen this devotion. Indeed, He who carries the goddess of fortune on His chest has embraced the
poorest beggar.
16. Who am I? A sinful, poor friend of a brahmana. And who is Krsna? The Supreme Personality of
Godhead, full in six opulences. Nonetheless, He has embraced me with His two arms.
17. He treated me just like one of His brothers, making me sit on the bed of His beloved consort. And
because I was fatigued, His queen personally fanned me with a yak-tail camara.
18. Although He is the Lord of all demigods and the object of worship for all brahmanas, He worshiped
me as if I were a demigod myself, massaging my feet and rendering other humble services.
19. Devotional service to His lotus feet is the root cause of all the perfections a person can find in
heaven, in liberation, in the subterranean regions and on earth.
20. Thinking “If this poor wretch suddenly becomes rich, he will forget Me in his intoxicating happiness,”
the compassionate Lord did not grant me even a little wealth.
21-23. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thinking thus to himself, Sudama finally came to the place
where his home stood. But that place was now crowded on all sides with towering, celestial palaces
rivaling the combined brilliance of the sun, fire and the moon. There were splendorous courtyards and
gardens, each filled with flocks of cooing birds and beautified by ponds in which kumuda, ambhoja,
kahlara and utpala lotuses grew. Finely attired men and doe-eyed women stood in attendance. Sudama
wondered, “What is all this? Whose property is it? How has this all come about?”
24. As he continued to ponder in this way, the beautiful men-and maidservants, as effulgent as
demigods, came forward to greet their greatly fortunate master with loud song and instrumental music.
25. When she heard that her husband had arrived, the brahmana ’s wife quickly came out of the house
in a jubilant flurry. She resembled the goddess of fortune herself emerging from her divine abode.
26. When the chaste lady saw her husband, her eyes filled with tears of love and eagerness. As she
held her eyes closed, she solemnly bowed down to him, and in her heart she embraced him.
27. Sudama was amazed to see his wife. Shining forth in the midst of maidservants adorned with
jeweled lockets, she looked as effulgent as a demigoddess in her celestial airplane.
28. With pleasure he took his wife with him and entered his house, where there were hundreds of gem-
studded pillars, just as in the palace of Lord Mahendra.
29-32. In Sudama’s home were beds as soft and white as the foam of milk, with bedsteads made of
ivory and ornamented with gold. There were also couches with golden legs, as well as royal camara
fans, golden thrones, soft cushions and gleaming canopies hung with strings of pearls. Upon the walls
of sparkling crystal glass, inlaid with precious emeralds, shone jeweled lamps, and the women in the
palace were all adorned with precious gems. As he viewed this luxurious opulence of all varieties, the
brahmana calmly reasoned to himself about his unexpected prosperity.
33. [Sudama thought:] I have always been poor. Certainly the only possible way that such an
unfortunate person as myself could become suddenly rich is that Lord Krsna, the supremely opulent
chief of the Yadu dynasty, has glanced upon Me.
34. After all, my friend Krsna, the most exalted of the Dasarhas and the enjoyer of unlimited wealth,
noticed that I secretly intended to beg from Him. Thus even though He said nothing about it when I
stood before Him, He actually bestowed upon me the most abundant riches. In this way He acted just
like a merciful rain cloud.
35. The Lord considers even His greatest benedictions to be insignificant, while He magnifies even a
small service rendered to Him by His well-wishing devotee. Thus with pleasure the Supreme Soul
accepted a single palmful of the flat rice I brought Him.
36. The Lord is the supremely compassionate reservoir of all transcendental qualities. Life after life may
I serve Him with love, friendship and sympathy, and may I cultivate such firm attachment for Him by the
precious association of His devotees.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 605
37. To a devotee who lacks spiritual insight, the Supreme Lord will not grant the wonderful opulences of
this world—kingly power and material assets. Indeed, in His infinite wisdom the unborn Lord well knows
how the intoxication of pride can cause the downfall of the wealthy.
38. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus firmly fixing his determination by means of his spiritual
intelligence, Sudama remained absolutely devoted to Lord Krsna, the shelter of all living beings. Free
from avarice, he enjoyed, together with his wife, the sense pleasures that had been bestowed upon
him, always with the idea of eventually renouncing all sense gratification.
39. Lord Hari is the God of all gods, the master of all sacrifices, and the supreme ruler. But He accepts
the saintly brahmanas as His masters, and so there exists no deity higher than them.
40. Thus seeing how the unconquerable Supreme Lord is nonetheless conquered by His own servants,
the Lord’s dear brahmana friend felt the remaining knots of material attachment within his heart being
cut by the force of his constant meditation on the Lord. In a short time he attained Lord Krsna’s supreme
abode, the destination of great saints.
41. The Lord always shows brahmanas special favor. Anyone who hears this account of the Supreme
Lord’s kindness to brahmanas will come to develop love for the Lord and thus become freed from the
bondage of material work.
Chapter Eighty-Two Krsna and Balarama Meet the Inhabitants of Vrndavana
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Once, while Balarama and Krsna were living in Dvaraka, there occurred a
great eclipse of the sun, just as if the end of Lord Brahma’s day had come.
2. Knowing of this eclipse in advance, O King, many people went to the holy place known as Samanta-
païcaka in order to earn pious credit.
3-6. After ridding the earth of kings, Lord Parasurama, the foremost of warriors, created huge lakes from
the kings’ blood at Samantaka-pancaka. Although he is never tainted by karmic reactions, Lord
Parasurama performed sacrifices there to instruct people in general; thus he acted like an ordinary
person trying to free himself of sins. From all parts of Bharata-varsa a great number of people now
came to that Samanta-pancaka on pilgrimage. O descendant of Bharata, among those arriving at the
holy place were many Vrsnis, such as Gada, Pradyumna and Samba, hoping to be relieved of their
sins; Akrura, Vasudeva, Ahuka and other kings also went there. Aniruddha remained in Dvaraka with
Sucandra, Suka and Sarana to guard the city, together with Krtavarma, the commander of their armed
forces.
7-8. The mighty Yadavas passed with great majesty along the road. They were attended by their
soldiers, who rode on chariots rivaling the airplanes of heaven, on horses moving with a rhythmic gait,
and on bellowing elephants as huge as clouds. Also with them were many infantrymen as effulgent as
celestial Vidyadharas. The Yadavas were so divinely dressed—being adorned with gold necklaces and
flower garlands and wearing fine armor—that as they proceeded along the road with their wives they
seemed to be demigods flying through the sky.
9. At Samanta-pancaka, the saintly Yädavas bathed and then observed a fast with careful attention.
Afterward they presented brahmanas with cows bedecked with garments, flower garlands and gold
necklaces.
10. In accordance with scriptural injunctions, the descendants of Vrsni then bathed once more in Lord
Parasurama’s lakes and fed first-class brahmanas with sumptuous food. All the while they prayed, “May
we be granted devotion to Lord Krsna.”
11. Then, with the permission of Lord Krsna, their sole object of worship, the Vrsnis ate breakfast and
sat down at their leisure beneath trees that gave cooling shade.
12-13. The Yadavas saw that many of the kings who had arrived were old friends and relatives—the
Matsyas, Usinaras, Kausalyas, Vidarbhas, Kurus, Srnjayas, Kambojas, Kaikayas, Madras, Kuntis and
the kings of Anarta and Kerala. They also saw many hundreds of other kings, both allies and
adversaries. In addition, my dear King Pariksit, they saw their dear friends Nanda Maharaja and the
cowherd men and women, who had been suffering in anxiety for so long.
14. As the great joy of seeing one another made the lotuses of their hearts and faces bloom with fresh
beauty, the men embraced one another enthusiastically. With tears pouring from their eyes, the hair on
their bodies standing on end and their voices choked up, they all felt intense bliss.
15. The women glanced at one another with pure smiles of loving friendship. And when they embraced,
their breasts, smeared with saffron paste, pressed against one another as their eyes filled with tears of
affection.
16. They all then offered obeisances to their elders and received respect in turn from their younger
relatives. After inquiring from one another about the comfort of their trip and their well-being, they
proceeded to talk about Krsna.
17. Queen Kunti met with her brothers and sisters and their children, and also with her parents, her
brothers’ wives and Lord Mukunda. While talking with them she forgot her sorrow.
606 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
18. Queen Kunti said: My dear, respectable brother, I feel that my desires have been frustrated,
because although all of you are most saintly, you forgot me during my calamities.
19. Friends and family members—even children, brothers and parents—forget a dear one whom
Providence no longer favors.
20. Sri Vasudeva said: Dear sister, please do not be angry with us. We are only ordinary men,
playthings of fate. Indeed, whether a person acts on his own or is forced by others, he is always under
the Supreme Lord’s control.
21. Harassed by Kamsa, we all fled in various directions, but by the grace of Providence we have now
finally been able to return to our homes, my dear sister.
22. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Vasudeva, Ugrasena and the other Yadus honored the various kings, who
became supremely blissful and content upon seeing Lord Acyuta.
23-26. All the royalty present, including Bhisma, Drona, Dhrtarastra, Gandhari and her sons, the
Pandavas and their wives, Kunti, Sanjaya, Vidura, Krpacarya, Kuntibhoja, Virata, Bhismaka, the great
Nagnajit, Purujit, Drupada, Salya, Dhrstaketu, Kasiraja, Damaghosa, Visalaksa, Maithila, Madra,
Kekaya, Yudhamanyu, Susarma, Bahlika with his associates and their sons, and the many other kings
subservient to Maharaja Yudhisthira—all of them, O best of kings, were simply amazed to see the
transcendental form of Lord Krsna, the abode of all opulence and beauty, standing before them with His
consorts.
27. After Lord Balarama and Lord Krsna had liberally honored them, with great joy and enthusiasm
these kings began to praise the members of the Vrsni clan, Sri Krsna’s personal associates.
28. [The kings said:] O King of the Bhojas, you alone among men have achieved a truly exalted birth,
for you continually behold Lord Krsna, who is rarely visible even to great yogis.
29-30. His fame, as broadcast by the Vedas, the water that has washed His feet, and the words He
speaks in the form of the revealed scriptures—these thoroughly purify this universe. Although the
earth’s good fortune was ravaged by time, the touch of His lotus feet has revitalized her, and thus she is
raining down on us the fulfillment of all our desires. The same Lord Visnu who makes one forget the
goals of heaven and liberation has now entered into marital and blood relationships with you, who
otherwise travel on the hellish path of family life. Indeed, in these relationships you see and touch Him
directly, walk beside Him, converse with Him, and together with Him lie down to rest, sit at ease and
take your meals.
31. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When Nanda Maharaja learned that the Yadus had arrived, led by Krsna,
he immediately went to see them. The cowherds accompanied him, their various possessions loaded
on their wagons.
32. Seeing Nanda, the Vrsnis were delighted and stood up like dead bodies coming back to life. Having
felt much distress at not seeing him for so long, they held him in a tight embrace.
33. Vasudeva embraced Nanda Maharaja with great joy. Beside himself with ecstatic love, Vasudeva
remembered the troubles Kamsa had caused him, forcing him to leave his sons in Gokula for Their
safety.
34. O hero of the Kurus, Krsna and Balarama embraced Their foster parents and bowed down to them,
but Their throats were so choked up with tears of love that the two Lords could say nothing.
35. Raising their two sons onto their laps and holding Them in their arms, Nanda and saintly mother
Yasoda forgot their sorrow.
36. Then Rohini and Devaki both embraced the Queen of Vraja, remembering the faithful friendship she
had shown them. Their throats choking with tears, they addressed her as follows.
37. [Rohini and Devaki said:] What woman could forget the unceasing friendship you and Nanda have
shown us, dear Queen of Vraja? There is no way to repay you in this world, even with the wealth of
Indra.
38. Before these two boys had ever seen Their real parents, you acted as Their parents and gave Them
all affectionate care, training, nourishment and protection. They were never afraid, good lady, because
you protected Them just as eyelids protect the eyes. Indeed, saintly persons like you never discriminate
between outsiders and their own kin.
39. Sukadeva Gosvami said: While gazing at their beloved Krsna, the young gopis used to condemn
the creator of their eyelids, [which would momentarily block their vision of Him]. Now, seeing Krsna
again after such a long separation, with their eyes they took Him into their hearts, and there they
embraced Him to their full satisfaction. In this way they became totally absorbed in ecstatic meditation
on Him, although those who constantly practice mystic yoga find such absorption difficult to achieve.
40. The Supreme Lord approached the gopis in a secluded place as they stood in their ecstatic trance.
After embracing each of them and inquiring about their well-being, He laughed and spoke as follows.
41. [Lord Krsna said:] My dear girlfriends, do you still remember Me? It was for My relatives’ sake that I
stayed away so long, intent on destroying My enemies.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 607
42. Do you perhaps think I’m ungrateful and thus hold Me in contempt? After all, it is the Supreme Lord
who brings living beings together and then separates them.
43. Just as the wind brings together masses of clouds, blades of grass, wisps of cotton and particles of
dust, only to scatter them all again, so the creator deals with His created beings in the same way.
44. Rendering devotional service to Me qualifies any living being for eternal life. But by your good
fortune you have developed a special loving attitude toward Me, by which you have obtained Me.
45. Dear ladies, I am the beginning and end of all created beings and exist both within and without
them, just as the elements ether, water, earth, air and fire are the beginning and end of all material
objects and exist both within and without them.
46. In this way all created things reside within the basic elements of creation, while the spirit souls
pervade the creation, remaining in their own true identity. You should see both of these—the material
creation and the self—as manifest within Me, the imperishable Supreme Truth.
47. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus been instructed by Krsna in spiritual matters, the gopis were
freed of all tinges of false ego because of their incessant meditation upon Him. And with their deepening
absorption in Him, they came to understand Him fully.
48. The gopis spoke thus: Dear Lord, whose navel is just like a lotus flower, Your lotus feet are the only
shelter for those who have fallen into the deep well of material existence. Your feet are worshiped and
meditated upon by great mystic yogis and highly learned philosophers. We wish that these lotus feet
may also be awakened within our hearts, although we are only ordinary persons engaged in household
affairs.
Chapter Eighty-Three Draupadi Meets the Queens of Krsna
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus Lord Krsna, the spiritual master of the gopis and the very purpose of
their life, showed them His mercy. He then met with Yudhisthira and all His other relatives and inquired
from them about their welfare.
2. Feeling greatly honored, King Yudhisthira and the others, freed of all sinful reactions by seeing the
feet of the Lord of the universe, gladly answered His inquiries.
3. [Lord Krsna’s relatives said:] O master, how can misfortune arise for those who have even once
freely drunk the nectar coming from Your lotus feet? This intoxicating liquor pours into the drinking cups
of their ears, having flowed from the minds of great devotees through their mouths. It destroys the
embodied souls’ forgetfulness of the creator of their bodily existence.
4. The radiance of Your personal form dispels the threefold effects of material consciousness, and by
Your grace we become immersed in total happiness. Your knowledge is indivisible and unrestricted. By
Your Yogamaya potency You have assumed this human form for protecting the Vedas, which had been
threatened by time. We bow down to You, the final destination of perfect saints.
5. The great sage Sukadeva Gosvami said: As Yudhisthira and the others were thus praising Lord
Krsna, the crest jewel of all sublimely glorified personalities, the women of the Andhaka and Kaurava
clans met with one another and began discussing topics about Govinda that are sung throughout the
three worlds. Please listen as I relate these to you.
6-7. Sri Draupadi said: O Vaidarbhi, Bhadra and Jambavati, O Kausala, Satyabhama and Kalindi, O
Saibya, Rohini, Laksmana and other wives of Lord Krsna, please tell me how the Supreme Lord Acyuta,
imitating the ways of this world by His mystic power, came to marry each of you.
8. Sri Rukmini said: When all the kings held their bows at the ready to assure that I would be presented
to Sisupala, He who puts the dust of His feet on the heads of invincible warriors took me from their
midst, as a lion forcibly takes his prey from the midst of goats and sheep. May I always be allowed to
worship those feet of Lord Krsna, the abode of Goddess Sri.
9. Sri Satyabhama said: My father, his heart tormented by my brother’s murder, blamed Lord Krsna for
the crime. To remove the stain on His reputation, the Lord defeated the king of the bears and took back
the Syamantaka jewel, which He then returned to my father. Fearing the consequences of his offense,
my father offered me to the Lord, even though I had already been promised to others.
10. Sri Jambavati said: Unaware that Lord Krsna was none other than his own master and worshipable
Deity, the husband of Goddess Sita, my father fought with Him for twenty-seven days. When my father
finally came to his senses and recognized the Lord, he took hold of His feet and presented Him with
both me and the Syamantaka jewel as tokens of his reverence. I am simply the Lord’s maidservant.
11. Sri Kalindi said: The Lord knew I was performing severe austerities and penances with the hope of
one day touching His lotus feet. So He came to me in the company of His friend and took my hand in
marriage. Now I am engaged as a sweeper in His palace.
12. Sri Mitravinda said: At my svayamvara ceremony He came forward, defeated all the kings present—
including my brothers, who dared insult Him—and took me away just as a lion removes his prey from
amidst a pack of dogs. Thus Lord Krsna, the shelter of the goddess of fortune, brought me to His capital
city. May I be allowed to serve Him by washing His feet, life after life.
608 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
13-14. Sri Satya said: My father arranged for seven extremely powerful and vigorous bulls with deadly
sharp horns to test the prowess of the kings who desired my hand in marriage. Although these bulls
destroyed the false pride of many heroes, Lord Krsna subdued them effortlessly, tying them up in the
same way that children playfully tie up a goat’s kids. He thus purchased me with His valor. Then He
took me away with my maidservants and a full army of four divisions, defeating all the kings who
opposed Him along the road. May I be granted the privilege of serving that Lord.
15-16. Sri Bhadra said: My dear Draupadi, of his own free will my father invited his nephew Krsna, to
whom I had already dedicated my heart, and offered me to Him as His bride. My father presented me to
the Lord with an aksauhini military guard and a retinue of my female companions. My ultimate
perfection is this: to always be allowed to touch Lord Krsna’s lotus feet as I wander from life to life,
bound by my karma.
17. Sri Laksmana said: O Queen, I repeatedly heard Narada Muni glorify the appearances and activities
of Acyuta, and thus my heart also became attached to that Lord, Mukunda. Indeed, even Goddess
Padmahasta chose Him as her husband after careful consideration, rejecting the great demigods who
rule various planets.
18. My father, Brhatsena, was by nature compassionate to his daughter, and knowing how I felt, O
saintly lady, he arranged to fulfill my desire.
19. Just as a fish was used as a target in your svayamvara ceremony, O Queen, to assure that you
would obtain Arjuna as your husband, so a fish was also used in my ceremony. In my case, however, it
was concealed on all sides, and only its reflection could be seen in a pot of water below.
20. Hearing of this, thousands of kings expert in shooting arrows and in wielding other weapons
converged from all directions on my father’s city, accompanied by their military teachers.
21. My father properly honored each king according to his strength and seniority. Then those whose
minds were fixed on me took up the bow and arrow and one by one tried to pierce the target in the
midst of the assembly.
22. Some of them picked up the bow but could not string it, and so they threw it aside in frustration.
Some managed to pull the bowstring toward the tip of the bow, only to have the bow spring back and
knock them to the ground.
23. A few heroes—namely Jarasandha, Sisupala, Bhima, Duryodhana, Karna and the King of
Ambastha—succeeded in stringing the bow, but none of them could find the target.
24. Then Arjuna looked at the reflection of the fish in the water and determined its position. When he
carefully shot his arrow at it, however, he did not pierce the target but merely grazed it.
25-26. After all the arrogant kings had given up, their pride broken, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead picked up the bow, easily strung it and then fixed His arrow upon it. As the sun stood in the
constellation Abhijit, He looked at the fish in the water only once and then pierced it with the arrow,
knocking it to the ground.
27. Kettledrums resounded in the sky, and on the earth people shouted “Jaya! Jaya!” Overjoyed,
demigods showered flowers.
28. Just then I walked onto the ceremonial ground, the ankle bells on my feet gently tinkling. I was
wearing new garments of the finest silk, tied with a belt, and I carried a brilliant necklace fashioned of
gold and jewels. There was a shy smile on my face and a wreath of flowers in my hair.
29. I lifted my face, which was encircled by my abundant locks and effulgent from the glow of my
earrings reflected from my cheeks. Smiling coolly, I glanced about. Then, looking around at all the
kings, I slowly placed the necklace on the shoulder of Murari, who had captured my heart.
30. Just then there were loud sounds of conchshells and mrdanga, pataha, bheri and anaka drums, as
well as other instruments. Men and women began to dance, and singers began to sing.
31. The leading kings there could not tolerate my having chosen the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
O Draupadi. Burning with lust, they became quarrelsome.
32. The Lord then placed me on His chariot, drawn by four most excellent horses. Donning His armor
and readying His bow Sarnga, He stood on the chariot, and there on the battleground He manifested
His four arms.
33. Daruka drove the Lord’s gold-trimmed chariot as the kings looked on, O Queen, like small animals
helplessly watching a lion.
34. The kings pursued the Lord like village dogs chasing a lion. Some kings, raising their bows,
stationed themselves on the road to stop Him as He passed by.
35. These warriors were deluged by arrows shot from the Lord’s bow, Sarnga. Some of the kings fell on
the battlefield with severed arms, legs and necks; the rest gave up the fight and fled.
36. The Lord of the Yadus then entered His capital city, Kusasthali [Dvaraka], which is glorified in
heaven and on earth. The city was elaborately decorated with flagpoles carrying banners that blocked
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 609
the sun, and also with splendid archways. As Lord Krsna entered, He appeared like the sun-god
entering his abode.
37. My father honored his friends, family and in-laws with priceless clothing and jewelry and with royal
beds, thrones and other furnishings.
38. With devotion he presented the perfectly complete Lord with a number of maidservants bedecked
with precious ornaments. Accompanying these maidservants were guards walking on foot and others
riding elephants, chariots and horses. He also gave the Lord extremely valuable weapons.
39. Thus, by renouncing all material association and practicing austere penances, we queens have all
become personal maidservants of the self-satisfied Supreme Lord.
40. Rohini-devi, speaking for the other queens, said: After killing Bhaumasura and his followers, the
Lord found us in the demon’s prison and could understand that we were the daughters of the kings
whom Bhauma had defeated during his conquest of the earth. The Lord set us free, and because we
had been constantly meditating upon His lotus feet, the source of liberation from material entanglement,
He agreed to marry us, though His every desire is already fulfilled.
41-42. O saintly lady, we do not desire dominion over the earth, the sovereignty of the King of heaven,
unlimited facility for enjoyment, mystic power, the position of Lord Brahma, immortality or even
attainment of the kingdom of God. We simply desire to carry on our heads the glorious dust of Lord
Krsna’s feet, enriched by the fragrance of kunkuma from His consort’s bosom.
43. We desire the same contact with the Supreme Lord’s feet that the young women of Vraja, the
cowherd boys and even the aborigine Pulinda women desire—the touch of the dust He leaves on the
plants and grass as He tends His cows.
Chapter Eighty-Four The Sages’ Teachings at Kuruksetra
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Prtha, Gandhari, Draupadi, Subhadra, the wives of other kings and the
Lord’s cowherd girlfriends were all amazed to hear of the queens’ deep love for Lord Krsna, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead and Soul of all beings, and their eyes filled with tears.
2-5. As the women thus talked among themselves and the men among themselves, a number of great
sages arrived there, all of them eager to see Lord Krsna and Lord Balarama. They included
Dvaipayana, Narada, Cyavana, Devala and Asita, Visvamitra, Satananda, Bharadvaja and Gautama,
Lord Parasurama and his disciples, Vasistha, Galava, Bhrgu, Pulastya and Kasyapa, Atri, Markandeya
and Brhaspati, Dvita, Trita, Ekata and the four Kumaras, and Angira, Agastya, Yajnavalkya and
Vamadeva.
6. As soon as they saw the sages approaching, the kings and other gentlemen who had been seated
immediately stood up, including the Pandava brothers and Krsna and Balarama. They all then bowed
down to the sages, who are honored throughout the universe.
7. Lord Krsna, Lord Balarama and the other kings and leaders properly worshiped the sages by offering
them words of greeting, sitting places, water for washing their feet, drinking water, flower garlands,
incense and sandalwood paste.
8. After the sages were comfortably seated, the Supreme Lord Krsna, whose transcendental body
protects religious principles, addressed them in the midst of that great assembly. Everyone listened
silently with rapt attention.
9. The Supreme Lord said: Now our lives are indeed successful, for we have obtained life’s ultimate
goal: the audience of great yoga masters, which even demigods only rarely obtain.
10. How is it that people who are not very austere and who recognize God only in His Deity form in the
temple can now see you, touch you, inquire from you, bow down to you, worship your feet and serve
you in other ways?
11. Mere bodies of water are not the real sacred places of pilgrimage, nor are mere images of earth and
stone the true worshipable deities. These purify one only after a long time, but saintly sages purify one
immediately upon being seen.
12. Neither the demigods controlling fire, the sun, the moon and the stars nor those in charge of earth,
water, ether, air, speech and mind actually remove the sins of their worshipers, who continue to see in
terms of dualities. But wise sages destroy one’s sins when respectfully served for even a few moments.
13. One who identifies his self as the inert body composed of mucus, bile and air, who assumes his wife
and family are permanently his own, who thinks an earthen image or the land of his birth is worshipable,
or who sees a place of pilgrimage as merely the water there, but who never identifies himself with, feels
kinship with, worships or even visits those who are wise in spiritual truth—such a person is no better
than a cow or an ass.
14. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hearing such unfathomable words from the unlimitedly wise Lord Krsna,
the learned brahmanas remained silent, their minds bewildered.
610 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. For some time the sages pondered the Supreme Lord’s behavior, which resembled that of a
subordinate living being. They concluded that He was acting this way to instruct the people in general.
Thus they smiled and spoke to Him, the spiritual master of the universe.
16. The great sages said: Your power of illusion has totally bewildered us, the most exalted knowers of
the truth and leaders among the universal creators. Ah, how amazing is the behavior of the Supreme
Lord! He covers Himself with His humanlike activities and pretends to be subject to superior control.
17. Indeed, the humanlike pastimes of the Almighty are simply a pretense! Effortlessly, He alone sends
forth from His Self this variegated creation, maintains it and then swallows it up again, all without
becoming entangled, just as the element earth takes on many names and forms in its various
transformations.
18. Nonetheless, at suitable times You assume the pure mode of goodness to protect Your devotees
and punish the wicked. Thus You, the Soul of the varnasrama social order, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, maintain the eternal path of the Vedas by enjoying Your pleasure pastimes.
19. The Vedas are Your spotless heart, and through them one can perceive—by means of austerity,
study and self-control—the manifest, the unmanifest and the pure existence transcendental to both.
20. Therefore, O Supreme Brahman, You honor the members of the brahminical community, for they
are the perfect agents by which one can realize You through the evidence of the Vedas. For that very
reason You are the foremost worshiper of the brahmanas.
21. Today our birth, education, austerity and vision have all become perfect because we have been
able to associate with You, the goal of all saintly persons. Indeed, You Yourself are the ultimate,
supreme blessing.
22. Let us offer obeisances unto that Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Krsna, the infinitely
intelligent Supersoul, who has disguised His greatness through His mystic Yogamaya.
23. Neither these kings nor even the Vrsnis, who enjoy Your intimate association, know You as the Soul
of all existence, the force of time and the supreme controller. For them You are covered by the curtain
of Maya.
24-25. A sleeping person imagines an alternative reality for himself and, seeing himself as having
various names and forms, forgets his waking identity, which is distinct from the dream. Similarly, the
senses of one whose consciousness is bewildered by illusion perceive only the names and forms of
material objects. Thus such a person loses his memory and cannot know You.
26. Today we have directly seen Your feet, the source of the holy Ganges, which washes away
volumes of sins. Perfected yogis can at best meditate upon Your feet within their hearts. But only those
who render You wholehearted devotional service and in this way vanquish the soul’s covering—the
material mind—attain You as their final destination. Therefore kindly show mercy to us, Your devotees.
27. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having thus spoken, O wise king, the sages then took leave of Lord
Dasarha, Dhrtarastra and Yudhisthira and prepared to depart for their asramas.
28. Seeing that they were about to leave, the renowned Vasudeva approached the sages. After bowing
down to them and touching their feet, he spoke to them with carefully chosen words.
29. Sri Vasudeva said: Obeisances to you, the residence of all the demigods. Please hear me, O sages.
Kindly tell us how the reactions of one’s work can be counteracted by further work.
30. Sri Narada Muni said: O brahmanas, it is not so amazing that in his eagerness to know, Vasudeva
has asked us about his ultimate benefit, for he considers Krsna a mere boy.
31. In this world familiarity breeds contempt. For example, one who lives on the banks of the Ganges
might travel to some other body of water to be purified.
32-33. The Supreme Lord’s awareness is never disturbed by time, by the creation and destruction of
the universe, by changes in its own qualities, or by anything else, whether self-caused or external. But
although the consciousness of the Personality of Godhead, who is the supreme one without a second,
is never affected by material distress, by the reactions of material work or by the constant flow of
nature’s modes, ordinary persons nonetheless think that the Lord is covered by His own creations of
prana and other material elements, just as one may think that the sun is covered by clouds, snow or an
eclipse.
34. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] The sages then spoke again, O King, addressing Vasudeva while
all the kings, along with Lord Acyuta and Lord Rama, listened.
35. [The sages said:] It has been definitely concluded that work is counteracted by further work when
one executes Vedic sacrifices as a means of worshiping Visnu, the Lord of all sacrifices, with sincere
faith.
36. Learned authorities who see through the eye of scripture have demonstrated that this is the easiest
method of subduing the agitated mind and attaining liberation, and that it is a sacred duty which brings
joy to the heart.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 611
37. This is the most auspicious path for a religious householder of the twice-born orders—to selflessly
worship the Personality of Godhead with wealth honestly obtained.
38. An intelligent person should learn to renounce his desire for wealth by performing sacrifices and
acts of charity. He should learn to renounce his desire for wife and children by experiencing family life.
And he should learn to renounce his desire for promotion to a higher planet in his next life, O saintly
Vasudeva, by studying the effects of time. Self-controlled sages who have thus renounced their
attachment to household life go to the forest to perform austerities.
39. Dear Prabhu, a member of the twice-born classes is born with three kinds of debts—those owed to
the demigods, to the sages and to his forefathers. If he leaves his body without first liquidating these
debts by performing sacrifice, studying the scriptures and begetting children, he will fall down into a
hellish condition.
40. But you, O magnanimous soul, are already free from two of your debts—those to the sages and the
forefathers. Now absolve yourself of your debt to the demigods by executing Vedic sacrifices, and in
this way free yourself completely of debt and renounce all material shelter.
41. O Vasudeva, without doubt you must have previously worshiped Lord Hari, the master of all worlds.
Both you and your wife must have perfectly worshiped Him with supreme devotion, since He has
accepted the role of your son.
42. Sukadeva Gosvami said: After hearing these statements of the sages, generous Vasudeva bowed
his head to the ground and, praising them, requested them to become his priests.
43. Thus requested by him, O King, the sages engaged the pious Vasudeva in performing fire sacrifices
at that holy place of Kuruksetra according to strict religious principles and with most excellent ritual
arrangements.
44-45. When Maharaja Vasudeva was about to be initiated for the sacrifice, O King, the Vrsnis came to
the initiation pavilion after bathing and putting on fine clothes and garlands of lotuses. The other kings
also came, elaborately ornamented, as well as all their joyful queens, who wore jeweled lockets around
their necks and were also clad in finegarments. The royal wives were anointed with sandalwood paste
and carried auspicious items for the worship.
46. Mrdangas, patahas, conchshells, bheris, anakas and other instruments resounded, male and
female dancers danced, and sutas and magadhas recited glorifications. Sweet-voiced Gandharvis
sang, accompanied by their husbands.
47. After Vasudeva’s eyes had been decorated with black cosmetic and his body smeared with fresh
butter, the priests initiated him according to scriptural rules by sprinkling him and his eighteen wives with
sacred water. Encircled by his wives, he resembled the regal moon encircled by stars.
48. Vasudeva received initiation along with his wives, who wore silk saris and were adorned with
bangles, necklaces, ankle bells and earrings. With his body wrapped in a deerskin, Vasudeva shone
splendidly.
49. My dear Maharaja Pariksit, Vasudeva’s priests and the officiating members of the assembly,
dressed in silk dhotis and jeweled ornaments, looked so effulgent that they seemed to be standing in
the sacrificial arena of Indra, the killer of Vrtra.
50. At that time Balarama and Krsna, the Lords of all living entities, shone forth with great majesty in the
company of Their respective sons, wives and other family members, who were expansions of Their
opulences.
51. Performing various kinds of Vedic sacrifice according to the proper regulations, Vasudeva
worshiped the Lord of all sacrificial paraphernalia, mantras and rituals. He executed both primary and
secondary sacrifices, offering oblations to the sacred fire and carrying out other aspects of sacrificial
worship.
52. Then, at the appropriate time and according to scripture, Vasudeva remunerated the priests by
decorating them with precious ornaments, though they were already richly adorned, and offering them
valuable gifts of cows, land and marriageable girls.
53. After supervising the patni-samyaja and avabhrthya rituals, the great brahmana sages bathed in
Lord Parasurama’s lake with the sponsor of the sacrifice, Vasudeva, who led them.
54. His sacred bath complete, Vasudeva joined with his wives in giving the jewelry and clothes they had
been wearing to the professional reciters. Vasudeva then put on new garments, after which he honored
all classes of people by feeding everyone, even the dogs.
55-56. With opulent gifts he honored his relatives, including all their wives and children; the royalty of
the Vidarbha, Kosala, Kuru, Kasi, Kekaya and Srnjaya kingdoms; the officiating members of the
assembly; and also the priests, witnessing demigods, humans, spirits, forefathers and Caranas. Then,
taking permission from Lord Krsna, the shelter of the goddess of fortune, the various guests departed
as they all chanted the glories of Vasudeva’s sacrifice.
612 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
57-58. The Yadus were all embraced by their friends, close family members and other relatives,
including Dhrtarastra and his younger brother, Vidura; Prtha and her sons; Bhisma; Drona; the twins
Nakula and Sahadeva; Narada; and Vedavyasa, the Personality of Godhead. Their hearts melting with
affection, these and the other guests left for their kingdoms, their progress slowed by the pain of
separation.
59. Nanda Maharaja showed his affection for his relatives, the Yadus, by remaining with them a little
longer, together with his cowherds. During his stay, Krsna, Balarama, Ugrasena and the others honored
him with especially opulent worship.
60. Having so easily crossed over the vast ocean of his ambition, Vasudeva felt fully satisfied. In the
company of his many well-wishers, he took Nanda by the hand and addressed him as follows.
61. Sri Vasudeva said: My dear brother, God Himself has tied the knot called affection, which tightly
binds human beings together. It seems to me that even great heroes and mystics find it very difficult to
free themselves from it.
62. Indeed, the Supreme Lord must have created the bonds of affection, for such exalted saints as you
have never stopped showing matchless friendship toward us ingrates, although it has never been
properly reciprocated.
63. Previously, dear brother, we did nothing to benefit you because we were unable to, yet even now
that you are present before us, our eyes are so blinded by the intoxication of material good fortune that
we continue to ignore you.
64. O most respectful one, may a person who wants the highest benefit in life never gain kingly
opulence, for it leaves him blind to the needs of his own family and friends.
65. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: His heart softened by feelings of intimate sympathy, Vasudeva wept.
His eyes brimmed with tears as he remembered the friendship Nanda had shown him.
66. And on his part, Nanda was also full of affection for his friend Vasudeva. Thus during the following
days Nanda would repeatedly announce, “I will be leaving later today” and “I will be leaving tomorrow.”
But out of love for Krsna and Balarama he remained there for three more months, honored by all the
Yadus.
67-68. Then, after Vasudeva, Ugrasena, Krsna, Uddhava, Balarama and others had fulfilled his desires
and presented him with precious ornaments, fine linen and varieties of priceless household furnishings,
Nanda Maharaja accepted all these gifts and took his leave. Seen off by all the Yadus, he departed with
his family members and the residents of Vraja.
69. Unable to withdraw their minds from Lord Govinda’s lotus feet, where they had surrendered them,
Nanda and the cowherd men and women returned to Mathura.
70. Their relatives having thus departed, and seeing that the rainy season was approaching, the Vrsnis,
whose only Lord was Krsna, went back to Dvaraka.
71. They told the people of the city about the festive sacrifices performed by Vasudeva, lord of the
Yadus, and about everything else that had happened during their pilgrimage, especially how they had
met with all their loved ones.
Chapter Eighty-Five Lord Krsna Instructs Vasudeva and Retrieves Devaki’s Sons
1. Sri Badarayani said: One day the two sons of Vasudeva—Sankarsana and Acyuta—came to pay him
respects, bowing down at his feet. Vasudeva greeted Them with great affection and spoke to Them.
2. Having heard the great sages’ words concerning the power of his two sons, and having seen Their
valorous deeds, Vasudeva became convinced of Their divinity. Thus, addressing Them by name, he
spoke to Them as follows.
3. [Vasudeva said:] O Krsna, Krsna, best of yogis, O eternal Sankarsana! I know that You two are
personally the source of universal creation and the ingredients of creation as well.
4. You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who manifest as the Lord of both nature and the
creator of nature [Maha-Visnu]. Everything that comes into existence, however and whenever it does
so, is created within You, by You, from You, for You and in relation to You.
5. O transcendental Lord, from Yourself You created this entire variegated universe, and then You
entered within it in Your personal form as the Supersoul. In this way, O unborn Supreme Soul, as the
life force and consciousness of everyone, You maintain the creation.
6. Whatever potencies the life air and other elements of universal creation exhibit are actually all
personal energies of the Supreme Lord, for both life and matter are subordinate to Him and dependent
on Him, and also different from one another. Thus everything active in the material world is set into
motion by the Supreme Lord.
7. The glow of the moon, the brilliance of fire, the radiance of the sun, the twinkling of the stars, the flash
of lightning, the permanence of mountains and the aroma and sustaining power of the earth—all these
are actually You.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 613
8. My Lord, You are water, and also its taste and and its capacities to quench thirst and sustain life. You
exhibit Your potencies through the manifestations of the air as bodily warmth, vitality, mental power,
physical strength, endeavor and movement.
9. You are the directions and their accommodating capacity, the all-pervading ether and the elemental
sound residing within it. You are the primeval, unmanifested form of sound; the first syllable, om; and
audible speech, by which sound, as words, acquires particular references.
10. You are the power of the senses to reveal their objects, the senses’ presiding demigods, and the
sanction these demigods give for sensory activity. You are the capacity of the intelligence for decision-
making, and the living being’s ability to remember things accurately.
11. You are false ego in the mode of ignorance, which is the source of the physical elements; false ego
in the mode of passion, which is the source of the bodily senses; false ego in the mode of goodness,
which is the source of the demigods; and the unmanifest, total material energy, which underlies
everything.
12. You are the one indestructible entity among all the destructible things of this world, like the
underlying substance that is seen to remain unchanged while the things made from it undergo
transformations.
13. The modes of material nature—namely goodness, passion and ignorance—together with all their
functions, become directly manifest within You, the Supreme Absolute Truth, by the arrangement of
Your Yogamaya.
14. Thus these created entities, transformations of material nature, do not exist except when material
nature manifests them within You, at which time You also manifest within them. But aside from such
periods of creation, You stand alone as the transcendental reality.
15. They are truly ignorant who, while imprisoned within the ceaseless flow of this world’s material
qualities, fail to know You, the Supreme Soul of all that be, as their ultimate, sublime destination.
Because of their ignorance, the entanglement of material work forces such souls to wander in the cycle
of birth and death.
16. By good fortune a soul may obtain a healthy human life—an opportunity rarely achieved. But if he is
nonetheless deluded about what is best for him, O Lord, Your illusory Maya will cause him to waste his
entire life.
17. You keep this whole world bound up by the ropes of affection, and thus when people consider their
material bodies, they think, “This is me,” and when they consider their progeny and other relations, they
think, “These are mine.”
18. You are not our sons but the very Lords of both material nature and its creator [Maha-Visnu]. As
You Yourself have told us, You have descended to rid the earth of the rulers who are a heavy burden
upon her.
19. Therefore, O friend of the distressed, I now approach Your lotus feet for shelter—the same lotus
feet that dispel all fear of worldly existence for those who have surrendered to them. Enough! Enough
with hankering for sense enjoyment, which makes me identify with this mortal body and think of You,
the Supreme, as my child.
20. Indeed, while still in the maternity room You told us that You, the unborn Lord, had already been
born several times as our son in previous ages. After manifesting each of these transcendental bodies
to protect Your own principles of religion, You then made them unmanifest, thus appearing and
disappearing like a cloud. O supremely glorified, all-pervading Lord, who can understand the mystic,
deluding potency of Your opulent expansions?
21. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having heard His father’s words, the Supreme Lord, leader of the
Satvatas, replied in a gentle voice as He bowed His head in humility and smiled.
22. The Supreme Lord said: My dear father, I consider your statements appropriate, since you have
explained the various categories of existence by referring to Us, your sons.
23. Not only I, but also you, along with My respected brother and these residents of Dvaraka, should all
be considered in this same philosophical light, O best of the Yadus. Indeed, we should include all that
exists, both moving and nonmoving.
24. The supreme spirit, Paramatma, is indeed one. He is self-luminous and eternal, transcendental and
devoid of material qualities. But through the agency of the very modes He has created, the one
Supreme Truth manifests as many among the expansions of those modes.
25. The elements of ether, air, fire, water and earth become visible, invisible, minute or extensive as
they manifest in various objects. Similarly, the Paramatma, though one, appears to become many.
26. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, hearing these instructions spoken to him by the Supreme Lord,
Vasudeva became freed from all ideas of duality. Satisfied at heart, he remained silent.
27-28. At that time, O best of the Kurus, the universally worshiped Devaki took the opportunity to
address her two sons, Krsna and Balarama. Previously she had heard with astonishment that They had
614 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
brought Their spiritual master’s son back from death. Now, thinking of her own sons who had been
murdered by Kamsa, she felt great sorrow, and thus with tear-filled eyes she beseeched Krsna and
Balarama.
29. Sri Devaki said: O Rama, Rama, immeasurable Supreme Soul! O Krsna, Lord of all masters of
yoga! I know that You are the ultimate rulers of all universal creators, the primeval Personalities of
Godhead.
30. Taking birth from me, You have now descended to this world in order to kill those kings whose good
qualities have been destroyed by the present age, and who thus defy the authority of revealed
scriptures and burden the earth.
31. O Soul of all that be, the creation, maintenance and destruction of the universe are all carried out by
a fraction of an expansion of an expansion of Your expansion. Today I have come to take shelter of
You, the Supreme Lord.
32-33. It is said that when Your spiritual master ordered You to retrieve his long-dead son, You brought
him back from the forefathers’ abode as a token of remuneration for Your guru’s mercy. Please fulfill my
desire in the same way, O supreme masters of all yoga masters. Please bring back my sons who were
killed by the King of Bhoja, so that I may see them once again.
34. The sage Sukadeva said: Thus entreated by Their mother, O Bharata, Balarama and Krsna
employed Their mystic Yogamaya potency and entered the region of Sutala.
35. When the King of the Daityas, Bali Maharaja, noticed the arrival of the two Lords, his heart
overflowed with joy, since he knew Them to be the Supreme Soul and worshipable Deity of the entire
universe, and especially of himself. He immediately stood up and then bowed down to offer respects,
along with his entire entourage.
36. Bali took pleasure in offering Them elevated seats. After They sat down, he washed the feet of the
two Supreme Personalities. Then he took that water, which purifies the whole world even up to Lord
Brahma, and poured it upon himself and his followers.
37. He worshiped Them with all the riches at his disposal—priceless clothing, ornaments, fragrant
sandalwood paste, betel nut, lamps, sumptuous food and so on. Thus he offered Them all his family’s
wealth, and also his own self.
38. Taking hold of the Lords’ lotus feet again and again, Bali, the conqueror of Indra’s army, spoke from
his heart, which was melting out of his intense love. O King, as tears of ecstasy filled his eyes and the
hair on his limbs stood on end, he began to speak with faltering words.
39. King Bali said: Obeisances to the unlimited Lord, Ananta, the greatest of all beings. And obeisances
to Lord Krsna, the creator of the universe, who appears as the impersonal Absolute and the Supersoul
in order to disseminate the principles of sankhya and yoga.
40. Seeing You Lords is a rare achievement for most living beings. But even persons like us, situated in
the modes of passion and ignorance, can easily see You when You reveal Yourself by Your own sweet
will.
41-43. Many who had been constantly absorbed in enmity toward You ultimately became attracted to
You, who are the direct embodiment of transcendental goodness and whose divine form comprises the
revealed scriptures. These reformed enemies include Daityas, Danavas, Gandharvas, Siddhas,
Vidyadharas, Caranas, Yaksas, Raksasas, Pisacas, Bhutas, Pramathas and Nayakas, and also
ourselves and many others like us. Some of us have become attracted to You because of exceptional
hatred, while others have become attracted because of their mood of devotion based on lust. But the
demigods and others infatuated by material goodness feel no such attraction for You.
44. What to speak of ourselves, O Lord of all perfect yogis, even the greatest mystics do not know what
Your spiritual power of delusion is or how it acts.
45. Please be merciful to me so I may get out of the blind well of family life—my false home—and find
the true shelter of Your lotus feet, which selfless sages always seek. Then, either alone or in the
company of great saints, who are the friends of everyone, I may wander freely, finding life’s necessities
at the feet of the universally charitable trees.
46. O Lord of all subordinate creatures, please tell us what to do and thus free us of all sin. One who
faithfully executes Your command, O master, is no longer obliged to follow the ordinary Vedic rites.
47. The Supreme Lord said: During the age of the first Manu, the sage Marici had six sons by his wife
Uma. They were all exalted demigods, but once they laughed at Lord Brahma when they saw him
preparing to have sex with his own daughter.
48-49. Because of that improper act, they immediately entered a demoniac form of life, and thus they
took birth as sons of Hiranyakasipu. The goddess Yogamaya then took them away from Hiranyakasipu,
and they were born again from Devaki’s womb. After this, O King, Kamsa murdered them. Devaki still
laments for them, thinking of them as her sons. These same sons of Marici are now living here with you.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 615
50. We wish to take them from this place to dispel their mother’s sorrow. Then, released from their
curse and free from all suffering, they will return to their home in heaven.
51. By My grace these six—Smara, Udgitha, Parisvanga, Patanga, Ksudrabhrt and Ghrni—will return to
the abode of pure saints.
52. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] After saying this, Lord Krsna and Lord Balarama, having been duly
worshiped by Bali Maharaja, took the six sons and returned to Dvaraka, where They presented them to
Their mother.
53. When she saw her lost children, Goddess Devaki felt such affection for them that milk flowed from
her breasts. She embraced them and took them onto her lap, smelling their heads again and again.
54. Lovingly she let her sons drink from her breast, which became wet with milk just by their touch. She
was entranced by the same illusory energy of Lord Visnu that initiates the creation of the universe.
55-56. By drinking her nectarean milk, the remnants of what Krsna Himself had previously drunk, the six
sons touched the transcendental body of the Lord, Narayana, and this contact awakened them to their
original identities. They bowed down to Govinda, Devaki, their father and Balarama, and then, as
everyone looked on, they left for the abode of the demigods.
57. Seeing her sons return from death and then depart again, saintly Devaki was struck with wonder, O
King. She concluded that this was all simply an illusion created by Krsna.
58. Sri Krsna, the Supreme Soul, the Lord of unlimited valor, performed countless pastimes just as
amazing as this one, O descendant of Bharata.
59. Sri Suta Gosvami said: This pastime enacted by Lord Murari, whose fame is eternal, totally destroys
the sins of the universe and serves as the transcendental ornament for His devotees’ ears. Anyone who
carefully hears or narrates this pastime, as recounted by the venerable son of Vyasa, will be able to fix
his mind in meditation on the Supreme Lord and attain to the all-auspicious kingdom of God.
Chapter Eighty-Six Arjuna Kidnaps Subhadra, and Krsna Blesses His Devotees
1. King Pariksit said: O brahmana, we would like to learn how Arjuna married Lord Balarama’s and Lord
Krsna’s sister, who was my grandmother.
2-3. Sukadeva Gosvami said: While traveling far and wide visiting various holy places of pilgrimage,
Arjuna came to Prabhasa. There he heard that Lord Balarama intended to give his maternal cousin
Subhadra to Duryodhana in marriage, and that no one else approved of this plan. Arjuna wanted to
marry her himself, so he disguised himself as a renunciant, complete with triple staff, and went to
Dvaraka.
4. He stayed there during the monsoon months to fulfill his purpose. Lord Balarama and the other
residents of the city, not recognizing him, offered him all honor and hospitality.
5. One day Lord Balarama brought him to His home as His invited dinner guest, and Arjuna ate the food
the Lord respectfully offered him.
6. There he saw the wonderful maiden Subhadra, who was enchanting to heroes. His eyes opened
wide with delight, and his mind became agitated and absorbed in thoughts of her.
7. Arjuna was very attractive to women, and as soon as Subhadra saw him, she wanted to have him as
her husband. Smiling bashfully with sidelong glances, she fixed her heart and eyes upon him.
8. Meditating only on her and waiting for the opportunity to take her away, Arjuna had no peace. His
heart trembled with passionate desire.
9. Once, on the occasion of a great temple festival in honor of the Supreme Lord, Subhadra rode out of
the fortresslike palace on a chariot, and at that time the mighty chariot warrior Arjuna took the
opportunity to kidnap her. Subhadra’s parents and Krsna had sanctioned this.
10. Standing on his chariot, Arjuna took up his bow and drove off the valiant fighters and palace guards
who tried to block his way. As her relatives shouted in anger, he took Subhadra away just as a lion
takes his prey from the midst of lesser animals.
11. When He heard of Subhadra’s kidnapping, Lord Balarama became as disturbed as the ocean
during the full moon, but Lord Krsna respectfully took hold of His feet and, together with other family
members, pacified Him by explaining the matter.
12. Lord Balarama then happily sent the bride and groom very valuable wedding gifts consisting of
elephants, chariots, horses and male and female servants.
13. Sukadeva Gosvami continued: There was a devotee of Krsna’s known as Srutadeva, who was a
first-class brahmana. Perfectly satisfied by rendering unalloyed devotional service to Lord Krsna, he
was peaceful, learned and free from sense gratification.
14. Living as a religious householder in the city of Mithila, within the kingdom of Videha, he managed to
fulfill his obligations while maintaining himself with whatever sustenance easily came his way.
15. By the will of Providence he obtained each day just what he needed for his maintenance, and no
more. Satisfied with this much, he properly executed his religious duties.
616 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. Similarly free from false ego was the ruler of that kingdom, my dear Pariksit, a descendant of the
Mithila dynasty named Bahulasva. Both these devotees were very dear to Lord Acyuta.
17. Pleased with both of them, the Supreme Personality of Godhead mounted His chariot, which
Daruka had brought, and traveled to Videha with a group of sages.
18. Among these sages were Narada, Vamadeva, Atri, Krsna-dvaipayana Vyasa, Parasurama, Asita,
Aruni, myself, Brhaspati, Kanva, Maitreya and Cyavana.
19. In every city and town the Lord passed along the way, O King, the people came forward to worship
Him with offerings of arghya water in their hands, as if to worship the risen sun surrounded by planets.
20. The men and women of Anarta, Dhanva, Kuru-jangala, Kanka, Matsya, Pancala, Kunti, Madhu,
Kekaya, Kosala, Arna and many other kingdoms drank with their eyes the nectarean beauty of Lord
Krsna’s lotuslike face, which was graced with generous smiles and affectionate glances.
21. Simply by glancing at those who came to see Him, Lord Krsna, the spiritual master of the three
worlds, delivered them from the blindness of materialism. As He thus endowed them with fearlessness
and divine vision, He heard demigods and men singing His glories, which purify the entire universe and
destroy all misfortune. Gradually, He reached Videha.
22. Hearing that Lord Acyuta had arrived, O King, the residents of the cities and villages of Videha
joyfully came forth to receive Him with offerings in their hands.
23. As soon as the people saw Lord Uttamahsloka, their faces and hearts blossomed with affection.
Joining their palms above their heads, they bowed down to the Lord and to the sages accompanying
Him, whom they had previously only heard about.
24. Both the King of Mithila and Srutadeva fell at the Lord’s feet, each thinking that the spiritual master
of the universe had come there just to show him mercy.
25. At exactly the same time, King Maithila and Srutadeva each went forward with joined palms and
invited the Lord of the Dasarhas to be his guest, along with the brahmana sages.
26. Wanting to please them both, the Lord accepted both their invitations. Thus He simultaneously went
to both homes, and neither could see Him entering the other’s house.
27-29. When King Bahulasva, a descendant of Janaka, saw Lord Krsna approaching his house from a
distance with the sages, who were somewhat fatigued from the journey, he immediately arranged to
have seats of honor brought out for them. After they were all comfortably seated, the wise King, his
heart overflowing with joy and his eyes clouded by tears, bowed down to them and washed their feet
with intense devotion. Taking the wash water, which could purify the entire world, he sprinkled it on his
head and the heads of his family members. Then he worshiped all those great lords by offering them
fragrant sandalwood paste, flower garlands, fine clothing and ornaments, incense, lamps, arghya and
cows and bulls.
30. When they had eaten to their full satisfaction, for their further pleasure the King began to speak
slowly and in a gentle voice as he held Lord Visnu’s feet in his lap and happily massaged them.
31. Sri Bahulasva said: O almighty Lord, You are the Soul of all created beings, their self-illumined
witness, and now You are giving Your audience to us, who constantly meditate on Your lotus feet.
32. You have said, “Neither Ananta, Goddess Sri nor unborn Brahma is dearer to Me than My unalloyed
devotee.” To prove Your own words true, You have now revealed Yourself to our eyes.
33. What person who knows this truth would ever abandon Your lotus feet, when You are ready to give
Your very self to peaceful sages who call nothing their own?
34. Appearing in the Yadu dynasty, You have spread Your glories, which can remove all the sins of the
three worlds, just to deliver those entrapped in the cycle of birth and death.
35. Obeisances to You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Krsna, whose intelligence is ever
unrestricted. Obeisances to the sage Nara-Narayana, who always undergoes austerities in perfect
peace.
36. Please stay a few days in our house, along with these brahmanas, O all-pervading one, and with
the dust of Your feet sanctify this dynasty of Nimi.
37. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus invited by the King, the Supreme Lord, sustainer of the world,
consented to stay for some time to bestow good fortune on the men and women of Mithila.
38. Srutadeva received Lord Acyuta into his home with as much enthusiasm as that shown by King
Bahulasva. After bowing down to the Lord and the sages, Srutadeva began to dance with great joy,
waving his shawl.
39. After bringing mats of grass and darbha straw and seating his guests upon them, he greeted them
with words of welcome. Then he and his wife washed their feet with great pleasure.
40. With the wash water, the virtuous Srutadeva copiously sprinkled himself, his house and his family.
Overjoyed, he felt that all his desires had now been fulfilled.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 617
41. He worshiped them with offerings of auspicious items easily available to him, such as fruits, usira
root, pure, nectarean water, fragrant clay, tulasi leaves, kusa grass and lotus flowers. Then he offered
them food that increases the mode of goodness.
42. He wondered: How is it that I, fallen into the blind well of family life, have been able to meet Lord
Krsna? And how have I also been allowed to meet these great brahmanas, who always carry the Lord
within their hearts? Indeed, the dust of their feet is the shelter of all holy places.
43. When his guests were seated comfortably, having each received a proper welcome, Srutadeva
approached them and sat down nearby with his wife, children and other dependents. Then, while
massaging the Lord’s feet, he addressed Krsna and the sages.
44. Srutadeva said: It is not that we have attained the audience of the Supreme Person only today, for
we have in fact been associating with Him ever since He created this universe with His energies and
then entered it in His transcendental form.
45. The Lord is like a sleeping person who creates a separate world in his imagination and then enters
his own dream and sees himself within it.
46. You reveal Yourself within the hearts of those persons of pure consciousness who constantly hear
about You, chant about You, worship You, glorify You and converse with one another about You.
47. But although You reside within the heart, You are very far away from those whose minds are
disturbed by their entanglement in material work. Indeed, no one can grasp You by his material powers,
for You reveal Yourself only in the hearts of those who have learned to appreciate Your transcendental
qualities.
48. Let me offer my obeisances unto You. You are realized as the Supreme Soul by those who know
the Absolute Truth, whereas in Your form of time You impose death upon the forgetful souls. You
appear both in Your causeless spiritual form and in the created form of this universe, thus
simultaneously uncovering the eyes of Your devotees and obstructing the vision of the nondevotees.
49. O Lord, You are that Supreme Soul, and we are Your servants. How shall we serve You? My Lord,
simply seeing You puts an end to all the troubles of human life.
50. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: After hearing Srutadeva speak these words, the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, who relieves His surrendered devotees’ distress, took Srutadeva’s hand in His own and,
smiling, spoke to him as follows.
51. The Supreme Lord said: My dear brahmana, you should know that these great sages have come
here just to bless you. They travel throughout the worlds with Me, purifying them with the dust of their
feet.
52. One can gradually become purified by seeing, touching and worshiping temple deities, places of
pilgrimage and holy rivers. But one can attain the same result immediately simply by receiving the
glance of exalted sages.
53. By his very birth, a brahmana is the best of all living beings in this world, and he becomes even
more exalted when he is endowed with austerity, learning and self-satisfaction, what to speak of
devotion to Me.
54. Even My own four-armed form is no dearer to Me than a brahmana. Within himself a learned
brahmana comprises all the Vedas, just as within Myself I comprise all the demigods.
55. Ignorant of this truth, foolish people neglect and enviously offend a learned brahmana, who, being
nondifferent from Me, is their spiritual master and very self. They consider worshipable only such
obvious manifestations of divinity as My Deity form.
56. Because he has realized Me, a brahmana is firmly fixed in the knowledge that everything moving
and nonmoving in the universe, and also the primary elements of its creation, are all manifest forms
expanded from Me.
57. Therefore you should worship these brahmana sages, O brahmana, with the same faith you have in
Me. If you do so, you will worship Me directly, which you cannot do otherwise, even with offerings of
vast riches.
58. Sri Suka said: So instructed by his Lord, with single-minded devotion Srutadeva worshiped Sri
Krsna and the topmost brahmanas accompanying Him, and King Bahulasva did the same. Thus both
Srutadeva and the King attained the ultimate transcendental destination.
59. O King, thus the Personality of Godhead, who is devoted to His own devotees, stayed for some time
with His two great devotees Srutadeva and Bahulasva, teaching them the behavior of perfect saints.
Then the Lord returned to Dvaraka.
Chapter Eighty-Seven The Prayers of the Personified Vedas
1. Sri Pariksit said: O brahmana, how can the Vedas directly describe the Supreme Absolute Truth, who
cannot be described in words? The Vedas are limited to describing the qualities of material nature, but
the Supreme is devoid of these qualities, being transcendental to all material manifestations and their
causes.
618 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The Supreme Lord manifested the material intelligence, senses, mind and
vital air of the living entities so that they could indulge their desires for sense gratification, take repeated
births to engage in fruitive activities, become elevated in future lives and ultimately attain liberation.
3. Those who came before even our ancient predecessors meditated upon this same confidential
knowledge of the Absolute Truth. Indeed, anyone who faithfully concentrates on this knowledge will
become free from material attachments and attain the final goal of life.
4. In this connection I will relate to you a narration concerning the Supreme Lord Narayana. It is about a
conversation that once occurred between Sri Narayana Rsi and Narada Muni.
5. Once, while traveling among the various planets of the universe, the Lord’s beloved devotee Narada
went to visit the primeval sage Narayana at His asrama.
6. From the very beginning of Brahma’s day Lord Narayana Rsi has been undergoing austere
penances in this land of Bharata while perfectly performing religious duties and exemplifying spiritual
knowledge and self-control—all for the benefit of human beings in both this world and the next.
7. There Narada approached Lord Narayana Rsi, who was sitting amidst sages of the village of Kalapa.
After bowing down to the Lord, O hero of the Kurus, Narada asked Him the very same question you
have asked me.
8. As the sages listened, Lord Narayana Rsi related to Narada an ancient discussion about the
Absolute Truth that took place among the residents of Janaloka.
9. The Personality of Godhead said: O son of self-born Brahma, once long ago on Janaloka, wise
sages who resided there performed a great sacrifice to the Absolute Truth by vibrating transcendental
sounds. These sages, mental sons of Brahma, were all perfect celibates.
10. At that time you happened to be visiting the Lord on Svetadvipa—that Supreme Lord in whom the
Vedas lie down to rest during the period of universal annihilation. A lively discussion arose among the
sages on Janaloka as to the nature of the Supreme Absolute Truth. Indeed, the same question arose
then that you are asking Me now.
11. Although these sages were all equally qualified in terms of Vedic study and austerity, and although
they all saw friends, enemies and neutral parties equally, they chose one of their number to be the
speaker, and the rest became eager listeners.
12-13. Sri Sanandana replied: After the Supreme Lord withdrew the universe He had previously
created, He lay for some time as if asleep, and all His energies rested dormant within Him. When the
time came for the next creation, the personified Vedas awakened Him by chanting His glories, just as
the poets serving a king approach him at dawn and awaken him by reciting his heroic deeds.
14. The srutis said: Victory, victory to You, O unconquerable one! By Your very nature You are perfectly
full in all opulences; therefore please defeat the eternal power of illusion, who assumes control over the
modes of nature to create difficulties for conditioned souls. O You who awaken all the energies of the
moving and nonmoving embodied beings, sometimes the Vedas can recognize You as You sport with
Your material and spiritual potencies.
15. This perceivable world is identified with the Supreme because the Supreme Brahman is the ultimate
foundation of all existence, remaining unchanged as all created things are generated from it and at last
dissolved into it, just as clay remains unchanged by the products made from it and again merged with it.
Thus it is toward You alone that the Vedic sages direct all their thoughts, words and acts. After all, how
can the footsteps of men fail to touch the earth on which they live?
16. Therefore, O master of the three worlds, the wise get rid of all misery by diving deep into the
nectarean ocean of topics about You, which washes away all the contamination of the universe. Then
what to speak of those who, having by spiritual strength rid their minds of bad habits and freed
themselves from time, are able to worship Your true nature, O supreme one, finding within it
uninterrupted bliss?
17. Only if they become Your faithful followers are those who breathe actually alive, otherwise their
breathing is like that of a bellows. It is by Your mercy alone that the elements, beginning with the mahat-
tattva and false ego, created the egg of this universe. Among the manifestations known as anna-maya
and so forth, You are the ultimate one, entering within the material coverings along with the living entity
and assuming the same forms as those he takes. Distinct from the gross and subtle material
manifestations, You are the reality underlying them all.
18. Among the followers of the methods set forth by great sages, those with less refined vision worship
the Supreme as present in the region of the abdomen, while the Arunis worship Him as present in the
heart, in the subtle center from which all the pranic channels emanate. From there, O unlimited Lord,
these worshipers raise their consciousness upward to the top of the head, where they can perceive You
directly. Then, passing through the top of the head toward the supreme destination, they reach that
place from which they will never again fall to this world, into the mouth of death.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 619
19. Apparently entering among the variegated species of living beings You have created, You inspire
them to act, manifesting Yourself according to their higher and lower positions, just as fire manifests
differently according to the shape of what it burns. Therefore those of spotless intelligence, who are
altogether free from material attachments, realize Your undifferentiated, unchanging Self to be the
permanent reality among all these impermanent life forms.
20. The individual living entity, while inhabiting the material bodies he has created for himself by his
karma, actually remains uncovered by either gross or subtle matter. This is so because, as the Vedas
describe, he is part and parcel of You, the possessor of all potencies. Having determined this to be the
status of the living entity, learned sages become imbued with faith and worship Your lotus feet, to which
all Vedic sacrifices in this world are offered, and which are the source of liberation.
21. My Lord, some fortunate souls have gotten relief from the fatigue of material life by diving into the
vast nectar ocean of Your pastimes, which You enact when You manifest Your personal forms to
propagate the unfathomable science of the self. These rare souls, indifferent even to liberation,
renounce the happiness of home and family because of their association with devotees who are like
flocks of swans enjoying at the lotus of Your feet.
22. When this human body is used for Your devotional service, it acts as one’s self, friend and beloved.
But unfortunately, although You always show mercy to the conditioned souls and affectionately help
them in every way, and although You are their true Self, people in general fail to delight in You. Instead
they commit spiritual suicide by worshiping illusion. Alas, because they persistently hope for success in
their devotion to the unreal, they continue to wander about this greatly fearful world, assuming various
degraded bodies.
23. Simply by constantly thinking of Him, the enemies of the Lord attained the same Supreme Truth
whom sages fixed in yoga worship by controlling their breath, mind and senses. Similarly, we srutis,
who generally see You as all-pervading, will achieve the same nectar from Your lotus feet that Your
consorts are able to relish because of their loving attraction to Your mighty, serpentine arms, for You
look upon us and Your consorts in the same way.
24. Everyone in this world has recently been born and will soon die. So how can anyone here know Him
who existed prior to everything else and who gave rise to the first learned sage, Brahma, and all
subsequent demigods, both lesser and greater? When He lies down and withdraws everything within
Himself, nothing else remains—no gross or subtle matter or bodies composed of these, no force of time
or revealed scripture.
25. Supposed authorities who declare that matter is the origin of existence, that the permanent qualities
of the soul can be destroyed, that the self is compounded of separate aspects of spirit and matter, or
that material transactions constitute reality—all such authorities base their teachings on mistaken ideas
that hide the truth. The dualistic conception that the living entity is produced from the three modes of
nature is simply a product of ignorance. Such a conception has no real basis in You, for You are
transcendental to all illusion and always enjoy perfect, total awareness.
26. The three modes of material nature comprise everything in this world—from the simplest
phenomena to the complex human body. Although these phenomena appear real, they are only a false
reflection of the spiritual reality, being a superimposition of the mind upon You. Still, those who know the
Supreme Self consider the entire material creation to be real inasmuch as it is nondifferent from the
Self. Just as things made of gold are indeed not to be rejected, since their substance is actual gold, so
this world is undoubtedly nondifferent from the Lord who created it and then entered within it.
27. The devotees who worship You as the shelter of all beings disregard Death and place their feet on
his head. But with the words of the Vedas You bind the nondevotees like animals, though they be vastly
learned scholars. It is Your affectionate devotees who can purify themselves and others, not those who
are inimical to You.
28. Though You have no material senses, You are the self-effulgent sustainer of everyone’s sensory
powers. The demigods and material nature herself offer You tribute, while also enjoying the tribute
offered them by their worshipers, just as subordinate rulers of various districts in a kingdom offer tribute
to their lord, the ultimate proprietor of the land, while also enjoying the tribute paid them by their own
subjects. In this way the universal creators faithfully execute their assigned services out of fear of You.
29. O eternally liberated, transcendental Lord, Your material energy causes the various moving and
nonmoving species of life to appear by activating their material desires, but only when and if You sport
with her by briefly glancing at her. You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, see no one as an
intimate friend and no one as a stranger, just as the ethereal sky has no connection with perceptible
qualities. In this sense You resemble a void.
30. If the countless living entities were all-pervading and possessed forms that never changed, You
could not possibly be their absolute ruler, O immutable one. But since they are Your localized
expansions and their forms are subject to change, You do control them. Indeed, that which supplies the
620 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
ingredients for the generation of something is necessarily its controller because a product never exists
apart from its ingredient cause. It is simply illusion for someone to think that he knows the Supreme
Lord, who is equally present in each of His expansions, since whatever knowledge one gains by
material means must be imperfect.
31. Neither material nature nor the soul who tries to enjoy her are ever born, yet living bodies come into
being when these two combine, just as bubbles form where water meets the air. And just as rivers
merge into the ocean or the nectar from many different flowers blends into honey, so all these
conditioned beings eventually merge back into You, the Supreme, along with their various names and
qualities.
32. The wise souls who understand how Your Maya deludes all human beings render potent loving
service to You, who are the source of liberation from birth and death. How, indeed, can fear of material
life affect Your faithful servants? On the other hand, Your furrowing eyebrows—the triple-rimmed wheel
of time—repeatedly terrify those who refuse to take shelter of You.
33. The mind is like an impetuous horse that even persons who have regulated their senses and breath
cannot control. Those in this world who try to tame the uncontrolled mind, but who abandon the feet of
their spiritual master, encounter hundreds of obstacles in their cultivation of various distressful practices.
O unborn Lord, they are like merchants on a boat in the ocean who have failed to employ a helmsman.
34. To those persons who take shelter of You, You reveal Yourself as the Supersoul, the embodiment
of all transcendental pleasure. What further use have such devotees for their servants, children or
bodies, their wives, money or houses, their land, good health or conveyances? And for those who fail to
appreciate the truth about You and go on pursuing the pleasures of sex, what could there be in this
entire world—a place inherently doomed to destruction and devoid of significance—that could give them
real happiness?
35. Sages free from false pride live on this earth by frequenting the sacred pilgrimage sites and those
places where the Supreme Lord displayed His pastimes. Because such devotees keep Your lotus feet
within their hearts, the water that washes their feet destroys all sins. Anyone who even once turns his
mind toward You, the ever-blissful Soul of all existence, no longer dedicates himself to serving family
life at home, which simply robs a man of his good qualities.
36. It may be proposed that this world is permanently real because it is generated from the permanent
reality, but such an argument is subject to logical refutation. Sometimes, indeed, the apparent
nondifference of a cause and its effect fails to prove true, and at other times the product of something
real is illusory. Furthermore, this world cannot be permanently real, for it partakes of the natures of not
only the absolute reality but also the illusion disguising that reality. Actually, the visible forms of this
world are just an imaginary arrangement resorted to by a succession of ignorant persons in order to
facilitate their material affairs. With their various meanings and implications, the learned words of Your
Vedas bewilder all persons whose minds have been dulled by hearing the incantations of sacrificial
rituals.
37. Since this universe did not exist prior to its creation and will no longer exist after its annihilation, we
conclude that in the interim it is nothing more than a manifestation imagined to be visible within You,
whose spiritual enjoyment never changes. We liken this universe to the transformation of various
material substances into diverse forms. Certainly those who believe that this figment of the imagination
is substantially real are less intelligent.
38. The illusory material nature attracts the minute living entity to embrace her, and as a result he
assumes forms composed of her qualities. Subsequently, he loses all his spiritual qualities and must
undergo repeated deaths. You, however, avoid the material energy in the same way that a snake
abandons its old skin. Glorious in Your possession of eight mystic perfections, You enjoy unlimited
opulences.
39. Members of the renounced order who fail to uproot the last traces of material desire in their hearts
remain impure, and thus You do not allow them to understand You. Although You are present within
their hearts, for them You are like a jewel worn around the neck of a mall who has totally forgotten it is
there. O Lord, those who pratice yoga only for sense gratification must suffer punishment both in this life
and the next: from death, who will not release them, and from You, whose kingdom they cannot reach.
40. When a person realizes You, he no longer cares about his good and bad fortune arising from past
pious and sinful acts, since it is You alone who control this good and bad fortune. Such a realized
devotee also disregards what ordinary living beings say about him. Every day he fills his ears with Your
glories, which are recited in each age by the unbroken succession of Manu’s descendants, and thus
You become his ultimate salvation.
41. Because You are unlimited, neither the lords of heaven nor even You Yourself can ever reach the
end of Your glories. The countless universes, each enveloped in its shell, are compelled by the wheel of
time to wander within You, like particles of dust blowing about in the sky. The srutis, following their
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 621
method of eliminating everything separate from the Supreme, become successful by revealing You as
their final conclusion.
42. The Supreme Lord, Sri Narayana Rsi, said: Having heard these instructions about the Supreme
Self, the Personality of Godhead, the sons of Brahma now understood their final destination. They felt
perfectly satisfied and honored Sanandana with their worship.
43. Thus the ancient saints who travel in the upper heavens distilled this nectarean and confidential
essence of all the Vedas and Puranas.
44. And as you wander the earth at will, My dear son of Brahma, you should faithfully meditate on these
instructions concerning the science of the Self, which burn up the material desires of all men.
45. Sukadeva Gosvami said: When Sri Narayana Rsi ordered him in this way, the self-possessed sage
Narada, whose vow is as heroic as a warrior’s, accepted the command with firm faith. Now successful
in all his purposes, he thought about what he had heard, O King, and replied to the Lord as follows.
46. Sri Narada said: I offer My obeisances to Him of spotless fame, the Supreme Lord Krsna, who
manifests His all-attractive personal expansions so that all living beings can achieve liberation.
47. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] After saying this, Narada bowed down to Sri Narayana Rsi, the
foremost of sages, and also to His saintly disciples. He then returned to the hermitage of my father,
Dvaipayana Vyasa.
48. Vyasadeva, the incarnation of the Personality of Godhead, respectfully greeted Narada Muni and
offered him a seat, which he accepted. Narada then described to Vyasa what he had heard from the
mouth of Sri Narayana Rsi.
49. Thus I have replied to the question You asked me, O King, concerning how the mind can have
access to the Absolute Truth, which is indescribable by material words and devoid of material qualities.
50. He is the Lord who eternally watches over this universe, who exists before, during and after its
manifestation. He is the master of both the unmanifest material energy and the spirit soul. After sending
forth the creation He enters within it, accompanying each living entity. There He creates the material
bodies and then remains as their regulator. By surrendering to Him one can escape the embrace of
illusion, just as a dreaming person forgets his own body. One who wants liberation from fear should
constantly meditate upon Him, Lord Hari, who is always on the platform of perfection and thus never
subject to material birth.
Chapter Eighty-Eight Lord Siva Saved from Vrkasura
1. King Pariksit said: Those demigods, demons and humans who worship Lord Siva, a strict renunciant,
usually enjoy wealth and sense gratification, while the worshipers of the Supreme Lord Hari, the
husband of the goddess of fortune, do not.
2. We wish to properly understand this matter, which greatly puzzles us. Indeed, the results attained by
the worshipers of these two lords of opposite characters are contrary to what one would expect.
3. Sri Sukadeva said: Lord Siva is always united with his personal energy, the material nature.
Manifesting himself in three features in response to the entreaties of nature’s three modes, he thus
embodies the threefold principle of material ego in goodness, passion and ignorance.
4. The sixteen elements have evolved as transformations of that false ego. When a devotee of Lord
Siva worships his manifestation in any one of these elements, the devotee obtains all sorts of
corresponding enjoyable opulences.
5. Lord Hari, however, has no connection with the material modes. He is the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, the all-seeing eternal witness, who is transcendental to material nature. One who worships
Him becomes similarly free from the material modes.
6. Your grandfather, King Yudhisthira, after completing his Asvamedha sacrifices, asked Lord Acyuta
this very same question while hearing the Lord’s explanation of religious principles.
7. This question pleased Sri Krsna, the King’s Lord and master, who had descended into the family of
Yadu for the purpose of bestowing the highest good on all men. The Lord replied as follows as the King
eagerly listened.
8. The Personality of Godhead said: If I especially favor someone, I gradually deprive him of his wealth.
Then the relatives and friends of such a poverty-stricken man abandon him. In this way he suffers one
distress after another.
9. When he becomes frustrated in his attempts to make money and instead befriends My devotees, I
bestow My special mercy upon him.
10. A person who has thus become sober fully realizes the Absolute as the highest truth, the most
subtle and perfect manifestation of spirit, the transcendental existence without end. In this way realizing
that the Supreme Truth is the foundation of his own existence, he is freed from the cycle of material life.
11. Because I am difficult to worship, people generally avoid Me and instead worship other deities, who
are quickly satisfied. When people receive kingly opulences from these deities, they become arrogant,
622 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
intoxicated with pride and neglectful of their duties. They dare to offend even the demigods who have
bestowed benedictions upon them.
12. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Lord Brahma, Lord Visnu, Lord Siva and others are able to curse or bless
one. Lord Siva and Lord Brahma are very quick to curse or bestow benedictions, my dear King, but the
infallible Supreme Lord is not.
13. In this connection, an ancient historical account is related concerning how the Lord of Kailasa
Mountain was put into danger by offering a choice of benedictions to the demon Vrka.
14. The demon named Vrka, a son of Sakuni’s, once met Narada on the road. The wicked fellow asked
him which of the three chief gods could be pleased most quickly.
15. Narada told him: Worship Lord Siva and you will soon achieve success. He quickly becomes
pleased by seeing his worshiper’s slightest good qualities—and quickly angered by seeing his slightest
fault.
16. He became pleased with ten-headed Ravana, and also with Bana, when they each chanted his
glories, like bards in a royal court. Lord Siva then bestowed unprecedented power upon each of them,
but in both cases he was consequently beset with great difficulty.
17. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus advised, the demon proceeded to worship Lord Siva at
Kedaranatha by taking pieces of flesh from his own body and offering them as oblations into the sacred
fire, which is Lord Siva’s mouth.
18-19. Vrkasura became frustrated aher failing to obtain a vision of the lord. Finally, on the seventh day,
after dipping his hair into the holy waters at Kedaranatha and leaving it wet, he took up a hatchet and
prepared to cut off his head. But at that very moment the supremely merciful Lord Siva rose up out of
the sacrificial fire, looking like the god of fire himself, and grabbed both arms of the demon to stop him
from killing himself, just as we would do. By Lord Siva’s touch, Vrkasura once again became whole.
20. Lord Siva said to him: My friend, please stop, stop! Ask from me whatever you want, and I will
bestow that boon upon you. Alas, you have subjected your body to great torment for no reason, since I
am pleased with a simple offering of water from those who approach me for shelter.
21. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] The benediction sinful Vrka chose from the lord would terrify all
living beings. Vrka said, “May death come to whomever I touch upon the head with my hand.”
22. Upon hearing this, Lord Rudra seemed somewhat disturbed. Nonetheless, O descendant of
Bharata, he vibrated om to signify his assent, granting Vrka the benediction with an ironic smile, as if
giving milk to a poisonous snake.
23. To test Lord Sambhu’s benediction, the demon then tried to put his hand on the Lord’s head. Thus
Siva was frightened because of what he himself had done.
24. As the demon pursued him, Lord Siva fled swiftly from his abode in the north, shaking with terror.
He ran as far as the limits of the earth, the sky and the corners of the universe.
25-26. The great demigods could only remain silent, not knowing how to counteract the benediction.
Then Lord Siva reached the luminous realm of Vaikuntha, beyond all darkness, where the Supreme
Lord Narayana is manifest. That realm is the destination of renunciants who have attained peace and
given up all violence against other creatures. Going there, one never returns.
27-28. The Supreme Lord, who relieves His devotees’ distress, had seen from afar that Lord Siva was
in danger. Thus by His mystic Yogamaya potency He assumed the form of a brahmacari student, with
the appropriate belt, deerskin, rod and prayer beads, and came before Vrkasura. The Lord’s effulgence
glowed brilliantly like fire. Holding kusa grass in His hand, He humbly greeted the demon.
29. The Supreme Lord said: My dear son of Sakuni, you appear tired. Why have you come such a great
distance? Please rest for a minute. After all, it is one’s body that fulfills all one’s desires.
30. O mighty one, please tell Us what you intend to do, if We are qualified to hear it. Usually one
accomplishes his purposes by taking help from others.
31. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus questioned by the Personality of Godhead in language that poured
down upon him like sweet nectar, Vrka felt relieved of his fatigue. He described to the Lord everything
he had done.
32. The Supreme Lord said: If this is the case, We cannot believe what Siva says. Siva is the same lord
of the Pretas and Pisacas whom Daksa cursed to become like a carnivorous hobgoblin.
33. O best of the demons, if you have any faith in him because he is the spiritual master of the universe,
then without delay put your hand on your head and see what happens.
34. If the words of Lord Sambhu prove untrue in any way, O best of the demons, then kill the liar so he
may never lie again.
35. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] Thus bewildered by the Personality of Godhead’s enchanting, artful
words, foolish Vrka, without realizing what he was doing, placed his hand on his head.
36. Instantly his head shattered as if struck by a lightning bolt, and the demon fell down dead. From the
sky were heard cries of “Victory!” “Obeisances!” and “Well done!”
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 623
37. The celestial sages, Pitas and Gandharvas rained down flowers to celebrate the killing of sinful
Vrkasura. Now Lord Siva was out of danger.
38-39. The Supreme Personality of Godhead then addressed Lord Girisa, who was now out of danger:
“Just see, O Mahadeva, My lord, how this wicked man has been killed by his own sinful reactions.
Indeed, what living being can hope for good fortune if he offends exalted saints, what to speak of
offending the lord and spiritual master of the universe?”
40. Lord Hari is the directly manifest Absolute Truth, the Supreme Soul and unlimited ocean of
inconceivable energies. Anyone who recites or hears this pastime of His saving Lord Siva will be freed
from all enemies and the repetition of birth and death.
Chapter Eighty-Nine Krsna and Arjuna Retrieve a Brahmana’s Sons
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Once, O King, as a group of sages were performing a Vedic sacrifice on the
banks of the Sarasvati River, a controversy arose among them as to which of the three chief deities is
supreme.
2. Eager to resolve this question, O King, the sages sent Lord Brahma’s son Bhrgu to find the answer.
First he went to his father’s court.
3. To test how well Lord Brahma was situated in the mode of goodness, Bhrgu failed to bow down to
him or glorify him with prayers. The lord became angry at him, inflamed into fury by his own passion.
4. Though anger toward his son was now rising within his heart, Lord Brahma was able to subdue it by
applying his intelligence, in the same way that fire is extinguished by its own product, water.
5. Bhrgu then went to Mount Kailasa. There Lord Siva stood up and happily came forward to embrace
his brother.
6-7. But Bhrgu refused his embrace, telling him, “You are a deviant heretic.” At this Lord Siva became
angry, and his eyes burned ferociously. He raised his trident and was about to kill Bhrgu when Goddess
Devi fell at his feet and spoke some words to pacify him. Bhrgu then left that place and went to
Vaikuntha, where Lord Janardana resides.
8-9. There he went up to the Supreme Lord, who was lying with His head on the lap of His consort, Sri,
and kicked Him on the chest. The Lord then rose, along with Goddess Laksmi, as a sign of respect.
Coming down from His bedstead, that supreme goal of all pure devotees bowed His head to the floor
before the sage and told him, ’Welcome, brahmana. Please sit in this chair and rest awhile. Kindly
forgive us, dear master, for not noticing your arrival.
10-11. “Please purify Me, My realm and the realms of the universal rulers devoted to Me by giving us
the water that has washed your feet. This holy water is indeed what makes all places of pilgrimage
sacred. Today, my lord, I have become the exclusive shelter of the goddess of fortune, Laksmi; she will
consent to reside on My chest because your foot has rid it of sins.”
12. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Bhrgu felt satisfied and delighted to hear the solemn words spoken by
Lord Vaikuntha. Overwhelmed with devotional ecstasy, he remained silent, his eyes brimming with
tears.
13. O King, Bhrgu then returned to the sacrificial arena of the wise Vedic authorities and described his
entire experience to them.
14-17. Amazed upon hearing Bhrgu’s account, the sages were freed from all doubts and became
convinced that Visnu is the greatest Lord. From Him come peace; fearlessness; the essential principles
of religion; detachment with knowledge; the eightfold powers of mystic yoga; and His glorification, which
cleanses the mind of all impurities. He is known as the supreme destination for those who are peaceful
and equipoised—the selfless, wise saints who have given up all violence. His most dear form is that of
pure goodness, and the brahmanas are His worshipable deities. Persons of keen intellect who have
attained spiritual peace worship Him without selfish motives.
18. The Lord expands into three kinds of manifest beings—the Raksasas, the demons and the
demigods—all of whom are created by the Lord’s material energy and conditioned by her modes. But
among these three modes, it is the mode of goodness which is the means of attaining life’s final
success.
19. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The learned brahmanas living along the river Sarasvati came to this
conclusion in order to dispel the doubts of all people. Thereafter they rendered devotional service to the
Supreme Lord’s lotus feet and attained His abode.
20. Sri Suta Gosvami said: Thus did this fragrant nectar flow from the lotus mouth of Sukadeva
Gosvami, the son of the sage Vyasadeva. This wonderful glorification of the Supreme Person destroys
all fear of material existence. A traveler who constantly drinks this nectar through his ear-holes will
forget the fatigue brought on by wandering along the paths of worldly life.
21. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Once, in Dvaraka, a brahmana’s wife gave birth to a son, but the newborn
infant died as soon as he touched the ground, O Bharata.
624 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
22. The brahmana took the corpse and placed it at the door of King Ugrasena’s court. Then, agitated
and lamenting miserably, he spoke the following.
23. [The brahmana said:] This duplicitous, greedy enemy of brahmanas, this unqualified ruler addicted
to sense pleasure, has caused my son’s death by some discrepancies in the execution of his duties.
24. Citizens serving such a wicked king, who takes pleasure in violence and cannot control his senses,
are doomed to suffer poverty and constant misery.
25. The wise brahmana suffered the same tragedy with his second and third child. Each time, he left the
body of his dead son at the King’s door and sang the same song of lamentation.
26-27. When the ninth child died, Arjuna, who was near Lord Kesava, happened to overhear the
brahmana lamenting. Thus Arjuna addressed the brahmana: “What is the matter, my dear brahmana?
Isn’t there some lowly member of the royal order here who can at least stand before your house with a
bow in his hand? These ksatriyas are behaving as if they were brahmanas idly engaged in fire
sacrifices.
28. “The rulers of a kingdom in which brahmanas lament over lost wealth, wives and children are
merely imposters playing the role of kings just to earn their livelihood.
29. “My lord, I will protect the progeny of you and your wife, who are in such distress. And if I fail to keep
this promise, I will enter fire to atone for my sin.”
30-31. The brahmana said: Neither Sankarsana; Vasudeva; Pradyumna, the best of bowmen; nor the
unequalled warrior Aniruddha could save my sons. Then why do you naively attempt a feat that the
almighty Lords of the universe could not perform? We cannot take you seriously.
32. Sri Arjuna said: I am neither Lord Sankarsana, O brahmana, nor Lord Krsna, nor even Krsna’s son.
Rather, I am Arjuna, wielder of the Gandiva bow.
33. Do not minimize my ability, which was good enough to satisfy Lord Siva, O brahmana. I will bring
back your sons, dear master, even if I have to defeat Death himself in battle.
34. Thus convinced by Arjuna, O tormentor of enemies, the brahmana went home, satisfied by having
heard Arjuna’s declaration of his prowess.
35. When the wife of the elevated brahmana was again about to give birth, he went to Arjuna in great
anxiety and begged him, “Please, please protect my child from death!”
36. After touching pure water, offering obeisances to Lord Mahesvara and recollecting the mantras for
his celestial weapons, Arjuna strung his bow Gandiva.
37. Arjuna fenced in the house where the birth was taking place by shooting arrows attached to various
missiles. Thus the son of Prtha constructed a protective cage of arrows, covering the house upwards,
downwards and sideways.
38. The brahmana’s wife then gave birth, but after the newborn infant had been crying for a short time,
he suddenly vanished into the sky in his selfsame body.
39. The brahmana then derided Arjuna in front of Lord Krsna: “Just see how foolish I was to put my faith
in the bragging of a eunuch!
40. “When neither Pradyumna, Aniruddha, Rama nor Kesava can save a person, who else can possibly
protect him?
41. “To hell with that liar Arjuna! To hell with that braggart’s bow! He is so foolish that he has deluded
himself into thinking he can bring back a person whom destiny has taken away.”
42. While the wise brahmana continued to heap insults upon him, Arjuna employed a mystic incantation
to go at once to Samyamani, the city of heaven where Lord Yamaraja resides.
43-44. Not seeing the brahmana’s child there, Arjuna went to the cities of Agni, Nirrti, Soma, Vayu and
Varuna. With weapons at the ready he searched through all the domains of the universe, from the
bottom of the subterranean region to the roof of heaven. Finally, not having found the brahmana’s son
anywhere, Arjuna decided to enter the sacred fire, having failed to keep his promise. But just as he was
about to do so, Lord Krsna stopped him and spoke the following words.
45. [Lord Krsna said:] I will show you the brahmana’s sons, so please don’t despise yourself like this.
These same men who now criticize us will soon establish our spotless fame.
46. Having thus advised Arjuna, the Supreme Personality of Godhead had Arjuna join Him on His divine
chariot, and together they set off toward the west.
47. The Lord’s chariot passed over the seven islands of the middle universe, each with its ocean and its
seven principal mountains. Then it crossed the Lokaloka boundary and entered the vast region of total
darkness.
48-49. In that darkness the chariot’s horses—Saibya, Sugriva, Meghapuspa and Balahaka—lost their
way. Seeing them in this condition, O best of the Bharatas, Lord Krsna, the supreme master of all
masters of yoga, sent His Sudarsana disc before the chariot. That disc shone like thousands of suns.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 625
50. The Lord’s Sudarsana disc penetrated the darkness with its blazing effulgence. Racing forward with
the speed of the mind, it cut through the fearsome, dense oblivion expanded from primeval matter, as
an arrow shot from Lord Rama’s bow cuts through His enemy’s army.
51. Following the Sudarsana disc, the chariot went beyond the darkness and reached the endless
spiritual light of the all pervasive brahma-jyoti. As Arjuna beheld this glaring effulgence, his eyes hurt,
and so he shut them.
52. From that region they entered a body of water resplendent with huge waves being churned by a
mighty wind. Within that ocean Arjuna saw an amazing palace more radiant than anything he had ever
seen before. Its beauty was enhanced by thousands of ornamental pillars bedecked with brilliant gems.
53. In that palace was the huge, awe-inspiring serpent Ananta Sesa. He shone brilliantly with the
radiance emanating from the gems on His thousands of hoods and reflecting from twice as many
fearsome eyes. He resembled white Mount Kailasa, and His necks and tongues were dark blue.
54-56. Arjuna then saw the omnipresent and omnipotent Supreme Personality of Godhead, Maha-
Visnu, sitting at ease on the serpent bed. His bluish complexion was the color of a dense raincloud, He
wore a beautiful yellow garment, His face looked charming, His broad eyes were most attractive, and
He had eight long, handsome arms. His profuse locks of hair were bathed on all sides in the brilliance
reflected from the clusters of precious jewels decorating His crown and earrings. He wore the
Kaustubha gem, the mark of Srivatsa and a garland of forest flowers. Serving that topmost of all Lords
were His personal attendants, headed by Sunanda and Nanda; His cakra and other weapons in their
personified forms; His consort potencies Pusti, Sri, Kirti and Aja; and all His various mystic powers.
57. Lord Krsna offered homage to Himself in this boundless form, and Arjuna, astonished at the sight of
Lord Maha-Visnu, bowed down as well. Then, as the two of them stood before Him with joined palms,
the almighty Maha-Visnu, supreme master of all rulers of the universe, smiled and spoke to them in a
voice full of solemn authority.
58. [Lord Maha-Visnu said:] I brought the brahmana’s sons here because I wanted to see the two of
you, My expansions, who have descended to the earth to save the principles of religion. As soon as you
finish killing the demons who burden the earth, quickly come back here to Me.
59. Although all your desires are completely fulfilled, O best of exalted personalities, for the benefit of
the people in general you should continue to exemplify religious behavior as the sages Nara and
Narayana.
60-61. Thus instructed by the Supreme Lord of the topmost planet, Krsna and Arjuna assented by
chanting om, and then they bowed down to almighty Lord Maha-Visnu. Taking the brahmana’s sons
with them, they returned with great delight to Dvaraka by the same path along which they had come.
There they presented the brahmana with his sons, who were in the same infant bodies in which they
had been lost.
62. Having seen the domain of Lord Visnu, Arjuna was totally amazed. He concluded that whatever
extraordinary power a person exhibits can only be a manifestation of Sri Krsna’s mercy.
63. Lord Krsna exhibited many other, similar heroic pastimes in this world. He apparently enjoyed the
pleasures of ordinary human life, and He performed greatly potent fire sacrifices.
64. The Lord having demonstrated His supremacy, at suitable times He showered down all desirable
things upon the brahmanas and His other subjects, just as Indra pours down his rain.
65. Now that He had killed many wicked kings and engaged devotees such as Arjuna in killing others,
the Lord could easily assure the execution of religious principles through the agency of such pious
rulers as Yudhisthira.
Chapter Ninety Summary of Lord Krsna’s Glories
1-7. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The master of the goddess of fortune resided happily in His capital city,
Dvaraka, which was endowed with all opulences and populated by the most eminent Vrsnis and their
gorgeously dressed wives. When these beautiful women in the bloom of youth would play on the city’s
rooftops with balls and other toys, they shone like flashing lightning. The main streets of the city were
always crowded with intoxicated elephants exuding mada, and also with cavalry, richly adorned
infantrymen, and soldiers riding chariots brilliantly decorated with gold. Gracing the city were many
gardens and parks with rows of flowering trees, where bees and birds would gather, filling all directions
with their songs. Lord Krsna was the sole beloved of His sixteen thousand wives. Expanding Himself
into that many forms, He enjoyed with each of His queens in her own richly furnished residence. On the
grounds of these palaces were clear ponds fragrant with the pollen of blooming utpala, kahlara, kumuda
and ambhoja lotuses and filled with flocks of cooing birds. The almighty Lord would enter those ponds,
and also various rivers, and enjoy sporting in the water while His wives embraced Him, leaving the red
kunkuma from their breasts smeared on His body.
8-9. As Gandharvas joyfully sang His praises to the accompaniment of mrdanga, panava and anaka
drums, and as professional reciters known as Sutas, Magadhas and Vandis played vinas and recited
626 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
poems praising Him, Lord Krsna would play with His wives in the water. Laughing, the queens would
squirt water on Him with syringes, and He would squirt them back. Thus Krsna would sport with His
queens in the same way that the lord of the Yaksas sports with the Yaksi nymphs.
10, Under the drenched clothing of the queens, their thighs and breasts would become visible. The
flowers tied in their large braids would scatter as they sprayed water on their consort, and on the plea of
trying to take away His syringe, they would embrace Him. By His touch their lusty feelings would
increase, causing their faces to beam with smiles. Thus Lord Krsna’s queens shone with resplendent
beauty.
11. Lord Krsna’s flower garland would become smeared with kunkuma from their breasts, and His
abundant locks of hair would become disheveled as a result of His absorption in the game. As the Lord
repeatedly sprayed His young consorts and they sprayed Him in turn, He enjoyed Himself like the king
of elephants enjoying in the company of his bevy of she-elephants.
12. Afterward, Lord Krsna and His wives would give the ornaments and clothing they had worn during
their water sports to the male and female performers, who earned their livelihoood from singing and
from playing instrumental music.
13. In this way Lord Krsna would sport with His queens, totally captivating their hearts with His gestures,
talks, glances and smiles, and also with His jokes, playful exchanges and embraces.
14. The queens would become stunned in ecstatic trance, their minds absorbed in Krsna alone. Then,
thinking of their lotus-eyed Lord, they would speak as if insane. Please hear these words from me as I
relate them.
15. The queens said: O kurari bird, you are lamenting. Now it is night, and somewhere in this world the
Supreme Lord is asleep in a hidden place. But you are wide awake, O friend, unable to fall asleep. Is it
that, like us, you have had your heart pierced to the core by the lotus-eyed Lord’s munificent, playful
smiling glances?
16. Poor cakravaki, even after closing your eyes, you continue to cry pitifully through the night for your
unseen mate. Or is it that, like us, you have become the servant of Acyuta and hanker to wear in your
braided hair the garland He has blessed with the touch of His feet?
17. Dear ocean, you are always roaring, not sleeping at night. Are you suffering insomnia? Or is it that,
as with us, Mukunda has taken your insignias and you are hopeless of retrieving them?
18. My dear moon, having contracted a severe case of tuberculosis, you have become so emaciated
that you fail to dispel the darkness with your rays. Or is it that you appear dumbstruck because, like us,
you cannot remember the encouraging promises Mukunda once made to you?
19. O Malayan breeze, what have we done to displease you, so that you stir up lust in our hearts, which
have already been shattered by Govinda’s sidelong glances?
20. O revered cloud, you are indeed very dear to the chief of the Yadavas, who bears the mark of
Srivatsa. Like us, you are bound to Him by love and are meditating upon Him. Your heart is distraught
with great eagerness, as our hearts are, and as you remember Him again and again you shed a torrent
of tears. Association with Krsna brings such misery!
21. O sweet-throated cuckoo, in a voice that could revive the dead you are vibrating the same sounds
we once heard from our beloved, the most pleasing of speakers. Please tell me what I can do today to
please you.
22. O magnanimous mountain, you neither move nor speak. You must be pondering some matter of
great importance. Or do you, like us, desire to hold on your breasts the feet of Vasudeva’s darling son?
23. O rivers, wives of the ocean, your pools have now dried up. Alas, you have shriveled to nothing, and
your wealth of lotuses has vanished. Are you, then, like us, who are withering away because of not
receiving the affectionate glance of our dear husband, the Lord of Madhu, who has cheated our hearts?
24. Welcome, swan. Please sit here and drink some milk. Give us some news of the descendant of
Sura, dear one. We know you are His messenger. Is that invincible Lord doing well, and does that
unreliable friend of ours still remember the words He spoke to us long ago? Why should we go and
worship Him? O servant of a petty master, go tell Him who fulfills our desires to come here without the
goddess of fortune. Is she the only woman exclusively devoted to Him?
25. Sukadeva Gosvami said: By thus speaking and acting with such ecstatic love for Lord Krsna, the
master of all masters of mystic yoga, His loving wives attained the ultimate goal of life.
26. The Lord, whom countless songs glorify in countless ways, forcibly attracts the minds of all women
who simply hear about Him. What to speak, then, of those women who see Him directly?
27. And how could one possibly describe the great austerities that had been performed by the women
who perfectly served Him, the spiritual master of the universe, in pure ecstatic love? Thinking of Him as
their husband, they rendered such intimate services as massaging His feet.
28. Thus observing the principles of duty enunciated in the Vedas, Lord Krsna, the goal of the saintly
devotees, repeatedly demonstrated how one can achieve at home the objectives of religiosity, economic
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 627
development and regulated sense gratification.
29. While fulfilling the highest standards of religious householder life, Lord Krsna maintained more than
16,100 wives.
30. Among these jewellike women were eight principal queens, headed by Rukmini. I have already
described them one after another, O King, along with their sons.
31. The Supreme Lord Krsna, whose endeavor never fails, begot ten sons in each of His many wives.
32. Among these sons, all possessing unlimited valor, eighteen were maharathas of great renown. Now
hear their names from me.
33-34. They were Pradyumna, Aniruddha, Diptiman, Bhanu, Samba, Madhu, Brhadbhanu, Citrabhanu,
Vrka, Aruna, Puskara, Vedabahu, Srutadeva, Sunandana, Citrabahu, Virupa, Kavi and Nyagrodha.
35. O best of kings, of these sons begotten by Lord Krsna, the enemy of Madhu, the most prominent
was Rukmini’s son Pradyumna. He was just like His father.
36. The great warrior Pradyumna married Rukmi’s daughter [Rukmavati], who gave birth to Aniruddha.
He was as strong as ten thousand elephants.
37. Rukmi’s daughter’s son [Aniruddha] married Rukmi’s son’s daughter [Rocana]. From her was born
Vajra, who would remain among the few survivors of the Yadus’ battle with clubs.
38. From Vajra came Pratibahu, whose son was Subahu. Subahu’s son was Santasena, from whom
Satasena was born.
39. No one born in this family was poor in wealth or progeny, short-lived, weak or neglectful of
brahminical culture.
40. The Yadu dynasty produced innumerable great men of famous deeds. Even in tens of thousands of
years, O King, one could never count them all.
41. I have heard from authoritative sources that the Yadu family employed 38,800,000 teachers just to
educate their children.
42. Who can count all the great Yadavas, when among them King Ugrasena alone was accompanied
by an entourage of thirty trillion attendants?
43. The savage descendants of Diti who had been killed in past ages in battles between the demigods
and demons took birth among human beings and arrogantly harassed the general populace.
44. To subdue these demons, Lord Hari told the demigods to descend into the dynasty of Yadu. They
comprised 101 clans, O King.
45. Because Lord Krsna is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the Yadavas accepted Him as their
ultimate authority. And among them, all those who were His intimate associates especially flourished.
46. The Vrsnis were so absorbed in Krsna consciousness that they forgot their own bodies while
sleeping, sitting, walking, conversing, playing, bathing and so on.
47. The heavenly Ganges is a holy place of pilgrimage because her waters wash Lord Krsna’s feet. But
when the Lord descended among the Yadus, His glories eclipsed the Ganges as a holy place. Both
those who hated Krsna and those who loved Him attained eternal forms like His in the spiritual world.
The unattainable and supremely self-satisfied goddess of fortune, for the sake of whose favor everyone
else struggles, belongs to Him alone. His name destroys all inauspiciousness when heard or chanted.
He alone has set forth the principles of the various disciplic successions of sages. What wonder is it that
He, whose personal weapon is the wheel of time, relieved the burden of the earth?
48. Lord Sri Krsna is He who is known as jana-nivasa, the ultimate resort of all living entities, and who is
also known as Devakinandana or Yasoda-nandana, the son of Devaki and Yasoda. He is the guide of
the Yadu dynasty, and with His mighty arms He kills everything inauspicious, as well as every man who
is impious. By His presence He destroys all things inauspicious for all living entities, moving and inert.
His blissful smiling face always increases the lusty desires of the gopis of Vrndavana. May He be all
glorious and happy!
49. To protect the principles of devotional service to Himself, Lord Krsna, the best of the Yadus, accepts
the pastime forms that have been glorified here in the Srimad-Bhagavatam. One who desires to
faithfully serve His lotus feet should hear of the activities He performs in each of these incarnations—
activities that suitably imitate those of the forms He assumes. Hearing narrations of these pastimes
destroys the reactions to fruitive work.
50. By regularly hearing, chanting and meditating on the beautiful topics of Lord Mukunda with ever-
increasing sincerity, a mortal being will attain the divine kingdom of the Lord, where the inviolable power
of death holds no sway. For this purpose, many persons, including great kings, abandoned their
mundane homes and took to the forest.
CANTO ELEVEN
Chapter One The Curse Upon the Yadu Dynasty
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Lord Sri Krsna, accompanied by Balarama and surrounded by the Yadu
dynasty, executed the killing of many demons. Then, further to remove the burden of the earth, the Lord
628 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
arranged for the great Battle of Kuruksetra, which suddenly erupted in violence between the Kurus and
the Pandavas.
2. Because the sons of Pandu were enraged by the numerous offenses of their enemies, such as
duplicitous gambling, verbal insults, the seizing of Draupadi’s hair, and many other cruel transgressions,
the Supreme Lord engaged those Pandavas as the immediate cause to execute His will. On the pretext
of the Battle of Kuruksetra, Lord Krsna arranged for all the kings who were burdening the earth to
assemble with their armies on opposite sides of the battlefield, and when the Lord killed them through
the agency of war, the earth was relieved of its burden.
3. The Supreme Personality of Godhead used the Yadu dynasty, which was protected by His own
arms, to eliminate the kings who with their armies had been the burden of this earth. Then the
unfathomable Lord thought to Himself, “Although some may say that the earth’s burden is now gone, in
My opinion it is not yet gone, because there still remains the Yadava dynasty itself, whose strength is
unbearable for the earth.”
4. Lord Krsna thought, “No outside force could ever bring about the defeat of this family, the Yadu
dynasty, whose members have always been fully surrendered to Me and are unrestricted in their
opulence. But if I inspire a quarrel within the dynasty, that quarrel will act just like a fire created from the
friction of bamboo in a grove, and then I shall achieve My real purpose and return to My eternal abode.”
5. My dear King Pariksit, when the supreme almighty Lord, whose desire always comes to pass, had
thus made up His mind, He withdrew His own family on the pretext of a curse spoken by an assembly of
brahmanas.
6-7. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Krsna, is the reservoir of all beauty. All beautiful things
emanate from Him, and His personal form is so attractive that it steals the eyes away from all other
objects, which then seem devoid of beauty in comparison to Him. When Lord Krsna was on the earth,
He attracted the eyes of all people. When Krsna spoke, His words attracted the minds of all who
remembered them. By seeing the footsteps of Lord Krsna, people became attracted to Him, and thus
they wanted to offer their bodily activities to the Lord as His followers. In this way Krsna very easily
spread His glories, which are sung throughout the world by the most sublime and essential Vedic
verses. Lord Krsna considered that simply by hearing and chanting those glories, conditioned souls
born in the future would cross beyond the darkness of ignorance. Being satisfied with this arrangement,
He left for His desired destination.
8. King Pariksit inquired: How could the brahmanas curse the Vrsnis, who were always respectful to the
brahmanas, charitable, and inclined to serve senior and exalted personalities and whose minds were
always fully absorbed in thought of Lord Krsna?
9. King Pariksit continued inquiring: What was the motive for this curse? What did it consist of, O purest
of the twice-born? And how could such a disagreement have arisen among the Yadus, who all shared
the same goal of life? Please tell me all these things.
10. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The Lord, who bore His body as the amalgamation of everything beautiful,
dutifully executed the most auspicious activities while on the earth, although He was, in fact, without any
endeavor already satisfied in all desires. Residing in His abode and enjoying life, the Lord, whose
glorification is in itself magnanimous, now wanted to annihilate His dynasty, as there still remained
some small part of His duty to be carried out.
11-12. The sages Visvamitra, Asita, Kanva, Durvasa, Bhrgu, Angira, Kasyapa, Vamadeva, Atri and
Vasistha, along with Narada and others, once performed fruitive rituals that award abundant pious
results, bring great happiness and take away the sins of Kali-yuga for the whole world by merely being
recounted. The sages duly executed these rituals in the home of the chief of the Yadus, Vasudeva, the
father of Lord Krsna. After Lord Krsna, who was staying in Vasudeva’s house as time personified,
respectfully sent the sages off at the conclusion of the ceremonies, they went to the holy place called
Pindaraka.
13-15. To that holy place, the young boys of the Yadu dynasty had brought Samba, son of Jambavati,
dressed in woman’s garb. Playfully approaching the great sages gathered there, the boys grabbed hold
of the sages’ feet and impudently asked them with feigned humility, “O learned brahmanas, this black-
eyed pregnant woman has something to ask you. She is too embarrassed to inquire for herself. She is
just about to give birth and is very desirous of having a son. Since all of you are great sages with
infallible vision, please tell us whether her child will be a boy or a girl.”
16. Thus ridiculed by deceit, the sages became angry, O King, and told the boys, ”Fools! She will bear
you an iron club that will destroy your entire dynasty.”
17. Upon hearing the curse of the sages, the terrified boys quickly uncovered the belly of Samba, and
indeed they observed that therein was an iron club.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 629
18. The young men of the Yadu dynasty said, “Oh, what have we done? We are so unfortunate! What
will our family members say to us?” Speaking thus and being very disturbed, they returned to their
homes, taking the club with them.
19. The Yadu boys, the luster of their faces completely faded, brought the club into the royal assembly,
and in the presence of all the Yadavas they told King Ugrasena what had happened.
20. O King Pariksit, when the inhabitants of Dvaraka heard of the infallible curse of the brahmanas and
saw the club, they were astonished and distraught with fear.
21. After having the club ground to bits, King Ahuka [Ugrasena] of the Yadus personally threw the
pieces, along with the remaining lump of iron, into the water of the ocean.
22. A certain fish swallowed the iron lump, and the bits of iron, carried back to the shore by the waves,
implanted themselves there and grew into tall, sharp canes.
23. The fish was caught in the ocean along with other fish in a fishermen’s net. The iron lump in the
fish’s stomach was taken by the hunter Jara, who fixed it as an arrowhead at the end of his shaft.
24. Knowing fully the significance of all these events, the Supreme Lord, though capable of reversing
the brahmanas’ curse, did not wish to do so. Rather, in His form of time, He gladly sanctioned the
events.
Chapter Two Maharaja Nimi Meets the Nine Yogendras
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Eager to engage in the worship of Lord Krsna, O best of the Kurus,
Narada Muni stayed for some time in Dvaraka, which was always protected by the arms of Govinda.
2. My dear King, in the material world the conditioned souls are confronted by death at every step of life.
Therefore, who among the conditioned souls would not render service to the lotus feet of Lord
Mukunda, who is worshipable even for the greatest of liberated souls?
3. One day the sage among the demigods, Narada, came to the house of Vasudeva. After worshiping
Narada with suitable paraphernalia, seating him comfortably and respectfully bowing down to him,
Vasudeva spoke as follows.
4. Sri Vasudeva said: My lord, your visit, like that of a father to his children, is for the benefit of all living
beings. You especially help the most wretched among them, as well as those who are advanced on the
path toward the Supreme Lord, Uttamasloka.
5. The activities of demigods lead to both misery and happiness for living beings, but the activities of
great saints like you, who have accepted the infallible Lord as their very soul, result only in the
happiness of all beings.
6. Those who worship the demigods receive reciprocation from the demigods in a way just
corresponding to the offering. The demigods are attendants of karma, like a person’s shadow, but
sadhus are actually merciful to the fallen.
7. O brahmana, although I am satisfied simply by seeing you, I still wish to inquire about those duties
which give pleasure to the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Any mortal who faithfully hears about
them is freed from all kinds of fear.
8. In a previous birth on this earth, I worshiped the Supreme Lord, Ananta, who alone can award
liberation, but because I desired to have a child, I did not worship Him for liberation. Thus I was
bewildered by the Lord’s illusory energy.
9. My dear lord, you are always true to your vow. Please instruct me clearly, so that by your mercy I
may easily free myself from material existence, which is full of many dangers and keeps us constantly
bound in fear.
10. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, Devarsi Narada was pleased by the questions of the highly
intelligent Vasudeva. Because they suggested the transcendental qualities of the Supreme Personality
of Godhead, they reminded Narada of Lord Krsna. Thus Narada replied to Vasudeva as follows.
11. Sri Narada said: O best of the Satvatas, you have quite correctly asked about the eternal duty of the
living entity toward the Supreme Lord. Such devotional service to the Lord is so potent that its
performance can purify the entire universe.
12. Pure devotional service rendered to the Supreme Lord is spiritually so potent that simply by hearing
about such transcendental service, by chanting its glories in response, by meditating on it, by
respectfully and faithfully accepting it, or by praising the devotional service of others, even persons who
hate the demigods and all other living beings can be immediately purified.
13. Today you have made me remember my Lord, the supremely blissful Personality of Godhead,
Narayana. The Supreme Lord is so auspicious that whoever hears and chants about Him becomes
completely pious.
14. To explain the devotional service of the Lord, sages have related the ancient history of the
conversation between the great soul King Videha and the sons of Rsabha.
15. Svayambhuva Manu had a son named Maharaja Priyavrata, and among Priyavrata’s sons was
Agnidhra. From Agnidhra was born Nabhi, whose son was known as Rsabhadeva.
630 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. Sri Rsabhadeva is accepted as an expansion of the Supreme Lord, Vasudeva. He incarnated in this
world to propagate those religious principles that lead living entities to ultimate liberation. He had one
hundred sons, all perfect in Vedic knowledge.
17. Of the one hundred sons of Lord Rsabhadeva, the eldest, Bharata, was completely devoted to Lord
Narayana. It is because of Bharata’s fame that this planet is now celebrated as the great Bharata-varsa.
18. King Bharata rejected this material world, considering all types of material pleasure temporary and
useless. Leaving his beautiful young wife and family, he worshiped Lord Hari by severe austerities and
attained the abode of the Lord after three lifetimes.
19. Nine of the remaining sons of Rsabhadeva became the rulers of the nine islands of Bharata-varsa,
and they exercised complete sovereignty over this planet. Eighty-one sons became twice-born
brahmanas and helped initiate the Vedic path of fruitive sacrifices [karma-kanda].
20-21. The nine remaining sons of Rsabha were greatly fortunate sages who worked vigorously to
spread knowledge of the Absolute Truth. They wandered about naked and were very well versed in
spiritual science. Their names were Kavi, Havir, Antariksa, Prabuddha, Pippalayana, Avirhotra, Drumila,
Camasa and Karabhajana.
22. These sages wandered the earth seeing the entire universe, with all its gross and subtle objects, as
a manifestation of the Supreme Lord and as nondifferent from the self.
23. The nine Yogendras are liberated souls who travel freely to the planets of the demigods, the
perfected mystics, the Sadhyas, the heavenly musicians, the Yaksas, the human beings, and the minor
demigods such as the Kinnaras and the serpents. No mundane force can check their free movement,
and exactly as they wish they can travel as well to the worlds of the sages, the angels, the ghostly
followers of Lord Siva, the Vidyadharas, the brahmanas and the cows.
24. Once in Ajanabha [the former name of the earth], they came upon the sacrificial performance of the
great soul Maharaja Nimi, which was being carried out under the direction of elevated sages.
25. My dear King, seeing those pure devotees of the Lord, who rival the sun in brilliance, everyone
present—the performer of the sacrifice, the brahmanas and even the sacrificial fires—stood in respect.
26. King Videha [Nimi] understood that the nine sages were exalted devotees of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. Therefore, overjoyed at their auspicious arrival, he offered them suitable sitting
places and worshiped them in a proper way, just as one would worship the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
27. Overwhelmed by transcendental joy, the King humbly bowed his head and then proceeded to
question the nine sages. These nine great souls glowed with their own effulgence and thus appeared
equal to the four Kumaras, the sons of Lord Brahma.
28. King Videha said: I think that you must be direct associates of the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
who is famous as the enemy of the demon Madhu. Indeed, the pure devotees of Lord Visnu wander
throughout the universe not for their personal, selfish interest, but to purify all the conditioned souls.
29. For the conditioned souls, the human body is most difficult to achieve, and it can be lost at any
moment. But I think that even those who have achieved human life rarely gain the association of pure
devotees, who are dear to the Lord of Vaikuntha.
30. Therefore, O completely sinless ones, I ask you to kindly tell me what the supreme good is. After all,
even half a moment’s association with pure devotees within this world of birth and death is a priceless
treasure for any man.
31. Please speak about how one engages in the devotional service of the Supreme Lord, if you
consider me capable of properly hearing these topics. When a living entity offers loving service to the
Supreme Lord, the Lord is immediately satisfied, and in return He will give even His own self to the
surrendered soul.
32. Sri Narada said: O Vasudeva, when Maharaja Nimi had thus inquired from the nine Yogendras
about devotional service to the Lord, those best of saintly persons sincerely thanked the King for his
questions and spoke to him with affection in the presence of the members of the sacrificial assembly
and the brahmana priests.
33. Sri Kavi said: I consider that one whose intelligence is constantly disturbed by his falsely identifying
himself with the temporary material world can achieve real freedom from fear only by worshiping the
lotus feet of the infallible Supreme Lord. In such devotional service, all fear ceases entirely.
34. Even ignorant living entities can very easily come to know the Supreme Lord if they adopt those
means prescribed by the Supreme Lord Himself. The process recommended by the Lord is to be known
as bhagavata-dharma, or devotional service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
35. O King, one who accepts this process of devotional service to the Supreme Personality of Godhead
will never blunder on his path in this world. Even while running with eyes closed, he will never trip or fall.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 631
36. In accordance with the particular nature one has acquired in conditioned life, whatever one does
with body, words, mind, senses, intelligence or purified consciousness one should offer to the Supreme,
thinking, “This is for the pleasure of Lord Narayana.”
37. Fear arises when a living entity misidentifies himself as the material body because of absorption in
the external, illusory energy of the Lord. When the living entity thus turns away from the Supreme Lord,
he also forgets his own constitutional position as a servant of the Lord. This bewildering, fearful
condition is effected by the potency for illusion, called maya. Therefore, an intelligent person should
engage unflinchingly in the unalloyed devotional service of the Lord, under the guidance of a bona fide
spiritual master, whom he should accept as his worshipable deity and as his very life and soul.
38. Although the duality of the material world does not ultimately exist, the conditioned soul experiences
it as real under the influence of his own conditioned intelligence. This imaginary experience of a world
separate from Krsna can be compared to the acts of dreaming and desiring. When the conditioned soul
dreams at night of something desirable or horrible, or when he daydreams of what he would like to have
or avoid, he creates a reality that has no existence beyond his own imagination. The tendency of the
mind is to accept and reject various activities based on sense gratification. Therefore an intelligent
person should control the mind, restricting it from the illusion of seeing things separate from Krsna, and
when the mind is thus controlled he will experience actual fearlessness.
39. An intelligent person who has controlled his mind and conquered fear should give up all attachment
to material objects such as wife, family and nation and should wander freely without embarrassment,
hearing and chanting the holy names of the Lord, the bearer of the chariot wheel. The holy names of
Krsna are all-auspicious because they describe His transcendental birth and activities, which He
performs within this world for the salvation of the conditioned souls. Thus the holy names of the Lord
are sung throughout the world.
40. By chanting the holy name of the Supreme Lord, one comes to the stage of love of Godhead. Then
the devotee is fixed in his vow as an eternal servant of the Lord, and he gradually becomes very much
attached to a particular name and form of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. As his heart melts with
ecstatic love, he laughs very loudly or cries or shouts. Sometimes he sings and dances like a madman,
for he is indifferent to public opinion.
41. A devotee should not see anything as being separate from the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Krsna. Ether, fire, air, water, earth, the sun and other luminaries, all living beings, the directions, trees
and other plants, the rivers and oceans—whatever a devotee experiences he should consider to be an
expansion of Krsna. Thus seeing everything that exists within creation as the body of the Supreme
Lord, Hari, the devotee should offer his sincere respects to the entire expansion of the Lord’s body.
42. Devotion, direct experience of the Supreme Lord, and detachment from other things—these three
occur simultaneously for one who has taken shelter of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, in the
same way that pleasure, nourishment and relief from hunger come simultaneously and increasingly,
with each bite, for a person engaged in eating.
43. My dear King, the devotee who worships the lotus feet of the infallible Personality of Godhead with
constant endeavor thus achieves unflinching devotion, detachment and experienced knowledge of the
Personality of Godhead. In this way the successful devotee of the Lord achieves supreme spiritual
peace.
44. Maharaja Nimi said: Now please tell me in greater detail about the devotees of the Supreme Lord.
What are the natural symptoms by which I can distinguish between the most advanced devotees, those
on the middle level and those who are neophytes? What are the typical religious activities of a
Vaisnava, and how does he speak? Specifically, please describe those symptoms and characteristics
by which Vaisnavas become dear to the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
45. Sri Havir said: The most advanced devotee sees within everything the soul of all souls, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna. Consequently he sees everything in relation to the Supreme Lord
and understands that everything that exists is eternally situated within the Lord.
46. An intermediate or second-class devotee, called madhyama-adhikari, offers his love to the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, is a sincere friend to all the devotees of the Lord, shows mercy to ignorant
people who are innocent and disregards those who are envious of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
47. A devotee who faithfully engages in the worship of the Deity in the temple but does not behave
properly toward other devotees or people in general is called a prakrta-bhakta, a materialistic devotee,
and is considered to be in the lowest position.
48. Even while engaging his senses in contact with their objects, one who sees this whole world as the
energy of Lord Visnu is neither repelled nor elated. He is indeed the greatest among devotees.
49. Within the material world, one’s material body is always subject to birth and decay. Similarly, the life
air [prana] is harassed by hunger and thirst, the mind is always anxious, the intelligence hankers for that
632 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
which cannot be obtained, and all of the senses are ultimately exhausted by constant struggle in the
material nature. A person who is not bewildered by the inevitable miseries of material existence, and
who remains aloof from them simply by remembering the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, is to be considered bhagavata-pradhana, the foremost devotee of the Lord.
50. One who has taken exclusive shelter of the Supreme Lord, Vasudeva, becomes free from fruitive
activities, which are based on material lust. In fact, one who has taken shelter of the lotus feet of the
Lord is freed from even the desire to enjoy material sense gratification. Plans for enjoying sex life, social
prestige and money cannot develop within his mind. Thus he is considered bhagavatottama, a pure
devotee of the Lord on the highest platform.
51. Birth in an aristocratic family and the execution of austere and pious activities certainly cause one to
take pride in himself. Similarly, if one enjoys a prestigious position within society because his parents
are highly respected members of the varnasrama social system, one becomes even more infatuated
with himself. But if despite these excellent material qualifications one does not feel even a tinge of pride
within himself, he is to be considered the dearmost servitor of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
52. When a devotee gives up the selfish conception by which one thinks “This is my property, and that
is his,” and when he is no longer concerned with the pleasures of his own material body or indifferent to
the discomforts of others, he becomes fully peaceful and satisfied. He considers himself simply one
among all the living beings who are equally part and parcel of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
Such a satisfied Vaisnava is considered to be at the highest standard of devotional service.
53. The lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead are sought even by the greatest of demigods,
such as Brahma and Siva, who have all accepted the Supreme Personality of Godhead as their life and
soul. A pure devotee of the Lord can never forget those lotus feet in any circumstance. He will not give
up his shelter at the lotus feet of the Lord for a single moment—indeed, not for half a moment—even in
exchange for the benediction of ruling and enjoying the opulence of the entire universe. Such a devotee
of the Lord is to be considered the best of the Vaisnavas.
54. How can the fire of material suffering continue to burn the hearts of those who worship the Supreme
Lord? The Lord’s lotus feet have performed innumerable heroic deeds, and the beautiful nails on His
toes resemble valuable jewels. The effulgence emanating from those nails resembles cooling
moonshine, for it instantly relieves the suffering within the heart of the pure devotee, just as the
appearance of the moon’s cooling light relieves the burning heat of the sun.
55. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is so kind to the conditioned souls that if they call upon Him
by speaking His holy name, even unintentionally or unwillingly, the Lord is inclined to destroy
innumerable sinful reactions in their hearts. Therefore, when a devotee who has taken shelter of the
Lord’s lotus feet chants the holy name of Krsna with genuine love, the Supreme Personality of Godhead
can never give up the heart of such a devotee. One who has thus captured the Supreme Lord within his
heart is to be known as bhagavata-pradhana, the most exalted devotee of the Lord.
Chapter Three Liberation from the Illusory Energy
1. King Nimi said: Now we wish to learn about the illusory potency of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, Sri Visnu, which bewilders even great mystics. My lords, please speak to us about this
subject.
2. Although I am drinking the nectar of your statements about the glories of the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, my thirst is not yet satiated. Such nectarean descriptions of the Lord and His devotees are
the actual medicine for conditioned souls like me, who are tormented by the threefold miseries of
material existence.
3. Sri Antariksa said: O mighty-armed King, by activating the material elements, the primeval Soul of all
creation has sent forth all living beings in higher and lower species so that these conditioned souls can
cultivate either sense gratification or ultimate liberation, according to their desire.
4. The Supersoul enters the material bodies of the created beings, activates the mind and senses, and
thus causes the conditioned souls to approach the three modes of material nature for sense
gratification.
5. The individual living being, the master of the material body, uses his material senses, which have
been activated by the Supersoul, to try to enjoy sense objects composed of the three modes of nature.
Thus he misidentifies the created material body with the unborn eternal self and becomes entangled in
the illusory energy of the Lord.
6. Impelled by deep-rooted material desires, the embodied living entity engages his active sense organs
in fruitive activities. He then experiences the results of his material actions by wandering throughout this
world in so-called happiness and distress.
7. Thus the conditioned living entity is forced to experience repeated birth and death. Impelled by the
reactions of his own activities, he helplessly wanders from one inauspicious situation to another,
suffering from the moment of creation until the time of cosmic annihilation.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 633
8. When the annihilation of the material elements is imminent, the Supreme Personality of Godhead in
His form of eternal time withdraws the manifest cosmos, consisting of gross and subtle features, and
the entire universe vanishes into nonmanifestation.
9. As cosmic annihilation approaches, a terrible drought takes place on earth for one hundred years.
For one hundred years the heat of the sun gradually increases, and its blazing heat begins to torment
the three worlds.
10. Beginning from Patalaloka, a fire grows, emanating from the mouth of Lord Sankarsana. Its flames
shooting upward, driven by great winds, it scorches everything in all directions.
11. Hoards of clouds called Samvartaka pour torrents of rain for one hundred years. Flooding down in
raindrops as long as the trunk of an elephant, the deadly rainfall submerges the entire universe in water.
12. Then Vairaja Brahma, the soul of the universal form, gives up his universal body, O King, and enters
into the subtle unmanifest nature, like a fire that has run out of fuel.
13. Deprived of its quality of aroma by the wind, the element earth is transformed into water; and water,
deprived of its taste by that same wind, is merged into fire.
14. Fire, deprived of its form by darkness, dissolves into the element air. When the air loses its quality of
touch by the influence of space, the air merges into that space. When space is deprived of its tangible
quality by the Supreme Soul in the form of time, space merges into false ego in the mode of ignorance.
15. My dear King, the material senses and intelligence merge into false ego in the mode of passion,
from which they arose; and the mind, along with the demigods, merges into false ego in the mode of
goodness. Then the total false ego, along with all of its qualities, merges into the mahat-tattva.
16. I have now described maya, the illusory energy of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. This
illusory potency, consisting of the three modes of material nature, is empowered by the Lord for the
creation, maintenance and annihilation of the material universe. Now, what more do you wish to hear?
17. King Nimi said: O great sage, please explain how even a foolish materialist can easily cross over
the illusory energy of the Supreme Lord, which is always insurmountable for those who are not self-
controlled.
18. Sri Prabuddha said: Accepting the roles of male and female in human society, the conditioned souls
unite in sexual relationships. Thus they constantly make material endeavors to eliminate their
unhappiness and unlimitedly increase their pleasure. But one should see that they inevitably achieve
exactly the opposite result. In other words, their happiness inevitably vanishes, and as they grow older
their material discomfort increases.
19. Wealth is a perpetual source of distress, it is most difficult to acquire, and it is virtual death for the
soul. What satisfaction does one actually gain from his wealth? Similarly, how can one gain ultimate or
permanent happiness from one’s so-called home, children, relatives and domestic animals, which are
all maintained by one’s hard-earned money?
20. One cannot find permanent happiness even on the heavenly planets, which one can attain in the
next life by ritualistic ceremonies and sacrifices. Even in material heaven the living entity is disturbed by
rivalry with his equals and envy of those superior to him. And since one’s residence in heaven is
finished with the exhaustion of pious fruitive activities, the denizens of heaven are afflicted by fear,
anticipating the destruction of their heavenly life. Thus they resemble kings who, though enviously
admired by ordinary citizens, are constantly harassed by enemy kings and who therefore never attain
actual happiness.
21. Therefore any person who seriously desires real happiness must seek a bona fide spiritual master
and take shelter of him by initiation. The qualification of the bona fide guru is that he has realized the
conclusions of the scriptures by deliberation and is able to convince others of these conclusions. Such
great personalities, who have taken shelter of the Supreme Godhead, leaving aside all material
considerations, should be understood to be bona fide spiritual masters.
22. Accepting the bona fide spiritual master as one’s life and soul and worshipable deity, the disciple
should learn from him the process of pure devotional service. The Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Hari, the soul of all souls, is inclined to give Himself to His pure devotees. Therefore, the disciple should
learn from the spiritual master to serve the Lord without duplicity and in such a faithful and favorable
way that the Supreme Lord, being satisfied, will offer Himself to the faithful disciple.
23. A sincere disciple should learn to dissociate the mind from everything material and positively
cultivate association with his spiritual master and other saintly devotees. He should be merciful to those
in an inferior position to him, cultivate friendship with those on an equal level and meekly serve those in
a higher spiritual position. Thus he should learn to deal properly with all living beings.
24. To serve the spiritual master the disciple should learn cleanliness, austerity, tolerance, silence,
study of Vedic knowledge, simplicity, celibacy, nonviolence, and equanimity in the face of material
dualities such as heat and cold, happiness and distress.
634 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
25. One should practice meditation by constantly seeing oneself to be an eternal cognizant spirit soul
and seeing the Lord to be the absolute controller of everything. To increase one’s meditation, one
should live in a secluded place and give up false attachment to one’s home and household
paraphernalia. Giving up the decorations of the temporary material body, one should dress himself with
scraps of cloth found in rejected places, or with the bark of trees. In this way one should learn to be
satisfied in any material situation.
26. One should have firm faith that he will achieve all success in life by following those scriptures that
describe the glories of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Bhagavan. At the same time, one should
avoid blaspheming other scriptures. One should rigidly control his mind, speech and bodily activities,
always speak the truth, and bring the mind and senses under full control.
27-28. One should hear, glorify and meditate upon the wonderful transcendental activities of the Lord.
One should specifically become absorbed in the appearance, activities, qualities and holy names of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. Thus inspired, one should perform all of one’s daily activities as an
offering to the Lord. One should perform sacrifice, charity and penance exclusively for the Lord’s
satisfaction. Similarly, one should chant only those mantras which glorify the Supreme Personality of
Godhead. And all one’s religious activities should be performed as an offering to the Lord. Whatever
one finds pleasing or enjoyable he should immediately offer to the Supreme Lord, and even his wife,
children, home and very life air he should offer at the lotus feet of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
29. One who desires his ultimate self-interest should cultivate friendship with those persons who have
accepted Krsna as the Lord of their life. One should further develop an attitude of service toward all
living beings. One should especially try to help those in the human form of life and, among them,
especially those who accept the principles of religious behavior. Among religious persons, one should
especially render service to the pure devotees of the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
30. One should learn how to associate with the devotees of the Lord by gathering with them to chant
the glories of the Lord. This process is most purifying. As devotees thus develop their loving friendship,
they feel mutual happiness and satisfaction. And by thus encouraging one another they are able to give
up material sense gratification, which is the cause of all suffering.
31. The devotees of the Lord constantly discuss the glories of the Personality of Godhead among
themselves. Thus they constantly remember the Lord and remind one another of His qualities and
pastimes. In this way, by their devotion to the principles of bhakti-yoga, the devotees please the
Personality of Godhead, who takes away from them everything inauspicious. Being purified of all
impediments, the devotees awaken to pure love of Godhead, and thus, even within this world, their
spiritualized bodies exhibit symptoms of transcendental ecstasy, such as standing of the bodily hairs on
end.
32. Having achieved love of Godhead, the devotees sometimes cry out loud, absorbed in thought of the
infallible Lord. Sometimes they laugh, feel great pleasure, speak out loud to the Lord, dance or sing.
Such devotees, having transcended material, conditioned life, sometimes imitate the unborn Supreme
by acting out His pastimes. And sometimes, achieving His personal audience, they remain peaceful and
silent.
33. Thus learning the science of devotional service and practically engaging in the devotional service of
the Lord, the devotee comes to the stage of love of Godhead. And by complete devotion to the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Narayana, the devotee easily crosses over the illusory energy, maya,
which is extremely difficult to cross.
34. King Nimi inquired: Please explain to me the transcendental situation of the Supreme Lord,
Narayana, who is Himself the Absolute Truth and the Supersoul of everyone. You can explain this to
me, because you are all most expert in transcendental knowledge.
35. Sri Pippalayana said: The Supreme Personality of Godhead is the cause of the creation,
maintenance and destruction of this universe, yet He has no prior cause. He pervades the various
states of wakefulness, dreaming and unconscious deep sleep and also exists beyond them. By entering
the body of every living being as the Supersoul, He enlivens the body, senses, life airs and mental
activities, and thus all the subtle and gross organs of the body begin their functions. My dear King, know
that Personality of Godhead to be the Supreme.
36. Neither the mind nor the faculties of speech, sight, intelligence, the life air or any of the senses are
capable of penetrating that Supreme Truth, any more than small sparks can affect the original fire from
which they are generated. Not even the authoritative language of the Vedas can perfectly describe the
Supreme Truth, since the Vedas themselves disclaim the possibility that the Truth can be expressed by
words. But through indirect reference the Vedic sound does serve as evidence of the Supreme Truth,
since without the existence of that Supreme Truth the various restrictions found in the Vedas would
have no ultimate purpose.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 635
37. Originally one, the Absolute, Brahman, comes to be known as threefold, manifesting itself as the
three modes of material nature—goodness, passion and ignorance. Brahman further expands its
potency, and thus the power to act and the power of consciousness become manifest, along with the
false ego, which covers the identity of the conditioned living being. Thus, by the expansion of the
multipotencies of the Absolute, the demigods, as the embodiment of knowledge, become manifest,
along with the material senses, their objects, and the results of material activity, namely happiness and
distress. In this way the manifestation of the material world takes place as the subtle cause and as the
material effect visible in the appearance of gross material objects. Brahman, which is the source of all
subtle and gross manifestations, is simultaneously transcendental to them, being absolute.
38. Brahman, the eternal soul, was never born and will never die, nor does it grow or decay. That
spiritual soul is actually the knower of the youth, middle age and death of the material body. Thus the
soul can be understood to be pure consciousness, existing everywhere at all times and never being
destroyed. Just as the life air within the body, although one, becomes manifest as many in contact with
the various material senses, the one soul appears to assume various material designations in contact
with the material body.
39. The spirit soul is born in many different species of life within the material world. Some species are
born from eggs, others from embryos, others from the seeds of plants and trees, and others from
perspiration. But in all species of life the prana, or vital air, remains unchanging and follows the spirit
soul from one body to another. Similarly, the spirit soul is eternally the same despite its material
condition of life. We have practical experience of this. When we are absorbed in deep sleep without
dreaming, the material senses become inactive, and even the mind and false ego are merged into a
dormant condition. But although the senses, mind and false ego are inactive, one remembers upon
waking that he, the soul, was peacefully sleeping.
40. When one seriously engages in the devotional service of the Personality of Godhead, fixing the
Lord’s lotus feet within one’s heart as the only goal of life, one can destroy the innumerable impure
desires lodged within the heart as a result of one’s previous fruitive work within the three modes of
material nature. When the heart is thus purified one can directly perceive both the Supreme Lord and
one’s self as transcendental entities. Thus one becomes perfect in spiritual understanding through
direct experience, just as one can directly experience the sunshine through normal, healthy vision.
41. King Nimi said: O great sages, please speak to us about the process of karma-yoga. Purified by this
process of dedicating one’s practical work to the Supreme, a person can very quickly free himself from
all material activities, even in this life, and thus enjoy pure life on the transcendental platform.
42. Once in the past, in the presence of my father, Maharaja Iksvaku, I placed a similar question before
four great sages who were sons of Lord Brahma. But they did not answer my question. Please explain
the reason for this.
43. Sri Avirhotra replied: Prescribed duties, nonperformance of such duties, and forbidden activities are
topics one can properly understand through authorized study of the Vedic literature. This difficult subject
matter can never be understood by mundane speculation. The authorized Vedic literature is the sound
incarnation of the Personality of Godhead Himself, and thus Vedic knowledge is perfect. Even the
greatest learned scholars are bewildered in their attempts to understand the science of action if they
neglect the authority of Vedic knowledge.
44. Childish and foolish people are attached to materialistic, fruitive activities, although the actual goal of
life is to become free from such activities. Therefore, the Vedic injunctions indirectly lead one to the path
of ultimate liberation by first prescribing fruitive religious activities, just as a father promises his child
candy so that the child will take his medicine.
45. If an ignorant person who has not conquered the material senses does not adhere to the Vedic
injunctions, certainly he will engage in sinful and irreligious activities. Thus his reward will be repeated
birth and death.
46. By executing without attachment the regulated activities prescribed in the Vedas, offering the results
of such work to the Supreme Lord, one attains the perfection of freedom from the bondage of material
work. The material fruitive results offered in the revealed scriptures are not the actual goal of Vedic
knowledge, but are meant for stimulating the interest of the performer.
47. One who desires to quickly cut the knot of false ego, which binds the spirit soul, should worship the
Supreme Lord, Kesava, by the regulations found in Vedic literatures such as the tantras.
48. Having obtained the mercy of his spiritual master, who reveals to the disciple the injunctions of
Vedic scriptures, the devotee should worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead in the particular
personal form of the Lord the devotee finds most attractive.
49. After cleansing oneself, purifying the body by pranayama, bhuta-suddhi and other processes, and
marking the body with sacred tilaka for protection, one should sit in front of the Deity and worship the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
636 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
50-51. The devotee should gather whatever ingredients for worshiping the Deity are available, make
ready the offerings, the ground, his mind and the Deity, sprinkle his sitting place with water for
purification and prepare the bathing water and other paraphernalia. The devotee should then place the
Deity in His proper place, both physically and within his own mind, concentrate his attention, and mark
the Deity’s heart and other parts of the body with tilaka. Then he should offer worship with the
appropriate mantra.
52-53. One should worship the Deity along with each of the limbs of His transcendental body, His
weapons such as the Sudarsana cakra, His other bodily features and His personal associates. One
should worship each of these transcendental aspects of the Lord by its own mantra and with offerings of
water to wash the feet, scented water, water to wash the mouth, water for bathing, fine clothing and
ornaments, fragrant oils, valuable necklaces, unbroken barleycorns, flower garlands, incense and
lamps. Having thus completed the worship in all its aspects in accordance with the prescribed
regulations, one should then honor the Deity of Lord Hari with prayers and offer obeisances to Him by
bowing down.
54. The worshiper should become fully absorbed in meditating upon himself as an eternal servant of the
Lord and should thus perfectly worship the Deity, remembering that the Deity is also situated within his
heart. Then he should take the remnants of the Deity’s paraphernalia, such as flower garlands, upon his
head and respectfully put the Deity back in His own place, thus concluding the worship.
55. Thus the worshiper of the Supreme Lord should recognize that the Personality of Godhead is all-
pervading and should worship Him through His presence in fire, the sun, water and other elements, in
the heart of the guest one receives in one’s home, and also in one’s own heart. In this way the
worshiper will very soon achieve liberation.
Chaptrer Four Drumila Explains the Incarnations of Godhead to King Nimi
1. King Nimi said: The Supreme Personality of Godhead descends into the material world by His
internal potency and according to His own desire. Therefore, please tell us about the various pastimes
Lord Hari has performed in the past, is performing now and will perform in this world in the future in His
various incarnations.
2. Sri Drumila said: Anyone trying to enumerate or describe fully the unlimited qualities of the unlimited
Supreme Lord has the intelligence of a foolish child. Even if a great genius could somehow or other,
after a time-consuming endeavor, count all the particles of dust on the surface of the earth, such a
genius could never count the attractive qualities of the Personality of Godhead, who is the reservoir of
all potencies.
3. When the primeval Lord Narayana created His universal body out of the five elements produced from
Himself and then entered within that universal body by His own plenary portion, He thus became known
as the Purusa.
4. Within His body are elaborately arranged the three planetary systems of this universe. His
transcendental senses generate the knowledge-acquiring and active senses of all embodied beings. His
consciousness generates conditioned knowledge, and His powerful breathing produces the bodily
strength, sensory power and conditioned activities of the embodied souls. He is the prime mover,
through the agency of the material modes of goodness, passion and ignorance. And thus the universe
is created, maintained and annihilated.
5. In the beginning, the original Supreme Personality manifested the form of Brahma through the
material mode of passion in order to create this universe. The Lord manifested His form as Visnu, the
Lord of sacrifice and protector of the twice-born brahmanas and their religious duties, to maintain the
universe. And when the universe is to be annihilated the same Supreme Lord employs the material
mode of ignorance and manifests the form of Rudra The created living beings are thus always subject
to the forces of creation, maintenance and destruction.
6. Nara-Narayana Rsi, who is perfectly peaceful and is the best of sages, was born as the son of
Dharma and his wife Murti, the daughter of Daksa. Nara-Narayana Rsi taught the devotional service of
the Lord, by which material work ceases, and He Himself perfectly practiced this knowledge. He is living
even today, His lotus feet served by the greatest of saintly persons.
7. King Indra became fearful, thinking that Nara-Narayana Rsi would become very powerful by His
severe penances and seize Indra’s heavenly kingdom. Thus Indra, not knowing the transcendental
glories of the incarnation of the Lord, sent Cupid and his associates to the Lord’s residence in
Badarikasrama. As the charming breezes of spring created a most sensuous atmosphere, Cupid
himself attacked the Lord with arrows in the form of the irresistible glances of beautiful women.
8. The primeval Lord, understanding the offense committed by Indra, did not become proud. Instead He
spoke laughingly as follows to Cupid and his followers, who were trembling before Him: “Do not fear, O
mighty Madana, O wind-god and wives of the demigods. Rather, please accept these gifts I am offering
you and kindly sanctify My asrama by your presence.”
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 637
9. My dear King Nimi, when Nara-Narayana Rsi thus spoke, eradicating the fear of the demigods, they
bowed their heads with shame and addressed the Lord as follows, to invoke His compassion: Our dear
Lord, You are always transcendental, beyond the reach of illusion, and therefore You are forever
changeless. Your causeless compassion toward us, despite our great offense, is not at all unusual in
You, since innumerable great sages who are self-satisfied and free from anger and false pride bow
down humbly at Your lotus feet.
10. The demigods place many obstacles on the path of those who worship You to transcend the
temporary abodes of the demigods and reach Your supreme abode. Those who offer the demigods
their assigned shares in sacrificial performances encounter no such obstacles. But because You are the
direct protector of Your devotee, he is able to step over the head of whatever obstacle the demigods
place before him.
11. Some men practice severe penances to cross beyond our influence, which is like an immeasurable
ocean with endless waves of hunger, thirst, heat, cold and the other conditions brought about by the
passing of time, such as the sensuous wind and the urges of the tongue and sex organs. Nevertheless,
although crossing this ocean of sense gratification through severe penances, such persons foolishly
drown in a cow’s hoofprint when conquered by useless anger. Thus they exhaust the benefit of their
difficult austerities in vain.
12. While the demigods were thus praising the Supreme Lord, the all-powerful Lord suddenly
manifested before their eyes many women, who were astonishingly gorgeous, decorated with fine
clothes and ornaments, and all faithfully engaging in the Lord’s service.
13. When the followers of the demigods gazed upon the fascinating mystic beauty of the women
created by Nara-Narayana Rsi and smelled the fragrance of their bodies, the minds of these followers
became bewildered. Indeed, upon seeing the beauty and magnificence of such women, the
representatives of the demigods were completely diminished in their own opulence.
14. The Supreme Lord of lords then smiled slightly and told the representatives of heaven, who were
bowing down before Him, “Please choose one of these women, whomever you find suitable for you.
She will become the ornament of the heavenly planets.”
15. Vibrating the sacred syllable om, the servants of the demigods selected Urvasi, the best of the
Apsaras. Placing her in front of them out of respect, they returned to the heavenly planets.
16. The servants of the demigods reached the assembly of Indra, and thus, while all the residents of the
three heavens listened, they explained to Indra the supreme power of Narayana. When Indra heard of
Nara-Narayana Rsi and became aware of his offense, he was both frightened and astonished.
17. The infallible Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, has descended into this world by His various
partial incarnations such as Lord Hamsa [the swan], Dattatreya, the four Kumaras and our own father,
the mighty Rsabhadeva. By such incarnations, the Lord teaches the science of self-realization for the
benefit of the whole universe. In His appearance as Hayagriva He killed the demon Madhu and thus
brought the Vedas back from the hellish planet Patalaloka.
18. In His appearance as a fish, the Lord protected Satyavrata Manu, the earth and her valuable herbs.
He protected them from the waters of annihilation. As a boar, the Lord killed Hiranyaksa, the son of Diti,
while delivering the earth from the universal waters. And as a tortoise, He lifted Mandara Mountain on
His back so that nectar could be churned from the ocean. The Lord saved the surrendered king of the
elephants, Gajendra, who was suffering terrible distress from the grips of a crocodile.
19. The Lord also delivered the tiny ascetic sages called the Valakhilyas when they fell into the water in
a cow’s hoofprint and Indra was laughing at them. The Lord then saved Indra when Indra was covered
by darkness due to the sinful reaction for killing Vrtrasura. When the wives of the demigods were
trapped in the palace of the demons without any shelter, the Lord saved them. In His incarnation as
Nrsimha, the Lord killed Hiranyakasipu, the king of demons, to free the saintly devotees from fear.
20. The Supreme Lord regularly takes advantage of the wars between the demons and demigods to kill
the leaders of the demons. The Lord thus encourages the demigods by protecting the universe through
His various incarnations during the reigns of each Manu. The Lord also appeared as Vamana and took
the earth away from Bali Maharaja on the plea of begging three steps of land. The Lord then returned
the entire world to the sons of Aditi.
21. Lord Parasurama appeared in the family of Bhrgu as a fire that burned to ashes the dynasty of
Haihaya. Thus Lord Parasurama rid the earth of all ksatriyas twenty-one times. The same Lord
appeared as Ramacandra, the husband of Sitadevi, and thus He killed the ten-headed Ravana, along
with all the soldiers of Lanka. May that Sri Rama, whose glories destroy the contamination of the world,
be always victorious.
22. To diminish the burden of the earth, the unborn Lord will take birth in the Yadu dynasty and perform
feats impossible even for the demigods. Propounding speculative philosophy, the Lord, as Buddha, will
638 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
bewilder the unworthy performers of Vedic sacrifices. And as Kalki the Lord will kill all the low-class men
posing as rulers at the end of the age of Kali.
23. O mighty-armed King, there are innumerable appearances and activities of the Supreme Lord of the
universe similar to those I have already mentioned. In fact, the glories of the Supreme Lord are
unlimited.
Chapter Five Narada Concludes His Teachings to Vasudeva
1. King Nimi further inquired: My dear Yogendras, all of you are most perfect in knowledge of the
science of the self. Therefore, kindly explain to me the destination of those who for the most part never
worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, who are unable to quench their material desires
and who are not in control of their own selves.
2. Sri Camasa said: Each of the four social orders, headed by the brahmanas, was born through
different combinations of the modes of nature, from the face, arms, thighs and feet of the Supreme Lord
in His universal form. Thus the four spiritual orders were also generated.
3. If any of the members of the four varnas and four asramas fail to worship or intentionally disrespect
the Personality of Godhead, who is the source of their own creation, they will fall down from their
position into a hellish state of life.
4. There are many persons who have little opportunity to take part in discussions about the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Hari, and thus it is difficult for them to chant His infallible glories. Persons such
as women, sudras and other fallen classes always deserve the mercy of great personalities like
yourself.
5. On the other hand, brahmanas, members of the royal order and vaisyas, even after being allowed to
approach the lotus feet of the Supreme Lord, Hari, by receiving the second birth of Vedic initiation, can
become bewildered and adopt various materialistic philosophies.
6. Ignorant of the art of work, such arrogantly proud fools, enchanted and enlivened by the sweet words
of the Vedas, pose as learned authorities and offer flattering entreaties to the demigods.
7. Due to the influence of the mode of passion, the materialistic followers of the Vedas become subject
to violent desires and are excessively lusty. Their anger is like that of a snake. Deceitful, overly proud,
and sinful in their behavior, they mock the devotees who are dear to Lord Acyuta.
8. The materialistic followers of Vedic rituals, giving up the worship of the Lord, instead practically
worship their wives, and thus their homes become dedicated to sex life. Such materialistic householders
encourage one another in such whimsical behavior. Understanding ritualistic sacrifice as a necessary
item for bodily maintenance, they perform unauthorized ceremonies in which there is no distribution of
foodstuffs or charity to the brahmanas and other respectable persons. Instead, they cruelly slaughter
animals such as goats without any understanding of the dark consequences of their activities.
9. The intelligence of cruel-minded persons is blinded by false pride based on great wealth, opulence,
prestigious family connections, education, renunciation, personal beauty, physical strength and
successful performance of Vedic rituals. Being intoxicated with this false pride, such cruel persons
blaspheme the Supreme Personality of Godhead and His devotees.
10. The Personality of Godhead is eternally situated within the heart of every embodied being; still the
Lord remains situated apart, just as the sky, which is all-pervading, does not mix with any material
object. Thus the Lord is the supreme worshipable object and the absolute controller of everything. He is
elaborately glorified in the Vedic literature, but those who are bereft of intelligence do not like to hear
about Him. They prefer to waste their time discussing their own mental concoctions, which inevitably
deal with gross material sense gratification such as sex life and meat-eating.
11. In this material world the conditioned soul is always inclined to sex, meat-eating and intoxication.
Therefore religious scriptures never actually encourage such activities. Although the scriptural
injunctions provide for sex through sacred marriage, for meat-eating through sacrificial offerings and for
intoxication through the acceptance of ritual cups of wine, such ceremonies are meant for the ultimate
purpose of renunciation.
12. The only proper fruit of acquired wealth is religiosity, on the basis of which one can acquire a
philosophical understanding of life that eventually matures into direct perception of the Absolute Truth
and thus liberation from all suffering. Materialistic persons, however, utilize their wealth simply for the
advancement of their family situation. They fail to see that insurmountable death will soon destroy the
frail material body.
13. According to the Vedic injunctions, when wine is offered in sacrificial ceremonies it is later to be
consumed by smelling, and not by drinking. Similarly, the sacrificial offering of animals is permitted, but
there is no provision for wide-scale animal slaughter. Religious sex life is also permitted, but only in
marriage for begetting children, and not for sensuous exploitation of the body. Unfortunately, however,
the less intelligent materialists cannot understand that their duties in life should be performed purely on
the spiritual platform.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 639
14. Those sinful persons who are ignorant of actual religious principles, yet consider themselves to be
completely pious, without compunction commit violence against innocent animals who are fully trusting
in them. In their next lives, such sinful persons will be eaten by the same creatures they have killed in
this world.
15. The conditioned souls become completely bound in affection to their own corpselike material bodies
and their relatives and paraphernalia. In such a proud and foolish condition, the conditioned souls envy
other living entities as well as the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, who resides in the heart of all
beings. Thus enviously offending others, the conditioned souls gradually fall down into hell.
16. Those who have not achieved knowledge of the Absolute Truth, yet who are still beyond the
darkness of complete ignorance, generally follow the threefold path of pious material life, namely
religiosity, economic development and sense gratification. Not having time to reflect on any higher
purpose, they become the killers of their own soul.
17. The killers of the soul are never peaceful, because they consider that human intelligence is
ultimately meant for expanding material life. Thus neglecting their real, spiritual duties, they are always
in distress. They are filled with great hopes and dreams, but unfortunately these are always destroyed
by the inevitable march of time.
18. Those who have turned away from the Supreme Lord, Vasudeva, being under the spell of the Lord’s
illusory energy, are eventually forced to give up their so-called homes, children, friends, wives and
lovers, which were all created by the illusory potency of the Supreme Lord, and enter against their will
into the darkest regions of the universe.
19. King Nimi inquired: In what colors and forms does the Supreme Personality of Godhead appear in
each of the different ages, and with what names and by what types of regulative principles is the Lord
worshiped in human society?
20. Sri Karabhajana replied: In each of the four yugas, or ages—Krta, Treta, Dvapara and Kali—Lord
Kesava appears with various complexions, names and forms and is thus worshiped by various
processes.
21. In Satya-yuga the Lord is white and four-armed, has matted locks and wears a garment of tree bark.
He carries a black deerskin, a sacred thread, prayer beads and the rod and waterpot of a brahmacari.
22. People in Satya-yuga are peaceful, nonenvious, friendly to every creature and steady in all
situations. They worship the Supreme Personality by austere meditation and by internal and external
sense control.
23. In Satya-yuga the Lord is glorified by the names Hansa, Suparna, Vaikuntha, Dharma, Yogesvara,
Amala, Isvara, Purusa, Avyakta and Paramatma.
24. In Treta-yuga the Lord appears with a red complexion. He has four arms, golden hair, and wears a
triple belt representing initiation into each of the three Vedas. Embodying the knowledge of worship by
sacrificial performance, which is contained in the Rg, Sama and Yajur Vedas, His symbols are the ladle,
spoon and other implements of sacrifice.
25. In Treta-yuga, those members of human society who are fixed in religiosity and are sincerely
interested in achieving the Absolute Truth worship Lord Hari, who contains within Himself all the
demigods. The Lord is worshiped by the rituals of sacrifice taught in the three Vedas.
26. In Treta-yuga the Lord is glorified by the names Visnu, Yajna, Prsnigarbha, Sarvadeva, Urukrama,
Vrsakapi, Jayanta and Urugaya.
27. In Dvapara-yuga the Supreme Personality of Godhead appears with a dark blue complexion,
wearing yellow garments. The Lord’s transcendental body is marked in this incarnation with Srivatsa
and other distinctive ornaments, and He manifests His personal weapons.
28. My dear King, in Dvapara-yuga men who desire to know the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who
is the supreme enjoyer, worship Him in the mood of honoring a great king, following the prescriptions of
both the Vedas and tantras.
29-30. ”Obeisances to You, O Supreme Lord Vasudeva, and to Your forms of Sankarsana, Pradyumna
and Aniruddha. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, all obeisances unto You. O Lord Narayana Rsi, O
creator of the universe, best of personalities, master of this cosmos and original form of the universe, O
Supersoul of all created entities, all homage unto You.”
31. O King, in this way people in Dvapara-yuga glorified the Lord of the universe. In Kali-yuga also
people worship the Supreme Personality of Godhead by following various regulations of the revealed
scriptures. Now kindly hear of this from me.
32. In the age of Kali, intelligent persons perform congregational chanting to worship the incarnation of
Godhead who constantly sings the names of Krsna. Although His complexion is not blackish, He is
Krsna Himself. He is accompanied by His associates, servants, weapons and confidential companions.
33. My dear Lord, You are the Maha-purusa, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and I worship Your
lotus feet, which are the only eternal object of meditation. Those feet destroy the embarrassing
640 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
conditions of material life and freely award the greatest desire of the soul, the attainment of pure love of
Godhead. My dear Lord, Your lotus feet are the shelter of all holy places and of all saintly authorities in
the line of devotional service and are honored by powerful demigods like Lord Siva and Lord Brahma.
My Lord, You are so kind that You willingly protect all those who simply bow down to You with respect,
and thus You mercifully relieve all the distress of Your servants. In conclusion, my Lord, Your lotus feet
are actually the suitable boat for crossing over the ocean of birth and death, and therefore even Lord
Brahma and Lord Siva seek shelter at Your lotus feet.”
34. O Maha-purusa, I worship Your lotus feet. You gave up the association of the goddess of fortune
and all her opulence, which is most difficult to renounce and is hankered after by even the great
demigods. Being the most faithful follower of the path of religion, You thus left for the forest in
obedience to a brahmana’s curse. Out of sheer mercifulness You chased after the fallen conditioned
souls, who are always in pursuit of the false enjoyment of illusion, and at the same time engaged in
searching out Your own desired object, Lord Syamasundara.
35. Thus, O King, the Supreme Lord Hari is the giver of all desirable benefits of life. Intelligent human
beings worship the particular forms and names that the Lord manifests in different ages.
36. Those who are actually advanced in knowledge are able to appreciate the essential value of this
age of Kali. Such enlightened persons worship Kali-yuga because in this fallen age all perfection of life
can easily be achieved by the performance of sankirtana.
37. Indeed, there is no higher possible gain for embodied souls forced to wander throughout the
material world than the Supreme Lord’s sankirtana movement, by which one can attain the supreme
peace and free oneself from the cycle of repeated birth and death.
38-40. My dear King, the inhabitants of Satya-yuga and other ages eagerly desire to take birth in this
age of Kali, since in this age there will be many devotees of the Supreme Lord, Narayana. These
devotees will appear in various places but will be especially numerous in South India. O master of men,
in the age of Kali those persons who drink the waters of the holy rivers of Dravida-desa, such as the
Tamraparni, Krtamala, Payasvini, the extremely pious Kaveri and the Pratici Mahanadi, will almost all
be purehearted devotees of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva.
41. O King, one who has given up all material duties and has taken full shelter of the lotus feet of
Mukunda, who offers shelter to all, is not indebted to the demigods, great sages, ordinary living beings,
relatives, friends, mankind or even one’s forefathers who have passed away. Since all such classes of
living entities are part and parcel of the Supreme Lord, one who has surrendered to the Lord’s service
has no need to serve such persons separately.
42. One who has thus given up all other engagements and has taken full shelter at the lotus feet of Hari,
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is very dear to the Lord. Indeed, if such a surrendered soul
accidentally commits some sinful activity, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is seated within
everyone’s heart, immediately takes away the reaction to such sin.
43. Narada Muni said: Having thus heard the science of devotional service, Nimi, the King of Mithila, felt
extremely satisfied and, along with the sacrificial priests, offered respectful worship to the sagacious
sons of Jayanti.
44. The perfect sages then disappeared before the eyes of everyone present. King Nimi faithfully
practiced the principles of spiritual life he had learned from them, and thus he achieved the supreme
goal of life.
45. O greatly fortunate Vasudeva, simply apply with faith these principles of devotional service which
you have heard, and thus, being free from material association, you will attain the Supreme.
46. Indeed, the whole world has become filled with the glories of you and your good wife because the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Hari, has taken the position of your son.
47. My dear Vasudeva, you and your good wife Devaki have manifested great transcendental love for
Krsna, accepting Him as your son. Indeed, you are always seeing the Lord, embracing Him, speaking
with Him, resting with Him, sitting together with Him and taking your meals with Him. By such
affectionate and intimate association with the Lord, undoubtedly both of you have completely purified
your hearts. In other words, you are already perfect.
48. Inimical kings like Sisupala, Paundraka and Salva were always thinking about Lord Krsna. Even
while they were lying down, sitting or engaging in other activities, they enviously meditated upon the
bodily movements of the Lord, His sporting pastimes, His loving glances upon His devotees, and other
attractive features displayed by the Lord. Being thus always absorbed in Krsna, they achieved spiritual
liberation in the Lord’s own abode. What then can be said of the benedictions offered to those who
constantly fix their minds on Lord Krsna in a favorable, loving mood?
49. Do not think of Krsna as an ordinary child, because He is the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
inexhaustible and the Soul of all beings. The Lord has concealed His inconceivable opulences and is
thus outwardly appearing to be an ordinary human being.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 641
50. The Supreme Personality of Godhead descended to kill the demoniac kings who were the burden of
the earth and to protect the saintly devotees. However, both the demons and the devotees are awarded
liberation by the Lord’s mercy. Thus, His transcendental fame has spread throughout the universe.
51. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: Having heard this narration, the greatly fortunate Vasudeva was
completely struck with wonder. Thus he and his most blessed wife Devaki gave up all illusion and
anxiety that had entered their hearts.
52. Anyone who meditates on this pious historical narration with fixed attention will purify himself of all
contamination in this very life and thus achieve the highest spiritual perfection.
Chapter Six The Yadu Dynasty Retires to Prabhasa
1. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Lord Brahma then set off for Dvaraka, accompanied by his own sons as
well as by the demigods and the great Prajapatis. Lord Siva, the bestower of auspiciousness to all living
beings, also went, surrounded by many ghostly creatures.
2-4. The powerful Lord Indra, along with the Maruts, Adityas, Vasus, Asvinis, Rbhus, Angiras, Rudras,
Visvedevas, Sadhyas, Gandharvas, Apsaras, Nagas, Siddhas, Caranas, Guhyakas, the great sages
and forefathers and the Vidyadharas and Kinnaras, arrived at the city of Dvaraka, hoping to see Lord
Krsna. By His transcendental form, Krsna, the Supreme Lord, enchanted all human beings and spread
His own fame throughout the worlds. The Lord’s glories destroy all contamination within the universe.
5. In that resplendent city of Dvaraka, rich with all superior opulences, the demigods beheld with
unsatiated eyes the wonderful form of Sri Krsna.
6. The demigods covered the Supreme Lord of the universe with flower garlands brought from the
gardens of heaven. Then they praised Him, the best of the Yadu dynasty, with statements containing
charming words and ideas.
7. The demigods began to speak: Our dear Lord, advanced mystie yogis, striving for liberation from the
severe bondage of material work, meditate with great devotion upon Your lotus feet within their hearts.
Dedicating our intelligence, senses, vital air, mind and power of speech to Your Lordship, we demigods
bow down at Your lotus feet.
8. O unconquerable Lord, You engage Your illusory energy, composed of three modes, to unleash,
maintain and devastate the inconceivable manifest cosmos, all within Your own self. As the supreme
superintendent of maya, You appear to be situated in the interaction of the modes of nature; however,
You are never affected by material activities. In fact, You are directly engaged in Your own eternal,
spiritual bliss, and thus You cannot be accused of any material infection.
9. O greatest of all, those whose consciousness is polluted by illusion cannot purify themselves merely
by ordinary worship, study of the Vedas, charity, austerity and ritual activities. Our Lord, those pure
souls who have developed a powerful transcendental faith in Your glories achieve a purified state of
existence that can never be attained by those lacking such faith.
10. Great sages, desiring the highest benefit in life, always cherish Your lotus feet within their hearts,
which are melted by love for You. Similarly, Your self-controlled devotees, desiring to cross beyond the
material kingdom of heaven to achieve opulence equal to Yours, worship Your lotus feet in the morning,
at noon and in the evening. Thus, they meditate upon Your Lordship in Your quadruple expansion. Your
lotus feet are just like a blazing fire that burns to ashes all the inauspicious desires for material sense
gratification.
11. Those about to offer oblations into the fire of sacrifice in accordance with the Rg, Yajur and Sama
Vedas meditate on Your lotus feet. Similarly, the practitioners of transcendental yoga meditate upon
Your lotus feet, hoping for knowledge about Your divine mystic potency, and the most elevated pure
devotees perfectly worship Your lotus feet, desiring to cross beyond Your illusory potency.
12. O almighty Lord, You are so kind to Your servants that You have accepted the withered flower
garland that we have placed on Your chest. Since the goddess of fortune makes her abode on Your
transcendental chest, she will undoubtedly become agitated, like a jealous co-wife, upon seeing our
offering also dwelling there. Yet You are so merciful that You neglect Your eternal consort Laksmi and
accept our offering as most excellent worship. O merciful Lord, may Your lotus feet always act as a
blazing fire to consume the inauspicious desires within our hearts.
13. O omnipotent Lord, in Your incarnation as Trivikrama, You raised Your leg like a flagpole to break
the shell of the universe, allowing the holy Ganges to flow down, like a banner of victory, in three
branches throughout the three planetary systems. By three mighty steps of Your lotus feet, Your
Lordship captured Bali Maharaja, along with his universal kingdom. Your lotus feet inspire fear in the
demons by driving them down to hell and fearlessness among Your devotees by elevating them to the
perfection of heavenly life. We are sincerely trying to worship You, our Lord; therefore may Your lotus
feet kindly free us from all of our sinful reactions.
14. You are the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the transcendental entity who is superior to both
material nature and the enjoyer of nature. May Your lotus feet bestow transcendental pleasure upon us.
642 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
All of the great demigods, beginning with Brahma, are embodied living entities. Struggling painfully with
one another under the strict control of Your time factor, they are just like bulls dragged by ropes tied
through their pierced noses.
15. You are the cause of the creation, maintenance and destruction of this universe. As time, You
regulate the subtle and manifest states of material nature and control every living being. As the
threefold wheel of time You diminish all things by Your imperceptible actions, and thus You are the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
16. My dear Lord, the original purusa-avatara, Maha-Visnu, acquires His creative potency from You.
Thus with infallible energy He impregnates material nature, producing the mahat-tattva. Then the
mahat-tattva, the amalgamated material energy, endowed with the potency of the Lord, produces from
itself the primeval golden egg of the universe, which is covered by various layers of material elements.
17. O Lord, You are the supreme creator of this universe and the ultimate controller of all moving and
nonmoving living entities. You are Hrsikesa, the supreme controller of all sensory activity, and thus You
never become contaminated or entangled in the course of Your supervision of the infinite sensory
activities within the material creation. On the other hand, other living entities, even yogis and
philosophers, are disturbed and frightened simply by remembering the material objects that they have
supposedly renounced in their pursuit of enlightenment.
18. My Lord, You are living with sixteen thousand exquisitely beautiful, aristocratic wives. By their
irresistible coy and smiling glances and by their lovely arching eyebrows, they send You messages of
eager conjugal love. But they are completely unable to disturb the mind and senses of Your Lordship.
19. The nectar-bearing rivers of discussions about You, and also the holy rivers generated from the
bathing of Your lotus feet, are able to destroy all contamination within the three worlds. Those who are
striving for purification associate with the holy narrations of Your glories by hearing them with their ears,
and they associate with the holy rivers flowing from Your lotus feet by physically bathing in them.
20. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami continued: After Brahma, along with Lord Siva and the other demigods, thus
offered prayers to the Supreme Lord, Govinda, Lord Brahma situated himself in the sky and addressed
the Lord as follows.
21. Lord Brahma said: My dear Lord, previously we requested You to remove the burden of the earth. O
unlimited Personality of Godhead, that request has certainly been fulfilled.
22. My Lord, You have reestablished the principles of religion among pious men who are always firmly
bound to the truth. You have also distributed Your glories all over the world, and thus the whole world
can be purified by hearing about You.
23. Descending into the dynasty of King Yadu, You have manifested Your unique transcendental form,
and for the benefit of the entire universe You have executed magnanimous transcendental activities.
24. My dear Lord, those pious and saintly persons who in the age of Kali hear about Your
transcendental activities and also glorify them will easily cross over the darkness of the age.
25. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, O my Lord, You have descended into the Yadu dynasty, and
thus You have spent one hundred twenty-five autumns with Your devotees.
26-27. My dear Lord, there is nothing remaining at this time for Your Lordship to do on behalf of the
demigods. You have already withdrawn Your dynasty by the curse of the brahmanas. O Lord, You are
the basis of everything, and if You so desire, kindly return now to Your own abode in the spiritual world.
At the same time, we humbly beg that You always protect us. We are Your humble servants, and on
Your behalf we are managing the universal situation. We, along with our planets and followers, require
Your constant protection.
28. The Supreme Lord said: O lord of the demigods, Brahma, I understand your prayers and request.
Having removed the burden of the earth, I have executed everything that was required on your behalf.
29. That very Yadava dynasty in which I appeared became greatly magnified in opulence, especially in
their physical strength and courage, to the extent that they threatened to devour the whole world.
Therefore I have stopped them, just as the shore holds back the great ocean.
30. If I were to leave this world without withdrawing the overly proud members of the Yadu dynasty, the
whole world would be destroyed by the deluge of their unlimited expansion.
31. Now due to the brahmana’s curse, the annihilation of My family has already begun. O sinless
Brahma, when this annihilation is finished and I am enroute to Vaikuntha, I will pay a small visit to your
abode.
32. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus addressed by the Lord of the universe, the self-born Brahma fell
down in obeisances at the lotus feet of the Lord. Surrounded by all the demigods, the great Brahma
then returned to his personal abode.
33. Thereafter, the Personality of Godhead observed that tremendous disturbances were taking place in
the holy city of Dvaraka. Thus the Lord spoke to the assembled senior members of the Yadu dynasty as
follows.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 643
34. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Our dynasty has been cursed by the brahmanas. Such
a curse is impossible to counteract, and thus great disturbances are appearing everywhere around us.
35. My dear respected elders, we must not remain any longer in this place if we wish to keep our lives
intact. Let us go this very day to the most pious place Prabhasa. We have no time to delay.
36. Once, the moon was afflicted with consumption because of the curse of Daksa, but just by taking
bath at Prabhasa-ksetra, the moon was immediately freed from his sinful reaction and again resumed
the waxing of his phases.
37-38. By bathing at Prabhasa-ksetra, by offering sacrifice there to placate the forefathers and
demigods, by feeding the worshipable brahmanas with various delicious foodstuffs and by bestowing
opulent gifts upon them as the most suitable candidates for charity, we will certainly cross over these
terrible dangers through such acts of charity, just as one can cross over a great ocean in a suitable
boat.
39. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O favorite son of the Kurus, thus advised by the Personality of Godhead,
the Yadavas made up their minds to go to that holy place, Prabhasa-ksetra, and thus yoked their
horses to their chariots.
40-41. My dear King, Uddhava was a constantly faithful follower of Lord Krsna. Upon seeing the
imminent departure of the Yadavas, hearing from them of the Lord’s instructions and taking note of the
fearful omens, he approached the Personality of Godhead in a private place. He bowed down with his
head at the lotus feet of the supreme controller of the universe and with folded hands addressed Him as
follows.
42. Sri Uddhava said: O my Lord, O supreme God among all the demigods, real piety is invoked simply
by hearing and chanting Your transcendental glories. My Lord, it appears that You will now withdraw
Your dynasty, and thus You Yourself will finally give up Your pastimes within this universe. You are the
supreme controller and the master of all mystic power. But although You are fully capable of
counteracting the brahmanas’ curse against Your dynasty, You are not doing so, and Your
disappearance is imminent.
43. O Lord Kesava, my dear master, I cannot tolerate giving up Your lotus feet even for a fraction of a
moment. I urge You to take me along with You to Your own abode.
44. O my dear Krsna, Your pastimes are supremely auspicious for mankind and are an intoxicating
beverage for the ears. Tasting such pastimes, people forget their desires for other things.
45. My dear Lord, You are the Supreme Soul, and thus You are most dear to us. We are Your
devotees, and how can we possibly reject You or live without You even for a moment? Whether we are
lying down, sitting, walking, standing, bathing, enjoying recreation, eating or doing anything else, we are
constantly engaged in Your service.
46. Simply by decorating ourselves with the garlands, fragrant oils, clothes and ornaments that You
have already enjoyed, and by eating the remnants of Your meals, we, Your servants, will indeed
conquer Your illusory energy.
47. Naked sages who seriously endeavor in spiritual practice, who have raised their semen upward,
who are peaceful and sinless members of the renounced order, attain the spiritual abode called
Brahman.
48-49. O greatest of mystics, although we are conditioned souls wandering on the path of fruitive work,
we will certainly cross beyond the darkness of this material world simply by hearing about Your Lordship
in the association of Your devotees. Thus we are always remembering and glorifying the wonderful
things You do and the wonderful things You say. We ecstatically recall Your amorous pastimes with
Your confidential conjugal devotees and how You boldly smile and move about while engaged in such
youthful pastimes. My dear Lord, Your loving pastimes are bewilderingly similar to the activities of
ordinary people within this material world.
50. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King Pariksit, thus addressed, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Krsna, the son of Devaki, began to reply confidentially to His dear, unalloyed servant Uddhava.
Chapter Seven Lord Krsna Instructs Uddhava
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O greatly fortunate Uddhava, you have accurately
revealed My desire to withdraw the Yadu dynasty from the earth and return to My own abode in
Vaikuntha. Thus Lord Brahma, Lord Siva and all other planetary rulers are now praying for Me to
resume My residence in Vaikuntha.
2. Answering the prayer of Lord Brahma, I descended within this world along with My plenary portion,
Lord Baladeva, and performed various activities on behalf of the demigods. I have now completed My
mission here.
3. Now due to the brahmanas’ curse the Yadu dynasty will certainly perish by fighting among
themselves; and on the seventh day from today the ocean will rise up and inundate this city of Dvaraka.
644 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
4. O saintly Uddhava, in the near future I will abandon this earth. Then, being overwhelmed by the age
of Kali, the earth will be bereft of all piety.
5. My dear Uddhava, you should not remain here on the earth once I have abandoned this world. My
dear devotee, you are sinless, but in Kali-yuga the people will be addicted to all types of sinful activities;
therefore do not stay here.
6. Now you should completely give up all attachment to your personal friends and relatives and fix your
mind on Me. Thus being always conscious of Me, you should observe all things with equal vision and
wander throughout the earth.
7. My dear Uddhava, the material universe that you perceive through your mind, speech, eyes, ears
and other senses is an illusory creation that one imagines to be real due to the influence of maya. In
fact, you should know that all of the objects of the material senses are temporary.
8. One whose consciousness is bewildered by illusion perceives many differences in value and
meaning among material objects. Thus one engages constantly on the platform of material good and
evil and is bound by such conceptions. Absorbed in material duality, such a person contemplates the
performance of compulsory duties, nonperformance of such duties and performance of forbidden
activities.
9. Therefore, bringing all your senses under control and thus subduing the mind, you should see the
entire world as situated within the self, who is expanded everywhere, and you should also see this
individual self within Me, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
10. Being fully endowed with conclusive knowledge of the Vedas and having realized the ultimate
purpose of such knowledge in practice, you will be able to perceive the pure self, and thus your mind
will be satisfied. At that time you will become dear to all living beings, headed by the demigods, and you
will never be hampered by any disturbance in life.
11. One who has transcended material good and evil automatically acts in accordance with religious
injunctions and avoids forbidden activities. The self-realized person does this spontaneously, like an
innocent child, and not because he is thinking in terms of material good and evil.
12. One who is the kind well-wisher of all living beings, who is peaceful and firmly fixed in knowledge
and realization, sees Me within all things. Such a person never again falls down into the cycle of birth
and death.
13. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: O King, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Krsna, thus
instructed His pure devotee Uddhava, who was eager to receive knowledge from the Lord. Uddhava
then offered obeisances to the Lord and spoke as follows.
14. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord, You alone award the results of yoga practice, and You are so kind
that by Your own influence You distribute the perfection of yoga to Your devotee. Thus You are the
Supreme Soul who is realized through yoga, and it is You who are the origin of all mystic power. For my
supreme benefit You have explained the procedure for giving up the material world through the process
of sannyasa, or renunciation.
15. My dear Lord, O Supreme Soul, for those whose minds are attached to sense gratification, and
especially for those bereft of devotion unto You, such renunciation of material enjoyment is most difficult
to perform. That is my opinion.
16. O my Lord, I myself am most foolish because my consciousness is merged in the material body and
bodily relations, which are all manufactured by Your illusory energy. Thus I am thinking, “I am this body,
and all of these relatives are mine.” Therefore, my Lord, please instruct Your poor servant. Please tell
me how I can very easily carry out Your instructions.
17. My dear Lord, You are the Absolute Truth, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and You reveal
Yourself to Your devotees. Besides Your Lordship, I do not see anyone who can actually explain perfect
knowledge to me. Such a perfect teacher is not to be found even among the demigods in heaven.
Indeed, all of the demigods, headed by Lord Brahma, are bewildered by Your illusory potency. They are
conditioned souls who accept their own material bodies and bodily expansions to be the highest truth.
18. Therefore, O Lord, feeling weary of material life and tormented by its distresses, I now surrender
unto You because You are the perfect master. You are the unlimited, all-knowing Supreme Personality
of Godhead, whose spiritual abode in Vaikuntha is free from all disturbances. In fact, You are known as
Narayana, the true friend of all living beings.
19. The Supreme Lord replied: Generally those human beings who can expertly analyze the actual
situation of the material world are able to raise themselves beyond the inauspicious life of gross
material gratification.
20. An intelligent person, expert in perceiving the world around him and in applying sound logic, can
achieve real benefit through his own intelligence. Thus sometimes one acts as one’s own instructing
spiritual master.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 645
21. In the human form of life, those who are self-controlled and expert in the spiritual science of
Sankhya can directly see Me along with all of My potencies.
22. In this world there are many kinds of created bodies—some with one leg, others with two, three, four
or more legs, and still others with no legs—but of all these, the human form is actually dear to Me.
23. Although I, the Supreme Lord, can never be captured by ordinary sense perception, those situated
in human life may use their intelligence and other faculties of perception to directly search for Me
through both apparent and indirectly ascertained symptoms.
24. In this regard, sages cite a historical narration concerning the conversation between the greatly
powerful King Yadu and an avadhuta.
25. Maharaja Yadu once observed a certain brahmana avadhuta, who appeared to be quite young and
learned, wandering about fearlessly. Being himself most learned in spiritual science, the King took the
opportunity and inquired from him as follows.
26. Sri Yadu said: O brahmana, I see that you are not engaged in any practical religious activity, and yet
you have acquired a most expert understanding of all things and all people within this world. Kindly tell
me, sir, how did you acquire this extraordinary intelligence, and why are you traveling freely throughout
the world behaving as if you were a child?
27. Generally human beings work hard to cultivate religiosity, economic development, sense
gratification and also knowledge of the soul, and their usual motive is to increase the duration of their
lives, acquire fame and enjoy material opulence.
28. You, however, although capable, learned, expert, handsome and most eloquent, are not engaged in
doing anything, nor do you desire anything; rather, you appear stupefied and maddened as if you were
a ghostly creature.
29. Although all people within the material world are burning in the great forest fire of lust and greed,
you remain free and are not burned by that fire. You are just like an elephant who takes shelter from a
forest fire by standing within the water of the Ganges River,
30. O brahmana, we see that you are devoid of any contact with material enjoyment and that you are
traveling alone, without any companions or family members. Therefore, because we are sincerely
inquiring from you, please tell us the cause of the great ecstasy that you are feeling within yourself.
31. Lord Krsna continued: The intelligent King Yadu, always respectful to the brahmanas, waited with
bowed head as the brahmana, pleased with the King’s attitude, began to reply.
32. The brahmana said: My dear King, with my intelligence I have taken shelter of many spiritual
masters. Having gained transcendental understanding from them, I now wander about the earth in a
liberated condition. Please listen as I describe them to you.
33-35. O King, I have taken shelter of twenty-four gurus, who are the following: the earth, air, sky,
water, fire, moon, sun, pigeon and python; the sea, moth, honeybee, elephant and honey thief; the
deer, the fish, the prostitute Pingala, the kurara bird and the child; and the young girl, arrow maker,
serpent, spider and wasp. My dear King, by studying their activities I have learned the science of the
self.
36. Please listen, O son of Maharaja Yayati, O tiger among men, as I explain to you what I have learned
from each of these gurus.
37. A sober person, even when harassed by other living beings, should understand that his aggressors
are acting helplessly under the control of God, and thus he should never be distracted from progress on
his own path. This rule I have learned from the earth.
38. A saintly person should learn from the mountain to devote all his efforts to the service of others and
to make the welfare of others the sole reason for his existence. Similarly, as the disciple of the tree, he
should learn to dedicate himself to others.
39. A learned sage should take his satisfaction in the simple maintenance of his existence and should
not seek satisfaction through gratifying the material senses. In other words, one should care for the
material body in such a way that one’s higher knowledge is not destroyed and so that one’s speech and
mind are not deviated from self-realization.
40. Even a transcendentalist is surrounded by innumerable material objects, which possess good and
bad qualities. However, one who has transcended material good and evil should not become entangled
even when in contact with the material objects; rather, he should act like the wind.
41. Although a self-realized soul may live in various material bodies while in this world, experiencing
their various qualities and functions, he is never entangled, just as the wind which carries various
aromas does not actually mix with them.
42. A thoughtful sage, even while living within a material body, should understand himself to be pure
spirit soul. Similarly, one should see that the spirit soul enters within all forms of life, both moving and
nonmoving, and that the individual souls are thus all-pervading. The sage should further observe that
the Supreme Personality of Godhead, as the Supersoul, is simultaneously present within all things.
646 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Both the individual soul and the Supersoul can be understood by comparing them to the nature of the
sky: although the sky extends everywhere and everything rests within the sky, the sky does not mix with
anything, nor can it be divided by anything.
43. Although the mighty wind blows clouds and storms across the sky, the sky is never implicated or
affected by these activities. Similarly, the spirit soul is not actually changed or affected by contact with
the material nature. Although the living entity enters within a body made of earth, water and fire, and
although he is impelled by the three modes of nature created by eternal time, his eternal spiritual nature
is never actually affected.
44. O King, a saintly person is just like water because he is free from all contamination, gentle by
nature, and by speaking creates a beautiful vibration like that of flowing water. Just by seeing, touching
or hearing such a saintly person, the living entity is purified, just as one is cleansed by contact with pure
water. Thus a saintly person, just like a holy place, purifies all those who contact him because he
always chants the glories of the Lord.
45. Saintly persons become powerful by execution of austerities. Their consciousness is unshakable
because they do not try to enjoy anything within the material world. Such naturally liberated sages
accept foodstuffs that are offered to them by destiny, and if by chance they happen to eat contaminated
food, they are not affected, just like fire, which burns up contaminated substances that are offered to it.
46. A saintly person, just like fire, sometimes appears in a concealed form and at other times reveals
himself. For the welfare of the conditioned souls who desire real happiness, a saintly person may
accept the worshipable position of spiritual master, and thus like fire he burns to ashes all the past and
future sinful reactions of his worshipers by mercifully accepting their offerings.
47. Just as fire manifests differently in pieces of wood of different sizes and qualities, the omnipotent
Supreme Soul, having entered the bodies of higher and lower life forms created by His own potency,
appears to assume the identity of each.
48. The various phases of one’s material life, beginning with birth and culminating in death, are all
properties of the body and do not affect the soul, just as the apparent waxing and waning of the moon
does not affect the moon itself. Such changes are enforced by the imperceptible movements of time.
49. The flames of a fire appear and disappear at every moment, and yet this creation and destruction is
not noticed by the ordinary observer. Similarly, the mighty waves of time flow constantly, like the
powerful currents of a river, and imperceptibly cause the birth, growth and death of innumerable
material bodies. And yet the soul, who is thus constantly forced to change his position, cannot perceive
the actions of time.
50. Just as the sun evaporates large quantities of water by its potent rays and later returns the water to
the earth in the form of rain, similarly, a saintly person accepts all types of material objects with his
material senses, and at the appropriate time, when the proper person has approached him to request
them, he returns such material objects. Thus, both in accepting and giving up the objects of the senses,
he is not entangled.
51. Even when reflected in various objects, the sun is never divided, nor does it merge into its reflection.
Only those with dull brains would consider the sun in this way. Similarly, although the soul is reflected
through different material bodies, the soul remains undivided and nonmaterial.
52. One should never indulge in excessive affection or concern for anyone or anything; otherwise one
will have to experience great suffering, just like the foolish pigeon.
53. There once was a pigeon who lived in the forest along with his wife. He had built a nest within a tree
and lived there for several years in her company.
54. The two pigeons were very much devoted to their household duties. Their hearts being tied together
by sentimental affection, they were each attracted by the other’s glances, bodily features and states of
mind. Thus, they completely bound each other in affection.
55. Naively trusting in the future, they carried out their acts of resting, sitting, walking, standing,
conversing, playing, eating and so forth as a loving couple among the trees of the forest.
56. Whenever she desired anything, O King, the she-pigeon would flatteringly cajole her husband, and
he in turn would gratify her by faithfully doing whatever she wanted, even with great personal difficulty.
Thus, he could not control his senses in her association.
57. Then the female pigeon experienced her first pregnancy. When the time arrived, the chaste lady
delivered a number of eggs within the nest in the presence of her husband.
58. When the time was ripe, baby pigeons, with tender limbs and feathers created by the inconceivable
potencies of the Lord, were born from those eggs.
59. The two pigeons became most affectionate to their children and took great pleasure in listening to
their awkward chirping, which sounded very sweet to the parents. Thus with love they began to raise
the little birds who were born of them.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 647
60. The parent birds became very joyful by observing the soft wings of their children, their chirping, their
lovely innocent movements around the nest and their attempts to jump up and fly. Seeing their children
happy, the parents were also happy.
61. Their hearts bound to each other by affection, the foolish birds, completely bewildered by the illusory
energy of Lord Visnu, continued to take care of the young offspring who had been born to them.
62. One day the two heads of the family went out to find food for the children. Being very anxious to
feed their offspring properly, they wandered all over the forest for a long time.
63. At that time a certain hunter who happened to be wandering through the forest saw the young
pigeons moving about near their nest. Spreading out his net he captured them all.
64. The pigeon and his wife were always anxious for the maintenance of their children, and they were
wandering in the forest for that purpose. Having obtained proper food, they now returned to their nest.
65. When the lady pigeon caught sight of her own children trapped within the hunter’s net, she was
overwhelmed with anguish, and crying out, she rushed toward them as they cried out to her in return.
66. The lady pigeon had always allowed herself to be bound by the ropes of intense material affection,
and thus her mind was overwhelmed by anguish. Being in the grip of the illusory energy of the Lord, she
completely forgot herself, and rushing forward to her helpless children, she was immediately bound in
the hunter’s net.
67. Seeing his own children, who were more dear to him than life itself, fatally bound in the hunter’s net
along with his dearmost wife, whom he considered equal in every way to himself, the poor male pigeon
began to lament wretchedly.
68. The male pigeon said: Alas, just see how I am now destroyed! I am obviously a great fool, for I did
not properly execute pious activities. I could not satisfy myself, nor could I fulfill the purpose of life. My
dear family, which was the basis of my religiosity, economic development and sense gratification, is
now hopelessly ruined.
69. My wife and I were an ideal match. She always faithfully obeyed me and in fact accepted me as her
worshipable deity. But now, seeing her children lost and her home empty, she has left me behind and
gone to heaven with our saintly children.
70. Now I am a wretched person living in an empty home. My wife is dead; my children are dead. Why
should I possibly want to live? My heart is so pained by separation from my family that life itself has
become simply suffering.
71. As the father pigeon wretchedly stared at his poor children trapped in the net and on the verge of
death, pathetically struggling to free themselves, his mind went blank, and thus he himself fell into the
hunter’s net.
72. The cruel hunter, having fulfilled his desire by capturing the head pigeon, his wife and all of their
children, set off for his own home.
73. In this way, one who is too attached to family life becomes disturbed at heart. Like the pigeon, he
tries to find pleasure in mundane sex attraction. Busily engaged in maintaining his own family, the
miserly person is fated to suffer greatly, along with all his family members.
74. The doors of liberation are opened wide to one who has achieved human life. But if a human being
simply devotes himself to family life like the foolish bird in this story, then he is to be considered as one
who has climbed to a high place
only to trip and fall down.
Chapter Eight The Story of Pingala
1. The saintly brahmana said: O King, the embodied living entity automatically experiences
unhappiness in heaven or hell. Similarly, happiness will also be experienced, even without one’s
seeking it. Therefore a person of intelligent discrimination does not make any endeavor to obtain such
material happiness.
2. Following the example of the python, one should give up material endeavors and accept for one’s
maintenance food that comes of its own accord, whether such food be delicious or tasteless, ample or
meager.
3. If at any time food does not come, then a saintly person should fast for many days without making
endeavor. He should understand that by God’s arrangement he must fast. Thus, following the example
of the python, he should remain peaceful and patient.
4. A saintly person should remain peaceful and materially inactive, maintaining his body without much
endeavor. Even though possessed of full sensual, mental and physical strength, a saintly person should
not become active for material gain but rather should always remain alert to his actual self-interest.
5. A saintly sage is happy and pleasing in his external behavior, whereas internally he is most grave
and thoughtful. Because his knowledge is immeasurable and unlimited he is never disturbed, and thus
in all respects he is like the tranquil waters of the unfathomable and unsurpassable ocean.
648 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
6. During the rainy season the swollen rivers rush into the ocean, and during the dry summer the rivers,
now shallow, severely reduce their supply of water; yet the ocean does not swell up during the rainy
season, nor does it dry up in the hot summer. In the same way, a saintly devotee who has accepted the
Supreme Personality of Godhead as the goal of his life sometimes will receive by providence great
material opulence, and sometimes he will find himself materially destitute. However, such a devotee of
the Lord does not rejoice in a flourishing condition, nor is he morose when poverty-stricken.
7. One who has failed to control his senses immediately feels attraction upon seeing a woman’s form,
which is created by the illusory energy of the Supreme Lord. Indeed, when the woman speaks with
enticing words, smiles coquettishly and moves her body sensuously, his mind is immediately captured,
and thus he falls blindly into the darkness of material existence, just as the moth maddened by the fire
rushes blindly into its flames.
8. A foolish person with no intelligent discrimination is immediately aroused at the sight of a lusty
woman beautifully decorated with golden ornaments, fine clothing and other cosmetic features. Being
eager for sense gratification, such a fool loses all intelligence and is destroyed just like the moth who
rushes into the blazing fire.
9. A saintly person should accept only enough food to keep his body and soul together. He should go
from door to door accepting just a little bit of food from each family. Thus he should practice the
occupation of the honeybee.
10. Just as the honeybee takes nectar from all flowers, big and small, an intelligent human being should
take the essence from all religious scriptures.
11. A saintly person should not think, “This food I will keep to eat tonight and this other food I can save
for tomorrow.” In other words, a saintly person should not store foodstuffs acquired by begging. Rather,
he should use his own hands as his plate and eat whatever fits on them. His only storage container
should be his belly, and whatever conveniently fits into his belly should be his stock of food. Thus one
should not imitate the greedy honeybee who eagerly collects more and more honey.
12. A saintly mendicant should not even collect foodstuffs to eat later in the same day or the next day. If
he disregards this injunction and like the honeybee collects more and more delicious foodstuffs, that
which he has collected will indeed ruin him.
13. A saintly person should never touch a young girl. In fact, he should not even let his foot touch a
wooden doll in the shape of a woman. By bodily contact with a woman he will surely be captured by
illusion, just as the elephant is captured by the she-elephant due to his desire to touch her body.
14. A man possessing intelligent discrimination should not under any circumstances try to exploit the
beautiful form of a woman for his sense gratification. Just as an elephant trying to enjoy a she-elephant
is killed by other bull elephants also enjoying her company, one trying to enjoy a lady’s company can at
any moment be killed by her other lovers who are stronger than he.
15. A greedy person accumulates a large quantity of money with great struggle and pain, but the person
who has struggled so much to acquire this wealth is not always allowed to enjoy it himself or give it in
charity to others. The greedy man is like the bee who struggles to produce a large quantity of honey,
which is then stolen by a man who will enjoy it personally or sell it to others. No matter how carefully
one hides his hard-earned wealth or tries to protect it, there are those who are expert in detecting the
whereabouts of valuable things, and they will steal it.
16. Just as a hunter takes away the honey laboriously produced by the honeybees, similarly, saintly
mendicants such as brahmacaris and sannyasis are entitled to enjoy the property painstakingly
accumulated by householders dedicated to family enjoyment.
17. A saintly person dwelling in the forest in the renounced order of life should never listen to songs or
music promoting material enjoyment. Rather, a saintly person should carefully study the example of the
deer, who is bewildered by the sweet music of the hunter’s horn and is thus captured and killed.
18. Becoming attracted to the worldly singing, dancing and musical entertainment of beautiful women,
even the great sage Rsyasrnga, the son of Mrgi, fell totally under their control, just like a pet animal.
19. Just as a fish, incited by the desire to enjoy his tongue, is fatally trapped on the fisherman’s hook,
similarly, a foolish person is bewildered by the extremely disturbing urges of the tongue and thus is
ruined.
20. By fasting, learned men quickly bring all of the senses except the tongue under control, because by
abstaining from eating such men are afflicted with an increased desire to gratify the sense of taste.
21. Although one may conquer all of the other senses, as long as the tongue is not conquered it cannot
be said that one has controlled his senses. However, if one is able to control the tongue, then one is
understood to be in full control of all the senses.
22. O son of kings, previously in the city of Videha there dwelled a prostitute named Pingala. Now
please hear what I have learned from that lady.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 649
23. Once that prostitute, desiring to bring a lover into her house, stood outside in the doorway at night
showing her beautiful form.
24. O best among men, this prostitute was very anxious to get money, and as she stood on the street at
night she studied all the men who were passing by, thinking, “Oh, this one surely has money. I know he
can pay the price, and I am sure he would enjoy my company very much.” Thus she thought about all
the men on the street.
25-26. As the prostitute Pingala stood in the doorway, many men came and went, walking by her
house. Her only means of sustenance was prostitution, and therefore she anxiously thought, “Maybe
this one who is coming now is very rich...Oh, he is not stopping, but I am sure someone else will come.
Surely this man who is coming now will want to pay me for my love, and he will probably give lots of
money.” Thus, with vain hope, she remained leaning against the doorway, unable to finish her business
and go to sleep. Out of anxiety she would sometimes walk out toward the street, and sometimes she
went back into her house. In this way, the midnight hour gradually arrived.
27. As the night wore on, the prostitute, who intensely desired money, gradually became morose, and
her face dried up. Thus being filled with anxiety for money and most disappointed, she began to feel a
great detachment from her situation, and happiness arose in her mind.
28. The prostitute felt disgusted with her material situation and thus became indifferent to it. Indeed,
detachment acts like a sword, cutting to pieces the binding network of material hopes and desires. Now
please hear from me the song sung by the prostitute in that situation.
29. O King, just as a human being who is bereft of spiritual knowledge never desires to give up his false
sense of proprietorship over many material things, similarly, a person who has not developed
detachment never desires to give up the bondage of the material body.
30. The prostitute Pingala said: Just see how greatly illusioned I am ! Because I cannot control my
mind, just like a fool I desire lusty pleasure from an insignificant man.
31. I am such a fool that I have given up the service of that person who, being eternally situated within
my heart, is actually most dear to me. That most dear one is the Lord of the universe, who is the
bestower of real love and happiness and the source of all prosperity. Although He is in my own heart, I
have completely neglected Him. Instead I have ignorantly served insignificant men who can never
satisfy my real desires and who have simply brought me unhappiness, fear, anxiety, lamentation and
illusion.
32. Oh, how I have uselessly tortured my own soul! I have sold my body to lusty, greedy men who are
themselves objects of pity. Thus practicing the most abominable profession of a prostitute, I hoped to
get money and sex pleasure.
33. This material body is like a house in which I, the soul, am living. The bones forming my spine, ribs,
arms and legs are like the beams, crossbeams and pillars of the house, and the whole structure, which
is full of stool and urine, is covered by skin, hair and nails. The nine doors leading into this body are
constantly excreting foul substances. Besides me, what woman could be so foolish as to devote herself
to this material body, thinking that she might find pleasure and love in this contraption?
34. Certainly in this city of Videha I alone am completely foolish. I neglected the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who awards us everything, even our original spiritual form, and instead I desired to enjoy
sense gratification with many men.
35. The Supreme Personality of Godhead is absolutely the most dear one for all living beings because
He is everyone’s well-wisher and Lord. He is the Supreme Soul situated in everyone’s heart. Therefore I
will now pay the price of complete surrender, and thus purchasing the Lord I will enjoy with Him just like
Laksmidevi.
36. Men provide sense gratification for women, but all these men, and even the demigods in heaven,
have a beginning and an end. They are all temporary creations who will be dragged away by time.
Therefore how much actual pleasure or happiness could any of them ever give to their wives?
37. Although I most stubbornly hoped to enjoy the material world, somehow or other detachment has
arisen in my heart, and it is making me very happy. Therefore the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
Visnu, must be pleased with me. Without even knowing it, I must have performed some activity
satisfying to Him.
38. A person who has developed detachment can give up the bondage of material society, friendship
and love, and a person who undergoes great suffering gradually becomes, out of hopelessness,
detached and indifferent to the material world. Thus, due to my great suffering, such detachment awoke
in my heart; yet how could I have undergone such merciful suffering if I were actually unfortunate?
Therefore, I am in fact fortunate and have received the mercy of the Lord. He must somehow or other
be pleased with me.
650 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
39. With devotion I accept the great benefit that the Lord has bestowed upon me. Having given up my
sinful desires for ordinary sense gratification, I now take shelter of Him, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
40. I am now completely satisfied, and I have full faith in the Lord’s mercy. Therefore I will maintain
myself with whatever comes of its own accord. I shall enjoy life with only the Lord, because He is the
real source of love and happiness.
41. The intelligence of the living entity is stolen away by activities of sense gratification, and thus he falls
into the dark well of material existence. Within that well he is then seized by the deadly serpent of time.
Who else but the Supreme Personality of Godhead could save the poor living entity from such a
hopeless condition?
42. When the living entity sees that the entire universe has been seized by the serpent of time, he
becomes sober and sane and at that time detaches himself from all material sense gratification. In that
condition the living entity is qualified to be his own protector.
43. The avadhuta said: Thus, her mind completely made up, Pingala cut off all her sinful desires to
enjoy sex pleasure with lovers, and she became situated in perfect peace. Then she sat down on her
bed.
44. Material desire is undoubtedly the cause of the greatest unhappiness, and freedom from such
desire is the cause of the greatest happiness. Therefore, completely cutting off her desire to enjoy so-
called lovers, Pingala very happily went to sleep.
Chapter Nine Detachment from All that Is Material
1. The saintly brahmana said: Everyone considers certain things within the material world to be most
dear to him, and because of attachment to such things one eventually becomes miserable. One who
understands this gives up material possessiveness and attachment and thus achieves unlimited
happiness.
2. Once a group of large hawks who were unable to find any prey attacked another, weaker hawk who
was holding some meat. At that time, being in danger of his life, the hawk gave up his meat and
experienced actual happiness.
3. In family life, the parents are always in anxiety about their home, children and reputation. But I have
nothing to do with these things. I do not worry at all about any family, and I do not care about honor and
dishonor. I enjoy only the life of the soul, and I find love on the spiritual platform. Thus I wander the
earth like a child.
4. In this world two types of people are free from all anxiety and merged in great happiness: one who is
a retarded and childish fool and one who has approached the Supreme Lord, who is beyond the three
modes of material nature.
5. Once a marriageable young girl was alone in her house because her parents and relatives had gone
that day to another place. At that time a few men arrived at the house, specifically desiring to marry her.
She received them with all hospitality.
6. The girl went to a private place and began to make preparations so that the unexpected male guests
could eat. As she was beating the rice, the conchshell bracelets on her arms were colliding and making
a loud noise.
7. The young girl feared that the men would consider her family to be poor because their daughter was
busily engaged in the menial task of husking rice. Being very intelligent, the shy girl broke the shell
bracelets from her arms, leaving just two on each wrist.
8. Thereafter, as the young girl continued to husk the rice, the two bracelets on each wrist continued to
collide and make noise. Therefore she took one bracelet off each arm, and with only one left on each
wrist there was no more noise.
9. O subduer of the enemy, I travel throughout the surface of the earth learning constantly about the
nature of this world, and thus I personally witnessed the lesson of the young girl.
10. When many people live together in one place there will undoubtedly be quarreling. And even if only
two people live together there will be frivolous conversation and disagreement. Therefore, to avoid
conflict, one should live alone, as we learn from the example of the bracelet of the young girl.
11. Having perfected the yoga sitting postures and conquered the breathing process, one should make
the mind steady by detachment and the regulated practice of yoga. Thus one should carefully fix the
mind on the single goal of yoga practice.
12. The mind can be controlled when it is fixed on the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Having
achieved a stable situation, the mind becomes free from polluted desires to execute material activities;
thus as the mode of goodness increases in strength, one can completely give up the modes of passion
and ignorance, and gradually one transcends even the material mode of goodness. When the mind is
freed from the fuel of the modes of nature, the fire of material existence is extinguished. Then one
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 651
achieves the transcendental platform of direct relationship with the object of his meditation, the
Supreme Lord.
13. Thus, when one’s consciousness is completely fixed on the Absolute Truth, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, one no longer sees duality, or internal and external reality. The example is
given of the arrow maker who was so absorbed in making a straight arrow that he did not even see or
notice the king himself, who was passing right next to him.
14. A saintly person should remain alone and constantly travel without any fixed residence. Being alert,
he should remain secluded and should act in such a way that he is not recognized or noticed by others.
Moving without companions, he should not speak more than required.
15. When a person living in a temporary material body tries to construct a happy home, the result is
fruitless and miserable. The snake, however, enters a home that has been built by others and prospers
happily.
16. The Lord of the universe, Narayana, is the worshipable God of all living entities. Without extraneous
assistance, the Lord creates this universe by His own potency, and at the time of annihilation the Lord
destroys the universe through His personal expansion of time and withdraws all of the cosmos,
including all the conditioned living entities, within Himself. Thus, His unlimited Self is the shelter and
reservoir of all potencies. The subtle pradhana, the basis of all cosmic manifestation, is conserved
within the Lord and is in this way not different from Him. In the aftermath of annihilation the Lord stands
alone.
17-18. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead displays His own potency in the form of time and
guides His material potencies, such as the mode of goodness, into a neutral condition of equilibrium, He
remains as the supreme controller of that neutral state, called pradhana, as well as of the living entities.
He is also the supreme worshipable object for all beings, including liberated souls, demigods and
ordinary conditioned souls. The Lord is eternally free from any material designation, and He constitutes
the totality of spiritual bliss, which one experiences by seeing the Lord’s spiritual form. The Lord thus
exhibits the fullest meaning of the word “liberation.”
19. O subduer of the enemies, at the time of creation the Personality of Godhead expands His own
transcendental potency in the form of time, and agitating His material energy, maya, composed of the
three modes of material nature, He creates the mahat-tattva.
20. According to great sages, that which is the basis of the three modes of material nature and which
manifests the variegated universe is called the sutra or mahat-tattva. Indeed, this universe is resting
within that mahat-tattva, and due to its potency the living entity undergoes material existence.
21. Just as from within himself the spider expands thread through his mouth, plays with it for some time
and eventually swallows it, similarly, the Supreme Personality of Godhead expands His personal
potency from within Himself. Thus, the Lord displays the network of cosmic manifestation, utilizes it
according to His purpose and eventually withdraws it completely within Himself.
22. If out of love, hate or fear an embodied soul fixes his mind with intelligence and complete
concentration upon a particular bodily form, he will certainly attain the form that he is meditating upon.
23. O King, once a wasp forced a weaker insect to enter his hive and kept him trapped there. In great
fear the weak insect constantly meditated upon his captor, and without giving up his body, he gradually
achieved the same state of existence as the wasp. Thus one achieves a state of existence according to
one’s constant concentration.
24. O King, from all these spiritual masters I have acquired great wisdom. Now please listen as I explain
what I learned from my own body.
25. The material body is also my spiritual master because it teaches me detachment. Being subject to
creation and destruction, it always comes to a painful end. Thus, although using my body to acquire
knowledge, I always remember that it will ultimately be consumed by others, and remaining detached, I
move about this world.
26. A man attached to the body accumulates money with great struggle to expand and protect the
position of his wife, children, property, domestic animals, servants, homes, relatives, friends, and so on.
He does all this for the gratification of his own body. As a tree before dying produces the seed of a
future tree, the dying body manifests the seed of one’s next material body in the form of one’s
accumulated karma. Thus assuring the continuation of material existence, the material body sinks down
and dies.
27. A man who has many wives is constantly harassed by them. He is responsible for their
maintenance, and thus all the ladies constantly pull him in different directions, each struggling for her
self-interest. Similarly, the material senses harass the conditioned soul, pulling him in many different
directions at once. On one side the tongue is pulling him to arrange tasty food; then thirst drags him to
get a suitable drink. Simultaneously the sex organs clamor for satisfaction, and the sense of touch
demands soft, sensuous objects. The belly harasses him until it is filled, the ears demand to hear
652 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
pleasing sounds, the sense of smell hankers for pleasant aromas, and the fickle eyes clamor for
pleasing sights. Thus the senses, organs and limbs, all desiring satisfaction, pull the living entity in
many directions.
28. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, expanding His own potency, maya-sakti, created
innumerable species of life to house the conditioned souls. Yet by creating the forms of trees, reptiles,
animals, birds, snakes and so on, the Lord was not satisfied within His heart. Then He created human
life, which offers the conditioned soul sufficient intelligence to perceive the Absolute Truth, and became
pleased.
29. After many, many births and deaths one achieves the rare human form of life, which, although
temporary, affords one the opportunity to attain the highest perfection. Thus a sober human being
should quickly endeavor for the ultimate perfection of life as long as his body, which is always subject to
death, has not fallen down and died. After all, sense gratification is available even in the most
abominable species of life, whereas Krsna consciousness is possible only for a human being.
30. Having learned from my spiritual masters, I remain situated in realization of the Supreme
Personality of Godhead and, fully renounced and enlightened by realized spiritual knowledge, wander
the earth without attachment or false ego.
31. Although the Absolute Truth is one without a second, the sages have described Him in many
different ways. Therefore one may not be able to acquire very firm or complete knowledge from one
spiritual master.
32. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Having thus spoken to King Yadu, the wise brahmana
accepted obeisances and worship from the King and felt pleased within himself. Then bidding farewell,
he left exactly as he had come.
33. O Uddhava, hearing the words of the avadhuta, the saintly King Yadu, who is the forefather of our
own ancestors, became free from all material attachment, and thus his mind was evenly fixed on the
spiritual platform.
Chapter Ten The Nature of Fruitive Activity
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Taking full shelter in Me, with the mind carefully fixed in
the devotional service of the Lord as spoken by Me, one should live without personal desire and
practice the social and occupational system called varnasrama.
2. A purified soul should see that because the conditioned souls who are dedicated to sense
gratification have falsely accepted the objects of sense pleasure as truth, all of their endeavors are
doomed to failure.
3. One who is sleeping may see many objects of sense gratification in a dream, but such pleasurable
things are merely creations of the mind and are thus ultimately useless. Similarly, the living entity who is
asleep to his spiritual identity also sees many sense objects, but these innumerable objects of
temporary gratification are creations of the Lord’s illusory potency and have no permanent existence.
One who meditates upon them, impelled by the senses, uselessly engages his intelligence.
4. One who has fixed Me within his mind as the goal of life should give up activities based on sense
gratification and should instead execute work governed by the regulative principles for advancement.
When, however, one is fully engaged in searching out the ultimate truth of the soul, one should not
accept the scriptural injunctions governing fruitive activities.
5. One who has accepted Me as the supreme goal of life should strictly observe the scriptural
injunctions forbidding sinful activities and, as far as possible, should execute the injunctions prescribing
minor regulative duties such as cleanliness. Ultimately, however, one should approach a bona fide
spiritual master who is full in knowledge of Me as I am, who is peaceful, and who by spiritual elevation
is not different from Me.
6. The servant or disciple of the spiritual master should be free from false prestige, never considering
himself to be the doer. He should be active and never lazy and should give up all sense of
proprietorship over the objects of the senses, including his wife, children, home and society. He should
be endowed with feelings of loving friendship toward the spiritual master and should never become
deviated or bewildered. The servant or disciple should always desire advancement in spiritual
understanding, should not envy anyone and should always avoid useless conversation.
7. One should see one’s real self-interest in life in all circumstances and should therefore remain
detached from wife, children, home, land, relatives, friends, wealth and so on.
8. Just as fire, which burns and illuminates, is different from firewood, which is to be burned to give
illumination, similarly the seer within the body, the self-enlightened spirit soul, is different from the
material body, which is to be illuminated by consciousness. Thus the spirit soul and the body possess
different characteristics and are separate entities.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 653
9. Just as fire may appear differently as dormant, manifest, weak, brilliant and so on, according to the
condition of the fuel, similarly, the spirit soul enters a material body and accepts particular bodily
characteristics.
10. The subtle and gross material bodies are created by the material modes of nature, which expand
from the potency of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Material existence occurs when the living
entity falsely accepts the qualities of the gross and subtle bodies as being his own factual nature. This
illusory state, however, can be destroyed by real knowledge.
11. Therefore, by the cultivation of knowledge one should approach the Supreme Personality of
Godhead situated within oneself. By understanding the Lord’s pure, transcendental existence, one
should gradually give up the false vision of the material world as independent reality.
12. The spiritual master can be compared to the lower kindling stick, the disciple to the upper kindling
stick, and the instruction given by the guru to the third stick placed in between. The transcendental
knowledge communicated from guru to disciple is compared to the fire arising from the contact of these,
which burns the darkness of ignorance to ashes, bringing great happiness both to guru and disciple.
13. By submissively hearing from an expert spiritual master, the expert disciple develops pure
knowledge, which repels the onslaught of material illusion arising from the three modes of material
nature. Finally this pure knowledge itself ceases, just as fire ceases when the stock of fuel has been
consumed.
14-16. My dear Uddhava, I have thus explained to you perfect knowledge. There are philosophers,
however, who challenge My conclusion. They state that the natural position of the living entity is to
engage in fruitive activities, and they see him as the enjoyer of the happiness and unhappiness that
accrue from his own work. According to this materialistic philosophy, the world, time, the revealed
scriptures and the self are all variegated and eternal, existing as a perpetual flow of transformations.
Knowledge, moreover, cannot be one or eternal, because it arises from the different and changing
forms of objects; thus knowledge itself is always subject to change. Even if you accept such a
philosophy, My dear Uddhava, there will still be perpetual birth, death, old age and disease, since all
living entities must accept a material body subject to the influence of time.
17. Although the performer of fruitive activities desires perpetual happiness, it is clearly observed that
materialistic workers are often unhappy and only occasionally satisfied, thus proving that they are not
independent or in control of their destiny. When a person is always under the superior control of
another, how can he expect any valuable results from his own fruitive actions?
18. It is observed within the material world that sometimes even an intelligent person is not happy.
Similarly, sometimes even a great fool is happy. The concept of becoming happy through expertly
performing material activities is simply a useless exhibition of false egotism.
19. Even if people know how to achieve happiness and avoid unhappiness, they still do not know the
process by which death will not be able to exert its power over them.
20. Death is not at all pleasing, and since everyone is exactly like a condemned man being led to the
place of execution, what possible happiness can people derive from material objects or the gratification
they provide?
21. That material happiness of which we hear, such as promotion to heavenly planets for celestial
enjoyment, is just like that material happiness we have already experienced. Both are polluted by
jealousy, envy, decay and death. Therefore, just as an attempt to raise crops becomes fruitless if there
are many problems like crop disease, insect plague or drought, similarly, the attempt to attain material
happiness, either on earth or on the heavenly planets, is always fruitless because of innumerable
obstacles.
22. If one performs Vedic sacrifices and fruitive rituals without any mistake or contamination, one will
achieve a heavenly situation in the next life. But even this result, which is only achieved by perfect
performance of fruitive rituals, will be vanquished by time. Now hear of this.
23. If on earth one performs sacrifices for the satisfaction of the demigods, he goes to the heavenly
planets, where, just like a demigod, he enjoys all of the heavenly pleasures he has earned by his
performances.
24. Having achieved the heavenly planets, the performer of ritualistic sacrifices travels in a glowing
airplane, which he obtains as the result of his piety on earth. Being glorified by songs sung by the
Gandharvas and dressed in wonderfully charming clothes, he enjoys life surrounded by heavenly
goddesses.
25. Accompanied by heavenly women, the enjoyer of the fruits of sacrifice goes on pleasure rides in a
wonderful airplane, which is decorated with circles of tinkling bells and which flies wherever he desires.
Being relaxed, comfortable and happy in the heavenly pleasure gardens, he does not consider that he
is exhausting the fruits of his piety and will soon fall down to the mortal world.
654 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
26. Until his pious results are used up, the performer of sacrifice enjoys life in the heavenly planets.
When the pious results are exhausted, however, he falls down from the pleasure gardens of heaven,
being moved against his desire by the force of eternal time.
27-29. If a human being is engaged in sinful, irreligious activities, either because of bad association or
because of his failure to control his senses, then such a person will certainly develop a personality full of
material desires. He thus becomes miserly toward others, greedy and always anxious to exploit the
bodies of women. When the mind is so polluted one becomes violent and aggressive and without the
authority of Vedic injunctions slaughters innocent animals for sense gratification. Worshiping ghosts and
spirits, the bewildered person falls fully into the grip of unauthorized activities and thus goes to hell,
where he receives a material body infected by the darkest modes of nature. In such a degraded body,
he unfortunately continues to perform inauspicious activities that greatly increase his future
unhappiness, and therefore he again accepts a similar material body. What possible happiness can
there be for one who engages in activities inevitably terminating in death?
30. In all the planetary systems, from the heavenly to the hellish, and for all of the great demigods who
live for one thousand yuga cycles, there is fear of Me in My form of time. Even Brahma, who possesses
the supreme life span of 311,040,000,000,000 years, is also afraid of Me.
31. The material senses create material activities, either pious or sinful, and the modes of nature set the
material senses into motion. The living entity, being fully engaged by the material senses and modes of
nature, experiences the various results of fruitive work.
32. As long as the living entity thinks that the modes of material nature have separate existences, he
will be obliged to take birth in many different forms and will experience varieties of material existence.
Therefore, the living entity remains completely dependent on fruitive activities under the modes of
nature.
33. The conditioned soul who remains dependent on fruitive activities under the material modes of
nature will continue to fear Me, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, since I impose the results of one’s
fruitive activities. Those who accept the material concept of life, taking the variegatedness of the modes
of nature to be factual, devote themselves to material enjoyment and are therefore always absorbed in
lamentation and grief.
34. When there is agitation and interaction of the material modes of nature, the living entities then
describe Me in various ways such as all-powerful time, the Self, Vedic knowledge, the universe, one’s
own nature, religious ceremonies and so on.
35. Sri Uddhava said: O my Lord, a living entity situated within the material body is surrounded by the
modes of nature and the happiness and distress that are born of activities caused by these modes. How
is it possible that he is not bound by this material encirclement? It may also be said that the living entity
is ultimately transcendental and has nothing to do with the material world. Then how is he ever bound
by material nature?
36-37. O my Lord, Acyuta, the same living entity is sometimes described as eternally conditioned and at
other times as eternally liberated. I am not able to understand, therefore, the actual situation of the living
entity. You, my Lord, are the best of those who are expert in answering philosophical questions. Please
explain to me the symptoms by which one can tell the difference between a living entity who is eternally
liberated and one who is eternally conditioned. In what various ways would they remain situated, enjoy
life, eat, evacuate, lie down, sit or move about?
Chapter Eleven The Symptoms of Conditioned and Liberated Living Entities
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, due to the influence of the material
modes of nature, which are under My control, the living entity is sometimes designated as conditioned
and sometimes as liberated. In fact, however, the soul is never really bound up or liberated, and since I
am the supreme Lord of maya, which is the cause of the modes of nature, I also am never to be
considered liberated or in bondage.
2. Just as a dream is merely a creation of one’s intelligence but has no actual substance, similarly,
material lamentation, illusion, happiness, distress and the acceptance of the material body under the
influence of maya are all creations of My illusory energy. In other words, material existence has no
essential reality.
3. O Uddhava, both knowledge and ignorance, being products of maya, are expansions of My potency.
Both knowledge and ignorance are beginningless and perpetually award liberation and bondage to
embodied living beings.
4. O most intelligent Uddhava, the living entity, called jiva, is part and parcel of Me, but due to ignorance
he has been suffering in material bondage since time immemorial. By knowledge, however, he can be
liberated.
5. Thus, My dear Uddhava, in the same material body we find opposing characteristics, such as great
happiness and misery. That is because both the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is eternally
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 655
liberated, as well as the conditioned soul are within the body. I shall now speak to you about their
different characteristics.
6. By chance, two birds have made a nest together in the same tree. The two birds are friends and are
of a similar nature. One of them, however, is eating the fruits of the tree, whereas the other, who does
not eat the fruits, is in a superior position due to His potency.
7. The bird who does not eat the fruits of the tree is the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who by His
omniscience perfectly understands His own position and that of the conditioned living entity,
represented by the eating bird. That living entity, on the other hand, does not understand himself or the
Lord. He is covered by ignorance and is thus called eternally conditioned, whereas the Personality of
Godhead, being full of perfect knowledge, is eternally liberated.
8. One who is enlightened in self-realization, although living within the material body, sees himself as
transcendental to the body, just as one who has arisen from a dream gives up identification with the
dream body. A foolish person, however, although not identical with his material body but transcendental
to it, thinks himself to be situated in the body, just as one who is dreaming sees himself as situated in
an imaginary body.
9. An enlightened person who is free from the contamination of material desire does not consider
himself to be the performer of bodily activities; rather, he knows that in all such activities it is only the
senses, born of the modes of nature, that are contacting sense objects born of the same modes of
nature.
10. An unintelligent person situated within the body created by his previous fruitive activities thinks, “I
am the performer of action.” Bewildered by false ego, such a foolish person is therefore bound up by
fruitive activities, which are in fact carried out by the modes of nature.
11. An enlightened person fixed in detachment engages his body in lying down, sitting, walking, bathing,
seeing, touching, smelling, eating, hearing and so on, but is never entangled by such activities. Indeed,
remaining as a witness to all bodily functions, he merely engages his bodily senses with their objects
and does not become entangled like an unintelligent person.
12-13. Although the sky, or space, is the resting place of everything, the sky does not mix with anything,
nor is it entangled. Similarly, the sun is not at all attached to the water in which it is reflected within
innumerable reservoirs, and the mighty wind blowing everywhere is not affected by the innumerable
aromas and atmospheres through which it passes. In the same way, a self-realized soul is completely
detached from the material body and the material world around it. He is like a person who has
awakened and arisen from a dream. With expert vision sharpened by detachment, the self-realized soul
cuts all doubts to pieces through knowledge of the self and completely withdraws his consciousness
from the expansion of material variety.
14. A person is considered to be completely liberated from the gross and subtle material bodies when
all the functions of his vital energy, senses, mind and intelligence are performed without material desire.
Such a person, although situated within the body, is not entangled.
15. Sometimes for no apparent reason one’s body is attacked by cruel people or violent animals. At
other times and in other places, one will suddenly be offered great respect or worship. One who
becomes neither angry when attacked nor satisfied when worshiped is actually intelligent.
16. A saintly sage sees with equal vision and therefore is not affected by that which is materially good or
bad. Indeed, although he observes others performing good and bad work and speaking properly and
improperly, the sage does not praise or criticize anyone.
17. For the purpose of maintaining his body, a liberated sage should not act, speak or contemplate in
terms of material good or bad. Rather, he should be detached in all material circumstances, and taking
pleasure in self-realization, he should wander about engaged in this liberated life-style, appearing like a
retarded person to outsiders.
18. If through meticulous study one becomes expert in reading Vedic literature but makes no endeavor
to fix one’s mind on the Supreme Personality of Godhead, then one’s endeavor is certainly like that of a
man who works very hard to take care of a cow that gives no milk. In other words, the fruit of one’s
laborious study of Vedic knowledge will simply be the labor itself. There will be no other tangible result.
19. My dear Uddhava, that man is certainly most miserable who takes care of a cow that gives no milk,
an unchaste wife, a body totally dependent on others, useless children or wealth not utilized for the right
purpose. Similarly, one who studies Vedic knowledge devoid of My glories is also most miserable.
20. My dear Uddhava, an intelligent person should never take to literatures that do not contain
descriptions of My activities, which purify the whole universe. Indeed, I create, maintain and annihilate
the entire material manifestation. Among all My pastime incarnations, the most beloved are Krsna and
Balarama. Any so-called knowledge that does not recognize these activities of Mine is simply barren
and is not acceptable to those who are actually intelligent.
656 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
21. Coming to this conclusion of all knowledge, one should give up the false conception of material
variety that one imposes upon the soul and thus cease one’s material existence. The mind should be
fixed on Me, since I am all-pervading.
22. My dear Uddhava, if you are not able to free your mind from all material disturbance and thus
absorb it completely on the spiritual platform, then perform all your activities as an offering to Me,
without trying to enjoy the fruits.
23-24. My dear Uddhava, narrations of My pastimes and qualities are all-auspicious and purify the
entire universe. A faithful person who constantly hears, glorifies and remembers such transcendental
activities, who through dramatic performances relives My pastimes, beginning with My appearance, and
who takes full shelter of Me, dedicating his religious, sensual and occupational activities for My
satisfaction, certainly obtains unflinching devotional service to Me, the eternal Personality of Godhead.
25. One who has obtained pure devotional service by association with My devotees always engages in
worshiping Me. Thus he very easily goes to My abode, which is revealed by My pure devotees.
26-27. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord, O Supreme Personality of Godhead, what type of person do
You consider to be a true devotee, and what type of devotional service is approved by great devotees
as worthy of being offered to Your Lordship? My dear ruler of the universal controllers, O Lord of
Vaikuntha and almighty God of the universe, I am Your devotee, and because I love You I have no
other shelter than You. Therefore please explain this to me.
28. My dear Lord, as the Absolute Truth You are transcendental to material nature, and like the sky You
are never entangled in any way. Still, being controlled by Your devotees’ love, You accept many
different forms, incarnating according to Your devotees’ desires.
29-32. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O Uddhava, a saintly person is merciful and never
injures others. Even if others are aggressive he is tolerant and forgiving toward all living entities. His
strength and meaning in life come from the truth itself, he is free from all envy and jealousy, and his
mind is equal in material happiness and distress. Thus, he dedicates his time to work for the welfare of
all others. His intelligence is never bewildered by material desires, and he has controlled his senses.
His behavior is always pleasing, never harsh and always exemplary, and he is free from
possessiveness. He never endeavors in ordinary, worldly activities, and he strictly controls his eating.
He therefore always remains peaceful and steady. A saintly person is thoughtful and accepts Me as his
only shelter. Such a person is very cautious in the execution of his duties and is never subject to
superficial transformations, because he is steady and noble, even in a distressing situation. He has
conquered over the six material qualities—namely hunger, thirst, lamentation, illusion, old age and
death. He is free from all desire for prestige and offers honor to others. He is expert in reviving the
Krsna consciousness of others and therefore never cheats anyone. Rather, he is a well-wishing friend
to all, being most merciful. Such a saintly person must be considered the most learned of men. He
perfectly understands that the ordinary religious duties prescribed by Me in various Vedic scriptures
possess favorable qualities that purify the performer, and he knows that neglect of such duties
constitutes a discrepancy in one’s life. Having taken complete shelter at My lotus feet, however, a
saintly person ultimately renounces such ordinary religious duties and worships Me alone. He is thus
considered to be the best among all living entities.
33. My devotees may or may not know exactly what I am, who I am and how I exist, but if they worship
Me with unalloyed love, then I consider them to be the best of devotees.
34-41. My dear Uddhava, one can give up false pride and prestige by engaging in the following
devotional activities. One may purify oneself by seeing, touching, worshiping, serving, and offering
prayers of glorification and obeisances to My form as the Deity and to My pure devotees. One should
also glorify My transcendental qualities and activities, hear with love and faith the narrations of My
glories and constantly meditate on Me. One should offer to Me whatever one acquires, and accepting
oneself as My eternal servant, one should give oneself completely to Me. One should always discuss
My birth and activities and enjoy life by participating in festivals, such as Janmastami, which glorify My
pastimes. In My temple, one should also participate in festivals and ceremonies by singing, dancing,
playing musical instruments and discussing Me with other Vaisnavas. One should observe all the
regularly celebrated annual festivals by attending ceremonies, pilgrimages and making offerings. One
should also observe religious vows such as Ekadasi and take initiation by the procedures mentioned in
the Vedas, Pancaratra and other, similar literatures. One should faithfully and lovingly support the
installation of My Deity, and individually or in cooperation with others one should work for the
construction of Krsna conscious temples and cities as well as flower gardens, fruit gardens and special
areas to celebrate My pastimes. One should consider oneself to be My humble servant, without
duplicity, and thus should help to clean the temple, which is My home. First one should sweep and dust
thoroughly, and then one should further cleanse with water and cow dung. Having dried the temple, one
should sprinkle scented water and decorate the temple with mandalas. One should thus act just like My
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 657
servant. A devotee should never advertise his devotional activities; therefore his service will not be the
cause of false pride. One should never use lamps that are offered to Me for other purposes simply
because there is need of illumination, and similarly, one should never offer to Me anything that has
been offered to or used by others. Whatever is most desired by one within this material world, and
whatever is most dear to oneself—one should offer that very thing to Me. Such an offering qualifies one
for eternal life.
42. O saintly Uddhava, please know that you may worship Me in the sun, fire, brahmanas, cows,
Vaisnavas, sky, wind, water, earth, individual soul and all living entities.
43-45. My dear Uddhava, one should worship Me within the sun by chanting selected Vedic mantras
and by performing worship and offering obeisances. One may worship Me within fire by offering
oblations of ghee, and one may worship Me among the brahmanas by respectfully receiving them as
guests, even when uninvited. I can be worshiped within the cows by offerings of grass and other
suitable grains and paraphernalia for the pleasure and health of the cows, and one may worship Me
within the Vaisvavas by offering loving friendship to them and honoring them in all respects. Through
steady meditation I am worshiped within the inner space of the heart, and within the air I can be
worshiped by knowledge that prana, the life air, is the chief among elements. I am worshiped within
water by offerings of water itself, along with other elements such as flowers and tulasi leaves, and one
may worship Me within the earth by proper application of confidential seed mantras. One may worship
Me within the individual living entity by offering food and other enjoyable substances, and one may
worship Me within all living entities by seeing the Supersoul within all of them, thus maintaining equal
vision.
46. Thus, in the previously mentioned places of worship and according to the processes I have
described, one should meditate on My peaceful, transcendental form with four arms holding a
conchshell, Sudarsana disc, club and lotus flower. In this way, one should worship Me with fixed
attention.
47. One who has executed sacrificial performances and pious works for My satisfaction, and who thus
worships Me with fixed attention, obtains unflinching devotional service unto Me. By the excellent quality
of his service such a worshiper obtains realized knowledge of Me.
48. My dear Uddhava, I am personally the ultimate shelter and way of life for saintly liberated persons,
and thus if one does not engage in My loving devotional service, which is made possible by associating
with My devotees, then for all practical purposes, one possesses no effective means for escaping from
material existence.
49. My dear Uddhava, O beloved of the Yadu dynasty, because you are My servant, well-wisher and
friend, I shall now speak to you the most confidential knowledge. Please hear as I explain these great
mysteries to you.
Chapter Twelve Beyond Renunciation and Knowledge
1-2. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, by associating with My pure
devotees one can destroy one’s attachment for all objects of material sense gratification. Such purifying
association brings Me under the control of My devotee. One may perform the astanga-yoga system,
engage in philosophical analysis of the elements of material nature, practice nonviolence and other
ordinary principles of piety, chant the Vedas, perform penances, take to the renounced order of life,
execute sacrificial performances and dig wells, plant trees and perform other public welfare activities,
give in charity, carry out severe vows, worship the demigods, chant confidential mantras, visit holy
places or accept major and minor disciplinary injunctions, but even by performing such activities one
does not bring Me under his control.
3-6. In every yuga many living entities entangled in the modes of passion and ignorance gained the
association of My devotees. Thus, such living entities as the Daityas, Raksasas, birds, beasts,
Gandharvas, Apsaras, Nagas, Siddhas, Caranas, Guhyakas and Vidyadharas, as well as such lower-
class human beings as the vaisyas, sudras, women and others, were able to achieve My supreme
abode. Vrtrasura, Prahlada Maharaja and others like them also achieved My abode by association with
My devotees, as did personalities such as Vrsaparva, Bali Maharaja, Banasura, Maya, Vibhisana,
Sugriva, Hanuman, Jambavan, Gajendra, Jatayu, Tuladhara, Dharma-vyadha, Kubja, the gopis in
Vrndavana and the wives of the brahmanas who were performing sacrifice.
7. The persons I have mentioned did not undergo serious studies of the Vedic literature, nor did they
worship great saintly persons, nor did they execute severe vows or austerities. Simply by association
with Me and My devotees, they achieved Me.
8. The inhabitants of Vrndavana, including the gopis, cows, unmoving creatures such as the twin arjuna
trees, animals, living entities with stunted consciousness such as bushes and thickets, and snakes such
as Kaliya, all achieved the perfection of life by unalloyed love for Me and thus very easily achieved Me.
658 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
9. Even though one engages with great endeavor in the mystic yoga system, philosophical speculation,
charity, vows, penances, ritualistic sacrifices, teaching of Vedic mantras to others, personal study of the
Vedas, or the renounced order of life, still one cannot achieve Me.
10. The residents of Vrndavana, headed by the gopis, were always completely attached to Me with
deepest love. Therefore, when My uncle Akrura brought My brother Balarama and Me to the city of
Mathura, the residents of Vrndavana suffered extreme mental distress because of separation from Me
and could not find any other source of happiness.
11. Dear Uddhava, all of those nights that the gopis spent with Me, their most dearly beloved, in the
land of Vrndavana seemed to them to pass in less than a moment. Bereft of My association, however,
the gopis felt that those same nights dragged on forever, as if each night were equal to a day of
Brahma.
12. My dear Uddhava, just as great sages in yoga trance merge into self-realization, like rivers merging
into the ocean, and are thus not aware of material names and forms, similarly, the gopis of Vrndavana
were so completely attached to Me within their minds that they could not think of their own bodies, or of
this world, or of their future lives. Their entire consciousness was simply bound up in Me.
13. All those hundreds of thousands of gopis, understanding Me to be their most charming lover and
ardently desiring Me in that way, were unaware of My actual position. Yet by intimately associating with
Me, the gopis attained Me, the Supreme Absolute Truth.
14-15. Therefore, My dear Uddhava, abandon the Vedic mantras as well as the procedures of
supplementary Vedic literatures and their positive and negative injunctions. Disregard that which has
been heard and that which is to be heard. Simply take shelter of Me alone, for I am the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, situated within the heart of all conditioned souls. Take shelter of Me
wholeheartedly, and by My grace be free from fear in all circumstances.
16. Sri Uddhava said: O Lord of all masters of mystic power, I have heard Your words, but the doubt in
my heart does not go away; thus my mind is bewildered.
17. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, the Supreme Lord gives life to every
living being and is situated within the heart along with the life air and primal sound vibration. The Lord
can be perceived in His subtle form within the heart by one’s mind, since the Lord controls the minds of
everyone, even great demigods like Lord Siva. The Supreme Lord also assumes a gross form as the
various sounds of the Vedas, composed of short and long vowels and consonants of different
intonations.
18. When sticks of kindling wood are vigorously rubbed together, heat is produced by contact with air,
and a spark of fire appears. Once the fire is kindled, ghee is added and the fire blazes. Similarly, I
become manifest in the sound vibration of the Vedas.
19. The functions of the working senses—the organ of speech, the hands, the legs, the genital and the
anus—and the functions of the knowledge-acquiring senses—the nose, tongue, eyes, skin and ears—
along with the functions of the subtle senses of mind, intelligence, consciousness and false ego, as well
as the function of the subtle pradhana and the interaction of the three modes of material nature—all
these should be understood as My materially manifest form.
20. When many seeds are placed in an agricultural field, innumerable manifestations of trees, bushes,
vegetables and so on will arise from a single source, the soil. Similarly, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead, who gives life to all and is eternal, originally exists beyond the scope of the cosmic
manifestation. In the course of time, however, the Lord, who is the resting place of the three modes of
nature and the source of the universal lotus flower, in which the cosmic manifestation takes place,
divides His material potencies and thus appears to be manifest in innumerable forms, although He is
one.
21. Just as woven cloth rests on the expansion of lengthwise and crosswise threads, similarly the entire
universe is expanded on the lengthwise and crosswise potency of the Supreme Personality of Godhead
and is situated within Him. The conditioned soul has been accepting material bodies since time
immemorial, and these bodies are like great trees sustaining one’s material existence. Just as a tree
first blossoms and then produces fruit, similarly the tree of material existence, one’s material body,
produces the various results of material existence.
22-23. This tree of material existence has two seeds, hundreds of roots, three lower trunks and five
upper trunks. It produces five flavors and has eleven branches and a nest made by two birds. The tree
is covered by three types of bark, gives two fruits and extends up to the sun. Those lusty after material
enjoyment and dedicated to family life enjoy one of the tree’s fruits, and swanlike men in the renounced
order of life enjoy the other fruit. One who with the help of the bonafide spiritual masters can understand
this tree to be a manifestation of the potency of the one Supreme Truth appearing in many forms
actually knows the meaning of the Vedic literature.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 659
24. With steady intelligence you should develop unalloyed devotional service by careful worship of the
spiritual master, and with the sharpened ax of transcendental knowledge you should cut off the subtle
material covering of the soul. Upon realizing the Supreme Personality of Godhead, you should then give
up that ax of analytic knowledge.
Chapter Thirteen The Hamsa-avatara Answers the Questions of the Sons of Brahma
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: The three modes of material nature, namely goodness,
passion and ignorance, pertain to material intelligence and not to the spirit soul. By development of
material goodness one can conquer the modes of passion and ignorance, and by cultivation of
transcendental goodness one may free oneself even from material goodness.
2. When the living entity becomes strongly situated in the mode of goodness, then religious principles,
characterized by devotional service to Me, become prominent. One can strengthen the mode of
goodness by cultivation of those things that are already situated in goodness, and thus religious
principles arise.
3. Religious principles, strengthened by the mode of goodness, destroy the influence of passion and
ignorance. When passion and ignorance are overcome, their original cause, irreligion, is quickly
vanquished.
4. According to the quality of religious scriptures, water, one’s association with one’s children or with
people in general, the particular place, the time, activities, birth, meditation, chanting of mantras, and
purificatory rituals, the modes of nature become differently prominent.
5. Among the ten items I have just mentioned, the great sages who understand Vedic knowledge have
praised and recommended those that are in the mode of goodness, criticized and rejected those in the
mode of ignorance, and shown indifference to those in the mode of passion.
6. Until one revives one’s direct knowledge of the spirit soul and drives away the illusory identification
with the material body and mind caused by the three modes of nature, one must cultivate those things
in the mode of goodness. By increasing the mode of goodness, one automatically can understand and
practice religious principles, and by such practice transcendental knowledge is awakened.
7. In a bamboo forest the wind sometimes rubs the bamboo stalks together, and such friction generates
a blazing fire that consumes the very source of its birth, the bamboo forest. Thus, the fire is
automatically calmed by its own action. Similarly, by the competition and interaction of the material
modes of nature, the subtle and gross material bodies are generated. If one uses his mind and body to
cultivate knowledge, then such enlightenment destroys the influence of the modes of nature that
generated one’s body. Thus, like the fire, the body and mind are pacified by their own actions in
destroying the source of their birth.
8. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Krsna, generally human beings know that material life brings great future
unhappiness, and still they try to enjoy material life. My dear Lord, how can one in knowledge act just
like a dog, an ass or a goat?
9-10. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, a person bereft of intelligence first
falsely identifies himself with the material body and mind, and when such false knowledge arises within
one’s consciousness, material passion, the cause of great suffering, pervades the mind, which by
nature is situated in goodness. Then the mind, contaminated by passion, becomes absorbed in making
and changing many plans for material advancement. Thus, by constantly thinking of the modes of
material nature, a foolish person is afflicted with unbearable material desires.
11. One who does not control the material senses comes under the control of material desires and is
thus bewildered by the strong waves of the mode of passion. Such a person executes material
activities, although clearly seeing that the result will be future unhappiness.
12. Although the intelligence of a learned person may be bewildered by the modes of passion and
ignorance, he should again carefully bring the mind under control. By clearly seeing the contamination
of the modes of nature, he does not become attached.
13. A person should be attentive and grave and never lazy or morose. Mastering the yoga procedures
of breathing and sitting properly, one should practice fixing the mind on Me at dawn, noon and sunset,
and thus gradually the mind should be completely absorbed in Me.
14. The actual yoga system as taught by My devotees, headed by Sanaka-kumara, is simply this:
Having withdrawn the mind from all other objects, one should directly and appropriately absorb it in Me.
15. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Kesava, at what time and in what form did You instruct the science of
yoga to Sanaka and his brothers? I now desire to know about these things.
16. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Once, the mental sons of Lord Brahma, namely, the
sages headed by Sanaka, inquired from their father about the difficult subject matter of the supreme
goal of yoga.
17. The sages headed by Sanaka said: O Lord, people’s minds are naturally attracted to material sense
objects, and similarly the sense objects in the form of desire enter within the mind. Therefore, how can a
660 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
person who desires liberation, who desires to cross over activities of sense gratification, destroy this
mutual relationship between the sense objects and the mind? Please explain this to us.
18. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, Brahma himself, who is born directly
from the body of the Lord and who is the creator of all living entities within the material world, being the
best of the demigods, seriously contemplated the question of his sons headed by Sanaka. The
intelligence of Brahma, however, was affected by his own activities of creation, and thus he could not
discover the essential answer to this question.
19. Lord Brahma desired to attain the answer to the question that was puzzling him, and thus he fixed
his mind on Me, the Supreme Lord. At that time, in My form of Hamsa, I became visible to Lord Brahma.
20. Thus seeing Me, the sages, placing Brahma in the lead, came forward and worshiped My lotus feet.
Then they frankly asked Me, “Who are You?”
21. My dear Uddhava, the sages, being eager to understand the ultimate truth of the yoga system, thus
inquired from Me. Now please hear as I explain that which I spoke unto the sages.
22. My dear brahmanas, if, when asking Me who I am, you believe that I am also a jiva soul and that
there is no ultimate difference between us—since all souls are ultimately one without individuality—then
how is your question possible or appropriate? Ultimately, what is the real situation or resting place both
of yourselves and of Me?
23. If by asking Me “Who are You?” you were referring to the material body, then I must point out that all
material bodies are constituted of five elements, namely earth, water, fire, air and ether. Thus, you
should have asked, “Who are you five?” If you consider that all material bodies are ultimately one, being
constituted essentially of the same elements, then your question is still meaningless, since there would
be no deep purpose in distinguishing one body from another. Thus, it appears that in asking My identity,
you are merely speaking words, without any real meaning or purpose.
24. Within this world, whatever is perceived by the mind, speech, eyes or other senses is Me alone and
nothing besides Me. All of you please understand this by a straightforward analysis of the facts.
25. My dear sons, the mind has a natural proclivity to enter into the material sense objects, and similarly
the sense objects enter into the mind; but both this material mind and the sense objects are merely
designations that cover the spirit soul, who is part and parcel of Me.
26. A person who has thus achieved Me by understanding that he is not different from Me realizes that
the material mind is lodged within the sense objects because of constant sense gratification, and that
the material objects are existing prominently within the material mind. Having understood My
transcendental nature, he gives up both the material mind and its objects.
27. Waking, sleeping and deep sleep are the three functions of the intelligence and are caused by the
modes of material nature. The living entity within the body is ascertained to possess characteristics
different from these three states and thus remains us a witness to them.
28. The spirit soul is trapped in the bondage of material intelligence, which awards him constant
engagement in the illusory modes of nature. But I am the fourth stage of consciousness, beyond
wakefulness, dreaming and deep sleep. Becoming situated in Me, the soul should give up the bondage
of material consciousness. At that time, the living entity will automatically renounce the material sense
objects and the material mind.
29. The false ego of the living entity places him in bondage and awards him exactly the opposite of what
he really desires. Therefore, an intelligent person should give up his constant anxiety to enjoy material
life and remain situated in the Lord, who is beyond the functions of material consciousness.
30. According to My instructions, one should fix the mind on Me alone. If, however, one continues to
see many different values and goals in life rather than seeing everything within Me, then although
apparently awake, one is actually dreaming due to incomplete knowledge, just as one may dream that
one has wakened from a dream.
31. Those states of existence that are conceived of as separate from the Supreme Personality of
Godhead have no actual existence, although they create a sense of separation from the Absolute Truth.
Just as the seer of a dream imagines many different activities and rewards, similarly, because of the
sense of an existence separate from the Lord’s existence, the living entity falsely performs fruitive
activities, thinking them to be the cause of future rewards and destinations.
32. While awake the living entity enjoys with all of his senses the fleeting characteristics of the material
body and mind; while dreaming he enjoys similar experiences within the mind; and in deep dreamless
sleep all such experiences merge into ignorance. By remembering and contemplating the succession of
wakefulness, dreaming and deep sleep, the living entity can understand that he is one throughout the
three stages of consciousness and is transcendental. Thus, he becomes the lord of the senses.
33. You should consider how, by the influence of My illusory energy, these three states of the mind,
caused by the modes of nature, have been artificially imagined to exist in Me. Having definitely
ascertained the truth of the soul, you should utilize the sharpened sword of knowledge, acquired by
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 661
logical reflection and from the instructions of sages and Vedic literatures, to completely cut off the false
ego, which is the breeding ground of all doubts. All of you should then worship Me, who am situated
within the heart.
34. One should see that the material world is a distinct illusion appearing in the mind, because material
objects have an extremely flickering existence and are here today and gone tomorrow. They can be
compared to the streaking red line created by whirling a fiery stick. The spirit soul by nature exists in the
single state of pure consciousness. However, in this world he appears in many different forms and
stages of existence. The modes of nature divide the soul’s consciousness into normal wakefulness,
dreaming and dreamless sleep. All such varieties of perception, however, are actually maya and exist
only like a dream.
35. Having understood the temporary illusory nature of material things, and thus having pulled one’s
vision away from illusion, one should remain without material desires. By experiencing the happiness of
the soul, one should give up material speaking and activities. If sometimes one must observe the
material world, one should remember that it is not ultimate reality and therefore one has given it up. By
such constant remembrance up till the time of death, one will not again fall into illusion.
36. Just as a drunken man does not notice if he is wearing his coat or shirt, similarly, one who is perfect
in self-realization and who has thus achieved his eternal identity does not notice whether the temporary
body is sitting or standing. Indeed, if by God’s will the body is finished or if by God’s will he obtains a
new body, a self-realized soul does not notice, just as a drunken man does not notice the situation of
his outward dress.
37. The material body certainly moves under the control of supreme destiny and therefore must
continue to live along with the senses and vital air as long as one’s karma is in effect. A self-realized
soul, however, who is awakened to the absolute reality and who is thus highly situated in the perfect
stage of yoga, will never again surrender to the material body and its manifold manifestations, knowing
it to be just like a body visualized in a dream.
38. My dear brahmanas, I have now explained to you the confidential knowledge of Sankhya, by which
one philosophically distinguishes matter from spirit, and of astanga-yoga, by which one links up with the
Supreme. Please understand that I am the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, and that I have
appeared before you desiring to explain your actual religious duties.
39. O best of the brahmanas, please know that I am the supreme shelter of the yoga system, analytic
philosophy, virtuous action, truthful religious principles, power, beauty, fame and self-control.
40. All superior transcendental qualities, such as being beyond the modes of nature, detached, the well-
wisher, the most dear, the Supersoul, equally situated everywhere, and free from material
entanglement—all such qualities, free from the transformations of material qualities, find their shelter
and worshipable object in Me.
41. [Lord Krsna continued:] My dear Uddhava, thus all of the doubts of the sages headed by Sanaka
were destroyed by My words. Fully worshiping Me with transcendental love and devotion, they chanted
My glories with excellent hymns.
42. The greatest of sages, headed by Sanaka Rsi, thus perfectly worshiped and glorified Me, and as
Lord Brahma looked on, I returned to My own abode.
Chapter Fourteen Lord Krsna Explains the Yoga System to Sri Uddhava
1. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Krsna, the learned sages who explain Vedic literature recommend various
processes for perfecting one’s life. Considering these varieties of viewpoint, my Lord, please tell me
whether all these processes are equally important, or whether one of them is supreme.
2. My dear Lord, You have clearly explained the process of unalloyed devotional service, by which a
devotee removes all material association from his life, enabling him to fix his mind on You.
3. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: By the influence of time, the transcendental sound of
Vedic knowledge was lost at the time of annihilation. Therefore, when the subsequent creation took
place, I spoke the Vedic knowledge to Brahma because I Myself am the religious principles enunciated
in the Vedas.
4. Lord Brahma spoke this Vedic knowledge to his eldest son, Manu, and the seven great sages
headed by Bhrgu Muni then accepted the same knowledge from Manu.
5-7. From the forefathers headed by Bhrgu Muni and other sons of Brahma appeared many children
and descendants, who assumed different forms as demigods, demons, human beings, Guhyakas,
Siddhas, Gandharvas, Vidyadharas, Caranas, Kindevas, Kinnaras, Nagas, Kimpurusas, and so on. All
of the many universal species, along with their respective leaders, appeared with different natures and
desires generated from the three modes of material nature. Therefore, because of the different
characteristics of the living entities within the universe, there are a great many Vedic rituals, mantras
and rewards.
662 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
8. Thus, due to the great variety of desires and natures among human beings, there are many different
theistic philosophies of life, which are handed down through tradition, custom and disciplic succession.
There are other teachers who directly support atheistic viewpoints.
9. O best among men, the intelligence of human beings is bewildered by My illusory potency, and thus,
according to their own activities and whims, they speak in innumerable ways about what is actually
good for people.
10. Some say that people will be happy by performing pious religious activities. Others say that
happiness is attained through fame, sense gratification, truthfulness, self-control, peace, self-interest,
political influence, opulence, renunciation, consumption, sacrifice, penance, charity, vows, regulated
duties or strict disciplinary regulation. Each process has its proponents.
11. All the persons I have just mentioned obtain temporary fruits from their material work. Indeed, the
meager and miserable situations they achieve bring future unhappiness and are based on ignorance.
Even while enjoying the fruits of their work, such persons are filled with lamentation.
12. O learned Uddhava, those who fix their consciousness on Me, giving up all material desires, share
with Me a happiness that cannot possibly be experienced by those engaged in sense gratification.
13. One who does not desire anything within this world, who has achieved peace by controlling his
senses, whose consciousness is equal in all conditions and whose mind is completely satisfied in Me
finds only happiness wherever he goes.
14. One who has fixed his consciousness on Me desires neither the position or abode of Lord Brahma
or Lord Indra, nor an empire on the earth, nor sovereignty in the lower planetary systems, nor the
eightfold perfection of yoga, nor liberation from birth and death. Such a person desires Me alone.
15. My dear Uddhava, neither Lord Brahma, Lord Siva, Lord Sankarsana, the goddess of fortune nor
indeed My own self are as dear to Me as you are.
16. With the dust of My devotees’ lotus feet I desire to purify the material worlds, which are situated
within Me. Thus, I always follow the footsteps of My pure devotees, who are free from all personal
desire, rapt in thought of My pastimes, peaceful, without any feelings of enmity, and of equal disposition
everywhere.
17. Those who are without any desire for personal gratification, whose minds are always attached to
Me, who are peaceful, without false ego and merciful to all living entities, and whose consciousness is
never affected by opportunities for sense gratification—such persons enjoy in Me a happiness that
cannot be known or achieved by those lacking such detachment from the material world.
18. My dear Uddhava, if My devotee has not fully conquered his senses, he may be harassed by
material desires, but because of his unflinching devotion for Me, he will not be defeated by sense
gratification.
19. My dear Uddhava, just as a blazing fire turns firewood into ashes, similarly, devotion unto Me
completely burns to ashes sins committed by My devotees.
20. My dear Uddhava, the unalloyed devotional service rendered to Me by My devotees brings Me
under their control. I cannot be thus controlled by those engaged in mystic yoga, Sankhya philosophy,
pious work, Vedic study, austerity or renunciation.
21. Only by practicing unalloyed devotional service with full faith in Me can one obtain Me, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead. I am naturally dear to My devotees, who take Me as the only goal of their
loving service. By engaging in such pure devotional service, even the dog-eaters can purify themselves
from the contaminationof their low birth.
22. Neither religious activities endowed with honesty and mercy nor knowledge obtained with great
penance can completely purify one’s consciousness if they are bereft of loving service to Me.
23. If one’s hairs do not stand on end, how can the heart melt? And if the heart does not melt, how can
tears of love flow from the eyes? If one does not cry in spiritual happiness, how can one render loving
service to the Lord? And without such service, how can the consciousness be purified?
24. A devotee whose speech is sometimes choked up, whose heart melts, who cries continually and
sometimes laughs, who feels ashamed and cries out loudly and then dances—a devotee thus fixed in
loving service to Me purifies the entire universe.
25. Just as gold, when smelted in fire, gives up its impurities and returns to its pure brilliant state,
similarly, the spirit soul, absorbed in the fire of bhakti-yoga, is purified of all contamination caused by
previous fruitive activities and returns to its original position of serving Me in the spiritual world.
26. When a diseased eye is treated with medicinal ointment it gradually recovers its power to see.
Similarly, as a conscious living entity cleanses himself of material contamination by hearing and
chanting the pious narrations of My glories, he regains his ability to see Me, the Absolute Truth, in My
subtle spiritual form.
27. The mind of one meditating upon the objects of sense gratification is certainly entangled in such
objects, but if one constantly remembers Me, then the mind is absorbed in Me.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 663
28. Therefore, one should reject all material processes of elevation, which are like the mental creations
of a dream, and should completely absorb one’s mind in Me. By constantly thinking of Me, one
becomes purified.
29. Being conscious of the eternal self, one should give up association with women and those intimately
associated with women. Sitting fearlessly in a solitary place, one should concentrate the mind on Me
with great attention.
30. Of all kinds of suffering and bondage arising from various attachments, none is greater than the
suffering and bondage arising from attachment to women and intimate contact with those attached to
women.
31. Sri Uddhava said: My dear lotus-eyed Krsna, by what process should one who desires liberation
meditate upon You, of what specific nature should his meditation be, and upon which form should he
meditate? Kindly explain to me this topic of meditation.
32-33. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Sitting on a level seat that is not too high or too low,
keeping the body straight and erect yet comfortable, placing the two hands on one’s lap and focusing
the eyes on the tip of one’s nose, one should purify the pathways of breathing by practicing the
mechanical exercises of puraka, kumbhaka and recaka, and then one should reverse the procedure
(recaka, kumbhaka, puraka). Having fully controlled the senses, one may thus practice pranayama step
by step.
34. Beginning from the muladhara-cakra, one should move the life air continuously upward like the
fibers in the lotus stalk until one reaches the heart, where the sacred syllable om is situated like the
sound of a bell. One should thus continue raising the sacred syllable upward the distance of twelve
angulas, and there the omkara should be joined together with the fifteen vibrations produced with
anusvara.
35. Being fixed in the omkara, one should carefully practice the pranayama system ten times at each
sunrise, noon and sunset. Thus, after one month one will have conquered the life air.
36-42. Keeping the eyes half closed and fixed on the tip of one’s nose, being enlivened and alert, one
should meditate on the lotus flower situated within the heart. This lotus has eight petals and is situated
on an erect lotus stalk. One should meditate on the sun, moon and fire, placing them one after the other
within the whorl of that lotus flower. Placing My transcendental form within the fire, one should meditate
upon it as the auspicious goal of all meditation. That form is perfectly proportioned, gentle and cheerful.
It possesses four beautiful long arms, a charming, beautiful neck, a handsome forehead, a pure smile
and glowing, shark-shaped earrings suspended from two identical ears. That spiritual form is the color
of a dark rain cloud and is garbed in golden-yellowish silk. The chest of that form is the abode of
Srivatsa and the goddess of fortune, and that form is also decorated with a conchshell, disc, club, lotus
flower and garland of forest flowers. The two brilliant lotus feet are decorated with ankle bells and
bracelets, and that form exhibits the Kaustubha gem along with an effulgent crown. The upper hips are
beautified by a golden belt, and the arms are decorated with valuable bracelets. All of the limbs of that
beautiful form capture the heart, and the face is beautified by merciful glancing. Pulling the senses back
from the sense objects, one should be grave and self-controlled and should use the intelligence to
strongly fix the mind upon all of the limbs of My transcendental body. Thus one should meditate upon
that most delicate transcendental form of Mine.
43. One should then pull the consciousness back from all the limbs of that transcendental body. At that
time, one should meditate only on the wonderfully smiling face of the Lord.
44. Being established in meditation on the Lord’s face, one should then withdraw the consciousness
and fix it in the sky. Then giving up such meditation, one should become established in Me and give up
the process of meditation altogether.
45. One who has completely fixed his mind on Me should see Me within his own soul and should see
the individual soul within Me, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Thus, he sees the individual souls
united with the Supreme Soul, just as one sees the sun’s rays completely united with the sun.
46. When the yogi thus controls his mind by intensely concentrated meditation, his illusory identification
with material objects, knowledge and activities is very quickly extinguished.
Chapter Fifteen Lord Krsna’s Description of Mystic Yoga Perfections
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, the mystic perfections of yoga are
acquired by a yogi who has conquered his senses, steadied his mind, conquered the breathing process
and fixed his mind on Me.
1. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord Acyuta, by what process can mystic perfection be achieved, and
what is the nature of such perfection? How many mystic perfections are there? Please explain these
things to me. Indeed, You are the bestower of all mystic perfections.
664 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: The masters of the yoga system have declared that there
are eighteen types of mystic perfection and meditation, of which eight are primary, having their shelter
in Me, and ten are secondary, appearing from the material mode of goodness.
4-5. Among the eight primary mystic perfections, the three by which one transforms one’s own body are
anima, becoming smaller than the smallest; mahima, becoming greater than the greatest; and laghima,
becoming lighter than the lightest. Through the perfection of prapti one acquires whatever one desires,
and through prakamya-siddhi one experiences any enjoyable object, either in this world or the next.
Through isita-siddhi one can manipulate the subpotencies of maya, and through the controlling potency
called vasita-siddhi one is unimpeded by the three modes of nature. One who has acquired
kamavasayita-siddhi can obtain anything from anywhere, to the highest possible limit. My dear gentle
Uddhava, these eight mystic perfections are considered to be naturally existing and unexcelled within
this world.
6-7. The ten secondary mystic perfections arising from the modes of nature are the powers of freeing
oneself from hunger and thirst and other bodily disturbances, hearing and seeing things far away,
moving the body at the speed of the mind, assuming any form one desires, entering the bodies of
others, dying when one desires, witnessing the pastimes between the demigods and the celestial girls
called Apsaras, completely executing one’s determination and giving orders whose fulfillment is
unimpeded.
8-9. The power to know past, present and future; tolerance of heat, cold and other dualities; knowing
the minds of others; checking the influence of fire, sun, water, poison, and so on; and remaining
unconquered by others—these constitute five perfections of the mystic process of yoga and meditation.
I am simply listing these here according to their names and characteristics. Now please learn from Me
how specific mystic perfections arise from specific meditations and also of the particular processes
involved.
10. One who worships Me in My atomic form pervading all subtle elements, fixing his mind on that
alone, obtains the mystic perfection called anima.
11. One who absorbs his mind in the particular form of the mahat-tattva and thus meditates upon Me as
the Supreme Soul of the total material existence achieves the mystic perfection called mahima. By
further absorbing the mind in the situation of each individual element such as the sky, air, fire, and so
on, one progressively acquires the greatness of each material element.
12. I exist within everything, and I am therefore the essence of the atomic constituents of material
elements. By attaching his mind to Me in this form, the yogi may achieve the perfection called laghima,
by which he realizes the subtle atomic substance of time.
13. Fixing his mind completely in Me within the element of false ego generated from the mode of
goodness, the yogi obtains the power of mystic acquisition, by which he becomes the proprietor of the
senses of all living entities. He obtains such perfection because his mind is absorbed in Me.
14. One who concentrates all mental activities in Me as the Supersoul of that phase of the mahat-tattva
which manifests the chain of fruitive activities obtains from Me, whose appearance is beyond material
perception, the most excellent mystic perfection called prakamya.
15. One who places his consciousness on Visnu, the Supersoul, the prime mover and Supreme Lord of
the external energy consisting of three modes, obtains the mystic perfection of controlling other
conditioned souls, their material bodies and their bodily designations.
16. The yogi who places his mind in My form of Narayana, known as the fourth factor, full of all
opulences, becomes endowed with My nature and thus obtains the mystic perfection called vasita.
17. One who fixes his pure mind on Me in My manifestation as the impersonal Brahman obtains the
greatest happiness, wherein all his desires are completely fulfilled.
18. A human being who concentrates on Me as the upholder of religious principles, the personification
of purity and the Lord of Svetadvipa obtains the pure existence in which he is freed from the six waves
of material disturbance, namely hunger, thirst, decay, death, grief and illusion.
19. That purified living entity who fixes his mind on the extraordinary sound vibrations occurring within
Me as the personified sky and total life air is then able to perceive within the sky the speaking of all
living entities.
20. Merging one’s sight into the sun planet and then the sun planet into one’s eyes, one should
meditate on Me as existing within the combination of sun and vision; thus one acquires the power to
see any distant thing.
21. The yogi who completely absorbs his mind in Me, and who then makes use of the wind that follows
the mind to absorb the material body in Me, obtains through the potency of meditation on Me the mystic
perfection by which his body immediately follows his mind wherever it goes.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 665
22. When the yogi, applying his mind in a certain way, desires to assume a particular form, that very
form immediately appears. Such perfection is possible by absorbing the mind in the shelter of My
inconceivable mystic potency, by which I assume innumerable forms.
23. When a perfect yogi desires to enter another’s body, he should meditate upon himself within the
other body, and then, giving up his own gross body, he should enter the other’s body through the
pathways of air, as easily as a bee leaves one flower and flies into another.
24. The yogi who has achieved the mystic perfection called svacchanda-mrtyu blocks the anus with the
heel of the foot and then lifts the soul from the heart to the chest, to the neck and finally to the head.
Situated within the brahma-randhra, the yogi then gives up his material body and guides the spirit soul
to the selected destination.
25. The yogi who desires to enjoy in the pleasure gardens of the demigods should meditate on the
purified mode of goodness, which is situated within Me, and then the heavenly women, generated from
the mode of goodness, will approach him in airplanes.
26. A yogi who has faith in Me, absorbing his mind in Me and knowing that My purpose is always
fulfilled, will always achieve his purpose by the very means he has determined to follow.
27. A person who perfectly meditates on Me acquires My nature of being the supreme ruler and
controller. His order, like Mine, can never be frustrated by any means.
28. A yogi who has purified his existence by devotion to Me and who thus expertly knows the process of
meditation obtains knowledge of past, present and future. He can therefore see the birth and death of
himself and others.
29. Just as the bodies of aquatics cannot be injured by water, similarly, the body of a yogi whose
consciousness is pacified by devotion to Me and who is fully developed in yoga science cannot be
injured by fire, sun, water, poison, and so forth.
30. My devotee becomes unconquerable by meditating on My opulent incarnations, which are
decorated with Srivatsa and various weapons and are endowed with imperial paraphernalia such as
flags, ornamental umbrellas and fans.
31. A learned devotee who worships Me through yoga meditation certainly obtains in all respects the
mystic perfections that I have described.
32. For a sage who has conquered his senses, breathing and mind, who is self-controlled and always
absorbed in meditation on Me, what mystic perfection could possibly be difficult to achieve?
33. Learned experts in devotional service state that the mystic perfections of yoga that I have
mentioned are actually impediments and are a waste of time for one who is practicing the supreme
yoga, by which one achieves all perfection in life directly from Me.
34. Whatever mystic perfections can be achieved by good birth, herbs, austerities and mantras can all
be achieved by devotional service to Me; indeed, one cannot achieve the actual perfection of yoga by
any other means.
35. My dear Uddhava, I am the cause, the protector and the Lord of all mystic perfections, of the yoga
system, of analytic knowledge, of pure activity and of the community of learned Vedic teachers.
36. Just as the same material elements exist within and outside of all material bodies, similarly, I cannot
be covered by anything else. I exist within everything as the Supersoul and outside of everything in My
all-pervading feature.
Chapter Sixteen The Lord’s Opulence
1. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord, You are beginningless and endless, the Absolute Truth Himself,
unlimited by anything else. You are the protector and life-giver, the destruction and creation of all things
that exist.
2. My dear Lord, although it is difficult for the impious to understand that You are situated in all superior
and inferior creations, those brahmanas who are actual knowers of the Vedic conclusion worship You in
truth.
3. Please tell me of the perfections that great sages achieve by worshiping You with devotion. Also,
kindly explain which of Your different forms they worship.
4. O my Lord, maintainer of all, although You are the Supersoul of the living entities, You remain
hidden. Thus being bewildered by You, the living entities cannot see You, although You are seeing
them.
5. O supremely potent Lord, please explain to me Your innumerable potencies, which You manifest on
the earth, in heaven, in hell and indeed in all directions. I offer my humble obeisances at Your lotus feet,
which are the shelter of all holy places.
6. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O best of those who know how to inquire, on the
Battlefield of Kuruksetra, Arjuna, desiring to fight with his rivals, asked Me the same question that you
are now posing.
666 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
7. On the Battlefield of Kuruksetra Arjuna thought that killing his relatives would be an abominable,
irreligious activity, motivated only by his desire to acquire a kingdom. He therefore desisted from the
battle, thinking, “I would be the killer of my relatives. They would be destroyed.” Thus Arjuna was
afflicted with mundane consciousness.
8. At that time I enlightened Arjuna, the tiger among men, with logical arguments, and thus in the front
of the battle Arjuna addressed Me with questions in the same way that you are now inquiring.
9. My dear Uddhava, I am the Supersoul of all living entities, and therefore I am naturally their well-
wisher and supreme controller. Being the creator, maintainer and annihilator of all entities, I am not
different from them.
10. I am the ultimate goal of all those seeking progress, and I am time among those who exert control. I
am the equilibrium of the modes of material nature, and I am natural virtue among the pious.
11. Among things possessing qualities I am the primary manifestation of nature, and among great
things I am the total material creation. Among subtle things I am the spirit soul, and of things that are
difficult to conquer I am the mind.
12. Among the Vedas I am their original teacher, Lord Brahma, and of all mantras I am the three-
lettered omkara. Among letters I am the first letter, ”a,” and among sacred meters I am the Gayatri
mantra.
13. Among the demigods I am Indra, and among the Vasus I am Agni, the god of fire. I am Visnu
among the sons of Aditi, and among the Rudras I am Lord Siva.
14. Among saintly brahmanas I am Bhrgu Muni, and I am Manu among saintly kings. I am Narada Muni
among saintly demigods, and I am Kamadhenu among cows.
15. I am Lord Kapila among perfected beings and Garuda among birds. I am Daksa among the
progenitors of mankind, and I am Aryama among the forefathers.
16. My dear Uddhava, among the demoniac sons of Diti know Me to be Prahlada Maharaja, the saintly
lord of the asuras. Among the stars and herbs I am their lord, Candra (the moon), and among Yaksas
and Raksasas I am the lord of wealth, Kuvera.
17. I am Airavata among lordly elephants, and among aquatics I am Varuna, the lord of the seas.
Among all things that heat and illuminate I am the sun, and among human beings I am the king.
18. Among horses I am Uccaihsrava, and I am gold among metals. I am Yamaraja among those who
suppress and punish, and among serpents I am Vasuki.
19. O sinless Uddhava, among the best of snakes I am Anantadeva, and among those animals with
sharp horns and teeth I am the lion. Among the social orders I am the fourth, or the renounced order of
life, and among the occupational divisions I am the first, the brahmanas.
20. Among sacred and flowing things I am the holy Ganges, and among steady bodies of water I am the
ocean. Among weapons I am the bow, and of the wielders of weapons I am Lord Siva.
21. Among residences I am Mount Sumeru, and of impervious places I am the Himalayas. Among trees
I am the holy fig tree, and among plants I am those that bear grains.
22. Among priests I am Vasistha Muni, and among those highly situated in Vedic culture I am Brhaspati.
I am Kartikeya among great military leaders, and among those advancing in superior ways of life I am
the great personality Lord Brahma.
23. Among sacrifices I am study of the Veda, and I am nonviolence among vows. Among all things that
purify I am the wind, fire, the sun, water and speech.
24. Among the eight progressive states of yoga I am the final stage, samadhi, in which the soul is
completely separated from illusion. Among those desiring victory I am prudent political counsel, and
among processes of expert discrimination I am the science of the soul, by which one distinguishes spirit
from matter. Among all speculative philosophers I am diversity of perception.
25. Among ladies I am Satarupa, and among male personalities I am her husband, Svayambhuva
Manu. I am Narayana among the sages and Sanat-kumara among brahmacaris.
26. Among religious principles I am renunciation, and of all types of security I am consciousness of the
eternal soul within. Of secrets I am pleasant speech and silence, and among sexual pairs I am Brahma.
27. Among the vigilant cycles of time I am the year, and among seasons I am spring. Among months I
am Margasirsa, and among lunar houses I am the auspicious Abhijit.
28. Among ages I am the Satya-yuga, the age of truth, and among steady sages I am Devala and Asita.
Among those who have divided the Vedas I am Krsna Dvaipayana Vedavyasa, and among learned
scholars I am Sukracarya, the knower of spiritual science.
29. Among those entitled to the name Bhagavan I am Vasudeva, and indeed, you, Uddhava, represent
Me among the devotees. I am Hanuman among the Kimpurusas, and among the Vidyadharas I am
Sudarsana.
30. Among jewels I am the ruby, and among beautiful things I am the lotus cup. Among all types of
grass I am the sacred kusa, and of oblations I am ghee and other ingredients obtained from the cow.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 667
31. Among the enterprising I am fortune, and among the cheaters I am gambling. I am the forgiveness
of the tolerant and the good qualities of those in the mode of goodness.
32. Of the powerful I bodily and mental strength, and I am the devotional activities of My devotees. My
devotees worship Me in nine different forms, among which I am the original and primary Vasudeva.
33. Among the Gandharvas I am Visvavasu, and I am Purvacitti among the heavenly Apsaras. I am the
steadiness of mountains and the fragrant aroma of the earth.
34. I am the sweet taste of water, and among brilliant things I am the sun. I am the effulgence of the
sun, moon and stars, and I am the transcendental sound that vibrates in the sky.
35. Among those dedicated to brahminical culture I am Bali Maharaja, the son of Virocana, and I am
Arjuna among heroes. Indeed, I am the creation, maintenance and annihilation of all living entities.
36. I am the functions of the five working senses—the legs, speech, anus, hands and sex organs—as
well as those of the five knowledge-acquiring senses—touch, sight, taste, hearing and smell. I am also
the potency by which each of the senses experiences its particular sense object.
37. I am form, taste, aroma, touch and sound; false ego; the mahat-tattva; earth, water, fire, air and sky;
the living entity; material nature; the modes of goodness, passion and ignorance; and the
transcendental Lord. All these items, along with knowledge of their individual symptoms and the steady
conviction that results from this knowledge, represent Me.
38. As the Supreme Lord I am the basis of the living entity, of the modes of nature and of the mahat-
tattva. Thus I am everything, and nothing whatsoever can exist without Me.
39. Even though over a period of time I might count all the atoms of the universe, I could not count all of
My opulences which I manifest within innumerable universes.
40. Whatever power, beauty, fame, opulence, humility, renunciation, mental pleasure, fortune, strength,
tolerance or spiritual knowledge there may be is simply an expansion of My opulence.
41. I have briefly described to you all My spiritual opulences and also the extraordinary material features
of My creation, which are perceived by the mind and defined in different ways according to
circumstances.
42. Therefore, control your speaking, subdue the mind, conquer the life air, regulate the senses and
through purified intelligence bring your rational faculties under control. In this way you will never again
fall onto the path of material existence.
43. A transcendentalist who does not completely control his words and mind by superior intelligence will
find that his spiritual vows, austerities and charity flow away just as water flows out of an unbaked clay
pot.
44. Being surrendered to Me, one should control the speech, mind and life air, and then through loving
devotional intelligence one will completely fulfill the mission of life.
Chapter Seventeen Lord Krsna’s Description of the Varnasrama System
1-2. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord, previously You described the principles of devotional service that
are to be practiced by followers of the varnasrama system and even ordinary, unregulated human
beings. My dear lotus-eyed Lord, now please explain to me how all human beings can achieve loving
service unto You by the execution of their prescribed duties.
3-4. My dear Lord, O mighty-armed one, previously in Your form of Lord Hamsa You spoke to Lord
Brahma those religious principles that bring supreme happiness to the practitioner. My dear Madhava,
now much time has passed, and that which You previously instructed will soon practically cease to
exist, O subduer of the enemy.
5-6. My dear Lord Acyuta, there is no speaker, creator and protector of supreme religious principles
other than Your Lordship, either on the earth or even in the assembly of Lord Brahma, where the
personified Vedas reside. Thus, my dear Lord Madhusudana, when You, who are the very creator,
protector and speaker of spiritual knowledge, abandon the earth, who will again speak this lost
knowledge?
7. Therefore, my Lord, since You are the knower of all religious principles, please describe to me the
human beings who may execute the path of loving service to You and how such service is to be
rendered.
8. Sri Sukadeva Gosvami said: Sri Uddhava, the best of devotees, thus inquired from the Lord. Hearing
his question, the Personality of Godhead, Sri Krsna, was pleased and for the welfare of all conditioned
souls spoke those religious principles that are eternal.
9. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, your question is faithful to religious
principles and thus gives rise to the highest perfection in life, pure devotional service, for both ordinary
human beings and the followers of the varnasrama system. Now please learn from Me those supreme
religious principles.
668 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
10. In the beginning, in Satya-yuga, there is only one social class, called hamsa, to which all human
beings belong. In that age all people are unalloyed devotees of the Lord from birth, and thus learned
scholars call this first age Krta-yuga, or the age in which all religious duties are perfectly fulfilled.
11. In Satya-yuga the undivided Veda is expressed by the syllable om, and I am the only object of
mental activities. I become manifest as the four-legged bull of religion, and thus the inhabitants of
Satya-yuga, fixed in austerity and free from all sins, worship Me as Lord Hamsa.
12. O greatly fortunate one, at the beginning of Treta-yuga Vedic knowledge appeared from My heart,
which is the abode of the air of life, in three divisions—as Rg, Sama and Yajur. Then from that
knowledge I appeared as threefold sacrifice.
13. In Treta-yuga the four social orders were manifested from the universal form of the Personality of
Godhead. The brahmanas appeared from the Lord’s face, the ksatriyas from the Lord’s arms, the
vaisyas from the Lord’s thighs and the sudras from the legs of that mighty form. Each social division
was recognized by its particular duties and behavior.
14. The married order of life appeared from the loins of My universal form, and the celibate students
came from My heart. The forest-dwelling retired order of life appeared from My chest, and the
renounced order of life was situated within the head of My universal form.
15. The various occupational and social divisions of human society appeared according to inferior and
superior natures manifest in the situation of the individual’s birth.
16. Peacefulness, self-control, austerity, cleanliness, satisfaction, tolerance, simple straightforwardness,
devotion to Me, mercy and truthfulness are the natural qualities of the brahmanas.
17. Dynamic power, bodily strength, determination, heroism, tolerance, generosity, great endeavor,
steadiness, devotion to the brahmanas and leadership are the natural qualities of the ksatriyas.
18. Faith in Vedic civilization, dedication to charity, freedom from hypocrisy, service to the brahmanas
and perpetually desiring to accumulate more money are the natural qualities of the vaisyas.
19. Service without duplicity to the brahmanas, cows, demigods and other worshipable personalities,
and complete satisfaction with whatever income is obtained in such service, are the natural qualities of
sudras.
20. Dirtiness, dishonesty, thievery, faithlessness, useless quarrel, lust, anger and hankering constitute
the nature of those in the lowest position outside the vanasrama system.
21. Nonviolence, truthfulness, honesty, desire for the happiness and welfare of all others and freedom
from lust, anger and greed constitute duties for all members of society.
22. The twice-born member of society achieves second birth through the sequence of purificatory
ceremonies culminating in Gayatri initiation. Being summoned by the spiritual master, he should reside
within the guru’s asrama and with a self-controlled mind carefully study the Vedic literature.
23. The brahmacari should regularly dress with a belt of straw and deerskin garments. He should wear
matted hair, carry a rod and waterpot and be decorated with akña beads and a sacred thread. Carrying
pure kusa grass in his hand, he should never accept a luxurious or sensuous sitting place. He should
not unnecessarily polish his teeth, nor should he bleach and iron his clothes.
24. A brahmacari should always remain silent while bathing, eating, attending sacrificial performances,
chanting japa or passing stool and urine. He should not cut his nails and hair, including the armpit and
pubic hair.
25. One observing the vow of celibate brahmacari life should never pass semen. If the semen by
chance spills out by itself, the brahmacari should immediately take bath in water, control his breath by
pranayama and chant the Gayatri mantra.
26. Purified and fixed in consciousness, the brahmacari should worship the fire-god, sun, acarya, cows,
brahmanas, guru, elderly respectable persons and demigods. He should perform such worship at
sunrise and sunset, without speaking but by silently chanting or murmuring the appropriate mantras.
27. One should know the acarya as Myself and never disrespect him in any way. One should not envy
him, thinking him an ordinary man, for he is the representative of all the demigods.
28. In the morning and evening one should collect foodstuffs and other articles and deliver them to the
spiritual master. Then, being self-controlled, one should accept for oneself that which is allotted by the
acarya.
29. While engaged in serving the spiritual master one should remain as a humble servant, and thus
when the guru is walking the servant should humbly walk behind. When the guru lies down to sleep, the
servant should also lie down nearby, and when the guru has awakened, the servant should sit near him,
massaging his lotus feet and rendering other, similar services. When the guru is sitting down on his
asana, the servant should stand nearby with folded hands, awaiting the guru’s order. In this way one
should always worship the spiritual master.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 669
30. Until the student has completed his Vedic education he should remain engaged in the asrama of the
spiritual master, should remain completely free of material sense gratification and should not break his
vow of celibacy [brahmacarya].
31. If the brahmacari student desires to ascend to the Maharloka or Brahmaloka planets, then he
should completely surrender his activities to the spiritual master and, observing the powerful vow of
perpetual celibacy, dedicate himself to superior Vedic studies.
32. Thus enlightened in Vedic knowledge by service to the spiritual master, freed from all sins and
duality, one should worship Me as the Supersoul, as I appear within fire, the spiritual master, one’s own
self and all living entities.
33. Those who are not married—sannyasis, vanaprasthas and brahmacaris—should never associate
with women by glancing, touching, conversing, joking or sporting. Neither should they ever associate
with any living entity engaged in sexual activities.
34-35. My dear Uddhava, general cleanliness, washing the hands, bathing, performing religious
services at sunrise, noon and sunset, worshiping Me, visiting holy places, chanting japa, avoiding that
which is untouchable, uneatable or not to be discussed, and remembering My existence within all living
entities as the Supersoul—these principles should be followed by all members of society through
regulation of the mind, words and body.
36. A brahmana observing the great vow of celibacy becomes brilliant like fire and by serious austerity
burns to ashes the propensity to perform material activities. Free from the contamination of material
desire, he becomes My devotee.
37. A brahmacari who has completed his Vedic education and desires to enter household life should
offer proper remuneration to the spiritual master, bathe, cut his hair, put on proper clothes, and so on.
Then, taking permission from the guru, he should go back to his home.
38. A brahmacari desiring to fulfill his material desires should live at home with his family, and a
householder who is eager to purify his consciousness should enter the forest, whereas a purified
brahmana should accept the renounced order of life. One who is not surrendered to Me should move
progressively from one asrama to another, never acting otherwise.
39. One who desires to establish family life should marry a wife of his own caste, who is beyond
reproach and younger in age. If one desires to accept many wives he must marry them after the first
marriage, and each wife should be of a successively lower caste.
40. All twice-born men—brahmanas, ksatriyas and vaisyas—must perform sacrifice, study the Vedic
literature and give charity. Only the brahmanas, however, accept charity, teach the Vedic knowledge
and perform sacrifice on behalf of others.
41. A brahmana who considers that accepting charity from others will destroy his austerity, spiritual
influence and fame should maintain himself by the other two brahminical occupations, namely teaching
Vedic knowledge and performing sacrifice. If the brahmana considers that those two occupations also
compromise his spiritual position, then he should collect rejected grains in agricultural fields and live
without any dependence on others.
42. The body of a brahmana is not intended to enjoy insignificant material sense gratification; rather, by
accepting difficult austerities in his life, a brahmana will enjoy unlimited happiness after death.
43. A brahmana householder should remain satisfied in mind by gleaning rejected grains from
agricultural fields and marketplaces. Keeping himself free of personal desire, he should practice
magnanimous religious principles, with consciousness absorbed in Me. In this way a brahmana may
stay at home as a householder without very much attachment and thus achieve liberation.
44. Just as a ship rescues those who have fallen into the ocean, similarly, I very quickly rescue from all
calamities those persons who uplift brahmanas and devotees suffering in a poverty-stricken condition.
45. Just as the chief bull elephant protects all other elephants in his herd and defends himself as well,
similarly, a fearless king, just like a father, must save all of the citizens from difficulty and also protect
himself.
46. An earthly king who protects himself and all citizens by removing all sins from his kingdom will
certainly enjoy with Lord Indra in airplanes as brilliant as the sun.
47. If a brahmana cannot support himself through his regular duties and is thus suffering, he may adopt
the occupation of a merchant and overcome his destitute condition by buying and selling material
things. If he continues to suffer extreme poverty even as a merchant, then he may adopt the occupation
of a ksatriya, taking sword in hand. But he cannot in any circumstances become like a dog, accepting
an ordinary master.
48. A king or other member of the royal order who cannot maintain himself by his normal occupation
may act as a vaisya, may live by hunting or may act as a brahmana by teaching others Vedic
knowledge. But he may not under any circumstances adopt the profession of a sudra.
670 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
49. A vaisya, or mercantile man, who cannot maintain himself may adopt the occupation of a sudra, snd
a sudra who cannot find a master can engage in simple activities like making baskets and mats of
straw. However, all members of society who have adopted inferior occupations in emergency situations
must give up those substitute occupations when the difficulties have passed.
50. One in the grhastha order of life should daily worship the sages by Vedic study, the forefathers by
offering the mantra svadha, the demigods by chanting svaha, all living entities by offering shares of
one’s meals, and human beings by offering grains and water. Thus considering the demigods, sages,
forefathers, living entities and human beings to be manifestations of My potency, one should daily
perform these five sacrifices.
51. A householder should comfortably maintain his dependents either with money that comes of its own
accord or with that gathered by honest execution of one’s duties. According to one’s means, one should
perform sacrifices and other religious ceremonies.
52. A householder taking care of many dependent family members should not become materially
attached to them, nor should he become mentally unbalanced, considering himself to be the lord. An
intelligent householder should see that all possible future happiness, just like that which he has already
experienced, is temporary.
53. The association of children, wife, relatives and friends is just like the brief meeting of travelers. With
each change of body one is separated from all such associates, just as one loses the objects one
possesses in a dream when the dream is over.
54. Deeply considering the actual situation, a liberated soul should live at home just like a guest, without
any sense of proprietorship or false ego. In this way he will not be bound or entangled by domestic
affairs.
55. A householder devotee who worships Me by execution of his family duties may remain at home, go
to a holy place or, if he has a responsible son, take sannyasa.
56. But a householder whose mind is attached to his home and who is thus disturbed by ardent desires
to enjoy his money and children, who is lusty after women, who is possessed of a miserly mentality and
who unintelligently thinks, ”Everything is mine and I am everything,” is certainly bound in illusion.
57. ”O my poor elderly parents, and my wife with a mere infant in her arms, and my other young
children! Without me they have absolutely no one to protect them and will suffer unbearably. How can
my poor relatives possibly live without me?”
58. Thus, because of his foolish mentality, a householder whose heart is overwhelmed by family
attachment is never satisfied. Constantly meditating on his relatives, he dies and enters into the
darkness of ignorance.
Chapter Eighteen Description of Varnasrama-dharma
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: One who desires to adopt the third order of life,
vanaprastha, should enter the forest with a peaceful mind, leaving his wife with his mature sons, or else
taking her along with him.
2. Having adopted the vanaprastha order of life, one should arrange one’s sustenance by eating
uncontaminated bulbs, roots and fruits that grow in the forest. One may dress oneself with tree bark,
grass, leaves or animal skins.
3. The vanaprastha should not groom the hair on his head, body or face, should not manicure his nails,
should not pass stool and urine at irregular times and should not make a special endeavor for dental
hygiene. He should be content to take bath in water three times daily and should sleep on the ground.
4. Thus engaged as a vanaprastha, one should execute penance during the hottest summer days by
subjecting oneself to burning fires on four sides and the blazing sun overhead; during the rainy season
one should remain outside, subjecting oneself to torrents of rain; and in the freezing winter one should
remain submerged in water up to one’s neck.
5. One may eat foodstuffs prepared with fire, such as grains, or fruits ripened by time. One may grind
one’s food with mortar and stone or with one’s own teeth.
6. The vanaprastha should personally collect whatever he requires for his bodily maintenance, carefully
considering the time, place and his own capacity. He should never collect provisions for the future.
7. One who has accepted the vanaprastha order of life should perform seasonal sacrifices by offering
oblations of caru and sacrificial cakes prepared from rice and other grains found in the forest. The
vanaprastha, however, may never offer animal sacrifices to Me, even those sacrifices mentioned in the
Vedas.
8. The vanaprastha should perform the agnihotra, darsa and paurnamasa sacrifices, as he did while in
the grhastha-asrama. He should also perform the vows and sacrifices of caturmasya, since all of these
rituals are enjoined for the vanaprastha-asrama by expert knowers of the Vedas.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 671
9. The saintly vanaprastha, practicing severe penances and accepting only the bare necessities of life,
becomes so emaciated that he appears to be mere skin and bones. Thus worshiping Me through
severe penances, he goes to the Maharloka planet and then directly achieves Me.
10. One who with long endeavor executes this painful but exalted penance, which awards ultimate
liberation, simply to achieve insignificant sense gratification must be considered the greatest fool.
11. If the vanaprastha is overtaken by old age and because of his trembling body is no longer able to
execute his prescribed duties, he should place the sacrificial fire within his heart by meditation. Then,
fixing his mind on Me, he should enter into the fire and give up his body.
12. If the vanaprastha, understanding that even promotion to Brahmaloka is a miserable situation,
develops complete detachment from all possible results of fruitive activities, then he may take the
sannyasa order of life.
13. Having worshiped Me according to scriptural injunctions and having given all one’s property to the
sacrificial priest, one should place the fire sacrifice within oneself. Thus, with the mind completely
detached, one should enter the sannyasa order of life.
14. ”This man taking sannyasa is going to surpass us and go back home, back to Godhead.” Thus
thinking, the demigods create stumbling blocks on the path of the sannyasi by appearing before him in
the shape of his former wife or other women and attractive objects. But the s sannyasi should pay the
demigods and their manifestations no heed.
15. If the sannyasi desires to wear something besides a mere kaupina, he may use another cloth
around his waist and hips to cover the kaupina. Otherwise, if there is no emergency, he should not
accept anything besides his danda and waterpot.
16. A saintly person should step or place his foot on the ground only after verifying with his eyes that
there are no living creatures, such as insects, who might be injured by his foot. He should drink water
only after filtering it through a portion of his cloth, and he should speak only words that possess the
purity of truth. Similarly, he should perform only those activities his mind has carefully ascertained to be
pure.
17. One who has not accepted the three internal disciplines of avoiding useless speech, avoiding
useless activities and controlling the life air can never be considered a sannyasi merely because of his
carrying bamboo rods.
18. Rejecting those houses that are polluted and untouchable, one should approach without previous
calculation seven houses and be satisfied with that which is obtained there by begging. According to
necessity, one may approach each of the four occupational orders of society.
19. Taking the food gathered through begging, one should leave the populated areas and go to a
reservoir of water in a secluded place. There, having taken a bath and washed one’s hands thoroughly,
one should distribute portions of the food to others who may request it. One should do this without
speaking. Then, having thoroughly cleansed the remnants, one should eat everything on one’s plate,
leaving nothing for future consumption.
20. Without any material attachment, with senses fully controlled, remaining enthusiastic, and satisfied
in realization of the Supreme Lord and his own self, the saintly person should travel about the earth
alone. Having equal vision everywhere, he should be steady on the spiritual platform.
21. Dwelling in a safe and solitary place, his mind purified by constant thought of Me, the sage should
concentrate on the soul alone, realizing it to be nondifferent from Me.
22. By steady knowledge a sage should clearly ascertain the nature of the soul’s bondage and
liberation. Bondage occurs when the senses are deviated to sense gratification, and complete control of
the senses constitutes liberation.
23. Therefore, completely controlling the five senses and the mind by Krsna consciousness, a sage,
having experienced spiritual bliss within the self, should live detached from insignificant material sense
gratification.
24. The sage should travel in sanctified places, by flowing rivers and within the solitude of mountains
and forests. He should enter the cities, towns and pasturing grounds and approach ordinary working
men only to beg his bare sustenance.
25. One in the vanaprastha order of life should always practice taking charity from others, for one is
thereby freed from illusion and quickly becomes perfect in spiritual life. Indeed, one who subsists on
food grains obtained in such a humble manner purifies his existence.
26. One should never see as ultimate reality those material things which obviously will perish. With
consciousness free from material attachment, one should retire from all activities meant for material
progress in this life and the next.
27. One should logically consider the universe, which is situated within the Lord, and one’s own material
body, which is composed of mind, speech and life air, to be ultimately products of the Lord’s illusory
672 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
energy. Thus situated in the self, one should give up one’s faith in these things and should never again
make them the object of one’s meditation.
28. A learned transcendentalist dedicated to the cultivation of knowledge and thus detached from
external objects, or My devotee who is detached even from desire for liberation—both neglect those
duties based on external rituals or paraphernalia. Thus their conduct is beyond the range of rules and
regulations.
29. Although most wise, the paramahamsa should enjoy life like a child, oblivious to honor and
dishonor; although most expert, he should behave like a stunted, incompetent person; although most
learned, he should speak like an insane person; and although a scholar learned in Vedic regulations, he
should behave in an unrestricted manner.
30. A devotee should never engage in the fruitive rituals mentioned in the karma-kanda section of the
Vedas, nor should he become atheistic, acting or speaking in opposition to Vedic injunctions. Similarly,
he should never speak like a mere logician or skeptic or take any side whatsoever in useless
arguments.
31. A saintly person should never let others frighten or disturb him and, similarly, should never frighten
or disturb other people. He should tolerate the insults of others and should never himself belittle
anyone. He should never create hostility with anyone for the sake of the material body, for he would
thus be no better than an animal.
32. The one Supreme Lord is situated within all material bodies and within everyone’s soul. Just as the
moon is reflected in innumerable reservoirs of water, the Supreme Lord, although one, is present within
everyone. Thus every material body is ultimately composed of the energy of the one Supreme Lord.
33. If at times one does not obtain proper food one should not be depressed, and when one obtains
sumptuous food one should not rejoice. Being fixed in determination, one should understand both
situations to be under the control of God.
34. If required, one should endeavor to get sufficient foodstuffs, because it is always necessary and
proper to maintain one’s health. When the senses, mind and life air are fit, one can contemplate spiritual
truth, and by understanding the truth one is liberated.
35. A sage should accept the food, clothing and bedding—be they of excellent or inferior quality—that
come of their own accord.
36. Just as I, the Supreme Lord, execute regulative duties by My own free will, similarly, one who has
realized knowledge of Me should maintain general cleanliness, purify his hands with water, take bath
and execute other regulative duties not by force but by his own free will.
37. A realized soul no longer sees anything as separate from Me, for his realized knowledge of Me has
destroyed such illusory perception. Since the material body and mind were previously accustomed to
this kind of perception, it may sometimes appear to recur; but at the time of death the self-realized soul
achieves opulences equal to Mine.
38. One who is detached from sense gratification, knowing its result to be miserable, and who desires
spiritual perfection, but who has not seriously analyzed the process for obtaining Me, should approach a
bona fide and learned spiritual master.
39. Until a devotee has clearly realized spiritual knowledge, he should continue with great faith and
respect and without envy to render personal service to the guru, who is nondifferent from Me.
40-41. One who has not controlled the six forms of illusion [lust, anger, greed, excitement, false pride
and intoxication], whose intelligence, the leader of the senses, is extremely attached to material things,
who is bereft of knowledge and detachment, who adopts the sannyasa order of life to make a living,
who denies the worshipable demigods, his own self and the Supreme Lord within himself, thus ruining
all religious principles, and who is still infected by material contamination, is deviated and lost both in
this life and the next.
42. The main religious duties of a sannyasi are equanimity and nonviolence, whereas for the
vanaprastha austerity and philosophical understanding of the difference between the body and soul are
prominent. The main duties of a householder are to give shelter to all living entities and perform
sacrifices, and the brahmacari is mainly engaged in serving the spiritual master.
43. A householder may approach his wife for sex only at the time prescribed for begetting children.
Otherwise, the householder should practice celibacy, austerity, cleanliness of mind and body,
satisfaction in his natural position, and friendship toward all living entities. Worship of Me is to be
practiced by all human beings, regardless of social or occupational divisions.
44. One who worships Me by his prescribed duty, having no other object of worship, and who remains
conscious of Me as present in all living entities, achieves unflinching devotional service unto Me.
45. My dear Uddhava, I am the Supreme Lord of all worlds, and I create and destroy this universe,
being its ultimate cause. I am thus the Absolute Truth, and one who worships Me with unfailing
devotional service comes to Me.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 673
46. Thus, one who has purified his existence by execution of his prescribed duties, who fully
understands My supreme position and who is endowed with scriptural and realized knowledge, very
soon achieves Me.
47. Those who are followers of this varnasrama system accept religious principles according to
authorized traditions of proper conduct. When such varnasrama duties are dedicated to Me in loving
service, they award the supreme perfection of life.
48. My dear saintly Uddhava, I have now described to you, just as you inquired, the means by which My
devotee, perfectly engaged in his prescribed duty, can come back to Me, the Supreme Personality of
Godhead.
Chapter Nineteen The Perfection of Spiritual Knowledge
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: A self-realized person who has cultivated scriptural
knowledge up to the point of enlightenment and who is free from impersonal speculation, understanding
the material universe to be simply illusion, should surrender unto Me both that knowledge and the
means by which he achieved it.
2. For learned, self-realized philosophers I am the only object of worship, the desired goal of life, the
means for achieving that goal, and the settled conclusion of all knowledge. Indeed, because I am the
cause of their happiness and their freedom from unhappiness, such learned souls have no effective
purpose or dear object in life except Me.
3. Those who have achieved complete perfection through philosophical and realized knowledge
recognize My lotus feet to be the supreme transcendental object. Thus the learned transcendentalist is
most dear to Me, and by his perfect knowledge he maintains Me in happiness.
4. That perfection which is produced by a small fraction of spiritual knowledge cannot be duplicated by
performing austerities, visiting holy places, chanting silent prayers, giving in charity or engaging in other
pious activities.
5. Therefore, My dear Uddhava, through knowledge you should understand your actual self. Then,
advancing by clear realization of Vedic knowledge, you should bworship Me in the mood of loving
devotion.
6. Formerly, great sages, through the sacrifice of Vedic knowledge and spiritual enlightenment,
worshiped Me within themselves, knowing Me to be the Supreme Lord of all sacrifice and the Supersoul
in everyone’s heart. Thus coming to Me, these sages achieved the supreme perfection.
7. My dear Uddhava, the material body and mind, composed of the three modes of material nature,
attach themselves to you, but they are actually illusion, since they appear only at the present, having no
original or ultimate existence. How is it possible, therefore, that the various stages of the body, namely
birth, growth, reproduction, maintenance, dwindling and death, can have any relation to your eternal
self? These phases relate only to the material body, which previously did not exist and ultimately will not
exist. The body exists merely at the present moment.
8. Sri Uddhava said: O Lord of the universe! O form of the universe! Please explain to me that process
of knowledge which automatically brings detachment and direct perception of the truth, which is
transcendental, and which is traditional among great spiritual philosophers. This knowledge, sought by
elevated personalities, describes loving devotional service unto Your Lordship.
9. My dear Lord, for one who is being tormented on the terrible path of birth and death and is constantly
overwhelmed by the threefold miseries, I do not see any possible shelter other than Your two lotus feet,
which are just like a refreshing umbrella that pours down showers of delicious nectar.
10. O almighty Lord, please be merciful and uplift this hopeless living entity who has fallen into the dark
hole of material existence, where the snake of time has bitten him. In spite of such abominable
conditions, this poor living entity has tremendous desire to relish the most insignificant material
happiness. Please save me, my Lord, by pouring down the nectar of Your instructions, which awaken
one to spiritual freedom.
11. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, just as you are now inquiring from
Me, similarly, in the past King Yudhisthira, who considered no one his enemy, inquired from the greatest
of the upholders of religious principles, Bhisma, while all of us were carefully listening.
12. When the great Battle of Kuruksetra had ended, King Yudhisthira was overwhelmed by the death of
many beloved well-wishers, and thus, after listening to instructions about many religious principles, he
finally inquired about the path of liberation.
13. I will now speak unto you those religious principles of Vedic knowledge, detachment, self-
realization, faith and devotional service that were heard directly from the mouth of Bhismadeva.
14. I personally approve of that knowledge by which one sees the combination of nine, eleven, five and
three elements in all living entities, and ultimately one element within those twenty-eight.
674 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. When one no longer sees the twenty-eight separated material elements, which arise from a single
cause, but rather sees the cause itself, the Personality of Godhead—at that time one’s direct
experience is called vijnana, or self-realization.
16. Commencement, termination and maintenance are the stages of material causation. That which
consistently accompanies all these material phases from one creation to another and remains alone
when all material phases are annihilated is the one eternal.
17. From the four types of evidence—Vedic knowledge, direct experience, traditional wisdom and
logical induction—one can understand the temporary, insubstantial situation of the material world, by
which one becomes detached from the duality of this world.
18. An intelligent person should see that any material activity is subject to constant transformation and
that even on the planet of Lord Brahma there is thus simply unhappiness. Indeed, a wise man can
understand that just as all that he has seen is temporary, similarly, all things within the universe have a
beginning and an end.
19. O sinless Uddhava, because you love Me, I previously explained to you the process of devotional
service. Now I will again explain the supreme process for achieving loving service unto Me.
20-24. Firm faith in the blissful narration of My pastimes, constant chanting of My glories, unwavering
attachment to ceremonial worship of Me, praising Me through beautiful hymns, great respect for My
devotional service, offering obeisances with the entire body, performing first-class worship of My
devotees, consciousness of Me in all living entities, offering of ordinary, bodily activities in My devotional
service, use of words to describe My qualities, offering the mind to Me, rejection of all material desires,
giving up wealth for My devotional service, renouncing material sense gratification and happiness, and
performing all desirable activities such as charity, sacrifice, chanting, vows and austerities with the
purpose of achieving Me—these constitute actual religious principles, by which those human beings
who have actually surrendered themselves to Me automatically develop love for Me. What other
purpose or goal could remain for My devotee?
25. When one’s peaceful consciousness, strengthened by the mode of goodness, is fixed on the
Personality of Godhead, one achieves religiosity, knowledge, detachment and opulence.
26. When consciousness is fixed on the material body, home and other, similar objects of sense
gratification, one spends one’s life chasing after material objects with the help of the senses.
Consciousness, thus powerfully affected by the mode of passion, becomes dedicated to impermanent
things, and in this way irreligion, ignorance, attachment and wretchedness arise.
27. Actual religious principles are stated to be those that lead one to My devotional service. Real
knowledge is the awareness that reveals My all-pervading presence. Detachment is complete
disinterest in the objects of material sense gratification, and opulence is the eight mystic perfection,
such as anima-siddhi.
28-32. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord Krsna, O chastiser of the enemies, please tell me how many
types of disciplinary regulations and regular daily duties there are. Also, my Lord, tell me what is mental
equilibrium, what is self-control, and what is the actual meaning of tolerance and steadfastness. What
are charity, austerity and heroism, and how are reality and truth to he described? What is renunciation,
and what is wealth? What is desirable, what is sacrifice, and what is religious remuneration? My dear
Kesava, O most fortunate one, how am I to understand the strength, opulence and profit of a particular
person? What is the best education, what is actual humility, and what is real beauty? What are
happiness and unhappiness? Who is learned, and who is a fool? What are the true and the false paths
in life, and what are heaven and hell? Who is indeed a true friend, and what is one’s real home? Who is
a rich man, and who is a poor man? Who is wretched, and who is an actual controller? O Lord of the
devotees, kindly explain these matters to me, along with their opposites.
33-35. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Nonviolence, truthfulness, not coveting or stealing
the property of others, detachment, humility, freedom from possessiveness, trust in the principles of
religion, celibacy, silence, steadiness, forgiveness and fearlessness are the twelve primary disciplinary
principles. Internal cleanliness, external cleanliness, chanting the holy names of the Lord, austerity,
sacrifice, faith, hospitality, worship of Me, visiting holy places, acting and desiring only for the supreme
interest, satisfaction, and service to the spiritual master are the twelve elements of regular prescribed
duties. These twenty-four elements bestow all desired benedictions upon those persons who devotedly
cultivate them.
36-39. Absorbing the intelligence in Me constitutes mental equilibrium, and complete discipline of the
senses is self-control. Tolerance means patiently enduring unhappiness, and steadfastness occurs
when one conquers the tongue and genitals. The greatest charity is to give up all aggression toward
others, and renunciation of lust is understood to be real austerity. Real heroism is to conquer one’s
natural tendency to enjoy material life, and reality is seeing the Supreme Personality of Godhead
everywhere. Truthfulness means to speak the truth in a pleasing way, as declared by great sages.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 675
Cleanliness is detachment in fruitive activities, whereas renunciation is the sannyasa order of life. The
true desirable wealth for human beings is religiousness, and I, the Supreme Personality of Godhead,
am sacrifice. Religious remuneration is devotion to the acarya with the purpose of acquiring spiritual
instruction, and the greatest strength is the pranayama system of breath control.
40-45. Actual opulence is My own nature as the Personality of Godhead, through which I exhibit the six
unlimited opulences. The supreme gain in life is devotional service to Me, and actual education is
nullifying the false perception of duality within the soul. Real modesty is to be disgusted with improper
activities, and beauty is to possess good qualities such as detachment. Real happiness is to transcend
material happiness and unhappiness, and real misery is to be implicated in searching for sex pleasure.
A wise man is one who knows the process of freedom from bondage, and a fool is one who identifies
with his material body and mind. The real path in life is that which leads to Me, and the wrong path is
sense gratification, by which consciousness is bewildered. Actual heaven is the predominance of the
mode of goodness, whereas hell is the predominance of ignorance. I am everyone’s true friend, acting
as the spiritual master of the entire universe, and one’s home is the human body. My dear friend
Uddhava, one who is enriched with good qualities is actually said to be rich, and one who is unsatisfied
in life is actually poor. A wretched person is one who cannot control his senses, whereas one who is not
attached to sense gratification is a real controller. One who attaches himself to sense gratification is the
opposite, a slave. Thus, Uddhava, I have elucidated all of the matters about which you inquired. There
is no need for a more elaborate description of these good and bad qualities, since to constantly see
good and bad is itself a bad quality. The best quality is to transcend material good and evil.
Chapter Twenty Pure Devotional Service Surpasses Knowledge and Detachment
1. Sri Uddhava said: My dear lotus-eyed Krsna, You are the Supreme Lord, and thus the Vedic
literatures, consisting of positive and negative injunctions, constitute Your order. Such literatures focus
upon the good and bad qualities of work.
2. According to Vedic literature, the superior and inferior varieties found in the human social system,
varnasrama, are due to pious and sinful modes of family planning. Thus piety and sin are constant
points of reference in the Vedic analysis of the components of a given situation—namely the material
ingredients, place, age and time. Indeed, the Vedas reveal the existence of material heaven and hell,
which are certainly based on piety and sin.
3. Without seeing the difference between piety and sin, how can one understand Your own instructions
in the form of Vedic literatures, which order one to act piously and forbid one to act sinfully?
Furthermore, without such authorized Vedic literatures, which ultimately award liberation, how can
human beings achieve the perfection of life?
4. My dear Lord, in order to understand those things beyond direct experience—such as spiritual
liberation or attainment of heaven and other material enjoyments beyond our present capacity—and in
general to understand the means and end of all things, the forefathers, demigods and human beings
must consult the Vedic literatures, which are Your own laws, for these constitute the highest evidence
and revelation.
5. My dear Lord, the distinction observed between piety and sin comes from Your own Vedic knowledge
and does not arise by itself. If the same Vedic literature subsequently nullifies such distinction between
piety and sin, there will certainly be confusion.
6. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, because I desire that human beings
may achieve perfection, I have presented three paths of advancement—the path of knowledge, the path
of work and the path of devotion. Besides these three there is absolutely no other means of elevation.
7. Among these three paths, jnana-yoga, the path of philosophical speculation, is recommended for
those who are disgusted with material life and are thus detached from ordinary, fruitive activities. Those
who are not disgusted with material life, having many desires yet to fulfill, should seek perfection
through the path of karma-yoga.
8. If somehow or other by good fortune one develops faith in hearing and chanting My glories, such a
person, being neither very disgusted with nor attached to material life, should achieve perfection
through the path of loving devotion to Me.
9. As long as one is not satiated by fruitive activity and has not awakened his taste for devotional
service by sravanam kirtanam visnoh one has to act according to the regulative principles of the Vedic
injunctions.
10. My dear Uddhava, a person who is situated in his prescribed duty, properly worshiping by Vedic
sacrifices but not desiring the fruitive result of such worship, will not go to the heavenly planets;
similarly, by not performing forbidden activities he will not go to hell.
11. One who is situated in his prescribed duty, free from sinful activities and cleansed of material
contamination, in this very life obtains transcendental knowledge or, by fortune, devotional service unto
Me.
676 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
12. The residents of both heaven and hell desire human birth on the earth planet because human life
facilitates the achievement of transcendental knowledge and love of Godhead, whereas neither
heavenly nor hellish bodies efficiently provide such opportunities.
13. A human being who is wise should never desire promotion to heavenly planets or residence in hell.
Indeed, a human being should also never desire permanent residence on the earth, for by such
absorption in the material body one becomes foolishly negligent of one’s actual self-interest.
14. A wise person, knowing that although the material body is subject to death it can still award the
perfection of one’s life, should not foolishly neglect to take advantage of this opportunity before death
arrives.
15. Without attachment, a bird gives up the tree in which his nest was constructed when that tree is cut
down by cruel men who are like death personified, and thus the bird achieves happiness in another
place.
16. Knowing that one’s duration of life is being similarly cut down by the passing of days and nights, one
should be shaken by fear. In this way, giving up all material attachment and desire, one understands the
Supreme Lord and achieves perfect peace.
17. The human body, which can award all benefit in life, is automatically obtained by the laws of nature,
although it is a very rare achievement. This human body can be compared to a perfectly constructed
boat having the spiritual master as the captain and the instructions of the Personality of Godhead as
favorable winds impelling it on its course. Considering all these advantages, a human being who does
not utilize his human life to cross the ocean of material existence must be considered the killer of his
own soul.
18. A transcendentalist, having become disgusted and hopeless in all endeavors for material
happiness, completely controls the senses and develops detachment. By spiritual practice he should
then fix the mind on the spiritual platform without deviation.
19. Whenever the mind, being concentrated on the spiritual platform, is suddenly deviated from its
spiritual position, one should carefully bring it under the control of the self by following the prescribed
means.
20. One should never lose sight of the actual goal of mental activities, but rather, conquering the life air
and senses and utilizing intelligence strengthened by the mode of goodness, one should bring the mind
under the control of the self.
21. An expert horseman, desiring to tame a headstrong horse, first lets the horse have his way for a
moment and then, pulling the reins, gradually places the horse on the desired path. Similarly, the
supreme yoga process is that by which one carefully observes the movements and desires of the mind
and gradually brings them under full control.
22. Until one’s mind is fixed in spiritual satisfaction, one should analytically study the temporary nature
of all material objects, whether cosmic, earthly or atomic. One should constantly observe the process of
creation through the natural progressive function and the process of annihilation through the regressive
function.
23. When a person is disgusted with the temporary, illusory nature of this world and is thus detached
from it, his mind, guided by the instructions of his spiritual master, considers again and again the nature
of this world and eventually gives up the false identification with matter.
24. Through the various disciplinary regulations and the purificatory procedures of the yoga system,
through logic and spiritual education or through worship and adoration of Me, one should constantly
engage his mind in remembering the Personality of Godhead, the goal of yoga. No other means should
be employed for this purpose.
25. If, because of momentary inattention, a yogi accidentally commits an abominable activity, then by
the very practice of yoga he should burn to ashes the sinful reaction, without at any time employing any
other procedure.
26. It is firmly declared that the steady adherence of transcendentalists to their respective spiritual
positions constitutes real piety and that sin occurs when a transcendentalist neglects his prescribed
duty. One who adopts this standard of piety and sin, sincerely desiring to give up all past association
with sense gratification, is able to subdue materialistic activities, which are by nature impure.
27-28. Having awakened faith in the narrations of My glories, being disgusted with all material activities,
knowing that all sense gratification leads to misery, but still being unable to renounce all sense
enjoyment, My devotee should remain happy and worship Me with great faith and conviction. Even
though he is sometimes engaged in sense enjoyment, My devotee knows that all sense gratification
leads to a miserable result, and he sincerely repents such activities.
29. When an intelligent person engages constantly in worshiping Me through loving devotional service
as described by Me, his heart becomes firmly situated in Me. Thus all material desires within the heart
are destroyed.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 677
30. The knot in the heart is pierced, all misgivings are cut to pieces and the chain of fruitive actions is
terminated when I am seen as the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
31. Therefore, for a devotee engaged in My loving service, with mind fixed on Me, the cultivation of
knowledge and renunciation is generally not the means of achieving the highest perfection within this
world.
32-33. Everything that can be achieved by fruitive activities, penance, knowledge, detachment, mystic
yoga, charity, religious duties and all other means of perfecting life is easily achieved by My devotee
through loving service unto Me. If somehow or other My devotee desires promotion to heaven,
liberation, or residence in My abode, he easily achieves such benedictions.
34. Because My devotees possess saintly behavior and deep intelligence, they completely dedicate
themselves to Me and do not desire anything besides Me. Indeed, even if I offer them liberation from
birth and death, they do not accept it.
35. It is said that complete detachment is the highest stage of freedom. Therefore, one who has no
personal desire and does not pursue personal rewards can achieve loving devotional service unto Me.
36. Material piety and sin, which arise from the good and evil of this world, cannot exist within My
unalloyed devotees, who, being free from material hankering, maintain steady spiritual consciousness in
all circumstances. Indeed, such devotees have achieved Me, the Supreme Lord, who am beyond
anything that can be conceived by material intelligence.
37. Persons who seriously follow these methods of achieving Me, which I have personally taught, attain
freedom from illusion, and upon reaching My personal abode they perfectly understand the Absolute
Truth.
Chapter Twenty-One Lord Krsna’s Explanation of the Vedic Path
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Those who give up these methods for achieving Me,
which consist of devotional service, analytic philosophy and regulated execution of prescribed duties,
and instead, being moved by the material senses, cultivate insignificant sense gratification, certainly
undergo the continual cycle of material existence.
2. Steadiness in one’s own position is declared to be actual piety, whereas deviation from one’s position
is considered impiety. In this way the two are definitely ascertained.
3. O sinless Uddhava, in order to understand what is proper in life one must evaluate a given object
within its particular category. Thus, in analyzing religious principles one must consider purity and
impurity. Similarly, in one’s ordinary dealings one must distinguish between good and bad, and to insure
one’s physical survival one must recognize that which is auspicious and inauspicious.
4. I have revealed this way of life for those bearing the burden of mundane religious principles.
5. Earth, water, fire, air and ether are the five basic elements that constitute the bodies of all conditioned
souls, from Lord Brahma himself down to the nonmoving creatures. These elements all emanate from
the one Personality of Godhead.
6. My dear Uddhava, although all material bodies are composed of the same five elements and are thus
equal, the Vedic literatures conceive of different names and forms in relation to such bodies so that the
living entities may achieve their goal of life.
7. O saintly Uddhava, in order to restrict materialistic activities, I have established that which is proper
and improper among all material things, including time, space and all physical objects.
8. Among places, those bereft of the spotted antelope, those devoid of devotion to the brahmanas,
those possessing spotted antelopes but bereft of respectable men, provinces like Kikata and places
where cleanliness and purificatory rites are neglected, where meat-eaters are prominent or where the
earth is barren, are all considered to be contaminated lands.
9. A specific time is considered pure when it is appropriate, either by its own nature or through
achievement of suitable paraphernalia, for the performance of one’s prescribed duty. That time which
impedes the performance of one’s duty is considered impure.
10. An object’s purity or impurity is established by application of another object, by words, by rituals, by
the effects of time or according to relative magnitude.
11. Impure things may or may not impose sinful reactions upon a person, depending on that person’s
strength or weakness, intelligence, wealth, location and physical condition.
12. Various objects such as grains, wooden utensils, things made of bone, thread, liquids, objects
derived from fire, skins and earthy objects are all purified by time, by the wind, by fire, by earth and by
water, either separately or in combination.
13. A particular purifying agent is considered appropriate when its application removes the bad odor or
dirty covering of some contaminated object and makes it resume its original nature.
14. The self can be cleansed by bathing, charity, austerity, age, personal strength, purificatory rituals,
prescribed duties and, above all, by remembrance of Me. The brahmana and other twice-born men
should be duly purified before performing their specific activities.
678 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
15. A mantra is purified when chanted with proper knowledge, and one’s work is purified when offered
to Me. Thus by purification of the place, time, substance, doer, mantras and work, one becomes
religious, and by negligence of these six items one is considered irreligious.
16. Sometimes piety becomes sin, and sometimes what is ordinarily sin becomes piety on the strength
of Vedic injunctions. Such special rules in effect eradicate the clear distinction between piety and sin.
17. The same activities that would degrade an elevated person do not cause falldown for those who are
already fallen. Indeed, one who is lying on the ground cannot possibly fall further. The material
association that is dictated by one’s own nature is considered a good quality.
18. By refraining from a particular sinful or materialistic activity, one becomes freed from its bondage.
Such renunciation is the basis of religious and auspicious life for human beings and drives away all
suffering, illusion and fear.
19. One who accepts material sense objects as desirable certainly becomes attached to them. From
such attachment lust arises, and this lust creates quarrel among men.
20. From quarrel arises intolerable anger, followed by the darkness of ignorance. This ignorance quickly
overtakes a man’s broad intelligence.
21. O saintly Uddhava, a person bereft of real intelligence is considered to have lost everything.
Deviated from the actual purpose of his life, he becomes dull, just like a dead person.
22. Because of absorption in sense gratification, one cannot recognize himself or others. Living
uselessly in ignorance like a tree, one is merely breathing just like a bellows.
23. Those statements of scripture promising fruitive rewards do not prescribe the ultimate good for men
hut are merely enticements for executing beneficial religious duties, like promises of candy spoken to
induce a child to take beneficial medicine.
24. Simply by material birth, human beings become attached within their minds to personal sense
gratification, long duration of life, sense activities, bodily strength, sexual potency and friends and
family. Their minds are thus absorbed in that which defeats their actual self-interest.
25. Those ignorant of their real self-interest are wandering on the path of material existence, gradually
heading toward darkness. Why would the Vedas further encourage them in sense gratification if they,
although foolish, submissively pay heed to Vedic injunctions?
26. Persons with perverted intelligence do not understand this actual purpose of Vedic knowledge and
instead propagate as the highest Vedic truth the flowery statements of the Vedas that promise material
rewards. Those in actual knowledge of the Vedas never speak in that way.
27. Those who are full of lust, avarice and greed mistake mere flowers to be the actual fruit of life.
Bewildered by the glare of fire and suffocated by its smoke, they cannot recognize their own true
identity.
28. My dear Uddhava, persons dedicated to sense gratification obtained through honoring the Vedic
rituals cannot understand that I am situated in everyone’s heart and that the entire universe is
nondifferent from Me and emanates from Me. Indeed, they are just like persons whose eyes are
covered by fog.
29-30. Those who are sworn to sense gratification cannot understand the confidential conclusion of
Vedic knowledge as explained by Me. Taking pleasure in violence, they cruelly slaughter innocent
animals in sacrifice for their own sense gratification and thus worship demigods, forefathers and leaders
among ghostly creatures. Such passion for violence, however, is never encouraged within the process
of Vedic sacrifice.
31. Just as a foolish businessman gives up his real wealth in useless business speculation, foolish
persons give up all that is actually valuable in life and instead pursue promotion to material heaven,
which although pleasing to hear about is actually unreal, like a dream. Such bewildered persons
imagine within their hearts that they will achieve all material blessings.
32. Those established in material passion, goodness and ignorance worship the particular demigods
and other deities, headed by Indra, who manifest the same modes of passion, goodness or ignorance.
They fail, however, to properly worship Me.
33-34. The worshipers of demigods think, “We shall worship the demigods in this life, and by our
sacrifices we shall go to heaven and enjoy there. When that enjoyment is finished we shall return to this
world and take birth as great householders in aristocratic families.” Being excessively proud and greedy,
such persons are bewildered by the flowery words of the Vedas. They are not attracted to topics about
Me, the Supreme Lord.
35. The Vedas, divided into three divisions, ultimately reveal the living entity as pure spirit soul. The
Vedic seers and mantras, however, deal in esoteric terms, and I also am pleased by such confidential
descriptions.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 679
36. The transcendental sound of the Vedas is very difficult to comprehend and manifests on different
levels within the prana, senses and mind. This Vedic sound is unlimited, very deep and unfathomable,
just like the ocean.
37. As the unlimited, unchanging and omnipotent Personality of Godhead dwelling within all living
beings, I personally establish the Vedic sound vibration in the form of omkara within all living entities. It
is thus perceived subtly, just like a single strand of fiber on a lotus stalk.
38-40. Just as a spider brings forth from its heart its web and emits it through its mouth, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead manifests Himself as the reverberating primeval vital air, comprising all sacred
Vedic meters and full of transcendental pleasure. Thus the Lord, from the ethereal sky of His heart,
creates the great and limitless Vedic sound by the agency of His mind, which conceives of variegated
sounds such as the sparsas. The Vedic sound branches out in thousands of directions, adorned with
the different letters expanded from the syllable om: the consonants, vowels, sibilants and semivowels.
The Veda is then elaborated by many verbal varieties, expressed in different meters, each having four
more syllables than the previous one. Ultimately the Lord again withdraws His manifestation of Vedic
sound within Himself.
41. The Vedic meters are Gayatri, Usnik, Anustup, Brhati, Pankti, Tristup, Jagati, Aticchanda, Atyasti,
Atijagati and Ativirat.
42. In the entire world no one but Me actually understands the confidential purpose of Vedic knowledge.
Thus people do not know what the Vedas are actually prescribing in the ritualistic injunctions of karma-
kanda, or what object is actually being indicated in the formulas of worship found in the upasana-kanda,
or that which is elaborately discussed through various hypotheses in the jnana-kanda section of the
Vedas.
43. I am the ritualistic sacrifice enjoined by the Vedas, and I am the worshipable Deity. It is I who am
presented as various philosophical hypotheses, and it is I alone who am then refuted by philosophical
analysis. The transcendental sound vibration thus establishes Me as the essential meaning of all Vedic
knowledge. The Vedas, elaborately analyzing all material duality as nothing but My illusory potency,
ultimately completely negate this duality and achieve their own satisfaction.
Chapter Twenty-Two Enumeration of the Elements of Material Creation
1-3. Uddhava inquired: My dear Lord, O master of the universe, how many different elements of
creation have been enumerated by the great sages? I have heard You personally describe a total of
twenty-eight—God, the jiva soul, the mahat-tattva, false ego, the five gross elements, the ten senses,
the mind, the five subtle objects of perception and the three modes of nature. But some authorities say
that there are twenty-six elements, while others cite twenty-five or else seven, nine, six, four or eleven,
and even others say that there are seventeen, sixteen or thirteen. What did each of these sages have in
mind when he calculated the creative elements in such different ways? O supreme eternal, kindly
explain this to me.
4. Lord Krsna replied: Because all material elements are present everywhere, it is reasonable that
different learned brahmanas have analyzed them in different ways. All such philosophers spoke under
the shelter of My mystic potency, and thus they could say anything without contradicting the truth.
5. When philosophers argue, “I don’t choose to analyze this particular case in the same way that you
have,” it is simply My own insurmountable energies that are motivating their analytic disagreements.
6. By interaction of My energies different opinions arise. But for those who have fixed their intelligence
on Me and controlled their senses, differences of perception disappear, and consequently the very
cause for argument is removed.
7. O best among men, because subtle and gross elements mutually enter into one another,
philosophers may calculate the number of basic material elements in different ways, according to their
personal desire.
8. All subtle material elements are actually present within their gross effects; similarly, all gross
elements are present within their subtle causes, since material creation takes place by progressive
manifestation of elements from subtle to gross. Thus we can find all material elements within any single
element.
9. Therefore, no matter which of these thinkers is speaking, and regardless of whether in their
calculations they include material elements within their previous subtle causes or else within their
subsequent manifest products, I accept their conclusions as authoritative, because a logical explanation
can always be given for each of the different theories.
10. Because a person who has been covered by ignorance since time immemorial is not capable of
effecting his own self-realization, there must be some other personality who is in factual knowledge of
the Absolute Truth and can impart this knowledge to him.
680 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
11. According to knowledge in the material mode of goodness, there is no qualitative difference
between the living entity and the supreme controller. The imagination of qualitative difference between
them is useless speculation.
12. Nature exists originally as the equilibrium of the three material modes, which pertain only to nature,
not to the transcendental spirit soul. These modes—goodness, passion and ignorance—are the
effective causes of the creation, maintenance and destruction of this universe.
13. In this world the mode of goodness is recognized as knowledge, the mode of passion as fruitive
work, and the mode of darkness as ignorance. Time is perceived as the agitated interaction of the
material modes, and the totality of functional propensity is embodied by the primeval sutra, or mahat-
tattva.
14. I have described the nine basic elements as the enjoying soul, nature, nature’s primeval
manifestation of the mahat-tattva, false ego, ether, air, fire, water and earth.
15. Hearing, touch, sight, smell and taste are the five knowledge acquiring senses, My dear Uddhava,
and speech, the hands, the genitals, the anus and the legs constitute the five working senses. The mind
belongs to both these categories.
16. Sound, touch, taste, smell and form are the objects of the knowledge-acquiring senses, and
movement, speech, excretion and manufacture are functions of the working senses.
17. In the beginning of creation nature assumes, by the modes of goodness, passion and ignorance, its
form as the embodiment of all subtle causes and gross manifestations within the universe. The
Supreme Personality of Godhead does not enter the interaction of material manifestation but merely
glances upon nature.
18. As the material elements, headed by the mahat-tattva, are transformed, they receive their specific
potencies from the glance of the Supreme Lord, and being amalgamated by the power of nature, they
create the universal egg.
19. According to some philosophers there are seven elements, namely earth, water, fire, air and ether,
along with the conscious spirit soul and the Supreme Soul, who is the basis of both the material
elements and the ordinary spirit soul. According to this theory, the body, senses, life air and all material
phenomena are produced from these seven elements.
20. Other philosophers state that there are six elements—the five physical elements (earth, water, fire,
air and ether) and the sixth element, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. That Supreme Lord,
endowed with the elements that He has brought forth from Himself, creates this universe and then
personally enters within it.
21. Some philosophers propose the existence of four basic elements, of which three—fire, water and
earth—emanate from the fourth, the Self. Once existing, these elements produce the cosmic
manifestation, in which all material creation takes place.
22. Some calculate the existence of seventeen basic elements, namely the five gross elements, the five
objects of perception, the five sensory organs, the mind, and the soul as the seventeenth element.
23. According to the calculation of sixteen elements, the only difference from the previous theory is that
the soul is identified with the mind. If we think in terms of five physical elements, five senses, the mind,
the individual soul and the Supreme Lord, there are thirteen elements.
24. Counting eleven, there are the soul, the gross elements and the senses. Eight gross and subtle
elements plus the Supreme Lord would make nine.
25. Thus great philosophers have analyzed the material elements in many different ways. All of their
proposals are reasonable, since they are all presented with ample logic. Indeed, such philosophical
brilliance is expected of the truly learned.
26. Sri Uddhava inquired: Although nature and the living entity are constitutionally distinct, O Lord
Krsna, there appears to be no difference between them, because they are found residing within one
another. Thus the soul appears to be within nature and nature within the soul.
27. O lotus-eyed Krsna, O omniscient Lord, kindly cut this great doubt out of my heart with Your own
words, which exhibit Your great skill in reasoning.
28. From You alone the knowledge of the living beings arises, and by Your potency that knowledge is
stolen away. Indeed, no one but Yourself can understand the real nature of Your illusory potency.
29. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O best among men, material nature and its enjoyer are
clearly distinct. This manifest creation undergoes constant transformation, being founded upon the
agitation of the modes of nature.
30. My dear Uddhava, My material energy, comprising three modes and acting through them, manifests
the varieties of creation along with varieties of consciousness for perceiving them. The manifest result
of material transformation is understood in three aspects: adhyatmic, adhidaivic and adhibhautic.
31. Sight, visible form and the reflected image of the sun within the aperture of the eye all work together
to reveal one another. But the original sun standing in the sky is self-manifested. Similarly, the Supreme
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 681
Soul, the original cause of all entities, who is thus separate from all of them, acts by the illumination of
His own transcendental experience as the ultimate source of manifestation of all mutually manifesting
objects.
32. Similarly, the sense organs, namely the skin, ears, eyes, tongue and nose—as well as the functions
of the subtle body, namely conditioned consciousness, mind, intelligence and false ego—can all be
analyzed in terms of the threefold distinction of sense, object of perception and presiding deity.
33. When the three modes of nature are agitated, the resultant transformation appears as the element
false ego in three phases—goodness, passion and ignorance. Generated from the mahat-tattva, which
is itself produced from the unmanifest pradhana, this false ego becomes the cause of all material
illusion and duality.
34. The speculative argument of philosophers—“This world is real,” “No, it is not real”—is based upon
incomplete knowledge of the Supreme Soul and is simply aimed at understanding material dualities.
Although such argument is useless, persons who have turned their attention away from Me, their own
true Self, are unable to give it up.
35-36. Sri Uddhava said: O supreme master, the intelligence of those dedicated to fruitive activities is
certainly deviated from You. Please explain to me how such persons accept superior and inferior bodies
by their materialistic activities and then give up such bodies. O Govinda, this topic is very difficult for
foolish persons to understand. Being cheated by illusion in this world, they generally do not become
aware of these facts.
37. Lord Krsna said: The material mind of men is shaped by the reactions of fruitive work. Along with
the five senses, it travels from one material body to another. The spirit soul, although different from this
mind, follows it.
38. The mind, bound to the reactions of fruitive work, always meditates on the objects of the senses,
both those that are seen in this world and those that are heard about from Vedic authority.
Consequently, the mind appears to come into being and to suffer annihilation along with its objects of
perception, and thus its ability to distinguish past and future is lost.
39. When the living entity passes from the present body to the next body, which is created by his own
karma, he becomes absorbed in the pleasurable and painful sensations of the new body and
completely forgets the experience of the previous body. This total forgetfulness of one’s previous
material identity, which comes about for one reason or another, is called death.
40. O most charitable Uddhava, what is called birth is simply a person’s total identification with a new
body. One accepts the new body just as one completely accepts the experience of a dream or a fantasy
as reality.
41. Just as a person experiencing a dream or daydream does not remember his previous dreams or
daydreams, a person situated in his present body, although having existed prior to it, thinks that he has
only recently come into being.
42. Because the mind, which is the resting place of the senses, has created the identification with a new
body, the threefold material variety of high, middle and low class appears as if present within the reality
of the soul. Thus the self creates external and internal duality, just as a man might give birth to a bad
son.
43. My dear Uddhava, material bodies are constantly undergoing creation and destruction by the force
of time, whose swiftness is imperceptible. But because of the subtle nature of time, no one sees this.
44. The different stages of transformation of all material bodies occur just like those of the flame of a
candle, the current of a river, or the fruits of a tree.
45. Although the illumination of a lamp consists of innumerable rays of light undergoing constant
creation, transformation and destruction, a person with illusory intelligence who sees the light for a
moment will speak falsely, saying, “This is the light of the lamp.” As one observes a flowing river, ever-
new water passes by and goes far away, yet a foolish person, observing one point in the river, falsely
states, “This is the water of the river.” Similarly, although the material body of a human being is
constantly undergoing transformation, those who are simply wasting their lives falsely think and say that
each particular stage of the body is the person’s real identity
46. A person does not actually take birth out of the seed of past activities, nor, being immortal, does he
die. By illusion the living being appears to be born and to die, just as fire in connection with firewood
appears to begin and then cease to exist.
47. Impregnation, gestation, birth, infancy, childhood, youth, middle age, old age and death are the nine
ages of the body.
48. Although the material body is different from the self, because of the ignorance due to material
association one falsely identifies oneself with the superior and inferior bodily conditions. Sometimes a
fortunate person is able to give up such mental concoction.
682 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
49. By the death of one’s father or grandfather one can surmise one’s own death, and by the birth of
one’s son one can understand the condition of one’s own birth. A person who thus realistically
understands the creation and destruction of material bodies is no longer subject to these dualities.
50. One who observes the birth of a tree from its seed and the ultimate death of the tree after maturity
certainly remains a distinct observer separate from the tree. In the same way, the witness of the birth
and death of the material body remains separate from it.
51. An unintelligent man, failing to distinguish himself from material nature, thinks nature to be real. By
contact with it he becomes completely bewildered and enters into the cycle of material existence.
52. Made to wander because of his fruitive work, the conditioned soul, by contact with the mode of
goodness, takes birth among the sages or demigods. By contact with the mode of passion he becomes
a demon or human being, and by association with the mode of ignorance he takes birth as a ghost or in
the animal kingdom.
53. Just as one may imitate persons whom one sees dancing and singing, similarly the soul, although
never the doer of material activities, becomes captivated by material intelligence and is thus forced to
imitate its qualities.
54-55. The soul’s material life, his experience of sense gratification, is actually false, O descendant of
Dasarha, just like trees’ appearance of quivering when the trees are reflected in agitated water, or like
the earth’s appearance of spinning due to one’s spinning his eyes around, or like the world of a fantasy
or dream.
56. For one who is meditating on sense gratification, material life, although lacking factual existence,
does not go away, just as the unpleasant experiences of a dream do not.
57. Therefore, O Uddhava, do not try to enjoy sense gratification with the material senses. See how
illusion based on material dualities prevents one from realizing the self.
58-59. Even though neglected, insulted, ridiculed or envied by bad men, or even though repeatedly
agitated by being beaten, tied up or deprived of one’s occupation, spat upon or polluted with urine by
ignorant people, one who desires the highest goal in life should in spite of all these difficulties use his
intelligence to keep himself safe on the spiritual platform.
60. Sri Uddhava said: O best of all speakers, please explain to me how I may properly understand this.
61. O soul of the universe, the conditioning of one’s personality in material life is very strong, and
therefore it is very difficult even for learned men to tolerate the offenses committed against them by
ignorant people. Only Your devotees, who are fixed in Your loving service and who have achieved
peace by residing at Your lotus feet, are able to tolerate such offenses.
Chapter Twenty-Three The Song of the Avanti Brahmana.
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Lord Mukunda, the chief of the Dasarhas, having thus been respectfully
requested by the best of His devotees, Sri Uddhava, first acknowledged the fitness of his servant’s
statements. Then the Lord, whose glorious exploits are most worthy of being heard, began to reply to
him.
2. Lord Sri Krsna said: O disciple of Brhaspati, there is virtually no saintly man in this world capable of
resettling his own mind after it has been disturbed by the insulting words of uncivilized men.
3. Sharp arrows which pierce one’s chest and reach the heart do not cause as much suffering as the
arrows of harsh, insulting words that become lodged within the heart when spoken by uncivilized men.
4. My dear Uddhava, in this regard a most pious story is told, and I shall now describe it to you. Please
listen with careful attention.
5. Once a certain sannyasi was insulted in many ways by impious men. However, with determination he
remembered that he was suffering the fruit of his own previous karma. I will narrate to you his story and
that which he spoke.
6. In the country of Avanti there once lived a certain brahmana who was very rich and gifted with all
opulences, and who was engaged in the occupation of commerce. But he was a miserly person—lusty,
greedy and very prone to anger.
7. In his home, devoid of religiosity and lawful sense gratification, the family members and guests were
never properly respected, even with words. He would not even allow sufficient gratification for his own
body at the suitable times.
8. Since he was so hardhearted and miserly, his sons, in-laws, wife, daughters and servants began to
feel inimical toward him. Becoming disgusted, they would never treat him with affection.
9. In this way the presiding deities of the five family sacrifices became angry at the brahmana, who,
being niggardly, guarded his wealth like a Yaksa, who had no good destination either in this world or the
next, and who was totally deprived of religiosity and sense enjoyment.
10. O magnanimous Uddhava, by his neglect of these demigods he depleted his stock of piety and all
his wealth. The accumulation of his repeated exhaustive endeavors was totally lost.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 683
11. Some of the wealth of this so-called brahmana was taken away by his relatives, My dear Uddhava,
some by thieves, some by the whims of providence, some by the effects of time, some by ordinary men
and some by government authorities.
12. Finally, when his property was completely lost, he who never engaged in religiosity or sense
enjoyment became ignored by his family members. Thus he began to feel unbearable anxiety.
13. Having lost all his wealth, he felt great pain and lamentation. His throat choked up with tears, and he
meditated for a long time on his fortune. Then a powerful feeling of renunciation came over him.
14. The brahmana spoke as follows: O what great misfortune! I have simply tormented myself
uselessly, struggling so hard for money that was not even intended for religiosity or material enjoyment.
15. Generally, the wealth of misers never allows them any happiness. In this life it causes their self-
torment, and when they die it sends them to hell.
16. Whatever pure fame is possessed by the famous and whatever praiseworthy qualities are found in
the virtuous are destroyed by even a small amount of greed, just as one’s attractive physical beauty is
ruined by a trace of white leprosy.
17. In the earning, attainment, increase, protection, expense, loss and enjoyment of wealth, all men
experience great labor, fear, anxiety and delusion.
18-19. Theft, violence, speaking lies, duplicity, lust, anger, perplexity, pride, quarreling, enmity,
faithlessness, envy and the dangers caused by women, gambling and intoxication are the fifteen
undesirable qualities that contaminate men because of greed for wealth. Although these qualities are
undesirable, men falsely ascribe value to them. One desiring to achieve the real benefit of life should
therefore remain aloof from undesirable material wealth.
20. Even a man’s brothers, wife, parents and friends united with him in love will immediately break off
their affectionate relationships and become enemies over a single coin.
21. For even a small amount of money these relatives and friends become very agitated and their anger
is inflamed. Acting as rivals, they quickly give up all sentiments of goodwill and will reject one at a
moment’s notice, even to the point of committing murder.
22. Those who obtain human life, which is prayed for even by the demigods, and in that human birth
become situated as first-class brahmanas, are extremely fortunate. If they disregard this important
opportunity, they are certainly killing their own self-interest and thus achieve a most unfortunate end.
23. What mortal man, having achieved this human life, which is the very gateway to both heaven and
liberation, would willingly become attached to that abode of worthlessness, material property?
24. One who fails to distribute his wealth to the proper shareholders—the demigods, sages, forefathers
and ordinary living entities, as well as his immediate relatives, in-laws and own self—is maintaining his
wealth simply like a Yaksa and will fall down.
25. Discriminating persons are able to utilize their money, youth and strength to achieve perfection. But
I have feverishly squandered these in the useless endeavor for further wealth. Now that I am an old
man, what can I achieve?
26. Why must an intelligent man suffer by his constant vain efforts to get wealth? Indeed, this whole
world is most bewildered by someone’s illusory potency.
27. For one who is in the grips of death, what is the use of wealth or those who offer it, sense
gratification or those who offer it, or, for that matter, any type of fruitive activity, which simply causes one
to again take birth in the material world?
28. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Hari, who contains within Himself all the demigods,
must be satisfied with me. Indeed, He has brought me to this suffering condition and forced me to
experience detachment, which is the boat to carry me over this ocean of material life.
29. If there is any time remaining in my life, I will perform austerities and force my body to subsist on the
bare necessities. Without further confusion I shall pursue that which constitutes my entire self-interest in
life, and I shall remain satisfied within the self.
30. Thus may the presiding demigods of these three worlds kindly show their mercy upon me. Indeed,
Maharaja Khatvanga was able to achieve the spiritual world in a single moment.
31. Lord Sri Krsna continued: His mind thus determined, that most excellent Avanti brahmana was able
to untie the knots of desire within his heart. He then assumed the role of a peaceful and silent sannyasi
mendicant.
32. He wandered about the earth, keeping his intelligence, senses and life air under control. To beg
charity he traveled alone to various cities and villages. He did not advertise his advanced spiritual
position and thus was not recognized by others.
33. O kind Uddhava, seeing him as an old, dirty beggar, rowdy persons would dishonor him with many
insults.
34. Some of these persons would take away his sannyasi rod, and some the waterpot which he was
using as a begging bowl. Some took his deerskin seat, some his chanting beads, and some would steal
684 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
his torn, ragged clothing. Displaying these things before him, they would pretend to offer them back but
would then hide them again.
35. When he was sitting on the bank of a river about to partake of the food that he had collected by his
begging, such sinful rascals would come and pass urine on it, and they would dare to spit on his head.
36. Although he had taken a vow of silence, they would try to make him speak, and if he did not speak
they would beat him with sticks. Others would chastise him, saying, “This man is just a thief.” And
others would bind him up with rope, shouting, ”Tie him up! Tie him up!”
37. They would criticize and insult him, saying, “This man is just a hypocrite and a cheat. He makes a
business of religion simply because he lost all his wealth and his family threw him out.”
38-39. Some would ridicule him by saying, ”Just see this greatly powerful sage! He is as steadfast as
the Himalaya Mountains. By practice of silence he strives for his goal with great determination, just like
a duck.” Other persons would pass foul air upon him, and sometimes others would bind this twice-born
brahmana in chains and keep him captive like a pet animal.
40. The brahmana understood that all his suffering—from other living beings, from the higher forces of
nature and from his own body—was unavoidable, being allotted to him by providence.
41. Even while being insulted by these low-class men who were trying to effect his downfall, he
remained steady in his spiritual duties. Fixing his resolution in the mode of goodness, he began to chant
the following song.
42. The brahmana said: These people are not the cause of my happiness and distress. Neither are the
demigods, my own body, the planets, my past work, or time. Rather, it is the mind alone that causes
happiness and distress and perpetuates the rotation of material life.
43. The powerful mind actuates the functions of the material modes, from which evolve the different
kinds of material activities in the modes of goodness, ignorance and passion. From the activities in each
of these modes develop the corresponding statuses of life.
44. Although present along with the struggling mind within the material body, the Supersoul is not
endeavoring, because He is already endowed with transcendental enlightenment. Acting as my friend,
He simply witnesses from His transcendental position. I, the infinitesimal spirit soul, on the other hand,
have embraced this mind, which is the mirror reflecting the image of the material world. Thus I have
become engaged in enjoying objects of desire and am entangled due to contact with the modes of
nature.
45. Charity, prescribed duties, observance of major and minor regulative principles, hearing from
scripture, pious works and purifying vows all have as their final aim the subduing of the mind. Indeed,
concentration of the mind on the Supreme is the highest yoga.
46. If one’s mind is perfectly fixed and pacified, then tell me what need does one have to perform
ritualistic charity and other pious rituals? And if one’s mind remains uncontrolled, lost in ignorance, then
of what use are these engagements for him?
47. All the senses have been under the control of the mind since time immemorial, and the mind himself
never comes under the sway of any other. He is stronger than the strongest, and his godlike power is
fearsome. Therefore, anyone who can bring the mind under control becomes the master of all the
senses.
48. Failing to conquer this irrepressible enemy, the mind, whose urges are intolerable and who torments
the heart, many people are completely bewildered and create useless quarrel with others. Thus they
conclude that other people are either their friends, their enemies or parties indifferent to them.
49. Persons who identify with this body, which is simply the product of the material mind, are blinded in
their intelligence, thinking in terms of ”I” and ”mine.” Because of their illusion of ”this is I, but that is
someone else,” they wander in endless darkness.
50. If you say that these people are the cause of my happiness and distress, then where is the place of
the soul in such a conception? This happiness and distress pertain not to the soul but to the interactions
of material bodies. If someone bites his tongue with his own teeth, at whom can he become angry in his
suffering?
51. If you say that the demigods who rule the bodily senses cause suffering, still, how can such
suffering apply to the spirit soul? This acting and being acted upon are merely interactions of the
changeable senses and their presiding deities. When one limb of the body attacks another, with whom
can the person in that body be angry?
52. If the soul himself were the cause of happiness and distress, then we could not blame others, since
happiness and distress would be simply the nature of the soul. According to this theory, nothing except
the soul actually exists, and if we were to perceive something besides the soul, that would be illusion.
Therefore, since happiness and distress do not actually exist in this concept, why become angry at
oneself or others?
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 685
53. And if we examine the hypothesis that the planets are the immediate cause of suffering and
happiness, then also where is the relationship with the soul, who is eternal? After all, the effect of the
planets applies only to things that have taken birth. Expert astrologers have moreover explained how
the planets are only causing pain to each other. Therefore, since the living entity is distinct from these
planets and from the material body, against whom should he vent his anger?
54. If we assume that fruitive work is the cause of happiness and distress, we still are not dealing with
the soul. The idea of material work arises when there is a spiritual actor who is conscious and a material
body that undergoes the transformation of happiness and distress as a reaction to such work. Since the
body has no life, it cannot be the actual recipient of happiness and distress, nor can the soul, who is
ultimately completely spiritual and aloof from the material body. Since karma thus has no ultimate basis
in either the body or the soul, at whom can one become angry?
55. If we accept time as the cause of happiness and distress, that experience still cannot apply to the
spirit soul, since time is a manifestation of the Lord’s spiritual potency and the living entities are also
expansions of the Lord’s spiritual potency manifesting through time. Certainly a fire does not burn its
own flames or sparks, nor does the cold harm its own snowflakes or hail. In fact, the spirit soul is
transcendental and beyond the experience of material happiness and distress. At whom, therefore,
should one become angry?
56. The false ego gives shape to illusory material existence and thus experiences material happiness
and distress. The spirit soul, however, is transcendental to material nature; he can never actually be
affected by material happiness and distress in any place, under any circumstance or by the agency of
any person. A person who understands this has nothing whatsoever to fear from the material creation.
57. I shall cross over the insurmountable ocean of nescience by being firmly fixed in the service of the
lotus feet of Krsna. This was approved by the previous acaryas, who were fixed in firm devotion to the
Lord, Paramatma, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
58. Lord Sri Krsna said: Thus becoming detached upon the loss of his property, this sage gave up his
moroseness. He left home, taking sannyasa, and began to travel about the earth. Even when insulted
by foolish rascals he remained unswerved from his duty and chanted this song.
59. No other force besides his own mental confusion makes the soul experience happiness and
distress. His perception of friends, neutral parties and enemies and the whole material life he builds
around this perception are simply created out of ignorance.
60. My dear Uddhava, fixing your intelligence on Me, you should thus completely control the mind. This
is the essence of the science of yoga.
61. Anyone who listens to or recites to others this song of the sannyasi, which presents scientific
knowledge of the Absolute, and who thus meditates upon it with full attention, will never again be
overwhelmed by the dualities of material happiness and distress.
Chapter Twenty-Four The Philosophy of Sankhya
1. Lord Sri Krsna said: Now I shall describe to you the science of Sankhya, which has been perfectly
established by ancient authorities. By understanding this science a person can immediately give up the
illusion of material duality.
2. Originally, during the Krta-yuga, when all men were very expert in spiritual discrimination, and also
previous to that, during the period of annihilation, the seer existed alone, nondifferent from the seen
object.
3. That one Absolute Truth, remaining free from material dualities and inaccessible to ordinary speech
and mind, divided Himself into two categories—the material nature and the living entities who are trying
to enjoy the manifestations of that nature.
4. Of these two categories of manifestation, one is material nature, which embodies both the subtle
causes and manifests products of matter. The other is the conscious living entity, designated as the
enjoyer.
5. When material nature was agitated by My glance, the three material modes—goodness, passion and
ignorance—became manifest to fulfill the pending desires of the conditioned souls.
6. From these modes arose the primeval sutra, along with the mahat-tattva. By the transformation of the
mahat-tattva was generated the false ego, the cause of the living entities’ bewilderment.
7. False ego, which is the cause of physical sensation, the senses, and the mind, encompasses both
spirit and matter and manifests, in three varieties: in the modes of goodness, passion and ignorance.
8. From false ego in the mode of ignorance came the subtle physical perceptions, from which the gross
elements were generated. From false ego in the mode of passion came the senses, and from false ego
in the mode of goodness arose the eleven demigods.
9. Impelled by Me, all these elements combined to function in an orderly fashion and together gave birth
to the universal egg, which is My excellent place of residence.
686 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
10. I Myself appeared within that egg, which was floating on the causal water, and from My navel arose
the universal lotus, the birthplace of self-born Brahma.
11. Lord Brahma, the soul of the universe, being endowed with the mode of passion, performed great
austerities by My mercy and thus created the three planetary divisions, called Bhur, Bhuvar and Svar,
along with their presiding deities.
12. Heaven was established as the residence of the demigods, Bhuvarloka as that of the ghostly spirits,
and the earth system as the place of human beings and other mortal creatures. Those mystics who
strive for liberation are promoted beyond these three divisions.
13. Lord Brahma created the region below the earth for the demons and the Naga snakes. In this way
the destinations of the three worlds were arranged as the corresponding reactions for different kinds of
work performed within the three modes of nature.
14. By mystic yoga, great austerities and the renounced order of life, the pure destinations of
Maharloka, Janoloka, Tapoloka and Satyaloka are attained. But by devotional yoga, one achieves My
transcendental abode.
15. All results of fruitive work have been arranged within this world by Me, the supreme creator acting
as the force of time. Thus one sometimes rises up toward the surface of this mighty river of the modes
of nature and sometimes again submerges.
16. Whatever features visibly exist within this world—small or great, thin or stout—certainly contain both
the material nature and its enjoyer, the spirit soul.
17. Gold and earth are originally existing as ingredients. From gold one may fashion golden ornaments
such as bracelets and earrings, and from earth one may fashion clay pots and saucers. The original
ingredients gold and earth exist before the products made from them, and when the products are
eventually destroyed, the original ingredients, gold and earth, will remain. Thus, since the ingredients
are present in the beginning and at the end, they must also be present in the middle phase, taking the
form of a particular product to which we assign for convenience a particular name, such as bracelet,
earring, pot or saucer. We can therefore understand that since the ingredient cause exists before the
creation of a product and after the product’s destruction, the same ingredient cause must be present
during the manifest phase, supporting the product as the basis of its reality.
18. A material object, itself composed of an essential ingredient, creates another material object through
transformation. Thus one created object becomes the cause and basis of another created object. A
particular thing may thus be called real in that it possesses the basic nature of another object that
constitutes its origin and final state.
19. The material universe may be considered real, having nature as its original ingredient and final
state. Lord Maha-Visnu is the resting place of nature, which becomes manifest by the power of time.
Thus nature, the almighty Visnu and time are not different from Me, the Supreme Absolute Truth.
20. As long as the Supreme Personality of Godhead continues to glance upon nature, the material
world continues to exist, perpetually manifesting through procreation the great and variegated flow of
universal creation.
21. I am the basis of the universal form, which displays endless variety through the repeated creation,
maintenance and destruction of the planetary systems. Originally containing within itself all planets in
their dormant state, My universal form manifests the varieties of created existence by arranging the
coordinated combination of the five elements.
22-27. At the time of annihilation, the mortal body of the living being becomes merged into food. Food
merges into the grains, and the grains merge back into the earth. The earth merges into its subtle
sensation, fragrance. Fragrance merges into water, and water further merges into its own quality, taste.
That taste merges into fire, which merges into form. Form merges into touch, and touch merges into
ether. Ether finally merges into the sensation of sound. The senses all merge into their own origins, the
presiding demigods, and they, O gentle Uddhava, merge into the controlling mind, which itself merges
into false ego in the mode of goodness. Sound becomes one with false ego in the mode of ignorance,
and all-powerful false ego, the first of all the physical elements, merges into the total nature. The total
material nature, the primary repository of the three basic modes, dissolves into the modes. These
modes of nature then merge into the unmanifest form of nature, and that unmanifest form merges into
time. Time merges into the Supreme Lord, present in the form of the omniscient Maha-purusa, the
original activator of all living beings. That origin of all life merges into Me, the unborn Supreme Soul,
who remains alone, established within Himself. It is from Him that all creation and annihilation are
manifested.
28. Just as the rising sun removes the darkness of the sky, similarly, this scientific knowledge of cosmic
annihilation removes all illusory duality from the mind of a serious student. Even if illusion somehow
enters his heart, it cannot remain there.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 687
29. Thus I, the perfect seer of everything material and spiritual, have spoken this knowledge of
Sankhya, which destroys the illusion of doubt by scientific analysis of creation and annihilation.
Chapter Twenty-Five The Three Modes of Nature and Beyond
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O best among men, please listen as I describe to you
how the living entity attains a particular nature by association with individual material modes.
2-5. Mind and sense control, tolerance, discrimination, sticking to one’s prescribed duty, truthfulness,
mercy, careful study of the past and future, satisfaction in any condition, generosity, renunciation of
sense gratification, faith in the spiritual master, being embarrassed at improper action, charity,
simplicity, humbleness and satisfaction within oneself are qualities of the mode of goodness. Material
desire, great endeavor, audacity, dissatisfaction even in gain, false pride, praying for material
advancement, considering oneself different and better than others, sense gratification, rash eagerness
to fight, a fondness for hearing oneself praised, the tendency to ridicule others, advertising one’s own
prowess and justifying one’s actions by one’s strength are qualities of the mode of passion. Intolerant
anger, stinginess, speaking without scriptural authority, violent hatred, living as a parasite, hypocrisy,
chronic fatigue, quarrel, lamentation, delusion, unhappiness, depression, sleeping too much, false
expectations, fear and laziness constitute the major qualities of the mode of ignorance. Now please
hear about the combination of these three modes.
6. My dear Uddhava, the combination of all three modes is present in the mentality of ”I” and ”mine.”
The ordinary transactions of this world, which are carried out through the agency of the mind, the
objects of perception, the senses and the vital airs of the physical body, are also based on the
combination of the modes.
7. When a person devotes himself to religiosity, economic development and sense gratification, the
faith, wealth and sensual enjoyment obtained by his endeavors display the interaction of the three
modes of nature.
8. When a man desires sense gratification, being attached to family life, and when he consequently
becomes established in religious and occupational duties, the combination of the modes of nature is
manifest.
9. A person exhibiting qualities such as self-control is understood to be predominantly in the mode of
goodness. Similarly, a passionate person is recognized by his lust, and one in ignorance is recognized
by qualities such as anger.
10. Any person, whether man or woman, who worships Me with loving devotion, offering his or her
prescribed duties unto Me without material attachment, is understood to be situated in goodness.
11. When a person worships Me by his prescribed duties with the hope of gaining material benefit, his
nature should be understood to be in passion, and one who worships Me with the desire to commit
violence against others is in ignorance.
12. The three modes of material nature—goodness, passion and ignorance—influence the living entity
but not Me. Manifesting within his mind, they induce the living entity to become attached to material
bodies and other created objects. In this way the living entity is bound up.
13. When the mode of goodness, which is luminous, pure and auspicious, predominates over passion
and ignorance, a man becomes endowed with happiness, virtue, knowledge and other good qualities.
14. When the mode of passion, which causes attachment, separatism and activity, conquers ignorance
and goodness, a man begins to work hard to acquire prestige and fortune. Thus in the mode of passion
he experiences anxiety and struggle.
15. When the mode of ignorance conquers passion and goodness, it covers one’s consciousness and
makes one foolish and dull. Falling into lamentation and illusion, a person in the mode of ignorance
sleeps excessively, indulges in false hopes, and displays violence toward others.
16. When consciousness becomes clear and the senses are detached from matter, one experiences
fearlessness within the material body and detachment from the material mind. You should understand
this situation to be the predominance of the mode of goodness, in which one has the opportunity to
realize Me.
17. You should discern the mode of passion by its symptoms—the distortion of the intelligence because
of too much activity, the inability of the perceiving senses to disentangle themselves from mundane
objects, an unhealthy condition of the working physical organs, and the unsteady perplexity of the mind.
18. When one’s higher awareness fails and finally disappears and one is thus unable to concentrate his
attention, his mind is ruined and manifests ignorance and depression. You should understand this
situation to be the predominance of the mode of ignorance.
19. With the increase of the mode of goodness, the strength of the demigods similarly increases. When
passion increases, the demoniac become strong. And with the rise of ignorance, O Uddhava, the
strength of the most wicked increases.
688 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
20. It should be understood that alert wakefulness comes from the mode of goodness, sleep with
dreaming from the mode of passion, and deep, dreamless sleep from the mode of ignorance. The fourth
state of consciousness pervades these three and is transcendental.
21. Learned persons dedicated to Vedic culture are elevated by the mode of goodness to higher and
higher positions. The mode of ignorance, on the other hand, forces one to fall headfirst into lower and
lower births. And by the mode of passion one continues transmigrating through human bodies.
22. Those who leave this world in the mode of goodness go to the heavenly planets, those who pass
away in the mode of passion remain in the world of human beings, and those dying in the mode of
ignorance must go to hell. But those who are free from the influence of all modes of nature come to Me.
23. Work performed as an offering to Me, without consideration of the fruit, is considered to be in the
mode of goodness. Work performed with a desire to enjoy the results is in the mode of passion. And
work impelled by violence and envy is in the mode of ignorance.
24. Absolute knowledge is in the mode of goodness, knowledge based on duality is in the mode of
passion, and foolish, materialistic knowledge is in the mode of ignorance. Knowledge based upon Me,
however, is understood to be transcendental.
25. Residence in the forest is in the mode of goodness, residence in a town is in the mode of passion,
residence in a gambling house displays the quality of ignorance, and residence in a place where I
reside is transcendental.
26. A worker free of attachment is in the mode of goodness, a worker blinded by personal desire is in
the mode of passion, and a worker who has completely forgotten how to tell right from wrong is in the
mode of ignorance. But a worker who has taken shelter of Me is understood to be transcendental to the
modes of nature.
27. Faith directed toward spiritual life is in the mode of goodness, faith rooted in fruitive work is in the
mode of passion, faith residing in irreligious activities is in the mode of ignorance, but faith in My
devotional service is purely transcendental.
28. Food that is wholesome, pure and obtained without difficulty is in the mode of goodness, food that
gives immediate pleasure to the senses is in the mode of passion, and food that is unclean and causes
distress is in the mode of ignorance.
29. Happiness derived from the self is in the mode of goodness, happiness based on sense gratification
is in the mode of passion, and happiness based on delusion and degradation is in the mode of
ignorance. But that happiness found within Me is transcendental.
30. Therefore material substance, place, result of activity, time, knowledge, work, the performer of work,
faith, state of consciousness, species of life and destination after death are all based on the three
modes of material nature.
31. O best of human beings, all states of material being are related to the interaction of the enjoying
soul and material nature. Whether seen, heard of or only conceived within the mind, they are without
exception constituted of the modes of nature.
32. O gentle Uddhava, all these different phases of conditioned life arise from work born of the modes
of material nature. The living entity who conquers these modes, manifested from the mind, can dedicate
himself to Me by the process of devotional service and thus attain pure love for Me.
33. Therefore, having achieved this human form of life, which allows one to develop full knowledge,
those who are intelligent should free themselves from all contamination of the modes of nature and
engage exclusively in loving service to Me.
34. A wise sage, free from all material association and unbewildered, should subdue his senses and
worship Me. He should conquer the modes of passion and ignorance by engaging himself only with
things in the mode of goodness.
35. Then, being fixed in devotional service, the sage should also conquer the material mode of
goodness by indifference toward the modes. Thus pacified within his mind, the spirit soul, freed from the
modes of nature, gives up the very cause of his conditioned life and attains Me.
36. Freed from the subtle conditioning of the mind and from the modes of nature born of material
consciousness, the living entity becomes completely satisfied by experiencing My transcendental form.
He no longer searches for enjoyment in the external energy, nor does he contemplate or remember
such enjoyment within himself.
Chapter Twenty-Six The Aila-gita
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Having achieved this human form of life, which affords
one the opportunity to realize Me, and being situated in My devotional service, one can achieve Me, the
reservoir of all pleasure and the Supreme Soul of all existence, residing within the heart of every living
being.
2. A person fixed in transcendental knowledge is freed from conditioned life by giving up his false
identification with the products of the material modes of nature. Seeing these products as simply
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 689
illusion, he avoids entanglement with the modes of nature, although constantly among them. Because
the modes of nature and their products are simply not real, he does not accept them.
3. One should never associate with materialists, those dedicated to gratifying their genitals and bellies.
By following them one falls into the deepest pit of darkness, just like a blind man who follows another
blind man.
4. The following song was sung by the famous emperor Purarava. When deprived of his wife, Urvasi, he
was at first bewildered, but by controlling his lamentation he began to feel detachment.
5. When she was leaving him, even though he was naked he ran after her just like a madman and
called out in great distress, ”O my wife, O terrible lady! Please stop!”
6. Although for many years Purarava had enjoyed sex pleasure in the evening hours, still he was not
satisfied by such insignificant enjoyment. His mind was so attracted to Urvasi that he did not notice how
the nights were coming and going.
7. King Aila said: Alas, just see the extent of my delusion! This goddess was embracing me and held
my neck in her grip. My heart was so polluted by lust that I had no idea how my life was passing.
8. That lady cheated me so much that I did not even see the rising or setting of the sun. Alas, for so
many years I passed my days in vain!
9. Alas, although I am supposed to be a mighty emperor, the crown jewel of all kings on this earth, just
see how my bewilderment has rendered me a toy animal in the hands of women!
10. Although I was a powerful lord with great opulence, that woman gave me up as if I were no more
than an insignificant blade of grass. And still, naked and without shame, I followed her, crying out to her
like a madman.
11. Where are my so-called great influence, power and sovereignty? Just like an ass being kicked in the
face by his she-ass, I ran after that woman, who had already given me up.
12. What is the use of a big education or the practice of austerities and renunciation, and what is the
use of studying religious scriptures, of living in solitude and silence, if, after all that, one’s mind is stolen
by a woman?
13. To hell with me! I am such a fool that I didn’t even know what was good for me, although I arrogantly
thought I was highly intelligent. Although I achieved the exalted position of a lord, I allowed myself to be
conquered by women as if I were a bullock or a jackass.
14. Even after I had served the so-called nectar of the lips of Urvasi for many years, my lusty desires
kept rising again and again within my heart and were never satisfied, just like a fire that can never be
extinguished by the oblations of ghee poured into its flames.
15. Who but the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who lies beyond material perception and is the Lord
of self-satisfied sages, can possibly save my consciousness, which has been stolen by a prostitute?
16. Because I allowed my intelligence to become dull and because I failed to control my senses, the
great confusion in my mind did not go away, even though Urvasi herself gave me wise counsel with
well-spoken words.
17. How can I blame her for my trouble when I myself am ignorant of my real, spiritual nature? I did not
control my senses, and so I am like a person who mistakenly sees a harmless rope as a snake.
18. What is this polluted body anyway—so filthy and full of bad odors? I was attracted by the fragrance
and beauty of a woman’s body, but what are those so-called attractive features? They are simply a
false covering created by illusion.
19-20. One can never decide whose property the body actually is. Does it belong to one’s parents, who
have given birth to it, to one’s wife, who gives it pleasure, or to one’s employer, who orders the body
around? Is it the property of the funeral fire or of the dogs and jackals who may ultimately devour it? Is it
the property of the indwelling soul, who partakes in its happiness and distress, or does the body belong
to intimate friends who encourage and help it? Although a man never definitely ascertains the proprietor
of the body, he becomes most attached to it. The material body is a polluted material form heading
toward a lowly destination, yet when a man stares at the face of a woman he thinks, “What a good-
looking lady! What a charming nose she’s got, and see her beautiful smile!”
21. What difference is there between ordinary worms and persons who try to enjoy this material body
composed of skin, flesh, blood, muscle, fat, marrow, bone, stool, urine and pus?
22. Yet even one who theoretically understands the actual nature of the body should never associate
with women or with men attached to women. After all, the contact of the senses with their objects
inevitably agitates the mind.
23. Because the mind is not disturbed by that which is neither seen nor heard, the mind of a person
who restricts the material senses will automatically be checked in its material activities and become
pacified.
690 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
24. Therefore one should never let his senses associate freely with women or with men attached to
women. Even those who are highly learned cannot trust the six enemies of the mind; what to speak,
then, of foolish persons like me.
25. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Having thus chanted this song, Maharaja Pururava,
eminent among the demigods and human beings, gave up the position he had achieved in the planet of
Urvasi. His illusion cleansed away by transcendental knowledge, he understood Me to be the Supreme
Soul within his heart and so at last achieved peace.
26. An intelligent person should therefore reject all bad association and instead take up the association
of saintly devotees, whose words cut off the excessive attachment of one’s mind.
27. My devotees fix their minds on Me and do not depend upon anything material. They are always
peaceful, endowed with equal vision, and free from possessiveness, false ego, duality and greed.
28. O greatly fortunate Uddhava, in the association of such saintly devotees there is constant
discussion of Me, and those partaking in this chanting and hearing of My glories are certainly purified of
all sins.
29. Whoever hears, chants and respectfully takes to heart these topics about Me becomes faithfully
dedicated to Me and thus achieves My devotional service.
30. What more remains to be accomplished for the perfect devotee after achieving devotional service
unto Me, the Supreme Absolute Truth, whose qualities are innumerable and who am the embodiment of
all ecstatic experience?
31. Just as cold, fear and darkness are eradicated for one who has approached the sacrificial fire, so
dullness, fear and ignorance are destroyed for one engaged in serving the devotees of the Lord.
32. The devotees of the Lord, peacefully fixed in absolute knowledge, are the ultimate shelter for those
who are repeatedly rising and falling within the fearful ocean of material life. Such devotees are just like
a strong boat that comes to rescue persons who are at the point of drowning.
33. Just as food is the life of all creatures, just as I am the ultimate shelter for the distressed, and just as
religion is the wealth of those who are passing away from this world, so My devotees are the only
refuge of persons fearful of falling into a miserable condition of life.
34. My devotees bestow divine eyes, whereas the sun allows only external sight, and that only when it
is risen in the sky. My devotees are one’s real worshipable deities and real family; they are one’s own
self, and ultimately they are nondifferent from Me.
35. Thus losing his desire to be on the same planet as Urvasi, Maharaja Pururava began to wander the
earth free of all material association and completely satisfied within the self.
Chapter Twenty-Seven Lord Krsna’s Instructions on the Process of Deity Worship
1. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord, O master of the devotees, please explain to me the prescribed
method of worshiping You in Your Deity form. What are the qualifications of those devotees who
worship the Deity, on what basis is such worship established, and what is the specific method of
worship?
2. All the great sages repeatedly declare that such worship brings the greatest benefit possible in
human life. This is the opinion of Narada Muni, the great Vyasadeva and my own spiritual master,
Brhaspati.
3-4. O most magnanimous Lord, the instructions on this process of Deity worship first emanated from
Your lotus mouth. Then they were spoken by the great Lord Brahma to his sons, headed by Bhrgu, and
by Lord Siva to his wife, Parvati. This process is accepted by and appropriate for all the occupational
and spiritual orders of society. Therefore I consider worship of You in Your Deity form to be the most
beneficial of all spiritual practices, even for women and sudras.
5. O lotus-eyed one, O Supreme Lord of all lords of the universe, please explain to Your devoted
servant this means of liberation from the bondage of work.
6. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, there is no end to the innumerable
Vedic prescriptions for executing Deity worship; so I shall explain this topic to you briefly, one step at a
time.
7. One should carefully worship Me by selecting one of the three methods by which I receive sacrifice:
Vedic, tantric or mixed.
8. Now please listen faithfully as I explain exactly how a person who has achieved twice-born status
through the relevant Vedic prescriptions should worship Me with devotion.
9. A twice-born person should worship Me, his worshipable Lord, without duplicity, offering appropriate
paraphernalia in loving devotion to My Deity form or to a form of Me appearing upon the ground, in fire,
in the sun, in water or within the worshiper’s own heart.
10. One should first purify his body by cleansing his teeth and bathing. Then one should perform a
second cleansing by smearing the body with earth and chanting both Vedic and tantric mantras.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 691
11. Fixing the mind on Me, one should worship Me by his various prescribed duties, such as chanting
the Gayatri mantra at the three junctures of the day. Such performances are enjoined by the Vedas and
purify the worshiper of reactions to fruitive activities.
12. The Deity form of the Lord is said to appear in eight varieties—stone, wood, metal, earth, paint,
sand, the mind or jewels.
13. The Deity form of the Lord, who is the shelter of all living entities, can be established in two ways:
temporarily or permanently. But a permanent Deity, having been called, can never be sent away, My
dear Uddhava.
14. The Deity that is temporarily established can optionally be called forth and sent away, but these two
rituals should always be performed when the Deity is traced upon the ground. Bathing should be done
with water except if the Deity is made of clay, paint or wood, in which cases a thorough cleansing
without water is enjoined.
15. One should worship Me in My Deity forms by offering the most excellent paraphernalia. But a
devotee completely freed from material desire may worship Me with whatever he is able to obtain, and
may even worship Me within his heart with mental paraphernalia.
16-17. In worshiping the temple Deity, my dear Uddhava, bathing and decoration are the most pleasing
offerings. For the Deity traced on sacred ground, the process of tattva-vinyasa is most dear. Oblations
of sesame and barley soaked in ghee are the preferred offering to the sacrificial fire, whereas worship
consisting of upasthana and arghya is preferred for the sun. One should worship Me in the form of
water by offering water itself. Actually, whatever is offered to Me with faith by My devotee—even if only
a little water—is most dear to Me.
18. Even very opulent presentations do not satisfy Me if they are offered by nondevotees. But I am
pleased by any insignificant offering made by My loving devotees, and I am certainly most pleased
when nice presentations of fragrant oil, incense, flowers and palatable foods are offered with love.
19. After cleansing himself and collecting all the paraphernalia, the worshiper should arrange his own
seat with blades of kusa grass whose tips point eastward. He should then sit facing either east or north,
or else, if the Deity is fixed in one place, he should sit directly facing the Deity.
20. The devotee should sanctify the various parts of his body by touching them and chanting mantras.
He should do the same for My Deity forms and then with his hands he should clean the Deity of old
flowers and the remnants of previous offerings. He should properly prepare the sacred pot and the
vessel containing water for sprinkling.
21. Then, with the water of that proksaniya vessel he should sprinkle the area where the Deity is being
worshiped, the offerings that are going to be presented, and his own body. Next he should decorate
with various auspicious substances three vessels filled with water.
22. The worshiper should then purify those three vessels. He should sanctify the vessel holding water
for washing the Lord’s feet by chanting hrdayaya namah, the vessel containing water for arghya by
chanting sirase svaha, and the vessel containing water for washing the Lord’s mouth by chanting
sikhayai vasat. Also, the Gayatri mantra should be chanted for all three vessels.
23. The worshiper should meditate upon My subtle form—which is situated within the worshiper’s own
body, now purified by air and fire—as the source of all living entities. This form of the Lord is
experienced by self-realized sages in the last part of the vibration of the sacred syllable om.
24. The devotee conceives of the Supersoul, whose presence surcharges the devotee’s body, in the
form corresponding to his realization. Thus the devotee worships the Lord to his full capacity and
becomes fully absorbed in Him. By touching the various limbs of the Deity and chanting appropriate
mantras, the devotee should invite the Supersoul to join the Deity’s form, and then the devotee should
worship Me.
25-26. The worshiper should first imagine My seat as decorated with the personified deities of religion,
knowledge, renunciation and opulence and with My nine spiritual energies. He should think of the Lord’s
sitting place as an eight-petaled lotus, effulgent on account of the saffron filaments within its whorl.
Then, following the regulations of both the Vedas and the tantras, he should offer Me water for washing
the feet, water for washing the mouth, arghya and other items of worship. By this process he achieves
both material enjoyment and liberation.
27. One should worship, in order, the Lord’s Sudarsana disc, His Pancajanya conchshell, His club,
sword, bow, arrows and plow, His musala weapon, His Kaustubha gem, His flower garland and the
Srivatsa curl of hair on His chest.
28. One should worship the Lord’s associates Nanda and Sunanda, Garuda, Pracanda and Canda,
Mahabala and Bala, and Kumuda and Kumudeksana.
29. With offerings such as proksana one should worship Durga, Vinayaka, Vyasa, Visvaksena, the
spiritual masters and the various demigods. All these personalities should be in their proper places
facing the Deity of the Lord.
692 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
30-31. The worshiper should bathe the Deity every day, as opulently as his assets permit, using waters
scented with sandalwood, usira root, camphor, kunkuma and aguru. He should also chant various Vedic
hymns, such as the anuvaka known as Svarna-gharma, the Mahapurusa-vidya, the Purusa-sukta and
various songs of the Sama Veda, such as the Rajana and the Rohinya.
32. My devotee should then lovingly decorate Me with clothing, a brahmana thread, various ornaments,
marks of tilaka and garlands, and he should anoint My body with fragrant oils, all in the prescribed
manner.
33. The worshiper should faithfully present Me with water for washing My feet and mouth, fragrant oils,
flowers and unbroken grains, along with incense, lamps and other offerings.
34. Within his means, the devotee should arrange to offer Me sugar candy, sweet rice, ghee, saskuli
[rice-flour cakes], apupa [various sweet cakes], modaka [steamed rice-flour dumplings filled with sweet
coconut and sugar], samyava [wheat cakes made with ghee and milk and covered with sugar and
spices], yogurt, vegetable soups and other palatable foods.
35. On special occasions, and daily if possible, the Deity should be massaged with ointment, shown a
mirror, offered a eucalyptus stick for brushing His teeth, bathed with the five kinds of nectar, offered all
kinds of opulent foods, and entertained with singing and dancing.
36. In an arena constructed according to scriptural injunctions, the devotee should perform a fire
sacrifice, utilizing the sacred belt, the sacrificial pit and the altar mound. When igniting the sacrificial fire,
the devotee should bring it to a blaze with wood piled up by his own hands.
37. After spreading kusa grass on the ground and sprinkling it with water, one should perform the
anvadhana ritual according to the prescribed rules. Then one should arrange the items to be offered as
oblations and should sanctify them with water from the sprinkling vessel. The worshiper should next
meditate upon Me within the fire.
38-41. The intelligent devotee should meditate upon that form of the Lord whose color is like molten
gold, whose four arms are resplendent with the conchshell, disc, club and lotus flower, and who is
always peaceful and dressed in a garment colored like the filaments within a lotus flower. His helmet,
bracelets, belt and fine arm ornaments shine brilliantly. The symbol of Srivatsa is on His chest, along
with the glowing Kaustubha gem and a garland of forest flowers. The devotee should then worship that
Lord by taking pieces of firewood soaked in the sacrificial ghee and throwing them into the fire. He
should perform the ritual of aghara, presenting into the fire the various items of oblation drenched in
ghee. He should then offer to sixteen demigods, beginning with Yamaraja, the oblation called svisti-krt,
reciting the basic mantras of each deity and the sixteen-line Purusa-sukta hymn. Pouring one oblation
after each line of the Purusa-sukta, he should utter the particular mantra naming each deity.
42. Having thus worshiped the Lord in the sacrificial fire, the devotee should offer his obeisances to the
Lord’s personal associates by bowing down and should then present offerings to them. He should then
chant quietly the mula-mantra of the Deity of the Lord, remembering the Absolute Truth as the Supreme
Personality, Narayana.
43. Once again he should offer the Deity water for washing His mouth, and he should give the remnants
of the Lord’s food to Visvaksena. Then he should present the Deity with fragrant perfume for the mouth
and prepared betel nut.
44. Singing along with others, chanting loudly and dancing, acting out My transcendental pastimes, and
hearing and telling stories about Me, the devotee should for some time absorb himself in such festivity.
45. The devotee should offer homage to the Lord with all kinds of hymns and prayers, both from the
Puranas and from other ancient scriptures, and also from ordinary traditions. Praying, ”O Lord, please
be merciful to me! ”he should fall down flat like a rod to offer his obeisances.
46. Placing his head at the feet of the Deity, he should then stand with folded hands before the Lord and
pray, ”O my Lord, please protect me, who am surrendered unto You. I am most fearful of this ocean of
material existence, standing as I am in the mouth of death.”
47. Praying in this way, the devotee should respectfully place upon his head the remnants I offer to him.
And if the particular Deity is meant to be sent away at the end of the worship, then this should be
performed, the devotee once again placing the light of the Deity’s presence inside the light of the lotus
within his own heart.
48. Whenever one develops faith in Me—in My form as the Deity or in other bona fide manifestations—
one should worship Me in that form. I certainly exist both within all created beings and also separately in
My original form, since I am the Supreme Soul of all.
49. By worshiping Me through the various methods prescribed in the Vedas and tantras, one will gain
from Me his desired perfection in both this life and the next.
50. The devotee should more fully establish My Deity by solidly constructing a temple, along with
beautiful gardens. These gardens should be set aside to provide flowers for the regular daily worship,
special Deity processions and holiday observances.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 693
51. One who offers the Deity gifts of land, markets, cities and villages so that the regular daily worship
and special festivals of the Deity may go on continually will achieve opulence equal to My own.
52. By installing the Deity of the Lord one becomes king of the entire earth, by building a temple for the
Lord one becomes ruler of the three worlds, by worshiping and serving the Deity one goes to the planet
of Lord Brahma, and by performing all three of these activities one achieves a transcendental form like
My own.
53. But one who simply engages in devotional service with no consideration of fruitive results attains
Me. Thus whoever worships Me according to the process I have described will ultimately attain pure
devotional service unto Me.
54. Anyone who steals the property of the demigods or the brahmanas, whether originally given to them
by himself or someone else, must live as a worm in stool for one hundred million years.
55. Not only the performer of the theft but also anyone who assists him, instigates the crime, or simply
approves of it must also share the reaction in the next life. According to their degree of participation,
they each must suffer a proportionate consequence.
Chapter Twenty-Eight Jnana-yoga
1. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: One should neither praise nor criticize the conditioned
nature and activities of other persons. Rather, one should see this world as simply the combination of
material nature and the enjoying souls, all based on the one Absolute Truth.
2. Whoever indulges in praising or criticizing the qualities and behavior of others will quickly become
deviated from his own best interest by his entanglement in illusory dualities.
3. Just as the embodied spirit soul loses external consciousness when his senses are overcome by the
illusion of dreaming or the deathlike state of deep sleep, so a person experiencing material duality must
encounter illusion and death.
4. That which is expressed by material words or meditated upon by the material mind is not ultimate
truth. What, therefore, is actually good or bad within this insubstantial world of duality, and how can the
extent of such good and bad be measured?
5. Although shadows, echoes and mirages are only illusory reflections of real things, such reflections do
cause a semblance of meaningful or comprehensible perception. In the same way, although the
identification of the conditioned soul with the material body, mind and ego is illusory, this identification
generates fear within him even up to the moment of death.
6-7. The Supersoul alone is the ultimate controller and creator of this world, and thus He alone is also
the created. Similarly, the Soul of all existence Himself both maintains and is maintained, withdraws and
is withdrawn. No other entity can be properly ascertained as separate from Him, the Supreme Soul,
who nonetheless is distinct from everything and everyone else. The appearance of the threefold
material nature, which is perceived within Him, has no actual basis. Rather, you should understand that
this material nature, composed of the three modes, is simply the product of His illusory potency.
8. One who has properly understood the process of becoming firmly fixed in theoretical and realized
knowledge, as described herein by Me, does not indulge in material criticism or praise. Like the sun, he
wanders freely throughout this world.
9. By direct perception, logical deduction, scriptural testimony and personal realization, one should
know that this world has a beginning and an end and so is not the ultimate reality. Thus one should live
in this world without attachment.
10. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord, it is not possible for this material existence to be the experience of
either the soul, who is the seer, or of the body, which is the seen object. On the one hand, the spirit soul
is innately endowed with perfect knowledge, and on the other hand, the material body is not a
conscious, living entity. To whom, then, does this experience of material existence pertain?
11. The spirit soul is inexhaustible, transcendental, pure, self-luminous and never covered by anything
material. It is like fire. But the nonliving material body, like firewood, is dull and unaware. So in this
world, who is it that actually undergoes the experience of material life?
12. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: As long as the foolish spirit soul remains attracted to the
material body, senses and vital force, his material existence continues to flourish, although it is
ultimately meaningless.
13. Actually, the living entity is transcendental to material existence. But because of his mentality of
lording it over material nature, his material existential condition does not cease, and, just as in a dream,
he is affected by all sorts of disadvantages.
14. Although while dreaming a person experiences many undesirable things, upon awakening he is no
longer confused by the dream experiences.
15. Lamentation, elation, fear, anger, greed, confusion and hankering, as well as birth and death, are
experiences of the false ego and not of the pure soul.
694 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
16. The living entity who falsely identifies with his body, senses, life air and mind, and who dwells within
these coverings, assumes the form of his own materially conditioned qualities and work. He is
designated variously in relation to the total material energy, and thus, under the strict control of supreme
time, he is forced to run here and there within material existence.
17. Although the false ego has no factual basis, it is perceived in many forms—as the functions of the
mind, speech, life air and bodily faculties. But with the sword of transcendental knowledge, sharpened
by worship of a bona fide spiritual master, a sober sage will cut off this false identification and live in this
world free from all material attachment.
18. Real spiritual knowledge is based on the discrimination of spirit from matter, and it is cultivated by
scriptural evidence, austerity, direct perception, reception of the Puranas’ historical narrations, and
logical inference. The Absolute Truth, which alone was present before the creation of the universe and
which alone will remain after its destruction, is also the time factor and the ultimate cause. Even in the
middle stage of this creation’s existence, the Absolute Truth alone is the actual reality.
19. Gold alone is present before its manufacture into gold products, the gold alone remains after the
products’ destruction, and the gold alone is the essential reality while it is being utilized under various
designations. Similarly, I alone exist before the creation of this universe, after its destruction and during
its maintenance.
20. The material mind manifests in three phases of consciousness—wakefulness, sleep and deep
sleep—which are products of the three modes of nature. The mind further appears in three different
roles—the perceiver, the perceived and the regulator of perception. Thus the mind is manifested
variously throughout these threefold designations. But it is the fourth factor, existing separately from all
this, that alone constitutes the Absolute Truth.
21. That which did not exist in the past and will not exist in the future also has no existence of its own for
the period of its duration, but is only a superficial designation. In My opinion, whatever is created and
revealed by something else is ultimately only that other thing.
22. Although thus not existing in reality, this manifestation of transformations created from the mode of
passion appears real because the self-manifested, self-luminous Absolute Truth exhibits Himself in the
form of the material variety of the senses, the sense objects, the mind and the elements of physical
nature.
23. Thus clearly understanding by discriminating logic the unique position of the Absolute Truth, one
should expertly refute one’s misidentification with matter and cut to pieces all doubts about the identity
of the self. Becoming satisfied in the soul’s natural ecstasy, one should desist from all lusty
engagements of the material senses.
24. The material body made of earth is not the true self; nor are the senses, their presiding demigods or
the air of life; nor is the external air, water or fire or one’s mind. All these are simply matter. Similarly,
neither one’s intelligence, material consciousness nor ego, nor the elements of ether or earth, nor the
objects of sense perception, nor even the primeval state of material equilibrium can be considered the
actual identity of the soul.
25. For one who has properly realized My personal identity as the Supreme Godhead, what credit is
there if his senses—mere products of the material modes—are perfectly concentrated in meditation?
And on the other hand, what blame is incurred if his senses happen to become agitated? Indeed, what
does it mean to the sun if the clouds come and go?
26. The sky may display the various qualities of the air, fire, water and earth that pass through it, as well
as such qualities as heat and cold, which continually come and go with the seasons. Yet the sky is
never entangled with any of these qualities. Similarly, the Supreme Absolute Truth is never entangled
with the contaminations of goodness, passion and ignorance, which cause the material transformations
of the false ego.
27. Nevertheless, until by firmly practicing devotional service to Me one has completely eliminated from
his mind all contamination of material passion, one must very carefully avoid associating with the
material modes, which are produced by My illusory energy.
28. Just as an improperly treated disease recurs and gives repeated distress to the patient, the mind
that is not completely purified of its perverted tendencies will remain attached to material things and
repeatedly torment the imperfect yogi.
29. Sometimes the progress of imperfect transcendentalists is checked by attachment to family
members, disciples or others, who are sent by envious demigods for that purpose. But on the strength
of their accumulated advancement, such imperfect transcendentalists will resume their practice of yoga
in the next life. They will never again be trapped in the network of fruitive work.
30. An ordinary living entity performs material work and is transformed by the reaction to such work.
Thus he is driven by various desires to continue working fruitively up to the very moment of his death. A
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 695
wise person, however, having experienced his own constitutional bliss, gives up all material desires and
does not engage in fruitive work.
31. The wise man, whose consciousness is fixed in the self, does not even notice his own bodily
activities. While standing, sitting, walking, lying down, urinating, eating or performing other bodily
functions, he understands that the body is acting according to its own nature.
32. Although a self-realized soul may sometimes see an impure object or activity, he does not accept it
as real. By logically understanding impure sense objects to be based on illusory material duality, the
intelligent person sees them to be contrary to and distinct from reality, in the same way that a man
awakening from sleep views his fading dream.
33. Material nescience, which expands into many varieties by the activities of the modes of nature, is
wrongly accepted by the conditioned soul to be identical with the self. But through the cultivation of
spiritual knowledge, My dear Uddhava, this same nescience fades away at the time of liberation. The
eternal self, on the other hand, is never assumed and never abandoned.
34. When the sun rises it destroys the darkness covering men’s eyes, but it does not create the objects
they then see before them, which in fact were existing all along. Similarly, potent and factual realization
of Me will destroy the darkness covering a person’s true consciousness.
35. The Supreme Lord is self-luminous, unborn and immeasurable. He is pure transcendental
consciousness and perceives everything. One without a second, He is realized only after ordinary
words cease. By Him the power of speech and the life airs are set into motion.
36. Whatever apparent duality is perceived in the self is simply the confusion of the mind. Indeed, such
supposed duality has no basis to rest upon apart from one’s own soul.
37. The duality of the five material elements is perceived only in terms of names and forms. Those who
say this duality is real are pseudoscholars vainly proposing fanciful theories without basis in fact.
38. The physical body of the endeavoring yogi who is not yet mature in his practice may sometimes be
overcome by various disturbances. Therefore the following process is recommended.
39. Some of these obstructions may be counteracted by yogic meditation or by sitting postures,
practiced together with concentration on controlled breathing, and others may be counteracted by
special austerities, mantras or medicinal herbs.
40. These inauspicious disturbances can be gradually removed by constant remembrance of Me, by
congregational hearing and chanting of My holy names, or by following in the footsteps of the great
masters of yoga.
41. By various methods, some yogis free the body from disease and old age and keep it perpetually
youthful. Thus they engage in yoga for the purpose of achieving material mystic perfections.
42. This mystic bodily perfection is not valued very highly by those expert in transcendental knowledge.
Indeed, they consider endeavor for such perfection useless, since the soul, like a tree, is permanent,
but the body, like a tree’s fruit, is subject to destruction.
43. Although the physical body may be improved by various processes of yoga, an intelligent person
who has dedicated his life to Me does not place his faith in the prospect of perfecting his physical body
through yoga, and in fact he gives up such procedures.
44. The yogi who has taken shelter of Me remains free from hankering because he experiences the
happiness of the soul within. Thus while executing this process of yoga, he is never defeated by
obstacles.
Chapter Twenty-Nine Bhakti-yoga
1. Sri Uddhava said: My dear Lord Acyuta, I fear that the method of yoga described by You is very
difficult for one who cannot control his mind. Therefore please explain to me in simple terms how
someone can more easily execute it.
2. O lotus-eyed Lord, generally those yogis who try to steady the mind experience frustration because
of their inability to perfect the state of trance. Thus they weary in their attempt to bring the mind under
control.
3. Therefore, O lotus-eyed Lord of the universe, swanlike men happily take shelter of Your lotus feet,
the source of all transcendental ecstasy. But those who take pride in their accomplishments in yoga and
karma fail to take shelter of You and are defeated by Your illusory energy.
4. My dear infallible Lord, it is not very astonishing that You intimately approach Your servants who
have taken exclusive shelter of You. After all, during Your appearance as Lord Ramacandra, even while
great demigods like Brahma were vying to place the effulgent tips of their helmets upon the cushion
where Your lotus feet rested, You displayed special affection for monkeys such as Hanuman because
they had taken exclusive shelter of You.
5. Who, then, could dare reject You, the very Soul, the most dear object of worship, and the Supreme
Lord of all—You who give all possible perfections to the devotees who take shelter of You? Who could
be so ungrateful, knowing the benefits You bestow? Who would reject You and accept something for
696 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
the sake of material enjoyment, which simply leads to forgetfulness of You? And what lack is there for
us who are engaged in the service of the dust of Your lotus feet?
6. O my Lord! Transcendental poets and experts in spiritual science could not fully express their
indebtedness to You, even if they were endowed with the prolonged lifetime of Brahma, for You appear
in two features—externally as the acarya and internally as the Supersoul—to deliver the embodied
living being by directing him how to come to You.
7. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus questioned by the most affectionate Uddhava, Lord Krsna, the
supreme controller of all controllers, who takes the entire universe as His plaything and assumes the
three forms of Brahma, Visnu and Siva, began to reply, lovingly displaying His all-attractive smile.
8. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: Yes, I shall describe to you the principles of devotion to
Me, by executing which a mortal human being will conquer unconquerable death.
9. Always remembering Me, one should perform all his duties for Me without becoming impetuous. With
mind and intelligence offered to Me, one should fix his mind in attraction to My devotional service.
10. One should take shelter of holy places where My saintly devotees reside, and one should be guided
by the exemplary activities of My devotees, who appear among the demigods, demons and human
beings.
11. Either alone or in public gatherings, with singing, dancing and other exhibitions of royal opulence,
one should arrange to celebrate those holy days, ceremonies and festivals set aside specially for My
worship.
12. With a pure heart one should see Me, the Supreme Soul within all beings and also within oneself, to
be both unblemished by anything material and also present everywhere, both externally and internally,
just like the omnipresent sky.
13-14. O brilliant Uddhava, one who thus views all living entities with the idea that I am present within
each of them, and who by taking shelter of this divine knowledge offers due respect to everyone, is
considered actually wise. Such a man sees equally the brahmana and the outcaste, the thief and the
charitable promoter of brahminical culture, the sun and the tiny sparks of fire, the gentle and the cruel.
15. For him who constantly meditates upon My presence within all persons, the bad tendencies of
rivalry, envy and abusiveness, along with false ego, are very quickly destroyed.
16. Disregarding the ridicule of one’s companions, one should give up the bodily conception and its
accompanying embarrassment. One should offer obeisances before all—even the dogs, outcastes,
cows and asses—falling flat upon the ground like a rod.
17. Until one has fully developed the ability to see Me within all living beings, one must continue to
worship Me by this process with the activities of his speech, mind and body.
18. By such transcendental knowledge of the all-pervading Personality of Godhead, one is able to see
the Absolute Truth everywhere. Freed thus from all doubts, one gives up fruitive activities.
19. Indeed, I consider this process—using one’s mind, words and bodily functions for realizing Me
within all living beings—to be the best possible method of spiritual enlightenment.
20. My dear Uddhava, because I have personally established it, this process of devotional service unto
Me is transcendental and free from any material motivation. Certainly a devotee never suffers even the
slightest loss by adopting this process.
21. O Uddhava, greatest of saints, in a dangerous situation an ordinary person cries, becomes fearful
and laments, although such useless emotions do not change the situation. But activities offered to Me
without personal motivation, even if they are externally useless, amount to the actual process of
religion.
22. This process is the supreme intelligence of the intelligent and the cleverness of the most clever, for
by following it one can in this very life make use of the temporary and unreal to achieve Me, the eternal
reality.
23. Thus have I related to you—both in brief and in detail—a complete survey of the science of the
Absolute Truth. Even for the demigods, this science is very difficult to comprehend.
24. I have repeatedly spoken this knowledge to you with clear reasoning. Anyone who properly
understands it will become free from all doubts and attain liberation.
25. Anyone who fixes his attention on these clear answers to your questions will attain to the eternal,
confidential goal of the Vedas—the Supreme Absolute Truth.
26. One who liberally disseminates this knowledge among My devotees is the bestower of the Absolute
Truth, and to him I give My very own self.
27. He who loudly recites this supreme knowledge, which is the most lucid and purifying, becomes
purified day by day, for he reveals Me to others with the lamp of transcendental knowledge.
28. Anyone who regularly listens to this knowledge with faith and attention, all the while engaging in My
pure devotional service, will never become bound by the reactions of material work.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 697
29. My dear friend Uddhava, have you now completely understood this transcendental knowledge? Are
the confusion and lamentation that arose in your mind now dispelled?
30. You should not share this instruction with anyone who is hypocritical, atheistic or dishonest, or with
anyone who will not listen faithfully, who is not a devotee, or who is simply not humble.
31. This knowledge should be taught to one who is free from these bad qualities, who is dedicated to
the welfare of the brahmanas, and who is kindly disposed, saintly and pure. And if common workers
and women are found to have devotion for the Supreme Lord, they are also to be accepted as qualified
hearers.
32. When an inquisitive person comes to understand this knowledge, he has nothing further to know.
After all, one who has drunk the most palatable nectar cannot remain thirsty.
33. Through analytic knowledge, ritualistic work, mystic yoga, mundane business and political rule,
people seek to advance in religiosity, economic development, sense gratification and liberation. But
because you are My devotee, whatever men can accomplish in these multifarious ways you will very
easily find within Me.
34. A person who gives up all fruitive activities and offers himself entirely unto Me, eagerly desiring to
render service unto Me, achieves liberation from birth and death and is promoted to the status of
sharing My own opulences.
35. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Hearing these words spoken by Lord Krsna, and having thus been shown
the entire path of yoga, Uddhava folded his hands to offer obeisances. But his throat choked up with
love and his eyes overflowed with tears; so he could say nothing.
36. Steadying his mind, which had become overwhelmed with love, Uddhava felt extremely grateful to
Lord Krsna, the greatest hero of the Yadu dynasty. My dear King Pariksit, Uddhava bowed down to
touch the Lord’s lotus feet with his head and then spoke with folded hands.
37. Sri Uddhava said: O unborn, primeval Lord, although I had fallen into the great darkness of illusion,
my ignorance has now been dispelled by Your merciful association. Indeed, how can cold, darkness
and fear exert their power over one who has approached the brilliant sun?
38. In return for my insignificant surrender, You have mercifully bestowed upon me, Your servant, the
torchlight of transcendental knowledge. Therefore, what devotee of Yours who has any gratitude could
ever give up Your lotus feet and take shelter of another master?
39. The firmly binding rope of my affection for the families of the Dasarhas, Vrsnis, Andhakas and
Satvatas—a rope You originally cast over me by Your illusory energy for the purpose of developing
Your creation—is now cut off by the weapon of transcendental knowledge of the self.
40. Obeisances unto You, O greatest of yogis. Please instruct me, who am surrendered unto You, how I
may have undeviating attachment to Your lotus feet.
41-44. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Uddhava, take My order and go to My
asrama called Badarika. Purify yourself by both touching and also bathing in the holy waters there,
which have emanated from My lotus feet. Rid yourself of all sinful reactions with the sight of the sacred
Alakananda River. Dress yourself in bark and eat whatever is naturally available in the forest. Thus you
should remain content and free from desire, tolerant of all dualities, good-natured, self-controlled,
peaceful and endowed with transcendental knowledge and realization. With fixed attention, meditate
constantly upon these instructions I have imparted to you and assimilate their essence. Fix your words
and thoughts upon Me, and always endeavor to increase your realization of My transcendental
qualities. In this way you will cross beyond the destinations of the three modes of nature and finally
come back to Me.
45. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Thus addressed by Lord Krsna, whose intelligence destroys all the
suffering of material life, Sri Uddhava circumambulated the Lord and then fell down, placing his head
upon the Lord’s feet. Although Uddhava was free from the influence of all material dualities, his heart
was breaking, and at this time of departure he drenched the Lord’s lotus feet with his tears.
46. Greatly fearing separation from Him for whom he felt such indestructible affection, Uddhava was
distraught, and he could not give up the Lord’s company. Finally, feeling great pain, he bowed down to
the Lord again and again, placed the slippers of his master upon his head, and departed.
47. Thereupon, placing the Lord deeply within his heart, the great devotee Uddhava went to
Badarikasrama. By engaging there in austerities, he attained to the Lord’s personal abode, which had
been described to him by the only friend of the universe, Lord Krsna Himself.
48. Thus Lord Krsna, whose lotus feet are served by all great yoga masters, spoke to His devotee this
nectarean knowledge, which comprises the entire ocean of spiritual bliss. Anyone within this universe
who receives this narration with great faith is assured of liberation.
49. I offer my obeisances to that Supreme Personality of Godhead, the original and greatest of all
beings, Lord Sri Krsna. He is the author of the Vedas, and just to destroy His devotees’ fear of material
existence, like a bee He has collected this nectarean essence of all knowledge and self-realization.
698 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
Thus He has awarded to His many devotees this nectar from the ocean of bliss, and by His mercy they
have drunk it.
Chapter Thirty The Disappearance of the Yadu Dynasty
1. King Pariksit said: After the great devotee Uddhava left for the forest, what did the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, the protector of all living beings, do in the city of Dvaraka?
2. After His own dynasty met destruction from the curse of the brahmanas, how could the best of the
Yadus give up His body, the dearmost object of all eyes?
3. Once their eyes were fixed upon His transcendental form, women were unable to withdraw them, and
once that form had entered the ears of the sages and become fixed in their hearts, it would never
depart. What to speak of acquiring fame, the great poets who described the beauty of the Lord’s form
would have their words invested with transcendentally pleasing attraction. And by seeing that form on
Arjuna’s chariot, all the warriors on the battlefield of Kuruksetra attained the liberation of gaining a
spiritual body similar to the Lord’s.
4. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Having observed many disturbing signs in the sky, on the earth and in outer
space, Lord Krsna addressed the Yadus assembled in the Sudharma council hall as follows.
5. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: O leaders of the Yadu dynasty, please note all these
terrible omens that have appeared in Dvaraka just like the flags of death. We should not remain here a
moment longer.
6. The women, children and old men should leave this city and go to Sankhoddhara. We shall go to
Prabhasa-ksetra, where the river Sarasvati flows toward the west.
7. There we should bathe for purification, fast, and fix our minds in meditation. We should then worship
the demigods by bathing their images, anointing them with sandalwood pulp, and presenting them
various offerings.
8. After performing the expiatory rituals with the help of greatly fortunate brahmanas, we will worship
those brahmanas by offering them cows, land, gold, clothing, elephants, horses, chariots and dwelling
places.
9. This is indeed the appropriate process for counteracting our imminent adversity, and it is sure to bring
about the highest good fortune. Such worship of the demigods, brahmanas and cows can earn the
highest birth for all living entities.
10. Having heard these words from Lord Krsna, the enemy of Madhu, the elders of the Yadu dynasty
gave their assent, saying, ”So be it.” After crossing over the ocean in boats, they proceeded on chariots
to Prabhasa.
11. There, with great devotion, the Yadavas performed the religious ceremonies according to the
instructions of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, their personal Lord. They also performed various
other auspicious rituals.
12. Then, their intelligence covered by Providence, they liberally indulged in drinking the sweet maireya
beverage, which can completely intoxicate the mind.
13. The heroes of the Yadu dynasty became intoxicated from their extravagant drinking and began to
feel arrogant. When they were thus bewildered by the personal potency of Lord Krsna, a terrible quarrel
arose among them.
14. Infuriated, they seized their bows and arrows, swords, bhallas, clubs, lances and spears and
attacked one another on the shore of the ocean.
15. Riding on elephants and chariots with flags flying, and also on donkeys, camels, bulls, buffalos,
mules and even human beings, the extremely enraged warriors came together and violently attacked
one another with arrows, just as elephants in the forest attack one another with their tusks.
16. Their mutual enmity aroused, Pradyumna fought fiercely against Samba, Akrura against Kuntibhoja,
Aniruddha against Satyaki, Subhadra against Sangramajit, Sumitra against Suratha, and the two Gadas
against each other.
17. Others also, such as Nisatha, Ulmuka, Sahasrajit, Satajit and Bhanu, confronted and killed one
another, being blinded by intoxication and thus completely bewildered by Lord Mukunda Himself.
18. Completely abandoning their natural friendship, the members of the various Yadu clans—the
Dasarhas, Vrsnis and Andhakas, the Bhojas, Satvatas, Madhus and Arbudas, the Mathuras,
Surasenas, Visarjanas, Kukuras and Kuntis—all slaughtered one another.
19. Thus bewildered, sons fought with fathers, brothers with brothers, nephews with paternal and
maternal uncles, and grandsons with grandfathers. Friends fought with friends, and well-wishers with
well-wishers. In this way intimate friends and relatives all killed one another.
20. When all their bows had been broken and their arrows and other missiles spent, they seized the tall
stalks of cane with their bare hands.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 699
21. As soon as they took these cane stalks in their fists, the stalks changed into iron rods as hard as
thunderbolts. With these weapons the warriors began attacking one another again and again, and when
Lord Krsna tried to stop them they attacked Him as well.
22. In their confused state, O King, they also mistook Lord Balarama for an enemy. Weapons in hand,
they ran toward Him with the intention of killing Him.
23. O son of the Kurus, Krsna and Balarama then became very angry. Picking up cane stalks, They
moved about within the battle and began to kill with these clubs.
24. The violent anger of these warriors, who were overcome by the brahmanas’ curse and bewildered
by Lord Krsna’s illusory potency, now led them to their annihilation, just as a fire that starts in a bamboo
grove destroys the entire forest.
25. When all the members of His own dynasty were thus destroyed, Lord Krsna thought to Himself that
at last the burden of the earth had been removed.
26. Lord Balarama then sat down on the shore of the ocean and fixed Himself in meditation upon the
Supreme Personality of Godhead. Merging Himself within Himself, He gave up this mortal world.
27. Lord Krsna, the son of Devaki, having seen the departure of Lord Rama, sat down silently on the
ground under a nearby pippala tree.
28-32. The Lord was exhibiting His brilliantly effulgent four-armed form, the radiance of which, just like a
smokeless fire, dissipated the darkness in all directions. His complexion was the color of a dark blue
cloud and His effulgence the color of molten gold, and His all-auspicious form bore the mark of Srivatsa.
A beautiful smile graced His lotus face, locks of dark blue hair adorned His head, His lotus eyes were
very attractive, and His shark-shaped earrings glittered. He wore a pair of silken garments, an
ornamental belt, the sacred thread, bracelets and arm ornaments, along with a helmet, the Kaustubha
jewel, necklaces, anklets and other royal emblems. Encircling His body were flower garlands and His
personal weapons in their embodied forms. As He sat He held His left foot, with its lotus-red sole, upon
His right thigh.
33. Just then a hunter named Jara, who had approached the place, mistook the Lord’s foot for a deer’s
face. Thinking he had found his prey, Jara pierced the foot with his arrow, which he had fashioned from
the remaining iron fragment of Samba’s club.
34. Then, seeing that four-armed personality, the hunter became terrified of the offense he had
committed, and he fell down, placing his head upon the feet of the enemy of the demons.
35. Jara said: O Lord Madhusudana, I am a most sinful person. I have committed this act out of
ignorance. O purest Lord, O Uttamahsloka, please forgive this sinner.
36. O Lord Visnu, the learned say that for any man, constant remembrance of You will destroy the
darkness of ignorance. O master, I have wronged You!
37. Therefore, O Lord of Vaikuntha, please kill this sinful hunter of animals immediately so he may not
again commit such offenses against saintly persons.
38. Neither Brahma nor his sons, headed by Rudra, nor any of the great sages who are masters of the
Vedic mantras can understand the function of Your mystic power. Because Your illusory potency has
covered their sight, they remain ignorant of how Your mystic power works. Therefore, what can I, such a
low-born person, possibly say?
39. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Jara, do not fear. Please get up. What has
been done is actually My own desire. With My permission, go now to the abode of the pious, the
spiritual world.
40. So instructed by the Supreme Lord Krsna, who assumes His transcendental body by His own will,
the hunter circumambulated the Lord three times and bowed down to Him. Then the hunter departed in
an airplane that had appeared just to carry him to the spiritual sky.
41. At that time Daruka was searching for his master, Krsna. As he neared the place where the Lord
was sitting, he perceived the aroma of tulasi flowers in the breeze and went in its direction.
42. Upon seeing Lord Krsna resting at the foot of a banyan tree, surrounded by His shining weapons,
Daruka could not control the affection he felt in his heart. His eyes filled with tears as he rushed down
from the chariot and fell at the Lord’s feet.
43. Daruka said: Just as on a moonless night people are merged into darkness and cannot find their
way, now that I have lost sight of Your lotus feet, my Lord, I have lost my vision and am wandering
blindly in darkness. I cannot tell my direction, nor can I find any peace.
44. [Sukadeva Gosvami continued:] O foremost of kings, while the chariot driver was still speaking,
before his very eyes the Lord’s chariot rose up into the sky along with its horses and its flag, which was
marked with the emblem of Garuda.
45. All the divine weapons of Visnu rose up and followed the chariot. The Lord, Janardana, then spoke
to His chariot driver, who was most astonished to see all this.
700 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
46. O driver, go to Dvaraka and tell Our family members how their loved ones destroyed one another.
Also tell them of the disappearance of Lord Sankarsana and of My present condition.
47. You and your relatives should not remain in Dvaraka, the capital of the Yadus, because once I have
abandoned that city it will be inundated by the ocean.
48. You should all take your own families, together with My parents, and under Arjuna’s protection go to
Indraprastha.
49. You, Daruka, should be firmly situated in devotion to Me, remaining fixed in spiritual knowledge and
unattached to material considerations. Understanding these pastimes to be a display of My illusory
potency, you should remain peaceful.
50. Thus ordered, Daruka circumambulated the Lord and offered obeisances to Him again and again.
He placed Lord Krsna’s lotus feet upon his head and then with a sad heart went back to the city.
Chapter Thirty-One The Disappearance of Lord Sri Krsna
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Then Lord Brahma arrived at Prabhasa along with Lord Siva and his
consort, the sages, the Prajapatis and all the demigods, headed by Indra.
2-3. The forefathers, Siddhas, Gandharvas, Vidyadharas and great serpents also came, along with the
Caranas, Yaksas, Raksasas, Kinnaras, Apsaras and relatives of Garuda, greatly eager to witness the
departure of the Supreme Personality of Godhead. As they were coming, all these personalities
variously chanted and glorified the birth and activities of Lord Sauri [Krsna].
4. O King, crowding the sky with their many airplanes, they showered down flowers with great devotion.
5. Seeing before Him Brahma, the grandfather of the universe, along with the other demigods, who are
all His personal and powerful expansions, the Almighty Lord closed His lotus eyes, fixing His mind
within Himself, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
6. Without employing the mystic agneyi meditation to burn up His transcendental body, which is the all-
attractive resting place of all the worlds and the object of all contemplation and meditation, Lord Krsna
entered into His own abode.
7. As soon as Lord Sri Krsna left the earth, Truth, Religion, Faithfulness, Glory and Beauty immediately
followed Him. Kettledrums resounded in the heavens and flowers showered from the sky.
8. Most of the demigods and other higher beings led by Brahma could not see Lord Krsna as He was
entering His own abode, since He did not reveal His movements. But some of them did catch sight of
Him, and they were extremely amazed.
9. Just as ordinary men cannot ascertain the path of a lightning bolt as it leaves a cloud, the demigods
could not trace out the movements of Lord Krsna as He returned to His abode.
10. A few of the demigods, however—notably Lord Brahma and Lord Siva—could ascertain how the
Lord’s mystic power was working, and thus they became astonished. All the demigods praised the
Lord’s mystic power and then returned to their own planets.
11. My dear King, you should understand that the Supreme Lord’s appearance and disappearance,
which resemble those of embodied conditioned souls, are actually a show enacted by His illusory
energy, just like the performance of an actor. After creating this universe He enters into it, plays within it
for some time, and at last winds it up. Then the Lord remains situated in His own transcendental glory,
having ceased from the functions of cosmic manifestation.
12. Lord Krsna brought the son of His guru back from the planet of the lord of death in the boy’s
selfsame body, and as the ultimate giver of protection He saved you also when you were burned by the
brahmastra of Asvatthama. He conquered in battle even Lord Siva, who deals death to the agents of
death, and He sent the hunter Jara directly to Vaikuntha in his human body. How could such a
personality be unable to protect His own Self?
13. Although Lord Krsna, being the possessor of infinite powers, is the only cause of the creation,
maintenance and destruction of innumerable living beings, He simply did not desire to keep His body in
this world any longer. Thus He revealed the destination of those fixed in the self and demonstrated that
this mortal world is of no intrinsic value.
14. Anyone who regularly rises early in the morning and carefully chants with devotion the glories of
Lord Sri Krsna’s transcendental disappearance and His return to His own abode will certainly achieve
that same supreme destination.
15. As soon as Daruka reached Dvaraka, he threw himself at the feet of Vasudeva and Ugrasena and
drenched their feet with his tears, lamenting the loss of Lord Krsna.
16-17. Daruka delivered the account of the total destruction of the Vrsnis, and upon hearing this, O
Pariksit, the people became deeply distraught in their hearts and stunned with sorrow. Feeling the
overwhelming pain of separation from Krsna, they struck their own faces while hurrying to the place
where their relatives lay dead.
18. When Devaki, Rohini and Vasudeva could not find their sons, Krsna and Rama, they lost
consciousness out of anguish.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 701
19. Tormented by separation from the Lord, His parents gave up their lives at that very spot. My dear
Pariksit, the wives of the Yadavas then climbed onto the funeral pyres, embracing their dead husbands.
20. The wives of Lord Balarama also entered the fire and embraced His body, and Vasudeva’s wives
entered his fire and embraced his body. The daughters-in-law of Lord Hari entered the funeral fires of
their respective husbands, headed by Pradyumna. And Rukmini and the other wives of Lord Krsna—
whose hearts were completely absorbed in Him—entered His fire.
21. Arjuna felt great distress over separation from Lord Krsna, his dearmost friend. But he consoled
himself by remembering the transcendental words the Lord had sung to him.
22. Arjuna then saw to it that the funeral rites were properly carried out for the dead, who had no
remaining male family members. He executed the required ceremonies for each of the Yadus, one after
another.
23. As soon as Dvaraka was abandoned by the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the ocean flooded it
on all sides, O King, sparing only His palace.
24. Lord Madhusudana, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, is eternally present in Dvaraka. It is the
most auspicious of all auspicious places, and merely remembering it destroys all contamination.
25. Arjuna took the survivors of the Yadu dynasty—the women, children and old men—to Indraprastha,
where he installed Vajra as ruler of the Yadus.
26. Hearing from Arjuna of the death of their friend, my dear King, your grandfathers established you as
the maintainer of the dynasty and left to prepare for their departure from this world.
27. A person who with faith engages in chanting the glories of these various pastimes and incarnations
of Visnu, the Lord of lords, will gain liberation from all sins.
28. The all-auspicious exploits of the all-attractive incarnations of Lord Sri Krsna, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, and also the pastimes He performed as a child, are described in this Srimad-
Bhagavatam and in other scriptures. Anyone who clearly chants these descriptions of His pastimes will
attain transcendental loving service unto Lord Krsna, who is the goal of all perfect sages.
CANTO TWELVE
Chapter One The Degraded Dynasties of Kali-yuga
1-2. Sukadeva Gosvami said: The last king mentioned in our previous enumeration of the future rulers
of the Magadha dynasty was Puranjaya, who will take birth as the descendant of Brhadratha.
Puranjaya’s minister Sunaka will assassinate the king and install his own son, Pradyota, on the throne.
The son of Pradyota will be Palaka, his son will be Visakhayupa, and his son will be Rajaka.
3. The son of Rajaka will be Nandivardhana, and thus in the Pradyotana dynasty there will be five kings,
who will enjoy the earth for 138 years.
4. Nandivardhana will have a son named Sisunaga, and his son will be known as Kakavarea. The son
of Kakavarea will be Ksemadharma, and the son of Ksemadharma will be Ksetrajna.
5. The son of Ksetrajna will be Vidhisara, and his son will be Ajatasatru. Ajatasatru will have a son
named Darbhaka, and his son will be Ajaya.
6-8. Ajaya will father a second Nandivardhana, whose son will be Mahanandi. O best of the Kurus,
these ten kings of the Sisunaga dynasty will rule the earth for a total of 360 years during the age of Kali.
My dear Pariksit, King Mahanandi will father a very powerful son in the womb of a sudra woman. He will
be known as Nanda and will be the master of millions of soldiers and fabulous wealth. He will wreak
havoc among the ksatriyas, and from that time onward virtually all kings will be irreligious sudras.
9. That lord of Mahapadma, King Nanda, will rule over the entire earth just like a second Parasurama,
and no one will challenge his authority.
10. He will have eight sons, headed by Sumalya, who will control the earth as powerful kings for one
hundred years.
11. A certain brahmana [Canakya] will betray the trust of King Nanda and his eight sons and will destroy
their dynasty. In their absence the Mauryas will rule the world as the age of Kali continues.
12. This brahmana will enthrone Candragupta, whose son will be named Varisara. The son of Varisara
will be Asokavardhana.
13. Asokavardhana will be followed by Suyasa, whose son will be Sangata. His son will be Salisuka,
Salisuka 's son will be Somasarma, and Somasarma's son will be Satadhanva. His son will be known
as Brhadratha.
14. O best of the Kurus, these ten Maurya kings will rule the earth for 137 years of the Kali-yuga.
15-17. My dear King Pariksit, Agnimitra will follow as king, and then Sujyestha. Sujyestha will be
followed by Vasumitra, Bhadraka, and the son of Bhadraka, Pulinda. Then the son of Pulinda, named
Ghosa, will rule, followed by Vajramitra, Bhagavata and Devabhuti. In this way, O most eminent of the
Kuru heroes, ten Sunga kings will rule over the earth for more than one hundred years. Then the earth
will come under the subjugation of the kings of the Kanva dynasty, who will manifest very few good
qualities.
702 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
18. Vasudeva, an intelligent minister coming from the Kanva family, will kill the last of the Sunga kings,
a lusty debauchee named Devabhuti, and assume rulership himself.
19. The son of Vasudeva will be Bhumitra, and his son will be Narayana. These kings of the Kanva
dynasty will rule the earth for 345 more years of the Kali-yuga.
20. The last of the Kanvas, Susarma, will be murdered by his own servant, Bali a low-class sudra of the
Andhra race. This most degraded Maharaja Bali will have control over the earth for some time.
21-26. The brother of Bali, named Krsna, will become the next ruler of the earth. His son will be
Santakarna, and his son will be Paurnamasa. The son of Paurnamasa will be Lambodara, who will
father Maharaja Cibilaka. From Cibilaka will come Meghasvati, whose son will be Atamana. The son of
Atamana will be Anistakarma. His son will be Haleya, and his son will be Talaka. The son of Talaka will
be Purisabhiru, and following him Sunandana will become king. Sunandana will be followed by Cakora
and the eight Bahus, among whom Sivasvati will be a great subduer of enemies. The son of Sivasvsati
will be Gomati. His son will be Puriman, whose son will be Medasira. His son will be Sivaskanda, and
his son will be Yajnasri. The son of Yajnasri will be Vijaya, who will have two sons, Candravijna and
Lomadhi. These thirty kings will enjoy sovereignty over the earth for a total of 456 years, O favorite son
of the Kurus.
27. Then will follow seven kings of the Abhira race from the city of Avabhrti, and then ten Gardabhis.
After them, sixteen kings of the Kankas will rule and will be known for their excessive greed.
28. Eight Yavanas will then take power, followed by fourteen Turuskas, ten Gurundas and eleven kings
of the Maula dynasty.
29-31. These Abhiras, Gardabhis and Kankas will enjoy the earth for 1,099 years, and the Maulas will
rule for 300 years. When all of them have died off there will appear in the city of Kilakila a dynasty of
kings consisting of Bhutananda, Vangiri, Sisunandi, Sisunandi's brother Yasonandi, and Praviraka.
These kings of Kilakila will hold sway for a total of 106 years.
32-33. The Kilakilas will be followed by their thirteen sons, the Bahlikas, and after them King
Puspamitra, his son Durmitra, seven Andhras, seven Kausalas and also kings of the Vidura and
Nisadha provinces will separately rule in different parts of the world.
34. There will then appear a king of the Magadhas named Visvasphurji, who will be like another
Puranjaya. He will turn all the civilized classes into low-class, uncivilized men in the same category as
the Pulindas, Yadus and Madrakas.
35. Foolish King Visvasphurji will maintain all the citizens in ungodliness and will use his power to
completely disrupt the ksatriya order. From his capital of Padmavati he will rule that part of the earth
extending from the source of the Ganga to Prayaga.
36. At that time the brahmanas of such provinces as Saurastra, Avanti, Abhira, Sura, Arbuda and
Malava will forget all their regulative principles, and the members of the royal order in these places will
become no better than sudras.
37. The land along the Sindhu River, as well as the districts of Candrabhaga, Kaunti and Kasmira, will
be ruled by sudras, fallen brahmanas and meat-eaters. Having given up the path of Vedic civilization,
they will have lost all spiritual strength.
38. There will be many such uncivilized kings ruling at the same time, O King Pariksit, and they will all
be uncharitable, possessed of fierce tempers, and great devotees of irreligion and falsity.
39-40. These barbarians in the guise of kings will devour the citizenry, murdering innocent women,
children, cows and brahmanas and coveting the wives and property of other men. They will be erratic in
their moods, have little strength of character and be very short-lived. Indeed, not purified by any Vedic
rituals and lacking in the practice of regulative principles, they will be completely covered by the modes
of passion and ignorance.
41. The citizens governed by these low-class kings will imitate the character, behavior and speech of
their rulers. Harassed by their leaders and by each other, they will all suffer ruination.
Chapter Two The Symptoms of Kali-yuga
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Then, O King, religion, truthfulness, cleanliness, tolerance, mercy, duration
of life, physical strength and memory will all diminish day by day because of the powerful influence of
the age of Kali.
2. In Kali-yuga, wealth alone will be considered the sign of a man's good birth, proper behavior and fine
qualities. And law and justice will be applied only on the basis of one's power.
3. Men and women will live together merely because of superficial attraction, and success in business
will depend on deceit. Womanliness and manliness will be judged according to one's expertise in sex,
and a man will be known as a brahmana just by his wearing a thread.
4. A person's spiritual position will be ascertained merely according to external symbols, and on that
same basis people will change from one spiritual order to the next. A person's propriety will be seriously
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 703
questioned if he does not earn a good living. And one who is very clever at juggling words will be
considered a learned scholar.
5. A person will be judged unholy if he does not have money, and hypocrisy will be accepted as virtue.
Marriage will be arranged simply by verbal agreement, and a person will think he is fit to appear in
public if he has merely taken a bath.
6. A sacred place will be taken to consist of no more than a reservoir of water located at a distance, and
beauty will be thought to depend on one's hairstyle. Filling the belly will become the goal of life, and one
who is audacious will be accepted as truthful. He who can maintain a family will be regarded as an
expert man, and the principles of religion will be observed only for the sake of reputation.
7. As the earth thus becomes crowded with a corrupt population, whoever among any of the social
classes shows himself to be the strongest will gain political power.
8. Losing their wives and properties to such avaricious and merciless rulers, who will behave no better
than ordinary thieves, the citizens will flee to the mountains and forests.
9. Harassed by famine and excessive taxes, people will resort to eating leaves, roots, flesh, wild honey,
fruits, flowers and seeds. Struck by drought, they will become completely ruined.
10. The citizens will suffer greatly from cold, wind, heat, rain and snow. They will be further tormented
by quarrels, hunger, thirst, disease and severe anxiety.
11. The maximum duration of life for human beings in Kali-yuga will become fifty years.
12-16. By the time the age of Kali ends, the bodies of all creatures will be greatly reduced in size, and
the religious principles of followers of varnasrama will be ruined. The path of the Vedas will be
completely forgotten in human society, and so-called religion will be mostly atheistic. The kings will
mostly be thieves, the occupations of men will be stealing, lying and needless violence, and all the
social classes will be reduced to the lowest level of sudras. Cows will be like goats, spiritual hermitages
will be no different from mundane houses, and family ties will extend no further than the immediate
bonds of marriage. Most plants and herbs will be tiny, and all trees will appear like dwarf sami trees.
Clouds will be full of lightning, homes will be devoid of piety, and all human beings will have become like
asses. At that time, the Supreme Personality of Godhead will appear on the earth. Acting with the
power of pure spiritual goodness, He will rescue eternal religion.
17. Lord Visnu-the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the spiritual master of all moving and nonmoving
living beings, and the Supreme Soul of all-takes birth to protect the principles of religion and to relieve
His saintly devotees from the reactions of material work.
18. Lord Kalki will appear in the home of the most eminent brahmana of Sambhala village, the great
soul Visnuyasa.
19-20. Lord Kalki, the Lord of the universe, will mount His swift horse Devadatta and, sword in hand,
travel over the earth exhibiting His eight mystic opulences and eight special qualities of Godhead.
Displaying His unequaled effulgence and riding with great speed, He will kill by the millions those
thieves who have dared dress as kings.
21. After all the impostor kings have been killed, the residents of the cities and towns will feel the
breezes carrying the most sacred fragrance of the sandalwood paste and other decorations of Lord
Vasudeva, and their minds will thereby become transcendentally pure.
22. When Lord Vasudeva, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, appears in their hearts in His
transcendental form of goodness, the remaining citizens will abundantly repopulate the earth.
23. When the Supreme Lord has appeared on earth as Kalki, the maintainer of religion, Satya-yuga will
begin, and human society will bring forth progeny in the mode of goodness.
24. When the moon, the sun and Brhaspati are together in the constellation Karkata, and all three enter
simultaneously into the lunar mansion Pusya-at that exact moment the age of Satya, or Krta, will begin.
25. Thus I have described all the kings-past, present and future-who belong to the dynasties of the sun
and the moon.
26. From your birth up to the coronation of King Nanda, 1,150 years will pass.
27-28. Of the seven stars forming the constellation of the seven sages, Pulaha and Kratu are the first to
rise in the night sky. If a line running north and south were drawn through their midpoint, whichever of
the lunar mansions this line passes through is said to be the ruling asterism of the constellation for that
time. The Seven Sages will remain connected with that particular lunar mansion for one hundred human
years. Currently, during your lifetime, they are situated in the naksatra called Magha.
29. The Supreme Lord, Visnu, is brilliant like the sun and is known as Krsna. When He returned to the
spiritual sky, Kali entered this world, and people then began to take pleasure in sinful activities.
30. As long us Lord Sri Krsna, the husband of the goddess of fortune, touched the earth with His lotus
feet, Kali was powerless to subdue this planet.
31. When the constellation of the seven sages is passing through the lunar mansion Magha, the age of
Kali begins. It comprises twelve hundred years of the demigods.
704 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
32. When the great sages of the Saptarsi constellation pass from Magha to Purvasadha, Kali will have
his full strength, beginning from King Nanda and his dynasty.
33. Those who scientifically understand the past declare that on the very day that Lord Sri Krsna
departed for the spiritual world, the influence of the age of Kali began.
34. After the one thousand celestial years of Kali-yuga, the Satya-yuga will manifest again. At that time
the minds of all men will become self-effulgent.
35. Thus I have described the royal dynasty of Manu, as it is known on this earth. One can similarly
study the history of the vaisyas, sudras and brahmanas living in the various ages.
36. These personalities, who were great souls, are now known only by their names. They exist only in
accounts from the past, and only their fame remains on the earth.
37. Devapi, the brother of Maharaja Santanu, and Maru, the descendant of Iksvaku, both possess great
mystic strength and are living even now in the village of Kalapa.
38. At the end of the age of Kali, these two kings, having received instruction directly from the Supreme
Personality of Godhead, Vasudeva, will return to human society and reestablish the eternal religion of
man, characterized by the divisions of varna and asrama, just as it was before.
39. The cycle of four ages-Satya, Treta, Dvapara and Kali-continues perpetually among living beings on
this earth, repeating the same general sequence of events.
40. My dear King Pariksit, all these kings I have described, as well as all other human beings, come to
this earth and stake their claims, but ultimately they all must give up this world and meet their
destruction.
41. Even though a person's body may now have the designation "king," in the end its name will be
"worms," "stool" or "ashes." What can a person who injures other living beings for the sake of his body
know about his own self-interest, since his activities are simply leading him to hell?
42. [The materialistic king thinks:] "This unbounded earth was held by my predecessors and is now
under my sovereignty. How can I arrange for it to remain in the hands of my sons, grandsons and other
descendants?"
43. Although the foolish accept the body made of earth, water and fire as "me" and this earth as "mine,"
in every case they have ultimately abandoned both their body and the earth and passed away into
oblivion.
44. My dear King Pariksit, all these kings who tried to enjoy the earth by their strength were reduced by
the force of time to nothing more than historical accounts.
Chapter Three The Bhumi-gita
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: Seeing the kings of this earth busy trying to conquer her, the earth herself
laughed. She said: "Just see how these kings, who are actually playthings in the hands of death, are
desiring to conquer me.
2. "Great rulers of men, even those who are learned, meet frustration and failure because of material
lust. Driven by lust, these kings place great hope and faith in the dead lump of flesh called the body,
even though the material frame is as fleeting as bubbles of foam on water.
3-4. "Kings and politicians imagine: 'First I will conquer my senses and mind; then I will subdue my chief
ministers and rid myself of the thorn-pricks of my advisors, citizens, friends and relatives, as well as the
keepers of my elephants. In this way I will gradually conquer the entire earth.' Because the hearts of
these leaders are bound by great expectations, they fail to see death waiting nearby.
5. "After conquering all the land on my surface, these proud kings forcibly enter the ocean to conquer
the sea itself. What is the use of their self-control, which is aimed at political exploitation? The actual
goal of self-control is spiritual liberation."
6. O best of the Kurus, the earth continued as follows: "Although in the past great men and their
descendants have left me, departing from this world in the same helpless way they came into it, even
today foolish men are trying to conquer me.
7. "For the sake of conquering me, materialistic persons fight one another. Fathers oppose their sons,
and brothers fight one another, because their hearts are bound to possessing political power.
8. "Political leaders challenge one another: 'All this land is mine! It's not yours, you fool!' Thus they
attack one another and die.
9-13. "Such kings as Prthu, Pururava, Gadhi, Nahusa, Bharata, Kartavirya Arjuna, Mandhata, Sagara,
Rama, Khatvanga, Dhundhuha, Raghu, Trnabindu, Yayati, Saryati, Santanu, Gaya, Bhagiratha,
Kuvalayasva, Kakutstha, Naisadha, Nrga, Hiranyakasipu, Vrtra, Ravana, who made the whole world
lament, Namuci, Sambara, Bhauma, Hiranyaksa and Taraka, as well as many other demons and kings
who possessed great powers of control over others, were all full of knowledge, heroic, all-conquering
and unconquerable. Nevertheless, O almighty Lord, although they lived their lives intensely trying to
possess me, these kings were subject to the passage of time, which reduced them all to mere historical
accounts. None of them could permanently establish their rule."
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 705
14. Sukadeva Gosvami said: O mighty Pariksit, I have related to you the narrations of all these great
kings, who spread their fame throughout the world and then departed. My real purpose was to teach
transcendental knowledge and renunciation. Stories of kings lend power and opulence to these
narrations but do not in themselves constitute the ultimate aspect of knowledge.
15. The person who desires pure devotional service to Lord Krsna should hear the narrations of Lord
Uttamahsloka's glorious qualities, the constant chanting of which destroys everything inauspicious. The
devotee should engage in such listening in regular daily assemblies and should also continue his hearing
throughout the day.
16. King Pariksit said: My lord, how can persons living in the age of Kali rid themselves of the
cumulative contamination of this age? O great sages please explain this to me.
17. Please explain the different ages of universal history, the special qualities of each age, the duration
of cosmic maintenance and destruction, and the movement of time, which is the direct representation of
the Supreme Soul, the Personality of Godhead, Lord Visnu.
18. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, in the beginning, during Satya-yuga, the age of truth,
religion is present with all four of its legs intact and is carefully maintained by the people of that age.
These four legs of powerful religion are truthfulness, mercy, austerity and charity.
19. The people of Satya-yuga are for the most part self-satisfied, merciful, friendly to all, peaceful, sober
and tolerant. They take their pleasure from within, see all things equally and always endeavor diligently
for spiritual perfection.
20. In Treta-yuga each leg of religion is gradually reduced by one quarter by the influence of the four
pillars of irreligion-lying, violence, dissatisfaction and quarrel.
21. In the Treta age people are devoted to ritual performances and severe austerities. They are not
excessively violent or very lusty after sensual pleasure. Their interest lies primarily in religiosity,
economic development and regulated sense gratification, and they achieve prosperity by following the
prescriptions of the three Vedas. Although in this age society evolves into four separate classes, O
King, most people are brahmanas.
22. In Dvapara-yuga the religious qualities of austerity, truth, mercy and charity are reduced to one half
by their irreligious counterparts-dissatisfaction, untruth, violence and enmity.
23. In the Dvapara age people are interested in glory and are very noble. They devote themselves to
the study of the Vedas, possess great opulence, support large families and enjoy life with vigor. Of the
four classes, the ksatriyas and brahmanas are most numerous.
24. In the age of Kali only one fourth of the religious principles remains. That last remnant will
continuously be decreased by the ever-increasing principles of irreligion and will finally be destroyed.
25. In the Kali age people tend to be greedy, ill-behaved and merciless, and they fight one another
without good reason. Unfortunate and obsessed with material desires, the people of Kali-yuga are
almost all sudras and barbarians.
26. The material modes-goodness, passion and ignorance-whose permutations are observed within a
person's mind, are set into motion by the power of time.
27. When the mind, intelligence and senses are solidly fixed in the mode of goodness, that time should
be understood as Satya-yuga, the age of truth. People then take pleasure in knowledge and austerity.
28. O most intelligent one, when the conditioned souls are devoted to their duties but have ulterior
motives and seek personal prestige, you should understand such a situation to be the age of Treta, in
which the functions of passion are prominent.
29. When greed, dissatisfaction, false pride, hypocrisy and envy become prominent, along with
attraction for selfish activities, such a time is the age of Dvapara, dominated by the mixed modes of
passion and ignorance.
30. When there is a predominance of cheating, lying, sloth, sleepiness, violence, depression,
lamentation, bewilderment, fear and poverty, that age is Kali, the age of the mode of ignorance.
31. Because of the bad qualities of the age of Kali, human beings will become shortsighted, unfortunate,
gluttonous, lustful and poverty-stricken. The women, becoming unchaste, will freely wander from one
man to the next.
32. Cities will be dominated by thieves, the Vedas will be contaminated by speculative interpretations of
atheists, political leaders will virtually consume the citizens, and the so-called priests and intellectuals
will be devotees of their bellies and genitals.
33. The brahmacaris will fail to execute their vows and become generally unclean, the householders will
become beggars, the vanaprasthas will live in the villages, and the sannyasis will become greedy for
wealth.
34. Women will become much smaller in size, and they will eat too much, have more children than they
can properly take care of, and lose all shyness. They will always speak harshly and will exhibit qualities
of thievery, deceit and unrestrained audacity.
706 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
35. Businessmen will engage in petty commerce and earn their money by cheating. Even when there is
no emergency, people will consider any degraded occupation quite acceptable.
36. Servants will abandon a master who has lost his wealth, even if that master is a saintly person of
exemplary character. Masters will abandon an incapacitated servant, even if that servant has been in
the family for generations. Cows will be abandoned or killed when they stop giving milk.
37. In Kali-yuga men will be wretched and controlled by women. They will reject their fathers, brothers,
other relatives and friends and will instead associate with the sisters and brothers of their wives. Thus
their conception of friendship will be based exclusively on sexual ties.
38. Uncultured men will accept charity on behalf of the Lord and will earn their livelihood by making a
show of austerity and wearing a mendicant's dress. Those who know nothing about religion will mount a
high seat and presume to speak on religious principles.
39-40. In the age of Kali, people's minds will always be agitated. They will become emaciated by famine
and taxation, my dear King, and will always be disturbed by fear of drought. They will lack adequate
clothing, food and drink, will be unable to properly rest, have sex or bathe themselves, and will have no
ornaments to decorate their bodies. In fact, the people of Kali-yuga will gradually come to appear like
ghostly, haunted creatures.
41. In Kali-yuga men will develop hatred for each other even over a few coins. Giving up all friendly
relations, they will be ready to lose their own lives and kill even their own relatives.
42. Men will no longer protect their elderly parents, their children or their respectable wives. Thoroughly
degraded, they will care only to satisfy their own bellies and genitals.
43. O King, in the age of Kali people's intelligence will be diverted by atheism, and they will almost
never offer sacrifice to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the supreme spiritual master of the
universe. Although the great personalities who control the three worlds all bow down to the lotus feet of
the Supreme Lord, the petty and miserable human beings of this age will not do so.
44. Terrified, about to die, a man collapses on his bed. Although his voice is faltering and he is hardly
conscious of what he is saying, if he utters the holy name of the Supreme Lord he can be freed from the
reaction of his fruitive work and achieve the supreme destination. But still people in the age of Kali will
not worship the Supreme Lord.
45. In the Kali-yuga, objects, places and even individual personalities are all polluted. The almighty
Personality of Godhead, however, can remove all such contamination from the life of one who fixes the
Lord within his mind.
46. If a person hears about, glorifies, meditates upon, worships or simply offers great respect to the
Supreme Lord, who is situated within the heart, the Lord will remove from his mind the contamination
accumulated during many thousands of lifetimes.
47. Just as fire applied to gold removes any discoloration caused by traces of other metals, Lord Visnu
within the heart purifies the minds of the yogis.
48. By one's engaging in the processes of demigod worship, austerities, breath control, compassion,
bathing in holy places, strict vows, charity and chanting of various mantras, one's mind cannot attain the
same absolute purification as that achieved when the unlimited Personality of Godhead appears within
one's heart.
49. Therefore, O King, endeavor with all your might to fix the Supreme Lord Kesava within your heart.
Maintain this concentration upon the Lord, and at the time of death you will certainly attain the supreme
destination.
50. My dear King, the Personality of Godhead is the ultimate controller. He is the Supreme Soul and the
supreme shelter of all beings. When meditated upon by those about to die, He reveals to them their
own eternal spiritual identity.
51. My dear King, although Kali-yuga is an ocean of faults, there is still one good quality about this age:
Simply by chanting the Hare Krsna maha-mantra, one can become free from material bondage and be
promoted to the transcendental kingdom.
52. Whatever result was obtained in Satya-yuga by meditating on Visnu, in Treta-yuga by performing
sacrifices, and in Dvapara-yuga by serving the Lord's lotus feet can be obtained in Kali-yuga simply by
chanting the Hare Krsna maha-mantra.
Chapter Four The Four Categories of Universal Annihilation
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: My dear King, I have already described to you the measurements of time,
beginning from the smallest fraction measured by the movement of a single atom up to the total life
span of Lord Brahma. I have also discussed the measurement of the different millennia of universal
history. Now hear about the time of Brahma's day and the process of annihilation.
2. One thousand cycles of four ages constitute a single day of Brahma, known as a kalpa. In that
period, O King, fourteen Manus come and go.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 707
3. After one day of Brahma, annihilation occurs during his night, which is of the same duration. At that
time all the three planetary systems are subject to destruction.
4. This is called the naimittika, or occasional, annihilation, during which the original creator, Lord
Narayana, lies down upon the bed of Ananta Sesa and absorbs the entire universe within Himself while
Lord Brahma sleeps.
5. When the two halves of the lifetime of Lord Brahma, the most elevated created being, are complete,
the seven basic elements of creation are annihilated.
6. O King, upon the annihilation of the material elements, the universal egg, comprising the elemental
amalgamation of creation, is confronted with destruction.
7. As annihilation approaches, O King, there will be no rain upon the earth for one hundred years.
Drought will lead to famine, and the starving populace will literally consume one another. The
inhabitants of the earth, bewildered by the force of time, will gradually be destroyed.
8. The sun in its annihilating form will drink up with its terrible rays all the water of the ocean, of living
bodies and of the earth itself. But the devastating sun will not give any rain in return.
9. Next the great fire of annihilation will flare up from the mouth of Lord Sankarsana. Carried by the
mighty force of the wind, this fire will burn throughout the universe, scorching the lifeless cosmic shell.
10. Burned from all sides-from above by the blazing sun and from below by the fire of Lord Sankarsana-
the universal sphere will glow like a burning ball of cow dung.
11. A great and terrible wind of destruction will begin to blow for more than one hundred years, and the
sky, covered with dust, will turn gray.
12. After that, O King, groups of multicolored clouds will gather, roaring terribly with thunder, and will
pour down floods of rain for one hundred years.
13. At that time, the shell of the universe will fill up with water, forming a single cosmic ocean.
14. As the entire universe is flooded, the water will rob the earth of its unique quality of fragrance, and
the element earth, deprived of its distinguishing quality, will be dissolved.
15-19. The element fire then seizes the taste from the element water, which, deprived of its unique
quality, taste, merges into fire. Air seizes the form inherent in fire, and then fire, deprived of form,
merges into air. The element ether seizes the quality of air, namely touch, and that air enters into ether.
Then, O King, false ego in ignorance seizes sound, the quality of ether, after which ether merges into
false ego. False ego in the mode of passion takes hold of the senses, and false ego in the mode of
goodness absorbs the demigods. Then the total mahat-tattva seizes false ego along with its various
functions, and that mahat is seized by the three basic modes of nature-goodness, passion and
ignorance. My dear King Pariksit, these modes are further overtaken by the original unmanifest form of
nature, impelled by time. That unmanifest nature is not subject to the six kinds of transformation caused
by the influence of time. Rather, it has no beginning and no end. It is the unmanifest, eternal and
infallible cause of creation.
20-21. In the unmanifest stage of material nature, called pradhana, there is no expression of words, no
mind and no manifestation of the subtle elements beginning from the mahat, nor are there the modes of
goodness, passion and ignorance. There is no life air or intelligence, nor any senses or demigods.
There is no definite arrangement of planetary systems, nor are there present the different stages of
consciousness-sleep, wakefulness and deep sleep. There is no ether, water, earth, air, fire or sun. The
situation is just like that of complete sleep, or of voidness. Indeed, it is indescribable. Authorities in
spiritual science explain, however, that since pradhana is the original substance, it is the actual basis of
material creation.
22. This is the annihilation called prakrtika, during which the energies belonging to the Supreme Person
and His unmanifest material nature, disassembled by the force of time, are deprived of their potencies
and merge together totally.
23. It is the Absolute Truth alone who manifests in the forms of intelligence, the senses and the objects
of sense perception, and who is their ultimate basis. Whatever has a beginning and an end is
insubstantial because of being an object perceived by limited senses and because of being nondifferent
from its own cause.
24. A lamp, the eye that views by the light of that lamp, and the visible form that is viewed are all
basically nondifferent from the element fire. In the same way, intelligence, the senses and sense
perceptions have no existence separate from the supreme reality, although that Absolute Truth remains
totally distinct from them.
25. The three states of intelligence are called waking consciousness, sleep and deep sleep. But, my
dear King, the variegated experiences created for the pure living entity by these different states are
nothing more than illusion.
708 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
26. Just as clouds in the sky come into being and are then dispersed by the amalgamation and
dissolution of their constituent elements, this material universe is created and destroyed within the
Absolute Truth by the amalgamation and dissolution of its elemental, constituent parts.
27. My dear King, it is stated [in the Vedanta-sutra] that the ingredient cause that constitutes any
manifested product in this universe can be perceived as a separate reality, just as the threads that
make up a cloth can be perceived separately from their product.
28. Anything experienced in terms of general cause and specific effect must be an illusion, because
such causes and effects exist only relative to each other. Indeed, whatever has a beginning and an end
is unreal.
29. Although perceived, the transformation of even a single atom of material nature has no ultimate
definition without reference to the Supreme Soul. To be accepted as factually existing, something must
possess the same quality as pure spirit-eternal, unchanging existence.
30. There is no material duality in the Absolute Truth. The duality perceived by an ignorant person is like
the difference between the sky contained in an empty pot and the sky outside the pot, or the difference
between the reflection of the sun
in water and the sun itself in the sky, or the difference between the vital air within one living body and
that within another body.
31. According to their different purposes, men utilize gold in various ways, and gold is therefore
perceived in various forms. In the same way, the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is inaccessible
to material senses, is described in various terms, both ordinary and Vedic, by different types of men.
32. Although a cloud is a product of the sun and is also made visible by the sun, it nevertheless creates
darkness for the viewing eye, which is another partial expansion of the sun. Similarly, material false
ego, a particular product of the Absolute Truth made visible by the Absolute Truth, obstructs the
individual soul, another partial expansion of the Absolute Truth, from realizing the Absolute Truth.
33. When the cloud originally produced from the sun is torn apart, the eye can see the actual form of the
sun. Similarly, when the spirit soul destroys his material covering of false ego by inquiring into the
transcendental science, he regains his original spiritual awareness.
34. My dear Pariksit, when the illusory false ego that binds the soul has been cut off with the sword of
discriminating knowledge and one has developed realization of Lord Acyuta, the Supreme Soul, this is
called the atyantika, or ultimate, annihilation of material existence.
35. Experts in the subtle workings of nature, O subduer of the enemy, have declared that there are
continuous processes of creation and annihilation that all created beings, beginning with Brahma,
constantly undergo.
36. All material entities undergo transformation and are constantly and swiftly eroded by the mighty
currents of time. The various stages of existence that material things exhibit are the perpetual causes of
their generation and annihilation.
37. These stages of existence created by beginningless and endless time, the impersonal
representative of the Supreme Lord, are not visible, just as the infinitesimal momentary changes of
position of the planets in the sky cannot be directly seen.
38. In this way the progress of time is described in terms of the four kinds of annihilation-continuous,
occasional, elemental and final.
39. O best of the Kurus, I have related to you these narrations of the pastimes of Lord Narayana, the
creator of this world and the ultimate reservoir of all existence, presenting them to you only in brief
summary. Even Lord Brahma himself would be incapable of describing them entirely.
40. For a person who is suffering in the fire of countless miseries and who desires to cross the
insurmountable ocean of material existence, there is no suitable boat except that of cultivating devotion
to the transcendental taste for the narrations of the Supreme Personality of Godhead's pastimes.
41. Long ago this essential anthology of all the Puranas was spoken by the infallible Lord Nara-
Narayana Rsi to Narada, who then repeated it to Krsna Dvaipayana Vedavyasa.
42. My dear Maharaja Pariksit, that great personality Srila Vyasadeva taught me this same scripture,
Srimad-Bhagavatam, which is equal in stature to the four Vedas.
43. O best of the Kurus, the same Suta Gosvami who is sitting before us will speak this Bhagavatam to
the sages assembled in the great sacrifice at Naimisaranya. This he will do when questioned by the
members of the assembly, headed by Saunaka.
Chapter Five Sukadeva Gosvami's Final Instructions to Maharaja Pariksit
1. Sukadeva Gosvami said: This Srimad-Bhagavatam has elaborately described in various narrations the
Supreme Soul of all that be-the Personality of Godhead, Hari-from whose satisfaction Brahma is born
and from whose anger Rudra takes birth.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 709
2. O King, give up the animalistic mentality of thinking, "I am going lo die." Unlike the body, you have not
taken birth. There was not a time in the past when you did not exist, and you are not about to be
destroyed.
3. You will not take birth again in the form of your sons and grandsons, like a sprout taking birth from a
seed and then generating a new seed. Rather, you are entirely distinct from the material body and its
paraphernalia, in the same way that fire is distinct from its fuel.
4. In a dream one can see his own head being cut off and thus understand that his actual self is
standing apart from the dream experience. Similarly, while awake one can see that his body is a
product of the five material elements. Therefore it is to be understood that the actual self, the soul, is
distinct from the body it observes and is unborn and immortal.
5. When a pot is broken, the portion of sky within the pot remains as the element sky, just as before. In
the same way, when the gross and subtle bodies die, the living entity within resumes his spiritual
identity.
6. The material bodies, qualities and activities of the spirit soul are created by the material mind. That
mind is itself created by the illusory potency of the Supreme Lord, and thus the soul assumes material
existence.
7. A lamp functions as such only by the combination of its fuel, vessel, wick and fire. Similarly, material
life, based on the soul's identification with the body, is developed and destroyed by the workings of
material goodness, passion and ignorance, which are the constituent elements of the body.
8. The soul within the body is self-luminous and is separate from the visible gross body and invisible
subtle body. It remains as the fixed basis of changing bodily existence, just as the ethereal sky is the
unchanging background of material transformation. Therefore the soul is endless and without material
comparison.
9. My dear King, by constantly meditating upon the Supreme Lord, Vasudeva, and by applying clear
and logical intelligence, you should carefully consider your true self and how it is situated within the
material body.
10. The snake-bird Taksaka, sent by the curse of the brahmana, will not burn your true self. The agents
of death will never burn such a master of the self as you, for you have already conquered all dangers on
your path back to Godhead.
11-12. You should consider, "I am nondifferent from the Absolute Truth, the supreme abode, and that
Absolute Truth, the supreme destination, is nondifferent from me." Thus resigning yourself to the
Supreme Soul, who is free from all material misidentifications, you will not even notice the snake-bird
Taksaka when he approaches with his poison-filled fangs and bites your foot. Nor will you see your
dying body or the material world around you, because you will have realized yourself to be separate
from them.
13. Beloved King Pariksit, I have narrated to you the topics you originally inquired about-the pastimes of
Lord Hari, the Supreme Soul of the universe. Now, what more do you wish to hear?
Chapter Six Maharaja Pariksit Passes Away
1. Suta Gosvami said: After hearing all that was narrated to him by the self-realized and equipoised
Sukadeva, the son of Vyasadeva, Maharaja Pariksit humbly approached his lotus feet. Bowing his head
down upon the sage's feet, the King, who had lived his entire life under the protection of Lord Visnu,
folded his hands in supplication and spoke as follows.
2. Maharaja Pariksit said: I have now achieved the purpose of my life, because a great and merciful
soul like you has shown such kindness to me. You have personally spoken to me this narration of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, Hari, who is without beginning or end.
3. I do not consider it at all amazing that great souls such as yourself, whose minds are always
absorbed in the infallible Personality of Godhead, show mercy to the foolish conditioned souls,
tormented as we are by the problems of material life.
4. I have heard from you this Srimad-Bhagavatam, which is the perfect summary of all the Puranas and
which perfectly describes the Supreme Lord, Uttamahsloka.
5. My lord, I now have no fear of Taksaka or any other living being, or even of repeated deaths,
because I have absorbed myself in that purely spiritual Absolute Truth, which you have revealed and
which destroys all fear.
6. O brahmana, please give me permission to resign my speech and the functions of all my senses unto
Lord Adhoksaja. Allow me to absorb my mind, purified of lusty desires, within Him and to thus give up
my life.
7. You have revealed to me that which is most auspicious, the supreme personal feature of the Lord. I
am now fixed in knowledge and self-realization, and my ignorance has been eradicated.
710 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
8. Suta Gosvami said: Thus requested, the saintly son of Srila Vyasadeva gave his permission to King
Pariksit. Then, after being worshiped by the King and all the sages present, Sukadeva departed from
that place.
9-10. Maharaja Pariksit then sat down on the bank of the Ganges, upon a seat made of darbha grass
with the tips of its stalks facing east, and turned himself toward the north. Having attained the perfection
of yoga, he experienced full self-realization and was free of material attachment and doubt. The saintly
King settled his mind within his spiritual self by pure intelligence and proceeded to meditate upon the
Supreme Absolute Truth. His life air ceased to move, and he became as stationary as a tree.
11. O learned brahmanas, the snake-bird Taksaka, who had been sent by the angry son of a
brahmana, was going toward the King to kill him when he saw Kasyapa Muni on the path.
12. Taksaka flattered Kasyapa by presenting him with valuable offerings and thereby stopped the sage,
who was expert in counteracting poison, from protecting Maharaja Pariksit. Then the snakebird, who
could assume any form he wished, disguised himself as a brahmana, approached the King and bit him.
13. While living beings all over the universe looked on, the body of the great self-realized saint among
kings was immediately burned to ashes by the fire of the snake's poison.
14. There arose a terrible cry of lamentation in all directions on the earth and in the heavens, and all the
demigods, demons, human beings and other creatures were astonished.
15. Kettledrums sounded in the regions of the demigods, and the celestial Gandharvas and Apsaras
sang. The demigods showered flowers and spoke words of praise.
16. Hearing that his father had been fatally bitten by the snakebird, Maharaja Janamejaya became
extremely angry and had brahmanas perform a mighty sacrifice in which he offered all the snakes in the
world into the sacrificial fire.
17. When Taksaka saw even the most powerful serpents being burned in the blazing fire of that snake
sacrifice, he was overwhelmed with fear and approached Lord Indra for shelter.
18. When King Janamejaya did not see Taksaka entering his sacrificial fire, he said to the brahmanas:
Why is not Taksaka, the lowest of all serpents, burning in this fire?
19. The brahmanas replied: O best of kings, the snake Taksaka has not fallen into the fire because he
is being protected by Indra, whom he has approached for shelter. Indra is holding him back from the
fire.
20. The intelligent King Janamejaya, hearing these words, replied to the priests: Then, my dear
brahmanas, why not make Taksaka fall into the fire, along with his protector, Indra?
21. Hearing this, the priests then chanted this mantra for offering Taksaka together with Indra as an
oblation into the sacrificial fire: O Taksaka, fall immediately into this fire, together with Indra and his
entire host of demigods!
22. When Lord Indra, along with his airplane and Taksaka, was suddenly thrown from his position by
these insulting words of the brahmanas, he became very disturbed.
23. Brhaspati, the son of Angira Muni, seeing Indra falling from the sky in his airplane along with
Taksaka, approached King Janamejaya and spoke to him as follows.
24. O King among men, it is not fitting that this king of snakes meet death at your hands, for he has
drunk the nectar of the immortal demigods. Consequently he is not subject to the ordinary symptoms of
old age and death.
25. The life and death of an embodied soul and his destination in the next life are all caused by himself
through his own activity. Therefore, O King, no other agent is actually responsible for creating one's
happiness and distress.
26. When a conditioned soul is killed by snakes, thieves, fire, lightning, hunger, disease or anything
else, he is experiencing the reaction to his own past work.
27. Therefore, my dear King, please stop this sacrificial performance, which was initiated with the intent
of doing harm to others. Many innocent snakes have already been burned to death. Indeed, all persons
must suffer the unforeseen consequences of their past activities.
28. Suta Gosvami continued: Advised in this manner, Maharaja Janamejaya replied, "So be it."
Honoring the words of the great sage, he desisted from performing the snake sacrifice and worshiped
Brhaspati, the most eloquent of sages.
29. This is indeed the Supreme Lord Visnu's illusory energy, which is unstoppable and difficult to
perceive. Although the individual spirit souls are part and parcel of the Lord, through the influence of this
illusory energy they are bewildered by their identification with various material bodies.
30-31. But there exists a supreme reality, in which the illusory energy cannot fearlessly dominate,
thinking, "I can control this person because he is deceitful." In that highest reality there are no illusory
argumentative philosophies. Rather, there the true students of spiritual science constantly engage in
authorized spiritual investigation. In that supreme reality there is no manifestation of the material mind,
which functions in terms of alternating decision and doubt. Created material products, their subtle
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 711
causes and the goals of enjoyment attained by their utilization do not exist there. Furthermore, in that
supreme reality there is no conditioned spirit, covered by false ego and the three modes of nature. That
reality excludes everything limited or limiting. One who is wise should therefore stop the waves of
material life and enjoy within that Supreme Truth.
32. Those who desire to give up all that is not essentially real move systematically, by negative
discrimination of the extraneous, to the supreme position of Lord Visnu. Giving up petty materialism,
they offer their love exclusively to the Absolute Truth within their hearts and embrace that highest truth
in fixed meditation.
33. Such devotees come to understand the supreme transcendental situation of the Personality of
Godhead, Lord Visnu, because they are no longer polluted by the concepts of "I" and "my," which are
based on body and home.
34. One should tolerate all insults and never fail to show proper respect to any person. Avoiding
identification with the material body, one should not create enmity with anyone.
35. I offer my obeisances to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the invincible Lord Sri Krsna. Simply
by meditating upon His lotus feet I have been able to study and appreciate this great literature.
36. Saunaka Rsi said: O gentle Suta, please narrate to us how Paila and the other greatly intelligent
disciples of Srila Vyasadeva, who are known as the standard authorities of Vedic wisdom, spoke and
edited the Vedas.
37. Suta Gosvami said: O brahmana, first the subtle vibration of transcendental sound appeared from
the sky of the heart of the most elevated Lord Brahma, whose mind was perfectly fixed in spiritual
realization. One can perceive this subtle vibration when one stops all external hearing.
38. By worship of this subtle form of the Vedas, O brahmana, mystic sages cleanse their hearts of all
contamination caused by impurity of substance, activity and doer, and thus they attain freedom from
repeated birth and death.
39. From that transcendental subtle vibration arose the omkara composed of three sounds. The omkara
has unseen potencies and manifests automatically within a purified heart. It is the representation of the
Absolute Truth in all three of His phases-the Supreme Personality, the Supreme Soul and the supreme
impersonal truth.
40-41. This omkara, ultimately nonmaterial and imperceptible, is heard by the Supersoul without His
possessing material ears or any other material senses. The entire expanse of Vedic sound is
elaborated from omkara, which appears from the soul, within the sky of the heart. It is the direct
designation of the self-originating Absolute Truth, the Supersoul, and is the secret essence and eternal
seed of all Vedic hymns.
42. Omkara exhibited the three original sounds of the alphabet-A, U and M. These three, O most
eminent descendant of Bhrgu, sustain all the different threefold aspects of material existence, including
the three modes of nature, the names of the Rg, Yajur and Sama Vedas, the goals known as the Bhur,
Bhuvar and Svar planetary systems, and the three functional platforms called waking consciousness,
sleep and deep sleep.
43. From that omkara Lord Brahma created all the sounds of the alphabet-the vowels, consonants,
semivowels, sibilants and others-distinguished by such features as long and short measure.
44. All-powerful Brahma made use of this collection of sounds to produce from his four faces the four
Vedas, which appeared together with the sacred omkara and the seven vyahrti invocations. His
intention was to propagate the process of Vedic sacrifice according to the different functions performed
by the priests of each of the four Vedas.
45. Brahma taught these Vedas to his sons, who were great sages among the brahmanas and experts
in the art of Vedic recitation. They in turn took the role of acaryas and imparted the Vedas to their own
sons.
46. In this way, throughout the cycles of four ages, generation after generation of disciples-all firmly
fixed in their spiritual vows-have received these Vedas by disciplic succession. At the end of each
Dvapara-yuga the Vedas are edited into separate divisions by eminent sages.
47. Observing that people in general were diminished in their life span, strength and intelligence by the
influence of time, great sages took inspiration from the Personality of Godhead sitting within their hearts
and systematically divided the Vedas.
48-49. O brahmana, in the present age of Vaivasvata Manu, the leaders of the universe, led by Brahma
and Siva, requested the Supreme Personality of Godhead, the protector of all the worlds, to save the
principles of religion. O most fortunate Saunaka, the almighty Lord, exhibiting a divine spark of a portion
of His plenary portion, then appeared in the womb of Satyavati as the son of Parasara. In this form,
named Krsna Dvaipayana Vyasa, he divided the one Veda into four.
712 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
50. Srila Vyasadeva separated the mantras of the Rg, Atharva, Yajur and Sama Vedas into four
divisions, just as one sorts out a mixed collection of jewels into piles. Thus he composed four distinct
Vedic literatures.
51. The most powerful and intelligent Vyasadeva called four of his disciples, O brahmana, and
entrusted to each of them one of these four samhitas.
52-53. Srila Vyasadeva taught the first samhita, the Rg Veda, to Paila and gave this collection the name
Bahvrca. To the sage Vaisampayana he spoke the collection of Yajur mantras named Nigada. He
taught the Sama Veda mantras, designated as the Chandoga-samhita, to Jaimini, and he spoke the
Atharva Veda to his dear disciple Sumantu.
54-56. After dividing his samhita into two parts, the wise Paila spoke it to Indrapramiti and Baskala.
Baskala further divided his collection into four parts, O Bhargava, and instructed them to his disciples
Bodhya, Yajnavalkya, Parasara and Agnimitra. Indrapramiti, the self-controlled sage, taught his samhita
to the learned mystic Mandukeya, whose disciple Devamitra later passed down the divisions of the Rg
Veda to Saubhari and others.
57. The son of Mandukeya, named Sakalya, divided his own collection into five, entrusting one
subdivision each to Vatsya, Mudgala, Saliya, Gokhalya and Sisira.
58. The sage Jatukarnya was also a disciple of Sakalya, and after dividing the samhita he received from
Sakalya into three parts, he added a fourth section, a Vedic glossary. He taught one of these parts to
each of four disciples-Balaka, the second Paila, Jabala and Viraja.
59. Baskali assembled the Valakhilya-samhita, a collection from all the branches of the Rg Veda. This
collection was received by Valayani, Bhajya and Kasara.
60. Thus these various samhitas of the Rg Veda were maintained through disciplic succession by these
saintly brahmanas. Simply by hearing of this distribution of the Vedic hymns, one will be freed from all
sins.
61. The disciples of Vaisampayana became authorities in the Atharva Veda. They were known as the
Carakas because they executed strict vows to free their guru from his sin of killing a brahmana.
62. Once Yajnavalkya, one of the disciples of Vaisampayana, said: O master, how much benefit will be
derived from the feeble endeavors of these weak disciples of yours? I will personally perform some
outstanding penance.
63. Addressed thus, the spiritual master Vaisampayana became angry and said: Go away from here!
Enough of you, O disciple who insults brahmanas! Furthermore, you must immediately give back
everything I have taught you.
64-65. Yajnavalkya, the son of Devarata, then vomited the mantras of the Yajur Veda and went away
from there. The assembled disciples, looking greedily upon these yajur hymns, assumed the form of
partridges and picked them all up. These divisions of the Yajur Veda therefore became known as the
most beautiful Taittiriya-samhita, the hymns collected by partridges [tittirah].
66. My dear brahmana Saunaka, Yajnavalkya then desired to find out new yajur-mantras unknown to
even his spiritual master. With this in mind he offered attentive worship to the powerful lord of the sun.
67. Sri Yajnavalkya said: I offer my respectful obeisances to the Supreme Personality of Godhead
appearing as the sun. You are present as the controller of the four kinds of living entities, beginning
from Brahma and extending down to the blades of grass. Just as the sky is present both inside and
outside every living being, you exist both within the hearts of all as the Supersoul and externally in the
form of time. Just as the sky cannot be covered by the clouds present within it, you are never covered
by any false material designation. By the flow of years, which are made up of the tiny fragments of time
called ksanas, lavas and nimesas, you alone maintain this world, drying up the waters and giving them
back as rain.
68. O glowing one, O powerful lord of the sun, you are the chief of all the demigods. I meditate with
careful attention on your fiery globe, because for those who offer prayers to you three times daily
according to the Vedic method passed down through authorized disciplic succession, you burn away all
sinful activities, all consequent suffering and even the original seed of desire.
69. You are personally present as the indwelling lord in the hearts of all moving and nonmoving beings,
who depend completely on your shelter. Indeed, you animate their material minds, senses and vital airs
to act.
70. The world has been seized and swallowed by the python of darkness in its horrible mouth and has
become unconscious, as if dead. But mercifully glancing upon the sleeping people of the world, you
raise them up with the gift of sight. Thus you are most magnanimous. At the three sacred junctures of
each day, you engage the pious in the path of ultimate good, inducing them to perform religious duties
that situate them in their spiritual position.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 713
71. Just like an earthly king, you travel about everywhere spreading fear among the unholy as the
powerful deities of the directions offer you in their folded palms lotus flowers and other respectful
presentations.
72. Therefore, my lord, I am prayerfully approaching your lotus feet, which are honored by the spiritual
masters of the three worlds, because I hope to receive from you mantras of the Yajur Veda unknown to
anyone else.
73. Suta Gosvami said: Satisfied by such glorification, the powerful sun-god assumed the form of a
horse and presented to the sage Yajnavalkya yajur-mantras previously unknown in human society.
74. From these countless hundreds of mantras of the Yajur Veda, the powerful sage compiled fifteen
new branches of Vedic literature. These became known as the Vajasaneyi-samhita because they were
produced from the hairs of the horse's mane, and they were accepted in disciplic succession by the
followers of Kanva, Madhyandina and other rsis.
75. Jaimini Rsi, the authority of the Sama Veda, had a son named Sumantu, and the son of Sumantu
was Sutvan. The sage Jaimini spoke to each of them a different part of the Sama-veda-samhita.
76-77. Sukarma, another disciple of Jaimini, was a great scholar. He divided the mighty tree of the
Sama Veda into one thousand samhitas. Then, O brahmana, three disciples of Sukarma-Hiranyanabha,
the son of Kusala; Pausyanji; and Avantya, who was very advanced in spiritual realization-took charge
of the sama-mantras.
78. The five hundred disciples of Pausyanji and Avantya became known as the northern singers of the
Sama Veda, and in later times some of them also became known as eastern singers.
79. Five other disciples of Pausyanji, namely Laugaksi, Mangali, Kulya, Kusida and Kuksi, each
received one hundred samhitas.
80. Krta, the disciple of Hiranyanabha, spoke twenty four samhitas to his own disciples, and the
remaining collections were passed down by the self-realized sage Avantya.
Chapter Seven The Puranic Literatures
1. Suta Gosvami said: Sumantu Rsi, the authority on the Atharva Veda, taught his samhita to his
disciple Kabandha, who in turn spoke it to Pathya and Vedadarsa.
2. Sauklayani, Brahmabali, Modosa and Pippalayani were disciples of Vedadarsa. Hear from me also
the names of the disciples of Pathya. My dear brahmana, they are Kumuda, Sunaka and Jajali, all of
whom knew the Atharva Veda very well.
3. Babhru and Saindhavayana, disciples of Sunaka, studied the two divisions of their spiritual master's
compilation of the Atharva Veda. Saindhavayana's disciple Savarna and disciples of other great sages
also studied this edition of the Atharva Veda.
4. Naksatrakalpa, Santikalpa, Kasyapa, Angirasa and others were also among the acaryas of the
Atharva Veda. Now, O sage, listen as I name the authorities on Puranic literature.
5. Trayyaruni, Kasyapa, Savarni, Akrtavrana, Vaisampayana and Harita are the six masters of the
Puranas.
6. Each of them studied one of the six anthologies of the Puranas from my father, Romaharsana, who
was a disciple of Srila Vyasadeva. I became the disciple of these six authorities and thoroughly learned
all their presentations of Puranic wisdom. 7. Romaharsana, a disciple of Vedavyasa, divided the
Puranas into four basic compilations. The sage Kasyapa and I, along with Savarni and Akrtavrana, a
disciple of Rama, learned these four divisions.
8. O Saunaka, please hear with attention the characteristics of a Purana, which have been defined by
the most eminent learned brahmanas in accordance with Vedic literature.
9-10. O brahmana, authorities on the matter understand a Purana to contain ten characteristic topics:
the creation of this universe, the subsequent creation of worlds and beings, the maintenance of all living
beings, their sustenance, the rule of various Manus, the dynasties of great kings, the activities of such
kings, annihilation, motivation and the supreme shelter. Other scholars state that the great Puranas deal
with these ten topics, while lesser Puranas may deal with five.
11. From the agitation of the original modes within the unmanifest material nature, the mahat-tattva
arises. From the mahat-tattva comes the element false ego, which divides into three aspects. This
threefold false ego further manifests as the subtle forms of perception, as the senses and as the gross
sense objects. The generation of all these is called creation.
12. The secondary creation, which exists by the mercy of the Lord, is the manifest amalgamation of the
desires of the living entities. Just as a seed produces additional seeds, activities that promote material
desires in the performer produce moving and nonmoving life forms.
13. Vrtti means the process of sustenance, by which the moving beings live upon the nonmoving. For a
human, vrtti specifically means acting for one's livelihood in a manner suited to his personal nature.
Such action may be carried out either in pursuit of selfish desire or in accordance with the law of God.
714 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
14. In each age, the infallible Lord appears in this world among the animals, human beings, sages and
demigods. By His activities in these incarnations He protects the universe and kills the enemies of Vedic
culture.
15. In each reign of Manu, six types of personalities appear as manifestations of Lord Hari: the ruling
Manu, the chief demigods, the sons of Manu, Indra, the great sages and the partial incarnations of the
Supreme Personality of Godhead.
16. Dynasties are lines of kings originating with Lord Brahma and extending continuously through past,
present and future. The accounts of such dynasties, especially of their most prominent members,
constitute the subject of dynastic history.
17. There are four types of cosmic annihilation-occasional, elemental, continuous and ultimate-all of
which are effected by the inherent poteney of the Supreme Lord. Learned scholars have designated this
topic dissolution.
18. Out of ignorance the living being performs material activities and thereby becomes in one sense the
cause of the creation, maintenance and destruction of the universe. Some authorities call the living
being the personality underlying the material creation, while others say he is the unmanifest self.
19. The Supreme Absolute Truth is present throughout all the stages of awareness-waking
consciousness, sleep and deep sleep-throughout all the phenomena manifested by the illusory energy,
and within the functions of all living entities, and He also exists separate from all these. Thus situated in
His own transcendence, He is the ultimate and unique shelter.
20. Although a material object may assume various forms and names, its essential ingredient is always
present as the basis of its existence. Similarly, both conjointly and separately, the Supreme Absolute
Truth is always present with the created material body throughout its phases of existence, beginning
with conception and ending with death.
21. Either automatically or because of one's regulated spiritual practice, one's mind may stop
functioning on the material platform of waking consciousness, sleep and deep sleep. Then one
understands the Supreme Soul and withdraws from material endeavor.
22. Sages expert in ancient histories have declared that the Puranas, according to their various
characteristics, can be divided into eighteen major Puranas and eighteen secondary Puranas.
23-24. The eighteen major Puranas are the Brahma, Padma, Visnu, Siva, Linga, Garuda, Narada,
Bhagavata, Agni, Skanda, Bhavisya, Brahma-vaivarta, Markandeya, Vamana, Varaha, Matsya, Kurma
and Brahmanda Puranas.
25. I have thoroughly described to you, O brahmana, the expansion of the branches of the Vedas by the
great sage Vyasadeva, his disciples and the disciples of his disciples. One who listens to this narration
will increase in spiritual strength.
Chapter Eight Markandeya's Prayers to Nara-Narayana Rsi
1. Sri Saunaka said: O Suta, may you live a long life! O saintly one, best of speakers, please continue
speaking to us. Indeed, only you can show men the path out of the ignorance in which they are
wandering.
2-5. Authorities say that Markandeya Rsi, the son of Mrkandu, was an exceptionally long-lived sage
who was the only survivor at the end of Brahma's day, when the entire universe was merged in the
flood of annihilation. But this same Markandeya Rsi, the foremost descendant of Bhrgu, took birth in my
own family during the current day of Brahma, and we have not yet seen any total annihilation in this day
of Brahma. Also, it is well known that Markandeya while wandering helplessly in the great ocean of
annihilation, saw in those fearful waters a wonderful personality-an infant boy lying alone within the fold
of a banyan leaf. O Suta, I am most bewildered and curious about this great sage, Markandeya Rsi. O
great yogi, you are universally accepted as the authority on all the Puranas. Therefore kindly dispel my
confusion.
6. Suta Gosvami said: O great sage Saunaka, your very question will help remove everyone's illusion,
for it leads to the topics of Lord Narayana, which cleanse away the contamination of this Kali age.
7-11. After being purified by his father's performance of the prescribed rituals leading to Markandeya's
brahminical initiation, Markandeya studied the Vedic hymns and strictly observed the regulative
principles. He became advanced in austerity and Vedic knowledge and remained a lifelong celibate.
Appearing most peaceful with his matted hair and his clothing made of bark, he furthered his spiritual
progress by carrying the mendicant's waterpot, staff, sacred thread, brahmacari belt, black deerskin,
lotus-seed prayer beads and bundles of kusa grass. At the sacred junctures of the day he regularly
worshiped the Supreme Personality of Godhead in five forms-the sacrificial fire, the sun, his spiritual
master, the brahmanas and the Supersoul within his heart. Morning and evening he would go out
begging, and upon returning he would present all the food he had collected to his spiritual master. Only
when his spiritual master invited him would he silently take his one meal of the day; otherwise he would
fast. Thus devoted to austerity and Vedic study, Markandeya Rsi worshiped the supreme master of the
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 715
senses, the Personality of Godhead, for countless millions of years, and in this way he conquered
unconquerable death.
12. Lord Brahma, Bhrgu Muni, Lord Siva, Prajapati Daksa, the great sons of Brahma, and many others
among the human beings, demigods, forefathers and ghostly spirits-all were astonished by the
achievement of Markandeya Rsi.
13. In this way the devotional mystic Markandeya maintained rigid celibacy through penance, study of
the Vedas and self-discipline. With his mind thus free of all disturbances, he turned it inward and
meditated on the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who lies beyond the material senses.
14. While the mystic sage thus concentrated his mind by powerful yoga practice, the tremendous period
of six lifetimes of Manu passed by.
15. O brahmana, during the seventh reign of Manu, the current age, Lord Indra came to know of
Markandeya's austerities and became fearful of his growing mystic potency. Thus he tried to impede the
sage's penance.
16. To ruin the sage's spiritual practice, Lord Indra sent Cupid, beautiful celestial singers, dancing girls,
the season of spring and the sandalwood-scented breeze from the Malaya Hills, along with greed and
intoxication personified.
17. O most powerful Saunaka, they went to Markandeya's hermitage, on the northern side of the
Himalaya Mountains where the Puspabhadra River passes by the famous peak Citra.
18-20. Groves of pious trees decorated the holy asrama of Markandeya Rsi, and many saintly
brahmanas lived there, enjoying the abundant pure, sacred ponds. The asrama resounded with the
buzzing of intoxicated bees and the cooing of excited cuckoos, while jubilant peacocks danced about.
Indeed, many families of maddened birds crowded that hermitage. The springtime breeze sent by Lord
Indra entered there, carrying cooling drops of spray from nearby waterfalls. Fragrant from the embrace
of forest flowers, that breeze entered the hermitage and began evoking the lusty spirit of Cupid.
21. Springtime then appeared in Markandeya's asrama. Indeed, the evening sky, glowing with the light
of the rising moon, became the very face of spring, and sprouts and fresh blossoms virtually covered
the multitude of trees and creepers.
22. Cupid, the master of many heavenly women, then came there holding his bow and arrows. He was
followed by groups of Gandharvas playing musical instruments and singing.
23. These servants of Indra found the sage sitting in meditation, having just offered his prescribed
oblations into the sacrificial fire. His eyes closed in trance, he seemed invincible, like fire personified.
24. The women danced before the sage, and the celestial singers sang to the charming accompaniment
of drums, cymbals and vinas.
25. While the son of passion [greed personified], spring and the other servants of Indra all tried to
agitate Markandeya's mind, Cupid drew his five-headed arrow and fixed it upon his bow.
26-27. The Apsara Punjikasthali made a show of playing with a number of toy balls. Her waist seemed
weighed down by her heavy breasts, and the wreath of flowers in her hair became disheveled. As she
ran about after the balls, glancing here and there, the belt of her thin garment loosened, and suddenly
the wind blew her clothes away.
28. Cupid, thinking he had conquered the sage, then shot his arrow. But all these attempts to seduce
Markandeya proved futile, just like the useless endeavors of an atheist.
29. O learned Saunaka, while Cupid and his followers tried to harm the sage, they felt themselves being
burned alive by his potency. Thus they stopped their mischief, just like children who have aroused a
sleeping snake.
30. O brahmana, the followers of Lord Indra had impudently attacked the saintly Markandeya, yet he did
not succumb to any influence of false ego. For great souls such tolerance is not at all surprising.
31. The mighty King Indra was most astonished when he heard of the mystic prowess of the exalted
sage Markandeya and saw how Cupid and his associates had become powerless in his presence.
32. Desiring to bestow His mercy upon the saintly Markandeya, who had perfectly fixed his mind in self-
realization through penance, Vedic study and observance of regulative principles, the Supreme
Personality of Godhead personally appeared before the sage in the forms of Nara and Narayana.
33-34. One of Them was of a whitish complexion, the other blackish, and They both had four arms.
Their eyes resembled the petals of blooming lotuses, and They wore garments of black deerskin and
bark, along with the three-stranded sacred thread. In Their hands, which were most purifying, They
carried the mendicant's waterpot, straight bamboo staff and lotus-seed prayer beads, as well as the all-
purifying Vedas in the symbolic form of bundles of darbha grass. Their bearing was tall and Their yellow
effulgence the color of radiant lightning. Appearing as austerity personified, They were being worshiped
by the foremost demigods.
716 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
35. These two sages, Nara and Narayana, were the direct personal forms of the Supreme Lord. When
Markandeya Rsi saw Them, he immediately stood up and then with great respect offered Them
obeisances by falling down flat on the ground like a stick.
36. The ecstasy of seeing Them completely satisfied Markandeya 's body, mind and senses and
caused the hairs on his body to stand on end and his eyes to fill with tears. Overwhelmed, Markandeya
found it difficult to look at Them.
37. Standing with his hands folded in supplication and his head bowed in humility, Markandeya felt such
eagerness that he imagined he was embracing the two Lords. In a voice choked with ecstasy, he
repeatedly said, "I offer You my humble obeisances."
38. He gave Them sitting places and washed Their feet, and then he worshiped Them with
presentations of arghya, sandalwood pulp, fragrant oils, incense and flower garlands.
39. Markandeya Rsi once again bowed down at the lotus feet of those two most worshipable sages,
who were sitting at ease, ready to bestow all mercy upon him. He when addressed Them as follows.
40. Sri Markandeya said: O Almighty Lord, how can I possibly describe You? You awaken the vital air,
which then impels the mind, senses and power of speech to act. This is true for all ordinary conditioned
souls and even for great demigods like Brahma and Siva. So it is certainly true for me. Nevertheless,
You become the intimate friend of those who worship You.
41. O Supreme Personality of Godhead, these two personal forms of Yours have appeared to bestow
the ultimate benefit for the three worlds-the cessation of material misery and the conquest of death. My
Lord, although You create this universe and then assume many transcendental forms to protect it, You
also swallow it up, just like a spider who spins and later withdraws its web.
42. Because You are the protector and the supreme controller of all moving and nonmoving beings,
anyone who takes shelter of Your lotus feet can never be touched by the contamination of material
work, material qualities or time. Great sages who have assimilated the essential meaning of the Vedas
offer their prayers to You. To gain Your association, they bow down to You at every opportunity and
constantly worship You and meditate upon You.
43. My dear Lord, even Lord Brahma, who enjoys his exalted position for the entire duration of the
universe, fears the passage of time. Then what to speak of those whom Brahma creates, the
conditioned souls. They encounter fearful dangers at every step of their lives. I do not know of any relief
from this fear except shelter at Your lotus feet, which are the very form of liberation.
44. Therefore I worship Your lotus feet, having renounced my identification with the material body and
everything else that covers my true self. These useless, insubstantial and temporary coverings are
merely presumed to be separate from You, whose intelligence encompasses all truth. By attaining You-
the Supreme Godhead and the master of the soul-one attains everything desirable.
45. O my Lord, O supreme friend of the conditioned soul, although for the creation, maintenance and
annihilation of this world You accept the modes of goodness, passion and ignorance, which constitute
Your illusory potency, You specifically employ the mode of goodness to liberate the conditioned souls.
The other two modes simply bring them suffering, illusion and fear.
46. O Lord, because fearlessness, spiritual happiness and the kingdom of God are all achieved through
the mode of pure goodness, Your devotees consider this mode, but never passion and ignorance, to be
a direct manifestation of You, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. Intelligent persons thus worship
Your beloved transcendental form, composed of pure goodness, along with the spiritual forms of Your
pure devotees.
47. I offer my humble obeisances to Him, the Supreme Personality of Godhead. He is the all-pervading
and all-inclusive form of the universe, as well as its spiritual master. I bow down to Lord Narayana, the
supremely worshipable Deity appearing as a sage, and also to the saintly Nara, the best of human
beings, who is fixed in perfect goodness, fully in control of his speech, and the propagator of the Vedic
literatures.
48. A materialist, his intelligence perverted by the action of his deceptive senses, cannot recognize You
at all, although You are always present within his own senses and heart and also among the objects of
his perception. Yet even though one's understanding has been covered by Your illusory potency, if one
obtains Vedic knowledge from You, the supreme spiritual master of all, he can directly understand You.
49. My dear Lord, the Vedic literatures alone reveal confidential knowledge of Your supreme
personality, and thus even such great scholars as Lord Brahma himself are bewildered in their attempt
to understand You through empirical methods. Each philosopher understands You according to his
particular speculative conclusions. I worship that Supreme Person, knowledge of whom is hidden by the
bodily designations covering the conditioned soul's spiritual identity.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 717
Chapter Nine Markandeya Rsi Sees the Illusory Potency of the Lord
1. Suta Gosvami said: The Supreme Lord Narayana, the friend of Nara, was satisfied by the proper
glorification offered by the intelligent sage Markandeya. Thus the Lord addressed that excellent
descendant of Bhrgu.
2. The Supreme Personality of Godhead said: My dear Markandeya, you are indeed the best of all
learned brahmanas. You have perfected your life by practicing fixed meditation upon the Supreme Soul,
as well as by focusing upon Me your undeviating devotional service, your austerities, your study of the
Vedas and your strict adherence to regulative principles.
3. We are perfectly satisfied with your practice of lifelong celibacy. Please choose whatever benediction
you desire, since I can grant your wish. May you enjoy all good fortune.
4. The sage said: O Lord of lords, all glories to You! O Lord Acyuta, You remove all distress for the
devotees who surrender unto You. That you have allowed me to see You is all the benediction I want.
5. Such demigods as Lord Brahma achieved their exalted positions simply by seeing Your beautiful
lotus feet after their minds had become mature in yoga practice. And now, my Lord, You have
personally appeared before me.
6. O lotus-eyed Lord, O crest jewel of renowned personalities, although I am satisfied simply by seeing
You, I do wish to see Your illusory potency, by whose influence the entire world, together with its ruling
demigods, considers reality to be materially variegated.
7. Suta Gosvami said: O wise Saunaka, thus satisfied by Markandeya's praise and worship, the
Supreme Personality of Godhead, smiling, replied, "So be it," and then departed for His hermitage at
Badarikasrama.
8-9. Thinking always of his desire to see the Lord's illusory energy, the sage remained in his asrama,
meditating constantly upon the Lord within fire, the sun, the moon, water, the earth, air, lightning and his
own heart and worshiping Him with paraphernalia conceived in his mind. But sometimes, overwhelmed
by waves of love for the Lord, Markandeya would forget to perform his regular worship.
10. O brahmana Saunaka, best of the Bhrgus, one day while Markandeya was performing his evening
worship on the bank of the Puspabhadra, a great wind suddenly arose.
11. That wind created a terrible sound and brought in its wake fearsome clouds that were accompanied
by lightning and roaring thunder and that poured down on all sides torrents of rain as heavy as wagon
wheels.
12. Then the four great oceans appeared on all sides, swallowing up the surface of the earth with their
wind-tossed waves. In these oceans were terrible sea monsters, fearful whirlpools and ominous
rumblings.
13. The sage saw all the inhabitants of the universe, including himself, tormented within and without by
the harsh winds, the bolts of lightning, and the great waves rising beyond the sky. As the whole earth
flooded, he grew perplexed and fearful.
14. Even as Markandeya looked on, the rain pouring down from the clouds filled the ocean more and
more until that great sea, its waters violently whipped into terrifying waves by hurricanes, covered up all
the earth's islands, mountains and continents.
15. The water inundated the earth, outer space, heaven and the celestial region. Indeed, the entire
expanse of the universe was flooded in all directions, and out of all its inhabitants only Markandeya
remained. His matted hair scattered, the great sage wandered about alone in the water as if dumb and
blind.
16. Tormented by hunger and thirst, attacked by monstrous makaras and timingila fish and battered by
the wind and waves, he moved aimlessly through the infinite darkness into which he had fallen. As he
grew increasingly exhausted, he lost all sense of direction and could not tell the sky from the earth.
17-18. At times he was engulfed by the great whirlpools, sometimes he was beaten by the mighty
waves, and at other times the aquatic monsters threatened to devour him as they attacked one another.
Sometimes he felt lamentation, bewilderment, misery, happiness or fear, and at other times he
experienced such terrible illness and pain that he felt himself dying.
19. Countless millions of years passed as Markandeya wandered about in that deluge, his mind
bewildered by the illusory energy of Lord Visnu, the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
20. Once, while wandering in the water, the brahmana Markandeya discovered a small island, upon
which stood a young banyan tree bearing blossoms and fruits.
21. Upon a branch of the northeast portion of that tree he saw an infant boy lying within a leaf. The
child's effulgence was swallowing up the darkness.
22-25. The infant's dark-blue complexion was the color of a flawless emerald, His lotus face shone with
a wealth of beauty, and His throat bore marks like the lines on a conchshell. He had a broad chest, a
finely shaped nose, beautiful eyebrows, and lovely ears that resembled pomegranate flowers and that
had inner folds like a conchshell's spirals. The corners of His eyes were reddish like the whorl of a lotus,
718 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
and the effulgence of His corallike lips slightly reddened the nectarean, enchanting smile on His face.
As He breathed, His splendid hair trembled and His deep navel became distorted by the moving folds of
skin on His abdomen, which resembled a banyan leaf. The exalted brahmana watched with amazement
as the infant took hold of one of His lotus feet with His graceful fingers, placed a toe within His mouth
and began to suck.
26. As Markandeya beheld the child, all his weariness vanished. Indeed, so great was his pleasure that
the lotus of his heart, along with his lotus eyes, fully blossomed and the hairs on his body stood on end.
Confused as to the identity of the wonderful infant, the sage approached Him.
27. Just then the child inhaled, drawing Markandeya within His body like a mosquito. There the sage
found the entire universe arrayed as it had been before its dissolution. Seeing this, Markandeya was
most astonished and perplexed.
28-29. The sage saw the entire universe: the sky, heavens and earth, the stars, mountains, oceans,
great islands and continents, the expanses in every direction, the saintly and demoniac living beings,
the forests, countries, rivers, cities and mines, the agricultural villages and cow pastures, and the
occupational and spiritual activities of the various social divisions. He also saw the basic elements of
creation along with all their by-products, as well as time itself, which regulates the progression of
countless ages within the days of Brahma. In addition, he saw everything else created for use in
material life. All this he saw manifested before him as if it were real.
30. He saw before him the Himalaya Mountains, the Puspabhadra River, and his own hermitage, where
he had had the audience of the sages Nara-Narayana. Then, as Markandeya beheld the entire
universe, the infant exhaled, expelling the sage from His body and casting him back into the ocean of
dissolution.
31-32. In that vast sea he again saw the banyan tree growing on the tiny island and the infant boy lying
within the leaf. The child glanced at him from the corner of His eyes with a smile imbued with the nectar
of love, and Markandeya took Him
into his heart through his eyes. Greatly agitated, the sage ran to embrace the transcendental
Personality of Godhead.
33. At that moment the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the original master of all mysticism
and who is hidden within everyone's heart, became invisible to the sage, just as the achievements of an
incompetent person can suddenly vanish.
34. After the Lord disappeared, O brahmana, the banyan tree, the great water and the dissolution of the
universe all vanished as well, and in an instant Markandeya found himself back in his own hermitage,
just as before.
Chapter Ten Lord Siva and Uma Glorify Markandeya Rsi
1. Suta Gosvami said: The Supreme Lord Narayana had arranged this opulent display of His
bewildering potency. Markandeya Rsi, having experienced it, took shelter of the Lord.
2. Sri Markandeya said: O Lord Hari, I take shelter of the soles of Your lotus feet, which bestow
fearlessness upon all who surrender to them. Even the great demigods are bewildered by Your illusory
energy, which appears to them in the guise of knowledge.
3. Suta Gosvami said: Lord Rudra, traveling in the sky on his bull and accompanied by his consort,
Rudrani, as well as his personal associates, observed Markandeya in trance.
4. Goddess Uma, seeing the sage, addressed Lord Girisa: My lord, just see this learned brahmana, his
body, mind and senses motionless in trance.
5. He is as calm as the waters of the ocean when the wind has ceased and the fish remain still.
Therefore, my lord, since you bestow perfection on the performers of austerity, please award this sage
the perfection that is obviously due him.
6. Lord Siva replied: Surely this saintly brahmana does not desire any benediction, not even liberation
itself, for he has attained pure devotional service unto the inexhaustible Personality of Godhead.
7. Still, my dear Bhavani, let us talk with this saintly personality. After all, association with saintly
devotees is man's highest achievement.
8. Suta Gosvami said: Having spoken thus, Lord Sankara-the shelter of pure souls, master of all
spiritual sciences and controller of all embodied living beings-approached the sage.
9. Because Markandeya 's material mind had stopped functioning, the sage failed to notice that Lord
Siva and his wife, the controllers of the universe, had personally come to see him. Markandeya was so
absorbed in meditation that he was unaware of either himself or the external world.
10. Understanding the situation very well, the powerful Lord Siva employed his mystic power to enter
within the sky of Markandeya 's heart, just as the wind passes through an opening.
11-13. Sri Markandeya saw Lord Siva suddenly appear within his heart. Lord Siva's golden hair
resembled lightning, and he had three eyes, ten arms and a tall body that shone like the rising sun. He
wore a tiger skin, and he carried a trident, a bow, arrows, a sword and a shield, along with prayer
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 719
beads, a damaru drum, a skull and an ax. Astonished, the sage came out of his trance and thought,
"Who is this, and where has he come from?"
14. Opening his eyes, the sage saw Lord Rudra, the spiritual master of the three worlds, together with
Uma and Rudra's followers. Markandeya then offered his respectful obeisances by bowing his head.
15. Markandeya worshiped Lord Siva, along with Uma and Siva's associates, by offering them words of
welcome, sitting places, water for washing their feet, scented drinking water, fragrant oils, flower
garlands and arati lamps.
16. Markandeya said: O mighty lord, what can I possibly do for you, who are fully satisfied by your own
ecstasy? Indeed, by your mercy you satisfy this entire world.
17. Again and again I offer my obeisances unto you, O all-auspicious transcendental personality. As the
lord of goodness you give pleasure, in contact with the mode of passion you appear most fearful, and
you also associate with the mode of ignorance.
18. Suta Gosvami said: Lord Siva, the foremost demigod and the shelter of the saintly devotees, was
satisfied by Markandeya's praise. Pleased, he smiled and addressed the sage.
19. Lord Siva said: Please ask me for some benediction, since among all givers of benedictions, we
three-Brahma, Visnu and I-are the best. Seeing us never goes in vain, because simply by seeing us a
mortal achieves immortality.
20-21. The inhabitants and ruling demigods of all planets, along with Lord Brahma, the Supreme Lord
Hari and I, glorify, worship and assist those brahmanas who are saintly, always peaceful, free of
material attachment, compassionate to all living beings, purely devoted to us, devoid of hatred and
endowed with equal vision.
22. These devotees do not differentiate between Lord Visnu, Lord Brahma and me, nor do they
differentiate between themselves and other living beings. Therefore, because you are this kind of saintly
devotee, we worship you.
23. Mere bodies of water do not constitute holy places, nor are lifeless statues of the demigods actual
worshipable deities. Because external vision fails to appreciate the higher essence of the holy rivers
and the demigods, these purify only after a considerable time. But devotees like you purify immediately,
just by being seen.
24. By meditating upon the Supreme Soul, performing austerities, engaging in Vedic study and
following regulative principles, the brahmanas sustain within themselves the three Vedas, which are
nondifferent from Lord Visnu, Lord Brahma and me. Therefore I offer my obeisances unto the
brahmanas.
25. Even the worst sinners and social outcastes are purified just by hearing about or seeing
personalities like you. Imagine, then, how purified they become by directly speaking with you.
26. Suta Gosvami said: Drinking with his ears Lord Siva's nectarean words, full of the confidential
essence of religion, Markandeya Rsi could not be satiated.
27. Markandeya, having been forced by Lord Visnu's illusory energy to wander about for a long time in
the water of dissolution, had become extremely exhausted. But Lord Siva's words of nectar vanquished
his accumulated suffering. Thus he addressed Lord Siva.
28. Sri Markandeya said: It is indeed most difficult for embodied souls to understand the pastimes of the
universal controllers, for such lords bow down to and offer praise to the very living beings they rule.
29. Generally it is to induce embodied souls to accept religious principles that the authorized teachers of
religion exhibit ideal behavior while encouraging and praising the proper behavior of others.
30. This apparent humility is simply a show of mercy. Such behavior of the Supreme Lord and His
personal associates, which the Lord effects by His own bewildering potency, does not spoil His power
any more than a magician's powers are diminished by his exhibition of tricks.
31-32. I offer my obeisances to that Supreme Personality of Godhead, who has created this entire
universe simply by His desire and then entered into it as the Supersoul. By making the modes of nature
act, He seems to be the direct creator of this world, just as a dreamer seems to be acting within his
dream. He is the owner and ultimate controller of the three modes of nature, yet He remains alone and
pure, without any equal. He is the supreme spiritual master of all, the original personal form of the
Absolute Truth.
33. O all-pervading lord, since I have received the benediction of seeing you, what other benediction
can I ask for? Simply by seeing you, a person fulfills all his desires and can achieve anything
imaginable.
34. But I do request one benediction from you, who are full of all perfection and able to shower down
the fulfillment of all desires. I ask to have unfailing devotion for the Supreme Personality of Godhead
and for His dedicated devotees, especially you.
35. Suta Gosvami said: Thus worshiped and glorified by the eloquent statements of the sage
Markandeya, Lord Sarva [Siva], encouraged by his consort, replied to him as follows.
720 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
36. O great sage, because you are devoted to Lord Adhoksaja, all your desires will be fulfilled. Until the
very end of this creation cycle, you will enjoy pious fame and freedom from old age and death.
37. O brahmana, may you have perfect knowledge of past, present and future, along with
transcendental realization of the Supreme, enriched by renunciation. You have the brilliance of an ideal
brahmana, and thus may you achieve the post of spiritual master of the Puranas.
38. Suta Gosvami said: Having thus granted Markandeya Rsi benedictions, Lord Siva went on his way,
continuing to describe to goddess Devi the accomplishments of the sage and the direct exhibition of the
Lord's illusory power that he had experienced.
39. Markandeya Rsi, the best of the descendants of Bhrgu, is glorious because of his achievement of
perfection in mystic yoga. Even today he travels about this world, fully absorbed in unalloyed devotion
for the Supreme Personality of Godhead.
40. I have thus narrated to you the activities of the highly intelligent sage Markandeya, especially how
he experienced the amazing power of the Supreme Lord's illusory energy.
41. Although this event was unique and unprecedented, some unintelligent persons compare it to the
cycle of illusory material existence the Supreme Lord has created for the conditioned souls-an endless
cycle that has been continuing since time immemorial.
42. O best of the Bhrgus, this account concerning Markandeya Rsi conveys the transcendental potency
of the Supreme Lord. Anyone who properly narrates or hears it will never again undergo material
existence, which is based on the desire to perform fruitive activities.
Chapter Eleven Summary Description of the Mahapurusa
1. Sri Saunaka said: O Suta, you are the best of learned men and a great devotee of the Supreme Lord.
Therefore we now inquire from you about the definitive conclusion of all tantra scriptures.
2-3. All good fortune to you! Please explain to us, who are very eager to learn, the process of kriya-yoga
practiced through regulated worship of the transcendental Lord, the husband of the goddess of fortune.
Please also explain how the Lord's devotees conceive of His limbs, associates, weapons and
ornaments in terms of particular material representations. By expertly worshiping the Supreme Lord, a
mortal can attain immortality.
4. Suta Gosvami said: Offering obeisances to my spiritual masters, I shall repeat to you the description
of the opulences of Lord Visnu given in the Vedas and tantras by great authorities, beginning from lotus-
born Brahma.
5. The universal form [virat] of the Personality of Godhead includes the nine basic elements of creation,
starting with the unmanifest nature, and their subsequent transformations. Once this universal form is
instilled with consciousness, the three planetary systems become visible within it.
6-8. This is the representation of the Supreme Lord as the universal person, in which the earth is His
feet, the sky His navel, the sun His eyes, the wind His nostrils, the demigod of procreation His genitals,
death His anus and the moon His mind. The heavenly planets are His head, the directions His ears, and
the demigods protecting the various planets His many arms. The god of death is His eyebrows, shame
His lower lip, greed His upper lip, delusion His smile, and moonshine His teeth, while the trees are the
almighty Purusa's bodily hairs, and the clouds the hair on His head.
9. Just as one can determine the dimensions of an ordinary person of this world by measuring his
various limbs, one can determine the dimensions of the Mahapurusa by measuring the arrangement of
the planetary systems within His universal form.
10. Upon His chest the almighty, unborn Personality of Godhead bears the Kaustubha gem, which
represents the pure spirit soul, along with the Srivatsa mark, which is the direct manifestation of this
gem's expansive effulgence.
11-12. His flower garland is His material energy, comprising various combinations of the modes of
nature. His yellow garment is the Vedic meters, and His sacred thread the syllable om composed of
three sounds. In the form of His two shark-shaped earrings, the Lord carries the processes of Sankhya
and yoga, and His crown, bestowing fearlessness on the inhabitants of all the worlds, is the supreme
position of Brahmaloka.
13. Ananta, the Lord's sitting place, is the unmanifest phase of material nature, and the Lord's lotus
throne is the mode of goodness, endowed with religion and knowledge.
14-15. The club the Lord carries is the chief element, prana, incorporating the potencies of sensory,
mental and physical strength. His excellent conchshell is the element water, His Sudarsana disc the
element fire, and His sword, pure as the sky, the element ether. His shield embodies the mode of
ignorance, His bow, named Sarnga, time, and His arrow-filled quiver the working sensory organs.
16. His arrows are said to be the senses, and His chariot is the active, forceful mind. His external
appearance is the subtle objects of perception, and the gestures of His hands are the essence of all
purposeful activity.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 721
17. The sun globe is the place where the Supreme Lord is worshiped, spiritual initiation is the means of
purification for the spirit soul, and rendering devotional service to the Personality of Godhead is the
process for eradicating all one's sinful reactions.
18. Playfully carrying a lotus, which represents the various opulences designated by the word bhaga,
the Supreme Lord accepts service from a pair of camara fans, which are religion and fame.
19. O brahmanas, the Lord's umbrella is His spiritual abode, Vaikuntha, where there is no fear, and
Garuda, who carries the Lord of sacrifice, is the threefold Veda.
20. The goddess of fortune, Sri, who never leaves the Lord's side, appears with Him in this world as the
representation of His internal potency. Visvaksena, the chief among His personal associates, is known
to be the personification of the Pancaratra and other tantras. And the Lord's eight doorkeepers, headed
by Nanda, are His mystic perfections, beginning with anima.
21. Vasudeva, Sankarsana, Pradyumna and Aniruddha are the names of the direct personal
expansions of the Supreme Godhead, O brahmana Saunaka.
22. One can conceive of the Supreme Personality of Godhead in terms of awakened consciousness,
sleep and deep sleep-which function respectively through external objects, the mind and material
intelligence-and also in terms of the fourth, transcendental level of consciousness, which is
characterized by pure knowledge.
23. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Hari, thus appears in four personal expansions, each
exhibiting major limbs, minor limbs, weapons and ornaments. Through these distinct features, the Lord
maintains the four phases of existence.
24. O best of brahmanas, He alone is the self-luminous, original source of the Vedas, perfect and
complete in His own glory. By His material energy He creates, destroys and maintains this entire
universe. Because He is the performer of various material functions, He is sometimes described as
materially divided, yet He always remains transcendentally situated in pure knowledge. Those who are
dedicated to Him in devotion can realize Him to be their true Soul.
25. O Krsna, O friend of Arjuna, O chief among the descendants of Vrsni, You are the destroyer of
those political parties that are disturbing elements on this earth. Your prowess never deteriorates. You
are the proprietor of the transcendental abode, and Your most sacred glories, which are sung by
Vrndavana's cowherd men and women and their servants, bestow all auspiciousness just by being
heard. O Lord, please protect Your devotees.
26. Anyone who rises early in the morning and, with a purified mind fixed upon the Mahapurusa, quietly
chants this description of His characteristics will realize Him as the Supreme Absolute Truth residing
within the heart.
27-28. Sri Saunaka said: Please describe to us, who have great faith in your words, the different sets of
seven personal features and associates the sun-god exhibits during each month, along with their
names and activities. The associates of the sun-god, who serve their lord, are personal expansions of
the Supreme Personality of Godhead Hari in His feature as the presiding deity of the sun.
29. Suta Gosvami said: The sun travels among all the planets and thus regulates their movements. It
has been created by Lord Visnu, the Supreme Soul of all embodied beings, through His beginningless
material energy.
30. The sun-god, being nondifferent from Lord Hari, is the one soul of all the worlds and their original
creator. He is the source of all the ritualistic activities prescribed in the Vedas and has been given many
names by the Vedic sages.
31. Being the source of the material energy, the Personality of Godhead Lord Hari in His expansion as
the sun-god is described in nine aspects, O Saunaka: the time, the place, the endeavor, the performer,
the instrument, the specific ritual, the scripture, the paraphernalia of worship and the result to be
achieved.
32. The Supreme Personality of Godhead, manifesting His potency of time as the sun-god, travels
about in each of the twelve months, beginning with Madhu, to regulate planetary motion within the
universe. Traveling with the sun-god in each of the twelve months is a different set of six associates.
33. My dear sage, Dhata as the sun-god, Krtasthali as the Apsara, Heti as the Raksasa, Vasuki as the
Naga, Rathakrt as the Yaksa, Pulastya as the sage and Tumburu as the Gandharva rule the month of
Madhu.
34. Aryama as the sun-god, Pulaha as the sage, Athauja as the Yaksa, Praheti as the Raksasa,
Punjikasthali as the Apsara, Narada as the Gandharva and Kacchanira as the Naga rule the month of
Madhava.
35. Mitra as the sun-god, Atri as the sage, Pauruseya as the Raksasa, Taksaka as the Naga, Menaka
as the Apsara, Haha as the Gandharva and Rathasvana as the Yaksa rule the month of Sukra.
36. Vasistha as the sage, Varuna as the sun-god, Rambha as the Apsara, Sahajanya as the Raksasa,
Huhu as the Gandharva, Sukra as the Naga and Citrasvana as the Yaksa rule the month of Suci.
722 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
37. Indra as the sun-god, Visvavasu as the Gandharva, Srota as the Yaksa, Elapatra as the Naga,
Angira as the sage, Pramloca as the Apsara and Varya as the Raksasa rule the month of Nabhas.
38. Vivasvan as the sun-god, Ugrasena as the Gandharva, Vyaghra as the Raksasa, Asarana as the
Yaksa, Bhrgu as the sage, Anumloca as the Apsara and Sankhapala as the Naga rule the month of
Nabhasya.
39. Pusa as the sun-god, Dhananjaya as the Naga, Vata as the Raksasa, Susena as the Gandharva,
Suruci as the Yaksa, Ghrtaci as the Apsara and Gautama as the sage rule the month of Tapas.
40. Rtu as the Yaksa, Varca as the Raksasa, Bharadvaja as the sage, Parjanya as the sun-god, Senajit
as the Apsara, Visva as the Gandharva and Airavata as the Naga rule the month known as Tapasya.
41. Amsu as the sun-god, Kasyapa as the sage, Tarksya as the Yaksa, Rtasena as the Gandharva,
Urvasi as the Apsara, Vidyucchatru as the Raksasa and Mahasaìkha as the Naga rule the month of
Sahas.
42. Bhaga as the sun-god, Sphurja as the Raksasa, Aristanemi as the Gandharva, Uma as the Yaksa,
Ayur as the sage, Karkotaka as the Naga and Purvacitti as the Apsara rule the month of Pusya.
43. Tvasta as the sun-god; Jamadagni, the son of Rcika, as the sage; Kambalasva as the Naga;
Tilottama as the Apsara; Brahmapeta as the Raksasa; Satajit as the Yaksa; and Dhrtarastra as the
Gandharva maintain the month of Isa.
44. Visnu as the sun-god, Asvatara as the Naga, Rambha as the Apsara, Suryavarca as the
Gandharva, Satyajit as the Yaksa, Visvamitra as the sage and Makhapeta as the Raksasa rule the
month of Urja.
45. All these personalities are the opulent expansions of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Visnu, in
the form of the sun-god. These deities take away all the sinful reactions of those who remember them
each day at dawn and sunset.
46. Thus, throughout the twelve months, the lord of the sun travels in all directions with his six types of
associates, disseminating among the inhabitants of this universe purity of consciousness for both this
life and the next.
47-48. While the sages glorify the sun-god with the hymns of the Sama, Rg and Yajur Vedas, which
reveal his identity, the Gandharvas also sing his praises and the Apsaras dance before his chariot. The
Nagas arrange the chariot ropes and the Yaksas harness the horses to the chariot, while the powerful
Raksasas push from behind.
49. Facing the chariot, the sixty thousand brahmana sages known as Valakhilyas travel in front and
offer prayers to the almighty sun-god with Vedic mantras.
50. For the protection of all the worlds, the Supreme Personality of Godhead Hari, who is unborn and
without beginning or end, thus expands Himself during each day of Brahma into these specific
categories of His personal representations.
Chapter Twelve The Topics of Srimad-Bhagavatam Summarized
1. Suta Gosvami said: Offering my obeisances to the supreme religious principle, devotional service; to
Lord Krsna, the supreme creator; and to all the brahmanas, I shall now describe the eternal principles of
religion.
2. O great sages, I have narrated to you the wonderful pastimes of Lord Visnu, as you inquired about
them from me. Hearing such narrations is the suitable engagement for a person who is actually a
human being.
3. This literature fully glorifies the Supreme Personality of Godhead Hari, who removes all His devotees'
sinful reactions. The Lord is glorified as Narayana, Hrisekesa and the Lord of the Satvatas.
4. This literature describes the mystery of the Supreme Absolute Truth, the source of the creation and
annihilation of this universe. Also presented are divine knowledge of Him together with the process of its
cultivation, and the transcendental realization one achieves.
5. The following topics are also narrated: the process of devotional service together with its subsidiary
feature of renunciation, and the histories of Maharaja Pariksit and the sage Narada.
6. Also described are saintly King Pariksit's sitting down to fast until death in response to the curse of a
brahmana's son, and the conversations between Pariksit and Sukadeva Gosvami, who is the best of all
brahmanas.
7. The Bhagavatam explains how one can attain liberation at the time of death by practicing fixed
meditation in yoga. It also contains a discussion between Narada and Brahma, an enumeration of the
incarnations of the Supreme Personality of Godhead, and a description of how the universe was
created in progressive sequence, beginning from the unmanifest stage of material nature.
8. This scripture also relates the discussions Vidura had with Uddhava and with Maitreya, inquiries
about the subject matter of this Purana, and the winding up of creation within the body of the Supreme
Lord at the time of annihilation.
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 723
9. The creation effected by the agitation of the modes of material nature, the seven stages of evolution
by elemental transformation, and the construction of the universal egg, from which arises the universal
form of the Supreme Lord-all these are thoroughly described.
10. Other topics include the subtle and gross movements of time, the generation of the lotus from the
navel of Garbhodakasayi Visnu, and the killing of the demon Hiranyaksa when the earth was delivered
from the Garbhodaka Ocean.
11. The Bhagavatam also describes the creation of demigods, animals and demoniac species of life;
the birth of Lord Rudra; and the appearance of Svayambhuva Manu from the half-man, half-woman
Isvara.
12. Also related are the appearance of the first woman, Satarupa, who was the excellent consort of
Manu, and the offspring of the pious wives of Prajapati Kardama.
13. The Bhagavatam describes the incarnation of the Supreme Personality of Godhead as the exalted
sage Kapila and records the conversation between that greatly learned soul and His mother, Devahuti.
14-15. Also described are the progeny of the nine great brahmanas, the destruction of Daksa's
sacrifice, and the history of Dhruva Maharaja, followed by the histories of King Prthu and King
Pracinabarhi, the discussion between Pracinabarhi and Narada, and the life of Maharaja Priyavrata.
Then, O brahmanas, the Bhagavatam tells of the character and activities of King Nabhi, Lord Rsabha
and King Bharata.
16. The Bhagavatam gives an elaborate description of the earth's continents, regions, oceans,
mountains and rivers. Also described are the arrangement of the celestial sphere and the conditions
found in the subterranean regions and in hell.
17. The rebirth of Prajjapati Daksa as the son of the Pracetas, and the progeny of Daksa's daughters,
who initiated the races of demigods, demons, human beings, animals, serpents, birds and so on-all this
is described.
18. O brahmanas, also recounted are the births and deaths of Vrtrasura and of Diti's sons Hiranyaksa
and Hiranyakasipu, as well as the history of the greatest of Diti's descendants, the exalted soul
Prahlada.
19. The reign of each Manu, the liberation of Gajendra, and the special incarnations of Lord Visnu in
each manvantara, such as Lord Hayagriva, are described as well.
20. The Bhagavatam also tells of the appearances of the Lord of the universe as Kurma, Matsya,
Narasimha and Vamana, and of the demigods' churning of the milk ocean to obtain nectar.
21. An account of the great battle fought between the demigods and the demons, a systematic
description of the dynasties of various kings, and narrations concerning Iksvaku's birth, his dynasty and
the dynasty of the pious Sudyumna-all are presented within this literature.
22. Also related are the histories of Ila and Tara, and the description of the descendants of the sun-god,
including such kings as Sasada and Nrga.
23. The histories of Sukanya, Saryati, the intelligent Kakutstha, Khatvanga, Mandhata, Saubhari and
Sagara are narrated.
24. The Bhagavatam narrates the sanctifying pastimes of Lord Ramacandra, the King of Kosala, and
also explains how King Nimi abandoned his material body. The appearance of the descendants of King
Janaka is also mentioned.
25-26. The Srimad-Bhagavatam describes how Lord Parasurama, the greatest descendant of Bhrgu,
annihilated all the ksatriyas on the face of the earth. It further recounts the lives of glorious kings who
appeared in the dynasty of the moon-god-kings such as Aila, Yayati, Nahusa, Dusmanta's son Bharata,
Santanu and Santanu's son Bhisma. Also described is the great dynasty founded by King Yadu, the
eldest son of Yayati.
27. How Sri Krsna, the Supreme personality of Godhead and Lord of the universe, descended into this
Yadu dynasty, how He took birth in the home of Vasudeva, and how He then grew up in Gokula-all this
is described in detail.
28-29. Also glorified are the innumerable pastimes of Sri Krsna, the enemy of the demons, including His
childhood pastimes of sucking out Putana's life air along with her breast-milk, breaking the cart,
trampling down Trnavarta, killing Bakasura, Vatsasura and Aghasura, and the pastimes He enacted
when Lord Brahma hid His calves and cowherd boyfriends in a cave.
30. The Srimad-Bhagavatam tells how Lord Krsna and Lord Balarama killed the demon Dhenukasura
and his companions, how Lord Balarama destroyed Pralambasura, and also how Krsna saved the
cowherd boys from a raging forest fire that had encircled them.
31-33. The chastisement of the serpent Kaliya; the rescue of Nanda Maharaja from a great snake; the
severe vows performed by the young gopés, who thus satisfied Lord Krsna; the mercy He showed the
wives of the Vedic brahmanas, who felt remorse; the lifting of Govardhana Hill followed by the worship
and bathing ceremony performed by Indra and the Surabhi cow; Lord Krsna's nocturnal pastimes with
724 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
the cowherd girls; and the killing of the foolish demons Sankhacuda, Arista and Kesi-all these pastimes
are elaborately recounted.
34. The Bhagavatam describes the arrival of Akrura, the subsequent departure of Krsna and Balarama,
the lamentation of the gopis and the touring of Mathura.
35. Also narrated are how Krsna and Balarama killed the elephant Kuvalayapida, the wrestlers Mustika
and Canura, and Kamsa and other demons, as well as how Krsna brought back the dead son of His
spiritual master, Sandipani Muni.
36. Then, O brahmanas, this scripture recounts how Lord Hari, while residing in Mathura in the
company of Uddhava and Balarama, performed pastimes for the satisfaction of the Yadu dynasty.
37. Also described are the annihilation of each of the many armies brought by Jarasandha, the killing of
the barbarian king Kalayavana and the establishment of Dvaraka City.
38. This work also describes how Lord Krsna brought from heaven the parijata tree and the Sudharma
assembly hall, and how He kidnapped Rukmini by defeating all His rivals in battle.
39. Also narrated are how Lord Krsna, in the battle with Banasura, defeated Lord Siva by making him
yawn, how the Lord cut off Banasura's arms, and how He killed the master of Pragjyotisapura and then
rescued the young princesses held captive in that city.
40-41. There are descriptions of the powers and the deaths of the King of Cedi, Paundraka, Salva, the
foolish Dantavakra, Sambara, Dvivida, Pitha, Mura, Pancajana and other demons, along with a
description of how Varanasi was burned to the ground. The Bhagavatam also recounts how Lord Krsna
relieved the earth's burden by engaging the Pandavas in the Battle of Kuruksetra.
42-43. How the Lord withdrew His own dynasty on the pretext of the brahmanas' curse; Vasudeva's
conversation with Narada; the extraordinary conversation between Uddhava and Krsna, which reveals
the science of the self in complete detail and elucidates the religious principles of human society; and
then how Lord Krsna gave up this mortal world by His own mystic power-the Bhagavatam narrates all
these events.
44. This work also describes people's characteristics and behavior in the different ages, the chaos men
experience in the age of Kali, the four kinds of annihilation and the three kinds of creation.
45. There are also an account of the passing away of the wise and saintly King Visnurata [Pariksit], an
explanation of how Srila Vyasadeva disseminated the branches of the Vedas, a pious narration
concerning Markandeya Rsi, and a description of the detailed arrangement of the Lord's universal form
and His form as the sun, the soul of the universe.
46. Thus, O best of the brahmanas, I have explained herein what you have inquired from me. This
literature has glorified in full detail the activities of the Lord's pastime incarnations.
47. If when falling, slipping, feeling pain or sneezing one involuntarily cries out in a loud voice,
"Obeisances to Lord Hari!" one will be automatically freed from all his sinful reactions.
48. When people properly glorify the Supreme Personality of Godhead or simply hear about His power,
the Lord personally enters their hearts and cleanses away every trace of misfortune, just as the sun
removes the darkness or as a powerful wind drives away the clouds.
49. Words that do not describe the transcendental Personality of Godhead but instead deal with
temporary matters are simply false and useless. Only those words that manifest the transcendental
qualities of the Supreme Lord are actually truthful, auspicious and pious.
50. Those words describing the glories of the all-famous Personality of Godhead are attractive,
relishable and ever fresh. Indeed, such words are a perpetual festival for the mind, and they dry up the
ocean of misery.
51. Those words that do not describe the glories of the Lord, who alone can sanctify the atmosphere of
the whole universe, are considered to be like unto a place of pilgrimage for crows, and are never
resorted to by those situated in transcendental knowledge. The pure and saintly devotees take interest
only in topics glorifying the infallible Supreme Lord.
52. On the other hand, that literature which is full of descriptions of the transcendental glories of the
name, fame, forms, pastimes and so on of the unlimited Supreme Lord is a different creation, full of
transcendental words directed toward bringing about a revolution in the impious lives of this world's
misdirected civilization. Such transcendental literatures, even though imperfectly composed, are heard,
sung and accepted by purified men who are thoroughly honest.
53. Knowledge of self-realization, even though free from all material affinity, does not look well if devoid
of a conception of the Infallible [God]. What, then, is the use of even the most properly performed
fruitive activities, which are naturally painful from the very beginning and transient by nature, if they are
not utilized for the devotional service of the Lord?
54. The great endeavor one undergoes in executing the ordinary social and religious duties of the
varnasrama system, in performing austerities, and in hearing from the Vedas culminates only in the
achievement of mundane fame and opulence. But by respecting and attentively hearing the recitation of
SRIMAD BHAGAVATA 725
the transcendental qualities of the Supreme Lord, the husband of the goddess of fortune, one can
remember His lotus feet.
55. Remembrance of Lord Krsna's lotus feet destroys everything inauspicious and awards the greatest
good fortune. It purifies the heart and bestows devotion for the Supreme Soul, along with knowledge
enriched with realization and renunciation.
56. O most eminent of brahmanas, you are all indeed extremely fortunate, since you have already
placed within your hearts Lord Sri Narayana-the Personality of Godhead, the supreme controller and
the ultimate Soul of all existence-beyond whom there is no other god. You have undeviating love for
Him, and thus I request you to worship Him.
57. I also have now been fully reminded of the science of God, which I previously heard from the mouth
of the great sage Sukadeva Gosvami. I was present in the assembly of great sages who heard him
speak to King Pariksit as the monarch sat fasting until death.
58. O brahmanas, I have thus described to you the glories of the Supreme Lord Vasudeva, whose
extraordinary activities are most worthy of glorification. This narration destroys all that is inauspicious.
59. One who with undeviating attention constantly recites this literature at every moment of every hour,
as well as one who faithfully hears even one verse or half a verse or a single line or even half a line,
certainly purifies his very self.
60. One who hears this Bhagavatam on the Ekadasi or Dvadasi day is assured of long life, and one
who recites it with careful attention while fasting is purified of all sinful reactions.
61. One who controls his mind, fasts at the holy places Puskara, Mathuraor Dvaraka, and studies this
scripture will be freed from all fear.
62. Upon the person who glorifies this Purana by chanting or hearing it, the demigods, sages, Siddhas,
Pitas, Manus and kings of the earth bestow all desirable things.
63. By studying this Bhagavatam, a brahmana can enjoy the same rivers of honey, ghee and milk he
enjoys by studying the hymns of the Rg, Yajur and Sama Vedas.
64. A brahmana who diligently reads this essential compilation of all the Puranas will go to the supreme
destination, which the Supreme Lord Himself has herein described.
65. A brahmana who studies the Srimad-Bhagavatam achieves firm intelligence in devotional service, a
king who studies it gains sovereignty over the earth, a vaisya acquires great treasure and a sudra is
freed from sinful reactions.
66. Lord Hari, the supreme controller of all beings, annihilates the accumulated sins of the Kali age, yet
other literatures do not constantly glorify Him. But that Supreme Personality of Godhead, appearing in
His innumerable personal expansions, is abundantly and constantly described throughout the various
narrations of this Srimad-Bhagavatam.
67. I bow down to that unborn and infinite Supreme Soul, whose personal energies effect the creation,
maintenance and destruction of the material universe. Even Brahma, Indra, Sankara and the other lords
of the heavenly planets cannot fathom the glories of that infallible Personality of Godhead.
68. I offer my obeisances to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, who is the eternal Lord and the
leader of all other deities, who by evolving His nine material energies has arranged within Himself the
abode of all moving and nonmoving creatures, and who is always situated in pure, transcendental
consciousness.
69. Let me offer my respectful obeisances unto my spiritual master, the son of Vyasadeva, Sukadeva
Gosvami. It is he who defeats all inauspicious things within this universe. Although in the beginning he
was absorbed in the happiness of Brahman realization and was living in a secluded place, giving up all
other types of consciousness, he became attracted by the pleasing, most melodious pastimes of Lord
Sri Krsna. He therefore mercifully spoke this supreme Purana, Srimad-Bhagavatam, which is the bright
light of the Absolute Truth and which describes the activities of the Lord.
Chapter Thirteen The Glories of Srimad-Bhagavatam
1. Suta Gosvami said: Unto that personality whom Brahma, Varuna, Indra, Rudra and the Maruts praise
by chanting transcendental hymns and reciting the Vedas with all their corollaries, pada-kramas and
Upanisads, to whom the chanters of the Sama Veda always sing, whom the perfected yogis see within
their minds after fixing themselves in trance and absorbing themselves within Him, and whose limit can
never be found by any demigod or demon-unto that Supreme Personality of Godhead I offer my humble
obeisances.
2. When the Supreme Personality of Godhead appeared as Lord Kurma, a tortoise, His back was
scratched by the sharp-edged stones lying on massive, whirling Mount Mandara, and this scratching
made the Lord sleepy. May you all be protected by the winds caused by the Lord's breathing in this
sleepy condition. Ever since that time, even up to the present day, the ocean tides have imitated the
Lord's inhalation and exhalation by piously coming in and going out.
726 SRIMAD BHAGAVATA
3. Now please hear a summation of the verse length of each of the Puranas. Then hear of the prime
subject and purpose of this Bhagavata Purana, the proper method of giving it as a gift, the glories of
such gift-giving, and finally the glories of hearing and chanting this literature.
4-9. The Brahma Purana consists of ten thousand verses, the Padma Purana of fifty-five thousand, Sri
Visnu Purana of twenty-three thousand, the Siva Purana of twenty-four thousand and Srimad-
Bhagavatam of eighteen thousand. The Narada Purana has twenty-five thousand verses, the
Markandeya Purana nine thousand, the Agni Purana fifteen thousand four hundred, the Bhavisya
Purana fourteen thousand five hundred, the Brahma-vaivarta Purana eighteen thousand and the Linga
Purana eleven thousand. The Varaha Purana contains twenty-four thousand verses, the Skanda
Purana eighty-one thousand one hundred, the Vamana Purana ten thousand, the Kurma Purana
seventeen thousand, the Matsya Purana fourteen thousand, the Garuda Purana nineteen thousand and
the Brahmanda Purana twelve thousand. Thus the total number of verses in all the Puranas is four
hundred thousand. Eighteen thousand of these, once again, belong to the beautiful Bhagavatam.
10. It was to Lord Brahma that the Supreme Personality of Godhead first revealed the Srimad-
Bhagavatam in full. At the time, Brahma, frightened by material existence, was sitting on the lotus flower
that had grown from the Lord's navel.
11-12. From beginning to end, the Srimad-Bhagavatam is full of narrations that encourage renunciation
of material life, as well as nectarean accounts of Lord Hari's transcendental pastimes, which give
ecstasy to the saintly devotees and demigods. This Bhagavatam is the essence of all Vedanta
philosophy because its subject matter is the Absolute Truth, which, while nondifferent from the spirit
soul, is the ultimate reality, one without a second. The goal of this literature is exclusive devotional
service unto that Supreme Truth.
13. If on the full moon day of the month of Bhadra one places Srimad-Bhagavatam on a golden throne
and gives it as a gift, he will attain the supreme transcendental destination.
14. All other Puranic scriptures shine forth in the assembly of saintly devotees only as long as that great
ocean of nectar, Srimad-Bhagavatam, is not heard.
15. Srimad-Bhagavatam is declared to be the essence of all Vedanta philosophy. One who has felt
satisfaction from its nectarean mellow will never be attracted to any other literature.
16. Just as the Ganga is the greatest of all rivers, Lord Acyuta the supreme among deities and Lord
Sambhu [Siva] the greatest of Vaisnavas, so Srimad-Bhagavatam is the greatest of all Puranas.
17. O brahmanas, in the same way that the city of Kasi is unexcelled among holy places, Srimad-
Bhagavatam is supreme among all the Puranas.
18. Srimad-Bhagavatam is the spotless Purana. It is most dear to the Vaisnavas because it describes
the pure and supreme knowledge of the paramahamsas. This Bhagavatam reveals the means for
becoming free from all material work, together with the processes of transcendental knowledge,
renunciation and devotion. Anyone who seriously tries to understand Srimad-Bhagavatam, who
properly hears and chants it with devotion, becomes completely liberated.
19. I meditate upon that pure and spotless Supreme Absolute Truth, who is free from suffering and
death and who in the beginning personally revealed this incomparable torchlight of knowledge to
Brahma. Brahma then spoke it to the sage Narada, who narrated it to Krsna-dvaipayana Vyasa. Srila
Vyasa revealed this Bhagavatam to the greatest of sages, Sukadeva Gosvami, and Sukadeva
mercifully spoke it to Maharaja Pariksit.
20. We offer our obeisances to the Supreme Personality of Godhead, Lord Vasudeva, the all-pervading
witness, who mercifully explained this science to Brahma when he anxiously desired salvation.
21. I offer my humble obeisances to Sri Sukadeva Gosvami, the best of mystic sages and a personal
manifestation of the Absolute Truth. He saved Maharaja Pariksit, who was bitten by the snake of
material existence.
22. O Lord of lords, O master, please grant us pure devotional service at Your lotus feet, life after life.
23. I offer my respectful obeisances unto the Supreme Lord, Hari, the congregational chanting of whose
holy names destroys all sinful reactions, and the offering of obeisances unto whom relieves all material
suffering.
OM TAT SAT